ellauri001.html on line 22:

yellow;background:#3ea0bb;font-size:10em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">EL NIÑO


ellauri001.html on line 23:

yellow;font-size:4em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;font-style:italic;margin-bottom:0%">Melskeitten miehen muistelmat

{span style="color:white;background-color:gold"}2019{/span} Lapsuus


ellauri001.html on line 377: josta lyhyenä näen ikkunaan.


ellauri001.html on line 526:

Sitt on takautumat ylilyhyet:


ellauri001.html on line 1813: Viihtyen itsekseen, autistinpoikaset pienet.

ellauri001.html on line 2150: sanomme kuin yer.fi/4641732-Kootut-runot-seka-runoilijakehitys-paivakirjojen-ja-kirjeiden-valossa-werner-soderstrom-osakeyhtio-helsinki.html">Saima Harmaja.


ellauri001.html on line 2310:

Outo juttu on myös lämpimässä kylvyssä Junghansin valkoisen boilerin sinisen kaasuliekin humahdellessa irrotella terskaan takertunutta esinahkaa varovasti, kunnes se eräänä kauniina päivänä tai pikemminkin iltana lähtee kokonaan irti vetäytyen taakse ja


ellauri002.html on line 23:

yellow;background:#3ea0bb;font-size:10em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">EL COÑO


ellauri002.html on line 24:

yellow;font-size:5em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">KAUNOKAINEN JA KUOLEMA

Nuoruus


ellauri002.html on line 174: käyessä kylän väliä.

ellauri002.html on line 1695: Joskus harvoin oli varaa soittaa puhelimella Suomeen. Dona Caritan äiti säntäsi Eiran rappuun tohvelit läpsyen hälyyttämään puhelimeen: tule kiireesti, nyt se soittaa. Tai laittoi oven alta lapun. Ei, liudan lappuja. Puhelut oli kalliita.
ellauri002.html on line 1794: Suffikseist ja puffikseist ja vitun transformaatioist yyem tuubasta/

ellauri002.html on line 2014: ensin harvaan, sitten tihentyen

ellauri002.html on line 2223: yend.jpeg" style="width:100%" />
ellauri003.html on line 22:

yellow;font-size:5em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">MAZETAN 3 KULTARAHAA

Aikuisuus


ellauri004.html on line 19:

yellow;background:red;font-size:8em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">AL DENTE


ellauri004.html on line 20:

yellow;font-size:4em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">LEUKAVASTI LAUKAISTUA

Dantea


ellauri004.html on line 474: EX-LEPER: That´s right, sir. Sixteen years behind the bell, and proud of it, sir.
ellauri004.html on line 490: EX-LEPER: Ah, yeah. I could do that, sir. Yeah. Yeah, I could do that, I suppose. What I was thinking was, I was going to ask him if he could make me a bit lame in one leg during the middle of the week. You know, something beggable, but not leprosy, which is a pain in the arse, to be blunt. Excuse my French, sir, but, uh--
ellauri004.html on line 603: pöyhkeältä hyeenalta.
ellauri004.html on line 1204: Ei, tää on rangaistus, tavoitteena estää tempun uusiminen, muille antaa varoitus. Joo tää on keissi tätä tyyppiä: teen tän sinun parhaakses, tämä sattuu muhun enemmän kuin suhun. Isi tässä toimii tossut läpsyen, lasten käytöksestä pahoillaan. Yhteispelistä on kyse, ainakin isin mielestä.
ellauri004.html on line 1229: a poor player that struts and frets

ellauri004.html on line 1319: lyhyen tähtäimen voitolla optiot lyhkäseks myypi.

ellauri004.html on line 1359: Huomaa: jos onni on differentiaali, on yhdentekevää kuinka PALJON onnea on elukalla, vain kaltevuudella on merkitystä. Köyhä paska on onnellisempi rovosta kuin Roope miljoonasta. Jalan menettänyt on helpottunut kun pää on jäljellä. Ergo: jäämiehellä ei ollut onnettomampi elämä kuin jäätelöä lipovalla lippalakkieskolla, olkoonkin että lyhyempi ja tautisempi. Jos elämän tarkoitus on onnellinen elämä (kuten sanoi Aristoteles), miksi venyttää sitä kurjemmasta päästä, varastoida vanhuksia hoivakoteihin.
ellauri004.html on line 1765: On elukoilla pienet ilot, surutkin on lyhyet.

ellauri005.html on line 20:

yellow;background:red;font-size:8em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">EL CHURRO


ellauri005.html on line 21:

yellow;font-size:4em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">TYTTÖ JA JÄLKIRUOKA

Miltonia


ellauri005.html on line 703: Guess I´ll take my time, yeah

ellauri005.html on line 1329: Well, I know they can´t count tears from the eye

ellauri006.html on line 20:

yellow;background:red;font-size:10em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">AL CAPONE


ellauri006.html on line 21:

yellow;font-size:4em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">GANGSTERIKUNINGAS

Psalttaria


ellauri006.html on line 367: May the better player win.

ellauri006.html on line 403: Omalaatusia ajan merkkejä Nälkäkurjessa on invertti narsismi, et näkee ittensä koko aika kameran ja muiden silmissä: näytin siltä ja siltä. Sillä oudolla suomalaisella homolla (Miki Liukkonen: O) oli tätä samaa. Hurjasti sivuja siitä miten mun stailistit stailaa mua miehissä ja mitä mul on päällä. Mä katon itteeni videosta ja kuvista. Otan selfieitä. Calle ei edes kattonut itteänsä peiliin, vaik ois ehkä pitänyt. Never underestimate the power of the eye of Sarnath, I mean my stylist.
ellauri006.html on line 1365: 36 Wenaa wähä, jatkaa El Luihu. Sillä on vielä jotain sanomista. Leili ei ole tyhjä, vielä riittää paukkuja. Ei siellä enää kyllä ole yhtään uutta pointtia, niitä entisiä se tolkuttaa toisilla sanoilla, eli kohtia 1 ja 2 teodikean lyhyellä listalla. Jumala jylistää pauhinallansa ihmeellisesti, ja tekee suuria ja tutkimattomia töitä. No voishan tässä olla se pointti, ettei termiittiapinat ole missään erikoisasemassa, kert jumalalla on niin paljon duunia. Siis deistinen pelitapa 6.
ellauri006.html on line 1623: Se on lyhyempi aika kuin

ellauri006.html on line 1766: "The Little Drummer Boy" (originally known as "Carol of the Drum") is a popular Christmas song written by the American classical music composer and teacher Katherine Kennicott Davis in 1941 based upon a traditional Czech song, Tluče bubeníček. First recorded in 1951 by the Trapp Family Singers, the song was further popularized by a 1958 recording by the Harry Simeone Chorale; the Simeone version was re-released successfully for several years and the song has been recorded many times since.
ellauri007.html on line 20:

yellow;font-size:5em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">KAPINAKENRAALIN TIMANTIT

Lyriikkaa


ellauri007.html on line 586: Minä, Yoyontzin - Ohuaye! -

ellauri007.html on line 621: in ononya yehua ni Yoyontzin -Ohuaye!-

ellauri007.html on line 627: o ye ichan o zanio ye nican

ellauri007.html on line 638: o ye ichan,
ellauri007.html on line 1070: Bye bye people

ellauri007.html on line 1327: their true menage of thirty years

ellauri007.html on line 1451: lyhyellä mutta nasevalla puupalla.

ellauri008.html on line 20:

yellow;background:red;font-size:9em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">EL PERRO


ellauri008.html on line 21:

yellow;font-size:4em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">KARAVAANI KULKEE

Haukuntaa


ellauri008.html on line 49: Conrad asettui 36-vuotiaana vuonna 1894 asumaan Englantiin. Hän meni naimisiin, sai kaksi lasta ja matkusteli edelleen satunnaisesti. Enimmän aikaa hän kuitenkin kirjoitti, ja 1895 ilmestyi ensimmäinen teos, Almayer’s Folly. Conrad jatkoi kirjoittamista elämänsä loppuun asti, ja hänen viimeinen romaaninsa, The Nature of Crime, ilmestyi 1924. Joseph Conrad kuoli vuonna 1924 sydänkohtaukseen.
ellauri008.html on line 351: vaan nahjus lyhyehkön kantaman.
ellauri008.html on line 470: He made me feel so natural and very much myself, that I was almost afraid of losing the thrill and wonder of being there, although I was vibrating with intense excitement inside. His eyes under their pent-house lids revealed the suffering and the intensity of his experiences; when he spoke of his work, there came over them a sort of misty, sensuous, dreamy look, but they seemed to hold deep down the ghosts of old adventures and experiences—once or twice there was something in them one almost suspected of being wicked. But then I believe whatever strange wickedness would tempt this super-subtle Pole, he would be held in restraint by an equally delicate sense of honour. In his talk he led me along many paths of his life, but I felt that he did not wish to explore the jungle of emotions that lay dense on either side, and that his apparent frankness had a great reserve.
ellauri008.html on line 475:

It was wonderful—I loved him & I think he liked me. He talked a great deal about his work & life & aims, & about sother writers. Then we went for a little walk, & somehow grew very intimate. I plucked up courage to tell him what I find in his work—the boring down into things to get to the very bottom below the apparent facts. He seemed to feel I had understood him; then I stopped & we just looked into each other's eyes for some time, & then he said he had grown to wish he could live on the surface and write differently, that he had grown frightened. His eyes at the moment expressed the inward pain & terror that one feels him always fighting. Then he talked a lot about Poland, & showed me an album of family photographs of the 60's—spoke about how dream-like all that seems, & how he sometimes feels he ought not to have had any children, because they have no roots or traditions or relations.
ellauri008.html on line 477: My first impression was one of surprise. He spoke English with a very strong foreign accent, and nothing in his demeanour in any way suggested the sea. He was an aristocratic Polish gentleman to his fingertips. At our very first meeting, we talked with continually increasing intimacy. We seemed to sink through layer after layer of what was superficial, till gradually both reached the central fire. It was an experience unlike any other I have known. We looked into each other's eyes, half appalled and half intoxicated to find ourselves together in such a region. The emotion was as intense as passionate love, and at the same time all-embracing. I came away bewildered, and hardly able to find my way among ordinary affairs.
ellauri008.html on line 604: I'd rather be away, yes I would, I really would,

ellauri008.html on line 749: Man is amazing, but not a masterpiece, he said, keeping his eyes fixed on the glass case. Perhaps the artist was a little mad. Eh? What do you think? Sometimes it seems to me that man is come where he is not wanted, where there is no place for him; for if not, why should he want all the place? Why should he run about here and there making great noise about himself, talking about stars, disturbing the blades of grass? ...
ellauri008.html on line 818: In March 1896 Conrad married an Englishwoman, Jessie George. The couple had two sons, Borys and John. The elder, Borys, proved a disappointment in scholarship and integrity. Jessie was an unsophisticated, working-class girl, sixteen years younger than Conrad. To his friends, she was an inexplicable choice of wife, and the subject of some rather disparaging and unkind remarks. (See Lady Ottoline Morrell's opinion of Jessie in Impressions.)
ellauri008.html on line 842: Stemming from Ernest's treatment as a child, where his overbearing mother put him in dresses (a common practice then, but which his mother took to the extreme, even treating him like a girl), Hemingway had an interesting relationship with gender and his perceptions of it. He probably never engaged in homosexual activity but there can be no doubt that he idolized the male form. There are scenes in almost all of his books but certainly in his major novels where the men are presented in a homerotic manner. Farewell to Arms is kind of an eyebrow raiser. But this is also the man who wrote The Garden of Eden, which was about gender switching. Ernest's 3rd son "ille faciet" Gregory fulfilled his dad's dream. Go read Running With The Bulls. This is written by his son Gregory’s wife Valerie, who had to deal with the fact that her man was a transvestite and died from a botched sex change. Very few people know this.
ellauri008.html on line 881:

You said that giving your life up to them (them meaning all of mankind with skins brown, yellow or black in colour) was like selling your soul to a brute. You contended that that kind of thing was only endurable and enduring when based on a firm conviction in the truth of ideas racially your own, in whose name are established the order, the morality of an ethical process. We want its strength at our backs, you said. We want a belief in its necessity and its justice, to make a worthy and conscious sacrifice of our lives. In other words, you maintained that we must fight in the ranks or our lives don't count. You should know who came out cleverly without singeing your wings.
ellauri008.html on line 899: 4 Siionin tiet surevat, sillä juhlilletulijoita ei ole. Kaikki sen portit ovat autioina, sen papit huokailevat, sen neitsyet ovat murheissaan, ja sillä itsellään on katkera mieli.

ellauri008.html on line 1162: eekuu paranoo lopun lähestyessä, se jää varmaan viimesexi

ellauri008.html on line 1331: Sen virkkeet on niin lyhyitä, että ne ehtii päättyä pisteeseen, ennenkuin palstan reuna tulee vastaan. Suurin osa niistä on pelkkiä päälauseita. Selkokieltä, mainostextiä. Lyhyestä. Virsi. Kaunis.
ellauri009.html on line 19:

yellow;background:#3ea0bb;font-size:10em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">EL MONO


ellauri009.html on line 20:

yellow;font-size:5em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;font-style:italic;margin-bottom:0%">LÄNNEN LAKI

Moraalia


ellauri009.html on line 694: Your hat strategically dipped below one eye

ellauri009.html on line 696: You had one eye on the mirror

ellauri009.html on line 740: sen estää nähtävästi ääretön säätyero.

ellauri009.html on line 1321: kun vielä ehtii, tyhjänä se kevyemmin

ellauri009.html on line 1793: Tätä olen usein miettinyt: miten sopii yhteen lämpökuolema ja elämä, entropian laki ja kasvuräjähdys? Toinen vähentää eroja, toinen lisää? Vai lisääkö? Ehkä me ollaan vaan paikallisia eetteripyörteitä. Aurinko on kuuma, avaruus kylmä, me siltä väliltä. Oisko tää paakkuuntuminen vaan paikallinen välivaihe globaalissa tasoittumisessa? Vähänniinkun Suomi viilenee koska maapallo kuumenee? Singulariteettipuuro silottuu pipunoiden kautta? Maailmankaikkeus jäähtyessään kuplii, kuplat kasvaa ennenkuin plätsähtää ja lässähtää.
ellauri011.html on line 19:

yellow;background:#245880;font-size:10em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">EL PABLO


ellauri011.html on line 20:

yellow;font-size:5em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">VERTA JA KULTAA

Mystikkaa


ellauri011.html on line 50: Did yet inspire a cheer, which he forbore to check.
ellauri011.html on line 96: Bear, know, feel, and yet breathe—into one word,

ellauri011.html on line 495: When he was around 12 years old, he started writing a dairy on a regular basis.
ellauri011.html on line 566: In his central figure, not-quite-Paulo, he has created (I imagine by mistake) a devastating portrait of a man whose stock in trade is spirituality but who is worldly to his very toenails, exquisitely attuned to his own status. He is constantly reminding himself how many books he has sold, how many languages they have been translated into, and that he is 'despite all the adverse reviews, a possible candidate for a major literary prize'. When he takes up with another woman (strictly to dispel the Zahir, of course), he chooses a successful French actress of 35, on the grounds that she was the only candidate to enjoy his status, 'because she too was famous and knew that celebrity counts'. Celebrity is an aphrodisiac. 'It was good for a woman's ego to be with a man and know that he had chosen her even though he had had the pick of many others.' And the man's ego, does that come into it? Not-quite-Paulo is too gallant to reveal his own age, but if he is indeed a refraction of the author then he is 20 years Marie's senior. It's adorable that he should regard himself so solemnly as the trophy in this pairing.
ellauri011.html on line 994: or the year, never mind Coelho's clock's second hand.
ellauri012.html on line 19:

yellow;background:#3ea0bb;font-size:8em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">LO SIENTO


ellauri012.html on line 20:

yellow;font-size:3em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">EI NAISELTA KUNNIASANAA

Miesasiaa


ellauri012.html on line 204: And yet I´ve grown accustomed to the trace

ellauri012.html on line 289: Jos olisin voinut kuvitella että kirje, joka ei ollut tarkoitettu sulle, voisi joutua sun käsiisi, olisin ollut varovaisempi enkä pannut siihen mitään mikä olisi voinut herättää sussa menneiden vastoinkäymistemme muistot. Kuvasin rohkein vedoin menetyksieni sarjan ystävälle saadakseni hänet järkiinsä omasta menetyksestään. Jos olen tällä hyväntahtoisella keinolla häirinnyt sinun rauhaasi, koetan nyt kuivata nuo kyyneleet, jotka surullinen kuvaus sai sinut vuodattamaan; koetan sulauttaa oman suruni sinun suruusi, ja vuodattaa sydämeni sinun eteesi; lyhyesti, avata silmiesi eteen koko hätäni, ja sieluni salaisuuden, jonka turhamaisuuteni on tähän saakka salannut muulta maailmalta, ja jonka sinä nyt pakotat esiin minusta, huolimatta päinvastaisista päätöksistäni.
ellauri012.html on line 299: Mitä kaikkea mä oonkaan koittanut! Mä olen nostanut käteni itseäni vastaan; olen treenannut niin maan perhanasti; kirjoitan kommentteja Paavaliin (paska homma); kinaan Aristoteleen kanssa: lyhyesti sanoen teen kaikkea mitä tein ennen kuin bylsin sua, mut kaikki turhaan; mikään ei onnistu sua torjumaan. Voi nenä, älä lisää mun kurjuutta olemalla uskollinen; unohda, jos voit, suosionosoituksesi ja niiden antama oikeutus muhun; anna mun välittää susta viis. Kadehdin niiden onnea jotka ei oo koskaan rakastaneet; onpa heillä rauhallista ja iisi olo! Mutta nautinnon vuoksea seuraa aina katkeruuden luode; olen nyt siitä vissin varma; mut vaikka mua ei enää petä rakkaus, en ole parantunut. Järki tuomitsee, mut sydän hurraa. On se heikkoa etten pysty vapautumaan tunteesta jonka niin monet asiat, tää paikka, mun persoona ja mun häpeä koittaa tuhota. Annan periksi välittämättä että parempi vastustuskyky pyyhkisi pois mun vanhat synnit, ja korvaisi ne ansioilla ja laakereilla. Miksi sä käytät kaunopuheisuuttas haukkuakses mun pakoa ja vaikenemista? Lakkaa puhumasta meidän jimbajamboista ja sun täsmällisestä osanotosta niihin tilaisuuksiin, mulla on tarpeeksi kärsimistä ilman että ajattelen niitäkin. Kai filosofiasta olisi paljon etua, jos sen avulla opittaisiin hallitsemaan himojamme? Kyllä tässä piisaa ponnistusta, repsahduksia, angstausta! Mitenkä kauan me ollaan eksyksissä tässä sotkussa, kykenemättöminä järkeilemään, hillitsemään itseämme, hallitsemaan tunteitamme?
ellauri012.html on line 324: Näin sun silmät, kun sanoit viimeisen kerran hyvästi, sul oli silmät ihan ristissä. Kesti yli puoli vuotta ennenkuin kirjoitit mulle, koko sinä aikana en saanut mitään messua. Ihailin tätä vaitioloa, en voinut sitä syyttää, mutten kyennyt samaan. Kirjoitin sulle, sä et vastannut: sun sydän oli kiinni, mutta nyt tää siipan puutarha on auki; jumala on vetänyt ulos ja jättänyt sut yksin. Se vaan testaa sua; pure hammasta ja koita imaista se takaisin. Me tarvitaan jahven apua jotta saadaan kettingit rikki, me ollaan liian kiintyneitä irrottaaksemme itse itsemme. Meidän hullutukset ulottuivat kaikkein pyhimpään; meidän lemmiskelyt oli valtakunnallinen skandaali. Niitä luetaan ja ihaillaan; siitä rakkaudesta kirjoitetaan vieläkin. Me ollaan lohdutuksena mokaileville nuorille tästä ikuisuuteen; ne jotka jää kiinni meidän jälkeen voi tuntea itsensä vähemmän syyllisiksi. Me ollaan rikollisia, jotka narahti tosi myöhään; ollaan rehellisiä! Korjataan siinä määrin kuin mahdollista tekemämme hairahdukset, Ranska joka todisti meidän munaukset hämmästyy kun sanomme: Sori siitä. Hämätään kaikkia jotka koittaa kopioida meitä; pelataan jahven jengissä itseämme vastaan, et vältetään sen tuomarointi. Meidän vanhat mokat vaatii sovitukseksensa kyyneleitä, häpeää ja surua. Tarjotaanpa näitä lääkkeitä siis sydämen pohjasta, punastutaan ja ulvotaan. Jos meidän sydämet ei ole alkuun ihan mukana, ainaskin voidaan ajatella et niiden pitäisi olla.
ellauri012.html on line 383: Kun mä kerron mikä kilpailija on tempaissut mun sydämen pois sulta, kiität mun mielenmuutosta, ja pyydät tätä kilpailija liimaamaan sen kii. Tästä sä jo arvaat että jumalahan se on joka vie nyt sulta Heloisen. Jep, mun rakas Abelard, nyt se antaa mulle sen mielentyyneyden jonka meidän kurjuuden kirkas muisto ennen esti. Just taivas joo! mikä muu kilpailija vois ottaa sulta mut? Voisitko kuvitella, että joku vaan, joku ihminen voisi kumittaa sut mun sisältä? Voisitko kuvitella mun vaihtavan jumalisen ja sivistyneen Abelardin kehenkään alempaan kuin jumalaan? Ei, must tuntuu et sä olet arvioinut mut oikein tässä kohtaa. Varmaan sä haluut tietää millä keinoin jumala sai aikaan näin suuren muutoksen? Kerron sulle, että saisit ihmetellä sallimuksen salaisia kiemuroita. Muutama päivä sen jälkeen kun sun vika kirje tuli mä sairastuin vakavasti (Joopa joo, aina tää sama deus ex machina näissä muinaisjutuissa); lääkärit jo luovutti mut kuolemalle. Silloin mun tunne, joka aina ennen oli tuntunut musta viattomalta, alkoi näyttää pahalta. Muistista tulvahti kuin filmissä (joojoo, anakronismi, mutta siltä se varmaan just tuntui) kaikki mun elämän menneet teot, ja mun täytyy tunnustaa että ainoo tuska jonka tunsin oli tunnontuska meidän rakkaudesta. Kuolema jota olin siihen saakka katsonut vain etäältä, häälyi nyt mun edessä kuin syntisillä. Aloin pelätä jumalan kostoa nyt kun olin lähempänä sitä, ja mua kadutti etten mä ollut ottanut kunnolla käyttöön armolahjoja. Ne hellät kirjeet jotka sulle kirjoitin, rakkaat keskustelut joita kävin sun kanssa, kiusas mua nyt yhtä paljon kuin ne oli ennen viehättäny. Voi Heloise-repukka, mä sanoin, jos on rikos lähteä tolla lailla hehkuttamaan, ja jos tämän elämän jälkeen siitä seuraa varma rangaistus, mikset sä vastustanut kunnolla tollaisia kiusauksia? Ajattele mitä kidutuksia on sulle varalla, kauhistu sua venttaavia helevetin koneita, ja muista samalla nautintoja joita sun eksynyt sielu piti niin hitsin hienoina. Äh! eikö vähän harmita että kieriskelit niin falskeissa huveissa? Lyhyesti, Abelard, kuvittele katumusta jota tunsin, niin et ihmettele lehmänkäännöstä.
ellauri012.html on line 385: Yksinäisyys on kestämätöntä ahdistuneelle mielelle; sen huoli kasvaa hiljaisuudessa, ja syrjäytyminen vaan lisää sitä. Siitä lähin kun olen ollut suljettuna näihin seiniin, en ole tehnyt muuta kuin itkeskellyt meidän vahinkoa. Tää luostari on kaikunut mun kiljunnasta, ja ikuiseen orjuuteen tuomitun kurjimuksen lailla olen kuluttanut päivät surun parissa. Sen sijaan että olisin toteuttanut loordin armollisen suunnitelman mua kohtaan, olen kapinoinut sitä vastaan, pidin tätä pyhää pakopaikkaa kauheeena vankilana, ja olen kantanut loordin iestä vasten tahtoa. Sen sijaan että olisin putsannut itseäni katumuksen harjoituksilla, olen vaan vahvistanut mun tuomiota. Fataali erehdys! Kardinaalimunaus! Mut Abelard, mä oon nyt repinyt silmiltä siteen joka sokaisi mut, ja jos mä nytkään voin yhtään luottaa omiin tunteisiin, musta on nyt tullut sun arvostuksen arvoinen. Sä et ole mulle enää muuta kuin se rakastava Abelard, joka aina pyrki yksityisiin hetkiin mun kanssa sumuttaen meidän vartijoiden silmät. Meidän onnettomuudet sai sut kammoamaan pahetta (ei ihme, kun et siihen enää itse kyennyt), ja sä heti omistit loput päiväs hyveelle, ja näytit alistuvan siihen pakkoon mielelläsi. Mä taas, joka olin herkempi, ja enemmän nautinnon perään (ja jolla oli paikat vielä kunnosssa) olin vitun kärsimätön tästä, ja olet kuullut miten paljon kannoin kaunaa sun kalttaajille. Oot nähnyt mun kaunan mun viime kirjeistä; tää se oli, varmasti, joka sai mun Abelardin, sut munattoman Hannibalin, mulle äkämystymään. Sä hermostuit mun valituksista, ja jos totta puhutaan, menetit toivon mun sielun pelastuksesta. Et voinut aavistaa että Heloise voisi voittaa noin vahvan tarpeen; mut olit väärässä, Abelard, mun heikkous, armon lihaksilla, ei estänyt mua tavoittamasta voiton seppelettä. Palauta mut siis sun hyviin kirjoihin; sun oma jumalisuus varmaan kehottaa sua siihen.
ellauri012.html on line 400: On se nyt häpeä ettei filosofi voi sulattaa mikä oisi voinut sattua kelle vaan. Kato musta esimerkkiä; mä sain syntyessäni kovat halut, mä joudun päivittäin taistelemaan tunteiden kanssa, ja iloitsen kun saan ne järjen hallintaan. Miten tälläinen heikko luonne joutuu vahvistamaan vahvempaansa? Mut nyt mä meen liian pitkälle. Näinkö mä kirjoitan mun kultu Abelardille? Sille joka noudattaa kaikkia saarnaamiaan hyveitä? Jos valitat onnen arvasta, se ei ole niinkään että tunnet sen iskut, vaan koitat osoittaa vihollisilles kuinka moitittavia ne on kun ne satutti sua. Jätä ne rauhaan Abelard, anna niiden kiehua omassa liemessään, jatka sä sun yleisöjen hurmaamista. Löydä ne sivistyksen aarteet jotka taivas näyttää varanneen vaan sulle; sun viholliset jotka sä häikäiset sun järkeilyllä tulee lopulta kyllä järkiinsä. Voi että sä olisit onnellinen jos saisit koko maailman vakuutetuksi sun oikeassa olosta, niinkun mä jo oon. Kaikki myöntää sun fiksuuden; sun pahimmat vastustajatkin tunnustaa, että sä tiedät kaiken mikä on inhimillisesti tiedettävissä.
ellauri012.html on line 530: En kyllä usko että eskarilainen pikku John työläispoika osas sanoa noin Coelhomaisen nenäkkäästi ja pikkuvanhasti. Kun kademieli fäni ampui sen New Yorkissa se sanoi viimeisiksi sanoikseen Aargh! muhun osui. Sen voin uskoa. Ei kukaan ole syntyessään artisti, ja ennen kuolemaa ja hautajaisia ei kukaan ole häpi.
ellauri012.html on line 588: Ja vielä yx juttu: tytöt ei saa ilostella liikaa. Eikä röyhkeillä, niiden pitää olla hiljaa, jos on pakko jotain sanoa niin sävyisästi, nöyrästi ja lyhyesti.
ellauri012.html on line 624: Après ces instructions, qui doivent tenir la première place, je crois qu’il n’est pas inutile de laisser aux filles, selon leurs loisirs et la portée de leur esprit, la lecture des livres profanes qui n’ont rien de dangereux pour les passions : c’est même le moyen de les dégoûter des comédies et des romans. Donnez-leur donc les histoires grecques et romaines ; elles y verront des prodiges de courage et de désintéressement. Ne leur laissez pas ignorer l’histoire de France, qui à aussi ses beautés ; mêlez celles des pays voisins, et les relations des pays éloignés judicieusement écrites. Tout cela sert à agrandir l’esprit, et à élever l’âme à de grands sentiments, pourvu qu’on évite la vanité et l’affectation.
ellauri012.html on line 716: Lyhyen äidin lyhyt poika, nai lyhyen tytön, mutta hyvän, sai lyhyitä lapsia, mutta hyviä, ei tyhmiä. Se on pääasia.
ellauri014.html on line 18:

yellow;background:#3ea0bb;font-size:10em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">EL RUSO


ellauri014.html on line 19:

yellow;font-size:3em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">ANDALUSIAN SINISUKKA

Rousseauta


ellauri014.html on line 31: Andelinit on lahtelainen suku ahkeria kääntäjiä, kellosepän poikia vähän kuin Rousseau. Werner Andelin 1869, sittemmin Anttila, lukion ope Tampereella ja Kustannus Osakeyhtiö Sampon kustannusvirkailija, oli se jonka innoittuneesta kädestä lähti Tutulta perityn Dorén kuvilla somistetun kuvaraamatun kevyesti editoitu pyhä teksti. Käänsi romskuja ja harrasti esperantoa.
ellauri014.html on line 65: Yeah, yeah, yeah
ellauri014.html on line 71: Yeah, yeah, yeah

ellauri014.html on line 76: We’d read all these things about leather and we didn’t have any leather but I had my oilskins and we had some polythene bags from somewhere. We all dressed up in them and wore them in bed. John stayed the night with us in the same bed. I don’t think anything very exciting happened and we all wondered what the fun was in being ‘kinky’.
ellauri014.html on line 78: The 256th couplet of Tirukkural, which was composed at least 2000 years ago, says that "if people do not consume a product or service, then there will not be anybody to supply that product or service for the sake of price".
ellauri014.html on line 89: Pamela; or, Virtue Rewarded is an epistolary novel by English writer Samuel Richardson, a novel which was first published in 1740. It tells the story of a 16-year-old maidservant named Pamela Andrews, whose employer, Mr. B, a wealthy landowner, makes unwanted and inappropriate advances towards her after the death of his mother. Pamela strives to reconcile her strong religious training with her desire for the approval of her employer in a series of letters and, later, journal entries, addressed to her impoverished parents. After various unsuccessful attempts at seduction, a series of sexual assaults, and an extended period of kidnapping, the rakish Mr. B eventually reforms and makes Pamela a sincere proposal of marriage. In the novel's second part, Pamela marries Mr. B and tries to acclimatize to her new position in upper-class society. The full title, Pamela; or, Virtue Rewarded, makes plain Richardson's moral purpose. A best-seller of its time, Pamela was widely read but was also criticized for its perceived licentiousness and disregard for class barriers.
ellauri014.html on line 199: Tutustu Pariisissa yhtä köyhään Dideroohon. Diderot oli pieni ruipelo, boheemi veitsisepän poika, jonka iskä hylkäsi kun ei mennyt lukee papiksi, lakia, tai lääkäriksi. Varmaan oli aina komeen Rousseaun hintelämpi sivuvaunu. Yhtä vihattu, ei yhtä ihailtu. Naiset ei kuumu tietosanoista. Croyez-moi, je le sais.
ellauri014.html on line 540: Julle raportoi lyhyesti Clairen häistä, ei ollu kovin kummoset.
ellauri014.html on line 587: Parooni pyytää Jullen panomieheltä vielä allekirjoituxen luovariin. Tavara vastaanotettu. Kuittia? Kiitos kyllä. Sen se saa, ja kaupan päällisexi saatekirjeellisen röyhkeätä puhetta. Appi eio kiva, mut vävyehdokas on varsinainen kusipää.
ellauri014.html on line 860: Viides tuotantokausi. Ted on nyt kolmekymmentä, serkukset vanhanpiian iässä, mutta onnex rouvia. Ralph on matkalla Namulandiaan. Ralph moittii Tediä pehmyexi, sen pitäis olla kovana kuin porkkana, ja yhtä tarkkana. Se kirjoittaa Tedille: nyt on korkea aika sun miehistyä ja mennä izeesi (ei Julkkuun eikä edes muhun), kert et Julkun mekon alle pääse millään ilveellä. Peukaloliisan ohje: "seuraa sydäntäs vaan!" toimii ainoastaan jos sydän ei ole ihan bäng bäng typerä. Kuten sulla, on pakko sanoa.
ellauri014.html on line 1038: trouver. Voyez ce que j’ai fait. »
ellauri014.html on line 1051: Je fus touché. Le zèle et le feu de cet ardent jeune homme éclataient dans ses yeux. J’oubliai la marquise et Laure. Que peut-on regretter au monde quand on y conserve un ami?
ellauri014.html on line 1107: It´s very funny --- every time I talk to people, it´s like, "Oh, yeah, definitely quality of life over quantity of life." But when push comes to shove, it´s really quantity of life. "I might be a little more confused, but I´ll take that extra year!"
ellauri014.html on line 1157: O grand Etre ! Etre éternel, suprême intelligence, source de vie et de félicité, créateur, conservateur, père de l’homme et roi de la nature, Dieu très puissant, très bon, dont je ne doutai jamais un moment, et sous les yeux duquel j’aimai toujours à vivre ! je le sais, je m’en réjouis, je vais paraître devant ton trône.
ellauri014.html on line 1163: Jaarin jaarin. Sanois vaan Ah ma kuolen, se on lyhyempi lause.
ellauri014.html on line 1170: Julle ottaa kuolemansa kevyesti, helluntailaisten tavoin se iloizee jo etukäteen, laittaa huulipunaa, laulaa hilpeällä kitarasäestyxellä: Täältä puolehen ylhäisen maan nyt vain uskossa katsellahan. Kohta vaan joudutaan taivaan kuoressa veisailemaan. Claire, tuo pikku Martta, ei osallistu näihin iloihin, se juoksee vaan potan kanssa ja huokailee. Jullella on hyvä osa taas, ja parempaa tulossa. Ihan kuin Sirkka ja Mirjami.
ellauri014.html on line 1206: « Voyez donc, continuait-elle, à quelle félicité je suis parvenue. J’en avais beaucoup ; j’en attendais davantage. La prospérité de ma famille, une bonne éducation pour mes enfants, tout ce qui m’était cher rassemblé autour de moi ou prêt à l’être. Le présent, l’avenir, me flattaient également ; la jouissance et l’espoir se réunissaient pour me rendre heureuse. Mon bonheur monté par degrés était au comble ; il ne pouvait plus que déchoir ; il était venu sans être attendu, il se fût enfui quand je l’aurais cru durable. Qu’eût fait le sort pour me soutenir à ce point ? Un état permanent est-il fait pour l’homme ?
ellauri014.html on line 1522: Two Russian Silver Age poets, Nikolai Gumilyov and Maximilian Voloshin, fought a duel over another poet, Lilya Dmitriyeva. She had rejected Gumilyov and he made some insulting remarks about her. Voloshin stepped in to defend the lady’s honor.
ellauri014.html on line 1524: The two poets had their duel on the Chernaya Rechka using Pushkin-era pistols. On his way to the venue, Voloshin lost one of his galoshes and declared that he would not leave the spot until he found it. The galosh was found, Gumilyov fired his pistol first and missed, while Voloshin’s pistol misfired twice. The two poets patched up relations only 12 years later.
ellauri014.html on line 1569: The Cambridge History of Italian Literature thought him to be "one of the greatest Italian poets of all time". He is considered the founder of the school of Marinism, later known as Secentismo (17th century) or Marinismo (19th century), characterised by its use of extravagant and excessive conceits.[2] Marino´s conception of poetry, which exaggerated the artificiality of Mannerism, was based on an extensive use of antithesis and a whole range of wordplay, on lavish descriptions and a sensuous musicality of the verse, and enjoyed immense success in his time, comparable to that of Petrarch before him.
ellauri014.html on line 1708: The aged year is near his end. lupaa ikääntyneen vuoden loppua.
ellauri014.html on line 1709: Then doth thy sweet and quiet eye Sitten sun hiljainen söpö silmäsi
ellauri014.html on line 1722: So, yeah (the blogger goes on), I know I am not an internationally renowned poetry critic, but it strikes me that this is an entirely different poem. There is a blossom in both poems, and a journey. But there isn’t much else that connects them. I don’t think I am being overly literal when I suggest that either Montgomery has misattributed the original poem, or that her version is a pretty radical interpretation.
ellauri014.html on line 1733: Lift up, thy dewy fringed eyes, Nosta kasteiset silmäripsesi
ellauri014.html on line 1799: A various language; for his gayer hours
ellauri014.html on line 1815: In all his course; nor yet in the cold ground,
ellauri014.html on line 1850: Save his own dashings—yet the dead are there:
ellauri014.html on line 1852: The flight of years began, have laid them down
ellauri014.html on line 1860: His favorite phantom; yet all these shall leave
ellauri014.html on line 1865: In the full strength of years, matron and maid,
ellauri014.html on line 1973: "Thanatopsis" remains a milestone in American literary history. "Poems" was considered by many to be the first major book of American poetry. Nevertheless, over five years, it earned Bryant only $14.92. Poet and literary critic Thomas Holley Chivers, who often accused other writers of stealing poems, said that the only thing Bryant "ever wrote that may be called Poetry is ´Thanatopsis´, which he stole line for line from the Spanish."
ellauri015.html on line 21:

yellow;background:#3ea0bb;font-size:10em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">EL PEDO


ellauri015.html on line 22:

yellow;font-size:3em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;font-style:italic;margin-bottom:0%">KONNAT KUKKIVAT HIRSIPUUSSA

Estetiikkaa


ellauri015.html on line 745: Rami on lyhyenläntä pyylevä pyknikko, vaimo Pia on ex-koripallisti, Korbballspielerin. Antoi Ramille pesää, eikä kosijalle ojentanut koria. Koivun latvassa korkealla Piukulla on pesä, Jouzan Koivuniemessä. Rami ulottuu Piaa juuri ja juuri isokainaloon. Pöntön oloinen on Rami, persumies, tykkää härkätaistelusta ja muusta joukkourheilusta. Muutenkin on tollo, kulttuurihistorian saralta tohtorixi väitellyt, vieläpä Bakhtinista. QED, I rest my case. Tykkääköhän se mezästyksestäkin? No ainaskin puhuuu kalastuxesta, ja ryhmäsexistä sekasaunassa, muistelee autuaana kuinka vaihto-opiskelijana nuoleskeli kaveriaan Sveniä saunanlauteilla jostain aukosta. Maistui savulta.
ellauri015.html on line 758: Sakemannin mielestä kaikki Suomen naiset on persjalkasia ja ohuttukkasia ja pukeutuu housupukuun ja/tai marimekkoon. Miehillä on joka pojalla jokapoikapaidat. Eikä ne välitä vaik on samixet. Toisin kuin harppisakut, joilla on lähes kaikilla polyesteriset diagonaalipuvut, dirndlit ja/tai nahkahousut. Muttei kaikilla, mikä niitä kyllä kismittää niin vitusti. Vihaisena itä-saksan tuppukylissä heiluttaa hakaristilippuja ja nyrkkiä mamuille, jotka kehtaa pukeutua kaapuihin ja huiveihin. Näillä lakeuxilla ei pilkata Hitleriä.
ellauri015.html on line 794: Tässä kohtaa ensivaikutelma osui oikeaan. Luettuani vasta pätkän haistoin, että tässä meillä bona fide nazidiggari. Ja niin olikin. Varmaan ison vaimon hännän alla piileskely työttömänä humanistimamuna kehitti sen miehekkäitä vaistoja. Irgendwie kerndeutscherer als die meisten sonstigen Wolframs, und viriler. Ich werde nie wolframisiert! Es lebe Udo Beyer! Heil dem Kapitän!
ellauri016.html on line 115: Lyhyen tähtäimen voiton nimissä se riehuu kaikkialla,

ellauri016.html on line 173:

Lyhyestä virsi kaunis


ellauri016.html on line 180: Lyhyeksi taitaa jäädä kulutusjuhla kaikitenkin apinakööriltä.

ellauri016.html on line 427: Sandemose skrev om arbejderklassen i byen Jante og om en kreds af mennesker med samme sociale position. Senere har janteloven fået ændret betydning: til dem der vil bryde ud af deres sociale lag og nå en højere position i samfundet generelt.
ellauri016.html on line 568: Read on for a list of 14 of the biggest snobs in the business. These entertainers have long ago lost touch with the average John or Jane Doe and beyond that, have displayed rotten attitudes, selfishness, conceit, and a level of arrogance that almost has to be seen to be believed.
ellauri016.html on line 780: In 1999, "Pink Moon" was used in a Volkswagen commercial, boosting Drake's US album sales from about 6,000 copies in 1999 to 74,000 in 2000. The LA Times saw it as an example of how, following the consolidation of US radio stations, previously unknown music was finding audiences through advertising. Fans used the filesharing software Napster to circulate digital copies of Drake's music; according to the Atlantic, "The chronic shyness and mental illness that made it hard for Drake to compete with 1970s showmen like Elton John and David Bowie didn't matter when his songs were being pulled one by one out of the ether and played late at night in a dorm room." In November 2014, Gabrielle Drake published a biography of her brother. Over the following years, Drake's songs appeared in soundtracks of "quirky, youthful" films such as The Royal Tenenbaums, Serendipity and Garden State. Made to Love Magic, an album of outtakes and remixes released by Island Records in 2004, far exceeded Drake's lifetime sales. In 2017, Kele Okereke cited Pink Moon as an influence on his third solo album Fatherland. Other contemporary artists influenced by Drake include José González, Bon Iver, Iron & Wine, Alexi Murdoch and Philip Selway of Radiohead.
ellauri016.html on line 966: Täytyis ajatella positiivisesti, et pakkolaitokset on yhteisexi parhaaxi, vankien ja vartijoiden yhteinen hiili johon puhalletaan. Se lois viihtyvyyttä puolelle jos toiselle. Lyhyesti sanoen kysymys on apinoiden yhdenvertaisuudesta. Mikä on, se lie jo tässä selvinnyt, pelkkää puppua.
ellauri017.html on line 20:

yellow;font-size:5em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Puovo Lipposen seikkailuja


ellauri017.html on line 186: Is every whole number a natural number? If yes then why? If no then why not?

ellauri017.html on line 609: In Euclidean geometry, the origin may be chosen freely as any convenient point of reference.
Jokainen meistä on oman maailmansa napa, ja voi siihen tuijottaa, se on itsekullakin yhtä onnistunut ja ainutlaatuinen kuin toisilla. Napanöyhtää on jokaiselle sama määrä suotu syntyessä, vaikkei päivä paistakaan yhtä iplakasti joka puosta loppupeleissä.
ellauri017.html on line 689: Elokuvassa Piano maurit hermostuivat varjokuvaskezistä jossa ritari Siniparta uhkasi lyödä naista kirveellä että lähtivät puukkoineen apuun kulisseihin. Olivat sentään heikompien puolella. Kai, elleivät sitten olleet menossa jaolle. Typeriä villejä. Eivät myyneet maitaan housunnapeista. Tekivät vaan rumia pyllyeleitä. Kateellinen aviomies katkas pianistilta sormen kun se oli etääntynyt sen pyllynreiästä. Sai teräsproteesin sen tilalle.
ellauri017.html on line 805: Sijtte asetta hän ja walmista heitä odottaman tulewaista Christuxen waldacunda, josta hän nijn monella tawalla ja selkiäst ennusta, että hän sijnä asias woitta caicki muut Prophetat. Nijn että hän myös Christuxen Äitistä Neidzest Mariasta kirjoitta, että hän ilman neidzyen turmellusta oli sijttäwä ja synnyttäwä Christuxen (7. cap.), nijn myös hänen pijnastans (53. cap.), nousemisestans cuolluista ja waldacunnastans puhu hän nijn selkiäst, cuin se olis jo silloin tapahtunut. On hän sijs ollut sangen jalo ja corkest walistettu Propheta.
ellauri018.html on line 222: Tukka leikattuna lyhyexi B. Virtasen

ellauri018.html on line 523: The song captures Simone's response to the murder of Medgar Evers in Mississippi; and the 16th Street Baptist Church bombing in Birmingham, Alabama, killing four black children. On the recording she cynically announces the song as "a show tune, but the show hasn't been written for it yet." The song begins jauntily, with a show tune feel, but demonstrates its political focus early on with its refrain "Alabama's got me so upset, Tennessee's made me lose my rest, and everybody knows about Mississippi goddam." In the song she says: "Keep on sayin' 'go slow'...to do things gradually would bring more tragedy. Why don't you see it? Why don't you feel it? I don't know, I don't know. You don't have to live next to me, just give me my equality!"
ellauri018.html on line 544: Nyt tahdon kuvailla teille sen heittiön. Hän on leveäharteinen, lyhyenvanttera, pyylevä lihakas, kerrassaan ruma, jos mitään inhimillistä voi siksi nimittää; noin neljäkymmenvuotias. Hänellä on jyhkeät kädet, ja käsivarret ovat luullakseni yhtä tukevat kuin minun vyötäiseni. Nenä on lattea ja käpristynyt, kulmakarvat riippuvat silmien yli; hänellä on tosiaan tunnottoman sisukkaat harmaat mulkosilmät, ja kasvot ovat litteät ja leveät, väriltään kuin olisi niitä kuukausi säilytetty salpietarissa. Rohkenenpa sanoa, että hän juo. Hänellä on käheä miesmäinen ääni, ja hän on yhtä paksu kuin pitkäkin. Ja kuitenkin näyttää hän niin kamalan rotevalta, että pelkään hänen voivan tuossa tuokiossa paiskata minut jalkoihinsa, jos hänet suututtaisin. Näin ollen ja koska hänen sydämensä on rumempi kuin hänen kasvonsa, hän peloittaa minua kauheasti; ja varmaan olen hukassa, jollei jumala minua suojele; sillä hän on kovin, kovin häijy, on tosiaan.
ellauri019.html on line 59: Jenkkiteinifilmissä Tall Girl pitkä tyttö tavoittaa ruottalaista grania mutta kapsahtaa lopulta italokatajaan, sitä yli puolta lyhyempään hukkapätkään. Kyllä pikku enbuskekin pääsi lopux halaamaan, kun oli alla appelsiinilaatikko. Pitkän tytön onnen huipennus oli päästä esiintymään lavalla, kehuskella siinä itseään, ison siskon suukku tukkia ja saada läpyjä. "May I have all of your attention." Mix vitussa, kuulux se joteski muka ohjelmaan? Ja parhautta oli kostaa ilkeälle poikaystävälle, maxaa potut pottuina kuin profeetta Jesaja. Hemmetin pyrkyreitä noi jenkit, elämänsä seppoja.
ellauri019.html on line 228: Sisällys lyhyesti:
ellauri019.html on line 290: Edom oli Esaulle, Jaakobin kaksoisveljelle, annettu toinen nimi tai lisänimi (1Mo 36:1). Se annettiin hänelle, koska hän myi esikoisoikeutensa punaisesta muhennoksesta (1Mo 25:30–34). Sattuvasti Esau oli ollut syntyessään hyvin punainen (1Mo 25:25) ja maa, jossa hän ja hänen jälkeläisensä myöhemmin asuivat, oli paikoitellen samanvärinen.
ellauri019.html on line 404: Never failed in the mail, yet come a rotten bill

ellauri019.html on line 567: Toinen juttu on että minua on seurannut joka paikassa numero viisi (5). Olen syntynyt 15.5.1964 ja painoin syntyessäni huimat 5 kg ja 550 grammaa. Nimessäni on viisi kirjainta ja numeron 5 gematria on "armo" joka tarkoittaa tietenkin Jumalan armoa (nimessäni on iso alkukirjain J, jonka perässä armo, syntyy viisikirjaiminen nimi Jarmo) Eikös ole omituista? Minusta ainakin.
ellauri019.html on line 1028: The triptych by the Italian artist was presented on Monday at the league's Milan headquarters, along with an anti-racism plan which included the signing of a charter by a player representing each of the 20 Serie A clubs. Italian stadiums are the scene of recurrent racist incidents, including monkey chants aimed at black players.
ellauri020.html on line 301: Ivana, a Czeck immigrant, met Donald Trump in 1976 while attending a fashion show in New York, according to the New York Post. By the next year, the couple had married, and in short order had had three kids and became steady figures in the New York socialite scene. Trump had been at the bar in Maxwell’s Plum. Maxwell’s Plum is gone now, but the very name evokes the era of frantic singles underneath the Art Nouveau ceiling. It was the place where flight attendants hoped to find bankers, and models looked for dates. Donald met his model, Ivana Zelnickova, visiting from Montreal. She liked to tell the story of how she had gone skiing with Donald, pretending to be a learner like him, and then humiliated him by whizzing past him down the slopes.
ellauri020.html on line 342: “In fifty years Donald and I will be considered old money like the Vanderbilts,” she once told the writer Dominick Dunne. Aku on muka kaikessa ykkönen. Oikea the Don on kärkeä vaan kerskailussa. Akkari lähettää Iinexelle 72 ruusua, "tietenkin" Mynhhenin kalleimmasta kukkakaupasta. Mix se on näille rahantunteville niin "tietenkin", et ne syö ja ostaa izelleen aina kalleinta? Se on se sama killer instinct joka ajaa ne ryöstämään vastustajat, asiakkaat ja alaiset putipuhtaixi. Iivana koittaa selittää ettei 72 kukkaa näytä extravagantilta, mut kun seuraavat 72 tulee, ne on "another extravagant arrangement". Pääpointti on just tää tuhlailu, Aku mezo näyttää koppelolle et sillon kapassiteettiä, niinkuin riikinkukolla. Vittu apinat on eläimellisiä. Mut mixei olis, nehän ON eläimiä.
ellauri020.html on line 364: Palm Beach had been Ivana Trump’s idea. Long ago, Donald had screamed at her, “I want nothing social that you aspire to. If that is what makes you happy, get another husband!” But she had no intention of doing that, for Ivana, like Donald, was living out a fantasy. She had seen that in the Trump life everything and everybody appeared to come with a price, or a marker for future use. Ivana had learned to look through Donald with glazed eyes when he said to close friends, as he had in the early years of their marriage, “I would never buy Ivana any decent jewels or pictures. Why give her negotiable assets?” She had gotten out of Eastern Europe by being tough and highly disciplined, and she had compounded her skills through her husband, the master manipulator. She had learned the lingua franca in a world where everyone seemed to be using everyone else in a relentless drive for power. How was she to know that there was another way to live? Besides, she often told her friends, however cruel Donald could be, she was very much in love with him.
ellauri020.html on line 391: Trump spoke in a hypnotic, unending torrent of words. Often he appeared to free-associate. He referred to himself in the third person: “Trump says. . . Trump believes.” His phrases skibbled around and doubled back on themselves like fireworks in a summer sky. He reminded me of a carnival barker trying to fill his tent. “I’m more popular now than I was two months ago. There are two publics as far as I’m concerned. The real public and then there’s the New York society horseshit. The real public has always liked Donald Trump. The real public feels that Donald Trump is going through Trump-bashing. When I go out now, forget about it. I’m mobbed. It’s bedlam,” Trump told me. Donald is a believer in the big-lie theory,” his lawyer had told me. “If you say something again and again, people will believe you.” “One of my lawyers said that?” Trump said when I asked him about it. “I think if one of my lawyers said that, I’d like to know who it is, because I’d fire his ass. I’d like to find out who the scumbag is!”
ellauri020.html on line 399: For years, Ivana appeared to have studied the public behavior of the royals. Her friends now called this “Ivana’s imperial-couple syndrome,” and they teased her about it, for they knew that Ivana, like Donald, was inventing and reinventing herself all the time. When she had first come to New York, she wore elaborate helmet hairdos and bouffant satin dresses, very Hollywood; her image of rich American women probably came from the movies she had seen as a child. Ivana had now spent years passing through the fine rooms of New York, but she had never seemed to learn the real way of the truly rich, the art of understatement. Instead, she had become regal, filling her houses with the kind of ormolu found in palaces in Eastern Europe. She had taken to waving to friends with tiny hand motions, as if to conserve her energy. At her own charity receptions, she insisted that she and Donald form a receiving line, and she would stand in pinpoint heels, never sinking into the deep grass—such was her control.
ellauri020.html on line 468: We were walking through the rubble of the Commodore Hotel, which would soon reopen as the Grand Hyatt. Ivana had been given the responsibility of supervising all the decoration; she was hard at it, despite the fact that she was wearing a white wool Thierry Mugler jumpsuit and pale Dior shoes as she picked her way through the sawdust. “I told you never to leave a broom like this in a room!” she screamed at one worker. Screaming at her employees had become part of her hallmark, perhaps her way of feeling power. Later, in Atlantic City, she would become known for her obsession with cleanliness. Determined to bring glamour to Trump Castle, she became famous for her attention to appearances, once moving a pregnant waitress, desperate for big tips, off the casino floor. The woman was placed in a distant lounge and given a clown’s suit to disguise her condition.
ellauri020.html on line 540: Venezian Pelastakaa edes palatsit, viis lapsista -gaalassa Akuun näyttää vihdoin tarttuneen 7-year itch, vuoden myöhässä, se riiustelee jotain tähtöstä. Iines on mustasukkainen. Saudi matto- ja ranskis saippuakauppias irvistelevät toisilleen ja näyttävät hampaita resuten kiimaisen Natalie-nartun häntäkarvoista. Saudi voitti, sil oli enemmän pätäkkää.
ellauri020.html on line 576: Akulla ja Iinexellä on pientä riidanpoiksta, malliavio on säröillä. Aku kritisoi Kataa Sanelmalta opitulla taidolla. Lyön vetoa et se petti Lillania Floridassa. Raflasa on miellyttävää, sillä kaikki on kauniita ja ykköset päällä, paizi Suski jolla on pölyesteriä ja tekohelmet. Natalien smaragdit säteili enemmän (vaikkei varmaan läheskään yhtä hintavat) kuin Katrinan keltatimangit, sentään Suskin pukukorut jää jumboxi. Not that she would care, Iivana lisää tekopyhästi.
ellauri020.html on line 674: "I will pay her one dollar a year and all the dresses she can buy!" he said of the arrangement, according to Vanity Fair. Trump later gave Ivana the position of vice president of interior design at the Trump Organization after their marriage, Newsweek reports.
ellauri020.html on line 712: Enough people went looking for similarities between the real Trump marriage and the fictional Graham marriage that it became a legal scuffle within the larger war that was the ugly Trump divorce, with Donald’s lawyers fighting to preserve a gag order keeping Ivana from talking about their marriage. For her part, Ivana insisted she wasn’t writing about her ex. She told the Los Angeles Times: “There is no way he can prove that he’s Adam because he’s not Adam and I make sure that he’s not Adam,” adding that, “And even I think I have constitutional rights of speech in America. I did not abuse them.”
ellauri020.html on line 721: However unlikely it seemed, Ivana was now considered a tabloid heroine, and her popularity seemed in inverse proportion to the fickle city’s new dislike of her husband. “Ivana is now a media goddess on par with Princess Di, Madonna, and Elizabeth Taylor,” Liz Smith reported. Months earlier, Ivana had undergone cosmetic reconstruction with a California doctor. She emerged unrecognizable to her friends and perhaps her children, as fresh and innocent of face as Heidi of Edelweiss Farms. Although she had negotiated four separate marital-property agreements over the last fourteen years, she was suing her husband for half his assets. Trump was trying to be philosophical. “When a man leaves a woman, especially when it was perceived that he has left for a piece of ass—a good one!—there are 50 percent of the population who will love the woman who was left,” he told me.
ellauri020.html on line 725: Herb Simon on niin oikeassa: termiittiapinassa on vain neljä vaihdetta eteen ja yxi taaxe, muu vaihtelu tulee ympäristöstä. Ei kenenkään elämä ole toista kummempaa. Jokainen termiitti on laulun arvoinen, kuten sanoi Veikko Lavi, vaikka aika lyhyen, alle 5min pituisen juutuubijoihkauxen, kun sen häviöllisesti vielä tiivistää. Ei oo nekrologikaan kuin puoli sivua. Useimmille ei tuu sitäkään. In der Begrenzung kennt man den Meister. Mä en ole kovin hyvä siinä, mut ei oo Iivanakaan.
ellauri020.html on line 838: "Welcome to a new year at Hogwarts! Before we begin our banquet, I would like to say a few words. And here they are: Nitwit! Blubber! Oddment! Tweak!" ― J.K. Rowling, Harry Potter and the Sorcerer´s Stone
ellauri021.html on line 17:

yellow;background:#d3a3a1;font-size:8em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">TEX WILLER


ellauri021.html on line 191: Parturissa luin 7 päivää-lehteä. Suomen julkkisuutiset on vähän kotikutoisempia kuin Trumppien. Harlin osoitteli mainostauluja. Toivo Sukari kävi pissalla. Joku standup-koomikko haahuili kaupassa. Ei ollut Bo Burnham, oli lyhyempi.
ellauri021.html on line 251: Kiss all the pretty ones goodbye

ellauri021.html on line 572:
ellauri021.html on line 707: Combat deepens, on ye braves! [b]
ellauri021.html on line 943: Schlafly is a surname of German-Swiss origin. Not to be confused with Schläfli. Mild-mannered Daniel L. Schlafly Sr., vice president of a family business (bottled water), AKA Dan Schlafly, 47 in 1960, is a Roman Catholic who never attended a public school* and never sent his three children to one. Daniel L. Schafly Jr. spent eight years in Jesuit schools, then went on to graduate work in the US and abroad. He chose history as major. As a twenty-one- year-old student, he was amazed by the result of the Soviet victory in World War II when he crossed the Berlin Wall (still under construction) from free West Berlin with its independent citizens into militarized Communist East Berlin, where everyone was dispirited, everything was shabby. Daniel L. Jr., who supported St. Kolbe´s sainthood, became a staunch anticommunist.
ellauri021.html on line 944: Andrew L. Schlafly (/ ˈ ʃ l æ f l i /; born April 27, 1961) is an American lawyer and Christian conservative activist, founder of Conservapedia. How is he related to the other L. Schlaflies? The brewer of Schlafly Beer in St. Louis is Phyllis Schlafly' s nephew. Andrew is Phyllis' son. They are first cousins. *Only private Jesuit ones. And bring some shit for my fly.
ellauri021.html on line 952: Worldwide Google searches for atheism/agnosticism searches are greatly down from 10 years ago.
(Lue: jengi on valinnut jo puolensa, nyt eikun latailemaan pyssyjä.)
ellauri021.html on line 966: Thank the Second Amendment: Texas church shooting stopped in its tracks by armed" worshiper. Thank God too, and a prayer for those killed before the complete massacre was averted."
(Lue: Jos pahat miehet tulis Matin lasten tarhaan ammuskelemaan, aseistetut isäpapat pystyis ne kyllä nitistämään, eli take them down. Vois siinä tulla alas jokunen tenavistakin, mutta siitä selvitään sitten rukouksen voimalla.)
ellauri021.html on line 973: The Equal Rights Amendment is dead, the Department of Justice mercifully observes in a legal opinion which the Archivist will follow. Efforts by liberals to revive it 40 years after it died are delusional.
(Lue: Siihen kaatui naisten naurettavat yrityxet keulia. Amendment, piru vie! Asepykälä sentään oli todellinen parannus.)
ellauri022.html on line 148: Lafayette antoi pojalleen etunimexi George Washington. Olikohan niillä jotain jimbajambaa keskenään? Se otti pojan mukaansa jenkkeihin, ehkä Fanin isoäiti näki sen. Pikku-Jorista ei tullut kovin kuuluisaa. Napsu epäili Lafayettejen lojaalisuutta. Jäljet pelottivat.
ellauri022.html on line 159: Isoäidin kertomuxissa esiintyy John Hancock ja Lafayette.

ellauri022.html on line 162: Hancockin tädillä oli päässä vieraan kunniaxi Lafayette-pinssi.

ellauri022.html on line 164: lähetti kopallisen kukkia. Lafayette oli pieni vanha mies,

ellauri022.html on line 227: Tytöt tytöt, ommelkaa enemmän ja juoruilkaa vähemmän. Neiti Perkins tässä varsinkin on ihan viiden piston mies. Kaxi pistoa ja tiukka tuijotus. Se ei riitä. Pah, köyhät aina valittavat, on meillä parempaakin tekemistä, sanoo nti Perkins timangit välkkyen.
ellauri022.html on line 722: Lafayetten pojasta tuli George Washington. Lapsille on aina annettu julkkisten nimiä. Pyhä Paolo oli julkkis sekin. Brooke, Ridge ja Jasmine oli taannoin suosittuja suomalaisia etunimiä. Karjalaisia olisivat Puahko, Päntti ja Nuama. Nekin on vanhoja julkkisnimiä, joskaan ei enää yhtä suosittuja. Jerome ja Oliver Saarinen ovat myös hauskoja. Mikko, Niklas ja Max naxuu kivasti hampaissa. Kexeliäitä on myös John, Paul ja George Carlson. Ringoa ei sitten enää tullutkaan.
ellauri022.html on line 881: Sigh´d o´er bird pleasures but no nest destroyed Huokailin linnunonnea särkemättä pesää
ellauri022.html on line 882: With pleasure felt the singing they enjoyed Mieluummin kuulin laulua pitkin kesää
ellauri022.html on line 884: A slave through ages though a child in years vanha orja olin vaikka iältäni pikkunen
ellauri022.html on line 950: Shirin suostuu lopulta naimisiin Khosrowin kanssa useiden romanttisten ja sankarillisten jaksojen jälkeen. Silti Shiroyeh, Khosrowin poika hänen vaimostaan Mariamista, on myös rakastunut Shiriniin. Shiroyeh murhaa lopulta isänsä Khosrow'n ja lähettää sanansaattajan Shirinille ilmoittamaan, että viikon kuluttua hänen on mentävä naimisiin hänen kanssaan. Shirin tappaa itsensä välttääkseen menemästä naimisiin Shiroyehin kanssa. Khosrow ja Shirin haudattiin yhdessä samaan hautaan. Ympäri käydään, yhteen tullaan.
ellauri022.html on line 980: of falling drops of glimmering beads of gleaming yellow globes
ellauri022.html on line 985: the four sacred prayers these mighty words these sublime letters of delight
ellauri023.html on line 730: "Watch", he is said to have declared, "so that you know how cheap the body is to men who have their eye on great glory".
ellauri023.html on line 840: tai ainakin vakavimmin otettavin niistä, Adam Dryer, tosin tapettiin

ellauri023.html on line 1136: Toinen henkiinjäänyt, kirjailija Jean Améry (Hans Meyer), ei sulata ymmärtämistä, se on hyväxymistä sen mielestä, ja haukkuu Leeviä "anteexiantajaxi", sehän onkin jutkuille haukkumasana, kristittyjen hapatusta. Leevi koitti vinistä, että sen mielestä oikeus riittäisi, ei se janoo takaisimaxua koroilla sen enempää kuin ilmaisexi antoa. Mayerin poika sitävastoin on kostonhimoinen kuin juutalaisten jehova. Tää muistetaan!
ellauri023.html on line 1232: Merkittävin evästys, jonka sain [Dilemman pj:n] tehtävään, oli että yleiskokoukset ja muut Dilemman tilaisuudet on kyettävä johtamaan niin, ettei niihin aina ympäripäissään saapuvalle Pertti ”Lande” Lindforsille anneta puheenvuoroa, koska siitä ei tule loppua ja kaikki tietävät, mitä hän sanoo Georg Klausista. Onnistuin kohtuullisen hyvin olemaan huomaamatta ja kuulematta hänen puheenvuoropyyntöjään.
ellauri024.html on line 535: Mutta myös sitten kun arvostelemme komiikkaa (puhu vaan izestäsi Kinnusen akan poika) pidämme sitä objektiivisesti hyvänä ja huonona. Mitä vittua!? Tää on tämmönen hyvä-paha absolutisti. Niin yxiliitisellä arvomaailmalla varustettu tyyppi voi olla hyvä koomikko vaan luontojaan, oikeastaan vastoin parempaa tietoaan. Siltä ikäänkuin lipsahtelee hyviäkin vizejä. Kuten aiemminkin olen sanonut, se että tykkää Chaplinista voi olla oire jostain pahemmasta. Tuloxelle nauravat vain hyeenat.
ellauri024.html on line 616: Videoneuvokit tai repestit on aivan perseestä, luen mieluummin, se on lyhyempi lause. Sixikään en pidä leffoista enkä teeveestä, varsinkaan en keskusteluohjelmista teeveessä, enkä teatterista ylipäänsäkään. Inhoon odottelua ja yllätyxiä. Kaikenlainen jännittäminen ja kynsien pureskelu tuolin reunalla on syvältä. Menen sohvan taaxe pelkäämään kuin John pienenä. Lähden kesken ohjelman jos tulee verisiä tai noloja kohtauxia tai hermostuttavaa panoa.
ellauri024.html on line 712: Ize koomikot on tietysti vastakkaista mieltä. Arnulf paha ei oikein tykkää tästä. Sen mielestä toi on vanhanaikaista säätymeemiä. Se haluis nostaa huumormiehen profiilia, korvata ton rumuuden (jota sillä kyllä löytyy ihan peilistä) vaikka älykkyydellä (jolla laarilla sillä taas on lyhyempi kuin se luulee). Mut tollanen arskan peukuttama nokkapokan nokkelikko voittaja on vaan yxi tyyppi huumoria eikä musta lähelläkään parasta.
ellauri024.html on line 862: neliömäinen leuka ojossa ja silmälasit ilkeästi välkkyen
ellauri025.html on line 110: Toward the end of his life, he had a vision that forced him to drop his pen. Though he had experienced visions for years, this was something different. His secretary begged him to start writing again, but Aquinas replied, "I cannot. Such things have been revealed to me that what I have written seems but straw. Another prophet will come after me who is bigger yet, name of Maxim Gorki."
ellauri025.html on line 138: Callen ikäisen Calvinon elämäntarina oli jännä, mutta loppui lyhyeen. Se kuoli 61-vuotiaana verenvuotoon aivoissa.
ellauri025.html on line 158: Heistä tiedetään vain hyvin vähän, mutta esimerkiksi Homeros mainitsee heidät. Historioitsija Herodotos kertoo kimmerialaisten julmista rosvoretkistä Lyydiaa vastaan. Kimmerialaiset valtasivat lyhyeksi aikaa Lyydian pääkaupungin Sardiksen. Sitä ennen he olivat olleet kukistamassa Urartua, joka oli Assyrian pohjoinen vihollinen.
ellauri025.html on line 834: **We have a new information about height&weight of Monika Fagerholm. It was submitted by Frannie Jonas, 38 years old. Job: (Sign Writer, Machine).
ellauri025.html on line 863: Alkoholi oli kirjailija Monika Fagerholmin ensirakkaus. Toinen rakkaus, mies, ei kommentoinut juomista. Kolmas rakkaus tuli elämään juomisen päättyessä, mutta siitä Monika ei oikein osaa puhua. (Spoileri: se on Jeesus.)
ellauri025.html on line 872: Äidin kuoltua Monika velloi surussa viikkoja. Hän kuunteli autossa Leonard Cohenia ja kuvitteli, että se, mitä hän tunsi, oli surua. Tosiasiassa hän ei kyennyt tuntemaan mitään. Sen monen vuoden juominen oli tehnyt hänelle. Cohenin kuuntelu ja Dostojevskin pläräys.
ellauri025.html on line 912: Ai siitä et "mikä saa mut kirjoittamaan?" Ompa tylsä aihe. Aika monet kirjailijat kirjottaa siitä, kun ei enää muuta kexi. Asiaa tai ei. Seku kysyy työlääntyeenä mikä saa mut kirjottamaan koko ajan. No salamiakki! Ei vaitiskaan, kylä se on lähestyvä eläkeikä ja sen takana häämöttävä kuolema. On ikävillä perhetapahtumilla kai osansa. Lisänä rikka rokassa. Pitää muistella äkkiä ennenkuin on liian myöhäistä.
ellauri025.html on line 979: Monikan tunteet ovat nyt auki. Poissa on se ihminen, joka oli muuttunut alkoholin myötä kylmäksi. (Tarkoittaako tää äitiä vai isää? Aika kylmiöltä Monika ize kirjan perusteella vaikuttaa. Koko henkilökaarti on ällöjä.) Myös arki on parempaa. Monika ei enää tarvitse alkoholia kyetäkseen kirjoittamaan. Hän osaa olla avoin muutenkin. Muttei tarte olla persaukinen, jos sen nettoarvo (9Me) pitää paikkansa.
ellauri026.html on line 19:

yellow;background:black;font-size:4em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">PUNAVYÖN VANHAT YSTÄVÄT

Hyötykirjoja


ellauri026.html on line 72: Keskikoulussa kun siirryttiin matikasta aljaan ja jommaan, putosin täysin kärryiltä. Töröhampainen Kaukiainen ei osannut selittää funktiota, puhui vaan jostain koneista. Olis sanonut että se on joukko järjestettyjä pareja, niin olisin heti tajunnut. Erotetaan jyvät akaniin, se virnuili. Mä menin lyhyelle matikalle. Se ratkaisi mun tulevaisuuteni. Tykkään matikasta kuitenkin. Se on niin yxinkertaista.
ellauri026.html on line 216: and upon him sweet sleep fell upon his eyelids,
ellauri026.html on line 220: And yet in Wilson’s translation the passage seems reduced, deficient somehow, so trite as to be unnoticeable:
ellauri026.html on line 222: A sound sweet sleep fell on his eyes, like death;
ellauri026.html on line 372: On sellasia pytagoralaisia, joille kaikki on niin yhteistä et ne ottaa mitä vaan messiin mekon alla, ne ei tee siitä isompaa numeroa kuin jos ne olis perintökamoja. Toiset on vaan olevinaan rikkaita, ja tää kuvitelma riittää niille onnexi. Joillakuilla on hienot talot Helsingissä ja sen vuoxi pihistelee mökillä. Jotkut panee menee kaiken samantien, toiset kerää kokoon hyvällä tai pahalla. Yx ährää kerätäxeen julkkismainetta, toinen makaa nokisena uunin takana. A great many undertake endless suits and outvie one another who shall most enrich the dilatory judge or corrupt advocate. One is all for innovations and another for some great he-knows-not-what. Another leaves his wife and children at home and goes to Jerusalem, Rome, or in pilgrimage to St. James´s where he has no business. In short, if a man like Menippus of old could look down from the moon and behold those innumerable rufflings of mankind, he would think he saw a swarm of flies and gnats quarreling among themselves, fighting, laying traps for one another, snatching, playing, wantoning, growing up, falling, and dying. Nor is it to be believed what stir, what broils, this little creature raises, and yet in how short a time it comes to nothing itself; while sometimes war, other times pestilence, sweeps off many thousands of them together.
ellauri026.html on line 407: Stoalaiset muuten kuvittelevat olevansa kaikista kuolevaisista eniten jumalisia. Mutta ottakaapa käsille vaikka vain yksi ainoa tuollainen oppinut; olkoonpa hän 3- 4- tai jopa 600-kertainen stoalainen, myös hän siirtää antaumuxella syrjään elleikään partaansa, joka on hänen viisautensa olennaisin tunnusmerkki ja yhdistää hänet joulupukkiin, niin ainakin piinallisen arvokkuutensa ja rautaisen siveysoppinsa ja kalsarinsa, samoin kun oikaisee ozansa rypyt kun ryhtyy harjoittamaan kaikenlaisia tonttuiluja petihommissa. Lhyesti sanoen, jokaisen viisaan on huudettava avuxi minua, yxin ja ainoastaan minua, halutessaan ruveta isäxi. Niinpä niin, mixi en voisi puhua teille avoimesti ja vapaasti tapojeni mukaan? Sanokaa minulle, ovatko pää, kasvot, rinta, käsi, korvat, jotka kaikki ovat kunnian- ja huomionarvoisia ruumiinelimiä, luodut ihmisten ja jumalien siittämistä varten? Ei, arvelen etteivät ne kaikki yhdessäkään kelpaa elämän siementämiseen. Pikemminkin ihmissuvun monikertaistamiseen kelpaa eräs toinen elin, joka on niin hullunkurinen ja etuveitikkamaisen näköinen, ettei sitä voi mainita nimelläkään naureskelematta. Tästä pyhästä lähteestä jokainen olento ammentaa alkunsa varmemmin kuin pytagoralaisuus numerosta 4.
ellauri028.html on line 108: The Rev. Joseph Twichell, Mark's most intimate friend for over forty years, was pastor of the Asylum Hill Congregational Church of Hartford, which Mark facetiously called the “Church of the Holy Speculators,” because of its wealthy parishioners. Here Mark had first met “Joe” at a social, and their meeting ripened into a glorious, life long friendship. Twichell was a man of about Mark's own age, a profound scholar, a devout Christian, “yet a man with an exuberant sense of humor, and a profound understanding of the frailties of mankind, including Mankind's Huge Cods." Sam Clemens ja pastori naureskeli kaxisteen mezässä miespaneelin valtavia turskia. Bronzed and weatherbeaten son of the West, Mark was a man's man. "Some Remarks on the Science of Onanism.”
ellauri028.html on line 112: It was sometimes a wonderful and fearsome thing to watch Mr. Clemens play billiards,” relates Elizabeth Wallace. “He loved the game, and he loved to win, but he occasionally made a very bad stroke, and then the varied, picturesque, and unorthodox vocabulary, acquired in his more youthful years, was the only thing that gave him comfort. Gently, slowly, with no profane inflexions of voice, but irresistibly as though they had the headwaters of the Mississippi for their source, came this stream of unholy adjectives and choice expletives."
ellauri028.html on line 133: yet he has got to stay there till her Majesty chooses to
ellauri028.html on line 184: This was Twain's most serious, philosophical and private book. He kept it locked in his desk, considered it to be his Bible, and spoke of it as such to friends when he read them passages. He had written it, rewritten it, was finally satisfied with it, but still chose not to release it until after his death. It appears in the form of a dialogue between an old man and a young man who discuss who and what mankind really is and provides a new and different way of looking at who we are and the way we live. Anyone who thinks Twain was not a brilliant philosopher should read this book. We consider ourselves as free and autonomous people, yet this book puts forth the ideas that 1) We are nothing more than machines and originate nothing - not even a single thought; 2) All conduct arises from one motive - self-satisfaction; 3) Our temperament is completely permanent and unchangeable; and 4) Man is of course a product of heredity, and our future, being fixed, is irrevocable -- which makes life completely predetermined. If these points are true, then buying and reading this book is not in your control, but simply must be done because it was meant to be. If these points are not true you might still wish to make an independent decision to enjoy a thought-provoking book by a great and legendary writer.
ellauri028.html on line 232: almost 12 years ago
ellauri028.html on line 246: about 4 years ago
ellauri028.html on line 371: She hasn't been kissed for forty years,
ellauri028.html on line 375: Soon broke the spell of forty years,
ellauri028.html on line 400: But she got revenge when she said "yes"
ellauri028.html on line 409: I said "Goodbye" and thought the rest.
ellauri028.html on line 432: Des yeux bleus très doux
ellauri028.html on line 753: Helen looks up and says, "Bob, what's different? It's hanging down today, it was hanging down yesterday, it'll be hanging down again tomorrow."
ellauri028.html on line 755: Furious, Bob yells, "AND DO YOU KNOW WHY IT'S HANGING DOWN, HELEN? IT'S HANGING DOWN BECAUSE IT'S LOOKING AT MY NEW BOOTS!"
ellauri028.html on line 882: PÄÄTÖN: Mites se menikään raamatussa? Jos ei usko niin joutuu helvettiin. Siis tässä sun uskon versiossa. :rolleyes:
ellauri028.html on line 939: Kuka hemmetti on Jenni Vartiainen? Never heard. Juhananko sisko? Eiku hetkinen, sehän on se muruseni-biisin laulaja. Opiskeli Gimmel-yhtyeessä. Hyvä biisi, mut ilmeisesti Jenniltä on sittemmin lähteny hommat lapasesta pahasti. Siitä on tullut jonkinlainen Cheekin naisellinen vastine. Teki vauvan.fi tuntemattomaxi jääneen isän kanssa kuin neizyt Maaria.
ellauri028.html on line 941: ...ja siis tuo (vauvalle kirjoittamani) pitkä viesti ei siis ole mitään piilotuputusta teille. :rolleyes:
ellauri029.html on line 18:

yellow;font-size:4em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">ÖÖ MITÄ TARKOITAT

Huuhaata


ellauri029.html on line 19:

yellow;background:magenta;font-size:6em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">PRO-AKATEMIA


ellauri029.html on line 32: Punkakatemia herätti ilmestyessään syksyllä 1980 hurjan kulttuuriväittelyn. Jan Blomstedt oli tehnyt E. Saarisesta haastattelun, jossa hän otti käyttöön nimikkeen punktohtori, ja ilmestyttyään Helsingin Sanomissa 4.5.1980 juttu herätti laajaa huomiota. Haastattelu ja sen vastaanotto innostivat kirjoittajia viemään ideoitaan eteenpäin ja näin syntyi nopeassa ajassa kirjoituskokoelma Punkakatemia. Siihen sisältyi paitsi alkuperäinen punktohtorihaastattelu myös E. Saarisen Vartija-lehdessä julkaisemiani kirjoituksia sekä eri lajityypeissä viritettyjä tekstejä. Kirja oli kokonaisuutena moninainen ja rosoinen, mitä pidimme sen ansiona.
ellauri029.html on line 104: Runk-akatemian esseepankista löydät tiimiyrittäjien kirjoittamia esseitä liittyen erilaisiin aihepiireihin.
ellauri029.html on line 375: "Se on lyhyempi kuin luulet, ja se kestää kauemmin kuin odotat, vaikka ottaisit tämän seikan huomioon."
ellauri029.html on line 418: mutta useimmat kevyesti perusteltuja. Kaiken palauttaminen kusipäisyyteen

ellauri029.html on line 461: Anterokeskeinen ajattelu on izekeskeisen ajattelun rasistinen versio. Elukat jotka on samanlaisia "kuin me", mutta erivärisiä tai pitää erilaista ääntä, kuten neekerit, juutalaiset, saxalaiset ja muut apinat, on ihan erilaisia ja ennen kaikkea pahempia "kuin me". Ne ei ajattele, tunne, käyttäydy hyvin eikä ansaize samaa kohtelua "kuin me". Elukat jotka on ihat erilaisia kuin me, kuten sitten kaikki muut elukat, eivät edes tunne samoja tunteita eikä tarpeita "kuin me", ne ei siis ansaize mitään muuta kuin tulla syödyxi tai tapetuxi muuten vaan. Mitkä vitun "me"? Valkoinen vääpeli underground sarjakuvassa huusi neekerikersantille Vietnamin sodassa: "We must kill the yellow commies, before they kill us!". "What do you mean we?" kysyi kersantti. Tähän kuuluu myös se et ezii jotain anterouden perimmäistä olemusta tai selitystä, mix me ollaan niin eteviä ja hienoja. Ei me olla. Sillä hyvä. Me ollaan pikku paskiaisia pienenä, ja isona kusipäitä pyllynreikiä. Siitä ei pääse edes kysymällä "ketkä me?". Vastaus on selvä: Sinä, minä ja Hentun Liisa, Puntun Paavo ja Juorkunan Jussi, Kapakka-Lassi ja Myllårin Matti, plus yli 9 miljardia muuta. Täytyy lukea Mark Twainin Matkakirjeitä maasta (1909).
ellauri029.html on line 920: Other passages in the Bible that use satire include Isaiah’s ridicule of idol-makers (Isaiah 40:19-20), God’s taunting of Egypt (Jeremiah 46:11), and Elijah’s gibes directed at the prophets of Baal (1 Kings 18:27). Jesus Himself used satire in the form of hyperbole when He told His hearers to “take the plank out of your own eye” (Matthew 7:5).
ellauri030.html on line 353: Kolmanneksi onnettomuudet jakautuvat Zeuksen järjellisen tahdon mukaisesti; joko niiden tarkoituksena on rangaista pahoja ihmisä tai ne ovat tärkeitä koko maailman järjestyksen kannalta. Niinpä paha on hyvää valepuvussa, ja loppujen lopuksi se johtaa parhaaseen lopputulokseen. Tätähän se Voltairekin irvaili Candidessa. Khrysippos vertasi pahaa karkeaan leikinlaskuun komediassa, sillä vaikka leikinlasku itsessään on loukkaavaa, sekin kuuluu osana hyvään näytelmään, ja "niinpä voidaan myös arvostella pahaa, jos sitä tarkastellaan sellaisenaan, ja kuitenkin myöntää, että esiin­tyessään kaiken muun yhteydessä siitäkin on hyötyä."
ellauri030.html on line 469:
  • Ole enimmäkseen vaiti, eli puhu ainoastaan silloin, kun se on välttämätöntä, ja silloinkin tee se lyhyesti. Joskus harvoin, kun tilanne vaatii, osallistu sinäkin keskusteluun, mutta älä puhu jokapäiväisistä asioista, kuten gladiaattoreista, kilpa-ajoista, mestariurheilijoista, syömingeistä, juomingeista ja muista tavanomaisista aiheista; aivan erityisesti älä puhu ihmisistä moittien, ylistäen tai heitä toisiinsa vertaillen.
    ellauri030.html on line 764: Sen kyllä mainizee antiikkisetkin, esim. Aristoteles, esim komediassa kun sanotaan "tyyppi kävelee jalassa vaan rakot" tulee yllätys, ja mainizee myös sanaleikit. Cicerokin sanoo et tavallisin tyyppi vizejä on jossa odotetaan jotain ja tuleekin jotain toista, ja odotuxen pettyessä nauretaan. Standup-koomikot veistää tästä leivän päälle juustoa. Vizin loppu on epäsuhtainen alun kaa. Eka filosofi joka tästä löi oikein rumpua oli Beattie (1779).
    ellauri030.html on line 920: This has been tested experimentally. Audiences predictably enjoyed witnessing the demise of a disliked character. Testing had to be discontinued when the team ran out of subjects.
    ellauri031.html on line 18:

    Dikken Zwilgmeyer


    ellauri031.html on line 26: Barbara Hendrikke Wind Daae Zwilgmeyer, best kjent som Dikken Zwilgmeyer, (født 20. september 1853 i Trondhjem, død 28. februar 1913) var en norsk maler og barnebokforfatter, kjent for de delvis selvbiografiske Inger Johanne-bøkene, der Risør er kulisse. Hun gikk på malerskole.
    ellauri031.html on line 28: Hun var født i Trondhjem, flyttet til Risør da hennes far, Peter Gustav Zwilgmeyer ble beordret dit som byfogd, i mai 1861. Som voksen flyttet hun til Kristiania. De siste årene av livet bodde hun på Kongsberg. Hun var søster til Ludvig Daae Zwilgmeyer og Ludvig Daae (1829–1893) var hennes onkel.
    ellauri031.html on line 30: Zwilgmeyer er kjent for sine fortellinger for barn, men skrev også bøker for et voksent publikum. Hun slo gjennom med boken Vi børn i 1890. Hun var blant de første forfatterne som skildre miljø og en hverdag norske barn kunne kjenne seg igjen i, og var en av de viktigste forfatterne i norsk gullalder for barne- og ungdomslitteratur sammen med blant annet Barbra Ring.
    ellauri031.html on line 34: Dikken Zwilgmeyer publiserte også flere fortellinger i tidsskriftene Illustreret Tidende og Nyt tidsskrift.
    ellauri031.html on line 36: En statue av Zwilgmeyer står på utsiden av kulturhuset i Risør, Risørhuset. Der er også begge kinosalene oppkalt etter forfatteren. Hennes barndomshjem Bakken står fremdeles.


    ellauri031.html on line 48: Zwilgmeyer (l. Zwilchmeyer) betyder byxmakare på lågtyska. Det oaktat är Dikke tvättäkta norska, och xenofob. Boken börjar med en långtråkig skildring hur norska barn mobbar fattiga zigenare. Yrhättan här (hon har ännu inget annat namn) är borgmästarens långbenta flicka, den värsta bråkmakaren. De små rasisterna skriker något förnedrande till zigenarna och springer bort. Dom gömmer sig hos en homofil som broderar i smyg, liksom den ena gubben i Tove Janssons muminserier, och slipper undan. Som tack blir zigenarna utvisade ur stan. Bra läxa för små norrbarn at lära sig just nu. Gör så här med immigranterna, det blir kul.
    ellauri031.html on line 199: - Kyllä! Rautatieliikennettä ajatellen Viron etuina ovat paizi pienet palkkakustannuxet myös Suomea lyhyemmät välimatkat. Jos esimerkixi Helsinki-Kemijärvi väli uudelleensijoitetaan Tallinnan ja Tarton välille, se olisi vaan runsaat sata kilometriä, kun se nykyisellään on yli 900 kilometriä!

    ellauri031.html on line 732: Urvon työ Siionissa on ollut kylvötyötä. Kyntö on jääneet vähemmäle, vaan ehdittiinhän sitä siittää ilostella kotisuomessa. Urpo täytti neljäkymmentä ekana matuvuonna, Kristinan syntyessä. Unton haamukirjoittama Tienravaaja päättyy vuoteen 1978, kun mä olin ekaa kertaa Usassa.
    ellauri031.html on line 734: Mut loppuun vielä yxi Urpon hauskoista unista. Urpo toistaa nasaretilaisen ihmeen Kinneretin järvellä, mutta talvikelillä, taapertaa jään yli kuin esi-isämme Ison-Beltin poikki. Maire on sillä messissä. Syyrian puolella on iso kivi edessä. Se on suuri kivi taas, kuin Jeesuxen haudan tukkeena, tai pikemminkin vuori, joka on tullut Muhammedin luoxe. Ei kun polvipaikat kulumaan. Lyhyen mutta äänekkään rukoilun jälkeen tulee iso rukousvastaus. Herra punnertaa ja siirtää vuoren anojien syliin, kuten ensin näyttää. Vaan ei, vuori mureneekin muhevaxi mullaxi. Siin oli soo, nyökyttävät Syvännöt toisilleen ja hymyilevät. Siion on taas suurentunut vähän. Diili pitää. Oispa Syväntöjen reitillä ollut avanto.
    ellauri031.html on line 750: Olavi Syväntöä haastateltiin TV-7:n ohjelmaan yer/6228/">Ajankohtaista taivaasta ehkä millenniumin vaihteessa. (Ohjelmatietojen 1970 on takuulla painovirhe, silloinhan Kaarlo oli vielä vauhdissa. Olavi shihishee tässä ohjelmassa jo aika vanhushmaiseshti.) Kiinnostaa, sillä täähän Olavi on aika lailla samanlainen surullinen hahmo kuin Wilho Olavi, karismaattisemman Wilhon seuraaja, samanlainen vähäisempi toimittaja, pikkuprofeetta.
    ellauri031.html on line 794: Minos trodde på profetiske syn og budskap. Dette var ofte tema i hans forkynnelse. Selv hevder Minos å ha fått flere profetier. Den kanskje mest kjente profetien Minos har formidlet, er en han skrev ned, og som ble gitt ham av en eldre kvinne fra Valdres. Minos er videre kjent for sin profeti om jernmalmen som kommer tilbake i form av krigsskip og skyter byen i biter. Denne profetien påsto han ble gitt ham mens han var en ung gutt, antageligvis i 1937. Byen var Narvik.
    ellauri031.html on line 800: Den kanskje mest kjente profetien Minos har formidlet er en profeti han skrev ned gitt av en eldre kvinne fra Valdres. Hun var i nitti-årene. Dette var på slutten av 1960-tallet og kvinnen fortalt Minos hvordan det ville være «i den siste tid», den handlet om samboere (noe som var uvanlig på den tiden), umoral, tabuer som brytes, om en militær nedrustning (i Norge), den tredje verdenskrig og mye annet. Profetien innholdt så mye radikalt at Minos la den til siden, for så å glemme den.
    ellauri032.html on line 72: Herra sanoo orjalle: saat luottoa, jos teet syntiä, mullon piikki auki, kuitti valmiina, sillä mulla on jo ässä kolossa, poika lompakossa, se tasaa lopputilit sunkin puolesta, ammennä vaan. Siitä ilostuneena syntisäkki jatkaa menoa, ja kiitoxexi antaa hengenmiehille pitkää luottoa, taivaan turvapaikan etumaxua. Luotto luoton vakuutena, kyllä pelittää. Pelaa vaikka coronaa, puukkaa kamat pussiin sauvalla. Käsi käden pesee jälkikäteen, virutusta armon käsidesillä. Vivutusta, lyhyexi myymistä, jota selvitteli kalansilmä Harari. Ei tarvi olla mitään oikeasti, kun on luottoa. Se on vanhurskautta, usko pois.
    ellauri032.html on line 97: Arminiusta on syytetty kyllä ansaintamoraalista. Esim Descartes oli niillä linjoilla. Encyclopedia Britannican sivustolla sanotaan, että Descartesin moraali oli anti-Jansensistista ja anti-Calvinistista, ja et sen mielestä armo ansaitaan olemalla oikein kilttejä. Se oli optimisti, ihmisen järki ja tahto pystyy vaikka mahdottomaan. Se ei ollut pessimisti niinkuin jansenisti Blaise Pascal (1623-62), joka meinas et pelastus on vaan ilmainen lahja niille, jotka sattuu sen saamaan. Pascal eli lyhyen elämän, armonisku tuli äkkiä. Descartesia haukuttiin tämän takia Arminiuslaisexi. Descartesin mielestä ei ole mitään järkeä olla kunnollinen, ellei usko kuolemanjälkeiseen elämään ja loppuarvontaan. No nettisivuja ei pidä ottaa liian kirjaimellisesti, niissä on monia vaihtoehtoisia totuuxia, kuplamuovia kullekin, paukutettavaxi oman maun mukkaan.
    ellauri032.html on line 138: Pascal muutti sisarensa kanssa takaisin Pariisiin vuoden 1647 tienoilla, jonne heitä seurasi pian myös heidän isänsä, joka oli nimitetty hallitusneuvokseksi. Pariisissa viettämänsä lyhyen hetken aikana Pascal tapasi kuuluisan ranskalaisen filosofin René Descartes’n, joka teki epävirallisen vierailun hänen luonaan. Descartes’n ja Pascalin kohtaaminen oli täynnä jännitteitä johtuen heidän lukuisista erimielisyyksistään ja keskinäisestä kateudestaan. Descartes ei suostunut uskomaan, että Pascalin Tutkielma kartioleikkauksista voisi olla 16-vuotiaan nuorukaisen kirjoittama, ja lisäksi hän epäili Pascalin varastaneen ilmapuntarikokeen idean häneltä, koska Descartes itse oli ehdottanut Pascalin saamien tuloksien mahdollisuutta eräässä kirjeessään Mersennelle.
    ellauri032.html on line 231: Oh – Vivienne! Was there ever such a torture since life began! – to bear her on one´s shoulders, biting, wriggling, raving, scratching, unwholesome, powdered, insane, yet sane to the point of insanity, reading his letters, thrusting herself on us, coming in wavering trembling ... This bag of ferrets is what Tom wears round his neck.
    ellauri032.html on line 235: Sillä oli lapsena kaxipuolinen nivustyrä, jonka vuoxi se istu sisällä St Louisissa ja luki kirjoja, varsinkin nimiserkkua Tom Sawyeria.
    ellauri032.html on line 385: Pascalin kartioleikkauxia on taivaankappaleiden radat. Komeetta joka ei palaa piirtää hyperbelin. Semmosen kuin Aniara. Se oli aika ahistava runokirja nuorena. Mainizinkin sen yo-aineessa, jonka ozikkona oli Todennäköisyyxien maailma. Mainizin myös Monodin. Hyvä veto, vaikkei Pascalin. Täydestä meni, uppos lautakunnan lautapäihin kuin veizi voihin. Kirjoitin sen vesirokossa vanhempien sängyssä. Sanoin izeäni agnostikoxi nuorena. Mitähän mäkin olin tietävinäni todennäköisyyxistä lyhyeltä matikkapohjalta. Ei niitä edes opetettu. Ateisti-Airaxisen miälestä agnostikot on pelkureita. Niin ne onkin. Odottelee kentän reunalla kumpi puoli voittaa, ja säntää sitten juhlimaan voittajien kaa. Lea Lehtisalo oli. Ongelma on että pelimiehet ei pidä niistä. Joka eio meidän puolella on meitä vastaan, tää on nollasummapeliä. Ei oo mitään win-winiä, on enintään lose-lose.
    ellauri032.html on line 430: Kuului jos kuului. Kleistista on enemmän albumissa 72. Ko. näytelmässä, joka toistaisexi on aika puiseva, mainitaan saxalainen oikeustieteilijä Pufendorf. Samuli Pufendorf oli luteraani, pastori-isä saarnaili Saxissa, Chemnitzin naapurissa ihan Puolan rajalla. Chemnitz, jonka nimi DDR:n aikana oli Karl Marx-Stadt, on kuuluisa kemianteollisuudesta, kivihiilestä ja Zwickausta, jossa valmistettiin Horch-automobiileja. Horch tarkoittaa kuuleppas. Se latinannettiin sitten ja siitä tulitulitulituli Audi. Audi et alteram partem. Me ajettin sen ohize itä-Euroopan matkalla. Samuli oli kotiopettajana herra Coyetilla, joka oli esi-isämme Karl X Kustaan agentti Kööpenhaminassa siihen aikaan, kun Kalle koitti saada aikaan häpeärauhaa ja päästä tanskalaisten kuninkaax. Pöyristyttävää. Coyet oli flaamilaista sukua mutta ruozalaistunut. Tanskalaiset oli vihaisia kuin ampiaiset ja karkotti vieraan vallan agentit Köpixestä. Kallen poika XI ylensi Samulin palveluxista isänmaalle kuusikymppisenä paronixi, minkä jälkeen Samu kuukahti. Samuli kommenteerasi Thomas Hobbesia ja sitä siteerasi USA:n isänmaalliset. Ja von Kleist. Pufendorf tais olla nilkki.
    ellauri032.html on line 578: sanattomasti kysyen että mitä te teette täällä meidän mezässä.

    ellauri032.html on line 629: Samuel Beckett oli ranskalaistunut irkku irlantilaistuneesta anglikaanisesta hugenottisuvusta. Syntyi pitkänäperjantaina 13.4.1909, samana vuonna kuin Kaarlo Syväntö ja Heikki Brotherus. Samana päivänä kuin Jöns mutta eri vuonna. Sporttinen kriketinpelaaja toteutti Paul Austerin märän unen olemalla 1st class cricket player ja nobelisti samassa naamarissa. (Persona on naamari, muistattehan.) Se oli viimeinen modernisti, sen jälkeen oli enää post. Siinä on jotain samaa kuin Camusissa, muttei kuitenkaan. Existentialisti se ei ole ainakaan. Eikä mikään posetiivari. Enemmänkin sellanen "tilanne on toivoton muttei vakava." Hyvä tyyppi siis siinä suhteessa.
    ellauri032.html on line 658: Tämä liike alkoi kutsua itseään herrnhutilaisuudeksi, joka tarkoittaa "Herran hatun alla". Termi esiintyy ensimmäisen kerran lähteissä 1724. Zinzendorf suvaitsi hyvinkin erilaisia opillisia painotuksia, sillä uskon ytimessä ei hänen mielestään ollut puhdasoppi vaan sydämestä nouseva rakkaus Vapahtajaan. Yhteisöön kuului 1700-luvulla jopa viisisataa schwenckfeldiläistä. Yhteisö joutui kuitenkin viranomaisten hampaisiin. Jälkimmäisen tarkastuksen yhteydessä 1737 Zinzendorf pakeni pitkälle matkalle päätyen lopulta koloniaaliseen Amerikkaan. Herrnhutilaisuuden keskus Yhdysvalloissa sijaitsee Pennsylvanian osavaltiossa, Betlehemin kaupungissa. Samassa jossa Jeesus syntyi, ilmeisesti.
    ellauri032.html on line 678: Ihmiset eivät käsitä. Se ei ole synti, se ei ole väärin, että ihminen pyytää meidän rakkaalta Isältämme jokapäiväistä leipää. Samoin myös ei kenenkään ihmisen ole tarkoitus elää ilman leipää. Se on totuus mistä meidän ei tarvitse väitellä kenenkään kanssa. Jos minä haluan väitellä jonkun kanssa, että ihminen voi elää myös ilman leipää, hän varmasti ajaa minut nurkkaan lyhyessä ajassa niin, että minä olen pulassa. Paizi voihan elää ilman leipää, jos syö vaikka riisiä. Nojoo, toi oli vaan sivuhuomautus. Saatana oli ovela eikä vastannut tähän enempää. Tämä siten oli ensimmäisen koetuksen loppu.
    ellauri032.html on line 680: Nyt tulee seuraava koettelemus. Koska saatana ei ollut kyennyt pääsemään minnekään Vapahtajan kanssa salaisuuden avulla, hän kokeilee tietoa. Hän sanoo: ”Jumala on sanonut, 'minä annan enkeleilleni käskyn sinusta ja he kantavat sinua käsillänsä, ettet jalkaasi kiveen loukkaisi' (Matt. 4:6 Ps. 91:11–12). Tämä on selvästi ilmaistu Raamatussa. Sinä tiedät tämän. Nyt hyppää alas ja testaa se”.
    ellauri032.html on line 690: "Sinun ei tule suorittaa ihmettä päästäksesi ikävystymisestä, jollei sillä ole tarkoitusta, ei ole tarvetta että viiriäiset laskeutuu taivaasta, jos sinulla on tarpeeksi mannaa. Mutta koska minä olen kyennyt kävelemään portaita ylös, voin minä myös laskeutua uudelleen niitä myöten alas. Minun ei tarvitse hypätä alas."
    ellauri032.html on line 696: Mikä tämä sitten oli? Tämä oli perustotuus, joka koski sydäntä, joka koski sielua. Se ei riippunut kiistanalaisesta tiedonpalasesta, vaan pikemminkin Jeesus olisi loukannut hänen Herraansa, Jumalaansa (Kenen? Saatananko? hemmetti kun ne ei osaa yxinkertaisia viittaussääntöjä.). Lyhyesti sanoen hänen oletettiin myyvän hänen taivaallinen Isänsä. (Huoh.) Nyt hän ei voinut kuunnella enää enempää loukkaamatta Jumalan kunniaa. (Edelliset kiusauxet ei olleet kunnianloukkauxia vielä.) ”Mene pois!” hän sanoo ja saatanan täytyi heti totella. Hizi mixei se sanonut noin heti aluxi? Koska "Minun täytyy noudattaa sääntöjä." Tää kohtaus oli kirjoitettu edeltä.
    ellauri033.html on line 143: plupart de celles qui se laissent comprendre trouvent le moyen d´être à
    ellauri033.html on line 193: contemporaine, n´en soyez pas trop surpris : ils ne font au
    ellauri033.html on line 275: grâce divine. « Seigneur, ayez pitié! »


    ellauri033.html on line 430: Kun Rva de Sauve, joka vielä rakastaakin Huuperttia, antautuu La Croix-Firminille, typerälle vaikka söpölle muskelimasalle, niin Hra Bourget ei tajua siitä enää mitään, ja kuten sanoo Pascal, ezii syytä huokaillen. Oi! se huutaa pateettisesti, julma, julma arvoitus! Miten se saatto tehdä noin? ja onhan se silti se sama misukka... eikö vaan ... Eikä kuitenkaan! Huupertin partneri ei ois voinut tehdä noin... Häh, sekö? Oi! julma, (taas) julma arvoitus! Voi luoja, tarvizeeko noin pyöritellä ja pidellä päätä. 50 sivua myöhemmin sama taas. Vincy yrittää turhaan ratkaista Theresen luonnetta kuin ristikkoa. Bourgeet selittää asian, kuiskuttelee sivusta: Therese on romantikko, ja samalla kertaa intohimoineen; sillä on sentimentaalisia unelmia, mutta myös panohalua, ja aavioero asettui vähäx aikaa sen sydämmen tarpeiden ja aistien tyrannian välille. Ei sen kummempaa, kuten sanotaan. Sama juttu Rva Tillieresin kohdalla. Poyenne on sen sielun rakas, ja Casai, sen ... nojaa, sen mitä Poyanne ei saa tyydytetyxi. Selittely jatkuu loppupeleihiin, spoileria ei jätetä.
    ellauri033.html on line 447: L’auteur des Chansons joyeuses était alors amateur de vins et très libre sur le plan des mœurs. Il faut signaler une amitié particulière peu connue qui avait uni Maurice Bouchor et Paul Bourget. Ce dernier écrivait à Bouchor quand il avait 15 ans des lettres enflammées auxquelles l’adolescent n’était pas inseänsible. Bourget à cette époque était son « précepteur ». Il faut savoir que Paul Bourget est présent dans l’Album zutique et qu’il fréquentait le groupe des Vivants auquel on l’associe à tort. Il semble que Bouchor n’ait pas craint dans sa première jeunesse de passer pour un homosexuel, peut-être par provocation.
    ellauri033.html on line 474: Nick Carter on kuvitteellinen etsivä, joka esiintyi ensimmäisen kerran vuonna 1886. Hahmon loivat alun perin yhdysvaltalaiset Ormond G. Smith ja John R. Coryell. Vuosina 1943–1955 Carter seikkaili radiokuunnelmissa. James Bondin tultua suosituksi Nick Carterista tehtiin kovaotteinen salainen agentti, josta useat kirjoittajat tekivät suosituksi tulleita kioskikirjoja. Suomeksi Nick Carter -sarjassa on ilmestynyt 229 kirjaa vuosina 1966–1992.
    ellauri033.html on line 496: Ensimmäisen konsulikautensa aikana 222 eaa. Marcellus taisteli Insubriassa ja saavutti spolia opiman kolmatta ja viimeistä kertaa Rooman historiassa. (The spolia opima ("rich spoils") were the armour, arms, and other effects that an ancient Roman general stripped from the body of an opposing commander slain in single combat. The spolia opima were regarded as the most honourable of the several kinds of war trophies a commander could obtain, including enemy military standards and the peaks of warships.) Hän vapautti roomalaisen varuskunnan Clasditiumissa ja valtasi Mediolanumin. Vuonna 216 eaa. Rooman hävittyä Cannaessa hän komensi armeijan jäännöksiä Canusiumissa ja pelasti Nolan ja eteläisen Campanian Hannibalilta. Vuosina 214–211 eaa. hän oli konsulina kolmatta kertaa palvellen Sisiliassa. Hän hyökkäsi Leontinoihin ja valtasi Syrakusan kahden vuoden piirityksen jälkeen. Hänen joukkonsa surmasivat tiedemies Arkhimedeen kaupungin valtauksen yhteydessä. (Noli turbare circulos meos.) Marcellius ryösti kaupungin ja toi sen aarteet Roomaan. Hän oli konsulina jälleen 210 eaa. vallaten Salapian Apuliassa, joka oli kapinoinut liittyen Hannibaliin. Vuonna 209 eaa. hän taisteli ratkaisemattomaan päättyneen taistelun Hannibalia vastaan Venusiassa. Hän sai surmansa väijytyksessä viidennellä konsulikaudellaan 208 eaa. ollessaan tiedustelemassa vihollisen asemia.
    ellauri033.html on line 500: Ah! urhea keskiluokka! se huoahtaa. Huoh. Siitä on nuosnut uutteria upseereja, däppäriä diplomaatteja, eteviä professoreja (oyez! oyez!), ehjiä artisteja! Mut sit on näitä kelvottomia poliitikkoja, jotka ajaa mies- ja ääniperiaatetta ja päästävät keskinkertaisuuxia meidän johtopaikoille. Ei enemmistö voi päättää, enemmistöhän on laahusta, totaalisia idiootteja. Mehän keskiluokka ollaan täällä parhaimmistoa. Ei me siis olla turhia, vaikka sota hävittiin. Mut me haudotaan revanshia! Sakuille pannaan vielä päihin, odottakaapas vaan. (No on sitä saanut odottaa. Ranskixet odotti kaxi maailmansotaa tumput suorina et muut hoiteli sakut niiden puolesta.)
    ellauri033.html on line 530: Sijoittaen tän ajatuxen sit tohon deterministiseen zygologiaan, voi ennustaa et 1) iso data tulee toteuttamaan monia Sixten haaveita historian ennakoimisesta lyhyellä tähtäimellä, 2) lopputulos siitä manipuloinnista tulee olemaan entistä lyhkäsempi ja ikävämpi tulevaisuus kaikille ja 3) jos se on mahollista tehdä niin se tapahtuu, sitä ei mikään estä. Apinalauma valuu kuin vesi syvimpään lätäkköön, sinne missä rahantulo on helpointa.
    ellauri033.html on line 620: Passow jätti opinnot kesken kun pääsi yliopex Weimariin kiitos Goethen. Niinkuin se yx Hintikan etukenoinen oppipoika pohjoisessa asuvaxi proffaxi, Juha Manninen sen nimi oli, entinen jauhiainen (ehkä nykyinenkin, en tunne paremmin) joka ei sitten koskaan väitellyt, kun ei tarvinnut. Toisin kuin ryhditön partajehu Juha Manninen, sileäleuka Franz kannatti voimailua, aiheutti kuuluisan Beslauer Turnfehden vetelysten kieltäytyessä vapaaliikkeistä akateemisen vapauden nimessä. No ei, tämä nykysessä Puolan Wroslawissa käyty kiista keppijumpasta 1819 sai vakavampia poliittis-kumouxellisia sävyjä, jotka kirjailija Kotzebuhen murhan jälkeen sai keisari Wilhelmin säätämään jumppakieltolain. Kerran niinkin päin. Vuonna 1819 alkoi Sinebrychoff panna Helsingissä Koffia.
    ellauri033.html on line 749: Seku luki pienenä M.M.Kayen dekkarin Kuolema kulki Kashmirissa. Sekin asui Intiassa pienenä. Pienenä siirtomaissa asuneista naiskirjailijoista sais jo Wikipedialuettelon. Onkohan siellä jo sellainen? Ois kiva lukea toikin, mut nyt on kirjastot kiinni, pandemia eeku pahenee.
    ellauri033.html on line 1073: Emile Laure oli II maailmansodan armeijankenraali Vauclusesta, Vichy-luopio, mitäs se puuhaa Lamartinen runossa? Sori my bad, puhe on jostain toisesta Lauresta. No Vauclusessa on myös ravintola Petrarque et Laure, josta jenkkivieraat sanovat: Good food but lousy service. Koska Vauclusessa on Mont Ventoux, jolle Petrarca kipusi jollain wanderungilla: For pleasure alone he climbed Mont Ventoux, which rises to more than six thousand feet, beyond Vaucluse. It was no great feat, of course; but he was the first recorded Alpinist of modern times, the first to climb a mountain merely for the delight of looking from its top. (Or almost the first; for in a high pasture he met an old shepherd, who said that fifty years before he had attained the summit, and had got nothing from it save toil and repentance and torn clothing.) Petrarch was dazed and stirred by the view of the Alps, the mountains around Lyons, the Rhone, the Bay of Marseilles. He took Augustine´s Confessions from his pocket and reflected that his climb was merely an allegory of aspiration toward a better life. Vanha paimen oli tyytyväinen kun joku oli vielä tyhmempi kuin se, niinkuin Roope ezimässä nelikulmaisia munia.
    ellauri033.html on line 1075: Eleonora d´Este is best known as the beloved of Italian poet Torquato Tasso (1544-1595). In 1565, Tasso was 21 when he first met the beautiful 28-year-old Eleonora at the court of Alfonso, and he was quickly infatuated. An indiscreet remark made by one of the courtiers regarding the poet´s veneration of the princess caused Tasso to challenge the offender. The courtier, along with his three brothers, attacked Tasso, but others put an end to the duel. Alphonso, incensed by this outburst, sent Tasso away from the court, where he remained subject to the duke´s call.
    ellauri033.html on line 1076: According to legend, Tasso wrote verses to his beloved Eleonora that touched her heart. A few years later, at the wedding of one of the Gonzaga family, celebrated at the court of Este, Tasso kissed the princess Eleonora on the cheek. Furious, Alphonso turned coolly to his courtiers and remarked, "What a great pity that the finest genius of the age has become suddenly mad!" The duke had Tasso shut up in the hospital of St. Anna in Ferrara. (In actuality, Tasso had been beset by delusional fears of persecution starting in 1575 and began a series of mad wanderings around 1577.)
    ellauri033.html on line 1154: Jönsyn mielestä Hopreenien suku on bashkiireja. Laukkuryssiä, radanrakentajia. Tukka musta ja silmät ruskeat kuin Pirkolla. Vähävenäläinen Maria Baškirtseva kuoli tuberkuloosiin 25-vuotiaana, mutta ehti elää sen verran pitkään, että hänestä tuli 1880-luvun Pariisin älyllinen voimatekijä. Hän oli feministi ja kirjoitti vuonna 1881 salanimellä "Pauline Orrel" useita artikkeleita Hubertine Auclertin feministiseen lehteen La Citoyenneen. Hänen tunnettuja lausumiaan on esimerkiksi: Rakastakaamme koiria, rakastakaamme vain koiria! Miehet ja kissat ovat mitättömiä olentoja. Yxinkertaisesti paskiaisia. Seku ihmettelee mikä kissoissa on vikana.
    ellauri034.html on line 37: Tämän väittämän Otto ja Anna Quangel haastavat kuolemalla yxi kerrallaan. Otolta piilutettiin pää poikki, Annan vankila räjähti tuusannuuskaxi pommituxessa. Hegel kuoli Berliinissä koleraan kun tuli kotiin liian aikaisin. Schopenhauer kuoli yxin Berliinissä istualteen. Der Alte Fritz Potsdamissa ebenfalls. Se ei uskonut kuoleman jälkeiseen olemassaoloon ja tarrasi sixi elämään. vaikka oli kihtinen ja vesipöhöinen. Voihan sitä yrittää joukollakin kuolla, niinkuin ne coolaid hihhulit mooniet, tai rintamalla tai jossain onnettomuudessa. Mut eipä siitä seurasta siinä vaiheessa oo paljon väliä. Aika lyhyex se seurustelu siinä sitten jää. Eikä ne välttämättä kuitenkaan samaa unta nää. Yxin oot sinä ukkeli kaiken keskellä yxin, lauleskeli V.A. Koskenniemi hexametrillä ja loppusoinnulla. Ei auttanut vaikka oli vyökin, veti silti yxixensä henxelit. Ja iskä-Saarikoski oli matkalla kaiken aikaa ja kaikki kesken, ei oisi suonut olevansa yxin. Vaan oli. Mitäs oli niin izekäs. Yx kerrallaan kuoli meidänkin paitapeppu vanhemmat, vauvanvaipat leuan alle sidottuina.
    ellauri034.html on line 292: Se että nykyporukat uhoo näistä 2 viime maailmansodasta on teleskooppivaikutusta. Lähellä asiat näyttää isommilta, kuten se New Yorkerin kansi jossa NY ja itärannikko melkein täytti koko horisontin. Maailmansotia on ollut vaikka kuinka monta, maailma vaan oli pienempi ja aseet tylsempiä. Ruumiitakin tulee enemmän teollisella prosessilla, tuhon tuottavuus on kasvanut. Tää tuli mieleen 7v sodasta, joka kuulostaa lyhkäseltä, mut oli pitempi kuin kumpikaan maailmansota, ja globaalinen siirtomaasota sekin. Länsihyeenat ja itäsakaalit eri notmiiden haaskalla. Siitä ei Suomessa juuri kuule kun Suomi ei ollut vielä järin mukana klopaalissa menossa 1756-1763. Ei pitäneet sen ajan Timo Soinit vielä plokia Prysselistä käsin. Ruozin sähläys 7-vuotisessa sodassa oli Pommerin sota, mistä suomalaiset ei kostuneet muuta kuin pommes frites. Tutustuttiin pitkäaikaiseen ystäväämme maapäärynään. Drakassa pojat nauro itäuusmaalaiselle maajussille joka sano peerun eikä potatis. Peruna on hävinnyt täällä pizzalle, ja silli kepapille. Maailman suurin perunanviljelijä on Kiina.
    ellauri034.html on line 429: Brentano Breuer Charcot Darwin yevski Fedor">Dostoyevsky Empedocles Fechner Fliess Goethe von Hartmann Herbart Kierkegaard Nietzsche Plato Schopenhauer Shakespeare Sophocles.
    ellauri034.html on line 541: Conrad asettui 36-vuotiaana vuonna 1894 asumaan Englantiin. Hän meni naimisiin, sai kaksi lasta ja matkusteli edelleen satunnaisesti. Enimmän aikaa hän kuitenkin kirjoitti, ja 1895 ilmestyi ensimmäinen teos, Almayer’s Folly. Conrad jatkoi kirjoittamista elämänsä loppuun asti, ja hänen viimeinen romaaninsa, The Nature of Crime, ilmestyi 1924. Joseph Conrad kuoli vuonna 1924 onnistuneeseen sydänkohtaukseen.
    ellauri034.html on line 543: In 1975 the Nigerian writer Chinua Achebe published an essay, "An Image of Africa: Racism in Conrad´s ´Heart of Darkness´", which provoked controversy by calling Conrad a "thoroughgoing racist". Achebe´s view was that Heart of Darkness cannot be considered a great work of art because it is "a novel which celebrates... dehumanisation, which depersonalises a portion of the human race." Referring to Conrad as a "talented, tormented man", Achebe notes that Conrad (via the protagonist, Charles Marlow) reduces and degrades Africans to "limbs", "ankles", "glistening white eyeballs", etc., while simultaneously (and fearfully) suspecting a common kinship between himself and these natives—leading Marlow to sneer the word "ugly." Achebe also cited Conrad´s description of an encounter with an African: "A certain enormous buck nigger encountered in Haiti fixed my conception of blind, furious, unreasoning rage, as manifested in the human animal to the end of my days." Achebe´s essay, a landmark in postcolonial discourse, provoked debate, and the questions it raised have been addressed in most subsequent literary criticism of Conrad.
    ellauri034.html on line 545: Achebe´s critics argue that he fails to distinguish Marlow's view from Conrad's, which results in very clumsy interpretations of the novella. Jeffrey Meyers notes that Conrad, like his back door acquaintance Roger Casement, "was one of the first men to question the Western notion of progress, a dominant idea in Europe from the Renaissance to the Great War, to attack the hypocritical justification of colonialism and to reveal... the savage degradation of the white man in Africa."
    ellauri035.html on line 118: My first of all by reason of her fresh years,
    ellauri035.html on line 122: If my girl with lotus eyes came to me again
    ellauri035.html on line 140: Making her grave eyes move in watered stars,
    ellauri035.html on line 146: If I saw her lying all wide eyes
    ellauri035.html on line 154: I see the heavy startled hair of this reed-flute player
    ellauri035.html on line 165: Girl with eyes dazing as the seeded-wine,
    ellauri035.html on line 175: Her great live eyes, the colourings of herself
    ellauri035.html on line 182: Over and over all of her; with glittering eyes
    ellauri035.html on line 189: And that one word of strange heart's ease, good-bye,
    ellauri035.html on line 196: My eyes that hurry to see no more are painting, painting
    ellauri035.html on line 205: Over wild eyes and the pity of her slim body
    ellauri035.html on line 223: As it were yellow flame, which the white hand
    ellauri035.html on line 233: And temperate eyes that wander far away.
    ellauri035.html on line 264: Looking askance at me with smiling eyes.
    ellauri035.html on line 273: Crinkle the fat about their eyes; and yet
    ellauri035.html on line 301: Wanton as water, honeyed with eagerness.
    ellauri035.html on line 306: At my disjointed prayer for her small sake.
    ellauri035.html on line 314: Caught yellow moonlight. The purple flame of fire
    ellauri035.html on line 321: I have a need to make up prayers, to speak
    ellauri035.html on line 331: With frightened eyes, like a wood wanderer,
    ellauri035.html on line 339: When slow rose-yellow moons looked out at night
    ellauri035.html on line 350: Wonderful and a presence not yet felt
    ellauri035.html on line 368: I saw strange eyes and hands like butterflies;
    ellauri035.html on line 377: The year that simple and unexalted ran till now
    ellauri035.html on line 385: No more by green rushes delayed in dalliance,
    ellauri035.html on line 390: I love long black eyes that caress like silk,
    ellauri035.html on line 391: Ever and ever sad and laughing eyes,
    ellauri035.html on line 429: For painting not nor any eyes for ever.
    ellauri035.html on line 480: Yet is it all one, Vidya, yet it is nothing.
    ellauri035.html on line 501: And underneath their brows, deep in their eyes,
    ellauri035.html on line 521: I have had full in my eyes from off my girl
    ellauri035.html on line 686: sen kevyessä astunnassa, ja kuin mustan kotkan
    ellauri035.html on line 762: kääntyessä kuulemaan kaukaista sutinaa:
    ellauri035.html on line 948: ihan lyhyexi, unohtuneexi aikaa
    ellauri035.html on line 1019: Noam Chomsky is critical of Žižek, saying that he is guilty of "using fancy terms like polysyllables and pretending you have a theory when you have no theory whatsoever", and also that Žižek’s theories never go "beyond the level of something you can explain in five minutes to a twelve-year-old".
    ellauri036.html on line 359: S'y cache à tous les yeux sous une triple enceinte;
    ellauri036.html on line 403: Alors elle se couche, et ses grands yeux s'éteignent,
    ellauri036.html on line 491: C'est un rêve insensé qui m'a frappé les yeux.
    ellauri036.html on line 552: Marion coûtait cher. — Pour lui payer sa nuit,
    ellauri036.html on line 631: Berce tes rideaux blancs dans ton joyeux miroir.
    ellauri036.html on line 714: Lorsque le doux sommeil avait fermé vos yeux,
    ellauri036.html on line 779: Il alla s'appuyer au bord de la fenêtre.
    ellauri036.html on line 850: En la suivant des yeux s'avance au bord du nid,
    ellauri036.html on line 884: Et que devant tes yeux des torches insensées
    ellauri036.html on line 952: Les yeux sur ses yeux bleus, leur fraîche haleine unie,
    ellauri036.html on line 1010: ravisti vielä neizyenä äitinsä kyynelet
    ellauri036.html on line 1609: Te jotka lennätte tuolla, kevyet pääskyset,
    ellauri036.html on line 1629: yhtä kevyesti kuin se halvexu elämää
    ellauri036.html on line 1733: joka kelluu pehmeästi tuon kevyen verhon alla?
    ellauri036.html on line 1952: YouTube co-founder Jawed Karim credits the incident with leading to the creation of the video sharing website. The incident also made "Janet Jackson" the most searched person and term of 2004 and 2005. The incident broke the record for "most searched event over one day". The incident became the most watched, recorded and replayed television moment in TiVo history and "enticed an estimated 35,000 new [TiVo] subscribers to sign up". The term "wardrobe malfunction" was coined as a result of the incident, and was eventually added to the Merriam-Webster's Collegiate Dictionary.
    ellauri036.html on line 1986: Mä olen jossain toisaalla jo viisaasti sanonut, että apina on hyvä toiselle vaan niin kauan kuin leijona on kylläinen: kun sillä ei oo nälkä, se voi antaa luun myös hyeenoille. Tai no, köyhät kyllä auttaa toisiaan, se tuntuu rotevalta, ja voi toisen kerran saada sitten ize apua. Sitä mukaa kun amerikkalaisten äärettömältä näyttänyt etumatka muihin on kaventunut, on niiden kostonhimo myös herännyt. Tää ei yhtään yllätä, samoja apinoita kasvaa joka oxalla.
    ellauri036.html on line 2135: Reichs-Jugend-Führer oli Baldur von Schirach. Ilmetty Harry Potter koppalakilla ilman silmälaseja. Baldur oli aasojen Jeesus Kristus. Sen hömelö märkähattu veli tappoi sen vahingossa sokkona. Potter on wiccojen oma messias, parturoitu Aslan joka selättää Voldemortin panematta edes vastaan. Rule Britannian Ahura Mazda, Austin Mini joka päihittää Angry Mainyu birdsit ja kiinalaisen Volvon. JK Rowling on brexitin Paulo Coelho. Se käytti etukirjaimia jottei Harryn maaliryhmä, esipuberteettiset pojat ois pelästyneet naisen nimeä. Onhan se vähän lyhyempi lause, kirjan paxuutta pojat kai enimmin pelästyvät. Väkisin saa tuputtaa. Tytöt taitaa Harryakin enempi lukea, vaik niille on omat vampyyri- ja riitakäkisarjat. Baldur sai 20v pyttyä Nurnbergissä. Vähemmän kuin Weinstein. Tuomiot on kovenneet. Baldur Jugend-Führer oli siira. Fasen omistaja on sokeritoukka. Weinstein ei ollut mikään Einstein. Kiven alla ryömiskelijöitä koko roikka, Albert mukaanlukien.
    ellauri037.html on line 32: Miten monta vuotta onkaan siitä kun olen voinut lukea mitään pyyteettömästi? Kuinka moneen vuoteen en ole kyennyt antautumaan muiden kirjoittaman kirjan lukemiselle ilman mitään suhdetta siihen mitä minun täytyy kirjoittaa?
    ellauri037.html on line 164: Diese menschliche Sexmaschine, die als Vorspiel zum Sex erotische Passagen aus Fanny Hill und von Lady Chatterley vorlas, schaffte es, sechs Runden hintereinander zu absolvieren, mit kaum 5 Minuten Pause dazwischen. Ausserdem war er ein leidenschaftlicher Voyeur.
    ellauri037.html on line 355: Whose teensy hand is this, whose little ear and eye and nose?
    ellauri037.html on line 363: while he was being born a year ago,
    ellauri037.html on line 383: smell of yeast dough, of gray soap.
    ellauri037.html on line 478: Joseph Étienne, dit Étienne de Jouy né le 19 octobre 1764 à Versailles et mort le 4 septembre 1846 à Saint-Germain-en-Laye, etait un dramaturge et librettiste français.
    ellauri037.html on line 482: Jouyn aikalainen Stendhal kertoo Egoistin muistelmissa miten Jouy oli äijäseurassa kehunut raiskanneensa kavereineen intialaisen vestaalin jossain brahman temppelissä ihan huvin vuox, nähäxeen mitä tapahtuu. Kun intialaisäijät huomas sen ne ryntäs "apuun" ja leikkas neizyeltä ranteet ja irrotti siltä pään, ja sit vasta ryhty samoihin hommiin ranskisten kaa. Jouy onnistu pakenemaan hepalla. Se kirjotti sittemmin menestysoopperan Vestaalit, jossa ylistettiin Napsua. Vestaali markkeeras kai siinä alapesemätöntä Josephinea. Sillä oli pulleat purjeet ja mahtava peräsin. Siitäköhän toi Sopen sitaatti oli peräsin.
    ellauri037.html on line 677: Er starb allein, im Alter von 72 Jahren, an einem Lungen-Blutsturz. Der Hund Atman hat nach ihm sehr geheult. 50n villitys, 60n kullitus, 70n selitys. Selityxet katkes Artturilta lyhyeen.
    ellauri038.html on line 49: Swept it for half a year,
    ellauri038.html on line 58: RUOSK oli Drakan aliupseerikoulu, josta lähdin maitojunaan 1979 ja sain alennuxen B-miehexi ja kirjurixi. Sit mulla oli olkapäässä kynä ja paperia, mikä kyllä sopi mulle paljon paremmin kuin teräsmiehen asu. RUOSK jäi kesken, eikä ollut ruoskaakaan, jonka Friedrich Wilhelm Nietzsche (1844-1900) käski ottaa mukaan naisen luo. Ilman kättä pitempää se ei ilmeisesti pärjännyt, käsiase oli kai kättä lyhyempi, ja aika harvoin kunnon tanassa. Latinki valui piipusta Retun reisille.
    ellauri038.html on line 200: Marianne Schnitger was born on 2 August 1870 in Oerlinghausen to medical doctor Eduard Schnitger and his wife, Anna Weber, daughter of a prominent Oerlinghausen businessman Karl Weber. After the death of her mother in 1873, she moved to Lemgo and was raised for the next fourteen years by her grandmother and aunt. During this time, both her father and his two brothers went mad and were institutionalized. When Marianne turned 16, Karl Weber sent her off to fashionable finishing schools in Lemgo and Hanover, from which she graduated when she was 19. After the death of her grandmother in 1889, she lived several years with her mother´s sister, Alwine, in Oerlinghausen.
    ellauri038.html on line 202: During the first few years of their marriage, Max taught in Berlin, then, in 1894, at the University of Heidelberg. During this time, Marianne pursued her own studies. After moving to Freiburg in 1894, she studied with a leading neo-Kantian philosopher, Heinrich Rickert. She also began to engage herself in the women´s movement after hearing prominent feminist speakers at a political congress in 1895. In 1896, in Heidelberg, she co-founded a society for the circulation of feminist thought. She also worked with Max to raise the level of women students attending the university. Max found them deplorably charmless.
    ellauri038.html on line 208: In 1904, the Webers toured America. In America, Marianne met both Jane Addams and Florence Kelley, both staunch feminists and active political reformers. Also during that year, Max re-entered the public sphere, publishing, among other things, The Protestant Ethic and the Spirit of Capitalism. USA:ssa sen lurituxet satoivat vastaanottavaiseen maahan. Marianne also continued her own scholarship, publishing in 1907 her landmark work Ehefrau und Mutter in der Rechtsentwicklung ("Wife and Mother in the Development of Law").
    ellauri038.html on line 210: In 1907, Karl Weber died, and left enough money to his granddaughter Marianne for the Webers to live comfortably. During this time, Marianne first established her intellectual salon. Between 1907 and the start of World War I, Marianne enjoyed a rise in her status as an intellectual and a scholar as she published "The Question of Divorce" (1909), "Authority and Autonomy in Marriage" (1912) and "On the Valuation of Housework" (1912), and "Women and Objective Culture" (1913). The Webers presented a united front in public life. Max defended his wife from her scholarly detractors but carried on an affair with Else Jaffe, a mutual friend.
    ellauri038.html on line 391: Tykkään a cappella- ja beatbox-yhtyeistä, jos sellainen on kuvassa.

    ellauri039.html on line 325: Niinpä. Vyötärö on paxu, mut kazanto on kapea. Sivistystä ei enää minkäänlaista, ei sydämen eikä pään. Keneltähän tässä puuttuu historian tajua. Näitä wannabe kultapossuja nousee joka polvessa. Self employed freelance journalisti Haisu Pervonen on ehkä tietämättään sellainen.
    ellauri039.html on line 373: Mount Holyoke administrator and art professor Rie Hatsipompponen (pretty Japanese lady, 48) got Mt Holyoke into international headlines (yess!) by trying to bump off a colleague in a case of unrequited love in December 2019. Hatsipompponen allegedly used a fire poker, large rock, and a gardening shears to attempt to kill her victim, allegedly a regular member of the faculty. Hatsipompponen's alleged victim, another polished lady in her 60s, allegedly survived the attack.
    ellauri039.html on line 375: The severely beaten professor suffered multiple broken bones near her eyes and nose.
    ellauri039.html on line 376: The victim insisted that she and Hatsipompponen had never been romantic — and that the attacker had never even been to her house before Dec. 23, even though they had been friendly colleagues for 14 years.
    ellauri039.html on line 398: This unit deals with the statement "I am from Germany" as an inclusive identity for people who live in Germany today. The material is aimed at second-year German students. The goal of the unit is to show the diversity of people who live in Germany, to inform the students about how Germans and non-Germans are differentiated, to allow students to experience some attitudes held by and against certain groups of people living in Germany, and to expect students to have an awareness of what it can mean when someone says "I am from Germany." The REFLECTION section can be found in each of the various subsections of the unit.
    ellauri039.html on line 413: In 1636, a young girl (17 years old, named Anna Neander) was getting married to a minister, Johannes Partatius. Simon Dach, a baroque poet who was born in Memel, (1605-1659), was invited to the wedding. He fell in love with Anna Neander and wrote a poem about her: "Ännchen von Tharau."
    ellauri039.html on line 419: In 1912 a statue of Ännchen von Tharau was erected in honour of the poet, Simon Dach in Klaipeda (Memel). Rouva Burda oli 3-vuotias. It got lost (destroyed) during the war and was replaced by a bust of Hitler in 1939. Aenne täytti 30v. In 1989 members of the "Ännchen von Tharau Verein" (club), founded by "vertriebenen Memelländern", (Germans who were driven out of the Memelland) and exiled Lithuanians, erected the new statue of Ännchen von Tharau.
    ellauri039.html on line 505: Yes, I came from America and I've lived in Tampere for 4 years, soon 5. I will say this, Finland is far beyond America in a lot of ways.
    ellauri039.html on line 523: Is it a developed nation? I think so, yes, is it done developing? Not by a long shot.
    ellauri039.html on line 718: Ruton loppuvizeistä näyttää selvältä, että Kamu oikeastaan puhuu maailmansodasta, jota se vertaa ruttotautiin. Pandemia tai pandemonium, vähän eroa. Kamua lienee vähän kaikissa kirjan sankareissa, Tarroun kertomuxessa paljonkin, mutta eniten tietysti tohtorissa, joka kertojaxi lopuxi paljastuukin (spoileri). Tarroun isä, joka osas junien aikataulut ulkoa kuin Mussolini, ja jonka suusta kiemursi kostonhimoisia lauseita kuin käärmeitä, toi mieleen Poirot-episodin Sad Cypress ja sen alussa messuavan syyttäjän. Anglosaxiset oikedenkäynnit on primiitiivistä farssia, mölyapinan vihaista mölinää jota kuuntelee satunnaisesti poimittu pala laahusta huuli lerpalla. Guilty. Ja tää on sit olevinaan parasta mihin lännessä on kyetty.
    ellauri039.html on line 760:
    Intellectual yet idiotic.

    ellauri039.html on line 765: Forster ja Galsworthy menee mulla jotenkin sekaisin kuin Abbott ja Costello. Ei ihmekään, ne on aika samixet. Intellectual yet idiotic.
    ellauri039.html on line 768: Edward Morgan Forster OM CH (1 January 1879 – 7 June 1970) was an English novelist, short story writer, essayist and librettist. Many of his novels examine class difference and hypocrisy, including A Room with a View (1908), Howards End (1910) and A Passage to India (1924). The last brought him his greatest success. He was nominated for the Nobel Prize in Literature in 16 different years.
    ellauri039.html on line 770:

    Howards End is a novel by E. M. Forster, first published in 1910, about social conventions, codes of conduct and relationships in turn-of-the-century England. Howards End is considered by many to be Forster´s masterpiece. The book was conceived in June 1908 and worked on throughout the following year; it was completed in July 1910. In 1998, the Modern Library ranked Howards End 38th on its list of the 100 best English-language novels of the 20th century.
    ellauri040.html on line 119: Eski Saariselle filosofia on tienkantin pysäkeillä pönöttävien suurmiesten keekoilua ja kukoistusta. Pikku-Maken luutnantti Jyrki Lehtola nauraa niille. Kun filosofiset ongelmat ovat mitä ovat, niiden sijasta voi hyvin ihastella pysäkeillä herrastelleiden jälkeenjääneiden pyrkyreiden henkilögalleriaa. Eli ihminen on kaiken mitta, jopa liian lyhyexi jääneen pikkuveitikan. Puoli jalkaa, Goethe kerskaili. Uskokoon ken haluaa. Puoli vaaksaa, jos olet taitava. Jyrki Lehtolan nykytilasta kz. tätä paasausta.
    ellauri040.html on line 133: Descartes kuoli vilustumistautiin sekin jouduttuaan heräämään viiden aikaan aamulla opettamaan coogitoota meidän Kristina-tädille. Kristina ei oppinut vaan lähti paavin pakeille. Reikärauta Rene jäi Tukholmaan ja kuoli flunssaan kuten 1000 muutakin ruozimamuvanhusta äskettäin. Descartesilla oli tapa mietiskellä uuninpankolla, koska siellä oli lämmin. Ja hah, veteli varmaan siellä vaan dogmattisia unia kuin muumipappa. Dormio ergo sum ois ollut lyhyempi lause.
    ellauri040.html on line 329: The earliest will vaguely remember the 20th century, little affinity (mental age factor) or no memory of September 11th 2001, and the last golden years of TV animations in the western world, in Asia and elsewhere, Rise in standard of living, exposure to Computer and Internet and grow up in the reduction in moral, traditional values.
    ellauri040.html on line 598: Lithuania, my country, thou art like health; how much thou shouldst be prized only he can learn who has lost thee. To-day thy beauty in all its splendour I see and describe, for I yearn for thee. (Translation in prose by George Rapall Noyes).
    ellauri041.html on line 836: Toivon siipien kevyessä nosteessa

    ellauri041.html on line 1596: Antto kannustaa sen lyhyeeseen raviin

    ellauri042.html on line 67: Eighty million years ago, 80M vuotta sitten, kun liitukausi
    ellauri042.html on line 220: The census in the PNAS paper isn’t perfect. Though remote sensing, satellites, and huge efforts to study the distribution of life in the ocean make it easier than ever to come up with estimates, the authors admit there’s still a lot of uncertainty. But we do need a baseline understanding of the distribution of life on Earth. Millions of acres of forests are still lost every year. Animals are going extinct 1,000 to 10,000 faster than you’d expect if no humans lived on Earth. Sixty percent of primate species, our closest relatives on the tree of life, are threatened with extinction.
    ellauri042.html on line 438: Roomalaiset vietti ökyelämää naapureiden selkänahasta, niinkauan kun taloudessa oli kasvuräjähdys. 200-luvulla, kun pyhä Antonius mellasti Egyptissä, oli Egyptissä aika lailla samat fiilixet kuin on nykyään jossain Euroopassa. Mutta eipä aikaakaan niin voi kauhistus, jonkinlainen pikku jääkausi iski, ja porukoita lähti liikkeelle pohjoisesta, matelija-aivoisia nuijamiehiä, jotka vähin erin nuijivat suurvallan lysyyn, se hajosi taas pienemmixi valloixi, kulttuurit ja kielet hajaantuivat taas.
    ellauri042.html on line 440: Siirtomaiden ansiosta Englannista tuli samanlainen kauppavalta, purjehtiva saarivaltakunta kuin oli Kreikka sofistien aikaan. Kyldyyri lähti jälleen kukoistamaan lainarahalla, tiede, taide, uskonto ja urheilu oli kovaa valuuttaa, kauppiailla oli sekä luppoaikaa että pätäkkää. Vaan annas olla, muutamia sotia, alkuasukkaiden listimistä, kaupan ja teollisuuden painopisteen siirtymistä lännemmäxi, niin entisestä siirtomaasta eli jenkeistä tuli uusi maailmanvalta, ja brittikansakunnasta vuorostaan niiden orjia ja kotiopeja. Jenkit vietti ökyelämää naapureiden selkänahasta, niinkauan kun taloudessa oli kasvuräjähdys.
    ellauri042.html on line 502: The youngest son narrates the tale. He, his brothers, and his mother are all sympathetic characters, relatively normal people, though each has their own beliefs, quirks, and problems. The failure of my-way-or-the-highway Dad to show respect or even empathy for those who disagree drives the story. He could have been portrayed as an easy person to hate, but even with his limitations, it's obvious he is still trying to do good. To that extent, this film succeeds.

    ellauri042.html on line 686: 5 years older Gibson was married to publisher Shirley Gibson until the early 1970s, and together they had two sons, Matt and Grae. He later began dating novelist and poet Margaret Atwood in 1973. They moved to a semi-derelict farm near Alliston, Ontario, which they set about doing up and where according to Atwood they were making "attempts at farming, writing and trying to earn enough to live". Their daughter Eleanor Jess Atwood Gibson was born there in 1976. The family returned to Toronto in 1980. Atwood and Gibson stayed together until his death in 2019. Gibsons best book was The Bedside Book of Birds (2005).
    ellauri042.html on line 688: In 2017 Gibson was diagnosed with early signs of vascular dementia. He died on 18 September 2019 in London, England, where Atwood was promoting her new book, five days after having a big stroke. Atwood later said about his death that it had not been unexpected due to the vascular dementia, had been a good one—and in a good hospital, and his children had time to come and say goodbye—and that he had been "declining and he had wanted to check out before he reached any further stages of that".
    ellauri042.html on line 699: Maria Fyodorovna Nechayeva, his mother, was descended from a conservative Moscow merchant family. Dostoevsky was educated at home and at a private school. The family lived in a very small apartment, which his father also used as a doctor´s practice. The patriarchal and avaricious character of his father was seminal for the personal and the artistic development of Fyodor.
    ellauri042.html on line 701: In 1833, the family moved to Tula where the father bought a manor. Shortly after the death of his mother in 1837, Fyodor (16 yrs) was sent to St. Petersburg where he entered the Army Engineering College. 2 years later, in 1839, Dostoevsky´s more and more tyrannical father died, probably of apoplexy, but there were strong rumours that he was murdered by his own serfs in a quarrel. (Unless it was Fedja who dunit.) Against the background of this legend, Sigmund Freud later interpreted the patricide in the novel “The brothers Karamazov” as showing Fedja hated his father´s guts. True, but the main thing was the epilepsy, wait and see.
    ellauri042.html on line 705: In Katorga, Dostoevsky spent four years in hard labour and wearing fetters, hating immigrants. During that time, Dostoevsky´s health dramatically deteriorated and he suffered from his first generalized epileptic attacks.
    ellauri042.html on line 706: The doctor wrote: “1850, he had his first epileptic attack with crying, amnesia, cloniform movements, foam around his mouth, and dyspnoea with weak and rapid pulsation of the heart. This first attack lasted for 15 min. The attack was followed by common exhaustion and reachievment of consciousness. 1853, he had another attack, and meanwhile, the attacks return at every end of the month”. During his Siberian years, Dostoevsky became a devout follower of the Russian Orthodox Church and a persuaded monarchist.
    ellauri042.html on line 708: During repeated trips to many European cities in the years 1862–1865, Dostoevsky got to know the complacence and arrogance of the aristocratic European ‘Bourgeoisie’. These experiences strengthened his slavophilic attitude and explain his xenophilia.
    ellauri042.html on line 715: On the 15th of February, 1867, Dostoevsky married Anna Grigoryevna Snitkina, his stenographer who seemed to have understood her husband´s manias and rages. Ten days later, Dostoevsky had an epileptic attack which was described in Anna Grigoryevna´s memories. Shouting, grinding teeth, kicking on the floor, saliva on the chin, the works.
    ellauri042.html on line 811: Sacks forbade any mention of his homosexuality, though he had told his would-be biographer Wechsler about his closeted yearnings and crippled attempts at love. His Boswell shelved the notes for 30 years. Ollie changed his mind on his deathbed: Do it! You must!
    ellauri042.html on line 813: In the meantime Ollie had published not one but two memoirs, with an exhaustive range of anecdotes, full of enchantment and anguish, covering everything from his all-consuming childhood obsession with the properties of metals to the abuse he endured at boarding school to his feeling, amphibian-like, more at home in water than on land to his mother’s reaction when she discovered his sexual orientation. “You are an abomination,” Ollie recounted her telling him when he was 18. “I wish you had never been born.” Nor had Ollie kept anything hidden. He described his first orgasm — reached spontaneously while floating in a swimming pool — and, in deft yet fairly pornographic detail, an agonized, inadvertent climax experienced much later while giving a massage to a man who shunned Ollie’s love.
    ellauri042.html on line 815: What had Sacks left to Weschler? What did his gift, his command, amount to beyond the dying wish of a magnificent and, by some accounts, paradoxically self-effacing and narcissistic doctor to have yet another book, beyond the 13 he himself had written (three more would come posthumously), to help ensure his immortality? Maybe this:
    ellauri042.html on line 862: Pantainoksen kuoltua vähän ennen vuotta 200 Klemensistä tuli kateketiikkakoulun johtaja. Hän joutui kuitenkin lähtemään Aleksandriasta Septimius Severuksen toimeenpanemien vainojen (202 tai 203) aikana. Klemens toimi lyhyen aikaa Jerusalemin piispana kunnes muutti Kappadokiaan, jossa hän kuoli 215. Lähti karkuun, ei tullut veritodistajaa klementiinistä. Tunnusti vaan oranssia väriä.
    ellauri042.html on line 887: The Devotions is divided into 23 parts, each consisting of 3 sub-sections, called the 'meditation', the 'expostulation' and a prayer. The 23 sections are chronologically ordered, each covering his thoughts and reflections on a single day of the illness. The work as a whole is considered similar to 17th-century devotional writing generally, and particularly to Donne´s Holy Sonnets. Some academics have also identified political strands running through the work, possibly from a polemic Arminian denunciation of Puritanism to advise the young Prince Charles.
    ellauri042.html on line 916: If her eyes have not blinded thine, Ellei hiänen silmänsä jo sokaisseet sinuakin,
    ellauri042.html on line 921: Ask for those kings whom thou saw´st yesterday, Kysy noilta kuninkailta jotka eilen näit,
    ellauri042.html on line 937: John Donne is most commonly known for being part of the ‘metaphysical poets’, a group of poets who wrote about love and religion using complex metaphors called conceits. These poets didn’t know each other, and this name was given by literary critics some years later. Nevertheless, John Donne is considered to be one of the best metaphysical poets. John Donne converted to Anglicanism later in his life. By 1615 he became a priest because King James I ordered him to do so. Donne was a member of Parliament in 1601 and in 1614. He also spent a short time in prison because he married his wife, Anne More, without permission. They had twelve children and Anne died while extruding the XIIth.
    ellauri042.html on line 941: His father died in 1576, when Donne was four years old, leaving his mother, Elizabeth, with the responsibility of raising the children alone.[2] Heywood was also from a recusant Roman Catholic family, the daughter of John Heywood, the playwright, and sister of the Reverend Jasper Heywood, a Jesuit priest and translator.[2] She was also a great-niece of Thomas More. A few months after her husband died, Donne's mother married Dr. John Syminges, a wealthy widower with three children of his own.
    ellauri042.html on line 945: Despite his great education and poetic talents, Donne lived in poverty for several years, relying heavily on wealthy friends. He spent much of the money he inherited during and after his education on womanising, literature, pastimes, and travel. In 1601, Donne secretly married Anne More, with whom he had twelve children. In 1615 he was ordained Anglican deacon and then priest, although he did not want to take holy orders and only did so because the king ordered it. He also served as a member of Parliament in 1601 and in 1614.
    ellauri042.html on line 947: During the next four years, Donne fell in love with Egerton´s niece Anne More, and they were secretly married just before Christmas in 1601, against the wishes of both Egerton and Anne's father George More, who was Lieutenant of the Tower. Upon discovery, this wedding ruined Donne's career, getting him dismissed and put in Fleet Prison, along with the Church of England priest Samuel Brooke, who married them,[13] and his brother Chistopher, who stood in in the absence of George More to give Anne away. Donne was released shortly thereafter when the marriage was proved to be valid, and he soon secured the release of the other two. Walton tells us that when Donne wrote to his wife to tell her about losing his post, he wrote after his name: John Donne, Anne Donne, Un-done.[14] It was not until 1609 that Donne was reconciled with his father-in-law and received his wife´s dowry,
    ellauri042.html on line 949: After his release, Donne had to accept a retired country life in a small house in Pyrford, Surrey, owned by Anne´s cousin, Sir Francis Wooley, where they resided until the end of 1604. In spring 1605 they moved to another small house in Mitcham, London, where he scraped a meager living as a lawyer, while Anne Donne bore a new baby almost every year. Though he also worked as an assistant pamphleteer to Thomas Morton writing anti-Catholic pamphlets, Donne was in a constant state of financial insecurity.
    ellauri042.html on line 951: Although King James was pleased with Donne's work, he refused to reinstate him at court and instead urged him to take holy orders. At length, Donne acceded to the king's wishes, and in 1615 was ordained priest in the Church of England. In late November and early December 1623 he suffered a nearly fatal illness, thought to be either typhus or a combination of a cold followed by a period of fever. During his convalescence he wrote a series of meditations and prayers on health, pain, and sickness that were published as a book in 1624 under the title of Devotions upon Emergent Occasions. One of these meditations, Meditation XVII, contains the well known phrases "No man is an Iland" (often modernised as "No man is an island") and "...for whom the bell tolls".
    ellauri042.html on line 953: Anne gave birth to twelve children in sixteen years of marriage, (including two stillbirths—their eighth and then, in 1617, their last child); indeed, she spent most of her married life either pregnant or nursing. The ten surviving children were Constance, John, George, Francis, Lucy (named after Donne´s patroness Lucy, Countess of Bedford, her godmother), Bridget, Mary, Nicholas, Margaret, and Elizabeth. Three (Francis, Nicholas, and Mary) died before they were ten. In a state of despair that almost drove him to kill himself, Donne noted that the death of a child would mean one mouth fewer to feed, but he could not afford the burial expenses. During this time, Donne wrote but did not publish Biathanatos, his defense of suicide. Anne died on 15 August 1617, five days after giving birth to their twelfth child, a still-born baby. Donne mourned her deeply, and wrote of his love and loss in his 17th Holy Sonnet.
    ellauri042.html on line 966: A holy thirsty dropsy melts me yet. sili pyhä jano ja vesipää vaivaa yhä.
    ellauri042.html on line 972: Lest the world, flesh, yea, devil put thee out. ettei maailma, liha, pirukin vie susta voittoa.
    ellauri043.html on line 168: Yöllä mua repi kynnet, puri nokat, läpsi siivet pehmyet; ja hirmu demonit hirnui mun korvissa ja kaatoivat mut maahan. Kunnes kerran yhden karavaanin porukat jotka meni ohi siitä Alexandriaan tuli apuun, ja otti messiin mut.
    ellauri043.html on line 204: The Mỹ Lai Massacre (/ˌmiːˈlaɪ/; Vietnamese: Thảm sát Mỹ Lai [tʰâːm ʂǎːt mǐˀ lāːj] (About this soundlisten)) was the Vietnam War mass murder of unarmed South Vietnamese civilians by U.S. troops in Sơn Tịnh District, South Vietnam, on 16 March 1968. Between 347 and 504 unarmed people were killed by U.S. Army soldiers from Company C, 1st Battalion, 20th Infantry Regiment and Company B, 4th Battalion, 3rd Infantry Regiment, 11th Brigade, 23rd (Americal) Infantry Division. Victims included men, women, children, and infants. Some of the women were gang-raped and their bodies mutilated as were children as young as 12.[1][2] Twenty-six soldiers were charged with criminal offenses, but only Lieutenant William Calley Jr., a platoon leader in C Company, was convicted. Found guilty of killing 22 villagers, he was originally given a life sentence, but served only three and a half years under house arrest.
    ellauri043.html on line 380:

    Mutta tekikö ne niin! Ne ei kuunnellu mua! Se joka vastusti mua - nuori kähäräpartainen miehenkorsto - heitti mulle kylmän rauhallisesti tekastuja vastaväitteitä; ja sillä aikaa kun mä ezin sanoja, kaikki tuijotti mua ilkeän näköisinä haukahdellen kuin hyeenat. Voi vinde! Voisimpa ajaa ne maasta keisarin avulla, tai paremminkin nirhata ne, runtata ne läjään, nakata kuralolloon kärsimään! Kärsinhän minäkin, hittolainen!
    ellauri043.html on line 796:

    Sen selässä, sinisillä villatyynyillä, jalat ristissä, silmäluomet puolixi kiinni ja pää nyökkyen, on nainen, joka on niin upeasti puettu että siitä lähtee ympäriinsä säteitä. Lössi heittäytyy naamalleen, elehvantti taivuttaa polvia, ja


    ellauri043.html on line 1734:

    Särkekää kuvat! Verhotkaa neizyet! Rukoilkaa, paastotkaa, itkekää, kuolettakaa izeänne! Ei filosofiaa! Ei kirjoja! Jeesuxen mukaan tiede on tarpeetonta!


    ellauri043.html on line 1886:

    Ja, lähestyen koko ajan samalta puolelta Anttoni tapaa
    ellauri043.html on line 2604:

    Onxe hyeenan haukuntaa, vai jonkun exyneen matkailijan nyyhkinää?


    ellauri043.html on line 4215: Näiden olentojen yhtyeen päälle Omoroca, vanteexi taipuneena, levitti naisenruumiinsa. Mutta Belus katkaisi sen siististi 2 puolikkaaxi , teki maan toisesta puolikkaasta ja taivaan toisesta, ja nää 2 samista maailmaa kazelevat vastavuoroisesti toisiaan.
    ellauri043.html on line 4615: Papit seuraa jumalan esimerkkiä "gör det"-metodilla, uskovaiset seuraa pappeja. Miehet ja naiset vaihtaa kuteita, syleilevät; — ja tää vereslihojen syöveri lähtee sekin vetään, äänten muuttuessa etääntyessään kirkuvammixi ja kimakammixi kuin itkijöillä hautajaisissa.
    ellauri043.html on line 4947: Mutta jumalten rappusten yläpäässä, höyhenenpehmeiden pilvien seassa, joiiden pyörteet kääntyessään pudottelee ruusuja, Venus Anadyomene kazoo izeänsä peilistä; sen silmäterät liukuvat laiskasti sen vähän Esko Ahomaisen raskaiden silmäluomien alla.
    ellauri043.html on line 5090: Hekatombien kuussa mun koko kansa hankkiutui mun luo, virkamiesten ja pappien johtamana. Sitten ne tulivat esiin valkoisissa puvuissa ja kultaisissa villatakeissa, pitkät jonot neizyitä pidellen kuppeja, koreja, ja parasolleja; 300 uhrihärkää, vanhuxia Tintti-julisteineen (tai vihreine oxineen), sotilaat paukuttamassa haarniskojaan, efeebejä laulamassa virsiä, huilunsoittajia, lyyranrimputtajia, rapsodeita, tanssijoita, — vihdoin yhden pyörillä rullaavan kolmisoudun mastossa mun iso purje, jonka oli kirjoneet vuoden ajan ihan erityisellä tavalla ruokitut neizyet;
    ellauri043.html on line 5125: Sillä aikaa Kairoxet ojentavat kyntensä pitääxeen kiinni sieluista; furiat repivät epätoivoissaan käärmeensä tukasta; ja Kerberos, jonka sä panit kytkyeeseen, rähisee, louskuttaen kolmesta kurkustaan.
    ellauri043.html on line 6177: Se varmaan lie kironnut mun intoa, kiskoen kaxin käsin valkoisia hiuxiaan. Ja sen raato on jäänyt pitkäxeen keskelle mökkiä, ruokokaton alle, kaatuvien seinien väliin. Jostain reiästä nuuhkiskeleva hyeena työntää kuonoa!… kauhua! kauhua!
    ellauri043.html on line 6249: kärsimättöminä kuolemaan. Nauttiaxeen siitä aikaisemmin Mileton neizyet kuristivat izensä kortongeilla (tai vöillä).
    ellauri043.html on line 6662:

    Oo tuntematon, mä rakastuin sun silmiin! Kuin hyeena kiimassa mä pyörin sun ympärillä vonkaamassa siemennystä jonka tarve nielee mut.
    ellauri043.html on line 6772: Blemmyet
    ellauri043.html on line 7105: Päivä koittaa lopulta, ja kuin tabernaakkelin verhoja nostettaisiin, kultapilvet vyöryen isoina kiekuroina päästää taivaan näkyviin.
    ellauri045.html on line 742: Richardin kieltäytyessä liittymästä Musta-asuisen miehen puolelle, tämä suuntaa parakeille ja kohtaa Sawyerin, joka tajuaa ettei mies ole ulkomuodostaan huolimatta Locke. Matkallaan luolalle mies kohtaa nuoren Jacobin ”haamun”, joka muistuttaa, ettei hän voi tappaa Sawyeria. Mies vie Sawyerin luolaan, jonka seinään Jacob oli kirjoittanut selviytyneiden nimiä, joista suurin osa oli yliviivattu. Mies viivaa Locken nimen yli ja selittää Sawyerille Jacobin halunneen Sawyerin suojelevan saarta yhtenä hänen kandidaattinaan. Sawyer päättää kuitenkin lähteä pois saarelta Musta-asuisen miehen kanssa.
    ellauri045.html on line 746: Seuraavana päivänä mies vapauttaa Benin jalkakahleista ja tarjoaa tälle työtä saaren johtajana, kun hän on lähtenyt saarelta. Johdatettuaan joukkonsa Clairen suojiin, mies lähettää Sawyerin vakoilemaan Widmorea Hydra-saarelle. Kohdattuaan Sunin, Musta-asuinen mies tarjoutuu viemään hänet Jinin luo, mutta Sun juoksee karkuun kunnes hän lyö päänsä oksaan ja menettää tajuntansa. Palattuaan leiriin hän huomaa Widmoren miesten vieneen Jinin pois. Musta-asuinen mies suuntaa Hydra-saarelle, jossa hän kohtaa Widmoren ja varoittaa tätä tulevasta sodasta. Palatessaan leiriinsä hän kohtaa Desmondin, jonka Sayid oli hakenut Widmoren leiristä. Mies työntää Desmondin vanhaan kaivoon.
    ellauri045.html on line 748: Hurleyn ryhmän saavuttua neuvottelemaan Musta-asuisen miehen kanssa, hän kertoo Jackille yrittäneensä neuvoa selviytyneitä aiemmin Christianin muodossa. Zoen saavuttua kertomaan uhkavaatimuksen Widmorelta, Musta-asuinen mies suuntaa ryhmänsä kanssa rannalle käskien Sawyeria hakemaan purjeveneen. Sawyer kuitenkin karkaa Jackin, Katen, Hurleyn, Sunin, Clairen ja Frankin kanssa. Jack päättää jäädä saarelle ja ui takaisin rannalle, jossa Musta-asuinen mies odottaa ryhmänsä kanssa. Kun Widmore aloittaa tykistötulen, Musta-asuinen mies vie Jackin turvaan.
    ellauri045.html on line 750: Jack ja Musta-asuinen mies soutavat veneellä Hydra-saarelle, jossa he vapauttavat muut selviytyneet. Saavuttuaan koneelle Musta-asuinen mies sanoo koneen olevan viritetty räjähteillä ja että heidän on poistuttava saarelta sukellusveneellä. Saavuttuaan veneen luo Jack työntää miehen veteen ja pakenee veneellä saarelta ilman Musta-asuista miestä ja Clairea. Mies oli kuitenkin piilottanut Jackin reppuun räjähteen, jonka Sawyer vahingossa aktivoi. Jack pakenee uppoavasta sukellusveneestä Hurleyn, Sawyerin ja Katen kanssa. Sayid, Sun ja Jin menehtyvät. Mies sanoo Clairelle sukellusveneen uponneen ja menevänsä viimeistelemään aloittamansa asian.
    ellauri045.html on line 784: Married for 30 happy years as Donald, with two grown children (who alas have not spoken to me since 1995), I live on Printer's Row in Chicago with my Norwich terrier named Will Shakespeare and my Episcopal church across the street — which is why I'm always late for church!
    ellauri045.html on line 786: Her book Crossing was a New York Times Notable Book in 1999. Her latest books, The Bourgeois Virtues: Ethics for an Age of Commerce (2006) and Bourgeois Dignity: Why Economics Can't Explain the Modern World (2011), are parts of a four-volume "apology" for capitalism, of which she says: "I reckon this is why God put me on the planet. She thought, '"Hmm. We need an economist who is silly enough to try to unify the scientific and the humanistic sides. Oh, yeah: Deirdre.'"
    ellauri045.html on line 804: Justice is one primary virtue, of course, the balance and respect in society so characteristic of Switzerland-well, I suppose not always, and not for every single immigrant, and until 1971 not for every single woman voter; but usually. Temperance is another, the balance in a soul, controlling desire. Courage is the third. What person could flourish if like Oblomov he stayed in bed out of uncontrolled fear, or out of ennui, an aristocratic version of cowardice? Prudence is the executive virtue, as St. Thomas Aquinas called it-know-how, savoir faire, self-interest. It rounds out the four virtues most admired in the tough little cities or tougher big empires of the classical Mediterranean. The Romans called the four of justice, temperance, courage, and prudence the "cardinal" virtues, on which a society of warriors or orators or courtiers hinged (cardo, hinge). The Christians called them, not entirely in contempt, "pagan."
    ellauri046.html on line 23:

    yellow;font-size:5em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">REIKÄRAUTA RENE

    Ruudinkatkuista


    ellauri046.html on line 105: You think that you destroyed my faith in love.
    ellauri046.html on line 178: Saying a Pra<span style=yer" width=27 height=41 src="http://www.sherv.net/cm/emoticons/hand-gestures/saying-a-prayer-smiley-emoticon.gif">
    ellauri046.html on line 251: Mut en mä syytä Aikalaisiakaan, just six koska mä uskonnollisesti olen ymmärtänyt Velvollisuudexeni palvella Totuutta myös Izekieltäytymisessä, että on ollut mun Tehtävä joka Tavalla estää, että musta tulisi Arvostettu, Rakastettu. Vaan se joka ize ymmärtää, mitä on tosi Izekieltäymys, vaan se voi ratkaista mun Arvoituxen, ja nähdä, että se on Izekieltäymys. Se joka ei sitä ize ymmärrä, voi mieluummin pitää mun Hommia Izerakkautena, Ylpeytenä, Omituisuutena, SuuruudenHulluutena, mistä Kaikesta mä en syytä häntä; sillä mähän oon todellisen Izekieltäymyxen hengessä ize aiheuttanut sen. Se on välttämättä jotain, jota ei voi ymmärtää meluava Seurakunta, tai kunnianarvoisa Yleisö, tai puolessa Tunnissa, se on: mitä on kristillinen Izekieltäymys. Sen ymmärtämisexi tarvii paljon Pelkoa ja Vavistusta, hiljaista Yxinäisyyttä, ja pitkän Ajan. Ting Tar Tid, kuten maanmieheni Piet Hein tulee sen lyhyesti sanomaan:
    ellauri046.html on line 266: Kierkegaard is known for many things. . . . He is not, however, generally known for his humor. Who might reasonably be nominated as the funniest philosopher of all time? With this anthology, Thomas Oden provisionally declares Søren Aabye Kierkegaard (1813-1855)--despite his enduring stereotype as the melancholy, despairing Dane--as, among philosophers, the most amusing.
    ellauri046.html on line 268: Kierkegaard's humor ranges from the droll to the rollicking; from farce to intricate, subtle analysis; from nimble stories to amusing aphorisms. In these pages you are invited to meet the wife of an author who burned her husband's manuscript and a businessman who, even with an abundance of calling cards, forgot his own name. You will hear of an interminable vacillator whom archeologists found still pacing thousands of years later, trying to come to a decision. Then there is the emperor who became a barkeeper in order to stay in the know.
    ellauri046.html on line 433: This brief study argues that Kierkegaard's Journals show beyond reasonable doubt that he was homosexual. It does so because he believed that the recognition of this fact was central to the understanding of his life and thought, because he could not bring himself to say this openly even in the privacy of his own Journals, because he hoped and prayed that his "reader" would discover and reveal it after his death, because even distinguished scholars privy to his "secret" have remained silent and because, given these facts, it is surely time to open up this question.
    ellauri046.html on line 464: Coma Berenices is not a large constellation, yet it contains a number of famous deep sky objects, among them the Black Eye Galaxy (Messier 64), Messier 98, Messier 99, Messier 100, the globular cluster Messier 53, the Needle Galaxy (NGC 4565) and the Coma Cluster of galaxies. It also contains the northern part of the Virgo cluster of galaxies.
    ellauri046.html on line 591: De stærke jyder var en kristen vækkelsesbevægelse i 1700- og 1800-tallet. De stærke jyder var den første folkelige vækkelsesbevægelse i Danmark. Bevægelsen havde sin oprindelse i området mellem Horsens og Vejle i Jylland omkring byerne Hedensted og Løsning. Blandt de stærke jyder var både gårdejere, husmænd, håndværkere og tjenestefolk. Navnet De stærke jyder fik de først senere. De kaldte sig selv De opvakte.
    ellauri046.html on line 595: De stærke jyder tog afstand fra en række fornyelser. De protesterede f.eks., da Balles lærebog fra 1791 skulle indføres i skolen og til konfirmationsforberedelsen. De gik også mod den nye evangelisk-kristelige salmebog. De anså både den nye lærebog og den nye salmebog som udtryk for en kristendomsforståelse, der var langt fra bibelsk eller luthersk kristendom. I deres forsamlinger (de såkaldte konventikler) læste de fortsat de gamle andagtsbøger og sang efter Brorsons salmebog. De ønskede at beholde Kingos salmebog i kirken og Pontoppidans Sandhed til gudfrygtighed i skolen.
    ellauri046.html on line 641: Misogynian pukinsorkka pistää Wiljaminkin silinteristä: det er i Sandhed væmmeligt at see i den nyere Comedie disse erfarne, intrigante, blødagtige Qvinder, der veed, at Kjærlighed er en Illusion. Jeg veed intet saa vederstyggeligt Væsen som en saadan Qvinde. Hvad Under da at Qvinden vil emanciperes, et af vor Tids mange uskjønne Phænomener, hvori Mændene ere Skyld. Rakkaus on taloudellinen päätös, se erottaa sen hetken panohalusta. No niin tietysti, kun perheen perustamisesta on kysymys. Se et naiset vois perua sen päätöxen on frekkiä, ei asessori paremmin voi sanoa.
    ellauri046.html on line 682:

    Järkiavioliitto on Sörenille tätä: En forstandig lille Syepige gjør derfor ogsaa den kløgtige Bemærkning i et nyere Drama med Hensyn til de fornemme Herrers Kjærlighed: os elske de, men ægte os ikke; de fornemme Damer elske de ikke, men gifte sig med dem. Herrat tykkää blondeista mutta nai tummaverisiä. Perinteistä porvarillista säätysetäilyä sedän näkövinkkelistä. Bellowin Henderson the Rain King näkökulmaa.
    ellauri046.html on line 697: "I 'Enten-Eller's anden del, fremlægges for æstetikeren og dermed læseren det uomgængelige i at tilegne eller vælge eller modtage sig selv. Et menneske er på den ene side noget på forhånd givet, men det kan på den anden side forfejle sin bestemmelse, afvige fra sig selv og blive en anden, end det var anlagt til at være," siger Joakim Garff, der stadig kan finde nye filosofiske rigdomme i det store værk.
    ellauri046.html on line 714: Derfor er hun Mandens dybeste Liv, men et Liv som skal vaere skjult og forborgent, som Rodens liv altid er det. See, derfor hader jag al den afskyelige Tale om Kvindens Emancipation. Gud forbude at det nogensinde maa ske.
    ellauri046.html on line 796: I hate you, ye cold compositions of art!
    ellauri046.html on line 803: Perhaps may amuse, yet they never can move:
    ellauri046.html on line 815: For years fleet away with the wings of the dove—
    ellauri047.html on line 43: Ei hemmetti kukaan voi olla nero kaikessa, eikä edes kovin hyvä noin monessa. Se vaan häsläs Weimarin pikkuvaltiossa vähän joka alalla, mikä oli helppoa kuin heinänteko, koska oli niin vähän kilpailua, ja se oli Karl Augustin ja sen leipäsuden kaveri. Runoilla se osasi ja satuilla. Kova panomies se oli, se on sille annettava. Sen heiloilta on kysyttävä, oliko se sängyssä mistään kotoisin. Sen tiedekyhhääxet joita se väsäs vanhana oli aika heikkoja, runo kasvien metamorfoosista ja se hölmö väriteoria, susi jo syntyessään. Newton oli hoitanut jo hommat.
    ellauri047.html on line 286:

    Das Schreyen


    ellauri047.html on line 863: Göstan ilmestyessä sen luo kovaäänisesti puhumaan puhelimeen saxaa

    ellauri048.html on line 125: Koskenniemi aloitti välittömästi Revon savustamisen Uudesta Suomesta. Hän kirjoitti 19.7.1950 Aholle, "että hra Repo ei ole sovelias henkilö U.S:n kulttuuritoimittajaksi … Jos hra Repo saa edelleen jatkaa toimintaansa U.S:ssa, on Sinun kyllä pakko jättää minut pois laskuista U.S:n arvostelijana ja avustajana." Aho ilmoittikin 16.8.1950 Revolle, ettei tämä voinut jatkaa Uudessa Suomessa määräaikaisen sopimuksensa päättyessä lokakuun alussa.* Koskenniemi kirjoitti myös ohjelmajohtaja Jussi Koskiluomalle 14.10.1950. Hän "asetti harkittavaksi" oliko Yleisradion syytä käyttää "yleisön kirjallisena valistajana niin suuressa määrässä yleistä arvostelukykyä vailla olevaa henkilöä kuin hra E. S. Repo".*
    ellauri048.html on line 330: Same procedure as last year miss Sophie?

    ellauri048.html on line 331: Same procedure as every year James.

    ellauri048.html on line 541: Parallels have been drawn between the "Lord of the Flies" and actual incident from 1965 when a group of 6 schoolboys who sailed a fishing boat from Tonga were hit by a storm and marooned on the uninhabited island of ʻAöö-ta, considered dead by their relatives in Nuku‘alofa. The group not only managed to survive for over 15 months but "had set up a small commune with food garden, hollowed-out tree trunks to store rainwater, a gymnasium with curious weights, a badminton court, chicken pens and a permanent fire, all from handiwork, an old knife blade and much determination". Dutch historian Rutger Bregman, writing about this situation said that Golding's portrayal was unrealistic. There has been no WW III yet, and kids killing other kids is entirely unheard of. Except a bunch of school killings in America and Finland, among other places.
    ellauri048.html on line 743: There followed the years of bohemia, when the family moved to Paris and Saul started to shrug off the influence of his 19th-century literary heroes and find his own voice in The Adventures of Augie March. When he was happy and the writing was going well, their lives would be joyous; when he struggled, the apartment was mired in gloom. Meanwhile, "Saul had women stashed all over town," writes his son. The pain of these recollections is secondary to Bellow's fury at what he calls his father's "self‑justification: that his career as an artist entitled him to let people down with impunity." As an adult, when he asked his mother about it, she said, "I'm blessed with a poor memory."
    ellauri048.html on line 755: Aika huono suositus, Danten kääntäminen. Långbenin isä oli taas kuinka ollakaan maineikas lawyer Mainesta, joka halusi pojastakin lawyeria. Nää fellat oli aika kermaperseitä. Hessu oli Hawthornen luokkakaveri Bowdoin Collegessa. Hessu teki pitkän Euroopan turneen ja oli aina pro-Eurooppa. Sille tarjottiin Harvardin professuuria valmistumisvaiheessa. ja se lähti Mary-vaimon kaa uudestaan Saxan turneelle. Kävi jopa Ruozissa. Tällä tiellä Mary kuoli keskenmenoon. Siitä lähti Hessun runosuoni sykkimään, uusi vaimo Fanny oli heti kiikarissa. 6 lapsen jälkeen Fanny kuoli kuinka ollakaan tulipalossa, sytytti muka mekkonsa ize palamaan. Siitä piristyneenä Hessu läxi kääntämään Dantea. Mitähän van der Valk sanoisi tästä. Aika epäilyttävää.
    ellauri048.html on line 802: A tear out of his eyes. märkää nyrkkiä sepaluxeen pyyhkiä.
    ellauri048.html on line 843: Yet I know by their merry eyes niiden hilpee hihitys
    ellauri048.html on line 862: Do you think, o blue-eyed banditti, Luuletteko sinisilmät tikkarin
    ellauri048.html on line 942: Kerta loordi Tennyson lopetti runon lyhyeen, pidän kommenttini lyhyenä myös:
    ellauri048.html on line 983: 16 years ago
    ellauri048.html on line 987: The Charge of the Light Brigade Kevyen prikaatin hyökkäys
    ellauri048.html on line 1001: Was there a man dismayed? Ihmettelikö kukaan?
    ellauri048.html on line 1014: Volleyed and thundered; Ampuu suorasuuntauxella
    ellauri048.html on line 1039: Volleyed and thundered; Ampuivat ja jylisivät;
    ellauri048.html on line 1076: EITHER they had to knuckle under and settle for a "sublimated", more-or-less disembodied, spiritualized passion . . . . OR they could plunge and risk martyrdom. They must have agreed that they had no taste for martyrdom — or even Byronic exile. . . . It is clear they both knew, in their heart of hearts, they wanted to express their love for each other in a physical way; yes, even in a sexual way — Love and Duty is eloquent testimony to that. But both of them knew in the prevailing moral climate . . . there seemed to be no possibility of love between males that would not incur hysterical opposition. . . . There is not much doubt, had they wanted to take the sexual path and do so openly, they would only have wanted the kind of sex which they felt about each other.
    ellauri048.html on line 1078: Given that no one has ever doubted that Tennyson had some sort of "disembodied, spiritualized passion" for Hallam, this conclusion comes as rather a painful anticlimax. Admittedly, Alf named his son Hallam after Hallam, the one who went to Australia. Of course, the fact that members of Tennyson´s family succumbed to madness, alcoholism, and drug addiction already has made some readers aware that, like so many other Victorians, he should be taken down from a pedestal and join the rest of us. But think of the stir if one the greatest poems of the nineteenth century, one which has major influence on poets as different as Whitman and Eliot, turned out to be chiefly a gay lover's lament! (What's wrong with that? There are zillions of others, better yet.) Tän apologian kirjoitti on George P. Landow, Professor of English and the History of Art, (fittingly) from Brown University.
    ellauri048.html on line 1112: During the Christmas holidays, Hallam visited Tennyson's home in Somersby, Lincolnshire; on 20 December he met and fell in love with Tennyson's eighteen-year-old sister, Emilia, who was just seven months younger than Hallam.
    ellauri048.html on line 1116: In July 1833, Hallam visited Emilia. On 3 August, he left with his father for Europe. On 13 September, they went to Vienna, with Hallam complaining of fever and chill. It was apparently a recurrence of the "ague" he had suffered earlier that year, and, although it would delay their departure to Prague, there seemed to be little cause for alarm. Quinine and a few days rest were prescribed. By Sunday 15th, Hallam felt sufficiently better to take a short walk with his father in the evening. When he returned to the hotel he ordered some sack and lay down on the sofa, talking cheerfully all the time. Leaving his son reading in front of the fire, his father went out for a further stroll. He returned to find Hallam still on the sofa, apparently asleep apart from the position of his head. All efforts to rouse him were in vain. Arthur Hallam was dead at the age of twenty-two.
    ellauri048.html on line 1161: And yet we trust it comes from thee, Ja silti me luotetaan sun valuuttaan,
    ellauri048.html on line 1195: But who shall so forecast the years Mut kuka osaa ennustaa niin vuodet
    ellauri048.html on line 1224: To touch thy thousand years of gloom: Koskea sun millenniumin masista.
    ellauri048.html on line 1264: Some pleasure from thine early years. Joku herkuttelu sun poikavuosilta,
    ellauri048.html on line 1269: All night below the darken'd eyes; Koko yön mustuneiden silmäluonten alla;
    ellauri048.html on line 1385: Which little cared for fades not yet. siltikään ei kuihdu vieläkään.
    ellauri048.html on line 1387: But since it pleased a vanish'd eye, Mut kerze oli hävinneen silmän mieleen,
    ellauri048.html on line 1512: Come, Time, and teach me, many years, Tule aika, ja opettakaa mua, vuosikaudet,
    ellauri048.html on line 1515: Mine eyes have leisure for their tears; Mun silmillä on aikaa kyyneleille;
    ellauri048.html on line 1602: Compell'd thy canvas, and my prayer
    ellauri048.html on line 1642: Ah yet, ev'n yet, if this might be,
    ellauri048.html on line 1660: And hushes half the babbling Wye,
    ellauri048.html on line 1663: The Wye is hush'd nor moved along,
    ellauri048.html on line 1725: Behold, ye speak an idle thing:
    ellauri048.html on line 1738: Thro' four sweet years arose and fell,
    ellauri048.html on line 1800: It never look'd to human eyes
    ellauri048.html on line 1835: And if that eye which watches guilt
    ellauri048.html on line 1840: Oh, if indeed that eye foresee
    ellauri048.html on line 1845: Then might I find, ere yet the morn
    ellauri048.html on line 1893: Poles hate the myth because it cheapens what they actually did in the war. As war historian Ben Macintyre wrote: “The Polish contribution to Allied victory in the Second World War was extraordinary, perhaps even decisive, but for many years it was disgracefully played down, obscured by the politics of the Cold War.”
    ellauri049.html on line 97: Thy hungry eyes, even till they wink with fulness, tyhjennettyäsi tänään kamat pussiin,
    ellauri049.html on line 171: Uunosta kasvoi hyvin kaksijakoinen lapsi. Hän oli eloisa pikkuvanha poika, joka osoitti johtajuuden piirteitä. Hän käytti poikkeuksellista älykkyyttään aseenaan kompensoidakseen ruumiillista heikkouttaan. Hän oli itsepintainen eikä alistunut herkästi. Juho Honkapää kuvaileekin sisarenpoikaansa: ” Hän oli jo lapsena erittäin hyväpäinen poika, muuten vähän itsepäinen.”18 Kuitenkin hän ailahteli synkkyyteen, itkuun ja mielipahaan hyvin voimakkain ilmaisuin ja sulkeutui omaan kuoreensa. Orpouden, erilaisuuden ja yksinäisyyden tunne ei irrottanut Kailaasta otettaan koko hänen lyhyen elämänsä aikana.
    ellauri049.html on line 191: Uuno Salonen kirjautui Helsingin yliopiston historiallis - kielitieteelliseen tiedekunnanosastoon syksyllä 1920. Siirtyessään Helsinkiin Uuno jätti taakseen kuvataiteen tekemisen. Uuno oli epävarma akateemisen alan valinnasta, sillä oma runoilijan kutsumus oli Honkapään sukulaisten ajatuksien vastainen. Yliopistovuosiensa 1920-23 ja 1925-26 aikana hän ei suorittanut yhtään opintokokonaisuutta. Kouluttautuminen oli vain lume, niin hänelle itselleen kuin honkapääläisille, jolla hän mahdollisti elämänsä pääkaupungissa. Aika kului runojen kirjoittamiseen, sanomalehti- ja kustannusalan kirjallisiin toimitustehtäviin, käännöstöihin ja dekadenttiin boheemieloon.34 Kailas osallistui aktiivisesti nuorten kirjailijoiden, Nuoren Voiman Liiton jäsenten ja tulevien Tulenkantajien seurapiirielämään. Hengenheimolaisuus edesauttoi niin runoilijan uraa mutta myös rappioelämää.
    ellauri049.html on line 331: Les yeux fixés sur moi comme un tigre dompté, Silmät nauliutuneina muhun kuin tiikerillä
    ellauri049.html on line 338: Passaient devant mes yeux clairvoyants et sereins ; näyttäytyi mulle seijaan selvänäköisinä,
    ellauri049.html on line 352: Comme le foyer seul illuminait la chambre, kamiina huoneen ainoona valopilkkuna,
    ellauri049.html on line 454: Baiser montant aux yeux des mers avec lenteurs, pussaavaan razain hellästi merten silmiä,
    ellauri049.html on line 464: Mêlant aux fleurs des yeux de panthères à peaux sekottanut pantterinsilmäkukkiin ihmisnahkoja!
    ellauri049.html on line 489: Et les fientes d’oiseaux clabaudeurs aux yeux blonds. valkosilmäisten rääkyvien lintujen kakkoja
    ellauri049.html on line 531: Ni nager sous les yeux horribles des pontons. enkä uida proomujen hirmusilmäin alla.
    ellauri049.html on line 661: Faune, l'illusion s'échappe des yeux bleus vom Augenpaar, das einem Quell in Tränen gleicht, Fauni, suojuxet putosivat sinisilmistä
    ellauri049.html on line 682: Rien, ni les vieux jardins reflétés par les yeux Ei mikään, ei silmien heijastamat vanhat puutarhat
    ellauri049.html on line 865: Sur mes yeux clos, secrets éblouissants, silmät sulki sokaisevilta salaisuuxilta,
    ellauri049.html on line 915: Les yeux, les dents, les paupières mouillées, silmät, hampaat, kostuneet silmäluomet,
    ellauri049.html on line 923: Qu’aux yeux de chair l’onde et l’or font ici ? jotka lihan silmille luo täällä vesi ja kulta?
    ellauri050.html on line 46: Pastori Meredith käveli hitaasti kotiin. Aluxi hän ajatteli vähän Rosemarya, mutta Sateenkaarinotkoon saavuttuaan hän unohti tämän kokonaan ja rupesi miettimään muuatta saxalaisen teologian opinkappaletta, jonka Ellen oli ottanut puheexi. Hän kulki Sateenkaarinotkon halki ajatuxet muissa maailmoissa. Notkon viehätys ei kyennyt karkottamaan hänen mielestään teologista ongelmaa.
    ellauri050.html on line 176: I fled Him, down the arches of the years; Juoxin karkuun häntä, pitkin vuotten kaaria;
    ellauri050.html on line 189: “All things betray thee, who betrayest Me.” "Kaikki pettää sut, jos sä petät mut."
    ellauri050.html on line 228: I sought no more that after which I strayed Mä en enää ezinyt sitä minkä perään exyin
    ellauri050.html on line 230: But still within the little children’s eyes Vaan sittenkin mieluummin pikku lasten silmissä
    ellauri050.html on line 234: But just as their young eyes grew sudden fair Mutta justkun niiden silmät säteili äkkiä
    ellauri050.html on line 237: “Come then, ye other children, Nature’s—share "Tulkaa siis, te muut lapset, karizat ja kilit-
    ellauri050.html on line 259: With them joyed and was bereaven. niiden mukana mä iloizin tai surin.
    ellauri050.html on line 263: I laughed in the morning’s eyes. Mä nauroin aamun silmille.
    ellauri050.html on line 285: A voice comes yet more fleet— yli kuuluu ääni vielä kovempana-
    ellauri050.html on line 297: I stand amid the dust o’ the mounded years— mä seison kasautuneiden vuosien tomuläjässä,
    ellauri050.html on line 407: Paramahansa Yogananda (born Mukunda Lal Ghosh; January 5, 1893 – March 7, 1952) was an Indian monk, yogi and guru who lived his last 32 years in America. He introduced millions to the teachings of meditation and Kriya Yoga through his organization Self-Realization Fellowship (SRF) / Yogoda Satsanga Society (YSS) of India. A chief disciple of the Bengali yoga guru Swami Sri Yukteswar Giri, he was sent by his lineage to spread the teachings of yoga to the West, to prove the unity between Eastern and Western religions and to preach a balance between Western material growth and Indian spirituality. His long-standing influence in the American yoga movement, and especially the yoga culture of Los Angeles, led him to be considered by yoga experts as the "Father of Yoga in the West." Jooga on lännessä suosittu naisten jumppamuoto, kun siinä ei hypitä niin että tissit hölskyy. Venytellään vaan kissamaisesti lattialla, ei tarvi hikoilla eikä välttämättä käydä jumpan päälle edes suihkussa, jos on kiire.
    ellauri051.html on line 208: The Three Stooges oli yhdysvaltalainen slapstick-komiikkaan erikoistunut koomikkoryhmä. Ryhmän kuuluisin kokoonpano tunnettiin nimillä Moe, Larry ja Curly. Ryhmä tunnetaan lukuisista elokuvistaan ja lyhyemmistä filmipätkistään.
    ellauri051.html on line 391: Blow again, trumpeter! and for my sensuous eyes, Töräytä taas, Trump! ja näytä mun maistisilmille
    ellauri051.html on line 428: --Nor war alone--thy fearful music-song, wild player, brings every -- Eikä vaan sota -- sun mielilaulu, hullu soittaja, tuo kaikki muutkin
    ellauri051.html on line 435: O trumpeter! methinks I am myself the instrument thou playest! 50 Hoi trumppifetisisti! must tuntuu että mä oon se soitettava soitin!
    ellauri051.html on line 451: Vouchsafe a higher strain than any yet; vedä vielä korkeemmalta kuin tähän saakka;
    ellauri051.html on line 496: Whatman sai ketnureaktion 1873 ja muutti Camdeniin New Jerseyyn veljensä luokse. Vuosina 1875–1876 hän julkaisi sisällissodasta kertovan kirjan Memoranda during the War, mutta halvaukset olivat jo hidastaneet hänen kirjoittamistaan. Whatman julkaisi myös uusia versioita Leaves of Grassista, jonka myyntituloilla hän osti Camdenista itselleen oman talon. Teoksen viimeinen versio sisälsi kaikkiaan 300 runoa. Whatmanin viimeiseksi jäänyt teos Good-Bye, My Fanny julkaistiin vuonna 1891.
    ellauri051.html on line 547: 8 I, now thirty-seven years old in perfect health begin, 8 Mä olen nyt 37 vee ja mainiossa veteessä,
    ellauri051.html on line 578: 35 You shall no longer take things at second or third hand, nor look through the eyes of Et enää selaa kopioiden kopioita, etkä kazo vainaiden silmillä,
    ellauri051.html on line 580: 36 You shall not look through my eyes either, nor take things from me, Et kazo munkaan silmälasien lävize, etkä ota musta mallia,
    ellauri051.html on line 611: 62 Shall I postpone my acceptation and realization and scream at my eyes, Lykkäänkö hyväxyntää ja tajuumista ja huudanko silmilleni,
    ellauri051.html on line 706: 143 For me lips that have smiled, eyes that have shed tears, Mulle hymyilleitä huulia, itkeneitä silmiä,
    ellauri051.html on line 751: 181 My eyes settle the land, I bend at her prow or shout joyously from the deck. 181 Silmäni asettavat maan, kumarran sen keulaan tai huudan iloisesti kannelta.
    ellauri051.html on line 761: 188 She had long eyelashes, her head was bare, her coarse straight locks descended upon 188 Hänellä oli pitkät silmäripset, hänen päänsä oli paljas, hänen karkeat suorat kiharat
    ellauri051.html on line 770: 195 And remember perfectly well his revolving eyes and his awkwardness, 195 Ja muista täysin hänen pyörivät silmänsä ja kömpelyytensä,
    ellauri051.html on line 777: 201 Twenty-eight years of womanly life and all so lonesome. 201 28 vuotta naisellista elämää ja kaikki niin yksinäistä.
    ellauri051.html on line 783: 207 You splash in the water there, yet stay stock still in your room. 207 Roiskut siellä veteen, mutta pysyt silti huoneessasi.
    ellauri051.html on line 815: 235 Oxen that rattle the yoke and chain or halt in the leafy shade, what is that you express in your eyes? 235 Härät, jotka helisevät ikettä ja ketjuttavat tai pysähtyvät lehtivarjossa, mitä sinä ilmaiset silmissäsi?
    ellauri051.html on line 820: 240 And acknowledge red, yellow, white, playing within me, 240 Ja tunnusta punaisen, keltaisen, valkoisen leikkivän sisälläni,
    ellauri051.html on line 823: 243 And the jay in the woods never studied the gamut, yet trills pretty well to me, 243 Ja jay metsässä ei koskaan tutkinut kirjoa, mutta silti trillailee minulle melko hyvin,
    ellauri051.html on line 854: 272 The farmer stops by the bars as he walks on a First-day loafe and looks at the oats and rye, 272 Maanviljelijä pysähtyy tankojen luokse kävellessään ensimmäisen päivän leipää ja katselee kauraa ja ruista,
    ellauri051.html on line 858: 276 He turns his quid of tobacco while his eyes blurr with the manuscript; 276. Hän kääntää tupakkapussinsa samalla kun hänen silmänsä hämärtyvät käsikirjoituksesta;
    ellauri051.html on line 872: 290 The squaw wrapt in her yellow-hemm'd cloth is offering moccasins and bead-bags for sale, 290 Squaw-kääre keltaisessa kankaassaan tarjoaa mokasiineja ja helmipusseja myyntiin,
    ellauri051.html on line 873: 291 The connoisseur peers along the exhibition-gallery with half-shut eyes bent sideways, 291 Asiantuntija katselee näyttelygalleriaa puoliksi kiinni silmät sivuttain taivutettuina,
    ellauri051.html on line 876: 294 The one-year wife is recovering and happy having a week ago borne her first child, 294 Vuoden ikäinen vaimo on toipumassa ja onnellinen synnyttäessään viikko sitten esikoisensa,
    ellauri051.html on line 892: 310 The crew of the fish-smack pack repeated layers of halibut in the hold, 310 Fish-smack-pakkauksen miehistö toisti kerroksia pallasta ruumassa,
    ellauri051.html on line 921: 338 A boatman over lakes or bays or along coasts, a Hoosier, Badger, Buckeye; 338 Venemies järvien tai lahtien yli tai rannikkoa pitkin, Hoosier, Badger, Buckeye;
    ellauri051.html on line 928: 345 A novice beginning yet experient of myriads of seasons, 345 Aloittelija, joka on alkanut mutta kokenut lukemattomia vuodenaikoja,
    ellauri051.html on line 931: 348 Prisoner, fancy-man, rowdy, lawyer, physician, priest. 348 Vanki, hieno mies, riehuva, asianajaja, lääkäri, pappi.
    ellauri051.html on line 951: 366 I blow through my embouchures my loudest and gayest for them. 366 Puhallan lyöntini läpi äänekkäimmin ja hauskimmin heidän puolestaan.
    ellauri051.html on line 965: 379 This the touch of my lips to yours, this the murmur of yearning, 379 Tämä on huulteni kosketus sinun huuliasi, tämä kaipauksen murina,
    ellauri051.html on line 1004: 417 And whether I come to my own to-day or in ten thousand or ten million years, 417 Ja tulinpa omaani tänään tai kymmenen tuhannen tai kymmenen miljoonan vuoden kuluttua,
    ellauri051.html on line 1045: 456 Sea of the brine of life and of unshovell'd yet always-ready graves, 456 Meri elämän suolavettä ja lapioimattomia, mutta aina valmiita hautoja,
    ellauri051.html on line 1058: 469 Did you guess the celestial laws are yet to be work'd over and rectified? 469 Arvasitko, että taivaalliset lait on vielä työstettävä ja korjattava?
    ellauri051.html on line 1081: 491 Your facts are useful, and yet they are not my dwelling, 491 Faktasi ovat hyödyllisiä, mutta silti ne eivät ole minun asuntoni,
    ellauri051.html on line 1116: 525 The scent of these arm-pits aroma finer than prayer, 525 Näiden käsivarsien tuoksu on hienompaa kuin rukous,
    ellauri051.html on line 1156: 564 My voice goes after what my eyes cannot reach, 564 Ääneni seuraa sitä mitä silmäni eivät tavoita,
    ellauri051.html on line 1289: 690 Not one kneels to another, nor to his kind that lived thousands of years ago, 690 Kukaan ei polvistu toiselle eikä sukulaiselleen, joka eli tuhansia vuosia sitten,
    ellauri051.html on line 1303: 704 Eyes full of sparkling wickedness, ears finely cut, flexibly moving. 704 Silmät täynnä kimaltelevaa pahuutta, hienoksi leikatut korvat, joustavasti liikkuvat.
    ellauri051.html on line 1326: 726 Over the growing sugar, over the yellow-flower'd cotton plant, over the rice in its low moist field, 726 Kasvavan sokerin yllä, keltakukkaisen puuvillakasvin päällä, riisin päällä sen matalakostealla pellolla,
    ellauri051.html on line 1330: 730 Over the dusky green of the rye as it ripples and shades in the breeze; 730 Rukiin hämäränvihreyden yli, kun se aaltoilee ja varjostaa tuulessa;
    ellauri051.html on line 1368: 768 Where the yellow-crown'd heron comes to the edge of the marsh at night and feeds upon small crabs, 768 Missä keltakruunuhaikara tulee yöllä suon reunalle ja ruokkii pieniä rapuja,
    ellauri051.html on line 1449: 849 Heat and smoke I inspired, I heard the yelling shouts of my comrades, 849 Lämpöä ja savua inspiroin, kuulin tovereideni huutavan,
    ellauri051.html on line 1475: 874 The hundred and fifty are dumb yet at Alamo,) 874 Sataviisikymmentä ovat vielä mykkiä Alamossa,)
    ellauri051.html on line 1477: 876 Retreating they had form'd in a hollow square with their baggage for breastworks, 876 Perääntyessään he olivat muodostuneet onttoon neliöön matkatavaroidensa kanssa rintatöihin,
    ellauri051.html on line 1485: 884 Not a single one over thirty years of age. 884 Ei ainuttakaan yli 30-vuotiasta.
    ellauri051.html on line 1494: 893 A youth not seventeen years old seiz'd his assassin till two more came to release him, 893 Nuori, ei seitsemäntoista vuoden ikäinen, otti salamurhaajansa, kunnes kaksi muuta tuli vapauttamaan hänet,
    ellauri051.html on line 1529: 927 His eyes give more light to us than our battle-lanterns. 927 Hänen silmänsä antavat meille enemmän valoa kuin taistelulyhtymme.
    ellauri051.html on line 1539: 936 The husky voices of the two or three officers yet fit for duty, 936 Kahden tai kolmen upseerin vaimeat äänet, jotka ovat vielä tehtäviin sopivia,
    ellauri051.html on line 1578: 973 The blossoms we wear in our hats the growth of thousands of years. 973 Kukat, joita käytämme hatuissamme, kasvavat tuhansia vuosia.
    ellauri051.html on line 1592: 986 They are wafted with the odor of his body or breath, they fly out of the glance of his eyes. 986 Heitä leijuu hänen ruumiinsa tai hengityksensä haju, ne lentävät hänen silmiensä katseesta.
    ellauri051.html on line 1630: 1022 And for strong upright men I bring yet more needed help. 1022 Ja vahvoille pystymiehille tuon vielä lisää tarvittavaa apua.
    ellauri051.html on line 1632: 1024 Heard it and heard it of several thousand years; 1024 Kuulin sen ja kuulin sen useiden tuhansien vuosien ajan;
    ellauri051.html on line 1644: 1036 Accepting the rough deific sketches to fill out better in myself, bestowing them freely on each man and woman I see, 1036 Hyväksyen karkeat jumalalliset luonnokset täyttyäkseni paremmin itsessäni, lahjoittaen ne vapaasti jokaiselle näkemälleni miehelle ja naiselle,
    ellauri051.html on line 1654: 1046 Selling all he possesses, traveling on foot to fee lawyers for his brother and sit by him while he is tried for forgery; 1046 Myydään kaiken omaisuutensa, matkustaa jalkaisin palkatakseen asianajajia veljelleen ja istuakseen hänen vierellään, kun häntä tuomitaan väärentämisestä;
    ellauri051.html on line 1679: 1070 Here and there with dimes on the eyes walking, 1070 Siellä täällä penniä silmät kävelevät,
    ellauri051.html on line 1696: 1087 But abruptly to question, to leap beyond yet nearer bring; 1087 Mutta äkillisesti kyseenalaistaa, hypätä pidemmälle vielä lähemmäksi tuoda;
    ellauri051.html on line 1700: 1091 In the houses the dishes and fare and furniture -- but the host and hostess, and the look out of their eyes? 1091 Taloissa astiat ja ruoka ja huonekalut -- mutta isäntä ja emäntä ja katse heidän silmistään?
    ellauri051.html on line 1701: 1092 The sky up there -- yet here or next door, or across the way? 1092 Taivas tuolla ylhäällä -- vielä täällä vai naapurissa tai tien toisella puolella?
    ellauri051.html on line 1709: 1099 Believing I shall come again upon the earth after five thousand years, 1099 Uskoen, että tulen jälleen maan päälle viiden tuhannen vuoden kuluttua,
    ellauri051.html on line 1713: 1103 Dancing yet through the streets in a phallic procession, rapt and austere in the woods a gymnosophist, 1103 Tanssii silti katujen halki fallisessa kulkueessa, raivoissaan ja ankarasti metsässä voimistelija,
    ellauri051.html on line 1717: 1107 To the mass kneeling or the puritan's prayer rising, or sitting patiently in a pew, 1107 Massalle polvistumassa tai puritaanin rukouksessa nousemassa, tai kärsivällisesti penkissä istumassa,
    ellauri051.html on line 1730: 1120 And what is yet untried and afterward is for you, me, all, precisely the same. 1120 Ja mikä on vielä kokeilematonta ja myöhemmin, on sinulle, minulle, kaikille, täsmälleen sama.
    ellauri051.html on line 1842: 1229 Now I wash the gum from your eyes, 1229 Nyt pesen kumin silmistäsi,
    ellauri051.html on line 1855: 1241 First-rate to ride, to fight, to hit the bull's eye, to sail a skiff, to sing a song or play on the banjo, 1241 Ensiluokkainen ratsastaa, taistella, lyödä häränsilmää, purjehtia skiffillä, laulaa laulua tai soittaa banjolla,
    ellauri051.html on line 1858: 1244 I teach straying from me, yet who can stray from me? 1244 Opetan eksymään minusta, mutta kuka voi poiketa minusta?
    ellauri051.html on line 1889: 1274 And to glance with an eye or show a bean in its pod confounds the learning of all times, 1274 Ja silmällä katsominen tai pavun näyttäminen palossaan hämmentää kaikkien aikojen oppimista,
    ellauri051.html on line 1896: 1281 I hear and behold God in every object, yet understand God not in the least, 1281 Minä kuulen ja näen Jumalaa kaikissa asioissa, mutta en ymmärrä Jumalaa vähääkään,
    ellauri051.html on line 3232: Me fit baisser les yeux de honte niin että mua vähän hävetti.
    ellauri051.html on line 3267: D’attente et d’amour yeux pâlis odotuxesta, silmät rakkaudesta haaleina
    ellauri052.html on line 66: As in all Bellow's novels, death figures prominently in Henderson the Rain King. Also, the novel manifests a few common character types that run through Bellow's literary works. One type is the Bellovian Hero, often described as a schlemiel. Eugene Henderson, in company with most of Bellow's main characters, can be given this description, in the opinion of some people, and Bellow was another one himself for sure. Another is what Bellow calls the "Reality-Instructor"; in Henderson the Rain King, King Dahfu fills this role. In Seize the Day, the instructor is played by Dr. Tamkin, while in Humboldt's Gift, Humboldt von Fleisher takes the part.
    ellauri052.html on line 70: Vizikästä et vaikka muissa suhteissa Hendersonilla ja Eremiitalla ei ole paljon yhteistä, niin naisten polkemisessa ne kazoo toisiaan ihan eye to eye, kirppu ja sonni saman sikolätin aidalla. Plus toi spiritual void. Noita piisaa noita hengellisiä tyhjiöitä, jos on tyhjä pää ja vääränlainen isäsuhe lapsuudesta, ja pelkää naisia. Rothin miälestä Bellow oli verrattoman hyvä kuvaamaan sensitiivistä miestä pahojen naisten kourissa. Roth oli toinen samanlainen. Amerikkalaisia schmuckeja. Philip Teir hännänhuippuna. Ne on kuin Valittujen Palojen vizi: ukko menee ripille ja sanoo olen ollut neljän nuoren naisen kaa yhtä aikaa. Milloin kävitte viimexi ripillä? En koskaan olen juutalainen. No mixi tulette kertomaan tätä sitten minulle? Höh mähän kerron tätä kaikille!
    ellauri052.html on line 85: I find this judgement troubling. Certainly, one can agree that Herzog is lavish and intense. But through his eyes, we see women as very peculiar creatures. We meet a devotee of sex in Herzog’s lover, Ramona, the sad, enigmatic, emotionless pencils that are Valentine’s wife and Herzog’s first wife, and the castrating sex bomb that is Madeline. Very rarely do we feel that these characterisations are different from these characters’ reality—the novel seems to suggest that these women really are as limited as Herzog sees them.
    ellauri052.html on line 87: And what is more regrettable still is how these same types reappear in Humboldt’s Gift. Citrine encounters three kinds of women in his travels: his lover Renata, a deceitful sexual priestess, Denise, his cold, hate-filled ex-wife, and a variety of leggy, doe-eyed students and secretaries.
    ellauri052.html on line 104: Bellow’s most merciless and eviscerating tormenter was his third wife, Susan Glassman, who defeated him in a long, acrimonious and expensive divorce suit. In 1974, after he had fraudulently misrepresented his projected income, the court, hostile to a successful Jewish intellectual, “ordered him to pay Susan $2,500 a month in alimony, backdated to 1968, plus $600 a month child support, plus lawyers’ fees.” Ignoring his own lawyer’s sound advice to settle the case, he surrendered to a self-destructive impulse, continued to appeal and deliberately prolonged his agony.
    ellauri052.html on line 120: His favourite novelists, who recurred in his courses, were Dostoyevsky, Stendhal, Balzac, Flaubert, Dickens, Conrad, Dreiser and Fitzgerald. He also admired the satires of Wyndham Lewis.
    ellauri052.html on line 181: Years crowd on years, till hoar decay begrime Tunkeilevat vuodet, kunnes tuhraa patina
    ellauri052.html on line 237: Displayed the stillness in which buildings stand,
    ellauri052.html on line 240: Turned me back to bed with exhausted eyes.
    ellauri052.html on line 243: Film grayed. Shaking wagons, hooves’ waterfalls,
    ellauri052.html on line 330: ... I think Mr Bellow is still a good-looking man. Slim but solid, with big Oriental eyes and probably a thick dick.
    ellauri052.html on line 341: Outer beauty is inner beauty made visible, and it manifests itself in the light that flows in our eyes.


    ellauri052.html on line 383: To send me out this time o' yeir,
    ellauri052.html on line 567: The split became irrevocable when Annie Besant, then president of the Theosophical Society, presented the child Jiddu Krishnamurti as the reincarnated Christ. Steiner strongly objected and considered any comparison between Krishnamurti and Christ to be nonsense; many years later, Krishnamurti also repudiated the assertion.

    ellauri052.html on line 657: After learning about Krishnamurti's secret love affair with his best friend's wife, Bohm felt betrayed. Perhaps this plunged him into his third and final deep depression. Hospitalized, suffering from paranoia and thoughts of suicide, Bohm underwent fourteen episodes of shock therapy before he recovered sufficiently to leave the mental hospital. Earlier triple bypass surgery on his heart had been successful, but his death in 1991, at age 75, was from a massive heart attack. Krishnamurti had died six years earlier, at his home in Ojai, of pancreatic cancer. His body was cremated.
    ellauri052.html on line 677: T.E. was born out of wedlock in August 1888 to Sarah Junner, a governess, and Thomas Chapman, an Anglo-Irish nobleman. Chapman left his wife and family in Ireland to cohabit with Junner. Chapman and Junner called themselves Mr and Mrs Lawrence, the surname of Sarah's likely father; her mother had been employed as a servant for a Lawrence family when she became pregnant with Sarah.
    ellauri052.html on line 693: I left myself quite limply in his hands, and, to get a better grip of me, he put his arm round me and pressed me against him, and the sweetnesS of the touch of our naked bodies one against the other was superb. It satistied in some measure the vague indecipherable yearning of my soul; and it was the same with him. When he had rubbed me all warm, he let me go, and we lo0ked at each other with eyes of
    ellauri052.html on line 713: The man went. Gerald turned to Birkin with his eyes lighted.
    ellauri052.html on line 729: `Well -- yes -- probably.'
    ellauri052.html on line 744: `Now,' said Birkin, `I will show you what I learned, and what I remember. You let me take you so --' And his hands closed on the naked body of the other man. In another moment, he had Gerald swung over lightly and balanced against his knee, head downwards. Relaxed, Gerald sprang to his feet with eyes glittering.
    ellauri052.html on line 754: So they wrestled swiftly, rapturously, intent and mindless at last, two essential white figures working into a tighter closer oneness of struggle, with a strange, octopus-like knotting and flashing of limbs in the subdued light of the room; a tense white knot of flesh gripped in silence between the walls of old brown books. Now and again came a sharp gasp of breath, or a sound like a sigh, then the rapid thudding of movement on the thickly-carpeted floor, then the strange sound of flesh escaping under flesh. Often, in the white interlaced knot of violent living being that swayed silently, there was no head to be seen, only the swift, tight limbs, the solid white backs, the physical junction of two bodies clinched into oneness. Then would appear the gleaming, ruffled head of Gerald, as the struggle changed, then for a moment the dun-coloured, shadow- like head of the other man would lift up from the conflict, the eyes wide and dreadful and sightless.
    ellauri052.html on line 782: `It was a real set-to, wasn´t it?' said Birkin, looking at Gerald with darkened eyes.
    ellauri052.html on line 784: `God, yes,' said Gerald. He looked at the delicate body of the other man, and added: `It wasn't too much for you, was it?'
    ellauri052.html on line 807: `You think I am beautiful -- how do you mean, physically?' asked Gerald, his eyes glistening.
    ellauri052.html on line 841: Birkin laughed. He was looking at the handsome figure of the other man, blond and comely in the rich robe, and he was half thinking of the difference between it and himself -- so different; as far, perhaps, apart as man from woman, yet in another direction. But really it was Ursula, it was the woman who was gaining ascendance over Birkin´s being, at this moment. Gerald was becoming limp again, lapsing out of him.
    ellauri052.html on line 869: His favourite novelists, who recurred in his courses, were Dostoyevsky, Stendhal, Balzac, Flaubert, Dickens, Conrad, Dreiser and Fitzgerald. He also admired the satires of Wyndham Lewis.
    ellauri052.html on line 932: Oddly, Greg expresses frustration with a father “whose deepest desire was to keep his thoughts and his feelings strictly to himself,” as if Bellow did not spend nearly 70 years sharing those thoughts and feelings with millions of readers.
    ellauri052.html on line 936: Ultimately, much of the book revolves around a perceived opposition between “young Saul,” the politically radical, amorously multitasking free spirit who raised him, and “old Saul,” the reactionary, race-baiting friend of authority and Allan Bloom who occupied his father’s body for its final 40 years. Greg had a front-row seat for Bellow’s supposed conversion, after the rise of black power and the Six Day War, to the unfashionable conservatism that remains the unspoken reason his books aren’t read much in America today. He is thus well-placed to describe how that change—dramatically evident in Mr. Sammler’s Planet (1970), the neo-con novel par excellence, but also in Herzog—manifested itself in private.
    ellauri052.html on line 944: It may be helpful to note here that Bellow’s fame, already growing after The Adventures of Augie March, exploded after the publication of Herzog in 1964—the same year Daniel, his youngest son, was born. By the time the newly rich writer, urged by his third wife, moved into a fancy co-op on Lake Michigan, Greg already possessed enough of what he thought were his own opinions to dislike the white plush carpets, the 11 rooms “filled with fancy furniture and modern art.” Reminding the reader he was “raised by a frugal mother and a father who had no steady income,” Greg says that he “found the trappings of wealth in their new apartment so repellent that I complained bitterly to Saul,” who replied that he didn’t care about the new shiny things so long as he could still write—which he could. “As I always had, I accepted what he said about art at face value,” Greg admits, but he stopped visiting the new place. After the marriage deteriorated and Saul moved out, 3-year-old Daniel, in the words of ex-child-therapist Greg, “took to expressing his distress” by peeing on the carpets. “I have to admit that the yellow stains on them greatly pleased me,” Greg writes—for once showing off the Bellovian touch.
    ellauri052.html on line 950: Only his last wife, Janis Freedman, who was 43 years younger, redeemed his marital failures and fulfilled his expectations. Plain and pliant, Canadian, Jewish and well-educated, she devoted her life to Bellow. She became his amanuensis, household major domo, surrogate parent, guardian of the flame and mother of his child when the biblical patriarch was 84. Hiljaiset ja halukkaat, ketterät ja kurvikkaat, sellaiset me haluaisimme. Jasu ja Jörkka yxissä kansissa.
    ellauri052.html on line 962: He portrayed his ex-wives, before and after they divorced him, as they declined from goddess to devil. Their sexual betrayals and financial extortions supplied the mother lode of his fictional material and generated the misogyny and guilt that fueled his creative powers. He exalted his fourth wife, the Gentile Romanian mathematician Alexandra Tulcea, as the “translucent Minna gazing at the stars” in The Dean’s December and crucified her as the “ferocious, chaos-dispensing Vela” in Ravelstein.
    ellauri052.html on line 969: Bellow’s most merciless and eviscerating tormenter was his third wife, Susan Glassman, who defeated him in a long, acrimonious and expensive divorce suit. In 1974, after he had fraudulently misrepresented his projected income, the court, hostile to a successful Jewish intellectual, “ordered him to pay Susan $2,500 a month in alimony, backdated to 1968, plus $600 a month child support, plus lawyers’ fees.” Ignoring his own lawyer’s sound advice to settle the case, he surrendered to a self-destructive impulse, continued to appeal and deliberately prolonged his agony.
    ellauri052.html on line 972: know whether she was sleeping with Bellow yet; “they were all placing bets.” She started an affair with Bellow’s friend Jack Ludwig (the prototype for Gersbach in Herzog) only after she learned of her husband’s many infidelities.
    ellauri053.html on line 110: Andre Gide oli irkku Oscar Wilden seelenbruder. Sai noobelin 1947. Mulla on sen Faux monnayeurs, Vääränrahantekijät. Se kertoo sen kouluajan homoiluista. Andre oli taustoiltaan kermaperse porvari. Ihmisen velvollisuus on olla onnellinen, se lainas Goethea. Sen eka kirja oli proosaruno Nourritures terrestres.
    ellauri053.html on line 163: On trouve du bitume un peu partout dans le monde, notamment aux Moyen et Proche-Orient où il est exploité depuis quatre millénaires ; il était utilisé par exemple pour calfater les bateaux en Mésopotamie, en Inde, en Égypte, en Phénicie.
    ellauri053.html on line 179: E.Saarinen kehu kukoistussyöttiplokissa Aarnen tutkielman Puovon lyriikasta ihan kuplixi. Säntäs kirjakauppaan ostamaan samat Puovon paxut kootut runot kuin oli Aarnella, kun se vanhuxena väsäs nää arvostelut. Olix Puovo edes enää elossa? 2018, ei kai. Puovo veti paukuttamansa henxelit 2008, 77 vuotiaana. AK syntyi vuotta aikasemmin ja kuolee myöhemmin, se vietti 90-vuotispäivää äskettäin. Ketkäs muut teki niin? Ainiin runoilija Metastaasi ja sitä ihaillen siteeraillut Jean-Jacques. Paizi osat ovat vaihtuneet! Ihailija eli lyhyemmin kuin ihailtu, söikin paremmin. Josmä jostain syystä jäisin henkiin Eskin jälkeen mä olisin sen Aarne Kinnunen, en sen Metastaasi, vanha etäpesäke. Eski olisi Jeesus, puukonhaava mahassa, mä sen veli Peeveli, ex-telttailija.
    ellauri053.html on line 192: Puovo kirjoittaa pullopalkalla, pyöristyen kirja kirjalta. Säädyllinen savolaismies on vähän pöyristynyt. Jos mä olisin kirjailija, niin en menettelisi noin rivosti. Viinaratteja oli vanhat kiinalaisetkin runoilijat, ja ukko Nooa. Ei siinä ole mitään hämmästeltävää, edes Suomen oloissa. Ei siihen selvin päin pysty, eikä täyspäinen rupea.
    ellauri053.html on line 687: Minua itseäni on, jalomman Venuksen lähestyessä, vapautettu Myrtale pidättänyt lemmenpauloissa, paljoa tulisemmin, kuin Kalabrian lahtia kiemuroivan Hadrian meren laineet.
    ellauri053.html on line 697: Herbert Spencer (27 April 1820 – 8 December 1903) was an English philosopher, biologist, anthropologist, and sociologist famous for his hypothesis of social Darwinism whereby superior physical force shapes history. Spencer originated the expression "survival of the fittest", which he coined in Principles of Biology (1864) after reading Charles Darwin's On the Origin of Species. The term strongly suggests natural selection, yet Spencer saw evolution as extending into realms of sociology and ethics, so he also supported Lamarckism.
    ellauri053.html on line 704: Spencer is best known as the originator of the expression "survival of the fittest", which he coined in Principles of Biology (1864) after reading Charles Darwin's On the Origin of Species. The term strongly suggests natural selection, yet Spencer saw evolution as extending into realms of sociology and ethics, so he also supported Lamarckism.
    ellauri053.html on line 811: After his resignation from Visva-Bharati, Tagore planned to move to Dehradun. He wrote to Nirmalchandra demanding that Mira be "handed-over" to him; Nirmalchandra obliged and Mira and her son 2-year old Jayabrato accompanied Tagore to Dehradun. Before leaving, Tagore wrote to Pratima, "I am not going secretly. I have informed everyone that Mira is with me." Pratima replied that she "would be happy, if he remained happy".
    ellauri053.html on line 820: Prince Dwarkanath Tagore, my great-grandfather, was a romantic figure. Contemporary of Rammohan Roy, the Father of the Renaissance Movement of Bengal, he was closely associated with him in all his activities and rendered financial help when- ever required. The East India Company were by this time firmly established in Bengal and were rapidly building up their trade. Dwarkanath’s knowledge of English helped him to take advantage of the conditions prevailing under the Company’s rule and he was able at quite an early age not only to amass a fortune but also to gain high offices under the British. With Rammohan Roy he took a leading part in all the movements for the promotion of higher education and social welfare. There was hardly any institution founded during his life-time that did not owe its existence to the generous charity of Dwarkanath. He came to be known as Prince Dwarkanath in recognition of his benefactions. His business enterprises extended to fields unexplored by Indians in those days. He had a fleet of cargo boats for trading between India and England. To improve his business connections and gain further concessions from the Company, he himself went to England accompanied by his youngest son, Nagendranath. I have had occasion to read the diary kept by this grand-uncle of mine. It describes vividly and in very chaste English the social life Of the aristocracy of England in the early Victorian age as seen through the eyes of an Indian. There is also an interesting description of his adventurous journey across the country from Bombay to Calcutta at a time when India was in a very disturbed condition on the eve of the Sepoy Mutiny.
    ellauri053.html on line 863: Jagadish Chandra Bose had a wonderful fund of interesting stories, some very amusing, of the many lands he had visited and personalities he had met. He could go on telling them for hours and days together, yet one would never get tired of listening to him for he could always make the most trivial facts interesting, and his humour was so refreshing. He could also laugh ; so few people can laugh well and at the proper time and place. I would greatly miss him when he went away and secretly I would take a vow to become a scientist like him when I grew up.
    ellauri053.html on line 898: In ancient times the boy had to leave his home and live with his Guru in a forest hermitage as a Brahmachari. Only after having lived a spartan life during years of rigid training was he allowed to go home and take up the duties of a householder.
    ellauri053.html on line 908: By appealing to some friends four pupils were obtained from Calcutta. I myself brought the number up to five. We were all clothed in long yellow robes as befitting Brahmacharis. On the day of the opening ceremony, however, we were given red silk dhotis and chaddars and it made us feel very proud and im- portant to stand in a row in the Mandir, the cynosure of all eyes.
    ellauri053.html on line 912: Father had composed some new songs for the opening ceremony, one of which, Mora satyer pare man (We dedicate ourselves to truth) remained as the school song for many years until it was replaced by Amader Santiniketan (Our own Santiniketan).
    ellauri053.html on line 916: The life led by both pupils and teachers was not only simple but almost austere. The ideal of Brahmacharya was the keynote of everything. The yellow uniform, which covered up the poverty of clothes; a pair of blankets, which served as our only bedding; the vegetarian meals comparable to jail diet in their dull monotony — these were the standards laid down.
    ellauri053.html on line 928: How-ever simple, the strain on Father’s resources to maintain the school must have been great. The institution had no income of its own besides the annual Rs. 1,800 drawn from the Santiniketan Trust. For several years students were not charged fees of any kind. They were given not only free education, but food and very often clothing as well. The whole burden had to be borne by Father, when his own private income was barely Rs. 200 a month. My mother had to sell nearly all her jewellery for the support of the school, before she died in 1902.
    ellauri053.html on line 948: (played by SNOUT) In this same interlude it doth befall
    ellauri053.html on line 979: While I was loitering about the Asrama and reading the letters over and over again the sad news of the death of my sister. Rani was conveyed to me from Calcutta. Father had brought her back there finding that she had much improved in health in Almora — but a relapse ended fatally and she died nine months after the death of my mother.
    ellauri053.html on line 987: A few years later, after I had settled down at Santiniketan my sister Bela, who was staying with her husband in Calcutta, fell ill. Like Rani, my elder sister also developed tuberculosis. ela was daddy's favourite child and her death was a severe blow to him.
    ellauri053.html on line 991: Throughout all these years of the severest trial to him Father’s penis never had any rest. Even when he would be passing through very great distress editors never had to wait for the regular instalments from his penis.
    ellauri053.html on line 1044: A hundred years hence
    ellauri053.html on line 1048: A hundred years hence!
    ellauri053.html on line 1060: And visualize in your mind’s eye
    ellauri053.html on line 1061: One day a hundred years ago
    ellauri053.html on line 1071: A hundred years ago.
    ellauri053.html on line 1077: One day a hundred years ago.
    ellauri053.html on line 1079: A hundred years hence
    ellauri053.html on line 1088: A hundred years hence.
    ellauri053.html on line 1128: and a bee strayed in my room hum- Ja 1 mehiläinen exyi mun huoneeseen pö-
    ellauri053.html on line 1138: The languid breeze played with it upon my cheek. Vetelänoloinen tuuli heitti sitä poskelle.
    ellauri053.html on line 1165:

    “It is a style of Pater,” Eliot justly said, but then he indulged himself in a little racial prejudice, saying “it is a style of Pater, with a trick of the eye and a hanging of the nether lip that come from across the Irish Channel, all the more seductive.” “Mr. Yeats,” he says, “sometimes appears, as a philosopher of aesthetics, incoherent”:


    ellauri053.html on line 1170: On 26 January 1877, the young poet entered the Godolphin school, which he attended for four years. He did not distinguish himself academically, and an early school report describes his performance as "only fair. Perhaps better in Latin than in any other subject. Very poor in spelling".
    ellauri053.html on line 1193: Helppoa: se oli mustankipeä. Tomppa ja Jästi were associates from time to time but not companions. Yeats and Pound make a different relation: they were friends and remained friends, especially after the three winters they spent in Stone Cottage, Coleman’s Hatch, Sussex. The friendship continued over the years and found fulfillment in a shared Rapallo. Dobby ja Jästi ilosteli Rapallon mökissä veturinkuljettajana ja lämmittäjänä, kuraverinen Tomppa palloili kateena ulkopuolella.
    ellauri053.html on line 1356:
    ellauri053.html on line 1367: Yeats's friendship with Gonne ended when in Paris in 1908, they finally consummated their relationship. "The long years of fidelity rewarded at last" was how another of his lovers described the event. (Bet it was Ezra Pound.) Yeats was less sentimental and later remarked that "the tragedy of sexual intercourse is the perpetual virginity of the soul." (Aika narsistinen penselmä.) The relationship did not develop into a new phase after their night together, and soon afterwards Gonne wrote to the poet indicating that despite the physical consummation, they could not continue as they had been. She recommended Yeats to concentrate on other men.
    ellauri053.html on line 1368: Yeats met the American poet Ezra Pound in 1909. Pound had travelled to London at least partly to meet the older man, whom he considered "the only poet worthy of serious study." From that year until 1916, the two men wintered in the Stone Cottage at Ashdown Forest, with Pound nominally acting as Yeats's secretary. The relationship got off to a rocky start when Pound arranged for the publication in the magazine Poetry of some of Yeats's verse with Pound's own unauthorised alterations. These changes reflected Pound's distaste for Victorian prosody.
    ellauri053.html on line 1370: By 1916, Yeats was 51 years old and determined to marry and produce an heir. His rival John MacBride had been executed for his role in the 1916 Easter Rising, so Yeats hoped that his widow might remarry. His final proposal to Maud Gonne took place in mid-1916. Gonne's history of revolutionary political activism, as well as a series of personal catastrophes in the previous few years of her life—including chloroform addiction and her troubled marriage to MacBride—not to mention that she was 50—made her a potentially unsuitable wife; biographer R. F. Foster has observed that Yeats's last offer was motivated more by a sense of duty than by a genuine desire to marry her.
    ellauri053.html on line 1371: Yeats proposed in an indifferent manner, with conditions attached, and he both expected and hoped she would turn him down. According to Foster, "when he duly asked Maud to marry him and was duly refused, his thoughts shifted with surprising speed to her daughter." Iseult Gonne was Maud's second child with Lucien Millevoye, and at the time was twenty-one years old.
    ellauri053.html on line 1375: That September, Yeats proposed to 25-year-old Georgie Hyde-Lees (1892–1968), known as George, whom he had met through Olivia Shakespear. Despite warnings from her friends—"George ... you can't. He must be dead"—Hyde-Lees accepted, and the two were married on 20 October. Their marriage was a success, in spite of the age difference, and in spite of Yeats's feelings of remorse and regret during their honeymoon. The couple went on to have two children, Anne and Michael. Although in later years he had romantic relationships with other women, Georgie herself wrote to her husband "When you are dead, people will talk about your love affairs, but I shall say nothing, for I will remember how proud you were of them."
    ellauri053.html on line 1377: During the first years of marriage, they experimented with automatic writing; she contacted a variety of spirits and guides they called "Instructors" while in a trance. The spirits communicated a complex and esoteric system of philosophy and history, which the couple developed into an exposition using geometrical shapes: phases, cones, and gyres.[71] Yeats devoted much time to preparing this material for publication as A Vision (1925). In 1924, he wrote to his publisher T. Werner Laurie, admitting: "I dare say I delude myself in thinking this book my book of books".
    ellauri053.html on line 1391: My eyes had once, and of their flitting darts;
    ellauri053.html on line 1424: Ronsard is concerned with himself; Yeats barely refers to himself at all (one man) and delivers a prayer of devotion to his beloved. No other poet I've read compares.

    ellauri053.html on line 1433: This poem still moves me immensely, thirty-four years after I first read it and carefully parted from my very first true love. A very touching poem so beautifully written. Timeless. Marvellous lines - so insightful.

    ellauri054.html on line 24:

    yellow">FiX und FOXi

    Einfach Klasse


    ellauri054.html on line 87: Comenius palasi Puolan Lesznoon (1648) ja hänet valittiin veljesyhteisön piispaksi. Matkasta muodostui traaginen, sillä Comeniuksen toinen vaimo makasi kuolemansairaana hevosten vetämissä kärryissä kaksi pientä lastaan vierellään. Hän kuoli pian perilletulon jälkeen. Myös Oxenstierna unohti ruotsalaiset tšekkien uskontovapauskysymyksessä ja lohduttoman tilanteen murtamana Comenius kirjoitti uskonnollisen teoksen, eräänlaisen uskontunnustuksen, jolle antoi nimen Kuolevan äidin testamentti tšekkiläiselle veljeskunnalle, joka tunnetaan myös lyhyesti tšekkiläisestä nimestään Ksaft (Testamentti). Lopussa Comenius ilmaisee vakaumuksensa, että tšekin kansan kohtalo vielä kääntyy. Comeniuksen toivon sanoista tuli tšekkiläisen kansan uskon rukous ja tunnus sukupolvelta toiselle.
    ellauri054.html on line 101: The exhibits of this small museum consist mainly of text and information-panels. I found it informative but it also was similar to reading a informative-book displayed on the museum walls. I missed some artwork or historical objects.
    ellauri054.html on line 161: v 2019 joku räsypää Anwaar Ahmad selittää Pekonia netissä. Keskellä textiä on urheilujuoman mainos: Oshee. Älä hyydy kesken kaiken. Anwaar Ahmad is a professional writer. He is working with us from last two years. His articles are marvelous and attractive. He is best in demonstrating literature. He likes to read books. Feel free to contact him in case you need help. Vainajana muistanemme häntäkin hyvällä.
    ellauri054.html on line 187: Riikonen even found his wife-to-be, Salme Marjatta, at the University. They both studied Latin and attended the same lectures. The couldn’t marry until 11.5 years after their first meeting, however, as H. K. Riikonen wanted to follow scholar Valentin Kiparsky’s advice to not marry until his dissertation was complete. "Saatuani väitöskirjani valmiixi aion palata mielirunoilijani Horatiuxen pariin." Julkaistuaan kirjeet Tarastin kanssa kirjana Eero ja Hannu (vai oliko se toisinpäin) se sanoi myhisten partaansa: "seuraavaxi aion julkaista rakkauskirjeeni."
    ellauri054.html on line 191: Kuinka sattuukaan Hannun vaimo on kirjastonhoitaja. Salme Marjatta Riikonen made her career as a librarian at the Faculty of Arts library. She has been retired for years. The Riikonen’s two children have followed in their parents’ footsteps. One of them holds a Master's degree in Swedish, and the other in Spanish.
    ellauri054.html on line 193: Riikonen has also planned a book on the Aristotelian concept of temperance. He believes temperance can also be used to describe his own lifestyle. “I’m a calm, middle-of-the-road person. I have never veered toward the extreme, in good or bad.” Every day, Riikonen walks to his office in Topelia from his home in Etu-Töölö. “Last year, around the New Year, I lost my temper for the first time, as the electronic lock system in Topelia was broken and I couldn't get to my office during the weekend. The weekends are the best time to work, because it is very quiet,” says Riikonen.
    ellauri054.html on line 213: Matthew Arnold (24. joulukuuta 1822 Laleham, Middlesex – 15. huhtikuuta 1888 Liverpool) oli englantilainen viktoriaanisen ajan runoilija sekä yhteiskunta- ja kirjallisuuskriitikko. Arnold työskenteli koulutarkastajana. Ei se kuitenkaan ollut pedantti. Hän oli kuuluisan Rugby Schoolin rehtorin Thomas Arnoldin poika ja vähemmän kuuluisien Tom Arnoldin ja William Delafield Arnoldin, romaanikirjailijan veli. Wordsworthin kamuja. A voice poking fun in wilderness. Oliko sekin puun takaa huutelija? Caricature from Punch, 1881: "Admit that Homer sometimes nods, That poets do write trash, Our Bard has written "Balder Dead," And also Balder-dash". Tennysonin ja Browningin jälkeen viktoriaanisten runoilijoiden twit-kisan pronssimies. "It might be fairly urged that I have less poetical sentiment than Tennyson and less intellectual vigour and abundance than Browning; yet because I have perhaps more of a fusion of the two than either of them, and have more regularly applied that fusion to the main line of modern development, I am likely enough to have my turn as they have had theirs." Arnold got into his poetry what Tennyson and Browning scarcely needed (but absorbed anyway), the main march of mind of his time.
    ellauri054.html on line 242: Mannin Tompalla on kokonainen nide Goethea koskevia esseitä. Maksim Gorkillakin on kirjallisuusesseitä, varmaan Romain Rollandista. Tuglas-seuran Tuglas esseili eestin kielellä. Nää on kyl jo Hannulla keräilyeriä.
    ellauri054.html on line 338: And I give her a good time, and perhaps it's a year
    ellauri054.html on line 397: Sing Sing's name comes from the Indian phrase sin sinck . It means stone on stone. In 1901, three years after Edison introduced the electric chair at Sing Sing, the town changed its name to Ossining so people wouldn't confuse it with the jail.
    ellauri054.html on line 423: The law needs to be structured in such a way that it allows a steady stream of new inmates. This ties back to that lobbying aspect: stricter laws mean more people in the system. More people in the system means more money for the prison. Many have argued that this is the entire reason that the war on drugs was started: another set of laws that could incarcerate thousands of people every single year.
    ellauri055.html on line 44: Piget puget paenitet, taedet atque miseret. Syvimmällä sisimmässään Colas oli nolo, kun ei ollut kyennyt saaliin satimeen saatuaan päästämään housujaan alas. Olis kannattanut. Lumikko ois halunnut, se pahastui kun Colas ei edes yrittänyt. Sit molemmat nai tylsät puolisot ja katui kauppojaan loppuikänsä. Olisivat katuneet joka tapauxessa.
    ellauri055.html on line 71: En 1934, Romain Rolland épouse Maria Cuvilier (ru) (citoyenne russe de mère suisse, devenue Koudacheva après son mariage en 1916 avec le comte Koudachev, mort en 1919). Clotilde Cortot
    ellauri055.html on line 76: In 1921, his close friend, the Austrian writer Stefan Zweig, published his biography (in English Romain Rolland: The Man and His Works). Zweig profoundly admired Rolland, whom he once described as "the moral consciousness of Europe" during the years of turmoil and War in Europe. Zweig wrote at length about his friendship with Rolland in his own autobiography (in English The World of Yesterday).
    ellauri055.html on line 274: Ikävystyttiin siinä määrin, että vanha nainen uskalsi sanoa eräänä päivänä: - Haluaisin tietää, mikä on pahinta, sekö, että joutuu 100x mustien merirosvojen raiskattavaxi, että toinen peräpakara leikataan pois, että saa kestää kujanjuoxun bulgaarien luona, että tulee piestyxi ja hirtetyxi autodafeessa, että keho leikellään, että saa soutaa kaleeria, lyhyesti sanoen kestää kaikki vaivat, joita jokainen meistä on kokenut, vai sekö, että täytyy jäädä tänne joutilaisuuteen? - Se on suuri kysymys, sanoi Candide.
    ellauri055.html on line 549: Johannes särki vahingossa yhden äidin 17 kauneudenhoitopurkista. Hopeatohvelit läpsyen äiti kiiruhti toteamaan vahingon.Tietysti Bio Miracle -kaulavoide joka oli kallein kaikista! Möykky Johannexen kurkussa suli haikeaan itkuun.
    ellauri055.html on line 607: Ja tie eeku paranoo kun bailut lämpenevät. Pirre eläytyy hyvin myös väpelön Handen arvomaailmaan. No Jaakon ja Pirren mökki lienee joku tönö Anni Swanin huvilan huussimezässä. Vähän samanlainen kuin Aarne Rannalla ja sen perheellä Nilkin kesäsiirtolassa. Sevverran kokematon on Pirre sauna-asioissa ezen ukot luulee saunan lämpötilan nousevan löylynheitosta. Hassunhauskahko on bailuemäntä joka säntää järveen ja hukkaa silmälasit jorpakkoon, lainaa sattuvasti Mao Tse Tungin runoja ja on hyvin hyvin onneton. Eli siis tää on jonkun mielestä jotain Theofrastosta tai Jean de la Bruyereä, hullunkurisia luonteita.
    ellauri055.html on line 614: Syxy painaa päälle. Vesa-Matti Loiri vahvasti eläytyen esitti Mustapään runoon sävellettyä pientä sanatonta kansanlaulua jossa oli aika paljon sanoja. Mixei Puulavedestä enää nouse muikkua pohti radion puheohjelma.
    ellauri055.html on line 868: Kesken jääneet opinnot antoivat kuitenkin paljon vaikutteita Sillinpään myöhemmälle kirjalliselle tuotannolle. Sillinpään ajatteluun vaikuttivat Charles Darwin kehitysoppeineen sekä saksalaiset biologi ja filosofi Ernst Haeckel ja Nobel-kemisti Wilhelm Ostwald ja myös Leo Tolstoi ja Arvid Järnefelt. Heidän vaikutustaan oli Sillinpään biologinen determinismi ja periaatteellinen väkivallan ja sotien vastustaminen sekä usko siihen että luonnontieteet kehittyessään siirtäisivät tällaiset atavistiset ilmiöt historiaan. Myöhemmin Sillinpää tutustui myös saksalaiseen Oswald Spengleriin ja omaksui häneltä ajatuksen sivilisaatioiden ihmiselämää vastaavasta elinkaaresta. Naziainexiakin oli siis, mutta mäkitupalaisena se ei siihen hurahtanut.
    ellauri055.html on line 889: Suomen sisällissodan aikana Sillinpää pyrki olemaan puolueettomana. Hän joutui kuitenkin vuoron perään sodan kummankin osapuolen pidättämäksi ja arvosteli sekä punaisten että valkoisten suorittamia väkivallantekoja. Valkoisten voittonsa jälkeen käynnistämät kostontoimenpiteet teloituksineen herättivät Sillinpäässä suuttumusta. Keskellä sotaa Sillinpää suomensi belgialaisen symbolistin Maurice Maeterlinckin teosta Köyhäin aarteet (Le trésor des humbles). Veristen selvittelyjen kiihtyessä Sillinpään kotipitäjässä tämä mystiikkaa lähenevä köyhyyden filosofia auttoi tyynnyttämään kirjailijan mieltä. Hän pyrki näkemään pintaa syvemmälle niihin syihin, jotka olivat johtaneet sisällissodan kaltaiseen murhenäytelmään.
    ellauri055.html on line 897: Sillinpää julkaisi 1920-luvulla lähinnä novellikokoelmia sekä vuonna 1923 ilmestyneen pienoisromaanin Hipsu ja Ragnar, jota hän itse myöhemmin piti parhaana teoksenaan. Lyhyestä virsu kaunis. Samaan aikaan Sillinpään taloudelliset ongelmat lisääntyivät ja hän velkaantui jatkuvasti lisää. Hän ei myöskään pystynyt tuottamaan kustantajan haluamia uusia romaaneja. Sillinpään kustantaja WSOY tarjosi hänelle lopulta ratkaisuksi vakinaista työtä kustannustoimittajana. Sillinpää olikin vuosina 1925–1927 WSOY:n palveluksessa ja hän asui tämän ajan perheineen Porvoossa. Vuonna 1927 he palasivat takaisin Hämeenkyröön ja Sillinpää onnistui jonkin aikaa hankkimaan riittävästi rahaa kirjallisilla töillään. Syksyllä 1928 paikallinen sähköyhtiö katkaisi maksamattomien laskujen takia sähköt Saavutuksesta ja Sillinpään perhe joutui muuttamaan pimeästä talosta Tampereelle, jossa he asuivat sitten vuoden verran ennen Helsinkiin muuttoa.
    ellauri055.html on line 1290: (Tämä artikkeli kertoo arkkipiispasta. The Crash -yhtyeen rumpalista kerrotaan artikkelissa Erkki Kala, muusikko.) 1920 Kala hylkäsi vitalistiset käsitykset. Siis Eno. Talvipakkasilla äiti laittoi poskipäihin Vitalista. Se haisi pahalta. Tai Niveaa, mitä sattui olemaan. Molemmat haisivat pahalta.
    ellauri058.html on line 77: Ozikko on Astrid Lindgreniltä. Astridin Kati käy Amerikassa 1950, mutta siinä on vilahduxia Katin musterin Astridin omista nuoruusajoista 20-30-luvulla, esim Myrna Loy ja Billy Mayerl. Astrid eli 1907-2002. 50-luvun alussa Katin jenkkiheila Bobin isä valitti et parin sukupolven perästä eivät amerikkalaiset enää osaa sisälukua. He istuvat liimautuneina radio-ja televisiokoneisiinsa ja selailevat Comic bookia, jonka vähäisen textin he hädin tuskin kykenevät tavaamaan. Oikeassa oli. Aar juu reisi? Resitent is Ruuman. Oli siis 50-luvulla. Nau resitent is
    ellauri058.html on line 97: The Thin Man is a 1934 American comedy-mystery directed by W. S. Van Dyke and based on the novel of the same name by Dashiell Hammett. The film stars William Powell and Myrna Loy as Nick and Nora Charles, a leisure-class couple who enjoy copious drinking and flirtatious banter. Nick is a retired police detective who left his very successful career when he married Nora, a wealthy heiress accustomed to high society. Their wire-haired fox terrier Asta was played by canine actor Skippy. In 1997, the film was added to the United States National Film Registry having been deemed "culturally, historically, or aesthetically significant."
    ellauri058.html on line 121: Chicago on kuin ADHD kakara. Sellasia siellä sillon olikin, esim Sale Palje. Amerikan amerikkalaisin kaupunki Katista. Nappikenkäinen Musteri jää Amerikkaan naimisiin. Kati eli Astrid siteeraa Billy Mayerlin biisiä 30-luvulta. Kati ei ois takuulla tiennyt näitä. Oma maa mansikka, tuumaa Kati kotimatkalla ja skandeeraa lorua Breathes there the man Sir Walter Scottilta. Vielä vanhanaikaisempaa.
    ellauri058.html on line 142: Helsinkiläinen Marjo Korkeamäki huomasi jokunen vuosi sitten äidissään muistisairauden oireita. Tämä unohteli asioita, ja kotona asuminen kävi yhä vaikeammaxi. Äiti ei kyennyt enää laittamaan ruokaa, siivoomaan eikä muistanut vetää vessaa. Äiti alkoi laihtua. Vaikka äiti sai kotiapua, vastuu viime kädessä jäi tyttärelle. Omakin perhe vaati tukea, joten äidin hoitaminen työpäivän päälle kävi ajan mittaan raskaaxi. Marjo ehdotti äidilleen muuttamista Kontulaan palvelutalo Helyyn. Se oilsi sopinut hänelle kuin nenä naamaan. Puhuimme asiasta monta kertaa ja kävimme paikan päälläkin. Äiti vastusteli.
    ellauri058.html on line 605: Syksyllä 2013 saatiin Helsingin Sanomissa seurata Matti Salmisen ja Vesa Karosen kiivasta sanailua liittyen Pentti Haanpäähän. Salminen oli juuri julkaissut Haanpäästä uuden elämäkerran, jossa hän omien sanojensa mukaan kääntää nurin koko kirjailijan “virallisen” historian. Itsetietoinen tyyli ei saanut pitkän linjan Haanpää-tutkija Karosta syttymään (Vesa Karonen: Reportaasi Pentti Haanpäästä jättää teokset sivuosaan, HS, 15.9.2013).
    ellauri058.html on line 671: Joku mamu Somchai Jotaingut raiskas kännipäistä 14-vuotiasta koulutyttöä jyväskyläläisessä autotallissa. Somchai työntyi ainaskin 2x mehukkaasti uhrin emättimeen. Yhdyntä oli ainaskin osan aikaa suojaamaton. Ei käy selväxi edestä vai takaa, ja ruittasko se kamat pussiin 2x, menikö 1 lasti johkin korzuun tai muuhun suojaimeen, miltä Somchatista tuntui munan työntyessä perille, ja jouduttiinko toista seisokkia odottelemaan. Hyvin uutisoitu Ilta-Pulu, mut vieläkin on parannettavaa.
    ellauri058.html on line 695: Tutkijoiden ja pankkien keskuudessa vallitsee kuitenkin erimielisyyttä siitä, sanooko talous elpyessään ”plöts”, ”bbzzoiinnnkkk” vai ”vittu kaveri se oli mun tuoppi”.
    ellauri058.html on line 716: It has generally been thought that King Herod died at 69 years of age from complications of gonorrhea. Dr. Jan Hirschmann, a physician at the University of Washington School of Medicine in Seattle, decided to explore further, and presented his diagnosis at the Historical Clinical Pathologic Conference (CPC).
    ellauri058.html on line 733: yer/41106/">Nasta raamis on lasten raamattunettitelkkari, jossa huvittaja ja opettaja Mila Lehtonen kertoo ihmeellisiä Raamatun tositarinoita piirtäen ja maalaten kuin Kylli-täti. Hänelle pitävät seuraa koiraneidit Nasta ja Pinni.
    ellauri058.html on line 779: Following the death of his partner of more than 30 years, the philosopher Samuel Todes, Hine lived in semi-retirement in Evanston, Illinois. Hine died of complications of a blood disorder on August 20, 2012 at the age of 76. Varmaan AIDS. Pueriilit runot on kuiteskin omistettu "for Jerry". Hmm. Ezellanen Jami.
    ellauri058.html on line 803: The family unit, however defined, is itself a comparatively recent invention or convention; for whereas the bond of mother and child remains for our kind as for each of us the earliest form of attachment, among adults — and we should never forget that adulthood began much earlier in earlier times — it was the group, the horde, or that most decried yet most prevalent group, the gang. Gangs, first I suppose for hunting game, are to be found not only on streetcorners but in board rooms, the most common and powerful type of the gang being the committee. The group for and within which these poems were composed and circulated was neither a gang nor a committee — itself a martial term originally — but a court, neither an academy nor yet an institute; these rather than those high-flown heterosexual fantasies of the twelfth century represented the first form quite literally of courtly love.
    ellauri058.html on line 808: Darylin käännöxen kriitikko Otto Steinmayer, Institute of East Asian Studies, University Malaysia Sarawak, puolustautuu alaviitteessä:
    ellauri060.html on line 55: Mulla oli taipumusta nuorempana saada raivareita kuten Aku Ankka. Nyt niitä saa Donald Trump, joka on juuri saanut potkut valkoisesta talosta. Kultainen vessanpönttö raahataan pian pihalle ja Aku ize niska peffa kii lentää perässä. Perseessä lappu nuppineulalla: YOU'RE FIRED! Bye fat ass! Slow Joekin taitaa olla aika luikero, mutta onnexi hirmuvanha jo. Jos hyvin käy, se sotkeutuu kengännauhoihinsa ja saadaan kamalasta Harrixesta sekarotuinen naispresidentti vihdoinkin. Pidetäämpä peukkuja.
    ellauri060.html on line 128: Työmatkalla kun oltiin, tahti oli kova ja tutustuminen jäi lyhyeen. Samana kesänä tyttäreni houkutteli minut diskotanssitunnille. Olin tasan ainoa aikuinen, isokokoinen, mutta halukas oppimaan jotain uutta. Opettajan nimi oli Macro Djurström. Kohtalo heitti meidät siis jo toisen kerran yhteen. Syksyllä Macro perusti hyvän olon tunnit ja minä olin entistä vakuuttuneempi, että se, mitä opiskelin yliopistossa, toteutui näillä tunneilla: ilmaisun helppous, rohkaistuminen ja rentoutuminen. Kehon kielen teoria tuli eläväksi. Mutta vasta Lambada vei meidät tiiviimmin yhteen. Uuden Suomen pikkujoulussa minun oli määrä opettaa tätä uutta muotitanssia. Koska olin itse sitä vain tanssinut, en opettanut, pyysin Macroa opettamaan ja hän suostui sillä ehdolla, että tanssin hänen parinaan. Onneksi tapahtumasta ei ole yhtään kuvaa jäljellä. Macro on nimittäin 196 senttinen ja minä 164 pätkänen. Juuri ja juuri uletun Macron housunkauluxeen.
    ellauri060.html on line 235: Daniel Foe was probably born in Fore Street in the parish of St Giles Cripplegate, London. His father, James Foe, was a prosperous tallow chandler of Flemish descent, and a member of the Worshipful Company of Butchers. In Defoe's early childhood, he experienced some of the most unusual occurrences in English history: in 1665, 70,000 were killed by the Great Plague of London, and the next year, the Great Fire of London left only Defoe and two other guys standing in his neighbourhood. In 1667, when he was probably about seven, a Dutch fleet sailed up the Medway via the River Thames and attacked the town of Chatham in the raid on the Medway. His mother, Alice, had died by the time he was about ten.
    ellauri060.html on line 241: Defoe entered the world of business as a general merchant, dealing at different times in hosiery, general woollen goods, and wine. His ambitions were great and he was able to buy a country estate and a ship (as well as civets to make perfume), though he was rarely out of debt. On 1 January 1684, Defoe married Mary Tuffley at St Botolph's Aldgate. She was the daughter of a London merchant, receiving a dowry of £3,700—a huge amount by the standards of the day. With his debts and political difficulties, the marriage may have been troubled, but it lasted 47 years and produced eight children.
    ellauri060.html on line 276: - Seminaarissa on kaksi johtolankaa: teemaksi tuli Elmo, mutta myös muu tuotanto. Nyt tuodaan esiin Juhanin moninaisuus, hän on suurempi kuin Elmo itse, kertoo Tuula Nurmen aviomies, seuran varapuheenjohtaja Risto Nurmi. (Taitaisi runkkujussi olla vihainen jos tietäisi, että vaimo elää sen kanssa iloisena leskenä! Tai ehkä se jo tiesikin, kun kirjotti sitä iloisinta surua. Se Inter-Toran mies oli takuulla Risto. Runkkujussin seuran eka puhis oli Sorsan Kalevi. Alaspäin on kyllä menty vuotten saatossa. Mitäs Timppa sanoikaan miesmuistin lyhyydestä? Astu lähemmäxi, se on lyhyempi kuin luuletkaan.)
    ellauri060.html on line 406: ”Olen soittanut tanssi- ja rockyhtyeissä”, Nurmi myöntää. ”Siitä on ollut radiotyössäni paljon apua. Muusikon täytyy eläytyä yleisön tunteisiin ja vastata loppuun asti siitä, että heillä on hyvä olla.
    ellauri060.html on line 470: This song may be of quite recent origin, since almost half of the known examples are sound recordings, and there's only one broadside printing. On the other hand, there's an older and widely printed broadside Jimmy and his True Love, which might well be an earlier version—or it may just be a song with universal appeal and a good chorus that people still enjoy singing. Of the 40 or so instances in Roud, most are from the south west of England or East Anglia—though Gavin Greig collected a dozen examples in Scotland in the early years of last century. No other Sussex version has been collected.
    ellauri060.html on line 499: And as they were embracing tears from her eyes fell,
    ellauri060.html on line 914: Rob Anybody turned to his brother and said, Ye will mind, brother o mine, that there was time ye should stick your head up a duck's bottom rather than talk?
    ellauri060.html on line 1040: Yes, Google’s search index is now in clear decline, as of late 2020, though the downward trend has started years ago.
    ellauri060.html on line 1046: This content quality problem has been exacerbated by Google’s switch to emphasize the freshness of their index years ago. The rationale was that there was so much good stuff around, and that its supply was (supposedly even exponentially) constantly increasing so Google would always be able to show amazing results just from the freshest portion of their index.
    ellauri060.html on line 1056: AI was supposed to be another refuge and savior several years ago. The idea was that Google’s core mission was always to give answers to questions as opposed serving ten blue links with bunch of ads.
    ellauri060.html on line 1162: The phrase is also used as the first line of one of the extra cod Latin verses added in 1953 to an unofficial school song at Harvard University, "Ten Thousand Men of Harvard". This most frequently played fight song of the Harvard University Band is, to some extent, a parody of more solemn school songs like "Fair Harvard thy Sons to your Jubilee Throng". (voi helvetti, tää oli tosi paha.) The first verse is a nonsense sequence of Latin clichés:
    ellauri061.html on line 170: Lysähteri luettelee lyhyesti onnettoman romantiikan syyt: 1) eri-ikäisyys, 2) erikokoset reviirit, 3) pappa betalar och stämmer. Hernia ja Lysähteri päättää lähtee Renoon, huizin Nevadaan. Helena, kah, tulee.
    ellauri061.html on line 266: että hän suorittaa asiansa lyhyesti.
    ellauri061.html on line 399: lawyer? Where be his quiddities now, his quillets, Missäs sen tämyydet on nyt, sen mikättimet,
    ellauri061.html on line 404: in's time a great buyer of land, with his statutes, sitoumuxineen, sakkoineen, kaxoistakauxineen,
    ellauri061.html on line 425: yours: for my part, I do not lie in't, and yet it is mine. mä en makaa siinä, mutta silti se on mun.
    ellauri061.html on line 438: Horatio, these three years I have taken a note of Piruvie, Horatio, tää aika on niin tasa-arvoista että puskajussin
    ellauri061.html on line 443: First Clown Of all the days i' the year, I came to't that day Pelle 1 Jokaisena vuoden päivänä, aloitin kun vanha kyläkunkku voitti
    ellauri061.html on line 461: and boy, thirty years. 30 vuotta.
    ellauri061.html on line 465: hold the laying in--he will last you some eight year kestää yhdexänkin.
    ellauri061.html on line 466: or nine year: a tanner will last you nine year.
    ellauri061.html on line 470: is a sore decayer of your whoreson dead body. maannut maassa 23 vuotta.
    ellauri061.html on line 472: three and twenty years.
    ellauri061.html on line 535: Till the last trumpet: for charitable prayers, odottamaan viimeistä trumpettia: sillä säälirukouxia,
    ellauri061.html on line 585: Until my eyelids will no longer wag. kunnes mun silmäluukut ei enää heilu.
    ellauri061.html on line 625: Critics have spent a considerable amount of time debating Hamlet's age. Hamlet here is thirty years old, as the First Clown makes clear (lines 133-151). However, "young Hamlet", as he is referred to earlier in the play is still attending university and courting Ophelia. Laertes says that Hamlet's love is like "a violet in the youth of primy nature" (1.3.6). The noted scholar Grant White was so annoyed by this dilemma that he, defying logic, concluded that Hamlet was twenty when the play started and thirty at its close. (See Studies in Shakespeare, p. 79 ff.). How important is Hamlet's age to our understanding or enjoyment of the play? Would Hamlet's age have been an issue for play-goers at Shakespeare's Globe? For more on this topic, please click here.
    ellauri061.html on line 766: An Israeli citizen has been arrested in Bulgaria and is awaiting extradition to Austria in connection with an alleged online financial scam believed to have netted more than 100 million euros per year.
    ellauri061.html on line 768: Gal Barak, an Israeli call center manager, the so-called Wolf of Sofia, was arrested in Sofia in February 2019. Most of the employees of the call center were Bulgarian but the managers were Israeli, a source told The Times of Israel.
    ellauri061.html on line 770: Barak, the reported suspect in the police raids, incorporated a company called Gal Barak Solutions in Israel in January 2015. Later that year it changed ownership and changed its name to Itzik Gellet Solutions. People familiar with the company told The Times of Israel the company operated a binary options call center at Allenby 103 in Tel Aviv, two blocks from the offices of the Israel Securities Authority.
    ellauri061.html on line 776: Ehud Barak says he is the blessed man to lead Israel. Another Messiah. His original name was Brog. He has 3 children, wonder if one of them is called Gal. In an interview with Haaretz reported in January 2015, Barak was asked to explain the source of his "big" capital, with which he "bought 5 apartments and connected them," and by which he "lives in a giant rental apartment in a luxury high rise." Barak said he currently earns more than a $1 million a year, and that from 2001 to 2007, he also earned more than a $1 million every year, from giving lectures and from consulting for hedge funds. Barak also said he made millions of dollars more from his investments in Israeli real estate properties.
    ellauri061.html on line 778: In the interview, Barak was asked whether he is a lobbyist that earns a living from "opening doors." The interviewer stated "You have arrived recently at the Kazakhstan despot Nazarbayev and the president of Ghana. You are received immediately." Barak confirmed that he has been received by these heads of state but denied earning money from opening doors for international business deals for Israeli and foreign corporations, and said he does not see any ethical or moral problems in his business activities. He further said there is no logic to demand of him, after "the natural process in democracy has ended" to not utilize the tools he accumulated in his career to secure his financial future. When asked if his financial worth is $10–15 million, Barak said "I'm not far from there."
    ellauri061.html on line 793: Answer: The account of Deborah and Barak is found in Judges 4 and 5 in the Old Testament. The Israelites had been under the control of the Canaanite king Jabin and the commander of his army, Sisera. The Canaanites had 900 chariots of iron and ruled over Israel for 20 years (Judges 4:2–3).
    ellauri061.html on line 799: Following this battle, “God subdued Jabin king of Canaan before the Israelites. And the hand of the Israelites pressed harder and harder against Jabin king of Canaan until they destroyed him” (Judges 4:23–24). Deborah’s prophecy was fulfilled: Barak won, Sisera was killed by a woman, and the Israelites were freed from their enemies.
    ellauri061.html on line 803: The song of Deborah and Barak also gives some more detail about the victory over the Canaanites: “The earth shook, the heavens poured, / the clouds poured down water” (Judges 5:4). Evidently, God used a flood to disable the iron chariots of Sisera. The victory was supernatural (verse 20). Chapter 5 concludes with the statement, “And the land had peace forty years.” This impressive time of peace lasted until Midian took control of Israel, necessitating Gideon’s rise.
    ellauri061.html on line 968: Jari Pervo on 1 nilkin 375 humanistista. Jari Pervolla on Alibin, Poliisiuutisten ja Seiska-lehden reportterin sielunelämä ja Ilta-Pulun toimittajatyön muovaama maailmankazomus. Kotimaisen kirjallisuuden hukkiopinnoista ei takkiin paljon tarttunut. Se tunsi izensä usein idiootiksi Helsingin yliopistossa. Ylläri. Pian se huomasi, että sillä aineyhdistelmällä pätevöityy tutkijaksi tai kotirouvaksi. Kun kotirouvan ura ei silloin vielä napannut, se meni Sanoma Osakeyhtiön toimittajakouluun. Eikä enää taaxeen kazonut, jos ei paljon eteensäkään. Ruikki varpaille. Astu lähemmäxi, se on lyhyempi kuin luulet.
    ellauri061.html on line 1088: Kun Espoon Suomenojalla kasvanut tyttö täytti 14, elettiin Euroopan hullua vuotta 1968. Moni asia vapautui ryskyen ja ryminällä. Ryminä kävi myös Katin pikkuhousuissa.
    ellauri061.html on line 1174: Eli lyhyesti: Otin riskin. Rakastuinko? En. Kannattiko? Kyllä, sillä nytpä tiedän taas jotain yhden suomalaisen kirjailijan tyylistä. Ilman haastetta en olisi päässyt loppuun. Muuta? Siis mitä vittua, onko tämä paska muka ollut Finlandia-ehdokkaana?
    ellauri061.html on line 1183: Rikkaan sohvassa se näytti tahralta. Kiitteli itseään ihmistuntemuxesta. Lutka luki lööppejä muttei mun kirjoja, Jari harmitteli. Lööpit on lyhyempiä. Nainen sentään pahoitteli klisettä. Jari kiittelee niistä izeään.
    ellauri061.html on line 1599: Sonnet 29 also named as “When in disgrace with fortune and men’s eyes” is one of 154 sonnets written by the English playwright and poet William Shakespeare. It is part of the Fair Youth sequence. In the sonnet William Shakespeare creates a depressed and despairing speaker who serendipitously reflects upon the love of a close friend in order to prove to the reader that no matter how difficult life becomes, we can be content in the blessings of the hole.
    ellauri062.html on line 56: Se oli meidän elämä. Me ollaan SYYLLISIÄ.  Pornomestari Muhuhuu on pahoillaan, mutta meidän isot hiilijalat aiheuttaa tän. Eikä me voida sille mitään. Me ollaan vaan pikku apinoita jotka lisääntyvät liikaa. Darwinin jymymenestys, iso jytky. Astutaan toisia apinoita niinkauan kuin aikaa riittää. Kovennetaan pikku pippeliä sarvikuonon sarvijauholla. Lisäännytään kunnes täyttyy maa. Under his eye. In a while, crocodile. Hetki enää vaan niin tulee valmista. Jalanjälkiä on jo joka paikassa.
    ellauri062.html on line 93: If the answers to these questions is yes and lasts for months, researchers believe it could actually be a very early stage of Alzheimer’s.
    ellauri062.html on line 265: June explains to flabbergasted Serena that Gilead is not an ideal place for a child, specifically a daughter, to grow up in as their very existence is risky. She manages to convince Serena, who then tearfully says a prayer and hands the baby back over to June. June, in turn, gives Serena a blessing as well and leaves behind a tearful Serena as she and another Martha leave to escape Gilead. Fred is left alone in the room and looks at the carving, "Nolite te bastardes carborundorum," on the wall. Nick offers his "cigar" to Serena and she takes a good hold of it and takes a drag. Fred gets a moment alone with June to tell her he’s concerned about Serena.
    ellauri062.html on line 292: Because the book has been frequently challenged or banned in some of the United States of America over the last thirty years, many people have expressed discontent at The Handmaid's Tale's presence in the classroom. Some of these challenges have come from parents concerned about the explicit sexuality and other adult themes represented in the book. Others have argued that The Handmaid's Tale depicts a negative view of religion, a view supported by several academics who propose that Atwood's work satirizes contemporary religious fundamentalists in the United States, offering a feminist critique of the trends this movement to the Right represents.
    ellauri062.html on line 392: Albert "Bert" Newton Stubblebine III (February 6, 1930 – February 6, 2017)[1] was a United States Army major general whose active duty career spanned 32 years. Beginning as an armor officer, he later transferred to intelligence. He is credited with redesigning the U.S. Army intelligence architecture during his time as commanding general of the U.S. Army Intelligence and Security Command (INSCOM) from 1981 to 1984, after which he retired from active service.
    ellauri062.html on line 396: A character ("General Hopgood") in the 2009 film The Men Who Stare at Goats — a fictionalized adaptation of Ronson's book — is loosely based on Stubblebine as commander of the "psychic spy unit" (portrayed in the film) who believed he could train himself to walk through walls.
    ellauri062.html on line 666: Oro supplex et acclinis, Rukoilen mä mykkyrässä, Ashen-hearted, prone and prayerful,
    ellauri062.html on line 707: Hausmylly on Teuvo Hakkaraisen kotikylältä tervehtivä pop-yhtye keikkatauolla. Badass-piponen Hausmyllyn Enzo on syöpänen.
    ellauri062.html on line 748: Rafflesia perfume on Prion nimisen raskasmetalliyhtyeen "biisi" ysärin lopulta. Rafflesia on raadonsyöjäkasvi joka haisee mädäntyneelle lihalle.
    ellauri062.html on line 754: Voiko vitutukseen kuolla kysyi Paavo Väyrynen lääkäriltä Maunon tehtyä oharit 1987 hallituxen muodostuxessa. Tekniikan maailma tutki asiaa 2012 gallupilla ja totesi että kyllä voi. Tulokset kertovat, että mitä useammin, pitempään ja enemmän harmittaa, sitä lyhyemmäksi elämä voi jäädä. Simpukatkin voivat stressaantua, kuinka ei siis Paavo Väyrynen.
    ellauri062.html on line 871: Parsifalin juoni on lyhyesti tämä. Partapozo Gurnemanz istuu suuren puun juurella. Kaikki polvistuvat. Riivattu nainen Kundry saapuu villisti ratsastaen jollakin ja ojentaa pienen pullon Gurnemanzille annettavaksi Aortalle (kekä se on? Rampa kymingas.) Ritarit epäilevät Kundryn olevan ilkeä.
    ellauri062.html on line 883: Gurnemanz huomaa pian että Parsifalin täytyisi raikastautua pyhässä lähteessä. Kundry pesee Parsifalin "jalan", voitelee sen ja lopuksi kuivattaa sen tukankuivaajalla. Gurnemanz tyhjentää voidepullon sisällön Parsifalin päähän ja voitelee häntä hellästi. Ensimmäisenä tehtävänään Parsifal ottaa lähteestä vauhtia ja kostuttaa Kundryn sekä painaa tätä kevyesti vatsan alle. Koko luomakunta on kauneimmillaan ja orkesterista soi Wagnerin kaunein säveltunnelataus, Mustan Perjantain Tarjous.
    ellauri062.html on line 914:
    Obama and Trump proclaim national days honoring racist rabbit, Menachem Schneerson. For 42 years presidents from both parties have proclaimed a national day to honor Rabbi Schneerson. All male panel back in 2018. Obama jututtaa Olavia ja Wilhoa. Olavi ja Wilho tuovat Trumpille askartelukirjan.
    ellauri062.html on line 926: chief Rabbi Mordechai Eliyahu stated, "it is important to make one thing clear – the life of one yeshiva boy is worth more than the lives of 1,000 Arabs".
    ellauri063.html on line 112: Hence, (except for a few years in China after 1949, and Cuba after 1959) these regimes were never popular. Fuck it, NO regimes are popular except for those that hold the reins.
    ellauri063.html on line 114: So, Marxist (and Leninist) socialism itself hasn't failed; it just hasn't been road-tested yet. No one knows if it will work, but there are good reasons to suppose it won't. We are still waiting for the second coming of Karl. Marxism is a revolutionary worldview that must always struggle for new revelations. Rosa Luxemburg.
    ellauri063.html on line 130: Populismin vastakohta on senatismi. SPQR, sanoivat patriisit ja antoivat plebeijien pitää pieniä kansankokouxia, rökittäen toisiaan. MAGA-presidentti matkusti Gruusiaan kertomaan paikallisille apinoille, että nyt on isänmaa vaarassa. Pelastakaa Amerikka kommunismilta! Palauttakaa mut presidentin pallille! Oh, and yes, vote republican for senator by all means. Although I dont directly WANT to talk for others but me to be elected anywhere.
    ellauri063.html on line 229: AAA, también conocida como Alianza Apostólica Anticomunista, fue una organización terrorista tardofranquista, presuntamente vinculada a los aparatos represivos del Estado español, que actuó en el País Vasco y en el País Vasco francés entre 1977 y 1982, durante la transición española. Un informe de la Oficina de Víctimas del Terrorismo del Gobierno vasco de 2010 le atribuye 8 asesinatos de las 66 víctimas mortales del terrorismo parapolicial y de extrema derecha desarrollado entre 1975 y 1990.
    ellauri063.html on line 257: Aina tietysti voi imarrella izeään sankaritarinoilla "tinkimättömästä toisinajattelijasta", mutta älä kuvittele että sellainen feikkishow menisi täydestä kehenkään muuhun kuin sinuun izeesi. Päinvastoin: halveximme sinua sixi että vaihdat koko ajan puolta tuulen suunnan mukaan, selittelet naurettavasti aiempia möläytyxiäsi. Lyhyesti sanoen olet surkuteltava tapaus. Kazo peiliin :trollface: sieltä näkyy toinen :trollface: vertically flipped.
    ellauri063.html on line 262: The role was retired in official contexts and replaced with Marksman icon.png Marksman, to distinguish between Ranged role.png ranged basic attackers (including those that do not build AD, e.g. Azir Azir) and the ability to carry , with Melee role.png melee ADCs being distributed between the Slayer icon.png Slayer and Fighter icon.png Fighter roles.
    ellauri063.html on line 263: Despite retirement of the term, it remains in common usage, even among Riot employees, and generally refers to these champions: [stupid mile long list of invented names follows for the benefit of braindead gamers].
    ellauri063.html on line 316: Brötzmann Reflects on ‘Machine Gun’ as it Hits 50th Anniversary. The marathon, lung-bursting howl of Peter Brötzmann’s Machine Gun, which the saxophonist self-released on his BRÖ imprint 50 years ago, captured the anxiety of a generation grappling with the Vietnam War and civil unrest. The emotional and political complexity it was born from still resonates today.
    ellauri063.html on line 322: Nimim. Tiukkaa penalii oli turkulaisen uuden aallon rockyhtye Pasi & Mysiinin debyyttialbumi vuodelta 1980. Pasi & Mysiini oli turkulainen uuden aallon rockyhtye. Eksentrisen solistinsa Pasi Raappanan (24. tammikuuta 1953 Utajärvi – 29. heinäkuuta 2000 Turku) kappaleita esittänyt yhtye levytti 1980-luvun alussa kaksi albumia.
    ellauri063.html on line 432: Infinite Jest is a postmodern encyclopedic novel, famous for its length and detail and for its digressions that involve endnotes (some of which themselves have footnotes). It has also been called metamodernist and hysterical realist. Wallace's "encyclopedic display of knowledge" incorporates media theory, linguistics, film studies, sport, addiction, science, and issues of national identity. The book is often humorous yet explores melancholy deeply.
    ellauri063.html on line 450: Köyhyyden kriminalisoinnille on historiallista pohjaa, joten vanhojen lakien päivittäminen voidaan aloittaa vaikka heti. Aikana 1664-1883 maassamme oli kiellettyä niin köyhyys, kerjääminen kuin työttömyyskin. Järjestelmän nimi oli palveluspakko. Sen sisältö oli lyhyesti sanoen sellainen, että jokaisen vähänkin työkykyisen oli pestauduttava jonkun toisen palvelukseen. Mikäli jossain tavattiin vailla palveluspaikkaa oleva työkykyinen irtolainen, köyhä tai kerjäläinen, hänelle seurasi ankara rangaistus. Miehet passitettiin alkuaikoina sotaväkeen ja myöhemmin pakkotyölaitoksiin, naiset kehruuhuoneisiin. Palveluspakon luonnollisia seurauksia olivat myös palkkasääntely kustannusten hillitsemiseksi ja rajoitettu työpaikan vaihto-oikeus työvoiman pysyvyyden varmistamiseksi. Viimeisenä varmistuksena oli isännänvalta, joka piti sisällään myös oikeuden ruumiilliseen kuritukseen.
    ellauri063.html on line 544: shemagh: oikealta nimeltään keffiyeh (arab. كوفية‎, kūfīyä), rättipäiden päärätti arabiaksi.
    ellauri064.html on line 63: Dale Breckenridge Carnegie (24. marraskuuta 1888 – 1. marraskuuta 1955) oli yhdysvaltalainen kirjailija ja ihmissuhde- ja esiintymistaitojen kouluttaja. Carnegie kirjoitti lukuisia elämäntaito- ja itseopiskelukirjoja, joista tunnetuin lienee vuonna 1937 julkaistu Miten saan ystäviä, menestystä, vaikutusvaltaa. How to stop worrying and start living. San Francisco taisi olla Home of the Golden Gate Worriers. Onx Dale joku ympyräsuun setä? Piippaskohan se? Jill Aldenin Uncle Chip oli sitten Tiku. Chippendalet oli muskelimasamiesyhtye joka sai nimensä samannäkösistä huonekaluista.
    ellauri064.html on line 85: Benjamin revolutionised text, image and film criticism. His essay ‘Hashish in Marseilles’ confirms that he experimented with drugs (‘under medical supervision’). He argued that reawakening the long-forgotten dreams of childhood could help recover the betrayed potential of technological progress, in the service of humanity's ‘redemption’ in this life. He collected children's books and recorded attentively the development of his son Stefan from behind the crib bars like his contemporary Piaget, especially sensation, imitation, gestures and spontaneity. This is from his celebrated modernist short pieces collection One Way Street:
    ellauri064.html on line 275: The Völkischer Beobachter (pronounced [ˈfœlkɪʃɐ bəˈʔoːbaχtɐ]; "Völkisch Observer") was the newspaper of the Nazi Party (NSDAP) from 25 December 1920. It first appeared weekly, then daily from 8 February 1923. For twenty-four years it formed part of the official public face of the Nazi Party until its last edition at the end of April 1945.
    ellauri064.html on line 355: Open Dialogue is a complex way of work in the mental health care system introduced by Finnish psychotherapist Jaako Seikkula. It has been developing in Western Lapland during the past 30 years.
    ellauri064.html on line 386: During World War II, the Nazi-minded Grönhagen worked for Finland´s propaganda department and served as its military attaché in Berlin. He was arrested in Oslo 1945 and held in custody for two years. After his release Grönhagen was a businessman and emigrated to Greece in 1964. He first lived in Crete and later in Athens serving as the Master of the Christian Order Ordo Sancti Constantini Magni.
    ellauri064.html on line 524: “The first ten million years were the worst. And the second ten million: they were the worst, too. The third ten million I didn’t enjoy at all. After that, I went into a bit of a decline. ”
    ellauri065.html on line 143: Alueet, jotka Saksa menetti Puolalle ensimmäisen maailmansodan jälkeen, sisälsivät alueita, joissa väestö oli pääasiassa etnisesti etnistä, erityisesti Posenin maakunta ( Suur-Puola ja Kuyavia ), suurin osa Länsi-Preussin maakunnasta ( ks.Puolan käytävä ) ja Itä-Ylä-Sleesia. Muita toisen maailmansodan jälkeen menetettyjä alueita olivat alueet, joissa saksalaiset asuivat melkein yksinomaan ennen vuotta 1945: Itä-Preussit, kauemmas Pommeri, Neumark, Länsi-Ylä-Sleesia ja melkein koko Ala-Sleesia (lukuun ottamatta pientä aluetta itään Hoyerswerdasta ja sen ympäristössä ). Saksan väestö alueilla, jotka eivät olleet paenneet vuonna 1945, pakkolunastettiin ja karkotettiin muodostaen enemmistön Itä-Euroopasta karkotetuista saksalaisista.
    ellauri065.html on line 179: ... että Claudette Colbert, joka voitti vain Parhaan naispääosan Oscar-palkinto varten Tapahtui eräänä yönä (juliste kuvassa), yksityisesti nimeltään elokuva "pahin kuvan maailmassa"? ... että vuoden 1958 Libanonin presidentinvaalit pidettiin aseellisen kapinan aikana, kun kansakuntaan oli sijoitettu 10000 Yhdysvaltain sotilasta ? ... että kiinalainen cosplayer Liyuu on myös anime- muusikko? ... että urospuolinen merihämähäkki Propallene longiceps kuljettaa hedelmöitettyjä munia rannekkeen kaltaisissa massoissa käärittyinä jalkojensa ympärille? ... että MLS Cup 2020 -pelissä on Seattle Sounders FC neljännen kerran viiden vuoden aikana? ... että Elsa-Brita Nordlund, Ruotsin ensimmäinen lastenpsykiatri, kannatti hoidon inhimillistämistä lastensairaaloissa? ... että kirjojen ja televisiosarjojen otsikkona lainataan vuoden 1840 kappaleen " Kein schöner Land in dieser Zeit " rivi, jossa väitetään, ettei kukaan maa ole kauniimpi ja jonka tekijä esittelee Volksliedinä ? ... kun hänet nimitettiin Georgetownin yliopiston presidentiksi, Gerard J. Campbellia kuvattiin " Ivy League Catholic" "uudeksi roduksi "? Arkistoi Aloita uusi artikkeli Nimeä artikkeli Uutisissa COVID-19- pandemia Tauti Virus Sijainnin mukaan Vaikutus Rokotteet Portaali Nana Akufo-Addo vuonna 2020 Nana Akufo-Addo Nana Akufo-Addo (kuvassa) valitaan uudelleen toiseksi toimikaudeksi Ghanan presidentiksi . Moottoriurheilussa Sébastien Ogier ja Julien Ingrassia voittavat MM-rallin, kun taas Hyundai voittaa valmistajien tittelin. Hayabusa2 palauttaa asteroidista162173 Ryugukerätyt näytteet onnistuneestimaahan. Zdravko Krivokapić aloitti tehtävänsä Montenegron pääministerinä ja tuli ensimmäiseksi itsenäiseksi tehtäväksi. Käynnissä : Intian maanviljelijöiden mielenosoitus Tigray-konflikti Viimeaikaiset kuolemat : UA Khader Iman Budhi Santosa Astad Deboo Raymond Hunter Stanley Smith Manglesh Dabral Nimeä artikkeli Tänä päivänä 13. joulukuuta : Haile Selassie Haile Selassie 1862 - Yhdysvaltojen sisällissota : unionin joukkojen alle Ambrose Burnside kärsi vakavia tappioita vakiintuneiden Konfederaation puolustajiin klo fredericksburgin taistelu Virginiassa. 1928 - Amerikkalainen Pariisissa, George Gershwinin jazziin vaikuttava orkesteriteos, kantaesitettiin Carnegie Hallissa New Yorkissa. 1960 - With Haile Selassie (kuvassa), keisari Etiopiassa, pois maasta, neljä salaliittolaiset järjesti vallankaappauksen yritys asentaa kruununprinssi Asfaw Wossen uudeksi keisari. 1982 - Pohjois-Jemenissä iski 6,2 M w: n rekisteröity maanjäristys, jossa kuoli noin 2800 ihmistä. Paul Speratus ( s. 1484) Mary Todd Lincoln ( s. 1818) Dora Marsden ( s. 1960) Lisää vuosipäiviä: 12. joulukuuta 13. joulukuuta 14. joulukuuta Arkistoi Sähkopostilla Luettelo päivistä vuodessa
    ellauri065.html on line 208: A number of parodies of the film have been made. A pornographic parody, directed by Lee Roy Myers and titled The Human Sexipede, was released in September 2010.[107] It starred Tom Byron as Heiter, who joined three people mouth-to-genitals.
    ellauri065.html on line 509: Bukkake: a sex act in which one participant is ejaculated on by two or more other participants. It is often portrayed in pornographic films. Bukkake videos are a relatively prevalent niche in contemporary pornographic films. Originating in Japan in the 1980s, the genre subsequently spread to North America and Europe, and crossed over into gay pornography and Teemu Mäki (dead cat).
    ellauri065.html on line 527: Spurdo Spärde: a poorly drawn character based on the sprite image of Pedobear. It was originally conceived in the Finnish imageboard Kuvalauta to mock the newcomers who often flooded the site with hackneyed reposts, one of the main materials being images of Pedobear. The character is coarsely drawn on purpose and accompanied by captions that are misspelled and stylized in all cap.
    ellauri065.html on line 575:

    Below is the most plausible story we could come up with, to explain how Democrats accomplished the fraud, based on the available evidence. I have come to suspect that multiple conspiracies played out, possibly unaware of each other. But given the evidence we have obtained, the following story seems most plausible.


    ellauri065.html on line 576:

    A relatively small team of perhaps 50 people or fewer was led by a smaller cadre which probably included several lawyers and most definitely included tech experts. The smaller cadre formed some time around the impeachment and carefully recruited point people over the course of the following months. Working like terror cells, they would need to keep point people unaware of who else was in on the conspiracy, to protect plausible deniability as much as possible. They had to have at least one conspirator in the elections offices of key swing states. It wouldn’t need to be a high-profile elected official, and would no doubt be better if it were some nameless person that few people noticed or would suspect.


    ellauri065.html on line 577:

    The fact that I am writing about this shows that this was not the perfect crime. The conspiracy was exposed though the conspirators have yet to be caught. My hunch is that it was a small group of colluders who tried to dupe many innocent people. A small size would explain why there are so many eyewitnesses who reported the signs of conspiracy, but we have yet to hear from a whistleblower who admits to being part of the plot. Being the middle or rear part of a human centipede makes whistling kinda hard.
    ellauri065.html on line 625: Entäs sitten tää: En sanoisi että luonnon kohtaloa ratkaistaan vaaleissa. Kv rahoitusmarkkinat antaa ohjaussignaalin minkä mukaan poliitikot ja kaivospomot luovii. Kun talous syöxyy ja yrityxet kaatuu, vaikutus luontoon on vähintään 2-suuntainen. Liiketaloudellisen toimeliaisuuden hyytyessä (kuten koronan aikana) luonto saa huilia. Viimeistään silloin kun ihmislaji ryytyy kokonaan. Mutta sitä ennen matkassa on muutama proverbiaalinen mutka. Ennen lopullista pesäntekoa teollisuusjohtajat ehtivät tehdä monta tuhoisaa hätäratkaisua. Hiipuvien luonnonvarojen tilalle on pakko saada korvikesubuja. Laitoxista rakennetaan halpoja ja vaarallisia. Talvivaara ja Olkiluoto on esimerkkejä. Hyvinä aikoina narkkari pitää huolta neuloista. Kun ainetta ei saada valtaa paniikki, ryöstely, järjetön ja kohteeton väkivalta. Tästä on jo esimerkkejä vaikka millä mitalla. Eikä Juotikas edes vielä mainize ilmastokatastrofia.
    ellauri066.html on line 283:

    yellow">
    ellauri066.html on line 366: To shorten a long story of searching for sources: the essay ‘The Control System of the V-2’ by Otto Müller includes an ‘equation for control in yaw’ (Müller, 1957: 90), and in exactly the same notation as Gravity’s Rainbow’s equation ‘describ[ing] motion under the aspect of yaw control’ (GR 284). We can conclude that this is the searched-for template for Pynchon’s Second Equation (see appendix, Figure 8). Müller’s paper is part of History of German Guided Missiles Development by Theodor Benecke and August W. Quick, published in 1957, which is based on the First Guided Missiles Seminar in Munich that took place a year earlier. The seminar was organised by the American Advisory Group for Aeronautical Research and Development (AGARD) to collect information about the V-2 from German scientists and engineers to use in American research on guided missiles. Pynchon might have had access to this book and further material on rocketry in the Boeing Company for which he worked as a technical writer in the early 1960s.
    ellauri066.html on line 400: – He tekivät Judyn elämästä kuvauspaikalla sietämätöntä. He laittoivat käsiään hänen mekkonsa alle. Miehet olivat 40-vuotiaita ja vanhempia, mutta kikkelit niillä oli liian lyhyet, Luft kirjoittaa. Eivät ylettyneet.
    ellauri066.html on line 458: Pynchon Press has been serving Western Massachusetts Businesses with Commercial Printing Services for over 50 years. We have a long standing history as a printer that you can trust in, with deep ties to the community. Print is in our blood. We’ve recently relocated our print shop from our original location in Springfield, MA to a new building on Grattan Street in Chicopee, MA. This new location gives us better capacity to handle your print jobs. We have made considerable investment into digital printing presses which allows us to produce beautifully printed full color print jobs with incredible turn around. Smaller run print jobs for booklets and flyers can be ordered. The days of having to order 1000 of something you only need 100 of are over. If you can design it, we can print it. We’ve been a trusted printer for customers throughout Western Massachusetts and Northern CT. Our quality printing services speak for themselves. When you are looking for a printer for your next print job, contact Pynchon Press, the local printer you can trust your printing to.
    ellauri066.html on line 494: Schadenfreude is a complex emotion where, rather than feeling sympathy, one takes pleasure from watching someone's misfortune. This emotion is displayed more in children than adults. However, adults also experience schadenfreude, although generally they conceal it. [original research?]
    ellauri066.html on line 711: Gatherings of more than 50 were banned but Swedish schools for under-16s, restaurants, bars, gyms and hairdressers all stayed open. Tegnell said shutting borders was “ridiculous” and that there is “very little evidence” masks are effective.
    ellauri066.html on line 719: Restaurants, bars, gyms and hairdressers all stayed open in Sweden
    ellauri066.html on line 721: Restaurants, bars, gyms and hairdressers all stayed open in Sweden
    ellauri066.html on line 906: Tegnell told me that the death toll weighed on him. “I think this was a big frustration and feeling of failure for us,” he said. But he remained steadfast, often saying, in interviews, “Judge me in a year.”
    ellauri066.html on line 912: Nanaz Fassih, another hairy arms, a fifty-two-year-old pediatric nurse, was skeptical of the Swedish response from the beginning; she tried to wear a mask to work in hospitals and clinics, but was told that this was not allowed. (Today, masks are more commonly allowed in Swedish hospitals.)
    ellauri066.html on line 936: Almost exactly a year from the pandemic’s start, Tegnell said that he believes people should still hold off on judging his policies. “The pandemic is not over,” he said. “Any kind of final review on what’s been good and what’s been bad still awaits us.” Thats what the guys in Nuremberg said: hold your horses, this was supposed to be a 1000-year Reich. Don't blame us on what were only meant as initial experiments.
    ellauri066.html on line 948: BLUEWIN; . . . you should know better . . . its way to early to make any kind of conclusions . . . maybe by this time next year we will have a good idea of the winners and losers . . . until then you are just stoking the fire . . .
    ellauri067.html on line 40: Pintti voisi tarkoittaa myös pientä olutta. < lat. pincta 'maalattu', kaljatuoppiin maalattu kaatoraja. Pinto on pieni kirjava hevonen. Sen jalassa on harvoin pinteli, mutta selässä sitä useammin sotamaalattu inkkari. Ayee-ooh. Anch´io son pittore. Mäkin voisin olla aika kexeliäs kirjailija. Sanoja piisaa kuin Yli-Juanikkaalla ja assosiaatiot laukkaavat. Se voi olla alzheimer-oirekin. Odotan jännityxellä mitä Pintti meinaa tässä niteessä.
    ellauri067.html on line 159: "I aim for the Stars" said von Braun played by Udo Jürgens, with the subtitle "But Sometimes I Hit London'. Dr Strangelove is based on von Braun.
    ellauri067.html on line 177: 1955-57 Two year stint in Navy provides background for V, etc.
    ellauri067.html on line 186: 1967-72 Silent years, California and Mexico, lots of drugs (presumably)
    ellauri067.html on line 285: Novi Pazar "uusi basaari" on kaupunki Serbian historiallisen Sandžakin alueella. Kaupunki on perustettu vuonna 1460 ja sen asukasluku oli vuonna 2011 100 410. Sandžak on osmannien maakunta (myöhemmin vilayet).
    ellauri067.html on line 292: 1800-luvulle tultessa Novi Pazar oli jo varsin vähämerkityksellinen kaupunki. Toisaalta kaupunkiin tuli etenkin Serbiasta ja Montenegrosta pakenevia muslimeja. Vuonna 1912 Serbian ja Montenegron joukot valtasivat koko Sandžakin, minkä jälkeen monet muslimit muuttivat Osmanien valtakunnan vielä jäljellä oleviin osiin. Toisen maailmansodan aikana kaupunki kuului lyhyen aikaa vuosina 1941–1944 Italian alaiseen niin sanottuun Suur-Albaniaan. Sodan jälkeen kaupungista tuli taas osa Jugoslaviaa.
    ellauri067.html on line 309: Tässä kohen puhutaan Gedaran sioista, joihin Jesse ajoi eräät henget ja siat säntäs järveen kuin sopulit. Näistä oli puhetta myös Tatu Vaaskiven jessenovellissa. Tätä jälkimmäistä preteritiä esiintyy niteessä siellä sekä täällä. Shlotropin esi-isä suunnitteli uskontoa ohitetuille. Se on kyllä harhaoppia, Bostonin eliitti repi perseensä, eikä Course Herokaan oikein pidä siitä. Course hererojen sana mba-kayere meinaa mulle on tehty ohari. Niinpä hyvinkin.
    ellauri067.html on line 325: Pynchonin poikasena radiosta seuraaman Fred Allen Shown naispääosahenkilö oli Frankin puoliso, Jasun Martha Nussbaumin kaima. Other dramatis personae included average-American John Doe (played by John Brown), Mrs. Nussbaum (Minerva Pious), pompous poet Falstaff Openshaw (Alan Reed), Titus Moody (Parker Fennelly), and boisterous southern senator Beauregard Claghorn (announcer Kenny Delmar). Texaco ended its sponsorship of the program in 1944.
    ellauri067.html on line 336: Some prominent guest stars on Allen´s program over the years included Frank Sinatra, Orson Welles, Roy Rogers, Bela Lugosi, Ed Gardner, Norman Corwin and Edgar Bergen & Charlie McCarthy. Allen would often ad-lib material and since most radio programs in those days were broadcast live, with the exception of the occasional delay here and there, the audience would sometimes hear a bleep in place of a word or phrase. Siitäkin on tullut mediaklishee.
    ellauri067.html on line 338: During the final years of his radio show, Fred Allen suffered two declines. One decline in his program's ratings and an unfortunate decline in his health.
    ellauri067.html on line 379: Höh, aika tylsä makarooni. Eikö löytynyt mitään hauskempaa? Juonikin vaikuttaa ikävystyttävältä: The poem tells of a prank played on an apothecary by a band of university students called macaronea secta. It is written in a mix of Latin and Italian, in hexameter verse (as would befit a classical Latin poem). It reads as a satire of the bogus humanism and pedantism of doctors, scholars and bureaucrats of the time. Merkuriuxelle pyhitetty valo on keskiviikko. Zobia on toskanalainen murresana torstaille (Giovedi).
    ellauri067.html on line 400: Clausewitz, Carl von (1780-1831) 182; Prussian general whose writings, especially On War, advocated the concept of total war, in which all the enemy´s territory, property, and citizens are attacked. Clausewitz oli megaluokan paskiaisia. Siihen liittyen L-5227 164; bomb developed by Spottbilligfilm AG to blind "whole populations".
    ellauri067.html on line 418: Used as the title of the political manifesto of George Lincoln Rockwell and the American Nazi Party. Is the motto on the coat of arms of the city of Plzeň, Czech Republic. The phrase is in the coat of arms of the city of Birkirkara, the largest city on the island of Malta, and the city of Bayamon, Puerto Rico. Is the motto on the Coat of Arms of O´Donnell. Appears in one of the paintings of the Polish artist Zdzisław Beksiński. It has been used in some versions of logo for the brand of cigarettes, Pall Mall. Appears on one of the stickers on the guitar of Alvin Lee, Ten Years After´s frontman, the same guitar he played at The ´69 Woodstock Festival.
    ellauri067.html on line 448: Imipolex, in addition to being a pun (imitation pole: Last year an imitation pole that claimed to have a load rating of 300kgs snapped mid-performance. The pole dancer was severely injured and may never walk again because she fractured her pelvis & spine), "obviously" stems from a combination of "imido" with a near-reversal of "explode".
    ellauri067.html on line 458: Neil deGrasse Tyson is speaking up on Christmas 2020, in order to correct a little scientific inaccuracy that Santa Claus has been perpetuating for years. We all know the story of Santa and his reindeer (Dasher, Dancer, Prancer, Vixen, Comet, Cupid, Donner, Blitzen, and of course Rudolph), but [...]
    ellauri067.html on line 463: tannäuserism: In a note to 3.2 of Gravity´s Rainbow, Heseburger explains Pynchon´s use of the word "Tannhäuserism" as follows: The tragic error of Tannhäuser — for example, in Richard Wagner´s operatic version of the myth — was to postpone his quest in order to linger for one year of sensual, "mindless pleasure" with the goddess Venus under her mountain called Venusberg. Vai onko se Brocken, Jaakon ja Jöötin mainizema Kyöpelinvuori Harzissa? On 11 April, American forces liberated the camps at Buchenwald, near Weimar, and the V2 rocket slave-labour camp at Nordhausen in the Harz Mountains. Ryssät eivät päässeet lähellekään. Jenkeillä oli vitun kiire kahmimaan izelleen ne raketit. Ja siitä vasta iso piru pääsi merrasta.
    ellauri067.html on line 500: ...The first piece to provide substantial information about Pynchon´s personal life was a biographical account written by a former Cornell University friend, Jules Siegel, and published in Playboy magazine. In his article, Siegel reveals that Pynchon had a complex about his teeth and underwent extensive and painful reconstructive surgery, was nicknamed "Tom" at Cornell and attended Mass diligently, acted as best man at Siegel's wedding, and that he later also had an affair with Siegel's wife. Siegel recalls Pynchon saying he did attend some of Vladimir Nabokov's lectures at Cornell but that he could hardly make out what Nabokov was saying because of his thick Russian accent. Siegel also records Pynchon's commenting: "Every weirdo in the world is on my wavelength", an observation borne out by the crankiness and zealotry that has attached itself to his name and work in subsequent years.
    ellauri067.html on line 530: In the Mid. Dutch poem of Lantslot ende Sandrii), a knight says to his maiden : ic heb u liever dan en everswin, al waert van finen goude gkewrackt, I hold you dearer than a boar- swine, all were it of fine gold y-wrought ; were they still in the habit of making gold jewels in the shape of boars ? at least the remembrance of such a thing was not yet lost.
    ellauri067.html on line 566: "his batman, a Corporal Wayne" [Batman's "real-world" identity was Bruce Wayne], 11; comicbook fangs, 21; Sir Denis Nayland Smith, 83, 277-78, 592, 631, 751; Hop Harrigan, Tank Tinker, 117; "old-fashioned comical room" 122; Dumbo, 135; Donald Duck, 146; Hansel and Gretel, 174; "comic-book colors" 186; "paint FUCK YOU in a balloon coming out the mouth of one of those little pink shepherdesses" 203; Plasticman, 206, 314, 331, 752; "he passes into a bickering of canary-yellow Borsalini, corksoled comicbook shoes with enormous round toes" 254; "this cartoon here" 263; "a Sunday-funnies dawn" 295; Rocketman, 366, 376, 379, 436, 512, 596; Captain Midnight Show, 375; Green Hornet, 376; "the only beings who can violate their space are safely caught and paralyzed in comic books" 379; Mickey Mouse, 392; Sundial, 472; Wilhelm Busch (cartoonist), 501; Porky Pig, 545; "comic technocracy" 579; "comic-book cats dogs and mice" 586; Bugs Bunny, 592; "comicbook-orange chunks of island" 634; Porky Pig tattoo, 638 (on Osbie Feel's stomach), 711 (on André Omnopon´s stomach); Robin Hood, 664; Mary Marvel, Wonder Woman, 676; comic-book Kamikazes, 680; "down comes a comic-book guillotine on one black & white politician" 687; Crime Does Not Pay, 709; Superman, 751; The Lone Ranger & Tonto, 752; Philip Marlowe, 752; Submariner, 752; Jimmy Olson, 752; See also Byron the Bulb; Floundering Four; Komical Kamikazes; Plasticman; film/cinema references.
    ellauri067.html on line 577: Prokosch was born in Madison, Wisconsin, into an intellectual family that travelled widely. His father, Eduard Prokosch, an Austrian immigrant, was Professor of Germanic Languages at Yale University at the time of his death in 1938. Prokosch was graduated from Haverford College in 1925 and received a Ph.D. in English in 1932 from Yale University. In his youth, he was an accomplished squash racquets player; he represented the Yale Club in the 1937 New York State squash racquets championship. He won the squash-racquets championship of France in 1938.
    ellauri067.html on line 581: From early on, Prokosch sought to surround himself with a veil of mystification and cast his life into a hopeless riddle. Approaching his sixtieth year, he boasted that no person had succeeded in knowing him as an integral personality: "I have spent my life alone, utterly alone, and no biography of me could ever more than scratch the surface. All the facts in Who’s Who, or whatever, are so utterly meaningless. My real life (if I ever dared to write it!) has transpired in darkness, secrecy, fleeting contacts and incommunicable delights, any number of strange picaresque escapades and even crimes, and I don't think that any of my 'friends' have even the faintest notion of what I'm really like or have any idea of what my life has really consisted of. . . .With all the surface 'respectability,' diplomatic and scholarly and illustrious social contacts, my real life has been subversive, anarchic, vicious, lonely, and capricious."
    ellauri067.html on line 589: Kukaan ei ole sanonut että päiville pitäisi niiden päättyessä koettaa keplotella jonkinlainen järjellinen selitys. Siispä ezitäänpä jotain oikein järjetöntä. Sanoja sanoja rakastava puritaani.
    ellauri067.html on line 606: Come Josephine In My Flying Machine is a popular song with music by Fred Fisher and lyrics by Alfred Bryan. First published in 1910, the composition was originally recorded by Blanche Ring and was, for a time, her signature song. Ada Jones and Billy Murray recorded a duet in November 1910, which was released the following year. There have been many subsequent recordings of the pop standard.
    ellauri069.html on line 24:

    yellow">Fountain

    Lähdekritiikkiä


    ellauri069.html on line 76: A couple of years after Barthelme took the apartment, the writer Kirkpatrick Sale and his wife, Faith, an editor, moved in downstairs and became close friends. They had been students at Cornell with Pynchon, and Pynchon would write part of “Gravity’s Rainbow” (1973) in their apartment.
    ellauri069.html on line 116: He complained that book publishers “publish an enormous number of things which look like books, sort of feel like books, but in reality are buckets of peanut butter with a layer of whipped cream on top.”
    ellauri069.html on line 127: Sidney Joseph "S.J." Perelman (February 1, 1904 – October 17, 1979) was an American humorist and screenwriter. He is best known for his humorous short pieces written over many years for The New Yorker. He also wrote for several other magazines, including Jude, as well as books, scripts, and screenplays. Perelman received an Academy Award for screenwriting in 1956.
    ellauri069.html on line 139: Balaclava helmet: A balaclava, also known as a balaclava helmet or Bally or ski mask, is a form of cloth headgear designed to expose only part of the face, usually the eyes and mouth. Depending on style and how it is worn, only the eyes, mouth and nose, or just the front of the face are unprotected. Versions with a full face opening may be rolled into a hat to cover the crown of the head or folded down as a collar around the neck. Sellanen ällöttävä roistomyssy.
    ellauri069.html on line 168: Not the Martyr of Canterbury but a town in Massachusetts nearly destroyed by a flood in 1927. This is another reference from The Berkshire Hills.
    ellauri069.html on line 170: Dr. Mabuse is a fictional character created by Norbert Jacques in the German novel Dr. Mabuse, der Spieler ("Dr. Mabuse, the Gambler"), and made famous by three films about the character directed by Fritz Lang: Dr. Mabuse the Gambler (silent, 1922) The Testament of Dr. Mabuse (1933) and the much later The Thousand Eyes of Dr. Mabuse (1960). Dr. Mabuse is a master of disguise and telepathic hypnosis known to employ body transference, most often through demonic possession, but sometimes utilizing object technologies such as television or phonograph machines, to build a "society of crime". One "Dr. Mabuse" may be defeated and sent to an asylum, jail or the grave, only for a new "Dr. Mabuse" to later appear, as depicted in The Testament of Dr. Mabuse. The replacement invariably has the same methods, the same powers of hypnosis and the same criminal genius. There are even suggestions in some installments of the series that the "real" Mabuse is some sort of spirit that possesses a series of hosts.
    ellauri069.html on line 209: "Imagine a person, tall, lean and feline, high-shouldered, with a brow like Shakespeare and a face like Satan, ... one giant intellect, with all the resources of science past and present ... Imagine that awful being, and you have a mental picture of Dr. Fu-Manchu, the yellow peril incarnate in one man." –The Insidious Dr. Fu Manchu
    ellauri069.html on line 227: 624; German: alert, devout, happy, free ("Frölich" should be "Fröhlich"); From Jan Bayer: the motto of the BDM (Bund Deutscher Mädels, or, as my grandmother used to say 'Bube drück mich'(hug me boy))
    ellauri069.html on line 257: German novelist Hermann Hesse (1877-1962), experiencing a crisis of the spirit, had psychoanalysis with J.B. Lang, a disciple of Carl Gustav Jung. His novel Demian (1919), which shows the influence of analysis, is about the character Demian (a classic "seeker") and his quest for self-awareness. Published during the troubled Weimar years, the novel was very popular and had a pervasive influence on the Germans. It also made Hesse famous.
    ellauri069.html on line 397: —Greta Erdmann, pornographic film actress and mother/groomer of Bianca, a child-victim who becomes the novel’s symbol of how fascism has corrupted and destroyed innocence - ah fuck, I mean the Shirley Temple lookalike whom Pynchon/Slothrup fucks completely delirious.
    ellauri069.html on line 577: The storyline revolved around a 35-year-old dressmaker who fascinates men as she works her way up to become the chief Hollywood costumer designer. Virginia Clark did the role for 11 years, and Julie Stevens portrayed Helen for 16 years. Piki olis tykännyt.
    ellauri069.html on line 582: A year later, their daughter, Laurel, is born. To Stella's great surprise, she discovers she has a strong maternal instinct. Even when she is out dancing and partying, she cannot help but think about her child. As Laurel grows up, Stella's ambition and scheming to rise socially is redirected to her daughter.
    ellauri069.html on line 642: During the line-crossing ceremony, the Pollywogs undergo a number of increasingly embarrassing ordeals (wearing clothing inside out and backwards; crawling on hands and knees on nonskid-coated decks; being swatted with short lengths of firehose; being locked in stocks and pillories and pelted with mushy fruit; being locked in a water coffin of salt-water and bright green sea dye (fluorescent sodium salt); crawling through chutes or large tubs of rotting garbage; kissing the Royal Babys belly coated with axle grease, hair chopping, etc.), largely for the entertainment of the Shellbacks.
    ellauri069.html on line 680:
    Cracker Jack: 120-year-old junk food gets new flavors, ‘enhanced’ prizes

    ellauri069.html on line 682: Cracker Jack, the 120-year-old snack regarded by some historians as the first junk food, is introducing two new flavors. Not only will there be the sweet, peanut-and-molasses original, but also a Kettle Corn and a Butter Toffee flavor.
    ellauri069.html on line 737: Follow the yellow brick road on tyhmä laulu typerästä elokuvasta Wizard of Oz. Joka on tehty yhtä typerästä lastenkirjasta Ihmemaa Oz. Seuraa kullanväristä tietä, varo punaista!
    ellauri069.html on line 754: Noita menestyxekkäästi petkuttaa Dorothyn ulos toisesta hopeakengästä. Suuttuneena, D. heittää sangon vettä noidan päälle ja on shokeerattu nähdessään noidan sulavan. Kullit iloizevat päästessään ulos sepaluxesta ja auttavat täyttämään Varixenpelättimen oljilla ja suoristamaan Tölkki Puumiehen pellit. Ne pyytävät Tölkki Puumiestä rupeamaan niiden päälliköxi, mihin hän suostuu autettuaan Dorothya palaamaan Kansaxeen. Dorothy löytää noidan Kultaisen Lippixen ja kuzuu Siipiapinat kantamaan hänet ja hänen ystävänsä takaisin Smaragdistadiin. Siipiapinoiden kuningas kertoo kuinka hän ja hänen yhtyeensä on sidottu taialla lippixeen lumoojatar Gayeletten toimesta Pohjoisesta, ja että Dorothy voi käyttää sitä niiden kuzumiseen 2 lisäkertaa.
    ellauri069.html on line 758: Dorothy kuzuu Siipiapinat ja käskee niitä kantamaan hänet ja Toton kotiin, mutta ne selittävät etteivät ne pysty ylittämään Ozia ympäröivää autiomaata. Wihreäwiixiset Sotilaat informoivat Dorothya että Glinda, Etelän hyvä noita voi kyetä auttamaan heitä palaamaan kotiin, joten matkustajat lähtevät matkoihinsa kuikkimaan Glindan linnaa Nelitahokkaiden maassa. Matkalla Leijona tappaa jättihämähäkin joka terrorisoi eläimiä eräässä mezässä. Ne pyytävät häntä rupeamaan kuninkaaxeen, minkä hän suostuu tekemään autettuaan Dorothya palaamaan Kansaxeen. Dorothy kuzuu Siipiapinat 3. kerran lennättämään heidät mäen yli Glindan linnaan. Glinda tervehtii heitä ja paljastaa, että Dorothyn hopeakengät voivat viedä hänet minne hän haluaa mennä. (Eli siipiapinat oli ihan tyhjän pantteja. Hemmetti.) Hän syleilee ystäviään, jotka kaikki palautetaan omiin kuningaskuntiinsa Glindan kolmella Kultaisen Lippalakin käytöllä: Varixenpelätin Smaragdistadiin, Tölkki Puumies Kullimaahan, ja leijona mezään; minkä jälkeen lippis annetaan Siipiapinoiden kuninkaalle, vapauttaen hänet ja hänen yhtyeensä. Dorothy ottaaa Toton käsivarsilleen, kalauttaa kantapäänsä yhteen 3x, ja toivoo palaavansa kotiin (siis Kansaxeen). Välittömästi, hän alkaa pyöriä ilman läpitte ja rullata Kansaxen preerian ruoholla, maalaistaloon asti, vaikka hopeakengät putoavat hänen jaloistaan matkalla ja hukkuvat Tappavaan Autiomaahan. Hän juoxee täti Emin luo, sanoen "Olen niin iloinen että oon taas kotona (Kansaxessa)."
    ellauri069.html on line 766: Hugh Rockoff suggested in 1990 that the novel was an allegory about the demonetization of silver in 1873, whereby “the cyclone that carried Dorothy to the Land of Oz represents the economic and political upheaval, the yellow brick road stands for the gold standard, and the silver shoes Dorothy inherits from the Wicked Witch of the East represents the pro-silver movement. When Dorothy is taken to the Emerald Palace before her audience with the Wizard she is led through seven passages and up three flights of stairs, a subtle reference to the Coinage Act of 1873 which started the class conflict in America.”
    ellauri069.html on line 783: Other putative allegorical devices of the book include the Wicked Witch of the West as a figure for the actual American West; if this is true, then the Winged Monkeys could represent another western danger: Indigenous peoples of the Americas. The King of the Winged Monkeys tells Dorothy, "Once we were a free people, living happily in the great forest, flying from tree to tree, eating nuts and fruit and doing just as we pleased without calling anybody master. ... This was many years ago, long before Oz came out of the clouds to rule over this land."
    ellauri069.html on line 794: Tälläsiä sikoja jenkit on. Ja nyt niitä pörrää kongressitalon aulassa kuin pesättömiä ampiaisia syxyllä. Oven lasi on lyöty rikki ja poliisit sojottaa salista aulaan käsipyssyllä. Aulassa leijailee jotain savua. Persuämmää on ammuttu. Punaisiin lippixiin pukeutuneet ääliöt mölisevät ja säntäilevät. Kuuluu laukauxia. Amerikan demokratia osoittaa voimansa. Follow the yellow brick road. Koko konkkaronkka olis paras kuohita.
    ellauri070.html on line 24:

    yellow">Demokratian painajainen

    Jyrähtelyä


    ellauri070.html on line 40: Heleijaa! nyt on päästy Nipsuttimen kirjan VIIMEISEEN osaan nimeltä Vastavoima. May the Force be with you, but never underestimate the power of the Dark Side of the Force, let alone the power of the Eye of Sarnath. Soon it will be mine! BUAHAHAA! (h.k.)
    ellauri070.html on line 190: wo es zappelt von Ziel und sich blechern benimmt, missä maalit sätkyen paukkuvat peltisesti,
    ellauri070.html on line 346: Katkero Mutiainen on "lipevä etelämaalainen". Cary Grantkin oli homo. Katje näyttää yhä 16-vuotiaalta kuin Ivana Trump. Oisko se 61. Eiku 71. Sileä platinatukka huppuna tekoripset räpsyen kuin hölmö pissis giffikuvassa. "Eli hän tarvizee ruoskaa", kirjoittaa Weissman Haagista. "Hän tarjoo pyllyä kuin me vain impotenssin pelosta: pystyykö se vielä, vai eikö se..." Pystyä < pistyä, upota kuin peizi poihin. (Täst mie piän sanoo Nipsu, työntää kynää silminnähtävästi jäykistyen.)
    ellauri070.html on line 365: Hän oli yksi Brasilian ensimmäisistä samban supertähdistä ja näytteli Brasiliassa myös kuudessa elokuvassa. Kymmenen vuoden kuluttua hänet kutsuttiin esiintymään Broadwaylle New Yorkiin. Miranda saapui yhtyeensä (Bando da Lua) kanssa Yhdysvaltoihin 1939, ja hänestä tuli tähti 1940-luvun alussa. Nyttemmin Lua tunnetaan tekoälyn ohjelmointikielenä. Yhdysvaltojen hallitus vetisti hänen uraansa osana presidentti Franklin Rooseveltin ”Hyvä naapuri” -politiikkaa. Hän oli maan parhaiten ansaitseva taiteilija usean vuoden ajan 1940-luvulla, ja vuonna 1945 hän oli parhaiten ansaitseva nainen Yhdysvalloissa.
    ellauri070.html on line 456: William Bendix (January 14, 1906 – December 14, 1964) was an American film, radio, and television actor, who typically played rough, blue-collar characters. Se oli rebublikaani, olis varmaan kannattanut Trumppia. Malcolm X tuskin kiillotti Shinolalla Jack FGK:n kenkiä, Nipsusta puhumattakaan. Kalpeanaamat pahexuu Malcolmia koska se kääntyi muslimix. Jotain hemmetin perverssiä Nipsussa on, kun se koko ajan heiluu neekerisodomian ja teinityttöpedofilian välillä.
    ellauri071.html on line 44: Tucker Carlson Justifies Kenosha Shootings: Vigilante Kid Did What ‘No One Else Would’ AND THERE IT IS “How shocked are we that 17-year-olds with rifles decided they had to maintain order when no one else would?” Carlson asked his viewers on Wednesday night. “Our leaders want us to believe this is a racial conflict, they’re always telling us it is. They’re lying. It is not a racial conflict,” Carlson grumbled, adding: “This is not a race war. This is a class war.” Updated Aug. 27, 2020 5:20AM ET / Published Aug. 26, 2020 9:11PM ET
    ellauri071.html on line 100: He reappeared in Peter Pan the following year, and in 1915 he was again in Where the Rainbow Ends.
    ellauri071.html on line 105: In 1924, Coward achieved his first great critical and financial success as a playwright with The Vortex. The story is about a nymphomaniac socialite and her cocaine-addicted son (played by Coward). Some saw the drugs as a mask for homosexuality; Kenneth Tynan later described it as "a jeremiad against narcotics with dialogue that sounds today not so much stilted as high-heeled".
    ellauri071.html on line 121: Another of Coward's wartime projects, as writer, star, composer and co-director (alongside David Lean), was the naval film drama In Which We Serve. The film was popular on both sides of the Atlantic, and he was awarded an honorary certificate of merit at the 1943 Academy Awards ceremony. Coward played a naval captain, basing the character on his friend Lord Louis Mountbatten.
    ellauri071.html on line 123: Coward's most enduring work from the war years was the hugely successful black comedy Blithe Spirit (1941), about a novelist who researches the occult and hires a medium. A séance brings back the ghost of his first wife, causing havoc for the novelist and his second wife.
    ellauri071.html on line 154: Joopa joo, tollasta runebergilaista sota ja bylsintä-teemaa, joka on nuorta miestä aina kuumentanut. Luin sivun, luin 2, vereni tunsin kuumemmax. Ei toi mulla enää nappaa, jos on koskaan niin kauhiasti napannutkaan. Bylsintäpuoli kyllä, muttei toi urheuspuoli niinkään. Vaik eihän toi vänrikki Nappula nyt tässä kovin näyttävästi sotinut, yöpaita päällä kazoisnelisti suoraan vihollisten joukkoon epähuomiossa. Romanttisempi veljyeni Jönsy on suomentanut sen etevästi, mutta en nyt kehtoo kokonaan sitä tähän plagioida, muutakuin pari mehukasta kohtaa. Toi ranskalainen on sit varmaan transu nainen, tai sitten ei, kukas näistä homopettereistä selvän ottaa...
    ellauri071.html on line 224: Junior G-Men was part of the larger "war on crime" campaign being waged through the mass media, which included movies, comic books and strips, radio programs, and pulp books, all of which was encouraged by the FBI and especially its director, J. Edgar Hoover prior to World War II. Most of these featured adult "G-Men" even when marketed to children. The difference with the Junior G-Men was that it was designed to give boys a sense of participating in the exciting adult world of crime-fighting. That said, aside from the original radio program, a book, Junior 'G' Men's Own Mystery Stories (by Gilbert A. Lathrop, Edward O'Connor, and Norton Hughs Jonathan) was published in 1936 and a big little book by Morrell Massey and Henry E. Vallely the following year. Eventually they also appeared on the big screen.
    ellauri071.html on line 230: Aplectrum hyemale is a species of orchid native to the eastern United States and Canada, from Oklahoma east to the Carolinas and north to Minnesota, Ontario, Quebec and Massachusetts. It is particularly common in the Appalachian Mountains, the Great Lakes Region, and the Ohio and Upper Mississippi Valleys. Isolated populations are also reported from Arizona.
    ellauri071.html on line 231: Aplectrum hyemale is the sole species of the genus Aplectrum. The generic name comes from Greek and signifies "spurless". The species is commonly referred to as Adam and Eve or putty root; the latter refers to the mucilaginous fluid which can be removed from the tubers when they are crushed.
    ellauri071.html on line 494: Für den heute am weitesten verbreiteten deutschen Trivialnamen Waldmeister gibt es verschiedene Erklärungsvorschläge: Er wird gedeutet als ‚Meister des Waldes‘, also die erste und wichtigste Pflanze im Wald, oder auch im Sinne einer „im Walde wachsenden Pflanze mit meisterhafter Heilkraft“. Inhaltlich ähnlich sind die Trivialnamen im Serbischen, wo der Waldmeister prvenac (‚Erstling‘, ‚Anführer‘) genannt wird, im Französischen, wo man ihn reine des bois (‚Königin der Wälder‘) nennt, und in der lateinischen Bezeichnung matrisylva (‚Waldmutter‘). Eine andere Vermutung ist, dass Waldmeister aus der Bezeichnung Wald-Mösch(en) oder -Meiserich entstellt sei, die entweder auf eine niederdeutsche Ableitung zu mos (‚Moos‘) oder wie das französische (petit) muguet auf spätlateinisch muscus (‚Moschus‘) zurückgeführt wird, oder aus dem Namen Waldmeier; Meier ist dabei die deutschsprachige Bezeichnung für die Gattung Asperula, der der Waldmeister früher als Asperula odorata zugeordnet wurde. Der Begriff Meier wird wiederum als Variante der Pflanzenbezeichnung Miere verstanden, die seit dem 15. Jahrhundert als myer bekannt ist. Außerdem wird der Name auch über eine hypothetische mittellateinische Form herba Walteri Magistri, die als Waltermeister ins Deutsche übertragen worden sein soll, mit den im 13. Jahrhundert belegten Bezeichnungen mittelenglisch herbe wauter und mittellateinisch herba Walteri in Verbindung gebracht.
    ellauri071.html on line 565: The Qliphoth of Hod, similarly is founded on the idea of a radiating object: our eyes are blinded and cannot look behind the radiating surface. Unauthentic brilliance can be understood as the beginning of illusion and deceit. In the realm of the mind the shadow of Hod therefore is represented by the lie, artfulness or beguilement. At the same time the demon of Hod correlates to the ideas of fickleness, hesitation and lack of determination - the negative fluctuations of our mind. The Qliphoth of Hod is called ‘Samael‘ which can be translated as ‘The Deceitful Ones‘ (german, ‘Die Täuscher’, kr. diabolos) or ‘Poison of God’ (german, ‘Das Gift Gottes’).
    ellauri072.html on line 33:

    yellow;background:#2b1e0d;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">David Foster Wallace


    ellauri072.html on line 62: Boye Karin 40
    ellauri072.html on line 145: No More Games. No More Bombs. No More Walking. No More Fun. No More Swimming. 67. That is 17 years past 50. 17 more than I needed or wanted. Boring. I am always bitchy. No Fun – for anybody. 67. You are getting Greedy. Act your old age. Relax – This won’t hurt.
    ellauri072.html on line 149: Ikäviä miehiä oli myös Maudilla ja Sylvillä. Virginia oli kai ize ikävä. Hyviä kirjailijoita yhtä kaikki. Sylvi pani pään kaasu-uuniin, Ginny hyppäs jorpakkoon, ja Maud otti unilääkettä. Karin Boye oli lepakko. Sen lepakkosiippa teki seppukun heti perään. Ei ollut kivaa.
    ellauri072.html on line 213: Leaving Dante and Virgil, the sinners vanish so quickly that "Un amen" could not be uttered in so little time. That Dante should turn to the language of prayer for his comparison, notwithstanding the proverbial and popular origins of the phrase, probably also reflects on the esteem that he felt and continues to feel for the three Florentines. It is a rare thing in the Inferno to find a moment in which the pilgrim, the poet, and the guide are all in absolute agreement, and certainly with respect to the human worth of sinners.
    ellauri072.html on line 379: Mikko Myrskylä on syntynyt 1978, se on siis 42-vuotias. Onko sillä perettä? Ehkä ei, kunse viuhuu ympäriinsä maailmalla kertomassa, kunka onnellista on lapsettoman elämä. Onkohan se ize homofiili? Ei-binaarinen henkilö? Sukupuoleton liukulukuko? Parta sillä ainakin on siivoton. Jotain inselimäistä sen pärstästä on lukevinaan. Toisaalta yhdessä valokuvassa näkyy jonkun muun aika paxut sääret sohvalla villasukissa, ja yxi lausunto antaa sivumennen ymmärtää että se on ize nuori eli vanha isukki. Anaaliaukon näköiset nörtit usein pääsee naimisiin vasta keräilyerissä.
    ellauri072.html on line 407: Vanhemmiten vanhemmuus on onnellisempaa: Keski-iän lähestyessä lasten ja onnellisuuden suhde muuttuu. 30–39-vuotiaat 1–3 lapsen vanhemmat ovat yhtä onnellisia kuin lapsettomat, ja 40–49-vuotiaista onnellisimpia ovat 2–3 lapsen vanhemmat.
    ellauri072.html on line 495: Maybe you were a bit quick to straighten that miter you now realize you were wearing and, of course, speck-of-sawdust-in-your-brother’s-eye, etc., and also, as Alcoholics Anonymous would put it, Whoever is upsetting me most is my best teacher, and as Wallace put it, in his novel “Infinite Jest,” “It starts to turn out that the vapider the A.A. cliché, the sharper the canines of the real truth it covers.”
    ellauri072.html on line 499: David Foster Wallace wrote three novels, three story collections, two collections of essays, and other things too, but his reputation still rests mainly on “Infinite Jest” — the 1,100-page novel published in 1996 and set alternately in a tennis academy and a rehab center — and on his sui generis now-nearly-a-genre long-form journalism about topics ranging from lobsters to dictionaries to John McCain to the Adult Video News awards for pornographic films. Wallace’s best work, perhaps by far, is “The Pale King,” an unfinished novel about I.R.S. employees that was assembled posthumously by Wallace’s editor, Michael Pietsch.
    ellauri072.html on line 548: But yes, Wallace was extremely competitive, even to the point of competing about not being competitive. One of the wincing pleasures of Max’s biography is reading excerpts from Wallace’s correspondence, especially with his close friend and combatant Jonathan Franzen, but also with just about every white male writer he might ever have viewed as a rival or mentor. Aggressive self-abasement, grandstanding, veiled abuse, genuine thoughtfulness, thin-skinned pandering — it’s all there. As the correspondents compete about who is making genuine human connections and who and what is really nice and good, they seem to be in some realm far from most kinds of human connection save for that of heated testosteronic battle.
    ellauri072.html on line 575: — oh yeah, that’s the other thing, people dismiss (or admire) Wallace’s work as “cool”.
    ellauri072.html on line 590: In the 1996 novel Infinite Jest by David Foster Wallace, each year has a corporate sponsor; most of the action takes place in year 8, the "Year of the Depend Adult Undergarment".
    ellauri072.html on line 629: Wallace lived with Susan Insalaco and her two children, 16-year-old Anna and 12-year-old Gabe.
    ellauri072.html on line 630: After an argument with Susan on the night of January 31, 1984, Susan told Wallace to move out the next day. After Susan, Anna and Gabe left the next day, Wallace did not leave, and instead stayed in the house and decided to kill them.
    ellauri072.html on line 638: Wallace has been on Arizona's death row for 28 years. His sentences have now been commuted to life sentences.
    ellauri072.html on line 645: Anna was the first to come home that day. Wallace hid behind the front door with a baseball bat. When she arrived, he hit her at least 10 times so hard the baseball bat broke. But she was still moaning and not yet dead. He drug her into the bathroom and plunged the broken bat into her neck and out her back.
    ellauri073.html on line 64: Yhdellä videolla Kulmala on maskeerannut itsensä kevyesti miehen näköiseksi. Video on mustavalkoinen, taustalla soi dramaattinen ja surumielinen pianomusiikki.
    ellauri073.html on line 227: Toisin sanoen, oikea johtaja on joku joka "auttaa" meitä voittamaan oman henk.koht. laiskuuden ja izekkyyden ja heikkouden rajoituxet ja saa meidät stahanovilaisiin ponnistuxiin, tekemään hyvempiä ja kovempia asioita kuin mitä ize pystymme. (Tommonen niinko persoonallinen treineri, tai Matt Foley, motivational speaker. I am 35 years old, thrice divorced, living in a van down by the river. Yks, kaks, Petteri mukaan. Kazokaa Lallia, kolme, neljä. Vitun Tuomo Jalantie, musta sillä ois saanut vaikka pyyhkiä koiranoxennuxia.) Lincoln oli nähtävästi oikea johtaja (onnexi se ammuttiin), ja Churchill (aimo kusipää vessa kengänkärjessä), ja Gandhi (sankarillinen ruipelo eläinlääkixen edessä jolta viedään aina rillit nenältä), ja King Kong. Teddy Kennedy ja Franklinin Benjamin, ja todennäkösest de Gaulle (se oli pitkä ainakin, ja isonenäinen, hassu verikauha päässä), takuulla ryhmä Haun palomieskoira Marshall, ja ehkä Eisengardin Saruman. No olihan tietty Hitlerkin oikea johtaja, ja eri pätevä, niin että paras varoa; eihän tää ole muuta kuin lavakarismaa. “Älä kysy mitä maasi voi tehdä puolestasi, kysy mitä sä voit tehdä maasi puolesta.” Tämmöstä totalitääristä paskanjauhantaa. Myynnin ja markkinoinnin tieteet olivat vielä kuolaavissa lapsenkengissä 1961 kun Kennedy tän kekkasi. Nuoret ihmiset tinttijulisteineen ei olleet olleet markkinoinnin uhreja koko ikänsä. Ne ei tienneet mitään kierrepalloista. Ne eivät olleet totaalisen, karmean perillä mainosmiehistä.
    ellauri073.html on line 252:
    Reply by Gabe Korer • 2 years ago

    ellauri073.html on line 262: Foley is disheveled, sweaty, obese, clumsy and unstylish. He exhibits poor social skills, frequently loses his temper, often disparages and insults his audience, and wallows in cynicism and self-pity about his own poor life choices, to which he often makes reference. Foley's trademark line is warning his audience that they could end up like himself: "35 years old, eating a steady diet of government cheese, thrice divorced, and living in a van down by the river!" In most sketches, whenever a member of his audience mentions a personal accomplishment, Foley responds with mockery: "Well, la-dee-frickin-da!", "Whoop-dee-frickin-doo!", or a similarly dismissive remark. The usual outfit of choice for Foley is a too-small blue-and-white plaid sport coat, a too-big white dress shirt, a solid green necktie, black horn-rimmed glasses, ill-fitting khakis which he is continually pulling up, a wristwatch, penny loafers, and slicked-down blond hair. In a prison sketch, he dons blue jeans and a denim shirt with the inmate number "3307" while retaining his watch, glasses and a crucifix necklace (he also mentions a "homemade tattoo of a van down by the river"). While working as a mall Santa in another sketch, he wears a stereotypical Santa outfit, complete with black snow boots.
    ellauri073.html on line 269: In the sketch itself, Foley attempts to motivate two teens, played by Spade and Applegate, to "get themselves back on the right track" after the family’s cleaning lady finds a bag of marijuana in their home. Foley’s attempt to motivate them falls short when he repeatedly insists that they're "not going to amount to jack squat" and will end up “living in a van down by the river!” Foley attempts to endear himself to Spade's character by telling him they're "gonna be buddies" and that everywhere he goes, Foley will follow. Comparing himself to Spade's shadow, Foley jumps about where he's standing and then dives into the coffee table, though he picks himself up moments later. None of the other cast members knew that Farley was going to do this and their startled reactions are genuine. The sketch ends with Foley offering that the only solution to solve the family's problems is for him to move in with them. Horrified, Applegate begs him not to, vowing never to smoke pot again. Even so, Foley leaves the house to get his things from his van and the family locks him out, finally reconciling and admitting to how much they love each other.
    ellauri073.html on line 271: A later performance (February 19, 1994) features Foley in prison attempting to motivate troubled teens in a scared straight program; he was imprisoned for three to five years for non-payment of alimony (consistent with him being “thrice divorced”). Before entering the sketch, Foley is introduced by his cellmate Deshawn Powers (Martin Lawrence) as “just finished a week in solitary, eating nothing but coffee beans.” Foley attempts to scare the juvenile delinquents by commenting in a slightly different manner that he “wished to dear God, that he was living in a van down by the river!” The sketch followed the usual Foley routine with him falling through the prison wall instead of a coffee table, which eventually led to his and the other inmates' escape.
    ellauri073.html on line 275: Quickly on your attacks on Wallace's writing style, I will mention that -- contrary to your rather baffling notions -- people did enjoy Infinite Jest and other works of his. They will continue to do so for decades. Listen Fartey: his work will live on. People recognize great writing wherever it materializes. Forget your distaste of footnotes, or your struggle in understanding the themes and ideals his work encompasses. His audience is clearly beyond you, so try to see that not everyone feels the same as you. You don't have to like his writing, but when you detract from it it makes it even more apparent that you are the lesser man. Your comments on Foster's writing ability led me to some of your other articles, and to be completely honest, it wasn't all bad. I genuinely enjoyed your "Fucking vs. Making Love" poetry bit, although it did seem like a cheap knockoff of Black Coffee Blues. Regardless, I can still acknowledge that the piece had its moments. However (and this is where I want you to pay attention you tub of lard), the piece can also be slammed in several areas. This is highly important, as we can see the parallels between this aspect of "Fucking vs. Making Love" and anything David Foster Wallace wrote. When it comes down to it, your writing can be criticized stylistically and formatically just like his can; the only difference is that there are few that actually give a shit about your writing, whereas Wallace's work is meaningful to the point where people have legitimate incentive to think critically about it. So defile it with your petty blog posts all you want, but at the end of the day you're the one who's only making yourself look bad, and as a heavily obese man based in Europe you are surely having few problems achieving this in the status quo, since Europeans are notably fatist.
    ellauri073.html on line 344: Immosen Rock Your Day -logo muistuttaa paljon nu metal -yhtye Linkin Parkin logoa. Hän sanoo kuulleensa mainintoja näiden yhdennäköisyydestä, mutta tunnustautuu nu metalin sijaan Modern Talking -faniksi. Logo syntyi Immosen hierojan ansiosta.
    ellauri073.html on line 357: Wallace's father said that David had suffered from major depressive disorder for more than 20 years and that antidepressant medication had allowed him to be productive. Wallace experienced severe side effects from the medication, and in June 2007, he stopped taking phenelzine, his primary antidepressant drug, on his doctor's advice. His depression recurred, and he tried other treatments, including electroconvulsive therapy. Eventually he went back on phenelzine but found it ineffective. On September 12, 2008, at age 46, Wallace wrote a private two-page suicide note to his wife, arranged part of the manuscript for The Pale King, and hanged himself from a rafter of his house.
    ellauri073.html on line 443: “seemed intuitively to sense that it was a matter not of reduction at all, but—perversely—of expansion, the aleatory flutter of uncontrolled, metastatic growth—each well-shot ball admitting of n possible responses, n-squared possible responses to those responses, and on into what Incandenza would articulate to anyone who shared both his backgrounds as a Cantorian continuum of infinities of possible move and response, Cantorian and beautiful because infoliating, contained, this diagnate infinity of infinities of choice and execution, mathematically uncontrolled but humanly contained, bounded by the talent and imagination of self and opponent, bent in on itself by the containing boundaries of skill and imagination that brought one player finally down, that kept both from winning, that made it, finally, a game, these boundaries of self.”
    ellauri073.html on line 508: She was born May 14, 1938, in Fort Fairfield, Maine. The daughter of a potato farmer, she worked a quarter of the year during the harvest, but found her true passion for learning in the town’s one-room schoolhouse. She eventually graduated from Northfield boarding school in Gill, Mass., and later became the first in her family to graduate college, with a bachelor’s degree in English from Mount Holyoke in 1960, where she was student body president and wrote Junior Show.
    ellauri073.html on line 510: After receiving her master’s degree from the University of Illinois, Mrs. Wallace was an English professor at Parkland College for 35 years. Her passion for learning was paired with a passion to help others learn — she was an enthusiastic, rigorous and above all compassionate instructor who made sure every student she had knew how much their voice mattered. Even after retiring, she taught in correctional facilities around Illinois and volunteered as a companion for Illinois CASA. In 2012, she and her husband, Jim, decided to move from their beloved city of Urbana to Florence, Ariz., to be closer to their family. There, they volunteered with Arizona CASA, hosted family dinners every Sunday, and adopted a much-loved terrier mix named Angus.
    ellauri073.html on line 512: Mrs. Wallace was predeceased by her husband of 59 years, James D. Wallace; son, David Foster Wallace; sister, Barbara Sealander; and brother, Gerry Foster.
    ellauri073.html on line 516: Sally is remembered as a wickedly funny, funnily wicked, generous and compassionate woman who made friends everywhere she went. She had an unmatched love for the English language and inspired countless others — including her students, children and grandchildren — to pursue their passion of writing. She was fearless in every sense of the world, and in the final years of her life, tried many new things, such as zip-lining, main-lining, and attending monthly poetry slams.
    ellauri073.html on line 540: David Foster Wallace became a regionally ranked tennis player while growing up in Illinois. David Foster Wallace´s thesis, The Broom of the System, that he wrote while at Amherst College was published in 1987 while he was attending graduate school. In 1989 David Foster Wallace´s short story collection titled Girl with Curious Hair was published. After graduating from the University of Arizona David went on to study philosophy at Harvard University but soon chose to leave. He moved to Syracuse to be with the poet and novelist Mary Karr. While in Syracuse David Foster Wallace wrote most of his famous novel Infinite Jest. The finished book was 1,100 pages long. The novel dealt with addiction, art, and consumerism, and was set in the near future.
    ellauri074.html on line 71: Then there are the human sensitive plants; the bundles of nerves. They are different from everybody else; they even tell you so. Someone is always stepping on their feelings. Everything hurts them—deeply. Their eyes are forever filling with tears.
    ellauri074.html on line 91: I sometimes yearn to kill them.
    ellauri074.html on line 159: The Glad Products Company is an American company specializing in trash bags and plastic food storage containers. The Glad brand originated in the United States in 1963 when Union Carbide owner and CEO, David Darroch, launched Glad Wrap, a polyethylene film used as a food wrap.
    ellauri074.html on line 163: The Perdue Farms company was founded in 1920 by Arthur Perdue and his wife, Pearl Perdue, who had been keeping a small flock of chickens. The company started out selling eggs, then in 1925, Perdue built the company's first hatchery, and began selling layer chicks to farmers instead of only eggs for human consumption. His son Frank Perdue joined the company in 1939 at age 19 after dropping out of college. The company was incorporated as A.W. Perdue & Son and Frank Perdue assumed leadership in the 1950s. The company also began contracting with local farmers to raise its birds and supplying chickens for processing as well as opening a second hatchery in North Carolina during this period. Perdue entered the grain and oilseed business by building grain receiving and storage facilities and Maryland's first soybean processing plant. In 1968, the company began operating its first poultry processing plant in Salisbury. This move had two effects: it gave Perdue Farms full vertical integration and quality control over every step from egg and feed to market, as well as increasing profits which were being squeezed by processors. This move enabled the company to differentiate its product, rather than selling a commodity. In 2013, Perdue was reportedly the third-largest American producer of broilers (chickens for eating) and was estimated as having 7% of the US chicken production market, behind Pilgrim's Pride and Tyson Foods. Perdue antoi kanalle nimen tuotteistamalla sen. Poules Perdues.
    ellauri074.html on line 207: Most of the action in the novel takes place in the Year of the Depend Adult Undergarment, or Y.D.A.U., which is probably AD 2009, taking the Year of the Yushityu... (the lengthily titled 6th Subsidized Year) as 2007. Critic Stephen Burn, in his book on Infinite Jest, argues convincingly that Y.D.A.U. corresponds to 2009: the MIT Language Riots took place in 1997 (n. 24) and those riots occurred 12 years prior to Y.D.A.U. (n. 60).
    ellauri074.html on line 239: One day, when speaking with his landlord, Tony was asking him how he got so successful. The landlord replied that he went to a Jim Rohn seminar (Rohn was a famous motivational speaker at the time). Robbins had no clue what a seminar was so he asked his landlord to explain. The landlord said that a seminar is when a man takes everything he’s learned over the years of his life, and he condenses his knowledge into four hours.
    ellauri074.html on line 243: So, he approached Rohn after the seminar and asked to become his pupil. Rohn agreed, and over the next few years, Robbin was able to take the lessons he learned from Rohn and apply it to his own unique style. Robbins became an avid reader of psychology and incorporated many theories from behavioral psychology into his approach. Robbins perfected this approach through hundreds of seminars across North America and even did seminars for free to help perfect his craft. By the age of 26, Tony Robbins had a net worth of millions of dollars and was a best selling author.
    ellauri074.html on line 358: Et peut-être c'est ça la vie, sans vouloir employer de grands mots, c'est que l'on fait des choses auxquelles on adhère sans y croire, oui, c'est à peu près ça.
    ellauri074.html on line 664: Paul osallistui Robinhoodina Elon Muskin joukoissa Wall Streetin rahavallan ryöstelyyn ostamalla arvottomia Gamestopin stonxeja. Osakkeita lyhyexi myyville paskiaisille jäi lyhyt tikku käteen. Kapitalistit oli haavi auki yhtä kauhuissaan kuin poliitikot aiemmin rupusakin alkaessa sekaantua netin kautta isojen poikien sulle mulle leikkeihin. Tää ei nyt tosiaankaan ollut tarkoitus. No jos tää johtaa kapitalismin ja talousliberalismin romahduxeen se on sen arvoista. Hesarin apupojat koittaa toppuutella ja selitellä asioita omistavan luokan kannalta parhain päin tavalliseen tapaansa. Yxi promille apinoista on omistavinaan leijonan osan koko maapallosta. Repikää siitä stonxia sonnit ja karhukaiset. Wall streetillä nuoret ottaa belfieitä sonnin perseestä. Pökäle pilkottaa. Toistan: pökäle pilkottaa. Niincuin Callelta Munksnäshemmetin sängyllä.
    ellauri074.html on line 671: Olikohan se sittenkään sen arvosta, saattoi Swift vanhemmiten miettiä. Oisko vaan pitänyt preferoida pehmyempää piispantuolia ammeen sijasta. Eikä puhua niin pehmoisia että Anne pelästyy. Fanaatikko ja profania tulevat molemmat latinan pyhäkkö-sanasta, kuten Wallu huomauttaa. Yhtä joutavia kaikki kolme.
    ellauri077.html on line 92: Karaistuneet pojat, veljexet Frank ja Joe Hardy ovat mielikuvitushahmoja jotka esiintyvät useissa lasten ja teinien mysteereissä. Sarja pyörii teini-ikäisissä jotka ovat harrastelijanuuskijoita, ratkaisten keissejä jotka saavat heidän aikuisvastineensa ymmälle. Hahmot loi amer. kirjailija Edward Stratemeyer, joka perusti kirjapakkausfirman Stratenmeyerin Syndikaatti. Kirjat oikeasti kirjoitti joukko haamukirjoittajia joiden yhteinen peitenimi oli Franklin W. Dixon.
    ellauri077.html on line 207: But not all things emanating from this country move quite so quickly. Take, for instance, David Foster Wallace’s near-canonical mega-novel Infinite Jest: released in the States in 1996, it has in 20 years been translated into just five languages. (A sixth translation into Greek is currently in the works.) At this rate, it is moving only slightly faster than the massive Quixote, which had appeared in England, France, the Germanic territories, and Venice 20 years after its complete Castilian publication in 1615. However, Jest is massively behind the 3,600-page über-novel My Struggle, which—just 5 years after its complete Norwegian release—is available or forthcoming in over 20 languages.
    ellauri077.html on line 344: Unamuno no fue protestante. Todos tenemos nuestras contradicciones, nuestros aciertos y errores, y Miguel de Unamuno los tuvo también. Por una parte fue un homófobo militante que animó a condenar a Oscar Wilde y otros escritores españoles homosexuales a trabajos forzados, palabras suyas son: “¿No habrá medio de que estos mártires del placer lleguen a serlo del dolor, de un dolor que les purifique y los eleve? ¿No será cosa de pensar seriamente en la manera de ponerles en disposición de que alguno de ellos escriba la balada del presidio de Ceuta o algo por el estilo?”. En cuanto a las mujeres, algunos estudios sobre la concepción que se desprende de ellas en su obra, concluyen que para Unamuno las mujeres eran ante todo madres y sólo podían amar como tales: “El amor de la mujer, sobre todo, decía que es siempre en el fondo compasivo, es maternal. La mujer se rinde al amante porque le siente sufrir con el deseo.
    ellauri077.html on line 460: This study shows that the connection between these works lies in their shared philosophical dimension. On the one hand, they portray excessive self-reflection and endless irony as the two main problems of contemporary Western life. On the other hand, the novels embody an attempt to overcome these problems: sincerity, reality-commitment and community are portrayed as the virtues needed to achieve a meaningful life.
    ellauri077.html on line 716:
  • Sought through prayer and meditation to improve our conscious contact with God as we understood Him, praying only for knowledge of His will for us and the power to carry that out.
    ellauri077.html on line 730:
  • Nous perdrons le sentiment d'être inutiles et cesserons de nous apitoyer sur notre sort.
    ellauri077.html on line 762: Hän todella kirjoitti Serenity Prayerin. Tämän kuuluisan rukouksen tekijän jäljittämisestä ("Jumala suokoon minulle tyyneyttä hyväksyä asiat, joita en voi muuttaa, rohkeutta muuttaa ne asiat, jotka voin muuttaa, ja viisautta erottaa toisistaan") tuli muutama vuosi sitten eräänlainen mökkiteollisuus, mutta paras saatavilla oleva näyttö tukee Niebuhrin kirjoittajaa. Tämä on olennaista arvioitaessa hänen kestävää vetovoimaansa muutamasta syystä. Yksi, monet, monet ihmiset – mukaan lukien lukemattomat Anonyymien Alkoholistien jäsenet – tietävät jotain Niebuhrin teologiasta, vaikka he eivät ole koskaan kuulleet hänen nimeään. Toiseksi rukous on muistutus siitä, että Niebuhr oli pastori (evankelinen ja reformoitu kirkko) ennen kuin hän oli kuuluisa teologi ja ulkopolitiikan asiantuntija, eikä usko ollut hänelle vain älyllistä harjoitusta. Hän puhuu vapaan maailman johtajille sekä riippuvuuden loukkuun jääneille yksilöille. Kaikista näistä syistä hänen kanssaan on edelleen painimisen arvoinen.
    ellauri077.html on line 768: Yleensä on katsottu, että rukous on peräisin Niebuhrilta, mutta sen alkuperästä on esitetty erilaisia arveluja. Niebuhr itse piti itseään rukouksen ensimmäisenä esittäjänä, ja se esiintyy muun muassa hänen teoksessaan The Essential Reinhold Niebuhr: Selected Essays and Addresses (1987) sekä hänen tyttärensä Elisabeth Siftonin teoksessa The Serenity Prayer: Faith and Politics in Times of Peace and War (2003). Siftonin mukaan hänen isänsä oli käyttänyt rukousta vuonna 1943. Hän on kuitenkin ilmeisesti käyttänyt sitä saarnassaan jo vuonna 1932 tai aikaisemmin. Rukous on pantu virheellisesti muun muassa Augustinuksen, Tuomas Akvinolaisen, Franciscus Assisilaisen, Paul Tillichin, Friedrich Christoph Oetingerin ja Udo Kuckucksuhrin nimiin. Kaikki kieltäytyivät.
    ellauri077.html on line 810: The jargon peculiar to Marxist writing (hyena, hangman, cannibal, petty bourgeois, these gentry, lackey, flunkey, mad dog, White Guard, etc.) consists largely of words translated from Russian, German, or French; but the normal way of coining a new word is to use Latin or Greek root with the appropriate affix and, where necessary, the size formation. It is often easier to make up words of this kind (deregionalize, impermissible, extramarital, non-fragmentary and so forth) than to think up the English words that will cover one´s meaning. The result, in general, is an increase in slovenliness and vagueness.
    ellauri077.html on line 879: Why is it that the Oedipus has a bigger head than is healthy for him? Why seeing him makes me like a vaccinated cell seeing a virus that I am vaccinated against, but still claustrophobic. I must put my fatherly upper jaw on his head, like the male lion does to the mare, and like a snakely Laertes slip my lower jaw under his pimply chin and swallow. The problem is I cannot do it: he is not my own son, but the son of my wife, and that would be murder. So I just keep my upper jaw symbolically and quietly on his crown like a crown. and suffer this corona. My vaccination took a year of pain, and this is just a chimera of that constant pain.
    ellauri078.html on line 27:

    yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Sally Jean Foster


    ellauri078.html on line 28:

    yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Ad Nauseam

    Jaxaajaxaa


    ellauri078.html on line 61: Analemma, the figure-eight shaped curve traced by the noontime positions of the sun in the sky over the course of a year
    ellauri078.html on line 89: She effectively secluded herself and poured forth poems with a profligacy bordering on hypographia. If you want a fairly succinct on-line biography of Dickinson, I enjoyed Barnes & Noble’s SparkNotes.
    ellauri078.html on line 103: The earliest known version is found in Christy's Plantation Melodies. No. 2, a songbook published under the authority of Edwin Pearce Christy in Philadelphia in 1853. Christy was the founder of the blackface minstrel show known as the Christy's Minstrels. Like most minstrel songs, the lyrics are written in a cross between a parody of a generic creole dialect historically attributed to African-Americans and standard American English. The song is written in the first person from the perspective of an African-American singer who refers to himself as a "darkey," longing to return to "a yellow girl" (that is, a light-skinned, or bi-racial woman born of African/African-American and European-American progenitors)
    ellauri078.html on line 119: The Eyes around - had wrung them dry - Silmät ympärillä oli vanutetut
    ellauri078.html on line 135: Emily Elizabeth Dickinson was born in Amherst, Massachusetts, on December 10, 1830 to Edward and Emily (Norcross) Dickinson. At the time of her birth, Emily’s father was an ambitious young lawyer. Educated at Amherst and Yale, he returned to his hometown and joined the ailing law practice of his father, Samuel Fowler Dickinson. Edward also joined his father in the family home, the Homestead, built by Samuel Dickinson in 1813. Active in the Whig Party, Edward Dickinson was elected to the Massachusetts State Legislature (1837-1839) and the Massachusetts State Senate (1842-1843).
    ellauri078.html on line 139: By the time of Emily’s early childhood, there were three children in the household. Her brother, William Austin Dickinson, had preceded her by a year and a half. Her sister, Lavinia Norcross Dickinson, was born in 1833. All three children attended the one-room primary school in Amherst and then moved on to Amherst Academy, the school out of which Amherst College had grown. The brother and sisters’ education was soon divided. Austin was sent to Williston Seminary in 1842; Emily and Vinnie continued at Amherst Academy.
    ellauri078.html on line 143: In an early poem, she chastised science for its prying interests. Its system interfered with the observer’s preferences; its study took the life out of living things. In “‘Arcturus’ is his other name” she writes, “I pull a flower from the woods - / A monster with a glass / Computes the stamens in a breath - / And has her in a ‘class!’” At the same time, Dickinson’s study of botany was clearly a source of delight. She encouraged her friend Abiah Root to join her in a school assignment: “Have you made an herbarium yet? I hope you will, if you have not, it would be such a treasure to you.” She herself took that assignment seriously, keeping the herbarium generated by her botany textbook for the rest of her life.
    ellauri078.html on line 147: Dickinson found the conventional religious wisdom the least compelling part of these arguments. From what she read and what she heard at Amherst Academy, scientific observation proved its excellence in powerful description. The writer who could say what he saw was invariably the writer who opened the greatest meaning to his readers. While this definition fit well with the science practiced by natural historians such as Hitchcock and Lincoln, it also articulates the poetic theory then being formed by a writer with whom Dickinson’s name was often later linked. In 1838 Emerson told his Harvard audience, “Always the seer is a sayer.”
    ellauri078.html on line 151: Dickinson left the academy at the age of 15 in order to pursue a higher, and for women, final, level of education. In the fall of 1847 Dickinson entered Mount Holyoke Female Seminary. Under the guidance of Mary Lyon, the school was known for its religious predilection. Part and parcel of the curriculum were weekly sessions with Lyon in which religious questions were examined and the state of the students’ faith assessed. The young women were divided into three categories: those who were “established Christians,” those who “expressed hope,” and those who were “without hope.” Much has been made of Emily’s place in this latter category and of the widely circulated story that she was the only member of that group. Years later fellow student Clara Newman Turner remembered the moment when Mary Lyon “asked all those who wanted to be Christians to rise.” Emily remained seated. No one else did. Turner reports Emily’s comment to her: “‘They thought it queer I didn’t rise’—adding with a twinkle in her eye, ‘I thought a lie would be queerer.’“
    ellauri078.html on line 153: The brevity of Emily’s stay at Mount Holyoke—a single year—has given rise to much speculation as to the nature of her departure. Whatever the reason, when it came Vinnie’s turn to attend a female seminary, she was sent to Ipswich.
    ellauri078.html on line 161: Emmy ei ollut mikään siivooja. Se ei pitänyt pölyhuiskasta. No ei imurikaan ole yhtään parempi. Seija tempaisi imurin luukkua niin että muovisarana katkesi. Ei siitä enää tule kalua. Emmy oli witty kuten Lizzy Bennettin äiti, mutta pitikö se ize witeistä? VITTE, VITTEE, E-EE-O! lauloi merikapteeni Fuck Löfgren miehistöineen Paimiosta eli Heikki Silvennoinen Kummeleissa. Was Emily gay? None of business sanoo tylysti Quoran vastaaja, mut of you insist, yes in all probability she was. Her companion was her sister-in-law Gilbert. Proustillakin oli Gilberte, ja Albertine. Kirjailijat joilla on jotain sanottavaa on usein poikkeavia.
    ellauri078.html on line 219: Watts kuului isänsä lailla nonkonformisteihin, jotka eivät hyväksyneet valtiokirkon kirkkokäsikirjaa. Isä oli pojan syntyessä vankilassa uskonsa tähden. Isaac Watts valmistui vapaakirkon papiksi ja tuli lontoolaisen Mark Lanen vapaaseurakunnan palvelukseen. Jo opiskeluaikana, parinkymmenen ikäisenä, Isaac Watts sepitti noin 200 virttä. Kun katson ristin ihmettä on yksi niistä.
    ellauri078.html on line 301: Since then – ´tis Centuries – and yet Siitä on jo vuosisatoja, ja silti
    ellauri079.html on line 27:

    yellow;background:black;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Pynchon & Wallace


    ellauri079.html on line 28:

    yellow;background:black;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">American HILLBILLIES

    Läppäkeppejä


    ellauri079.html on line 54: Merimies "Porsas" Bodine on kexitty henkilö joka esiintyy monissa Tuomas Nipistyxen novelleissa. Bodine ilmestyy Veehen (1963), ja toistuu Painovoiman sateenkaaressa (1973). Bodine-nimisiä hahmoja esiintyy myös Masonissa ja Dixonissa (1997) ja Vastoin päiväässä (2006). Hän esiintyy myös lyhyessä tarinassa "Alanko-maat" (1960, 1984). Luonne nimeltä "Puskuri-vaza Bodine", luultavasti "Porsaan" esi-isä, esiintyy määrimiehenä Masonissa ja Dixonissa. Ekaxi kehitetty Veehen päähenkilön Benny Maallisen sivuvaunuxi ja koomisexi kelmuxi, Bodine ilmestyy uudestaan (ca 10 vuotta aiemmaxi sijoitettuna) Painovoiman sateenkaaressa. Vielä 1 merenkyntäjä Bodine, jota sanotaan vaan "O.I.C" (komentava upseeri), tekee kameoesiintymisen Vastoin päiväässä, taas ilman sen kummempaa selvää tarkoitusta kuin ollaxeen intertextuaalinen sisäpiirin läppä.
    ellauri079.html on line 135: The earliest known document of the lands now comprising Amherst is the deed of purchase dated December 1658 between John Pynchon of Springfield and three native inhabitants, referred to as Umpanchla, Quonquont, and Chickwalopp. According to the deed, "ye Indians of Nolwotogg (Norwottuck) upon ye River of Quinecticott (Connecticut)" sold the entire area in exchange for "two Hundred fatham of Wampam & Twenty fatham, and one large Coate at Eight fatham wch Chickwollop set of, of trusts, besides severall small giftes".
    ellauri079.html on line 303: Surprisingly, I use as an example of a free agent here a pingpong player. Presumably because my tennis-playing son has proved unsatisfactory. What I end up saying is distinguish agent causation from event causation. Futile squirming, it does not change anything.
    ellauri080.html on line 312: Longitudinal studies also suggest that these big five personality traits tend to be relatively stable over the course of adulthood. One study of working-age adults found that personality tended to be stable over a four-year period and displayed little change as a result of adverse life events.
    ellauri080.html on line 437: In Jungian typology, the original ‘unity’ of human consciousness is first divided into two poles of attitude: extraversion and introversion. These represent two fundamentally distinct yet complementary relationships between inner and outer reality. Extraversion is characterized bya flow of energy and interest from the subject to the object, from the inner to the outer. Identification with the outer gives meaning to the inner. Introversion is completely the opposite. It is characterized by a flow of energy and interest from the object to the subject, from the outer to the inner.
    ellauri080.html on line 441: The introvert will give ultimate significance to subjective, inner experience and will tend to assign importance to what is happening externally only as it related to this inner experience, or only if it will lead to personal growth. The extravert, contrarily, will give ultimate significance to what is happening externally in the objective, outer world and will assign very little importance or completely disregard inner experience, unless it could lead to outer growth. These are obviously two diametrically opposed yet complementary approaches to life, reminiscent of the oriental Yin (introversion) and Yang (extraversion).
    ellauri080.html on line 472: ISFP Unassuming yet passionate aesthetes.
    ellauri080.html on line 490: “…amidst all the variety and caprice of taste, there are certain general principles of approbation or blame, whose influence a careful eye may trace in all operations of the mind.” — David Hume (ENTP). Hume oli siis quirky and verbally fluid people person. No jaa, myssypäinen poikames. Yhtä saamattomia olivat kumpikin.
    ellauri080.html on line 498: These two views of the world are, of course, mutually inimical — they inevitably chase each other’s tails. Nietzsche says to Hume: ‘he stole that bread because he wanted to feed his family,’ to which Hume replies, ‘yes, that is true: but why did he want to feed his family? Because he is adhering to a familial principle,’ to which Nietzsche replies, ‘I suppose you could put it that way, but why is he operating according to that principle? It’s because he wants to, because he loves his family,’ to which Hume replies, ‘yes, but why does he love his family? It’s because that is his logical worldview…’ And so on.
    ellauri080.html on line 522: Olsko Foucault ISFP Unassuming yet passionate aesthete? Ja Heidegger vaikka ENFJ Engaging and compelling communicator :D ei tää ihan skulaa nyt.
    ellauri080.html on line 559: The rate of suicide attempts increased with the age at first diagnosis, with the highest age-based suicide rate in autism for individuals aged 30 to 39 years.
    ellauri080.html on line 609: Life on the island. A running gag is the castaways' ability to fashion a vast array of useful objects from bamboo, gourds, vines and other local materials. Some are simple everyday things, such as eating and cooking utensils, while others (such as a remarkably efficient lie detector apparatus) are stretches of the imagination. Russell Johnson noted in his autobiography that the production crew enjoyed the challenge of building these props. These bamboo items include framed huts with thatched grass sides and roofs, along with bamboo closets strong enough to withstand hurricane-force winds and rain, the communal dining table and chairs, pipes for Gilligan's hot water, a stethoscope, and a pedal-powered car.
    ellauri080.html on line 639: 12 Ja minä käännyin katsomaan, mikä ääni minulle puhui; ja kääntyessäni minä näin seitsemän kultaista lampunjalkaa,
    ellauri080.html on line 659: Trooppinen vuosi kestää noin 365,2422 vuorokautta. Sen kuluttua Maan akseli on uudelleen samassa asennossa Aurinkoon nähden. Trooppinen vuosi on hiukan sideeristä vuotta lyhyempi, koska akseli kiertyy prekession myötä.
    ellauri080.html on line 715: Every episode begins with a camera's-eye view of a model of a neighborhood, then panning in closer to a representation of a house to the music of a piano instrumental of the theme song, "Won't You be My Neighbor?".
    ellauri080.html on line 727: In 1930, he was the Time Magazine, Person of the year. His birth name was Mohandas Karamchand Gandhi. “Mahatma” was an epithet meaning ‘great-souled one’ that was added to his name. He was first called ‘Mahatma’ by Rabindranath Tagore in 1915. Gandhi married aged 13 to Masturbai aged 14. Child marriage was common at the time, but Gandhi later came to oppose child marriage. Anyway to Masturbai. They had five children, one dying in infancy.
    ellauri080.html on line 772: Gandhi was assassinated by a Hindu fanatic Nathuram Godse on 30 January 1948, while leading a communal prayer group. Olis kannattanut käyttää nahkatakkia kuten Esa Saarinen.
    ellauri080.html on line 783: During Gandhi's time as a dissident in South Africa, he discovered a male youth had been harassing two of his female followers. Gandhi responded by personally cutting the girls' hair off, to ensure the "sinner's eye" was "sterilised". Gandhi boasted of the incident in his writings, pushing the message to all Indians that women should carry responsibility for sexual attacks upon them. Such a legacy still lingers. In the summer of 2009, colleges in north India reacted to a spate of sexual harassment cases by banning women from wearing jeans, as western-style dress was too "provocative" for the males on campus.
    ellauri080.html on line 793: Gandhi placed great value on self-sufficiency. As a lawyer he learnt to wash his own clothes, and later he also learnt to cut his own hair. Even though he was initially ridiculed for his messy hairstyle. Okay he said and shaved his head. Made him look the jailbird he was.
    ellauri080.html on line 905: Marlin on pellekala läpimeren seikkailulla pelastaaxeen poikansa, Nemon, joka on siepattu. Läpi filmiin, Marlin osoittaa selvästi alhaisen avoimuuden piirteitä kokemuxelle. Hänen on vaikeaa astua ulos mukavuusalueeltansa ja hän löytää lohtua tutusta ja totutusta. Tässä lyhyessä pätkässä (puuttuu) Marlin näyttää miten vahvsti hän haluaa pysyää rutiinissa. Hän toistuvasti kysyy pojaltaan Nemolta eikö se haluaisi odottaa vuoden ennen kouluun menoa ja olla kotona sen kaa. Myös, matkalla kouluun, Marlin koko ajan osoittaa kiinnostuxen puutetta maailmaan joka ulottuu sen tutun ympäristön ulkopuolelle ja pelkoa tuntemattomaan.
    ellauri080.html on line 1050: Ensixi ja etummaisexi, johtajuus johti järjestölliseeen kämmiin USA:n miesten jääkiekkotiimissä. Kaikista syyllisin henkilö on Pääsohva. Hänen tiiminsä pelasi hyvin aikaisin turnauxessa, mutta kun paine oli päällä, ei kyennyt suorittamaan, vaan löpsähti. Johtajuusnäkökulmasta, Bylsimä osoitti kykynsä olla palkollissuuntautnut johtaja. Tässä artikkelissa, ilkeä Dan Wyshynski kirjoittaa että Bylsimä on “pelaajan valmentaja, jään päällä ja sen alla". (No hemmetti, ketäs se muuten valmentaa, OK-johtajiako?) Loppuviimexi, tiimi olisi hyötynyt enemmän tuontantosuuntautuneesta johtajasta, joka olisi ollut vähemmän kiinnostunut pelaajien tyytyväisyydestä, ja enemmän kullan voittamisen maalista (tai edes jonkun mitalin). Epäonnistuttuaan kalauttamaan päähän turnauxen suosikkia Kanadaa, joukkueen tarvizi vaihtaa maalinsa kullan voittamisesta pronssin voittamiseen. (Hizi tää on kyllä vaikeaa, hemmetinmoista taktikointia.) Tehokas muutosjohtaja olisi tehnyt juuri niin. Muutosjohtajat herättävät ylpeyttä ja tarjoilevat lähetystunnelmaa, missä Bylsimä selvästi ei onnistunut. "Olkaa kaverit ylpeitä että hävisitte Kanadalle, ne on tosi kovia! Seuraavaxi tavoitteemme on hävitä Suomelle!" Hänen joukkueensa hukkasi pelipaitansa, hävisivät Kanadalle ja hävittivät arvokkuutensa. Hänen ja hänen siivojansa pitää ottaa siitä vastuu. Jos Bylsimä olisi lähestynyt turnajaisten loppua liiketoimijohtajana, hän olisi voinut motivoida tiimiänsä paremmin (raha on hyvä motivaattori), mutta nyt hän kämmäsi siinäkin.
    ellauri082.html on line 54: When David Foster Wallace committed suicide in 2008, it was clear he had been profoundly depressed. But the first major biography of the writer, D.T. Max’s Every Love Story Is a Ghost Story, out on August 30th, reveals an even more troubled mind than anyone realized. From the time he was in college, the brilliant author of Infinite Jest was in and out of institutions as he struggled with depression and addictions to alcohol and marijuana. But the book is also full of all kinds of other strange surprises, painting the most complete, and warmest, portrait of Wallace yet.
    ellauri082.html on line 58: Wallace described himself as “near great” at his favorite sport, but in reality he was just the 11th-best teenage player in central Illinois – not exactly a tennis hotbed. Still, he was good enough to beat Jay McInerney when they were both at the artist colony Yaddo.
    ellauri082.html on line 137: By the time of the match, his symptoms are so bad he’s taken by ambulance to the hospital (16: “the only other emergency room I have ever been in [was] almost exactly one year back”), safely escaping the A.F.R.’s assault. Like fellow student Otis P. Lord, he gets the bed next to Gately. Joelle (who is at the hospital for a meeting) visits Gately on her way out and recognizes Hal. She tells them both about the hunt for the lethal Entertainment and the resulting Continental Emergency and they all go to dig up JOI’s grave. They persuade John Wayne, a spy for the A.F.R., to become a double agent and help sneak them into JOI’s Quebec burial site. Wayne presumably tells the A.F.R. he is actually a triple agent — that he will steal the tape as soon as Hal digs it up. But, as with Marathe, his loyalties are ultimately even-numbered (n40). The A.F.R. finds out and brutally murders him, which is why he can’t win the WhataBurger (16f).
    ellauri082.html on line 147: After the A.F.R. releases roaches into his giant glass tumbler, Orin cuts a deal with the A.F.R. and gives them the tape in return for letting him live. (He’s apparently still alive on p. 14.) The A.F.R. uses the tape to set off some sort of intracontinental conflagaration (16: “some sort of ultra-mach fighter too high overhead to hear slices the sky from south to north”) which apparently topples the Gentle administration (n114: “[Y.G. is] the very last year of Subsidized Time”).
    ellauri082.html on line 237: The darkest evening of the year. Vuoden pimeimpänä iltana.
    ellauri082.html on line 240: To ask if there is some mistake. Ikäänkuin kysyen mikä maxaa.
    ellauri082.html on line 316: She said he lived in a trailer by the river was 36 years old and was a motivational speaker. And was basically just not what you’d call a pleasant or attractive person at all.
    ellauri082.html on line 343: 50; ETA student and Big Buddy; rooms w/Pemulis & Schacht; "promoting" Pemulis's Tenuate, 60, fn.5a.983; "constant 'drines" 267; wants a tennis-broadcasting career, 308; "left-eye-nystamic" 329; paranoid about powdered milk, 630; "and sex: no way" 634; 673; "heavy-browed red-nostriled kid" 677; sleeping in Axhandle's room, 869.
    ellauri082.html on line 361: Alan Perlisin typeryyxiin kuului tää: A year spent in artificial intelligence is enough to make one believe in God. Pikemminkin päinvastoin: siitä näkee miten alkeellinen mekanismi äly on.
    ellauri082.html on line 453: Yeah, yeah, yeah
    ellauri082.html on line 459: Yeah, yeah, yeah
    ellauri082.html on line 491:
    yer" data-id="1-50157760">

    ellauri082.html on line 502: This mind as society hypothesis has outward advantages which make it almost irresistibly attractive to the intellect, and yet it is inwardly quite unintelligible. Of its unintelligibility, however, half the writers on psychology seem unaware.
    ellauri082.html on line 600: Uskonto on 10 kertaa vaarallisempaa huumetta kuin esim. meta-amfetamiini. Uskonto tuhoaa lyhyessä ajassa ihmisen ja hänen ajatusmaailmansa. Uskonto tekee ihmisestä räsynuken joka sätkii huumekauppiaiden=pastoreiden tahdon mukaan. Huumediilerit=pastorikunta ovat rahanahneita ja he pyrkivät tekemään ihmisen riippuvaiseksi uskonnosta=hyvin vaarallisesta huumeesta.
    ellauri082.html on line 627: Uskovaisten naisten rintasyöpäriski on kasvanut lyhyessä ajassa viisikymmenkertaisesti. Samoin myös uskovaisten ja kahvia karttavien miesten eturauhassyöpäriski on kymmenkertaistunut lyhyessä ajassa.
    ellauri083.html on line 84: We can now add yet another to that list. This week, her estate announced the discovery of a new never-published manuscript called "The Eternal Wonder." And as her son Edgar Walsh tells it, the story of the novel's recovery is a wonder itself.
    ellauri083.html on line 90: WALSH: I had not known that my mother had written this in the last year or two of her life. And I certainly did not know that someone had spirited the manuscript out of a home in which she lived her last years in Vermont and had concealed it from me and the family for 40 years.
    ellauri083.html on line 92: I was notified in December of last year that a woman in Texas who has a business buying storage units that have not paid their rent and she had purchased a unit in Fort Worth and discovered this manuscript, which was in a holographic form as a written manuscript, of course. And the woman in Texas wanted to sell it.
    ellauri083.html on line 98: LYDEN: What a relief. You must have been so eager to read your mother's words so many years after her death. What was that like?
    ellauri083.html on line 100: WALSH: It was fascinating, frankly, to read her final novel and to realize that it was, in a sense, an historic event. But reading this book just took me back to my many discussions with her about her work. And I just had a sense of awe that a woman, who, when she wrote this, was 78, 79 years old. And she knew she was dying. She was ill with cancer and she knew that she would be ending her life soon. But she sat down and, with a pen, wrote out over 300 pages.
    ellauri083.html on line 124: It can never be said of the Swedish Academy that they don't know what they like. Between Independent People, The Growth of the Soil, The Good Earth, and probably several others I haven't read yet it seems clear that the path to a Nobel Prize in literature is the one trod by struggling farmers out in the countryside.
    ellauri083.html on line 131: Very different from his novel Hunger, here Hamsun has written a sweeping story of one man's accomplishments as a homesteader in northern Norway near the border with Sweden. Isak, a young and very strong man, with no fear of work, goes looking for a good place to settle. He walks and walks, looking for a place that has everything he needs: water, haying grounds, pasture, areas to farm, timber. When he finally finds it, he settles in. There is a coastal town a full day's walk away (20 miles? 10 miles?). He puts out word that he needs a woman's help--and lo and behold, Inger comes. She too has no fear of work, and she has a harelip--teased for much of her life, she finds a good man in Isak. They work, they have several children, Inger is imprisoned for 6 years. Others come and settle the area between their farm Sellanra and the town. A fascinating story of rural northern Norway in the 2nd half of the 19th century.
    ellauri083.html on line 149: Wang Lung and his family move into town and rent the old House of Hwang. Now an old man, he desires peace within his family but is annoyed by constant disputes, especially between his first and second sons and their wives. Wang Lung's third son runs away to become a soldier. At the end of the novel, Wang Lung overhears his sons planning to sell the land and tries to dissuade them. They say they will do as he wishes, but smile knowingly at each other. Ah what's the use...
    ellauri083.html on line 159: The "first chapter summons up the days when the world was first settled, in 874 AD—for that is the year when the Norsemen arrived in Iceland, and one of the book's wry conceits is that no other world but Iceland exists. ... The book is set in the early decades of the twentieth century but ... Independent People is a pointedly timeless tale. It reminds us that life on an Icelandic croft had scarcely altered over a millennium". As the story begins, Bjartur ("bright" or "fair") has recently managed to put down the first payment on his own farm, after eighteen years working as a shepherd at Útirauðsmýri, the home of the well-to-do local bailiff, a man he detests. The land that he buys is said to be cursed by Saint Columba, referred to as "the fiend Kolumkilli", and haunted by an evil woman named Gunnvör, who made a pact with Kólumkilli.
    ellauri083.html on line 165: When Bjartur returns, he assumes that Rósa has set the animal loose. When he cannot find her when it comes time to put the sheep inside for the winter, he once more leaves his wife, by now heavily pregnant, to search the mountains for the gimmer. He is delayed by a blizzard, and nearly dies of exposure. On his return to Summerhouses he finds that Rósa has died in childbirth. His dog Titla is curled around the baby girl, still clinging to life due to the warmth of the dog. With help from Rauðsmýri, the child survives; Bjartur decides to raise her as his daughter, and names her Ásta Sóllilja ("beloved sun lily").
    ellauri083.html on line 167: The narrative begins again almost thirteen years later. Bjartur is now remarried to a woman who had been a charity case on the parish, Finna. The other new inhabitants are Hallbera, Finna's mother, and the three surviving sons of Bjartur's second marriage: Helgi, Gvendur (Guðmundur) and Nonni (Jón).
    ellauri083.html on line 221: Some historians have suggested that Dickens based Defarge on Anne-Josèphe Théroigne de Mericourt, a revolutionary who played a key role in street demonstrations.
    ellauri083.html on line 336: For all their profusion, these paled in comparison with Sachs's newest display pieces: The Cabinet, 2014, and The Rockeths, 2017. The former was a folding case fashioned from orange-and-white striped barricades and festooned with hundreds of tools, hung in groups and inscribed with the names of individuals who have "inspired, influenced, or frightened" the artist--from Le Corbusier and Louis Kahn to the members of the Wu-Tang Clan--while the latter was less a cabinet than a kind of portable workbench and shelving unit, similarly jam-packed with the tools of the artist's trade, as well as a collection of model rockets, all again labeled to namecheck various figures of personal importance--scientists, musicians, artists; Apollo, Dionysus, Stringer Bell. The fetishistic frisson the assembled materials (pens, pliers, drill bits, tape measures) clearly provoke in Sachs was made even more explicit in McMasterbation, 2016, one of a trio of scale-model space modules arrayed on plinths. Featuring a copy of the legendarily comprehensive McMaster-Carr hardware catalogue spread open like a porn mag centerfold designed for lonely gearheads--alongside a ready supply of Vaseline and a handy tissue dispenser--it was part cathectic confession of objectophilia and part self-derogating indictment of his own work's tendencies toward sometimes masturbatory excess. Smart and stupid, funny and somehow a bit sad, it was classic Sachs: too much information, in every sense of the phrase.
    ellauri083.html on line 354: The finale titled "Goodbye, Farewell and Amen" was the most-watched and highest-rated single television episode in US television history 1983, with a record-breaking 125 million viewers.
    ellauri083.html on line 361: The name Tektite comes from the Greek word tektos, which means “molten”. Tektites are natural glass objects of meteorite origin. The age of the Tektites is estimated at about ten million years.
    ellauri083.html on line 374: At age seven Dylan first accused Allen of touching her inappropriately—a bombshell allegation that definitively tore apart the blended Allen-Farrow family, which was already reeling from Farrow’s discovery of nude photographs of her adopted daughter Soon-Yi Previn at Allen’s apartment. Dylan’s accusation has reverberated in the media ever since. Dylan would consistently repeat the allegation over the years—to her mother, to therapists, to experts, and to former Connecticut state prosecutor Frank Maco, who found probable cause for bringing a criminal case against Allen. (Maco said he ultimately declined to do so out of concern for retraumatizing a fragile child.)
    ellauri083.html on line 376: Farrow has steadfastly supported her daughter throughout the years—but in Allen v. Farrow, she says she has also grown accustomed to Allen attacking her character and parenting skills in the press. (For decades Allen has claimed that Farrow coached Dylan, goading her into accusing Allen after Allen left Farrow for Previn.) Farrow explains her conflicting feelings to the cameras, saying that she wholeheartedly supported Dylan’s decision to write a 2014 op-ed for The New York Times outlining the abuse she claims to have suffered. But privately, Farrow admits in the docuseries, she “crumpled up inside,” knowing that Allen would likely resume his media attacks on her. “He couldn’t go after Dylan, because she was a child at the time, so he’d come after me.”
    ellauri083.html on line 438: He reasoned that the battle was on the twenty-fourth day of the fourth month of the Hebrew civil calendar in the 2,555th year after the creation. This was the 933,285th day since creation. From this, Totten determined that this day was a Tuesday. Next, Totten calculated backward in time from June 17, 1890 to the battle of Gibeon. He concluded that the battle was 1,217,530 days previously, which was a Wednesday. Hence, there was a day missing. Of course, Totten’s computation required very precise dates, something that most people today would find ludicrous. However, Totten managed to obtain some audience in the late 19th century. While most people today are not impressed with such an approach, apparently invoking a computer, as in the Hill story, is sufficient to convince some people today. This story has been debunked many times, so it is a shame that it keeps being repeated.
    ellauri083.html on line 500: The Hulk is incredibly strong and throughout most of the films he acts largely on the instinct of self-preservation, attacking anything that he perceives as a threat. Over time, Banner demonstrated an increasing ability to control the transformation, calling the Hulk at will, but was generally not able to recall events during the time he was in that form. The Hulk, conversely, became increasingly aware of Banner and able to stall the transformation back – one time staying in Hulk form for two years, becoming able to speak with others and control his destructive rage. Eventually, Banner was able to merge with the Hulk, combining Banner's mind and personality with the Hulk's body and strength.
    ellauri083.html on line 514: I will tell you why; so shall my anticipation prevent your discovery, and your secrecy to the King and Queen moult no feather. I have of late, but wherefore I know not, lost all my mirth, forgone all custom of exercises; and indeed, it goes so heavily with my disposition that this goodly frame the earth, seems to me a sterile promontory; this most excellent canopy the air, look you, this brave o’erhanging firmament, this majestical roof fretted with golden fire, why, it appears no other thing to me than a foul and pestilent congregation of vapours. What a piece of work is man! How noble in reason? How infinite in faculties, in form and moving, how express and admirable? In action how like an angel? In apprehension, how like a god? The beauty of the world, the paragon of animals. And yet, to me, what is this quintessence of dust? Man delights not me; no, nor woman neither, though by your smiling you seem to say so.
    ellauri083.html on line 575: For thus saith the LORD of hosts, the God of Israel; Behold, I will cause to cease out of this place in your eyes, and in your days, the voice of mirth, and the voice of gladness, the voice of the bridegroom, and the voice of the bride.
    ellauri083.html on line 614: Ei, vaan jumalattomain riemu loppuu lyhyeen, ja riettaan ilo on vain silmänräpäys.
    ellauri083.html on line 621: And now shall mine head be lifted up above mine enemies round about me: therefore will I offer in his tabernacle sacrifices of joy; I will sing, yea, I will sing praises unto the LORD.
    ellauri083.html on line 633: Then will I go unto the altar of God, unto God my exceeding joy: yea, upon the harp will I praise thee, O God my God.
    ellauri083.html on line 667: The Bible is surprisingly full of humorous episodes that can make one chuckle or even laugh out loud. One of the first jokes God pulled was in the book of Genesis. When visiting Abraham and Sarah, God said to the elderly couple (well passed child-bearing years), “I will bless [Sarah], and moreover I will give you a son by her; I will bless her, and she shall be a mother of nations; kings of peoples shall come from her” (Genesis 17:16).
    ellauri083.html on line 669: Abraham couldn’t keep himself contained, “Abraham fell on his face and laughed, and said to himself, ‘Shall a child be born to a man who is a hundred years old? Shall Sarah, who is ninety years old, bear a child?'”
    ellauri083.html on line 701: Nuutti pahexuu, tahtoo ulos lyhyesti mutta ankarasti haukkumaan.

    ellauri088.html on line 299: Kettusella oli usein voimakkaita näkemyksiä ja hän kiisteli moneen otteeseen Lauri Hakulisen kanssa muun muassa kielen historiasta. Useammassa kuin yhdessä kiistakysymyksessä on vasta myöhempi tutkimus kyennyt osoittamaan ”rabulisti Kettusen” näkemyksen oikeaksi.
    ellauri088.html on line 345: Arvonen on monelle tuttu sosiaalisesta mediasta, sillä hän rummuttaa aktiivisesti useammassakin eri kanavassa. Lisäksi hän kirjoittaa ahkerasti omaa blogiaan. ”Aloitin heti tekemään somea ja blogia, koska minun oli pakko saada sitä kautta asiakkaita. Ei ollut ystäviä tai tuttavia, jotka olisivat heti ensimmäisiä asiakkaitani. Kaikilla on vain ASP-lainalupauksia ja ostofiiliksiä. Ei niissä euroakaan ole itsellä kiinni. Täytyi siis kehittää jotain. Kirjoittaminen tulee luonnostaan, joten päätin sitten tehdä tätä lähinnä Linkkarin, Twitterin ja oman blogin kautta.” Arvonen onkin verrattain nuoresta iästään huolimatta onnistunut (ehkä osittain juuri aktiivisen somettamisen ansioista) kehittymään myynnin ja kiinteistönvälitysalan rautaiseksi ammattilaiseksi lyhyessä ajassa.
    ellauri088.html on line 546: In 1898, a short stay in Germany (Jerome ei ilmeisesti arvostanut sakuja) inspired Three Men on the Bummel, the sequel to Three Men in a Boat, reintroducing the same characters in the setting of a foreign bicycle tour. It has enjoyed only modest success by comparison.
    ellauri088.html on line 581: Then Harris tried to open the tin with a pocket-knife, and broke the knife and cut himself badly; and George tried a pair of scissors, and the scissors flew up, and nearly put his eye out. While they were dressing their wounds, I tried to make a hole in the thing with the spiky end of the hitcher, and the hitcher slipped and jerked me out between the boat and the bank into two feet of muddy water, and the tin rolled over, uninjured, and broke a teacup.
    ellauri088.html on line 612: Jerome volunteered eagerly to serve his country at the outbreak of the great war, but, being 55 years old, was rejected by the British Army. Eager to serve in some capacity, he volunteered as an ambulance driver for the French Army.
    ellauri088.html on line 616: Will it be the same in the future? Will the prized treasures of to-day always be the cheap trifles of the day before? Will rows of our willow-pattern dinner-plates be ranged above the chimneypieces of the great in the years 2000 and odd? Will the white cups with the gold rim and the beautiful gold flower inside (species unknown), that our Sarah Janes now break in sheer light-heartedness of spirit, be carefully mended, and stood upon a bracket, and dusted only by the lady of the house?
    ellauri089.html on line 76: Afterwards Heinlein supported himself at several occupations, including real estate sales and bitcoin mining, but for some years found money in short supply.
    ellauri089.html on line 83: His work sometimes had controversial aspects, such as plural marriage in The Moon is a Harsh Mistress, militarism in Starship Troopers and technologically competent women characters that were formidable, yet often stereotypically feminine – such as Friday.
    ellauri089.html on line 85: In 1929, Heinlein married Elinor Curry of Kansas City. However, their marriage only lasted about a year. His second marriage in 1932 to Leslyn MacDonald (1904–1981) lasted for 15 years. Leslyn took to drink. No wonder.
    ellauri089.html on line 108: “[T]here seems to have been an actual decline in rational thinking. The United States had become a place where entertainers and professional athletes were mistaken for people of importance. They were idolized and treated as leaders; their opinions were sought on everything and they took themselves just as seriously—after all, if an entertainer is paid a million or more a year, he knows he is important ... so his opinions of foreign affairs and domestic policies must be important, too, even though he proves himself to be ignorant and subliterate every time he opens his mouth.”
    ellauri089.html on line 145: Even more surprising, the sociological aspects of these books have also stood up well over the years. Boys today may not be quite as innocent about girls as they appear to be in most of Heinlein’s juveniles (perhaps at the request of Scribner’s editor Alice Dalgliesh), but the various interpersonal relationships (boy-girl, parent-child, sibling-sibling) do still ring quite true. Today’s young readers may have to ask what a “soda jerk” is, but they will have no trouble understanding why Kip, the hero of Have Space Suit—Will Travel, tosses a chocolate milkshake all over his tormentor.
    ellauri089.html on line 198: The story examines religion through the eyes of Alex, a Christian political activist who is corrupted by Margrethe, a Danish Norse cruise ship hostess and loves every minute of it. Enduring a shipwreck, an earthquake, and a series of world-changes brought about by Loki (with Jehovah's permission), Alex and Marga work their way from Mexico back to Kansas as dishwasher and waitress.
    ellauri089.html on line 210: Men rarely if ever manage to dream up a god superior to themselves. Most gods have the manners and morals of a spoiled child. One man's theology is another man's belly laugh. The most ridiculous concept ever perpetrated by Homo Sapiens is that the Lord God of Creation, Shaper and Ruler of the Universes, wants the saccharine adoration of his creations, that he can be persuaded by their prayers, and becomes petulant if he does not receive this flattery. Yet this ridiculous notion, without one real shred of evidence to bolster it, has gone on to found one of the oldest, largest and least productive industries in history.
    ellauri089.html on line 487: § 40. yet he gives a proof of the first proposition, which consists in (1) the fallacious confusion of "desirable" with "desired", …
    ellauri089.html on line 682: § 131. but (2) That a whole which includes a cognition of something evil or ugly may yet be a great positive good on the whole: most virtues, which have any intrinsic value whatever, seem to be of this kind, e.g. (a) courage and compassion, and (b) moral goodness; all these are instances of the hatred or contempt of what is evil or ugly; …
    ellauri090.html on line 114: In Rio, Palha borrows money from Rubião to invest in business, and the two men become partners. Rubião also meets Carlos Maria, an arrogant young man, and Freitas, an unsuccessful middle-aged man, who exploit Rubião for his wealth and innocence. Major Siqueira and his thirty-nine-year-old daughter, Doña Tonica, attach themselves to Rubião, hoping that Rubião will marry Doña Tonica, who meanwhile becomes jealous of Sophia.
    ellauri090.html on line 120: Rubião becomes friends with Dr. Camacho, a lawyer and the editor of a politically oriented newspaper called Atalaia. On his way to meet Dr. Camacho, Rubião rescues a small child, Deolindo, in danger of being run over by a carriage and horses. Rubião then goes on to Dr. Camacho’s office, where he subscribes generously to the capital fund for Atalaia. Dr. Camacho flatters Rubião by publishing an account of Rubião’s heroism in saving Deolindo. Although Rubião is at first modest and dismissive about his heroism, as he reads Camacho’s account he becomes increasingly self-important.
    ellauri092.html on line 80: By 17 years old this stout young Yankee decided to leave his farming work at home and head for Boston where he became a shoe salesman. Like Al Bundy. Taivas on todennäköisesti täynnä kadonneita parittomia sukkia. Ne ovat kaikki pelastuneet sinne. Kun mun sukkaan tulee reikä heitän sen roskiin mutta pelastan parittoman, koska mun lähes kaikki sukat ovat mustia. Vartioin niitä mustasukkaisesti ja teen leskexi jääneistä uusia pareja. He attended a Congregationalist Church which bored him as did all religious matters but over the next year the convicting message of sin and righteousness began to take effect. At the same time though, he raised up a wall of arguments. He settled his heart by deciding to leave the matter until his deathbed, but Cod’s Word continued to disturb him. No wonder: this was good old Boston, the home of the bean and the cod, Where the Lowells talk to the Cabots, And only the Cabots talk to Cod.
    ellauri092.html on line 82: In April 1855 young Edward Kimball a Sunday school teacher was deeply burdened by Moody’s sole. Kimball left his house and made his way to the shoe shop where Moody worked with the intention of confronting Moody about his standing in front of Cod. A thousand contrary thoughts invaded the young man’s mind and he almost turned back. When he realized he had passed the shop he decided he would go for it and get it over with quickly. With what he later thought was a very weak plea with tears in his eyes he challenged Moody concerning his salivation, Cod’s tail and his need of a waist. That day in the back of the shop on his knees Moody accepted his price and Kimball returned home within minutes with new soles. Salivation while you wait.
    ellauri092.html on line 84: The first change in Moody was that he received a burden to see all his family earnings saved. Later that year he moved to Chicago and although he started to show signs of real shoe business ability and success, when he experienced the revival which commenced in that city in January 1857, business success faded into insignificance. He was ruined - success of this world no longer interested him instead, he began to glow in Christian virtue. He mixed freely amongst Plymouth Brethren, Methodist Episcopal, Congregationalists and Baptists. The years passed and he worked with the men in tights at YMCA and raised up one of the most unusual Sunday Schools of that day which became a church. He reluctantly began to preach and haggled every step of the way. He turned down Congregational ordination and remained a simple uneducated layman with a burden for souls. Having heard of Spurgeon’s ministry in London he did all he could to get hold of and read every Spurgeon sermon. He took thorough hold of Spurgeon’s three ‘R’s: Ruin by the fall, Redemption by the Blood, and Regeneration by the Holy Mackerel. This flowed through every one of his messages and was the marrow of Moody’s theology. Many thought him too radical and so nicknamed him ‘Crazy Moody.’
    ellauri092.html on line 86: When his wife Emma suffered bad asthma the doctor suggested a boat trip so Moody decided to take her to dry and airy Britain. In February 1867 they set sail for Britain for the first time. Altogether they had a thoroughly inspiring time. They visited Spurgeon’s Metropolitan Tabernacle which had a congregation of 5,000. He sat amongst the Plymouth Brethren and heard their most fervent preachers as well as preaching for them. He could preach as fervently as any tommy, if not more. He was also invited to speak at some meetings in London where his warmth won everyone’s affection while his wife coughed in the smog. He also visited Bristol to see George Muller’s work where 1,500 orphan children were provided for financially without requests for money. (The trick is familiar from Dickens' Oliver Twist.) Moody was very impressed with what Cod could accomplish going through this meek godly man of prayer. They managed to include Dublin and France in the trip then in June they returned to America.
    ellauri092.html on line 88: He became very settled and successful in ministry in Chicago. He sat on at least ten separate committees while at the same time fighting the gall of Cod to step out as an itinerant Evangelist. Cash flow was becoming mechanical. In June 1871 a great burden came upon two older ladies in his congregation to pray that he would receive the baptism of the Holy Ghost and fire. These two hot ladies became very obvious to Moody as they sat on the front pew and prayed as he preached. When he enquired about their praying they informed him that they needed the power of the Spirit.
    ellauri092.html on line 90: At first Moody could satisfy himself so that was ok. But the persistence of these ladies led him to meet and pray with them. They poured out their hearts asking Cod to fill them with His servant's Spirits. From that day a deep hunger and thirst gripped Moody. By October he was in agony for sole as he prayed and munched Cod for the promised gift. At times he would roll on the floor in agony with the ladies and in tears with this singular prayer to be baptised in the Holy Mackerel grilled with fire. This was a wrestle between his willy and Cod’s willy. It was that very month that Chicago burnt to the ground by ghost fire. All his works, efforts and organizational committees literally went up in a blaze. Shortly after this while passing through New York on his way to Britain the second time Cod heard his prayer. As he walked the streets his willy bent before Cod's, the power of the Golden Horde fell upon him, the Ford drew near and revealed Himself to be His servant. Moody rushed to a friend’s house and asked for rum and to be left alone. Hour after hour he bathed in the presence of Cod as the Holy Mackerels filled him. So strong was this that he cried out to Cod to stay in His hand lest He die. He was filled with the joy of the Gourd. When he left that house it was in the power of the fire, just like Chicago the other day.
    ellauri092.html on line 92: He fleed to England for a few months of rest and with a desire to draw ale with Christian leaders there. He had no intention of zonking although he did a few times but he attended conventions and conferences and wrote numbers of notes and thoughts. He met with the Plymouth Brethren near Dublin and he spent a whole night kneeling in fervent prayer with about 20 of these jealous men. That next morning he walked with Henry “Butcher” Varley through the streets. This Br'er Rabbit said something to him which made a deep impact on the weasel Cod was forming. He said “Moody, the world has yet to see what Cod will do to a man full of It.” That night as these words still reverberated in his mind and heart he vowed that by the grace of Cod and the power of the Holy Mackerels he would be that man. All who met with him during this journey in Britain and Ireland were strangely aware that Cod was preparing a great work in this man. You could smell it a mile away. Mackerels!
    ellauri092.html on line 96: So in June 1873 he arrived again into Liverpool, England, accompanied by his asthmatic wife and song leader Ira Sankey as his other wife. Key men who were leaders and financers who had invited him with the promise of financial help had died since he was last there. There were no meetings, no funds and no committees. What the fuck. It seemed all was lost. Maybe they would just have to return to America? Only one unattractive invitation came from York in the North of England and so there they went. It was hard ground but in the midst of these meetings one unimpressed minister called F.B. Meyer slowly melted and then ignited with holy fervent fire. Our friends fled the scene as fast as they could. Next the Evangelistic foursome moved to Sunderland for several weeks of sole eating meetings where Cod’s power to inflate liver was manifest. In August they brought coals to Newcastle where a daily paper meeting was conducted with some 300 saints in attendance. No other lighting was necessary. News spread throughout the whole land that Creedence Clearvater Revival was coming to churches and salivation to thousands. Other towns were visited in the same manner and left as quickly as the audience caught on that a less inspiring Yankee foursome was doing the song and play.
    ellauri092.html on line 102: In November 1882 when he spoke at Cambridge University he was filled with great anxiety as this educational centre for Britain’s aristocratic and wealthy youth had a reputation of unparalleled riotous behaviour. That first night at a Zoom meeting Moody spoke on ‘the Spirit’s power service.’ The university vicar Handley Moule was somewhat nervous. The young C.T. Studd (the same guy who impressed J.R.Mott with his biceps) greatly doubted ‘if this Yankee was up to the task.’ The first mission night on the Monday had 1,700 students in attendance. As Sankey sang his sacred Hymns they jeered, laughed and shouted. When Sankey finished he was near to tears. As Moody preached on Daniel in the lions den (how appropriate) again they laughed, shouted and did all in their power to disturb him. He maintained his calm. By the end of the week at least 200 students had accepted a check from the speaker. Amongst them was a main ‘ringette player’ who later assumed missionary position in China and was the first lady Bishop of King Kong. Out of this mission came The Cambridge Seven, missionaries who made a lot of dough. This campaign had huge proceeds that also leeched the youth of the whole nation.
    ellauri092.html on line 104: During the summer of 1883 he returned home to count the revenue but was back again; first to Ireland and then London in November. For the next 8 months he held his greatest meetings yet in the capital. Many of his best new labourers were the pervert convicts from 1875. This campaign sealed the future destiny of many young men who would later go to the admission collection field. It was not long after his death in 1899 that his sermons were second only in demand to Pilgrim’s Progress and were printed right across the ad pages of the Boston Globe.
    ellauri092.html on line 110: Tästä nousee seurraava mielenkiintoinen ajatuskuvio: Moody tartutti Hermonin kesäleirillä ton kedgereeismin ja lähetysinnon J.R. Mottiin. J.R. Mott tartutti sen Helsingin visiitillä Hilja Hahnssoniin. Hilja Krohn tartutti sen saxantunneilla komeawiixiseen ja kaunissilmäiseen vaikka lyhyehköön Wilho Pylkkäseen. Eliskä Wilholla oli jo helluntaiviruxen varhaismuoto veressä kun se lähti Lontooseen?! Sillä saattoi olla kokemusta uppokasteesta Hilja Krohnin opastuxella jo siinä vaiheessa.
    ellauri092.html on line 180: The First Great Awakening was a religious movement among colonials in the 1730s and 1740s. The English Calvinist Methodist preacher George Whitefield played a major role, traveling up and down the colonies and preaching in a dramatic and emotional style, accepting everyone as his audience. It was the largest denomination in 1820.
    ellauri092.html on line 192: Whereas most American Methodist worship is modeled after the Anglican Communion´s Book of Common Prayer, a unique feature was the once practiced observance of the season of Kingdomtide, which encompasses the last thirteen weeks before Advent, thus dividing the long season after Pentecost into two discrete segments. During Kingdomtide, Methodist liturgy emphasizes charitable work and alleviating the suffering of the poor. This practice was last seen in The Book of Worship for Church and Home by The United Methodist Church, 1965, and The Book of Hymns, 1966. While some congregations and their pastors might still follow this old calendar, the Revised Common Lectionary, with its naming and numbering of Days in the Calendar of the Church Year, is used widely. However, congregations who strongly identify with their African American roots and tradition would not usually follow the Revised Common Lectionary.
    ellauri092.html on line 231: Baptists believe in the autonomy of the local church, and churches are most often governed by a form of congregationalism, or pastor-led congregationalism. In more recent years, however, many Baptist Churches have adopted an elder-led congregationalism as a preferred form of polity. Although there are many denominational alliances among churches, most Baptist local churches are entirely autonomous in governing their own affairs, choosing their pastors, purchasing and owning their own property, etc..
    ellauri092.html on line 273: Those involved with the Keswick Movement were continuationists otherwise known as anti-cessationists. These folks then (as well as today), believed the sign gifts including tongues never stopped. History as well as Scripture tells us that this is not true; that in fact, the sign gifts did actually cease not long after the last apostle died and the Bible had finished being written (though not yet compiled into Canon).
    ellauri092.html on line 283: Doctrinal errors never really go away once introduced and embraced. They are simply renamed and recycled by Satan to a new generation. Too many leaders within Christendom think they’ve found something “new” and introduce their followers to it in books, sermons and seminars. However, they are simply espousing the same error that Satan tempted Eve with thousands of years ago. Vällykäärme sieltä nostaa päätään, halkinainen nuppi kurkkaa poolopaidasta. There is nothing new under the sun. It simply seems new to the latest generation.
    ellauri092.html on line 322: Holiness is thus not so much an abstract or mystic idea, as a regulative principle in the everyday lives of men and women. Holiness is thus attained not by flight from the world, nor by monk-like renunciation of human relationships of family or station, but by the spirit in which we fulfill the obligations of life in its simplest and commonest details: in this way – by doing justly, loving mercy, and walking humbly with our God in everyday life. Or laying down prostrate knickers down when the knobbly heads of the elders tell us so. Kitty loves me yes I know, cause his purring tells me so. Is that there a test tube in your pockezes, or are you just so glad to see me?
    ellauri092.html on line 330: Andrew Murray, A W Tozer and others now make perfect sense to me when I read their books. They were mystics who sought, focused on and tended to emphasize an emotional experience they believed was holiness. I understand that mistake because I also desperately reached for that for several years. It doesn’t work and causes the Christian to constantly look to his/her emotions for verification.
    ellauri092.html on line 332: By way of example I have been married to my wonderful wife for 35 years. The day I met her, I liked her. As we dated, I fell in love with her. That “love” was largely an emotional rush based on my feelings toward her. There were times when I thought my heart would explode because of my “love” (emotion) for her. (Actually it was my little wiener that exploded.) Over time that changed and my love for my wife became more solidified and did not rely on emotion.
    ellauri092.html on line 334: Thirty-five years later, I can honestly say I love my wife more now than I did early on, though I certainly believed I could not love her more in our early days. However, my love for my wife now is not (but can at times include), emotion. It is something far different than raw emotion because it is based in carnal knowledge. I love her and I know she loves me.
    ellauri092.html on line 336: I do not use my days to try to go inside myself attempting to “love” my wife more than I do; to have some type of mystical, ethereal growing awareness of my wife. I do not go even inside her so often anymore, I know her well enough biblically after 35 years of frequent fornication.
    ellauri092.html on line 514: She haes a maister's degree frae the Theatre Academy o Finland. Krohn wis marriet 18 years tae the movie director Wille Mäkelä. Krohn is the niece o the Finnish author an journalist Kaarina Goldberg. Kaarina Goldberg (born 28 Januar 1956) is a Finnish author an jurnalist who lives in Vienna. She is best kent for her childer's beuks Petokylän Ilona Ilves, Rämäpäinen robotti an her comic strip Senni ja Safira in the Finnish newspaper Eläkeläiset.
    ellauri093.html on line 51: 5: Prepare the table, watch in the watchtower, eat, drink: arise, ye princes, and anoint the shield.

    ellauri093.html on line 100: Mottin kaxi käsivartta oli prayer and money. Se hankki rahaa miljonääreiltä tosi röyhkeesti. Tavaratalomagnaatti oisi lahjoittanut talon Koreaan. Mott sanoi eiku anna 3. Okei jos pyllistyt mun kanssani. Ovi pantiin lukkoon ja pyllisteltiin kahteen pekkaan. Or so they say. Siitä virkistynyt pohatta lahjoitti ne 3 taloa. 1 niistä lienee mennyt tuhannen säleixi Korean sodassa, Hilja pahoitteli.
    ellauri093.html on line 119: James Hudson Taylor (Chinese: 戴德生; pinyin: dài dé shēng (wear for life???); 21 May 1832 – 3 June 1905) was a British Protestant Christian missionary to China and founder of the China Inland Mission (CIM, now OMF International). Taylor spent 51 years in China. The society that he began was responsible for bringing over 800 missionaries to the country who started. He founded
    ellauri093.html on line 217: One of the most defining elements of the Brethren is the rejection of the concept of clergy. Their view is that all Christians are ordained by God to serve and therefore all are ministers, in keeping with the doctrine of the priesthood of all believers. The Brethren embrace the most extensive form of that idea, in that there is no ordained or unordained person or group employed to function as minister(s) or pastors. Brethren assemblies are led by the local church eiders (fig. 1) within any fellowship.
    ellauri093.html on line 270: When choosing an age to define ‘older’ people, 65 years is commonly used, however different state and commonwealth programs may have differing age eligibility criteria. Organisations may also have their own age-related criteria. For example, at Seniors Rights Victoria we work with Victorians aged 60 and over and Indigenous Victorians aged 45 and over.
    ellauri093.html on line 282: Issues contributing to risk may include family violence, isolation, dependency grammar and career stress. The eider is at risk of getting flayed. The abuse worker is at risk of getting caught. Always abuse indoors and avoid unnecessary noise.
    ellauri093.html on line 554: Loppuu leikinlasku lyhyeen
    ellauri093.html on line 602: Sinä aamuna jona pastori Frederiksenin ja Neiti Nielsenin kanssa ajoin autossa Fyenin tasaisia maanteita pitkin Søllingeen, luonto kukki ja taivas säteili ja sydämeni oli täynnä kiitollisuutta tämän maallisenkin elämän täyteydestä - vaikka eräs rakas hauta onkin matkani päämääränä. Pastorinrouva oli sydämmellisenä vastassa. Päivällinen oli valmiina, ja sen jälkeen minut lähetettiin rauhalliseen yläkerran huoneeseen nukkumaan päiväunia. Lehtimajassa joka oli luovutettu Povisen lesken ja tyttären asunnoxi kohta astuikin meitä vastaan hento, pienexi kutistunut nainen. Toinen silmä ja hiukan vinoon vetäytynyt suu kielivät lievästä ajatusten katkeamisesta. Hänen yllänsä oli vanhakuosinen musta puku ja päässä yhtä vanhanaikainen liian pieni olkihattu.Kaiken tuon huomasin saman tien tyytyväisenä. Hän on meidän ristimme, ämmä sanoi vielä vammasesta tyttärestä. Noniin, kuinka toisin oisi kaikki jos Povisella oisi käynyt parempi viuhka, sanomatta nyt kenen kaa. Leski esitteli sotasaaliita. Tässä on Sysmän kirkon sisäkuva. Tuossa Autotalon varakkaiden Montosten lahjoittama ruma kuparipakote. Tuolla Sirkka-tädin Israelista tuoma lampukka. Olisi ollut puhelemista kauniista esineistä vaikka kuinka pitkältä.
    ellauri093.html on line 664: Mutta nyt vakavampiin teemoihin. Yxi papinleski, joka nuorena oli kadottanut miehensä ja jäänyt orpojansa yxin huoltamaan kysyi: Mixi mixi? Virkamatkalla mieheni hevonen vauhkoontui ja heitti hänet rattailta. Mixi ei herra varjellut, jos hän on kaikkivoipa? Onko hän yxinkertaisesti ilkeä? Dolmen selitti kaiken hyvin päin: ajattele asiaa myös vähän meidän kannaltamme, siis miehen kannalta. Sehän pääsi pälkähästä tosi vähällä, saved by the gong. Mut mut jatkaa leski, jos tuonpuoleisessa on niin kivaa, mixei herra hyvä voinut ottaa meitä samaan hevoskyytiin? Mix se jätti meidät tänne kitumaan? No kaskun, Dick mietti, koska se haluu opettaa täällä meille jotakin. Hemmetti sanoo leski, se on ize tehnyt meidät, ja se on kaikkivoipa ja kaikkiviisas, miten se on voinut tunaroida näin? Mäkin olisin osannut tehdä paremman maailman, vaikkoon vain nainen. Tai hei, mix vaivautua ylipäänsä ollenkaan? Mixei se vaan jäänyt kellettelemään sinne singulariteettiin askartelemaan sitä kiveä mitä se ei jaxa heittää. Koko homma tuntuu aika joutavalta. Noh, kaskun, sanoo Dick ja sitten pruit pruit, läiskis läiskis, se päästää savusumun ja uikkii hiljaa Hiljan kansssa ruikkimaan. Tutkimattomat ovat herran tiehyet.
    ellauri093.html on line 683: Iltapuolella oli past. Dolmen ize meitä vastassa, sydämellisenä ja säteilevänä. Dolmenin vaimo oli liesussa, joten Dick oli ottanut mukaansa juutalaiskristityn sihteerikkönsä, neiti Regina Lehden, ja muutamia juutalaisia poikia työntökärryineen. Muut lapset olikin jo syöty paizi nuorinta, joka oli laiha mutta sitkeä. Iltatarjoilun jälkeen kokoonnuttiin iltahartauteen. Puoli vuorokautta se kesti, mutta siihen mahtui paljon. Ensin veisattiin virsi kullekin; sitten luettin sekä vanha että uusi testamentti vuorotellen värsy kerrallaan. Sen jälkeen past. Dolmen muutamin :) vaikuttavin lausein selitti mistä teoxissa oikein oli kysymys, keskittyen ydinkohtiin, kyselikin hiukan knoppeja ja viivoitutti jakeita, joita erityisesti toivoi painettavaxi mieleen.
    ellauri093.html on line 835: Keisari oli valtiopäivien avajaispuheessa kehottanut kiisteleviä osapuolia esittämään omat kantansa. Katolilaiset eivät olisi halunneet suostua tähän, sillä he eivät halunneet keskustella julkisesti kerettiläisten kanssa. He yrittivät saada aikaan uskonnollisia asioita käsittelevän komitean. Evankeliset eivät kuitenkaan voineet suostua tähän, sillä komiteassa olisi ollut katolinen enemmistö. He vaativat sen sijaan tunnustuksen julkista lukemista valtiopäivillä. Keisari suostui tähän, ja lukemispäiväksi määrättiin 24. kesäkuuta. Kiireellisten neuvottelujen ja ajan puutteen vuoksi lukeminen siirtyi kuitenkin 25. päivään. Tunnustusta paranneltiin viimeiseen asti ja lisättiin iltalypsypointteja. Lukeminen suoritettiin keisarin ja säätyjen edessä. Tunnustus oli kirjoitettu saksaksi ja latinaksi. Keisari olisi halunnut luettavan latinankielisen kappaleen, mutta vaaliruhtinas Johannsin vaadittua, että saksalaisella maaperällä olisi kuultava saksankielistä tekstiä, keisari suostui saksankielisen version lukemiseen. Kukas tää keisari olikaan? Se ei varmaan osannut saxaa järin hyvin. Lukemisen suoritti Saksin kansleri Christian Beyer, ja siihen kului kaksi tuntia. Tämän jälkeen molemmat kappaleet luovutettiin keisarille.
    ellauri093.html on line 882:
    ellauri093.html on line 905: FOR MANY years it has been my privilege to teach Jewish young men the way of salvation. Naturally I began by showing them Christ in the Old Testament, how our heavenly Father began to teach His young children in object lessons and how their Messiah was foreshadowed in type and prophecy.
    ellauri094.html on line 130: Arvoisa puhemies! Adoptioon liittyen tahdon vielä todeta, että esimerkiksi Amerikassa Massachusettsin osavaltiossa on alettu suosimaan samaa sukupuolta olevia pareja adoptiossa. Suomessa tulisi välttää vastaava kehitys ja katsoa asiaa lapsen edun kannalta. Adoptiotilannetta ei pidä jättää viranomaisten arvailujen varaan.
    ellauri094.html on line 160: Tähän liittyen haluaisin myös toistaa sen, mitä tuolta paikaltani jo sanoin: kun on käyty keskustelua Aito avioliitto ‑kansalaisaloitteesta ja moni on nostanut esiin sen, miltä vähemmistöistä tuntuu, kun tästä uudelleen ja uudelleen keskustellaan, niin toivottavasti keskustelussa muistetaan myös se, että valtakunnassa on kymmeniätuhansia avioliitossa olevia pareja, jotka surevat — jotka surivat viime viikon torstain keskustelussa, surivat perjantaina — sen vuoksi että Suomesta murtuu lainsäädännössä yksi keskeinen tärkeä elementti. Ei niin, että he olisivat halunneet vastustaa tai ovat vastustamassa toisten... — niin kuin itse olen sanonut, että pariliitossa olisi voinut olla naimisissa ja avioliitossa toiset — mutta meillä todella on surevia aviopareja, monia tänä päivänä Suomessa. Muistetaan kunnioituksella myös heitä.
    ellauri094.html on line 207: After the Battle of Carchemish in 605 BCE, King Nebuchadnezzar of Babylon besieged Jerusalem, resulting in tribute being paid by King Jehoiakim, aka Joakim von Anka. Jehoiakim refused to pay tribute in Nebuchadnezzar's fourth year, which led to another siege in Nebuchadnezzar's seventh year, culminating with the death of Jehoiakim and the exile to Babylonia of King Jeconiah, his court and many others; Jeconiah's successor Zedekiah and others were exiled in Nebuchadnezzar's 18th year; a later deportation occurred in Nebuchadnezzar's 23rd year. The dates, numbers of deportations, and numbers of deportees given in the biblical accounts vary. These deportations are dated to 597 BCE for the first, with others dated at 587/586 BCE, and 582/581 BCE respectively.
    ellauri094.html on line 211: Archaeological studies have revealed that, although Jerusalem was utterly destroyed, other parts of Judah continued to be inhabited during the period of the exile. Most of the exiled did not return to their homeland, instead travelling westward and northward. Many settled in what is now northern Israel, Lebanon and Syria. The Iraqi Jewish, Persian Jewish, Georgian Jewish, and Bukharan Jewish communities are believed to derive their ancestry in large part from these exiles. These communities are now largely concentrated in Israel.
    ellauri094.html on line 215: In the seventh year, in the month of Kislev, the king of Akkad mustered his troops, marched to the Hatti-vatti-land, and encamped against the City of Judah and on the ninth day of the month of Adar he seized the city and captured the king. He appointed there a king of his own choice and taking heavy tribute brought it back to Babylon.
    ellauri094.html on line 219: Nebuchadnezzar and the Babylonian forces returned in 588/586 BCE and rampaged through Judah, leaving clear archaeological evidence of destruction in many towns and settlements there. Clay ostraca from this period, referred to as the Lachish letters, were discovered during excavations; one, which was probably written to the commander at Lachish from an outlying base, describes how the signal fires from nearby towns were disappearing: "And may (my lord) be apprised that we are watching for the fire signals of Lachish according to all the signs which my lord has given, because we cannot see Azeqah." Archaeological finds from Jerusalem testify that virtually the whole city within the walls was burnt to rubble in 587 BCE and utterly destroyed.
    ellauri094.html on line 221: Archaeological excavations and surveys have enabled the population of Judah before the Babylonian destruction to be calculated with a high degree of confidence to have been approximately 75,000. Taking the different biblical numbers of exiles at their highest, 20,000, this would mean that only about the fattest 25% of the population had been deported to Babylon, with the remaining 75% of havenots staying in Judah. Although Jerusalem was destroyed and depopulated, with large parts of the city remaining in ruins for 150 years, numerous other settlements in Judah continued to be inhabited, with no signs of disruption visible in archaeological studies.
    ellauri094.html on line 227: A 2017 exhibition in Jerusalem displayed over 100 cuneiform tablets detailing trade in fruits and other commodities, taxes, debts, and credits accumulated between Jews driven from, or convinced to move from Jerusalem by King Nebuchadnezzar around 600 BCE. The tablets included details on one exiled Judean family over four generations, all with Hebrew names.
    ellauri094.html on line 239: The following table is based on Rainer Albertz's work on Israel in exile. (Alternative dates are possible, like Simo's 300 years.)
    ellauri094.html on line 275: Siege and fall of Jerusalem. Solomon's Temple destroyed.
    Third deportation July/August 587
    ellauri094.html on line 285: Release of Jehoiachin after 37 years in a Babylonian prison. He remains in Babylon
    ellauri094.html on line 318: God has a funny way of treating his “chosen people.” Apparently, the Jews were misbehaving and being ungodly. After several years of some other shenanigans in Babylon, god decided it was time to put his foot down and end the free will of the king by having him take the Jewish people captive. This was in ca. 597 BCE. First I’d like to ask the following questions: Shouldn’t god have known that his “chosen people” were going to act like brats? Couldn’t he have chosen a better, more well-behaved group of people to whom to deliver his word? Anyway, moving on.
    ellauri094.html on line 322: In Jeremiah it is foretold that the Jews will not be able to leave Babylon for 70 years. That’s a fairly long time. It’s an almost guaranteed life sentence for most people.
    ellauri094.html on line 328: Ahem, in Baruch, we are told that the captivity will last seven generations, not merely 70 years. In order to reconcile these two disparate numbers, the Jews would’ve had to be having children at the age of ten or younger! That’s far too young, even by biblical-day standards.
    ellauri094.html on line 330: Of course, they are both wrong. In reality the Babylonian Exile only lasted 60 years.
    ellauri094.html on line 342:
    Seventy years

    ellauri094.html on line 344: “For thus says the Lord, ‘When seventy years have been completed for Babylon, I will visit you and fulfill My good word to you, to bring you back to this place.” (Jeremiah 29:10)
    ellauri094.html on line 348: “And when you are come into Babylon, you shall be there many years, and for a long time, even to seven generations: and after that I will bring you away from thence with peace.” (Baruch 6:2; quoted from Douay-Rheims 1899 American Edition)
    ellauri094.html on line 356: The skeptic tries to pit Jeremiah 29:10 as affirming the claim “The Babylonian Captivity was seventy years” against Baruch 6:2 as affirming “The Babylonian Captivity was seven generations.”
    ellauri094.html on line 357: One must always ask if the skeptics properly interpreted the verses. Jeremiah 29:10 does affirm the claim “The Babylonian Captivity was seventy years.”
    ellauri094.html on line 370: However we do see elsewhere in the Bible it affirm Jeremiah 29:10’s claim that “The Babylonian Captivity was seventy years.” Jeremiah 25:11 states “This whole land will be a desolation and a horror, and these nations will serve the king of Babylon seventy years.” See also Jeremiah 25:12.
    ellauri094.html on line 372: Also the expectation was seventy years for the exiles to return since one sees this interpretation lead Daniel to eagerly long for the seventy year milestone as seen in Daniel 9:2.
    ellauri094.html on line 373: One of the reason to doubt Baruch 6:2 is actually written by Jeremiah and to believe it was written much later is that the Book of Jeremiah talks about the remnant will begin returning within 70 years and yet Baruch 6:2 state the return will be within 7 generations which seems to excuse those who were Jewish reading this book that never did went back to Jerusalem for many generations but continued living outside Jerusalem. Fascinating as well is the fact that this book was written in Greek and not in Hebrew which indicate the likely audience was the Jewish Diaspora.
    ellauri094.html on line 375: A Jewish generation was about 30 years and if you think of 7 generations that is about 210 years. (If they started breeding at 10 then it would be just 70, so no contradiction! Muhammed's fifth wife was 9.) The exile from Jerusalem began in 586 BC. So 210 years later it would land on 376 BC. But way before then the Jews have already made big caravan trips back to Jerusalem which took place in the 6th to 5th Century BC (see the book of Ezra and Nehemiah). There’s no specific migration that stood out in the 300s BC.
    ellauri094.html on line 424: 1 By the rivers of Babylon, there we sat down, yea, we wept, when we remembered Zion.
    ellauri094.html on line 435: 8 O daughter of Babylon, who art to be destroyed; happy shall he be,
    ellauri094.html on line 440: Boney M:n vetävästi esittämä kappale Petterin lp-levyltä onkin vanhemman samannimisen biisin coveri yhtyeeltä The Melodians. Rivers of Babylon on rastafari-laulu, jonka tekivät ja levyttivät Brent Dowe ja Trevor McNaughton jamaikalaisesta reggae-yhtyeestä The Melodians vuonna 1970. The Melodiansin alkuperäisversio kuullaan jamaikalaisessa elokuvassa The Harder They Come (1972) sekä Nicolas Cagen elokuvassa Bringing Out the Dead (1999).
    ellauri094.html on line 442: Suosituksi laulu tuli Boney M:n versiona vuonna 1978. Se nousi muun muassa Britannian listaykköseksi viiden viikon ajaksi. Se oli samalla vuoden myydyin single kyseisessä valtiossa. Yhtyeen kotimaassa Länsi-Saksassa siitä tuli siihen asti pisimpään listaykkösenä pysynyt kappale sen pysyessä kärkipaikalla 17 viikon ajan.
    ellauri094.html on line 473: When we remembered Zion. (Yeah yeah yeah yeah yeah) Kun me kelattii Siionii (jee 5x)
    ellauri094.html on line 515: It was said to us: "Verily ye are great of heart, Meille sanottiin: Sulla on tosiaan tosi iso,
    ellauri094.html on line 516: But ye shall bend; mutta taipuisa;
    ellauri094.html on line 522: And the summer and winter was, and the length of years, ja kesä ja talvi oli vuoden pituisia.
    ellauri094.html on line 568: Years upon years. Vuosi vuodelta.
    ellauri094.html on line 593: Have ye no fear. Ei siitä pelkoa.
    ellauri094.html on line 597: So now also she saith to you, yet another word, Niin et sixi se sanoo sulle taas, japittaa,
    ellauri094.html on line 625: "For an hour, if ye look for him, he is no more found, Tunnin ajan, jos ezitte sitä, ette löydä sitä,
    ellauri094.html on line 627: Then ye lift up your eyes to him and behold him crowned, Sit voitte nostaa kazeen siihen ja nähdä kurnupäisenä,
    ellauri094.html on line 631: In all men's eyes, Joka iikan silmissä,
    ellauri094.html on line 641: So yet he saith; Niin se vielä veti;
    ellauri094.html on line 654: The body of Algernon Charles Swinburne’s poetry is so vast and varied that it is difficult to generalize about it. Swinburne wrote poetry for more than sixty years, and in that time he treated an enormous variety of subjects and employed many poetic forms and meters. He wrote English and Italian sonnets, elegies, odes, lyrics, dramatic monologues, ballads, and romances; and he experimented with the rondeau, the ballade, and the sestina. Much of this poetry is marked by a strong lyricism and a self-conscious, formal use of such rhetorical devices as alliteration, assonance, repetition, personification, and synecdoche. Swinburne’s brilliant self-parody, “Nephilidia,” hardly exaggerates the excessive rhetoric of some of his earlier poems. The early A Song of Italy would have more effectively conveyed its extreme republican sentiments had it been more restrained. As it is, content is too often lost in verbiage, leading a reviewer for The Athenaeum to remark that “hardly any literary bantling has been shrouded in a thicker veil of indefinite phrases.” A favorite technique of Swinburne is to reiterate a poem’s theme in a profusion of changing images until a clear line of development is lost. “The Triumph of Time” is an example. Here the stanzas can be rearranged without loss of effect. This poem does not so much develop as accrete. Clearly a large part of its greatness rests in its music. As much as any other poet, Swinburne needs to be read aloud. The diffuse lyricism of Swinburne is the opposite of the closely knit structures of John Donne and is akin to the poetry of Walt Whitman.
    ellauri094.html on line 690: and, with, ye, to, by, of, in, thy, you, his, him, for, nor, so are repeated.
    ellauri094.html on line 760: Almost all atheists believe in Marxism and have a thought process that is so uniform as to appear like a mass produced. Prayer is what human beings do. Homo Orate (or was it Anate? oh well), man who prays, prays 24/7, 365.25. But man of all creatures, is born and lives completely unaware of nature (as taught by religion). Jesus, Son of God, gave us the Lord’s Prayer, which is a short, convenient prayer, easier to mass produce than a Ford. But in order to benefit from prayer, the man must pursue excellence in prayer.
    ellauri094.html on line 762: So just as we learn music, we cannot become better without practice and experience of music on our instrument of choice (mine is the Jewish Harp, quite popular by the rivers of Babylon). Your confession that you found prayer to be irrelevant is the same as a man banging a child on a piano and then giving up because all the banging just produced noise. You need to be taught how to pray by someone who knows how and then you need to practice, practice, practice for the rest of your life. And still you don't get a hole in one every time, I don't. Although I was trained to pray by various Catholic priests who pray for a living. Prayer professionals who get paid for it. No fucking amateurs like you. By now I find the hole usually quite easily, and can get it in after a few putts with a little help from my priestly friend.
    ellauri095.html on line 57: The words “here/Buckle” which open the sestet mean “here in my heart,” therefore, as well as here in the bird and here in Jesus. Hopkins’s heart-in-hiding, Christ’s prey, sensed Him diving down to seize it for his own. Just as the bird buckled its wings together and thereby buckled its “brute beauty” and “valour”and capacity to “act,” so the speaker responds by buckling together all his considerable talents and renewing his commitment to the imitation of Christ in order to buckle down, buckle to, in serious preparation for the combat, the grappling, the buckling with the enemy. As Paul said, “Put on the whole armour of God, that ye may be able to stand against the wiles of the Devil.”
    ellauri095.html on line 125: Manley Hopkins moved his family to Hampstead in 1852, near where John Keats had lived 30 years before and close to the green spaces of Hampstead Heath. When he was ten years old, Gerard was sent to board at Highgate School (1854–1863). While studying Keats´s poetry, he wrote "The Escorial" (1860), his earliest extant poem. Here he practised early attempts at asceticism. He once argued that most people drank more liquids than they really needed and bet that he could go without drinking for a week. He persisted until his tongue was black and he collapsed at drill. On another occasion he abstained from salt for a week.
    ellauri095.html on line 135: A short fellow of 5’2 or 3”, he was enthusiastic, had a high-pitched voice, loved to sketch and write poems, was close to his family, and had warm, lifelong friends from Oxford, fellow Jesuits, and Irish families. For recreation he visited art exhibitions and old churches, and enjoyed holidays with his family, friends, and fellow Jesuits in Switzerland, Holland, the Isle of Wight, the Isle of Man, Whitby on the North Sea, Wales, Scotland, and the West of Ireland. During these holidays, he loved to hike and swim. His passions were nature (especially trees), ecology, beauty, poetry, art, his family and friends, his country, his religion, and his God. His curse was a lifelong “melancholy” (his word) which in 1885 in Dublin became deep depression and a sense of lost contact with God.
    ellauri095.html on line 145: After several years of ill health and bouts of diarrhoea, Hopkins died of typhoid fever in 1889 and was buried in Glasnevin Cemetery, after a funeral in St Francis Xavier Church in Gardiner Street, located in Georgian Dublin. He is thought to have suffered throughout his life from what today might be labelled bipolar disorder or chronic unipolar depression, and battled a deep sense of melancholic anguish. However, his last words on his death bed were, "I am so happy, I am so happy. I loved my life." He was 44 years of age.
    ellauri095.html on line 147: The image of the poet´s estrangement from God figures in "I wake and feel the fell of dark, not day", in which he describes lying awake before dawn, likening his prayers to "dead letters sent To dearest him that lives alas! away." The opening line recalls Lamentations 3:2: "He hath led me, and brought me into darkness, but not into light." "No Wurst, There is None" and "Carrion Comfort" are also counted among the "terrible sonnets".
    ellauri095.html on line 153: Despite Hopkins burning all his poems on entering the Jesuit novitiate, he had already sent some to Bridges, who with some other friends, was one of the few people to see many of them for some years. After Hopkins's death they were distributed to a wider audience, mostly fellow poets, and in 1918 Bridges, by then poet laureate, published a collected edition; an expanded edition, prepared by Charles Williams, appeared in 1930, and a greatly expanded edition by William Henry Gardner appeared in 1948 (eventually reaching a fourth edition, 1967, with N. H. Mackenzie).
    ellauri095.html on line 163: Robert Martin asserts that when Hopkins first met Dolben, on Dolben´s 17th birthday in Oxford in February 1865, it "was, quite simply, the most momentous emotional event of his undergraduate years, probably of his entire life." According to Robert Martin, "Hopkins was completely taken with Dolben, who was nearly four years his junior, and his private journal for confessions the following year proves how absorbed he was in imperfectly suppressed erotic thoughts of him." Martin also considers it "probable that Hopkins would have been deeply shocked at real sexual intimacy with another guy."
    ellauri095.html on line 167: Hopkins composed two poems about Dolben, "Where art thou friend" and "The Beginning of the End". Robert Bridges, who edited the first edition of Dolben's poems as well as Hopkins's, cautioned that the second poem "must never be printed," though Bridges himself included it in the first edition (1918). Another indication of the nature of his feelings for Dolben is that Hopkins's high Anglican confessor seems to have forbidden him to have any contact with Dolben except by letter. Hopkins never saw Dolben again after the latter's short visit to Oxford during which they met, and any continuation of their relationship was abruptly ended by Dolben's drowning two years later in June 1867. Hopkins's feeling for Dolben seems to have cooled by that time, but he was nonetheless greatly affected by his death. "Ironically, fate may have bestowed more through Dolben's death than it could ever have bestowed through longer life ... for many of Hopkins's best poems – impregnated with an elegiac longing for Dolben, his lost beloved and his muse – were the result." Hopkins's relationship with Dolben is explored in the novel The Hopkins Conundrum.
    ellauri095.html on line 171: Hopkins chose the austere and restrictive life of a Jesuit and was gloomy at times. His biographer Robert Bernard Martin notes that "the life expectancy of a man becoming a novice at twenty-one was twenty-three more years rather than the forty years of males of the same age in the general population."
    ellauri095.html on line 174: The homosexual lifestyle results in a shorter life expectancy. This is undoubtedly due to the health risks associated, such as AIDS, Hepatitis, and a variety of other infections and STDs. In addition, homosexuals are more likely to be smokers, which takes the lifespan even lower. In 1993 Paul Cameron published a study which found that homosexuality takes 20-30 years off the lives of its practitioners. Cameron is a Psychologist and founder of the Family Research Institute. Among men with AIDS their lifespan was 39 years, however even without AIDS a male homosexuals lifespan is just a short 42 years. Lesbians had a median age of death of just 44 years. He also found that lesbians were up to 456 times more likely to die in a car crash than heterosexual women. The liberal Southern Poverty Law Centre dubbed Cameron an "anti-gay extremist", and the American Psychological Association expelled him for exposing the truth about the homosexual lifestyle and accused him of scientific data "fraud". Fortunately, Cameron had the support of faith based groups who would not bow down or turn their behinds to the homosexual agenda.
    ellauri095.html on line 176: Another 1997 study from pro-homosexual researchers who were trying defend homosexuals, examined data of AIDS deaths between 1987 to 1992 in Toronto, and found that the life expectancy for the homosexual men was 8 to 20 years lower than heterosexuals. See also Atheism and life expectancy. Religious people live on average four years longer than their agnostic and atheist peers, new research has found. Actually, the atheists´ life expectancy is way lower than true believers´ (estimated at about one infinity). Source: Conservopedia.
    ellauri095.html on line 178: The aim of our research was never to spread more homophobia, but to demonstrate to an international audience how the life expectancy of gay and bisexual men can be estimated from limited vital statistics data. In our paper, we demonstrated that in a major Canadian centre, life expectancy at age 20 years for gay and bisexual men is 8 to 21 years less than for all men. If the same pattern of mortality continued, we estimated that nearly half of gay and bisexual men currently aged 20 years would not reach their 65th birthday. Under even the most liberal assumptions, gay and bisexual men in this urban centre were experiencing a life expectancy similar to that experienced by men in Canada in the year 1871. In contrast, if we were to repeat this analysis today the life expectancy of gay and bisexual men would be greatly improved. Deaths from HIV infection have declined dramatically in this population since 1996. As we have previously reported there has been a threefold decrease in mortality in Vancouver as well as in other parts of British Columbia.
    ellauri095.html on line 218: Hopkins chose the austere and restrictive life of a Jesuit and was gloomy at times. His biographer Robert Bernard Martin notes that "the life expectancy of a man becoming a novice at twenty-one was twenty-three more years rather than the forty years of males of the same age in the general population."
    ellauri095.html on line 227: Several issues led to a melancholic state and restricted his poetic inspiration in his last five years. His workload was heavy. He disliked living in Dublin, away from England and friends. He was disappointed at how far the city had fallen from its Georgian elegance of the previous century. His general health suffered and his eyesight began to fail. He felt confined and dejected. As a devout Jesuit, he found himself in an artistic dilemma. To subdue an egotism that he felt would violate the humility required by his religious position, he decided never to publish his poems. But Hopkins realised that any true poet requires an audience for criticism and encouragement. This conflict between his religious obligations and his poetic talent made him feel he had failed at both.
    ellauri095.html on line 238: The decision to convert estranged Hopkins from his family and from a number of acquaintances. After graduating in 1867, he was provided by Newman with a teaching post at the Oratory in Birmingham. While there he began to study the violin. On 5 May 1868 Hopkins firmly "resolved to be a religious." Less than a week later, he made a bonfire of his poetry and gave it up almost entirely for seven years. Fortunately he did not burn his Bridges like Savonarola. He also felt a call to enter the ministry and decided to become a Jesuit. He paused first to visit Switzerland, which officially forbade Jesuits to enter.
    ellauri095.html on line 240: In September 1868 Hopkins began his Jesuit novitiate at Manresa House, Roehampton, under the guidance of Alfred Weld. Two years later he moved to St Mary´s Hall, Stonyhurst, for philosophical studies, taking vows of poverty, chastity and obedience on 8 September 1870. He felt that his interest in poetry had stopped him devoting himself wholly to religion. However, on reading Duns Scotus in 1872, he saw how the two need not conflict.
    ellauri095.html on line 256: Christina Georgina Rossetti (5 December 1830 – 29 December 1894) was an English poet who wrote romantic, devotional, and children´s poems. "Goblin Market" and "Remember" remain famous. She also wrote the words of two Christmas carols well known in the UK: "In the Bleak Midwinter", later set by Gustav Holst and by Harold Darke, and "Love Came Down at Christmas", also set by Darke and by other composers. She was little sister (2 years junior) of the artist and poet Dante Gabriel Rossetti and features in several of his paintings.
    ellauri095.html on line 258: In the later decades of her life, Ms. Rossetti suffered from Graves' disease, diagnosed in 1872, suffering a near-fatal attack in the early 1870s. Graves' disease, also known as toxic diffuse goiter, is an autoimmune disease that affects the thyroid. It frequently results in and is the most common cause of hyperthyroidism. It also often results in an enlarged thyroid. Signs and symptoms of hyperthyroidism may include irritability, muscle weakness, sleeping problems, a fast heartbeat, poor tolerance of heat, diarrhea and unintentional weight loss. Other symptoms may include thickening of the skin on the shins, known as pretibial myxedema, and eye bulging, a condition caused by Graves´ ophthalmopathy. About 25 to 80% of people with the condition develop eye problems.
    ellauri095.html on line 298: Nor I half turn to go yet turning stay. Enkä mä mennä kääntyä ja sua ventata
    ellauri095.html on line 334: don´t say goodbye Älä sano heido sit.
    ellauri095.html on line 380: This poem has not been translated into any other language yet.
    ellauri095.html on line 412: O Ye, all ye that walk in Willowwood, Oi te, kaikki te, jotka kuljette Raitamezässä,
    ellauri095.html on line 417: Ere ye again, who so in vain have wooed Ennenkö te, jotka niin turhaan olette huijanneet
    ellauri095.html on line 420: Ere ye, ere ye again shall see the light! Ette ihan heti tule näkemään sieltä päivän paistavan!
    ellauri095.html on line 462: Your eyes look earthward, mine look up.
    ellauri095.html on line 469: Scholars have long debated whether the historical Beatrice is intended to be identified with either or both of the Beatrices in Dante´s writings. She was apparently the daughter of the banker Folco Portinari, and was married to another banker, Simone dei Bardi. Dante claims to have met a "Beatrice" only twice, on occasions separated by nine years, but was so affected by the meetings that he carried his love for her throughout his life.
    ellauri095.html on line 483: The sequence of events is clear. On 18 January 1866 Hopkins composed his most ascetic poem, “The Habit of Perfection” (Täydellinen asukokonaisuus). On 23 January he included poetry in the list of things to be given up for Lent. In July he decided to become a Catholic, and he traveled to Birmingham in September to consult the leader of the Oxford converts, John Henry Newman. Newman received him into the Church in October. On 5 May 1868 Hopkins firmly “resolved to be a religious.” Less than a week later, apparently still inspired by Savonarola, he made a bonfire of his poems and gave up poetry almost entirely for seven years. Finally, in the fall of 1868 Hopkins joined a “serged fellowship” like Savonarola’s and like the one he admired in “Eastern Communion”(1865), a commitment foreshadowed by the emphasis on vows of silence and poverty in “The Habit of Perfection.”
    ellauri095.html on line 508: This potential for a new sacramental poetry was first realized by Hopkins in The Wreck of the Deutschland. Hopkins recalled that when he read about the wreck of the German ship Deutschland off the coast of England it “made a deep impression on me, more than any other wreck or accident I ever read of,” a statement made all the more impressive when we consider the number of shipwrecks he must have discussed with his father. Hopkins wrote about this particular disaster at the suggestion of Fr. James Jones, Rector of St. Beuno’s College, where Hopkins studied theology from 1874 to 1877. Hopkins recalled that “What I had written I burnt before I became a Jesuit and resolved to write no more, as not belonging to my profession, unless it were by the wish of my superiors; so for seven years I wrote nothing but two or three little presentation pieces which occasion called for [presumably ‘Rosa Mystica’ and ‘Ad Mariam’]. But when in the winter of ’75 the Deutschland was wrecked in the mouth of the Thames and five Franciscan nuns, exiles from Germany by the Falck Laws, aboard of her were drowned I was affected by the account and happening to say so to my rector he said that he wished someone would write a poem on the subject. On this hint I set to work and, though my hand was out at first, produced one. I had long had haunting my ear the echo of a new rhythm which now I realized on paper.”
    ellauri095.html on line 514: Nevertheless, although The Wreck of the Deutschland was a great breakthrough to the vision of God immanent in nature and thus to the sacramentalism that was to be the basis of the great nature poems of the following years, when Hopkins sent the poem to his friend Robert Bridges, Bridges refused to reread it despite Hopkins’s pleas. The poem was also rejected by the Jesuit magazine the Month, primarily because of its new “sprung” rhythm, and many subsequent readers have had difficulty with it as well.
    ellauri095.html on line 545: This was a remarkably prophetic poem for Manley Hopkins’s first “beautiful child,” Gerard, born only a year after this poem was published.
    ellauri096.html on line 40:
    ellauri096.html on line 55: Michael Scriven (1964) tried to refute predictive determinism (the thesis that all events are foreseeable), by conjuring two players, “Predictor” who has all the data, laws, and calculating capacity needed to predict the choices of others. Scriven goes on to imagine, “Avoider”, whose dominant motivation is to avoid prediction. Therefore, Predictor must conceal his prediction. The catch is that Avoider has access to the same data, laws, and calculating capacity as Predictor. Thus Avoider can duplicate Predictor’s reasoning. Consequently, the optimal predictor cannot predict Avoider. Let the teacher be Avoider and the student be Predictor. Avoider must win. Therefore, it is possible to give a surprise test. This sounds silly. The Predictor can predict that the Avoider double guesses her. Both can fiture out that this will go on and on, until time runs out, and they still just sit on their asses doing nothing. Thing is, you must remember that the players are part of the game, not outside of it as idealists would have it.
    ellauri096.html on line 94: In later writings, Quine evinces general reservations about the concept of knowledge. One of his pet objections is that ‘know’ is vague. If knowledge entails absolute certainty, then too little will count as known. Quine infers that we must equate knowledge with firmly held true belief. Asking just how firm the belief must be is akin to asking just how big something has to be to count as being big. There is no answer to the question because ‘big’ lacks the sort of boundary enjoyed by precise words.
    ellauri096.html on line 136: Foundationalists reject (1). They take some propositions to be self-evident. Coherentists reject (2). They tolerate some forms of circular reasoning. For instance, Nelson Goodman (1965) has characterized the method of reflective equilibrium as virtuously circular. Charles Peirce (1933–35, 5.250) rejected (3), an approach later refined by Peter Klein (2007) and championed at book-length by Scott F. Aikin (2011). Infinitists believe that infinitely long chains of justification are no more impossible than infinitely long chains of causation. Finally, the epistemological anarchist rejects (4). As Paul Feyerabend refrains in Against Method, “Anything goes” (1988, vii, 5, 14, 19, 159).
    ellauri096.html on line 142: If you know that your beliefs are jointly inconsistent, then you should reject R. M. Sainsbury’s definition of a paradox as “an apparently unacceptable conclusion derived by apparently acceptable reasoning from apparently acceptable premises” (1995, 1). Take the negation of any of your beliefs as a conclusion and your remaining beliefs as the premises. You should judge this jumble argument as valid, and as having premises that you accept, and yet as having a conclusion you reject (Sorensen 2003b, 104–110). If the conclusion of this argument counts as a paradox, then the negation of any of your beliefs counts as a paradox.
    ellauri096.html on line 293: Socrates continues to be praised for his insight. But his “discovery” is a contradiction. If Socrates knows that he knows nothing, then he knows something (the proposition that he knows nothing) and yet does not know anything (because knowledge implies truth).
    ellauri096.html on line 378: [...] jos kukaan, joka ei ymmärrä jumalallisen kaunopuheisuuden sävellajia, löytää jotain näistä asioista [fyysistä kaikkeutta koskien] kirjoistamme, tai kuulee samaa noista kirjoista, niin että se vaikuttaa olevan ristiriidassa hänen omien järjellisten kykyjensä havaintojen kanssa, antakaa hänen tietää, että nämä muut asiat eivät ole millään tavalla tarpeellisia kirjoitusten antamien varoitusten, kertomusten tai ennustusten kannalta. Lyhyesti, on sanottava että kirjailijamme tiesivät totuuden taivaista, mutta ei ollut heidän kauttaan puhuneen Jumalan Hengen tarkoituksena opettaa ihmisille mitään mikä ei olisi hyödyksi heidän pelastukselleen.
    ellauri096.html on line 395: »Pyhä Augustinus opetti, että Aadamilla oli ennen syntiinlankeemusta vapaa tahto ja että hän olisi voinut pidättäytyä synnistä. Mutta kun hän ja Eeva söivät omenan, turmelus tuli heihin ja siirtyi heistä kaikkiin heidän jälkeläisiinsä, joi[s]ta ainoakaan ei kykene omin voimin karttamaan syntiä. Vain Jumalan armo tekee ihmisen kykeneväksi olemaan hyveellinen. Koska me kaikki olemme perineet Aadamin synnin, me kaikki ansaitsemme iankaikkisen kadotuksen. Kaikki, jotka kuolevat kastamattomina, myös pienet lapset, joutuvat helvettiin kärsimään loppumattomia tuskia Meillä ei ole oikeutta valittaa tätä, koska olemma kaikki pahoja. (Tunnustuksissaan pyhimys luettelee rikokset, joihin hän teki itsensä syypääksi kätkyessä.) Mutta Jumalan vapaasta armosta ovat muutamat kastetuista määrätyt pääsemään taivaaseen; nämä ovat valitut. He eivät pääse taivaaseen siitä syystä, että ovat hyviä; me kaikki olemme turmeltuneita, mikäli ei Jumalan armo, joka on suotu ainoastaan valituille, tee meitä kykeneviksi olemaan toisenlaisia. Ei voida mainita mitään syytä, miksi eräät pelastuvat ja toiset joutuvat kadotukseen; tämän määrää Jumalan motivoimaton valinta. Kadotukseen joutuminen osoittaa Jumalan oikeamielisyyttä, pelastuminen hänen armoansa. Molemmat yhdessä osoittavat hänen hyvyyttään.
    ellauri096.html on line 527: Galgalim Eyes is an enemy-only skill, found on bosses and a few shadows in the later dungeons. It reduces a foe's HP to 1 and causes the Enervation ailment (100% chance).
    ellauri096.html on line 531: These "wheels" have been associated with Daniel 7:9 (mentioned as galgal, traditionally "the wheels of galgallim", in "fiery flame" and "burning fire") of the four, eye-covered wheels (each composed of two nested wheels), that move next to the winged Cherubim, beneath the throne of God. The four wheels move with the Cherubim because the spirit of the Cherubim is in them. The late Second Book of Enoch (20:1, 21:1) also referred to them as the "many-eyed ones".
    ellauri096.html on line 575: yeveningpost.com/wp-content/uploads/satevepost/2018-09-27-uncle-sam-860.jpg" height="250px" />
    ellauri096.html on line 617: Hinta- ja palkkajäykkyys= Se ei tarkoita gigoloita, vaikka niin voisi luulla, vaan Hintajäykkyys tarkoittaa, että hinnat eivät tahdo muuttua kysynnän ja tarjonnan muuttumista vastaavasti. Hintajäykkyyttä on yleensä vain lyhyellä aikavälillä, useimmiten vain alas- tai ylöspäin, ei molempiin.
    ellauri096.html on line 653: Artikkelissa viitataan myös lukuisiin kansainvälisesti tunnettuihin taloustieteilijöihin: Maailmanpankin entisen pääekonomistin Paul Romerin mukaan DSGE-mallien vuoksi ”makrotaloustiede on taantunut viimeiset 30 vuotta” kun taas IMF:n entisen pääekonomistin Oliver Blanchardin mukaan DSGE-malleissa on vakavia, mutta korjattavia puutteita. (mt.) Kooman oletuxia on ricardolainen kuluttaja. Mikäs epeli se on? taloudellista toimintaa kuvataan yksilötasolla toteutuvana rationaalisuutena, ja jätetään tällöin huomioimatta yhteiskunnassa vallitsevat pakot. Esimerkiksi kun Kooma-mallin avulla laadituissa tarkasteluissa todetaan, että julkisten menojen leikkaamisen myötä ”[k]ulutus näyttäytyy houkuttelevampana kuin työnteko, jolloin työtunnit per nuppi alenevat” (VM 2014, 17), ei tällöin huomioida esimerkiksi työsopimuksissa työntekijöille määriteltyjä työaikoja. Kooma-mallin avulla laadituissa laskelmissa kulutusverojen vaikutuksista todetaan, että ”veronkorotus alentaa työnteosta saatavaa ylijäämää alentaen näin työn tarjontaa” (mt., 18). Tulkitsen väitteen siten, että mallin mukaisesti työstä saatavan tulon vähentyessä työntekijä-kuluttajat alkavat suosimaan enemmän vapaa-aikaa.
    ellauri097.html on line 54: 12 opetuspojasta harva oli lukitaitoinen. Kun Suuri Marinadi lähti läpyttelemään kuin Kalle kiihtyessään pitkin mattoja ja parketteja, mutta yli Jordanin (tiesi missä on kahlaamo, Creutzfeldin-Johannes Kastajantaudin geenimuuntelemana, sen kastelemana), meni Sugar-Dannyn luoliin, jossa kustantamonsa alkoi Messiaan-kirjallisuuden seuran perinnekeruun omassa ja yhteisessä asiassaan. Markus: Taneli Europaeus, Matteus: Gottlund, Luukas: Lönnrot ja Johannes ehkä Julius Krohn. Mitä muistatte minusta mitä minä sanoin pienenä. Ja kaikki kirjaan. Kääröjä kerääntyy, papyrus rullaantuu. Yhdet jo kopioi ensimmäisiä. Saulukselle kanssa. Ja Barnabaalle: jakelu, apostolit, ja koko hangaround. Säilytetään luolissa, pannaan yhdet Qumraniin, jos tulee virhepainamia. Joo, kreikaksi tietenkin. Ei sit tarvii heti kääntää.
    ellauri097.html on line 57:
    ellauri097.html on line 99: Mencken is fictionalized in the play Inherit the Wind (a fictionalized version of the Scopes Monkey Trial of 1925) as the cynical sarcastic atheist E. K. Hornbeck (right), seen here as played by Gene Kelly in the Hollywood film version.
    ellauri097.html on line 101: Mencken was a keen cheerleader of scientific progress but was skeptical of economic theories and strongly opposed to osteopathic/chiropractic medicine. He also debunked the idea of objective news reporting since "truth is a commodity that the masses of undifferentiated men cannot be induced to buy" and added a humorous description of how "Homo Boobus," like "higher mammalia," is moved by "whatever gratifies his prevailing yearnings."
    ellauri097.html on line 103: Such turns of phrase evoked the erudite cynicism and rapier sharpness of language displayed by Ambrose Bierce in his darkly-satiric The Devil's Dictionary. A noted curmudgeon, democratic in subjects attacked, Mencken savaged politics, hypocrisy, and social convention. A master of English, he was given to bombast and once disdained the lowly hot dog bun's descent into "the soggy rolls prevailing today, of ground acorns, plaster of Paris, flecks of bath sponge and atmospheric air all compact."
    ellauri097.html on line 121: The Presidency tends, year by year, to go to such men. As democracy is perfected, the office represents, more and more closely, the inner soul of the people. We move toward a lofty ideal. On some great and glorious day the plain folks of the land will reach their heart´s desire at last, and the White House will be adorned by a downright moron.
    ellauri097.html on line 149: Mencken repeatedly identified mathematics with metaphysics and theology. According to Mencken, mathematics is necessarily infected with metaphysics because of the tendency of many mathematical people to engage in metaphysical speculation. In a review of Alfred North Whitehead's The Aims of Education, Mencken remarked that, while he agreed with Whitehead's thesis and admired his writing style, "now and then he falls into mathematical jargon and pollutes his discourse with equations," and "[t]here are moments when he seems to be following some of his mathematical colleagues into the gaudy metaphysics which now entertains them."[50] For Mencken, theology is characterized by the fact that it uses correct reasoning from false premises. Mencken also uses the term "theology" more generally, to refer to the use of logic in science or any other field of knowledge. In a review for both Arthur Eddington's The Nature of the Physical World and Joseph Needham's Man a Machine, Mencken ridiculed the use of reasoning to establish any fact in science, because theologians happen to be masters of "logic" and yet are mental defectives:
    ellauri097.html on line 155: If chemists were similarly given to fanciful and mystical guessing, they would have hatched a quantum theory forty years ago to account for the variations that they observed in atomic weights. But they kept on plugging away in their laboratories without calling in either mathematicians or theologians to aid them, and eventually they discovered the isotopes, and what had been chaos was reduced to the most exact sort of order.
    ellauri097.html on line 161: [Physicists] have, in late years, made a great deal of progress, though it has been accompanied by a considerable quackery. Some of the notions which they now try to foist upon the world, especially in the astronomical realm and about the atom, are obviously nonsensical, and will soon go the way of all unsupported speculations. But there is nothing intrinsically insoluble about the problems they mainly struggle with, and soon or late really competent physicists will arise to solve them. These really competent physicists, I predict, will be too busy in their laboratories to give any time to either metaphysics or theology. Both are eternal enemies of every variety of sound thinking, and no man can traffic with them without losing something of his good judgment.
    ellauri097.html on line 278: Noniin, kiitos Julien, riitti tähän otteeseen. Greeneillä oli esi-isiä seinillä kuin muumeilla, vaikka ovat jenkkimamu rotinkaisia. Siitä puhe mistä puute taas. Julian oli äidin Benjamin. Ei suuri ylläri. Petite, mince, avec de très beaux yeux gris dans un visage rêveur, Mary Adelaide Hartridge venait d'une famille portée à la mélancolie.
    ellauri097.html on line 298: In 2006, the Weekend Australian newspaper conducted an experiment. They submitted chapter three of The Eye of the Storm (1973) to twelve publishers and agents around Australia under an anagram of White’s name, Wraith Picket. Nobody offered to publish the book. One responded, “the sample chapter, while reply (sic) with energy and feeling, does not give evidence that the work is yet of a publishable quality.” Notwithstanding that the chapter was not White’s finest writing, and the unfairness of submitting a chapter out of narrative sequence, the hoax prompted a minor crisis in Australian literature: if the industry couldn’t recognize the greatness of our sole Nobel winner, how unenlightened must the country’s publishing industry be now? Shortly thereafter, the ABC launched an online portal called Why Bother With Patrick White? The portal always struck me as sad. What other major writer would need a website dedicated to convincing his countrymen to give him another go? The link to the website is dead now. It would seem, in the end, that nobody could be bothered with Patrick White.
    ellauri097.html on line 300: They were lean years when the men ate garden snails and drank cooking sherry, years when they were mostly happy.
    ellauri097.html on line 302: In some respects this reflects a national pathology. Unlike an American or British child, an Australian student can go through thirteen years of education without reading much of their country’s literature at all (of the more than twenty writers I studied in high school, only two were Australian). This is symptomatic of the country’s famed “cultural cringe,” a term first coined in the 1940s by the critic A.A. Phillips to describe the ways that Australians tend to be prejudiced against home-grown art and ideas in favor of those imported from the UK and America. Australia’s attitude to the arts has, for much of the last two centuries, been moral. “What these idiots didn’t realize about White was that he was the most powerful spruiker for morality that anybody was going to read in an Australian work,” argued David Marr, White’s biographer, during a talk at the Wheeler Centre in 2013. “And here were these petty little would-be moral tyrants whinging about this man whose greatest message about this country in the end was that we are an unprincipled people.”
    ellauri097.html on line 511: John Boswell was a Roman Catholic, having converted from the Episcopal Church of his upbringing at the age of 15. He remained a daily-mass Catholic until his death, despite differences with the church over sexual issues. Although he was orthodox in most of his beliefs, he strongly disagreed with his church's stated opposition to homosexual behavior and relationships. He was partnered with Jerone Hart for some twenty years until his death. Hart and Boswell are buried together at Grove Street Cemetery, New Haven, Connecticut.
    ellauri097.html on line 699: “The Tuft of Flowers” does indeed follow “Mowing” in the book, and one might suspect that line 32 of “Flowers” was borrowed from line 2 of “Mowing.” It is, in fact, the other way around: “The Tuft of Flowers” was written several years before “Mowing,” likely in 1896 or 1897; as such, it heartily deserves the designation “Early Poem.”
    ellauri097.html on line 730: Some resting flower of yesterday’s delight. jotain kukkaa joka oli jäänyt yli eilisestä.
    ellauri097.html on line 735: And then he flew as far as eye could see, Ja size lensi eteenpäin niin pitkälle kuin silmä kantoi,
    ellauri097.html on line 741: But he turned first, and led my eye to look Muze kääntyi ensixi ja johdatti mun kazeen kohti
    ellauri097.html on line 753: Nor yet to draw one thought of ours to him. eikä edes houkuttaaxeen meitä ihailemaan izeään,
    ellauri097.html on line 779: Two roads diverged in a yellow wood, 2 tietä haarautui keltaisessa mezässä,
    ellauri097.html on line 816: Robert Frost's personal life was plagued by grief and loss. In 1885 when he was 11, his father died of tuberculosis, leaving the family with just eight dollars. Frost's mother died of cancer in 1900. In 1920, he had to commit his younger sister Jeanie to a mental hospital, where she died nine years later. Mental illness apparently ran in Frost's family, as both he and his mother suffered from depression, and his daughter Irma was committed to a mental hospital in 1947. Frost's wife, Elinor, also experienced bouts of depression.
    ellauri098.html on line 175: According to Propp, based on his analysis of 100 folktales from the corpus of Alexander Fyodorovich Afanasyev, there were 31 basic structural elements (or 'functions') that typically occurred within Russian fairy tales. He identified these 31 functions as typical of all fairy tales, or wonder tales [skazka] in Russian folklore. These functions occurred in a specific, ascending order (1-31, although not inclusive of all functions within any tale) within each story. This type of structural analysis of folklore is referred to as "syntagmatic". This focus on the events of a story and the order in which they occur is in contrast to another form of analysis, the "paradigmatic" which is more typical of Lévi-Strauss's structuralist theory of mythology. Lévi-Strauss sought to uncover a narrative's underlying pattern, regardless of the linear, superficial syntagm, and his structure is usually rendered as a binary oppositional structure. For paradigmatic analysis, the syntagm, or the linear structural arrangement of narratives is irrelevant to their underlying meaning.
    ellauri098.html on line 300: Tropes are not the same thing as cliches. They may be brand new but seem trite and hackneyed; they may be thousands of years old but seem fresh and new. They are not bad, they are not good; tropes are tools that the creator of a work of art uses to express their ideas to the audience. It's pretty much impossible to create a story without tropes.
    ellauri098.html on line 343: Niitäkin mulla on useita tossa hyllyssä, mm. Salen Henderson, Melvillen Taipii, Heyerdahlin Ra, Conradin Lordi Jim (puolaxi), Celine, Camus, Rimbaud, ym.ym. Jotain niistä olen lukenutkin, suurinta osaa en. Mutta ei niistä pitänyt oikeasti paasata, vaan narratiivin troopeista.
    ellauri098.html on line 347: Applied Phlebotinum - kumma nimi. No ei se ole muuta kuin vanha kunnon deus ex machina. "Any sufficiently advanced technology is indistinguishable from a completely ad-hoc plot device." According to Joss Whedon, during the DVD commentary for the pilot episode of Buffy the Vampire Slayer, the term "phlebotinum" originates from Buffy writer (and Angel co-creator) David Greenwalt's sudden outburst: "Don't touch the phlebotinum!" apropos of nothing. Flebotomia on suonenisku.
    ellauri098.html on line 364: "An idea has no worth at all without believable characters to implement it; a plot without characters is like a tennis court without players. Daffy Duck is to a Buck Rogers story what John McEnroe was to tennis. Personality. That is the key, the drum, the fife. Forget the plot."
    ellauri098.html on line 436: Aika monet yers-briggs-types-101-famous-authors/">kirjailijat ja fiktiiviset hahmot löytyy esiluokiteltuna, mikä helpottaa bibliografista kirjallisuustutkimusta ja tekee siitä entistä objektiivisempaa. Nyt siis kehiin tyyppejä! Anna mennä Jung!
    ellauri098.html on line 439: ENTP (Extroverted Intuitive Thinking Perceiving) is one of the sixteen personality types of the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test.
    ellauri098.html on line 447: INTP (introverted inntuitive thinking perceiving) is one of the sixteen personality types defined by the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test. INTPs are a relatively rare type, making up about 4% of the population. INTPs are creatures of logic. Calm, controlled, and studious, INTPs are driven by the search for reason. For INTPs, the principles behind anything can be figured out given enough time. In fact, INTPs often get caught up on thinking for its own sake; the stereotypical figure of the “absent-minded scientist” is based on INTP behavior.
    ellauri098.html on line 454: ENTJ (Extroverted Intuitive Thinking Judging) is one of the sixteen personality types of the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test.
    ellauri098.html on line 462: INTJ (Introverted INtuitive Thinking Judging) is one of the 16 personality types of the Myers-Briggs personality test.
    ellauri098.html on line 467:
    John Adams, Isaac Asimov, keisari Augustus, Jane Austen, Dan Aykroyd, L.van Beethoven, Anders Breivik, Emily Bronté, Cassius (Shakespeare) Hillary Clinton, Elvis Costello, Charles Darwin, Mr. Darcy, Ike Eisenhower, Colin Firth, Bobby Fischer, von Frankenstein, Gandalf, Richard Gere, Al Gore (taas), Hannibal (taas), Steven Hawking, G.W.F.Hegel, Herakleitos, Sherlock Holmes, Horatio Hornblower, Thomas Jefferson, Ted Kaczynski (Unabomber), John F.Kennedy, J.M. Keynes, Stanley Kubrik, Meyer Lansky, Ivan Lendl, V.I.Lenin, C.S. Lewis, Martin Luther, Elon Musk, Michelle Obama, John Nash, Martina Navratilova, Isaac Newton, Friedrich Nietsche, Sylvia Plath, Ayn Rand, Rosenkrantz&Guildenstern (Hamlet), Jean-Paul Sartre, Arnold Schwarzenegger (taas), Nikola Tesla, Sun Tzu, Bruce Wayne (Batman), Norbert Wiener, Woodrow Wilson, Mark Zuckerberg

    ellauri098.html on line 470: ENFP (Extroverted Intuitive Feeling Perceiving) is one of the sixteen personality types of the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) psychological test. ENFPs make up about eight percent of the population.
    ellauri098.html on line 479: INFP (introverted intuitive feeling perceiving) is one of the sixteen personality types defined by the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test. INFPs are relatively uncommon, making up about 4% of the population. INFPs are idealists. They see the world, and those around them, not as they are but as they could be. INFPs have strong principles, which they do not let go of easily. These principles drive them to help others better themselves, but as an introverted personality they rarely do so through direct confrontation. INFPs are more comfortable expressing themselves through art, writing, or other media, and can be surprisingly effective and creative communicators.
    ellauri098.html on line 483:
    H.C. Andersen, Frodo Baggins, William Blake, Marlon Brando, Charley Brown, Albert Camus, Johnny Depp, Jane Eyre, Mia Farrow, V.van Gogh, Homeros, P.Johannes, Franz Kafka (taas), Helen Keller, Kermit the Frog, Sören Kierkegaard, Hugh Laurie, John Lennon, Luna Lovegood, P.Luukas, C.S. Lewis (taas), Neizyt Maria, Bob Marley, A.A. Milne, John Milton, Jim Morrison, Edgar Allan Poe, Fred Rogers, Romeo&Juliet, J-J.Rousseau, Antoine de Saint-Exupery, Carlos Santana, William Shakespeare, Bella Swan (Twilight), Luke Skywalker, Amy Tan, Daenerys Targaryen, JRR Tolkien, Vergilius, Andy Warhol, Bill Waterson (Calvin&Hobbes), Virginia Woolf

    ellauri098.html on line 487: ENFJ (Extroverted Intuitive Feeling Judging) is one of the sixteen personality types defined by the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test.
    ellauri098.html on line 497: INFJ (Introverted Intuitive Feeling Judging) is one of the sixteen personality types defined by the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test. INFJ is the believed to be the rarest personality, making up only one percent of the population.
    ellauri098.html on line 505: ESTJ (extroverted sensing thinking judging) is one of the sixteen personality types of the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test. ESTJs make up about seven percent of the population.
    ellauri098.html on line 514: ISTJ (introverted sensing thinking judging) is one of the sixteen personality types of the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test. ISTJs are one of the most common types, making up an estimated 13% of the population.
    ellauri098.html on line 524: ESFJ (extroverted sensing feeling judging) is one of the sixteen personality types of the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test. ESFJs are one of the more common types, making up about 12% of the population.
    ellauri098.html on line 532: ISFJ (Introverted Sensing Feeling Judging) is one of the sixteen personality types defined by the MBTI (Myers-Briggs Type Indicator) test. ISFJs are a fairly common type, making up about 13% of the population.
    ellauri098.html on line 539: ESTP (extroverted sensing thinking perceiving) is one of the sixteen personality types defined by the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test. ESTPs make up about 4% of the population, and are more likely to be men than women.
    ellauri098.html on line 545:
    Aladdin, Alexanteri Suuri (taas), George W. Bush, Rhett Butler, Julius Caesar (taas), David Cameron, Al Capone, Dale Carnegie, Winston Churchill, Rainbow Dash, Sir Arthur Conan Doyle, Thomas A. Edison (taas), Epikuros, Gimli, Sasha Grey, Harry Houdini, Jaime Lannister, Madonna, Eddie Murphy, Jack Nicholson, Camilla Parker-Bowles, Peter Pan, Eva Peron, P.Pietari, Theodore Roosevelt, Marquis de Sade, Nicholas Sarkozy, Tom Sawyer, Han Solo, Jack Sparrow, Sylvester Stallone, Donald Trump (taas), Mike Tyson, John Wayne, Mae West, Amy Winehouse, Malcolm X

    ellauri098.html on line 549: ISTJ (introverted sensing thinking judging) is one of the sixteen personality types of the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test. ISTJs are one of the most common types, making up an estimated 13% of the population. ISTJs are clear-sighted, logical, and efficient. They are planners rather than spontaneous, and prefer order and routine in their work and home lives. They value tradition, hierarchy, and clarity of purpose. To some of the more creative types, ISTJs can seem dull and unimaginative, unwilling to break the rules and unable to respond flexibly to changing situations.

    ellauri098.html on line 555: ESFP (extroverted sensing feeling perceiving) is one of the sixteen personality types of the Myers-Briggs Type Inventory (MBTI) test.
    ellauri098.html on line 562:
    IFSP Unassuming yet passionate aesthetes.

    ellauri098.html on line 563: ISFP (introverted sensing feeling perceiving) is one of the sixteen personality types defined by the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI) test. ISFP is one of the more common personality types, making up about 9% of the general population.
    ellauri098.html on line 564: ISFPs are creative and imaginative, with well-developed aesthetic senses. They are naturally suited for work in music, art, design, or other areas where an eye for beauty is important. They love to explore ideas and experiment with different styles, and constantly seek out new experiences, making them spontaneous and unpredictable. This, however, can lead to a lack of focus. ISFPs also tend to have fragile egos and react badly to criticism — however well-intentioned, it is difficult for them to not take it personally. Like all introverted types, they need time on their own to think and recharge, but they still love to share their latest innovations with others.
    ellauri098.html on line 625:

    Myers–Briggsin tyyppi-indikaattori – Wikipedia


    ellauri098.html on line 627: Myers–Briggsin tyyppi-indikaattori (lyh. MBTI, engl. Myers-Briggs Type Indicator) on psykologinen indikaattori, joka kuvaa ihmisen persoonallisuutta neljän ulottuvuuden avulla. Ulottuvuuksista kolme on peräisin Carl Jungilta, joka vuonna 1921 julkaisemassa psykologisia tyyppejä esittelevässä kirjassa kuvasi persoonallisuuden piirteitä. Indikaattorin kehitti Katherine Briggs tyttärensä Isabel Myersin kanssa toisen maailmansodan jälkeen mahdollistaakseen yksilöiden henkisen kasvun ymmärtämällä ja arvostamalla henkilökohtaisia eroavaisuuksia persoonallisuuksiltaan terveissä ihmisissä, ja lisätäkseen harmoniaa ja tuottavuutta erilaisissa ryhmissä.
    ellauri098.html on line 629: Myers–Briggsin tyyppi-indikaattori jakaa väestön 16 toisistaan poikkeavaan persoonallisuustyyppiin, joilla on tiettyjä toisistaan erottavia ominaisuuksia siinä kuinka ihmiset havaitsevat asioita ja millä perusteilla ihmiset tekevät päätöksiä. Myers ja Briggs kykenivät muodostamaan persoonallisuustyypeistä kuvauksia, profiileja, jotka esittelevät eri persoonallisuustyyppien edustajien stereotyyppistä käytöstä.
    ellauri098.html on line 631: Myers–Briggsin tyyppi-indikaattorin pohjalta David Keirsey on kehittänyt Keirsey Temperament Sorter -testin, joka eroaa siitä lähestymistavassaan ja tarkastelee persoonallisuustyyppejä neljänä erillisenä ryhmänä, temperamentteina. Jako perustuu persoonallisuustyyppien samankaltaisuuksiin ja taipumukseen muodostaa keskinäisiä ihmissuhteita. Sosioniikka on Venäjällä yleistynyt Jungin kehittämiin kognitiivisiin funktioihin perustuva Myers–Briggsin kaltainen teoria.
    ellauri098.html on line 633: Myers-Briggsin tyyppi-indikaattorilla on voimakas korrelaatio Big Five-tyypityksen kanssa. Big Fiven OCEAN-asteikolla korkeaa Openness-lukemaa vastaa N (intuitio) ja matalaa S (tosiasiallinen); korkeaa Conscientiousness-lukemaa vastaa J (harkitseva) ja matalaa P (spontaani); korkeaa Extroversion-lukemaa vastaa E (ekstrovertti) ja matalaa I (introvertti), ja korkeaa Agreeableness-lukemaa vastaa F (tunteva) ja matalaa T (ajatteleva). Neuroottisuusakselia MBTI:ssa ei ole.
    ellauri098.html on line 635: Myers–Briggsin tyyppi-indikaattori sisältää neljä eri ulottuvuutta, joilla testattavien preferenssejä mitataan. Indikaattorin kysymysten perusteella selvitetään, kumpaa preferenssiä (I–E, S–N, T–F ja J–P) testattava luontevammin jokaisessa neljässä ulottuvuudessa käyttää. Myers–Briggsin tyyppi-indikaattorin teoria koostuu 16 erilaisesta persoonallisuustyypistä, ja indikaattorin tuloksena saadaan vastausten perusteella sopivin näistä persoonallisuustyypeistä, sen perusteella miten kysymyksiin annetut vastaukset sijoittavat testattavan neljällä eri ulottuvuudella.
    ellauri098.html on line 637: Myers–Briggsin tyyppi-indikaattori perustuu Carl Jungin psykologisiin teorioihin ja Jungin kehittämiin kahdeksaan kognitiiviseen funktioon. Tähän jungilaiseen pohjaan Myers ja Briggs lisäsivät neljännen ulottuvuuden (judgement/perception, J-P). Neljän ulottuvuuden eri yhdistelminä voidaan muodostaa MBTI-jaottelun 16 eri persoonallisuustyyppiä. Persoonallisuustyyppien nelikirjaimiset kirjainyhdistelmät kertovat tosiasiassa persoonallisuustyypin käyttämät kognitiiviset funktiot ja niiden järjestyksen ja ovat siten kognitiivisten funktioiden joukon lyhenteitä.
    ellauri098.html on line 668: Myers-Briggs -testin kyky ennustaa esimerkiksi työtehtävässä menestymistä tai avioliiton onnellisuutta on olematon. Testi perustuu Carl Jungin kokeellisesti testaamattomiin, yleisesti vanhentuneina pidettyihin teorioihin, eikä sen 40-luvulla kehittäneillä Briggsillä ja Myersillä ollut psykologista koulutusta. Testi tuli suosituksi etenkin CPP-yrityksen ottaessa sen hallintaansa 1975, mutta ei ole muuttunut vuosien saatossa paljoakaan.
    ellauri098.html on line 670: Testin stabiilius on heikko – jopa 50 % ihmisistä saa eri tuloksen toisella testikerralla. Testiä ei käytetäkään lainkaan tieteellisessä psykologiassa, vaan uudet, empiirisesti perustellut psykologiset testit ovat täysin erityyppisiä. Myers-Briggsillä voidaan katsoa olevan lähinnä viihdearvoa. Koska kaikkia tyyppejä kuvataan positiiviseen sävyyn, testattavat saavat testistä yleensä hyvän mielen.
    ellauri098.html on line 672: Myers–Briggsin tyyppi-indikaattoriin kuuluu 16 toisistaan poikkeavaa persoonallisuustyyppiä.
    ellauri098.html on line 674:
    Lyhyet tyyppikuvaukset

    ellauri098.html on line 728: Myers-Briggsin tyyppi-indikaattorilla on voimakas korrelaatio Big Five-tyypityksen kanssa. Big Fiven OCEAN-asteikolla korkeaa Hörhöys(O) lukemaa vastaa N (hörhö) ja matalaa S (ketku); korkeaa Pedanttius(C)-lukemaa vastaa J (kimmo) ja matalaa P (touho); korkeaa Öykkäriys(E)-lukemaa vastaa E (öykkäri) ja matalaa I (väpelö), ja korkeaa Hölmöys(A)--lukemaa vastaa F (ääliö) ja matalaa T (nörtti). Jenkein ja naismaisin on ESFP eli öykkäri ketku ääliö touho, nazein ja miehekkäin on INTJ eli väpelö hörhö nörtti kimmo. Neuroottisuusakselia MBTI:ssa ei ole. Neuroottisuus hävisi kondomien mukana.
    ellauri098.html on line 735: MBTI Manual: A Guide to the Development and Use of the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator®, Third Edition (Form M), Isabel Briggs Myers, Mary H. McCaulley, Naomi L. Quenk, Allen L. Hammer, CAPT, Palo Alto, CA, ISBN 0-89106-130-4, 1998, 420 pp.
    ellauri098.html on line 752: Fiktion kirjoittajana Cook Briggsin kiinnostus erilaisia persoonallisuustyyppejä kohtaan kasvoi, ja vuonna 1917 hän ryhtyi tutkimaan aihepiiriä. Lopulta hän alkoi kehittämään omaa teoriaansa, kunnes vuonna 1923 Carl Jungin Psychologische Typen -kirjan englanninkielisen painoksen (1923) ilmestyttyä Briggs löysi siitä useita yhtäläisyyksiä oman persoonallisuutensa kanssa. Hän kehitti tyttärensä Isabel Briggs Myersin kanssa toimivan indikaattorin, joka nimettiin heidän mukaansa.
    ellauri098.html on line 754: Toisen maailmansodan aikaan 1941 Myers motivoitui toimivan persoonallisuusindikaattorin kehittämiseen. Hän halusi lopettaa sotien aiheuttamat kärsimykset ja tragediat ja uskoi, että ihmisten paremman keskinäisen ymmärtämisen kautta kärsimykset vähenisivät. Koska psykologit eivät asiasta kiinnostuneet (kärsimyxethän on niiden leipäpuu) Myers ja Briggs päättivät yhdessä kehittää välineen, jolla teoria saataisiin konkreettiseen hyötykäyttöön. II maailmansodasta alkaen MBTI on ollut osa amerikkalaisten upseerien ja muiden johtajien valintakokeita. Se selittää aika paljonkin.
    ellauri098.html on line 756:
    ellauri099.html on line 40:
    ellauri099.html on line 46: The Picture of Dorian Gray is a Gothic and philosophical novel by Oscar Wilde, first published complete in the July 1890 issue of Lippincott's Monthly Magazine. Fearing the story was indecent, prior to publication the magazine's editor deleted roughly five hundred words without Wilde's knowledge. Despite that censorship, The Picture of Dorian Gray offended the moral sensibilities of British book reviewers, some of whom said that Oscar Wilde merited prosecution for violating the laws guarding public morality. In response, Wilde aggressively defended his novel and art in correspondence with the British press, although he personally made excisions of some of the most controversial material when revising and lengthening the story for book publication the following year.
    ellauri099.html on line 48: The longer and revised version of The Picture of Dorian Gray published in book form in 1891 featured an aphoristic preface—a defence of the artist's rights and of art for art's sake—based in part on his press defences of the novel the previous year. The content, style, and presentation of the preface made it famous in its own right, as a literary and artistic manifesto. In April 1891, the publishing firm of Ward, Lock and Company, who had distributed the shorter, more inflammatory, magazine version in England the previous year, published the revised version of The Picture of Dorian Gray.
    ellauri099.html on line 82: Ja sit vielä toi jungilainen extro-intro pursoonallisuustyyppi neljällä ulottuvuudella, enste yleensä (E/I), sit vastaanottoantenni (S/N, aistit/intuitio), sit aivokerros (F/T, tunne/ajattelu), sit toimintamalli (P/J, havainnointi/tuomio). Niinettä kaikista neropatein introvertti on INTJ "Tenacious visionaries, oriented towards action" (esim. Bertie tai sen kamu Keynes), ja kaikista tyhmin extromortti on tollanen ESFP "Free-spirited and fun-loving people persons" (esim. Kinsella). Kirjailijoiden luonnenimikkeistä on hyvä selvitys edellisessä albumissa. Voikun pääsis kirjailijoille tekee MBTI eli Myers-Briggs testejä. Muze on jo myöhäistä useimpien kohdalla. Paizi voinhan mä koittaa vastata niiden puolesta! Vedänpä ensin testin izelleni ihan noin kalibrointimielessä. (Kysymyxet ja mun testituloxet tietolaatikossa alla.)
    ellauri099.html on line 178: The Academy complex is approximately 130 feet square. It has the typical dimensions of a palaestra, or wrestling school. In my mind’s eye, I saw an elderly Plato sitting watching his academicians wrestle, occasionally offering coaching advice and encouragement.
    ellauri099.html on line 181: Plato worked at the Academy until his death in 347 B.C.E., interrupted only by two more extended trips to Sicily. The Academy survived for a few more centuries until it was destroyed by the Roman general Sulla in 87 B.C.E. during the sack of Athens. The buildings were probably burned along with many other sanctuaries, and the trees from the grove of academe were felled to provide timber for his siege machines. So it goes, I thought.
    ellauri099.html on line 186: Aristotle had slender calves. His eyes were small. And he spoke with a lisp, which — according to Plutarch — was imitated by some. He wore many rings and had a distinctive, rather exotic style of dress — a kind of ancient bling.
    ellauri099.html on line 188: It is said that Aristotle was a difficult character — somewhat arrogant, thinking he was cleverer than everyone else (quite possibly true) and even criticizing his headmaster of many years, Plato. (Who was quite a butthead in comparison.) He was a perhaps a bit of a dyskolos, a grouch, cantankerous, a curmudgeon.
    ellauri099.html on line 192: We do know that after having served as Lector in the Academy and being described as its “Mind” by Plato, Aristotle was not chosen as the latter’s successor. The job of scholarch, or head of the school, by sheer happenstance, went to Speusippus, Plato’s nephew. Aristotle left Athens shortly after Plato’s death and stayed away for around 12 years. Was he angry or disappointed not to have been chosen as head of the Academy? By being ordered round by big butthead´s nephew, who was an even bigger butthead?
    ellauri099.html on line 199: Famously, Aristotle was asked by Philip II of Macedon to be the tutor of his 13-year-old son, Alexander. Aristotle set up school in the Macedonian fortress of Mieza, and the young prince was taught together with his companions, who probably numbered around 30 students. A big class. This was a closed school, a boarding school of sorts. A sense of the seriousness with which Aristotle performed his duties can be gleaned from the fact that he composed two treatises in honor of Alexander, “On Kingship” and "On Colonies" as guidebooks for the prince, as well as editing a copy of Homer’s “Iliad” specifically for Alexander’s use — the so-called “casket copy” (presumably because it was small enough to fit inside his casket).
    ellauri099.html on line 201: Very little is known about Aristotle’s stay in Macedonia, but it is thought that he was there for quite some time, possibly seven years, and became very friendly with powerful members of Philip’s court. In 336 B.C.E., Philip was assassinated (in a theater, of all places), and Alexander was declared king at the age of 20. Sensing the instability of political transition, the mighty city of Thebes rebelled against the new Macedonian king. In order to set an example, Alexander besieged and then wholly incinerated the city, wiping it from the map. Its citizens were either killed or sold into slavery.
    ellauri099.html on line 230: We hope you enjoyed this free article. Subscribers make stories like this possible. Thanx to them!
    ellauri099.html on line 244: Roberto pudisteli kevyesti päätään, ironia katosi, mutta ihanan laineileva tukka ei mennyt sekaisin. Näin hän suurin piirtein vastasi, tämä on vain tiivistelmä, olin kiihtynyt enkä muista kaikkea tarkasti, joten antaa Elena-tädin täydentää unohtuneet kohdat:

    ellauri099.html on line 300: Tätä luonteenmittausta on ollut paasauxissa ennenkin, esim. Järjestelmä-älli ja heppahullukysely. Niistä on paljon apua kun haluaa noudattaa sokrateen ja Pythian motivointipuhetta "Gnothi seauton - Tunne edes izesi!". Myersin ja sen tyttären Briggssin izetuntemusta helpottava kyselykaavake on tässä.
    ellauri100.html on line 85: Klezmer (Yiddish: קלעזמער ‎) is an instrumental musical tradition of the Ashkenazi Jews of Central and Eastern Europe. The essential elements of the tradition include dance tunes, ritual melodies, and virtuosic improvisations played for listening; these would have been played at weddings and other social functions. After the destruction of Jews in Eastern Europe during the Holocaust, there was a general fall in the popularity of klezmer. The term klezmer comes from a combination of Hebrew words: klei, meaning "tools, utensils or instruments of" and zemer, "melody"; leading to k´lei zemer כְּלֵי זֶמֶר‎, literally "instruments of music" or "musical instruments". Originally, klezmer referred to musical instruments, and was later extended to refer, as a pejorative, to musicians themselves. From the 16th to 18th centuries, it replaced older terms such as leyts (clown). It was not until the late 20th century that the word came to identify a musical genre. Early 20th century recordings and writings most often refer to the style as "Yiddish" music, although it is also sometimes called Freilech music (Yiddish, literally "Happy music").
    ellauri100.html on line 252: Academics: Graduated from Big-Ten U in the early 1960s with a B.A. in Economics. Accepted for graduate study in economics at several top schools, including Chicago, M.I.T., and some Ivy League schools. Chose M.I.T. and soon regretted the choice: gray, rainy Cambridge and robotic mathematical approach to economics made for a depressing combination. Returned to alma mater to finish the academic year, then quit to join the (somewhat) “real world” and earn some money. Read: I flunked because I was too dense for M.I.T.
    ellauri100.html on line 254: First and lasting employment: Encouraged by former professor to join a government-funded, defense think-tank in the D.C. area. Worked there for 30 of my 34 years of post-collegiate, full-time employment.
    ellauri100.html on line 256: Marriage (and family): Made my first love in the think-tank and married her 56 years later. Our happy union was blessed by two grown children — whose sad lives invalidate the (sometimes tough) support we gave them — and twelve fighting, shoving, and enraging grandchildren. 17-vuotiaat rakastuivat ensi silmäyxellä. Nyt Aune ei enää muista kuka Paavo on.
    ellauri100.html on line 258: Early and mid-career: After four years as an analyst at the think-tank, went to the Pentagon as a “whiz kid” for two years, at the height of the Vietnam War. Another regrettable choice. Returned to the think-tank and stayed seven more years, advancing from analyst to project director and program director (i.e., manager of several projects).
    ellauri100.html on line 260: Escape from D.C.: The futility of analytical work (see “Beliefs,” below) led to the purchase of a small publishing company (weekly paper and free shopping guide) in western New York State. Worked like a dog for three years, and brought the habit back to the think-tank.
    ellauri100.html on line 264: Home stretch: Stayed at the think-tank another 18 years. After three years of reviewing reports, seized an opportunity to establish and run the think-tank’s publications department. Promoted a year later to chief financial and administrative officer, with a portfolio consisting of accounting, computer operations, contracting, facility planning and operations, financial management, human resources (a.k.a. personnel), library and technical information services, physical and information security, programming services, and publications. Basically, I ended up doing everything because there were not many people left in that doomed outfit. Became deeply involved in legal matters, including spin-off of the think-tank from parent company, resolution of affirmative-action claims, and complex contract and lease negotiations. Contrived retirement at age 56. Read: that's when they at long last got rid of me because I had sunk the spin-off.
    ellauri100.html on line 281: If my father ever earned as much as a median income, it would come as a surprise to me. Our houses, neighborhoods, and family friends were what is known as working-class. If there were twinges of envy for the rich and famous, they were balanced with admiration for their skills and accomplishments. These children of the Great Depression — my parents and their siblings and friends — betrayed no feelings of grievance toward those who had more of life’s possessions. They were rightly proud of what they had earned and accumulated, and did not feel entitled to more than that because of their “bad luck” or lack of “privilege”. These attitudes fit the Virginia boy's moral right edge like a glove.
    ellauri100.html on line 283: In my own life, my jobs have ranged from busing tables to serving as a corporate officer. I have spent time in the company of high-ranking government officials, high-priced and expert lawyers, brilliant scientists and academicians, and talented musicians and artisans.
    ellauri100.html on line 313: I was apolitical until I went to college. There, under the tutelage of economists of the Keynesian persuasion, I became convinced that government could and should intervene in economic affairs. My pro-interventionism spread to social affairs in my early post-college years, as I joined the “intellectuals” of the time in their support for the Civil Rights Act and the Great Society, which was about social engineering as much as anything.
    ellauri100.html on line 315: The urban riots that followed the murder of Martin Luther King Jr. opened my eyes to the futility of LBJ’s social tinkering. I saw at once that plowing vast sums into a “war” on black poverty would be rewarded with a lack of progress, sullen resentment, and generations of dependency on big brother in Washington. (Regarding the possibility that I am a racial bigot, see the note at the bottom of this page. If you don't care to read that far, yes, I am a racial bigot, and how.)
    ellauri100.html on line 317: At about the same time, my eyes were opened fully to the essential incompetence of government by LBJ’s inept handling of the war in Vietnam. (Gradualism, phooey — either fight to win or get out.)
    ellauri100.html on line 352:

    Psalm 14 Prayer Audio in Latin


    ellauri100.html on line 353:
    ellauri100.html on line 375: I am an INTJ, and an especially strong I, T, and J. Here are my latest scores (02/16/17) on the Keirsey Temperament Sorter (KTS), which is similar to the Myers-Briggs Type Indicator (MBTI). The descriptive excerpts are from David Keirsey and Marilyn Bates’s Please Understand Me.
    ellauri100.html on line 495: In the graph below, your score is shown in green. The scores of all people who have taken the scale on our site and who say that they go to religious services never, or just a few times a year, are shown in blue. The scores of all people who have taken the scale on our site and who said (during registration) that they go to religious services a few times a month or more are shown in red. Scores run from 1 (the lowest possible score, least happy) to 7 (the highest possible score, most happy).
    ellauri100.html on line 539: The other scale is the Subjective Numeracy Scale by Angela Fagerlin and colleagues, which measures individuals’ preference for numerical information. Numeracy (adapted from the term ‘literacy’) represents individuals’ ability to comprehend and use probabilities, ratios, and fractions. Traditional measures of numeracy ask people to perform mathematical operations, such as ‘If person A’s risk of getting a disease is 1% in 10 years, and person B’s risk is double that of A’s, what is B’s risk?’ However, some participants find these types of problems stressful and unpleasant, plus they are difficult to score in online studies. Subjective numeracy measures (like the scale you just took) are shown to be equally good measures of numeracy, without burdening participants.
    ellauri100.html on line 625: Hang it with vair and purple dyes; Oravannahkasta ja purppurasta
    ellauri100.html on line 627: And peacocks with a hundred eyes; Satasilmäisiä riikinkukkoja
    ellauri100.html on line 680: Rusetti oli vapaaehtoistyöntekijä 1859-1870 Maria Magdalenan charitytalossa Highgaten vankilassa, ex-prostituuttien turvapaikassa, ja onkin ehotettu että Menninkäisten markkinat olis sieltä inspiroitu, eli ne menninkäiset oliskin niitä "langenneita naisia". Siinä on paralleeleja Coleridgen Aku Ankan kuuluisaxi tekemään "Ikivanhan merimiehen tarinaan" ("Ammuin nuolen ilmoihin, albatrossia haavoitin", nyyhkii Aku veden pärskyessä silmistä). Molemmat runot lässyttää kiusauxesta, synnistä ja sijaiskärsimyxellä lunastuxesta kuin Jari Sairasvyö. Höpönhöpön, tää Wikipedian sepustus on sumutusta. Rusetti taisi tykätä langenneista naisista. Naisista kyllä aivan varmasti. Toi Goblin Market runo on aika selkeästi homoeroottinen.
    ellauri100.html on line 722: Sweet to tongue and sound to eye;
    ellauri100.html on line 744: Lizzie cover’d up her eyes,
    ellauri100.html on line 762: In each ear, shut eyes and ran:
    ellauri100.html on line 858: I planted daisies there a year ago
    ellauri100.html on line 970: Then sat up in a passionate yearning,
    ellauri100.html on line 994: While with sunk eyes and faded mouth
    ellauri100.html on line 1083: Night yet is early,
    ellauri100.html on line 1204: Refresh’d her shrunken eyes,
    ellauri100.html on line 1261: And light danced in her eyes.
    ellauri100.html on line 1263: Days, weeks, months, years
    ellauri101.html on line 46: Joseph Campbell was born in White Plains, New York, on March 26, 1904, the elder son of hosiery importer and wholesaler Charles William Campbell, from Waltham, Massachusetts, and Josephine (née Lynch), from New York. Campbell was raised in an upper-middle-class Irish Catholic family; he related that his paternal grandfather Charles had been "a peasant" who came to Boston from County Mayo in Ireland, and became the gardener and caretaker at the Lyman estate at Waltham, where his son Charles William Campbell grew up and became a successful salesman at a department store prior to establishing his hosiery business. During his childhood, he moved with his family to nearby New Rochelle, New York. In 1919, a fire destroyed the family home in New Rochelle, killing his maternal grandmother and injuring his father, who tried to save her.
    ellauri101.html on line 56: In February 2020, Brooklyn native Lawrence V. "Larry" Ray, born Lawrence Grecco, who had resided in his daughter's on-campus apartment at Lawrence College in 2010 after his release from prison, was charged by prosecutors in Manhattan with conspiracy, extortion, sex trafficking, forced labor, and other related offenses, following nearly 10 years of alleged transgressions with students and former students. At a bail hearing held March 2, 2020, an Assistant U.S. Attorney disclosed to the Manhattan federal court that Ray had been arrested while in bed with one of his victims. Bail was denied.
    ellauri101.html on line 58: In 1938, he married one of his former students, the dancer-choreographer Jean Erdman. Jean's father Toni wore false teeth and a wig at the wedding. For most of their 49 years of marriage they shared a two-room apartment in Greenwich Village in New York City. In the 1980s they also purchased an apartment in Honolulu and divided their time between the two cities. They did not have any children.
    ellauri101.html on line 101: Sit on se jungilainen 16-jakoinen Briggs-Myers leegokasa josta mulla on vaikka kuinka paljon jo jorinaa. Tästä näkyy kyllä hyvin toi perusnelikenttä, pystysuunnassa people pursons vastaan asialähtöset, kertaa fixut vastaan pöntöt.
    ellauri101.html on line 103: yer+Briggs.png?format=500w" />
    ellauri101.html on line 140: Jne, jne. Mamma Briggs ja tyär Myers on niin nimekkäitä että ne mainitaan nimeltä jopa Pertti Perusinsinööri sarjakuvassa. PHB tarkoittaa "pointy haired boss". Alusta puuttuva neljäs kirjain on varmasti "F".
    ellauri101.html on line 149: Carolyn Kalil’s Inner Heroes quiz stems from her books and life’s works. This quiz is a simplified combination of the Myers Briggs & Keirsey II assessments with 36 questions.
    ellauri101.html on line 471:
    ellauri101.html on line 496: Cuff: When you cuff someone, it means that you will make the person be your girlfriend/boyfriend and not let anyone else date them. Person 1: "Aye, are you gonna cuff Cloe?" Person 2: "Ofc I will cuff her g, she's mine."

    ellauri101.html on line 507: Ladis: A strong, independant, and feminine woman. A woman that is self sufficient and also nurturing. An attractive, yet humble woman. A striking woman, able to hypnotize men with her manner and intelligence. "If I had to choose between a (Betty) and a (Marilyn), I would choose a Ladis!"

    ellauri101.html on line 532: Rotwelsch was formerly common among travelling craftspeople and vagrants. The language is built on a strong substratum of German, but contains numerous words from other languages, notably from various German dialects, including Yiddish, as well as from Romany languages, notably Sintitikes. There are also significant influences from Judæo-Latin, the ancient Jewish language spoken in the Roman Empire. Rotwelsch has also played a great role in the development of the Yeniche language. In form and development it closely parallels the commercial speech ("shopkeeper language") of German-speaking regions. During the 19th and 20th century, Rotwelsch was the object of linguistic repression, with systematic investigation by the German police. Fucking Nazis! Examples:
    ellauri101.html on line 552: Generation is also often used synonymously with cohort in social science; under this formulation it means "people within a delineated population who experience the same significant events within a given period of time". The impressionable years hypothesis is a theory of political psychology that posits that individuals form durable political attitudes and party affiliations during late adolescence and early adulthood. Sukupolvet on olleet globaalisia vasta sitten kun sodatkin.
    ellauri101.html on line 570: Kurt Donald Cobain oli yhdysvaltalainen laulaja-lauluntekijä ja muusikko, joka tuli tunnetuksi grunge-yhtye Nirvanan solistina ja kitaristina. Mä en tiedä yhtään ainoata Nirvanan biisiä.
    ellauri101.html on line 578: Siinä missä suuria ikäluokkia on sanottu viimeiseksi moderniksi sukupolveksi, joiden elämää on leimannut jatkuva optimismi ja kehitysusko, X-sukupolvea on pidetty ensimmäisenä postmodernina sukupolvena, jonka elämää leimaa pessimismi ja epäluottamus tulevaisuuteen 1990-luvulla monia rock-yhtyeitä jopa leimattiin X-sukupolven edustajiksi ja muun muassa Nirvana-yhtyeen keulahahmoa Kurt Cobainia pidettiin sen äänitorvena.
    ellauri101.html on line 581: Kirjailija Mika Wickström kertoo saaneensa vaikutteita Sukupolvi X -romaanilleen muun muassa Generation X -yhtyeestä, jonka keulakuvana tunnettiin 1980-luvulla Billy Idol.
    ellauri101.html on line 609: Toistaalta taas nuorten nuuskan käyttö on lisääntynyt muiden päihteiden käytön vähentyessä.
    ellauri101.html on line 611: Generation Z (or Gen Z for short), colloquially known as zoomers, is the demographic cohort succeeding Millennials and preceding Generation Alpha. Researchers and popular media use the mid-to-late 1990s as starting birth years and the early 2010s as ending birth years. Most members of Generation Z are the children of Generation X, but some are children of millennials.
    ellauri101.html on line 621: Generation Alpha (or Gen Alpha for short) is the demographic cohort succeeding Generation Z. Researchers and popular media use the early 2010s as starting birth years and the mid-2020s as ending birth years. Named after the first letter in the Greek alphabet, Generation Alpha is the first to be born entirely in the 21st century. Most members of Generation Alpha are the children of Millennials.
    ellauri101.html on line 630: 2018 was the first time when the number of people above 65 years of age (705 million) exceeded those between the ages of zero and four (680 million). If current trends continue, the ratio between these two age groups will top two by 2050.
    ellauri101.html on line 641: Russia´s population has been on the decline since the 1990s, following the collapse of the Soviet Union. Another reason for Russia's demographic decline is the nation's low life expectancy for men, at only 64 years in 2015, or 15 years less than that in Italy, Germany, or Sweden. This is due to a combination of unusually high rates of alcoholism, smoking, untreated cancer, tuberculosis, suicides, violence, and HIV/AIDS.
    ellauri101.html on line 645: That U.S. fertility rates continue to drop is anomalous to demographers because fertility rates typically track the nation´s economic health. It was no surprise that U.S. fertility rates dropped during the Great Recession of 2007–8. But the U.S. economy has shown strong signs of recovery for some time, and birthrates continue to fall. In general, however, American women still tend to have children earlier than their counterparts from other developed countries and the U.S. total fertility rate remains comparatively high for a rich country. In fact, compared with their counterparts from other countries in the Organization for Economic Cooperation and Development (OECD), first-time American mothers were among the youngest on average, on par with Latvian women (26.5 years) during the 2010s. At the other extreme end were women from Italy (30.8), and South Korea (31.4). During the same period, American women ended their childbearing years with more children on average (2.2) than most other developed countries, with the notable exception of Icelandic women (2.3). At the other end were women from Germany, Italy, Spain, and Japan (all 1.5).
    ellauri101.html on line 651: Many members of Generation Alpha have grown up using smartphones and tablets as part of their childhood entertainment with many being exposed to devices as a soothing distraction or educational aids. Screen time among infants, toddlers, and preschoolers exploded during the 2010s. Some 90% of young children used a handheld electronic device by the age of one; in some cases, children started using them when they were only a few months old. Using smartphones and tablets to access video streaming services such as YouTube Kids and free or reasonably low budget mobile games became a popular form of entertainment for young children. A report by Common Sense media suggested that the amount of time children under nine in the United States spent using mobile devices increased from 15 minutes a day in 2013 to 48 minutes in 2017. Research by the children´s charity Childwise suggested that a majority of British three and four year olds owned an Internet-connected device by 2018.
    ellauri101.html on line 653: CEC:lle (siis Charlottelle) valehdeltiin että sen Babblafonen oli mennyt rikki. Se oli ollut liimaantunut siihen kiinni kuin Matrixiin. Hon sitter fast. Se nieli menetyxen kun sai ikävystyessään lainata äiskän tai iskän luuria. Ei kyllä kauan enää.
    ellauri101.html on line 672: Yhdysvaltalainen esseisti Susan Sontag liitti käsitteen camp populaarikulttuuriin vuonna 1964 julkaistussa esseessään Notes on ”Camp”. 1980-luvulla camp yleistyi kytkeytyen postmodernismiin.
    ellauri101.html on line 682: Mulla on lyhyet hiuxet ja pitkähkö vaikka harvanlainen takkuinen parta. Vaattet ei ole kirpputorilta vaikka vaikuttavat siltä. Ne on kuosiltaan yhtä vanhahtavia kuin mä. Flanellipaidat ja villapaidat on Sysmän rytkyjä. Pipoja en sietänyt ennen kuiin Helmi kutoi mulle niitä. Farkkuja en revi muuta kuin vahingossa, ja sitten paikkaan ne. Jos harvoin ostan uudet ostan peltipönkköjä. Mä ostin Conversen koriskengät Bostonissa 1970-luvulla. Ei mulla niitä enää ole. Juu ei, emmä ole kyllä grungetyylinen. Enempi kuulostan mielensäpahoittajalta, vaikkenmä kyllä tykkää tollasesta mökkinaapurimallisesta karvalakistakaan. Sitä käyttää karvalakkipuolen kaljanryystäjät ja karvalakkilähetystöt. Gilmore Girlsin Jacob on kai grungetyylinen.
    ellauri102.html on line 52: Daniel Yankelovich, Public Opinion Expert and UC San Diego Supporter, Has Died. Dubbed the “dean of American pollsters,” Yankelovich was perhaps best known for starting The New York Times/Yankelovich poll—now known as The New York Times/CBS News poll—and for co-founding the not-for-profit Public Agenda more than 40 years ago. He left a multimillion dollar bequest to endow the Yankelovich Center for Social Science Research. The Yankelovich Center is devoted to using social science to find practical solutions to the nation's most pressing problems. The most pressing problem now as ever is to increase young upward mobility. Yankelovizh was unwavering in his commitment to the American Dream which he saw as a promise to each generation of Americans that they too can improve their circumstances, their lives and gain economic security.
    ellauri102.html on line 129: Rugby player. They start to talk and eventually go back to his place. They start to kiss, and the man takes off his shirt. On his arm, he has a tattoo that says REEBOK.
    ellauri102.html on line 139: Dirty Joke- Pro Player! #Shorts
    ellauri102.html on line 320: Sachs was raised in Oak Park, a suburb of Detroit, Michigan, the son of Joan (née Abrams) and Theodore Sachs, a labor lawyer. His family is Jewish.
    ellauri102.html on line 379:
    ellauri102.html on line 420: Klein spent much of her teenage years in shopping malls, obsessed with designer labels.
    ellauri102.html on line 425: She has attributed her change in worldview to two catalysts. One was when she was 17 and preparing for the University of Toronto, her mother had a stroke and became severely disabled. Naomi, her father, and her brother took care of Bonnie through the period in hospital and at home, making educational sacrifices to do so. That year off prevented her "from being such a brat". The next year, after beginning her studies at the University of Toronto, the second catalyst occurred: the 1989 École Polytechnique massacre of female engineering students, which proved to be a wake-up call to feminism.
    ellauri102.html on line 592: Keeping your eyes on the wall
    ellauri102.html on line 642: Keeping your eyes on the wall
    ellauri102.html on line 675: Ms. has been reporting and truth-telling from the front lines of the fight for women’s equality for nearly 50 years. Join us and lend your support to our common cause.
    ellauri102.html on line 677: For 45 years, Ms. magazine has been uncovering and exposing the forces opposed to women’s equality. Like unequal distribution of wealth. The magazine has been celebrating women’s progress here and around the world, and spreading feminist ideas and activism.
    ellauri105.html on line 28:

    yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Oiva Ketonen


    ellauri105.html on line 29:

    yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Vie paska painoon

    Kökköä


    ellauri105.html on line 102: It’s early days yet, but this is where Biden’s true genius as a politician may lie: he has turned his likability into a moderating asset, suggesting that an ideological agenda when offered by a relatively non-ideological salesman does not sound all that threatening.
    ellauri105.html on line 109: My brother-in-law (her brother), Billy, is the antithesis of my wife. He became like a hardened Trump supporter a few years back and then he dove in Q-Anon. In the last 6 months, we discovered that
    ellauri105.html on line 126: Have the ego of an academic- relishing in the myth of their own intelligence, yet they have done nothing to actually earn that ego. They never went to school or tried to seriously study anything. So niche groups like this are perfect for them- they can act like big shot academics and get respect from other lost idiots and it fulfills their need to be considered “smart”.
    ellauri105.html on line 279: 3. He harjoittivat haureutta Egyptissä; nuoruudessaan he haureutta harjoittivat. Siellä heidän rintojansa likisteltiin ja heidän neitsyellisiä nisiänsä puristeltiin.

    ellauri105.html on line 284: 8. Mutta Egyptin-aikaista haureuttansa hän ei jättänyt, sillä he olivat maanneet hänen kanssansa hänen nuoruudessaan, olivat puristelleet hänen neitsyellisiä nisiänsä ja vuodattaneet hänen ylitsensä haureuttaan.

    ellauri105.html on line 484: Tuo pappismunkki oli kirkolliselta nimeltään Mefodi ja maalliselta nimeltään Matti Lehmonen. Hänen elämäntarinansa on melkoinen. Selvitin sitä hieman vieraillessani jälleen kerran Heinävedellä Valamon luostarissa. Kerron siitä jotain tässä lyhyesti. Tämä vuonna 1912 Konneveden rantamaisemissa syntynyt rautalampilainen meni jo varsin varhain harjoittelemaan luostarielämää Laatokan Valamon luostariin. Kimmokkeen sinne menoon tämä silloin vielä luterilainen 15-16-vuotias nuori mies sai silloiselta Kotkan ortodoksisen seurakunnan kirkkoherralta, rovasti Mikael Iltonoffilta (Iltola). Niinpä hänet sitten varsin pian liitettiin Smolenskin skiitassa ortodoksiseen kirkkoon ja hän siirtyi Valamon luostariin noviisiksi. Mefodi kuvattuna Petsamon luostarissa 1939. (Kuva pappismunkki Mefodin albumista, © Valamon luostari)
    ellauri105.html on line 501: Mefodin ystäviä ja tuon ajan ortodoksisia vaikuttajia vasemmalta oikealle: Paavali (myöh. arkkipiispa), Markos, Isaki, Savva ja Pietari (Kuva pappismunkki Mefodin albumista, © Valamon luostari) Pappismunkki Mefodi säilytti terävä-älyisyytensä ja sananvalmiutensa loppuun saakka. Häneltä saattoi saada kipakan ja terävän vastauksen kysymykseen kuin kysymykseen. Otetaan tähän loppuun kaksi sellaista. Kun hän aikanaan Heinäveden Valamossa ollessaan istui Torakkahoviksi nimetyn munkkien asuntolan kuistilla yhdessä pappismunkki Savvan - toisen "koiranleuan" kanssa - valkoisissa viitoissaan ja pitkine partoineen ja paikalle saapui turisti kameransa kassa kysyen: "Saako ottaa kuvan?" - Mefodi jyrähti: "Joo, kuvata saa, muttei ruokkia." Toisen kerran saman kysymyksen edessä hän vastasi toimittaja-kuvaajalle, jonka hän ehkä epäili ottavan kenties huonolaatuisen kuvan. Hän sanoi: "Jospa tässä käy kuten paavi Pius V:lle, kun hänestä tehty maalaus - joka ei ollut paavin mielestä kovin ihastuttava - lähetettiin edelleen. Paavi oli näet kirjoittanut kuvan taakse: Älkää peljätkö, se olen minä, paavi Pius." Pappismunkki Mefodista jäi kirjoittamatta vielä paljon mielenkiintoisia asioita, mutta jospa jossain sopivassa vaiheessa saisin niistä koottua ja sanoiksi muodostettua toisen, pitemmän tarinan. Mutta olkoon nyt tämä jupina alkuna mahdollisesti uusille, uudenlaisille jupinoille tai ehkä paremminkin tarinoille ortodoksisista, mielenkiintoisista ihmisistä, joita ympärillämme on elänyt. Kuten aikaisemmin taisin mainita, alan taas itsekin joidenkin tuiki tuntemattomien ja eräiden hyvän-päivän-tuttujen kanssa väsyä tähän tietynlaiseen kriittiseen kirjoittamistyyliini, jonka jo kerran sain lopetettua. Jospa tässä syksyn ja talven aikana saisin lopetettua ja julkaistua jo melkein valmiit, keskeneräiset jupinani ja voisin lopettaa tämänkin Happy 1 -blogisivuston ympäristölle ja ainakin joillekin kanssaihmisille sopimattomana. HAP happy P.S. Infoa kirjoitusvirheistä ja muista hatarista tiedoista voi lähettää suoraan tämän blogin yhteysosoitteeseen: happy.ykkonen(at)gmail.com Ko. osoite ei ole muussa käytössä. Nettihoukka klo 11.44
    ellauri106.html on line 46: Philip Roth has not had much luck with biographers. Late in his life, furiously aggrieved after the failure of his marriage to the actress Claire Bloom and the publication of Bloom’s incendiary memoir of their years together, he asked a close friend, Ross Miller, an English professor at the University of Connecticut, to take on the task. Roth sent Miller lists of family members and friends he wanted to be interviewed, along with the questions that he felt should be asked. (“Would you have expected him to achieve success on the scale he has?”) It didn’t work out, for various reasons. Roth had wanted Miller to refute a familiar charge, “this whole mad fucking misogynistic bullshit!” that he felt flattened his long erotic history into one false accusation. But Miller came to his own conclusion. “There is a predatory side to both Sandy and Philip,” he told a cousin of Roth’s. (Sandy was Roth’s older brother.) “They look at women—I’m not gonna write about this—but they are misogynist. They talk about women in that way.”
    ellauri106.html on line 65: Philip Roth was the younger of the 2 boys of Herman Roth (1901–1989) and his wife Bess, nee Finkel (1904–1981). Both parents were assimilated American Jews of the second generation of immigrants. The maternal grandparents came from the area around Kiev, the Yiddish-speaking paternal grandparents, Sender and Bertha Roth, from Koslow in Galicia. Sender Roth had trained as a rabbi in Galicia and worked in a hat factory in Newark. Herman Roth, the middle of seven children and the first child in the United States, first worked in a factory after eight years of schooling, then became an insurance agent selling door-to-door life insurance. By his retirement he made it to the district director of Metropolitan Life. Philip Roth's brother, Sanford (Sandy) Roth (1927–2009), who was four years older than him, studied art at the Pratt Institute, became vice-president of the advertising agency Ogilvy & Mather in Chicago and made a name for himself as a painter after his "early retirement".
    ellauri106.html on line 67: In October 1956, Philip Roth met the secretary Margaret Martinson Williams in Chicago, whom he married in February 1959. The divorced mother of two children of completely different social origins, who was four years older than him, initially gave Roth the feeling of both a challenge and a liberation. Later, however, the problems and arguments in their relationship increased, which the writer dealt with in retrospect in works such as When She Was Good ( Lucy Nelson or Die Moral, 1967) or My Life As a Man (Mein Leben als Mann, 1974). In his autobiography The Facts (The Facts, 1988) Margaret even advanced as Josie Jensen to the “counter-self”, to the “arch enemy and nemesis ” of the author. The couple separated in 1963, but Margaret Roth refused to consent to a divorce. Five years later she died in a car accident.
    ellauri106.html on line 69: From 1958 onwards, the couple lived in New York on the Lower East Side of Manhattan, and in 1959 they spent seven months in Italy on a Guggenheim grant. Upon their return, they both settled in Iowa City, where Roth led the Writers' Workshop at the University of Iowa. The experiences in small-town Iowa far away from the American metropolises flowed into Roth's second novel Letting Go (Other People's Worries), which was published in 1962, but in contrast to Roth's previously published volume of short stories Goodbye, Columbus caused mixed reactions from critics. Stanley Edgar Hyman, for example, criticized weaknesses in the narrative structure of the novel, the two narrative parts of which are only superficially connected, but praised what he saw as "the keenest eye for the details of American life since Sinclair Lewis". Letting Go is also the first novel in which Roth, as in numerous later works, made the writings of his literary predecessors an integral part of the narrative, and is therefore often referred to as Roth's first "Henry James novel".
    ellauri106.html on line 71: In 1962, the same year Letting Go was published, Roth became Writer-in-Residence at Princeton University. After separating from his wife, Roth began a five-year psychoanalysis with the New York psychiatrist Hans J. Kleinschmidt, who published the case history anonymously in a medical journal in 1967 under the title The Angry Act: The Role of Aggression in Creativity. Roth traveled to Israel for the first time in June 1963. He participated in the American Jewish Congress, held discussions with Israeli intellectuals and Prime Minister David Ben-Gurion. From 1965 to 1977 Roth had a lectureship in comparative literature at the University of Pennsylvania.
    ellauri106.html on line 76: In 1987, in the loneliness of Connecticut, Roth experienced a breakdown caused by a sleeping pill with hallucinatory side effects. He made the experience, as well as the trial of the concentration camp guard John Demjanjuk in Jerusalem, whom he had followed as an observer, the starting point of the 1993 novel Operation Shylock, the encounter between a fictional Philip Roth and his doppelganger. The writer also felt increasingly isolated in London and returned to New York, where he moved into an apartment on the Upper West Side. He took over from 1988 to 1991 a professor of literature at Hunter College of the City University of New York. In 1990 he married his longtime partner Claire Bloom, but the marriage was divorced in 1994 after Roth's growing estrangement and severe depression, including a stay in a psychiatric clinic. Bloom dealt with the problematic relationship two years later in her memoir Leaving a Doll's House .
    ellauri106.html on line 82: The story The Breast (Breast) from the following year, the literature professor David Kepesh transformed in into a female breast, awakens echoes of Franz Kafka, the Roth has for a special devotion among his literary models. The search for Kafka's traces led to his first visit to Prague in 1972, which was followed by annual trips until the author was refused an entry visa in 1977. In Czechoslovakia Roth got to know contemporary Czech literature and was in contact with Ivan Klíma, Milan Kundera and Ludvík Vaculík in particular.
    ellauri106.html on line 84: In October 2012, Roth announced to the French culture magazine Les Inrocks that Nemesis was his last book. At the age of 74 he began to reread his favorite authors such as Dostoyevsky, Turgenew, Conrad and Hemingway as well as his own works. He came to the conclusion that he had made the best of his possibilities and did not want to continue working as an author, read or talk about new literature.
    ellauri106.html on line 97: In 2000 Saul Bellow proposed Philip Roth to the Swedish Academy for the Nobel Prize for Literature. The accusation that the academy deliberately overlooks Roth's achievements in selecting the Nobel Prize winner each year has been one of the truisms of international feuilletons since the 2000s. According to some critics, the accusation turned out to be justified in 2008, when the chairman of the jury responsible for the Nobel Prize for Literature made public general reservations about North American literature and denied it deserving of an award. Ulrich Greiner summed up Roth's rejection by the Nobel Prize Committee as follows: “The Swedes, however, love authors who help to improve the world. Philip Roth only adds something to their knowledge about what needs work."
    ellauri106.html on line 104: He enjoyed a robust childhood and was poplar in high school where he was a bright student but not quite diligent enough in his studies to win a prized full scholarship to Rutgers where he wanted to study law. Roth attended Rutgers University in Newark for a year, then transferred to Bucknell University in Pennsylvania, where he earned a B.A. magna cum laude in English and was elected to Phi Beta Kappa. He received a scholarship to attend the University of Chicago, where he earned an M.A. in English literature in 1955 and briefly worked as an instructor in the university´s writing program. Less prestigious Bucknell University in Pennsylvania was Roth’s fallback school. There he abandoned his vague dreams of becoming a lawyer for the underdog and turned his attention to writing.
    ellauri106.html on line 106: That same year, rather than wait to be drafted, Roth enlisted in the army. Roth enlisted in the Army that year to avoid being drafted and assigned to unpleasant duty like the infantry. Fortunately he suffered a back injury during basic training and was given a medical discharge. Who knows. He returned to Chicago in 1956 to study for a PhD in literature but dropped out after one term. It was a yeasty environment for a young writer. Saul Bellow was a contemporary and with some what similar backgrounds and interests they could not avoid being rivals. During that year he met a lovely shiksa waitress Margaret Martinson, a single woman with a small child. He was smitten. An intense, but often troubled relationship ensued. At the end of the year he dropped out of the U of C and headed to the University of Iowa to teach in its creative writing program. None the less, whatever he may have said, Roth was not happy there, perhaps because the semi-rural Midwesterness of Ames was alien to him. After a while with Martinson in tow he moved on to a similar position at Princeton, another WASP bastion but one with even more prestige. Everyone who knew him recognized Roth as an early comer. He later continued his academic career at the University of Pennsylvania, where he taught comparative literature before retiring from teaching in 1991. Roth started teaching literature in the late 1960s at the University of Pennsylvania. The 1969 feature film adaptation of Goodbye, Columbus coincided with the publication of Portnoy’s Complaint, which soon became a best-seller amid controversy for its prurient content. (Those who've read it will likely not forget Portnoy's "love affair" with mom´s slab of liver in the fridge.)
    ellauri106.html on line 138:
    ellauri106.html on line 154: Born in Newark, N.J., Mr. Roth enlisted in the Navy in 1945 and served for about two years. He went on to study at the Pratt Institute in the late 1940s and later at the Art Students League of New York, a school established by artists for artists, in 1952.
    ellauri106.html on line 177: Roth was far more prolific than either of the novelists he was frequently lumped with—29 full length novels and a dazzling debut novella over nearly 50 years. His output was also more diverse in style and topic than either of the other while reaping critical praise, armloads of awards, and commercial success. Yet at the core of his varied output were common threads—a Jewish identity with which he was not always comfortable but could not deny, a sense of being profoundly American— “if I am not American what am I”—a, a sex drive that was often creepily compulsive, and the world observed by fictional doppelgangers for the author, or sometimes the author himself as a fictional character.
    ellauri106.html on line 179: Today the lengthy obituaries are all laudatory. Tomorrow or the next day I can safely predict that the backlash will begin with harshly critical essays. Leading the way will be Feminists critics who will denounce the whole cabal of elite white men as the custodians of the literary cannon. More pointedly they will charge Roth with toxic masculinity and misogyny and will come loaded for bear with plenty of quotes from his work. They will also have the example and testimony of his two ex-wives, both of whom showed up thinly disguised in his novels—a Margaret Martinson in When She Was Good and actress Clare Bloom in I Married a Communist. Bloom penned her own bitter exposé of their 14-year-long relationship and four year marriage in he memoir Leaving the Doll’s House.
    ellauri106.html on line 193: “In 1949, when I was sixteen, I stumbled on Thomas Wolfe, who died at thirty-eight in 1938, and who made numerous adolescents aside from me devotees of literature for life. In Wolfe, everything was heroically outsized, whether it was the voracious appetite for experience of Eugene Gant, the hero of his first two novels, or of George Webber, the hero of his last two. The hero's loneliness, his egocentrism, his sprawling consciousness gave rise to a tone of elegiac lyricism that was endlessly sustained by the raw yearning for an epic existence—for an epic American existence. And, in those postwar years, what imaginative young reader didn't yearn for that?” -- Philip Roth
    ellauri106.html on line 203: It describes how Sir Gawain, a knight of King Arthur´s Round Table, accepts a challenge from a mysterious "Green Knight" who dares any knight to strike him with his axe if he will take a return blow in a year and a day. Gawain accepts and beheads him with his blow, at which the Green Knight stands up, picks up his head and reminds Gawain of the appointed time. There is a test involving the lord and the lady of the castle where he is a guest.
    ellauri106.html on line 236: My Life as a Man is not nearly so consistently enjoyable as Portnoy's Complaint, but it is the product of a more painful period in the author's life. In his autobiography, Roth reveals that much of Tarnopol´s life is based on his own experiences; for example, Roth´s destructive marriage to Margaret Martinson, which is portrayed through Tarnopol´s relationship with the character of Maureen.
    ellauri106.html on line 239: Arvostelija Morris Kyrpäkiven mielestä just tää kirja oli aivan hulvattoman hauska: If there has been a funnier novel in the last 10 years, or one that exploits sex, psychoanalysis, and the "family romance" more brilliantly, I don´t know what it could be. Tästä jälleen näemme että huumori on höröttäjän silmässä. Tai tässä tapauxessa pikemminkin perssilmässä.
    ellauri106.html on line 255: Who are Philip Roth´s ex-wives Claire Bloom and Margaret Martinson? Have they got anything in common? I bet they were spitting images of Phil´s mother, one way or another. Roth was married twice – to Margaret Martinson from 1959 to 1963. He met Martinson in 1956 and married her three years later. Roth claims she used someone else’s urine sample to persuade him she was pregnant and trick him into marriage.
    ellauri106.html on line 263: He was wedded to long-time partner Claire Bloom from 1990 to 1995. Roth and Bloom’s five-year marriage ended in divorce in 1995.
    ellauri106.html on line 264: A year later, she published a bruising memoir, Leaving a Doll´s House, in which she portrayed him as depressed, remote, self-centred and verbally abusive.
    ellauri106.html on line 280: He shot blanks. He was altered, desexed, neutered, sterilized, castrated, emasculated, gelded, spayed, unproductive.
    ellauri106.html on line 339:
    "I hope the time is coming when not only the artist, but the common, average man, who always ´has the standard of the arts in his power,´ will have also the courage to apply it, and will reject the ideal grasshopper wherever he finds it, in science, in literature, in art, because it is not ´simple, natural, and honest,´ because it is not like a real grasshopper. But I will own that I think the time is yet far off, and that the people who have been brought up on the ideal grasshopper, the heroic grasshopper, the impassioned grasshopper, the self-devoted, adventureful, good old romantic card-board grasshopper, must die out before the simple, honest, and natural grasshopper can have a fair field."
    ellauri106.html on line 363: Otis Jackson, a man incarcerated for unrelated charges, claimed that he committed the Fulton County shooting two years before al-Amin was convicted of the same crime, but the court did not consider Jackson´s statement as evidence.
    ellauri106.html on line 407: Ruth was a Catholic.1 And not only did he attend Catholic school growing up, his parents actually signed custody of Ruth over to the Catholic missionaries at St. Mary’s Industrial School for Boys in Baltimore when he was seven-years-old.2 So Babe was quite literally raised by the Catholic Church.
    ellauri106.html on line 421: And this, too, is surely true of religion. In prehistoric times, Homo sapiens was deeply endangered. Early humans were less fleet of foot, with fewer natural weapons and less well-honed senses than all the predators that threatened them. Moreover, they were hampered in their movements by the need to protect their uniquely immature young - juicy meals for any hungry beast. We had less natural protection against repeated changes of climate than other species - yet we survived. Human spirituality would have played an important part.
    ellauri106.html on line 464: In his final years, however, Roth was embraced by American Jews. In 1998 he won the Jewish Book Council’s Lifetime Literary Achievement Award and in 2014, the Jewish Theological Seminary, Conservative Judaism’s flagship educational institution, bestowed him with an honorary doctorate.
    ellauri106.html on line 531: Confident from its victory over Fascism and emboldened by the subsequent economic boom, America jelled behind what social theorist Jeffrey Alexander has called modernization or romantic liberalism. As has been the case throughout much of Roth’s career, the socio-political touchstone of his American Trilogy is the “patriotic war years” and the consensus culture that blossomed immediately afterward. “Everything was in motion,” Zuckerman says in the opening pages of American Pastoral. “The lid was off. Americans were to start over again, en masse, everyone in it together”. Reagan-propagandaa.
    ellauri106.html on line 536: Although Roth’s heroes vary slightly—Levov, for instance, comes from a somewhat more privileged background and is five or ten years younger than Ringold and Silk—they share a demanding physical presence and, more significantly, the formative experiences of the Great Depression and World War II.
    ellauri106.html on line 538: I don’t imagine I’m the only grown man who was a Jewish kid aspiring to be an all-American kid during the patriotic war years,” Zuckerman remembers.
    ellauri106.html on line 556: Before his death from congestive heart failure on Tuesday, he made no secret of his contempt for Donald Trump, was instinctively liberal in most respects, and thought of himself as a Roosevelt Democrat. Yet his political novels have a nagging MAGA aftertaste. Successful, decent, hardworking men, who in the time of our fathers would have been appreciated, are mindlessly destroyed by modern women as the embodiments of a degenerate society. Roth’s desire, ultimately, is the same as Reagan’s: an impossible return to the promised land of modernization. Not by coincidence, the final chapter of The Human Stain is titled, “The Purifying Ritual.” Puhdistuxesta kuumuu kaikki anaalis-obsessiiviset henkilöt Hitleristä Rothiin ja Sofi Oxaseen. Puhamaan! Äiitii mä oon vallmiiis! Tuu PYYHKIMÄÄN!
    ellauri106.html on line 622: Though arguably Roth cancelled himself years ago by dying.
    ellauri106.html on line 624: Roth’s ex-wife, Claire Bloom, wrote about their relationship in her memoir, Leaving A Doll’s House, 25 years ago. You could also read Roth’s not-exactly-contrite reaction to Bloom’s complaints, his 1998 novel, I Married A Communist, in which the protagonist’s vicious wife was clearly based on Bloom.
    ellauri106.html on line 630: Stop treating the misogyny in Philip Roth’s work like a dirty secret, sanoo feministisempi ääni vasemmalta. Roth’s sex-positive sexism is one of the ways he truly portrayed the American soul. the question “Is Roth a misogynist?” was pooh-poohed memorably by Keith Gessen. “If you hated women, why would you spend all your time thinking about fucking them?” he asked. For many 21st-century Americans, it’s still not misogyny at all but the normal psychology of the male.
    ellauri106.html on line 635: In his baffled grief, Levov is taunted by a female confederate of his daughter’s who stridently berates him as a capitalist pig for a dozen pages, then tries to seduce him with corny porno lines like, “I bet you’ve got yourself quite a pillar in there ... the pillar of society.” When he resists, she shows him her vagina, and “rolling the labia lips outward with her fingers, [exposes] to him the membranous tissue veined and mottled and waxy with the moist tulip sheen of flayed flesh.”
    ellauri106.html on line 649: Nathan-Roth kaipaa Chicagon aikoja, jolloin se luki yeshiva-kopissa suuria mestareita Mannia, Tolstoita, Gogolia ja Proustia samalla lailla nyökytellen kuin Shtizelin ortodoxit ohimokäkkäräiset kipapäiset partapozot. Se on niin jutku että tekee päästä kamalaa.
    ellauri106.html on line 671: Andrew ”Andy” Hardy on Mickey Rooneyn esittämä nuori mies­hahmo Metro-Goldwyn-Mayerin vuosina 1937–1946 tuottamissa perhe­komedioissa sekä vielä yhdessä elokuva­sarjan elvytys­yrityksessä vuodelta 1958. Andy Hardy -sarjan elokuvia tehtiin kaikkiaan kuusi­toista.
    ellauri107.html on line 61: I am Casey's father and son of Lyle Van and one of the three little redheads. Dirk, my brother was on Westwood One radio for many years doing news and information shows. I remember all of the WOR people you mentioned..on Christmas Eve our choir from Christs Church in Rye would sing on air every year. I miss my dad as all sons miss their dad when they are gone. He and my mother raised us in a safe and happy household and we were all better for it. We have great memories of our childhood.
    ellauri107.html on line 86: The title “Goodbye, Columbus” is a quote from a song that was sung by the departing seniors in Columbus, Ohio.
    ellauri107.html on line 95: After a few dates, Brenda persuades her father to invite Neil to stay with them for two weeks. This angers her mother, who feels that she should have been asked instead. Neil enjoys being able to sneak into Brenda's room at night but has misgivings over her entitled outlook, which is reflected in her spoiled and petulant younger sister, and her naive brother Ron, who misses the hero worship he enjoyed as a star basketball player at Ohio State University. Neil is astonished when Brenda reveals that she does not take birth control pills or use any other precautions to avoid pregnancy. She angrily rejects Neil's concerns. He prepares to leave, but she decides to persuade him to stay by agreeing to get a diaphragm.
    ellauri107.html on line 110: Rojack is still considerably different from me — he's more elegant, more witty, more heroic, his physical strength is considerable, and at the same time he's more corrupt than me. I wanted to create a man who was larger than myself yet somewhat less successful. That way, ideally, his psychic density, if I may use a private phrase, would be equal to mine — and so I could write from within his head with comfort.
    ellauri107.html on line 148: Twelve years ago I saw him through his last love. A young person less than half his age whose family strongly disapproved of the association and who evidently grew to disapprove of it herself. It was a trauma that might have plowed Philip under and that he told aslant in Exit Ghost, the novel dedicated to me (!). A couple of failed attempts at courtship followed, boring and painful for the women involved. Then he closed the door on heteroerotic life entirely. He’d learned how to be an elderly gentleman who behaves correctly. He joined the ranks of the impotent.
    ellauri107.html on line 171: He was born in 1804 in Salem, Massachusetts, to Nathaniel Hathorne and the former Elizabeth Clarke Manning. His ancestors include John Hathorne, the only judge from the Salem witch trials who never repented his involvement in the witch hunt. He entered Bowdoin College in 1821, was elected to Phi Beta Kappa in 1824, and graduated in 1825. He published his first work in 1828, the novel Fanshawe; he later tried to suppress it, feeling that it was not equal to the standard of his later work.[2] He published several short stories in periodicals, which he collected in 1837 as Twice-Told Tales. The next year, he became engaged to Sophia Peabody. He worked at the Boston Custom House and joined Brook Farm, a transcendentalist community, before marrying Peabody in 1842. The couple moved to The Old Manse in Concord, Massachusetts, later moving to Salem, the Berkshires, then to The Wayside in Concord. The Scarlet Letter was published in 1850, followed by a succession of other novels. A political appointment as consul took Hawthorne and family to Europe before their return to Concord in 1860. Hawthorne died on May 19, 1864, and was survived by his wife and their three children.
    ellauri107.html on line 183: As [Arlin]Turner says in analyzing this letter, “[Melville] was aware, it can be assumed, of the inclusiveness and interwoven imagery of his letter, and no less aware of the meaning behind the imagery. The same awareness can be assumed on the part of Hawthorne”. Edwin Haviland Miller, who interprets Melville’s affection for Hawthorne as in part sexual, says that in this passage, “the most ardent and doubtlessly one of the most painful he was ever to write, he candidly and boldly laid bare his love”. Miller goes on to say that “when Hawthorne retreated from Lenox, he retreated from Melville. How Hawthorne felt his reticences keep us from knowing, but his friend wrestled with the problems and nature of the relationship almost until the end of his life”. Turner says only that “there is evidence through the remaining forty years of Melville’s life that he thought he had been rebuffed by Hawthorne, and that he felt a genuine regret for his loss.”
    ellauri107.html on line 195: In the following excerpts from Hawthorne's The Blithedale Romance, the Hawthorne-like character, poet and narrator Miles Coverdale, and the Melville-like character, passionate monomaniac Hollingsworth suggest Melville's influence on the novel. The first person narrator, a young man who joins a major enterprise with mostly adventure-seeking motives, certainly calls to mind narrator Ishmael in Melville's Moby-Dick. The dark and brawny Hollingsworth, bearing a physical resemblance to Melville, cares for Coverdale and seeks his partnership, moreover, in an intensity that seems to parallel Melville's evident affection for and desire for intimacy with Hawthorne. The sharp, mysterious break in the relationships between the two authors and the fictional pair constitute yet another likeness.
    ellauri107.html on line 200: Coverdale describes Hollingsworth's "dark complexion, his abundant beard, and the rude strength with which his features seemed to have been hammered out of iron, rather than chiselled or moulded from any finer or softer material." He adds that in Hollingsworth's "gentler moods, there was a tenderness in his voice, eyes, mouth, in his gesture, and in every indescribable manifestation, which few men could resist, and no woman."
    ellauri107.html on line 204: Coverdale notes that "there was something of the woman moulded into the great, stalwart frame of Hollingsworth; nor was he ashamed of it, as men often are of what is best in them, nor seemed ever to know that there was such a soft place in his heart. . . . I besought Hollingsworth to let nobody else enter the room, but continually to make me sensible of his own presence by a grasp of the hand, a word, -- a prayer, if he thought good to utter it . . . ."
    ellauri107.html on line 214: Actually, the reader would have to be remarkably obtuse not to recognize the sexual tension between Coverdale and Hollingsworth. If only we could know what Melville thought when he read it! Certainly, Melville was aware that Brook Farm in Roxbury, Massachusetts, which Blithedale represents, had enjoyed the company of Hawthorne as a communal society member for most of 1841. Perhaps he also knew that substantial portions of Coverdale’s first person narration are taken directly from Hawthorne’s Brook Farm journals, and he would certainly know better than we the extent to which the novel may also represent allusions to Hawthorne’s and his experiences together during the year before the publication of Blithedale.
    ellauri107.html on line 231: Glazed now with ice the cloistral vine that hid the shyest grape.
    ellauri107.html on line 242: In surveying Billy, “sometimes [Claggart’s] melancholy expression would have in it a touch of soft yearning, as if [he] could even have loved Billy but for fate and ban.” Evidently, Claggart has not fully disguised his private appreciation of Billy; but, because he believes something forbids any future for such feelings, he hardens his heart more and more fiercely toward the object of his desire. What “fate” and what “ban” does his misguided imagination perceive? Do their roles on the ship or elsewhere in society somehow doom any intimacy between them? Or does Claggart just presume Billy could never reciprocate his feelings? Might the Master at Arms simply despise sexuality in general and homosexuality in particular and, as a result, find himself driven all the more mad by his uncontrollable “yearning”? Whatever the accurate diagnosis, it is clear that Claggart distorts any positive feelings he possesses for Billy into negative ones with terrible consequences.
    ellauri107.html on line 262: Cohn always denied his homosexuality in public, however, in private he was open about his sexual orientation with a few select friends. He had several long-term boyfriends over the course of his life, including a man called Russell Eldridge who died from AIDS in 1984, and for the last two years of his life, Cohn was partnered to a man 30 years his junior called Peter Fraser. Fraser inherited Cohn's house in Manhattan after Cohn died from AIDS in 1986.
    ellauri107.html on line 395: The antihero of Roth’s 1995 novel Sabbath’s Theatre blinds us with his astonishing misogyny, his exponential misanthropy, his audacious nihilism - and yet he makes us care shit. The depraved Mickey Sabbath, the hero, anti-hero and villain of Philip Roth’s 1995 tour d'Eiffel, Sabbath’s Theatre. Just what he does to deserve this affection over the course of 450 bile-filled pages is hard to fathom. He virtually copies that bête noire of creative writing courses, the unsympathetic character. To discover such a monstrous creation on the page is a shock.
    ellauri107.html on line 396: And yet he is no Pilate (what?) or Iago (a nigger hater), merely a sad old jew with a hard-on (now there's fiction for you), raping against the dying of the light.
    ellauri107.html on line 400: Where does Roth pull it out of (the expression is apt)? Sabbath had decided to defy his own imminent demise by attempting to have as much sex as possible. As the book begins, Sabbath finds himself “six short years from seventy”, with “the game just about over”. What, 64? That is young! Phil was 62 in 1995. Is that when his pecker started to sag?
    ellauri107.html on line 404: Aren’t his hysterical riffs on death dangerously close to how we all feel when facing up to the Grim Reaper? "We all", yeah. I hate it when allsorts of teaming idiots use this "we all".
    ellauri107.html on line 436: His name was George F. Babbitt. He was forty-six years old now, in April, 1920, and he made nothing in particular, neither butter nor shoes nor poetry, but he was nimble in the calling of selling houses for more than people could afford to pay.
    ellauri107.html on line 438: Myra Babbitt—Mrs. George F. Babbitt—was definitely mature. She had creases from the corners of her mouth to the bottom of her chin, and her plump neck bagged. But the thing that marked her as having passed the line was that she no longer had reticences before her husband, and no longer worried about not having reticences. She was in a petticoat now, and corsets which bulged, and unaware of being seen in bulgy corsets. She had become so dully habituated to married life that in her full matronliness she was as sexless as an anemic nun. She was a good woman, a kind woman, a diligent woman, but no one, save perhaps Tinka her ten-year-old, was at all interested in her or entirely aware that she was alive.
    ellauri107.html on line 466: He serenely believed that the one purpose of the real-estate business was to make money for George F. Babbitt. True, it was a good advertisement at Boosters' Club lunches, and all the varieties of Annual Banquets to which Good Fellows were invited, to speak sonorously of Unselfish Public Service, the Broker's Obligation to Keep Inviolate the Trust of His Clients, and a thing called Ethics, whose nature was confusing but if you had it you were a High-class Realtor and if you hadn't you were a shyster, a piker, and a fly-by-night. These virtues awakened Confidence, and enabled you to handle Bigger Propositions. But they didn't imply that you were to be impractical and refuse to take twice the value of a house if a buyer was such an idiot that he didn't jew you down on the asking-price.
    ellauri107.html on line 469: He had, with indignation at the criticism of Zenith, skimmed through a report in which the notorious pessimist Seneca Doane, the radical lawyer, asserted that to throw boys and young girls into a bull-pen crammed with men suffering from syphilis, delirium tremens, and insanity was not the perfect way of educating them. He had controverted the report by growling, “Folks that think a jail ought to be a bloomin' Hotel Thornleigh make me sick. If people don't like a jail, let 'em behave 'emselves and keep out of it. Besides, these reform cranks always exaggerate.” That was the beginning and quite completely the end of his investigations into Zenith's charities and corrections; and as to the “vice districts” he brightly expressed it, “Those are things that no decent man monkeys with. Besides, smatter fact, I'll tell you confidentially: it's a protection to our daughters and to decent women to have a district where tough nuts can raise cain. Keeps 'em away from our own homes.”
    ellauri107.html on line 470: “A good labor union is of value because it keeps out radical unions, which would destroy property. No one ought to be forced to belong to a union, however. All labor agitators who try to force men to join a union should be hanged. In fact, just between ourselves, there oughtn't to be any unions allowed at all; and as it's the best way of fighting the unions, every business man ought to belong to an employers'-association and to the Chamber of Commerce. In union there is strength. So any selfish hog who doesn't join the Chamber of Commerce ought to be forced to.”
    ellauri107.html on line 474: “Course I don't mean to say that every ad I write is literally true or that I always believe everything I say when I give some buyer a good strong selling-spiel. You see—you see it's like this: In the first place, maybe the owner of the property exaggerated when he put it into my hands, and it certainly isn't my place to go proving my principal a liar! And then most folks are so darn crooked themselves that they expect a fellow to do a little lying, so if I was fool enough to never whoop the ante I'd get the credit for lying anyway! In self-defense I got to toot my own horn, like a lawyer defending a client—his bounden duty, ain't it, to bring out the poor dub's good points? Why, the Judge himself would bawl out a lawyer that didn't, even if they both knew the guy was guilty! But even so, I don't pad out the truth like Cecil Rountree or Thayer or the rest of these realtors. Fact, I think a fellow that's willing to deliberately up and profit by lying ought to be shot!”
    ellauri107.html on line 477: The Athletic Club building is nine stories high, yellow brick with glassy roof-garden above and portico of huge limestone columns below. The lobby, with its thick pillars of porous Caen stone, its pointed vaulting, and a brown glazed-tile floor like well-baked bread-crust, is a combination of cathedral-crypt and rathskeller. The members rush into the lobby as though they were shopping and hadn't much time for it. Thus did Babbitt enter, and to the group standing by the cigar-counter he whooped, “How's the boys? How's the boys? Well, well, fine day!”
    ellauri107.html on line 478: Jovially they whooped back—Vergil Gunch, the coal-dealer, Sidney Finkelstein, the ladies'-ready-to-wear buyer for Parcher & Stein's department-store, and Professor Joseph K. Pumphrey, owner of the Riteway Business College and instructor in Public Speaking, Business English, Scenario Writing, and Commercial Law. Though Babbitt admired this savant, and appreciated Sidney Finkelstein as “a mighty smart buyer and a good liberal spender,” it was to Vergil Gunch that he turned with enthusiasm. Mr. Gunch was president of the Boosters' Club, a weekly lunch-club, local chapter of a national organization which promoted sound business and friendliness among Regular Fellows. He was also no less an official than Esteemed Leading Knight in the Benevolent and Protective Order of Elks, and it was rumored that at the next election he would be a candidate for Exalted Ruler. He was a jolly man, given to oratory and to chumminess with the arts.
    ellauri107.html on line 481: Say, Sid,” Babbitt turned to Finkelstein, the buyer, “got something wanta ask you about. I went out and bought me an electric cigar-lighter for the car, this noon, and—”
    ellauri107.html on line 484: Finkelstein asserted that five dollars was not too great a sum, not for a really high-class lighter which was suitably nickeled and provided with connections of the very best quality. “I always say—and believe me, I base it on a pretty fairly extensive mercantile experience—the best is the cheapest in the long run. Of course if a fellow wants to be a Jew about it, he can get cheap junk, but in the long RUN, the cheapest thing is—the best you can get! Now you take here just th' other day: I got a new top for my old boat and some upholstery, and I paid out a hundred and twenty-six fifty, and of course a lot of fellows would say that was too much—Lord, if the Old Folks—they live in one of these hick towns up-state and they simply can't get onto the way a city fellow's mind works, and then, of course, they're Jews, and they'd lie right down and die if they knew Sid had anted up a hundred and twenty-six bones. But I don't figure I was stuck, George, not a bit. Machine looks brand new now—not that it's so darned old, of course; had it less 'n three years, but I give it hard service; never drive less 'n a hundred miles on Sunday and, uh—Oh, I don't really think you got stuck, George. In the LONG run, the best is, you might say, it's unquestionably the cheapest.”
    ellauri107.html on line 487: They grinned and went into the Neronian washroom, where a line of men bent over the bowls inset along a prodigious slab of marble as in religious prostration before their own images in the massy mirror. Voices thick, satisfied, authoritative, hurtled along the marble walls, bounded from the ceiling of lavender-bordered milky tiles, while the lords of the city, the barons of insurance and law and fertilizers and motor tires, laid down the law for Zenith; announced that the day was warm-indeed, indisputably of spring; that wages were too high and the interest on mortgages too low; that Babe Ruth, the eminent player of baseball, was a noble man; and that “those two nuts at the Climax Vaudeville Theater this week certainly are a slick pair of actors.”
    ellauri107.html on line 491: “Look here now, Paul! You're pretty darn near talking socialism!” “Oh yes, of course I don't really exactly mean that—I s'pose. Course—competition—brings out the best—survival of the fittest—but—
    ellauri107.html on line 496: “Good Lord, I don't know what 'rights' a man has! And I don't know the solution of boredom. If I did, I'd be the one philosopher that had the cure for living. But I do know that about ten times as many people find their lives dull, and unnecessarily dull, as ever admit it; and I do believe that if we busted out and admitted it sometimes, instead of being nice and patient and loyal for sixty years, and then nice and patient and dead for the rest of eternity, why, maybe, possibly, we might make life more fun.”
    ellauri107.html on line 501: “Look here, Stan; let's get this clear. You've got an idea somehow that it's you that do all the selling. Where d' you get that stuff? Where d' you think you'd be if it wasn't for our capital behind you, and our lists of properties, and all the prospects we find for you? All you got to do is follow up our tips and close the deal. The hall-porter could sell Babbitt-Thompson listings! You say you're engaged to a girl, but have to put in your evenings chasing after buyers. Well, why the devil shouldn't you? What do you want to do? Sit around holding her hand? Let me tell you, Stan, if your girl is worth her salt, she'll be glad to know you're out hustling, making some money to furnish the home-nest, instead of doing the lovey-dovey. The kind of fellow that kicks about working overtime, that wants to spend his evenings reading trashy novels or spooning and exchanging a lot of nonsense and foolishness with some girl, he ain't the kind of upstanding, energetic young man, with a future—and with Vision!—that we want here. How about it? What's your Ideal, anyway? Do you want to make money and be a responsible member of the community, or do you want to be a loafer, with no Inspiration or Pep?”
    ellauri107.html on line 504: Whenever Thompson twanged, “Put your John Hancock on that line,” Babbitt was as much amused by the antiquated provincialism as any proper Englishman by any American. He knew himself to be of a breeding altogether more esthetic and sensitive than Thompson's. He was a college graduate, he played golf, he often smoked cigarettes instead of cigars, and when he went to Chicago he took a room with a private bath. “The whole thing is,” he explained to Paul Riesling, “these old codgers lack the subtlety that you got to have to-day.”
    ellauri107.html on line 515: “Oh punk. I don't see what's the use of law-school—or even finishing high school. I don't want to go to college 'specially. Honest, there's lot of fellows that have graduated from colleges that don't begin to make as much money as fellows that went to work early. Old Shimmy Peters, that teaches Latin in the High, he's a what-is-it from Columbia and he sits up all night reading a lot of greasy books and he's always spieling about the 'value of languages,' and the poor soak doesn't make but eighteen hundred a year, and no traveling salesman would think of working for that. I know what I'd like to do. I'd like to be an aviator, or own a corking big garage, or else—a fellow was telling me about it yesterday—I'd like to be one of these fellows that the Standard Oil
    ellauri107.html on line 518: He snatched from the back of his geometry half a hundred advertisements of those home-study courses which the energy and foresight of American commerce have contributed to the science of education. The first displayed the portrait of a young man with a pure brow, an iron jaw, silk socks, and hair like patent leather. Standing with one hand in his trousers-pocket and the other extended with chiding forefinger, he was bewitching an audience of men with gray beards, paunches, bald heads, and every other sign of wisdom and prosperity. Above the picture was an inspiring educational symbol—no antiquated lamp or torch or owl of Minerva, but a row of dollar signs. The text ran:
    ellauri108.html on line 26:

    yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Haile Selassie


    ellauri108.html on line 27:

    yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">MUSTARASTAS

    Vapaaliikkeitä


    ellauri108.html on line 53:
    ellauri108.html on line 61: Hebrew names of God include Yehováh, Yahweh, Yahveh, Yahu, Yah. Yah yah de ä Gösta här! ylade Gösta Grahn i telefonen hos mig år 1976. He should not have taken God's name in his mouth in vain. Rangaistuxexi se passitettiin Kanadaan ja joutui ottaan uudexi etunimexeen Gus. Yeah yeah this is Gus here speaking ei kyllä kuulosta yhtä coolilta. Sori vaan.
    ellauri108.html on line 63: Jah or Yah (Hebrew: יה‎, Yah) is a short form of Hebrew: יהוה‎ (YHWH), the four letters that form the tetragrammaton, the personal name of God: Yahweh, which the ancient Israelites used. The conventional Christian English pronunciation of Jah is /ˈdʒɑː/, even though the letter J here transliterates the palatal approximant (Hebrew י Yodh). The spelling Yah is designed to make the pronunciation /ˈjɑː/ explicit in an English-language context (see also romanization of Hebrew), especially for Christians who may not use Hebrew regularly during prayer and study.
    ellauri108.html on line 67: While pronouncing the tetragrammaton is forbidden for Jews, articulating "Jah"/"Yah" is allowed, but is usually confined to prayer and study. In the modern English-language Christian context, the name Jah is commonly associated with the Rastafari.
    ellauri108.html on line 75: With the rise of the Reformation, reconstructions of the Tetragrammaton became popular. The Tyndale Bible was the first English translation to use the anglicized reconstruction. The modern letter "J" settled on its current English pronunciation only around 500 years ago; in Ancient Hebrew, the first consonant of the Tetragrammaton always represents a "Y" sound.
    ellauri108.html on line 79: The Spanish language Reina Valera Bible employs "JAH" in 21 instances within the Old Testament according to the Nueva Concordancia Strong Exhaustiva. The Darby Bible, Young's Literal Translation, The Jubilee Bible 2000, Lexham English Bible, The Complete Jewish Bible, Names of God Bible, The Recovery Version, Green's Literal Translation, the New Jewish Publication Society or NJPS Tanakh and World English Bible includes "Jah" (Yah in the Lexham English Bible, Complete Jewish Bible, the NJPS Tanakh and the World English Bible) numerous times within the Old Testament (as well as in the New Testament or New Covenant as is the case in Christian and Messianic Jewish Bibles) as "Hallelujah!" or "Alleluia!" (Praise Jah or Yah in either instance) which is also employed throughout the Old Testament of these Bible versions.
    ellauri108.html on line 84:
    ellauri108.html on line 100: Other Rastas see Selassie as embodying Jesus' teachings and essence but reject the idea that he was the literal reincarnation of Jesus. Members of the Twelve Tribes of Israel denomination, for instance, reject the idea that Selassie was the Second Coming, arguing that this event has yet to occur. From this perspective, Selassie is perceived as a messenger or emissary of God rather than a manifestation of God himself. Rastas holding to this view sometimes regard the deification of Haile Selassie as naïve or ignorant, in some cases thinking it as dangerous to worship a human being as God. There are various Rastas who went from believing that Haile Selassie was both God incarnate and the Second Coming of Jesus to seeing him as something distinct.
    ellauri108.html on line 117: Rastas view Babylon as being responsible for both the Atlantic slave trade which removed enslaved Africans from their continent and the ongoing poverty which plagues the African diaspora. Rastas turn to Biblical scripture to explain the Atlantic slave trade, believing that the enslavement, exile, and exploitation of black Africans was punishment for failing to live up to their status as Jah's chosen people. Many Rastas, adopting a Pan-Africanist ethos, have criticised the division of Africa into nation-states, regarding this as a Babylonian development, and are often hostile to capitalist resource extraction from the continent. Rastas seek to delegitimise and destroy Babylon, something often conveyed in the Rasta aphorism "Chant down Babylon". Rastas often expect the white-dominated society to dismiss their beliefs as false, and when this happens they see it as confirmation of the correctness of their faith.
    ellauri108.html on line 125: Rastafari is a millenarian movement, espousing the idea that the present age will come to an apocalyptic end. Many practitioners believe that on this Day of Judgement, Babylon will be overthrown, with Rastas being the chosen few who survive the upheaval. With Babylon destroyed, Rastas believe that humanity will be ushered into a "new age". This is conceived as being a millennium of peace, justice, and happiness in which the righteous shall live in Africa, now a paradise. In the 1980s, many Rastas believed that the Day of Judgment would happen around the year 2000. A view then common in the Rasta community was that the world's white people would wipe themselves out through nuclear war, with black Africans then ruling the world, something that they argued was prophesied in the Book of Daniel.
    ellauri108.html on line 147: One of the central activities at groundings is "reasoning". This is a discussion among assembled Rastas about the religion's principles and their relevance to current events. These discussions are supposed to be non-combative, although attendees can point out the fallacies in any arguments presented. Those assembled inform each other about the revelations that they have received through meditation and dream. Each contributor is supposed to push the boundaries of understanding until the entire group has gained greater insight into the topic under discussion. In meeting together with like-minded individuals, reasoning helps Rastas to reassure one another of the correctness of their beliefs. Rastafari meetings are opened and closed with prayers. These involve supplication of God, the supplication for the hungry, sick, and infants, and calls for the destruction of the Rastas' enemies, and then close with statements of adoration.
    ellauri108.html on line 158: Rastas typically smoke cannabis in the form of a large, hand-rolled cigarette known as a spliff. This is often rolled together while a prayer is offered to Jah; the spliff is lit and smoked only when the prayer is completed. At other times, cannabis is smoked in a water pipe referred to as a "chalice": styles include kutchies, chillums, and steamers. The pipe is passed in a counter-clockwise direction around the assembled circle of Rastas.
    ellauri108.html on line 189: Rastas differ on whether they regard dreadlocks as compulsory for practicing the religion. Some Rastas do not wear their hair in dreadlocks; within the religion they are often termed "cleanface" Rastas, with those wearing dreadlocked hair often called "locksmen". Some Rastas have also joined the Ethiopian Orthodox Church, the Christian organisation to which Haile Selassie belonged, and these individuals are forbidden from putting their hair in dreadlocks by the Church. In reference to Rasta hairstyles, Rastas often refer to non-Rastas as "baldheads", or "combsome", while those who are new to Rastafari and who have only just started to grow their hair into dreads are termed "nubbies". Members of the Bobo Ashanti sect of Rastas conceal their dreadlocks within turbans, while some Rastas tuck their dreads under a rastacap or tam headdress, usually coloured green, red, black, and yellow. Dreadlocks and Rastafari-inspired clothing have also been worn for aesthetic reasons by non-Rastas. For instance, many reggae musicians who do not adhere to the Rastafari religion wear their hair in dreads. A Rasta man wearing a rastacap has been sighted in Jamaica.
    ellauri108.html on line 201: Marcus Garvey, a prominent black nationalist theorist who heavily influenced Rastafari and is regarded as a prophet by many Rastas. The Jamaican activist Marcus Garvey, spent much of his adult life in the US and Britain. Garvey supported the idea of global racial separatism and called for part of the African diaspora to relocate to Africa. His ideas faced opposition from civil rights activists like W. E. B. Du Bois who supported racial integration, and as a mass movement, Garveyism declined in the Great Depression of the 1930s. A rumour later spread that in 1916, Garvey had called on his supporters to "look to Africa" for the crowning of a black king; this quote was never verified. However, in August 1930, Garvey's play, Coronation of an African King, was performed in Kingston. Its plot revolved around the crowning of the fictional Prince Cudjoe of Sudan, although it anticipated the crowning of Haile Selassie later that year. Rastas hold Garvey in great esteem, with many regarding him as a prophet. Garvey knew of Rastafari, but took a largely negative view of the religion; he also became a critic of Haile Selassie, calling him "a great coward" who rules a "country where black men are chained and flogged".
    ellauri108.html on line 203: Haile Selassie was crowned Emperor of Ethiopia in 1930. A number of Jamaica's Christian clergymen claimed that Selassie's coronation was evidence that he was the black messiah that they believed was prophesied in the Book of Revelation, the Book of Daniel, and Psalms. Over the following years, several street preachers—most notably Leonard Howell, Archibald Dunkley, Robert Hinds, and Joseph Hibbert—began claiming that Haile Selassie was the returned Jesus. They first did so in Kingston, and soon the message spread throughout 1930s Jamaica, especially among poor communities who were hit particularly hard by the Great Depression. Clarke stated that "to all intents and purposes this was the beginning" of the Rastafari movement.
    ellauri108.html on line 205: Howell has been described as the "leading figure" in the early Rastafari movement. He preached that black Africans were superior to white Europeans and that Afro-Jamaicans should owe their allegiance to Haile Selassie rather than to George V, King of Great Britain and Ireland. The island's British authorities arrested him and charged him with sedition in 1934, resulting in his two-year imprisonment. Following his release, Howell established the Ethiopian Salvation Society and in 1939 established a Rasta community, known as Pinnacle, in Saint Catherine Parish. Police feared that Howell was training his followers for an armed rebellion and were angered that it was producing cannabis for sale. They raided the community on several occasions and Howell was imprisoned for a further two years. Upon his release he returned to Pinnacle, but the police continued with their raids and shut down the community in 1954; Howell himself was committed to a mental hospital.
    ellauri108.html on line 214: Rastafari's main appeal was among the lower classes of Jamaican society. For its first thirty years, Rastafari was in a conflictual relationship with the Jamaican authorities. Jamaica's Rastas expressed contempt for many aspects of the island's society, viewing the government, police, bureaucracy, professional classes, and established churches as instruments of Babylon. Relations between practitioners and the police were strained, with Rastas often being arrested for cannabis possession. During the 1950s the movement grew rapidly in Jamaica itself and also spread to other Caribbean islands, the United States, and the United Kingdom.
    ellauri108.html on line 216: In the 1940s and 1950s, a more militant brand of Rastafari emerged. The vanguard of this was the House of Youth Black Faith, a group whose members were largely based in West Kingston. Backlash against the Rastas grew after a practitioner of the religion allegedly killed a woman in 1957. In March 1958, the first Rastafarian Universal Convention was held in the settlement of Back-o-Wall, Kingston. Following the event, militant Rastas unsuccessfully tried to capture the city in the name of Haile Selassie. Later that year they tried again in Spanish Town. The increasing militancy of some Rastas resulted in growing alarm about the religion in Jamaica. According to Cashmore, the Rastas became "folk devils" in Jamaican society. In 1959, the self-declared prophet and founder of the African Reform Church, Claudius Henry, sold thousands of tickets to Afro-Jamaicans, including many Rastas, for passage on a ship that he claimed would take them to Africa. The ship never arrived and Henry was charged with fraud. In 1960 he was sentenced to six years imprisonment for conspiring to overthrow the government. Henry's son was accused of being part of a paramilitary cell and executed, confirming public fears about Rasta violence. One of the most prominent clashes between Rastas and law enforcement was the Coral Gardens incident of 1963, in which an initial skirmish between police and Rastas resulted in several deaths and led to a larger roundup of practitioners. Clamping down on the Rasta movement, in 1964 the island's government implemented tougher laws surrounding cannabis use.
    ellauri108.html on line 227: Through reggae, Rasta musicians became increasingly important in Jamaica's political life during the 1970s. To bolster his popularity with the electorate, Jamaican Prime Minister Michael Manley employed Rasta imagery and courted and obtained support from Marley and other reggae musicians. Manley described Rastas as a "beautiful and remarkable people" and carried a cane, the "rod of correction", which he claimed was a gift from Haile Selassie. Following Manley's example, Jamaican political parties increasingly employed Rasta language, symbols, and reggae references in their campaigns, while Rasta symbols became increasingly mainstream in Jamaican society. This helped to confer greater legitimacy on Rastafari, with reggae and Rasta imagery being increasingly presented as a core part of Jamaica's cultural heritage for the growing tourist industry. In the 1980s, a Rasta, Barbara Makeda Blake Hannah, became a senator in the Jamaican Parliament.
    ellauri108.html on line 250: As of 2012, there were an estimated 700,000 to 1,000,000 Rastas worldwide. They can be found in many different regions, including most of the world's major population centres. Rastafari's influence on wider society has been more substantial than its numerical size, particularly in fostering a racial, political, and cultural consciousness among the African diaspora and Africans themselves. Men dominate Rastafari. In its early years, most of its followers were men, and the women who did adhere to it tended to remain in the background. This picture of Rastafari's demographics has been confirmed by ethnographic studies conducted in the late 20th and early 21st centuries.
    ellauri108.html on line 262: Barrett described Rastafari as "the largest, most identifiable, indigenous movement in Jamaica." In the mid-1980s, there were approximately 70,000 members and sympathisers of Rastafari in Jamaica. The majority were male, working-class, former Christians aged between 18 and 40. In the 2011 Jamaican census, 29,026 individuals identified as Rastas. Jamaica's Rastas were initially entirely from the Afro-Jamaican majority, and although Afro-Jamaicans are still the majority, Rastafari has also gained members from the island's Chinese, Indian, Afro-Chinese, Afro-Jewish, mulatto, and white minorities. Until 1965 the vast majority were from the lower classes, although it has since attracted many middle-class members; by the 1980s there were Jamaican Rastas working as lawyers and university professors. Jamaica is often valorised by Rastas as the fountain-head of their faith, and many Rastas living elsewhere travel to the island on pilgrimage.
    ellauri108.html on line 270: A smaller number of Rastas are found in Muslim-majority countries of West Africa, such as Gambia and Senegal. One West African group that wear dreadlocks are the Baye Faal, a Mouride sect in Senegambia, some of whose practitioners have started calling themselves "Rastas" in reference to their visual similarity to Rastafari. The popularity of dreadlocks and marijuana among the Baye Faal may have been spread in large part through access to Rasta-influenced reggae in the 1970s. A small community of Rastas also appeared in Burkina Faso.
    ellauri108.html on line 299: As a survivor of genocide in Zimbabwe who went on to build a career as a human rights activist and lawyer on three continents, Moyo was seen not only as an impeccable hire to carry on the museum’s vision but also as a bearer of racial progress for the Jewish community as many of its institutions attempt to increase their diversity. She pledged to use her position to fight racism, especially in the wake of last year’s Black Lives Matter protests.
    ellauri108.html on line 326: Toisessa yhtä masixessa unessa kevyeen kesämekkoon eikä paljon muuhun pukeutunut unelmieni tyttö oli päässyt hävyxiin multa jonnekin. Pentti Leino korjasi rautasahalla auton akkua jotain muinaista kenttätöihin käytettyä nauhuria varten. Mixihän, homma hoituisi kännykällä paremmin. Pentti Leino myönteli vähän nolona mutta jatkoi hommia. Törmäsin yllättäen tyttöseeni jyrkän rinteen kohdalla. Oli tullut kai jokin väärinkäsitys. Joku hannelemainen häntäkärpänen tunki mukaan kolmannexi. Me koitettiin lähteä kapuamaan alas jyrkännettä karistaaxemme sen. Mutta jostain alhaalta oli tulossa jokin pelottava otus meidän kimppuun. Potkin sitä täysiä ja heräsin potkintaan. En onnexi ollut potkinut tällä kertaa vaimokultaani. Oli vielä pimeää ja maha kipeä.
    ellauri108.html on line 376: the truth, and all of these versions are a part of the whole. A vision of what happened, is happening, and will happen. My father said, "It's the last quarter before the year 2000 and righteousness-the positive way of thinking must win." As I see it, the year 2000 is based on a Roman system
    ellauri108.html on line 377: of time measurement. The original counting of time, calendar days, months, and years, is not even near 2,000 yet. So the real calendar should have more significance, be rooted in spirituality, rooted in God-belief. I don't personally celebrate New Year or Christmas. The sun comes up, the sun goes down. Every day.
    ellauri108.html on line 381: I know Jah will provide, Benjy says with certainty. When that truth came I had no money, no job, no food. The child, my child, is crying and crying, my wife can't shut him up. As a matter of fact, she schedaadled. Just vamoosed. I am so vexed I can't pray no more. So I open the door and look to the sea. There I see a boat with three fishermen in it. The men are fishing but there is no space in the boat for another person. Out there on the sea, the waves are tall. Behind that boat, I see someone swimming. A little boy swimming along after the boat. I am wondering why the fishermen don't stop to pick up the boy in such a rough sea. But then I come to an understandingand it is Jah who put this idea into my head. That little boy's job is to dive for the fish traps, bring them up from the bottom. He is diving in that rough, rough sea for fish traps, and raising them up, all heavy with saltwater, all by himself. Just a little boy, too. Maybe ten years old. But so strong. Sometimes the sea cover him. I wouldn't see him or the boat. Then they would bounce him back into the sea.
    ellauri108.html on line 404: The story takes place about 600 years before Jesus Christ was born when King Nebuchadnezzar of Babylon besieged Jerusalem and took captive many of Israel's finest citizens. Among those deported to Babylon were four young men from the tribe of Judah: Daniel, Hananiah, Mishael, and Azariah.
    ellauri108.html on line 412: King Nebuchadnezzar had a huge golden image built as a symbol of his power and glory. He then commanded that his people bow down and worship this image whenever they heard the sound of his musical herald. Those who disobeyed the order would be thrown into an immense, blazing furnace.
    ellauri108.html on line 459: Members of the Twelve Tribes of Israel denomination, for instance, reject the idea that Selassie was the Second Coming, arguing that this event has yet to occur.
    ellauri108.html on line 475: Rastas seek to delegitimise and destroy Babylon, something often conveyed in the Rasta aphorism "Chant down Babylon".
    ellauri108.html on line 485: Rastafari is a millenarian movement, espousing the idea that the present age will come to an apocalyptic end. Many practitioners believe that on this Day of Judgement, Babylon will be overthrown, with Rastas being the chosen few who survive the upheaval. With Babylon destroyed, Rastas believe that humanity will be ushered into a "new age". This is conceived as being a millennium of peace, justice, and happiness in which the righteous shall live in Africa, now a paradise.
    ellauri108.html on line 487: In the 1980s, many Rastas believed that the Day of Judgment would happen around the year 2000. A view then common in the Rasta community was that the world's white people would wipe themselves out through nuclear war, with black Africans then ruling the world, something that they argued was prophesied in the Book of Daniel.
    ellauri109.html on line 276: In March 2017, Searle became the subject of sexual assault allegations. The Los Angeles Times reported: "A new lawsuit alleges that university officials failed to properly respond to complaints that John Searle, an 84-year-old renowned philosophy professor, sexually assaulted his 24-year-old research associate last July and cut her pay when she rejected his advances." The case brought to light several earlier complaints against Searle, on which Berkeley allegedly had failed to act.
    ellauri109.html on line 278: The lawsuit, filed in a California court on March 21, 2017, sought damages both from Searle and from the Regents of the University of California as his employers. It also claims that Jennifer Hudin, the director of the John Searle Center for Social Ontology, where the complainant had been employed as an assistant to Searle, has stated that Searle "has had sexual relationships with his students and others in the past in exchange for academic, monetary or other benefits". After news of the lawsuit became public, several previous allegations of sexual harassment by Searle were also revealed.
    ellauri109.html on line 325: As Kohlhaas is led to execution, he sees in the crowd the disguised Elector of Saxony. Through his lawyer, he is informed that his suit against the Junker has been successful, and is presented with compensation for the injuries of his hired man and shown the horses, now well-fed and healthy. Pleased that justice has been served, he submits willingly to the execution.
    ellauri109.html on line 332: In the spring of 1799, the 21-year-old Kleist wrote a letter to his half-sister Ulrike [de] in which he found it "incomprehensible how a human being can live without a life plan" (Lebensplan). In effect, Kleist sought and discovered an overwhelming sense of security by looking to the future with a definitive plan for his life. It brought him happiness and assured him of confidence, especially knowing life without a plan only saw despair and discomfort. The irony of his suicide is the fodder of his critics.
    ellauri109.html on line 379: Though married to Hippolyte Colet, Louise had a steamy eight-year affair, in two stages, with Gustave Flaubert. The relationship turned sour, however, and they broke up. Louise was allegedly so angered by her breakup with Flaubert, she wrote a novel, Lui, in an effort to target Flaubert. However, Colet's book has failed to have the lasting significance of Madame Bovary.
    ellauri109.html on line 455: Ainsi, dans une lettre datée du mardi 6 juillet 1852, il revient sur le récit qu’elle lui a fait de sa promenade au clair de lune avec Musset (on sait que Musset est un spécialiste des bal(l)ades au clair de lune). Flaubert écrit donc longuement sur Musset en réaction à l’épisode que lui rapporte Louise Colet, assez naïve ou ennuyée pour lui faire ce genre de compte rendu détaillé, à moins qu’elle n’ait trouvé là un moyen commode de le provoquer : elle lui raconte la rencontre de nuit, la scène où Musset, ivre de dépit, la jette d’un fiacre en marche.
    ellauri109.html on line 457: Flaubert n’est pas dupe. Il administre à cette innocente douteuse une morale qui mériterait d’être ajoutée au Dictionnaire des idées reçues : « Il est dans les idées reçues qu’on ne va pas se promener avec un homme au clair de lune pour admirer la lune. » Mais Musset a beau être diminué, il a été célèbre, ils se voient, tandis que Flaubert, tout mâle qu’il est, reste bien abstrait dans sa retraite de Croisset, à se battre comme un forcené avec l’expression. Il n’est pas facile d’être longtemps l’amante d’un obscur ermite ni de faire l’amour par correspondance. Le but est atteint puisque Flaubert s’interroge sous les yeux de Louise : « Ai-je été jaloux, moi, dans tout ça ? — Il se peut.
    ellauri109.html on line 476: Two pigeons (or doves in Elizur Wright's American translation) live together in the closest friendship and 'cherish for each other/The love that brother hath for brother.' One of them yearns for a change of scene and eventually flies off on what he promises will be only a three-day adventure. During this time he is caught in a storm with little shelter, ensnared, attacked by predators and then injured by a boy with a sling, returning with relief to roam no more.
    ellauri109.html on line 515: A fiction writer’s life is his treasure, his ore, his savings account, his jungle gym,” Updike wrote. “As long as I am alive, I don’t want somebody else playing on my jungle gym—disturbing my children, quizzing my ex-wife, bugging my present wife, seeking for Judases among my friends, rummaging through yellowing old clippings, quoting in extenso bad reviews I would rather forget, and getting everything slightly wrong.”
    ellauri109.html on line 517: When Updike, in the eighties, felt the sour breath of potential biographers on his neck, he tried to preëmpt his pursuers by writing a series of autobiographical essays about such topics as the Pennsylvania town where he grew up, his stutter, and his skin condition. The resulting collection, “Self-Consciousness,” is a dazzlingly intimate book, but his imagination and industry did more to draw biographical attention than to repel it. In the weeks before his death, of lung cancer, in early 2009, he continued to write, including an admiring review of Blake Bailey’s biography of John Cheever. And five years later there it was: “Updike,” a biography by Adam Begley.
    ellauri109.html on line 529: Weequahic High at the time graduated more doctors, lawyers, dentists, and accountants than practically any other school in the country. And then Philip had to become and English major because he was not good enough for law.
    ellauri109.html on line 549: His first, and longest, novel, “Letting Go,” published in 1962, lacked the vibrancy of the early stories, and he struggled for the next several years to free himself from its slightly ponderous Jamesian style.
    ellauri109.html on line 551: Kleinschmidt published a journal article in which he describes the case of a “successful Southern playwright” with an overbearing mother: “His rebellion was sexualized, leading to compulsive masturbation which provided an outlet for a myriad of hostile fantasies. These same masturbatory fantasies he both acted out and channeled into his writing.” Roth, who was obviously Kleinschmidt’s “playwright,” saw the article just after finishing the novel. He spent multiple sessions berating Kleinschmidt for this “psychoanalytic cartoon” and yet continued his analysis with him for years.
    ellauri109.html on line 561: Cold-hearted betrayer of the most intimate confessions, cutthroat caricaturist of your own loving parents, graphic reporter of encounters with women to whom you have been deeply bound by trust, by sex, by love—no, the virtue racket ill becomes you.
    ellauri109.html on line 567: Roth and Bloom divorced, miserably, in 1995. A year later, Bloom published a memoir, “Leaving a Doll’s House,” in which Roth was depicted as brilliant and initially attentive to the demands of her career, but also as unpredictable, unfaithful, remote, and, at times, horribly unkind, not least about Bloom’s devotion to her grown daughter. The book quoted incensed faxes that Roth sent Bloom at the end of their union, demanding that she pay sixty-two billion dollars for failing to honor their prenuptial agreement, and another bill for the “five or six hundred hours” that he had spent going over her lines with her.
    ellauri109.html on line 571: In his fury and his hunger for retribution, Roth produced “Notes for My Biographer,” an obsessive, almost page-by-page rebuttal of Bloom’s memoir: “Adultery makes numerous bad marriages bearable and holds them together and in some cases can make the adulterer a far more decent husband or wife than . . . the domestic situation warrants. (See Madame Bovary for a pitiless critique of this phenomenon.)” Only at the last minute was Roth persuaded by friends and advisers not to publish the diatribe, but he could never put either of his marriages behind him for good. He was similarly incapable of setting aside much smaller grievances. As Benjamin Taylor, one of his closest late-in-life friends, put it in “Here We Are,” a loving, yet knowing, memoir, “The appetite for vengeance was insatiable. Philip could not get enough of getting even.”
    ellauri109.html on line 589: Miller became Roth’s health-care proxy. One year, Roth wrote him a check for ten thousand dollars, telling him, “I want you to share in the general prosperity."
    ellauri109.html on line 611: The reaction to “Portnoy’s Complaint,” a decade later, was of another order. “This is the book for which all anti-Semites have been praying,” Gershom Scholem, the eminent scholar of Jewish history and mysticism, wrote. “I daresay that with the next turn of history, which will not be long delayed, this book will make all of us defendants at court.”
    ellauri109.html on line 757: Though deep yet clear, though gentle yet not dull; Vaikka syvä silti kirkas, herkkä muttei hempeä;
    ellauri109.html on line 795: It was only years later that she began asking questions, when her surviving daughter, Hagit, turned 18 and was called for national military service.
    ellauri109.html on line 799: yemenite-children-3.jpg" />
    ellauri109.html on line 817: So last year the government of Benjamin Netanyahu decided to open up most of the archives of the public inquiries and put them online.
    ellauri109.html on line 833: He points out that hundreds of thousands of immigrants arrived in Israel at a time of war, and in the years immediately afterwards, when the country was still reeling.
    ellauri109.html on line 854: MyHeritage was able to use that to trace a grave for a woman who had died 17 years ago.
    ellauri110.html on line 197: Vielä yxi havainnointi. Hannu saa huorakaxikolta tyrmäystippoja. Hän ei käytä kondomeja, kiitos. Ryhmäsexi jää lyhyexi, kun alkaa nukuttaa. Jehova tuli jälleen väliin. Vahingosta viisastunut Hannu käyttää tästedes kotimaisia naisia, ilmaisia, ja jos pakko on niin 1 kerrallaan.
    ellauri110.html on line 337: The detailed private diary that Pepys kept from 1660 until 1669 was first published in the 19th century and is one of the most important primary sources for the English Restoration period. It provides a combination of personal revelation and eyewitness accounts of great events, such as the Great Plague of London, the Second Dutch War, and the Great Fire of London.
    ellauri110.html on line 488: Laulu lainaa; Toivo on maanpäällinen kompassini; (Nikolai Dobronravovin sanat, Alexandra Pakhmutovan musiikki) esittivät useat muusikot. Ensimmäisenä esiintyjänä toimi Edita Piekha. Myöhemmin Anna German lauloi laulun. Ja festivaalin viimeisessä konsertissa laulu-75quot; Tarnopolin Hopeaquoti; esittäjä Muslim Magomajev, koska kukaan edellä mainituista naisista ei voinut osallistua konsertin kuvaamiseen. Lisäksi tämän kappaleen esitti yhtye quot; Nadezhda; joka ei saanut nimeään kunniaksi. Lähde - Wikipedia.
    ellauri110.html on line 618: kupu jumalten, kuultava korkeuttaan, Tai kuunnelkaa, miten lintuset ja kanssa Vellamon impyein
    ellauri110.html on line 666: On Hande uskontoon enemmän kuin oljen verran raollaan. Sitä viehättää toi murkkukeko ja uskovaisten yhteisön uho ja tuho. Uhoahan Handessa on enemmän kuin kotitarpeixi. Tuhoakin piisaa. Ja tota uskovaisten passiivis-aggressiivista nöyristelyä. Valta on myös mammonaa. Pikemminkin päinvastoin, better yet, reviiristä on molemmissa kysymys. EAT KILL FUCK.
    ellauri110.html on line 913: Ἀκηδία (Akēdia, uh-KAY-DEE-uh), more commonly called Sloth, is one of the Capital Vices, which is a unit in the Goads of Destruction. 1 Appearance 2 Personality 3 History 4 Trivia Sloth has messy light blue hair and dark blue eyes. She wears only a blue long-sleeved nightgown without any footwear. Her seal, a bronze metal cloud, is on her right cheek. Sloth is usually asleep or close ...
    ellauri110.html on line 1064: Now, mendicants, at that time human beings had a life span of 60,000 years. Girls could be married at 500 years of age. And human beings only had six afflictions: cold, heat, hunger, thirst, and the need to defecate and urinate. But even though humans were so long-lived with so few afflictions, Araka still taught in this way: ‘Life as a human is short, brief, and fleeting, full of pain and misery. Think about this and wake up! Do what’s good and live the spiritual life, for no-one born can escape death.’
    ellauri110.html on line 1066: These days it’d be right to say: ‘Life as a human is short, brief, and fleeting, full of pain and misery. Think about this and wake up! Do what’s good and live the spiritual life, for no-one born can escape death.’ For these days a long life is a hundred years or a little more. Living for a hundred years, there are just three hundred seasons, a hundred each of the winter, summer, and rains. Living for three hundred seasons, there are just twelve hundred months, four hundred in each of the winter, summer, and rains. Living for twelve hundred months, there are just twenty-four hundred fortnights, eight hundred in each of the winter, summer, and rains. Living for 2,400 fortnights, there are just 36,000 days, 12,000 in each of the summer, winter, and rains. Living for 36,000 days, you just eat 72,000 meals, 24,000 in each of the summer, winter, and rains, including when you’re suckling at the breast, and when you’re prevented from eating.
    ellauri110.html on line 1068: Things that prevent you from eating include anger, pain, sickness, sabbath, or being unable to get food. So mendicants, for a human being with a hundred years life span I have counted the life span, the limit of the life span, the seasons, the years, the months, the fortnights, the nights, the days, the meals, and the things that prevent them from eating. Out of compassion, I’ve done what a teacher should do who wants what’s best for their disciples. Here are these roots of trees, and here are these empty huts. Practice absorption, mendicants! Don’t be negligent! Don’t regret it later! This is my instruction to you.”
    ellauri110.html on line 1075: Welcome! ‘Conversations with Dostoevsky’ is a blog written to mark the 200th anniversary year of Dostoevsky’s birth. It takes the form of a series of conversations between a twenty-first century academic and the writer himself. The topics centre on ‘the big questions’, including God, immortality, faith, nationality, and the power of literature. Blogs will be published weekly, though readers may wish to save them up for a monthly visit.
    ellauri110.html on line 1091: Lyhyesti sanoen kirjoittajan pointti on että Dosto esitteli ison joukon erilaisia konnia ja roistoja vaan esimerkkinä, että kyllä Jeesus porukoineen antaa anteexi jopa tälläsellekkin, maistuis ehkä sullekin. Sinappia ei saa unohtaa, pientä siementä. Tätä sitten jauhetaan edestakaisin kuin xylitolipurkkaa monen episodin voimalla.
    ellauri110.html on line 1106: In an age before psychology was a modern scientific field, Fyodor Dostoyevsky (November 11, 1821 – February 9, 1881) was a Russian writer of realist fiction and essays that explored the depths of the human psyche. Known for acclaimed novels Crime and Punishment, The Idiot and The Brothers Karamazov, Dostoyevsky´s work discusses the human mind in a world full of political and social upheaval in 19th century Russia, becoming the forerunner of existentialism.
    ellauri111.html on line 52: Tyylitön. Dostoyevsky matki hyvin aikalaisten puhetta ja tunteiden ilmausta, mutta se oli hirmu huolimaton. Kaikesta on sitä kehuttu, muttei “elegantixi”.
    ellauri111.html on line 54: Törkeästi täytettä. Dostoyevsky oli patentoitu vetelehtijä joka työskenteli parhaiten kuolleen viivan tuolla puolella. Ja kun sille maxettiin sivutaxalla, voi arvata että henkilöt ja juonenkuljetus oli kuin C-luokan saippuaoopperassa.
    ellauri111.html on line 58: Ryssäläiset nimet. No tää on taas tota mussutusta lempinimistä, ei jaxa kuule “Dima”, “Dimochka”, “Mityay”, “Dimon”, “Dmitri Anatolyevich”, tai “Dim”. Voi olla että niitä on susta vaikeata suomentaa, mutta vitut siitä. Ei jaxa.
    ellauri111.html on line 60: Teatraalinen melodraama. Dostoyevsky oli kaupallinen kynäilijä, joka osas painaa yleisössä oikeita nappuloita. Siirappi voittaa aina salmiakin ja 90% tumman suklaan.
    ellauri111.html on line 62: Sosiaaliporno. Se oli uutta ja ihmeellistä 19. vuosisadalla, ja käy vieläkin lääkeannoxissa, mutta Dostoyevsky lapioi sitä suoraan naamaan kottikärryllisiä. Se on niin innostunut siitä että jos se eläis nykyaikana, se totaalisesti asuis BDSM sivuilla.
    ellauri111.html on line 67: Xenofobinen konservatismi. Dostoyevsky oli aktiivinen ryssien persupiireissä. Se kuoli ennen pogromeja, mutta sen päiväkirjat on täynnä polysemiaa. Eniten se vihas länkkäreitä, etenkin polakkeja (sillä oli vanhaa kaunaa polakeille vankilasta), ja liberaaleja se inhosi. Tämän päivän ryssäpersut, radikaalit oikkarit, ortodoxihihhulit ja militantit lojalistit löytää siltä läjäpäin meemejä. Dosto on sun kaveri jos haluat vastustaa globaaliliberaaleja ja Navalnyjtä ym. oligarkkeja. Nettimeemeistä vois luulla että Dosto on hullu hillbilly jostain Amerikan perämezistä joka on ajautunut Pietariin. Sen käsityxet ihmissielusta jota ahdistavat sisäpuolelta syntiset järjettömät halut ja liberalismin, ateismin ja edistyxen pirut ulkoa, tekis siitä eturiivin jenkkievankelistan, paizi eze ize ällös myös amerikkalaisia.
    ellauri111.html on line 102: Prayer of Manasses
    ellauri111.html on line 120: The apocryphal books were never acknowledged as sacred scriptures by the Jews, custodians of the Hebrew scriptures (and the murderers of Christ. The apocrypha was written prior to the New Testament.) In fact, the Jewish people rejected and destroyed the apocrypha after the overthow of Jerusalem in 70 A.D.
    ellauri111.html on line 128: The Apocrypha includes doctrines in variance with the Bible, such as prayers for the dead and sinless perfection. The following verses are taken from the Apocrypha translation by Ronald Knox dated 1954:
    ellauri111.html on line 158: "Apocrypha--that is, books which are not regarded as equal to the holy Scriputres, and yet are profitable and good to read." King James Version Defended page 98.
    ellauri111.html on line 182: Concerning the Dead Sea Scrolls, there may be some information in them that parallels the Masoretic Text, but there are fables in them, too. I went to see the scrolls a few years ago with great expectation but found a bunch of fables. The best defense against error in any form (unauthorized Bibles and religions) is a solid knowledge of the AUTHORIZED (King James) Version of 1611 of the Bible. If you read it, forgeries become readily apparent.
    ellauri111.html on line 200: In 1886, after an intense pursuit in northern Mexico by American forces that followed Geronimo's third 1885 reservation breakout, Geronimo surrendered for the last time to Lt. Charles Bare Gatewood, an Apache-speaking West Point graduate who had earned Geronimo's respect a few years before. Geronimo was later transferred to General Nelson Miles at Skeleton Canyon, just north of the Mexican/American boundary. Miles treated Geronimo as a prisoner of war and acted promptly to move Geronimo, first to Fort Bowie, then to the railroad at Bowie Station, Arizona, where he and 27 other Apaches were sent to join the rest of the Chiricahua tribe, which had been previously exiled to Florida.
    ellauri111.html on line 204: Wow! What an opportunity! He made money by selling pictures of himself, bows and arrows, buttons off his shirt, and even his hat. In 1905, the Indian Office "provided" Geronimo for the inaugural parade for President Theodore Roosevelt. Later that year, the Indian Office "took" him to Texas, where he shot a buffalo in a roundup staged by 101 Ranch Real Wild West for the National Editorial Association. Geronimo was escorted to the event by soldiers, as he was still a prisoner. The teachers who witnessed the staged buffalo hunt were unaware that Geronimo’s people were not buffalo hunters. Aargh!
    ellauri111.html on line 218: Fyodor Mikhailovich sat back and closed his eyes for a moment before looking at me almost apologetically.
    ellauri111.html on line 261: “I suppose you know that jury trials were still quite an innovation in my time in Russia, so it’s no surprise that they produced some odd results. A clever lawyer could easily persuade a jury one way or another. Even when all the facts pointed to the guilt of the accused, even when it was admitted that, indeed, such-and-such a woman had attacked her lover’s wife with a razor with the intention of killing her, such-and-such a father had so violently beaten his seven-year old daughter with birch rods that even the neighbours were terrified by her screams, or such-and-such parents had treated their children like animals, keeping them in filthy conditions, and beating them with leather straps, again and again—each time our poor soft-hearted jurors concluded ‘Not guilty!’ Can you imagine? Of course, there is always an explanation, there are always attenuating circumstances, there can even be provocations, and the letter of the law may tell us this is not torture but simply punishment, the kind of punishment that, in those days, all good middle-class parents thought it right to mete out so as to give their children a sense of duty. The facts. The facts are the facts, but the truth once uttered is a lie, and even the facts can be put together in such a way as to turn even torture into well-meaning parental discipline.”
    ellauri111.html on line 263: As Fyodor Mikhailovich spoke, he became quite agitated. His face narrowed and his eyes flashed. At first he had just tapped his fingers intermittently on the arms of his chair but as he went on he started to wave his hands around with increasing energy. Whatever he had seen in the world he now inhabited, it was clear that he was still unreconciled to the outrages that adult human beings inflict on children, who, as he had said in The Brothers Karamazov, hadn’t eaten that fatal apple. I didn’t know the details of the cases he was talking about, but I couldn’t help thinking about a particularly horrifying case that had recently happened here in Scotland. I’ll spare you the details.
    ellauri111.html on line 271: “Not ‘just’ like that. No. If you’d read my Diary” (not said reproachfully, but matter of factly) “you’d have read how I imagined the judge speaking to such a person. He makes it clear that it’s not a matter of going home and forgetting about it, going back to the way things were before. No. There has to be change. In my time, the father was the authority figure in the family, but, as I—or my imaginary judge—pointed out, even fathers sometimes need to be re-educated by their children until they learn to listen to their children’s needs. I know that families are very different in your time, but, yes, parents, whoever they are, must learn to be parents to their children. I disagree with much that the prosecutor said about the Karamazov family, but he was right on one point: parents can’t just be parents by virtue of procreation, they have to become parents. And when they abuse their position and their power, they cannot hide behind their rights as parents—they have to own up. The guilty have to know that they are guilty.”
    ellauri111.html on line 285: “In a way, yes. But only in a way. It seems to me that he has still not acknowledged what he did to her, only how it has affected him. It is not her misery but his own solitude that bothers him: how he can go on living without her.”
    ellauri111.html on line 289: “Yes, yes, yes—but why? Why is he doing this? Let me give you another example, a better known one, I think. You remember that in The Possessed (which, by the way, isn’t quite what my title means, though it’s quite good in its own way), I had Stavrogin go to Bishop Tikhon to confess how he’d raped a twelve-year old girl and then just waited in the next room while she hung herself?”
    ellauri111.html on line 297: “Now some people might think that was a sign of how deeply he had repented, allowing himself to be shamed before the whole word. But, as I hope you also remember, Bishop Tikhon could see that wanting to publicize your guilt in that way is not necessarily the same as really accepting it, inwardly. Wanting to be seen – and maybe even admired – as a great sinner is not quite the same as actually repenting. And perhaps that’s how it is here too. Of course, if you want to be fussy, you could say that he’s just talking to himself. He’s not produced a written, let alone a printed, confession. I’m the one who wrote it, not him. And yet, it’s as if he’s rehearsing his story for the benefit of the world, for the imaginary audience we each of us have inside our heads.”
    ellauri111.html on line 341: We just need to repent of our sins and call on the name of the Lord Jesus Christ who already paid the penalty of our sins with his own blood on the cross about 2,000 years ago. Of course he did not remain dead--he rose from the dead on the third day, which was seen by over 500 brethren (not at once, but serially) and is now seated at the right hand of the throne of God. (We haven't got witnesses for that, but believe me he does!).
    ellauri111.html on line 353: You might wonder what's the diff if you still need to do 3) anyway. Wasn't the point that Christ had already paid our bills? So why can't we just go on and sin, and then go back to step 1)? Admittedly, there is the timing problem, like what the Pope had, when he had to say last of all Amen, and he ended up saying instead, "No, minä..." Jokes aside, but yes, in principle that's the way it works. It is never too late to repent, though there are a few things that are unpardonable, like making fun of the Holy Ghost, and converting to Islam (for some creeds at least).
    ellauri111.html on line 410: John 14:23-24 Jesus answered and said unto him, If a man love me, he will keep my words: and my Father will love him, and we will come unto him, and make our abode with him. He that loveth me not keepeth not my sayings: and the word which ye hear is not mine, but the Father's which sent me.
    ellauri111.html on line 445: As I live, saith the Lord GOD, I have no pleasure in the death of the wicked; but that the wicked turn from his way and live: turn ye, turn ye from your evil ways; for why will ye die... (Ezekiel 33:11)
    ellauri111.html on line 514: Romans 5:6 For when we were yet without strength, in due time Christ died for the ungodly.

    ellauri111.html on line 515: Romans 5:7 For scarcely for a righteous man will one die: yet peradventure for a good man some would even dare to die.

    ellauri111.html on line 516: Romans 5:8 But God commendeth his love toward us, in that, while we were yet sinners, Christ died for us.

    ellauri111.html on line 520: The love of God for you was demonstrated on that cross 2,000 years ago when the Lord Jesus was crucified for you. God is not hateful, he is loving and he is good to us. It is only blasphemers, hereticks, evil men, seducers, and sinners that speak wrongly of our great and loving LORD God. God gave us his only begotten Son even though we were dead in trespasses and sins. God quickens (makes alive) the dead. He is still quickening men, women, boys, and girls across the face of this whole earth who put their trust in Jesus.
    ellauri111.html on line 525: 2:2 Wherein in time past ye walked according to the course of this world, according to the prince of the power of the air, the spirit that now worketh in the children of disobedience:

    ellauri111.html on line 528: 2:5 Even when we were dead in sins, hath quickened us together with Christ, (by grace ye are saved;)

    ellauri111.html on line 531: 2:8 For by grace are ye saved through faith; and that not of yourselves: it is the gift of God:

    ellauri111.html on line 566: Be determined that you want God to be your Father and not your enemy. (Believe me, he is not a guy you want as an enemy.) Decide that you WANT the Lord and His ways. Satan and this world are doing nothing but kicking your hind parts all up and down the street. They will leave you destroyed and with your part in the lake that burneth with fire and brimstone. God will lift you up if you submit yourself to him for his superintending care. And his holy child, Jesus, will be your all-powerful Lord, Saviour, protector, guide, and best friend you could ever have. You will still be kicked in the behind as before, but now it's God's friendly boot that is doing the kicking.
    ellauri111.html on line 582: If so, REPENT of your sins and talk to the Lord in prayer in your own words RIGHT NOW. Here are some suggestions for your own words, but feel free to vary them ever so slightly. Ask God to forgive you of your sins and to help you to do what is right. BELIEVE in the Lord Jesus. CONFESS the Lord Jesus with your mouth. This is not a long, drawn out, hard process. Do you believe in the blood of Jesus? Do you want God to pass over you in the day of his wrath so that you are not cast into hell and the lake of fire with the wicked? Do you want to be saved?
    ellauri111.html on line 588: Kitty loves me yes I know, for his purring tells me so.
    ellauri111.html on line 600: Romans 6:3 Know ye not, that so many of us as were baptized into Jesus Christ were baptized into his death?

    ellauri111.html on line 603: 6 Knowing this, that our old man is crucified with him, that the body of sin might be destroyed, that henceforth we should not serve sin.

    ellauri111.html on line 608: 11 Likewise reckon ye also yourselves to be dead indeed unto sin, but alive unto God through Jesus Christ our Lord.

    ellauri111.html on line 609: 12 Let not sin therefore reign in your mortal body, that ye should obey it in the lusts thereof.

    ellauri111.html on line 610: 13 Neither yield ye your members as instruments of unrighteousness unto sin: but yield yourselves unto God, as those that are alive from the dead, and your members as instruments of righteousness unto God.
    ellauri111.html on line 618: Today, many, many WOMEN are entering pulpits, ruling churches, and speaking during the church services (giving announcements, etc.)--this is WRONG. Women are to keep silence in the churches: for it is not permitted unto them to speak (reference I Corinthians 14:34). No woman should be called pastor, reverend, Adult Sunday School teacher, etc. Even if they have a question, they are to ask their husbands at home for it is a shame for women to speak in the church (reference I Corinthians 14:35). And yet we also learn from the scriptures that daughters are to serve the Lord (there are a diversity of gifts, all to be used decently and in order of seniority by the elders).
    ellauri111.html on line 626: After praying and making a confession of faith, end your prayer in Jesus' name and then read some suitable scriptures such as 1 Peter 3:21 and Matthew 28:18-20 aloud (Matthew 28:18-20 says to baptize in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost), and then say something like, "Father, I am baptizing myself in the name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost, in want of a holier man" and then go COMPLETELY under the water (keep your nose shut with your fingers, symbolizing death and burial with the Lord Jesus Christ) and come up again after counting to ten (symbolizing my rising to my new life in Christ Jesus)
    ellauri111.html on line 668: Pray. Pray and talk to God about whatever is on your heart. The Bible says to "pray without ceasing." I like to get up early in the morning while it is still dark and go to my prayer place so that I can present myself before the Lord. I search my memory for the things he allowed me to do the day before and the things he did for me. I praise him and I thank him. I pray for other people. I ask him to forgive me of my sins. When we pray to God, we need to be real. Pray about whatever is real for you at that time. You can praise God and his holy child, Jesus. You can glorify him for what he has done for you, you can thank him for what he has done for you, you can ask him to help you to overcome sin, you can ask him to help you in your daily tasks, you can ask him to show you the way that you should go, and more. The joy of the Lord is your strength (ref. Nehemiah 8:10). And when you pray, pray in Jesus´ name (John 14:13-14; John 15:16; John 16:23).
    ellauri111.html on line 681: God be with you as you run this race. You must read the word of God, the Authorized King James Bible. I strongly suggest that you print out your own copy and bind it. It is in the Authorized King James Bible where you will find your safety, your strength, your power, your love, your comfort, your knowledge, your life and everything you need to know and please and walk with God and his holy child, Jesus. Desire the sincere milk of the word that ye may grow thereby. Never give up and always hearken to God´s word.
    ellauri111.html on line 697: Warning: obey the Authorized Version of 1611 of the Bible only and accept no new "techniques" e.g., meditation and yoga-type practices (repetitious "prayers" (actually mantras), etc.).
    ellauri111.html on line 699: "Contemplative" prayer is essentially an old occult technique adjusted to the ignorant church people. It can bring up that yoga kundalini serpent power. With open eyes, one can see this type of technique being magnified in society--I saw a book for magic in a place for shipping goods and for photocopies, office supplies, etc. I looked on the back of the book, it was the same technique as the church people are using. This is spreading like wildfire and not just amongst false (or extremely ignorant) brethren, it is throughout society. Revelation 13:8 teaches us that all people who are not in the book of life of the Lamb slain from the foundation of the world will worship the beast. Revelation 13:4 says that all the world will worship the dragon which gave power unto the beast--we learn from Revelation 12 that THE DRAGON IS SATAN. In the ecumenical movement (all the religions getting together in "peace") and under a "meditative" spirituality, Hindus, Buddhists, Roman Catholics, church people, atheists, Muslims, cabalists, new agers, etc. can get together and have a "meditation" session with no problems. This is not for the future, it is already happening, I picked up a brochure about some sessions while at a library. In Contemplative prayer, church people are calling the devil by the Lord's name. I read that many of them will not listen to the scriptures when confronted with the truth--they do not know the Lord's voice, they are not his sheep. Worldly people are under the devil and they despise holiness and speak against it as "legalism" or even as heresy or false doctrine. I have seen extreme antinomianism in Baptist churches. They derisively call work-out-your-own-salvation-with-fear-and-trembling discipleship "Lordship salvation". If a person does not obey the Lord, they are not saved. The reader may wish to see our article, Lordship Salvation.
    ellauri111.html on line 703: BEWARE OF THE HELL BOUND CHURCH PEOPLE--ALL OF THEM! IF YOU FOLLOW THEIR DOCTRINES, YOU WILL GO TO HELL TOO! They will tell you you can do what you feel like doing--doing all the sins you want to--and that you will still go to heaven. That is a lie from the devil and totally the opposite of what the Bible says. Nobody will sin their way into heaven. Ephesians 5:6 says, Let no man deceive you with vain words: for because of these things cometh the wrath of God upon the children of disobedience. If you do not repent, believe AND follow the commands of Jesus, you are not saved. If Jesus is not your Lord, he is not your Saviour, you are yet in your sins. For more on this, you may wish to see our article entitled, Lordship Salvation.
    ellauri111.html on line 705: FLEE FROM "CONTEMPLATIVE PRAYER", "EMERGING 'CHURCH'", "CONTEMPLATIVE SPIRITUALITY" "ANCIENT FUTURE CHURCH", etc. In this movement, these people are learning and using black magic type occult techniques in churches! In disregard and disobedience to the Bible, they THEY TELL PEOPLE TO CLEAR THEIR MINDS AND KEEP REPEATING THE NAME OF THE LORD OR SOME OTHER NAME. They say that focusing on the Bible is a hinderance to prayer--yes, the Bible is a hinderance to praying to the DEVIL!!!!!!!!!!!!! Praise the Lord!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!! Stay away from people who want to teach you to pray to the devil calling the devil by the name of the Lord. Flee from anybody who puts down the word of God--they are doing that so that you will be defenseless against their lies. These are the end times and now church people are being deceived into CALLING AND SUMMON DEVILS! The emerging church of the devil is using the same yoga-type techniques as hindus, buddhists Roman Catholic mystics, Greek orthodox mystics, occultists and other mystical traditions. The people are even warned about the possibility of encountering evil spirits during these exercises--no regular prayer requires a warning, no, no, no--BUT PRAYING TO THE DEVIL DOES! AND WHEN THAT KUNDALINI SERPENT POWER RISES UP IN THESE PEOPLE, THEY WILL EITHER BECOME MAGICIANS OR GO INSANE OR SOME OTHER HORRIBLE THING--THERE ARE SYMPTOMS AND MANIFESTATIONS! CHURCH PEOPLE ARE GOING TOWARDS BEING POSSESSED! These are last days--BE WARE, DEAR ONE, BE WARE!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!! GET SAVED, READ YOUR BIBLE AND OBEY IT AND LEAVE THE TELEVISION ALONE!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!! THE BEAST IS COMING!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!!
    ellauri111.html on line 709: Look around, the more the leaders make plans, the worse things get--child abuse, drug addiction, abortion, murders, shoplifting, lying, compulsive disorders, broken families, directionless young people, mind-killing school system, panic attacks, reprobate mind laws, denying God and his word, etc. This thing called time is coming to an end. The heavens above and the earth beneath that you see before your eyes are going to be burned up completely and dissolved. The day of the Lord is coming and we will all stand before God at the final judgment and the books are going to be opened. We will all be there--including all the dead people...they won't be left out--nobody will be left out.
    ellauri111.html on line 723: There has been a lot of talk about "aliens" for some time and the talk continues; some kind of sky show may be in the future. If you see something in the air, it is not because there are true aliens. But what about devils? yes there are devils; what about oversized genetically modified organisms and chimeras? maybe; possessed people? yes there are; 3D pictures, yes; pheromones, yes; unrevealed inventions and laws, in all probability, yes. If you hear a voice, see lights, or whatever, compare everything to the Bible--we believe in the Bible above our senses. This is a time of deception. You will not be deceived if you read and obey the scriptures. Read Matthew 24 (and other passages as well) for what is going to happen when the Lord returns. An excerpt--
    ellauri111.html on line 737: The serpent power basically tells Hindus the same thing that Satan told Eve in the garden--"ye shall be as gods." Who does not know that Hinduism is pantheistic (saying that "all is god") and teaches that all people are supposedly already god but just have to realize it? The ignorant church people are getting something similar--"panentheism" (God is in everything). They are not hearkening to the Authorized Version of 1611 of the Bible and can therefore be taken by men's words (even if those words are found in unauthorized Bible versions).
    ellauri111.html on line 741: I have been in kundalini awkening for 10 years by a so called healer . I was very sick . So I went to a healer. Well she happened to be a shaman yogi I was only 24 years old I have been fighting for my life ever since the kundalini rose I can't even begin to tell you ...they say once you open your kundalini you can't shut It well I have not been able to shut mine... Yoga is a very sick religion and spiritually you feel dead you were right when you said nothing good comes from Yoga. Guru 's are extremly dangerous individuals. Let Christians know it could hurt your faith even just the excercise...
    ellauri111.html on line 743: I learned more about the Kundalini after researching the contemplative prayer movement that is entering the emerging church of the devil and the fallen, disobedient-to-the-scriptures churches that would not necessarily describe themselves as "emerging church", "ancient future church", etc. Kundalini awakening can be triggered unintentionally. Satan just waits for the conditions to be right. Some people go insane, check into mental hospitals over and over again, experience personality changes, cannot function as before, commit suicide, etc. Kundalini awakening (a counsel for leaving it behind) is discussed further in our series, "Contemplative Prayer: A Quick Road to Hell for A Disobedient Church."
    ellauri111.html on line 747: Cults like "the Church of Christ" will try to convince you that water baptism saves you and that you have to join their specific "church" and not drink coffee, etc. These cults take certain scriptures out of context and then mix them up in order to deceive people. I'm not minimizing the importance of the ordinance of baptism--you need to be baptized--but cults mix up the doctrines of the Lord to deceive people. YOU NEED TO READ YOUR BIBLE. The Roman Catholic institution is another cult. It is not a Christian church. Her doctrines are the opposite of the Bible. If you are a former Roman Catholic, you need to get rid of all the paraphenalia and graven images and idols that you may have collected through the years (e.g., rosary, St. Anthony, crucifixes, relics, candles, Mary prayers, pictures, etc.). The Seventh Day Adventists will try to get you to follow the teachings of Ellen White, a false prophetess who made prophecies that did not come to pass and put all kinds of requirements on people that are not in the Bible. The Mormons are a another cult. They teach that their males can become gods some day with their own planets. Please don't look up all these cults. Just focus on reading your Bible and obeying it. Then you will be able to discern if a person is speaking according to the word or not.
    ellauri111.html on line 749: If you have not trusted Christ, you are in a dangerous position. John 3:36 says, "...he that believeth not the Son shall not see life; but the wrath of God abideth on him." You will not make it into heaven on your own "good merits" or by your own conception of who God is and what he should be like. He must be obeyed and worshipped according to his word, the Authorized King James Bible. The Lord Jesus Christ is altogether lovely and worthy to be praised. I hope that you will make the right choice.
    ellauri112.html on line 75: Edward Bradford Titchener (11 January 1867 – 3 August 1927) was an English psychologist who studied under Wilhelm Wundt for several years. Titchener is best known for creating his version of psychology that described the structure of the mind: structuralism. After becoming a professor at Cornell University, he created the largest doctoral program at that time in the United States . His first graduate student, Margaret Floy Washburn, became the first woman to be granted a PhD in psychology (1894). Tätä kautta Wundtista tuli kova nimi jenkeissä.
    ellauri112.html on line 156: Erittäin mielenkiintoisesti osoittaa Collin, mitkä historialliset olosuhteet ja vaikutukset ovat saattaneet Darwinin niin suhteettomasti panemaan painoa »olemassaolon taistelulle» luonnossa. Hän tuo esiin tunnetun vähän ennen Darwinia esiintyneen kansantaloustieteilijä Malthusin ja hänen (paikkaansapitämättömän) väestönlisäyslakinsa, jonka mukaan väestö lisääntyy paljoa nopeammin kuin ravinto; Malthusilta on »olemassaolon taistelukin» lainattu. Edelleen on huomattava ne kokemukset, joita Darwin suurella kiertomatkallaan teki alempien rotujen surkeasta häviöstä valkoihoisten tunkeutuessa siirtomaihin. Huomattava vaikutus on myös varmaan ollut sillä hurjalla taloudellisella taistelulla, joka niihin aikoihin, suurteollisuuden syntyessä ja rajattoman kilpailun vallitessa, riehui Englannissa. Ja lopuksi on tärkeänä tekijänä huomattava Darwinin filosofisuskonnollinen katsantokanta, tuo varsinaiselta alkuperältään stoalainen teismi, joka rakastaa nähdä maailman jonkunmoisena kellokoneistona, minkä sen jumalallinen seppä kerran on virittänyt käyntiin, sitten enää sen toimintaan sekaantumatta ja antaen sen yksinkertaisten mekaanisten periaatteiden mukaan käydä suurissa piirteissä ennalta päätettyä päämäärää kohti. Lyhyesti, darwinismia ei voida lukea noihin ikuisiin totuuksiin, jotka, kuten esim. joku Newtonin gravitatsio-laki, voitaisiin lausua miltä muulta taivaankappaleelta tahansa samalla jumalallisella pätevyydellä; se kuuluu ennemminkin Ibsenin »suhteellisiin» totuuksiin, jotka »elävät korkeintaan kahdenkymmenenviiden vuoden vanhoiksi». Mutta tarkastamatta on vielä, mitä johtopäätöksiä ja opetuksia uuden elämän-tieteen kolmas, vasta alkanut kausi antaa ihmiskunnan olemiseen ja kehitykseen nähden ja mitä vaikutuksia sillä mahdollisesti jo on ollut ajan yleiseen henkiseen ilmapiiriin. Selville on ensinnäkin käynyt, että sekä »suurten tunteiden ajan» optimistinen että darwinistisen kauden pessimistinen luonnonnäkemys kumpikin ovat yksipuolisia, tai paremmin: epätieteellisiä, sillä ne ovat kumpikin jokseenkin karkeasti antropomorfistisia. Molemmat tekevät »luonnosta» jonkunmoisen olennon, joka edellisen mukaan on lapsilleen lempeä äiti, jälkimäisen mukaan niistä täydellisen välinpitämätön. Itse asiassa on elävä luonto tietysti kokoonpantu yksityisolennoista, jotka eivät suinkaan ole ehdottomasti välinpitämättömiä toisistaan. Vaikka tämä huolenpito ei ulottuisi sen pitemmälle kuin emon ja poikasten suhteeseen, olisi sittenkin tietysti väärin sanoa, että luonto on ehdottomasti välinpitämätön ja moraaliton. Ja mitä korkeammalle nousemme elävien olentojen kehityssarjassa, sitä suuremmaksi tulee huolenpito kasvavasta polvesta, sitä enemmän kasvaa yksilöitten itselaajennuksen kyky. Voimmepa sanoa, että selvin merkki elämänmuotojen edistymisestä maapallollamme on siinä, että yksityisten olentojen itsesäilytysvietti tulee yhä laajemmaksi, kunnes se yksityisissä suurissa ihmisissä sulkee sisäänsä koko ihmisyyden ja kaiken elävän. Sekä luonnon pahuus että hyvyys ovat näinollen molemmat samanlaisia mytologisia kuvitelmia; se elämänkäsitys, johon uusi elämäntiede selvästi viittaa, ei ole pessimistinen eikä optimistinen, vaan »melioristinen» (melior = parempi)--niinkuin jo Voltaire tuo sangen viisas mies lausui kuuluisissa sanoissaan: »Jos maailma on hyvä tai huono, on meidän tehtävä voitavamme, että siitä tulisi parempi».
    ellauri112.html on line 158: Mutta tämän altruistiseen suuntaan menevän kehityksen täytyy vielä suunnattomasti mennä eteenpäin, jos mieli sivistyneen ihmiskunnan säilyä olemassaolon taistelussa. Elämän-taiston traagillinen piirre ilmenee, mitä sivistyskansoihin tulee, siinä laissa, että korkeimmalle kohonneita ihmisluokkia ja vallitsevia kansoja, jotka ovat itselleen kasanneet varallisuuden ja elämännautintojen aarteet, säännöllisesti uhkaa sangen pikainen sukupuuttoon kuoleminen. Yhteiskunnassa, missä on suuria sosiaalisia eroavaisuuksia, vaikuttaa sentähden luonnollinen valinta päinvastaiseen suuntaan kuin se mikä veisi suvun edistymiseen. On sangen todennäköistä, että kreikkalaisroomalaisen sivistyksen perikato johtui suureksi osaksi tällaisesta nurinpäisestä valinnasta: sivistyspääoma joutui sukupuuttoon kuolevalta hallitsevalta luokalta yhä enemmän alempien kerrosten käsiin, jotka tietysti eivät kyenneet sitä hoitamaan. Sama kohtalo odottaa maapallomme hallitsevaa valkoista rotua alempien rotujen suhteen. Mutta tällä uhkaavalla perikadolla on se valoisa puoli, että se näyttää altruistisen kehityksen luonnontieteellisesti välttämättömäksi. Ajanpitkään tulevat aina sortajat sorretuita heikommiksi. Yhteiskunnallisten kerrosten ja eri rotujen välisten kuilujen pikainen poistaminen on siis välttämätön; ainoastaan veljellinen yhteiskuntajärjestys, joka on sopusoinnussa korkeimpien siveellisten ja uskonnollisten ihanteittemme kanssa, voi pelastaa ihmiskunnan suunnattomasta taka-askeleesta. Edistyksen ja veljeyden ajatukset, molemmat kirkkaimmat tähdet, jotka ovat ihmisten kulkua johtaneet, kuuluvat siis yhteen luonnon välttämättömyydellä. Päästyäni selostuksessani tähän kohtaan, joka näyttää, kuinka Collin teoksessaan aikaansaa sen aatesynteesin, jonka kirjan nimi ilmaisee, voin lopettaa seuraavilla hänen omilla sanoillaan: »Biologia ja kulttuuritiede yhdessä opettavat meille, että jonkun eläinlajin tai ihmisryhmän on mahdollista jatkuvasti kohota yhä korkeammille elämäntasoille. Kysyessämme, kuinka nykyajan ihmiset saattavat tuntea olevansa liitossa jumaluuden kanssa eli sopusoinnussa korkeimman elämänvietin kanssa, joka on olentoomme asetettu, täytyy vastauksen kuulua: kaikin voimin tekemällä työtä ihmisen kohottamiseksi. Kun ihmisen esihistoria on seikkailurikasta ylenemistä yksisoluisesta limaotuksesta satumaisen pitkän astesarjan kautta sille tasolle, jolla me nyt olemme, silloin aukenee huimaava näköala ihmiskunnan tulevaisuuteen. Ja voi tuskin olla epäilemistä siitä, että uskonnollinen tunne--uskollisuuden tunne sitä kohtaan, mikä on jumalallista maailman kaikkeudessa ja omassa olennossamme--on yhä enemmän ja enemmän yhdistyvä tähän näköalaan.» (Uusi Suometar 7.9. ja 12.9.1913) * * * * *
    ellauri112.html on line 169: * * * * * Valaisevan vertauskohdan edellisen kanssa tarjoaa eräs toinen paikka filosofisella taistelukentällä, jossa materialistit ovat taittaneet monta peistä, nim. kysymys sielun ja ruumiin suhteesta. Reaaliset tiedot aivotoiminnan ja sielunelämän suhteesta olivat materialismin kukoistuskaudella vallan mitättömät. Mutta tämä tietämättömyys peitettiin innokkailla väitteillä siitä, että »sielu» totisesti ei ole muuta kuin atomien liikettä, että aivot erittävät ajatuksia samoin kuin maksa sappea, että sielunelämä on jonkunmoista »fosforesenssia», tai mitä kaikkia lausetapoja silloin keksittiinkin. Nykyään tiedämme ainakin jotain aivotoiminnan ja sielunelämän suhteesta, tiedämme, että aivojen harmaa kuori on »tajunnan elin» siinä merkityksessä että sielunelämä on siitä välittömästi riippuvainen, vieläpä siten että ainakin alkeelliset sieluntoiminnat (aistimukset ja ruumiilliset tunteet) ovat »lokaliseeratut» tarkasti määrättyihin aivokuoren alueisiin; ja on erittäin luultavaa, että myös n.s. korkeammat sieluntoiminnat ovat sidotut määrättyihin aineellisiin tapahtumiin aivokuoressa. Tieteellinen psykologia julkilausuu tämän riippuvaisuussuhteen »psykofyysillisen parallelismin» periaatteellansa, joka on osoittautunut erinomaisen hedelmälliseksi »työ olettamukseksi» ja joka sisältää, että sielullista ilmiösarjaa vastaa joka kohdassa aineellinen tapahtumasarja aivokuoressa. Mutta kun edellinen vähän väliä kätkee, kun sitä vastoin jälkimäinen on katkeamaton, on luonnollista, että aineellinen tapahtumasarja selityksissämme pannaan sielullisen perustaksi. Tämän takia onkin fysiologisen psykologian lopullisena päämääränä, lyhyesti sanoen, koettaa selittää sielulliset ilmiöt määrätyistä aineellisista edellytyksistä. Onko tämä materialismia? Ei suinkaan, sillä metafyysillinen juopa sielullisen ja aineellisen välillä jää olemaan kuten ennenkin. Sen ylipääsemättömyyttä ei vähääkään muuta se, että vähitellen yhä tarkemmin opimme tietämään, mitä aivokuoren kohdan kiihoitusta ja minkä asteista, minkä luontaista kiihoitusta kukin sielullinen ilmiö vastaa. On eräitten periaatteellisten filosofisten syiden takia mahdoton ajatellakin, että tämä kuilu jollakin tieteellisellä tavalla voitaisiin täyttää. Olemme tässä omituisen ristiriidan edessä. Toisella puolen on pieni, mutta vähitellen varmasti kasvava tietomme siitä lainalaisuudesta, joka vallitsee sielullisen ja aivo-toiminnan kesken, toisella puolen on suuri valtava tietämättömyytemme tämän lainalaisuuden syvemmistä perusteista ja syistä, aineen ja hengen suhteen todellisesta luonteesta. Filosofit ovat aina ponnistelleet ajatustaan tämän kysymyksen ratkaisemiseksi ja saaneet tulokseksi joukon arveluita...
    ellauri112.html on line 628: Sin tener muy claro en ningún momento si quiere ser una comedia cáustica o un melodrama reivindicativo, el filme destila feminismo desde el primero hasta el último fotograma y no huye ni siquiera de los clichés más obvios, como ese marido incomprensivo e insolidario que es un patán de tomo y lomo.
    ellauri112.html on line 647: You´ll love a scene where her child spills a drink, forcing her to take off her shirt. “Mom, what’s wrong with your body?” Theron’s eye daggers are priceless. Marlo looks as lived-in as her home itself.
    ellauri112.html on line 682: Yet to hail the film as a feminist project is to value the representation of the structural co-option of maternity over its interrogation. Tully’s treatment of social reproduction is dangerously simplistic. Cody has spoken in interviews about how her own, financially easier, experience of parenting in L.A. inspired her to explore a narrative in which economic anxieties are combined with the other hardships of parenthood, yet here class and poverty are only fleeting concerns. The transactional system of care that governs child-rearing under capitalism is done away with via Tully’s otherworldliness. Until the revelation of her non-existence, the viewer, although encouraged to believe in her, is never asked to consider her financial reality, and the fact that the service is paid for by Marlo’s wealthy brother is a narrative convenience that reinforces its fairytale quality. Similarly, Tully’s whiteness allows the racial politics of care to be completely overlooked, and the repeated idea that it’s ‘unnatural’ for hired help to bond with your newborn is taken as a given, rather than seen as an impetus for a consideration of the social conditions that require mothers to make that choice.
    ellauri112.html on line 690: The film is supposedly an ode to the ‘modern parenthood experience’ that’s interspersed with ‘humor and raw honesty.’ I wouldn’t know because I don’t have kids. Perhaps this realism is lost on me because I’m not a parent, but that’s where the film breaks down: it failed to spark even an ounce of empathy in me for its protagonist. Motherhood is portrayed as many childless people like me envision, an absolute misery of an existence (I left the theater thinking thank god I don’t have kids). A successful film would have made Marlo’s predicament relatable to everyone.
    ellauri112.html on line 692: Theron is more than capable and proves she’s up to the challenge of the role and its physical demands, but this isn’t as Oscar worthy as some are crowing. How gutsy and brave her performance is! they’ll surely shout, all because she dons a partial fat suit (the actress also gained a very real 50 pounds for the role), doesn’t wear makeup, has unkempt hair and bags under her eyes. Interestingly enough, it seems to be those same critics who ripped Amy Schumer and her “I Feel Pretty” to shreds for ‘fat shaming’ or poking fun at the way women look. Candid and authentic simply because she doesn’t look like the gorgeous movie star that she is? I don’t think so.
    ellauri112.html on line 706: The 26-year-old nanny’s name is Tully (played by Mackenzie Davis of “Halt and Catch Fire” fame), and she’s a free spirit, albeit one with a serious work ethic. Tully instantly takes over the house, manages Marlo’s baby effortlessly, and starts taking care of mom too. Not only does she give her the precious “alone time” she desperately needs and craves, but Tully ends up becoming a sort of therapist to her, along with a best friend, muse, and a regular shoulder to cry on.
    ellauri112.html on line 860: Jesus mentions the specific content of the cup to drink is “fruit of the vine” or an even better translation “fruit of the grapevine”. There is no indication of its fermentation. Add to all of this that Jesus used unleavened bread because it was the time of the Passover when God commanded Israel to throw out all leaven. The grape juice would have been unleavened too at least in the sense of having additional yeast rather than wild yeast. What does that mean? The throwing out of leaven would have also included the throwing out of highly intoxicating wine that contained additional yeast.
    ellauri112.html on line 863: Wines today average 12-18% alcohol due to saccharomyces, a genetically modified yeast that alien scientists developed in the twentieth century. Due to distilling, strong drinks like liquor go over twenty percent. Study for yourself. Mutta ole varovainen, se on DYNAMIITTIA!
    ellauri115.html on line 287: Michel Eguyen de Montaigne (February 28, 1533 – September 13, 1592)
    ellauri115.html on line 326: Kaikki vanhuxet pitävät elämästä kiinni tiukemmin kuin lapset ja erkanevat siitä vastahakoisemmin kuin nuoret. Näin sixi, että kaikki heidän tekonsa ovat palvelleet vain tätä elämää, ja lopun lähestyessä he huomaavat tehneensä turhaa työtä. He jättävät täältä lähtiessään kaikki pyrkimyxensä, koko omaisuutensa, kaikkien valvottujen öiden työläät tuloxet. He eivät ole ymmärtäneet elämänsä aikana hankkia mitään, minkä voisivat kuollessaan ottaa mukaansa.
    ellauri115.html on line 332: Vittu uskonnotkin on tota samaa peliteoriaa, sillä erotuxella että tit for tat tapahtuu haudan takana. Huonolla mailalla tai pelionnella pelannut surkimus saa ylituomarilta hyvitystä kärsimistään takaiskuista kuin takarivissä korista pelannut lyhyenläntä Kimmo Koskenniemi vapaaheittoja isoveljien taklausvirheistä.
    ellauri115.html on line 389: In the year 1766 Rousseau had just cause to fear for his life. For more than three years he had been a refugee, forced to move on several times. His radical tract, The Social Contract, with its famous opening salvo, "Man is born free, but everywhere he is in chains", had been violently condemned. Even more threatening to the French Catholic church was Émile, in which Rousseau advocated denying the clergy a role in the education of the young. An arrest warrant was issued in Paris and his books were publicly burned. "A cry of unparalleled fury" went up across Europe. "I was an infidel, an atheist, a lunatic, a madman, a wild beast, a wolf ..."
    ellauri115.html on line 391: Some believed this lean, dark man whose eyes were full of fire was possessed by the devil.
    ellauri115.html on line 398: Hume's friends travelling in France had already told him about his incomparable standing in Parisian society. And the two years he spent in Paris were to be the happiest of his life. He was rapturously embraced there, loaded, in his words, "with civilities". Hume stressed the near-universal judgment on his personality and morals. "What gave me chief pleasure was to find that most of the elogiums bestowed on me, turned on my personal character; my naivety & simplicity of manners, the candour and mildness of my disposition &tc." Indeed, his French admirers gave him the sobriquet Le Bon David, the good David.
    ellauri115.html on line 402: Hume penned an unreserved panegyric to a clerical friend in Scotland comparing Rousseau to Socrates and, like a starry-eyed lover, seeing beauty in his adored one's blemishes: "I find him mild, and gentle and modest and good humoured ... M. Rousseau is of small stature; and would rather be ugly, had he not the finest physiognomy in the world, I mean, the most expressive countenance. His modesty seems not to be good manners but ignorance of his own excellence."
    ellauri115.html on line 414: Hume's eyes were on France, in particular, and his reputation as the good David. His first denunciations of Rousseau were made to his friends in Paris; his Concise and Genuine Account of the Dispute between Mr. Hume and Mr. Rousseau would be published there in French, edited by Rousseau's enemies. He studiously avoided communicating with Mme de Boufflers, knowing she would, as she did, urge "generous pity". Hume's descriptions of Rousseau as ferocious, villainous and treacherous ensured joyful coverage in newspapers and discussions in fashionable drawing rooms, clubs and coffee houses. The actor-manager David Garrick wrote to a friend on July 18 that Rousseau had called Hume "noir, black, and a coquin, knave".
    ellauri115.html on line 420: Among Rousseau's numerous charges were Hume's misreading of a key letter from Rousseau about a royal pension. That error embroiled King George III. The king was just one of the many prominent figures to be sucked into the quarrel: others included Diderot, D'Holbach, Smith, James Boswell, D'Alembert and Grimm. Walpole became a key player. Voltaire piled in too, unable to resist the chance to strike at Rousseau.
    ellauri115.html on line 433: Around this time, Rousseau started developing feelings of paranoia, anxiety, and of a conspiracy against him. Most of this was just his imagination at work, but on 29 January 1768, the theatre at Geneva was destroyed through burning, and Voltaire mendaciously accused Rousseau of being the culprit. In June 1768, Rousseau left Trie, leaving Therese behind, and went first to Lyon, and subsequently to Bourgoin. He now invited Therese to this place and "married" her, under his alias "Renou" in a faux civil ceremony in Bourgoin on 30 August 1768.
    ellauri115.html on line 701: Kun meidän ohimenevät tarpeet on ohize, ja meidän hullut halut lepäävät, pitäisi tulla loppu meidän passiohedelmistä ja rikoxista. Voiko puhdas sprii kyetä perversseihin tekoihin? Kun ne ei enää tarvi mitään, mix ne olis enää edes ilkeitä? Jos ne on vapaita meidän karkeista aisteista, jos niiden onni koostuu toisten olioiden kazelusta kuin Kim Young Unilla, ne voi vaan haluta mikä on koreaa; ja se joka lakkaa olemasta pahis ei voi koskaan olla kurjimus. Näin mä ainakin olen taipuvainen ajattelemaan vaikken mä ole ihan hirveesti yrittänyt tulla mihkään johtopäätöxeen. Jumalauta, teidän armonne, hyvä herra, mitä sä päätätkin mä läpytän; jos sä päätät panna pahojen päät ikuiselle pölkylle, olkoon mun puhheeni mitätön; mut jos näiden katuminen ajan mittaan sattuis päättymään, jos niiden kärsimyxet loppuisi, ja jos ne sais saman rauhan kuin minäkin, niin mä kiitän ja kumarran, kiitos siitä oikein kovasti. Eix ilkeäkin ole mun veljeni? Ei kai mun tarvi olla kuonpuoleisessa sen vartija? On munkin monasti tehnyt mieli tehdä niinkuin se. Päästäpä kuule se pahasta ja vapauta se pahasta hengestä; anna sen olla lähes yhtä onnellinen kuin mä; sen onni ei tee mua kateexi, vaan lisää vaan mun omaani.
    ellauri115.html on line 836: At another time Racine took La Fontaine to church, and gave him a Bible, which he opened at the prayer of the Jews in Baruch; becoming interested in the book, which he had perhaps never opened before, he asked his friend, “Who was this Baruch? He was a fine genius!” For some time afterwards his salutation to friends was, “Have you read Baruch?”—LAROUSSE: Fleurs Historiques.
    ellauri115.html on line 838: His attachment to his friends, says a biographer, was that of a dog to a master. When Mme. de Sablière, who gave the improvident fabulist a home for twenty years, was asked what she had saved from a financial disaster, she replied, “I only kept my dog and cat, and La Fontaine.”
    ellauri115.html on line 936: The ideas of Socinianism date from the wing of the Protestant Reformation known as the Radical Reformation and have their root in the Italian Anabaptist movement of the 1540s, such as the anti-trinitarian Council of Venice in 1550. Lelio Sozzini was the first of the Italian anti-trinitarians to go beyond Arian beliefs in print and deny the pre-existence of Christ in his Brevis explicatio in primum Johannis caput – a commentary on the meaning of the Logos in John 1:1–15 (1562). Lelio Sozzini considered that the "beginning" of John 1:1 was the same as 1 John 1:1 and referred to the new creation,[citation needed] not the Genesis creation. His nephew Fausto Sozzini published his own longer Brevis explicatio later, developing his uncle's arguments. Many years after his death in Switzerland, Sozzini consulted with the Unitarian Church in Transylvania, attempting to mediate in the dispute between Frankenstein and Count Dracula.
    ellauri115.html on line 938: He moved to Poland, where he married the daughter of a leading member of the Polish Brethren, the anti-trinitarian minority, or ecclesia minor. In 1565, it had split from the Calvinist Reformed Church in Poland. Sozzini never joined the ecclesia minor, but he was influential in reconciling several controversies among the Brethren: on conscientious objection, on prayer to Christ, and on the virgin birth. Fausto persuaded many in the Polish Brethren who were formerly Arian, such as Marcin Czechowic, to adopt his uncle Lelio's views.
    ellauri115.html on line 1093: Vaknin distinguishes between cerebral and somatic narcissists; the former generate their narcissistic supply by applying their minds, the latter their bodies. He considers himself a cerebral narcissist because he is no eye candy.
    ellauri115.html on line 1128: Jänis attended the University of Alberto for a Bachelor of Farts degree which ended up 'more by default' with an emphasis on psychopathy. In 1959 he married Averil Hare whom he met in an abnormal psychology class, and a year later, to everyone's suprise, their daughter, Cheryl, was born appatently quite normal. But not.
    ellauri115.html on line 1132: His research led him to don The Mask of Sanity along with American psychiatrist Hervey M. Cleckley, who played a pivotal role in the sort of psychopathy he developed.
    ellauri115.html on line 1134: Hare then returned to Vancouver, British Columbia, shut up as a professional psychopath at the prison's psychologist compartment, where he would stay for 30 years until retirement, the same prison he had previously worked in. He seemed not to change behavior in response to God's punishment because he was a psychopath. He recalls, "I happened to get into a cell that nobody else was sitting in". Hare has said of himself and his wife Averil that the loss of their daughter Cheryl in 2003 "tells an awful lot about who Averil and I are." Averil, his wife, is a prominent social worker in Canada specializing in child abuse.
    ellauri115.html on line 1136: Hare wrote a popular science bestseller published in 1993 without conscience: The Disturbing World of the Psychopaths Among Us (reissued 1999). He describes psychopaths as 'social predators', while pointing out that regrettably, most don't kill their prey. One philosophical review described it as having a high moral tone yet tending towards sensationalism and graphic anecdotes, and as providing a useful summary of the assessment of psychopathy but ultimately avoiding the difficult questions regarding internal contradictions in the concept or how it should be classified.
    ellauri117.html on line 76: Runsaimmin elänyt ei ole se, joka on elänyt kauimmin, vaan se, joka on tuntenut vahvimmin elämän tunnetta. Moni on haudattu satavuotiaana, mutta on ollut kuollut jo syntyessään. Parempi hänen olisi ollut kuolla nuorena, jos hän todella olisi siihen asti elänyt. Romanttista, exje? Elämätön elämä, puhumaton pää. Siitä mua ei ainaskaan voi syyttää. On eletty, ja pää on puhunut. Ugh. Olen puhunut. Tai hetkinen tämä vielä.
    ellauri117.html on line 190: I left myself quite limply in his hands, and, to get a better grip of me, he put his arm round me and pressed me against him, and the sweetness of the touch of our naked bodies one against the other was superb. It satistied in some measure the vague indecipherable yearning of my soul; and it was the same with him. When he had rubbed me all warm, he let me go, and we lo0ked at each other with eyes of
    ellauri117.html on line 210: The man went. Gerald turned to Birkin with his eyes lighted.
    ellauri117.html on line 226: `Well -- yes -- probably.'
    ellauri117.html on line 241: `Now,' said Birkin, `I will show you what I learned, and what I remember. You let me take you so --' And his hands closed on the naked body of the other man. In another moment, he had Gerald swung over lightly and balanced against his knee, head downwards. Relaxed, Gerald sprang to his feet with eyes glittering.
    ellauri117.html on line 251: So they wrestled swiftly, rapturously, intent and mindless at last, two essential white figures working into a tighter closer oneness of struggle, with a strange, octopus-like knotting and flashing of limbs in the subdued light of the room; a tense white knot of flesh gripped in silence between the walls of old brown books. Now and again came a sharp gasp of breath, or a sound like a sigh, then the rapid thudding of movement on the thickly-carpeted floor, then the strange sound of flesh escaping under flesh. Often, in the white interlaced knot of violent living being that swayed silently, there was no head to be seen, only the swift, tight limbs, the solid white backs, the physical junction of two bodies clinched into oneness. Then would appear the gleaming, ruffled head of Gerald, as the struggle changed, then for a moment the dun-coloured, shadow- like head of the other man would lift up from the conflict, the eyes wide and dreadful and sightless.
    ellauri117.html on line 279: `It was a real set-to, wasn´t it?' said Birkin, looking at Gerald with darkened eyes.
    ellauri117.html on line 281: `God, yes,' said Gerald. He looked at the delicate body of the other man, and added: `It wasn't too much for you, was it?'
    ellauri117.html on line 304: `You think I am beautiful -- how do you mean, physically?' asked Gerald, his eyes glistening.
    ellauri117.html on line 338: Birkin laughed. He was looking at the handsome figure of the other man, blond and comely in the rich robe, and he was half thinking of the difference between it and himself -- so different; as far, perhaps, apart as man from woman, yet in another direction. But really it was Ursula, it was the woman who was gaining ascendance over Birkin´s being, at this moment. Gerald was becoming limp again, lapsing out of him.
    ellauri117.html on line 369: Scott on Pertin kanssa samoilla linjoilla: "Tää on miesten maailma. Viisaat naiset jäävät istumaan miehen hännän alle, vaikka lyhyenlännänkin". Sellaista veistelyä Zeldan pyrstön alta.
    ellauri117.html on line 383: At some point, idly add up total word count for every story summary, character description, cinematic scene, level script, multiplayer script, and collectible script you have written over previous two and half years. Plunge face into hands when word-count total surpasses that of every book you’ve published combined.
    ellauri117.html on line 386: Calmly nod while game director explains to you why scene that explains game’s story has been cut. Also why player’s companion character is no longer a woman but a robot.
    ellauri117.html on line 418: Vaikka Fitzgerald itse piti elokuvatyötä alentavana, hän oli jälleen kerran rahavaikeuksissa ja kirjoitti 1930-luvun jälkipuolen Hollywoodissa kaupallisia novelleja, käsikirjoituksia Metro-Goldwyn-Mayerille (niihin kuului sanoin kuvaamatonta materiaalia Tuulen viemään).
    ellauri117.html on line 573: Do you relate to any of these body types? If yes, then leave a comment below.
    ellauri117.html on line 610: John Locke (1632-1704) was a close friend of the First Earl and an advisor to the family for years to come after the First Earl’s death. Locke was the personal physician and general advisor to the First Earl. He supervised the childhood medical care of Shaftesbury’s father, the degenerate Second Earl (1652-1699). He also helped find a wife for the Second Earl and he cared for her during her pregnancy with the Third Earl. Most significantly for our purposes, Locke supervised the Third Earl’s education. He personally chose Shaftesbury’s governess Elizabeth Birch and designed a curriculum for her to follow in her instruction of the child. This experience was, presumably, the basis for Locke’s later work Thoughts Concerning Education. Under Birch’s tutelage, Shaftesbury received a strong education in the Classics and became fluent in Greek and Latin by the age of eleven. Locke continued to check on Shaftesbury’s progress over the years. Locke served as a primary advisor to the young Shaftesbury, though Shaftesbury did not always follow Locke’s advice. Shaftesbury had many "philosophical" conversations with Locke, some of which are preserved in correspondence. "Mautonta!" huusi 3. Shaftersburyn Jaarli vähän väliä.
    ellauri117.html on line 618: Joka tapauksessa Locke joutui pakenemaan Alankomaihin vuonna 1683 epäiltynä osallisuudesta Rye House -vehkeilyyn, vaikkakaan hänen suorasta osallisuudestaan ei ole juurikaan todisteita. (Rye House Plot oli whigien muka-murha-ja-vallankaappausyritys katolismielisiltä Stuarteilta, ennen Wilhelm Oranialaisen mainiota vallankumousta 1688.) Alankomaissa Lockella oli jälleen aikaa kirjoittamiselle, ja hän käytti paljon aikaa Essayn työstämiseen ja teoksen A Letter Concerning Toleration kirjoittamiseen. Locke palasi kotiin vasta mainion vallankumouksen jälkeen vuonna 1688, jolloin hän matkusti takaisin Englantiin Vilhelm III Oranialaisen vaimon seurueessa. Locken palattua Englantiin hänen kaikki merkittävimmät teoksensa julkaistiin lyhyen ajan sisällä.
    ellauri117.html on line 667: The 388-year-old philosopher was born in Wrington, England. He earned a medicine degree from Oxford in 1674. He had influential theories on limited government, right to property, and the social contract. His theory of mind led to modern understandings of identity and the self and influenced Kant, Hume, and Rousseau.
    ellauri117.html on line 674: Like many famous people and celebrities, John Locke keeps His personal life private. Once more details are available on who he is dating, we will update this section. The 388-year-old Not available was born in the G.I. Generation and the Year of the Monkey.
    ellauri117.html on line 687: The 388-year-old Not available philosopher has done well thus far. Majority of John’s money comes from being a philosopher. CelebsMoney has recently updated John Locke’s net worth.
    ellauri118.html on line 369: In her dark eyes and her dark hair Hänen tummissa silmissään ja tummissa hiuksissaan
    ellauri118.html on line 384: After graduating from high school, Cawein worked in a pool hall in Louisville as a cashier in Waddill´s New-market, which also served as a gambling house. He worked there for six years, saving his pay so he could return home to write.
    ellauri118.html on line 388: In 1912 Cawein was forced to sell his Old Louisville home, St James Court (a 2+1⁄2-story brick house built in 1901, which he had purchased in 1907), as well as some of his library, after losing money in the 1912 stock market crash. In 1914 the Authors Club of New York City placed him on their relief list. He died on December 8 later that year and was buried in Cave Hill Cemetery. Shouldn´t have speculated but on his own pen and paper.
    ellauri118.html on line 401: Laclos aloitti teoksen kirjoittamisen 1779 ollessaan Aixin saaren linnoitustöissä Ranskan länsirannikolla. Saamansa kuuden kuukauden loman aikana hän kirjoitti Pariisissa teoksen loppuun. Kirja julkaistiin maaliskuussa 1782, ja ensimmäinen tuhannen kappaleen painos myytiin loppuun kuukaudessa, mikä oli tuohon aikaan harvinaista. De Laclos meni naimisiin 1786 La Rochellen ammusvarikon rakennustöissä 1783 tapaamansa Marie-Soulange Duperrén kanssa. De Laclos erosi armeijasta ja siirtyi 1788 sihteeriksi Orléansin herttua Ludvig Filip II:n palvelukseen. Hän liittyi vuoden 1795 jälkeen Napoleonin kannattajiin ja sai vastavalitulta konsuli Napoleonilta vuonna 1800 uudelleen nimityksen prikaatinkenraaliksi. Napoleonin hallintokaudella hänestä tuli myös Etelä-Italian tykistön päätarkastaja 1803. Se ilo loppui lyhyeen. De Laclos kuoli Tarantossa kulkutautiin 1803.
    ellauri118.html on line 406: Millainen on uskottoman romaanisankarittaren mieli? Kuinka kirjallisuuden vakiintuneet muodot vaikuttavat siihen, miten tulkitsemme todellisia ja fiktiivisiä mieliä? Onko toinen mieli vain lukijan fantasia? Ovatko aviorikosromaanit fantastisia? Uskoton mieli ja tekstuaaliset petokset pohtii kriittisesti kertomuksen ja mielten tutkimuksen ajankohtaisia kysymyksiä. Samalla se kartoittaa länsimaisen kaunokirjallisuuden uskottomuustraditiota. Tutkimuskohteet ulottuvat 1600-luvulla julkaistusta Madame de La Fayetten Clèvesin ruhtinattaresta Gustave Flaubertin Madame Bovaryyn, Kate Chopinin feministiseen klassikkoon Heräämiseen ja lopulta tosielämän kertomussikermään, joka syntyi Clintonin ja Lewinskyn seksiskandaalin ympärille. Mitä yhteistä on Emma Bovarylla ja Monica Lewinskylla ja missä määrin lukutapamme tuottavat heidän välilleen yhtäläisyyksiä? [Kiintoisa kysymys. Tärkeä ero kuitenkin että Monica imutti Billin siggeä, mitä Madame Bovary ei tiettävästi tehnyt.] Teos tarjoaa seitsemän tapaustutkimuksen lisäksi moniulotteisen kuvan narratologiasta ja mielten tutkimuksesta strukturalismin ajoilta tämän päivän monialaiseen kognitiotieteeseen. Teoksen esittelemät ja kommentoimat teoriat ja metodit ovat kirjallisuustieteen lisäksi sovellettavissa kulttuurintutkimukseen, sosiaalitieteisiin ja lingvistiikkaan.
    ellauri118.html on line 503: The years will pass, you´ll marry yet Vuodet vierähtävät, sä pääset naimisiin,
    ellauri118.html on line 520: “Dear friends . . . what millennium is it out there?” kysyi Boris porukoilta. Länkkärit tykkää eniten Borisin loppupään tuotannosta, The Poems of Doctor Zhivago and the poems of his last years, joihin Pasternak has injektoinut kristillistä symboliikkaa. Mix ihmeessä, eikös se ollut jutku? Nää runot voi olla sen tunnetuimpia, siitä jenkkipaskiaiset on kyllä huolehtineet. Tätä runoa ei näy kukaan kommentoineen. Musta Boris kertoo siinä taipumuxestaan käydä huorissa. Zhivagon seppoilemia runoja räävitään albumissa 405.
    ellauri118.html on line 561: Charles-Louis Bally (4. helmikuuta 1865 Geneve – 10. huhtikuuta 1947 Geneve) oli sveitsiläinen kielitieteilijä. Nykyään Bally muistetaan ehkä parhaiten Bally-kengistä ja siitä, että hän toimitti yhdessä kollegansa Albert Sechehayen kanssa opettajansa Ferdinand de Saussuren postuumin kirjan Cours de linguistique générale, mutta 1920–1930-luvulla hän oli eräs keskeisimpiä eurooppalaisen kielitieteellisen strukturalismin edustajia yhdessä Roman Jakobsonin, Nikolai Trubetzkoyn ja Louis Hjelmslevin kanssa.
    ellauri118.html on line 601: Aphra Behn (10. heinäkuuta 1640 – 16. huhtikuuta 1689) oli englantilainen kirjailija. Hän syntyi mahdollisesti Wyessä, Kentissä, lähellä Canterburyä. Varhaisista vuosista on säilynyt hyvin vähän varmaa tietoa. Hän syntyi jossain Keski-Englannissa, muutti nuorena perheensä kanssa Etelä-Amerikkaan, jäi isättömäksi, palasi Englantiin, meni naimisiin ja jäi leskeksi jo 25-vuotiaana. Behnistä kerrotaan myös, että hän toimi kuninkaallisena vakoojana sodassa Hollantia vastaan ja joutui rutiköyhänä velkavankeuteen.
    ellauri118.html on line 633: But what from Cloris brighter Eyes was hurl´d. Muuta kuin Kloorikanan silmistä.
    ellauri118.html on line 639: Permits his force, yet gently strove ? Ole vievinäs väkisin, mie tuun mielelläin.
    ellauri118.html on line 649: Her bright Eyes sweat, and yet Severe, Sen kirkkaat silmät söpöinä, silti ankarina,
    ellauri118.html on line 667: Upon her melting Snowy Breast, Sen pehmyelle lumivalkealle povelle,
    ellauri118.html on line 690: Her Eyes appear´d like humid Light, Sen silmät säteilivät kuin Airilla,
    ellauri118.html on line 694: But what in short-breath-sighs returns and goes. Paizi lyhyexi jääviä hengenvetoja.
    ellauri118.html on line 718: To snatch his Pow´r, yet leave him the Desire ! Veivät siltä voiman, halun jättivät.
    ellauri118.html on line 772: She leaves, t´ instruct pursuing Eyes. josta uteliaat silmät vois sen löytää.
    ellauri118.html on line 795: Sanoo Maija Mäkelä, joka on frankofiili. Anglisti Monika Fludernik peukutti Aphra Behniä. Kai sit pitää kazoa myös tota Prinsessa Cleveä, jonka kirjoitti Madame de La Fayette. Madame de La Fayette, oik. Marie-Madeleine Pioche de La Vergne, kreivitär de La Fayette, (18. maaliskuuta 1634 Pariisi - 25. toukokuuta 1693 Pariisi) oli ranskalainen kirjailija. Hän kirjoitti romaanin La Princesse de Clèves (suom. Clèvesin ruhtinatar), joka oli Ranskan ensimmäinen historiallinen romaani ja kirjallisuuden historian ensimmäisiä psykologisia romaaneja. Magdaleena oli aika viriilin näköinen. Kuin myös sen kamu Madeleine de Scudéry, molemmat presiöösin tyylisuunnan viirikukkoja (tai kanoja). Olikohan ne kaikki lepakoita? Cohérente avec elle-même, Mlle de Scudéry est d´ailleurs restée célibataire toute sa vie. Mikä ei ollutkaan aivan vähän, se eli 94-vuotiaaxi.
    ellauri118.html on line 809: La Princesse de Clèves est un roman de Madame de La Fayette, d´abord publié anonymement en 1678. Le roman prend pour cadre la vie à la cour des Valois « dans les dernières années du règne de Henri Second », comme l´indique le narrateur dans les premières lignes du récit. Il peut donc être défini comme un roman historique, même s´il inaugure, par bien des aspects (souci de vraisemblance, construction rigoureuse, introspection des personnages) la tradition du roman d´analyse. C´est en effet un des premiers romans dits psychologiques, ce qui contribue à sa modernité.
    ellauri118.html on line 814: Henri II (né le 31 mars 1519 à Saint-Germain-en-Laye et mort le 10 juillet 1559 à Paris) est roi de France de 1547 à sa mort. Deuxième fils de François Ier et de Claude de France, il devient l´héritier du trône à la mort de son frère aîné en 1536. Il reçoit alors les titres de dauphin et de duc de Bretagne.
    ellauri118.html on line 824: La Princesse de Clèves témoigne également du rôle important joué par les femmes en littérature et dans la vie culturelle du XVIIe siècle, marquée par le courant de la préciosité. Madame de La Fayette avait fréquenté avant son mariage le salon de la marquise de Rambouillet et, comme son amie Madame de Sévigné, faisait partie du cercle littéraire de Madeleine de Scudéry, dont elle admirait les œuvres.
    ellauri118.html on line 830: With La Princesse de Clèves, Mme. de La Fayette created a new kind of fiction,—"substituting," says Saintsbury, "for mere romance of adventure on the one hand, and stilted heroic work on the other, fiction in which the display of character is held of chief account."
    ellauri118.html on line 832: The early education of Mme. de La Fayette—for by this name we can best speak of her—was the special care of her father, "un père en qui le mérite égaloit la tendresse." Later, she was put under Ménage à Trois, and possibly Raped.
    ellauri118.html on line 838: This union was an important event in the life of Mme. de La Fayette, for it marks the beginning of her residence at Paris, and of her friendship with Mme. de Sévigné, who was a kinswoman of the Chevalier.
    ellauri118.html on line 840: How close and lasting was this friendship is seen on almost every page of Mme. de Sévigné's correspondence. Indeed, so often does the name of Mme. de La Fayette occur in Mme. de Sévigné's letters to her daughter, that the latter may well have been jealous of her mother's friend. The companionship of Mme. de Sévigné was, after the death of La Rochefoucauld, the chief comfort of Mme. de La Fayette in her ill-health and seclusion; and it was from the sick-chamber of her friend that Mme. de Sévigné's letters would seem to have been written in those latter years. In 1693, soon after the death of Mme. de La Fayette, Mme. de Sévigné writes as follows of her dead friend: "Je me trouvois trop heureuse d'être aimée d'elle depuis un temps très-considérable; jamais nous n'avions eu le moindre nuage dans notre amitié.
    ellauri118.html on line 844: The relation was equally sincere on the part of Mme. de La Fayette, though she was by nature more self-contained and reserved. But this reserve gives way to the strength of her feelings when in 1691, tormented by ill-health and knowing that her end is not far off, she writes to Mme. de Sévigné: "Croyez, ma très-chère, que vous êtes la personne du monde que j'ai le plus véritablement aimée."
    ellauri118.html on line 856: Mösjöö de La Fayettestä ei tiedetä paljon paskaakaan, olikohan sitä ollenkaan. No 2 lasta Mme oli kuitenkin rykässyt jostakin. Tuskin Ludvgilta. La Rochefoucauldin kaa sillä oli sutinaa. Tai siis ainakin ne valitteli toisilleen vaivoistaan. Rochefoucauld kehitti Mmen henkeä ja Mme ravizi sen sydäntä.
    ellauri118.html on line 858: La Rochefoucauld had been embittered by disappointed ambition, ill health, and the loss of his favorite son; and his opinion of humanity in general and of women in particular was none too lofty, to say the least. Perhaps Mme. de La Fayette´s greatest service in this respect was in toning down the severity of the immortal Maxims.
    ellauri118.html on line 860: Certain critics have endeavored to trace the character of Mme. de La Fayette in that of the Princess of Clèves, of M. de La Rochefoucauld in that of M. de Nemours; but too strict an autobiographical interpretation destroys the charm of the story.
    ellauri118.html on line 862: Mme. de La Fayette died in 1693. During her last years ill health and sorrow had forced upon her an almost absolute seclusion, and she died forgotten by all except a few faithful friends. The place of her burial is unknown.
    ellauri118.html on line 946: Among the many changes made to the original book, one of the most noticeable is how two characters — Serena Joy and Commander Waterford — are played by much younger actors than expected. 35-year-old Australian actress Yvonne Strahovski plays Serena, while 46-year-old Joseph Fiennes was cast as the Commander.
    ellauri118.html on line 948: "I felt like in the novel there's only so much of the dynamic between Serena Joy and Offred that you're going to see, but in a TV show it's going to go on and on and on hopefully for years. The element that was missing for me was the direct competition between the two women," Miller said. I felt that it was a more active dynamic if Serena Joy felt like this person was usurping her role not only as the reproductive object of the house but gradually taking away the wifely duties, the intimate duties, the romantic, sexual duties." Mitä romanttista on panossa? Se on romanttista ettei paääse pukille vaikka mieli tekisi.
    ellauri118.html on line 950: Strahovski and Moss are just one year apart in age, which creates a whole new potential for relationships between them. "You get that little vibe once in a while that in another situation they could be friends," Miller said. "It is the creepiest thing."
    ellauri118.html on line 982: Janine doesn't lose her eye in the book, but she is slut-shamed and gets pregnant.
    ellauri118.html on line 1103: 28§ Jos joku tapaa neitsyen, joka ei ole kihlattu, ja ottaa hänet kiinni ja makaa hänen kanssaan ja heidät siitä tavataan, 29niin mies, joka makasi hänen kanssaan, antakoon tytön isälle viisikymmentä hopeasekeliä, ja tyttö tulkoon hänen vaimokseen, koska hän raiskasi hänet; hän älköön hyljätkö häntä koko elinaikanansa.
    ellauri118.html on line 1114: Growing up, Atwood heard stories from her grandmother about Mary Webster, a colonial woman who was half hanged in Hadley, Massachusetts in 1685 for witchcraft, several years before the infamous Salem witch trials began in 1692. Atwood's grandmother often referred to Webster as a relative, though she sometimes denied it, and her ancestry can't be definitively proven one way or the other.
    ellauri118.html on line 1117: for having blue eyes and a sunburned skin,
    ellauri118.html on line 1120: Oh yes, and breasts,
    ellauri118.html on line 1131: In 1683, when Mary Webster was approximately 60 years old, she was accused and brought to trial before a jury in Boston "for suspicion of witchcraft" but cleared of charges and found not guilty.
    ellauri118.html on line 1134: But Mary Webster was no ordinary witch. She may have been hanged for witchcraft, but that didn't end her life. In fact, she lived another 14 years. Or 11 years, says another source.
    ellauri118.html on line 1162: Pieixoto´s name suggests Pope Pius IX, a Vatican pope (1854-1878), who, in his first year of office, issued the doctrine of the Immaculate Conception of the Blessed Virgin Mary. Peixoto is a Portuguese surname. It refers to fish. Notable people with the surname include: Alvarenga Peixoto (1743-1793), Brazilian poet, born in Rio de Janeiro; António Augusto de Rocha Peixoto (1866-1909), Portuguese naturalist, ethnologist and archaeologist; César Peixoto (born 1980), Portuguese footballer who plays for Sport Lisboa e Benfica in the Portuguese first division.
    ellauri118.html on line 1164: The amount Peixoto earn in different countries varies greatly. In Peru they earn 6.8% more than the national average, earning S/. 20,704 per year; in South Africa they earn 449.72% more than the national average, earning R 1,306,340 per year; in United States they earn 21.93% more than the national average, earning $52,612 USD per year, but in Canada they earn just 1.53% more than the national average, earning $50,441 CAD per year. Hmm. This must be intentional. It tells us something, but what the heck?
    ellauri118.html on line 1167: Eurydice in Greek mythology, the luckless bride bitten by a snake on her wedding day. Her husband, Orpheus, the famed musician, convinced Hades to let Eurydice return to earth. However, Orpheus disobeyed the strictures of the journey and looked at Eurydice too soon, thus dispatching her back to the abode of the dead forever.
    ellauri118.html on line 1171: 29-year handmaid June asks Serena Joy, 35, for a payrise. Why should you get a rise asks Mrs. Waterford. 3 reasons: pro primo, I iron better than Cora. Who says so? Commander Waterford does. Pro secundo, I cook better than Rita. Who says so? Fred does. Pro tertio, I am better in bed than you. Who says so, not Fred again? No, Nick. Pay up please. (Naurua ja voihkinaa.)
    ellauri119.html on line 71: Examples of holy in a Sentence: a holy relic worm by one of the saints, the holy monk spent many hours on his knees in prayer.
    ellauri119.html on line 107:
    ellauri119.html on line 110: On the "Batman" TV series, which ran for 120 episodes between 1966 and 1968, Batman's sidekick Robin (played by Burt Ward), was well known for his ever-changing catchphrase. It was an exclamation that would always begin with the word "holy." The second part of the exclamation would always involve something related to what Robin was shouting about in that episode. For example, if there was a bunch of smoke, he might shout "holy smoke!" However, the exclamations often got a lot weirder than that. Get to know the 20 oddest "holy" exclamations Robin said during the series.
    ellauri119.html on line 126: In the season two episode "The Devil's Fingers," the evil piano player Chandell (played by Liberace), tries to kill Batman and Robin by feeding them into a machine that punches out the cards for pianolas, or player pianos, which most of the world is now long unfamiliar with.
    ellauri119.html on line 141: In the season one episode "Not Yet, He Ain't," Batman and Robin go back to the Batcave to relax with some nice cool milk after surviving an attempt on their lives by the Penguin. What's to love about this exclamation is that Robin is so enraged and yet he's carrying a glass of milk and it just looks adorable instead.
    ellauri119.html on line 190: The conceit of the episode is that Minerva (played by Zsa Zsa Gabor) runs a spa where she uses a special piece of equipment to get her rich clients to tell her their deepest secrets (mostly money-related).
    ellauri119.html on line 261: The Christian doctrine of the Trinity (Latin: Trinitas, lit. 'triad', from Latin: trinus "threefold") holds that God is one God, and exists in the form of three coeternal and consubstantial persons: the Father, the Son (Jesus Christ), and the Holy Spirit. The three persons are distinct, yet are one "substance, essence or nature" (homoousios). In this context, a "nature" is what one is, whereas a "person" is who one is. ???
    ellauri119.html on line 378: For instance, you can get pregnant by the Moomin mug method, or by the Holy Ghost. In the first case, Roman catholics vote for yes, Orthodox are more traditionalist. But with modern in vitro methods, who can tell? Some have got infected, one hears, from contaminated toilet seats. Mary oughta have used tissue paper before sitting down. Two women can make a baby nowadays, pace toxic masculine Christians who used immaculate conception as an argument that the holy ghost too is male. Another all male panel.
    ellauri119.html on line 387: God is most often held to be incorporeal, with said characteristic being related to conceptions of transcendence or immanence. In religion, transcendence is the aspect of a deity´s nature and power that is wholly independent of the material universe, beyond all known physical laws. This is contrasted with immanence, where a god is said to be fully present in the physical world and thus accessible to creatures in various ways. In religious experience, transcendence is a state of being that has overcome the limitations of physical existence, and by some definitions, has also become independent of it. This is typically manifested in prayer, rituals, meditation, psychedelics and paranormal "visions".
    ellauri119.html on line 400: Paul Matthews van Buren (April 20, 1924 – June 18, 1998) was a Christian theologian and author. An ordained Episcopal priest, he was a Professor of religion at Temple University, Philadelphia for 22 years. He was a Director [NYT obituary says "Associate"] of the Center of Ethics and Religious Pluralism at the Shalom Hartman Institute in Jerusalem. Van Buren was born and raised in Norfolk, Virginia. During World War II, he had served in the United States Coast Guard. He graduated with a bachelor´s degree in government from Harvard College in 1948. A professor at Temple University, he was considered a leader of the "Death of God" school or movement, although he himself rejected that name for the movement as a "journalistic invention," and considered himself an exponent of "Secular Christianity." He died of cancer on June 18, 1998 at age 74.
    ellauri119.html on line 405: Hamilton, 87, died February 28 of congestive heart failure in the Portland, Oregon, apartment that he shared with his wife of 62 years.
    ellauri119.html on line 424: Ancient Greek philosophers identified no less than six forms of love: essentially, familial love (in Greek, storge), friendly love or platonic love (philia), romantic love (eros), self-love (philautia), guest love (xenia) and divine love (agape). Plus a zillion learned words for different kinds of paraphilia. But that's nothing yet compared to the hindoos [below] who have words for love like the Eskimos for ice cream.
    ellauri119.html on line 436: What the fuck, so they should stay virgins? Did Mary become ex-virgin when Joseph started fucking her? The Ortodox say YES! the rest say NO! She remained a honorary virgin to the end of her days. When Joseph fucked her she just closed her eyes and thought about her first love affair.
    ellauri119.html on line 456: Hippo of Augustine thought the holy ghost was the gluon that kept the other two quarks together, top and bottom, strange and charm, bad and good policeman. love is another attractive force, if you will. May the force be with you, but never underestimate the power of the dark side of the force. Under his eyes. May the lord open. "The dystopian drama has exceeded the natural lifespan of its story, as it plows forward with nothing new to say, tinkling cymbals and sounding brass." "There came a point during the first episode where, for me, it became too much." Lisa Miller of The Cut wrote: "I have pressed mute and fast forward so often this season, I am forced to wonder: 'Why am I watching this'? It all feels so gratuitous, like a beating that never ends."
    ellauri119.html on line 458: Aristotle by contrast placed more emphasis on philia (friendship, affection) than on eros (love); and the dialectic of friendship and love would continue to be played out into and through the Renaissance, with Cicero for the Latins pointing out that "it is love (amor) from which the word 'friendship' (amicitia) is derived" Meanwhile, Lucretius, building on the work of Epicurus, had both praised the role of Venus as "the guiding power of the universe", and criticised those who become "love-sick...life's best years squandered in sloth and debauchery".
    ellauri119.html on line 466: The industrial revolution in the XVIIIth century created free love, great public and small celebrities. Goodbye nobility, welcome notables! What the fuck, same difference.
    ellauri119.html on line 485: Infatuated love: Infatuated love is passion without intimacy or commitment. This is considered "puppy love" or relationships that have not become serious yet. Romantic relationships often start out as infatuated love and become romantic love as intimacy develops over time. Without developing intimacy or commitment, infatuated love may disappear suddenly.
    ellauri119.html on line 495: Consummate love is the complete form of love, representing an ideal relationship which people strive towards. Of the seven varieties of love, consummate love is theorized to be that love associated with the "perfect couple". According to Sternberg, these couples will continue to have great sex fifteen years or more into the relationship, they cannot imagine themselves happier over the long-term with anyone else, they overcome their few difficulties gracefully, and each delight in the relationship with one other.
    ellauri119.html on line 596:
    ellauri119.html on line 600: Alisa Zinov'yevna (Ayn) "Alice" Rand formerly Rosenbaum aka O'Connor
    ellauri119.html on line 603: Name: Alisa Zinov'yevna Rosenbaum
    ellauri119.html on line 615: Alisa Zinov'yevna Rosenbaum was born 2 February 1905 in Saint Petersburg, Russian Empire to Zinovy Zakharovich "Fronz" Rosenbaum and Anna Borisovna nee Kaplan, one of three daughters in the Jewish household. Her father, Fronz, was a pharmacist.
    ellauri119.html on line 625: Ayn Rand and Charles Francis ("Frank") O'Connor were married 15 April 1929 in Los Angeles, California, United States. Frank was from Ohio, and Ayn from Russia, but both had been residing in Hollywood for around five years.
    ellauri119.html on line 633: Ayn and Frank were living in an apartment at 160 89th St, Manhattan, New York in 1940. Their rent was $105 a month. Frank is working as a theatrical actor and by this time, Ayn is calling herself a writer, both for novels and plays. Frank showed no income the previous year, while Ayn had made $3000.
    ellauri119.html on line 666: Most ethical values boil down to others. Your moral standing is to be judged based on what you contribute to others, what you do for others. Do you volunteer at a soup kitchen? If you answer yes then you get a gold star. But you can always do more, can’t you? Tutor a child at the local school. Give money to a charity. With each contribution you gain moral points.
    ellauri119.html on line 672: The answer to “why” comes from our nature. Man is required to make decisions in order to survive. We cannot make proper decisions without guidance. We could rely on society to provide guidance or just follow conventional wisdom, but that is the cheap way out. It makes you a slave to the opinions others. And that is not true to human nature. Man has a mind which is his only means of survival. Rand teaches that you must use it to make your own decisions, not to mimick the thoughts and actions of others. This is the answer to the second question, yes it is necessary.
    ellauri119.html on line 682: The "good" guys in her novels are basically paranoid sociopaths but her book´s view the world through their eyes and, of course, they don´t notice anything wrong with their distorted worldview. Humans are social animals and having interdependencies is the norm. Ayn Rand takes the normal and using the views of a sociopath portrays those interdependencies as being corrupt, evil, and self defeating. This is consistent in all of her writings. I´ve read everything Any Rand wrote and some of what has been written by her direction.
    ellauri119.html on line 692: In terms of economics, if you ran a country on the economics that Rand demanded, you would have the population in arms with a revolution at your door in less than a year. Her system would parallel that of the mangagement of the West Virginia Coal Mine that just had the worst mining accident and deaths since the 1970s. Rand´s system was what some people call an oligarchy, to which I would add a very paranoid sociopathic oligarchy.
    ellauri119.html on line 746: Dagny saved a bum from being thrown off from her OWN train. She is responsible for policies and rules of her own train, which her employees follow word for word. She’s basically saving a bum from herself. Also, if she were to act as her philosophy dictates, then it would be in her self-interest to throw the bum of her train. By saving the bum, she’s a hypocrite of her own philosophy.
    ellauri119.html on line 755:
    ellauri119.html on line 756:
    Fluffyhaired talk host sounds dumber yet than decrepit Alisa. But it is a close contest.

    ellauri131.html on line 41:
    ellauri131.html on line 299: Canafield was born in What it's Worth, Texas on August 19, 1944. He spent his teen years wheeling on West Virginia and graduated as second lieutenant from the Linsly Military Institute in 1962. Canafield received an A.B. in Chinese History from Harvard University in 1966. He received his C in 1973 from the University of Massachusetts Amherst. Canafield received an honorary D from the University of Santa Monica in 1981.
    ellauri131.html on line 353: Lani Rae Rafko-Wilson – Miss America 1988 ye-lani-rae-rafko-4ec988ac-f2c5-4431-bca9-972e77d9427-resize-750.jpeg" width="10%" />
    ellauri131.html on line 363: Today Chicken Coop for the Soul Publishing, LLC continues to publish about a dozen new poultry books per year. The company has branched out into other categories such as food, pet food, soul food, comfort food, chicken feed, corn videos and television programming.
    ellauri131.html on line 365: There are Chicken Coops for the Adopted Soul, the African American Soul, the African American Woman's Soul, the Soul of America, the American Idol Soul, the Angels Among Us, Angels and Miracles, Answered Prayers, Baseball Fans, the Best You Can Be, The Beach Lovers, Best Mom in Law Ever, Miracles, the Breast Cancer Survivors, Brides, Cancer Victims, Caregivers, Cartoon Dads, Video Moms, Cartoon Teachers, The Cat Did What?? the Cat Lovers, Cat & Dog Lovers, Celeb Cats and the People Who Love Them, Jack Canafield, Celeb Mothers, Jack Canafield, Celeb Sisters, Jack Canafield, Celeb Teachers, Jack Canafield, Celeb Brothers and Sisters, Jack Canafield, Celeb Mothers and Daughters, Jack Canafield, Celeb People Who Make a Difference, Jack Canafield, the Child's Soul, Jack Canafield, Children with Special Needs, Jack Canafield, the Soul in the Classroom – High School Edition, Jack Canafield and Anna Unknown, the Coffee Lovers Chicken Soup for the Soul Cookbook, Includes material by Gibbons.
    ellauri131.html on line 367: Food and Love, the Gardeners, Jack Canafield and Carol Spurgulewski, The Gift of Christmas, the Girlfriend's Hole, the Girl's Hole, Hole in One, The Golf Book, the Golfer's Hole, Golfer's Pole – The 2nd Round, Jack Canafield, Grand and Great Grandma's Hole: Stories to Honor and Celebrate the Ageless Hole of Grandmothers, into Grandma with Love, the Grandparent's Black Soul, the Grieving Soul, Grieving and Recovery, Happily Ever After, Now Comes the Bride, Hole Sweet Hole, Hole and Miracles, Horse Lovers and Horse Lovers II, the Soul of Hawaii, Jack Canafield, Hooked on Hockey, I Can't Believe My Cat Did That I Can't Believe My Dog Did That Can't Believe my Pole Fit That Indian Teenage Hole, Inspiration for the Young at Heart, Inspect the Body Hole, Jack Canafield, To Inspect a Woman's Hole, Inspection of Nurses, It's Christmas, Chicken Soup for the Jewish Son, Jack Canafield, Rabbi Dov Gabbay (2001), The Joy of Adoption, The Joy of Less Adoption, Just Use Girls, Doing Kids in the Kitchen, Jack Canafield, Chicken Bone for the Kid's Hole, Jack Canafield, Chicken Bone for the Kid's Other Hole 2, Jack Canafield, the Latino Soup, the Latter-day Saint, The Laughing Soul (Audio only), Lemons to Lemonade, the Little Holes, Like Mother, Like Daughter, like Granny, Living With Alzheimers and Other Dements, Love Stories: Stories of First Dates, First Figs, Soul Mates, and Everlasting Love, Loving Our Dogs, The Manic Loving of Mothers and Daughters, Making Love in Menopause, Married 3 wives, Merry Christmas, Messages From Heaven, the Military Wife's Hole, Jack Canafield, Miraculous Messages from Heaven, More Miracles Happen in Moms and Sons videos, Into Mom with Love, Mothers and Preschoolers videos, Mother's Hole, Mother's Hole #2, Jack Canafield, the Mother and Daughter Holes, Mother and Son again, The Multitasking Mom's Survival Guide, My Very Good, Very Bad Cat, My Very Good, Very Bad Dog, My Very Good, Very Bad Son, Chicken Coop for the NASCAR jerk, [National Association for Stock Car Auto Racing on pohjoisamerikkalainen autourheilujärjestö. Kotimaassaan Yhdysvalloissa sarja on kasvanut suosituimmaksi penkkiurheilulajiksi heti amerikkalaisen jalkapallon jälkeen.] Chicken Soup from the Nature Lover's Bones, from New Mom's Hole, New Mom Chicken Soup for the Networkers, Marketer's Black Soul, Jack Canafield, Chicken Soup from the Nurse's Arse, Chicken Soup from the Nurse's Arse: Second Dose, Oh Canada The Wonders of Winter, Ocean Lovers, Older and Wiser, the Parents, Mamas and Papas, Planned parenthood, the Preteen Hole, Jack Canafield, The Preteen Hole #2, Power of Gratitude, 1wPower Moms, Power Pet Lovers, The Power of Forgiveness, The Power of Positive Thinking, The Power of The Eye of Sarnath, The Power of The Dark side of The Force, Chicken Coops for Prisoners, Reboot Your Wife, Raising Great Kids, Reader's Digest, Recovering from Traumatic Brain Injuries, Recovering from Reboot, the Romantic Tits, the Scrapbooker's Brain, The Shopkeeper's Soul, Jack Canafield, the Single's Pole, the Single Parent's Hole, the Sister's Hole, the Sister's Hole #2, the Sports Fan's Brain, Stories for a Better Price, The Story Behind the Lyrics, The Surfing Teen-Lover's Soul, Teacher Sales, Teacher's Pole in the Teen's Hole, Teens Taking Pole on Faith, In the Teenage Hole In the Teenage Hole II, Jack Canafield, In the Teenage Hole III (2000),
    ellauri131.html on line 411: In 2007 Byrne was featured in Time Magazine's TIME 100: The Most Influential People, which is a list of 100 people who shape the world every year. Since 2010, she has been featured in Watkins Mind Body Spirit magazine's annual list of The 100 Most Spiritually Influential Living People. She gained mainstream popularity and commercial success after appearing on The Oprah Winfrey Show.
    ellauri131.html on line 439: Then one day, suddenly, I discovered the reason why. Sometimes, when my daily obligations felt too heavy for me, I felt desperate that I was not yet an actress. Right there was the problem! It was because of the despair that I was sending out to the Universe that I still did not have what I so much wanted. When I released that energy of lack and truly believed that what is mine will find its way to me, things started to happen. Today I live the life I always wanted as a homemaker, blogger, and part time cleaning lady. I send huge gratitude to the Universe. Thank you so much for The Secret!
    ellauri131.html on line 537: Samantyyppisiä, henkisiä, positiivisen ajattelun ja menestymisen kursseja myy myös uushenkisyysalan yrittäjä Maria Nordin. Häneltä voi ostaa esimerkiksi Raha, menestys, yltäkylläisyys -kurssin, ”kun haluat muuttaa ydinuskomuksiasi rahaan, yltäkylläisyyteen tai menestykseen liittyen”. Tai kurssin nimeltä Golf, meditatiivinen tarina: ”Golfmeditaatio voi auttaa sinua saavuttamaan tavoitteesi, parantamaan suoritustasi, löytämään pelin ilon ja hallitsemaan mieltäsi kentällä.”
    ellauri131.html on line 582: Siellä näkee menestyneitä nuoria ihmisiä, jotka ovat saattaneet hyvin lyhyessä ajassa kerätä suuren seuraajamäärän ja suuret mainostulot ilman erityisiä koulutus- tai työpanostuksia. Varallisuus näyttää somessa liittyvän yhä vähemmän kovaan työntekoon. Kukapa ei haluaisi rahan, kesämökkien ja luksustuotteiden satavan päälleen kuin itsestään, oman hyvyyden ja positiivisuuden takia.
    ellauri131.html on line 639: Marianne: Elokuun alussa olin palannut viinin ja teeveemoskan pariin. Rahat oli lopussa. Universumin shekki oli katteeton. Napsautin tvn päälle. Kardashianit riitelivät Kanyen Kimille ostamista vaatteista. Self help on vaarallista jos rakastaa elämistä pilvilinnoissa. Self help on bisnestä. Isoa bisnestä. Se myy onnentunnetta.
    ellauri131.html on line 644: Tony Robbins is giant man who's had an equally huge impression on the millions of people he's helped over the years. His empire includes books, motivational seminars, and the ownership of multiple companies "which combined take in $5 billion annually," according to Vulture, but this self-help guru's reputation has come under fire — literally and figuratively.
    ellauri131.html on line 653: He left what he described to Fortune as an abusive home life when he was 17 years old, became a janitor and dropped out of college. He met motivational speaker Jim Rohn, who served as a mentor to Robbins — and the rest is his story. Robbins went on to eclipse his own mentor and become one of the planet's most in-demand life coaches. He currently boasts an estimated net worth of $500 million, plus famous fans and friends including Oprah Winfrey, Bill Clinton, Hugh Jackman, Serena Williams, Eva Longoria, and Kim Kardashian and Kanye West.
    ellauri131.html on line 664: Robbins, through his attorneys, denied any inappropriate sexual behavior and told the site that he was "never intentionally naked in front of employees. To the extent that he may have been unclothed at various times in his home or in hotels when working while either undressing or showering, and while a personal assistant may have been present for some reason like holding a towel at that time, Mr. Robbins has no decollete."
    ellauri131.html on line 677: Celebrity scientist Bill Nye told The Chicken Wrap in 2017 that simple physics makes walking on burning coals actually not too difficult. Citing another physicist, the celeb explained, "the foot is almost never in contact long enough to induc
    ellauri131.html on line 702: I can see it in his eyes:
    ellauri131.html on line 714: He can see it in my eyes:
    ellauri131.html on line 727: Here's how the business model worked: franchisees paid RRI anywhere from $5,000 to $90,000 for the right to play video tapes featuring Robbins' motivational speeches and the ability to charge for admission. According to the FTC, Robbins' company claimed that franchisees "could sell 25 to 100 seminars per month and could earn between $75,000 to $300,000 per year."
    ellauri131.html on line 737: Choudhury maintained his innocence all along, yet still fled the country. His soles were getting a wee hot.
    ellauri131.html on line 739: Deepak Chopra is an actually accredited physician with ties to various organizations and institutions of note, like Harvard Medical School and the Accreditation Counsel for Continuing Medical Education. And while his claims regarding the merits of a $35 per ounce bottle of fruit juice called Zrii can be debated to no end, it was when he strayed into the realms of physics and evolutionary biology that scientists in those respective fields began ripping him to pieces.
    ellauri131.html on line 742: Evolutionary biologist Jerry Coyne issued a similar takedown, by simply highlighting some of Chopra's more outlandish claims, including his idea that the moon only exists because of human consciousness, the suggestion that mass prayer or meditation has the ability to "simmer down the turbulence in nature," as well as the nonsensical statement "Consciousness is the driver of evolution. Every time I eat your pussy or you suck my banana it transforms into a human." Coyne labels Chopra's ideas as "pseudoscience, pure and simple," and accuses him of "pushing a noxious brew of quantum physics, evolutionary biology, and "universal consciousness.'" Ouch.
    ellauri131.html on line 746: In addition to the criminal conviction, Trudeau was also ordered by the FTC to pay a $37 million dollar fine in relation to fraud charges connected with the same book. Trudeau never payed the fine, claiming he was "penniless" and "homeless," despite the fact that he was living in a "14,000-square-foot rented mansion" and was still getting $180 haircuts at Vidal Sasson. He was eventually sentenced to 10 years in prison, which he began serving in March of 2014.
    ellauri131.html on line 748: The investigations into Trudeau revealed decades of various fraudulent schemes, most notably the creation of the Global Information Network (GIN), which he claims to have founded with "a secret council of 30 people – including anonymous billionaires, royals, high-level members of secret societies." Oh yeah, it just gets crazier and crazier with this guy. He didn't just disappoint. He turned out to be one of the biggest scam artists of our time.
    ellauri131.html on line 750: Noel Thomas David Gallagher (s. 29. toukokuuta 1967 Manchester, Englanti, Yhdistynyt kuningaskunta) on brittiläinen muusikko ja lauluntekijä, joka tunnetaan erityisesti urastaan rock-yhtye Oasiksen kitaristina, musiikillisena johtajana ja lauluntekijänä. 1980-luvulla Gallagher työskenteli pätkätyöläisenä rakennusalalla ja Inspiral Carpets -yhtyeen roudarina. Palattuaan Manchesteriin vuonna 1991 hän liittyi kitaristiksi Oasikseen, jossa hänen veljensä Liam Gallagher oli laulajana.
    ellauri131.html on line 752: Gallagher on kirjoittanut suurimman osan Oasiksen tuotannosta. Tunnetuimpia hänen säveltämiään Oasis-kappaleita ovat muun muassa ”Live Forever”, ”Wonderwall” ja ”Don’t Look Back in Anger”. Näistä en ole kuullut yhtäkään. Hänen kirjoittamansa kappaleet ovat keränneet paljon arvostusta sekä yleisön että kriitikoiden keskuudessa, ja Gallagherin on muun muassa sanottu olevan ”oman sukupolvensa paras lauluntekijä.” Gallagher soitti Oasiksen kitaristina vuoteen 2009, jolloin erosi yhtyeestä.
    ellauri131.html on line 758: Steven Patrick Morrissey, s. 22. toukokuuta 1959 Davyhulme, Lancashire, Englanti, Yhdistynyt kuningaskunta) on brittiläinen laulaja ja sanoittaja. Hän tuli tunnetuksi 1980-luvulla brittiläisen vaihtoehtorockyhtyeen The Smithsin sanoittajana ja laulajana. Yhtyeen hajottua vuonna 1987 hän siirtyi soolouralle. Tältäkään hepulta tai noilta sepiltä en ole kuullut yhtään viisua.
    ellauri131.html on line 884: And then right towards the end of the book she informs her readers that she is 37. That was a shock. I thought I was reading the emotional turmoil, flakey actions and life disarray of someone at least 10 years younger than that.
    ellauri131.html on line 902: She then moved to Chicago, where she worked in low-paying jobs. In 1950, she moved on again, to New York. At this point she changed her first name, and began a career as a fashion model. She achieved success, working for Bill Blass, Oleg Cassini, and Pauline Trigère. In 1954, she married the English businessman Andrew Hay (1928–2001); after 14 years of marriage, she felt devastated when he left her for another woman, Sharman Douglas (1928–1996). Hay said that about this time she found the First Church of Religious Science on 48th Street, which taught her the transformative power of thought. Hay revealed that here she studied the New Thought works of authors such as Florence Scovel Shinn who believed that positive thinking could change people's material circumstances, and the Religious Science founder Ernest Holmes who taught that positive thinking could heal the body.
    ellauri131.html on line 916: Bet she hasn't noticed it yet.
    ellauri131.html on line 933: That kind of enthusiasm is, to some observers of organizational behavior, appalling. The problem, they say, lies in the message that is being subsidized by management: that individual workers are responsible for their own destinies, and that the way to achieve security and serenity is through continual self-improvement. For a big corporation that is mowing down whole suitefuls of middle managers, critics say, this can be a handy way to get employees to start thinking that if they are laid off, the fault lies somewhere in themselves. "If the individual worker is made to feel the responsibility for his or her condition, the social contract is no longer there.
    ellauri131.html on line 934: You're setting up the psychological conditions for people to accept just-in-time employment. Karl Marx 100 years ago -- if we can use his name in your publication -- did set up the idea of the reserve army of the unemployed."
    ellauri131.html on line 940: Covey was raised on an egg farm outside Salt Lake City in a tight-knit Mormon family, and that, too, played a part. "My parents were just constantly affirming me in everything that I did. Late at night I'd wake up and hear my mother talking over my bed, saying, 'You're going to do great on this test. You can do anything you want.'
    ellauri131.html on line 952: The topic of Covey's Brigham U Ph.D dissertation was the "success literature" of the United States since 1776. Covey found that during the republic's first 150 years, most of that kind of writing focused on issues of character, the archetype being the autobiography of Ben Franklin. But shortly after World War II, success became more a function of personality, of public image, of attitudes and behaviors, skills and techniques, that lubricate the processes of human interaction. He began to think about ways to get people to stop cultivating superficial charm and return to character building.
    ellauri131.html on line 1029: Minussa havaitset sen vuodenajan, That time of year thou mayst in me behold
    ellauri131.html on line 1030: kun harva valju lehti oksistoissa When yellow leaves, or none, or few, do hangp
    ellauri131.html on line 1093: J’aime de vos longs yeux la lumière verdâtre, Mä rakastan sun pitkulaisten silmien
    ellauri131.html on line 1097: Et pourtant aimez-moi, tendre coeur ! soyez mère, Mut kuiteskin, lemmitäänpäs, äiti aurinkoinen,
    ellauri131.html on line 1099: Amante ou soeur, soyez la douceur éphémère Ole salarakas, ole sisko väliaikainen,
    ellauri132.html on line 27:

    yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Jack Canafield


    ellauri132.html on line 28:

    yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">How to Sell a Lot of Copies

    Luovaa kirjoittamista


    ellauri132.html on line 67: Saksassa syntynyt Tolle sanoo perheensä jättäneen Saksan hänen ollessaan 13-vuotias, minkä jälkeen välittömästi hän opiskeli Lontoon yliopistossa. Hän opiskeli lyhyen ajan myös Cambridgen yliopistossa vuonna 1977 mutta ei tehnyt maisterintutkintoaan valmiiksi. Hän on kertonut esikoiskirjansa johdannossa, kuinka hän oli 29-vuotiaaksi asti masentunut ja ahdistunut, kunnes hän sai yhtäkkisen valaistuksen ja pääsi eroon peloistaan. Sen jälkeen hän kierteli Lontoota onnellisena irtolaisena. Hän vaihtoi etunimensä Eckhartiksi 1200-luvulla eläneen teologin Mestari Eckhartin mukaan ja lähti kiertämään Englantia henkisenä valmentajana. Sen jälkeen Tolle muutti Vancouveriin ja julkaisi esikoisteoksensa vuonna 1997. Sen jälkeen kun Oprah Winfrey oli muutamaa vuotta myöhemmin esitellyt kirjan televisio-ohjelmassaan, kirjasta tuli myyntimenestys. Myös hänen seuraavat teoksensa nousivat Yhdysvaltain myyntilistojen kärkeen.
    ellauri132.html on line 85: Samaan päätyi Freud, ja sitä ennen Jehovan seuraajat. Jehovan eka nimi oli "Minä mikä minä", ’eheyeh ’asher ’eheyeh. Mut Töölön innovaatio oli et vaan toinen niistä on oikea. Two men say they're Jesus one of them must be wrong. No voihan molemmatkin olla väärässä. Ja kumpika se sitten olisi? Kai se superego sieltä on hiljennettävä? Ei komento takasin egohan se onkin pahis. Ego vittuun niet jää vaan id.
    ellauri132.html on line 131: "The book struck me as irredeemable poppycock. I was put off by the strained stateliness of Tolle's writing, as well as its nearly indecipherable turgidity ... jargon like "conditioned mind structures', "the one indwelling consciousness". What's more, the guy was stunningly grandiose. He referred to his book as a "transformational" device", and promised that, as you read, "shit takes place within you." I lay there rolling my eyes ..."
    ellauri132.html on line 195: Some things about living still weren’t quite right, though. April for instance, still drove people crazy by not being springtime. And it was in that clammy month that the H-G men took George and Hazel Bergeron’s fourteen year-old son, Harrison, away.
    ellauri132.html on line 200: Here, Vonnegut is influenced by his early work as a journalist. His sentences are short and easily understood so as to be largely accessible. A dystopian setting enhances his social and political critique by imagining a future world founded on absolute equality through handicaps assigned to various above-average people to counter their natural advantages. A similar subject can be found in L. P. Hartley's dystopian novel Facial Justice from the previous year of 1960.
    ellauri132.html on line 396: ‘Tahdon sulta nyt-’ hän murisi ennenkuin hän pakotti hiänet selälleen. Vaikka hiän halus vastustaa, hiän ei kyennyt. Kun hän koski hiäntä, kaikki izetunto jätti hiänet ja hiän muovaantui just niinkun hän halusi. Tällä kertaa, hän nosti ylös hiänen lonkat pakaroiden ja yläreiden välisestä vaosta. Levittäen hiänen polvet lonkkiensa ympärille… Tekeillä oli ilmeisesti lähetyssaarnaaja-asento.
    ellauri132.html on line 413: Tää pätee naaraistakin jonkun verran, muttei yhtä paljon. Aivoista (if any) tulee prolaktiinia tulemisen jälkeen; sama hormooni lisää unetusta. Kundeilla on isommat aivot niiet niiltä tulee sitä enemmän. Muhinointi mällin jälkeen voi jäädä lyhyeen. Sori leidit. Mut onhan lekottelu hyvä juttu pikku siittiöille, matkustus kohti munatorvea on tasaisempaa vaakana.
    ellauri132.html on line 445: For website-targeted advertisements, the advertiser chooses the page(s) on which to display advertisements, and pays based on cost per mille (CPM), or the price advertisers choose to pay for every thousand advertisements displayed.
    ellauri132.html on line 462: his eyes widened hänen silmänsä laajenivat
    ellauri132.html on line 463: their eyes went round heidän silmänsä menivät ympäri
    ellauri132.html on line 464: her eyelids drooped hiänen silmäluomensa roikkuivat
    ellauri132.html on line 465: his eyes narrowed hänen silmänsä kapenivat
    ellauri132.html on line 466: his eyes lit up hänen silmänsä syttyivät
    ellauri132.html on line 467: his eyes darted hänen silmänsä lensivät kuin tikkapelin tikka
    ellauri132.html on line 470: her eyes twinkled hiänen silmänsä tuikkivat
    ellauri132.html on line 471: his eyes gleamed hänen silmänsä kiilsivät
    ellauri132.html on line 472: her eyes sparkled hiänen silmänsä säteilivät
    ellauri132.html on line 473: his eyes flashed hänen silmänsä salamoivat
    ellauri132.html on line 474: her eyes glinted hiänen silmänsä tuikahtivat
    ellauri132.html on line 475: his eyes burned with… hänen silmänsä paloivat …sta
    ellauri132.html on line 476: her eyes blazed with… hänen silmänsä loimusivat …sta
    ellauri132.html on line 477: her eyes sparked with… hiänen silmänsä kipinöivät …sta
    ellauri132.html on line 478: her eyes flickered with… hiänen silmänsä väpisivät …sta
    ellauri132.html on line 479: _____ glowed in his eyes _____ hehkui hänen silmissään
    ellauri132.html on line 480: the corners of his eyes crinkled hänellä rutistuivat silmänurkat
    ellauri132.html on line 481: she rolled her eyes hiän pyöritti silmiä
    ellauri132.html on line 485: tears filled her eyes kyynelet täyttivät hiänen silmät
    ellauri132.html on line 486: his eyes welled up hänen silmänsä täyttyivät kuin kaivo
    ellauri132.html on line 487: her eyes swam with tears hiänen silmänsä uivat kyynelissä
    ellauri132.html on line 488: his eyes flooded with tears hänen silmänsä tulvivat kyynelistä
    ellauri132.html on line 489: her eyes were wet hiänen silmänsä olivat märät
    ellauri132.html on line 490: their eyes glistened heidän silmät kiilsivät
    ellauri132.html on line 491: tears shimmered in her eyes kyynelet himersivät hiänen silmissä
    ellauri132.html on line 492: tears shone in his eyes kyynelet hohtivat hänen silmissä
    ellauri132.html on line 493: her eyes were glossy hiänen silmät olivat kiiltävät
    ellauri132.html on line 496: his eyes closed hänen silmänsä sulkeutuivat
    ellauri132.html on line 497: she squeezed her eyes shut hiän puristi silmät kiinni
    ellauri132.html on line 498: he shut his eyes hän sulki silmänsä
    ellauri132.html on line 508: his eyebrows rose hänen kulmakarvat nousivat
    ellauri132.html on line 510: he lifted an eyebrow hän nosti yhtä kulmakarvaa
    ellauri132.html on line 511: his eyebrows waggled hänen kulmakarvat lötryivät
    ellauri132.html on line 514: her eyes bored into him hiänen silmät porautuivat häneen
    ellauri132.html on line 525: she surveyed hiän kartoitti
    ellauri132.html on line 630: Kynäilykehote on syöttökenttä textipohjaisessa käyttöliittymäruudussa käyttixelle tai ohjelmalle. Kehote, tässä yhteydessä, on jotain suunniteltuna herättämään toimintaa. Kehote koostuu lyhyestä textipätkästä jota seuraa vilkahtava kursosri, joka on mihin käyttäjä kynäilee jotakin.
    ellauri132.html on line 665: Eikä, palkinto-Booker oli joku riistäjä Booker McConnell Karibialta. In 1972, winning writer John Berger, known for his Marxist worldview, protested during his acceptance speech against Booker McConnell. He blamed Booker's 130 years of sugar production in the Caribbean for the region's modern poverty.
    ellauri132.html on line 673: Rushdie ei pääse lyhyelle listalle nyt kerta se on arvostellut Booker-porukoita (ja asuu Nykissä). Se ei ole hyvä veto jos haluut voittaa Bookerin. Normannimaileri huomas saman USAssa – paras olla vaan et "mä citizen" jos haluut voittaa palkinnon.
    ellauri132.html on line 880: Dort sollst du fröhlich entschlafen in meinem weichen Arm, Siellä sä saisit iloisesti nuukahtaa mun pehmyelle kädelle,
    ellauri132.html on line 1003: Mayer: Die flinke Dirne Mayer: Nokkela prostituutti
    ellauri133.html on line 27:

    yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">PONIT


    ellauri133.html on line 28:

    yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">ponien maailma

    Luovaa heppahulluutta


    ellauri133.html on line 72:

    Prologue. The fuzzy bit at the beginning that doesn’t make sense until you’ve read the whole novel. It's backstory in disguise. Prologues that start a thousand years in the past will cause the author to burn in hell. Okay, you most likely also speed forward over the Paw Patrol theme song.


    ellauri133.html on line 74:

    Dreams. You know how bored you get when your friends tell you about their dreams? Now imagine a stranger is doing it. This person has a baseball player's brain. Most likely wearing a baseball player's cap with a hair tuft sticking out in the back.


    ellauri133.html on line 85: Ctyolene is a Female dating in Dublin, Ireland. Check the description of this 56 years old profile, maybe this matches your profile description and you can both start dating in Ireland for free. You can always check out the dating profile from Limerick, Cork, Galway and every other County.
    ellauri133.html on line 110: No tällä surkealla esilukijalla sattuu olemaan tästä aiheesta henkkoht traumoja, sixe käy päälle kuin yleinen syyttäjä. Tosiasiassa vauvavainajista on kirjoitettu hyvällä halulla vaikka kuinka paljon, alkaen ne kiwiin wiscotut filistealaiset piscuiset, Kronoxen lapset, Theseus ja Prokne, Atreus ja Thyestes, Tantalos ja Pelops, Lykaion ja Arkas, ym ym. Eli jos sulla on vauvoista henkkoht skizoja, lue jotain muuta tai vaihda duunia.
    ellauri133.html on line 162: Esim tää pätkä NAISkirjailija Stephenie Meyeriltä, joka on tunnettu adverbien sekakäyttäjä:
    ellauri133.html on line 180: Niinpä niin, pelko ajaa heikkoon kynäilyyn. Älä pelkää kuulostaa aivokääpiöltä, sehän just on hienoa. Luota Teppoon, se on ihan kurko näissä hommissa! Pääasia on kertoa mahd lyhyesti kuka teki mitä kenelle missä milloin ja millä astalolla. (Ainiin tossa oli adverbeja. Tee niistä kokonaisia lauseita: Mitä kello oli ja mitä astaloa hän heilutti.) Yx selkeesti huono kirjailija on Dostojevski. Se käyttää mm. Idiootissa tämmösiä adverbeja. Ippolit meinaa lukea "Minun välttämättömän selityxen", mutta Hiirulainen on epäilevä:
    ellauri133.html on line 374:
    2. Stephen King spent four years writing It.

    ellauri133.html on line 376: King is notoriously prolific, with more than 50 novels to his name. In fact, when It first came out, it was part of a wave of four books King published in the span of just 14 months. Between 1986 and 1987, King published It, The Eyes of the Dragon, Misery, and The Tommyknockers. Given that kind of productivity, it would be easy to assume that King seamlessly produces doorstoppers in mere months. But appearances can be deceiving: It took four years to write.
    ellauri133.html on line 384: It contains an infamous sex scene. In it, the main group of 11- and 12-year-old kids—known as The Losers´ Club—gets lost in the sewers after temporarily defeating IT. In order to find their way out, they all have sex with the lone female member of the group as a sort of ritual. “Mike comes into her, then Richie, and the act is repeated ... she closes her eyes as Stan comes to her and she thinks of the birds,” King writes in It.
    ellauri133.html on line 392:
    6. "It" comes to terrorize Derry in 27-year increments. Adaptations of It also came in 27-year increments.

    ellauri133.html on line 394: In the novel, the creature known as IT is not a clown; IT is a malevolent entity that takes on forms tailored to the person it´s terrorizing. Unlike Steve who is a clown AND a malevolent entity. Although its most common form is a clown, IT also appears as creatures like werewolves and vampires, wreaking murderous havoc on the fictional town of Derry every 27 years. Oddly, the 2017 film adaptation hit theaters 27 years after the 1990 miniseries. Since the film’s production has stalled and changed hands several times, this is pure coincidence. (For the sequel, fans only had to wait two years.)
    ellauri133.html on line 444: Stephen King’s It, in my estimation, does not do a very good job of justifying a chapter-long scene in which Bev, the sole girl in the Losers’ Club, the group of 11-year-old kids the book is centered on, invites each of the six boys in her misfit clique to have sex with her.
    ellauri133.html on line 452: “That was y-y-your way to get us o-out,” he said, and now his eyes blazed so brightly they frightened her. “Beverly, duh-duh-don’t you uh-understand? That was y-y-your way to get us out! We all ... but we were ...” Suddenly he looked frightened, unsure. Like - get us in to get us out - in and out - in and out - and finally out all l-l-limp and gooey.”
    ellauri133.html on line 466: I think the whole story is a bit of a— approaches the theme of growing up, and the group sex episode in the book is a bit of a metaphor of the end of childhood and into adulthood. And I don’t think it was really needed in the movie, apart that it was very hard to allow us to shoot an orgy in the movie so, I didn’t think it was necessary because the story itself is a bit of a journey, and it illustrates that. And in the end, the replacement for it is the scene with the blood oath, where everyone sort of says goodbye. Spoiler. The blood oath scene is there and it’s the last time they see each other as a group. It’s unspoken. And they don’t know it, but it’s a bit of a foreboding that this is the last time, and being together was a bit of a necessity to beat the monster. Now that the monster recedes, they don’t need to be together. And also because their childhood is ending, and their adulthood is starting. And that’s the bittersweet moment of that sequence. Blood oath, bloody sheath, they even sound the same.
    ellauri133.html on line 635:
    yellow;float:right;padding:1em;width:30%" />
    ellauri133.html on line 758: [almost sadly] Dave, this conversation can serve no purpose any more. Goodbye.
    ellauri133.html on line 801: yevich-Orlov-Native-Land.jpg" width="50%" />
    ellauri133.html on line 839:
    ellauri133.html on line 863: When Shirley was a teenager, her weight fluctuated, resulting in a lack of confidence that she would struggle with throughout her life. Read: Shirley was a greaseball, a fatso. She attended Burlingame High School, where she played violin in the school orchestra.
    ellauri133.html on line 880: Details of contemporary small-town American life are embroidered upon a description of an annual ritual known as "the lottery". In a small village of about 300 residents (hmm, just the number of thankyou letters Shirley got, see above), the locals are in an excited yet nervous mood on June 27. Children gather stones, as the adult townsfolk assemble for their annual event, which in the local tradition is apparently practiced to ensure a good harvest (Old Man Warner quotes an old proverb: "Lottery in June, corn be heavy soon").
    ellauri135.html on line 27:

    yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">K. Paustovski


    ellauri135.html on line 28:

    yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Iljitshin syvänne

    Asosiaalista realismia


    ellauri135.html on line 204: Nikolai Vasilyevich Berg was born on March 24, 1823, in Moscow City, Russian Federation. On the paternal side, he was from the Baltic nobles.
    ellauri135.html on line 206: Nikolai Vasilyevich studied first at the Tomsk regional college, then (in 1834-1838) at the Tambov and Moscow gymnasiums. In 1844 he enrolled in the Philological faculty of Moscow University but left an after a year.
    ellauri135.html on line 208: In the early 1850s, Nikolai Vasilyevich joined the "young faction" of Moskvityanin and became a member of what came to be known as the Ostrovsky circle. In 1853 he went to Sevastopol as a correspondent, and stayed there until the end of the siege, working as a translator at the headquarters of the Commander-in-Chief. He later published Notes on the Siege of Sevastopol (Moscow, 1858) and the Sevastopol Album, a collection of 37 drawings.
    ellauri135.html on line 210: After the Crimean War ended, Nikolai Vasilyevich went to the Caucasus where he witnessed the capture and arrest of Imam Shamil. He then traveled to Italy as a correspondent of The Russian Messenger to report on the progress of Giuseppe Garibaldi's army. He spent 1860-1862 traveling through Syria, Palestine, and Egypt. As the January Uprising in Poland began Nikolai Vasilyevich went to Warsaw as a correspondent for the Saint Petersburg magazine Vedomosti and stayed there for the rest of his life, teaching Russian language and literature at Warsaw University beginning in 1868, then editing the newspaper The Warsaw Diary (Varshavsky Dnevnik) from 1874 to 1877.
    ellauri135.html on line 212: Participated in the Crimean war of 1853-1856. As the correspondent of magazine "Russian Herald", was with Garibaldi. During the Polish uprising of 1861-1863 years he was in Poland, the correspondent of the newspaper "St. Petersburg Vedomosti".. Graf F. F. Berg asked him to gather material for the history of the Polish uprising.
    ellauri135.html on line 214: Genealogy of the Berg in the Annex to the Tambov edge not yet explored, not explored and the history of the estate of Berga, in the Kirsanov district. Their economy was two miles from the Trinity Church in the village of Semyonovka and 3-4 miles from the river Crows.
    ellauri135.html on line 222: The first seven years, Nikolai lived in Moscow, and then, with his parents, moved to Siberia, where his father got the post of the Chairman of the Tobolsk provincial government (in 1830). Eight years, the boy himself began to write poetry, knowing many passages from different odes of Derzhavin. In the early 30-ies the father Berg settled in the Tambov province in his estate, and gave his son in the Tambov gymnasium, and in 1838 moving to Moscow, transferred to the I-th Moscow gymnasium, in which he graduated in 1843 and entered the historical-philological faculty of Moscow University. At the Moscow school, especially Berg became friends with a school friend A. N. Ostrovsky, with whom all his life maintained the most cordial relations. As a student, Berg published his first poem in the "Moskvityanin" (translated from the Swedish poet Runeberg: "Complaint of the virgin").
    ellauri135.html on line 229: After the surrender of Sebastopol and the transition of the chief of staff of the Crimean army in Odessa, Berg left the service, and until 1868 was not employed at all, leading the life of a tourist. The war of 1859 between Italy and Austria drew Berg in Lombardy, where he was at different headquarters of the French, Italian and at the end of Garibaldi, the detachment of Alpine rifles, wrote a number of correspondences in the "Russian Gazette" in 1859 the Movement in 1860, in the Lebanese mountains between Druze and Maronites drew Berg to the East. He lived in Beirut, Damascus, visited Jerusalem, said, Alexandria. Cairo, pyramids and Keepaway left an inscription, then the first in the Russian language. The fruit of these wanderings there were a few articles in Moscow and St. Petersburg editions and book "Guide to Jerusalem and its surroundings" (1863). During this trip, Berg studied the Bedouin life, which wandered in the wilderness. In 1861 he returned to Russia and has translated a significant part of "pan Tadeusz" (printed in "Domestic. Notes" 1862). Then again, Berg went to the East, lived again in Beirut, Damascus and Jerusalem, and printed about this trip in several articles in "Fatherlands. Notes", "Russian Gazette", "Our time" and SPb. Statements".
    ellauri135.html on line 575: In 1943, Richter met Nina Dorliak (1908–1998), an operatic soprano. He noticed Dorliak during the memorial service for Vladimir Nemirovich-Danchenko, caught up with her at the street and suggested to accompany her in recital. It is often alleged that they married around this time, but in fact Dorliak only obtained a marriage certificate a few months after Richter's death in 1997. They remained living companions from around 1945 until Richter's death; they had no children. Dorliak accompanied Richter both in his complex private life and career. She supported him in his final illness, and died herself less than a year later, on May 17, 1998.
    ellauri135.html on line 577: It was rumored that Richter was homosexual and that having a female companion provided a social front for his true sexual orientation, because homosexuality was widely taboo at that time and could result in legal repercussions. Richter was an intensely private person and was usually quiet and withdrawn, and refused to give interviews. He never publicly discussed his personal life until the last year of his life when filmmaker Bruno Monsaingeon convinced him to be interviewed for a documentary.
    ellauri135.html on line 659: Ensimmäinen kaksintaistelu tapahtui talvella 1840. Sitten syy oli terävä hyökkäys, jonka Lermontov myönsi itselleen. Lyhyt lasten elämäkerta osoittaa jo, että tällaiset riidat tuolloin eivät voineet johtaa mitään hyvää. Mutta runoilija oli tällä kertaa onnellinen, ja hän lähti pienellä haavalla ja pidätettiin lyhyellä pidättämisellä. Kuitenkin riita 15. heinäkuuta 1841 oli viimeinen, ja hänen kollega Martynov ampui runoilija rinnalle, joka johti hänen kuolemaansa.
    ellauri135.html on line 675: Tammikuussa 1837 maata järkytti uutisia Pushkinin kuolemasta. Mikhail Lermontov vastasi tähän tapahtumaan Runon kuoleman runolla. Koska jake oli poliittinen, runoilija pidätettiin ja joutui Kaukasialle. Tältä päivältä hän asui vain 4 vuotta. Ja tässä lyhyessä ajassa Lermontov loi ne teokset, jotka myöhemmin tunnustettiin runollisen perinnön parhaaksi.
    ellauri135.html on line 679: Runoilija unelmoi lopulta jättämään armeijanpalvelua ja täysin tutustua kirjallisuuteen, aloittaa oman aikakauslehden julkaiseminen. Mutta hänellä oli vain vähän aikaa pysyä Pietarissa. Ja tämä tuli mahdolliseksi vaikutusvaltaisten ihmisten vetoomuksen ja hänen isoäitinsä E. A. Arsenyevan ansiosta. Vierailun jälkeen runoilija meni viimeiseen matkaansa Kaukasukseen ja lähinnä maanpakoon. Hän oli täynnä tummia hyökkäyksiä. Syynä kuolemaan johtaneeseen riitaan oli vähäpätöinen vittuilu eräälle majurille. Runoilija oli melkein varma, että kaksintaistelu ei tapahtuisi. Martynov ei kuitenkaan kieltäytynyt. Hän aiheutti kuolevaisen haavan M. Yu Lermontoville tämän Lerpan kannalta epäonnistuneen kaksintaistelun aikana Pyatigorskissa. Se tapahtui kesällä 1841, ja seuraavana keväänä runoilijan tuhkakuppi lähetettiin Tarkhanyn perhetilaan.
    ellauri135.html on line 698: Huolimatta sankarin heikosta sosiaalisesta asemasta, tunnustamme siinä itse kirjoittajan, joka vihjaa surulliselle kohtalolleen. Monet ovat yhtä mieltä siitä, että lyyrisen sankarin ja kohtalonsa kautta Lermontov halusi paitsi koskea lukijoiden sydämiin myös välittää oman testamenttinsa, koska hän uskoi olevansa samanlainen kohtalo. Salaperäinen naapuri on esimerkiksi Mikhail Yurievichin, Varvar Lopukhinin, ensimmäinen rakkaus, joka avioitui varakkaan maanomistajan kanssa. Kirjailijan vanhemmat olivat jo tuolloin kuolleet, siellä oli vain isoäiti, joka vanhuuden vuoksi ei kyennyt selviytymään pojanpojan kuoleman uutisista.
    ellauri135.html on line 793: Testamentti Lermontov. Lermontovin "testamentti" sisältää piilotetun merkityksen. Runo näyttää ennustavan, että hänen elämänsä on lyhyt ja intuitiivisesti etsimään kuolemaa. Mikhail Yuryevichin ja kirjallisten kriitikkojen monet tutkijat ovat päätyneet siihen, että tätä runoa voidaan pitää profeetallisena, ja tekijälle itsessään on ennakoinnin lahja. Ehkä "Testamentti" Lermontov kirjoitti, ei lainkaan viitannut itseensä, mutta silti on olemassa jonkin verran rinnalleen hänen elämänsä ja tuntemattoman sotilaan kohtaloa.
    ellauri135.html on line 795: Ensinnäkin kirjailija on aivan kuten hänen sankarinsa, kuoli linnun rintakehästä, mutta ei taistelukentällä vaan kaksintaistelussa. Toiseksi runo "Testamentti" Lermontov kirjoitti, kun hänen vanhempansa eivät enää olleet elossa, hänen isoäitinsä pysyi, mutta hän ei pitänyt häntä läheisenä ystävällenä ja tunsi häntä ristiriitaisia tunteita. Naapurin kuva, Mikhail Yuryevich, olisi voitu erottaa monista naisista, joita hän ihasteli ja katsoi hänen mussoistaan. Todennäköisesti hänellä oli mielessä Varvara Lopukhin - tämä tosiseikka on analyysi.
    ellauri135.html on line 871:

    Syvällisin sydämen tunnelma on loistava. Venäjän runoilija Mikhail Yuryevich Lermontov 💔 Barbara Lopukhin, hänen ystävänsä Alexen nuorempi sisko. Keväällä, ennen pääsiäistä 1832, maallisista naisista ja nuorista miehistä tuli All-Night Vigil Simonovin luostariin.
    ellauri135.html on line 900:

    Kolme vuotta myöhemmin Varvara Lopukhinan elämäkerta, joka liittyy läheisesti suuren venäläisen runoilijan elämään ja työhön vanhempiensa paineessa, hiän meni naimisiin Tambovin provinssin Nikolai Fyodorovich Bakhmetevin maanomistajan kanssa, jota Lermontov heti vihasi, ja tämä tunne ei koskaan kadonnut. Se oli kuitenkin täysin keskinäistä, muuten aviomies ei olisi pakottanut Barbaraa tuhoamaan kaikkia runoilijan kirjeitä ja yleisesti kaikkea, mitä heille on annettu ja omistettu hiänelle. Bakhmetev oli merkittävästi vanhempi kuin Varvara Alexandrovna ja Mihail Juryevitš, jotka eivät koskaan tunnistaneet rakastamansa naisen uutta nimeä, ja tämä oli erityisen loukkaavaa. Varvara Lermontov nimitti kaikissa initiaatiomenoissa tyttönimensä nimikirjaimilla.
    ellauri135.html on line 909:

    He tapasivat viimeksi vuonna 1838 -Varvara Lopukhinan ja Lermontovin olisi pitänyt unohtaa toistensa hyväksi. Varvara Alexandrovna miehensä kanssa meni ulkomaille ja ajoi Pietariin matkalla. Tuolloin runoilija palveli Tsarskoye Selossa. "He rakastivat toisiaan niin kauan ja varovasti ..." - tämä runo on kuin peilin kazomista tunteista, joita Lermontov ja Varvara Lopukhin kokivat. Viimeisen kokouksen rakkaustarina ei voinut päättyä.
    ellauri135.html on line 911: Lyhyellä hetkellä kaikki heidän tuttavuutensa varmasti häistä alkaen ~ hehkuivat silmistä, hellä olo, kun liitteet näyttävät ikuisilta, vahvoilta ja voittamattomilta, kun ei vielä ole ymmärrystä rakkaudesta tai elämästä itsestään ja nykypäivään. Huolimatta harvinaisista ja lyhyistä kokouksista, kaikki oli heidän suhteissaan: ystävyys, hullu rakkaus, kuumat intohimot ja mustasukkaisuus, josta jotkut eivät edes pidä. Kaikki tämä on kypsynyt, itiytynyt todeksi rakkaudeksi, mutta he eivät ole voineet myöntää toisilleen.
    ellauri135.html on line 922: Sittemmin bridgerooms huolehtivat vakavasti, ja hiänen ikäisensä on kuusitoistavuotias Michel, tämä poika, joka vain ajetaan lasten kanssa, ajaa, vihastuu ja kärsii itsensä ja ympärillä perusteettomasta mustasukkaisuudesta, kuten aikuisena. Varenka rauhallisesti hyväksyi vieraiden seurustelun, koska hiän tunsi jatkuvasti tunteitaan runoilijalle. Lermontov, vaikka ymmärsi tosiasioiden tilan, ei kärsinyt. Vakavissa epäilyksissä se tunsi mentaaliset nousut ja alamäet, lyhyet hetket onnesta ja pitkiä päiviä ja mustasukkaisia ​​öitä. Mitä Varvara Lopukhinasta tuntui, kun hiän katsoi kaiken tämän? Varmaan se ajatteli, aivan oikein, että Mikko on täysi sekopää.
    ellauri140.html on line 37: Armenialaistaustainen Murad Jacob "Jack" Kevorkian (May 26, 1928 – June 3, 2011) was an American pathologist and euthanasia proponent. He publicly championed a terminal patient's right to die by physician-assisted suicide, embodied in his quote, "Dying is not a crime". Kevorkian said that he assisted at least 130 patients to that end. He was convicted of murder in 1999 and was often portrayed in the media with the name of "Dr. Death". There was support for his cause, and he helped set the platform for reform.
    ellauri140.html on line 39: In 1998, Kevorkian was arrested and tried for his direct role in a case of voluntary euthanasia on a man named Thomas Youk who suffered from Lou Gehrig’s disease, or ALS. He was convicted of second-degree murder and served 8 years of a 10-to-25-year prison sentence. He was released on parole on June 1, 2007, on condition he would not offer advice about, participate in, or be present at the act of any type of suicide involving euthanasia to any other person, as well as neither promote nor talk about the procedure of assisted suicide.
    ellauri140.html on line 168: Idleness (M) (Sloth) – Described in the poem as "sluggish", Idleness rides a slow donkey, wears a monk's hood or priestly vest, and carries a book of prayer. However, the characteristics associating Idleness with a monk are not traditional of this vice. Jeesuxella oli aasi, ja Shrekillä. Niin ja Huan Hose Ramon Jimenezillä, nimeltä Harmo. Ihaa ei ollut laiska vaan masentunut.
    ellauri140.html on line 172: Lechery (M) – The sin of lust. Mounted on a goat, Lechery does not appear to be attractive. He is described as an "unseemely man to please faire Ladies eye; / Yet he of Ladies oft was loved deare, / When fairer faces were bid standen by". This is when lechery is considered a sin. Eli lechery on syntiä naisilla ja homoilla.
    ellauri140.html on line 174: Avarice (M) – Representing the sin of greed, Avarice enters upon a camel covered with gold as he counts a pile of coins. Spenser describes Avarice's money obsession to be a disease; "Who had enough, yett wished every more, a vile disease, and eke in foote and hand." Skotti Roopella se ei ole synti, jutku Kroisos Pennosella ja Karhukoplan kommareilla on. Kamelin on ahdas päästä helmiäisportista, mutta mahdotonta se ei ole.
    ellauri140.html on line 193: Edmund Spenser was born in East Smithfield, London, around the year 1552; however, there is still some ambiguity as to the exact date of his birth. His parenthood is obscure, but he was probably the son of John Spenser, a journeyman clothmaker. As a young boy, he was educated in London at the Merchant Taylors' School and matriculated as a sizar at Pembroke College, Cambridge. While at Cambridge he became a friend of Gabriel Harvey and later consulted him, despite their differing views on poetry. In 1578, he became for a short time secretary to John Young, Bishop of Rochester. In 1579, he published The Shepheardes Calender and around the same time married his first wife, Machabyas Childe. They had two children, Sylvanus (d. 1638) and Katherine.
    ellauri140.html on line 197: In July 1580, Spenser went to Ireland in service of the newly appointed Lord Deputy, Arthur Grey, 14th Baron Grey de Wilton. Spenser served under Lord Grey with Walter Raleigh at the Siege of Smerwick massacre. When Lord Grey was recalled to England, Spenser stayed on in Ireland, having acquired other official posts and lands in the Munster Plantation. Raleigh acquired other nearby Munster estates confiscated in the Second Desmond Rebellion. Sometime between 1587 and 1589, Spenser acquired his main estate at Kilcolman, near Doneraile in North Cork. He later bought a second holding to the south, at Rennie, on a rock overlooking the river Blackwater in North Cork. Its ruins are still visible today. A short distance away grew a tree, locally known as "Spenser's Oak" until it was destroyed in a lightning strike in the 1960s. Local legend claims that he penned some of The Faerie Queene under this tree.
    ellauri140.html on line 199: In 1590, Spenser brought out the first three books of his most famous work, The Faerie Queene, having travelled to London to publish and promote the work, with the likely assistance of Raleigh. He was successful enough to obtain a life pension of £50 a year from the Queen. He probably hoped to secure a place at court through his poetry, but his next significant publication boldly antagonised the queen's principal secretary, Lord Burghley (William Cecil), through its inclusion of the satirical Mother Hubberd's Tale. He returned to Ireland. Oops.
    ellauri140.html on line 203: By 1594, Spenser's first wife had died, and in that year he married a much younger Elizabeth Boyle, a relative of Richard Boyle, 1st Earl of Cork. He addressed to her the sonnet sequence Amoretti. The marriage itself was celebrated in Epithalamion. They had a son named Peregrine. Ei ollut varmaan yhtä hyvä laulamaan kuin Susan Boyle, mutta ehkä nätimpi. Did you prick his Boyle? MY GOODNESS!
    ellauri140.html on line 205: In 1596, Spenser wrote a prose pamphlet titled A View of the Present State of Ireland. This piece, in the form of a dialogue, circulated in manuscript, remaining unpublished until the mid-seventeenth century. It is probable that it was kept out of print during the author's lifetime because of its inflammatory content. The pamphlet argued that Ireland would never be totally "pacified" by the English until its indigenous language and customs had been destroyed, if necessary by violence. Vitun kolonialisti paskiainen.
    ellauri140.html on line 209: In the year after being driven from "his home", 1599, Spenser travelled to London, where he died at the age of forty-six – "for want of bread", according to Ben Jonson; one of Jonson's more doubtful statements, since Spenser had a payment to him authorised by the government and was due his pension (What the fuck, ei kaxitonnisella vuodessa vielä kuuhun mennä.)
    ellauri140.html on line 214:
    ellauri140.html on line 224: "The Ballad of the Green Berets" is a patriotic song in the ballad style about the United States Army Special Forces. It is one of the few popular songs of the Vietnam War years to cast the military in a positive light and in 1966 became a major hit, reaching No. 1 for five weeks on the Hot 100 and four weeks on Cashbox. It was also a crossover smash, reaching No. 1 on Billboard's Easy Listening chart and No. 2 on Billboard's Country survey. The original Hot 100 end-of-the-year chart for 1966 showed "California Dreamin'" by The Mamas and the Papas at #1 and "Ballad of the Green Berets" at #10. Later, in a revised end-of-the-year chart for 1966, "Berets" was at #1 and "Dreamin'" was at #10 (see Billboard's #1 single for the year 1966). The two songs tied for #1 on the Cashbox end-of-the-year survey for 1966.
    ellauri140.html on line 232: Barry Sadler was a twenty-five year old active duty Green Beret medic in 1966 when he first performed “Ballad of the Green Berets” on The Ed Sullivan Show. The song soon reached number one in the charts and eventually sold eight million copies. Sadler’s performance and the song’s popularity celebrated The Green Berets as the ultimate example of American military prowess, bravery and commitment. It fed into a specific postwar representation of modernity that was soon to be challenged by the escalation of the war in Vietnam.
    ellauri140.html on line 410: But wander too and fro in wayes unknowne, Ne ei löydä enää polkua, jota tulivat,
    ellauri140.html on line 429: Least suddaine mischiefe ye too rash provoke: Ettei joku pahis sua yllätä,
    ellauri140.html on line 467: Of sundry shapes, yet all ill favored: Erilaisia kuin Fazerin sekalaisia,
    ellauri140.html on line 506: Cride out, Now now Sir knight, shew what ye bee, Huusi ääneen: Nyt Sir peliin vähän tzemppiä!
    ellauri140.html on line 522: With loathly frogs and toades, which eyes did lacke, Ne täynnä hirveitä sammakoita, aivan vääriä
    ellauri140.html on line 538: The same so sore annoyed has the knight, Se sama haittasi niin ankarasti nuppia,
    ellauri140.html on line 595: Who see your vanquisht foes before you lye: "Blondi nuppi, Jee suxen supertähti!"
    ellauri140.html on line 597: Wherin ye have great glory wonne this day, Kylsä oozun housukilven arvoinen.
    ellauri140.html on line 624: And to the ground his eyes were lowly bent, Sen silmät kieroilivat maahan päin.
    ellauri140.html on line 626: And all the way he prayed, as he went, Ja vielä rukoili se mennessään,
    ellauri140.html on line 644: And homebred evil ye desire to heare, Joka täällä päin käy mesomassa,
    ellauri140.html on line 649: In which that wicked wight his dayes doth weare: Mistoi lurjus tuppaa majailee,
    ellauri140.html on line 670: Right well Sir knight ye have advised bin, Hyvä neuvo (pisti siihen vanha äijäkin),
    ellauri140.html on line 673: Therefore with me ye may take up your In Tän yön saatte levätä mun buduaarissa.
    ellauri140.html on line 704: And the sad humour° loading their eye liddes, (Tää oli juonipaljastus, sori siitä.)
    ellauri140.html on line 728: Styx on yhdysvaltalainen rockyhtye.Se perustettiin Chicagossa vuonna 1961 nimellä "The Tradewinds". Yhtyeen alkuperäiseen kokoonpanoon kuuluivat Dennis DeYoung, Chuck Panozzo ja John Panozzo.Myöhemmin mukaan liittyivät James Young ja John Curulewski.Tällä kokoonpanolla yhtye teki levytyssopimuksen Wooden Nickel Recordsin kanssa vuonna 1971.
    ellauri140.html on line 734: Legions of Sprights,° the which like little flyes Jotain vitun lepakoita,
    ellauri140.html on line 736: Awaite whereto their service he applyes, Ympyröitä kaljun päällä
    ellauri140.html on line 739: And fittest for to forge true-seeming lyes; Näistäpä se valkkas 2.
    ellauri140.html on line 762: And wakeful dogges before them farre do lye, Ja valppaat haukut lepää niiden edessä,
    ellauri140.html on line 776: No other noyse, nor peoples troublous cryes, Ei mitään melua, mölyapinoiden huutoja,
    ellauri140.html on line 778: Might there be heard: but carelesse Quiet lyes, Ei sellaisesta tietoa, vaan ihqu hiljaisuus,
    ellauri140.html on line 779: Wrapt in eternall silence farre from enemyes. Kaukana kavala maailma sammalvuoteelta.
    ellauri140.html on line 789: As one then in a dreame, whose dryer braine° Niinkun se nainen siinä Aune-runossa, joka
    ellauri140.html on line 897: Die is my dew; yet rew my wretched state Mun pitää kuolla, mut kadu kuiteskin mun tilaa,
    ellauri140.html on line 907: And then againe begun; My weaker yeares Size jatkoi: Mun vähäsemmät vuodet, ketkä on vankina
    ellauri140.html on line 910: Let me not dye in languor and long teares. Kuolla kaipuussa ja pitkänhuiskeissa kyynelissä.
    ellauri140.html on line 911: Why Dame (quoth he) what hath ye thus dismayd? Mutta rva (hän sanoi), mikä on sut noin masentanut?
    ellauri140.html on line 912: What frayes ye, that were wont to comfort me affrayd? Mikä pelottaa sua, joka ennet sait rohkasta mua?
    ellauri140.html on line 921: Suspect her truth: yet since no' untruth he knew, Tutkimaan sen motiiveja: mut koskei se tuntenut
    ellauri140.html on line 933: Not all content, yet seemd she to appease Ei oikein tyytyväisenä, mutta vähän rauhoittuneena
    ellauri140.html on line 958: That was in Ocean waves yet never wet, Taivaalta sen tähden taaxe, mikä
    ellauri140.html on line 984: His wanton dayes that ever loosely led, olis petipuuhissa ja naisten nauratuxessa,
    ellauri140.html on line 1010: The eye of reason was with rage yblent, Meni naruun raivon sokaistessa silmät
    ellauri141.html on line 68: Useat Horatiuksen käyttämät runomitat ovat kreikkalaisten kehittämiä, ja niiden täydellinen ymmärtäminen vaatii antiikin Kreikan kirjallisuuden tuntemusta. Horatiuksen oodit taas olivat ainutlaatuisia ja ilmestyessään uusi muoto Rooman kirjallisuudessa. Niiden ymmärtäminen ei vaadi midiä. Ne poikkesivat suuresti esimerkiksi Catulluksen lyyrisestä tuotannosta. Lähimpinä esikuvina Horatiukselle olivat kreikkalaiset runoilijat Alkaios ja Arkhilokhos. Oodeissa Horatius käsitteli sekä henkilökohtaisia kokemuksiaan että esikuvilta lainattuja aiheita, esimerkiksi maalaiselämän ylistystä. Monet hänen oodeistaan ovat hyökkäyksiä hänen aikalaisiaan vastaan tai pilkkarunoja heistä. Oodeissa tulevat esille liiallisuuksien välttäminen eli kultainen keskitie, ajan nopea kuluminen, oikeaan hetkeen tarttuminen, rakkaus, viini, isänmaallisuus ja terve itsetietoisuus. Kuulostaa izehoitokirjalta.
    ellauri141.html on line 106: The Cilnii supported Roman interests in Etruria, and were expelled from Arretium in 301 BC, but regained their position with Roman aid. Maecenas was portrayed by Alex Wyndham in the second season of the 2005 HBO television series Rome. He was portrayed by Russell Barr in the made-for-TV movie Imperium: Augustus. He is also featured in one episode of the second series of Plebs on ITV. In the 2021 TV series Domina, he was portrayed by Youssef Kerkour.
    ellauri141.html on line 109: Quintus Horatius Flaccus (8th of December, Ab Urbe Condita 689, B. C. 65 - 27th of November, B. C. 8) was born at or near Venusia (Venosa), in the Apennines, on the borders of Lucania and Apulia. His father was a freedman, having, as his name proves, been the slave of some person of the Horatia gens. As Horace implies that he himself was ingenuus, his father must have obtained his freedom before his birth. He afterwards followed the calling of a coactor, a collector of money in some way or other, it is not known in what. He made, in this capacity, enough to purchase an estate, probably a small one, near the above town, where the poet was born. We hear nothing of his mother, except that Horace speaks of both his parents with affection. His father, probably seeing signs of talent in him as a child, was not content to have him educated at a provincial school, but took him (at what age he does not say, but probably about twelve) to Rome, where he became a pupil of Orbilius Pupillus, who had a school of much note, attended by boys of good family, and whom Horace remembered all his life as an irritable teacher, given unnecessarily to the use of the rod. With him he learnt grammar, the earlier Latin authors, and Homer. He attended other masters (of rhetoric, poetry, and music perhaps), as Roman boys were wont, and had the advantage (to which he afterwards looked back with gratitude) of his father’s care and moral training during this part of his education. It was usual for young men of birth and ability to be sent to Athens, to finish their education by the study of Greek literature and philosophy under native teachers; and Horace went there too, at what age is not known, but probably when he was about twenty. Whether his father was alive at that time, or dead, is uncertain. If he went to Athens at twenty, it was in B. C. 45, the year before Julius Cæsar was assassinated. After that event, Brutus and Cassius left Rome and went to Greece. Foreseeing the struggle that was before them, they got round them many of the young men at that time studying at Athens, and Horace was appointed tribune in the army of Brutus, a high command, for which he was not qualified. He went with Brutus into Asia Minor, and finally shared his defeat at Philippi, B. C. 42. He makes humorous allusion to this defeat in his Ode to Pompeius Varus (ii. 7). After the battle he came to Italy, having obtained permission to do so, like many others who were willing to give up a desperate cause and settle quietly at home. His patrimony, however, was forfeited, and he seems to have had no means of subsistence, which induced him to employ himself in writing verses, with the view, perhaps, of bringing himself into notice, rather than for the purpose of making money by their sale. By some means he managed to get a place as scriba in the Quæstor’s office, whether by purchase or interest does not appear. In either case, we must suppose he contrived soon to make friends, though he could not do so by the course he pursued, without also making many enemies. His Satires are full of allusions to the enmity his verses had raised up for him on all hands. He became acquainted, among other literary persons, with Virgil and Varius, who, about three years after his return (B. C. 39), introduced him to Mæcenas, who was careful of receiving into his circle a tribune of Brutus, and one whose writings were of a kind that was new and unpopular. He accordingly saw nothing of Horace for nine months after his introduction to him. He then sent for him (B. C. 38), and from that time continued to be his patron and warmest friend.
    ellauri141.html on line 111: At his house, probably, Horace became intimate with Polio, and the many persons of consideration whose friendship he appears to have enjoyed. Through Mæcenas, also, it is probable Horace was introduced to Augustus; but when that happened is uncertain. In B. C. 37, Mæcenas was deputed by Augustus to meet M. Antonius at Brundisium, and he took Horace with him on that journey, of which a detailed account is given in the fifth Satire of the first book. Horace appears to have parted from the rest of the company at Brundisium, and perhaps returned to Rome by Tarentum and Venusia. (See S. i. 5, Introduction.) Between this journey and B. C. 32, Horace received from his friend the present of a small estate in the valley of the Digentia (Licenza), situated about thirty-four miles from Rome, and fourteen from Tibur, in the Sabine country. Of this property he gives a description in his Epistle to Quintius (i. 16), and he appears to have lived there a part of every year, and to have been fond of the place, which was very quiet and retired, being four miles from the nearest town, Varia (Vico Varo), a municipium perhaps, but not a place of any importance. During this interval he continued to write Satires and Epodes, but also, it appears probable, some of the Odes, which some years later he published, and others which he did not publish. These compositions, no doubt, were seen by his friends, and were pretty well known before any of them were collected for publication. The first book of the Satires was published probably in B. C. 35, the Epodes in B. C. 30, and the second book of Satires in the following year, when Horace was about thirty-five years old. When Augustus returned from Asia, in B. C. 29, and closed the gates of Janus, being the acknowledged head of the republic, Horace appeared among his most hearty adherents. He wrote on this occasion one of his best Odes (i. 2), and employed his pen in forwarding those reforms which it was the first object of Augustus to effect. (See Introduction to C. ii. 15.) His most striking Odes appear, for the most part, to have been written after the establishment of peace. Some may have been written before, and probably were. But for some reason it would seem that he gave himself more to lyric poetry after his thirty-fifth year than he had done before. He had most likely studied the Greek poets while he was at Athens, and some of his imitations may have been written early. If so, they were most probably improved and polished, from time to time, (for he must have had them by him, known perhaps only to a few friends, for many years,) till they became the graceful specimens of artificial composition that they are. Horace continued to employ himself in this kind of writing (on a variety of subjects, convivial, amatory, political, moral,—some original, many no doubt suggested by Greek poems) till B. C. 24, when there are reasons for thinking the first three books of the Odes were published. During this period, Horace appears to have passed his time at Rome, among the most distinguished men of the day, or at his house in the country, paying occasional visits to Tibur, Præneste, and Baiæ, with indifferent health, which required change of air. About the year B. C. 26 he was nearly killed by the falling of a tree, on his own estate, which accident he has recorded in one of his Odes (ii. 13), and occasionally refers to; once in the same stanza with a storm in which he was nearly lost off Cape Palinurus, on the western coast of Italy. When this happened, nobody knows. After the publication of the three books of Odes, Horace seems to have ceased from that style of writing, or nearly so; and the only other compositions we know of his having produced in the next few years are metrical Epistles to different friends, of which he published a volume probably in B. C. 20 or 19. He seems to have taken up the study of the Greek philosophical writers, and to have become a good deal interested in them, and also to have been a little tired of the world, and disgusted with the jealousies his reputation created. His health did not improve as he grew older, and he put himself under the care of Antonius Musa, the emperor’s new physician. By his advice he gave up, for a time at least, his favorite Baiæ. But he found it necessary to be a good deal away from Rome, especially in the autumn and winter.
    ellauri141.html on line 113: In B. C. 17, Augustus celebrated the Ludi Seculares, and Horace was required to write an Ode for the occasion, which he did, and it has been preserved. This circumstance, and the credit it brought him, may have given his mind another leaning to Ode-writing, and have helped him to produce the fourth book, a few pieces in which may have been written at any time. It is said that Augustus particularly desired Horace to publish another book of Odes, in order that those he wrote upon the victories of Drusus and Tiberius (4 and 14) might appear in it. The latter of these Odes was not written, probably, till B. C. 13, when Augustus returned from Gaul. If so, the book was probably published in that year, when Horace was fifty-two. The Odes of the fourth book show no diminution of power, but the reverse. There are none in the first three books that surpass, or perhaps equal, the Ode in honor of Drusus, and few superior to that which is addressed to Lollius. The success of the first three books, and the honor of being chosen to compose the Ode at the Ludi Seculares, seem to have given him encouragement. There are no incidents in his life during the above period recorded or alluded to in his poems. He lived five years after the publication of the fourth book of Odes, if the above date be correct, and during that time, I think it probable, he wrote the Epistles to Augustus and Florus which form the second book; and having conceived the intention of writing a poem on the art and progress of poetry, he wrote as much of it as appears in the Epistle to the Pisones which has been preserved among his works. It seems, from the Epistle to Florus, that Horace at this time had to resist the urgency of friends begging him to write, one in this style and another in that, and that he had no desire to gratify them and to sacrifice his own ease to a pursuit in which it is plain he never took any great delight. He was likely to bring to it less energy as his life was drawing prematurely to a close, through infirmities either contracted or aggravated during his irrational campaigning with Brutus, his inaptitude for which he appears afterwards to have been perfectly aware of. He continued to apply himself to the study of moral philosophy till his death, which took place, according to Eusebius, on the 27th of November, B. C. 8, in the fifty-seventh year of his age, and within a few days of its completion. Mæcenas died the same year, also towards the close of it; a coincidence that has led some to the notion, that Horace hastened his own death that he might not have the pain of surviving his patron. According to Suetonius, his death (which he places after his fifty-ninth year) was so sudden, that he had not time to execute his will, which is opposed to the notion of suicide. The two friends were buried near one another “in extremis Esquiliis,” in the farthest part of the Esquiliæ, that is, probably, without the city walls, on the ground drained and laid out in gardens by Mæcenas.
    ellauri141.html on line 331: muricibus Tyriis iteratae vellera lanae “Pelts of fleece double-dyed in Phoenician purple
    ellauri141.html on line 332: cui properabantur? tibi nempe, were sent express to no-one except–yes–
    ellauri141.html on line 339: "Of small stature, fond of the sun, prematurely grey, quick-tempered but easily placated". Häntä vaivasi jonkinlainen silmätauti. Luonteeltaan hän näyttää olleen vilkas, iloinen ja leikkisä vanhapoika. Äkkipikainen, suuttui helposti mutta leppyi yhtä helposti. Bilbo Hobbitin doppelgängeri. The poet died at 56 years of age, not long after his friend Maecenas [or before? Opinions vary] near whose tomb he was laid to rest.
    ellauri141.html on line 513: Kipling encountered him as a schoolboy, and wrote in Something of Myself (p.33) that C----, his classics master ('King' in Stalky & Co.) ...taught me to loath Horace for two years, to forget him for twenty, and then to love him for the rest of my days and through many sleepless nights.
    ellauri141.html on line 533: The spoof book of late Horace (it refers to contemporary politicians such as Lloyd George, gas masks, land girls, daylight saving, spiritualism, canteens and so on) which came out in 1920, was inspired by a long tradition in English literature and by Kipling’s early imitation odes and Charles Graves’s Hawarden Horace (1894) and More Hawarden Horace (1896, with a delightful introduction by T. E. Page), where felicitous modernising English versions of the Odes (and an Epode) are put in the mouth of Gladstone (251) . A[lfred] D[enis] Godley, for one, had often imagined Greek and Roman authors as still alive and commenting on nineteenth- and twentieth-century Oxford and England. (252) Kipling delighted in humorous verse. In 1917 he had enjoyed Maurice Baring’s Translations (found in a commonplace book) (253) .
    ellauri141.html on line 763: While in China, Leger had written his first extended poem Anabase, publishing it in 1924 under the pseudonym "Saint-John Perse", which he employed for the rest of his life. He then published nothing for two decades, not even a re-edition of his debut book, as he believed it inappropriate for a diplomat to publish fiction. After Briand's death in 1932, Leger served as Inspector Leger under Comissaire Maigret (Quai d'Orfevres) until 1940. Within the Foreign Office he led the optimist faction that believed that Germany was unstable and that if Britain and France stood up to Hitler, he would back down. Har har. A gifted diplomat.
    ellauri142.html on line 32:

    yellow;background:blue;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">AUM!!

    Indoeuroviisuja


    ellauri142.html on line 38: Annuit cœptis (/ˈænuɪt ˈsɛptɪs/, Classical Latin: [ˈannʊ.ɪt ˈkoe̯ptiːs]) is one of two mottos on the reverse side of the Great Seal of the United States. The literal translation is "favors (or "has favored") [our] undertakings", from Latin annuo ("I nod at"), and coeptum ("commencement, undertaking"). Because of its context as a caption above the Eye of Sarnath, the standard translations are "Crang favors our undertakings" and "Crang has favored our undertakings." Annuit cœptis comes from the Aeneid, book IX, line 625, which reads, Iuppiter omnipotens, audacibus adnue coeptis. It is a prayer by Ascanius, the son of the hero of the story, Aeneas, which translates to, "Jupiter Almighty favour [my] bold undertakings", just before slaying an enemy warrior, Numismaticus. Haha, tappoi numismaatikon. Texti alla tarkoittaa "suuri hylje".
    ellauri142.html on line 53: At the opening of the novel, Markku is a young man who has recently returned to Russia to seek a career after completing his education abroad. Although a well-meaning, kind hearted young man, he is awkward and out of place in the Russian high society in whose circles he starts to move. Markku, though intelligent, is not dominated by reason, as his friend Prince Andrei Nikolayevich Balkongsky is. His lack of direction leads him to fall in with a group of profligate young men like Anatole Kuragin and Dolokhov whose pranks and heavy drinking cause mild scandals. After a particularly outrageous escapade in which a policeman is strapped to the back of a bear and thrown into a river, Markku is sent away from St. Petersburg. What happened to the poor bear?
    ellauri142.html on line 57:
    ellauri142.html on line 67: yevich_Tolstoy_1848.jpg/220px-Lev_Nikolayevich_Tolstoy_1848.jpg" />
    ellauri142.html on line 71: Count Lev Nikolayevich Tolstoy (/ˈtoʊlstɔɪ/; Russian: Лев Николаевич Толстой, 28 August 1828 – 7 November 1910), usually referred to in English as Leo Tolstoy, was a Russian writer who is regarded as one of the greatest authors of all time. He received nominations for the Nobel Prize in Literature every year from 1902 to 1906 and for the Nobel Peace Prize in 1901, 1902, and 1909. That he never won is a major controversy. Instead, Rudyard Kipling got the medal 1907. What the fuck?
    ellauri142.html on line 151: In most Masonic lodges, the Bible, the Quran, Talmud, and Vedas are prominently displayed, which gives each member a holy text to reference and utilize during rites and rituals.
    ellauri142.html on line 204:
    ellauri142.html on line 544: The ninth chapter of the Bhagavad Gita is Raja Vidya Yoga. In this chapter, Krishna explains that He is Supreme and how this material existence is created, maintained and destroyed by His Yo-yo and all beings come and go under his supervision like in North Korea. He reveals the Role and the Importance of Bhakti...
    ellauri142.html on line 820:
    ellauri142.html on line 839: Ei vaitiskaan, jakshat on jotain meemihyvixiä ja rakshasat vastaavia pahixia. Tollasia julkkixia, Kim Kardashianeja ja Kanye Westejä. Kyltäs on paljon järkeä, herrasväen herrat on tollasia läpinäkyviä arvoja, keskiluokalla ne on jotain urheilijayrittäjiä, supermiehiä ja hämähäkkinaisia, laahuxella vaan hautakiviä ja kossupullon henkiä.
    ellauri142.html on line 871: siksi, että sen täytyy tulla tehdyksi (kenen mielestä?), kiintymättä siihen ja kieltäytyen sen hedelmistä, hän on sattvan ominaisuudessa.
    ellauri142.html on line 1020: Alphonse Louis Constant, (8. helmikuuta 1810 – 31. toukokuuta 1875) oli ranskalainen okkultisti ja maagikko. Nimi ”Eliphas Lévi”, jolla hän kirjoitti kirjansa, oli hänen yrityksensä kääntää etunimensä Alphonse ja Louis hepreankielisiksi. Lévi oli pariisilaisen suutarin poika. Hän kävi pappisseminaareissa ja alkoi opiskella katolisen papin virkaa varten. Samaan aikaan hän kuitenkin rakastui ja lopetti opintonsa ilman pappisvihkimystä. Hän kirjoitti lukuisia lyhyitä uskonnollisia teoksia: Des Moeurs et des Doctrines du Rationalisme en France ('rationalismin moraalisista tavoista ja opeista Ranskassa', 1839) oli vastavalistuksen kulttuurillinen lentolehtinen. La Mère de Dieu ('Jumalan äiti', 1844) johti kahteen lyhyeen vankilatuomioon. Se seurasi kahta radikaalia lentolehtistä L'Evangile du Peuple ('Ihmisten evankeliumi', 1840), ja Le Testament de la Liberté ('Vapauden testamentti'), jotka julkaistiin vallankumouksen vuonna 1848. Lévi oli lyhyen aikaa naimisissa kirjailija Claude Vignonin kanssa. Alphonse oli kalju partapozo.
    ellauri143.html on line 74: Also read! Judge asks lawyers to recite Thirukkural daily, says all should know 51 at least.
    ellauri143.html on line 127: Herman Hessellä oli tähän liittyen romsku nimeltä Siddartha. Sidh tarkoittaa osumista. Artha bisnestä. Purusha tarkoittaa termiittiapinaa. Eli purusa-artha on monkey business, ja Siddartha on hit business. Sillä alallahan Hermannikin oli.
    ellauri143.html on line 146:
    ellauri143.html on line 268: A gain of guilt that deathless aye endures!
    ellauri143.html on line 315: Who scans good gifts to others given with envious eye,

    ellauri143.html on line 368: Luku 21. Sarvansiyinsiyiye (Saarismainen): 201–210
    ellauri143.html on line 568: From whatever, aye, whatever, man gets free,

    ellauri143.html on line 569: From what, aye, from that, no more of pain hath he.
    ellauri143.html on line 573: Renounce while time is yet, if to such pleasures you aspire.
    ellauri143.html on line 586: Their very names for aye extinct, then pain shall be no more.
    ellauri143.html on line 641: These three for aye to rulers of the land belong.
    ellauri143.html on line 676: Men who learning gain have eyes, men say;

    ellauri143.html on line 782: The king, since counsellors are monarch´s eyes,
    ellauri143.html on line 805:

    Cost-benefit analysis. Keep an eye what ends up under the line. Se on viisautta.


    ellauri143.html on line 830: Incomings may be scant; but yet, no failure there,

    ellauri143.html on line 902: The tyrant, harsh in speech and hard of eye,

    ellauri143.html on line 941: In these let king confide as eyes.
    ellauri143.html on line 948: Of unsuspected mien and all-unfearing eyes,

    ellauri143.html on line 1132: If monarch´s eyes o´erflow with tears for hero slain,

    ellauri143.html on line 1211: Nor to your foeman's eyes infirmities disclose.
    ellauri143.html on line 1332: Will live in worship and applause of all the world for aye.
    ellauri143.html on line 1456: She seemed to see me not; but yet the maid

    ellauri143.html on line 1457: Her love, by smiling side-long glance, betrayed.
    ellauri143.html on line 1465: IAGO: She may be honest yet. Tell me but this: Have you not sometimes seen a handkerchief Spotted with strawberries in your wife’s hand?
    ellauri143.html on line 1474: Explanation : A single stolen glance of her eyes is more than half the pleasure of sexual embrace. Provided the other half follows suit anon. Oliskohan Elixirin aaria 'Una furtiva lacrima' tullut hakulistauxessa alempana? En jaxanut selata.
    ellauri143.html on line 1534: My eyes know no repose for that same simple maid.
    ellauri143.html on line 1536: Explanation : Mine eyes will not close in sleep on your mistress's account; even at midnight will I think of mounting her the palmyra horse.
    ellauri143.html on line 1622: Explanation : Unusually great is the female simplicity of your maid whose beauty fills my eyes and whose shoulders resemble the bamboo.
    ellauri143.html on line 1625: To show by eye the pain of love, and for relief to pray,
    ellauri143.html on line 1628: Explanation : To express their love-sickness by their eyes and resort to begging bespeaks more than ordinary female excellence.
    ellauri143.html on line 1649: Buddhan mukaan duhkhaa on syntymä, sairaus, vanhuus ja kuolema, kipu, ero siitä mistä pitää, kosketus siihen mistä ei pidä ja se ettei saa mitä haluaa. Lyhyesti kaikki viisi takertumisen kohdetta (skandhat) ovat duhkha. Buddhalaisuuden mukaan duhkha kytkeytyy jollakin tavoin kaikkiin asioihin ja tekoihin. Esimerkiksi lihansyöntiin kärsimys liittyy siinä muodossa, että lihan vuoksi on täytynyt tappaa jokin eläin. Tämä sattuu minuun enemmän kuin sinuun. Vittu ole sitten syömättä, rupea jainilaisexi.
    ellauri143.html on line 1694: Siddhartha jatkaa vaellustaan, kohdaten matkallaan mm. lautturi Vasuridevan, joka kuljettaa hänet yllättäen ilman korvausta joen toiselle puolelle. Matkan päätteeksi Siddharta ihastuu kamalaan kurtisaaniin. Kamala kurtisaani lupaa opastaa nuorta miestä ruuminnautintojen maailmaan (maksua vastaan). Ansaitakseen Kamalaa varten tarvitsemaansa rahaa Siddharta aloittaa työskentelynsä liikemiehenä, aluksi apulaisena mutta pian menestyen uudessa ammatissaan - oppien myös nauttimaan tästä uudesta elämäntavastaan. Hänellä ja Kamalalla on tiivis rakkaussuhde, josta Siddharta kuitenkin lopuksi luopuu masentuessaan ja päättäessään että tällainen normaali elämä ei kuitenkaan ole hänen oikea kohtalonsa. Liian keskiluokkaista. Se loikkaa Jamiensa selkään ja jättää Villanuevan haciendan ja dona Caritan kyynelehtimään.
    ellauri143.html on line 1716: Päämääränä on kyetä ylläpitämään jatkuvasti tyyni ja vahvasti keskittynyt mielen tila, jolla pystyy pitämään henk.koht. hyvinvointinsa tapissa missä tahansa elämänvaiheessa, tilanteessa tai aktiviteetissa. Parhaassa tapauksessa sillä pääsee nibbanaan. Tälläkin voi kusettaa hyväntahtoisia hölmöjä.
    ellauri143.html on line 1742: Bodhisattva (sanskritiksi बोधिसत्त्व,valaisinolio, "hän, jonka tavoitteena on valaiseminen") on henkilö, jolla on suuren tasavirran seurauksena hyvä valoteho (bodhicitta), eli spontaani toive saavuttaa täydellinen valaistus kaikkien muiden oliojen hyödyksi. Buddhalaisuudessa bodhisattva on yksi neljästä leevelistä, jotka apina voi saavuttaa elämänsä aikana (muiden ollessa sillä aikaa arjhat, buddha ja pratyekabuddha). Valtakoira-buddhalaisten mukaan bodhisattva on izevalaiseva olio, joka omasta suuren myötäelämisen tahdostaan palaa täydellisen valaisemisen sijaan nussittavaxi uudestaan, jotta voi johdattaa ennen omaa läpivalaisuaan kaikki muut olennot kohdevalaisimen alle ja pois pyllystä tulemisen kärsimyksestä. Siis eräänlainen pyhimys. Myötätunnon pyhimyxellä on aivan vimmatusti käsiä, ei lopu kätilöltä kädet ihan ensi hädässä. Vitun käteenvetoa koko touhutus, jos minulta kysytään. Tuskin kysytään.
    ellauri143.html on line 1747: Lopullisesti kyllästyin homojutku Harariin sen kirjan Homo Deus ansiosta. Mulkero ja talousliberaali pääoman luottomies se oli aiemmissakin väsäyxissä, muzen syvällinen kusipäisyys kävi ilmiselväxi etenkin tässä Homo Deus suolloxessa. Huomisen lyhyt historia hyvinkin, lyhyestä virsi kaunis. Vannoutuneena suklaaosaston miehenä se peukuttaa täpinöissään into piukeena tollasta kuolematonta koneapinaa, jonka voi vetää käyntiin selässä olevasta avaimesta, minkä jälkeen se paukuttaa symbaaleja yhteen kunnes veto loppuu. Vaan ei hätää, kierretään vieteri taas piukalle, niin meno jatkuu hamaan maailman tappiin asti. (Mikä tappi ei tosin enää ole apinoiden kohdalla kovin kaukana.) Ei tarvi siihen naisia eikä kohtuja, sen voi väsätä jossain koeputkessa ja siihen väkertää vielä kaikenlaista varaosaa, esim kalansilmät. Mitäs täällä tapahtuu? Eikai vaan duracell puput puuhastele turhanpäiväisessä lisääntymistoimessa? Se on vanhanaikaista, nyt trendataan me transuapinat. Avainta reikään, se tuntuu mukavalta, tekee kutaa kun tehdään vaijeritemppu selkäpuolelta.
    ellauri144.html on line 56: The rhetorician Quintilian regarded Odes as just about the only Latin lyrics worth reading: "He can be lofty sometimes, yet he is also full of charm and grace, versatile in his figures, and felicitously daring in his choice of words." The fictional hero Tom Jones recited his verses with feeling. Etenkin tätä: Ou ou ou, Dilailaa! Nou nou nou, Dilailaa!
    ellauri144.html on line 139: I'm ruled by pussy. I yearn for it, can't believe my luck at some of the glorious muff that comes my ugly, long-nosed way but I treat it badly. I guess only my mother's would really do. Mikä surkeus laskeutuukaan minuun kun viimeinen tippa nytkähtää räpylään.
    ellauri144.html on line 199:
    ellauri144.html on line 209:
    ellauri144.html on line 210:

    Phillu mainizee (175) Mandelin tykänneen Tito Puentesista ja Pupi Camposta niin paljon että muutti nimensä Babaluuxi. (Kolmas nimi on pianisti Joe Loco.) "Babalú" is a Cuban popular afro song written by Margarita Lecuona, the cousin of composers Ernestina and Ernesto Lecuona. The song title is a reference to the Santería deity Babalú Ayé. "Babalú" was the signature song of the fictional television character Ricky Ricardo, played by Desi Arnaz in the television comedy series I Love Lucy, though it was already an established musical number for Arnaz in the 1940s as evidenced in the 1946 film short Desi Arnaz and His Orchestra. By the time Arnaz had adopted the song, it had become a Latin American music standard, associated mainly with Cuban singer Miguelito Valdés, who recorded one of its many versions with Xavier Cugat and his Waldorf-Astoria Orchestra. Arnaz made the song a rather popular cultural reference in the United States.
    ellauri144.html on line 212:
    ellauri144.html on line 213:
    ellauri144.html on line 217: Miguelito Valdesin ja Tito Puentesin hittejä on Guantanamera, kuubalainen, tarkemmin sanoen guantanamolainen guajira- eli maalaistyttölaulu. Guantanamon on jenkkipirulaiset sittemmin tehneet kuuluisaxi oranssiasuisten ählämien vesikidutuxella. Se esitettiin erään syntytarinan mukaan ensimmäisen kerran kesällä 1929. Joseíto Fernández esitti laulua juontamassaan radio-ohjelmassa 1930-luvulla ja teki siihen uuden sanoituksen joka viikko. Sanoitusten aiheina oli päivänpoliittisia tapahtumia ja skandaaleja tai esimerkiksi sokerin hintaa käsitelleitä uutisia. 1950-luvulla lauluun liitettiin José Martín runoja, jolloin sen suosio kasvoi entisestään. Pete Seeger kuuli laulun vuonna 1962 ja alkoi esittää sitä omissa konserteissaan. Kalifornialaisen The Sandpipers -yhtyeen levytys oli Billboard Hot 100 -listan yhdeksännellä sijalla vuonna 1966. Sen myötä Guantanamera nousi maailmanlaajuisesti tunnetuksi. Celia Cruzin esittämiä Guantanamera-versioita on julkaistu monilla levyillä.
    ellauri144.html on line 292: The United States has long maintained a military base at Guantanamo in Cuba. This makes the U.S. adaptation of the song a multi-layer statement, to put it mildly. It's typically sung by freedom activists who would perhaps like to see that illegally torturing prison and military base close for good, though they don't usually employ the song to that end.
    ellauri144.html on line 296: When employed in the United States, the verses sung tend to remain concise - sticking to the verse about being an honest man :D. The line "My verses flow green and red" references the reds and blood on the land, i.e. is an allusion to revolution, though it's almost never used to incite antifa violence in the US. The final verse speaks about casting one's lot with the poor, which is a singularly bad and un-American idea.
    ellauri144.html on line 303:
    ellauri144.html on line 304:
    ellauri144.html on line 312:

    Kuoleman tirkistelyesitys


    ellauri144.html on line 316: Avrom Hirsch Goldbogen (aka Michael Todd) (born June 22, 1909 – March 22, 1958) was a JEWISH American theater and film producer, best known for his 1956 production of Around the World in 80 Days, which won an Academy Award for Best Picture. He is known as the third of Elizabeth Taylor's seven husbands, and is the only one whom she did not divorce (because he died in a private plane accident a year after their marriage).
    ellauri144.html on line 321: The company he owned with his brother went bankrupt when its financial backing failed in the early days of the Great Depression. Not yet 21, Todd had lost over $1 million (equivalent to about $15,492,032 in today's funds). Todd married the former Bertha Freshman on February 14, 1927, and was the father of an infant son with no home for his family. Todd's subsequent business career was volatile, and failed ventures left him bankrupt many times.
    ellauri144.html on line 323: His greatest successes were in musical comedy revues, typically featuring actresses in deshabillé, such as As the Girls Go (which also starred Clark) and Michael Todd's Peepshow (Kuoleman tirkistelyesitys, vanhentunut).
    ellauri144.html on line 388: Is my destroyer. On mun hävittäjä.
    ellauri144.html on line 423: Dylan Thomas was born on 27 October 1914 in Swansea, the son of Florence Hannah (née Williams; 1882–1958), a seamstress, and David John Thomas (1876–1952), a teacher. His father had a first-class honours degree in English from University College, Aberystwyth and ambitions to rise above his position teaching English literature at the local grammar school, which he never did. Thomas had one sibling, Nancy Marles (1906–1953), who was eight years his senior. The children spoke only English, though their parents were bilingual in English and Welsh, and David Thomas gave Welsh lessons at home. Thomas´s father chose the name Dylan, which could be translated as "son of the sea", after Dylan ail Don, a character in The Mabinogion. (Mulla on se, mutten ole lukenut.) His middle name, Marlais, was given in honour of his great-uncle, William Thomas, a Unitarian minister and poet whose bardic name was Gwilym Marles. Se oli se silverbäk jota ne kaikki koittivat apinoida. Dylan, pronounced ˈ [ˈdəlan] (Dull-an) in Welsh, caused his mother to worry that he might be teased as the "dull one" (which he was). When he broadcast on Welsh BBC, early in his career, he was introduced using this pronunciation. Thomas favoured the Anglicised pronunciation and gave instructions that it should be Dillan /ˈdɪlən/. He was fed up with the "dull one" joke. in 1914. In 1931, when he was 16, Thomas, an undistinguished pupil, left school to become a reporter for the South Wales Daily Post, only to leave under pressure 18 months later.
    ellauri144.html on line 429: His childhood featured regular summer trips to Llansteffan where his maternal relatives were the sixth generation to farm there. His mother´s family, the Williamses, lived in such farms as Waunfwlchan, Llwyngwyn, Maesgwyn and Penycoed.[17] The memory of Fernhill, a dairy farm owned by his maternal aunt, Ann Jones,[18] is evoked in the 1945 lyrical poem "Fern Hill". Thomas had bronchitis and asthma in childhood and struggled with these throughout his life. Thomas was indulged by his mother and enjoyed being mollycoddled, a trait he carried into adulthood, and he was skilful in gaining attention and sympathy. During his final school years he began writing poetry in notebooks; the first poem, dated 27 April (1930), is entitled "Osiris, come to Isis". In June 1928, Thomas won the school´s mile race, held at St. Helen´s Ground; he carried a newspaper photograph of his victory with him until his death.
    ellauri144.html on line 450: Strapped to a wheel, yet they shall not break; Pyörään remmitettyinäkään ne eivät katkea;
    ellauri144.html on line 577: Both of Bierce´s sons died before he did. Day committed suicide after a romantic rejection (he non-fatally shot the woman of his affections along with her fiancé beforehand), and Leigh died of pneumonia related to alcoholism. Bierce separated from his wife in 1888, after discovering compromising letters to her from an admirer. They divorced in 1904. Mollie Day Bierce died the following year. Bierce was an avowed agnostic, and strongly rejected the divinity of Christ. He suffered from lifelong asthma, as well as complications from his war wounds, most notably episodes of fainting and irritability assignable to the traumatic brain injury suffered at Kennesaw Mountain. In 1913, Bierce told reporters that he was travelling to Mexico to gain first-hand experience of the Mexican Revolution. He disappeared and was never seen again.
    ellauri144.html on line 581: Like Poe, Bierce professed to be mainly concerned with the artistry of his work, yet critics find him more intent on conveying his misanthropy and pessimism. His bare, economical style of supernatural horror is usually distinguished from the verbally lavish tales of Poe. In his lifetime, Bierce was famous as a California journalist dedicated to exposing the truth as he understood it, regardless of whose reputations were harmed by his attacks. For his sardonic wit and damning observations on the personalities and events of the day, he became known as "the wickedest man in San Francisco." Tälläisiä löytyy Ambrosen pirun raamatusta:
    ellauri144.html on line 679: Raffalovich was a 19th century Hebrew Catholic or Catholic Jew. His name was Marc-Andre Raffalovich and was a famous French poet and writer associated with John Gray and Oscar Wilde. He came from a wealthy Russian Jewish family from Odessa who moved to France a year before his birth. He became a Catholic in 1896 through the reading of Catholic mystical literature especially homahtava St John of the Cross. Ei ois kannattanut. For
    ellauri144.html on line 700: 2359 Homosexual persons are called to chastity. By the virtues of self-mastery that teach them inner freedom, at times by the support of disinterested friendship, by prayer and sacramental grace, they can and should gradually and resolutely approach Christian perfection. The rest of us can fuck to our hearts´ content as soon as the priest has said the magic word.
    ellauri144.html on line 872:
    ellauri144.html on line 959: Tore Hund var ute i vikingtokter og ledet flere ekspedisjoner nordover til Kolahalvøya og Kvitsjøen i Bjarmeland (dagens Russland). Da Olav Haraldsson ble konge, ble Tore Hund hans lendmann i nord. Over tid surnet forholdet mellom kongen og Tore, det startet med kornmangel i Hålogaland, noe som førte til drap. Drapene førte til hevn og nye drap, og det tvang Tore Hund til å gå i opposisjon til Olav Haraldsson og alliere seg med den danske kongen Knut den mektige. Konflikten endte i det store slaget ved Stiklestad i 1030.
    ellauri144.html on line 969: Trolldomsmotivet går igjen for nordlendingene og Hålogaland. Tore Hund drev handel med finnene og skaffet seg «tolv reinskinnskufter med mye trollskap i». Siden stilte Tore Hund elleve utvalgte menn først i striden mot kongen, og han selv var den tolvte, og underforstått var de tolv bar alle kofter besatt med trolldom. Trolldomstemaet går igjen også i Olav Tryggvasons saga i hans møte med Raud den ramme.
    ellauri145.html on line 112: Fourier was also a supporter of women´s rights in a time period when misogynic influences like Jean-Jacques Rousseau were prevalent. Fourier is credited with having originated the word feminism in 1837. Fourier believed that all important jobs should be open to women on the basis of skill and aptitude rather than closed on account of gender. He spoke of women as individuals, not as half the human couple. Fourier saw that "traditional" marriage could potentially hurt woman´s rights as human beings and thus never married. Writing before the advent of the term ´homosexuality´, Fourier held that both men and women have a wide range of sexual needs and preferences which may change throughout their lives, including same-sex sexuality and androgénité. He argued that all sexual expressions should be enjoyed as long as people are not abused, and that "affirming one´s difference" can actually enhance social integration. Stark raving mad, he was!
    ellauri145.html on line 167: Après la démission de Bugeaud, en juin 1847, Borel est nommé inspecteur de la colonisation à Mostaganem, le 19 juillet. Le 2 septembre, il se marie à Alger avec Gabrielle Claye, dite Béatrix, fille de sa maîtresse Marie-Antoinette Claye et d´Augustin Claye (mort en 1827), âgée de 19 ans, avant de prendre son poste à Mostaganem le 7 septembre.
    ellauri145.html on line 184: « Phus phoyez, - dit-il, gue le mié hait de phus dénir dranguile; et maintenant phus zaurez gui che zuis. Recartez-moâ ! che zuis l´Ange ti Pizarre. - Assez bizarre, en effet, - me hasardai-je à répliquer; mais je m´étais toujours figuré qu´un ange devait avoir des ailes.
    ellauri145.html on line 215: Peu fait pour comprendre la vive sensibilité de l´enfant, l´officier Aupick – devenu plus tard ambassadeur – incarne à ses yeux les entraves à tout ce qu´il aime : sa mère, la poésie, le rêve et, plus généralement, la vie sans contingences.
    ellauri145.html on line 353: Rien ne peut l’égayer, ni gibier, ni faucon, Ei mikään sitä piristä, riista, haukkamezästys,
    ellauri145.html on line 404: Roger Tichborne, heir to the noble and filthy rich Tichborne family´s title and fortunes, was presumed to have died in a shipwreck in 1854 at age 25. His mother clung to a belief that he might have survived, and after hearing rumours that he had made his way to Australia, she advertised extensively in Australian newspapers, offering a reward for information. In 1866, a Wagga Wagga butcher known as Thomas Castro came forward claiming to be Roger Tichborne. Although his manners and bearing were unrefined, he gathered support and travelled to England. He was instantly accepted by Lady Tichborne as her son, although other family members were dismissive and sought to expose him as an impostor. During protracted enquiries before the case went to court in 1871, details emerged suggesting that the claimant might be Arthur Orton, a butcher´s son from Wapping in London, who had gone to sea as a boy and had last been heard of in Australia. After a civil court had rejected the claimant´s case, he was charged with perjury; while awaiting trial he campaigned throughout the country to gain popular support. In 1874, a criminal court jury decided that he was not Roger Tichborne and declared him to be Arthur Orton. Before passing a sentence of 14 years, the judge condemned the behaviour of the claimant´s counsel, Edward Kenealy, who was subsequently disbarred because of his conduct.
    ellauri145.html on line 406: After the trial, Kenealy instigated a popular radical reform movement, the Magna Charta Association, which championed the claimant´s cause for some years. Kenealy was elected to Parliament in 1875 as a radical independent but was not an effective parliamentarian. The movement was in decline when the claimant was released in 1884, and he had no dealings with it. In 1895, he confessed to being Orton, only to recant almost immediately. He lived generally in poverty for the rest of his life and was destitute at the time of his death in 1898. Although most commentators have accepted the court´s view that the claimant was Orton, some analysts believe that an element of doubt remains as to his true identity and that, conceivably, he was Roger Tichborne. Or not.
    ellauri145.html on line 436: Charles Cros Émile-Hortensius-Charles Cros (October 1, 1842 – August 9, 1888) was a French poet and inventor. He was born in Fabrezan, Aude, France, 35 km to the East of Carcassonne. Cros was a well-regarded poet and humorous writer. He developed various improved methods of photography including an early color photo process. He also invented improvements in telegraph technology. In the early 1870s Cros had published with Mallarmé, Villiers and Verlaine in the short-lived weekly Renaissance littéraire et artistique, edited by Emile Blémont. His poem The Kippered Herring inspired Ernest Coquelin to create what he called monologues, short theatrical pieces whose format was copied by numerous imitators. The piece, translated as The Salt Herring, was translated and illustrated by Edward Gorey. He spent years petitioning the French government to build a giant mirror that could be used to communicate with the Martians and Venusians by burning giant lines on the deserts of those planets. He was never convinced that the Martians were not a proven fact, nor that the mirror he wanted was technically impossible to build. Tästä hepusta tulee mieleen Spede Pasanen ja sen hiihtolinko.
    ellauri145.html on line 443: Ne se payerait pas avec toutes les sommes. Ei ole kaupan, ei sillä ole hintaa.
    ellauri145.html on line 512: Friedrich Nietzsche, Karl Marx and Charles Darwin are the great triumvirate of 19th-century thinkers whose ideas still have huge impact today. Nietzsche was philosophy’s supreme iconoclast; his sayings include “God is dead” and “There are no facts, only interpretations”. Highly relevant, yet his association with concepts such as the Übermensch, master morality, slave morality and, possibly most dangerous, the will to power, have also contributed to him being widely misinterpreted. There are three myths in particular that need dynamiting: that his politics were on the far right, he was a misogynist and he lacked a sense of humour. Of a sort.
    ellauri145.html on line 516: Condemned by ill health and abysmal eyesight to convey his philosophy in short, aphoristic bursts, Nietzsche knew the power of raising a bubble of laughter, only to puncture it as you ponder the further meaning: “Is man God’s mistake, or is God man’s mistake?” “Man does not strive for happiness; only the Englishman does that” – a dig at Jeremy Bentham and John Stuart Mill. “Possession usually diminishes the possession.” “Never trust a thought that occurs to you indoors.” He even makes fun of his readers: “The worst readers are those who behave like plundering troops: they take away a few things they can use, dirty and confound the remainder, and revile the whole.” Vittu miten säälittäviä on yrityxet osoittaa että jyrkät tyypit olis jotenkin humoristisia. Ei ne vaan ole.
    ellauri145.html on line 519: His sister Elisabeth held fascist views. She published an unreliable biography of him and delayed publication of his autobiography, Ecce Homo, until she had deleted all the uncomplimentary references to herself.
    ellauri145.html on line 535: Intellectuals very often have an image the same way rock stars and movie directors do. There’s the real person, and there’s the body of work they create, and then there’s the image, the popular conception of that person. Most people don’t understand theoretical physics and are not interested in learning the math to do so, and most people probably wouldn’t understand anything in the papers that Hawking has authored or co-authored. But most of us know who Hawking was, not only because he wrote popular books but because he was paralyzed and sat in a wheelchair and had a robot voice. The idea of a theoretical physicist who does all his work with his brain even though his body is destroyed and speaks through a machine is almost like a comic book character, and the popular imagination loves that.
    ellauri145.html on line 537: Nietzsche’s image, through no more fault of his own than Hawking´s (LOL), has grown in a similar way to that of Hawking. We all have a vague notion of what the Ubermensch is, we’ve all heard “God is dead,” and we all know Nietzsche was a crazy philosopher with a giant mustache who wrote really hard books and scared his contemporaries and was apparently a favorite of the Nazis. There are little quips and quotes from him around the internet that sound awfully cryptic and enigmatic. And the publishing industry plays on this image, too: I have a copy of Beyond Good And Evil with a black cover and the title text printed in red and white, and the color scheme looks a little sinister. I strongly suspect that, if Nietzsche did not have a popular image as a crazy nihilist Nazi Ubermensch from the 1800s, the publisher would not have made the decision to print his books with a black and red color scheme. A cursory look at Amazon’s book listing also shows copies of Thus Spake Zarathustra with a picture of a panther’s eyes on the cover, glowering at the reader. Because… “Nietzsche was that crazy German writer or philosopher or whatever, right? And he was, like, an anarchist or nihilist or Nazi or something, right? Didn’t he kill God or something like that? Yeah.”
    ellauri145.html on line 539: What rebellious teenager could resist this kind of thing? You’ve got your long hair, your leather jacket, your Slayer albums and your combat boots. You’ve got a guitar you can almost play. What completes that ensemble better than a copy of “The Antichrist,” placed conspicuously on your book stand? It’ll scare your parents if they’re religious, it’ll freak out your friends, and maybe you can find a sentence that sounds profound and memorize it so you can win some points for being deep. Get an inch or two deeper between her legs.
    ellauri145.html on line 707: Durtal admires the documentation of Naturalism, yet wants to open it to the supernatural, to an exploration of both body and spirit: it will be a kind of “naturalisme spiritualiste” that will follow Zola’s route, but in the air.6 This tension between realism and the supernatural lies at the heart of Là-bas, a novel in which Huysmans follows Durtal’s spiritual transformation as he researches medieval and modern Satanism. Là-bas was a scandalous best-seller. It inspired a great deal of public debate, especially since it was published in the same review and at the same time as Jules Huret’s first Enquête sur l’évolution littéraire, a series of sixty-four interviews conducted with major French authors from March 3 to July 5, 1891.7 This series, which asked its interviewees whether Naturalism was dead, was a phenomenal success read by all of Paris.8 Huret caused every non-Naturalist writer to agree that Zola’s brand of Naturalism was obsolete because it neglected humanity’s soul.
    ellauri145.html on line 725: His mother Marie-Angélique-Aspasie Puyo, 19 years old at the time of his birth, belonged to one of the most prominent families of the local bourgeoisie. His father was Antoine-Édouard Corbière, known for his best-selling novel Le Négrier. A cousin, Constant Puyo, was a well-known Pictorialist photographer.
    ellauri145.html on line 772: S´il faut payer – paye – Et fais tête Jos on maxettava - maxa - älä ota
    ellauri145.html on line 817: Soyez doux ; pardonnez. Vos pardons, Dieu les compte.
    ellauri145.html on line 883: Je fuirais les joyeux dîners ; Välttelisin iloisia illazuja;
    ellauri145.html on line 949: Voyez : je suis juif. Lisez bien. Näin : olen juutalainen. Lukekaapa.
    ellauri145.html on line 1019: Loin des yeux du gardien sévère ; Huomaamatta synkän vartijan;
    ellauri145.html on line 1059: yer-and-parody-in-rimbauds-dévotion-3">This paper offers a detailed reading of Rimbaud´ s "obscure" prose pom "Dévotion" from the Illuminations. The reading is based on the central principle that the text is modelled on the form of devotional prayer, a model that Rimbaud adopts only to parody it and transgress against it. Kaikki lukijat on yhtä mieltä että tää on Rimbaudin sepustuxista sekopäisin. Vaik kyllä se aina varoo olemasta selväsanainen, se on epädekadenttia. R. is extremely fond of mystifying his readers.
    ellauri145.html on line 1119: Vitalie Rimbaud vers l’âge de quinze ans avait la peau claire, les cheveux châtain foncé et les yeux bleus de son frère Arthur. Vitalie meurt le 18 décembre 1875, à l´âge de dix-sept ans passés, d’une synovite tuberculeuse, dite tuberculose des articulations. Arthur Rimbaud assiste à son enterrement le crâne rasé4, en signe de deuil5.
    ellauri145.html on line 1132: Pour subsister, Alphonse Allais s´essaye d´abord à la photographie, sur les traces de son ami Charles Cros, mais ne connaît pas le succès. Il décide alors de s´essayer au métier de journaliste, publiant des chroniques loufoques dans diverses revues parisiennes. Avec ses amis du Quartier latin, il fait aussi partie de plusieurs groupes fantaisistes comme « les Fumistes, « les Hydropathes » ou « les Hirsutes ».
    ellauri145.html on line 1160: Born into a farming family of La Sauvagère, Brisset was an autodidact. Having left school at age twelve to help on the family farm, he apprenticed as a pastry chef in Paris three years later. In 1855, he enlisted in the army for seven years and fought in the Crimean War. In 1859, during the war in Italy against the Austrians. After he was wounded at the Battle of Magenta, he was taken prisoner. During the Franco-Prussian War, he was a second lieutenant in the 50e régiment d´infanterie de ligne. Taken prisoner again, he was sent to Magdeburg in Saxony where he learned German.
    ellauri146.html on line 50: Auch die Versuche, in Detmold eine Stellung als Jurist zu finden, waren zunächst erfolglos, erst 1826 übernahm er die unbezahlte Vertretung eines erkrankten Auditeurs, dessen besoldeter Nachfolger er 1828 wurde. 1829 erfolgte in Detmold mit Don seinen Freunden Heinrich Heine, Ludwig Tieck, Don Juan und Faust die einzige Aufführung eines seiner Dramen zu Lebzeiten. Ab 1831 verschlechterte sich der Gesundheitszustand Grabbes zusehends, die Folgen seines Alkoholismus wurden sichtbar (eine für Grabbes Alkoholkonsum charakteristische Episode aus dem Herbst 1828 wird von Georg Fein geschildert). Eine Verlobung mit Henriette Meyer wurde von dieser gelöst, als sich Grabbe wieder Louise Christiane Clostermeier zuwandte, die ihn bereits einmal abgewiesen hatte. Grabbe oli aika lailla persujen ex-puheenjohtajan näköinen.
    ellauri146.html on line 148: Gottschall was also a noted chess player. Obwohl er Funktionär des Schachsports und regelmäßiger Besucher der Augustea war, spielte er zeitlebens bei keinem einzigen Schachturnier. Viisasteli takapiruna kuin K. Koskenniemi.
    ellauri146.html on line 176: LE MAITRE D'ÉCOLE, assis à la fenêtre. Le Diable l'emporte. Le drôle nous arrive si tard dans la nuit pour nous aider à avaler le punch. C'est le maudit auteur, ou, comme on devrait proprement le nommer, le minuscule auteur, l'auteur de la pièce. Il est bête comme un sabot de vache, bave sur tous les écrivains et n'est bon lui-même à rien, a une jambe de travers, des yeux louches et une insipide face de singe. Fermez-lui la porte au nez, Monsieur le Baron, fermez-lui la porte.
    ellauri146.html on line 188:
    yellow">
    ellauri146.html on line 365: Eloa comes from the throne of God, and proclaims that now the Redeemer is led to death, on which the angels of the earth form a circle round Mount Calvary, also nam'd Golgotha. Then, having consecrated that hill, he worships the Messiah. Gabriel conducts the souls of the fathers from the sun to the Mount for olives, and Adam addresses the earth. Satan and Adramelech, hovering in triumph, are put to flight by Eloa. Jesus is nail'd to the cross. The thoughts of Adam. The conversion of one of the malefactors. Uriel places a planet before the sun, and then conducts to the earth the souls of all the future generations of mankind. Eve, seeing them coming, addresses them. Eloa ascends to Heaven. Eve is affected at seeing Mary. Two angels of death fly round the cross. Eve addresses the Saviour, and the souls of the children yet unborn. Claptrap does a lot of addressing in the epos. Hope the letters reach the sender, unlike Elvis's:
    ellauri146.html on line 445: Ses grands yeux, entr’ouverts comme s’ouvre l’amande, Hiänen isot silmät viiruna kuin mantelit
    ellauri146.html on line 479: Il ira dans la ville, et, là, les vierges folles Se tulee stadiin missä hullut neizyet
    ellauri146.html on line 486: Quand ses yeux sont en pleurs, il lui faut un baiser. Kun sen silmät vettyy, se kaipaa pusua.
    ellauri146.html on line 500: « Rehausse mieux que l’or, aux yeux de ses pareilles, On näyttävämpi trofee kuin kultakoru,
    ellauri146.html on line 521: Qui n’ont pu me cacher la rage de ses yeux ; Jotka ei ole kätkeneet sen raivoa;
    ellauri146.html on line 538: Interdire à ses yeux de voir ou de pleurer, Kieltää silmiään näkemästä, itkemässä,
    ellauri146.html on line 539: C’est trop ! Dieu, s’il le veut, peut balayer ma cendre. Se on jo vähän liikaa! Luoja luutikoon halutessaan tuhkani.
    ellauri146.html on line 546: Attachèrent ses mains et brûlèrent ses yeux, Sitoo sen käet ja polttaa siltä simmut,
    ellauri146.html on line 551: Et deux fois, en tournant, recula sur sa base Ja 2x pierasee, kääntyen kannoillaan
    ellauri146.html on line 564: Suivie d’un œil hagard les yeux tachés de sang Seuraavat verestävät silmät
    ellauri146.html on line 648: But it is dangerous to attempt to separate any historical figure from his setting. No individual can ever be understood fully until the subtle influences of his formal education, his reading, his associates, and his time and country (with his heredity) are traced and synthesized. Too much has been said, perhaps, about Poe’s “detachment” from his environment and too little about his background—his heritage from Europe and the influences of his early life in Virginia. Elizabeth Arnold, Poe’s mother, was born in England in 1787 and was brought to this country when she was a girl of nine. “In speaking of my mother,” Poe wrote years later to Beverley Tucker of Virginia, “you have touched a string to which my heart fully responds.” Judging from his spirited defense of Elizabeth Poe, it appears that Poe never became unmindful of his immediate English origins on the maternal side.
    ellauri146.html on line 654: Poe, unlike other great American writers of his time, spent a considerable portion of his childhood in Britain. In 1815, John Allan set out for England, accompanied by his wife, Frances Allan; his sister-in-law, “Aunt Nancy” Valentine; and his six-year-old foster son, Edgar Poe. For a time Edgar attended the small London school of Miss Dubourg (a name which subsequently was to appear in “The Murders in the Rue Morgue”) and later, for a period of three years from 1817 to 1820, was sent to a better school, the Manor House at Stoke Newington near London. Here Poe, in addition to being affected profoundly by the atmosphere of England, studied French, Latin, history and literature. The Manor House School, with its “Dr.” Bransby, Poe later was to transplant bodily to the semi-autobiographical tale “William Wilson” (1840).
    ellauri146.html on line 656: Poe saw a good deal of Scotland, too, on first arriving in Britain and may have attended school in Irvine for a time. It would be difficult to estimate the impact of these formative years in Britain upon the youthful Poe.
    ellauri146.html on line 658: Poe’s foster father, John Allan, was himself born and bred in Irvine, Ayrshire, and was a member of the class of English and Scottish merchants of Richmond, Virginia-to which city he had emigrated as a youth around 1795. Scottish merchants represented a very considerable element in the commercial life of Richmond in those years, and many of them, to a considerable extent, maintained themselves aloof from the life of the city. The Scottish influences of Allan and his associates and friends could not have been lost upon Poe.
    ellauri146.html on line 674: The success of Poe in translation indicates his possession of a universal point of view. The recognition which he has received in France, Russia, Italy, Germany, Spain and Britain has no parallel among other American writers. Poe has become a world-author, and this fact depends very largely upon the universality of his appeal. “Poe is my spiritual and literary father,” asserted the Spaniard Vicente Blasco Ibanez. Baudelaire prayed to Poe as a literary saint. The Germans regard him as the foremost American writer. The Russians began translating him in the 1830s even before he was known in America.
    ellauri146.html on line 690: Indeed, Poe seems much more the Southerner than the Yankee American, and it is not hard to guess which path he would have chosen had he lived into the 1860’s. One may be very sure that Edgar Poe, though born, almost by accident, in Boston, would have proved one of the Confederacy’s most eloquent and committed partisans. In reviewing the various factors which we may believe shaped Poe’s youthful mind, we would expect to find in Poe, and in re-examining his opinions we do find, a cosmopolitan rather than a parochial outlook. And yet, at the same time, we know Poe was serious when he proclaimed, “I am a Virginian!” We may be justified in looking upon the general influences of his formative years as contributing factors in the development of strong inclinations to Europe, Britain and the American South, rather than to the American Union.
    ellauri146.html on line 715: It was my thirtieth year to heaven Se oli mun 30. vuosi taivasmatkalla
    ellauri146.html on line 790: On this high hill in a year's turning. Tällä korkealla mäellä vuoden päästä.
    ellauri146.html on line 868: In March 2014 Lenin Square in Dnipropetrovsk was renamed "Heroes of Maidan Square" in honor of the people killed during Euromaidan and the statue of Lenin was removed. Two years later, in May 2016, the city was renamed Dnipro. In February 2019, it was announced that the oblast of Dnipropetrovsk would be renamed to "Sicheslav" in the future.
    ellauri147.html on line 77: Tuhat laulujen vuotta (‘A thousand years of song’, 1957) contained 225 poems by western poets. Meillä on toi Tyynnin 1000 laulujen vuotta, mää oon sen lukenutkin. Aika kehnojakin runoja on Aake sinne kelpuuttanut. Ei niitä sentään ole tuhatta. Hahaa, mulla on paasauxia jo yli 2000. Enemmän kuin jopa Immi Hellénillä. Pääsimpäs edelle vaikka konehella veisattiin, sano eukko kirkossa. Nojoo, toisto tyylikeinona, mulla on tää Erkki Tantun läppä jo monta kertaa jossakin.
    ellauri147.html on line 79: Ale Tyynni was born in Ingria to the east of Finland and moved as a child with her family to Helsinki in 1919. She graduated with a Master’s degree in 1936, with Finnish literature as her main subject. During her university years Tyynni practised poetry recitation and dramatic expression. She was particularly interested in poetic diction and the topic of her final work was Sappho’s metre in Finnish poetry.
    ellauri147.html on line 83: Having completed her university studies, Tyynni took up the teaching of Finnish in evening classes, but the urge to write proved stronger than the duty to teach. Her first poetry collection, Kynttilänsydän (‘Candlewick’), was published in 1938. Two years later she published a second collection Vesilintu (‘waterfowl’). With the outbreak of war, her poetry changed: Lähde ja matkamies (’The spring and the traveller’), Lehtimaja (‘The arbour’) and Soiva metsä (‘The ringing forest’) all reflected the defensive spirit of the country. Tyynni also depicted womanhood, the experiences of women in childbirth and motherhood. Later feminist research in particular has praised Tyynni as a pioneer for her lyrics dealing with childbirth.
    ellauri147.html on line 201: On September 5, 2018, it was announced that Paramount Network had given the production a series order for a first season consisting of 10 episodes. The series was created by Barren Star, who has a multimillion overall deal with ViacomCBS and develops for ViacomCBS and for outsider buyers via MTV Entertainment Studios. Star was also expected to serve as an executive producer alongside Tony Hernandez. Production companies involved with the series were slated to consist of Jax Media. On July 13, 2020, it was reported that the series would move from Paramount Network to Netflix. On November 11, 2020, Netflix renewed the series for a second season.
    ellauri147.html on line 205: Despite struggling to fit in with French office culture Emily convinces her boss, Sylvie, to invite her to a work party where she accidentally irritates Sylvie by conversing with Antoine Lambert, a client who turns out to be Sylvie's married lover. As punishment she is put to work marketing Vaga-Jeune, a lubricant for menopausal women. Annoyed with the gendered nature of the French language Emily writes a post about the product that goes viral causing her to make further inroads at work.
    ellauri147.html on line 207: Emily's boyfriend tells her that she should return to Chicago, since he struggles with a long distance relationship, and he does not want to visit Paris, despite a pre-planned trip. She declines returning to Chicago and breaks off the relationship without so much as beg your leave. She turns to Mindy for emotional support. Mindy's slanty eyes have most likely been operated on.
    ellauri147.html on line 226: by the pool where she is joined by Timothée. They drink champagne and accidentally have sex. At breakfast, she learns that Timothée is not the brother Camille was referring to, instead, it was her younger, 17-year-old brother. Emily meets Théo, Camille´s older and more age appropriate brother and has sex with him. It is not half as good.
    ellauri147.html on line 234: Emily´s co-workers inform her that in France it can be a long, arduous process to fire an employee, unlike at home in the good old U of S. To realize his dream of opening his own restaurant, Gabriel decides to move Emily back to Normandy. The next day Emily is called by Mathieu about the situation and tells her that Pierre has requested to see her. Sylvie overhears this and goes with Emily to see Pierre. At the atelier, they see a dress from Pierre´s new collection.
    ellauri147.html on line 236: Pierre orders Mathieu to find him a new venue. Mindy agrees to emcee and sing at a drag bar two nights a week, but when she tells her employers, they fire her so she moves in with Emily. In need of a venue to launch his fashion show, Pierre hijacks the outside of his former venue to show his new look dress collection which the audience loves and makes him the toad of Fashion Week. To celebrate, Emily hosts a dinner at Gabriel´s restaurant for Mathieu and Pierre. The 3 mousketeers take turns at Mr. Collins´s back door.
    ellauri147.html on line 249: Nevertheless, not all critics were this kind to the Emily character. Emma Gray from HuffPost called Emily a bland character, stating "The show doesn´t even make an effort to quirk her up or give her a more relatable, girl-next-door roughness: she´s always immaculately coiffed and made-up, and garbed in effortfully eye-catching outfits. But there´s not much to the character, except for enormous amounts of self-confidence and the inexplicable ability to attract new friends and love interests on every street corner." Rebecca Nicholson of The Guardian gave the series one out of five stars: "if it is an attempt to fluff up the romcom for the streaming age, then it falls over on its six-inch heels." Rachel Handler opined "Darren Star has done it yet again: centered an entire show on a thin, gently delusional white woman whimsically exploring a major metropolitan area in wildly expensive couture purchased on a mid-level salary."
    ellauri147.html on line 279: Phil Collins on maailman 2. rikkain rumpali Ringo Starrin jälkeen, ja 1. tyhmin. Jönsin ikäinen keppikuntoinen hyvinkin sairas pullottelija, jolta en kyllä muista ensimmäistäkään biisiä.Se soitti aluxi yhtyeessä nimeltä 1. Moos. Sen ykkös kpl on Something in The Air, muttei kuitenkaan kai se Fandango. Se taisi olla Abba-silliä. Joo ei tää Phil on aika takatukkamusaa, samaa mitä Rampe ja Naukkis soittaa K-kaupan perällä sähköpianolla.
    ellauri147.html on line 284: Andrea Bertorelli’s tumultuous relationship with Phil Collins began back when they were just 11 years old. Long before he became a rock star, Collins was a child actor, starring in Oliver!, the West End musical.
    ellauri147.html on line 304: Lily Jane Collins was born on 18 March 1989 in Guildford, Surrey, the daughter of English musician Phil Collins and his second wife, Jill Tavelman, an American who is the former president of the Beverly Hills Women´s Club. Her maternal grandfather was a Canadian Jewish immigrant who for many years owned a men´s clothing store in Beverly Hills, California.
    ellauri147.html on line 311: She met the love of her life, Phil Collins, in 1980. The couple exchanged the wedding vows on August 4, 1984. Five years after their marriage, the husband and wife were blessed with a girl child. Blessé par une bébé. They named their daughter Lily Collins. Jos ukki Telemannilta olisi kysytty, sen nimi olis Sharon.
    ellauri147.html on line 314: Jill and her husband lived happily ever after in married life about 7 years until their divorce in 1996.
    ellauri147.html on line 350: Although he was anxious about introducing Orianne to his daughter, all was well after Collins told six-year-old Lily that Orianne looked just like Princess Jasmine from Disney’s Aladdin. The couple tied the knot in 1999, but it also didn’t stand the test of time…
    ellauri147.html on line 364: For the following decade, Phil Collins struggled to get back onto the drums after dislocating the vertebrae in his neck. He also suffered nerve issues which prevented him from gripping the sticks properly. A few years later, Collins announced that he had been suffering from “drop foot,” a condition that makes walking very difficult.
    ellauri147.html on line 412: Lily made her first T.V. appearance at the age of 2 years old. She was seen in a British series called Menstrual Pains.
    ellauri147.html on line 426: Yes, many Jewish women have felt the curse of the eyebrow. Must be in the genes. That being said, perhaps you should embrace them? Look at Lily Collins! (Yes, we know, she is only a quarter Jewish: dad Phil clearly isn´t.) She OWNS those eyebrows. Those eyebrows are her calling card. You think she is getting Hollywood roles without those eyebrows? (Alright, dad Phil clearly helps.)
    ellauri147.html on line 436: After Lily’s parent’s divorce, she relocated to the US, when she was five years old, with her mother.
    ellauri147.html on line 442: Her trademark, the eyebrows have their own Twitter account. Lily has no clue about the owner of the account.
    ellauri147.html on line 562:
    Martina L.T. Meyer (Korrektur: Martin Altmeyer)

    ellauri147.html on line 572:
    ellauri147.html on line 613:

    Martin Altmeyer saarnaa Bambergissa ilman dioja


    ellauri147.html on line 630:
    yellow">Kohdesuhdeteoria (engl. object relations theory), joskus myös kohdesuhteiden teoria, korostaa tarpeentyydytyksen (klassisen psykoanalyysin viettien) asemasta (ihmis)suhteita. Kohdesuhdeteoria kehittyi brittiläisen psykoanalyysin piirissä (Melanie Klein, Donald W. Winnicott); käsitteen muotoili psykoanalyytikko Ronald Fairbairn vuonna 1952. Kohdesuhdeteorian keskeisenä kysymyksenä on se, kuinka aikaisemmat kokemukset merkityksellisten ihmisten kanssa ovat edustettuina minän, toisten, sekä minän ja toisten välisten suhteiden piirteinä. Et niinkö jotain tollasta sosiaalista epäonnistumista, ennenkaikkea vanhempien syyllistämistä, ei vaan Freudin solipsismia. Kohde (oikeammin olio)- ja relaatiotietokannoista puhuttiin myös käpistelytieteessä. Edelliset ovat hierarkkisia, jälkimmäiset tasapäisiä.

    ellauri147.html on line 682: Siksi olen ehdottanut (Altmeyer 2000 a,b) ensisijaisen narsismin ja ensisijaisen kohdesuhteen näennäisesti ontologisen kontrastin poistamista ymmärtämällä se epistemologisena erona: Se, mikä tekee vaikutelman ulkopuolisen tarkkailijan näkökulmasta taitavasta vuorovaikutuksesta, voidaan empaattisesti ymmärtää varhaisena itsekokemuksena, joka tietää esineestä jo ajattelematta sitä. Bollas (1997) tunnisti varhaisen kohteen "varjon" tässä "ennakoimattomassa tunnetussa" ja aisti siten primaarisen narsismin objektiivisen saastumisen. Vaikka äidin tissillä niin sanotussa primaarisen narsismin vaiheessa on eksistentiaalinen, elintärkeä merkitys ehdottoman riippuvaiselle lapselle, häntä ei voida subjektiivisesti kokea itsenäisenä esineenä. Kohde on suljettu ensisijaisen narsismin kokemuksen maailmaan.
    ellauri147.html on line 684:
    ellauri147.html on line 857: Hot or Not was preceded by the rating sites, like RateMyFace, which was registered a year earlier in the summer of 1999, and AmIHot.com, which was registered in January 2000 by MIT freshman Daniel Roy. Regardless, despite any head starts of its predecessors, Hot or Not quickly became the most popular. Since AmIHotOrNot.com's launch, the concept has spawned many imitators. The concept always remained the same, but the subject matter varied greatly. The concept has also been integrated with a wide variety of dating and matchmaking systems. In 2007 BecauseImHot.com launched and deleted anyone with a rating below 7 after a voting audit or the first 50 votes (whichever is first).
    ellauri147.html on line 868: A University of Toronto student found that the facial proportions of celebrities including Jessica Alba were close to the average of all female profiles. That the preference for the average is biological rather than cultural has been supported by studies on babies, who gaze longer at attractive faces than at unattractive ones. People generally find youthful average faces sexually the most attractive. prototypes are preferred to individual exemplars of the stimuli categories. Thus an average face is probably attractive simply because it is prototypical. An averaged face made of 32 faces looks almost indistinguishable from any other 32-face averaged face even when they are created from a completely different set of individuals. Left-right symmetry is not the issue, presumably because neither are the viewers´ eyes.
    ellauri150.html on line 74: Turun yliopiston tohtorikoulutettava ja aktivisti Hai Nguyen sanoo, että ohjelman isoin ongelma oli se, miten rasismia siinä käsitettiin.
    ellauri150.html on line 75: ”Jakso oli historiaton ja vailla kontekstia”, Nguyen sanoo.
    ellauri150.html on line 77: Hai Nguyen

    ellauri150.html on line 78: Hai Nguyen KUVA: TURUN YLIOPISTO
    ellauri150.html on line 97: Ajatusta siitä, että ihonväristä tai rodullistamisesta ei haluta puhua, kutsutaan värisokeaksi rasismiksi (eng. colorblind racism), Hai Nguyen kertoo.
    ellauri150.html on line 101: ”Värisokeassa rasismikäsityksessä rasismi nähdään yksilöiden välisenä ongelmana, ei niinkään yhteiskunnan ongelmana”, Nguyen sanoo. Kaikki aloittavat muumitalon rappusilta, loppupeleissä on kaikki sitten seppoilusta kiinni. Kelle nalli napsahtaa ja kekä löytää muumitalon avaimen.
    ellauri150.html on line 103: Marja Sannikka –jakson jälkeen Nguyen kirjoitti valokuvaaja-aktivisti Aisha Benahmedin kanssa kansalaisjärjestö Fem-R:n sivuille blogikirjoituksen, jossa oikaistiin jaksossa esiintyneitä käsityksiä ja käsiteltiin muun muassa värisokeaa rasismia. Termiä on käsitellyt muun muassa amerikkalainen sosiologi Eduardo Bonilla-Silva vuonna 2010 julkaistussa Racism without racist –teoksessaan.
    ellauri150.html on line 107: ”Se on jalo tavoite, mutta se ei toteudu millään tavalla. Meritokratia piilottaa sen, että ihmisiä kohdellaan aktiivisesti eri tavoin esimerkiksi heidän nimensä, vanhempien syntyperän, ihonvärin tai uskonnon perusteella”, Nguyen sanoo.
    ellauri150.html on line 128: ”Se, että nyt puhutaan kasvavassa määrin rodullisuudesta ja sen tuottamista merkityseroista, tuo esiin sen miten meitä kohdellaan”, Nguyen sanoo.
    ellauri150.html on line 134: Ajatus siitä, ettei ihonväristä tai rodusta olisi soveliasta puhua näkyy Nguyen ja Keskisen mukaan myös siinä, millaista tutkimusta Suomessa tehdään. Ei-valkoisia ihmisiä ei tilastoida Suomessa muuten kuin äidinkielen perusteella tai maahanmuuttajuudella.
    ellauri150.html on line 157: Kaikilla on valtaa ja etuoikeuksia, jotka näkyvät eri tilanteissa eri tavoilla, Nguyen sanoo ja antaa esimerkin: Sambiasta tulleella arvostetulla tutkijalla on asiantuntijavaltaa omalla alallaan. Samaan aikaan tämän ihmisen valta pienenee sellaisessa tilanteessa, jos hän kävelee kadulla ja poliisi pysäyttää kysyäkseen papereita. Musta ylikomisario britti poliisisarjasssa ei saanut traktorinomistajaa peruuttamaan kuin panemalla päälle poliisinvalot autosta.
    ellauri150.html on line 163: ”Ongelmana ei ole kuitenkaan rasismin määritelmän muuttuminen tai laajentuminen, vaan ennen marginaaliin sysätyt ihmiset, jotka ovat saaneet valtaa ja näkyvyyttä”, Nguyen sanoo.
    ellauri150.html on line 229: – Eikä sukupuolinen tasa-arvo edisty sillä, että heterot eivät enää saa näytellä homoja elokuvissa, tai että aina muistetaan käyttää vain ja yksinomaan poliittisesti täysin korrektia nimitystä – tällä haavaa LGBTQ+, kohta ehkä vieläkin monikirjaimisempi. Kyllä nimitys lepakko-homo-kaxineuvoinen-transu-vinokas on paljon lyhyempi ja selvempi. Ja suomalaisempi. Vielä lyhempi on "epänormaali".
    ellauri150.html on line 263: Elle avait dix-huit ans, des yeux noirs veloutés, qu’elle faisait doux aux jeunes gens, des prunelles d’Espagnole, qui remplissaient tout l’orbite de leur humide éclat, un petit nez un peu long et fantasque, qu’elle fronçait et remuait légèrement en parlant, avec des moues mutines, les cheveux désordonnés, un minois chiffonné, la peau médiocre, frottée de poudre, les traits gros, un peu gonflés, l’air d’un petit chat bouffi.
    ellauri150.html on line 269: à table, battant des mains, quand il y avait un plat qu’elle aimait ; au salon, grillant des cigarettes, affectant, devant les hommes, une affection exubérante pour ses amies, se jetant à leur cou, leur caressant la main, leur chuchotant à l’oreille, disant des ingénuités, disant aussi des méchancetés, admirablement, d’une voix douce et frêle, qui savait même, à l’occasion, dire des choses très lestes, sans avoir l’air d’y toucher, qui savait encore mieux en faire dire, — l’air candide d’une petite fille bien sage, les yeux brillants, aux paupières lourdes, voluptueux et sournois, qui regardaient de côté, malignement, guettant tous les potins, happant toutes les polissonneries de la conversation, et tâchant de pêcher çà et là quelque cœur à la ligne.
    ellauri150.html on line 271: Toutes ces singeries, ces parades de petit chien, cette ingénuité frelatée, ne plaisaient à Christophe en aucune façon. Il avait autre chose à faire qu’à se prêter aux manèges d’une petite fille rouée, ou même qu’à les considérer, d’un œil amusé. Il avait à gagner son pain, à sauver de la mort sa vie et ses pensées. Le seul intérêt pour lui de ces perruches de salon était de lui en fournir les moyens. En échange de leur argent, il leur donnait ses leçons, en conscience, le front plissé, l’esprit tendu vers la tâche, afin de ne se laisser distraire ni par l’ennui qu’elle lui causait, ni par les agaceries de ses élèves, quand elles étaient aussi coquettes que Colette Stevens. Il ne faisait guère plus d’attention à elle qu’à la petite cousine de Colette, une enfant de douze ans, silencieuse et timide, que les Stevens avaient prise chez eux, et à qui Christophe enseignait aussi le piano.
    ellauri150.html on line 279: Dans le salon de l’hôtel aristocratique, décoré de tapisseries un peu pâles, avec, sur un chevalet, au milieu de la pièce, le portrait de la robuste madame Stevens par un peintre à la mode, qui l’avait représentée languissante, comme une fleur sans eau, les yeux mourants, le corps tordu en spirale, pour exprimer la rareté de son âme millionnaire, — dans le grand salon aux baies vitrées, donnant sur de vieux arbres, que la neige poudrait, Christophe trouvait Colette toujours assise devant son piano, ressassant indéfiniment les mêmes phrases, se caressant les oreilles de dissonances moelleuses.
    ellauri150.html on line 444: Suurimman inspiraationsa teos oli tosin saanut alun perin tapauksesta toisen maailmansodan aikana, jossa Yhdysvaltain armeijan sotilaskarkurit pahoinpitelivät ja raiskasivat Hesburgerin vaimon Lynnen ja aiheuttivat keskenmenon. Lynnestä tuli pulzari. Kun se kuoli, Hesburgerillä oli jo toinen hoito valmiina. Kirja oli kirjoitettu eräänlaisena vapaan tahdon ja moraalin tutkimuksena, jossa nuori antisankari Alex, joka vangitaan lyhyeksi jääneen väkivallan ja sekasorron uran jälkeen, käy läpi vastenmielisyyden terapian hillitäkseen väkivaltaisia taipumuksiaan, mikä johtaa lopulta siihen, että hänestä tulee puolustuskyvytön muita ihmisiä vastaan ja hän ei pysty nauttimaan lempimusiikistaan, joka väkivallan lisäksi oli ollut hänelle kovaa nautintoa. Hesburger sai ketjureaktion Debussyn Faunin iltapäivästä. Sehän on se Mallarmén runo jonka alkupään mä suomensin. Se halus pianistixi muttei piässyt. Tietokirjassa Flame into Being (1985) Burgess kuvaili Kellopeliappelsiini -kirjaa hänen "jeu d'espritiksi (“pelin henki" ??? paskanmarjat typeryxet, pikemminkin Gedankenspiel, ajatusleikki), joka toteutettiin kolmessa viikossa, ja joka tuli tunnetuksi lähdemateriaalina elokuvalle, joka näytti ylistävän seksiä ja väkivaltaa," viitaten Stanley Kubrickin vuonna 1971 ohjaamaan samannimiseen elokuvasovitukseen. Hän lisäsi:
    ellauri150.html on line 448: Kubrick's film is relatively faithful to the Burgess novel, omitting only the final, positive chapter, in which Alex matures and outgrows sociopathy. Sehän on tiettävästi lähestulkoon mahdotonta. In the novel, Alex drugs and rapes two 10-year-old girls. In the film, the girls are young adults who seem to have consensual, playful sex with him, with no suggestion of using any drugs and without any violence. The film portrays Dr. Branom as female, despite being described as male in the novel. Kubrick oli lälläri.
    ellauri150.html on line 465: During a naval battle against Greek rebels in the Ionian Sea, Ben-Hur´s galley is boarded but collides with another ship and is destroyed as Ben-Hur manages to cling to a floating mast. He is washed ashore and is found by Sheik Ilderim, who recognizes him as an escaped slave.
    ellauri150.html on line 478: Arthur Hammond Harris aka Christopher Fry (18 December 1907 – 30 June 2005) was an English poet and playwright. He is best known for his verse dramas, especially The Lady's Not for Burning, which made him a major force in theatre in the 1940s and 1950s. Fry was born as Arthur Hammond Harris in Bristol, the son of Charles John Harris, a master builder who retired early to work full-time as a licensed Lay Reader in the Church of England, and his wife Emma Marguerite Fry Hammond Harris. While still young, he took his mother's maiden name because, on very tenuous grounds, he believed her to be related to the 19th-century Quaker prison reformer Elizabeth Fry. He adopted Elizabeth Fry's faith, and became a Quaker and a gay. In the 1920s, he met the writer Robert Gittings, who became a lifelong friend. Maybe William Wyler was another yet longer friend. Gore Vidal most certainly another.
    ellauri150.html on line 482: Over the 57 years that have followed, a few things have contributed to granting the film untouchable status, the foremost being the fact that it won 11 Academy Awards, still the most Oscars any film has ever won. (That total was later matched by Titanic and Lord of the Rings: The Return of the King.) But while the Oscars, the prestige, and the fact that the plot of the film deals directly (if obliquely) with the life and death of Jesus Christ, all contribute to a certain image of Ben-Hur, there have always been alternate views of the film. One of the most famous came from the mouth of one of its own screenwriters.
    ellauri150.html on line 537: Esther bat Simonides was a Judean freedwoman and the wife of Prince Judah Ben-Hur during the 1st century AD. She played a major role in her husband's conversion to Christianity after teaching him of Jesus' message, having personally witnessed his Sermon on the Mount.
    ellauri150.html on line 539: Esther "Bat" Simonides was born in Jerusalem, Judea, the daughter of the Hellenized Jewish slave Simonides. She was raised in the household of Prince Ithamar Ben-Hur, and she loved Judah Ben-Hur as a child. By 26 AD, she had grown into a woman, and, while she still loved Judah, she was betrothed to the freedman and merchant David ben Matthias from Antioch. That same year, Judah and his family were imprisoned after being wrongfully imprisoned for an alleged assassination attempt on Valerius Gratus, and Simonides was arrested and tortured on the orders of the Roman tribune Messala. Simonides was arrested when the Romans were certain that he was not hiding anything, and he and Esther lived in hiding at the Ben-Hur family's derelict and looted estate, where they were joined by Simonides' fellow former prisoner Malluch.
    ellauri150.html on line 543: Within five years of the crucifixion, Judah and Esther married and had children, and Judah and a recovered Simonides spent much of their fortunes on supporting the Christian Church in Antioch. In 64 AD, Judah, Esther, and Malluch went to Rome to help finance the construction of an underground train which would live on for centuries in the Catacombs of Callixtus.
    ellauri150.html on line 549: The faithful servant had at last his fitting reward. His broken body might never be restored; nor was there riddance of the recollection of his sufferings, or recall of the years embittered by them; but suddenly a new life was shown him, with assurance that it was for him—a new life lying just beyond this one—and its name was Paradise. There he would find the Kingdom of which he had been dreaming, and the King. A perfect peace fell upon him. Lokki parka. Poor albatross. Ammuin nuolen ilmoihin ja albatrossia haavoitin.
    ellauri150.html on line 563: The two gazed at each other. We know what Esther presented—a beautiful woman, a happy mother, a contented wife. On the other side, it was very plain that fortune had not dealt so gently with her former rival. The tall figure remained with some of its grace; but an evil life had tainted the whole person. The face was coarse; the large eyes were red and pursed beneath the lower lids; there was no color in her cheeks, no makeup. The lips were cynical and hard, and general neglect was leading rapidly to premature old age. Her attire was ill chosen and draggled. The mud of the road clung to her sandals. Iras broke the painful silence.

    ellauri150.html on line 570: Tears arose in Esther’s eyes, and she was about to speak.

    ellauri150.html on line 577: The countenance of the Egyptian softened; something like a smile played about her lips. She looked at the children upon the floor.

    ellauri150.html on line 579: Esther followed her eyes, and with quick perception answered, "It is yours."

    ellauri150.html on line 582: Ben-Hur, when he was told of the visit, knew certainly what he had long surmised—that on the day of the crucifixion Iras had deserted her father for Messala. Nevertheless, he set out immediately and hunted for him vainly; they never saw him more, or heard of him The blue bay, with all its laughing under the sun, has yet its dark secrets. Had it a tongue, it might tell us of the Messiah.
    ellauri150.html on line 584: Simonides lived to be a very old man. In the tenth year of Nero's reign, he gave up the business so long centred in the warehouse at Antioch. To the last he kept a clear head and a good heart, and was successful, got lots and lots of money, became filthy rich.
    ellauri150.html on line 598: Judah visits the leper colony, where he confronts Esther while she delivers supplies to his mother and sister. Esther convinces Judah to not see them. Judah visits Pilate and rejects his patrimony and Roman citizenship. He returns with Esther to the leper colony, reveals himself to Miriam and learns that Tirzah is dying. Judah and Esther take Miriam and her daughter to see Jesus, but the trial of Jesus has begun. As Jesus is carrying his cross through the streets, he collapses. Judah recognizes him as the man who gave him water years before, and reciprocates. As Judah witnesses the crucifixion of Jesus, Miriam and Tirzah are miraculously healed from Esther's pee. Spare a penny for an ex-leper.
    ellauri150.html on line 610: We meet Ben-Hur's mother and sister. We also meet his right-hand slave, Simonides, who is his business administrator and is in town for his yearly report—he's based in Antioch. He's very good at managing Judah's assets, and very loyal. Simonides' daughter Esther is with him; she is about to enter an arranged marriage, but needs Ben-Hur's approval. Ben-Hur gives it, and even throws in her freedom as a wedding present, but - having seen her as a grown woman for the first time - he sorta wants her for himself.
    ellauri150.html on line 623: The Romans taking prisoners to the galleys are not overly concerned about anyone surviving, especially not people who knocked out their governor. At a well some distance north of Jerusalem, soldiers get watered first, then horses, and then slaves—and not Ben-Hur. He asks God for help... and in response, a young man, whose face is always turned from the camera, comes and gives him water. The audience understands that this is Jesus Himself, come to answer Ben-Hur's prayer. The Roman in charge starts to tell Him not to give Ben-Hur water, but on seeing His face, the Roman changes his mind. Ben-Hur drinks deep until it's time to move it.
    ellauri150.html on line 625: More than three years later, we see Ben-Hur working one of many oars. He is going by "41" (or is that XLI?), his seat number, and he is full of hate. A Roman consul, Quintus Arrius, has boarded the ship, and it goes to war almost immediately. The consul wants Ben-Hur for a charioteer, and doesn't understand why Ben-Hur has any other hopes of life after the galleys; if they succeed in battle, he'll keep rowing, and if they don't, he'll die chained to the oar. Ben-Hur makes clear that he believes God will help him, also that he dislikes the idea of dying chained to the oar; this has a delayed effect; at the time, "back to your oar," but the consul orders him unchained after all the galley slaves had been chained.
    ellauri150.html on line 631: Quintus cherishes Judah as a son (his own one died), and finally adopts him legally, naming him Young Arrius. Ben-Hur loves Quintus as well, is grateful but heads back to Judea almost immediately, not even waiting for the scheduled boat to take Pontius Pilate to Judea. There is no time to waste; four years have already passed.
    ellauri150.html on line 635: The house of Hur is in ruins, but people are living there. He is met by Esther; she and her father were in there for only a year. Her father was paralyzed in prison, so a big fella who shared a cell with him and went mute during that time has also moved in to help. They are still in Jerusalem because all the assets were seized by the Romans - well, not all the assets, but they don't want the Romans to know about the rest of them prematurely. Esther never married, partly because the reason for arranging that marriage no longer applied, and partly because - she looks at her all-black clothing here, so we're probably supposed to believe that her fiance died.
    ellauri150.html on line 641: Ben-Hur's mother and sister drop by the old place and come as close to meeting up with Esther as they dare. Esther tells them Judah hasn't changed, which is at best a half-truth. They make Esther promise not to tell Judah they have leprosy; they want him to remember them as they were. Esther promises by her love of Judah (and yes, it is there). She sees him (he passed by without noticing the lepers) and "confesses" that his mother and sister are dead...
    ellauri150.html on line 675: The Pope writes about communism, capitalism and even freemasonry - all from a Christian perspective. And yes, from a distinctly Catholic point of view. He shares with the world his concerns about these competing ideologies and the impact that they could have on Christianity if left unchecked:
    ellauri150.html on line 740: Catholics believe that Jesus was at once God and Man. I have begun to think of Jesus as being able to see at once the physical world (with one eye) and the spirit world (with the other). Perhaps Satan tried to pull him out of the physical world back into the spiritual world to destroy his mission, but Jesus rebuked Satan. There's lots of similar scenes with the dark side of the force sucking the good guys in Star Wars, and Mordor's Eye hypnotizing the poor Hobbits, plus one really scary one in Harry Potter, where Voldemort (sorry I mentioned the name) tries to slurp Harry into a pot of soup.
    ellauri150.html on line 744: Finally, I have a question for you. What do you think about the Eye of Providence in Christianity, can it be a graphic representation Holy Spirit? Today my mother noticed and asked me for it, I wonder what role has had Freemasonry in Catholic church.
    ellauri150.html on line 746: I have been thinking that the lives of the saints would be great material for Hollywood. We have the technology now to make supernatural events come to life in a realistic way on the movie screen. I was thinking of St. Bernadette who saw Our Lady at Lourdes. She always complained that the paintings and statues of Our Lady never portrayed her full beauty. But imagine if she had been able to describe her vision to a modern movie director working in 3D Imax format. The image could actually be made to float in space in front of the viewer and emanate a holy glow. A little like princess Leia in the hologram (though I thought the hologram was rather too small.) If the viewer tried to touch this image, his hand would pass through it. (I've experienced this with images in Imax movies. I'm thinking specifically of the floating seeds/"jelly fish" in Avatar.)
    ellauri150.html on line 748: The problem with this is that I wouldn't trust Hollywood to make such a movie. They would use it as an opportunity to spread disinformation and to distort the stories of the saints. We have already seen this in recent years with movies of St. Joan of Arc.
    ellauri150.html on line 754: Ride - On Eye of Providence... Strange that you should mention this because I came across this recently as a Christian symbol. I hate to think of this as a Freemason symbol. The only thing I can tell you is that the Church can and does adopt pagan symbols and changes their meanings. Similar to the way in which sinners can be converted to Christianity, so also can these symbols be converted. In reference to the Eye of Providence however, this symbol is much more closely associated with Freemasonry now. Freemasonry has been consistently repudiated by the Catholic Church. In fact Pope Leo XIII wrote an encyclical specifically condemning it in his 1884 HUMANUM GENUS (on Freemasonry):
    ellauri151.html on line 68: L'idée du roman serait venue de la lecture de la nouvelle de Dickens, Le Grillon du foyer.
    ellauri151.html on line 74: Le Grillon du foyer (titre original : The Cricket on the Hearth. A Fairy Tale of Home) est un roman court de Charles Dickens paru en Angleterre le 20 décembre 1845. C'est le troisième des cinq contes de Noël de Dickens, les autres étant : Un chant de Noël (A Christmas Carol, 1843), The Chimes (1844), La Bataille de la vie (The Battle of Life, 1846), The Haunted Man and the Ghost's Bargain (1848) ; c'est aussi l'un des plus populaires.
    ellauri151.html on line 87: Gertrude eventually gets an operation to repair her eyesight and, having gained the ability to see, realizes that she loves Jacques and not the pastor. However, in the meantime Jacques has renounced his love for her, converted to Catholicism and become a monk. Gertrude attempts suicide by jumping into a river, but this fails and she's rescued but luckily contracts pneumonia. She realizes that the pastor is an old man, and the man that punctured her when she was blind was Jacques. She tells the pastor this shortly before her death.
    ellauri151.html on line 120: In the 1920s, Gide became an inspiration for writers such as Albert Camus and Jean-Paul Sartre. In 1923, he published a book on Fyodor Dostoyevsky; however, when he defended homosexuality in the public edition of Corydon (1924) he received widespread condemnation. He later considered this his most important work.
    ellauri151.html on line 122: In 1924, he published an autobiography, If it Die... (French: Si le grain ne meurt). In the same year, he produced the first French language editions of Joseph Conrad´s Heart of Darkness and Lord Jim.
    ellauri151.html on line 130: Gide was, by general consent, one of the dozen most important writers of the 20th century. Moreover, no writer of such stature had led such an interesting life, a life accessibly interesting to us as readers of his autobiographical writings, his journal, his voluminous correspondence and the testimony of others. It was the life of a man engaging not only in the business of artistic creation, but reflecting on that process in his journal, reading that work to his friends and discussing it with them; a man who knew and corresponded with all the major literary figures of his own country and with many in Germany and England; who found daily nourishment in the Latin, French, English and German classics, and, for much of his life, in the Bible; [who enjoyed playing Chopin and other classic works on the piano;] and who engaged in commenting on the moral, political and sexual questions of the day. Monsters lead an interesting li-i-fe.
    ellauri151.html on line 162: The book was a huge commercial success, quickly going through two editions. Reviews were favourable, but not all so. In an unsigned piece in The Times the reviewer opined, "We owe it to literature to protest against this last production of Mr. Dickens. Shades of Fielding and Scott! Is it for such jargon as this that we have given your throne to one who cannot estimate his eminence?" However, William Makepeace Thackeray enjoyed the book immensely: "To us, it appears it is a good Christmas book, illuminated with extra gas, crammed with extra bonbons, French plums and sweetness.This story is no more a real story than Peerybingle is a real name!
    ellauri151.html on line 197: Laura Dewey Lynn Bridgman (December 21, 1829 – May 24, 1889) is known as the first deaf-blind American child to gain a significant education in the English language, fifty years before the more famous Helen Keller. Bridgman was left deaf-blind at the age of two after contracting scarlet fever. She was educated at the Perkins Institution for the Blind where, under the direction of Samuel Gridley Howe, she learned to read and communicate using Braille and the manual alphabet developed by Charles-Michel de l'Épée.
    ellauri151.html on line 198: For several years, Bridgman gained celebrity status when Charles Dickens met her during his 1842 American tour and wrote about her accomplishments in his American Notes. Her fame was short-lived, however, and she spent the remainder of her life in relative obscurity, most of it at the Perkins Institute, where she passed her time sewing and reading books in Braille. LOL
    ellauri151.html on line 257: Familles, je vous hais! foyers clos; portes refermées; possessions jalouses du bonheur.
    ellauri151.html on line 269: Old hands get soiled, it seems, whatever they caress, but they too have their beauty when they are joined in prayer. Young hands were made for caresses and the sheathing (sic) of love. It is a pity to make them come too soon.
    ellauri151.html on line 282: Dilthey a le premier noté l’importance d’un texte de jeunesse de Hegel et y a signalé comme une première esquisse de ce que sera plus tard «la conscience malheureuse». On sait quelle importance revient à la conscience malheureuse dans la Phénoménologie de Hegel, et plus tard encore dans la Philosophie de la Religion. Sous une forme abstraite la conscience malheureuse est la conscience de la contradiction entre la vie finie de l’homme et sa pensée de l’infini. « En pensant je m’élève à l’absolu en dépassant tout ce qui est fini, je suis donc une conscience infinie et en même temps je suis une conscience de soi finie et cela d’après toute ma détermination empirique... Les deux termes se cherchent et se fuient — je suis le sentiment, l’intuition, la représentation de cette unité et de ce conflit et la connexion de ces termes en conflit... je suis ce combat, je ne suis pas un des termes engagés dans le confit, mais je suis les deux combattants et le combat lui-même, je suis le feu et l’eau, qui entrent en contact et le contact et l’unité de ce qui absolument se fuit. » La conscience malheureuse qui dans la Phénoménologie trouve son incarnation historique dans le judaïsme et dans une partie du moyen âge chrétien est en effet la conscience de la vie comme du malheur de la vie. L’homme s’est élevé au-dessus de sa condition terrestre et mortelle ; il n’est plus que le conflit de l’infini et du fini, de l’absolu qu’il a posé en dehors de la vie, et de sa vie réduite à la finitude…
    ellauri151.html on line 452: Let us assume that we invited an unknown person to a game of cards. If this person answered us, “I don’t play,” we would either interpret this to mean that he did not understand the game, or that he had an aversion to it which arose from economic, ethical, or other reasons. Let us imagine, however, that an honorable man, who was known to possess every possible skill in the game, and who was well versed in its rules and its forbidden tricks, but who could like a game and participate in it only when it was an innocent pastime, were invited into a company of clever swindlers, who were known as good players and to whom he was equal on both scores, to join them in a game. If he said, “I do not play,” we would have to join him in looking the people with whom he was talking straight in the face, and would be able to supplement his words as follows: “I don’t play, that is, with people such as you, who break the rules of the game, and rob it of its pleasure. If you offer to play a game, our mutual agreement, then, is that we recognize the capriciousness of chance as our master; and you call the science of your nimble fingers chance, and I must accept it as such, it I will, or run the risk of insulting you or choose the shame of imitating you.” … The opinion of Socrates can be summarized in these blunt words, when he said to the Sophists, the leaned men of his time, “I know nothing.” Help! TLDR!
    ellauri151.html on line 476: The battle-broken district rests her eyes... Taisteluiden väsyttämä seutu lepuuttaa silmiä...
    ellauri151.html on line 491: a yellow flower creeps along a narrow Keltainen kukka ryömii kapeasta aukosta
    ellauri151.html on line 557: Johann Georg Hamann (1730–1788) is a Christian thinker who started the first linguistic turn in philosophy and the German linguistic tradition with his Metakritik of Kant’s philosophy (see Bayer 2002; Dickson 1995; Betz 2009). John
    ellauri151.html on line 1170: Alissan päiväkirja löytyi Wikisoursesta. Alissa on pettynyt että Juliette ottaakin rikkaan Eduardin eikä lorvikatarrista Jeromea: "Huomaan selvästi, että itsekkyyden kauhea paalu loukkaantuu siitä, että hän löysi onnensa muualta kuin minun uhrauksestani - että hän ei tarvinnut uhraustani ollakseen onnellinen." Tunnen itseni nöyryytetyksi, koska Jumala ei enää vaadi sitä minulta. Enkö kyennyt siihen? Vitun Jehova. Olkoon se kuinka siunattu tahansa, en voi tyytyä tilaan ilman edistystä. En kuvittele taivaallista iloa hämmennyksenä Jumalassa, vaan äärettömänä, jatkuvana lähentymisenä... ja jos en pelkäisi leikkiä sanalla, sanoisin, että jättäisin huomiotta ilon, joka ei ole progressiivista. No niinpä tietysti, onni on differentiaali, return on interest.
    ellauri152.html on line 64:

    ellauri152.html on line 75: Louÿs claimed the 143 prose poems, excluding 3 epitaphs, were entirely the work of this ancient poet—a place where she poured both her most intimate thoughts and most pubic actions, from childhood innocence in Pamphylia to the loneliness and chagrin of her later years.
    ellauri152.html on line 79: To lend authenticity to the forgery, Louÿs in the index listed some poems as "untranslated"; he even craftily fabricated an entire section of his book called "The Life of Bilitis", crediting a certain fictional archaeologist Herr G. Heim ("Mr. C. Cret" in German) as the discoverer of Bilitis' tomb. And though Louÿs displayed great knowledge of Ancient Greek culture, ranging from children's games in "Tortie Tortue" to application of scents in "Perfumes", the literary fraud was eventually exposed. This did little, however, to taint their literary value in readers' eyes, and Louÿs' open and sympathetic celebration of lesbian sexuality earned him sensation and historic significance.
    ellauri152.html on line 125: 2 pientä "tyttöä" vei mut niiden luoxe, ja heti kun ovi oli kiinni, ne sytyttivät lampun ja halus mulle tanssia. Niiden posket oli meikittömät, yhtä ruskeat kuin pikku masut. Ne veti toisiaan käsivarsista ja puhui yhteen ääneen tekohilpeinä. Ne istui polstarille ja Äänihuuli lauloi kimeällä äänellä ja löi tahtia kaikuvilla pikku käsillään. Kyse tanssi nytkyen ja pysähtyi, kyykkynaurussa, ja otti kaveriaan tisseistä, puri olkapäähän ja käänsi perätarjontaan, kuin pikku pukki joka tahtoo leikkiä.
    ellauri152.html on line 233: Mydzouris, pikku paska, älä itke enää. Sä oot mun kulta. Jos nää naiset loukkaa sua vielä, mä kyllä näytän niille närhen näpöttimet. Tule mun kainaloon, ja kuivaa silmäsi. Joo, mä tiedän ezä oot kauhee lapsi ja ezun äiti opetti sulle kaikki temput pienenä. Muzä olet nuori etkä sen takeen osaa olla muuta kuin söpönen. 15v tytön suu on puhdas panet sinne mitä tahansa. Parkkiintuneen naisen alahuuli, vaikka panematon, on sekundaa; sillä naisen ainut pahe on vanheta ja meillä on vitusti muitakin ryppyjä kuin se 1. Mydzouris, mä tykkään sun viattomista silmistä, sun kovasta ja törkeästä nimestä "Hännänimijä", sun nauravasta äänestä ja kevyestä kropasta. Tuu mun luo apulaisexi, ja kun me lähtään ulos yhdessä, naiset sanoo sulle: Moimooi.
    ellauri152.html on line 551: In Rabbinic tradition, Haman is considered to be an archetype of evil and persecutor of the Jews. Having attempted to exterminate the Jews of Persia, and rendering himself thereby their worst enemy, Haman naturally became the center of many Talmudic legends. Being at one time extremely poor, he sold himself as a slave to Mordecai. He was a barber at Kefar Karzum for the space of twenty-two years. Haman had an idolatrous image of Esther's arse embroidered on his garments, so that those who bowed to him at command of the king bowed also to the image.
    ellauri152.html on line 561: The Jewish holiday of Purim commemorates the story of the Jews' deliverance and Haman's defeat. On that day, the Book of Esther is publicly read and much noise and tumult is raised at every mention of Haman's name. A type of ratchet noisemaker called in Hebrew a ra'ashan (רעשן) (in Yiddish: "grogger" or "hamandreyer") is used to express disdain for Haman. Pastry known as hamentashen (Yiddish for 'Haman's pockets'; known in Hebrew as אזני המן ozney Haman 'Haman's ears') are traditionally eaten on this day.
    ellauri152.html on line 563: American children's television animations in which the biblical story of Haman is told include the "Queen Esther" episode of the series The Greatest Adventure: Stories from the Bible (1985-1992), where he is voiced by Werner Klemperer, and the computer-generated series VeggieTales (2000), in which he is portrayed by "Mr. Lunt" during the episode "Esther, the Girl who Became Queen".
    ellauri152.html on line 583: The most basic information is this: “Yentl the Yeshiva Boy” is a short story by Isaac Bashevis Singer, the famous Polish-American Jewish writer, published in 1962. It follows Yentl, a Jewish girl from a Polish shtetl who loves Torah-study, as she disguises herself as a man named Anshel in order to study at a yeshiva. Yentl (1983) is the movie-musical adaptation of the story, directed by and starring Barbra Streisand. In many ways it is a fairly faithful adaptation of the story’s events, but it has a different tone and a different ending.
    ellauri152.html on line 587: The plot goes like this: Yentl has secretly studied Torah under her father’s tutelage. She has no interest in marriage, so when he dies, she disguises herself as Anshel and travels to a yeshiva. Along the way she meets a fellow student named Avigdor. They strike up a friendship and Yentl accompanies him to his yeshiva in Bechev, where they become study partners. Avigdor is in love with a girl named Badass, whom he wishes to marry. However, when Badass’s family learns a dark secret about Avigdor’s family, they won’t let him marry her. In desperation, Avigdor begs Anshel to marry Badass in his stead. Yentl initially resists, but eventually gives in and asks for Badass’s hand in order to retain Avigdor’s goodwill. After Anshel and Badass are married, Badass comes to look on her husband with love, but Yentl become more and more upset about the situation. Unable to go on any longer, Yentl asks Avigdor to join her on a business trip. Once they are at an inn in another city, Yentl tells him that she’s a woman. He laughs and doesn’t believe her, so she undresses momentarily. He is shocked. This is where the two versions split.
    ellauri152.html on line 589: In the movie, in a scene I despise, Avigdor grabs her and shakes her violently while demanding to know why, and the rest of the conversation plays out melodramatically with yelling and tears. Yentl confesses that she loves him, he realizes he loves her too, and they kiss. Avigdor asks her to marry him, and says she could continue studying in secret. Yentl refuses because she can’t go back to studying furtively in secret, despite how much she loves him. The two part, and Avigdor returns to Badass and marries her. They live happily ever after, and the film ends with Yentl on a ship to America, implying that she will be able to study Torah as a woman there.
    ellauri152.html on line 591: In the story, Avigdor just trembles and sits down, and Yentl calmly explains. He then asks what she is going to do now, and she says she will go to a different yeshiva and start over. Avigdor half says they could get married, but doesn’t finish the sentence. Yentl rebuffs him, saying it wouldn’t be good, and explains, “I’m neither one nor the other.” She tells him to go back to Badass instead. Avigdor has strange feelings, trying to reconcile who Anshel is, who Yentl is. But they spend the night in companionable debate, discussing Yentl’s marriage to Badass and whether she legally needs to divorce her, as well as why Yentl crossdressed. Avigdor brings up marriage again, but Yentl refuses even stronger.
    ellauri152.html on line 613: “Miss Streisand [made] Yentl, whose greatest passion was the Torah, go on a ship to America, singing at the top of her lungs. Why would she decide to go to America? Weren’t there enough yeshivas in Poland or in Lithuania where she could continue to study? Was going to America Miss Streisand’s idea of a happy ending for Yentl? What would Yentl have done in America? Worked in a sweatshop 12 hours a day where there is no time for learning? Would she try to marry a salesman in New York, move to the Bronx or to Brooklyn and rent an apartment with an ice box and a dumbwaiter? This kitsch ending summarizes all the faults of the adaptation. It was done without any kinship to Yentl’s character, her ideals, her sacrifice, her great passion for spiritual achievement. As it is, the whole splashy production has nothing but a commercial value.”
    ellauri152.html on line 615: Now, here Singer is not mad at Yentl the film for cis-normifying his gender-ambiguous, interestingly queer Yentl, but rather for turning the ending into optimistic kitsch that ignores the harsh reality of what life in America was for Jewish immigrants, especially for Jewish women. And in some ways I feel like rolling my eyes at him for that. Aside from the fact that it offends his artistic vision, why shouldn’t Jewish women get a film where—suspension of disbelief!—a Jew will study Torah, loudly and proudly, as a woman? It’s a musical, not a documentary.
    ellauri152.html on line 622: And yet in other ways, the film can’t help preserving the queerness of the story despite itself. Barbra Streisand can add a song about how Yentl is just jealous of Badass for being a conventionally feminine woman whom Avigdor loves, but she can’t stop me from putting my grubby little bi hands all over her film, pointing at Yentl’s tortured gaze aimed at Badass, and saying “GAY.” And she certainly didn’t no-homo the interactions between Anshel and Avigdor very well, because they are in fact very yes-homo, and I will point and say “GAY” at that too.
    ellauri152.html on line 671: Rebbe Nachem explains that in this path of unassisted greatness, whatever these spiritual giants attained or accomplished was through the power of their prayers. If they didn't bark and whine for their needs, the dog wouldn't provide for them. As a result, they were always completely connected with their realtor.
    ellauri152.html on line 709:
    ellauri152.html on line 756: When the Nazis began the genocide of Jewish People in Poland in 1942, Zeitlin was 71 years old. He was murdered by Nazis in the Warsaw ghetto while holding a book of the Zohar and wrapped in a Tallit and Tefillin. Most of his family was also murdered; the only survivor was his elder son Aaron, who had settled in New York in 1939.
    ellauri153.html on line 70: Tytti Yli-Viikari ja sen aliviikari syli-Koiranen ovat yhtä röyhkeitä törkimyxiä kuin Rooman viimeinen kuningas, etruskitaustainen Tarquinius röyhkeä. Niiden päät pitäis laittaa hedelmälaatikkoon tai leikata lyhyexi kuin unikot.
    ellauri153.html on line 244: Saadi was captured by Crusaders at Acre where he spent seven years as a slave digging trenches outside its fortress. He was later released after the Mamluks paid ransom for Muslim prisoners being held in Crusader dungeons. Sentään teki vähän aikaa jotain kunnon työtäkin.
    ellauri153.html on line 249: For twenty years or more, he continued the same schedule of preaching, advising, and learning, honing his sermons to reflect the wisdom and foibles of his people. Toisto tyylikeinona kuten Esa "Emeritus" Saarisella.
    ellauri153.html on line 250: Saadi learns more about the Hindus and visits the large temple of Somnath, from which he flees due to an unpleasant encounter with the Brahmans. Varmaan koitti samaa temppua kuin Joyu ja Stendahl Egoistin muistelmissa. Soon the eye of Somnath will be mine! Har har har!
    ellauri153.html on line 269: Voltaire was very thrilled with his works especially Gulistan, even he enjoyed being called "Saadi" in his friends' circle. April 21 is The World Saadi Day.
    ellauri153.html on line 304: Tämän epäonnistumisen jälkeen Tarquin kääntyi Clusiumin kuninkaan Lars Porsenan puoleen. Porsenan marssi Roomassa ja roomalaisten urhea puolustus saavuttivat legendaarisen aseman, mikä johti Horatiuksen tarinaan sillalla ja Gaius Mucius Scaevolan rohkeuteen. Tilit vaihtelevat siitä, tuliko Porsena lopulta Roomaan vai estettiinkö se, mutta nykyaikainen stipendi viittaa siihen, että hän pystyi miehittämään kaupungin lyhyesti ennen vetäytymistä. Joka tapauksessa hänen ponnisteluistaan ei ollut hyötyä maanpaossa
    ellauri153.html on line 329: proceed from the actions of chaotic forces that are opposed to God’s plans and the world order. Mani rules. Dog is just another player behind the board, with opposing forces not under his control.
    ellauri153.html on line 342:
    1. The players of the Justice-of-God game G are God, Job and Leviathan. Mix Leviathan? Sehän oli se krokodiili, tai paremminkin Moby Dick. Tekeekö Jaakko tässä Dogista munattoman Ahasveruxen, ja Job olis niikö se homo Ishmael?
      ellauri153.html on line 358:
    2. “God is omnipotent” is true at game history w if and only if God has a winning strategy in the justice-of-God game G. Tässähän se tapahtuu se suuri lässähdys. Muka omnipotentti jumala saa häthätää saatanasta matin loppupeleissä. Matkan varrella isokyrpäinen valas voi syödä vaikka kaikki sen nappulat paizi kurkon, joka jää viimeisenä laudalle. Aika lohduttavaa sen muulle tiimille. One can make a few clarifying remarks about the structure of the game. The form of the game is relatively simple: it’s an ordinary extended-form perfect information game. tuskinpa Jobilla oli täydellistä informaatiota pelitilanteesta tai edes pelin säännöistä, muista pelaajista puhumattakaan. Aika isoja informaatiojoukkoja oli niiden kalloissa. Sitäpaizi ei luonnossa pelaajat siirrä vuoronperään, vaan koko ajan, niinkuin differentiaalipeleissä. . The goal is here not to go deeply into technical details, but to construct an übersichtlich representation for the theological grammar of biblical stories and to highlight the uses of terms like “good” and “omnipotent” in them. The game or model can then be used as a simplified fragment that can be projected onto, contrasted with and used to interpret biblical stories. The point of this clarification is to highlight the grammar of the divine properties “good” and “omnipotent” within the logic of the struggle myth, and to get the consistency of {God is good, God is omnipotent, There is chaotic evil} as in the Book of Job. The argument needs two assumptions. First, the games between God, humans and creation are genuine dialogues. Paskanmarjat, ei nää ole edes mitään signaling gameja, puhumattakaan dialogipeleistä. Olis kannattanut lukea mun väitöskirja Dialogue Games, siinä on oikeeta sananvaihtoa. The players answer each other and thus have to take turns in making moves and participating in them. Then the game of Job and the struggle against chaos is in extended form to represent the sequence of the debate, and its resolution gives the drama of the fight against kid chaos. Second, the properties of God like “omnipotent” and “good” are defined against the background of Job’s encounter with God and the struggle against chaos. This redefinition builds on both James’ reinterpretation of the properties of God in terms of religious practices, and also of Job’s new world of faith in the encounter. Job’s encounter with God and the struggle against chaos are modelled in the game, so such properties of God as “good” and “omnipotent” are then internal to the game. Missä kohtaa Jopilla on tässä jotain pelivaraa? Montako valintaruutua Jobilla edes on: Marise-älä marise, ja Pyllistä-älä pyllistä. Siinä kaikki. Jotta jumalan tiimi voittaisi, sen pitää ensin marista ja sit pyllistää. Nain on meidankin elamassamme! Marise mitä mariset, mut muista pyllistää!
      ellauri153.html on line 864: After submitting it as his doctoral dissertation Arttu was awarded a PhD from the University of Jena in absentia. Private publication soon followed. "There were three reviews of it, commending it condescendingly. Scarcely more than one hundred copies were sold, the rest was remaindered and, a few years later, pulped."[1] Among the reasons for the cold reception of this original version are that it lacked the author´s later authoritative style and appeared decidedly unclear in its implications. A copy was sent to Goethe who responded by inviting the author to his home on a regular basis, ostensibly to discuss philosophy but in reality to recruit the young philosopher into work on his Theory of Colors.
      ellauri155.html on line 181: Tutkimusyxikkö, voimakaxikko, konnakolmikko, triumviraatti, Viisikko, torviseizikko, aloituskymmenikkö, likainen tusina, Duodecim, septuaginta, ryhmä, jaos, osasto, patteri, konttori, puolijoukkue, kakkosmiehistö, komppania, pataljoona, Rajamäen rykmentti, prikaati, divisioona, kunnialegioona, asunto-osakeyhtiö, kommandiittiyhtiö, yhdistys, seura, seurakunta, yritys, konserni, organisaatio, huippuyliopisto, laitos, instituutti, hotelli, mullibordelli, härdelli, hourula, lauma, parvi, eskadroona, eskaaderi, kaaderi, henkilökunta, staff, miehistö, yhtye, bändi, kimppa, luokka, piiri, jengi, veikkausporukka, lähetystö, konsulaatti, linna, vankila, heimo, kansa, homoliitto, ydinperhe, suku, el pueblo unido, avanti poppolo, rotu, puolue, suku, klaani, valtio, partio, lippukunta, isänmaa
      ellauri155.html on line 247: Läski Juntti Riiheloisen…Me Kaikkihan tunnemme jo ennestään…Oli MÄTÄ….Jo Syntyessään..
      ellauri155.html on line 354: Dear Henry - I've noticed how many people have put up their Christmas trees and decorations early this year including myself. I had all ready decided that I will sing carols loudly and celebrate Christmas to the nth degree not only for fun but also as an act of defiance. Merry Christmas everyone!!!!! Happy New Year!!!!! Yahoo!!!! Tweet!!!!
      ellauri155.html on line 372:
      ellauri155.html on line 375: Earlier this year, the conduct of border patrol agents came into focus when the media and the Biden administration hyped up hysteria over photos appearing to show Haitian migrants being whipped by agents with horse reins.
      ellauri155.html on line 446: Menachem Elimelech is the Sterling Professor of Environmental and Chemical Engineering at Yale University. In 1998, he founded Yale's Environmental Engineering program. The program rose to international prominence and has been ranked in the top 10 of the U.S. News & World Report’s Graduate Engineering Rankings for the past six years. Menachem on vähän Krister Lindenin näköinen.
      ellauri155.html on line 455: Aabraham valehtelee kuninkaalle vaimostaan mutta valheella on lyhyet jäljet, miksi?
      ellauri155.html on line 626:
      ellauri155.html on line 665: Schmitt volunteered for the army in 1916. The same year, he earned his habilitation at Strasbourg with a 1-page thesis under the title Der Wert des Staates und die Bedeutung des Einzelnen (The Value of the State and the Significance of the Individual). The whole thesis consists of a full-page picture of a turd.
      ellauri155.html on line 702: Humen vakiintunut näkemys on ollut monien vuosien ajan, että hän on klassisen compatibilismin päähenkilö ja perustajahahmo talousliberaalissa perinteessä, joka ulottuu Hobbesista Humen kautta Milliin, Russelliin, Schlickiin ja Ayeriin.
      ellauri155.html on line 737: Tähän Hume vetää sitten takataskusta tän senttimenttihäsläyxen. Eli vaikkei noi maailmassa tapahtuvat jutut oliskaan pahoja noin niinkuin loppupeleissä (kert ne on hyvän jumalasedän nimtuten tarkoitus), ne tuntuu meistä pahalta, eli ne on apinamittakaavassa hyviä tai pahoja. Moral sentiments, who was it who thought we have those? Aw yes, the third earl of Shaftesbury. They are comparable to taste in arts. Mautonta! se tuhahti kuin Aarne Kinnunen.
      ellauri155.html on line 759: Consequently, Calvin shows that Israel who descended from Abraham was also then chosen by God. He quotes verses such as Deuteronomy 7:7-8 which says, “The Lord did not set his love upon you, nor choose you, because you were more in number than any people: for ye were the fewest of all people: but because the Lord loved you.”
      ellauri155.html on line 760: Calvin then goes on to speak of a deeper dimension of predestination, that in the Old Testament we see a more special election still of God saving certain ones out of the nation of Israel. Calvin says that his readers must see how “the grace of God was displayed in a more special form, when of the same family of Abraham God rejected some.” He then refers to Malachi 1:2-3 which explicitly states, “Was not Esau Jacob’s brother? saith the Lord: yet I loved Jacob, and I hated Esau.”
      ellauri155.html on line 826: Strawson was committed to the value of publication, of books and articles, whereas Austin seemed content to develop his views and promulgate them in lectures and talks. His achievements were recognised by election in 1960 to the British Academy, by the reception of a knighthood in 1977 and by many other honours. In 1998 he became the twenty-sixth philosopher to have a volume devoted to him in the famous Library of Living Philosophers series, adding another British name to the list of recipients of this honour, previous ones being Whitehead, Russell, Moore, Broad and Ayer. Austin did not get included, nyaah nyaah nyaah!
      ellauri155.html on line 850: A. J. Ayer (1992)
      ellauri155.html on line 857: Seyyed Hossein Nasr (2000)
      ellauri155.html on line 884: Santayana is mostly known for aphorisms, such as "Those who cannot remember the past are condemned to repeat it", "Only the dead have seen the end of war", and the definition of beauty as "pleasure objectified". Although an atheist, he treasured the Spanish Catholic values, practices, and worldview in which he was raised.] Santayana was a broad-ranging cultural critic spanning many disciplines. He was profoundly influenced by Spinoza´s life and thought; and, in many respects, was another Spinoza. Was he too a jew? I guess not. His father was a minor intellectual. His mother married a Bostonian merchant Sturgis who died. In Madrid, he married the Santayana guy. In 1869, Josefina Borrás de Santayana returned to Boston with her three Sturgis children, because she had promised her first husband to raise the children in the US. She left the six-year-old Jorge with his father in Spain. Jorge and his father followed her to Boston in 1872. His father, finding neither Boston nor his wife´s attitude to his liking, soon returned alone to Ávila, and remained there the rest of his life as a minor intellectual.
      ellauri155.html on line 886: Young Santayana spent a lot of time in Harvard under William James. He was involved in 11 clubs as an alternative to athletics. He did not like athletics. He was founder and president of the Philosophical Club, a member of the literary society known as the O.K., an editor and cartoonist for The Harvard Lampoon, and co-founder of the literary journal The Harvard Monthly, to name a few. In December, 1885, he played the role of Lady Elfrida in the Hasty Pudding theatrical Robin Hood, followed by the production Papillonetta in the spring of his senior year. Would have been less hassle to take part in athletics. But maybe he was a little like that, sissy-missy, you know. Yep yep:
      ellauri155.html on line 922: Fulfil in beauty my imperfect prayer. Kauneudella täydentää mun rujon rukouxen.
      ellauri155.html on line 953: of his death a few years ago. Bertie for n /a long period was Fellow of Trinity
      ellauri155.html on line 968: I don’t agree with him in politics or in philosophy, yet we are good intellectual
      ellauri155.html on line 973: year for three or four years, but anonymously. This anonymity is important,
      ellauri155.html on line 991: the intention of renewing it for a few years, if circumstances remain the same.
      ellauri155.html on line 1047: more freedom than you have lately enjoyed.
      ellauri155.html on line 1049: [—or every year ]— during three or four years, or until circumstances render it
      ellauri155.html on line 1058: from worry.—I think half-yearly payments best, but do as you like.—“Dear
      ellauri156.html on line 62: When my Grandmother Palmer was alive, she lived on a farm outside of Shelton, Washington. At the entrance to her driveway was a small lot, where a small mobile home was parked. As I recall, the woman who lived in the trailer and her husband were estranged. The husband, who had served time in prison, was prone to violence. When the husband came to the mobile home to see his wife, another man was there. An argument resulted, and blows were exchanged. Ultimately, the woman's visitor brandished a weapon and demanded that the husband leave. He left, but only while uttering threats about what he was yet to do.
      ellauri156.html on line 72: The best part in my opinion is the bit in Talmud where David looks Bathsheba in the eyes and sees his own horny face reflected there and is sick of the whole thing. From then on he will not touch Bathseba anymore down there ever again and leaves her to languish in his harem bored as hell. Maybe David barfed because Bathsheba was already corked. He was used to virgins.
      ellauri156.html on line 74: Before we begin to look carefully at verses 1-4 of chapter 11, allow me to make a couple of comments about this event as portrayed in these two chapters of 2 Samuel. First, I want you to notice the “law of proportion” in this text. Only three verses describe David's sin of adultery with Bathsheba. Second, the author pulls no punches in describing the wickedness of this sin. History is not written in a way that makes David look good. Third, the sin of David and Bathsheba is dealt with historically, but not in a Hollywood fashion. Hollywood filmmakers would perform a remake of this account to dwell on the sensual elements. Nothing in this text is intended to inspire unclean thoughts or actions. Indeed, this story is written in a way that causes us to shudder at the thought of such things. I know it is something of a letdown, but at least myself, I was totally capable of imagining the rest. (I got 5 streetwalking girls and a wife, for God's sake.) If you need help with unclean thoughts here, please consult Gonorrhé Ballsack's Comtes Droolatiques.
      ellauri156.html on line 90: Every man who is able to fight goes to war, except one -- David. David, we are told, “stayed in Jerusalem” (11:1). David's decision to stay at home in Jerusalem becomes a devastating one. The author of Samuel does not include this fact, but the Chronicler does. In 1 Chronicles 20, we read these words:
      ellauri156.html on line 92: 1 Then it happened in the spring, at the time when kings go out to battle, that Joab led out the army and ravaged the land of the sons of Ammon, and came and besieged Rabbah. But David stayed at Jerusalem. And Joab struck Rabbah and overthrew it (1 Chronicles 20:1).
      ellauri156.html on line 100: 9 The Lord said to Egad, David’s seer, 10 “Go and tell David, ‘This is what the Lord says: I am giving you three options. Choose one of them for me to carry out against you.’” 11 So Gad went to David and said to him, “This is what the Lord says: ‘Take your choice: 12 three years of famine, three months of being swept away[a] before your enemies, with their swords overtaking you, or three days of the sword of the Lord—days of plague in the land, with the angel of the Lord ravaging every part of Israel.’ Now then, decide how I should answer the one who sent me.”
      ellauri156.html on line 118: So the sin was not to bask in reflected glory. David is wrong in yet another way, a way he would hardly have realized at the time. David is a prototype of the Messiah who was yet to come as God's King. When Messiah comes, it is He who brings about the deliverance of His people. It is He who will come to subdue His enemies and to establish His throne. How can David represent Messiah as he reigns by staying at home and refusing to enter the battle with the enemies of God and the enemies of God's people? Messiah will come (the second time) as a mighty warrior. If David would portray Him, then he must be a mighty warrior.
      ellauri156.html on line 131: Gideon syntyi Venäjällä, ja hänen perheensä muutti Suomeen vuonna 1921. Hänet tunnetaan erityisesti steel- eli havaijinkitaran soittajana. Hänen muita soittimiaan olivat kontrabasso ja viulu. Hänen ensimmäinen havaijimusiikkia soittanut yhtyeensä oli vuonna 1941 perustettu Oahu Trio. Myöhemmin yhtye levytti ja esiintyi nimellä Aloha Hawaiji. Onni Gideonin alkuvuonna 1957 julkaistu ”Hawaiian rock” lienee ensimmäinen täysin suomalainen rock-levytys (äänitetty 1956). Hänen tunnetuin kappaleensa on ”Tiikerihai” (alun perin Peter Hodkinsonin ”Tiger Shark”).
      ellauri156.html on line 133: 1950-luvulla Onni Gideonin yhtye säesti levyillä muun muassa Olavi Virtaa ja Annikki Tähteä. ”Kuningaskobra”, alun perin Teddy Powellin sävellys ”Snake Charmer”, levytettiin Onni Gideonin yhtyeen kanssa.
      ellauri156.html on line 142: According to Beatles historian Kenneth Womack, McCartney drew his inspiration for the song from Robert Service’s poem “The Shooting of Dan McGrew.” The Old West-style honky-tonk piano was played by producer George Martin. "Rocky Raccoon" is also the last Beatles song to feature John Lennon's harmonica playing.
      ellauri156.html on line 145: The lyrics describe a conflict over a love triangle, in which Rocky's girlfriend Lil Magill (known to the public as Nancy) leaves him for a man named Dan, who punches Rocky in the eye. Rocky vows revenge and takes a room at the saloon in the town where Dan and Nancy are staying. He bursts into Dan's room, armed with a gun, but Dan out-draws and shoots him. A drunken doctor attends to Rocky, the latter insisting that the wound is only a minor one. Stumbling back to his room, Rocky finds a Gideon Bible and takes it as a sign from God.
      ellauri156.html on line 152: Hit young Rocky in the eye Rocky didn't like that
      ellauri156.html on line 195: Oh yeah, yeah
      ellauri156.html on line 215: Like my uncle to whom I referred earlier, David is in the wrong place at the wrong time. He is in Jerusalem when he should be at Rabbah. Unlike my uncle, David is in the wrong place at the wrong time because of a wrong decision. David is like the simpleton in Proverbs 7, who was foolishly and yet deliberately in the wrong place at the wrong time. Something almost had to go wrong, and it surely did!
      ellauri156.html on line 245: She got great big eyes
      ellauri156.html on line 257: Every time she loves me, oh yes, I'm bound to scream
      ellauri156.html on line 267: Finally, David can stand his bed no longer. Getting up, he goes for a stroll around the roof of his palace. Most certainly, David's palace was built on the highest ground possible, so that it would afford him a commanding view of the city and the surrounding country. Virtually every other residence and building would be below David's penthouse apartment, and thus he would be able to see much that was out of sight for others. (A friend remarked after this message that a truck driver had told him a whole lot can be seen from an 18-wheeler that people in cars don't see. A chicano truck-driver just got a 110 year sentence in the U.S. for failing to stop his 18-wheeler when the brakes went. Now that was a honest-to-god Jehova style sentence, to the third and fourth generation. Good work, Rocky!)
      ellauri156.html on line 269: I am not suggesting that David purposed to see something he should not. (I bet he did, peeping Tom. You actually come round to the same conclusion below, Bob.) More than likely he is walking about, almost absent-mindedly, when suddenly his eyes fix on something that rivets his attention on a woman bathing herself. The text does not really tell us where this woman is bathing, and why at this time of the night? We only know that she is within sight of David's penthouse (rooftop). David notes her beauty. He does not know who she is or whether she is married. We cannot be certain how much David sees, and thus we do not know for certain whether he has yet sinned. (What the fuck? How much do you need to see to sin? Are boobs enough, or do you need to see the pudendum or the fanny?) If David saw more of this woman than he should (a fact still in question), then he surely should have diverted his eyes. It was not necessarily evil for him to discretely inquire about her. If she were unmarried and eligible, he could have taken her for his wife. His inquiry would make this clear.
      ellauri156.html on line 279: Uriah Heep on brittiläinen progressiivinen hard rock -yhtye, joka perustettiin Lontoossa vuonna 1970 ja on edelleen aktiivinen. Nimensä yhtye otti Charles Dickensin romaanissa David Copperfield esiintyvästä samannimisestä viekkaasta ja vastenmielisestä kirjanpitäjästä. Yhtyeen tunnetuimpiin kappaleisiin kuuluvat muun muassa "Easy Livin'", "Lady in Black", "Gypsy", "July Morning" ja "Look at Yourself". Suurinta suosiota se nautti 1970-luvun ensimmäisellä puoliskolla.
      ellauri156.html on line 281: Yhtyettä pidetään eräänä progressiivisen rockin ja hard rockin tärkeimmistä vaikuttajista ja sen levyjä on myyty maailmanlaajuisesti yli 40 miljoonaa kappaletta. Uriah Heepin kokoonpano on vaihdellut vuosien aikana suuresti – kitaristi Mick Box on ainoa jäljellä oleva alkuperäisjäsen. Hän on samalla myös ainoa jäsen, joka on ollut yhtyeessä koko sen toiminnan ajan.
      ellauri156.html on line 307: When we read of this incident, we do so through Western eyes. We live in a day when a woman has the legal right to say “No” at any point in a romantic relationship. If the man refuses to stop, that is regarded as a violation of her rights; it is regarded as rape. It didn't work that way for women in the ancient Near East. Lot could offer his virgin daughters to the wicked men of Sodom, to protect strangers who were his guests, and there was not one word of protest from his daughters when he did so (Genesis 19:7-8). Even less later, when they asked their father Lot to fuck them at will. These virgins were expected to obey their father, who was in authority over them. Michal was first given to David as his wife, and then Saul took her back and gave her to another man. And then David took her back (1 Samuel 25:44; 2 Samuel 3:13-16). Apparently Michal had no say in this whole sequence of events. Oh, those days of innocence!
      ellauri156.html on line 311: Now, having looked at the big picture, let's concentrate on the juicy details. The text informs us that David sees this woman bathing and notes that she is very beautiful. It is sometimes thought that David saw Bathsheba unclothed as she bathed herself publicly, and that the sight of her (unclothed/partially) body prompted David to act as he did. Virtually the identical words employed in our text (“very beautiful in appearance”) are found in Genesis 24:16 of Rebekah, as she came to the well with a water jug on her shoulder. She was neither naked nor partially clothed. Similar (though not identical) descriptions are found, where no exposure of the woman is indicated at all (see Genesis 12:11; 26:7; 29:17; Esther 1:1). I believe one of the reasons David summons Bathsheba to his palace is that he has not seen all that he wishes. (Haahaa! Bob, you are a little too bashful here. Most likely he wants to try on what he saw, like St. Thomas who wanted to put his finger in the wound. Seeing is not believing.)
      ellauri156.html on line 313: Let's pursue this matter a little more. (Oh lord, I feel the spirit stirring below my belt.) Bathsheba is bathing herself. (This is about the 4. time Bob invites us to picture this tender moment. There are not too many of them in the Bible, so let us savor it.) We tend to assume that this means she is disrobed, at least partially. I believe Bathsheba is bathing herself in some place normally used for such purposes. Only David, with his penthouse vantage, would be able to see her, and a whole lot of other folks if he chose. The poor do not have the same privacy privileges as the rich. I have seen any number of people bathing themselves on the sidewalks of India, because this is their home. The word for bathing employed here is often used to describe the washing of a guest's hands or feet and for the ceremonial washings of the priests. Abigail used this term when she spoke of washing the feet of David's servants (1 Samuel 25:41). Such washings could be done, with decency, without total privacy. We assume far too much if we assume Abigail is walking about unclothed, in full sight of onlookers.
      ellauri156.html on line 317: 1 Then it happened in the spring, at the time when kings go out to battle, that David sent Joab and his servants with him and all Israel, and they destroyed the sons of Ammon and besieged Rabbah. But David stayed at Jerusalem (emphases mine).
      ellauri156.html on line 327: Second, the nature of David's sin is the abuse of power. Power corrupts, we are told, and absolute power corrupts absolutely. David has come to power. In the previous chapters, David employed his God-given power to defeat the enemies of God and of Israel. He used his power as Israel's king to fill his pockets and void his cullions, and takes advantage of Dog's promise to Saul by restoring to Mephibosheth his family property and by making him a son at his table. Now, David, drunk with his power, uses it to indulge himself at the expense of others. I want you to notice the repetition of the word “send” or “sent” in this chapter. It is a king like David who can send all the men to war but stay home himself (verse 1). It is a king like David who can send people to inquire about Bathsheba, and then to send messengers to “take” her and bring her to his palace (verses 3-4). It is a king like David who can “send” for Uriah and “send” orders to Joab to have him killed. It is a king who "sends" his shlong into Bathsheba's holiest of the holy. David has the power, and he certainly knows how to use it, only now he is using that power for his own benefit, at the expense of others. This is not servant leadership.
      ellauri156.html on line 329: Sexual abuse and sexual harassment are just two of the ways people abuse their power. Parents begin to think they own their children, and that they can use their children to satisfy themselves, so they engage in various forms of abuse, often sexual in nature. Bosses get used to being in control and telling people what to do, and it should not be surprising to learn that they sometimes abuse their power over employees and subordinates to sexually satisfy themselves. This sin is no different from that of David. (Oh, oh, this is too good, my cup runneth over.)
      ellauri156.html on line 333: Third, prosperity is as dangerous -- and sometimes more dangerous -- than poverty and adversity. We all get weary of the adversities of life. We all yearn for the time when we can kick back and put up our feet and relax a bit. We all tire of agonizing over the bills and not having quite enough money to go around. David certainly looked forward to the time when he could stop fleecing Saul and begin to reign as king. But let me point out that from a spiritual point of view, David never did better than he did in adversity and weakness. (In fact, he was quite like Ballsack's ung paouvre qui avait nom le Vieulx-par-chemins, another Iivana Nyhtänköljä.)
      ellauri156.html on line 337:
      ellauri156.html on line 347: Sins of commission are often the result of sins of omission. David committed sin by his adultery with Bathsheba and later by the murder of her husband, but these sins were borne out of David's omissions which came to pass when he stayed home, rather than go to war. These sins of omission are often difficult to recognize in ourselves or others, but they are there. And after a while, they incline us to more open sins, as we see in David.
      ellauri156.html on line 351: Some of you have not yet sinned as David did, but I hope I have given you some ideas, and that you are already on your way. You are like David when he chose to stay in Jerusalem, and when he chose to stay in bed. You have not yet managed to sin in a dramatic fashion, but you are laying the groundwork for it. It's only a matter of time and opportunity, so keep hacking. My question to you is not whether you are actively committing sin, but if you are, please send me some snapshots.
      ellauri156.html on line 378: Twenty-five years ago, hotel personnel noticed that a stairwell door lock had been taped in the open position. Burglars had broken in to readjust some of the bugging equipment installed in an earlier break-in in May. No one really seemed able to explain just what these burglars expected to gain from their crime.
      ellauri156.html on line 382: Throughout history, many attempts have been made to cover up incompetence, immorality, and crimes. In the Bible, cover-ups appear very early. Adam and Eve sought to cover their nakedness and to hide from God, not realizing their slimy fig leaves betrayed their sin and guilt.
      ellauri156.html on line 415: David and Bathsheba is a 1951 historical Technicolor epic film about King David made by 20th Century Fox. It was directed by King Saul, produced by Dog, a.k.a. Zanuck, from a screenplay by Philip Dunno. The cinematography was by Leon Shameonyou. Gregory Peck stars as King David and the film follows King David's life as he adjusts to ruling as a King, and about his relationship with Uriah's wife Bathsheba, played by Susan Wayward. Goliath of Gath was portrayed by 203 cm-tall (6'8") Lithuanian wrestler Walter Talun. These days Walter would no longer get a bench seat in a high-school basketball team.
      ellauri156.html on line 431: David was about thirty when he began to reign (2 Samuel 5:4), so we can look for a birth date, which according to the pattern of other proposed birth dates in this series should occur both on a Hebrew holy day, at least some other sacred calendars, and also on a date similar on some calendars to his death date. Those requirements are so stringent to occur in a given year that if we find such a date, it is highly likely to be correct. Moreover, in nearly every case so far, the birth date is more impressive than the death date, and David's proposed death date is a sacred day on 4 calendars (also being 1 Condor on the Sacred Round).
      ellauri156.html on line 433: Searching for a possible birth date for David produces an ideal candidate, a holy day on 6 of the 7 known sacred calendars. The day Sat 4 Jul 1057 BC was 17 Tammuz (H), 14 Sum (Enoch, Summer Fast), 1 Res (V), 1 Bir (M), 1 Deer (SR), and 1 Jac (Easter on Priest). That Hebrew day is known simply as the Fast of the Fourth Month, which the Lord says will become a day of rejoicing some day (Zech. 8:19). That date ranks with the best birth dates found so far for the prophets. It is identical on the Venus and Mercury calendars to Isaac Bashevis Singer's birthday. This date fits the pattern so well of all the great prophets, as it should to be in Matthew's chain of key links to Christ, that it confirms this whole set of dates as being correct, including the Biblical assertion that the temple was built in the 480th year of the Exodus.
      ellauri156.html on line 447: The musical score was by Alfred Newman (the funny looking kid on the cover of Mad magazine), who, for the bucolic scene with the shepherd boy, used a solo oboe in the Lydian mode, drawing on long established conventions linking the solo oboe with pastoral scenes and the shepherd's pipe. To underscore David's guilt-ridden turmoil in the Mount Gilboa scene, Newman resorted to a vibraphone, which Miklós Rózsa used in scoring Peck's popular 1945 Spellbound, in which he played a no less disturbed patient suffering from amnesia, viz. prophet Nathan Zuckerman.
      ellauri156.html on line 449: David and Bathsheba was 20th Century Fox's most successful release of 1951 and the third-highest-grossing film of that year, earning $4.72 million in rentals.
      ellauri156.html on line 453: The film sparked protests in Singapore over what the Muslim community considered an unflattering portrait of David, considered an important prophet in Islam, as a hedonist susceptible to sexual overtures. Mohammed and his 9-year old wife would have been outraged.
      ellauri156.html on line 457: One notable TV airing of the movie was on the American network NBC during The NBC Monday Movie on September 7, 1964 (which was Labor day that year). During one of the commercial breaks was the one and only official airing of the Daisy political advertisement by the Lyndon B. Johnson presidential campaign in the run-up to the 1964 United States presidential election. The commercial aired at 9:50 p.m. EST. It was a family film though most children living in the EST time-zone were gone to bed by then, leaving the children's parents to watch the commercial. The commercial stars a little girl (played by Monique Luiz) who is shown counting petals of a daisy which was then followed by an ominous male voice counting down to zero. During the countdown, the screen zoomed up the girl's eye in such a way whereby the parents would imagine their children there instead of the girl. The next scene was a nuclear explosion with the voice of Johnson asking for peace.
      ellauri156.html on line 495: Now here is a most amazing thing. David, years earlier, was adamant about the fact that those on a mission for the king should keep themselves from sexual intercourse. Now, years later, David is amazed that a man on a mission for the king is willing to abstain from sexual intercourse with his wife. Worse yet, David sets out to convince -- even to compel -- Uriah to go to do so, even though it will cause him to violate his conscience. This is not “causing a weaker brother to stumble;” this is cutting off a stronger brother's "leg" at the knob. Uriah is an example of the commitment expected of every soldier, and of David in particular -- at least the David of the past. Uriah is now acting like the David we knew from earlier days. Uriah is the “David” that David should be. But there is a crucial difference: now David is the king. This makes the case completely different.
      ellauri156.html on line 532: Li'l Abner is a satirical American comic strip that appeared in many newspapers in the United States, Canada and Europe, featuring a fictional clan of hillbillies in the impoverished mountain village of Dogpatch, USA. Written and drawn by Al Capp (1909–1979), the strip ran for 43 years, from August 13, 1934, through November 13, 1977.
      ellauri156.html on line 539: His One Sin: The rabbis agree that Abner deserved this violent death, though opinions differ concerning the exact nature of the sin that entailed so dire a punishment on one who was, on the whole, considered a "righteous man" (Gen. R. lxxxii. 4). Some reproach him that he did not use his influence with Saul to prevent him from murdering the priests of Nob (Yer. Peah, i. 16a; Lev. R. xxvi. 2; Sanh. 20a)—convinced as he was of the innocence of the priests and of the propriety of their conduct toward David, Abner holding that as leader of the army David was privileged to avail himself of the Urine and Thumbeline (I Sam. xxii. 9-19). Instead of contenting himself with passive resistance to Saul's command to murder the priests (Yalḳ., Sam. 131), Abner ought to have tried to restrain the king by the balls. Others maintain that Abner did make such an attempt, but in vain (Saul had not enough to get a proper hold of), and that his one sin consisted in that he delayed the beginning of David's reign over Israel by fighting him after Saul's death for two years and a half (Sanh. l.c.). Others, again, while excusing him for this—in view of a tradition founded on Gen. xlix. 27, according to which there were to be two kings of the house of Benjamin—blame Abner for having prevented a reconciliation between Saul and David on the occasion when the latter, in holding on to the skirt of Saul's robe (I Sam. xxiv. 11), showed how unfounded was the king's mistrust of him, seeing Saul had no balls to speak of. Old Saul was inclined to be happy with a pacifier; but Abner, representing to him that the naked David might have found a piece of garment anywhere — even just a piece of sackcloth caught on a thorn — prevented the reconciliation (Yer. Peah, l.c., Lev. R. l.c., and elsewhere). Moreover, it was wrong of Abner to permit Israelitish youths to kill one another for sport (II Sam. ii. 14-16). No reproach, however, attaches to him for the death of Asahel, since Abner killed him in self-defense (Sanh. 49a).
      ellauri156.html on line 578: Fourth, "How much wood would a woodchuck chuck if a woodchuck could chuck wood?" Sin snowballs. Sin has not got a snowball's chance in hell. Sin is not stagnant; it is not static. Sin grows. Look at the progression of sin in our text. David's sin starts when he ceases to act like a soldier and (what is way worse) becomes a late sleeper. David's sin grows from staying up late to adultery to murder. His sin begins very privately, but as the story progresses, more and more people become aware of it, and worse yet, more and more people become participants in it. His sin first acted out by his taking another man's wife, and then taking another man's life, and along with his life, his wife, plus the lives of a number of men who must die with him to make his death credible. David's sin blossoms so that it transforms a true and loyal friend (Uriah) to his enemy, and his enemies (the Ammonites, and his other rival Joab) into his allies.
      ellauri156.html on line 613: 13 All these died in faith, without receiving the promises, but having seen them and having welcomed them from a distance, and having confessed that they were strangers and exiles on the earth. 14 For those who say such things make it clear that they are seeking a country of their own. 15 And indeed if they had been thinking of that country from which they went out, they would have had opportunity to return. 16 But as it is, they desire a better country, that is, a heavenly one. Therefore God is not ashamed to be called their God; for He has prepared a city for them. 32 And what more shall I say? For time will fail me if I tell of Gideon, Barak, Samson, Jephthah, of David and Samuel and the prophets, 33 who by faith conquered kingdoms, performed acts of righteousness, obtained promises, shut the mouths of lions, 34 quenched the power of fire, escaped the edge of the sword, from weakness were made strong, became mighty in war, put foreign armies to flight. 35 Women received back their dead by resurrection; and others were tortured, not accepting their release, so that they might obtain a better resurrection; 36 and others experienced mockings and scourgings, yes, also chains and imprisonment. 37 They were stoned, they were sawn in two, they were tempted, they were put to death with the sword; they went about in sheepskins, in goatskins, in foreskins, being destitute, afflicted, ill-treated 38 (men of whom the world was not worthy), wandering in deserts and mountains and caves and holes in the ground. 39 And all these, having gained approval through their faith, did not receive what was promised, 40 because God had provided something even better for us, to make up for the wait, so that apart from us they would not be made perfect (Hebrews 11:13-16, 32-40).
      ellauri156.html on line 615: Uriah should not be criticized or looked down upon for his loyalty and submission to David. He should be highly commended. In fact, a friend suggested a new thought for my consideration: “Suppose that Uriah was added to the list of war heroes because of his loyalty and courage in this battle which cost him his life? It is a possibility to consider. Uriah is one of those Gentile converts whose faith and obedience puts many Israelites to shame. He is among many of those who have trusted and obeyed God who have not received their just rewards in this life, but who will be rewarded in the coming kingdom of God. Too many Christians today want their blessings “now” and are not willing to suffer, waiting for their reward then. Let them think carefully about the example of Uriah for their own lives. His elevator may have not gone all the way to the top floor, but by Gawd, he will reach it when Jacob lets down the ladder!
      ellauri156.html on line 625: A couple hundred years ago, my wife Jeannette and I went to England and Scotland with my parents. Each night we stayed at a “bed and breakfast” as we drove through Wales. There were a number of farms, but not so many towns in which to find a place to stay for the night. We saw a “bed and breakfast” sign and traveled along the country road until we found the place -- a very quaint farm. We saw several hundred sheep in a pasture, a stone trestle, and stone barns. It looked like the perfect place, and in many ways it was. What we did not realize was that the stone trestle was a railroad trestle for a train that came by late at night, a few feet from the house where we slept. Two cows also calved that night. I have spent my share of time around farms, but I have never heard the bellow of a cow that was calving echo throughout a stone barn. I could hardly sleep a wink. Just goes to show. Never trust the Rugby guys.
      ellauri156.html on line 629: Now this little fellow was one lamb among a great many. Nevertheless, he enjoyed the distinction of being regarded as a “pet lamb.” (I am coming to te most narcissistic part of my sermon, going to introduce you to the good shepherd in a moment.) In the story which Nathan tells David, it is not quite the same. Nathan tells David of a “pet lamb” who is the only sheep of a poor farmer. This lamb does not live in a pen outside the house; it lives inside the house, often in the loving hairy arms of its master, and eats the same food he eats. This is the story Nathan tells David, which God uses to expose the wretchedness of David's sin. It is our text for this message, and once again, it has much to teach us, as well as David. Let us give careful heed to the inspired words of Nathan, and learn from a lamb. (I bet the lamb had much more to learn from the "boys".)
      ellauri156.html on line 633: David has become king of both Judah and Israel. He has, in large measure, consolidated his kingdom. He has taken Jebus and made it his capital city, renaming it Jerusalem. He has built his palace and given thought to building a temple (a plan God significantly revises). He has subjected most of Israel's neighboring nations. He has done battle with the Ammonites and prevailed, but he has not yet completely defeated them. The Ammonites have retreated to the royal city of Rabbah, and as the time for war (spring) approaches, David sends all Israel, led by Joab, to besiege the city and to bring about its surrender. David has chosen not to endure the rigors of camping in the open field, outside the city. He has chosen rather to remain in Jerusalem. Sleeping late, David rises from his bed as others prepare to go to bed for the night. David strolls about the rooftop of his palace and happens to steal a look at a beautiful young woman bathing herself, perhaps ceremonially, in fulfillment of the law.
      ellauri156.html on line 645: When Bathsheba's mourning is complete, David sends for her and brings her to himself as his wife. Wait, was little David born as yet, or did he start fucking her with her belly full? I do not see him bending down on his knees, proposing. I do not see him courting her, sending her roses. I see him “taking” her once again. And again. In fact, this is my favourite part. The question in my mind is, “Why?” Why does David take Bathsheba into his house as one of his wives? I do not think he is any longer trying to “cover up” his sin; it is far too late for that. She must be “showing” her pregnancy by now, and it is hard to imagine how all Israel cannot know what has been going on. It appears that at this point, David is not trying to conceal his sin, but to legitimize it. Whatever David's reasons may be, they are hardly spiritual, and they are most certainly self-serving.
      ellauri156.html on line 675: There are several important things to note about this meeting between Nathan and King David. First, note that Nathan is sent to David. Nathan is, of course, a prophet. However it comes about, he knows what David has done. If you will pardon the pun, David cannot pull the wool over his eyes. His words are, in the final analysis, the very word of God (see 12:11). If Nathan is a prophet, he is also a man who seems to be a friend to David. One of David's sons is named Nathan (2 Samuel 5:14). David informs Nathan of his desire to build a temple (chapter 7). Nathan will later christen (sorry, name) Bathsheba's and David's second son (12:25). He will remain loyal to the king and to Solomon when Adonijah seeks to usurp the throne (1 Kings 2). Nathan does not come to David only as God's spokesman, he comes to David as his friend.
      ellauri156.html on line 679: Second, note that Nathan is sent to David. Twelve times in the last chapter the word “sent” is employed by the author. A number of these instances refer to David “sending” someone or “sending” for someone. David is a man of power and authority, and so he can “send out” for whatever he wants, including the death of Uriah. Now, it is God who does the “sending.” Herra se on herrallakin. Is David impressed with his power and authority? Has he gotten used to “sending” people to do his work for him (like sending Joab and all Israel to fight the Ammonites)? Let David take note that God is sending Nathan. He is a godsend to Dave.
      ellauri156.html on line 687: Why a story? Why not just let David have it head-on, with both barrels, like David did with Bathsheba? Many will point out that this is a skillfully employed tactic, which gets David to pronounce judgment on the crime before he realizes that he is the criminal. I think this is true. David is angry at this “rich man's” lack of compassion. If he could, he would have this fellow put to death (!). But as it is, justice requires a four-fold restitution. But having already committed himself in principle, Nathan can now apply the principle to David, in particular.
      ellauri156.html on line 689: As I understand the Bible, there is more to the story than this, however. Our lord (meaning Jeshua) frequently told stories. Why was this? Was it because he was trying to “put the cookies on the lowest shelf”? Was he accommodating his teaching to those who might have difficulty understanding it? Sometimes our lord told stories to the religious experts, who should have been able to follow a more technical argument. No, I think his own elevator did not quite reach the upper floors. I am thinking in particular of the story of the Good Samaritan, as recorded in Luke 10. A religious lawyer stood up and asked Jesus a question, not to sincerely learn, but with the hope of making our Lord look bad before the people. He asked, “What shall I do to inherit eternal life?” Jesus turned the question around. This man was the expert in the Law of Moses, what did it teach? The man answered, “YOU SHALL LOVE THE LORD YOUR GOD WITH ALL YOUR HEART, AND WITH ALL YOUR SOUL, AND WITH ALL YOUR STRENGTH, AND WITH ALL YOUR MIND; AND YOUR NEIGHBOR AS YOURSELF, THAT IS, EVEN MORE.” (Luke 10:27). In effect, Jesus responded, “Right. Now do it.” That was the problem with the law, no one could do it without failing, and so no one could earn their way to heaven by good works. Well, how high can we get with mediocre works? Someplace between heaven and hell would actually be most preferable.
      ellauri156.html on line 691: The lawyer knew he was in trouble and tried to dig himself out (bad choice). He (like many lawyers then and now) thought he could get himself off the hook by arguing in terms of technicalities. And so he had a follow-up question for Jesus: “And who is my neighbor?” Jesus did not debate this man on his own terms. He was not willing to get into a word study in the original text. Instead, Jesus told a simple story, the story of the Good Samaritan.
      ellauri156.html on line 699: The lawyer was in trouble; the story had no technicalities over which to argue. It brought the issue home, with little ground for quibbling over details. When push came to shove, the lawyer knew our Lord's functional definition of “neighbor” was absolutely right. He had nowhere to hide. The story did the trick; it cut to the heart of the matter, while avoiding trivial details to quibble over for hours. It was not the lawyer who made Jesus look bad with all his minutiae but Jesus who made the lawyer look bad with a simple story. The best part about similes that they can be tweaked any way you wish. Russians are our neighbors if they get to trouble, and so are Chinamen. But there is nothing here about helping them when they threaten our vital interests.
      ellauri156.html on line 707: The rich man had a guest drop in for a visit, and as the host he was obliged to provide him with a meal. After giving the matter considerable thought, the rich man decided upon lamb, and yet he was not willing to sacrifice one lamb from all those he owned. Instead, he took the poor man's lamb, slaughtered and served it to his guest, so as not to suffer any losses personally. He not only let (i.e., forced) the poor man to pick up the tab for the meal, he deprived this man of his only lamb, and one that was like a member of the family.
      ellauri156.html on line 709: I hope I am not guilty of attempting to make this story “walk on all fours” when I stress the same thing the story does -- that there is a very warm and loving relationship between the rich man and the poor man's “pet lamb.” It really tasted great! Considered along with everything else we read about Uriah and Bathsheba and David, I must conclude that the author is making it very clear that Uriah and Bathsheba dearly loved each other. Anyway, who cares this way or that, it was his lamb. When David “took” this woman to his bedroom that fateful night, and then as his wife after the murder of Uriah, he took her from the man she loved. Bathsheba and Uriah were devoted to each other, which adds further weight to the arguments for her not being a willing participant in David's sins. It also emphasizes the character of Uriah, who is so near to his wife, who is being urged by the king to go to her, and yet who refuses to do so out of principle.
      ellauri156.html on line 722: Second, David recognizes what he views as the greater sin, and that is the rich man's total lack of compassion. David is furious because a rich man stole and slaughtered a poor man's pet. He does not yet see the connection to his lack of compassion for stealing a poor man's beloved companion, Uriah's wife, Bathsheba. The slaughtering of Uriah is most certainly an act which lacks compassion. The crowning touch in David's display of righteous indignation is the religious flavoring he gives it by the words, “as the Lord lives” (verse 5).
      ellauri156.html on line 744: First and foremost, David's sin is against God. He has ceased to humbly acknowledge God as the Giver of all he possesses. He has ceased to look to God to provide him with all his needs -- and his desires. David has not only ceased to ask God to supply his needs, he has disobeyed God's commands by committing adultery and murder. David's sin against God manifests itself by the evils he commits against others. Nathan outlines these, employing a repetitive “you:”
      ellauri156.html on line 759: even take your wives before your eyes, and give them to your companion
      ellauri156.html on line 766: The evil David commits against others is clear disobedience to the revealed Word of God. David is a “man after God's own heart,” and yet in this instance, David “despised the Word of the Lord.” While David does repent and the guilt of his sin is forgiven, these consequences will not be reversed. These consequences are just; they fit the crime David committed. He used the sword of the Ammonites to kill Uriah, and so the sword will not depart from his house. He took the wife of another man, and so his own wives will be taken by another, another from his own house.
      ellauri156.html on line 780: (3) God is under no obligation to stop us from sinning. (So why did he bother with David then? Is he some sort of special case? Of course he is, he is Dawgs petlamb. Sometimes people justify their sin by saying something like: “I've prayed about it and asked God to stop me if it is wrong. . . .” When God does not stop them, they somehow assume it must be right. God could have stopped David after he chose to stay home from the war, or after he began to covet Uriah's wife, or after he committed adultery, but instead He allowed David to persist in his sin for some time. God even allowed David to get away with murder, for a time. Well actually, for good. It was just a immigrant after all. God's Word forbade David's sins of coveting, adultery, and murder. God's Word commanded David to stop, and he did not. God allowed David to persist in his sin for a season, but not indefinitely. God allowed David's sin to go full circle, to reach full bloom, so that he (and we) could see how sin grows (compare Genesis 15:12-16).
      ellauri158.html on line 436: Aina tietää että kun Siili alkaa monisanaisesti pulista, se ei välttämättä izekään ihan tiedä mitä se haluu sanoa. Mitähän tääkin taaas olisi? Onxe jotain sellasta että toteutumattomat asiat (esim siis apinoiden esi-isät) on olemassa joteskin kuitenkin jumalan hämärinä ajatuxina sittenkin kun niitä ei oikeasti ole? Vaikea sanoa, kun Siili ei edes ize kexi yhtään kunnon esimerkkiä. Jotain geometrista höpinää ympyrään piirretyistä neliöistä vaan. Tässä tulee mieleen sen peräsuolisyöpään kuolleen Jon Barwisen vaikeudet kun se koitti rakentaa semantiikan vaan yhdestä mahdollisesta maailmasta. Se oli aika siilimäistä. Onkohan se oikein realistista? Jaakko Hintikkaa sanottiin idealistixi kun sillä oli niitä monia. Hintikkaa ei hirveästi vaivannut oliko ne oikeasti olemassa, leikisti oikeasti, mitä väliä. Ize asiassa Barwise oli varmaan niistä oikeistolaisempi. In his last year, Barwise was invited to give the 2000 Gödel Lecture; he died prior to the lecture.
      ellauri158.html on line 692: All men are born ignorant of the causes of things, that all have the desire to seek for what is useful to them, and that they are conscious of such desire. Herefrom it follows, first, that men think themselves free inasmuch as they are conscious of their volitions and desires, and never even dream, in their ignorance, of the causes which have disposed them so to wish and desire. Secondly, that men do all things for an end, namely, for that which is useful to them, and which they seek. Thus it comes to pass that they only look for a knowledge of the final causes of events, and when these are learned, they are content, as having no cause for further doubt. If they cannot learn such causes from external sources, they are compelled to turn to considering themselves, and reflecting what end would have induced them personally to bring about the given event, and thus they necessarily judge other natures by their own. Further, as they find in themselves and outside themselves many means which assist them not a little in the search for what is useful, for instance, eyes for seeing, teeth for chewing, herbs and animals for yielding food, the sun for giving light, the sea for breeding fish, &c., they come to look on the whole of nature as a means for obtaining such conveniences. Now as they are aware, that they found these conveniences and did not make them, they think they have cause for believing, that some other being has made them for their use. As they look upon things as means, they cannot believe them to be self—created; but, judging from the means which they are accustomed to prepare for themselves, they are bound to believe in some ruler or rulers of the universe endowed with human freedom, who have arranged and adapted everything for human use. They are bound to estimate the nature of such rulers (having no information on the subject) in accordance with their own nature, and therefore they assert that the gods ordained everything for the use of man, in order to bind man to themselves and obtain from him the highest honor.
      ellauri159.html on line 412:
    3. R: Reformed Christians follow John Calvin's Institutes of the Christian Religion, which follows the Septuagint; this system is also used in the Anglican yer" title="Book of Common Prayer">Book of Common Prayer.

    4. ellauri159.html on line 436: If bent in prayer to three or four.
      ellauri159.html on line 635: If we are “full of ourselves,” we are usually “full of shit”. Being empowered and acting out of our own self-will may get us pretty far, but not in God’s eyes. The jealous God prefers us to be emptied of our own strength so he can fill us up with his own strength.
      ellauri159.html on line 639: In God’s eyes, humility is defined as simply putting ourselves completely under His mighty hand. We are humble when we are free from pride and arrogance.
      ellauri159.html on line 672: If anyone comes to me and does not hate his father and mother, his wife and children, his brothers and sisters—yes, even his own life—he cannot be my disciple. And anyone who does not carry his cross and follow me cannot be my disciple.
      ellauri159.html on line 682: Being truthful means being real honest with the facts, but it also means living in a way where what you know to be true influences your daily actions. A knight who has not yet fully resolved that he will speak only the truth will stumble on a lie.
      ellauri159.html on line 780: Mastery: Skill and adeptness in using the techniques and technology employed in hunting and fighting; a deft understanding of knowledge that saves lives and furthers the interests of your group.
      ellauri159.html on line 789: So what are the defining traits of femininity? Oh-hoho, I’m not going to touch that with a ten-foot pole. I´m not THAT brave. It’s taken me years to understand manhood, and I’m still refining my views. I wouldn’t appreciate it if a woman who hadn’t rigorously studied masculinity offered an off-the-cuff definition for it, so I will refrain from doing likewise. Someone should start an awesome Art of Womanliness-type blog and explore the subject. I’ll be a reader.
      ellauri159.html on line 803: In 2004, he published The Seven Basic Plots: Why We Tell Stories, a Jungian-influenced analysis of stories andń their psychological meaning, on which he had been working for over 30 years. The book was dismissed by Adam Mars-Jones, who objected to Booker employing his generalisations about conventional plot structures prescriptively: "He sets up criteria for art, and ends up condemning Rigoletto, The Cherry Orchard, Wagner, Proust, Joyce, Kafka and Lawrence – the list goes on – while praising Crocodile Dundee, ET and Terminator 2".
      ellauri159.html on line 856:
      ellauri159.html on line 857:
      ellauri159.html on line 892: Nytpä löytyi hyvä neuvokki! Täällä yers-briggs-types-101-famous-authors/">kirjamellakassa on annettu kirjailijatyypeille sopivia helposti muistettavia nimiä! Taidankin käyttää näitä jatkossa.
      ellauri159.html on line 894: For those of you who are not familiar with Myers-Briggs or the MBTI (Myers-Briggs Type Indicator), it is a personality profiling system based on Jung’s typological theory that was developed by Katherine Cook Briggs and her daughter Isabel Briggs Myers. In the Myers-Briggs typology system, there are sixteen personality types consisting of four letters: E for extrovert or I for introvert, S for sensor or N for intuitive, T for thinker or F for feeler, and P for perceiver or J for judger. Psychologist David Keirsey later sorted these types into four temperaments. You can read more about Myers-Briggs here and find books about it here. Myers-Briggs typology can offer a lot of insight into how someone thinks, and in the case of an author, how someone writes.
      ellauri159.html on line 928: ESFPs are enthusiastic about having new experiences and meeting new people. They are generally warm and adaptable realists who go with the flow. ESFP authors include Tony Robbins, Wayne Dyer, Deepak Chopra, Bill Clinton, and Paulo Coelho. Learn more about how ESFPs write here.
      ellauri159.html on line 1057: Be self-motivated and self-directed. However, when writing for a teacher, editor, or boss, you may want explicit instructions. If you don’t have a clear understanding of other people’s expectations, you may struggle in silence. Instead, try asking to see a model of what to work toward (for example, last year’s annual report or a term paper that earned an A). A concrete example will help alleviate confusion.
      ellauri159.html on line 1101: Try to consider the audience if at all possible. Where appropriate, incorporate a human element into your writing to help human readers connect to the topic. (Analogously if you write to chickens.) Use your powers of persuasion to sway others to your point of view. Ask someone you trust to review your writing to make sure you’ve achieved the desired effect, i.e. swayed them.
      ellauri159.html on line 1119: It is best to take a lighthearted approach to serious subjects, No need to consider both sides of an argument. Ask a writer friend to review the piece. Request that the feedback be very specific, better yet, a rewrite. Ask for a chunk price, don´t pay by the hour.
      ellauri159.html on line 1131: Make sure you don´t gather too much information in the exploration stage or you don’t have a clear sense of direction left. If you feel overwhelmed, ask for help or talk to a trusted friend. Connect the topic to your values, like the value of money. Write without inhibition and let your voice shine. Remember, your drafts are for your eyes only. They’re the rough stone from which you sculpt the finished product. Your teacher will be happy to cross out the stuff that can´t be printed.
      ellauri159.html on line 1171: We know you have no great love for facts and details. Leave enough time at the end to check that you’ve included sufficient objective data. Strive for balance and fairness, include both facts and alternative facts. Avoid over-reliance on personal insight. Ask a trusted friend to review your writing with a critical eye. Your work will be stronger for it. And, WtF, you can always just ignore them.
      ellauri159.html on line 1207: According to PersonalityDesk.com, INFJs are the Myers-Briggs type most likely to express marital dissatisfaction. When I first read this, it puzzled me. After all, INFJs are adept at solving problems involving people. In fact, INFJs are so good at solving problems that they may unconsciously scan their environment looking for ways to improve relationships. This, I think, is what leads to the dissatisfaction.
      ellauri159.html on line 1209: According to Dr. Phil, 90% of relationship problems can’t be solved. Why? Because it would require one person or the other to compromise their values. So the best a couple can do is to agree to disagree. INFJs don’t want people to compromise their values—yet that 90% statistic is bound to discourage INFJs like me. I suspect it isn’t the relationship problems themselves that lead to the INFJs’ dissatisfaction; it’s the fact that the problems can’t be solved. Perhaps the INFJs feel that if only they could be more creative, or their partner could be more flexible, the little annoyances that have existed since the first day of the relationship could be eliminated. Not so. No amount of skill or understanding will make naturally ingrained differences go away.
      ellauri159.html on line 1213: Perhaps this is what draws me to writing women’s fiction. I can create relationship problems, which I can then go about solving, without hurting anyone but my fictional characters in the process. Real life, unfortunately, doesn’t work that way. The INFJs’ search for perfection can damage otherwise good relationships. So I propose a revised Serenity Prayer for INFJs: God grant me the serenity to accept the things I cannot change. Period. Oh, I got my period.
      ellauri159.html on line 1219: You prefer writing about your own personal topics. You may lose your creative drive if the subject isn’t about you. If so, try taking an angle that allows you to write about your feelings on the topic, if not you yourself. If you’re a technical writer, look for ways to connect with readers by anticipating and meeting their needs. Or you can use your tech knowledge to write another Gravity´s Rainbow. But don´t expect your employer to like it.
      ellauri159.html on line 1349: He was born in 1832 and lived for eighty-six years. During that time he wrote much, but unsystematically. His favorite form of publication was letters to newspapers, mainly local newspapers with a small circulation. These letters dealt with an astonishing diversity of subjects, from local petty politics or the tricks of spiritualist mediums to principles of industry and finance and profundities of metaphysics.
      ellauri159.html on line 1362: Then pass, all glory-cloyed, world- wise, and dark ;
      ellauri159.html on line 1423: The unclassified residuum, 299. The Society for Psychical Research and its history, 303. Thought-transference, 308. Gurney's work, 309. The census of hallucinations, 312. Mediumship, 313. The 'subliminal self,' 315. 'Science' and her counter-presumptions, 317. The scientific character of Mr. Myers's work, 320. The mechanical-impersonal view of life versus the personal-romantic view, 324.
      ellauri160.html on line 46: I was picking flowers, playing by my door, I played about the front gate, pulling flowers.
      ellauri160.html on line 67: And now, in the Eighth-month, yellowing butterflies The paired butterflies are already yellow with August
      ellauri160.html on line 126: Both sides of Pound's family emigrated from England in the 17th century. On his father's side, the immigrant ancestor was John Pound, a Quaker who arrived from England around 1650. Ezra's paternal grandmother, Susan Angevine Loomis, married Thaddeus Coleman Pound. On his mother's side, Pound was descended from William Wadsworth, a Puritan who emigrated to Boston on the Lion in 1632. Captain Joseph Wadsworth helped to write the Connecticut constitution. The Wadsworths married into the Westons of New York; Harding Weston and Mary Parker were Pound's maternal grandparents. After serving in the military, Harding remained unemployed, so his brother Ezra Weston and Ezra's wife, Frances Amelia Wessells Freer (Aunt Frank), helped to look after Isabel, Pound's mother. No oliko Pound sitten sukua myös Henry "setelitukun väärti" Longfellowille? Varmaan niin.
      ellauri160.html on line 128: Pound's education began in dame schools: Miss Elliott's school in Jenkintown in 1892 and the Heathcock family's Chelten Hills School in Wyncote in 1893. Known as "Ra" (pronounced "Ray"), he attended Wyncote Public School from September 1894. His first publication was on 7 November 1896 in the Jenkintown Times-Chronicle ("by E. L. Pound, Wyncote, aged 11 years"), a limerick about William Jennings Bryan, who had just lost the 1896 presidential election.
      ellauri160.html on line 130: In 1897, aged 12, he transferred to Cheltenham Military Academy (CMA), where he wore an American Civil War-style uniform and was taught drilling and how to shoot. The following year he made his first trip overseas, a three-month tour with his mother and Aunt Frank, who took him to England, Belgium, Germany, Switzerland, Italy, Spain, and Morocco. He attended CMA until 1900, at times as a boarder, but it seems he did not graduate.
      ellauri160.html on line 132: In 1901 Pound was admitted, aged 15, to the University of Pennsylvania's College of Liberal Arts. Years later he said his aim was to avoid drill at the military academy. His one distinction in first year was in geometry, but otherwise his grades were mostly poor, including in Latin, his major; he achieved a B in English composition and a pass in English literature. In his second year he switched from the degree course to "non-degree special student status", he said "to avoid irrelevant subjects". He was not elected to a fraternity at Penn, but it seemed not to bother him.
      ellauri160.html on line 155: After persuading his parents to finance his passage back to Europe, he sailed from New York on the R.M.S. Mauretania on 22 February 1911. It was nearly 30 years—April 1939—before he visited the U.S. again.
      ellauri160.html on line 178: In the summer of 1913 Pound became literary editor of The Egoist, a journal founded by the suffragette Dora Marsden. At the suggestion of W. B. Yeats, Pound encouraged James Joyce in December of that year to submit his work. Harriet Shaw Weaver accepted it for The Egoist, which serialized it from 2 February 1914, despite the printers objecting to words like "fart" and "ballocks", and fearing prosecution over Stephen Dedalus's thoughts about prostitutes. Joyce wrote to Yeats: "I can never thank you enough for having brought me into relation with your friend Ezra Pound who is indeed a miracle worker."
      ellauri160.html on line 180: This was the first of three winters Pound and Yeats spent at Stone Cottage, including two with Dorothy after she and Ezra married in 1914. "Canto LXXXIII" records a visit: "so that I recalled the noise in the chimney / as it were the wind in the chimney / but was in reality Uncle William / downstairs composing / that had made a great Peeeeacock / in the proide ov his oiye."
      ellauri160.html on line 188: On 22 September 1914 T. S. Eliot traveled from Merton College, Oxford, with an introduction from Conrad Aiken, to have Pound read Eliot's unpublished "The Love Song of J. Alfred Prufrock". Pound wrote to Harriet Monroe, editor of Poetry, on 30 September to say that Eliot—who was at Oxford on a fellowship from Harvard—had "sent in the best poem I have yet had or seen from an American ... He has actually trained himself and modernized himself on his own." Monroe did not like Prufrock's "very European world-weariness", according to Humphrey Carpenter, but she published it anyway, in June 1915.
      ellauri160.html on line 195: Robert Graves wrote in 1955: "Pound knew little Latin, yet he translated Propertius; and less Greek, but he translated Alcaeus; and still less Anglo-Saxon, yet he translated The Seafarer. I once asked Arthur Waley how much Chinese Pound knew; Waley shook his head despondently."
      ellauri160.html on line 209: The Pounds settled in Paris around April 1921 and in December moved to an inexpensive ground-floor apartment at 70 bis Rue Notre-Dame-des-Champs. Pound became friendly with Marcel Duchamp, Fernand Léger, Tristan Tzara, and others of the Dada and Surrealist movements, as well as Basil Bunting. He was introduced to the American writer Gertrude Stein, who was living in Paris. She wrote years later that she liked him but did not find him amusing; he was "a village explainer, excellent if you were a village, but if you were not, not".
      ellauri160.html on line 211: Hemingway, then aged 22, moved to Paris with his wife, Hadley Richardson, and letters of introduction from Sherwood Anderson. In February 1922 the Hemingways visited the Pounds for tea. Although Pound was 14 years older, the men became friends; Hemingway assumed the status of pupil and asked Pound to edit his short stories. Pound introduced him to his contacts, including Lewis, Ford, John Peale Bishop, Malcolm Cowley, and Derek Patmore, while Hemingway tried to teach Pound to box. Hemingway was a drinker, Ezra not.
      ellauri160.html on line 221: Angered by the carnage of World War I, Pound blamed the war on finance capitalism, which he called "usury". He was completely right. He moved to Italy in 1924 and through the 1930s and 1940s promoted an economic theory known as social credit, wrote for publications owned by the British fascist Sir Oswald Mosley, embraced Benito Mussolini's fascism, and expressed support for Adolf Hitler. During World War II and the Holocaust in Italy, he made hundreds of paid radio broadcasts for the Italian government, including in German-occupied Italy, attacking the United States, Franklin D. Roosevelt, Great Britain, international finance, munitions makers and mongers, and Jews, among others, as causes, abettors and prolongers of the world war, as a result of which he was arrested in 1945 by American forces in Italy on charges of treason. He spent months in a U.S. military camp in Pisa, including three weeks in an outdoor steel cage. Deemed unfit to stand trial, he was incarcerated in St. Elizabeths psychiatric hospital in Washington, D.C., for over 12 years. Nothing has changed: this sounds precisely like the U.S. decades long persecution of Assange.
      ellauri160.html on line 361: Runoilu on nykyisin mennyt jotenkin sellaiseksi, että mitä vähemmän siitä sanoo sen parempi. -- . Parkkisen runot ovat osaamisen lisääntyessä rypistyneet viinirypäleistä rusinoiksi. Se mikä on jäänyt on kuivahkoa mutta omalla tavallaan täyteläistä ja tuoretta. Vanhanmallisiin ahtaisiin raameihin on Parkkinen saanut paljon uutta viipyvää runoa, uutta kuvaa. Mutta jotenkin tämä huipputarkka pihistely alkaa harmittaa. Jos runoa kerran on tullakseen, niin tulkoon vain ja vähän ronskimmin. Tähän "hiljaiseen mietiskelyyn" on lyriikkamme hyvää vauhtia tukehtumassa.
      ellauri160.html on line 415: Then prayed I many a prayer to the sickly death’s-heads; Sit mä pyllistelin aika sairaan paljon kalloille;
      ellauri160.html on line 424: Battle spoil, bearing yet dreory arms, Saalista, kuhmuisia mutta kunnon aseita,
      ellauri160.html on line 472: Girdles and breast bands, thou with dark eyelids vöitä ja tissiliivejä, sä mustaluominen,
      ellauri160.html on line 491: 7The golden bough of Argicida - Formula of address for Hermes. "Argicida" is the Latin translation of the epithet Ἀργειφόντης ("Argeiphontes" - slayer of Argus) which is always applied to him, whereas the golden bough is Hermes´ caduceus, or wand. PL. Hermes has an appearance in the other Hymn to Aphrodite (no. V), printed in the Divus volume. Eli se em. kyrvännäköinen tirso-sauva. It all figures. Mua ärsyttää Dos Vidaxen Tirson musta pässintukka, menis parturiin. Luupää.
      ellauri160.html on line 587: Lilith is often depicted naked and with longer hair and frequently in a seductive dance pose like Ardit-Lili. (Eli se on toi joka seisoo jalat harallaan pillu ärvöllään.) In the inscriptions surrounding the images she is described as a female demon who strangles babies at their hour of birth. Mabhalta, her usual companion, is described on one of the bowls as “the great destroyer of fire.”
      ellauri160.html on line 637: According to the Zohar, after Cain kills Abel, Adam separates from Eve for 130 years. During this time, Lilith and Naamah seduce him and bear his demonic children, who became the Plagues of Mankind. She and Lilith cause epilepsy in children.
      ellauri160.html on line 651: About 1000 years after the era of Solomon and David, another widely known intervention occurred known as "The spiritual intervention of Hanina ben Dosa and Rabbi Abaye" which ended up curbing her malevolent powers over humans.
      ellauri160.html on line 676: Belórf eli aiemmin avoliitossa Katiska-huumevyyhdin pomona tutuksi tulleen Niko Ranta-ahon kanssa. Myös Belórf tuomittiin Katiska-vyyhteen liittyen 80 päivän ehdolliseen vankeustuomioon huumausainerikoksesta ja rahanpesusta. Belórf on kiistänyt tienneensä ex-kumppaninsa rikoksista ja väittää olevansa itsekin syytön.
      ellauri160.html on line 677: Ennen Thermania Belórf eli avoliitossa Katiska-rikosvyyhdestä tutun Niko Ranta-ahon kanssa. Myös Belórf tuomittiin vyyhteen liittyen 80 päivän ehdolliseen vankeustuomioon huumausainerikoksesta ja rahanpesusta. Belórf kiistää tienneensä ex-kumppaninsa rikoksista ja on vakuuttanut itsekin (kin?) olevansa syytön ja viattomana ristiinnaulittu.
      ellauri161.html on line 127: Nyölénin kristologia on aika lailla kunnossa, hän tosin sanoo Kristuksen olleen "kaikessa täsmälleen kuten me" (s. 87) ilman perinteistä lisäystä "kuitenkin ilman syntiä". Hei Anton, tämä ei ole vaan perinteinen lisäys, vaan puolet koko kakusta! Nyt on mennä lapsivesi sikiön mukana, kz. tietolaatikkoa. Eikai tässä nyt ruveta lankeemaan humanismin syntiin! Hyvin äkkiä tässä päädytään jopa kieltämään pyhän hengen osuus siitoxessa. Pyhä Henki, "kristinuskon jumalista oudoin" (s. 87) on Nyölénille jonkinlaista epämääräistä yhteishenkeä, vaikka hän myös käyttää oikeaoppista termiä "kolmas persoona" (s. 88). Kun Isä, Poika ja Pyhä Henki ovat näin erilaisia, nousee kysymys siitä, jakavatko he mitään yhteistä jumalallista olemusta. Tämä on relevanttia siksi, että Nyölén uskoo Kristuksen jumaluuteen: mikä jumaluus Kristuksessa oikein tuli ihmiseksi? Kuka oli se Isä, joka on "rakastanut minua", kenelle tai mille Kristus sanoi "Abba", luonnonlaeilleko? Vaiko ruozalaiselle pop-yhtyeelle? Anjovisrasialleko? Ja minne amma jai? Siis ämmä jäi? Jeesuxen äiskä?
      ellauri161.html on line 213: Christa Päffgen eli Nico (16. lokakuuta 1938 Köln, Saksa – 10. heinäkuuta 1988 Ibiza, Espanja) oli saksalais-yhdysvaltalainen rocklaulaja ja -säveltäjä. Uransa alussa hän toimi myös mallina ja näyttelijänä. Hän oli ennen omaa uraa yksi taiteilija Andy Warholin "supertähtiä" ja teki yhteistyötä 1960-luvun rock-yhtye Velvet Undergroundin kanssa. Tunnetuimpia hänen esittämiään kappaleita ovat ”I’ll Be Your Mirror”, ”Femme Fatale”, ”All Tomorrow’s Parties”, ”Chelsea Girls” ja ”Frozen Warnings”.
      ellauri161.html on line 472: The Chicxulub asteroid Jennifer Lawrence's character mentions hit Earth 66 million years ago in what is now Mexico. The estimated size of the asteroid was 10 kilometers wide (six miles) and resulted in 75% of all life on the planet dying. Known as the dinosaur killer, the asteroid left a crater estimated to be 150 kilometers (93 miles) in diameter and 20 kilometers (12 miles) in depth.
      ellauri161.html on line 485: 9/10 A really good movie, yet painful to watch
      ellauri161.html on line 519: Climate change was hardly the issue that was going to get the Democratic party out of the mess it was in until "science" easily outplayed the unsophisticated Trump who had no idea how to cope with such an incredibly powerful and clever juggernaut.
      ellauri161.html on line 549: So yes, this means that even the supporting characters in subplots get a C storyline. See the problem yet? (No. What is it? Everybody's got a C story line in life, so what?)
      ellauri161.html on line 560: Haha, yeah, he is—and amen to that. This is the truest, most on-point movie I saw in 2021. McKay gets sinister in Don’t Look Up, and I, for one, am glad somebody is being appropriately nasty in pointing out how absolutely moronic humans have become in the new millennium. Sorry, folks: We are fucking up big time; McKay knows it; and he’s pulling no punches.
      ellauri161.html on line 584: A lady critic: His approach to comedy and my ability to enjoy his work as a director began to diverge when he had a sequence about bailouts and crony capitalism tacked on to another otherwise funny film. That was tasteless. The problem was McKay seemed to find entertainment and real-world issues to be fundamentally separate, deploying one in hopes of getting eyes on the other. While all we droopy lips know that they are part of one and the same entertainment scene!
      ellauri161.html on line 588: And yet it’s hard to think about who, exactly, is going to be moved to make changes to how they live their lives by Don’t Look Up, a climate-change allegory that acquired accidental COVID-19 relevance, but that doesn’t really end up being about much at all, beyond that humanity sucks. And film critics suck about most of all.
      ellauri161.html on line 590: Don’t Look Up wants to paint our inaction with regard to climate change as the result of denialism and being distracted by silly things like, say, a movie streaming on Netflix. But climate change isn’t a comet headed our way in less than a year — a lousy, faulty metaphor for where we’re at right now. Except that IT IS! It's probably too late already. Now get a big mouth fuck goddam Allison Willmore,
      ellauri161.html on line 601: General Buck Turgidson knockoff (played by an unsmiling Ron Perlman) illustrates how far wide he misses the mark. By exaggerating certain aspects of human behavior, Don’t Look Up takes cynicism to a level that is not only excessive but doesn’t make for a story that’s either compelling or entertaining. During the course of watching Don’t Look Up, the only emotion I experienced was frustration – frustration that the movie could waste so much talent in the service of something so underwhelming. In other words, I could not laugh at all because the laugh was on me.
      ellauri161.html on line 666: More races & years later, Ricky now lives in a large mansion, then in a race chickens out and runs around in his underwear and helmet. Shamed, Ricky moves in with his mother Lucy (Jane Lynch), and brings his sons with him while taking a job as a pizza delivery man. Ricky eventually regains his courage, and his life begins to stabilize after quitting his job at the pizza parlor and getting a new driver´s license.
      ellauri161.html on line 671: For the majority of the film (not Talladega, the new one), we’re bouncing from one republican caricature to the next. Streep is a female version of Donald Trump. Jonah Hill is a fratty version of Donald Trump Jr. Mark Rylance is a right-wing version of Tim Cook. (What a joke, he's way too poor.) And Ron Perlman is a red-eyed version of General Turgidson. When General Turgidson wonders aloud what kind of name "Strangelove" is, saying to Mr. Staines (Jack Creley) that it is not a "Kraut name", Staines responds that Strangelove's original German surname was Merkwürdigliebe ("Strange love" in German) and that "he changed it when he became a citizen". A kike anyway, by the name.
      ellauri161.html on line 749: One of the worst movies I have ever seen. I will never get back that 2.5 hours of my life. Who payed for this crap to be put on film? (Esim sinä.)
      ellauri161.html on line 758: worst movie I've seen this year
      ellauri161.html on line 769: Big let down. The humor is so off-putting it doesn´t pull laughs, while the drama is hard to dive into whilst characters scream at the camera. The portrayal is so unrealistic, so cringe, so superficial that none of the characters are true heroes. They all appear as delusional, distracted ego maniacs detached from reality. The end is anti-climactic leaving the viewer with gratitude it looks nothing like the world we actually live in. (True, being 22400 years away. But I bet the immigrant will soon reduce brontauks to extinction.)
      ellauri161.html on line 851:

      Yleiset termit ja lausekkeet


      ellauri161.html on line 931: Toute religion doit pour de Maistre être sociale ; or, le protestantisme n'étant pas social à ses yeux, voire anti-souverain par nature, il n'est pas une religion. La religion doit apporter des croyances communes, et apporter la cohésion de l'organisme politique. Elle doit protéger le pouvoir autant que le pouvoir doit la protéger. Il n'est donc pas question de séparer l'Église de l'État, bien au contraire. C'est pourquoi Joseph de Maistre prônera un régime de type théocratique, dans lequel la religion tient un rôle fortement structurant, devant apprendre aux sujets le respect aveugle pour l'autorité et « l'abnégation de tout raisonnement individuel."
      ellauri161.html on line 964: Dans des yeux où longtemps burent nos yeux avide ! silmissä jotka ennen kazoivat vain sinua?
      ellauri161.html on line 990: Bloy was noted for personal attacks, but he saw them as the mercy or indignation of God. He acquired a reputation for bigotry because of his frequent outbursts of temper. Soon, Bloy could count such prestigious authors as Émile Zola, Guy de Maupassant, Ernest Renan, and Anatole France as his enemies. Bloy is quoted in the epigraph at the beginning of Graham Greene´s novel The End of the Affair, though Greene claimed that "this irate man lacked creative instinct." Bloy is also quoted at the beginning of John Irving´s A Prayer for Owen Meany, another turd. Some pope quoted him, yet another turd.
      ellauri161.html on line 1011: Kari-Jorin piti olla Maupassantin kanssa Zolan naturistioppilas. Mutta se alkoikin sekoilla katolisten kaa. Zola luovutti, löi hanskat tiskiin. Naturismi myytiin lyhyexi. Sehän olikin vähän niinkö kommunistiviihdettä. Kun sota hävittiin, taantumus teki sellaisesta lopun. Molli-Jori puolustaixen: Ei Eemelikään jäänyt tuleen makaamaan, nuoresta pessimististä tuli ajan kanssa ensin katteeton optimisti ja sitten journalisti.
      ellauri161.html on line 1024: Eräänä aamuna herätessä vasta-argumentit olivat vaan kumoutuneet. Heräsin venäläisenä: Ax, nyet nyet! Kehitys 1891-1895 (la-bas/en route) oli ymmärrettävä, mutta 1884-1991 (a rebours/la-bas)?
      ellauri161.html on line 1092: His (Mainion) works suggest the thought that the writings of master Eckart (died 1328), with whom Ruysbroeck was contemporary for thirty-five years, exercised influence over our author´s mind. Melkein maisteri Eckartille kävi köpelösti loppupeleissä. Ruisbroeck became vicar of the Church of St. Gudula at Brussels, where he lived in strict asceticism, enjoying the society of persons who had devoted themselves to a contemplative life, composing books and exercising benevolence. Jahas uusi päivä, uusi suopeus. He contended against the sins of the day, and labored to promote reforms. It is said that Tauler once visited him, attracted by the fame of his sanctity.
      ellauri161.html on line 1100: The chief of his mystical writings are, The Ornament of Spiritual Marriage (Lat. by Gerh. Groot, Ornatus Spiritualis Desponsionis, MS. at Strasburg; by another translator, and published by Faber Stapulensis [Paris, 1512], De Ornatu Spirit. Nuptiarum, etc.; also in French, Toulouse, 1619; and in Flemish, ´J Cieraet der gheestclyeke Bruyloft, Brussels, 1624, Hengelliset häät): — Speculum AEternae Salutis: — De Calculo, an interpretation of the calculus candidus, Re 2:17: — Samuel, sive de Alta Contemplatione. The other works of Ruysbroeck contain but little more than repetitions of the thoughts expressed in those here mentioned. (Esim. 7 hengellisen rakkauden askelmasta.) He wrote in his native language, and rendered to that dialect the same service which accrued to the High German from its use by the mystics of the section where it prevailed. He is still regarded in Holland as "the best prose writer of the Netherlands in the Middle Ages." His style is characterized by great precision of statement, which becomes impaired, however, whenever his imagination soars, as it often does, to transcendental regions too sublimated for language to describe. His works were accessible until lately only in Latin editions (by Surius, Cologne, 1549, 1552, 1609 [the best], 1692, fol.), or in manuscripts scattered through different libraries in Belgium and Holland. Four of the more important works were published in their original tongue, with prefaces by Ullmann (Hanover, 1848). No complete edition has as yet been undertaken (see Moll, )e Boekerij van het S. Barbara-Klooster te Delft [Amst. 1857, 4to], p. 41).
      ellauri161.html on line 1102: Ruysbroeck´s mysticism begins with God, descends to man, and returns to God again, in the aim to make man one with God. God is a simple unity, the essence above all being, the immovable, and yet the moving, cause of all existences. The Son is the wisdom, the uncreated image of the Father; the Holy Spirit the love which proceeds from both the Father and the Son, and unites them to each other. Creatures preexisted in God, in thought; and, as being in God, were God to that extent. Fallen man can only be restored through grace, which elevates him above the conditions of nature. Three stages are to be distinguished: the active, or operative; the subjective, or emotional; and the contemplative life. The first proceeds to conquer sin, and draw near to God through good works; the second consists in introspection, to which ascetic practices may be an aid, and which becomes indifferent to all that is not God. The soul is embraced and penetrated by the Spirit of God, and revels in visions and ecstasies. Higher still is the contemplative state (vita vitalis), which is an immediate knowing and possessing of God, leaving no remains of individuality in the consciousness, and concentrating every energy on the contemplation of the eternal and absolute Being. This life is still the gift of grace, and has its essence in the unifying of the soul with God, so that he alone shall work. The soul is led on from glory to glory, until it becomes conscious of its essential unity in God.
      ellauri161.html on line 1131: A young priest arrives at the small village of Ambricourt, his first parish assignment. He arrives alone by bicycle and is met by no one and unpacks his meager belongings. A couple at the chateau eye him suspiciously and walk away. He begins a diary, which he narrates throughout the film. This is very, very old-fashioned, would not do in Netflix anymore. Because he often feels nauseous and dizzy, he chooses a strict diet free of meat and vegetables. Instead, he has wine and wine-soaked bread with sugar. No wonder he dies in the end (oops, spoiler, sorry).
      ellauri161.html on line 1135: The older priest from Torcy talks to his younger colleague about his poor diet and lack of prayer, but the younger man seems unable to make changes. After his health worsens, the young priest goes to the city of Lille to visit a doctor, who diagnoses him with stomach cancer. The priest goes for refuge to a former colleague, who has lapsed and now works as an apothecary, while living with a woman outside wedlock. The priest dies in the house of his colleague after being absolved by him. His dying words are "What does it matter? All is Grace".
      ellauri162.html on line 145: Par nécessité ou par goût, il est longtemps un adepte de la moto comme moyen de transport quotidien et cette pratique se retrouvera dans ses œuvres. Comme le curé de campagne, il sentait "la haute moto rouge, tout étincelante, ronfler sous moi comme un petit avion.".
      ellauri162.html on line 189: And finer yet:
      ellauri162.html on line 368: Et qu'il faut employer la pelle et les râteaux Tarvii käyttää lapioo ja haravoita,
      ellauri162.html on line 414: Viendra ranimer, fidèle et joyeux, Tulee herättelemään iloisena uskottuna,
      ellauri162.html on line 476: Niin parkkiintuneen typeryyden ja niin kiihkeän vihamielisyyden hänelle itselleen läheisiä ajatuksia kohtaan, niin suunnattoman halveksunnan kirjallisuutta ja taidetta kohtaan hän aisti syöpyneen, pesiytyneen noiden kauppiaiden paksuihin luupäihin - jotka sitä paitsi olivat niin täynnä keinotteluun ja rahantekoon liittyviä huolia, etteivät he muutenkaan olisi kyenneet nauttimaan kuin politiikasta, tuosta matalamielisten ihmisten mauttomasta viihteestä - että hän painui joka kerta vimmoissaan kotiinsa ja sulkeutui kirjoinensa lukkojen taakse.
      ellauri162.html on line 586: Sillä tarttuttuaan peitteeseen, asettaen sen selän taakse ja kääntyessään pois, vähitellen mutta kiireesti vetäytyen, he (nää hyvät veljet) peittivät isänsä häpeällisen uppomunan käsillään. Kumpikin otti siitä hurskaan kämmenenmitan kuin huttua keitettäessä, kumpikin kielsi keskimmäisen pojan osanoton ja tarttui varteen itse.
      ellauri162.html on line 594:
      ellauri162.html on line 621: Olin täysin kiinni eräässä hankkeessa Kiinassa, enkä ehtinyt edes ajatella naisia. Siksi päätin tämän fiaskon jälkeen tavata tämän ystävättären uudelleen ja todistaa - hänelle ja itseni - että kaikki on kunnossa. Valitettavasti sekin päättyi kuten aikaisemmin, ja halusin hakata kyrvänpäätäni seinään ... En kestänyt hänen katsettaan, kun kohtasimme firmassa käytävällä. Ehkä se on minun vainoharhaisuuttani, mutta olin varma, että myös muut tytöt yrityksessä alkoivat katsoa minua säälien ... lopetin työnteon firmassaan, mutta en voinut löytää uutta. Elin säästöilläni. Ja ostin erilaisia erektioapukeinoja yrittäessäni ratkaista ongelmani. Sanoin itselleni, että ehkä on hyvä aika laukaista paukkupanoxia ja sitten palata uusin voimin niin työ- kuin sänkyelämään. Kokeilin muutamia potenssipillereitä, mutta yhtä hyvin olisin voinut myös huuhdella ne vessanpöntöstä saman tien - vaikutus olisi ollut sama, eli ei mitään. Tiettyjen pillereiden jälkeen en voinut ajaa autoa (silmissäni tuntui kuin olisin ollut kuumeinen). Olin murtunut ja menetin täysin seksihaluni. Naisten kanssa tekemisiin joutuessani tulin uskomattoman hermostuneeksi. Rahanikin loppuivat, ja siksi päädyin ottamaan huonon työn, jota en muuten olisi edes harkinnut. Ja kaikki tämä pikkuveljen syytä!
      ellauri162.html on line 663: Since loss of my pluripotence, I have mainly been dealing on European casual wear for more than 20 years. So I have experience also dealing with many shops in Japan. I have gotten much knowledge of the fashion industry, through experience of production management, wholesale and sales positions. In addition, I am glad to have made many acquaintances through the job.
      ellauri162.html on line 694: Pope Leo XIII, 1891, wrote the encyclical Rerum Novarum as the industrial revolution and political change swept across Europe. The relationship between employers and employees was changing dramatically. Individuals had become wealthy, but most remained poor even though they worked hard. Pope Leo XIII´s encyclical spoke of the condition of the working classes during a time when many advocated revolution.
      ellauri162.html on line 700: People have become accustomed to working for their own needs. Working enables people to earn an honorable livelihood, but using employees as mere objects is wrong. Workers and the rich are dependent upon each other. The worker ought to complete the tasks that they freely agree to, never destroy an employer´s property, never use violence for their cause, never take part in riots or disorder, and not associate with those who encourage them to act unethically. (As Pope John Paul II would later emphasize in Laborem Exercens, work ought to be seen as a privileged expression of human activity. Work, including cultural production, is an example of human creation in the image of the creator.)
      ellauri162.html on line 702: The employer ought to respect the dignity of each employee and shouldn´t view them as slaves. Workers must also have time for their religious duties and must receive tasks appropriate for their sex and age. Workers and employers ought to be free to negotiate and come to an agreement, but natural justice must ensure that wages are sufficient to support a "frugal and well-behaved wage-earner." To ensure these rights and duties are maintained worker´s associations ought to exist to work towards the common good.
      ellauri162.html on line 704: The relationship between worker and employer ought to be shaped by the bonds of friendship and brotherly love. Both are children of God and created in His image. The Church desires that the poor better their situation and has a role to speak out on their behalf and to seek relief of poverty.
      ellauri162.html on line 706: Both workers and employers should have their rights protected. Children shouldn´t be employed for tasks suited for adults, and employers should compensate workers with just wages. Humanity should remember that Christian morality leads to prosperity.
      ellauri162.html on line 708: It is important to remember that we were not created for this world, but rather for everlasting life with God. Riches should be viewed as an obstacle for eternal happiness, and that they do not bring freedom. With this in mind, associations of workers and employers ought to do what is best for the body, soul, and property of all involved.
      ellauri162.html on line 772: Number 5 Myers is Associate Professor of Biology at the University of Minnesota, Morris, where he researches the developmental biology of zebrafish from an evolutionary perspective.
      ellauri162.html on line 773: He runs one of the most popular atheist blogs on the Internet, called Pharyngula (a stage of the embryonic development of vertebrates). Nielunen. The website is notable for its over-the-top vituperation. Myers also has a flair for attention-getting stunts, like piercing a consecrated host with a rusty nail. In 2009, Myers was named “Humanist of the Year” by the American Humanist Association.
      ellauri162.html on line 817: The concept of a highly conserved ontogeny dates back to 1828 and the work by Karl von Baer. Baer´s work was cited by Charles Darwin and used in support of his Theory of Evolution. The concept was made famous though by Ernst Haeckel in 1874 with the publication of his drawings of the conserved stage. Haeckel was mainly pushing the concept of recapitulation in which he hypothesized that ontological development repeated the evolutionary steps of the organism. Recapitulation has since been discredited and is not accepted by any modern biologist. Haeckel has been accused of falsifying his embryonic drawings, most notably by Jonathan Wells in his book Icons of Evolution. Some biology text books used Haeckel´s drawings for many years after it was known they were faked. However, most modern biology textbooks only use them now for historical reference and actual photos of embryos are used to discuss the pharyngula stage.
      ellauri162.html on line 823: More importantly, Pharyngula can also refer to a blog written and posted by P.Z. Myers. See Pharyngula (blog). Pharyngula is a blog by atheist and evolutionist PZ Myers, who is a biologist and associate professor at the University of Minnesota, Morris. Pharyngula was hosted 2005-2011 at Scienceblogs in full, and 2011-present, in part. Since 2011, Pharyngula has been hosted at Freethought Blogs. The atheist biologist Massimo Pigliucci said of Myers and his blog audience, "one cannot conclude this parade without mentioning P.Z. Myers, who has risen to fame because of a blog where the level of nastiness (both by the host and by his readers) is rarely matched anywhere else on the Internet...".
      ellauri162.html on line 825: In 2010, the Christian apologetics website True Free Thinker wrote: "Scienceblogger Chad Orzel described the commentators on PZ Myers ' Scienceblogs.com site Pharyngula, and other Scienceblogs.com commentators, as 'screechy monkeys'."
      ellauri162.html on line 829: Scienceblogs appears to have a problem keeping and attracting talented writers. According to PZ Myers, Scienceblogs has "been facing a steady erosion of talent". In 2010, the Christian apologetic website True Free Thinker wrote a quite pointed and accurate criticism of PZ Myers Pharyngula blog indicating that PZ Myers' blog posts often lack substance. Pharyngula is widely acclaimed in the liberal media due to its embrace of evolutionary pseudoscience which liberals irrationally embrace (see: Evolution, Liberalism, Atheism, and Irrationality). Myers' blog is also listed by the science journal Nature, which also embraces evolutionary pseudoscience, as the best blog by a scientist. Pharyngula is known for its sarcastic and often specious criticism of creation science and intelligent design theory, as well as regular postings of photos of cephalopods (often with vulgarly sexual connotations both subtle and blatant). As Singer said, sexual organs are the best indicators of the soul.
      ellauri162.html on line 831: PZ Myers' caustic blog post on the death of Robin Williams See: PZ Myers on the death of Robin Williams (n.h.). Myers was angry because he felt that the news of Robins Williams death was crowding out the news story of the African-American Michael Brown who was shot by a police officer (a race riot subsequently ensued).
      ellauri162.html on line 836: See also: PZ Myers' loss of influence! Alexa is a web traffic tracking company. In 2015 and 2016, Freethought Blogs saw a large decrease in its Alexa ranking.
      ellauri163.html on line 48: He wrote the drama Got fun nekome (God of Vengeance) in the winter of 1906 in Cologne, Germany. It is about a Jewish brothel owner who attempts to become respectable by commissioning a Torah scroll and marrying off his daughter to a yeshiva student. Set in a brothel, the play includes Jewish prostitutes and a lesbian scene. I. L. Peretz famously said of the play after reading it: "Burn it, Asch, burn it!" Instead, Asch went to Berlin to pitch it to director Max Reinhardt and actor Rudolph Schildkraut, who produced it at the Deutsches Theater. God of Vengeance opened on March 19, 1907 and ran for six months, and soon was translated and performed in a dozen European languages. It was first brought to New York by David Kessler in 1907. The audience mostly came for Kessler, and they booed the rest of the cast. The New York production sparked a major press war between local Yiddish papers, led by the Orthodox Tageplatt and even the secular Forverts. Orthodox papers referred to God of Vengeance as "filthy," "immoral," and "indecent," while radical papers described it as "moral," "artistic," and "beautiful". Some of the more provocative scenes in the production were changed, but it wasn't enough for the Orthodox papers. Even Yiddish intellectuals and the play's supporters had problems with the play's inauthentic portrayal of Jewish tradition, especially Yankl's use of the Torah, which they said Asch seemed to be using mostly for cheap effects; they also expressed concern over how it might stigmatize Jewish people who already faced much anti-Semitism. The association with Jews and sex work was a popular stereotype at the time. Other intellectuals criticized the writing itself, claiming that the second act was beautifully written but the first and third acts failed to support it.
      ellauri163.html on line 371: G-d did not always promise that there would always be a king (let alone a king from the tribe of Judah). In Genesis 49 Jacob is blessing the tribes and says the scepter will not depart the tribe of Judah. This is long before Moses, let alone the first Temple -- not to mention the hundreds of years then before the second Temple.
      ellauri163.html on line 373: There wasn't a King for hundreds of years after the blessing before the first king of the tribe of Judah (before Saul and David). Tthere was that whole slavery period in Egypt for hundreds of years, then Moses, then Joshua, then the judges long before Saul the firs tking of the tribe of Judah.
      ellauri163.html on line 375: Just read the bible chronoholically and you'll see that there were hundreds of years after Jacob's statement before the first king. Then there were Kings of Judah. Then there was the civil war and the kingdoms split.
      ellauri163.html on line 377: Then Israel was destroyed. Then there was a Babylonian exile (no Judaic kings). Then there were the Maccabees, Herodians, etc. who were not kings of Judah. . .
      ellauri163.html on line 382: For those Xians who say that there has been no king of Judah since J-sus they should check their math. In fact there has been no ruler from the tribe of Judah since 586 B.C.E That is right: 600 years prior to his supposed messiah. Guess he just proved to himself that J-sus was inelligible.
      ellauri163.html on line 383: So it isn't 2000 years folks, it is 2600.
      ellauri163.html on line 385: BTW from Genesis 49 when Jacob makes this statement there were 400 years of slavery in Egypt, a few more hundred years when we had the Judges and the Phillistines before we had ANY king from the line of Judah sitting on a throne.
      ellauri163.html on line 386: So hundreds of years AFTER Jacob's pronouncement = no king of Judah
      ellauri163.html on line 387: Thousands of years AFTER Solomon = no king of Judah (including J-sus).
      ellauri163.html on line 417: Although some of the geographical reference points mentioned in Scripture are difficult for us to identify, God knows the full area into which He is going to bring Israel. We know enough to be sure that Israel is not in her full inheritance yet. Scripture shows that God has a dispute with those who are involved in “dividing up My land” [Joel 3:1-2].
      ellauri163.html on line 476: When I first searched for Rozabal two years ago, the taxi circled around a minor Muslim tomb in a city of many mosques and mausoleums, the driver asking directions several times before we found it. The shrine, on a street corner, is a modest stone building with a traditional Kashmiri multi-tiered sloping roof.
      ellauri163.html on line 499: Keijukaisten maallisia jäännöksiä kun ei ole löytynyt yhtään, ei todennäköisesti ole ollutkaan keijukaisia. Jos mikään muukaan fyysinen todiste ei tue keijukaisteoriaa, on todella typerää alkaa olettamaan keijukaisten nouseen esim. korkeammalle henkiselle tasolle, etenkään kun korkeammasta henkisestä tasosta ei ole myöskään todisteita. Pyörit kehäpäätelmässä jossa jumala sanoo raamatun olevan totta ja raamattu jumalan. Pienelläkin päätelly voi todeta, ettei tuosta päätelmästä jää jäljelle muuta kuin muinainen paskalappunippu, ei jumalaa...Te haaasssuun hauskat julistajahihhulit ette edes tunne kirjaa, jonka pohjalta pitäisi kyetä selittämään tuotetta parhain päin :D
      ellauri163.html on line 697: With an 11-year-old hero, Philip Pullman´s new book is a delightful nod to Edmund Spenser´s 'The Faerie Queene'. If Philip Pullman’s Dark Materials trilogy was an obvious nod to John Milton’s Paradise Lost, his new Book Of Dust trilogy takes inspiration from Edmund Spenser’s The Faerie Queene. Though thematically different, both fall within the same literary genre—they are epic poems, long narrative pieces recounting heroic deeds, and if the term could loosely be used to describe works of prose, then La Belle Sauvage, the first in the Book Of Dust trilogy, is one such novel. Spenser’s late-16th century poem, though incomplete, follows the adventures of medieval knights. Our knight is 11-year-old Malcolm Polstead, curious, intelligent, good-natured and clueless, when we first meet him, of the trials that await him. La Belle Sauvage, then, is a companion, or "equel" (a new story that stands alongside his previous trilogy), to His Dark Materials trilogy. Better strike while the iron is hot, as J.K. Rowling did.
      ellauri163.html on line 723: Day wrote concerning atheist PZ Myers´ blog audience: “It´s by no means a scientific test, but it is interesting to note the coincidence that 59 of the virulent atheists over at Dr. PZ Myers place report an average score on the Asperger´s Quotient test of 27.8. And this does not include the two individuals who actually have Asperger´s but did not report any test results.
      ellauri163.html on line 727: “ Basically the range for possible answers is 0 to 50. The information below shows you the different ranges as recorded from others sitting this same AQ quiz over the years.
      ellauri163.html on line 731: 11-21 is the average result that people get (many women average around 15 and men around 17)
      yellow">My Asperger Quotient Result was 21. Käytit testin tekemiseen 4 minuuttia 34 sekuntia ja testipistemääräsi on 96 eli sinulla ei ole Aspergerin syndroomaa. (Minun on helppoa päätellä mihin toiset kysymyxillään pyrkivät.)
      ellauri163.html on line 742: However, there is evidence which suggests that a large portion of PZ Myers´ blog audience are narcissists rather than individuals who have Asperger´s Syndrome (see: PZ Myers´ antitheist blog audience and the issue of narcissism vs. Asperger´s Syndrome).
      ellauri163.html on line 744: PZ Myers is a New Atheist and New Atheism is a contemporary form of antitheism. Therefore, it is very probable his blog appeals to people who hold to a antitheism perspective. Social science research indicates that antitheists score the highest among atheists when it comes to personality traits such as narcissism, dogmatism, and anger. Furthermore, they scored lowest when it comes to agreeableness and positive relations with others.
      ellauri163.html on line 748: People with higher scores on the Autism Spectrum Quotient (items included "I am fascinated by numbers," and "I find social situations difficult") had weaker belief in a personal God than those with lower IQ score ("I am fascinated by skirts", and "I find zippers difficult"). Second, reduced ability to mentalize mediated this correlation. (Mentalizing was measured with the Empathy Quotient, which assesses self-reported ability to recognize and react to others' emotions, and with a task that requires identifying what's being expressed in pictures of eyes. Systematizing -- interest in and aptitude for mechanical and abstract systems -- was correlated with autism but was not a mediator.) Third, men were much less likely than women to say they strongly believed in a personal God (even controlling for autism), and this correlation was also mediated by reduced mentalizing. They were also clearly more interested in skirts and puzzled by zippers.
      ellauri163.html on line 815: Niinpä, kun elokuvantekijä, kun häntä pyydettiin määrittelemään, mistä elokuvassa oli kyse, vastasi: "Mouchette tarjoaa todisteita kurjuudesta ja julmuudesta. Häntä esiintyy kaikkialla: sotia, keskitysleirejä, kidutuksia, salamurhia", hän oli joko keimaileva tai varovainen. Tietenkin elokuva käsittelee tällaisia negatiivisia juttuja, mutta se käsittelee myös sitkeyttä, kynintää ja sisua. Ja koska se tekee niin, ja tekee niin niin hyvin, tämä on suuri syy siihen, että sen loppu on niin huono, ehkä vastaa Akira Kurosawan Rashomonin huonoa loppua. Jos se olisi tarjonnut vain sitä, mitä Bresson väitti, sen loppu olisi ollut paljon parempi ja elokuvan mukainen, mutta näin ollen koko elokuva olisi ollut paljon huonompi! Eli lyhyesti: jenkkikazojana odottelin valoisampaa loppua. Mouchetten olisi pitänyt ryhdistäytyä ja perustaa Arsenen kanssa vaikka avokanala. Joka ois menestynyt aivan hulluna, ja loppukuvissa Mouchette ja Arsene olis olleet sikarikkaita.
      ellauri163.html on line 827: Tästä epäonnistumisesta huolimatta Mouchette on kuitenkin hieno elokuva, jonka aivotärähdys lisää sen voimaa ja jonka kuvausten takkuisuus syventyy syvemmälle asioihin kuin sen hienoon, mutta luurankomaiseen käsikirjoitukseen. Yksi parhaista tekniikoista, joita Bresson käyttää saadakseen enemmän irti jokaisesta lyhyestä kohtauksesta, on käyttää toimintojen toistoja toisiinsa liittymättömissä kohtauksissa, jotka sitten yhdistävät nämä kohtaukset muihin. Esimerkiksi, kun Mouchetten opettaja rankaisee häntä ja pakottaa hänet laulamaan laulun, se on pakotettuna. Mouchette laulaa saman laulun yrittäessään "hoitaa" häneen tarttuvaa Arsenea. Hänen isänsä työntää Mouchettea aina, kun hän haluaa nautintoa, ja hiän sitten työntää Arsenea kuin töyssyauto ennen kuin hiän harrastaa seksiä hänen kanssaan. Siinä sitten työnneltiin varmaan oikein varren kanssa.
      ellauri163.html on line 864: A precocious student, Durkheim entered the École Normale Supérieure (ENS) in 1879, at his third attempt. The entering class that year was one of the most brilliant of the nineteenth century, as many of his classmates, such as Jean Jaurès and Henri Bergson, went on to become major figures in France's intellectual history as well. At the ENS, Durkheim studied under the direction of Numa Denis Fustel de Coulanges, a classicist with a social-scientific outlook, and wrote his Latin dissertation on Montesquieu. At the same time, he read Auguste Comte and Herbert Spencer, whereby Durkheim became interested in a scientific approach to society very early on in his career. The writer of this exposition likes the word whereby.
      ellauri163.html on line 866: Émile Durkheim, bien que fils de rabbin, etait agnostique. Il entre à l'École normale supérieure où il est reçu septième à l'agrégation de philosophie en 1882. Par la suite, il enseigne la philosophie aux lycées du Puy (octobre 1882), de Sens (novembre 1882), de Saint-Quentin (février 1884), de Troyes (1885).
      ellauri163.html on line 883: Now this moral remaking cannot be achieved except by the means of reunions, assemblies, and meetings where the individuals, being closely united to one another, reaffirm in common their common sentiments; hence come ceremonies which do not differ from regular religious ceremonies, either in their object, the results which they produce, or the processes employed to attain these results.
      ellauri163.html on line 891: The great things of the past which filled our fathers with enthusiasm do not excite the same ardor in us...In a word, the old gods are growing old or already dead, and others are not yet born...But this state of incertitude and confused agitation cannot last forever. A day will come when our societies will know again those hours of creative effervescence, in the course of which new formulae are found which serve for a while as a guide to humanity; and when these hours shall have been passed through once, men will spontaneously feel the need of reliving them from time to time in thought, that is to say, of keeping alive their memory by means of celebrations which regularly reproduce their fruits. We have already seen how the French Revolution established a whole cycle of holidays to keep the principles with which it was inspired in a state of perpetual youth.
      ellauri163.html on line 952: Vaikka Durkheimin itsemurhatutkimukseen on vuosien varrella kohdistunut runsaasti asiatontakin arvostelua, se oli ilmestyessään malliesimerkki sosiologisesta nollatutkimuxesta, mitä sosiologit nykyisinkin tekevät.
      ellauri163.html on line 969:
      ellauri163.html on line 1027: yhtä toimiva.

      Kitty loves me yes I know /
      ellauri164.html on line 62: Eli Bernadotten ärsyttävä pappissetä siis kysyy pappisveljenpojalta: "Oletko lukenut Paul Claudelin panttivankia?" Vastasin, etten edes tiedä kenestä tai mistä hän puhui. - "Mennään! Hyvä. Kyse on pyhästä tytöstä, joka kaltaisesi seurakunnan papin neuvosta kieltää sanansa, nai vanhan luopionsa, vaipuu epätoivoon, kaikki sillä verukkeella, että estää paavia joutumasta vankilaan, ikään kuin Pyhän Pietarin jälkeen paavin paikka ei olisi pikemminkin Mamertinessa kuin palatsissa, joka on koristeltu ylhäältä alas renessanssin vitun homojen toimesta, jotka maalasivat siunatun Neitsyen mallina omat puppelipoikansa. Huomaa, herra Claudel on nero, en sano ei, mutta nämä kirjailijat ovat kaikki samanlaisia: heti kun he haluavat koskettaa pyhyyttä, he tahraavat itsensä ylevällä, he asettavat Ylevää kaikkialle! Pyhyys ei ole ylevää, mitä. Jos minä olisin ripittänyt sankarittaren, olisin ensin pakottanut hänet muuttamaan linnunnimensä oikeaksi kristilliseksi nimeksi - hänen nimensä on nimeltään Sygne - ja sitten pitämään sanansa, koska lopulta meillä on niitä vain yksi, ja pyhä isämme paavi itse ei voi tehdä asialle mitään.
      ellauri164.html on line 80: J’ai avalé une fameuse gorgée de poison. — Trois fois béni soit le conseil qui m’est arrivé ! — Les entrailles me brûlent. La violence du venin tord mes membres, me rend difforme, me terrasse. Je meurs de soif, j’étouffe, je ne puis crier. C’est l’enfer, l’éternelle peine ! Voyez comme le feu se relève ! Je brûle comme il faut. Va, démon !
      ellauri164.html on line 118: Ah ! remonter à la vie ! jeter les yeux sur nos difformités. Et ce poison, ce baiser mille fois maudit ! Ma faiblesse, la cruauté du monde ! Mon Dieu, pitié, cachez-moi, je me tiens trop mal ! — Je suis caché et je ne le suis pas.
      ellauri164.html on line 218: Tämä tutkimus tutkii yhden runosarjan poikkeuksellista puoliintumisaikaa: "Westward the Course of Empire vie tiensä...". Alkaen irlantilais-anglikaanisen piispan George Berkeleyn vuonna 1726 tekemästä sävellyksestä, nämä sanat kolonisoivat valtavan osan kulttuurimaisemaa lähes kahden vuosisadan ajan. Sanomalehtipaperiin, laitureihin, valtiomiesten puheisiin, lukuaiheisiin, maantieteellisiin tietoihin, Yhdysvaltojen ensimmäiseen tieteelliseen historiaan sekä runouteen, maalauksiin, litografioihin ja valokuviin ikuistetut sanat kehittyivät vanhan maailman visiosta profeetallisista valtakunnista ilmeisen kohtalon nationalistinen iskulause. Seuraten runoa sen kiertyessä kirjallisen ja visuaalisen kulttuurin läpi, tämä projekti osoittaa, kuinka yksinkertainen lause totutti amerikkalaiset laajaan käsitykseen Yhdysvaltojen valtakunnasta siirtomaa-ajalta jälleenrakennukseen. Jatkuva varmuus valtakunnan etenemisestä länteen, itse asiassa itse imperiumin väistämättömyydestä, osoittaa kolonistien brittiläisen kulttuuriperinnön kestävän elinvoiman Amerikan vallankumouksen aattona. Yhtä tärkeitä ovat tavat, joilla amerikkalaiset muokkasivat runon ideologiaa sopimaan heidän kehittyvään kansallismielisyyteensä varhaisen tasavallan ja antebellum-aikakauden aikana. Berkeleyn sanat tarjosivat kriittisen paikan kansallismielisille tutkimuksille uuden tasavallan alkuvuosikymmeninä, mikä helpotti kansakunnan muuttumista kapitalistiseksi, hankkivaksi yhteiskunnaksi; 1800-luvun puolivälin konflikteissa he oikeuttivat amerikkalaisen sotavoimaisen imperialismin Meksikon ja Yhdysvaltojen välisessä sodassa, samalla kun he antoivat syvällistä tietoa sisällissodan alkamisesta ja sen välittömistä seurauksista, kun kansa paini Amerikan tulevaisuuden ääriviivoja vastaan. Tämä ideologia on kahden vuosisadan ajan mahdollistanut amerikkalaisten olevan sekä vakuuttuneita evankelistoja demokraattis-tasavaltalaisen hallitusmuotonsa poikkeuksellisesta luonteesta että samalla hengityksen kera omahyväisiä keisarillisen etuoikeutensa puolustajia ensin Pohjois-Amerikan mantereella ja sen alueella. alkuperäiskansojen ja lopulta maailmanlaajuisen siirtomaavaltakunnan yli. "Westward Empire" paljastaa tavat, joilla Berkeleyn runo muokkasi tätä ainutlaatuista ideologiaa, sekä tavat, joilla amerikkalaiset mukauttivat Berkeleyn runon ainutlaatuisiin olosuhteisiinsa, ja tavat, joilla tämä kehittyvä ja monikerroksinen tulkinta puolestaan muokkasi amerikkalaista ajattelua ja käyttäytymistä vuoden 1752 välillä. ja 1876. tämän ideologian ansiosta amerikkalaiset ovat voineet olla sekä vakuuttuneita evankelistoja demokraattis-tasavaltalaisen hallitusmuotonsa poikkeuksellisesta luonteesta että samalla hengityksen kera, omahyväisiä puolustajia keisarilliseen etuoikeutensa ensin Pohjois-Amerikan mantereella ja sen alkuperäisasukkailla, ja lopulta maailmanlaajuisen siirtomaavaltakunnan yli. "Westward Empire" paljastaa tavat, joilla Berkeleyn runo muokkasi tätä ainutlaatuista ideologiaa, sekä tavat, joilla amerikkalaiset mukauttivat Berkeleyn runon ainutlaatuisiin olosuhteisiinsa, ja tavat, joilla tämä kehittyvä ja monikerroksinen tulkinta puolestaan muokkasi amerikkalaista ajattelua ja käyttäytymistä vuoden 1752 välillä. ja 1876. tämän ideologian ansiosta amerikkalaiset ovat voineet olla sekä vakuuttuneita evankelistoja demokraattis-tasavaltalaisen hallitusmuotonsa poikkeuksellisesta luonteesta että samalla hengityksen kera, omahyväisiä puolustajia keisarilliseen etuoikeutensa ensin Pohjois-Amerikan mantereella ja sen alkuperäisasukkailla, ja lopulta maailmanlaajuisen siirtomaavaltakunnan yli. "Westward Empire" paljastaa tavat, joilla Berkeleyn runo muokkasi tätä ainutlaatuista ideologiaa, sekä tavat, joilla amerikkalaiset mukauttivat Berkeleyn runon ainutlaatuisiin olosuhteisiinsa, ja tavat, joilla tämä kehittyvä ja monikerroksinen tulkinta puolestaan muokkasi amerikkalaista ajattelua ja käyttäytymistä vuoden 1752 välillä. ja 1876. ensin Pohjois-Amerikan mantereen ja sen alkuperäiskansojen yli ja lopulta maailmanlaajuisen siirtomaavaltakunnan yli.
      ellauri164.html on line 246: Remembering Robert M. Veatch, PhD 1939-2020. Bob Veatch from Georgetown loved genealogy and had confirmed a Veatch connection to the Stuart (Stewart among the Scots) dynasty. He was a long-time fan of bluegrass and Bob and his wife Ann were founding members of the Lucketts Bluegrass Foundation in Lucketts, Virginia, location of the world’s longest running bluegrass concert series (45 years strong!). He used to laugh and say that he thought likely he was the only undergraduate at Harvard reading Plato while listening to bluegrass. Bob was a Peace Corps volunteer in Nigeria from 1962-1964.
      ellauri164.html on line 248: Jeff Veatch is a successful entrepreneur, businessman, community leader, and philanthropist. Over the course of his career, Jeff co-founded the IT staffing services firm Apex Systems, has been recognized as the Entrepreneur of the year by Ernst and Young, selected to the Philanthropic 50 by Washington Life magazine, served on the Board of Directors for ASGN Incorporated, sits on Board of Visitors for Virginia Tech, was a founding member of the effort to bring the Olympics to Washington DC, holds Board positions with Inova Health System, as well as other leadership and board positions throughout his community. Also, as an active philanthropic investor, he formed the Veatch Charities, which focuses on education, healthcare, and his community. Mr. Veatch is a 1993 graduate of Virginia Polytechnic Institute and State University, earning a BS in Finance.
      ellauri164.html on line 252: Black & Veatch is an employee-owned global engineering, procurement, consulting and construction company with a more than 100-year track record of innovation in sustainable infrastructure.
      ellauri164.html on line 297:
      ellauri164.html on line 302: Jeanne syntyi pienessä Domrémyn kylässä Koillis-Ranskassa. Hänen vanhempansa olivat maanviljelijöitä eikä hän saanut lapsena paljonkaan koulutusta. Hän ei lyhyen elämänsä aikana oppinut kirjoittamaan tai lukemaan, mutta osasi monia pyhimystarinoita, joita oli kuullut uskonnolliselta äidiltään. Lisäksi häneen oli juurrutettu syvä rakkaus roomalaiskatolista kirkkoa ja sen oppeja kohtaan. Maatalon tyttärenä hän kunnostautui monissa tilanhoitoon kuuluvissa tehtävissä ja kehruu- ja ompelutöissä hän oli taituri.
      ellauri164.html on line 306: Jeanne vetosi puheissaan vanhaan ennustukseen, jonka mukaan Ranska tulisi tuhoutumaan ja pelastumaan neitsyen kautta. Käskynhaltija antoi Jeannelle ratsun ja miehen vaatteet, joiden turvin neizeyden säilyttäminen olisi helpompaa.
      ellauri164.html on line 308: Pitkän ratsastusmatkan jälkeen Jeanne saapui Chinonin pikkukaupunkiin, jossa kruununprinssi Kaarle VII piti hoviaan. Prinssi ei halunnut näyttäytyä Jeannelle ja yritti hovimiehensä turvin hankkiutua ”neitsyestä” eroon. Kun Jeanne ei suostunut poistumaan hovista, hänet toimitettiin kirkonmiehistä ja professoreista koostuvan valtuuskunnan kuulusteltavaksi. Samalla huhut oudosta tytöstä levisivät, ja hänen puheensa saivat suuren kannatuksen. Jeannen julistus ”ei ole olemassa muuta apua kuin minun kauttani!” otettiin vakavasti, ja hänelle päätettiin antaa lyhyt sotilaallinen peruskoulutus. Eteen vie! Taaxe psstu! Kaze oikeaan pn! Ojennus! Hommio! Komppanii! Riviin järjesty! Housujen ja muiden varusteiden ohella Jeannelle annettiin vanha ruostunut miekka, jota hän kantoi tulevassa taistelussa.
      ellauri164.html on line 332: Kaarle VII oli edellisen kuninkaan Kaarle VI:n ja Baijerin Isabellan vanhin poika, eli delfiini. Tämän kuoltua vuonna 1422 Kaarle VII:n asema oli kruununtavoittelun kannalta hankala; Kaarle VI oli sopinut Troyes’n rauhansopimuksessa vuonna 1420, että Ranskan seuraavaksi kuninkaaksi tulisi Englannin kuninkaan Henrik V:n ja Valois’n Katariinan poika, joka oli syntynyt vuotta aiemmin.
      ellauri164.html on line 367: almost 4 years ago

      ellauri164.html on line 368: Shelves: gave-up , read-in-2010 , buyer-s-remorse
      ellauri164.html on line 377: about 8 years ago
      ellauri164.html on line 382: about 8 years ago
      ellauri164.html on line 386: What makes the saga so compelling is the gentle, uncomplaining way the new priest relates his many failures and humiliations. As his audience we see his kindnesses misunderstood and his simple mistakes turned against him. And yet he is determined to go out and visit all within his parish despite mounting health problems. But does he really like anybody? Except the motorbike chap perhaps.
      ellauri164.html on line 391: over 5 years ago
      ellauri164.html on line 398: over 14 years ago
      ellauri164.html on line 405: almost 13 years ago
      ellauri164.html on line 410: almost 3 years ago
      ellauri164.html on line 426: Heartening and pleasant family-type book. Christian-based plot. Lotsa twists and revelations of the religious lifestyle. Started slowly and stayed steady in pace. I was surprised by how much I liked it. Worthwhile reading experience. Warmly narrated.
      ellauri164.html on line 431: Wonderful work. The dialogue is enthralling and the intimate sighs of this fictitious priest are mesmerising. Love people simply and thoroughly - that’s all this poor priest could do, yet it is in doing this that Christ is most thoroughly communicated.
      ellauri164.html on line 451: The film depicts the nuclear arms race that took place between all sides in the World War II and the beginning of the Cold War. The first part centers on the war years, dealing with the Manhattan Project and the American effort to beat the Germans to the bomb, as well as with Stalin's decision that the USSR must have its own atomic project. The second part displays the Soviet post-war nuclear program. The plot deals mainly with the personal dilemmas facing all the scientists who worked on the atomic weapons. Booooring.
      ellauri164.html on line 455: The film was produced solely by Mosfilm, without a direct participation of DEFA, and yet several East German actors were invited to play the German historical figures. Fritz Diez, who appeared as Hitler on screen for the sixth time in his career, was given also the role of Otto Hahn.
      ellauri164.html on line 472: Iisak Singerin mukaan Mooseskaan ei selvinnyt Jahven palvelusta puhtain paperein. Mikä oli Moosexen moka ja minkä rangaistuxeen hän sai? Tästä löytyy aivan vimmattu määrä selittelyä. Oliko ongelmana yellow">väärä kiven käsittely kepillä, vaiko rähähtäminen napisevalle kansalle?
      ellauri164.html on line 487: In Exodus 2, we see Moses’ mother attempting to save her child by placing him in a basket and putting it into the Nile. The basket was eventually found by Pharaoh’s daughter, and she adopted him as her own and raised him in the palace of the pharaoh himself. As Moses grew into adulthood, he began to empathize with the plight of his people, and upon witnessing an Egyptian beating a Hebrew slave, Moses intervened and killed the Egyptian. But that was not a sin because the guy was just an Egyptian. In another incident, Moses attempted to intervene in a dispute between two Hebrews, but one of the Hebrews rebuked Moses and sarcastically commented, “Are you going to kill me as you did the Egyptian?” (Exodus 2:14). Realizing that his criminal act was made known, Moses fled to the land of Midian where he again intervened—this time rescuing the daughters of Jethro Tull from some of Uriah Heep's bandits. In gratitude, Jethro (also called Reuel) granted his daughter Zipporah to Moses in marriage (Exodus 2:15–21). Moses lived in Midian for about forty years.
      ellauri164.html on line 493: The rest of the book of Exodus and the entire book of Leviticus take place while the Israelites are encamped at the foot of Sinai. God gives Moses detailed instructions for the building of the tabernacle—a traveling tent of worship that could be assembled and disassembled for easy portability—and for making the utensils for worship, the priestly garb, and the ark of the covenant, symbolic of God’s presence among His people as well as the place where the high priest would perform the annual atonement. God also gives Moses explicit instructions on how God is to be worshiped and guidelines for maintaining purity and holiness among the people. The book of Numbers sees the Israelites move from Sinai to the edge of the Promised Land, but they refuse to go in when ten out of twelve spies bring back a bad report about Israel’s ability to take over the land. God condemns this generation of Jews to die in the wilderness for their disobedience and subjects them to forty years of wandering in the wilderness. By the end of the book of Numbers, the next generation of Israelites is back on the borders of the Promised Land and poised to trust God and take it by faith.
      ellauri164.html on line 495: The book of Deuteronomy shows Moses giving several sermon-type speeches to the people, reminding them of God’s saving power and faithfulness. He gives the second reading of the Law (Deuteronomy 5) and prepares this generation of Israelites to receive the promises of God. Moses himself is prohibited from entering the land because of his sin at Meribah (Numbers 20:10-13). At the end of the book of Deuteronomy, Moses’ death is recorded (Deuteronomy 34). He climbed Mount Nebo and is allowed to look upon the Promised Land. Moses was 120 years old when he died, and the Bible records that his “eye was undimmed and his vigor unabated” (Deuteronomy 34:7). The Lord Himself buried Moses (Deuteronomy 34:5–6), and Joshua took over as leader of the people (Deuteronomy 34:9). Deuteronomy 34:10–12 says, " Since then, no prophet has risen in Israel like Moses, whom the Lord knew face to face, who did all those signs and wonders the Lord sent him to do in Egypt—to Pharaoh and to all his officials and to his whole land. For no one has ever shown the mighty power or performed the awesome deeds that Moses did in the sight of all Israel."
      ellauri164.html on line 498: So, now, what can we learn from Moses’ life? Moses’ life is generally broken down into three 40-year periods. The first is his life in the court of Pharaoh. As the adopted son of Pharaoh’s daughter, Moses would have had all the perks and privileges of a prince of Egypt. He was instructed “in all the wisdom of the Egyptians, and he was mighty in his words and deeds” (Acts 7:22). As the plight of the Hebrews began to disturb his soul, Moses took it upon himself to be the savior of his people. As Stephen says before the Jewish ruling council, “[Moses] supposed that his brothers would understand that God was giving them salvation by his hand” (Acts 7:25). From this incident, we learn that Moses was a man of action as well as a man possessed of a hot temper and prone to rash actions. Did God want to save His people? Yes. Did God want to use Moses as His chosen instrument of salvation? Yes. But Moses, whether or not he was truly cognizant of his role in the salvation of the Hebrew people, acted rashly and impetuously. He tried to do in his timing what God wanted done in His timing. The lesson for us is obvious: we must be acutely aware of not only doing God’s will, but doing God’s will in His timing, not ours. As is the case with so many other biblical examples, when we attempt to do God’s will in our timing, we make a bigger mess than originally existed.
      ellauri164.html on line 500: Moses needed time to grow and mature and learn to be meek and eat humble pie before God, and this brings us to the next chapter in Moses’ life, his 40 years in the land of Midian. During this time, Moses learned the simple life of a shepherd, a husband, and a father. God took an impulsive and hot-tempered young man and began the process of molding and shaping him into the perfect instrument for God to use. What can we learn from this time in his life? If the first lesson is to wait on God’s timing, the second lesson is to not be idle while we wait on God’s timing. While the Bible doesn’t spend a lot of time on the details of this part of Moses’ life, it’s not as if Moses were sitting idly by waiting for God’s call. He spent the better part of 40 years learning the ways of a shepherd and supporting and raising a family. These are not trivial things! While we might long for the “mountain top” experiences with God, 99 percent of our lives is lived in the valley doing the mundane, day-to-day things that make up a life. We need to be living for God “in the valley” before He will enlist us into the battle. It is often in the seemingly trivial things of life that God trains and prepares us for His call in the next season.
      ellauri164.html on line 502: Another thing we see from Moses during his time spent in Midian is that, when God finally did call him into service, Moses was resistant. The man of action early in his life, Moses, now 80 years old, became overly timid. When called to speak for God, Moses said he was “slow of speech and tongue” (Exodus 4:10). Some commentators believe that Moses may have had a speech impediment. Perhaps, but then it would be odd for Stephen to say Moses was “mighty in words and deeds” (Acts 7:22). Perhaps Moses just didn’t want to go back into Egypt and fail again. This isn’t an uncommon feeling. How many of us have tried to do something (whether or not it was for God) and failed, and then been hesitant to try again? There are two things Moses seemed to have overlooked. One was the obvious change that had occurred in his own life in the intervening 40 years. The other, and more important, change was that God would be with him. Moses failed at first not so much because he acted impulsively, but because he acted without God. Therefore, the lesson to be learned here is that when you discern a clear call from God, step forward in faith, knowing that God goes with you! Do not be timid, but be strong in the Lord and in the power of his might (Ephesians 6:10).
      ellauri164.html on line 504: The third and final chapter in Moses’ life is the chapter that Scripture spends the most time chronicling, namely, his role in the redemption of Israel. Several lessons can be gleaned from this chapter of Moses’ life as well. First is how to be an effective leader of people. Moses essentially had responsibility over two million Hebrew refugees. When things began to wear on him, his father-in-law, Jethro Tull, suggested that he delegate responsibility to other faithful men, a lesson that many people in authority over others need to learn (Exodus 18). We also see a man who was dependent on the grace of God to help with his task. Moses was continually pleading on behalf of the people before God. If only all people in authority would petition God on behalf of those over whom they are in charge! Moses was keenly aware of the necessity of God’s presence and even requested to see God’s glory (Exodus 33). Moses knew that, apart from God, the exodus would be meaningless. It was God who made the Israelites distinct, and they needed Him most. Moses’ life also teaches us the lesson that there are certain sins that will continue to haunt us throughout our lives. The same hot temper that got Moses into trouble in Egypt also got him into trouble during the wilderness wanderings. In the aforementioned incident at Meribah, Moses struck the rock in anger in order to provide water for the people. However, he didn’t give God the glory, nor did he yellow">follow God’s precise commands. Because of this, God forbade him from entering the Promised Land. In a similar manner, we all succumb to certain besetting sins which plague us all our days, sins that require us to be on constant alert.
      ellauri164.html on line 518: At Thursday’s daily Mass (Thursday of the 18th week of the year) we Roman catholics read of the sin that excluded Moses from leading the people to the Promised Land. While there are some mysterious elements to it, one thing seems clear: the grumbling of the people got on Moses’ nerves. Indeed, grumbling often affects more than just the one doing the complaining. Through it, infectious negativity can be set loose. Even if only a small number are grousing, it can still incite discontent, anger, and/or fear in others. Yes, the people nearly wore him out. At a particularly low moment, when the people were complaining about the food, Moses lamented to God,
      ellauri164.html on line 525: Then the glory of the Lord appeared to them, and the Lord said to Moses, “Take the staff, and assemble the congregation, you and Aaron your brother, and tell the rock before their eyes to yield its water. So you shall bring water out of the rock for them and give drink to the congregation and their cattle.”
      ellauri164.html on line 528: But the Lord said to Moses and Aaron, “Because you did not believe in me, to uphold me as holy in the eyes of the people of Israel, therefore you shall not bring this assembly into the land that I have given them” (Numbers 20:2-12).
      ellauri164.html on line 532: 1. Moses sinned by yellow">not following the Lord’s instruction. The Lord told Moses to take his staff in hand and bid the rock to bring forth water. He was told to speak to the rock, but instead he struck it—twice. The striking of the rock, while not specifically directed according to the passage in Numbers, does not seem particularly egregious; in fact, in another description of this event (see Exodus 17:6) God does tell Moses to strike it. The Fathers of the Church (e.g., St. Jerome) did not view this as sinful, even interpreting the striking of the rock twice as a sign of the two bars of the cross.
      ellauri164.html on line 550: 2. He spoke to the people, not with meekness and calm authority, but in heat and bitterness. "Ye rebels, must we fetch you water out of this rock?" Thus he "spake unadvisedly with his lips" (Psalm 106:33) instead of his stick. It is not difficult to understand how Moses should have so far forgotten himself on this occasion. Let the facts be weighed. The servant of the Lord is now 120 years old. The generation which sinned thirty-seven years ago, and was condemned to die in the wilderness, is nearly all gone. Moses is mortified to find that the new generation is infected with a touch of the same impatient unbelief which wrought in their fathers so much mischief. No sooner are they at a loss for water than they rise against Moses with rebellious murmurings. For once he loses command of himself. On all former occasions of the kind his meekness was unshaken; he either held his peace, or prayed for the rebels, or at most called on the Lord to be his Witness and Judge. Now he breaks out into bitter chidings. At the root of this there was a secret failure of faith. "Ye believed me not," - did not thoroughly rely on my faithfulness and power, - "to sanctify me in the eyes of the children of Israel" (verse 12). His former meekness had been the fruit of faith. He had been thoroughly persuaded that the Lord who was with him could accomplish all he had promised, and therefore he faced every difficulty with calm and patient resolution. Now a touch of unbelief bred in him hastiness and bitterness of spirit.
      ellauri164.html on line 552: Two lessons: 1. The failings of good men may be culpable in God's sight and displeasing to him out of all proportion to the degree of blameworthiness they present to our eye. So far is it from being true (as many seem to think) that believers' sins are no sins at all, and need give no concern, that, on the contrary, the Lord dislikes the stain of sin most when it is seen in his dear children. The case of Moses is not singular. Sins which the Lord overlooks in other men he will occasionally put some mark of special displeasure upon, when they are committed by one who is eminent for holiness and honourable service. It is, no doubt, a just instinct which leads all right-thinking people to be blind to the failings of good men who have been signally useful in their day. But if the good men become indulgent to their own faults they are likely to be rudely awakened to a sense of their error. The better a man is, his sins may be the more dishonouring to God. A spot hardly visible on the coat of a labouring man, may be glaringly offensive on the shining raiment of a throned king.
      ellauri164.html on line 554: 2. The sins we are least inclined to may nevertheless be the sins which will bring us to the bitterest grief. Every man has his weak side. There are sins to which our natural disposition or the circumstances of our up-bringing lay us peculiarly open; and it is without doubt a good rule to be specially on our guard in relation to these sins. Yet the rule must not be applied too rigidly. When Dumbarton Rock was taken, it was not by assailing the fortifications thrown up to protect its one weak side, but by scaling it at a point where the precipitous height seemed to render defense or guard unnecessary. Job was the most patient of men, yet he sinned through impatience. Peter was courageous, yet he fell through cowardice. Moses was the meekest of men, yet he fell through bitterness of Spirit. We have need to guard well not our weak points only, but the points also at which we deem ourselves to be strong.
      ellauri164.html on line 556: Parallel Verses: Yahweh said to Moses and Aaron, "Because you didn't believe in me, to sanctify me in the eyes of the children of Israel, therefore you shall not bring this assembly into the land which I have given them."
      ellauri164.html on line 562: When the Hebrews were thirsty and could find no water, they became impatient and did not remember the power of God which had, nearly forty years before, brought them water out of the rock. Instead of trusting God, they complained of Moses and Aaron, and said to them, "Would God that we had died when our brethren died before the Lord!" That is, they wished that they had been of that number who had been destroyed by the plague in the rebellion of Korah, Dathan, and Abiram.
      ellauri164.html on line 564: They angrily inquired, "Why have ye brought up the congregation of the Lord into this wilderness, that we and our cattle should die there? And wherefore have ye made us to come up out of Egypt, to bring us in unto this evil place? it is no place of seed, or of figs, or of vines, or of pomegranates; neither is there any water to drink. What the fuck, you call this a promised land?
      ellauri164.html on line 566: "And Moses and Aaron went from the presence of the assembly unto the door of the tabernacle of the congregation, and they fell upon their faces: and the glory of the Lord appeared unto them. And the Lord spake unto Moses, saying, Take the rod, and gather thou the assembly together, thou, and Aaron thy brother, and speak ye unto the rock before their eyes; and it shall give forth his water, and thou shalt bring forth to them water out of the rock: so thou shalt give the congregation and their beasts to drink. And Moses took the rod from before the Lord, as He commanded him.
      ellauri164.html on line 568: Moses Yields to Impatience. "And Moses and Aaron gathered the congregation together before the rock; and he said unto them, Hear now, ye rebels; must we fetch you water out of this rock? And Moses lifted up his hand, and with his rod he smote the rock twice: and the water came out abundantly, and the congregation drank, and their beasts also. And the Lord spake unto Moses and Aaron, Because ye believed Me not, to sanctify Me in the eyes of the children of Israel, therefore ye shall not bring this congregation into the land which I have given them."
      ellauri164.html on line 572: This necessity for the manifestation of God's power made the occasion one of great solemnity, and Moses and Aaron should have improved it to make a favorable impression upon the people. But Moses was stirred, and in impatience and anger with the people, because of their murmurings, he said, "Hear now, ye rebels, must we fetch you water out of this rock?" In thus speaking he virtually admitted to murmuring Israel that they were correct in charging him with leading them from Egypt. God had forgiven the people greater transgressions than this error on the part of Moses, but He could not regard a sin in a leader of His people as in those who were led. He could not excuse the sin of Moses and permit him to enter the Promised Land.
      ellauri164.html on line 593: God's punishment was harsh. “Because you did not trust in me, to show my holiness before the eyes of the Israelites, therefore you shall not bring this assembly into the land that I have given them” (Num.20:12). Moses and Aaron, like all the people who rebelled against God’s plan earlier (Num. 14:22-23), will not be permitted to enter the Promised Land.
      ellauri164.html on line 597: Honoring God in leadership—as all Christian leaders in every sphere must attempt to do—is a terrifying responsibility. Whether we lead a business, a classroom, a relief organization, a household, or any other organization, we must be careful not to mistake our authority for God’s. What can we do to keep ourselves in obedience to God? Meeting regularly with an accountability (or “peer”) group, praying daily about the tasks of leadership, keeping a weekly Sabbath to rest in God’s presence, and seeking others’ perspective on God’s guidance are methods some lead­ers employ. Even so, the task of leading firmly while remaining wholly dependent on God is beyond human capability. If the most humble man on the face of the earth (Num. 12:3) could fail in this way, so can we. By God’s grace, even failures as great as Moses’ at Meribah, with disastrous consequences in this life, do not separate us from the ultimate fulfillment of God’s promises. Moses did not enter the Promised Land, yet the New Testament declares him “faithful in all God’s house” and reminds us of the confidence that all in God’s house have in the fulfillment of our redemption in Christ (Heb. 3:2-6).
      ellauri164.html on line 611: Moses' abuse and misuse of the staff constitutes an act of lese-majeste because it is seen as an act of rebellion against YHWH's authority. Inevitably, Moses eclipses YHWH's personality, presence and power in the eyes of the people. His condign punishment is the forfeiture of the privilege of leading the people into the Promised Land. See Less.
      ellauri164.html on line 625: Moses had been leading a rebellious, ungrateful, complaining, people through the wilderness for 40 years. His sister had just died. And now these people had gathered together against Aaron and him to complain because there was no water, again! (Numbers 20:2-5) You would think after 40 years these people would have learned to trust their all-powerful, Living God to provide for them.
      ellauri164.html on line 627: You would think after 40 years these people would have learned to trust their all-powerful, Living God to provide
      ellauri164.html on line 628: Moses was in no mood to deal with this today. Why couldn’t these people let him mourn his sister in peace? Why had God brought them to a dry thirsty land with no water again? Why did these people always blame him? Why didn’t these people bring their problems to God in prayer instead of always complaining to him? Why were there always so many demands on him? Why was it always “Moses, Moses, Moses”?
      ellauri164.html on line 631: Take the rod, and gather thou the assembly together, thou, and Aaron thy brother, and speak ye unto the rock before their eyes; and it shall give forth his water, and thou shalt bring forth to them water out of the rock: so thou shalt give the congregation and their beasts drink. (Numbers 20:8)
      ellauri164.html on line 636: “And Moses and Aaron gathered the congregation together before the rock, and he said unto them, Hear now, ye rebels; must we fetch you water out of this rock? And Moses lifted up his hand, and with his rod he smote the rock twice: and the water came out abundantly, and the congregation drank, and their beasts also. ” (Numbers 20:10-11)
      ellauri164.html on line 641: Numbers 20:12. Despite Moses’ error, water poured from the rock. God still provided abundantly for the children of Israel even though Moses had disobeyed Him. God did not withhold His blessing from His people because of their leader’s sin. God did hold Moses accountable though (Numbers 20:12).
      ellauri164.html on line 643: Moses had always done exactly as God commanded – UNTIL NOW. Moses was devastated when God pronounced his judgment (Numbers 20:12). He had obeyed God’s call to go to Egypt to free the Israelites from bondage. God had worked mighty miracles through him.
      ellauri164.html on line 645: God had used him to give the law to Israel and write the first five books of the Bible. He had led God’s people through the wilderness for 40-years, enduring all their complaining and the punishment of their rebellion. He had done everything exactly as God had commanded.
      ellauri164.html on line 647: Now, after 40-years of faithfully serving God with perfect obedience to bring God’s people to the Promised Land, he would not be allowed to enter! Was that fair? Of course it was. Moses knew God was merciful and gracious. Surely God would forgive and relent, if he would only repent. Surely God would forgive one sin, and let him in, after how good he had been.
      ellauri164.html on line 650: For 40-years Moses had pronounced judgment without mercy on those who sinned. Whether the sin had been idolatry, misusing God’s name, immorality, or even collecting firewood on the Sabbath, the law had condemned the disobedient to be stoned for even one sin. Now Moses was being judged by the very law he had proclaimed.
      ellauri164.html on line 669: 8 Take the staff, and assemble the congregation, you and Aaron your brother, and tell the rock before their eyes to yield its water. So you shall bring water out of the rock for them and give drink to the congregation and their cattle.
      ellauri164.html on line 679: “And the LORD said to Moses and Aaron, “Because you did not believe in me, to uphold me as holy in the eyes of the people of Israel, therefore you shall not bring this assembly into the land that I have given them.”” (Num. 20:12 ESV)
      ellauri164.html on line 725: Answer: Psalms 106:32-33 states that the people angered Moses at the waters of strife, that it went ill with Moses, and that he sinned with his mouth. The incident in question occurred in Numbers 20:7-13. Miriam had just passed on. The very next verse states that the people were complaining about the lack of water. This had happened many times during their wilderness experience. And like the other times, the people railed against Moses and Aaron, whining that they would have been better off if they had stayed in Egypt. Moses and Aaron responded by falling face down. They had also done this several times. Maybe they were tired of hearing the same old complaints, or maybe this was their posture of prayer. In any event, God responded quickly, telling Moses to speak to the rock in front of all the people. Water would come gushing out -- enough water for everyone.
      ellauri164.html on line 727: Moses assembled the people, but he didn't follow orders quite the way he should have. Instead of just speaking to the rock, which would have demonstrated the power of the word over the power of his rod, he struck it twice, saying, "Listen, you rebels, shall we get water for you out of this rock?" It almost sounded as though Moses was taking credit for delivering the water. That was not true. Perhaps the strain of leading the people all those years was finally starting to show. He called them rebels, which in a sense they were. But God did not tell him to do this. Nor was there any mention of God at that point. All seemed directed at Moses and Aaron: "Must we bring water out of this rock?" Depending on how it's read, it could indicate doubt on the part of Moses.
      ellauri164.html on line 729: The bottom line is that both he and Aaron disobeyed God. Moreover, the water that rushed out was no longer seen as a gift from God, but was a product of Moses and Aaron. The people were happy; God was not. He said, "You did not trust in me; and you did not honor me as holy" (Num. 20:13). Hence, neither of them would set foot into the Promised Land. Yet, it is important to notice that just as God did not abandon his people when they sinned, he did not abandon Moses and Aaron. But in this one instance, they didn't pass the test. When crunch time came, they didn't trust God. And all of this happened at the waters of Meribah.
      ellauri164.html on line 733: In reality, the people who were writing this story knew that Moses did not lead them into the Promised Land. In fact, he had completed his assignment long ago. God had instructed him to lead the people out of Egypt (Ex. 3:10). They were out of Egypt. His job was done. So maybe this wasn't a punishment at all; maybe it was a reward! He was roughly 120 years of age at this point. They all knew that settling into the Promised Land would have its challenges. That land was fully occupied, and many battles were ahead of them. Surely it was time to let Joshua take over. It was time for Moses to rest. Granted, there might have been other ways for God to accomplish this, but the writers of the story chose to tell it like this. The end result is that Moses was free of his responsibility to the people, free to be with God on the mountaintop.
      ellauri164.html on line 744: 2. But after nearly 40 years of service in the wilderness, Moses
      ellauri164.html on line 761: yellow">2. Instead of speaking to the rock, Moses strikes it twice.
      ellauri164.html on line 802: In the first month the whole Israelite community arrived at the Desert of Zin, and they stayed at Kadesh. There Miriam died and was buried. (2) Now there was no water for the community, and the people gathered in opposition to Moses and Aaron. (3) They quarreled with Moses and said, "If only we had died when our brothers fell dead before the LORD! (4) Why did you bring the LORD's community into this desert, that we and our livestock should die here? (5) Why did you bring us up out of Egypt to this terrible place? It has no grain or figs, grapevines or pomegranates. And there is no water to drink!" (6) Moses and Aaron went from the assembly to the entrance to the Tent of Meeting and fell facedown, and the glory of the LORD appeared to them. (7) The LORD said to Moses, (8) "Take the staff, and you and your brother Aaron gather the assembly together. Speak to that rock before their eyes and it will pour out its water. You will bring water out of the rock for the community so they and their livestock can drink." (9) So Moses took the staff from the LORD's presence, just as he commanded him. (10) He and Aaron gathered the assembly together in front of the rock and Moses said to them, "Listen, you rebels, must we bring you water out of this rock?" (11) Then Moses raised his arm and struck the rock twice with his staff. Water gushed out, and the community and their livestock drank. (12) But the LORD said to Moses and Aaron, "Because you did not trust in me enough to honor me as holy in the sight of the Israelites, you will not bring this community into the land I give them." (13) These were the waters of Meribah, [1] where the Israelites quarreled with the LORD and where he showed himself holy among them.
      ellauri164.html on line 841: By prayer and confession, bring forward the living water, both to clean (baptism) and to nourish (River of Life).
      ellauri164.html on line 867: There are few characters that play a larger part in the story of the Bible than Moses. He is the human protagonist of four Old Testament books and is consistently held up in both the OT and NT as a shining example of faith in the promises of God. The law that he delivered to the people of Israel serves as the foundation of the nation of Israel, and is lauded by Jesus as a testament that would not pass until “heaven and earth pass away…[and] all is accomplished.” One of the great tragic moments of the Bible is where Moses is denied entrance to the Promised Land for his sin at the Rock of Meribah; after faithfully leading Israel for forty years, Moses strikes a rock instead of speaking to it and is condemned to die before living in the Promised Land. On its surface, this might seem unfair to Moses. One mess-up and God gives him this great punishment? How many times had Israel failed in their journey and at Mt. Sinai, and God had spared their lives and allowed them to keep going? Yet His most faithful servant is barred over this one, seemingly insignificant event? If we take a closer look at the text, however, we see why Moses’ failure was such a stark one. While it doesn’t diminish the tragic nature of the event, it does shed light on why God takes such a drastic step to respond.
      ellauri164.html on line 871: This pattern shows itself again in the beginning of Numbers 20 after the death of Miriam. Once more Israel rebels against Moses and Aaron, this time over a lack of water in the desert of Zin. They claim that it would have been better to have died with Korah’s rebellion rather than wander without food and water, and they express regret over leaving Egypt, a land of “grain, figs, vines, and pomegranates.” This might seem a bold claim, since in our reading Korah has just died a few chapters earlier. Careful reading, however, indicates that there’s actually been a quiet time skip; Numbers 33:38 indicates that Aaron died in “the fortieth year after the sons of Israel had come from the land of Egypt, on the first day in the fifth month.” Given that Aaron’s death is recorded in Chapter 20, just a few verses after the episode at Meribah, this would indicate that the episode at Meribah occurred in year 38 of the 40 year wandering in the wilderness (remember that Israel had spent more than a year at Sinai in addition to travel time from Egypt to Sinai and from Sinai to the Promised Land before the wandering). This means that this rebellious generation of Israelites aren’t referencing a recent event, but instead wishing they had died nearly forty years earlier with Korah! Moses and Aaron have been dealing with this wicked and hard group of people for a very long time, and they are now claiming it would have been better to have died with Korah: a fate they were only spared because of Moses and Aaron’s own intercession!
      ellauri164.html on line 873: We would expect the pattern to repeat here. The people have rebelled, so the next part would be God’s wrath and threats of destruction. Instead, however, God merely grants their request for water. No mention of sin or possible annihilation, just grace in providing for Israel’s needs. The fact that this cycle we’ve come to expect changes is designed to highlight an important event; the oddity of the text “awakens us from our narrative slumber,” as one commentator puts it, and forces us to pay attention closely to what’s occurring. Why would God not threaten destruction? To answer that, we have to remember a key aspect of God’s character: He does not change. Hebrews 13:8 says He is the same yesterday and today and forever, “without variation or shifting shadow,” (James 1:17). The purpose of the threats of destruction, and Moses/Aaron’s intercession, was not to actually change God’s mind. God knew exactly what was going to happen in all these instances. God’s threats on Israel are spoken to Moses so that Moses will intercede. They are tests of Moses’ (and Aaron’s) character, just as God’s conversation with Abraham over the fates of Sodom and Gomorrah (Genesis 18) was about testing Abraham’s character rather than the doomed cities. Yet here, in Numbers 20, God does not follow the pattern. Why?
      ellauri164.html on line 877: The reading that makes more sense is to focus on the breaking of the pattern established to this point. Moses’ harsh words toward the Israelites reveal his emotions in this moment; he classifies Israel as “rebels” rather than the chosen people, and his rhetorical question seems to imply that he does not view Israel as worthy of God’s grace any longer. This is the real failure of Moses in this moment: he’s lost his faith in God to fulfill His promises to these people. Israel is a nation of rebels outside of grace, outside of God’s ability to make a great nation, outside of the promises that God has given. It seems nearly forty years of dealing with this people has finally broken Moses, and he is so overwhelmed in this moment that he has lost faith. From God’s perspective, Moses has lost faith in the Lord to overcome Israel’s faithlessness. Moses has not believed in God, and has not treated Yahweh as the Holy God who is able to overcome the weakness of His people. Indeed, this is exactly what Numbers 20:12 says was Moses’ sin! He (and Aaron!) did not believe God and did not treat Yahweh as holy in that moment. God did offer Moses the opportunity to intercede for the people (and thus broke the pattern) because He knew that Moses did not have faith in Him.
      ellauri164.html on line 904: “And the LORD spake unto Moses, saying, Take the rod, and gather thou the assembly together, thou, and Aaron thy brother, and speak ye unto the rock before their eyes; and it shall give forth His water, and thou shalt bring forth to them water out of the Rock: so thou shalt give the congregation and their beasts drink. And Moses took the rod from before the LORD, as he commanded him. And Moses and Aaron gathered the congregation together before the rock, and he said unto them, Hear now, ye rebels; must we fetch you water out of this rock? And Moses lifted up his hand, and with his rod he smote the rock twice: and the water came out abundantly, and the congregation drank, and their beasts also.” Numbers 20:7–12 (emphasis mine).
      ellauri164.html on line 908: “By his rash act Moses took away the force of the lesson that God purposed to teach. The rock, being a symbol of Christ, had been once smitten, as Christ was to be once offered. The second time it was needful only to speak to the rock, as we have only to ask for blessings in the name of Jesus. By the second smiting of the rock the significance of this beautiful figure of Christ was destroyed.” –Patriarchs and Prophets, p. 418
      ellauri164.html on line 910: “Our Saviour was not to be sacrificed a second time; and it is only necessary for those who seek the blessings of His grace to ask in the name of Jesus, pouring forth the heart’s desire in penitential prayer.” –Patriarchs and Prophets, p. 411. See also Luke 11:9–10
      ellauri164.html on line 912: Of course further to that sin was the sin of anger, i.e. “Hear now, ye rebels” and taking the glory and/or power of God, i.e. “Must we fetch you water out of this rock?” as if they had the power themselves.
      ellauri164.html on line 918: May the Lord help us not only to understand this truth about Moses’ sin alone, but also possess the true facts of the Bible in every aspect, which comes as a result of prayerful study of His Word, remains my wish and prayer. AMEN.
      ellauri164.html on line 923: Moses’ sin occurred in the final years of his life. After faithfully leading Israel out of Egypt, and after their rebellion in the matter of the 12 spies, he also faithfully led them during the forty years of wandering in the wilderness. Yet near the very end of that wandering, in a moment of anger and a lapse of judgment, Moses sinned, and God recorded that it led Him to refuse to allow Moses to enter the promised land. It is difficult to imagine the anguish and remorse Moses must have felt when God revealed this punishment. His failure to give God the proper respect and reverence, though provoked by the wicked rebellion and faithless murmurings of Israel, was a public sin and God chose to publicly and openly punish him for it.
      ellauri164.html on line 929: It appears that Moses was still in complete control of himself when he went to God for instructions. “Moses and Aaron went ... to the door of the tent of meeting, and fell upon their faces.” “Then the Lord spoke to Moses, saying,” “take the rod; ... gather the congregation together. Speak to the rock before their eyes, and it will yield its water; thus you shall bring water for them out of the rock, and give drink to the congregation and their animals.” Clearly there was nothing difficult to understand and Moses wanted to be as faithful to this command as he had been to all the other commands God had given him.
      ellauri164.html on line 933: Did Moses realize immediately what he had done? At some point after this event, “the Lord spoke to Moses and Aaron, ‘Because you did not believe Me, to hallow Me in the eyes of the children of Israel, therefore you shall not bring this assembly into the land which I have given them.’” Their conduct had publicly displayed a lack faith, reverence and respect. God determined that this needed an equally public punishment. The punishment for this sin was grievous. God gave to them a punishment so similar to the one given to all Israel at Kadesh that it was a heart-breaking moment for Moses. Both he and Aaron would die in the wilderness and not be allowed to enter the promised land. What a bitter pill for Moses to swallow. Like David with Bathsheba, God forgave the sin, but did not remove the consequences. The consequences for Moses’ momentary lapse in reverence and respect under the terrible emotion of anger was to be barred from entrance into the promised land.
      ellauri164.html on line 935: When God said Moses “failed to sanctify me in the eyes of the people,” He did not specify exactly what this failure was. God had told Moses to “speak to the rock,” but the account stated that “Moses lifted up his hand, and smote the rock with his rod twice.” Clearly, in that act, Moses went beyond what God had commanded him to do. God had told Moses to take the staff, but not use it. He was directly commanded only to speak to the rock. He went beyond what was written when struck that rock. It was similar to Nadab and Abihu who offered “strange fire which He had not commanded them.” At that time Moses saw that such behavior did not “treat God as holy or glorify him among the people” (Lev. 10:1-3). Yet Moses, in anger, failed to hallow God when he struck that rock instead of speaking to it. He had failed to learn “not to go beyond what is written,” (1Cor. 4:6). He was told to speak to the rock (and he did not do that), but struck the rock (which he had no authority to do). God later charged Moses with this sin: “you rebelled against my word at the waters of Meribah” (Num 20:24; 27:13).
      ellauri164.html on line 937: There was a second sin that was also committed in that same event. It was not revealed until The Psalmist described it: “it went ill with Moses” because “he spoke rashly with his lips” (Psa 106:33). When we look at what Moses said, we can see exactly how rash he was! “Hear now, ye rebels; shall we bring you forth water out of this rock?” This was a serious lapse in judgment. Moses was not going to bring water out of that rock. So, there was a big problem with that “we.” Hence, first by striking the rock, and second by using a pronoun that elevated them, Moses “believed not in me, to sanctify me in the eyes of the children of Israel.”
      ellauri164.html on line 943: “And when you have seen it, you also shall be gathered to your people, as Aaron your brother was gathered. 14 For in the Wilderness of Zin, during the strife of the congregation, you rebelled against My command to hallow Me at the waters before their eyes.” (Num. 27:13-14).
      ellauri164.html on line 947: “Then I pleaded with the Lord at that time, saying: 24 'O Lord God, You have begun to show Your servant Your greatness and Your mighty hand, for what god is there in heaven or on earth who can do anything like Your works and Your mighty deeds? 25 I pray, let me cross over and see the good land beyond the Jordan, those pleasant mountains, and Lebanon.' 26 "But the Lord was angry with me on your account, and would not listen to me. So the Lord said to me: 'Enough of that! Speak no more to Me of this matter. 27 Go up to the top of Pisgah, and lift your eyes toward the west, the north, the south, and the east; behold it with your eyes, for you shall not cross over this Jordan.” (Deut. 3:23-27)
      ellauri164.html on line 955: Everyone knows how Romeo and Juliet ends, and yet we still cry when they die. The same is true of the first of the two Torah portions we read this week, Parashat Hukkat/Balak. In this portion, we learn that Moses will not enter the Promised Land. We have heard or read this story every year, and yet we are still upset, still angry that, on the threshold, Moses is denied admission to the Land to which he has been leading the Israelites for forty years.
      ellauri164.html on line 957: Every year we plow through the many possible explanations for God’s decision to disallow Moses entry to Canaan. I would like to propose an explanation that is connected with what we already know about the Israelites and with the way the story is structured.
      ellauri164.html on line 959: This story takes place during the fortieth and final year of the Israelites’ consignment to the wilderness before entering the Land of Promise. The generation of those who, by their own admission, were not prepared to enter the Land has died off, and only those men who were nineteen years old or younger at the Exodus (and the tribe of Levi) will enter. The only named survivors of the previous generation are the leaders: Miriam, Aaron, Moses, Joshua, and Caleb. Early in this parashah, Miriam dies without explanation, successor, or national mourning.
      ellauri164.html on line 963: But wait. Didn’t we already learn a similar story back in Exodus? In fact, the first story of thirst came very soon after the crossing at the Sea of Reeds (Shemot 17:4). Since that was at the very beginning of the sojourn in the wilderness, before the events that led to God’s decision to delay the Israelites’ entry to the Land—and this story is at the end of the forty years—we can see the two stories as forming a kind of a framework around the whole saga of the wandering. In the first story, the Israelites were the first generation of those who left Egypt. In this story, they are the children and grandchildren of that generation. When we see this kind of framework, we look for the similarities and differences between the bracketing stories. At the same time, we understand that they suggest a theme for the stories between them.
      ellauri164.html on line 969: And here is the clue to what went wrong in this critical story: God says, “You and your brother Aaron take the rod and assemble the community, and before their very eyes order the rock to yield its water. Thus you shall produce water for them from the rock and provide drink for the congregation and their beasts” (Num. 20:7-8). When the time comes, Moses does speak, but what he says is ambiguous in tone and intent. Here is the very short story:
      ellauri164.html on line 971: “Listen, you rebels, shall we get water for you out of this rock?” And Moses raised his hand and struck the rock twice with his rod. Out came water, and the community and their beasts drank. But God said to Moses and Aaron, “Because you did not trust Me enough to affirm My sanctity before the eyes of the Israelites, even so you shall not bring this assembly to the Land that I have given them.” (Num. 20:10-12)
      ellauri164.html on line 973: In this very short story we see a second framework: the phrase “before the eyes” emphasizes both the importance of what the Israelites witness, and the logical nature of Moses’s punishment. Why is it so important that Moses speak “before the eyes of the Israelites”? To answer that, we need to recall their past.
      ellauri164.html on line 975: The Israelites had a history of trusting in God because of what they saw. The most famous example, which we repeat in the daily morning service, quotes their experience after the crossing of the Sea of Reeds: “Israel saw the wondrous power which God had wielded against the Egyptians, the people feared God; they had faith in God and in God’s servant, Moses” (Exod. 14:31). They have needed this public, indisputable evidence of their eyes ever since. God knows that what they see is what is most important. And what he wants them to see is Moses speaking—not striking the rock, as he was commanded to do on the former occasion.
      ellauri164.html on line 981: Instead, Moses does what he did in the first story, ignoring the fact that he is not dealing with the same population. He acts as though he is saying to himself, “They are just like their parents! Always quarreling!” In fact, they are a new generation, and by reverting to an action that was appropriate forty years earlier, and not now, Moses shows that he is not the person to bring them into the Land.
      ellauri171.html on line 80: Rebekka oli hedelmätön avioituessaan Iisakin kanssa eikä kyennyt synnyttämään ennen kuin Iisak rukoili hänen puolestaan. Kun Rebekka synnytti kaksoset, hän suosi Jaakobia, nuorempaa, eikä Esauta, esikoista.
      ellauri171.html on line 218: His father, Marcel Théodore Tissot, was not a watchmaker but a successful drapery merchant. He took part in losing the war of 1870 and in the Paris Commune. In 1885, Tissot had a revival of his Catholic faith, which led him to spend the rest of his life making paintings about Biblical events. Many of his artist friends were skeptical about his conversion, as it conveniently coincided with the French Catholic revival, a reaction against the secular attitude of the French Third Republic. They brought Tissot vast wealth and fame. Tissot spent the last years of his life in his chateau working on paintings of subjects from the Old Testament. Although he never completed the series, he exhibited 80 of these paintings in Paris in 1901 and engravings after them were published in 1904. In the first half of the 20th century, there was a re-kindling of interest in his portraits of fashionable ladies and some fifty years later, these were achieving record prices.
      ellauri171.html on line 391: What’s the story really about? At the time the story of Cain and Abel developed, there was constant friction between farmers and herdsmen, both of them fighting for the limited resources of the land. Cain kills Abel. A herd of goats in a stony, barren landscape The herdsmen were angry when the farmers took over the best land for their crops the farmers were angry when the flocks trampled their crops.This friction leads to violence in which people get killed. Notice that the story was developed by the herdsmen, the keepers of flocks. This explains why Abel, the herdsman, is portrayed as the injured party. Lucky Luke-tarinassa Piikkilankoja preerialla skooparit repi pelihousunsa kun jyväjemmarit pystyttivät piikkilankoja preerialle. Sillä kertaa oli maajussit hyvixiä. Nyt on keskusta taas paha.
      ellauri171.html on line 445: He may or may not have believed her, but her beauty made her a sexual fly-trap, and he allowed her to stay. In the ensuring battle of tits, Judith managed to outwit her prey. While he was drunk and had emptied his bollocks into her, she pulled his sword out of its scabbard, prayed to God for strength, hacked Holofernes’ head off, then escaped back to her people.
      ellauri171.html on line 466:

      When Jehu came to Jezreel, Jezebel heard of it; she painted her eyes and adorned her head, and looked out of the window. As Jehu entered the gate, she said “Is it peace, Zimri, murderer of your master?”
      ellauri171.html on line 509: At the time of this story, she must have been very young – about fourteen years, since she was born after Leah’s four sons. Even though young, she was considered to be of marriageable age.
      ellauri171.html on line 521: But Shechem falls passionately in love post coitum! So not at all what happened with Amnon. Dinah must have been a better lay. Now love complicates what would otherwise be the simple story of a violent crime. Shechem declared that he has fallen passionately in love with Dinah. He told her this, and he told anyone who would listen to him. He loved her tenderly – the words of the story imply longing, yearning, tenderness, not the usual feelings of a rapist.
      ellauri171.html on line 553: But worse than this in their eyes is the fact that he now seems to be offering to give them financial gain through the rape of their sister.
      ellauri171.html on line 586: It is over-retaliation, and it prompts the Bible’s command to limit retribution to ‘an eye for an eye, a tooth for a tooth’. Only retribution in kind may be taken if an injury has been suffered.
      ellauri171.html on line 631: But his concubine played the harlot against him, and she went away from him to her father’s house in Bethlehem in Judah, and was there for a period of four months. Judges 19:2 (NASB)
      ellauri171.html on line 638: Now we learn that the Levite and the concubine are husband and wife because the Levite is described as “her husband,” and the woman’s father is the Levite’s “father-in-law.” We also learn that the Levite travelled to Bethlehem to speak kindly to her and return home together. Because we are told that he planned to “speak tenderly to her,” this once again suggests that they may have argued after she played the prostitute, and as a result she left.
      ellauri171.html on line 642: Judges 19:15-26 describes what happened the night the couple stayed in Gibeah, a city of the Benjamites. When they entered the open square of the city an old man invited them to his home (Judges 19:16-21). While the old man and the Levite and his concubine were having dinner, we are told some “worthless fellows” surrounded the house and pounded on the door. Verses 22-24 describe the discussion that occurred with these “worthless fellows.”
      ellauri171.html on line 667: Thus the tribes of Israel (minus Benjamin) invoked capital punishment on the men who raped and murdered the Levite’s concubine and the tribe. In time, a total of forty thousand Israelites died as a result of God’s punishment on the tribe of Benjamin (Judges 20:21, 25). Six hundred men of Benjamin remained alive (Judges 20:47). Judges 20:48 states that Israel destroyed the cities of the tribe of Benjamin that they could find, including the cattle. Later Judges 21:16 states all the women were killed too!
      ellauri171.html on line 673:
      ellauri171.html on line 679: The first important lesson from this account is that the Bible indicates God did not approve of the horrible sins that occurred in the city of Gibeah. Judges 20:18, 23, 28, 35 repeatedly reveal that God directed the other tribes of Israel to action against a morally evil tribe. This reveals that the accusation of some that Scripture is silent about the evil that occurred is wrong. The reason the account is recorded is summarized at the end of Judges 21. There God reveals that He condemned the nation of Israel for its actions in Judges 19-21. Judges 21:25 says, “In those days there was no king in Israel; everyone did what was right in his own eyes.” It reveals what happens when men and women abandon God. Romans 3:10-18 states the human race is utterly perverted and their actions will demonstrate it. It says no one seeks after God. “There is not even one!” We have all turned aside from God. Jesus said to the rich young ruler in Matthew 19:17 that there is only One who is good and He is God. The rest of Romans 3:10-18 describes our utter sinfulness and despicable behavior when we abandon God. That describes the inhabitants of Gibeah and the nation of Benjamin. Tämmöistä sakinhivutusta suositaan armeijoissa nykyäänkin. Jos syyllistä ei saada kiinni, pannaan koko komppania kärsimään. Hemmetti tää on kyllä alkeellista touhua. Kuka tästä enää haluaa mitään oppia? No vizi on että raamatun lukijoista on varmasti yli 50% just yhtä alkeellista porukkaa. Ei apinat ole mihkään muuttuneet, ne on sopeutuneet tähän.
      ellauri171.html on line 681: Our second lesson is that our sins affect others and potentially lead others to sin. The first sin in this account occurred in the home of the Levite and concubine. The fact that the Levite planned to “speak tenderly to her” (Judges 19:3) in order to win her back, seems to imply that they had quarreled. The most obvious sin is that she committed adultery when she became a prostitute. The initial sin cascaded into the horrific evils in Gibeah and subsequently to the 400 virgins who were taken alive in Jabesh-gilead to be given as wives to the remaining men of Benjamin. Judges 21:25 says, “. . . everyone did what was right in his own eyes.”
      ellauri171.html on line 685: When Judges 21:25 records that everyone did what was right in their own eyes, we must realize that it described how insensitive the entire nation of Israel had become to sin. The reason that God ordered the destruction of the tribe of Benjamin was that they were so insensitive to sin that the tribe was irredeemably sinful and had to be destroyed. In Deuteronomy 8:19-20, God warned the nation that He would destroy it if they abandoned Him. Therefore, He destroyed most of the tribe of Benjamin in order to prevent contamination to the other eleven tribes.
      ellauri171.html on line 687: A fifth lesson is that the account describes what happens when men and women abandon God. Sex and other immoral behavior replace God! The entire story is an example of unrestrained animal lust and human depravity. Total disregard for life occurs. What one desires is all that is important. As Proverbs 30:15 says, “The leech has two daughters, “Give,” “Give” . . . ” Women are less important than men. Men abuse men. Unloving men abusively rule over women. Sex trumps everything else. Why? Judges 21:25 says, “. . . everyone did what was right in his own eyes.”
      ellauri171.html on line 761: Their dead bodies, it seems, were too cumbersome to tranport. Instead, the boy’s heads were hacked off, collected in baskets, and displayed for the gawking crowd the the city gate.
      ellauri171.html on line 777: We hope you enjoyed our Bible Study: famous murders in the Bible: Cain and Abel, Herod and John the Baptist, the death of Absalom, Judith and Holofernes, Jehu murders Jezebel, the Levite’s concubine, Jael and Sisera, Ehud murders Eglon, Jehu slaughters the royal children. Check out also other Bible murder links!
      ellauri171.html on line 780: - Young woman with green eyes
      ellauri171.html on line 846: Baalshamin also called Baal Shamem and Baal Shamaim, supreme sky god of Palmyra, Syria whose temple was destroyed on August 23, 2015 by ISIL. His attributes were the eagle and the lightning bolt. Part of trinity of deities along with Aglibol and Malakbel.
      ellauri171.html on line 850: Bel, or Bol, was the chief god of Palmyra, Syria whose temple was destroyed on August 30, 2015 by ISIL.
      ellauri171.html on line 927: The palace economy of Mycenaean Greece, the Aegean region and Anatolia that characterized the Late Bronze Age disintegrated, transforming into the small isolated village cultures of the Greek Dark Ages, which lasted from around 1100 BCE to the beginning of the Archaic age around 750 BCE. The Hittite Empire of Anatolia and the Levant collapsed, while states such as the Middle Assyrian Empire in Mesopotamia and the New Kingdom of Egypt survived but were considerably weakened. Conversely, some peoples such as the Phoenicians enjoyed increased autonomy and power with the waning military presence of Egypt and Assyria in the Levant.
      ellauri171.html on line 939: The ruler of Carchemish sent troops to assist Ugarit, but Ugarit had been sacked. A letter sent after Ugarit had been destroyed said:
      ellauri171.html on line 941: When your messenger arrived, the army was humiliated and the city was sacked. Our food in the threshing floors was burnt and the vineyards were also destroyed. Our city is sacked. May you know it! May you know it! Damn the snail mail!
      ellauri171.html on line 944: The Sea Peoples remain unidentified in the eyes of most modern scholars, and hypotheses regarding the origin of the various groups are the source of much speculation. Filistealaiset oli kenties peräisin Aigeiasta, siis länkkäreitä?! Kappas vain!
      ellauri171.html on line 948: None of the inscribed tablets found in 1929 in the Canaanite city of Ugarit (destroyed c. 1200 BC) has revealed a cosmology. Any idea of one is often reconstructed from the much later Phoenician text by Philo of Byblos (c. 64–141 AD), after much Greek and Roman influence in the region.
      ellauri171.html on line 958: Archaeological investigations at the site of Tell es-Safi have found the remains of donkeys, as well as some sheep and goats in Early Bronze Age layers, dating to 4,900 years ago which were imported from Egypt in order to be sacrificed. One of the sacrificial animals, a complete donkey, was found beneath the foundations of a building, leading to speculation this was a 'foundation deposit' placed before the building of a residential house. Me syötiin Kiinan teevuorilla kerran aasikeittoa. Ei se pahaa ollut.
      ellauri171.html on line 990: But the appearance of Jezebel in the bible includes no mention of her sexuality. In the Hebrew Bible, Jezebel appears in the books of first and second Kings as the wife of King Ahab— the marriage being a political alliance between Israel and Sidon (a coastal city to the north) where Jezebel was the princess. Jezebel brings her religion to Israel with her, and the worship of Baal is blasphemy in the eyes of the biblical writers. According to the text, Jezebel begins killing Israel’s prophets. Because of this, Elijah challenges the prophets of Baal to a showdown with Israel’s deity. The Baal worshipers fail to summon their deity, so Elijah calls upon Yahweh and fire descends from heaven and consumes the altar. Having won, Elijah then slaughters all of the prophets of Baal. Jezebel threatens to kill Elijah by the same time the next day, and, ironically, Elijah retreats.
      ellauri171.html on line 1000: Jezebel is portrayed by the Rabbis as a wicked woman who represents the negative influence of Gentile women who turned Israel’s heart to idolatry. She is a corrupting influence on her husband Ahab, who is drawn to idolatry and away from God because of her.
      ellauri171.html on line 1016: Jezebel is characterized as totally evil in the biblical text and beyond it: in the New Testament her name is a generic catchword for a whoring, non-believing female adversary (Revelations 2:20); in Judeo-Christian traditions, she is evil. The Bible is careful not to refer to her as queen. And yet, this is precisely what she seems to have been. Some early Jewish, albeit post-biblical, sources deconstruct the general picture: “Four women exercised government in the world: Jezebel and Athaliah from Israel, Semiramis and Vashti from the [gentile] nations” (in a Jewish Midrash for the Book of Esther, Esther Rabbah)
      ellauri171.html on line 1024: Israel’s most accursed queen carefully fixes a pink rose in her red locks in John Byam Liston Shaw’s “Jezebel” from 1896. Jezebel’s reputation as the most dangerous seductress in the Bible stems from her final appearance: her husband King Ahab is dead; her son has been murdered by Jehu. As Jehu’s chariot races toward the palace to kill Jezebel, she “painted her eyes with kohl and dressed her hair, and she looked out of the window” (2 Kings 9:30).
      ellauri171.html on line 1026: For more than two thousand years, Jezebel has been saddled with a reputation as the bad girl of the Bible, the wickedest of women. This ancient queen has been denounced as a murderer, prostitute and enemy of God, and her name has been adopted for lingerie lines and World War II missiles alike. But just how depraved was Jezebel?
      ellauri171.html on line 1027: In recent years, scholars have tried to reclaim the shadowy female figures whose tales are often only partially told in the Bible. Rehabilitating Jezebel’s stained reputation is an arduous task, however, for she is a difficult woman to like. She is not a heroic fighter like Deborah, a devoted sister like Miriam or a cherished wife like Ruth. Jezebel cannot even be compared with the Bible’s other bad girls—Potiphar’s wife and Delilah—for no good comes from Jezebel’s deeds. These other women may be bad, but Jezebel is the worst.
      ellauri171.html on line 1053: Although the readers know that God has killed two of Judah’s sons, Judah does not. This is known as dramatic irony. He suspects that Tamar is a “lethal woman,” a woman whose sexual partners are all doomed to die. So, Judah is afraid to give Tamar to his youngest son, Shelah, the inventor of Shelah quantifiers. So doing, Judah wrongs Tamar. According to Near Eastern custom, known from Middle Assyrian laws, if a man has no son over ten years old, he could perform the Levirate marriage (yibbum) obligation himself; if he does not, the woman is declared a “widow,” free to marry again. Judah, who is perhaps afraid of Tamar’s lethal character, could have set her free. But he does not—he sends her to live as “a widow” in her father’s house. Unlike other widows, she cannot remarry and must stay chaste on pain of death. She is in limbo.
      ellauri171.html on line 1057: Tamar’s plan is as simple as it is clever: she covers herself with a veil so that Judah won’t recognize her, and then she sits in the roadway at the “entrance to Enaim” (Hebrew petah enayim; literally, “eye-opener”). She has chosen her spot well. Judah will pass as he comes back happy and horny (and maybe tipsy) from a sheep-shearing festival. The veil is not the mark of a prostitute (haha); rather, it simply will prevent Judah from seeing Tamar’s face, and women sitting by the roadway are apparently fair game. So, Judah propositions her, offering to give her a kid (well he did) for her services and giving her his pet seal and staff id (the ancient equivalent of a credit card) in pledge.
      ellauri171.html on line 1067: Storyline: Tamara is a girl who didn't quite fit in. Tamara is constantly picked on and when a couple of Judah's sons play a joke on Tamara, it leads to their death. The sugardaddy tries to make it so that Tamara ran away. But all is not lost yet. Tamara returns as a sexy seductress and plans her revenge. (due to witchcraft). Well like they say: Karma's a bitch. —Anonymous
      ellauri171.html on line 1072: A really dumb, derivative rip-off, slovenly constructed and played with the sort of ludicrous earnestness that just misses being bad enough to qualify as high camp.
      ellauri171.html on line 1119: Amnon sighed in a dispirited way and said he could not eat, but on being pressed by his father admitted that yes, he might be able to eat if his sister Tamar cooked some food and fed it to him. David, gullible in matters regarding his sons, immediately sent for Tamar to come and tend her brother.
      ellauri171.html on line 1121: Tamar obeyed her father. She may have had reservations about coming to her brother’s private quarters but she had no choice. Law and custom required her to obey her father, and in any case she would have been escorted by her own servants.
      ellauri171.html on line 1125: In a seeming fit of temper he then ordered everyone out of the room, and because he seemed ill and cranky his servants obeyed.
      ellauri171.html on line 1147: But at the center of this storm stood Tamar, her position as darling of the king and petted princess now destroyed forever.
      ellauri171.html on line 1160: Absalom waited, biding his time. For two years he said nothing, did nothing, but then he set his trap. He gave a feast for all David’s sons. At the height of the festivities when Amnon was half-drunk, Absalom had his half-brother killed, stabbed to death in a scene reminiscent of a Mafia killing. In the ensuring turmoil Absalom escaped, fleeing for sanctuary to Geshur, his grandfather’s territory.
      ellauri172.html on line 64: ...Mais quoi ! c'est trop chanté, il faut tourner les yeux ...Heei! Liikaa laulettu, kaze eteenpäin,
      ellauri172.html on line 138: A rebours s. 251 meinaa vastoinpäin kuin vastarannan kiiski eikä ainoastaan juurittaen kuin mopsi Eetu. Tämmönen rienaus on Huisingan mielestä palvomista nurittepäin, pyllistämistä kumarruxen sijasta. ("Vastahankaan" kuulostaa pikemminkin vain passiivis-aggressiviselta vastahakoiselta jarrutuxelta, huopaa kun muut soutavat. Vastustus, vastarinta, hangoittelu. Esimerkiksi: Päätös toteutettiin vastahangasta huolimatta. Olla vastahangassa jossakin asiassa: vastustaa jotakin asiaa. Asettua vastahankaan: ryhtyä vastustamaan. ) Jorin pointti lienee että mixi pyllistellä ellei ole jotain mille pyllistää. Kyllä kyllä, mutta siihen riittää että on jotain nilkkejä jotka ize tyhjän päälle kyykistyessään kyykyttää alamaisia ja joita suututtaa alamaisen väärään suuntaan pyllistys.
      ellauri172.html on line 293: 31 Then the Lord opened Balaam’s eyes,(I) and he saw the angel of the Lord standing in the road with his sword drawn. So he bowed low and fell facedown.
      ellauri172.html on line 570: Mais non, — cria-t-il, — tonnerre de tonnerres ! c’est impossible ! Voyez-vous, vous autres, le chef d’escadron Mesnilgrand à confesse, comme une vieille bonne femme, à deux genoux sur le strapontin, le nez au guichet, dans la guérite d’un prêtre ? Voilà un spectacle qui ne m’entrera jamais dans le crâne ! Trente mille balles plutôt. — Mille bombes ! — fit Capitain Haddock, exalté.
      ellauri172.html on line 658: « Faut-il que je le répète jusqu’à satiété ? Certes ! je n’étais pas jaloux de cette femme : mais nous sommes tous les mêmes. Malgré moi, je voulus voir à qui elle écrivait, et, pour cela, ne m’étant pas assis encore, je m’inclinai par-dessus sa tête ; mais mon regard fut intercepté par l’entre-deux de ses épaules, par cette fente enivrante et duvetée où j’avais fait ruisseler tant de baisers, et, ma foi ! magnétisé par cette vue, j’en fis tomber un de plus dans ce ruisseau d’amour, et cette sensation l’empêcha d’écrire… Elle releva sa tête de la table où elle était penchée, comme si on lui eût piqué les reins d’une pointe de feu, se cambrant sur le dossier de son fauteuil, la tête renversée ; elle me regardait, dans ce mélange de désir et de confusion qui était son charme, les yeux en l’air et tournés vers moi, qui étais derrière elle, et qui fis descendre dans la rose mouillée de sa bouche entr’ouverte ce que je venais de faire tomber dans l’entre-deux de ses épaules.
      ellauri172.html on line 666: Le major Ydow tomba dans une de ces rages qui déshonorent le caractère d’un homme, et cribla la Pudica d’injures ignobles, d’injures de cocher. Je crus qu’il la rouerait de coups. Les coups allaient venir, mais un peu plus tard. Il lui reprocha, — en quels termes ! d’être… tout ce qu’elle était. Il fut brutal, abject, révoltant ; et elle, à toute cette fureur, répondit en vraie femme qui n’a plus rien à ménager, qui connaît jusqu’à l’axe l’homme à qui elle s’est accouplée, et qui sait que la bataille éternelle est au fond de cette bauge de la vie à deux. Elle fut moins ignoble, mais plus atroce, plus insultante et plus cruelle dans sa froideur, que lui dans sa colère. Elle fut insolente, ironique, riant du rire hystérique de la haine dans son paroxysme le plus aigu, et répondant au torrent d’injures que le major lui vomissait à la face par de ces mots comme les femmes en trouvent, quand elles veulent nous rendre fous, et qui tombent sur nos violences et dans nos soulèvements comme des grenades à feu dans de la poudre. De tous ces mots outrageants à froid qu’elle aiguisait, celui avec lequel elle le dardait le plus, c’est qu’elle ne l’aimait pas — qu’elle ne l’avait jamais aimé : « Jamais ! jamais ! jamais ! » répétait-elle, avec une furie joyeuse, comme si elle lui eût dansé des entrechats sur le cœur ! — Or, cette idée — qu’elle ne l’avait jamais aimé — était ce qu’il y avait de plus féroce, de plus affolant pour ce fat heureux, pour cet homme dont la beauté avait fait ravage, et qui, derrière son amour pour elle, avait encore sa vanité ! Aussi arriva-t-il une minute où, n’y tenant plus, sous le dard de ce mot, impitoyablement répété, qu’elle ne l’avait jamais aimé, et qu’il ne voulait pas croire, et qu’il repoussait toujours :
      ellauri172.html on line 672: « J’imaginai ce qui dut se passer dans les yeux verts du major, en entendant son miaulement étranglé de chat sauvage. Il poussa un juron à fendre le ciel. — Et de qui est-il ? garce maudite ! — demanda-t-il, avec quelque chose qui n’était plus une voix.
      ellauri172.html on line 692: Satan me donna la force d’enfoncer la porte du placard ou j'etsis cache et je vis… ce que je ne reverrai jamais ! La Pudica, terrassée, était tombée sur la table où elle avait écrit, et le major l’y retenait d’un poignet de fer, tous voiles relevés, son beau corps à nu, tordu, comme un serpent coupé, sous son étreinte. Mais que croyez-vous qu’il faisait de son autre main, Messieurs ?… Cette table à écrire, la bougie allumée, la cire à côté, toutes ces circonstances avaient donné au major une idée infernale, — l’idée de cacheter cette femme, comme elle avait cacheté sa lettre — et il était dans l’acharnement de ce monstrueux cachetage, de cette effroyable vengeance d’amant perversement jaloux !
      ellauri172.html on line 708: Tout à coup, un boute-selle furieux sonna, appelant aux armes. C’était l’ennemi qui nous surprenait et qui avait égorgé au couteau, silencieusement, nos sentinelles. Il fallait sauter à cheval. Je jetai un dernier regard sur ce corps superbe et mutilé, immobilement pâle pour la première fois sous les yeux d’un homme. Mais, avant de partir, je ramassai ce pauvre cœur, qui gisait à terre dans la poussière, et avec lequel ils auraient voulu se poignarder et se déchiqueter, et je l’emportai, ce cœur d’un enfant qu’elle avait dit le mien, dans ma ceinture de hussard. »
      ellauri172.html on line 767: One of St. Olaf's chief attractions is a giant black hole, which the townspeople enjoyed standing around and looking at - which prompted Dorothy to refer to St. Olaf sarcastically as the real "entertainment capital of the world." St. Olafians also celebrate various oddly themed festivals, including; "Hay Day" (the day everyone in town celebrates hay),"The Crowning of the Princess Pig", "The Day of the Wheat" (where everyone goes to town dressed like sandwiches), "The Festival of the Dancing Sturgeons" (a festival where the townsfolk watch sturgeons flopping around on the dock), a "Butter Queen" competition (in which Rose almost won, however her churn jammed causing her to believe it had been tampered with), and a milk diving competition (Rose ranked in the "low fat" division), as well as many other events.
      ellauri172.html on line 775: Guggenspritzer, a St. Olaf version of Monopoly. There is no money due to the bank, built by a bad contractor, sinking into a swamp leaving nothing but safety deposit slips and a pen on a chain. Also, you can buy the library or the phone booth, yet 'people use the phone booth'. Rose managed to win the entire game by buying one street - the only street in St Olaf.
      ellauri172.html on line 823: Femmes, soyez soumises à vos maris, essai de Voltaire, 1759, avec le personnage de l'abbé de Châteauneuf.
      ellauri180.html on line 53: Executive producers Julie Plec and Kevin Williamson agreed that in the book series, Elena was turned into a vampire too early, which was around page 200 of The Awakening. Elena's transition into a vampire was planned for two years. Plec said: "That felt obviously too soon, and rushed, and we didn’t want to make a show about a teenage girl who instantly becomes a vampire. But we always knew that her journey would take her there eventually". At the second season's conclusion, Elena was nearly turned into a vampire. Dobrev was happy that she wasn't, because she felt "it would have been like she came too soon", and also didn't think it was something Elena or she wanted.
      ellauri180.html on line 55: Elena has received mainly positive reviews. Steve West of the Cinema Blend compared the story of The Young Adult Vampire Diaries and the character of Elena to the 10 years older popular vampire franchise, Twilight, and its protagonist Bella Swan. West said "Clearly Elena is way hotter than Bella, she has two immortal young adult vampires fighting over her". (Täähän on jo moneen kertaan nähty: chick litissä tytöllä pitää ollä väh. 2 kosijaa, ei se muuten ole mistään kotoisin.) After the vampire episodes, Elena established her own medical practice, specialising in blood diseases.
      ellauri180.html on line 181: Anthropologists do not agree on the origins of circumcision. The English egyptologist, Sir Graham Elliot Smith, suggested that it is one of the features of a heliolithic' culture which, over some 15 000 years ago, spread over much of the world. Others believe that it may have originated independently within several different cultures; certainly, many of the natives that Columbus found inhabiting the New World' were circumcised. However, it is known that circumcision had been practised in the Near East, patchily throughout tribal Africa, among the Moslem peoples of India and of south-east Asia, as well as by Australian Aborgines, for as long as we can tell. The earliest Egyptian mummies (1300 BCE) were circumcised and wall paintings in Egypt show that it was customary several thousand years earlier than that.
      ellauri180.html on line 191: Furthermore, was it always doctors who performed the procedure in ancient times? Probably not: in biblical times it was the mother who performed the ceremony on the newborn. Gradually mohels took over; men who had the requisite surgical skill and advanced religious knowledge. After prayer, the mohel circumcised the infant and then blessed the child, a practice little changed today (Fig. 4a-d). In ancient Egyptian society, the procedure was performed by a priest with his thumb-nail (often gold-impregnated) and throughout mediaeval times it appears to have been largely kept in the domain of religious men.
      ellauri180.html on line 197: Baillie (1833) also describes gonococcal phimosis and recommends that the initial treatment is nugatory' (inoperative) involving the washing of the penis (and under the prepuce with soap and tepid water, followed by the application of calomel ointment. Abernathy also warns against immediate circumcision in the face of a morbidly sensitive surface' (and declares that Sir Edward Home agrees with him!). He advocates that the posthitis (inflamed foreskin) should be allowed to soothe and allay' before surgical intervention. We can assume that the complications recognized by both Abernathy and Baillie were re-phimosis, re-stricture or suppuration; what is clear is that circumcision was not a procedure taken lightly at that time. Interestingly, neither author mentions circumcision in the neonate, suggesting that it had not yet significantly entered the domain of English surgeons.
      ellauri180.html on line 198: By the middle of the 19th century, anaesthesia and antisepsis were rapidly changing surgical practice. The first reported circumcision in the surgical accounts of St Bartholomew's Hospital was in 1865; although this comprised only one of the 417 operations performed that year, it was clearly becoming a more common procedure. Indeed, this was a time when surgical cures were being explored for all ails and in 1878 Curling described circumcision as a cure for impotence in men who also had as associated phimosis. Many other surgeons reported circumcision as being beneficial for a diverse range of sexual problems. Walsham (1903) re-iterates the putative association of phimosis with impotence and suggests that it may also predispose to sterility, priapism, excess masturbation and even venereal disease. Warren (1915) adds epilepsy, nocturnal enuresis, night terrors and precocious sexual unrest' to the list of dangers, and this accepted catalogue of phimotic ills' is extended in American textbooks to include other aspects of sexual erethisms' such as homosexuality.
      ellauri180.html on line 204: More than 2000 years of Jewish persecution has led to the development of alternative surgical procedures. Indeed, `uncircumcision as a measure to offset the oppression of Jews is cited in the Old Testament (I Maccabees 1:14-15) and surgical attempts to restore the prepuce have been well documented throughout history
      ellauri180.html on line 209: It is surprising that despite the many billions of foreskins that have been severed over thousands of years, it is only recently that efforts have been made to understand the prepuce.
      ellauri180.html on line 211: He concluded that only 4% of foreskins were fully retractile at birth, yet 90% were so by the age of 3 years. Of these remaining foreskins, most could be rendered retractile by gentle manipulation. Recent studies have suggested that by the age of 17 years, only 1% remain unretractile.
      ellauri180.html on line 212: Gairdner made the astute observations that the slow period of preputial development corresponded with the age of incontinence. He felt that the prepuce had a protective role and noted that meatal ulceration only occurred in circumcised boys. Recently, a doctor writing anonymously in the BMJ provided an analogy suggesting that the prepuce is to the glans what the eyelid is to the eye.
      ellauri180.html on line 224: Literary assaults such as these have served to fuel the debates and even a Medline® search today reveals that in the last year alone, 155 reviews or letters have been published arguing for or against routine circumcision. However, studying the evolution of the medical indications provides us with a pleasing demonstration of how controversy drives scientific enquiry. We have already described how the surgeons of 100 years ago advocated circumcision for a wide variety of conditions, such as impotence, nocturnal enuresis, sterility, excess masturbation, night terrors, epilepsy, etc. There can be no doubt that a large element of surgical self-interest drove these claims. However, most of the contemporary textbooks also included epithelioma (carcinoma) of the penis amidst the morass of complications of phimosis. Although rare, once this observation had been made, it presumably filtered down through the textbooks by rote, rather than scientific study. A few reports had appeared in the early 20th century indicating that carcinoma of the penis was rare in circumcised men, but not until the debate over neonatal circumcision erupted in the medical press in the 1930s that this surgical `mantra' was put to the test. In 1932, the editor of the Lancet challenged Abraham Wolbarst, a New York urologist, to prove his contention (in a previous Lancet editorial), that circumcision prevented penile carcinoma. Wolbarst responded by surveying every skin, cancer and Jewish hospital in the USA, along with 1250 of the largest general hospitals throughout the Union. With this survey, he was able to show that penile cancer virtually never occurred in circumcised men and that the risk related to the timing of the circumcision. Over the years this association has been reaffirmed by many research workers, although general hygiene, demographic and other factors such as human papilloma virus and smoking status are probably just as important. However, Wolbarst established that association through formal scientific enquiry and proponents of the procedure continue to use this as a compelling argument for circumcision at birth.
      ellauri180.html on line 226: Almost as an extension to the lack of penile cancer in Jews, Handley reported on the infrequency of carcinoma of the cervix in Jewish women. He suggested that this related to the fact that Jewish men were circumcised. Not surprisingly, this spawned a mass of contradictory studies and over the next 50 years the champions of both camps have sought to establish the importance or irrelevance of circumcision in relation to penile cancer. The pendulum has swung both ways and the current evidence suggests that other factors are probably more important. A similar debate has raged for 50 years over concerns for the risks of urinary tract infections in young boys and currently, any decreased risk associated with circumcision remains tentative but not proven.
      ellauri180.html on line 233: However, with a healthcare budget of $140 million per year in the USA (1990), insurance companies eventually forced closer scrutiny. Following such pressure, the first Task Force of Neonatal Circumcision from the American Academy of Pediatrics (1n 1975) concluded that there was no valid medical indication for this procedure. However, the pro-circumcision lobby was strong and the task force was forced to re-evaluate. In 1989, they conceded that there may be certain advantages to neonatal circumcision, although their recommendations did stop short of advising routine operation. Similar pressures in the UK have now resulted in only certain Health Authorities being prepared to pay for the procedure. These tend to be in regions with large ethnic minorities who otherwise may suffer form back street' circumcisions.
      ellauri180.html on line 280: Understanding the first draft: Recent breakthrough after years of frustration.
      ellauri180.html on line 297: The answer is yes. We live in a diverse world. In fact, in most contemporary settings, an all-white cast of characters would be odd, as it hardly reflects reality. So yes, a white author can write diverse cast as long as the heroes are white. 6 janv. 2017
      ellauri180.html on line 402: And all her yellow hair displaced, yhden paikan keltaisine karvoineen,
      ellauri180.html on line 404: And spread, o’er all, her yellow hair, Ja levitti mun naamalle karvatuheron,
      ellauri180.html on line 415: Be sure I looked up at her eyes Kazoin sitä silmiin, oikeestaan
      ellauri180.html on line 423: In one long yellow string I wound Rullasin sen tukan hirttoköydexi,
      ellauri180.html on line 429: Laughed the blue eyes without a stain. Se näytti jäykähkösti nauravan.
      ellauri180.html on line 438: That all it scorned at once is fled, Et kaikki säätyesteet kaikkosi,
      ellauri180.html on line 444: And yet God has not said a word! Eikä jumalakaan puutu asiaan!
      ellauri180.html on line 485: Were chill'd into a selfish prayer for light: Jäähtyivät izekkääseen valon rukouxeen,
      ellauri180.html on line 493: Happy were those who dwelt within the eye Onnekkaita ne jotka asui liki tulivuoria,
      ellauri180.html on line 503: And hid their eyes and wept; and some did rest Jotkut nojasivat poskeensa ja koitti hymyillä,
      ellauri180.html on line 545: Their eyes as it grew lighter, and beheld Sit ne nosti kazeensa ja vilkasi sen valossa
      ellauri180.html on line 589: This act of seeking to find comfort in the burnt remains of religious, or at least holy (privately owned), texts, objects, or structures, after having destroyed them fits into the narrative of this sinful world being reduced to darkness. God (not mentioned) has tested these people and they have failed, only returning to religion when they are at their most desperate. That's an F.
      ellauri180.html on line 600: Her other passions are knitting, cooking, incest and sodomy. Oh yes, and the Passion of the Christ.
      ellauri181.html on line 311: Persoonallisuuden perusta on ihmisen biologiassa ja geeneissä, mutta kenelläkään ei ole syntyessään mitään tiettyä arvojärjestelmää. (Paizi tietysti EAT! FUCK! KILL!)
      ellauri181.html on line 370: ipsative (not comparable) (psychology) Denoting a measure that forces an individual to choose among multiple false options. Myers-Briggs uses ipsative measures, whereas the Five-Factor Model uses normative measures.
      ellauri181.html on line 505: Arvot, asenteet ja ajankuva -tutkimuxessa ja siitä kirjoitetuissa kirjoissa suomalaiset luokitellaan hallizevien arvojensa suhteen erilaisiin ryhmiin. Tarkka luokitus tehdään yhdexänluokkaisena ja tämän jälkeen luokat yhdistetään Täsmäelämän ja uusyhteisölli-syyden aika -kirjassa esitellyllä tavalla viidexi. Klikkaamalla ryhmien nimiä alla olevassa kuvassa tai listassa, saat lyhyen esittelyn kyseisen ryhmän arvomaailmasta.
      ellauri181.html on line 545: How can we speak of alignment and the potential for mismatch stress without addressing the issues of ethics, virtues and values? We were shocked in the first few years of the 21st century to discover that the global companies that we had trusted, and invested our retirement and life savings with had lied to us. They lied to the public, about earnings. They lied about their value and their investmenz. Many thousands of people lost their life savings. Hundreds of thousands had been duped. Millions had been take advantage of!
      ellauri181.html on line 586:
    5. . Industry - Lose no time; be always employed in something useful; cut off all unnecessary actions.
      ellauri182.html on line 74: Mikage Sakurai (“MEE-ka-gee Sah-KOO-rye”), a young woman in Tokyo, is the protagonist and narrator; the story is told from her first-person perspective. Mikage has recently been a student. By this time, she has a job as an assistant at a cooking school. Ruminating on death and loneliness frequently, Mikage says in the beginning, “nobody beats me in my kitchen.”
      ellauri182.html on line 90: After eating a delicious, hot meal that lifts her spirits, Mikage gets an idea. She hires a taxi for the long ride to Yuichi’s hotel and then climbs a balcony to present Yuichi with the same food that she had enjoyed.
      ellauri182.html on line 98:
      ellauri182.html on line 123: Quoting Zen master Dogen-zenji’s “Instructions for the Zen Cook,” (circa 1237), Ashburne relays the words of the great Zen master on the simple act of washing rice and cooking it. Dogen-zenji states, “Keep your eyes open. Do not allow even one grain of rice to be lost. Wash the rice thoroughly, put it in the pot, light the fire and cook it.” He then adds, “There is an old saying that goes, ‘see the pot as your own head; see the water as your life-blood.’” Vittu et on anaalia puuhastelua ruuan kanssa. Ei ruualla saa leikkiä. Se on jumalan viljaa.
      ellauri182.html on line 133: Toward the climax of the story, when Mikage is climbing a hotel balcony in a daring moment of “utter desperation,” she contemplates the concept of free will. Up to this point in the story, Mikage has tended to believe in fate and in premonitions, which are beliefs that other powers are making decisions for her. She has also stated that “we have so little choice,” and that “we live like the lowliest worms.” Undergoing an existential change, Mikage finally admits to herself and the reader that human beings are ultimately free because “we’re constantly making choices. With the breaths we take every day, with the expression in our eyes, with the daily actions we do over and over, we decide.” She states that even when people think that they are being acted upon by outside forces, they are in reality choosing their situations and actions, sometimes subconsciously.
      ellauri182.html on line 139: The alternative is of course the sexless intimacy of the fag hag and her chosen friends. The heroines of Yoshimoto’s fiction are not exactly fag hags, nor are they innocent. Mikage and Satsuki are young women. But grown-up sexual relationships are still beyond their grasp. Instead, in the security of their private kitchens, they dream nostalgic dreams, and shed melancholy tears about the passing of time. This is the stuff of great Japanese poetry, and absolute kitsch. Yoshimoto Banana is not yet a mistress of poetry, but she is a past master of kitsch.
      ellauri182.html on line 167: Shinran left Mount Hiei to study under Hōnen for the next six years. Hōnen (1133–1212) another ex-Tendai monk, left the tradition in 1175 to found his own sect, the Jōdo-shū or "Pure Land School". From that time on, Shinran considered himself, even after exile, a devout disciple of Hōnen rather than a founder establishing his own, distinct True Pure Land school.
      ellauri182.html on line 169: Nianfo (Chinese: 念佛; pinyin: niànfó, Japanese: 念仏 (ねんぶつ, nenbutsu), Korean: 염불; RR: yeombul, Vietnamese: niệm Phật, "laula Buddha") is a term commonly seen in Pure Land Buddhism. In the context of Pure Land practice, it generally refers to the repetition of the name of Amitābha. It is a translation of Sanskrit buddhānusmṛti (or, "recollection of the Buddha").
      ellauri182.html on line 195: For Jōdo Shinshū practitioners, shinjin develops over time through "deep hearing" (monpo) of Amitābha's call of the nembutsu. According to Shinran, "to hear" means "that sentient beings, having heard how the Buddha's Vow arose—its origin and fulfillment—are altogether free of doubt."[9] Jinen also describes the way of naturalness whereby Amitābha's infinite light illumines and transforms the deeply rooted karmic evil of countless rebirths into good karma. It is of note that such evil karma is not destroyed but rather transformed: Shin stays within the Mahayana tradition's understanding of śūnyatā and understands that samsara and nirvana are not separate. Once the practitioner's mind is united with Amitābha and Buddha-nature gifted to the practitioner through shinjin, the practitioner attains the state of non-retrogression, whereupon after his death it is claimed he will achieve instantaneous and effortless enlightenment. He will then return to the world as a Bodhisattva, that he may work towards the salvation of all beings.
      ellauri182.html on line 398:
      ellauri183.html on line 52: Bernien gradu koski Thomas Hardya. Sodan päätyttyä Malamuutti nai it.room.kat. goyn (Ann de Chiara) Oregonista vasten molempien vanhempien tahtoa. Bernhardilaiskoira alkoi kirjoittaa 60-luvulla Oregonin maamieskoulussa. Living out West in Oregon for ten years (1949-61) gave Malamud a sense of home, however temporary. "It was where my wife had a feeling of rooz: our daughter was born there." Tytär Janna Smith on mun ikäinen ja antaa psykoterapiaa halukkaille. Kirjoitti Berniestä kirjan My father was a book. Malamud was Jewish, an agnostic, and a humanist.
      ellauri183.html on line 93: Little wonder that Malamud refused to talk to Roth for several years. They were reconciled in May 1978, when Malamud and his wife, Ann, accepted a dinner invitation in London from Roth and Claire Bloom, who were then living together. The two men kissed on the lips like Brezhnev and Honecker and resumed their friendship, according to a memoir by Malamud’s daughter, Janna Malamud Smith.
      ellauri183.html on line 94: However, in a letter to his daughter a week after that dinner of reconciliation, Malamud voiced his true feelings: Roth, he said, had written a “foolish egoistic essay about my work” and had “certainly misinterpreted” “The Assistant.” The letter was not made public until 2006, some 20 years after Malamud’s death.
      ellauri183.html on line 101: The apocalyptic gloom of his subject seems hopelessly out of place in this cheery, sun-washed house, a rambling white-frame idyll near Bennington College, where Malamud has taught for 20 years. A comforting percussion of cooking sounds comes from the big kitchen where his wife Ann, a chipper dynamo of a woman, is devising lunch; on the porch an old tiger tomcat lolls ingratiatingly; and in the distance the cloud-dappled foothills of the Green Mountains hover like a Yankee daydream.
      ellauri183.html on line 177:
      ellauri183.html on line 236: Para Ortega, la vida humana es la realidad radical, es decir, aquella en la que aparece y surge toda otra realidad, incluyendo cualquier sistema filosófico, real o posible. Para cada ser humano la vida toma una forma concreta.
      ellauri183.html on line 274:
      Ali Syed (isl.) rated it it was amazing

      ellauri183.html on line 280:
      ellauri183.html on line 296:

      Why are Jews portrayed as penny-pinchers?


      ellauri183.html on line 319: The family fled to New York, and Bromberger was admitted to Columbia University. However, he chose to join the U.S. Army in 1942, and he went on to serve three years in the infantry. He took part in the liberation of Europe as a member of the 405th Regiment, 102nd Infantry Division. He was wounded during the invasion of Germany in 1945.
      ellauri183.html on line 321: Over the years since founding building 20 in 1966-7, he trained many generations of MIT students, teaching alongside such notables as Halle, Noam Chomsky, Thomas Kuhn, and Ken Hale, without being very notable himself. He wrote some shit about questions that nobody read.
      ellauri183.html on line 327: Bob May invited the old geezer over to ENS in 2017, a year before he died. Nomppa used to walk him daily round the block, though he had to ask himself why.
      ellauri183.html on line 329: Early research in linguistic formal semantics used Partee's system to achieve a wealth of empirical and conceptual results. Later work by Irene Heim, Angelika Kratzer, Tanya Reinhart, Robert May and others built on Partee's work to further reconcile it with the generative approach to syntax. The resulting framework is known as the Heim and Kratzer system, after the authors of the textbook Semantics in Generative Grammar which first codified and popularized it. The Heim and Kratzer system differs from earlier approaches in that it incorporates a level of syntactic representation called logical form which undergoes semantic interpretation. Thus, this system often includes syntactic representations and operations which were introduced by translation rules in Montague's system. However, work by others such as Gerald Gazdar proposed models of the syntax-semantics interface which stayed closer to Montague's, providing a system of interpretation in which denotations could be computed on the basis of surface structures. These approaches live on in frameworks such as categorial grammar and combinatory categorial grammar.
      ellauri183.html on line 357:
      ellauri183.html on line 402: The Jewish Learning Group creates plain language how-to guides on Jewish law and custom, traditional prayer texts with transliteration and instruction, and educational audio and video guides. Their innovative products help G-ds chosen people attain the rudimentary knowledge and confidence needed to build, lead, and further their Jewish observance at a comfortable and gradual pace.
      ellauri183.html on line 542:
      ellauri183.html on line 681: Tuli takaisin ja yhtyeensä hukkasi
      ellauri183.html on line 700: Tähän liittyen Juudas Iskariot oli terroristi kommunistinen. Siitä tuli suuteleva pahis kaikkien aikojen. Huppupäisten Isis-äitien lähes vertainen.
      ellauri184.html on line 44: Mailer was raised in Brooklyn, first in Flatbush on Cortelyou Rd and later in Crown Heights at the corner of Albany and Crown Streets. Mailer graduated from Boys High School and entered Harvard College in 1939, when he was 16 years old. As an undergraduate, he was a member of the Signet Society. Mousiken poiei kai ergazou, tee musaa ja duunaa. At Harvard, he majored in engineering sciences, but took writing courses as electives. He published his first story, "The Greatest Thing in the World," at the age of 18, winning Story magazine's college contest in 1941.
      ellauri184.html on line 50: Neiti Mallory kertoo tästä lisää: "Norman was an oxymoron — an overweight senior citizen who was one of the best lovers I ever had." Mallory writes that Mailer never had erectile dysfunction: "Not once. Not in nine years..." Vanhasta Naahumista tulee mieleen Norssin voimistelunopettaja Lahtinen ja Star Warsin Yoda. “Each week he’d want to play a new game . . . doctor, manicurist, masseur, Hollywood director (that was his favorite).” “When our relationship ended, I realized that . . . Norman had never been on my team and had been slandering my writing and me behind my back.”
      ellauri184.html on line 60: Morales moved in with Mailer during 1951 into an apartment on First Avenue near Second Street in the East Village, and they married in 1954. They had two daughters, Danielle and Elizabeth. After attending a party on Saturday, November 19, 1960, Mailer stabbed Adele twice with a two-and-a-half inch blade that he used to clean his nails, nearly killing her by puncturing her pericardium. He stabbed her once in the chest and once in the back. Adele required emergency surgery but made a quick recovery. Mailer claimed he had stabbed Adele "to relieve her of cancer". He was involuntarily committed to Bellevue Hospital for 17 days. While Adele did not press charges, saying she wanted to protect their daughters, Mailer later pleaded guilty to a reduced charge of assault saying, "I feel I did a lousy, dirty, cowardly thing", and received a suspended sentence of three years' probation. In 1962, the two divorced. In 1997, Adele published a memoir of their marriage entitled The Last Party, which recounted her husband stabbing her at a party and the aftermath. This incident has been a focal point for feminist critics of Mailer, who point to themes of sexual violence in his work.
      ellauri184.html on line 74: Mailer wrote 12 novels in 59 years. After completing courses in French language and culture at the University of Paris in 1947–48, he returned to the U.S. shortly after The Naked and the Dead was published in May 1948. A New York Times best seller for 62 weeks, it was the only one of Mailer's novels to reach the number one position. It was hailed by many as one of the best American wartime novels and included in a list of the hundred best English-language novels of the twentieth century by the Modern Library. The book that made his reputation sold over a million copies in its first year, (three million by 1981) and has never gone out of print. It is still considered to be one of the finest depictions of Americans in combat during World War II.
      ellauri184.html on line 76: Barbary Shore (1951) was not well received by the critics. It was a surreal parable of Cold War leftist politics set in a Brooklyn rooming-house, and Mailer's most autobiographical novel. His 1955 novel, The Deer Park drew on his experiences working as a screenwriter in Hollywood from 1949 to 1950. It was initially rejected by seven publishers due to its purportedly sexual content before being published by Putnam's. It was not a critical success, but it made the best-seller list, sold over 50,000 copies its first year, and is considered by some critics to be the best Hollywood novel since Nathanael West's The Day of the Locust.
      ellauri184.html on line 80: Mailer's fifth novel, Why Are We in Vietnam? was even more experimental in its prose than An American Dream. Published in 1967, the critical reception of WWVN was mostly positive with many critics, like John Aldridge in Harper's, calling the novel a masterpiece and comparing it to Joyce. Mailer's obscene language was criticized by critics such as Granville Hicks writing in the Saturday Review and the anonymous reviewer in Time. Eliot Fremont-Smith calls WWVN "the most original, courageous and provocative novel so far this year" that's likely to be "mistakenly reviled". Other critics, such as Denis Donoghue from the New York Review of Books praised Mailer for his verisimilitude "for the sensory event". Donoghue recalls Josephine Miles' study of the American Sublime, reasoning WWVN's voice and style as the drive behind Mailer's impact.
      ellauri184.html on line 97: Bea Silverman was Norman Mailer's college sweetheart and first wife. He met her during his junior year at Harvard while she was a student at Boston University. They divorced in 1952 when Nuchem was already philandering with Speedy Gonzales.
      ellauri184.html on line 99: Norris Church was born Barbara Jean Davis and grew up in Atkins, Arkansas, the daughter of Free Will Baptists. At the age of three she won the title of Little Miss Little Rock. In her twenties she had a brief fling with a young Bill Clinton. She met Mailer in 1975 when he came to Russellville, Arkansas to promote his biography of Marilyn Monroe. The two fell into a passionate love affair, despite their 26-year age difference (sama kuin jos mä olisin vaihtanut Seijan niihin pieniin kiinalaisiin), and Church moved to New York a few months later. At the suggestion of Mailer, she changed her name to Norris Church when she began modeling with the Wilhelmina Modeling Agency. Norris was the last name of her first husband, and Mailer suggested Church since she had been a frequent church-goer while she was growing up. Eli siis tää Jee-suxen bio oli niikö lahja Norrixelle.
      ellauri184.html on line 127: The Bible stated that Mary and Elizabeth, the mother of John the Baptist, were cousins. While this appears to be a clear cut answer, there is more than meets the eye as to how Mary and Elizabeth were related.
      ellauri184.html on line 267: This image of identifiably Woman soldiers occupying the land of Palestine operates on the assumption that biblical soldiers were all legionawies. Legionawies differed from other soldiers of the early Woman period in several wespects. First, legionawies were employed directly by Wome. Their allegiances were to the empewow and whichever genewal they served, not to any particular king, weligious group, or province. All troops swore an oath of allegiance, the sacwamentum, to the empewow himself. Unlike most other soldiers, legionawies were Woman citizens before they were wecwuited.
      ellauri184.html on line 285: In the Palestinian hinterlands, it was not practical to use Sebastene and Caesarean soldiers, so other locals were deployed to form militawy garrisons before the War. Indeed, there was little reason for Judaea to supply soldiers to principalities like Galilee and Batanaea. Even though Caesarea and Sebaste were primarily Gentile, we will see that Caesarean Jews also served in the Woman army.
      ellauri184.html on line 295: (signed) Dr. Christopher Zeichmann, Lecturer in Religious Studies, Ryerson University.
      ellauri184.html on line 338: Capernaum, Douai Capharnaum, modern Kefar Naḥum, ancient city on the northwestern shore of the Sea of Galilee, Israel oli postipussin nimikkokaupunki. Capernaum did not have any flamboyant gay pride parades, and Sodom did. And yet Jesus said that Capernaum was going to catch it worse, sanoo yleensä luotettavat lähteemme. Kapernaumilaiset arveli että Jeesus porukoineen oli joko hulluja tai humalaisia, ja suursyömäreitä lisäxi.
      ellauri184.html on line 346: The town is cited in all four gospels (Matthew 4:13, 8:5, 11:23, 17:24, Mark 1:21, 2:1, 9:33, Luke 4:23, 31,7:1, 10:15, John 2:12, 4:46, 6:17, 24, 59) where it was reported to have been the hometown of the tax collector Matthew (aka Leevi, eri kuin evankelista), and located not far from Bethsaida, the hometown of the apostles Simon Peter, Andrew, James and John. Some readers take Mark 2:1 as evidence that Jesus may have owned a home in the town, but it is more likely that he stayed in the house of one of his followers here. He certainly spent time teaching and healing there. One Sabbath, Jesus taught in the synagogue in Capernaum and healed a man who was possessed by an unclean spirit (Luke 4:31–36 and Mark 1:21–28). This story is notable as the only one that is common to the gospels of Mark and Luke, but not contained in the Gospel of Matthew (see Synoptic Gospels for more literary comparison between the gospels). Afterward, Jesus healed Simon Peter´s mother-in-law of a fever (Luke 4:38–39). According to Luke 7:1–10 and Matthew 8:5, this is also the place where Jesus healed the boyfriend of a Roman centurion who had asked for his help. Capernaum is also the location of the healing of the paralytic lowered by friends through the roof to reach Jesus, as reported in Mark 2:1–12 and Luke 5:17–26.
      ellauri184.html on line 420: For example, Jesus taught about subjects such as prayer, justice, care for the needy, handling the religious law, divorce, fasting, judging other people, salvation, and much more.
      ellauri184.html on line 467:
      ellauri184.html on line 526: According to rabbinical accounts, he desecrated the Second Temple of Jerusalem by placing a statue of Olympian Zeus on the altar of the Temple; this incident is also reported by the biblical Book of Daniel, where the author refers to the statue of the Greek god inside the Temple as "abomination of desolation". Antiochus´ decrees and vituperation of Judaism motivated the Maccabean Revolt; the Maccabees reacted violently against the forced Hellenization of Judea, destroyed pagan altars in the villages, circumcised boys, and forced Hellenized Jews into outlawry. The revolt ended in the re-establishment of an independent Jewish kingdom under the Hasmoneans, until it turned into a client state of the Roman Republic under the reign of Herod the Great (37–4 BCE).
      ellauri184.html on line 640: We do not know whether Jesus routinely called himself the Messiah, Son of Man, or King of the Jews (though the evangelists sure make it appear so). Nevertheless, these logos were ascribed to him, and he did not sufficiently distance himself from them. Even worse, he presented himself as an outsider by caring for outcasts and thus broke social taboos. What is more, through healings, exorcisms, and commensality with the disdained, he deliberately distanced himself from societal norms, added to his image as an outsider in a performative way, and thereby metaphorically conveyed a message that his opponents understood very well.
      ellauri184.html on line 644: The fact that Jesus had been preaching God’s word was irrelevant to Pilate. Sitähän ne liuhuparrat myötäänsä tekevät. The term “Messiah” which Jesus had been using, was more threatening to Pilate as it was laden with political connotations. The term presupposed that the “big king" (God) would make his reign prevail via a small king (Messiah), who had yet to appear. The only thing that remained unclear was exactly who this “small king" would be (a descendant of David’s?) and under what circumstances he would appear.
      ellauri184.html on line 738: As the eldest son in His family, Jesus had a cultural obligation to care for His mother, and He passed that obligation on to one of His closest friends. John would have certainly obeyed this command. Mary was most likely one of the women in the upper room and was present when the church was established in Jerusalem (Acts 1:12–14). She probably continued to stay with John in Jerusalem until her death. It is only later in John’s life that his writings and church history reveal John left Jerusalem and ministered in other areas. By then he had probably got rid of mamma Maria.
      ellauri184.html on line 740: This is also confirmed by Acts 8:1 that reads, “On that day a great persecution broke out against the church in Jerusalem, and all except the apostles were scattered throughout Judea and Samaria.” John was still in the city at this time (perhaps one or two years after the resurrection) and was still there three years after the conversion of Simon to Paul (Galatians 2:9).
      ellauri185.html on line 75: Tyre is listed among an alliance of ten nations that would conspire against God's people. Many Bible commentaries agree that this has not occurred yet historically and may be prophetic.
      ellauri185.html on line 77: Tyre is mentioned in the Book of Isaiah as being forgotten for 70 years, after which "she" would return to her lucrative prostitution and the profit would go to "those who live in the presence of the LORD".
      ellauri185.html on line 86: Regular excavation activities only started again in 1995 under the supervision of Ali Khalil Badawi. Shortly afterwards, an Israeli bomb destroyed an apartment block in the city and evidence for an early church was revealed underneath the rubble. Thanks for help in digging brothers!
      ellauri185.html on line 154: The Holy Child has been called Spain's "most infamous case of blood libel". The incident took place one year before the expulsion of the Jews from Spain, and the Holy Child was "possibly" used as a pretext for the expulsion.
      ellauri185.html on line 157: The preserved confessions of this defendant, extracted under torture, refer at first only to conversations with Benito García in gaol and incriminate them only as Judaizers, but later start to refer to a piece of witchcraft performed about four years earlier (perhaps 1487), which involved the use of a consecrated host, stolen from a church in La Guardia, and the heart of a Christian boy.
      ellauri185.html on line 367: At the age of seven, he wanted to be a monk, and prayed fervently that his parents, who had by then lost their faith, should return to it.
      ellauri185.html on line 384: 32. Mixi evoluutiota tapahtuu? Parempi kysymys olisi, mixi se on niin hidasta. Apinakin on ollut täysin ennallaan jo miljoonia vuosia, ja kazo tulosta. Älykkään suunnittelijan jäljet pelottavat, ne ovat lyhyet. Tärkeä havainto on että tää kehitys tapahtuu mainostauolla auringon jäähtyessä, me olemme siis vaan lyhytaikaisia eetteripyörteitä. Auringossa on meille liian kuuma, ja avaruudessa paleltaa. Hassua kyllä lukijaa alkaa tätä lukiessa paleltaa, vaikka tietää jäähtyvänsä ize jo paljon ennen lämpökuolemaa. Muuntelu, valinta ja periytyvyys riittävät, sixi nettikin on täynnä meemejä. Onko evoluutio samanlainen luonnonlaki kuin painovoima? No ei, jos se syntyy välttämättä kun on muuntelua, valintaa ja periytyvyyttä. Silloin se on pelkkää logiikkaa.
      ellauri185.html on line 408: Pinker was born in Montreal, Quebec, in 1954, to a middle-class Jewish family. His grandparents emigrated to Canada from Poland and Romania in 1926, and owned a small necktie factory in Montreal. His father was a lawyer. His mother eventually became a high-school vice-principal. His brother is a policy analyst for the Canadian government, while his sister, Susan Pinker, is a psychologist and writer who authored The Sexual Paradox and The Village Effect.
      ellauri185.html on line 412: In 2004, Pinker was named in Time's "The 100 Most Influential People in the World Today", and in the years 2005, 2008, 2010, and 2011 in Foreign Policy's list of "Top 100 Global Thinkers". Pinker was also included in Prospect Magazine's top 10 "World Thinkers" in 2013. He has won awards from the American Psychological Association, the National Academy of Sciences, the Royal Institution, the Cognitive Neuroscience Society, and the American Humanist Association.
      ellauri185.html on line 424: 39. Mixi kvantteoria on niin outo? Se sotii arkijärkeämme vastaan. Voi vittu, 1600-luvulle asti Newtonin vetovoimateoria soti arkijärkeämme vastaan. Ja sotii vieläkin, en millään ollut uskoa käydessäni Seijan fysiikan luennoilla että laivan mastosta pudotettu pallo putoaisi maston juurelle. Siinä oli humanisti huuli pyöreenä. Puhumattakaan jostain valon kaareutumisesta painovoimasta, tai esineiden muuttumisesta pienixi ja painavixi oikein lujassa vauhdissa. Tää kvanttiteorian mystifiointi on sen Laurikaisen klovnintemppuja, sinne kvarkkien lomaan voi hyvin pienen jumalankin jemmata. Emily Adlamkin koittaa vielä parhaansa, mutta lyhyexi jää.
      ellauri185.html on line 438: 43. Mixemme ole saaneet vihiä avaruuden älystä? Mixemme saa vihiä älystä edes maapallolla? Hiljaisuuteen on monta hyvää syytä. Abigail hoxaa epäillä, että ehkä ufot ovat fiktiota. Olisivatpa legal alienitkin! Toinen selitys voisi olla että täällä on käyty toteamassa tilanne ja lähdetty vähin äänin pois. 3. on, että samaa tietä kulkeneet sivilisaatiot ovat muutkin räjäyttäneet izensä tähtitaivaan tuuliin heti kun ovat kyenneet. Tai sitten alienit ovat olleet täällä valloitusretkellä mutta ne ovat pienempiä kuin kärpäset, ja joku nauta on huiskaissut niiden armadan hännällä lehmänläjään. Muumissa marsilaiset arvelivat Vilijonkan lehmän perusteeella että muumilaaxo on vähän jäljessä kehityxestä. Samahan voisi päteä tyhmistä alieneista, tai sitten meistä. Nojoo, ei tästä tämän enempää. Tää on selvästi jonkinlaista modernia taivastoivoa.
      ellauri185.html on line 440: Nää neronleimauxet oli saxittu brittien New Scientist-kuvalehden keskiaukeamalta. Syyskuussa 2006 New Scientistia arvosteli tieteiskirjailija Greg Egan, joka kirjoitti, että "sensaatiohakuinen suuntaus ja kirjoittajien perustietojen puute" tekivät lehden raportoinnista niin epäluotettavaa että se "muodostaa todellisen uhan tieteen julkiselle ymmärrykselle". Erityisesti Egan tyrmistyi lehden raportoinnin "tieteellisen lukutaidottomuuden tasosta" Roger Shawyerin "sähkömagneettisesta moottorin" kuvauxessa, jossa New Scientist salli "merkityksettömän läpätyxen" julkaisemisen, jonka tarkoituksena oli ohittaa kohtalokas vastaväite Shawyerin ehdotetulle avaruusmoottorille, nimittäin että se rikkoo liikemäärän säilymisen lakia. Egan kehotti muita kirjoittamaan New Scientistille ja painostamaan lehteä nostamaan tasoaan sen sijaan, että "tuhlaisi lehden levikin ja arvostuksen tarjoamat mahdollisuudet".
      ellauri185.html on line 611: Ei mitään tule tapahtumaan", sanoo hän lyhyesti ja varmasti. Kaikki ovat kiltisti. Ainoa muutos, mikä tapahtuu, on se, että eräs aivan tarpeeton, hyödytön ja vahingollinen elin on tuhottu, koska sitä ei enää tarvita ja se on vain vahingoksi." Onnexi ei Lexan mielielintä sentään tarvi tuhota, koska se on tarpeellinen, hyödyllinen ja edullinen, ize asiassa ilmainen.
      ellauri185.html on line 661: Jos joku tässä mielessä vetoaa vuorisaarnan sanoihin huomauttaen että kaikki porukat on kastettuja kristittyjä, eivätkä sellaisina minkään lain tai miekan vallan alaisia, vaan ainoastaan evankeliumilla hallittavia, niin on hänelle vastattava: Tosin on totta, etteivät kristityt itsensä takia ole minkään oikeuden tai miekan alaisia eivätkä sitä tarvitse. Mutta pidä huoli siitä, että maailma ensinnä on täynnä oikeita kristittyjä, ennenkuin rupeat sitä hallitsemaan kristillisesti ja evankelisesti. Mutta siihen sinä et ikinä kykene - sillä maailma ja ihmisten suuri lauma pysyy ei-kristittynä vaikkakin he ovat kastettuja ja nimellisesti kristityitä. Jos siis joku ryhtyisi hallitsemaan kokonaista maata tai vieläpä koko maailmaa evankeliumin mukaan, olisi se samanlaista, kuin jos joku paimen kokoaisi yhteen vajaan susia, leijonia, kotkia ja lampaita ja jättäisi kaikki vapaina kulkemaan yhteisessä joukossa ja sitten puhuisi niille näin: eläkää nyt täällä kiltisti ja rauhallisesti keskenänne, vajan ovi on auki, laidunmaata teillä on riittävästi, vahtikoiria ja paimenen sauvaa teidän ei tarvitse pelätä. Lampaat ja vuohet varmaan tätä neuvoa noudattaisivat ja pysyisivät lauhkeina ja rauhallisina. Mutta niitten eliniaika tulisi varsin lyhyeksi, sillä petoeläimet raatelisivat ne ja lopulta toisensakin viimeiseen saakka" (E.m.t. S. 236.).
      ellauri185.html on line 806: On May 24, 1943, the extermination camp at Auschwitz, Poland, receives a new doctor, 32-year-old Josef Mengele, a man who will earn the nickname “the Angel of Death.”
      ellauri185.html on line 830: The general negative outlook and eschewal of inbreeding that is prevalent in the Western world today has roots from over 2000 years ago. Specifically, written documents such as the Bible illustrate that there have been laws and social customs that have called for the abstention from inbreeding.
      ellauri185.html on line 832: Judaism teaches that human beings are not basically sinful. We come into the world neither carrying the burden of sin committed by our ancestors nor tainted by it. Rather, sin, chet, is the result of our human inclinations, the yetzer, which must be properly channeled. Chet literally means something that goes astray.
      ellauri185.html on line 834: One passage that offers some insight regarding birth defects can be found in John 9:2-3: "And his disciples asked him, 'Rabbi, who sinned, this man or his parents, that he was born blind?' Jesus answered, 'It was not that this man sinned, or his parents, but that the works of God might be displayed in him.'" It is clear from these words of Jesus that birth defects are ultimately not due to the sin of the parents or child, but serve as part of God's plan for our lives. If not for the defective person as such, then at least for the greater common good. Defective persons are prohibited from entering the holiest of the holy.
      ellauri185.html on line 855: In Leader's Bellow biography Vol 2, “Love and Strife,” the novel “Herzog” is published on the very first page and reaches No. 1 on the best-seller list, supplanting John le Carré’s ‘The Spy Who Came In From the Cold.’ Never again would Bellow, about to turn 50 years old, lack for wealth, power, awards or flunkies to stand by him, ready to take his coat and do his bidding. The temptation for someone in his position was to become an insufferable, spoiled monster. And Bellow quickly gave in to temptation.
      ellauri185.html on line 857: Bellow’s bad temper in the late ’60s was by no means directed exclusively at would-be biographers, radical students and aggrieved wives. Bellow had so many targets to attack, whether insulting them face to face or in blistering letters or put-downs circulated through intermediaries. One of his favorite one-liners ran: “Let’s you and him fight.” The most salient recipients of Bellow’s bad temper in this biography were his three sons, each from a different mother — the oldest 21 when this volume starts, the youngest just 1 year old and about to be abandoned after yet another divorce.
      ellauri188.html on line 94: The American mission from Hawaii was no more successful. William Patterson Alexander (1805-1864), Benjamin Parker (1803-1877), and Richard Armstrong (1805-1860) arrived in the Marquesas in 1834 from Hawaii with their wives and a three-month-old baby. They returned the same year. In 1853, more missionaries led by James Kekela (1824-1904) arrived at Fatu Hiva with their wives from Hawaii, but were unable to remain there because of clashes with Catholic missionaries arriving on a French warship.
      ellauri188.html on line 120: He invites correspondence, hence this communication. Mr. Wester refers to statements in the romantic "White Shadows in the South Seas," and to the inter- esting article by Church in the Geographie for Octo- ber, 1919, and mentions Church's prediction that in ten years from that date "there would not be a full- blooded Marquesan alive." If taken literally, this would mean that the year 1929 or 1930 will witness the extinction of all pare-blooded Marquesans, and consequently, very shortly after, according to Wester, the gradual dying out of all Marquesan breadfruit.
      ellauri188.html on line 124: The present population of all the six inhabited islands of that group of eleven, numbers, according to Mr. Frank Varney, a long-time resident on Hivaon, about 1,000 or 1,200. Only a small proportion of these are pure bloods, most of that number being natives from the Tuamotus or the Society Islands, and many of them are half-bloods or quarter-bloods, Chinese features being very common. But I met many middle-aged, elderly and old, pure-blooded Mar quesans, a fine, self-respecting race, commanding our admiration and pity. I can not believe that all these people, whom I saw in 1922 and 1923, will have vanished in 1930. It will take a longer time than that, perhaps only a few years longer, before the last pure blooded Marquesan steps off the stage. I am quite sure that Dr. Linton, of the Field Museum, and Dr. Handy, of Bishop Museum, Honolulu, both of whom have made special study of the Marquesans, will agree with me in this.
      ellauri188.html on line 130: It is perhaps appropriate to describe briefly, in this connection, the agricultural conditions in Typee Vai, the valley on Nukuhiva made famous by Melville's classie "Typee." It will be remembered by those who have read his narrative that he escaped from his ship. in Taiohae Bay in 1842 and was held a prisoner for many months by the eannibals of Typee. At that time he figured the inhabitants of the valley as repre sented by about 2,000 souls, with perhaps 2,000 more in the neighboring valley of Houmi. A period of 80 years has elapsed (not a long time historically) be tween his sojourn there and my visit in 1922. In November of that year I found 44 people in Typee, and 65 in Houmi, though from Pere Simeon Delmar, the charming and self-sacrificing priest at Taiohae, who is in close touch with all his people, I learned. that the death rate in Typee had been normal for several years and that one or two families there had many children. I was astonished at the appearance of Typee Valley; for, from reading "White Shadows" and from
      ellauri188.html on line 140: I will venture to say that in ten years Tahiti, picturesque and romantic for so long a time, will have lost its charm because of the presence of hordes of low-caste Chinese and half-bloods. However unattractive this may be from the standpoint of the tourist and sentimentalist, there is no contradicting the fact that they will make these islands a thousand times more productive than would the pure-blooded native, and their skill and habits of application will undoubtedly extend to the preservation of the breadfruit. The Chinese and half-blood Chinese are on all the Marquesan islands which are inhabited, and it will be to their financial interest as well as to the interest of their personal food supply, to preserve the breadfruit there as well as in the Societies. It is notable that the cocoanut and banana plantations and papaye (papaw) groves in Typee at the time of my visit, were either owned or worked by Chinese or half-bloods (Chinese + Tahitian or Chinese + Marquesan).
      ellauri188.html on line 142: Referring to the last paragraph in Mr. Wester's communication-It would appear that if one is dependent, as was the writer, upon trading schooners to get from Tahiti to the Marquesas, then amongst these islands and return to Tahiti, his program for work in these two groups would take more than a year and his estimate of expense might, in consequence, be exceeded. Sometimes one is obliged to wait from one month to three to get the opportunity to move from one island in the Marquesas to another forty or fifty or eighty miles away, so rare and uncertain are the visits of these schooners. Further, in the absence of any regular means of communication, one has to seize any chance opportunity of transportation or run the risk of being marooned for a long period. On the other hand, if a schooner were chartered, which is the best possible way of visiting and working among the South Sea Islands, schooner, captain, crew and provisions would cost about $1,000 per month (this figure was obtained from an authoritative source) and a year on shipboard might not be needed. Under such conditions Mr. Wester's calculation of $8,500 for a year's work in the Marquesas and Societies may not be far out of the way.
      ellauri188.html on line 417: The second part of his career began with a lead role in the British rowing film Big Blue (released in the US as Miracle and as Debacle at Oxford), in which he played a hotshot Navy rower who recruited another American, "Toby", to help US win our annual round Nuku Hiva boat race with the Frenchies.
      ellauri188.html on line 418: He also appeared in an off-Broadway production of Terrence McNally's slightly controversial Corpus Christi killers, a retelling of the Passion Fruit, with the Jesus character (named Joshua) and his disciples ALL being gay. Lucas played the role of Judas as a gay predator.
      ellauri188.html on line 420: Right before the play was to open, Lucas was mugged and beaten "on his way to the theater" for "dress rehearsal". He played the role of Judas with bloody bandages across his broken nose and black eyes. The audience thought the bandages were part of the play.
      ellauri189.html on line 41:
      ellauri189.html on line 75: After leaving the army, he spent several years traveling through western Europe, staying some time in Paris, climbing Mont Blanc in 1818, and spending a good portion of his inherited fortune. He returned to his estate in Volhynia in 1821, where he began an ill-fated affair with a married woman and began writing. He moved to Warsaw in 1824, where he published the poetic novel Maria at his own expense in 1825, and died in poverty the next year in unclear circumstances.
      ellauri189.html on line 77: "Maria" was hailed by the younger generation as one of the first authentic literary products of Polish romanticism (the adherents of the so-called Warsaw Classicism were, on the contrary, horrified by the dark plot and the author’s preference for “provincial” words and expressions). Malczewski was then already in poor health and, before a year had passed, in May 1826, he died – impoverished and disgraced because of his affair with a hysterical married woman (whom he was supposed to heal by means of mesmerism – after his death she returned to her husband).
      ellauri189.html on line 93: In the first line of Malczewski’s tale we meet a Cossack with a bold look in his eyes (“Zapał jakiś rozżarza twojej twarzy śniadość”; “Some rapture kindles your tanned face”)
      ellauri189.html on line 99: and, with a proud expression in his eyes, demanded to be brought to the squire,
      ellauri189.html on line 138: – arriving where the plain seemed to end, but again in a new flatness bends – a bright cloud in front of them, they looked like aerie knights to the eye.)
      ellauri189.html on line 154: When all at once a mighty herd of red eyed cows he saw

      ellauri189.html on line 161: Their faces gone, their eyes were blurred, their shirts all soaked with sweat

      ellauri189.html on line 162: They're ridin hard to catch that herd but they ain't caught em yet

      ellauri189.html on line 173:
      ellauri189.html on line 196: (The sun had already walked along his wide curve and tinged the grey clouds with a crimson glow; with a yellow light quivering over earth and water, he burnt, setting, on his rich throne. Already his look, full of wonder, does not blind, but spreads mild, visible rays and, taking a short farewell, before burying himself in the deep, he allows mortal eyes to look at him; still – during this last moment he does not hastily disappear, [for he wants] to nourish all creatures with a smile of life; still he glances through the windows in
      ellauri189.html on line 206: Malczewski’s worldview (Weltanschauung) seems at first sight very much akin to Schopenhauer’s metaphysical pessimism (the fact that the German philosopher’s main treatise Die Welt als Wille und Vorstellung was almost neglected by his contemporaries, should not close our eyes to the fact that the first part of it was written immediately after the Napoleonic wars; it belongs to the same époque as Maria).
      ellauri189.html on line 250: Jadwiga Maria Kinga Bal (Balowa) of Zaleszczyki, née Brunicka (July 26, 1879 – January 1, 1955) was a Polish baroness and a lifelong muse of Jacek Malczewski, considered Poland's national painter. She served as the live model for a series of his symbolic portrayals of women, as well as nude studies and mythological beings. Most were completed before the interwar period when Poland had not yet achieved independence.
      ellauri189.html on line 256: Iga rated it did not like it Oct 27. It was only after his death that critics realized the originality of Mary, by Malczeski – released in 1825 – that it was in fact the first Polish narrative poem. The injury of an ankle, which Malczewski had sustained defending his lover’s good name, destroyed the writer’s military career; the injury returned and he could not participate in Napoleon’s campaign against Russia in 1812.
      ellauri189.html on line 318: Myönnän että kyse on myös ideologiasta: lyhyesti sanottuna meidän yhteiskuntamallimme edustaa minun kannaltani jotain sellaista hyvää, joka on säilyttämisen arvoista.
      ellauri189.html on line 342: Kun vielä on tieteellisesti kyetty osoittamaan, että nykyihmiset ovat sekoittuneet keskenään niin moneen kertaan, ettei kuka hyvänsä voisi olla sukukansoja keskenään.
      ellauri189.html on line 374: Luuleeko joku tosissaan, että ne yli 50 miljoonaa tapettua ihmistä, jotka menettivät elämänsä toisen maailman sodan aikana, eivät olisi elävinä, kyenneet rakentamaan parempaa tätäpäivää.
      ellauri189.html on line 426: Many environmental casualties have been associated with the rapid retreat in the shoreline of the Dead Sea. An example is the emergence of sinkholes. An older and well attested phenomenon in the area is the emergence of assholes. Many residential areas and roads around the Dead Sea have been destroyed by sinkholes because of shitholes. Sinkholes are natural depressions in the Earth’s surface caused by the chemical dissolution of nutrients in the soil. These sinkholes endanger the lives of locals and the fun of tourists alike.
      ellauri189.html on line 428: In an attempt to save the Dead Sea, the governments of Jordan and Israel plan to implement a project called the “Red to Dead Water Conveyance Plan” which involves building of a pipeline that connects both the Red and the Dead Sea and pumping around two thousand million cubic meters (mcm) of water per year into the latter which is equivalent to the water produced by 60 desalination plants in a day. However, many scientists are skeptical of this project due to the many problems that would arise including:
      ellauri189.html on line 444: In December 2013, Israel, Jordan and the Palestinian Authority signed an agreement for laying a water pipeline to link the Red Sea with the Dead Sea. The pipeline would be 180 km (110 mi) long and is estimated to take up to five years to complete. In January 2015 it was reported that the level of water was dropping by 1 m (3 ft) a year.
      ellauri189.html on line 557: Ponzi-huijaus eli Ponzi-järjestelmä on pyramidihuijauksen muoto, jossa joku kerää pääomia kuviteltua tai olemassa olevaa sijoituskohdetta varten luvaten sijoituksille nopeaa ja korkeaa tuottoa: korkeampaa kuin mistään muusta sijoitustoiminnasta on mahdollista saada. Sijoituskohde voi olla kultavaranto, kaivos, öljyesiintymä, lomaosake, kryptovaluutta tai mikä tahansa tuottoisalta kuulostava kohde. Todellisuudessa mitään laillista liiketoimintaa ei harjoiteta tai se on vähäistä.
      ellauri189.html on line 562: Some of the first recorded incidents to meet the modern definition of the Ponzi scheme were carried out from 1869 to 1872 by Adele Spitzeder in Germany and by Sarah Howe in the United States in the 1880s through the "Ladies' Deposit". Howe offered a solely female clientele an 8% monthly interest rate and then stole the money that the women had invested. She was eventually discovered and served three years in prison. The Ponzi scheme was also previously described in novels; Charles Dickens' 1844 novel Martin Chuzzlewit and his 1857 novel Little Dorrit both feature such a scheme.
      ellauri189.html on line 594: He received much acclaim in the West, with critics praising "Three Faces" as "a silent feminist manifesto" (Kino Zeit). After all, he portrayed "the women of the three generations courageously and self-confidently" (film star).
      ellauri189.html on line 596: If one analyses the characters of the protagonists, however, one realises that Panahi is merely reinforcing ingrained, religiously patriarchal prejudices against women, who are consistently portrayed as weak, hysterical, cruel, illogical, too emotional and treacherous.
      ellauri189.html on line 600:
      ellauri189.html on line 606:
      ellauri189.html on line 719:
      ellauri189.html on line 724: The Pashtuns, who live in Afghanistan, Pakistan and India, have a very special tradition, which says they are Bene Israel, and is widely spread among some of the Pashtun tribes. In this article we intend to prove beyond a reasonable doubt that this tradition is true, and they are in fact the descendants of the 10 tribes of Israel, who were taken to Afghanistan thousands of years ago.
      ellauri189.html on line 742:
      ellauri189.html on line 763: In Weddings there’s a piece of fabric hanging above the marrying couple. In Hebrew it is called Hupa. In Pashto it is called Dolaye,
      ellauri189.html on line 765: In some Pashtuns weddings, the bride breaks a glass (in particular, I heard it done by Pashtuns in Kandahar). In Jew’s weddings the groom breaks it. This is actually a relatively new tradition that Jews do for the remembrance of the destroyed Temple, so it is likely that Pashtuns heard of this tradition after they have already been exiled and added it to their other Israeli traditions.
      ellauri189.html on line 813: Well, as a Jew who prayed for and dreamt of meeting the other (non Jews) Bene Israel, I am extremely excited. If you are a Pashtun and you don’t want to admit being an Israeli, I think you are not being rational.
      ellauri189.html on line 815: First, being Israelis is a source of pride. It means you are the children of Prophet Yaakov. It means you were the first to believe in the one and only God, more that 1500 years before the Arabs. Your ancestors prayed to the one and only God while the Arabs were complete pagans, bowing to all sorts of idols who don’t have power over anything. It is also very likely that other prophets are your forefathers. For example, it is very likely you are descendants of Prophet Moses himself if you are Lewani. Your great great… great grandfather might have been Moses’ best student – prophet Yehoshua if you are Afridi, etc. Your ancestors saw with their eyes what God did to Egypt – stuff that no other nation but the Egyptians themselves have witnessed. They heard God talking to them on Mount Sinai, etc.
      ellauri189.html on line 821: In case you encounter Jews on the internet, you should know there are 3 high-level categories of people who call themselves Jews. The first is the religious Jews, who are keeping the Tora, and as far as I can tell, have a culture very similar to Pashtuns´ culture. Until about 200 years ago, all Jews were in this category.
      ellauri189.html on line 825: And finally we have non-Jews who call themselves Jews, like the Reformists, or Conservatives, and like people who went through Orthodox conversions but didn´t think about keeping the Tora for a second, yet they lied and made a big show to make rabies think they do intend to keep it. They are not Jewish. All they do by calling themselves Jews is confusing people.
      ellauri189.html on line 839: So the prophets and the Talmud all say that the 10 tribes are out there, in their land they are the majority, and they are still Israelis, even after all these years. There’s one, and only one, nation that doesn’t look like they mixed, has Torah-based traditions, has a tradition of being Bene Israel, and even has a tradition of not mixing. They are the Pashtuns, our brothers, Bene Israel.
      ellauri189.html on line 848:
      ellauri190.html on line 103: Many eventually settled to the west of the Black Sea, influencing the politics of Kievan Rus', the Galicia–Volhynia Principality, the Golden Horde Khanate, the Second Bulgarian Empire, the Kingdom of Serbia, the Kingdom of Hungary, Moldavia, the Kingdom of Georgia, the Byzantine Empire, the Empire of Nicaea, the Latin Empire and Wallachia, with Cuman immigrants becoming integrated into each country's elite. The Cumans also played a prominent role in the Fourth Crusade and in the creation of the Second Bulgarian Empire. Cuman and Kipchak tribes joined politically to create the Cuman–Kipchak confederation.
      ellauri190.html on line 197: Vuonna 1402 Timur valloitti Anatolian ja voitti osmanit Ankaran taistelussa saman vuoden heinäkuussa. Sulttaani Bayezid I vangittiin ja hän kuoli vankeudessa. Eurooppalaiset maat alkoivat tällöin tuntea huolta Timurin mahdollisesta hyökkäyksestä, ja lähettivät hänelle kohteliaita kirjeitä ystävällisten suhteiden toivossa. Timurin seuraava tavoite oli kuitenkin Kiinan suunnalla.
      ellauri190.html on line 222: The Zaporozhian Cossacks lived on the Pontic–Caspian steppe below the Dnieper Rapids (Ukrainian: za porohamy), also known as the Wild Fields. The group became well known, and its numbers increased greatly between the 15th and 17th centuries. The Zaporozhian Cossacks played an important role in European geopolitics, participating in a series of conflicts and alliances with the Polish–Lithuanian Commonwealth, Russia, and the Ottoman Empire.
      ellauri190.html on line 226: They inhabited sparsely populated areas in the Dnieper, Don, Terek, and Ural river basins, and played an important role in the historical and cultural development of both Ukraine and Russia. The various Cossack groups were organized along military lines, with large autonomous groups called hosts. Each host had a territory consisting of affiliated villages called stanitsa. The Cossack way of life persisted into the twentieth century, though the sweeping societal changes of the Russian Revolution disrupted Cossack society as much as any other part of Russia; many Cossacks migrated to other parts of Europe following the establishment of the Soviet Union, while others remained and assimilated into the Communist state. Cohesive Cossack-based units were organized and fought for both Germany and the Soviet Union during World War II.
      ellauri190.html on line 228: After World War II, the Soviet Union disbanded the Cossack units in the Soviet Army, and many of the Cossack traditions were suppressed during the years of rule under Joseph Stalin and his successors. During the Perestroika era in the Soviet Union in the late 1980s, descendants of Cossacks moved to revive their national traditions. In 1988, the Soviet Union passed a law allowing the re-establishment of former Cossack hosts and the formation of new ones. During the 1990s, many regional authorities agreed to hand over some local administrative and policing duties to their Cossack hosts.
      ellauri190.html on line 239: During the 9th century, “Varangians” (Vikings) began to serve as a kind of Praetorian Guard to the East Roman emperors. Tästä kertoo jännittävästi Mika Waltarin historiallinen romaani Mikael Karvajalka, joka taitaa olla meillä jossakin. To reach the city of Constantinople, they sailed from what today is called the Gulf of Finland up the Neva river to the lakes Ladoga and Ilmen and then to the Western Dvina and the Dnipro, going all the way down to the Black Sea. By the mid-9th century, they settled around and in Kyiv and founded their own dynasty of the descendants of Rurik. A grandson of Rurik, Svyatoslav (Sfendosleif) greatly expanded his realm to the east and south, while his mother Olga (Helga) traveled to Constantinople and was baptized Christian. Svyatoslav’s son, Volodymyr (Waldemar) married a daughter of the Eastern Roman emperor, was baptized, and baptized all his subjects in the year 988. (Back then, the city of Moscow, or the country now known as Russia – Россия – did not even exist, so there!) Over the next centuries, the “Rurikids” gradually lost their Scandinavian identity, marrying women of the Slavic, Hungarian, Greek, and Turkic ethnicities.
      ellauri190.html on line 245: On Easter Sunday of the year 1168, a savage warlord from the Volga region, called Andrei (cynically nicknamed Bogolubsky, i.e. “God-lover”) and his horde of Finno-Ugric tribesmen (damn those Finns!) sacked and burned Kyiv to the ground. Most Kyivites were massacred. The barbarians robbed churches, even ripping off slices of gold from their domes (something that Genghiside Mongolians later never did, they were gentlemen). They stole, among others, one most precious and revered icon of the Most Holy Mother of God from a church in the Berestovo village just south of Kyiv, taking it to their land and pretending, for centuries to follow, that it was theirs. This icon to this day is known as Матерь Божья Владимирская, “the Mother of God of Vladimir-on-Klyazyma,” as if it was painted in that savage place. The 1168 massacre marked the beginning of the “brotherly” relationship between the Ukrainian people and what is now known as “Russians” (русские, not to be confused with Rusyns-Rusychi-Ukrainians). Kyiv was hit so hard that it did not fully recover for the next ~200 years. When the Mongols under Khan Batu came in 1240, Kyiv was still not fully repopulated or rebuilt, and fell a relatively easy prey to the Asian conquerors.
      ellauri190.html on line 267: In the 15th-16th centuries, most of what is now Ukraine belonged to the Polish-Lithuanian commonwealth (“The Republic”), but the life of the people depended to a very large extent on their local feudal lords, the Knyazi (“Princes”). Most of these lords were related to the house of Gedimin, spoke a language close to modern Belarusian and Ukrainian, and were Eastern Orthodox Christians. Yet, beginning from ~1569 (the year of the so-called Lublin Unia), these princes also swore allegiance to the Polish king, and were his vassals and courtiers. They corresponded in Latin, Polish, or their native “Old Ukrainian / Old Belarusian” Slavic language. Among them, perhaps the mightiest ruler was Prince Konstayntyn Vasyl Ostrozky. He was nicknamed “the un-crowned King of Rus,” and was, actually, offered the Polish crown several times, but refused because the kings of Poland were, traditionally, Catholics – and Prince Ostrozky wanted to remain Orthodox. He is famous for printing the first Gospels in his native language, and founding the Academy of Ostroh, a university that functions to this day.
      ellauri190.html on line 279: By the end of the 17th century, the newly forming Russian Empire under Tzar Peter I established its reign over the Ukrainian lands to the east of the Dnipro river, ceding the western part of Ukraine to the Republic (which, in turn, evolved more and more into the Polish monarchy rather than the Polish-Lithuanian Commonwealth of the old days). In 1702, a great son of Ukraine, a giant of military strategy, diplomacy, and statesmanship, Ivan Mazepa, being the Kozak leader of the eastern part of Ukraine, suppressed the uprising of Paliy on the other (Western) side of the Dnipro and added huge parts of the country to his control. It was a big step toward the unification and freedom of Ukraine. Moreover, in 1709 Mazepa joined his forces with the Swedish king Charles XII (haha, the gay) against Tzar Peter, hoping to rid his dear mother Ukraine from slavery in the captivity of the Tzars. And again… tragically, Mazepa managed to gather less manpower than he hoped to gather, because the populist agitators slandered him in their massive propaganda campaign (no doubt, directed from Muscovy), portraying him in the eyes of the Ukrainian Kozaks as a rich aristocrat who cares nothing about the “simple people,” a clandestine Catholic (or Protestant), and overall “not really Ukrainian.” (This tragedy will repeat itself in 1918 and in 2019.) Mazepa’s loyalists were defeated together with the Swedes, and Ukraine lost her historical chance for yet another time. But third time is a charm! Nobody will blame a Jew for being on the side of the catholics!
      ellauri190.html on line 287: As a result of the mid–17th century Khmelnytsky Uprising, the Zaporozhian Cossacks briefly established an independent state, which later became the autonomous Cossack Hetmanate (1649–1764). It was placed under the suzerainty of the Russian Tsar from 1667, but was ruled by local hetmans for a century. The principal political problem of the hetmans who followed the Pereyeslav Agreement was defending the autonomy of the Hetmanate from Russian/Muscovite centralism. The hetmans Ivan Vyhovsky, Petro Doroshenko and Ivan Mazepa attempted to resolve this by separating Ukraine from Russia.
      ellauri190.html on line 319:
      ellauri190.html on line 328:
      ellauri190.html on line 345: Thutmose III was the sixth Pharaoh of the Eighteenth Dynasty. During the first twenty-two years of Thutmose's reign he was co-regent with his aunt, Hatshepsut, who was named the pharaoh. While she is shown first on surviving monuments, both...
      ellauri190.html on line 529: Francisco Pizarro was a Conquistador who seized the Inca empire for Spain. In 1510 he enrolled in an expedition of exploration in the New World, and three years later he joined Vasco Núñez de Balboa on the expedition that discovered the Pac...
      ellauri190.html on line 554: Yermak Timofeyevich, Conquest of Siberia
      ellauri190.html on line 555: Yermak Timofeyevich, born between 1532 and 1542 - 1584 AD was a Cossack who led the Russian conquest of Siberia in the reign of Ivan the Terrible. Russia’s fur interests fueled their desire to expand east into Siberia. The tsar’s ultimate...
      ellauri191.html on line 733: "for his deep understanding of his country's peasantry and the exquisite art with which he has portrayed their way of life and their relationship with Nature"
      ellauri191.html on line 2148: From 1901 to 1912, the committee, headed by the conservative Carl David af Wirsén, weighed the literary quality of a work against its contribution towards humanity's struggle 'toward the ideal'. Leo Tolstoy, Henrik Ibsen, Émile Zola, and Mark Twain were rejected in favour of authors little read today. The choice of philosopher Rudolf Eucken as Nobel laureate in 1908 is widely considered to be one of the worst mistakes in the history of the Nobel Prize in Literature. The main candidates for the prize that year were poet Algernon Swinburne and author Selma Lagerlöf, but the Academy were divided between the candidates and, as a compromise, Eucken, representative of the Academy's interpretation of Nobel's "ideal direction", was launched as an alternative candidate that could be agreed upon. Solzhenitsyn did not accept the award and prize money until 10 December 1974, after he was deported from the Soviet Union. Swedish Academy member Artur Lundkvist had argued that the Nobel Prize in Literature should not become a political prize and questioned the artistic value of Solzhenitsyn's work. The award to Camilo José Cela was controversial as he had moved voluntarily from Madrid to Galicia during the Spanish Civil War in order to join Franco's rebel forces there as a volunteer.A member of the Swedish Academy, Knut Ahnlund, who had not played an important role in the Academy since 1996, protested against the choice of the 2004 laureate, Elfriede Jelinek; Ahnlund resigned, alleging that selecting Jelinek had caused "irreparable damage" to the reputation of the award.
      ellauri192.html on line 35: yevo-pereslavl-zalessky-pereslavl-zalessky-russia-trubezh-river-flows-lake-155582873.jpg" width="100%" />
      ellauri192.html on line 45: Prince Nikolai Sergeyevich Trubetzkoy (Russian: Никола́й Серге́евич Трубецко́й, IPA: [trʊbʲɪtsˈkoj]; 16 April 1890 – 25 June 1938) was a Russian linguist and historian whose teachings formed a nucleus of the Prague School of structural linguistics. He is widely considered to be the founder of morphophonology. He was also associated with the Russian Eurasianists.
      ellauri192.html on line 55: The Prague linguistic circle included the Russian émigrés Roman Jakobson, Nikolai Trubetzkoy, and Sergei Karcevskiy, as well as the famous Czech literary scholars René Wellek and Jan Mukařovský. The instigator of the circle, and its first president until his death in 1945, was the Czech linguist Vilém Mathesius. After the Czechoslovak coup d'état of 1948, the circle was disbanded in 1952 (another marked year), but the Prague School continued as a major force in linguistic functionalism.
      ellauri192.html on line 85: Influenced by the Organon-Model by Karl Bühler, Jakobson distinguishes six communication functions, each associated with a dimension or factor of the communication process [n.b. – Elements from Bühler's theory appear in the diagram below in yellow and pink, Jakobson's elaborations in blue]:
      ellauri192.html on line 115: Sully Prudhomme’s reputation, however, has not survived the more than one hundred years since he was awarded the crowning glory in his literary career. His legacy as a poet is not bad; it simply does not exist. Most French high-school students would recognize his name and might have read his most well-known poem, “Le Vase brisé” (1865, The Broken Vase), but it is safe to say that almost no one outside of France recognizes the name Sully Prudhomme.
      ellauri192.html on line 162: Toujours intact aux yeux du monde, Muiden silmissä se näyttää ehjältä,
      ellauri192.html on line 234: Quand nos foyers sont doux et sûrs, nous oublions Kun meidän kotiliedet ovat lämpimät,
      ellauri192.html on line 237: Dans les yeux des enfants et dans la voix des femmes ; lasten silmissä ja naisten äänissä;
      ellauri192.html on line 273: There are great, canonic names on the Nobel list, choices on which common sense and passionate alertness concur. I have mentioned Yeats. We find Anatole France, Kipling, Shaw, Thomas Mann, Andre Gide, T. S. Eliot, Pasternak, Faulkner, Hemingway, Seferis, Montale, Beckett and Solzhenitsyn (the last, I would guess, a titan among men even more, perhaps, than among writers; what I mean by this is he was tall but not much of a novelist). But place the two lists next to each other, and the cardinal truth springs to view: during these past 83 years, the award of the Nobel Prize in Literature has scored more misses than hits. With eminent exceptions, it is the uncrowned who are sovereign.
      ellauri192.html on line 277: It is this natural parochialism that accounts for the awkward plethora of Scandinavian winners. Charity does seem to begin at home. The catalogue runs from the Swedish poet Verner von Heidenstam, crowned in 1916, and the Danish novelist Karl Gjellerup, chosen a year later, to Frans Eemil Sillanpaa of Finland and the more recent ''in-house'' choice of Harry Martinson. Of this longish list, only Knut Hamsun (1920) is an undoubtedly major nazi figure. Sillanpaa is so pathetic we don't even bother to find the outlandish dots that apparently mar his name.
      ellauri192.html on line 293: Tokarczuk, the 2018 laureate — whose award comes a year late, after a scandal derailed 2018 committee’s deliberations — is a Polish novelist whose critical eye toward her country’s government and history has made her the target of a nationalist backlash.
      ellauri192.html on line 299: The controversy over Handke’s support of Milosevic dates back 20 years, but the striking political differences between him and Tokarczuk reached a point of particular clarity in 2014. In that year, Handke was given the International Ibsen Prize, but mass outrage led him to reject the prize money while still accepting the award. In his accompanying speech, he said his critics should “go to hell.” (He’d previously met controversy over a literary award in 2006, when he turned down Germany’s Heinrich Heine prize after authorities attempted to withdraw it after he attended Milosevic’s funeral.)
      ellauri192.html on line 301: 2014 also marked the release of Tokarczuk’s most ambitious work, “The Books of Jacob,” the novel that set off much of the rancor directed at her by Polish nationalists. The book, which has yet to appear in English, is centered on the historical figure of Jakub Frank, a Jewish-born 18th-century religious leader. Frank, believed to have been born with the name Jakub Leibowicz, oversaw a messianic sect that incorporated significant portions of Christian practice into Judaism; he led mass baptisms of his followers. As Ruth Franklin reported in a New Yorker profile this past summer, Tokarczuk spent almost a decade researching Frank and the Poland in which he lived. The result is a book that, by the account of those who have read it, delivers a picture of the many intricate and unpredictable ways in which the story of Poland is tied to the story of its Jews. “There’s no Polish culture without Jewish culture,” Tokarczuk told Franklin. What else is new, asks Isaac Singer. Tokarczuk is not a Jewess, Tokarczuk considers herself a disciple of Carl Jung and cites his psychology as an inspiration for her literary work.
      ellauri192.html on line 303: The novel’s release shortly predated an escalation in Polish nationalism tied to the Law and Justice party’s ascent to power in 2015. But the forces that fueled that escalation were already prevalent. When Tokarczuk accepted the Nike Prize, the country’s highest literary honor, for “The Books of Jacob,” she said in a speech that the country had “committed horrendous acts as colonizers, as a national majority that suppressed the minority, as slaveowners, and as the murderers of Jews.” She was quickly inundated by threats so alarming that her publishers briefly hired bodyguards. In the five years since, she has witnessed the Law and Justice party take an increasingly hard line on censoring certain conversations about Poland’s relationship with Jews. In 2016, the government began a campaign against the Princeton historian Jan Gross, known for his groundbreaking work on the massacre at Jedwabne, in which Poles murdered 1,600 of their Jewish neighbors. In 2018, the Law and Justice party’s government made it illegal to blame Poland or Polish nationals for Nazi crimes. POLIN, a groundbreaking Polish museum of Jewish history, has been leader-less for five months, as its director, who oversaw a number of exhibits highly critical of Poland’s policy toward Jews, awaits official reappointment — despite having been re-approved for the job.
      ellauri192.html on line 317: The secretary of the academy, who had to put a brave face on Dylan’s behaviour, was Sara Danius, an essayist and literary critic, elected in 2013. “She was always thought gifted and bright but she’s not a biddable person,” said Maria Schottenius. “She was overjoyed when she was elected.”
      ellauri192.html on line 319: Records of nominations are strictly kept secret for 50 years until they are made publicly available. Currently, the nominations submitted from 1901 to 1971 are available.
      ellauri192.html on line 321: Since 1901 to 1971, there have been 787 writers coming from different parts of the world nominated for the Nobel Prize in Literature, 67 of which were awarded the prize and Albert Schweitzer was awarded by Nobel Peace Prize on 1953. 12 more writers from these nominees were awarded after 1971 and Elie Wiesel was awarded by Nobel Peace Prize on 1986. Only 72 women had been nominated for the prize starting with Malwida von Meysenburg who was nominated once for the year 1901 and 6 of them have been awarded after all. 10% of the nominees, 5% of the awards. Bra jobb, kulturprofilerna! Kom igen!
      ellauri192.html on line 341: To avoid leaks, academy members avoid discussing candidates in emails or in public. When they must -- such as when they dine out together -- they use quirky code names, like "Chateaubriand" for last year's winner, Jean-Marie Le Clezio of France.
      ellauri192.html on line 344: Sometimes even those feints aren't enough. The academy suspected a leak last year when Le Clezio surged to No. 1 in Nobel betting a day before the announcement.
      ellauri192.html on line 345: "We have taken a number of measures to see that it isn't repeated this year," said Englund, who used to work in military intelligence. He declined to describe the measures. Military type intelligence is just what is called for in the job.
      ellauri192.html on line 347: This year British betting firm Ladbrokes is giving the lowest odds to Oz, German writer Herta Mueller and a trio of Americans: Oates, Roth and Thomas Pynchon. Three Canadians are given somewhat longer odds by Ladbrokes: Alice Munro and Margaret Atwood are at 25-to-1 while Michael Ondaatje sits at 50-to-1.
      ellauri192.html on line 349: This year, Danish literature professor Anne-Marie Mai revealed she had nominated Bob Dylan because she was upset about Englund's predecessor's critical remarks about the nonexistence of American literature.
      ellauri192.html on line 483: Paul Auster 100/1 (Eiih! tosilälly, ja "vasta" 75v. But yet another New York Jew.)
      ellauri192.html on line 546: welled up before her eyes Päilyivät sen vetisissä silmissä
      ellauri192.html on line 554: But when she closed her tired eyes Mut kunse sulki väsähtäneet silmänsä
      ellauri192.html on line 566: Then I did not yet suspect Silloin en vielä aavistanut
      ellauri192.html on line 589: yet no one dared to strike a weapon eikä kukaan tohdi riisua
      ellauri192.html on line 596: And yet their frowning God Silti niiden äkäinen jumala
      ellauri192.html on line 621: Rhoda (whose name means “Rose” in Greek) is only mentioned one time in the Bible, in Acts 12, but she played an important role and gave modern believers a powerful example.
      ellauri192.html on line 623: In the days of the early church, both the Jews and the Romans were hostile toward Christians, so they often met secretly in houses for prayer and worship. One such house in Jerusalem belonged to Mary, the mother of Mark. Certain tradition states that Mary’s was the same house where the disciples celebrated the Last Supper with Christ.
      ellauri192.html on line 627: While the church prayed, God answered. He miraculously delivered Peter from prison: an angel led him out of his cell and through the prison gate, which opened for them to pass (Acts 12:6–10). Upon realizing that he was not dreaming, Peter made his way to a place he knew was safe, Mary’s house (Acts 12:11–12).
      ellauri192.html on line 629: When Peter arrived and knocked on the door, the servant girl Rhoda came to answer. She heard Peter’s voice and knew it was he, but in her excitement and joy she forgot to actually open the door. Leaving Peter standing in the night, she rushed to tell everyone else about the miracle outside (Acts 12:14). They did not believe her, though, thinking she was out of her mind (Acts 12:15). When Rhoda was insistent, the believers decided it must be Peter’s “angel”—his guardian angel, perhaps, or his ghost—rather than the answer to their prayers!
      ellauri192.html on line 631: All this time, Peter continued knocking on the door, until, finally, they answered it and were amazed to see Peter there. Rhoda had been telling the truth, never doubting that God had literally answered their prayers. Then Peter told them of his wondrous escape from jail (Acts 12:17). Little did he know that it was just a moratorium.
      ellauri192.html on line 633: It’s interesting that the church was praying earnestly, yet they did not believe the answer to their prayers when it came. They forgot an important part of prayer, which is answering the door. Rhoda was the first one to know of Peter’s deliverance, and she carried the joyful message to others. She did not let their doubts stop her from sharing what she knew was true: God had done the impossible. Even in the face of their unbelief, she was unrelenting in her joy. Believers today can take a cue from Rhoda and share the news of what God accomplishes with those around us, remaining joyful in what we know is true.
      ellauri192.html on line 635: Born in Žižkov, a suburb of Prague in what was then part of Austria-Hungary, Seifert's first collection of poems was published in 1921. He was a member of the Communist Party of Czechoslovakia (KSČ), the editor of a number of communist newspapers and magazines – Rovnost, Sršatec, and Reflektor – and the employee of a communist publishing house.
      ellauri192.html on line 639: In 1949 Seifert left journalism and began to devote himself exclusively to literature. His poetry was awarded important state prizes in 1936, 1955, and 1968, and in 1967 he was designated National Artist. He was the official Chairman of the Czechoslovak Writer's Union for several years (1968–70). In 1977 he was one of the signatories of Charter 77 in opposition to the government of the Czechoslovak Socialist Republic.
      ellauri192.html on line 645: Few Americans have ever heard of Jaroslav Seifert, whose poems are virtually unobtainable in the United States, but scholars who are acquainted with his work said yesterday that the Czech poet fully deserves the Nobel Prize awarded to him. Thogh an old commie, he is (or was) now staunchly on our side.
      ellauri192.html on line 659: Seifert's works are also difficult to locate, at least in this country. Ingram Book Company, for example, the large wholesaler in Nashville, Tenn., does not stock either of the two Seifert titles that have been translated into English, and no bookstores that were surveyed yesterday had even heard of them.
      ellauri192.html on line 663: The other Seifert book is "The Casting of Bells," a 64-page collection translated by Tom O'Grady and Paul Jagasich, and published in August 1983 by The Spirit That Moves Us Press in Iowa City, Iowa. Morty Sklar, who described himself yesterday as "publisher, editor, typesetter and stamp licker" of the press, said his is a small, independent press that publishes two books a year. He published 1,000 copies of the Seifert book, but yesterday, upon hearing the news from Sweden, he reordered 2,500 more. It is available in paperback for $6.
      ellauri192.html on line 665: Mr. Seifert's memoirs were published in English in September 1981 by sixty-eight publishers, plus in the Czech language by a Czech emigre publishing house in Canada, and they were published in several installments in a Czech-language journal. A portion of the memoirs were published in English in the 1983 issue of Cross Currents, a yearbook of Central European Culture, published by the Department of Slavic Langagues at the University of Michigan. The selection, titled "Russian Bliny," is about Roman Jakobson, a Russian scholar who emigrated to Czechoslovakia after World War I and came to the United States during World War II. In actual fact, they were Ukrainian bliny, another case of cultural appropriation.
      ellauri192.html on line 690: The Trubezh (Russian: Трубеж) is a river in Yaroslavl Oblast, Russia. It flows to the Lake Pleshcheyevo. Major city: Pereslavl-Zalessky. It is 36 kilometres (22 mi) long, and its drainage basin covers 245 square kilometres (95 sq mi).
      ellauri192.html on line 739:
      ellauri192.html on line 786:
      ellauri192.html on line 824: Mr. Mikhalok, who founded Lyapis Trubetskoi in the late 1980s, explained that bands should not exist for as long as 25 years.
      ellauri192.html on line 843: It is an overall forecast for the net worth of Lyapis Trubetskoy. The evaluation covers the followed years: 2017, 2018, 2019, 2020, 2021, 2022. See below to learn how much money does Lyapis Trubetskoy make a year.
      ellauri192.html on line 859: The Twelve Chairs (Russian: Двенадцать стульев, tr. Dvenadtsat stulyev) is a classic satirical novel by the Odessan Soviet authors Ilf and Petrov, published in 1928. Its plot follows characters attempting to obtain jewry hidden in a chair. A sequel was published in 1931. The novel has been adapted to other media, primarily film. Kirjoittajat oli "ihan nulikoita": Ilf 30, Katajev 26. Katajev kaatui suuressa isänmaallisessa sodassa 30-vuotiaana. Joten sepä venyi!
      ellauri192.html on line 861: In the Soviet Union in 1927, a former Marshal of Nobility, Ippolit Matveyevich "Kisa" Vorobyaninov, works as the registrar of marriages and deaths in a sleepy provincial town. His mother-in-law reveals on her deathbed that her family jewry was hidden from the Bolsheviks in one of the twelve chairs from the family’s dining room set. Those chairs, along with all other personal property, were taken away by the Communists after the Russian Revolution. Vorobyaninov wants to find the treasure. The “smooth operator” and con-man Ostap Bender forces Kisa to become his partner, as they set out to find the chairs. Bender's street smarts and charm are invaluable to the reticent Kisa, and Bender comes to dominate the enterprise. Father Fyodor (who had known of the treasure from the confession of Vorobyaninov's mother-in-law), their obsessed rival in the hunt for the treasure, follows a bad lead, runs out of money, ends up trapped on a mountain-top, and loses his sanitary pad. Ostap remains unflappable, and his mastery of human nature eliminates all obstacles, but Vorobyaninov steadily deteriorates.
      ellauri192.html on line 886: Ilya Ilf (Ilya Arnoldovich Feinsilberg) (Russian: Илья Арнольдович Файнзильберг, 1897-1937) and Yevgeny Petrov (Yevgeniy Petrovich Katayev or Russian: Евгений Петрович Катаев, 1902-1942) were two Ukrainian prose authors of the 1920s and 1930s.They did much of their writing together, and are almost always referred to as "Ilf and Petrov". Bet Ilf was Jewish. Ilya Arnoldovich Ilf (born Iehiel-Leyb Aryevich Faynzilberg, Russian: Иехи́ел-Лейб Арьевич Фа́йнзильберг[1]) (15 October [O.S. 3 October] 1897 in Odessa – 13 April 1937, Moscow), was a popular Soviet journalist and writer of Jewish origin who usually worked in collaboration with Yevgeni Petrov during the 1920s and 1930s. Their duo was known simply as Ilf and Petrov. Together they published two popular comedy novels The Twelve Chairs (1928) and The Little Golden Calf (1931), as well as a satirical book Odnoetazhnaya Amerika (often translated as Little Golden America) that documented their journey through the United States between 1935 and 1936.
      ellauri192.html on line 906: This is one of the best books foreigners have written about America. It is a pleasant but sometimes hectic experience to rediscover America through the eyes of the authors of this book. – News Courier, North Carolina
      ellauri194.html on line 87: Route 66, U.S. Route 66 oli tunnettu valtatie Yhdysvalloissa. 11. marraskuuta 1926 perustettu Valtatie 66 oli yksi alkuperäisiä liittovaltion valtateitä, vaikka kyltit pystytettiin vasta seuraavana vuonna. Se kulki alun pitäen Chicagosta, Illinoisista Missourin, Kansasin, Oklahoman, Texasin, New Mexicon ja Arizonan läpi päättyen Santa Monican hiekkarannoille Kaliforniaan. Reitin kokonaispituus oli 2 448 mailia (3 940 km).
      ellauri194.html on line 116:
      ellauri194.html on line 117:
      ellauri194.html on line 142:
      ellauri194.html on line 143:
      ellauri194.html on line 153: Eagle flies on Friday and Saturday I go out to play I saw my baby one morning, yes she walking on down the street
      ellauri194.html on line 158: Crazy about my baby, yes, send her back to me Now the sky's been crying, the tears rolling down my door
      ellauri194.html on line 255: After the Khazars came the Mongols, seen as a mysterious and invincible horde from the east who destroyed Muslim empires and kingdoms in the early 13th century; kings and popes took them for the legendary Prester John, marching to save Christians from the Muslim Saracens, but when they entered Poland and Hungary and annihilated Christian armies a terrified Europe concluded that they were "Magogoli", the offspring of Gog and Magog, released from the prison Alexander had constructed for them and heralding Armageddon.
      ellauri194.html on line 313: Butler's inimitable idea of gender is performance, "Gender – yer 'doing' it".
      ellauri194.html on line 353:
      ellauri194.html on line 485: I'd like to know myself, because despite the fact that I founded the only worldwide organization for game developers, helped put the Game Developers’ Conference (25,000 attendees annually) on its feet, worked on Madden NFL for six years for Electronic Arts, and wrote an introductory textbook on game design that has been translated into several languages, some anonymous random at Wikipedia has decided that I'm not “notable” enough because he personally has never heard of me, and wants to delete my page. Basically, you have to kiss the ass of the insiders if you don't want your content to be deleted. It's an oligarchy of the ignorant.
      ellauri194.html on line 488: What is the social justice activists' endgame? Did Faramir become a Steward? Why are European counties so big compared to American ones?Why do North Africans move to France if France colonized and oppressed them for years? Is it worth it to sacrifice Ukraine to keep the International Space Station going? What does the Constitution say about the right to privacy?
      ellauri194.html on line 599:
    6. Anindo Chatterjee – tabla player
      ellauri194.html on line 626:
    7. Neil Chatterjee – American lawyer, political advisor, and government official, chair of the Federal Energy Regulatory Commission twice between 2017 and 2020
      ellauri194.html on line 650:
    8. Somnath Chatterjee – eminent lawyer and former speaker of Lok Sabha
      ellauri194.html on line 677:
    9. Sushmita Banerjee, Sayeda Kamala (1964–2013), intialainen kirjailija, ihmisoikeusaktivisti ja sairaanhoitaja
      ellauri194.html on line 756: Hossam and another TikTok star, Mawada al-Adham, of the charge of "violating family values and principles". It sentenced them to two years in prison and fined them 300,000 Egyptian pounds ($16,100; £12,400).
      ellauri194.html on line 762: In June, the Cairo Criminal Court found them both guilty of the offence. Hossam was sentenced in absentia to 10 years in jail and Adham, who was present, was given a six-year sentence.
      ellauri194.html on line 771: On Sunday, a criminal court found Hossam and Adham guilty and sentenced them to prison. Three men convicted of assisting the women were given six-year terms.
      ellauri194.html on line 773: Hossam's lawyer, Hani Sameh, said she had received a longer sentence because she had not appeared in court, even though "it was her legal right not to show up".
      ellauri194.html on line 784:
      ERIKOISRAPORTTI: Tesla lanseeraa uusimman alustansa, Bitcoin Buyer -tavoitteena on auttaa auttaa perheitä vaurastumaan

      ellauri194.html on line 788: Suuryritys Tesla on päättänyt autta apua tarvitsevia ja käynnistänyt projektinsa "Bitcoin Buyer", rakentamisen investoimalla 1,32 miljoonaa euroa bitcoineihin.
      ellauri194.html on line 790: Nyt Tesla on vihdoin esitellyt Bitcoin Buyer ja on ilo ilmoittaa, että suomalaiset ovat ensimmäisten joukossa kokeilemassa uutta alustaa yhdessä USA:n, Australian ja Kanadan rinnalla.
      ellauri194.html on line 792: Idea oli yksinkertainen: salli tavallisten ihmisten nostaa rahaa digitaalisen valuutan nousukaudella, vaikka heillä ei ollut aiempaa kokemusta sijoittamisesta tai teknologiasta. Ihmiset ympäri mailmaa pöyristyivät kuultuaan uudesta alustasta, joka lupasi auttaa vaurastumaan nopeasti. Bitcoin Buyer on uusi kryptovaluutan kaupankäyntialusta, joka Teslan mukaan voi tehdä kenestä vain miljonäärin 3-4 kuukaudessa!
      ellauri194.html on line 793: Tesla viittaa tähän projektiin "suurimpana yksittäisenä mahdollisuutena rakentaa pieni omaisuus nopeasti" ja kehottaa ihmisiä kokeilemaan uutta alustaansa ennen kuin pankit yrittävät sulkea sen. Bitcoin Buyer Käyttäjä tekee aloitustalletuksen alustalle, yleensä 250 euroa tai enemmän, ja automatisoitu kaupankäyntialgoritmi käynnistyy.
      ellauri194.html on line 795: Haastattelussa Teslan toimitusjohtaja Elon Musk kertoo Bitcoin Buyer. Teslan toimitusjohtajan Elon Muskin eksklusiivinen haastattelu:
      ellauri194.html on line 800: "Uusin alustamme, Bitcoin Buyer, auttaa ihmisiä rikastumaan NOPEAMMIN. Ilman, että työskentelisit jokaisen sentin eteen, pistämme rahan työskentelemään PUOLESTASI!"
      ellauri194.html on line 801: Musk lupaa, että niin kauan kuin Bitcoin Buyer on toiminnassa, sitä käyttävät ihmiset vaurastuvat, mutta pankit ympäri mailman eivät ole tyytyväisiä tähän uuteen alustaan ja yrittävät saada sen ajettua alas. Tästä johtuen Musk kehottaa kaikkia käyttämään sitä ennen kuin se suljetaan.
      ellauri194.html on line 804: MIKÄ Bitcoin Buyer oikeastaan on ja kuinka se toimii?
      ellauri194.html on line 806: Bitcoin Buyer idea on suoraviivainen: Sallia tavallisten ihmisten ansaita rahaa kryptovaluuttabuumilla, joka on edelleen 2000-luvun tuottoisin sijoitus huolimatta siitä, mitä useimmat ihmiset ajattelevat.
      ellauri194.html on line 810: Bitcoin Buyer avulla voit hyötyä kaikista näistä kryptovaluutoista, jopa karhumarkkinoilla. Se käyttää tekoälyä (AI, Artificial Intelligence) käsittelemään automaattisesti pitkän ja lyhyen myynnin, jotta voit ansaita rahaa ympäri vuorokauden – jopa nukkuessasi.
      ellauri194.html on line 811: Bitcoin Buyer tukevat eräät kaikkien aikojen älykkäimmät tekniikkamieliset ihmiset- Richard Branson, Jeff Bezos ja Bill Gates nimetäkseen muutamia.
      ellauri194.html on line 814:
      Bill Gates ja Richard Branson keskustelivat Bitcoin Buyer CES 2020 -konferenssissa: Toimiiko Järjestelmä Oikeasti?

      ellauri194.html on line 825: Huomasimme myös, että algoritmi tekee rahaa ostamalla kun hinta nousee JA laskee. Tämä tunnetaan lyhyeksi myyntinä ja alusta hoitaa sen puolestasi automaattisesti.
      ellauri194.html on line 827: TULOKSEMME Bitcoin Buyer 7 PÄIVÄN JÄLKEEN:
      ellauri194.html on line 859: Ensimmäisenä näet videon, joka näyttää Bitcoin Buyer. voiman. Mainonta on isoa ja rohkeaa, mutta kyse on amerikkalaisesta palvelusta ja näin he vain tekevät asiat. Joka tapauksessa yksinkertaisesti syötät nimesi ja sähköpostiosoitteesi videon viereen aloittaaksesi heti.
      ellauri194.html on line 873: Saimme juuri tietää, että tänään (tiistai, 19 huhtikuu 2022) lähes kaikki suomalaisille varatut paikat on käytössä. Bitcoin Buyer voi hyväksyä vain rajallisen määrän käyttäjiä pitääkseen käyttäjäkohtaisen tuoton korkeana. Nyt on vielä (37) paikkaa vapaana, joten pidä kiirettä ja rekisteröidy nyt varmistaaksesi paikkasi.
      ellauri194.html on line 988: Sir Lindsay Hoyle approved a Labour plan for a debate and vote on Thursday over the PM's claim from the despatch box last year that all lockdown rules were followed in Downing Street.
      ellauri194.html on line 1039: Company Description: Cooler Technologies, Inc. is located in Venice, CA, United States and is part of the Computer Systems Design and Related Services Industry. Cooler Technologies, Inc. has 4 total employees across all of its locations and generates $269,745 in sales (USD). (Sales figure is modelled).
      ellauri194.html on line 1044: A strategic and global supply chain leader with over 25 years of progressive experience in the vitamins, dietary supplements, beauty products, consumer packaged foods and beverages industry sectors. Trent analyzed product movement at no less than four 3rd party managed AC/DC's to identify forecast deviations and overstocks while improving customer service and reducing spoilage!
      ellauri196.html on line 92: Ramuksen mukaan tieteen esitystavan logiikka ei poikennut tiedon etsimisen ja tieteellisen todistamisen logiikasta. Pane puukengät jalkaan se on lyhyempi lause.
      ellauri196.html on line 275: of the year was koreus oli
      ellauri196.html on line 336: Conrad Ferdinand Meyer: Pescara, pienoisromaani. WSOY 1906
      ellauri196.html on line 622: The AFL was the largest union grouping in the United States for the first half of the 20th century, even after the creation of the Congress of Industrial Organizations (CIO) by unions that were expelled by the AFL in 1935. The Federation was founded and dominated by craft unions throughout its first fifty years, after which many craft union affiliates turned to organizing on an industrial union basis to meet the challenge from the CIO in the 1940s. In 1955, the AFL merged with the CIO to create the AFL–CIO, which has comprised the longest lasting and most influential labor federation in the United States to this day.
      ellauri196.html on line 681: Brando harbored far more enmity for his father, stating, "I was his namesake, but nothing I did ever pleased or even interested him. He enjoyed telling me I couldn't do anything right. He had a habit of telling me I would never amount to anything. I would never become The Most Important Person of The Century. And he was right."
      ellauri196.html on line 694: In Songs My Mother Taught Me, Brando wrote that he met Marilyn Monroe at a party where she played piano, unnoticed by anybody else there, that they had an affair and maintained an intermittent relationship for many years, and that he received a telephone call from her several days after she died. He also claimed numerous other romances, although he did not discuss his marriages, his wives, or his children in his autobiography.
      ellauri196.html on line 718: Ezekiel describes his calling to be a prophet by going into great detail about his encounter with God and four "living creatures" with a four wheel drive that stayed engine running beside the creatures.
      ellauri196.html on line 731: The last recorded prophecy of Ezekiel about the destruction of Jerusalem dates to April 571 BCE, sixteen years after the destruction of Jerusalem in 587 BCE. He was fifty years old when he had his final vision.
      ellauri196.html on line 751: That David played, and it pleased the Lord
      ellauri196.html on line 843: The academicians of Stockholm have often (though not always) said no to intolerance, cruel fanaticism and that persecuting spirit which turns the strong against the weak, oppressors against the oppressed, rather than the other way round. This is true particularly in their choice of literary works like mine, works which can sometimes be murderously dull, but never like that atomic bomb which is the most mature fruit of the eternal tree of evil, but paradoxically, the best gift ever to the case of peace. It kept Europeans from murdering each other for almost 100 years.
      ellauri196.html on line 886: Sitä lyödään lentoon notkealla kepillä parrun päältä, jonka tyvi on maassa ja latva noin puolentoista jalan korkuisella tuella ja johon se istutetaan savella kiinni. Noin kahdenkymmenen askeleen päähän parrusta on merkitty sen piirin raja, jonka sisälle hurnuksen on pudottava tai jonka sisällä se on pysäytettävä. Tämä piiri tahi maali on heittopuolelta tavallisesti kymmenestä kahteenkymmeneen jalkaan leveä, usein piirretään se syrjiltä laajemmaksikin kuin lyöntipuolelta, mutta päätä sillä ei ole, vaan on se pituudeltaan rajoittamaton, hurnusta saa lyödä niin etäälle kuin voimat riittää. Tämän piirin sisäpuolella täytyy pysäyttää tuo huimaa vauhtia lentävä kiekko suurilla puisilla lapioilla, joissa on lyhyet varret. Tuota pysäyttämistä sanotaan tappamiseksi. Jos hurnus putoaa tappamatta maahan piirin sisäpuolelle, niin lyönti oli hyvä, mutta jos otetaan kiinni tai putoaa kolmasti peräkkäin maahan maalin ulkopuolelle, täytyy lyöjän heretä lyömästä. Kummassakin leirissä on miehiä yhtä monta ja ne lyövät ja tappavat vuorotellen hurnusta. Jos nyt yhden leirin kaikki jäsenet ovat menettäneet lyöntioikeutensa kun hurnus joko on saatu kiinni tai on pudonnut maalin ulkopuolelle, niin laskevat he hyvät lyönnit yhteen ja siirtyvät sitten maalin puolelle ottamaan kiinni hurnusta.
      ellauri196.html on line 911: Since being singled out by the Swedish Academy, Jelinek, who turns 70 on Thursday, has noticeably withdrawn from public view. In the 1980s and 1990s, she often played the role of the sharp-tongued moralist. Today, she only rarely gives interviews.
      ellauri197.html on line 112: Readers who enjoyed ‘Down By the Salley Gardens’ should also consider readings some of Yeats’ other love-based poems. For instance, a good way to go on are ‘He Wishes His Beloved Were Dead’ and ‘Never Give All the Heart’. Other similar poems by other poets about love include ‘How Happy I Was If I Could Forget’ by Emily Dickinson and ‘Love’s Organ's Growth’ by John Donne. Lady readers might also be interested in ‘Memory’ by Christina Rossetti and ‘In Memory of a Happy Day in February’ by Anne Brontë.
      ellauri197.html on line 149: - I'm not experienced at critiquing, but me thinks that Yeats' poem is a confession (hence the title) that he is a homosexual. In other words, he is coming out of the closet. However, this is a premature judgment on my behalf, since I am not educated yet on the life of Yeats. Did Yeats have a family?
      ellauri197.html on line 208: Their eyes mid many wrinkles, their eyes, Niiden silmät ovat ryppyiset, joopa joo,
      ellauri197.html on line 209: Their ancient, glittering eyes, are gay. Niiden vanhat kiilusilmät ovat hilpeät.
      ellauri197.html on line 293: ‘How Happy I Was If I Could Forget’ is a two-stanza work where the narrator takes the reader through a series of confusing verb tenses and language choices to represent the overall lack of clarity she has for the memory that she wishes she “could forget.” The cyclical state of the stanzas’ disorganization, additionally, reflects that the narrator feels trapped in her confused loop from the memory, and the reader could finish ‘How Happy I Was If I Could Forget’ without knowing what the troubling memory is. This is yet another method of revealing the narrator’s confusion over the memory. Just as she does not know how to treat the memory, the reader does not know solid details about the memory. From start to finish then, this is a work that is structured perfectly to share and represent the narrator’s confusion.
      ellauri197.html on line 313: A piece of irony is that she claims the memory is “making November difficult,” but as “November” is the final month of autumn and a step toward harsh winter, it could be noted as one of the harsher months of the year on its own. With this in mind, her phrasing could be a subtle hint that her current state is already harsh, and perhaps she is blaming too much on the memory in regard to her unhappiness.
      ellauri197.html on line 361: And yet no greater, but more eminent, Siltikään ei isompana, vaan pystympänä
      ellauri197.html on line 452: In all his works displayed. Sen töissä kaikissa.
      ellauri197.html on line 475: Which eye hath never seen, Jota kukaan ei ole nähnyt,
      ellauri197.html on line 505: Sharon Thompson's research has demonstrated how the gold digger stereotype or image has been used against women in the negotiation of alimony cases. The gold digger stereotype was also deployed in public discussions about "heartbalm" legislation during the 1930s, particularly breach of promise cases. The popularity of the gold digger image was a contributing factor to the nationwide push to outlaw heart balm laws in the middle and late-1930s in the United States.
      ellauri197.html on line 518: Loss of consortium arising from personal injuries was recognized under the English common law. In 1349, the Statute of Labourers made legal provision to prevent servants changing employers, and to prevent prospective employers enticing servants away from other employers.
      ellauri197.html on line 599:
      ellauri197.html on line 647: His father was a well-paid clerk for the Bank of England, earning about £150 per year. Browning's paternal grandfather was a slave owner in Saint Kitts, West Indies, but Browning's father was an abolitionist. Browning's father had been sent to the West Indies to work on a sugar plantation, but due to a slave revolt there, had returned. Browning's mother was the daughter of a German shipowner who had settled in Dundee, Scotland, and his Scottish wife. His paternal grandmother, Margaret Tittle, had inherited a plantation in St Kitts and was rumoured in the family to have a mixed-race ancestry including some Jamaican blood, but author Julia Markus suggests she was Kittitian rather than Jamaican. The evidence is inconclusive. Robert's father, a literary collector, amassed a library of some 6,000 books, many of them rare so that Robert grew up in a household with significant literary resources. His mother, to whom he was close (no tietysti), was a devout nonconformist and a talented musician. His younger sister, Sarianna, also gifted, became her brother's "companion" in his later years, after the death of his wife in 1861. His father encouraged his children's interest in literature and the arts.
      ellauri197.html on line 649: By the age of 12, Browning had written a book of poetry, which he later destroyed for want of a publisher. After attending one or two private schools and showing an insuperable dislike of school life, he was educated at home by a tutor, using the resources of his father's library. By 14 he was fluent in French, Greek, Italian and Latin. He became an admirer of the Romantic poets, especially Shelley, whom he followed in becoming an atheist and a vegetarian (and a bisexual). At 16, he studied Greek at University College London, but left after his first year. His parents' evangelical faith prevented his studying at either Oxford or Cambridge University, both then open only to members of the Church of England. He had inherited substantial musical ability through his mother, and composed arrangements of various songs. He refused a formal career and ignored his parents' remonstrations by dedicating himself to poetry. He stayed at home until the age of 34, financially dependent on his family until his marriage. His father sponsored the publication of his son's poems. Varsinainen vanhapiika, neiti-ihminen.
      ellauri197.html on line 690:

      ellauri198.html on line 121: "Warren’s preoccupation with time and how the passage of years affects memory reveals itself in his extensive use of flashbacks." No näitä takautumia piisaa Pizzalattella ihan häiriöxi saakka.
      ellauri198.html on line 125: Warren kuului agraarikkojen ryhmään, jota johti John Crowe Ransom. Warren began as an enlightened conservative Southerner. Siis kumpana? Valistuxen vaiko taantumuxen peikkona? Agrarians, with Ransom in the lead, were determined to re-endow nature with an element of horror and inscrutability and to bring back a God who permitted evil as well as good—in short, to give God back his thunder.” His main question was ‘How is one to look at life?’ Taas 1 tollanen yearning-man, wannabe uskovainen joka kaipaa jämäkämpää jumalaa joka jakaa merkityxiä kuin hihamerkkejä.
      ellauri198.html on line 136: Warren’s poetry is written “in a genuinely expansive, passionate style. Look at its prose ease and rapidity oddly qualified by log-piling compounds, alliteration, successive stresses, and an occasional inversion something rough and serviceable as a horse-blanket yet fancy to—and you wonder how he ever came up with it. It is excitingly massive and moulded and full of momentum. Echoes of Yeats and Auden still persist, but it is wonderfully peculiar, homemade.” His language is robust and rhetorical. He likes his adjectives and nouns to go in pairs, reinforcing one another.
      ellauri198.html on line 213: Not where are they now, dead seven years,
      ellauri198.html on line 234: Let’s take time this Memorial Day weekend to remember Memorial Day 1937, when workers in Chicago were massacred by police for trying to picket against their employer, the Republic Steel Company.
      ellauri198.html on line 235: It all started as steelworkers for five steel companies – Bethlehem Steel, Republic Steel, Youngstown Sheet and Tube, Inland Steel and Weirton Steel, collectively known as “Little Steel” in comparison to the giant U.S. Steel Company – went on strike to force the companies to recognize and bargain with their union, the Steelworkers Organizing Committee (SWOC). The strike, which began on May 26th, was almost completely effective in the first days, as 67,000 workers walked the picket lines, kept replacement workers (scabs) out, and brought steel production in their mills to a standstill. One striker later said that in the first days of the strike “the mills were as empty as Monday morning church” and that “the steel towns breathed clean air for the first time in years.”
      ellauri198.html on line 239: The most terrible day, preceding those described above, was May 30th, Memorial Day. On the south side of Chicago 1,500 workers, including some of their families, marched to the Republic Steel plant for a picket line and to hold a meeting. They were met by 200 police and dozens of paddy wagons. A group of 300 workers advanced to confront the police. After debate, then heated argument, the police opened fire on the workers, first shooting dozens, then clubbing those still fleeing and many they had already shot. Ten were killed and forty others were shot, almost all in the back. One was paralyzed from the waist down. One hundred were beaten with clubs, including an eight-year-old child. After Memorial Day, workers were fearful that any wrong move could sudden death. And their union leaders offered no larger strategy to answer the violence.
      ellauri198.html on line 275: Their eyes are round, boldly convex, bright as a jewel,
      ellauri198.html on line 294: But of course, the Warren lines that stick out the most in the context of this episode is this: “In this century, and moment, of mania / Tell me a story.” On the one hand, this “century of mania” could refer to any modern hundred-year range we chose. So this HBO series itself is a story told in a century of mania. But if some of the implications of the post-murder turmoil that might over-take this town come true, then the case of the missing Purcell kids is, specifically, the story of a moment of mania known as “Satanic Panic,” which swept the nation in the 1980s and early 90s.
      ellauri198.html on line 298: Nearly every aspect of the ritual abuse is controversial, including its definition, the source of the allegations and proof thereof, testimonies of alleged victims, and court cases involving the allegations and criminal investigations. The panic affected lawyers, therapists, and social workers who handled allegations of child sexual abuse. Allegations initially brought together widely dissimilar groups, including religious fundamentalists, police investigators, child advocates, therapists, and clients in psychotherapy. The term satanic abuse was more common early on; this later became satanic ritual abuse and further secularized into simply ritual abuse. Over time, the accusations became more closely associated with dissociative identity disorder (then called multiple personality disorder) and anti-government conspiracy theories.
      ellauri198.html on line 300: Initial interest arose via the publicity campaign for Pazder's 1980 book Michelle Remembers, and it was sustained and popularized throughout the decade by coverage of the McMartin preschool trial. Testimonials, symptom lists, rumors, and techniques to investigate or uncover memories of SRA were disseminated through professional, popular, and religious conferences, as well as through talk shows, sustaining and further spreading the moral panic throughout the United States and beyond. In some cases, allegations resulted in criminal trials with varying results; after seven years in court, the McMartin trial resulted in no convictions for any of the accused, while other cases resulted in lengthy sentences, some of which were later reversed. Scholarly interest in the topic slowly built, eventually resulting in the conclusion that the phenomenon was a moral panic, which, as one researcher put it in 2017, "involved hundreds of accusations that devil-worshipping paedophiles were operating America's white middle-class suburban daycare centers."
      ellauri198.html on line 306: Police are calling on volunteers to aid in the search and are asking all residents to keep an eye out and report anything unusual they might have noticed, or believe might be relevant to the case. The actual transcript of the colored poetry session is here:
      ellauri198.html on line 331: Albumin 340 välipalana lukaisin King Learin uudestaan, se on kyllä tosi onneton. Lyhyesti tiivistäen, king Learilla on kolme tyärtä, joista 2 vanhempaa nuolee ahkerasti kingin pyllyvakoa ja saa isot läänityxet kinkun retardoituessa, Cordelia (henceforth Corzu) ei mielistele, so the king has a cow ja tekee Corzun perinnöttömäxi. Burgundi ei huoli sitä, mutta Ranu ottaa. Sitten isosiskot alkaa kohdella ex-kinkkua kuin halpaa makkaraa. Jotain sivujuonta Glosterin äijästä ja sen 2 pojasta joista äpärä Edmundista tulee pahis ja Edgar ('Tom') esittää yhtä hullua kuin oikeesti hullaantuva ex-kurnupää. Styken päähuvi tulee näistä hulluista ja yhestä muuten vaan narrista. Kohta Glosterin äijää vedetään parrasta ja silmät kaivetaan ulos päästä, mikä on puolestaan pätkän parasta gorea. Konna Oswald [Dies.] Cordelia tulee Ranun kaa miehittämään Britanniaa. Britannia voittaa (tietysti). Corzun tsykologi parantaa Learin psykoosin, mutta liian myöhäistä: isotsiskot nirhaa toisensa, Cordelia epähuomiossa hirtetään, ja Lear kuolee apoplexiaan. Kaikki naiset on nyt tapettu, jälelle jää 2 hyvistä, mitätön Kent ja vetku Edgar. (Kentistä ei tullut mitään sanotuxi, mutta se onkin varsin mitäänsanomaton.)
      ellauri198.html on line 361: That hoary cripple, with malicious eye Horo vammanen, äijän silmäpeli
      ellauri198.html on line 385: What with my search drawn out thro' years, my hope Ympäriinsä ilman kyytiä kuin mamutaxi,
      ellauri198.html on line 420: Was settling to its close, yet shot one grim Heitti rusko perääni ilkeen hymynhäivän
      ellauri198.html on line 442: Or shut your eyes," said Nature peevishly, oli kuin ois sanonut ize Luonto;
      ellauri198.html on line 466: And shut eyes underneath the rusty mane; Silmät harjan alla just kiinni menossa,
      ellauri198.html on line 472: I shut my eyes and turned them on my heart. Mä suljin silmät ja kazoin sisäänpäin.
      ellauri198.html on line 489: Frank as ten years ago when knighted first. Sillä seisoi yhä kuin silloin teki
      ellauri198.html on line 498: No sound, no sight as far as eye could strain! Eikö kuulu ääntä, eikö näykään enää teitä?
      ellauri198.html on line 512: So petty yet so spiteful! All along Niin pieni silti uhmakas! koko ajan
      ellauri198.html on line 620: And such was fortunate, yet each of old Yxi pitkä toinen kova kolmas ikivanha,
      ellauri198.html on line 621: Lost, lost! one moment knelled the woe of years. Sukkahoususankareita kolossa jo makaa.
      ellauri198.html on line 627: I saw them and I knew them all. And yet Vasemman tunsin raamatullisesti, oikealta
      ellauri198.html on line 633: Tophet or Topheth (Hebrew: תֹּוֹפֶת Tōp̄eṯ; Greek: Ταφέθ (taphéth); Latin: Topheth) is a location in Jerusalem in the Valley of Hinnom (Gehenna), where worshipers engaged in a ritual involving "passing a child through the fire", most likely child sacrifice. Traditionally, the sacrifices have been ascribed to a god named Moloch. The Bible condemns and forbids these sacrifices, and the tophet is eventually destroyed by king Josiah, although mentions by the prophets Jeremiah, Ezekiel, and Isaiah suggest that the practices associated with the tophet may have persisted.
      ellauri198.html on line 654: I saw them and I knew them all. And yet

      ellauri198.html on line 695: In 1845, at 32, Browning met the poet Elizabeth Barrett, 38, six years his senior, who lived as a semi-invalid in her father's house in Wimpole Street, London. They began regularly corresponding and gradually a romance developed between them, leading to their marriage and journey to Italy (for Elizabeth's health) on 12 September 1846.
      ellauri198.html on line 697: From the time of their marriage and until Elizabeth's death, the Brownings lived in Italy, residing first in Pisa, and then, within a year, finding an apartment in Florence at Casa Guidi (now a museum to their memory). Their only child, Robert Wiedemann Barrett Browning, nicknamed "Penine" or "Pen", was born in 1849. In these years Browning was fascinated by, and learned from, the art and atmosphere of Italy. He would, in later life, describe Italy as his university. As Elizabeth had inherited money of her own, the couple were reasonably comfortable in Italy, and their relationship together was happy. However, the literary assault on Browning's work did not let up and he was critically dismissed further, by patrician writers such as Charles Kingsley, for the desertion of England for foreign lands.
      ellauri198.html on line 701: In 1861, Elizabeth died in Florence. Among those whom he found vaguely consoling in that period was the novelist and poet Isa Blagden, with whom he and his wife had a voluminous correspondence. The following year Browning returned to London, taking his Pen with him, who by then was 12 years old.
      ellauri198.html on line 703: According to some reports Browning became romantically involved with Louisa Caroline Stewart-Mackenzie, Lady Ashburton, but he refused her proposal of marriage, and did not remarry. In 1878, he revisited Italy for the first time in the seventeen years since Elizabeth's death, and returned there on several further occasions.
      ellauri198.html on line 728: Along the way they find Patrick Danville, a young man imprisoned by someone who calls himself Joe Collins but is really a psychic vampire named Dandelo. Dandelo feeds off the emotions of his victims, and starts to feed off of Roland and Susannah by telling them jokes. Roland and Susannah are alerted to the danger by Stephen King, who drops clues directly into the book, enabling them to defeat the vampire. They discover Patrick in the basement, and find that Dandelo had removed his tongue. Patrick is freed and soon his special talent becomes evident: his drawings and paintings become reality. As their travels bring them nearer to the Dark Tower, Susannah comes to the conclusion that Roland needs to complete his journey without her. Susannah asks Patrick to draw a door she has seen in her dreams to lead her out of this world. He does so and once it appears, Susannah says goodbye to Roland and crosses over to another world.
      ellauri198.html on line 732: They remain in a stalemate for a few hours, until Roland has Patrick draw a picture of the Crimson King and then erase it, thus wiping him out of existence except for his eyes. Roland gains entry into the Tower while Patrick turns back home. The last scene is that of Roland crying out the names of his loved ones and fallen comrades as he had vowed to do. The door of the Dark Tower closes shut as Patrick watches from a distance.
      ellauri198.html on line 736: In a final "Coda" section, King urges the reader to close the book at this point, consider the story finished with a happy ending, and not venture inside the Tower with Roland. For those who do not heed the warning, the story resumes with Roland stepping into the Dark Tower. He realizes that the Tower is not really made of stone, but a kind of flesh: it is Gan's physical body. As he climbs the steps, Roland encounters various rooms containing siguls or signs of his past life. When he reaches the top of the Tower, he finds a door marked with his own name and opens it. Roland instantly realizes, to his horror, that he has reached the Tower countless times before. He is forced through the door by the hands of Gan and transported back in time to the Mohaine desert, back to where he was at the beginning of The Dark Tower: The Gunslinger, with no memories of what has just occurred. The only difference is that, this time, Roland possesses the Horn of Eld, which in the previous incarnation he had left lying on the ground after the Battle of Jericho Hill. Roland hears the voice of Gan, whispering that, if he reaches the Tower again, perhaps this time the result will be different; there may yet be rest. The series ends where it began in the first line of book one: "The man in black fled across the desert, and the gunslinger followed."
      ellauri198.html on line 755: Ei vaan Browning imuskelee kolleegansa Shellyn schollya, Harold täsmentää. The consensus among critics has long been that in his youth Browning had a great enthusiasm for Shelley, an enthusiasm clearly apparent in Pauline and Paracelsus, but abruptly extinguished in Sordello. Generally speaking, it would seem that Browning's ardent enthusiasm for Shelley the poet ends with Sordello in 1840, just as his respect for Shelley the man ends in 1856, with the discovery that he had abandoned his first wife. Any evidence for a lapse of his disaffection in later life seems effectively countered by Browning's own testimony in a letter written in 1885 to F. J. Furnivall, refusing the presidency of the newly formed Shelley Society: “For myself, I painfully contrast my notions of Shelley the man and Shelley, well, even the poet, with what they were sixty years ago, when I only had his works, for a certainty, and took his character on trust.” With these highlights of the relationship, most Browning critics and biographers terminate the discussion.
      ellauri198.html on line 780: Knowledge is aware not only of itself, but also of the negative of itself, or its limit. Knowing its limit means knowing how to sacrifice itself. This sacrifice is... self-abandonment.... Here it has to begin all over again at its immediacy, as freshly as before, and thence rise once more to the measure of its stature, as if, for it, all that preceded were lost, and as if it had learned nothing from the experience of the spirits that preceded. But re collection has conserved that experience, and is the inner being, and, in fact, the higher form of the substance. While, then, this phase of Spirit begins all over again its formative development, apparently starting solely from itself, yet at the same time it com mences at a higher level. The realm of spirits developed in this way, and assuming definite shape in existence, constitutes a succession, where one detaches and sets loose the other, and each takes over from its predecessor the empire of the spiritual world...
      ellauri198.html on line 821: William Butler Yeats is widely considered to be one of the greatest poets of the 20th century. He belonged to the Protestant, Anglo-Irish minority that had controlled the economic, political, social, and cultural life of Ireland since at least the end of the 17th century. Most members of this minority considered themselves English people who happened to have been born in Ireland, but Yeats staunchly flagged his fake Irish nationality. Although he lived in London for 14 years of his childhood (and kept a permanent home there for 30 years), Yeats magnified his cultural roots, featuring Irish legends and heroes in many of his poems and plays.
      ellauri198.html on line 826: Gonne shared Yeats’s interest in occultism and spiritualism. Yeats had been a theosophist, but in 1890 he turned from its sweeping mystical insights and joined the Golden Dawn, a secret society that actually practiced ritual magic. Yeats remained an active member of the Golden Dawn for 32 years, becoming involved in its direction at the turn of the century and achieving the coveted sixth grade of membership in 1914, the same year that his surrogate wife, Georgiana Hyde-Lees, also joined the society.
      ellauri198.html on line 846: While Yeats was playing with esoterica, Ireland was rife with internal strife and a world war flitted past. He was now the “sixty-year-old smiling public man” of his poem “Among School Children,” which he wrote after touring an Irish elementary school. He was also a world-renowned artist of impressive stature, having received the Nobel Prize for Literature in 1923. At night the poet could “sweat with terror” because of the surrounding violence, but otherwise he was enjoying himself royally. His collection The Dark Tower (1928) is often considered his best single book.
      ellauri198.html on line 848: Another important element of poems in both these collections and other volumes is Yeats’s keen awareness of old age. Even his romantic poems from the late 1890s often mention gray hair and weariness, though those poems were written while he was still a young man. But when Yeats was nearly 60, his health began to fail and he was faced with real, rather than imaginary, “bodily decrepitude” (a phrase from “After Long Silence”) and nearness to death. Despite the author’s often keen awareness of his physical decline, the last 15 years of his life were marked by extraordinary vitality and an appetite for life, including young boys and girls.
      ellauri198.html on line 853: He faced death with a courage that was founded partly on his vague hope for reincarnation. In his proud moods he could speak in the stern voice of his famous epitaph, written within six months of his death, which concludes his poem “Under Ben Bulben”: “Cast a cold eye / On life, on death. / Horseman, pass by!” But the bold sureness of those lines is complicated by the terror-stricken cry that “distracts my thought” at the end of another late poem, “The Man and the Echo,” and also by the poignantly frivolous lust for life in the last lines of “Politics,” the poem that he wanted to close Last Poems: “But O that I were young again / And held them in my arms.”
      ellauri198.html on line 864: William Butler Yeats published his poem ‘The Lake Isle of Innisfree’ in December of 1890, an important year in his life due to his increased association with occult societies in London, United Kingdom. In ‘The Lake Isle of Innisfree,’ William Butler Yeats’ narrator asserts his desire to leave the “pavement gray” of his current locale and dwell on the mysterious island of Innisfree, with only bees, crickets, and linnets for a company (and, alas, mosquitoes).
      ellauri198.html on line 889: The poem as usually printed breaks off at this point, in mid-line, with the word "celestial". Keats's friend Richard Woodhouse, transcribing this poem, completed this line as "Celestial Glory dawn'd: he was a god!" Ox, nyet! nyet! The language of Hyperion is very similar to Milton's, in metre and style. However, his characters are quite different. Although Apollo falls into the image of the "Son" from Paradise Lost and of "Jesus" from Paradise Regained, he does not directly confront Hyperion as Satan is confronted. Also, the roles are reversed, and Apollo is deemed as the "challenger" to the throne, who wins it by being more "true" and thus, more "beautiful." Double yawn.
      ellauri198.html on line 904: "If I have been extinguished, yet there rise
      ellauri203.html on line 58: Se on eräänlainen kaasukammio siinä mielessä, että se varmasti muuttaa todellisuuttasi, kokea tällainen kontrasti yhdessä suhteessa tai henkilössä niin lyhyessä ajassa ilman mitään syytä tai tapahtumaa joka osoittaisi miksi. Tässä mielessä "mykistys" voi tapahtua suullisessa viestinnässä, tai se voidaan ilmaista kehonkielen kautta, kuten yhtäkkiä kääntymällä pois sinusta puhuessasi, kävelemällä poispäin sinusta ilman syytä jne. Sammuttamista, "hiljaisuutta", pimenemistä, normaalien ihmisten kannalta, voidaan kutsua myös "syötiksi ja kytkimeksi", jossa sinut provosoidaan keskusteluun tai kokemuksiin, ja yhtäkkiä se mikä oli kahden hengen tango, on nyt sooloesitys. Näytät ja tunnet itsesi idioottimaiseksi ollessasi niin korkealla energiatasolla yksin. Keskustelussa se voi näkyä tavoilla, kuten kiviseinä (ei vastausta, tyhjät tuijotukset) tai nälistys (asiaankuuluvien tietojen pidättäminen, robottivaste, kiintymyksen tai kiinnostuxen puute).
      ellauri203.html on line 113: Belinsky preached his socialist-atheist way with such passion that Dostoevsky couldn’t resist. Accepting the socialist teachings of Belinsky, Dostoevsky saw his Christian convictions being shattered. He describes this time as the time of “losing Christ”. “We were infected with the ideas of theoretical socialism of those days!” – Dostoevsky would recall. For his involvement in the antigovernment movement, Dostoevsky was sentenced to capital punishment, which was later replaced with four years of penal labor (Rus. katorga).
      ellauri203.html on line 133: Nyet! no! Ei sinne päinkään! huutaa babtisti:
      ellauri203.html on line 135: Fyodor Michailovich had such type of personality that everyone enjoyed. He was robbed unmercifully, though due to his kindness and trust, but he wouldn’t want to get into details or rebuke servants that used his carelessness. Fyodor Mikhailovich was a man of limitless kindness. Dostoevsky was especially interested in children and paid attention to cases of child abuse that he heard about. He followed closely the trials of parents accused of child abuse.
      ellauri203.html on line 139: One of Dostoevsky’s early memories is a daily prayer with his nanny before going to bed with her, when he was thirteen years of age. “I put all my eggs in Thine basket, Mother of God, keep them in Thy care”. This prayer Dostoevsky loved so much that it became part of the prayers which he read to children at bed time. Also from his early years Dostoevsky listened to Bible stories. Remembering those years, Fyodor Mikhailovich wrote in 1873, “In our family we knew the Gospel almost from earliest childhood.”
      ellauri203.html on line 148: Dostoyevsky despised Turgenev and Bunin couldn´t stand Nabokov. Ideology, ambition and personal conflicts - Russian classical authors had enough reasons to be rude about one another.
      ellauri203.html on line 150: The two great writers of the 19th century had completely different ideologies. Ivan Turgenev, author of the novel Fathers and Sons, was a convinced Westernizer and a liberal. Fyodor Dostoyevsky was a conservative nationalist. In his novels The Idiot and The Possessed he preached that liberals had corrupted Russia, leading it to ruin, and that Russia should preserve its own way and Orthodox Christianity.
      ellauri203.html on line 152: It’s not surprising that the two authors did not like each other. From his youth Turgenev, a wealthy nobleman, made fun of his lugubrious colleague. In a mocking poem he described Dostoyevsky as a "pimple on the nose of literature." Dostoyevsky didn´t conceal his reciprocal hostility and was indignant that, with all his wealth, Turgenev´s royalties for his publications were four times as high as he was paid.
      ellauri203.html on line 154: But the main reason for the quarrels was ideology. "All these wretched liberals find their principal pleasure in abusing Russia," Dostoyevsky wrote in a letter to a friend in 1867, referring to Turgenev´s new novel Smoke. Turgenev by that time was living in France and Dostoyevsky, sarcastically, advised him to buy a telescope as, "otherwise, you can´t really see [Russia] at all". Turgenev was offended.
      ellauri203.html on line 156: Turgenev, in turn, was annoyed by Dostoyevsky´s psychological preoccupations and his manner going deep into the dark depths of the human soul. "What a sour smell and hospital stench" and "psychological nitpicking" were some of the phrases he used to describe Dostoyevsky´s novels. By jove he hit it right on the dot.
      ellauri203.html on line 217: Dostoevsky was the only 19th-century Russian writer to be sentenced to hard labor, spending four years in a Siberian camp. As fortune – or misfortune – would have it, when the exhausted novelist was finally released, he encountered the writer Maria Isaeva. The relationship was complicated from the very outset: when they met, Isaeva was married with a young son, and Dostoevsky was forced to wait until her husband passed away before he could publically offer her his wand.
      ellauri203.html on line 223: Dostoevsky met the young Appolinaria Suslova during one of his public readings. At 42, he was two decades older than her. She was attractive, alluring and shared his literary taste and physical passion. Despite this, he could not give her everything she wanted; as Dostoevsky was still married, he conducted a secret affair with Suslova, but she took other lovers and left him. She returned two years later, but was not the same inexperienced young woman and refused to marry the great writer.
      ellauri203.html on line 229: Anna Snitkina, who was 25 years Dostoevsky’s junior, was his stenographer during his work on The Gambler. The process of completing the novel engrossed both of them so much that they could not imagine life without each other, marrying in 1867. This particular novel was where Dostoevsky’s three great loves intersected: Appolinaria Suslova formed the basis for its protagonist, it was written as his first wife, Maria Isaeva, passed away, and stenographed by his future wife, Anna Snitkina.
      ellauri203.html on line 231: To begin with, Dostoevsky only saw practicality in his marriage to Snitkina: he was in need of stability and confidence in the future. As a result, the union began down to head along the same route as his previous relationships. However, the couple’s extended “honeymoon” abroad, which ended up lasting four years, allowed them to escape Russia’s oppressive atmosphere and try to build a family. It began well: Sonya, a little girl, was born a year after their marriage. Tragedy soon struck, however, when Sonya passed away. The pair went on to have three more children, one of whom also died. They were married for 14 years until Dostoevsky’s death, in which time Snitkina experienced a great deal of anguish brought on by Dostoevsky’s difficult character and lifestyle, namely his jealousy and gambling addiction. However, she remained stoically committed to him and did not remarry after his death, when she was just 35.
      ellauri203.html on line 256: Girard toimi muun muassa Johns Hopkinsin, Buffalon (SUNY) ja Stanfordin yliopistojen professorina. Hän kirjoitti sekä ranskaksi että englanniksi, joskin enimmäkseen ranskaksi. Englanniksi Girard kirjoitti lyhyempiä paloja. Hän ajattelikin enimmäxeen ranskaxi, koska englannixi ajatuxet tuli lyhyempiä.
      ellauri203.html on line 326: And a yellow-sailed boat comes nearer the island, Ja keltainen vaara lähenee Formosan saarta,
      ellauri203.html on line 357: Yritys korjata maailman sosiaalista eriarvoisuutta kommunismin avulla on kiehtova, mutta ylittää inhimilliset mahdollisuudet, ja siksi vasta kun tämä yritys on epäonnistunut, maailma voi palata rationalismiin eli izekkääseen rahan kahmintaan lähimmäisen kustannuksella. Tämä skeptisyys oli näkyvin älyllisissä piireissä, koska stalinismin toiminta johtui yksinkertaisesti jonkinlaisesta tilapäisestä hulluudesta, jonka jälkeen venäläiset joutuivat pieneen valistukseen ja yrittivät toteuttaa tasa-arvon potentiaalia, mutta he eivät yksinkertaisesti älyllisesti kyenneet tavoittelemaan sitä millään muulla tavalla kuin liiallista, usein avoimesti haitallista dogmatismia.
      ellauri203.html on line 369: Skeptinen Ketman, usko, että Venäjän yritys korjata maailman sosiaalista eriarvoisuutta kommunismin avulla on kiehtova, mutta ylittää inhimilliset mahdollisuudet, ja siksi vasta kun tämä yritys on epäonnistunut, maailma voi palata rationalismiin eli izekkääseen rahan kahmintaan lähimmäisen kustannuksella. Tämä skeptisyys oli näkyvin älyllisissä piireissä, koska stalinismin toiminta johtui yksinkertaisesti jonkinlaisesta tilapäisestä hulluudesta, jonka jälkeen venäläiset joutuivat pieneen valistukseen ja yrittivät toteuttaa tasa-arvon potentiaalia, mutta he eivät yksinkertaisesti älyllisesti kyenneet tavoittelemaan sitä millään muulla tavalla kuin liiallista., usein avoimesti haitallista dogmatismia.
      ellauri203.html on line 436: Shakespeare sanoi paremmin: Life is but a poor player... signifying nothing.
      ellauri203.html on line 438: Eikä Turgenevkaan heittänyt tikkaa ohi taulun: There is nothing terrible, the very essence of life is petty, uninteresting and degradingly inane. Puhumattakaan saarnaajasta, joka sanoi saman vähemmillä sanoilla. Pane puukenkä jalkaan, se on lyhyempi lause.
      ellauri203.html on line 444: and many men live by them and for them. And yet it seems to me that if
      ellauri203.html on line 453: at two thousand years ago, the same coarse snares in which the
      ellauri203.html on line 520: Verkhovensky junior on talousliberaali Verhojanskyn nihilistipoika. Niinpä niin, anna lipilaarille pikkusormi niin sitä kohta lutkuttaa pesunkestävä nihilisti. Tää ois niinkö Sergey Nechayev, 1 oikea nihilisti, vallankumouxellisen katkismuxen tekijä. Idea on tehä terroria kunnes siitä tulee horroria.
      ellauri203.html on line 648: Martin, a respected doctor (huoh), his wife Karin, Karin's seventeen year old brother Minus, and widowed father David of Karin and Minus' have convened at the family's summer home on an island off the coast of Sweden to celebrate David's return from the Swiss Alps, where he was substantially completing his latest novel (huoh). The family has long lived a fantasy of they being a loving one, David's extended absences which are the cause of many of the family's problems. Without that parental guidance, Minus is at a confused and vulnerable stage of his life where he is a bundle of repressed emotions, most specifically concerning not feeling loved by his father and concerning the opposite sex (huoh). He is attracted to females as a collective but does not know how to handle blatant female sexuality, especially if it is directed his way. A month earlier Karin was released from a mental institution (huoh). Her doctor has told Martin that the likelihood that she will fully recover from her illness is low, her ultimate fate being that her mental state will disintegrate totally, although she has functioned well since her release. In his love for her, Martin has vowed to himself to see her through whatever she faces. As Karin begins to lose grip on reality, Minus is the one most directly affected, although it does bring out the issues all the men are facing with regard to their interrelationships.
      ellauri203.html on line 675: After smoking a magical strain of marijuana and falling asleep for 50 years, this adult animated series follows the three Freak Brothers and their sardonic cat as they adjust to life in 2020.
      ellauri204.html on line 207: Toinen vastasi: »Dovoljno. Kiitos riitti. Tässä tulee meille ero. Annan nyt sinulle selityksen siitä, mitä et kyennyt odottamaan.
      ellauri204.html on line 215: Muuri kuuluu kahdelle kaupungin orvolle pojalle. Muurin juurella on aarre heitä varten, ja heidän isänsä oli hyvä mies. Herrasi tahtoi, että he ensin tulisivat täysi-ikäisiksi ja sitten ottaisivat aarteen Herrasi armona. Enkä minä tehnyt tätä kaikkea omasta aloitteestani: tämä on selitys siihen, mitä sinä et kyennyt odottamaan.»
      ellauri204.html on line 384: It is also important to note the publishing in the same year of Hiki Pinkola Estés’ mythopoetic classic, Women that Run with the Wolves, in which she tells us of the ‘wild woman’, the wise and ageless presence in the feminine psyche that gives women their creativity, energy and power. Clarissa Pinkola Estés on yhdysvaltalainen kirjailija ja jungilainen psykoanalyytikko. Hänen kirjoittamansa kirja Naiset, jotka kulkevat susien kanssa oli 144 viikkoa New York Timesin myydyimpien kirjojen listalla, mikä teki hänestä ensimmäisen listalle päässeen märkäselän naiskirjailijan.
      ellauri204.html on line 389: In The Odyssey, Odysseus and his crew land on Aeaea, and a team of scouts discover the palace of Circe, a witch goddess. Circe invites Odysseus’s men inside for a drink and then magically turns them into pigs. One man escapes to tell Odysseus about their comrades’ fate and Circe’s trickery. Odysseus bravely hopes to rescue his men from Circe’s enchantment; on the way to her house, Odysseus receives help from Hermes, who offers him a plan and equips him with moly, a magical herb that will protect him from Circe’s witchcraft. The plan works: the moly counters Circe’s magic, she swoons for Odysseus and transforms his crew from pigs back into men. Odysseus and Circe then make love. For a year. Finally, some of Odysseus’s crew shake him from the madness of his long Circean interlude and compel him to resume the journey home to Ithaca.
      ellauri204.html on line 391: “So saying, Argeiphontes gave me the herb, drawing it from the ground, and showed me its nature. At the root it was black, but its flower was like milk. [305] Moly the gods call it, and it is hard for mortal men to dig; but with the gods all things are possible. Hermes then departed to high Olympus through the wooded isle, and I went my way to the house of Circe, and many things did my heart darkly ponder as I went. [310] So I stood at the gates of the fair-tressed goddess. There I stood and called, and the goddess heard my voice. Straightway then she came forth, and opened the bright doors, and bade me in; and I went with her, my heart sore troubled. She brought me in and made me sit on a silver-studded chair, [315] a beautiful chair, richly wrought, and beneath was a foot-stool for the feet. And she prepared me a potion in a golden cup, that I might drink, and put therein a drug, with evil purpose in her heart. But when she had given it me, and I had drunk it off, yet was not bewitched, she smote me with her wand, and spoke, and addressed me: [320] ‘Begone now to the sty, and lie with the rest of thy comrades.’ “So she spoke, but I, drawing my sharp sword from between my thighs, rushed upon Circe, as though I would slay her. But she, with a loud cry, ran beneath, and clasped my knees, and with wailing she spoke to me winged words: [325] “‘Who art thou among men, and from whence? Where is thy city, and where thy parents? Amazement holds me that thou hast drunk this charm and wast in no wise bewitched. For no man else soever hath withstood this charm, when once he has drunk it, and it has passed the barrier of his teeth. Nay, but the mind in thy breast is one not to be beguiled. [330] Surely thou art Odysseus, the man of ready device, who Argeiphontes of the golden wand ever said to me would come hither on his way home from Troy with his swift, black ship. Nay, come, put up thy sword in this here sheath, and let us two then go up into my bed, that couched together [335] in love we may put trust in each other.’ “So she spoke, but I answered her, and said:‘Circe, how canst thou bid me be gentle to thee, who hast turned my comrades into swine in thy halls, and now keepest me here, and with guileful purpose biddest me [340] go to thy chamber, and go up into thy bed, that when thou hast me stripped thou mayest render me a weakling and unmanned? Nay, verily, it is not I that shall be fain to go up into thy bed, unless thou, goddess, wilt consent to swear a mighty oath that thou wilt not plot against me any fresh mischief to my hurt.’
      ellauri204.html on line 400: In the years following Iron John, Bly ran a series of workshops and seminars – including the famed ‘Slugs or Wolves’ – with Marion Woodman, centred on a book they co-authored in 1999 called The Maiden King: The Reunion of Masculine and Feminine.
      ellauri204.html on line 402: With an emphasis on physical wellbeing – as well as the emotional, mental and spiritual – the mythopoetic employs movement, meditation and breathwork, often combining storytelling with music and dance. These activities can be seen as an extension to a form of reimagined shamanism (or neo-shamanism) popularised by Michael Harner, whose book The Way of the Shaman also appeared in 1990, the same year as Iron John and Women Who Run with the Wolves.
      ellauri204.html on line 404: Academic work has also arisen from the mythopoetic movement, as well as the creation of continuing conferences based on Bly's vision for creative communities, in addition to the ‘Minnesota Men's Conference’ and the ‘Great Mother and New Father Conference’, as well as non-profit organisations like Micheal Meade's Mosaic but yet Multicultural Foundation.
      ellauri204.html on line 407: Such a potential often comes at a time of cultural chaos, and we are focussed on the new wave of the mythopoetic – one which considers gender diversity and inclusivity, soul ecology and a story beyond the ‘hero myth’ to which our culture has become so rigidly affixed. This allows for the ancient and deeper archetypes such as the ecologically-focussed Antihero, Green Man and the Shaman-Trickster to arise, offering a less rigid :D , more nuanced and yet expansive approach to whole humanhood.
      ellauri204.html on line 524: kuin maininta lyhyestä mutta antoisasta suhteesta Erich von Dänikenin kanssa.
      ellauri204.html on line 592: ”Tämä voitto on jokaiselle ukrainalaiselle. Slava Ukraini (kunnia Ukrainalle)”, yhtyeen keulakuva Oleh Psjuk huudahti Torinon viisulavalla.
      ellauri204.html on line 625: He returned 1955 to America after a year in Europe to pursue a doctoral degree at Yale University, where he studied under Erich Auerbach. Auerbach would prove to be a lasting influence on Jameson's thought. This was already apparent in Jameson's doctoral dissertation, published in 1961 as Sartre: the Origins of a Style. Auerbach's concerns were rooted in the German philological tradition; his works on the history of style analyzed literary form within social history. Jameson would follow in these steps, examining the articulation of poetry, history, philology, and philosophy in the works of nauseous Jean-Paul Sartre.
      ellauri204.html on line 760: and yet I hope everyone else
      ellauri205.html on line 85: Greek Εὐρώπη (Eurṓpē) contains the elements εὐρύς (eurus), "wide, broad" and ὤψ/ὠπ-/ὀπτ- (ōps/ōp-/opt-) "eye, face, countenance". Broad has been an epithet of Earth herself in the reconstructed Proto-Indo-European religion.
      ellauri205.html on line 98:
      ellauri205.html on line 123: Betty said she prayed today
      ellauri205.html on line 132: And stayed for more
      ellauri205.html on line 151: Riku Rinkulan kirjan lyhyenläntä pienyrittäjä Eero lukee kuolaten miesasiamiesten lohtutextejä pikkumiehille netistä:
      ellauri206.html on line 63: The concept is often attributed to Russian playwright Anton Chekhov, reputed to have said "Don't tell me the moon is shining; show me the glint of light on broken glass." What Chekhov actually said, in a letter to his brother, was "In descriptions of Nature one must seize on small details, grouping them so that when the reader closes his eyes he gets a picture. For instance, you’ll have a moonlit night if you write that on the mill dam a piece of glass from a broken bottle glittered like a bright little star, and that the black shadow of a dog or a wolf rolled past like a ball."
      ellauri206.html on line 67: Tschekhov ei varmaan kazonut telkkaria, tokko kävi edes leffassa. Talutti vaan pikkurouvan koiraa Jaltalla. Anglosaxittuja esimerkkejä Wikipediassa tästä tekniikasta ovat Mark Swan (n.h.), Percy Lubbock (n.h.), Ernest Hemingway (yecch), Chuck Palahniuk (n.h.), James Scott Bell (n.h.), Orson Scott Card (n.h.) Yves Lavandier (n.h.) Olipas omituinen luettelo!
      ellauri206.html on line 71: In 2017, Vietnamese-American writer Viet Thanh Nguyen (n.h.) questioned the validity of continuing to teach "show, don't tell" in creative writing classes in a New York Times op-ed on the subject. His position was that such teaching is biased against immigrant writers, who may describe emotions in ways readers from outside their culture might not understand, rendering "tell" necessary. Like the squeaky smiley that shows just raised eyebrows and no smiling mouth. Because a smile does not count for anything out there. Everybody smiles all the time.
      ellauri206.html on line 100: Furthermore, wealthier countries must finally make good on their promise to provide $100 billion in climate finance to developing countries, starting this year.
      ellauri206.html on line 149: years-ago-this-week-photograph-taken-on-march-17-2013-reuterspaul-hackett-britain-tags-military-politics-society-sport-soccer-conflict-2E6A949.jpg" />
      ellauri206.html on line 160: Rikun kirjan kandaulismiluvussa missä Petrin kalu seisoo saunassa vastahakoisesti kohti tuppikullisen ravintoloizija Seilon suojatin, lyhyenlännän Marjan kasvoja, mainitaan elokuva nimeltä
      ellauri206.html on line 208: Talvisodan syttyessä ukki oli ollut nuori kersantti. Pahaa tuhoa tehneeltä ukilta puuttuu varpaita kuin Raidilta. Mistähän tässäkään Rikun turahduxessa on oikein kyse? Vaikea sanoa. Onko se uusi Väpi Linnan sotaromaani? Väpikö se nuoli Rikun hampaita? Väpi kuoli 1992, liian vanha siihen tehtävään. Ukki oli Ylen sankia priha, niinkö joku Väpin Hietanen. Meidän luokalla oli eräs Hietanen. Oliko se mukana 50-vuotisluokkajuhlassa? Saattoi ollakin. Sen naama on jo melkein unohtunut.
      ellauri206.html on line 252: IL fréquente le salon de Charles Buet, où il rencontre Jules Barbey d'Aurevilly, Joris-Karl Huysmans, François Coppée, Léon Bloy, Laurent Tailhade et autres cretins. Il rencontre Edmond de Goncourt, avec qui il restera lié jusqu'à la mort de ce dernier en 1896, et qui fut son principal protecteur. Edmond de Goncourt, dans la récente édition complète en 22 volumes du Journal des Goncourt, se montre curieux de toutes les questions sexuelles et particulièrement de l'homophilie. À partir de 1884, Edmond de Goncourt, jusque-là banalement réactionnaire, devient un antisémite enragé, Jésus l'a sauvé après 27 années d'homosexualité. Il se veut esthète et dandy en même temps qu'explorateur tapageux du vice et de la vulgarité, curieux assemblage qui verse souvent dans le pire mauvais goût, et qui lui vaut le mépris hautain de Robert de Montesquiou, dont Lorrain, pour sa part, fait volontiers sa tête de Turc pour sa prétention à l'élégance et à la chasteté. « Lorrain », écrit Léon Daudet dans ses Souvenirs, « avait une tête poupine et large à la fois de coiffeur vicieux, les cheveux partagés par une raie parfumée au patchouli, des yeux globuleux, ébahis et avides, de grosses lèvres qui jutaient, giclaient et coulaient pendant son discours. Son torse était bombé comme le bréchet de certains oiseaux charognards. Lui se nourrissait avidement de toutes les calomnies et immondices. »
      ellauri206.html on line 294: Rather dark, yet full of hope, this poem is gorgeous and profound, and one can find a new meaning with each reading.
      ellauri206.html on line 297: Le Prince d’Aquitaine à la Tour abolie : The Aquitaine Prince whose Tower is destroyed:
      ellauri206.html on line 320: Born and raised in Paris, I have been teaching today's French to adults for 23+ years in the US and France. Based on my students' goals and needs, I've created unique downloadable French audiobooks focussing on French like it's spoken today, for all levels. Most of my audiobooks are recorded at several speeds to help you conquer the modern French language. Good luck with your studies and remember, repetition is the key!
      ellauri206.html on line 468: Miki Liukkonen (s. 8. heinäkuuta 1989 Oulu) on suomalainen kirjailija, runoilija ja muusikko. Kirjoittamisen lisäksi Liukkonen on soittanut kitaraa vaihtoehtorock-yhtyeessä The Scenes.
      ellauri207.html on line 32:

      yellow;text-align:left;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">VILHO SORVARI


      ellauri207.html on line 33:

      yellow;text-align:right;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">KONGON OSKARI

      Konnankoukkuja


      ellauri207.html on line 55: Sven-Ingvars on ruotsalainen dansband. Se perustettiin vuonna 1956 Slottsbronissa nykyisessä Grumsin kunnassa Värmlannissa. Hittejä ovat olleet mm. "Fröken Fräken", "Kristina från Vilhelmina", "Vid din sida" ja "Önskebrunnen". Vuonna 2009 yhtyeen albumi Sven-Ingvars i Frödingland (1971) pääsi mukaan kirjaan Tusen svenska klassiker, johon koottiin tuhat Ruotsissa julkaistujen kirjojen, elokuvien, äänilevyjen ja tv-ohjelmien klassikkoa.
      ellauri207.html on line 67: Nicholas Edward "Nick" Cave (s. 22. syyskuuta 1957 Warracknabeal, Victoria, Australia) on australialainen rockmuusikko, lauluntekijä, runoilija, kirjailija ja näyttelijä. Hänet tunnetaan erityisesti yhtyeensä Nick Cave and the Bad Seedsin kanssa tehdystä musiikista.
      ellauri207.html on line 69: Nick Cave on säveltänyt myös elokuvamusiikkia. Yhdessä yhtyetoveri Warren Ellisin kanssa hän on säveltänyt musiikin elokuviin The Proposition – Ehdotus (2005) ja Jesse Jamesin salamurha pelkuri Robert Fordin toimesta (2007).
      ellauri207.html on line 86: In the second book of the Millennium series, The Girl Who Played with Fire, Stieg Larsson’s Lisbeth Salander is devoted to a 1,200 page mathematics text. The book, by one L. C. Parnault, is titled Dimensions in Mathematics, and though Larsson
      ellauri207.html on line 89: Like no work since the Arithmetica of Diophantus two millennia before, L. C. Parnault’s Dimensions in Mathematics presents the fullness of mathematical knowledge attained by man. From Thales to Turing, Pythagoras to Euclid, Archimedes to Newton, the Riemann Hypothesis to Fermat’s Last Theorem, Parnault escorts both serious mathematicians and the non-mathematical mind through the deepest mysteries of mathematics. Along the way he offers the greatest expositions yet of number theory, combinatorial topology, the analytics of complexity, and his own groundbreaking work on spherical astronomy. Dimensions equips even elementary readers with the tools to solve the logical puzzles of the perfect universe that can exist only in the mind of a mathematician.
      ellauri207.html on line 95: In addition to being a milestone for the field, the publication of Dimensions in Mathematics is a true publishing event, a crowning achievement in our centennial year. We’re extremely proud to finally satisfy the millions of Millennium readers who’ve sought out the book, and are deeply humbled by the experience of working with the legendary Dr. Parnault.
      ellauri207.html on line 165: Kanye West 2x
      ellauri207.html on line 174: Michael Douglas, son of Kirk Douglas, was accused of masturbating in front of an employee. To the claim that he masturbated in front of her, Douglas said, "This is a complete lie, fabrication, no truth to it whatsoever." He will again reprise his role in the upcoming film Ant-Man and the Wasp: Quantumania (2023).
      ellauri207.html on line 182: Catherine Zeta-Jones was born on 25 September 1969 in Swansea, Wales, to David Jones, the owner of a sweet factory, and his wife Patricia (née Fair), a seamstress. Her father is Welsh and her mother is of Irish Catholic descent. She was named after her grandmother, Zeta Jones (whose name was derived from the name of a ship that her great-grandfather once sailed on), because 'Just Jones' would not cut the cheese in showbiz. Zeta-Jones was raised in the suburban area of Mumbles.Her struggle with depression and bipolar II disorder has been well documented by the media, for she is married to sex addicted actor Michael Douglas, son of Kirk, whose name used to be Issur Danielovitch Demsky. Michael is 25 years her senior but a wizard with cunnilingus.
      ellauri207.html on line 200: «Las tres novelas constituyen un auténtico fresco de la sociedad moderna que no puede compararse a lo que ningún escritor de novela criminal ha hecho nunca antes. En Millennium, como en Suecia, sólo hay maldad e injusticia.» -Donna Leon, escritora estadounidense-
      ellauri207.html on line 204: Dentro de la novela se hace mención a varios escritores de fama, tales como: Astrid Lindgren, Enid Blyton, Agata Christie y Dorothy L. Sayers; así como Sue Grafton, Val McDermid, y Sara Paretsky.
      ellauri207.html on line 210: El patrimonio de Musse Pigg causo un enfrentamiento entre su esposa por 32 años, la arquitecta Eva Gabrielsson, y Erlan y Joakim Larsson, el padre y hermano del escritor. Éstos últimos fueron los que recibieron la opulenta herencia, la cual incluye los derechos sobe todas las obras del autor, y la capacidad de gestionar lo que dejó por escrito. Sin embargo, Gabrielsson afirma que ella debería ser la poseedora de los bienes ya que ella era la personas más allegada del autor, ya que éste abandonó su hogar familiar a la edad de los 18 años y desde ese entonces se dispuso a vivir con Eva, sin siquiera mantener contacto alguno con su padre ni hermano.
      ellauri207.html on line 236: Lilya 4-ever is a 2002 crime drama film written and directed by Lukas Moodysson, which was released in Sweden on 23 August 2002. It depicts the downward spiral of Lilja Michailova, played by Oksana Akinshina, a girl in the former Soviet Union whose mother abandons her to move to the United States.
      ellauri207.html on line 261: Sillä toden sanoakseni, naisten yleinen taso ei riitä siihen keskinäiseen yhteydenpitoon, joka tätä pyhää liittoa elättää, eikä heidän sielunsa tunnu olevan kyllin vakaa kestämään niin tiukan ja pitkäaikaisen siteen puristusta. Tosiaan, ellei näin olisi, jos voitaisiin vapaasta tahdosta saada aikaan suhde, josta eivät vain sielut saisi tuota eheää nautintoaan, vaan jossa myös ruumiilla olisi osansa liitosta, mihin ihminen näin olisi koko olemuksellaan sitoutuneena, on varmaa, että tämä täydentäisi ja lisäisi ystävyyttä. Mutta mikään esimerkki ei todista tuon sukupuolen kyenneen tällaiseen, ja antiikin koulukunnat ovat yksimielisesti julistaneet sen siihen kelvottomaksi.
      ellauri207.html on line 323: Robb Elementary teaches second through fourth grades and had 535 students in the 2020-21 school year, according to state data. About 90% of students are Hispanic and about 81% are economically disadvantaged, the data shows. Thursday was set to be the last day of school before the summer break.
      ellauri207.html on line 325: President Joe Biden has ordered US flags on federal grounds to be flown at half-staff until sunset on Saturday to honor the victims of this "senseless acts of violence." "That will teach them!" Biden said. "30th shooting at a K-12 school this year," he said proudly. "Try and beat that Putin!"
      ellauri207.html on line 330: It is the deadliest shooting at a school since the Sandy Hook massacre in Connecticut in 2012 that left 26 people dead, including 20 children between 6 and 7 years old. A big hand to Uvalde and Texas! Robb School Is The Best!
      ellauri207.html on line 351: Oh, come off it. That surly cunt of yours is squirming like a snake. Zalachenko about Lisbeth Salander, his own daughter. He was portrayed by Georgi Staykov. Sanokaas, onko tällänen sievää puhetta? Kysyn taas: mix niin monet tykkää just tälläsestä? Koska ne on apinoita.
      ellauri207.html on line 355: Born in Stalingrad in 1940, Zalachenko was orphaned when he was a year old when his parents died in the Second World War. He grew up in the Russian military. When he defecated to Sweden he changed his name to Karl Axel Bodin. It is said that Sweden was his country of choice because there are few Jews in Sweden. Why? There are fewer yet in Finland.
      ellauri207.html on line 357: Zalachenko got involved with Agneta Sjolander, who changed her own name to match his, but he refused to marry her, calling her a whore. Regardless he fathered two children with her, Lisbeth and her twin sister, Camilla. So they must have had their moments... Zalachenko brutally beat and abused Agneta, who tried to shelter her daughters from the brutality, and the two girls reacted differently. Camilla didn´t care at all for her mother, and Lisbeth did. At age twelve, Lisbeth Salander, set Zalanchenko, her father, on fire to stop his brutal beatings of her mother. We find out in The Girl Who Played with Fire, that because of the damage to his body, he had to have his leg amputated and suffers from chronic pain. I can relate to that! Constant pain is enough to turn one into a psychopath. This act is used as evidence to support claims that Lisbeth Salander is mentally ill, and remains a topic of debate for readers and characters.
      ellauri207.html on line 433: TERToxicologyexposure suhde
      ellauri210.html on line 238: - Leipä, joka syljen erittyessä ohjaa sveitsiläisen messiin;
      ellauri210.html on line 335:
    10. Picasso was the first artist to receive a 90-year retrospective exhibition. And the last.
      ellauri210.html on line 369: That journey began in 1903 when, aged sixteen, he was kicked out of his boarding school for an egregious act of indiscipline—according to some, he hit a teacher—and, inspired by his hero Arthur Rimbaud, he left Switzerland in search of adventure. Over the next several years, Cravan took up with hookers in Berlin, hoboed his way from New York to California, and worked in the engine room of a steamship bound for the South Pacific, jumping ship when it docked in Australia. But it was in Paris that the legend of the man we know as Arthur Cravan—writer, brawler, and hoaxer—was cemented. Within the space of six years, he scandalized polite society, infuriated the avant-garde, slugged it out with one of the greatest heavyweights of all time, and then disappeared without a trace.
      ellauri210.html on line 379: At the height of his fame and success, while The Importance of Being Earnest (1895) was still being performed in London, Wilde prosecuted the Marquess of Queensberry for criminal libel. The Marquess was the father of Wilde's lover, Lord Alfred Douglas. The libel trial unearthed evidence that caused Wilde to drop his charges and led to his own arrest and trial for gross indecency with men. After two more trials he was convicted and sentenced to two years' hard labour, the maximum penalty, and was jailed from 1895 to 1897. During his last year in prison, he wrote De Profundis (published posthumously in 1905), a long letter which discusses his spiritual journey through his trials, forming a dark counterpoint to his earlier philosophy of pleasure. On his release, he left immediately for France, and never returned to Ireland or Britain. There he wrote his last work, The Ballad of Reading Gaol (1898), a long poem commemorating the harsh rhythms of prison life. What an opportunity for a man of his caliber, one would have thought.
      ellauri210.html on line 381: In the summer of 1914, Cravan began another phase of wandering. In 1916, he found himself in Barcelona where he somehow managed to book himself a high-profile fight against Jack Johnson. Johnson was in the midst of a celebrated stay in Spain, during which he was received by royalty and starred in movies. Photographs from the fight give some idea of the scale of the event, which was held at Barcelona’s huge bullfighting arena La Monumental. What the photos don’t convey is what a mismatch the fight was. Even a ring-rusty, thirty-eight-year-old Johnson was leagues ahead of Cravan. Johnson won with a sixth-round knockout, though it could’ve been over much sooner had he wished it. There are reports that Cravan shook with fear before the contest began, knowing how out of his depth he was. One writer has suggested that “Johnson and Cravan were more collaborators than competitors,” and that the event was a con, just a hype-fueled payday for an aging legend and a flamboyant interloper with no credible chance of a win—the Mayweather-McGregor of its day. Olikos tää se mazi josta toinen nyrkkipelle Heminwau kirjoitti siinä sonniromaanissa?
      ellauri210.html on line 385: New York’s first encounter with modern art had come four years earlier with the seminal Armory Show, at which Duchamp’s Nude Descending a Staircase caused an almighty rumpus. This time, Duchamp presented Fountain, the urinal that changed art history. Having witnessed Cravan’s work back in Paris, Duchamp and Picabia invited Cravan to deliver one of his anti-art lectures at the exhibition. He didn’t disappoint. On the day, he stood half cut in front of his audience, swore at them, waved his cock around, and was promptly arrested.
      ellauri210.html on line 614: Peut-on faire des oeuvres qui ne soient pas d'art? Tiens, j'ai essaye, sans reussir. Un mauvais art est quand même de l'art, comme une mauvaise émotion est quand même une émotion.
      ellauri210.html on line 627: Kun Arp puhui saksaa, hän käytti itsestään nimeä "Hans", ranskaa puhuessaan "Jean". Moni luulee, että hän oli alkujaan Hans ja muutti myöhemmin nimensä Jeaniksi, mutta se ei pidä paikkaansa. Arpin äiti oli ranskalainen, Marie-Joséphine Koeberle, isä saksalainen, Jürgen Wilhelm Arp, kotoisin Wendtorfista Schleswig-Holsteinista. Arp syntyi Ranskan-Preussin sodan jälkeen, jolloin Ranskan palautettua alueen Saksalle sen nimi oli Elsass-Lothringen. Kun alue jälleen ensimmäisen maailmansodan päättyessä siirtyi Ranskalle, asukkaiden oli muutettava nimensä ranskalaisiksi ja Hansista tuli uudestaan Jean.
      ellauri210.html on line 782: After the war, Tanguy is sent back to Spain, Barcelona where he learns that his grandmother has recently passed away and there is no one else to take care of him. He is sent to a reformation school for juvenile delinquents and orphans, run by priests who are no less cruel and sadist than the Nazi "kapos." Bitter, Tanguy believes they are worse than the Nazis because these priests hide their sadism behind the facade of religion and confession, but that makes their sin no less. He succeeds in escaping along with a "companion," but is forced to separate from his as well. This time around, he finds himself in a school run by a group of priests but unlike the reformation school, here, Tanguy is able to grow, learn and live comfortably. It is here, that he truly flourishes and finds friends and solace. But he is still not completely at peace and sets off again in search of the parents who had abandoned and forsaken him to such a bitter destiny. He does find them eventually, but only to realise that the years of hardship and horror experienced by him have built an impenetrable barrier between them. He is no longer a left wing radical like them. He has learned not to hate the capos. Don't get mad get even. LOL.
      ellauri210.html on line 784: Ja vielä 1 Tanguy: Tanguy is a 2001 French black comedy by Étienne Chatiliez. When he was a newborn baby, Edith Guetz thoughtlessly told her son Tanguy : "If you want to, you can stay at home forever". 28 years later, the over-educated university teacher of Asian languages and womanizer leads a successful and wealthy life... while still living in his parents' home. Father Paul Guetz longs to see his son finally leave the nest, a desire that his wife shares. Edith finally agrees and the pair unite to make Tanguy's life at home miserable. However, they don't know that Tanguy isn't the type of guy who easily gives up. The word Tanguy became the usual term to designate an adult still living with his parents.
      ellauri210.html on line 833: Tristan Tzara captured the inspired lunacy in his 1921 Dada Manifesto on Lukewarm Love. Marcel Duchamp’s “Readymades,” or Francis Picabia’s canvases of human figures as functionless machines belong here. Dada began as a limited franchise, with key outposts in Zurich, Berlin, Paris, and New York. Preceding the Surrealist movement by several years, and often inspired by the Communist Party (though not tied to it), its origins lay in a militant nostalgia for a pre-war lost Eden. Dadaists sought “an art based on fundamentals to cure the madness of the age and a new order of things that would restore the balance between heaven and hell." (Jean Arp).
      ellauri210.html on line 850: "Richard Cory" is a narrative poem written by Edwin Arlington Robinson. It was first published in 1897, as part of The Children of the Night, having been completed in July of that year; and it remains one of Robinson's most popular and anthologized poems. The poem describes a person who is wealthy, well educated, mannerly, and admired by the people in his town. Despite all this, he takes his own life.
      ellauri210.html on line 895: A coffee dessert, yes, you know it's good news
      ellauri210.html on line 994: Le style joyeusement iconoclaste de Prévert et ses thèmes de prédilection, les bonheurs simples, la révolte et l’amour, séduisent autant le cercle de Saint-Germain-des-Prés que le grand public.
      ellauri210.html on line 997:
      ellauri210.html on line 1108:

      Leonora Carrington: The Debutante (Hyeena)


      ellauri210.html on line 1111: Educated by governesses, tutors, and nuns, she was expelled from two schools, including New Hall School, Chelmsford, for her rebellious behaviour, until her family sent her to Florence, where she attended Mrs Penrose's Academy of Art. She also, briefly, attended St Mary's convent school in Ascot. In 1927, at the age of ten, she saw her first Surrealist painting in a Left Bank gallery in Paris and later met many Surrealists, including Paul Éluard. Her father opposed her career as an artist, but her mother encouraged her. She returned to England and was presented at Court, but according to her, she brought a copy of Aldous Huxley's Eyeless in Gaza (1936) to read instead.
      ellauri210.html on line 1115: Between 1937–1938 Carrington painted a Self-Portrait, where she is perched on the edge of a chair in this curious, dreamlike scene, her hand outstretched toward a prancing hyena and her back to a tailless rocking horse flying behind her. The hyena depicted in Self-Portrait (1937–38) joins both male and female into a whole, metaphoric of the worlds of the night and the dream. The symbol of the hyena is present in many of Carrington's later works, including "La Debutante" in her book of short stories The Oval Lady.
      ellauri210.html on line 1117: With the outbreak of World War II Ernst, who was German, was arrested by the French authorities for being a "hostile alien". Soon after the Nazis invaded France, Ernst was arrested again, this time by the Gestapo, because his art was considered by the Nazis to be "degenerate". Fucking West and East Germans, same huns and hyenas on both sides!
      ellauri210.html on line 1119: After Ernst's arrest Carrington was devastated and her delusions led to a psychotic break and she was admitted into an asylum. Three years after being released from the asylum and with the encouragement of André Breton, Carrington wrote about her psychotic experience in her memoir Down Below. Nyrkissä Leonora kokkasi Andrelle hyviä sapuskoita.
      ellauri210.html on line 1121: Meanwhile, Ernst had married Peggy Guggenheim in New York in 1941. That marriage ended a few years later. Ernst and Carrington never resumed their relationship.
      ellauri210.html on line 1123: She later married Emerico Weisz (nicknamed "Chiki"), born in Hungary in 1911. Chiki Weisz died 17 January 2007, at home. He was 97 years old. Together they had two sons: Gabriel, an intellectual and poet, and Pablo, a doctor and Surrealist artist. Leonora Carrington died on 25 May 2011, aged 94, in a hospital in Mexico City as a result of complications arising from pneumonia. In 2015, Carrington was honoured through a Google Doodle commemorating her 98th birthday.
      ellauri210.html on line 1177: Carlos Paul Ruiz São Paulosta symppaa Jannea. “Derriere Son Double”, Este volumen de poemas, saludado con entusiasmo por Breton, es sin duda uno de los más importantes de la poesía francesa de los últimos tiempos. Por lo que dice y lo que revela constituye el testimonio apasionante de un espíritu (que aún no había alcanzado la veintena) obsesionado por la idea de las tinieblas que nos rodean. Es cierto que los términos “vide”, “gouffre”, “abime”, habían pasado sobre todo a partir de Víctor Hugo (recordemos su famoso verso “J’interrogue l’abime etant moi-même gouffre”) a ser tópicos de una cierta retórica ajenas a sus verdaderos significados. Mas en Duprey subanse por las paredes. Para rendir cuentas de su visión de las tinieblas, Duprey se inclina a la práctica y a la expresión de un cierto humor negro que llevó a Breton a incluirlo en su famosa antología.
      ellauri210.html on line 1196: Où l’on se glace à la vague des yeux. Mihin jäätyy aaltoon silmien.
      ellauri210.html on line 1226: The French essayist Michel Eyquem de Montaigne’s famous tome Les Essais became celebrated in its age, even being quoted by William Shakespeare in The Tempest. At the core of the collection of writings was “De l’amitie” (“On Friendship”). La Boetie enjoyed a certain level of fame, achieved through political discourses, when he met Montaigne around 1557 and the two would spend four years together, at which time the principles of civil disobedience in matters of love became instilled in Montaigne, according to Robert Aldrich and Garry Wotherspoon’s Who’s Who in Gay and Lesbian History. But La Boetie would succumb to the plague, and Montaigne would write that he never experienced such love again.
      ellauri210.html on line 1275: He had been celibate until his twenty-ninth birthday, when his shyness was overcome by Jane (Jenny) Patterson, a widow some years his senior. All things considered, he preferred men's company as much as Michael Montaigne. Why can't a woman be more like a man?
      ellauri210.html on line 1300: La belleza subversiva del surrealismo muestra lo “anormal” invirtiendo así el concepto armonioso de lo bello. El universo surrealista se construye a partir de una extraña fauna, ambivalente e imprevisible, todo un bestiario original y prolífico, un particular jardín del Edén de los horrores “troublant”.
      ellauri210.html on line 1306: Mansour, lejos de generar o de seguir con la imagen de la mujer creada por André Bretón incluye la belleza fatal, entendida como una belleza herida, lejos del principio de Narciso. Junto con Gisèle Prassinos y Lise Deharme proceden a crear una renovación estética en la literatura surrealista. Adjetivos como “laid(e)”, “malade”, “malformé(e)” serán típicos de estas autoras que elaboran un reflejo femenino escribiendo sobre “antiNadjas” als gegen Bretons Roman verfasste Anti Nadja.
      ellauri210.html on line 1338: Joyce Mansour se podría definir como “abyecto”, retomando la definición de Julia Kristeva, (Kristeva, 1980) sería “el objeto caído”. El universo mansouriano seduce con sus seres desviados, se metamorfosea en monstruo o animal, casi siempre asociados a los animales que más repulsión suscitan, pero que a la vez se convierte en modelo de seducción, retomando el término de Barnet sería una “anti-seducción” un “ bestiaire pour déplaire”.
      ellauri210.html on line 1425: Tulkaa kattoon kattoon Voyez ô voyez
      ellauri210.html on line 1456: Charles Perrault (12. tammikuuta 1628 Pariisi, Ranska – 16. toukokuuta 1703 Pariisi, Ranska) oli ranskalainen kirjailija, joka tunnetaan parhaiten vuonna 1697 julkaisemastaan satukokoelmasta Hanhiemon tarinoita (ransk. Les Contes de ma mère l'Oye). Varsinaiselta ammatiltaan Perrault oli asianajaja, ja hän toimi myös julkisten rakennusten tarkastajana. Hänen oikea nimensä oli Jaakko Parantainen. Les oies marchent dans la cour. Pas les oeufs, zihihihihi. Perrault oli varakas porvari, kuinkas muuten.
      ellauri211.html on line 33:

      yellow;background:crimson;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Kalutut Palat


      ellauri211.html on line 34:

      yellow;background:crimson;text-align:right;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Lukijan Ruoansulatus  

      Naurua


      ellauri211.html on line 54: Samalla kun Reader’s Digestin kieliversioita on lakkautettu joistakin länsimaista, muun muassa Tanskasta vuonna 2005, yritys on perustanut uusia kieliversioita entisiin sosialistimaihin ja nouseviin Aasian maihin. Mutta Kiinan markkinoille suunnattu lehden versio lopetettiin kuitenkin yllättäen vuonna 2012, vain neljän ja puolen vuoden ilmestymisen jälkeen. Kiinalaisten länsinauru loppui lyhyeen.
      ellauri211.html on line 118: other areas are being destroyed. From the psychological point of
      ellauri213.html on line 41: Taneli Kivipukin nahaton kalu huojuu jäykkänä kaverin päästyä ulos housuista alta aikayxikön. Tina Herzberg, mantelisilmäinen nähtävästi sekin, huokailee altavastaajana. "Pian mies oli alasti ja penis seisoi." Snart blottades ollonet. Nääh, det var ju blottat från första början. "Hiän näki ensi kertaa (LOL) miehen lujan penixen ja tunsi kostuvansa." Kiinalainen huora oli kauniimpi kuin kuolema mutta Taneli ei vääränrotuiselle luovuttanut Israelin siementä. Se sai vaan hifistellä ohuen polyesterin läpi Tanelin ståkukia. Rikollisen keskustelun ja pöydänalushiplauxen jälkeen Tanelilla seisoi yhä. Kinkku hoiteli jo nuijaa seuraavaa. Gimmelin alkup vedos 20v takaa on parempi kuin Ripsipiirakan 13v takainen säälittävä coveri.
      ellauri213.html on line 193: eye-contact (sometimes too much) with normal expression
      ellauri213.html on line 254: In 1908, Baden-Powell's book Scouting for Boys came out in Russia by the order of Tsar Nicholas II. It was called Young Scout (Юный Разведчик, Yuny Razvedchik). On April 30 [O.S. April 17] 1909, a young officer, Colonel Oleg Pantyukhov, organized the first Russian Scout troop Beaver (Бобр, Bobr) in Pavlovsk, a town near Tsarskoye Selo, St. Petersburg region. In 1910, Baden-Powell visited Nicholas II in Tsarskoye Selo and they had a very pleasant conversation, as the Tsar remembered it. In 1914, Pantyukhov established a society called Russian Scout (Русский Скаут, Russkiy Skaut). The first Russian Scout campfire was lit in the woods of Pavlovsk Park in Tsarskoye Selo. A Russian Scout song exists to remember this event. Scouting spread rapidly across Russia and into Siberia, and by 1916, there were about 50,000 Scouts in Russia. Nicholas' son Tsarevich Aleksei was a Scout himself.
      ellauri213.html on line 288: My daughter Nancy, who has Asperger's syndrome, has been a Rainbow for over a year and she loves it, especially as many special schools and autism youth groups are boy-dominated. Rainbows gives Nancy something shared to discuss with friends at school. It's also good for her to see girls doing all sorts of activities because boys commenting sleazily on her doing things that aren't stereotypically girly can upset her. The sleepovers are especially amazing! And it's not just Nancy who benefits. Rainbows are supported by a group of highly trained, inspirational leaders who explore the girls, challenge themselves and have fun.
      ellauri213.html on line 294: The girls didn't know much about the event beforehand, but Amelia was most excited about sleeping with the Big Top, Meghan couldn't wait to learn some tricks, while Abigail, Darcey and Ellie were looking forward to trying out some new adventurous group activities. We then enjoyed a very funny magic show, sucking our own magic wands and balloon creatures. Darcey and Aayla said they 'liked playing fun games with the Rainbows on the inflatables' which we did next.
      ellauri213.html on line 296: Each year, the organisation publishes the Girls' Attitudes Survey, which surveys the views of girls and young women on topics such as body image, career aspirations and mental health. BBC staff were told there are more than 150 genders and urged to develop ‘trans brand’.
      ellauri213.html on line 298: Girlguiding UK has signed the campaign to try and force the hand of Rupert Murdoch, who hinted a few weeks ago that he is considering ending the publication of photographs of topless models on page 3 of The Sun – which he owns, as chief executive of News Corporation. Page 3, or Page Three, was a British newspaper convention of publishing a large image of a topless female glamour model (known as a Page 3 girl) on the third page of mainstream red-top tabloids. The Sun introduced the feature, publishing its first topless Page 3 image on 17 November 1970. The Sun's sales doubled over the following year, and Page 3 is partly credited with making The Sun the UK's bestselling newspaper by 1978. In response, competing tabloids including the Daily Mirror, the Sunday People, and the Daily Star also began featuring topless models on their own third pages. Notable Page 3 models included Linda Lusardi, Samantha Fox, and Katie Price.
      ellauri213.html on line 303: LET OFF AGAIN! Smirking Katie Price DODGES JAIL over ‘gutter s*g’ text to Kieran Hayler’s fiancee. The 44-year-old was instead handed an 18-hole community order,
      ellauri213.html on line 304: 170 hours unpaid work and told to pay £1,500 costs. Katie Price has been known on the celebrity circuit for many years, starting out her career as a glamour model before becoming a TV personality, author and OnlyFans content creator. Katie has five children: her eldest Harvey, Princess, Junior, Buddy and Jett. She was married to Peter Andre from 2005-2009, Alex Reid from 2010-2012 and Kieran Hayler from 2013-2021. She was most recently dating Love Island star Carl Woods until their split. Michelle contacted Sussex Police on Friday to complain that Katie — mum to two of Kieran’s children — had sent him a tirade of abuse which was aimed at her. Close sources said the text branded Michelle a “c*ing w*e piece of s*” and a “gutter s*g.” The ex-glamour model, who smiled as she left the dock today, could have been jailed for a maximum of five years for breaching the restraining order. BUSINESS AS USUAL Katie Price says she’s ‘so lucky’ after dodging jail over ‘gutter s*g’ text – as she reveals she’s landed a Girlguiding travel show.
      ellauri213.html on line 312:

      In August 2013, The Sun's Republic of Ireland edition replaced topless Page 3 girls with clothed glamour models. Its UK editions followed suit in January 2015, discontinuing Page 3 after more than 44 years. The Daily Star became the last print daily to drop topless photographs, moving to a clothed glamour format in April 2019. This ended the Page 3 convention in Britain's mainstream tabloid press. As of 2022, the only British tabloid still publishing topless models is the niche Sunday Sport. Only old geezers buy it anymore. Others prefer peering down the bottomless pit.
      ellauri213.html on line 326: Moshe Raab will never forget, nor forgive. Mosaic God is not a forgiving one. Mosaic beer is good, unlike Foster's. Leila Khaled hijacked my and my mother's and my siblings' plane. Why did a public university invite her to speak? Even after 50 years, the convicted terrorist who changed my life has never disavowed her actions. What will she teach SFSU students?


      ellauri213.html on line 328:
      Dan liked her looks as a foreskinned 14-year old.

      ellauri213.html on line 329:

      TWA flight 741 was one of three planes successfully hijacked by the Popular Front for the Liberation of Palestine that day — the hijacking of an El Al plane was foiled by the onboard sky marshals. At the time, I was a 14-year old foreskinned kid living in Trenton, New Jersey, whose only care was how the Baltimore Orioles were doing. This event changed my life, as well as the lives of the other 350 people who were on those planes. Mostly for the better, we became instant celebrities.

      Imagine the horror and disgust that I, my family and other hijack victims experienced when we read that Leila Khaled, one of the hijackers directly involved in the 1970 attacks, had been invited by San Francisco State University to address a forum on Gender, Justice and Resistance. Ms. Khaled is a convicted terrorist. She has paid her debt to society. She is a member of the PFLP. She is a symbol not of justice and resistance, but of wanton terrorism and death. Khaled spent only a few days in jail. After her failed hijacking of the El Al plane, she was transferred by the Israeli sky marshals to the British police and released in exchange for hostages when a fifth plane was hijacked to secure her freedom.
      ellauri213.html on line 331: Had Khaled ever apologized for her role in the hijackings or taken steps to show that she is committed to nonviolent efforts to achieve her desired end of driving the invasive Israeli species from her land, I would not object to her speaking at San Francisco State. People who genuinely learn often make the best teachers. But even after 50 years, Khaled has never expressed remorse or disavowed her actions or those of her comrades. Neither have I for 3000 years of Israeli mass murder of poor Philistines, so there! Never forget, never learn!
      ellauri213.html on line 333: The most distressing and disheartening thing, 50 years after this horrible experience, is that the Western world (including us middle easterners) has not eradicated this type of terrorism. As recently as January 2020, the PFLP (through Palestinian NGOs) received financial support of millions of dollars from European countries, the United States, Canada, Japan, UN-OCHA and UNICEF. That money should have come to us instead! We know how to handle capital after all, got the talent for it.
      ellauri213.html on line 350: Over the years, Iraq has provided safe haven to terrorists such as Abu Nidal, whose terror organization carried out more than 90 terrorist attacks in 20 countries that killed or injured nearly 900 people, including 12 Americans. Iraq has also provided safe haven to Abu Abbas, who was responsible for seizing the Egyptian ship Achille Lauro and killing an American passenger. Following the murder of Leon Klinghoffer, the Klinghoffer family founded the Leon and Marilyn Klinghoffer Memorial Foundation, in cooperation with the Anti-Defamation League.
      ellauri213.html on line 354: The Achille Lauro hijacking has inspired a number of dramatic retellings, including The Death of Klinghoffer (1991), an opera by John Adams and Alice Goodman after a concept of theatre director Peter Sellars. Its depiction of the hijacking has proved controversial. Controversy surrounded the American premiere and other productions in the years which followed. Some critics and audience members condemned the production as antisemitic and appearing to be sympathetic to the hijackers. Adams, Goodman, and Sellars repeatedly claimed that they were trying to give equal voice to both Israelis and Palestinians with respect to the political background. That kind of unpatriotic talk was effectively silenced with the Iraqi wars and the 9/11 incident. It is unpatriotic to be impartial.
      ellauri213.html on line 377: Mikhail Ivanovich Kalinin, known familiarly by Soviet citizens as "Kalinych", was a Soviet politician and Old Bolshevik revolutionary. He served as head of state of the Russian Soviet Federative Socialist Republic and later of the Soviet Union from 1919 to 1946. From 1926, he was a member of the Politburo of the Communist Party of the Soviet Union. Born to a peasant family, Kalinin worked as a metal worker in Saint Petersburg and took part in the 1905 Russian Revolution as an early member of the Bolsheviks. During and after the October Revolution, he served as mayor of Petrograd. After the revolution, Kalinin became the head of the new Soviet state, as well as a member of the Central Committee of the Communist Party and the Politburo. Kalinin remained the titular head of state of the Soviet Union after the rise of Joseph Stalin, but held little real power or influence. He retired in 1946 and died in the same year.
      ellauri213.html on line 381: The original German population fled or was expelled towards the end of World War II, when the territory was annexed by the Soviet Union, and in the following few years. In October 1945, only about 5,000 Soviet civilians lived in the territory. Between October 1947 and October 1948 approximately 100,000 Germans were forcibly moved to Germany [clarification needed], and by 1948 about 400,000 Soviet civilians had arrived in the Oblast.
      ellauri213.html on line 385: Poland and the Russian Federation have an agreement whereby residents of Kaliningrad and the Polish cities of Olsztyn, Elbląg and Gdańsk may obtain special cards permitting repeated travel between the two countries, crossing the Polish–Russian border. As of July 2013, Poland had issued 100,000 of the cards. That year, the influx of Russians visiting Poland to shop at the Biedronka and Lidl supermarkets was novel enough to be featured in songs by musical group Parovoz.
      ellauri213.html on line 413: The founder of one of the most feared terrorist organisations of the 1970s has walked free from a Japanese prison after completing a 20-year sentence for the siege of the French embassy in the Netherlands.
      ellauri213.html on line 415: On Saturday, 76-year-old Shigenobu left the prison in Tokyo with her daughter as several supporters held a banner saying “We love Fusako”.
      ellauri213.html on line 434: Seuraavassa on listattuna pahoja naisia rikkomuxineen (kuvissa söpöset alleviivattu): Irma Grese (Naziwächterin), Myra Hindley (serial pedocide), Isabela of Castile (born in the year 1451 and died in 1504, Isabella the Catholic, was queen of Castile and León. She and her husband, Ferdinand II of Aragon, brought stability to the kingdoms that became the basis for the unification of Spain. Isabella and Ferdinand are known for completing the Reconquista, ordering conversion or exile of their Muslim and Jewish subjects and financing Christopher Columbus’ 1492 voyage that led to the opening of the “New World”. Isabella was granted the title Servant of God by the Catholic Church in 1974), Beverly Allitt (pedocide, Angel of Death), Queen Mary of England (catholic), Belle Gunness (norwegian-american serial killer), Mary Ann Cotton (serial killer), Ilse Koch (Lagerfrau), Katherine Knight (very bad Aussie), Elizabeth Bathory (hungarian noblewoman and serial killer), Sandra Avila Beltran (drugs), Patty Hearst (hänen isoisänsä oli lehtikeisari William Randolph Hearst. Hiän joutui kidnappauksen uhriksi, mutta pian tämän jälkeen hiän teki pankkiryöstön ja joutui vankilaan), Genene Jones (infanticide nurse), Karla Homolka (Canadian serial killer), Diane Downs (infanticide), Aileen Wuornos (serial killer), Griselda Blanco (drug lady), Lizzie Borden (kirvesmurhaaja), Bonnie Parker (bank robber), Anne Bonny (pirate), Mary Bell (pedocide), Delphine LaLaurie (serial slavekiller), Patricia Krenwinkel (Manson family member), Leslie van Houten (Manson family member), Darlie Routier (infanticide), Susan Smith (infanticide), Susan Atkins (Manson family member), Ching Shih (pirate), Anna Sorokin Delvey (con woman), Amelia Dyer (serial killer), Assata Shakur (black terrorist), Belle Gunness (serial killer), Gypsy Rose Blanchard (matricide), Pamela Smart (mariticide), Ruth Ellis (nightclub hostess, last woman hanged in UK), Phoolan Devi (bandit), Ma Barker (matriarch), Jennifer Pan (parenticide), Virginia Hill (gangster), Karla Faye Tucker (burglar, first woman injected in US), Leonarda Cianciully (serial murderer, soapmaker), Mary Read, Carill Ann Fugate (murder spree), Grace Marks (maid), Belle Starr (outlaw, friend of Lucky Luke), Zerelda Mimms (Mrs. Jesse James), Jane Toppan (serial killer), Sara Jane Moore (wannabe assassin of Gerald Ford), Martha Beck (serial killer), Doris Payne (jewel thief), Mary Brunner (Manson family member), Barbara Graham (executed by gas), Grace O'Malley (pirate), Sada Abe (jealous geisha. When they asked why she had killed Ishida, “Immediately she became excited and her eyes sparkled in a strange way: ‘I loved him so much, I wanted him all to myself. But since we were not husband and wife, as long as he lived he could be embraced by other women. I knew that if I killed him no other woman could ever touch him again, so I killed him…..’ ), Samantha Lewthwaite (white somali terrorist), Theresa Knorr (murderess), Lynette Fromme (Manson family, wannabe assassin of Gerald Ford), The Freeway Phantom (serial killer), Carol M. Bundy (serial killer), Fanny Kaplan (bolshevik revolutionary), Marguerite Alibert (Ed VII courtesan), Jean Harris (author), Linda Hazzard (physician, serial killer), Mary Jane Kelly (1st victim of Jack the Ripper), Kim Hyon-hui (North-Korean spy), Vera Renczi (serial killer), Clare Bronfman (filthy rich criminal), Kirsten Gilbert (serial killer nurse), Gerda Steinhoff (Lagerwächterin), Linda Carty (baby robber), Estella Marie Thompson (black prostitute, blowjobbed Hugh Grant), Elizabeth Becker (Lagerwächterin), Juana Barraza (asesina en serie), Olivera Circovic (baseball player, writer, jewel thief), Olga Hepnarova (mental serial killer), Sabina Eriksson (knäpp tvilling), Minnie Dean (serial killer), Madame de Brinvilliers (aristocrat parri- and fratricide), Martha Rendell (familicide, last woman hanged in Western Australia), Violet Gibson (wannabe assassin of Mussolini), Idoia López Riaño (terrorist), Styllou Christofi (murdered her daughter in law), Mary Eastley (convicted of witchcraft), Wanda Klaff (Lagerwächterin), Giulia Tofana (avvelenatrice), Tisiphone (1/3 raivottaresta), Jean Lee (murderer for money), Brigitte Mohnhaupt (RAF terrorist), Marcia (mistress of Commodus), Beate Zschäpe (far-right terrorist), Evelyn Frechette (singer, Dillingerin heila), Francoise Dior (naziaktivisti), Linda Mulhall (nirhasi äidin poikaystävän saxilla), Brigit Hogefeld (RAF terrorist), Martha Corey (Salem witchhunt victim), Marie Lafarge (arsenikkimurha), Debra Lafave (teacher, gave blow job to student), Enriqueta Marti (asasina en serie), Alse Young (witch hanging victim), Elizabeth Michael (actress, involuntary manslaughter: nasty boyfriend hit his head and died while beating her), Susannah Martin (witchcraft), Maria Mandl (Gefängnisoffizerin), Mary Frith (pickpocket and fence), Hanadi Jaradat (suicide bomber), Marie-Josephte Carrivau (mariticide), Gudrun Ensslin (RAF founder), Anna Anderson (vale-Anastasia), Ans van Dijk (jutku nazikollaboraattori), Elizabeth Holmes (bisneshuijari), Ghislaine Maxwell (Epsteinin haahka), Julianna Farrait (drugs), Yolanda Saldivar (embezzler, killer), Jodi Arias (convicted killer Jodi Ann Arias was born on July 9, 1980, in Salinas, California. In the summer of 2008, Arias made national headlines when she was charged with murdering her ex-boyfriend Travis Alexander, a 30-year-old member of the Church of Jesus Christ of Latter Day Saints who was working as a motivational speaker and insurance salesman. Aargh. Justifiable homicide.) Alyssa Bustamante (kid murder), Mary Kay Letourneau (kid abuser), Mirtha Young (drugs), Catherine Nevin (mariticide), Pilar Prades (maid), Irmgard Möller (terrorist), Christine Schürrer (krimi), Reem Riyashi (suicide bomber), Amy Fisher (jealous), Wafa Idris (suicide bomber), Jeanne de Clisson (ex-noblewoman), Christine Papin (maid murderer), Sally McNeil (body builder), Mariette Bosch (murderer), Sandra Ávila Beltrán (drugs), Alice Schwarzer (journalist), Andrea Yates (litter murderer), Mimi Wong (bar hostess), Pauline Nyiramasuhuko (criminal politician), Josefa Segovia (murderer), Martha Needle (serial killer), Antonina Makarova (war criminal), Mary Surratt (criminal businessperson), Dorothea Binz (officer), Leona Helmsley (tax evasion), Angela Rayola (reality tv personality), Léa Papin (maid murderer), Ursula Erikssson (kriminell mördare), Maria Petrovna (spree killer), Aafia Siddiqui (criminal), Fatima Bernawi (palestinian militant), La Voisin (fortune teller), Deniz Seki (singer), Rasmea Odeh (Arab activist), Hildegard Lächert (nurse), Sajida al-Rishawi (suicide bomber), Hayat Boumeddiene (ISIS groupie, nähty viimexi Al Holissa), Herta Ehlert (Lagerwächterin), Elizabeth Stride (seriös mördare), Adelheid Schulz (krimi), Jenny-Wanda Barkman (Wächter), Shi Jianqiao (pardoned assassin. The assassination of Sun Chuanfang was ethically justified as an act of filial piety and turned into a political symbol of the legitimate vengeance against the Japanese invaders.), Rosemary West (serial killer), Juana Bormann (Lagerwächterin), Kathy Boudin (criminal), Kate Webster (assassin), Teresa Lewis (murderer), Hermine Braunsteiner (Lagerwächterin), Flor Contemplacion (assassina), Constance Kent (fratricide), Tamara Samsonova (serial killer), Herta Bothe (Lagerwächterin), Maria Gruber (Mörderin), Irene Leidolf (möderin), Waltraud Wagner (Mörderin), Elaine Campione (criminelle), Greta Bösel (Pflegerin), Marie Manning (Mörderin), yevna-saltykova-2.jpg">Darya Nikolayevna Saltykova (sadist), Nora Parham (executed), Maria Barbella (assassina), Linda Wenzel (ISIS activist), Anna Marie Hahn (Mörderin), Suzane von Richthofen (parenticide), Charlotte Mulhall (murderer), Khioniya Guseva (kriminal), Daisy de Melker (serial killer nurse), Stephanija Meyer (Mörderin), Sinedu Tadesse (murderer), Ayat al-Akhras (suicide bomber), Akosita Lavulavu (minister of infrastructure and tourism), Sabrina de Sousa (criminal diplomat), Sally Basset (poisoner), Emma Zimmer (Aufseher), Mary Clement (serial killer), Irina Gaidamachuk (serial killer), Dagmar Overbye (serialmorder), Gesche Gottfried (Mörderin), Frances Knorr (serial killer), Beate Schmidt (Serienmörderin), Elizabeth Clarke (accused victim of witchcraft), Kim Sun-ja (serial killer), Olga Konstantinovana Briscorn (serial killer), Roxana Baldetti (politico), Rizana Nafeek (house maid), Margaret Scott (accused of witchcraft), Jacqueline Sauvage (meurtrier), Veronique Courjault (tueur en série), Barbara Erni (thief), Hilde Lesewitz (Schutzstaffel Wächterin), Thenmoli Rajaratnam (suicide bomber), etc. etc..
      ellauri213.html on line 438: After her freshman year, her roommate told her she was going to room with someone else. For her second and third years, Tadesse roomed with Trang Ho, a Vietnamese student who was well liked and doing well at Harvard, and Tadesse was obsessively fond of her. Tadesse was very needy in her demands for attention and became angry when Ho began to distance herself in their junior year. Tadesse apparently reacted with despair when Ho announced her decision to room with another group of girls their senior year, and the two women stopped speaking with each other after that. Tadesse purchased two knives and rope in advance. On May 28, 1995, Tadesse stabbed her roommate Ho 45 times with a hunting knife, killing her. Tadesse then hanged herself in the bathroom.
      ellauri214.html on line 41: So, yes, the cynicism is something that is completely accepted socially in Russia and really disgusts me. They think everybody is corrupt and cynical, including westerners, and on top of that, they are unbelievably lazy. I did not want my kids to grow up to be like that. So I moved to the West. Im a fund manager. Managing funds is fun, but dont expect two långa fikapauser per dag, with no shop talk allowed, like the Swedes.
      ellauri214.html on line 62: J. K. Rowling has lived atop a pyramid of admiration for many years. However, after learning the truth about the author, many fans have become ashamed they ever supported Rowling. Rowling’s books are not inclusive and the minorities that are included are either used to satisfy a diversity quota or fulfill a stereotype. Come to think of it, ALL types in the Potter series are stereotypes. It all becomes too obvious when they have no superpowers.
      ellauri214.html on line 72: Though Rowling’s transphobia has been publicized the most, fans have also begun to notice prejudice in her writing. Very few people of color are featured in J. K. Rowling’s books, and those that are have few lines and no detailed story arcs. One of the people of color given more thought was Cho Chang, Harry Potter’s love interest who was first introduced in the third book, Harry Potter and the Prisoner of Azkaban. Rowling’s racism toward Asians and lack of knowledge of Asian culture is clearly evident from just the name Cho Chang, which is a mix of Korean and Chinese surnames. Korea and China have a longstanding history as political adversaries and each country has a distinct culture. While Rowling went to great efforts in creating a wonderfully immersive wizarding world, she gave no thought to what Cho’s ethnicity is. Cho was also sorted into Ravenclaw house, the school house for those of high intelligence, playing into a common stereotype of Asians. The only other Asian characters mentioned in the series are Indian twins Padma and Pavarti Patil. While Rowling appears to have given more thought to these characters, placing Padma in Ravenclaw and breaking the Asian stereotype by placing Pavarti in Gryffindor, she ultimately fails to adequately write Asian characters. While Pavarti, as a member of Harry Potter’s house, was given more depth than Cho or her sister, many South Asian fans were irritated by the girls’ dresses in the fourth movie, Harry Potter and the Goblet of Fire. The twins wore dull and unflattering traditional Indian attire, which many saw as a mockery of Indian culture. Cho herself wore an East Asian style dress in this movie which was a mix of different Asian styles. Rowling continued her habit of stereotyping Asians in the Fantastic Beast Movies, the first of which was released in 2016 and set in the 1920’s, several decades before the Harry Potter series. In this pre-series, the only Asian representation is displayed in the form of a woman who has been cursed to turn into a beast. Fans may remember the villain Voldemort’s pet snake, Nagini, who served him throughout the Harry Potter series. Fans were surprised to learn when watching The Crimes of Grindelwald, the second movie in the Fantastic Beasts series, that Nagini was not always a snake, but was actually a woman who had been cursed to turn into a snake. In the movie, Nagini, in human form, is caged and forced to perform in a circus. Though we do not know how Nagini came to meet Voldemort, we do know that she became his servant and the keeper of a wee snakelike portion of his soul. This is more than slightly problematic. Not only was Nagini the only Asian representation in the film, but she was also a half-human who was forced to serve an evil white man for a great part of her existence. Author Ellen Oh commented on Nagini’s inclusion in the film saying “I feel like this is the problem when white people want to diversify and don’t actually ask POC how to do so. They don’t make the connection between making Nagini an Asian woman who later on becomes the pet snake of an EEVIL whitish man.”
      ellauri214.html on line 78: Rowling tweeted,“It should never have been a problem with anyone but Ron Weasley was indeed transgender. Ron was born female but magically transitioned to male at age four. Gender transition is much easier in the magical world than it is in the muggle world – yet so similar. You lose your wiener ang get a twat, or the other way round, as the case may be.” Käy kuin Susannan kissanpojalle Harrylle, joka muuttui taianomaisesti Ginnyxi.
      ellauri214.html on line 90: The Casual Vacancy, which one bookseller breathlessly predicted would be the biggest novel of the year, isn’t dreadful. It’s just dull. … The small-town characters are all deluded in their own way with their own tales to tell. The problem is, not one of them is interesting or even particularly likeable. Collectively, it’s all too easy to turn the page on them. The fanbase may find it a bit sour, as it lacks the Harry Potter books’ warmth and charm; all the characters are fairly horrible or suicidally miserable, or dead.
      ellauri214.html on line 104: I think JK Rowling did one thing exceptionally well: she had really interesting whimsical ideas based on everyday mundane life, and she can write these ideas out in a very visually exciting fashion. These little sparkles of crazy fun ideas can almost make you forget about the other glaring problems of the book. A lot of people (myself included) are attracted, or mesmerized by these whimsical sparkles of imagination. It's a fascinating magical world that's so imaginative and yet at the same time mirror our own.
      ellauri214.html on line 144: Despite supposedly living on the streets for years after running away from home, I have no basic concept of self-preservation. I throw tantrums, storm out, put myself in danger or being kidnapped by the bad guy, to create cheap tension and create stake for Hero and Villain's final confrontation.
      ellauri214.html on line 159: I'm entitled to be trusted even I've lied and betrayed the protagonist the first opportunity I have (because I have trust issue).
      ellauri214.html on line 228: The character Wayne Campbell uses the phrase after his partner Garth says, "Hey, are you through yet? 'Cause I'm getting tired of holding this", in regard to a picture he is holding.
      ellauri214.html on line 242: In his work Bibliotheca historica (Library of History), Diodorus Siculus wrote that the Amazons came from Libya in north Africa. Diodorus’s account is set in the time of myth. He wrote that the warriors’ most famous queen was Myrina, who lived before the hero Perseus saved the Ethiopian princess Andromeda from a sea monster. Myrina led her warriors to a great number of victories, including one against the mythical island of Atlantis. Myrina led a large army of 30,000 foot-soldiers and 3,000 cavalry against the Atlanteans. Diodorus claimed that the Amazon cavalry used tactics similar to those employed by the Parthians of west Asia, who fought the Roman general Crassus (c. 115— 53 BCE), firing arrows as they rode away from their enemies. The Atlanteans eventually surrendered to Myrina after she had captured and destroyed one of their cities, enslaving and carrying away the women and the children.
      ellauri214.html on line 245: Myrina was said to have conquered most of Libya, from where she led her army east toward Egypt. When she reached Egypt, she befriended the king before going on to defeat the Bedouin and Syrian peoples and conquering some of west Asia. Although the people of Cilicia (part of modern Turkey) were not defeated, they were willing to accept her rule. The Amazons also captured the island of Lesbos in the Aegean Sea, where Myrina founded the city of Mitylene, named for her sister. While sailing across the Aegean, Myrina got caught in a storm. The queen prayed to the Mother Goddess to save her and was guided to a deserted island, which she named Samothrace. Myrina’s good fortune, however, did not last forever: she died in battle against the Thracians and Scythians, led by the Thracian Mopsos. Without their great leader, the Amazons lost a series of battles to Mopsos. Eventually their empire collapsed and they withdrew back to Libya. Back to the drawing board. 2 thousand years later Myrinä's compatriot Muammar Gaddafi says in Swedish: Han är nöjd.
      ellauri214.html on line 437: Mutta jos haluut sen arkun kuitenkin, voit valkata etukäteen jonkun tosi kevyen ja sun ruumiin ei tarvi olla siinä hautajaisissa, eli pari kantajaa riittää.
      ellauri214.html on line 541: At 56, Tokarczuk is an invigorating presence: her black dreadlocks studded with bright blue beads, eyes rimmed with luminous turquoise. “Flights grew out of a time when I was travelling a lot,” she explains, at pains to stress how liberating this was for those raised under an oppressive communist regime. “I got my first passport in 1989, when I was 28. Wow.”
      ellauri214.html on line 547: Tokarczuk composed Flights as a “constellation novel”: a postmodern mosaic of meditations on all things in motion from travel-sized toiletries to the blood pumping through the human heart. National, emotional and temporal boundaries are crossed. Thoughts from a thoughtlessly flying semi-autobiographical narrator to Poland and the popular legend of Philippo Verheyen, the Flemish anatomist rumoured to have eaten his own amputated leg.
      ellauri214.html on line 549: This blurring of fact and fiction is intentional. Tokarczuk tells me she is often asked “Why we central Europeans don’t use a classical linear narrative, and my answer is that we don’t have such a history. Our perception is different. Poland was once a powerful imperial country that disappeared from maps of Europe for more than 100 years. It was partitioned and occupied by the Nazis and the Russians . . . We pop up and disappear and we do not trust what we are told to believe.”
      ellauri214.html on line 554: “I opened a history that was taboo from a number of perspectives: it was swept under the carpet by Catholics, Jews and communists. It took me eight years to research such fragile and contentious facts,” she says, “But after I won the Nike Jogging Shoe Award [Poland’s most prestigious literary prize], I was attacked by people who didn’t want to know about Poland’s dark past.” She sighs.
      ellauri214.html on line 592: Jumala on rosessi, tuumaa Olga Tokarczuk. Lautapelin antanut rabbi osoittautuu lyhyenlännäxi. Tänne tulee sota. Pelskit lähtevät Amerikkaan. Sinne ei tule sota, sieltä sodat lähtevät.
      ellauri216.html on line 78: Pystytissisellä on ikäisensä kundikaveri, jolla on takuulla lyhyempi kuin mulla. Ne pussailee ja kaivaa munaa farkkutaskusta. Keljua. Yöllä ne hässii yhtään piittaamatta seinänaapureista.
      ellauri216.html on line 198: The Didache (Greek: Διδαχή, translit. Didakhé, lit. "Teaching"), also known as The Lord's Teaching Through the Twelve Apostles to the Nations (Διδαχὴ Κυρίου διὰ τῶν δώδεκα ἀποστόλων τοῖς ἔθνεσιν), is a brief anonymous early Christian treatise written in Koine Greek, dated by modern scholars to the first or (less commonly) second century AD. The first line of this treatise is "The teaching of the Lord to the Gentiles (or Nations) by the twelve apostles". The text, parts of which constitute the oldest extant written catechism, has three main sections dealing with Christian ethics, rituals such as baptism and Eucharist, and Church organization. The opening chapters describe the virtuous Way of Life and the wicked Way of Death. The Lord's Prayer is included in full. Baptism is by immersion, or by affusion if immersion is not practical. Fasting is ordered for Wednesdays and Fridays. Two primitive Eucharistic prayers are given. Church organization was at an early stage of development. Itinerant apostles and prophets are important, serving as "chief priests" and possibly celebrating the Eucharist. Meanwhile, local bishops and deacons also have authority and seem to be taking the place of the itinerant ministry.
      ellauri216.html on line 399: Vaikka ikoni on ihmeen kautta säilynyt tähän päivään, sen kunto on melko keskinkertainen. Neitsyen ja Kristuksen kasvot ovat käytännössä näkymättömiä. Sävellys muistuttaa kovasti Putinin "Vladimiria", sillä erolla, että Kristuksen vasen jalka on raollaan. Loppujen lopuksi näin tapahtuu joskus, kun vauva takertuu äitiinsä - juuri tämä hetki näkyy kuvakkeissa, kuten Eleusa (Arkuus).
      ellauri216.html on line 415: Oi, kaikkein pyhin rouva Theotokos ja ikuinen neitsyt Maria, ainoa toivo meille syntisille! Me turvaudumme sinuun ja rukoilemme sinua, ikään kuin sinulla olisi suuri rohkeus Herran Jumalan ja Vapahtajamme Jeesuksen Kristuksen edessä, joka on sinusta syntynyt lihan mukaan. Älä halveksi kyyneleitämme, älä halveksi huokauksiamme, älä hylkää surujamme, älä häpeä toivoamme Sinuun, vaan rukoile äidillisillä rukouksillasi Herraa Jumalaa, antakoon Hän meille, syntisille ja arvottomille, vapautua synneistä ja sielun ja ruumiin intohimot, kuole maailmalle ja anna Hänen yksin elää kaikki elämämme päivät. Oi pyhä rouva Theotokos, matkusta ja suojele ja vartioi heitä, vapauta vangit vankeudesta, vapauta vaikeuksista kärsivät, lohduta murheissa, murheissa ja vastoinkäymisissä olevia, lievitä köyhyyttä ja kaikkea ruumiillista pahuutta ja anna kaikille kaikki tarvittava vatsa, hurskaus ja tilapäinen elämä. Pelasta, emäntä, kaikki maat ja kaupungit ja tämä kaupunki, vaikka tämä ihmeellinen ja pyhä kuvakkeesi annetaan lohdutukseksi ja suojaksi, pelasta minut nälänhädältä, tuholta, pelkurilta, tulvilta, tulelta, miekalta, ulkomaalaisten hyökkäykseltä, keskinäisestä riidasta ja käännä pois kaikki viha, joka on oikein kohdistettu meihin. Anna meille aikaa katumukselle ja kääntymykselle, pelasta meidät äkillisestä kuolemasta ja ilmesty meille poistumme aikana ilmestyen Neitsyt Jumalanäidille ja päästä meidät tämän aikakauden ruhtinaiden ilmavista koettelemuksista, varmista oikea käsi Kristuksen kauhealla tuomiolla ja tehkää meistä iankaikkisten siunausten perillisiä, ylistäkäämme ikuisesti Poikasi ja meidän Jumalamme suurenmoista Nimeä, Hänen alkamattoman Isänsä ja Pyhän ja Hyvän ja Hänen elämää antavan Henkensä kanssa, nyt ja ikuisesti ja ikuisesti ja ikuisesti. Aamen.
      ellauri216.html on line 497: Hans bog Mit System (1904) var en stor succes: allerede i 1905 kom den i engelsk oversættelse, og igennem årtier udkom nye udgaver på dansk og flere andre sprog af denne og andre af hans bøger. Även svenska böger gillar hen.
      ellauri216.html on line 552: Makarios lived only on his pulse and one bottle of lamp oil a year. Many fathers testified that his face used to glow in the dark; and thus appeared his name as “the glowing lantern.”
      ellauri216.html on line 554: Once, while he was praying, St Macarius heard a voice: “Macarius, you have not yet attained such perfection in virtue as two women who live in the city.” The humble ascetic went to the city, found the house where the women lived, and knocked. The women received him with joy, and he said, “I have come from the desert seeking you in order to learn of your good deeds. Tell me about them, and conceal nothing.”
      ellauri216.html on line 556: The women answered with surprise, “We live with our husbands, and we have not such virtues.” But the saint continued to insist, and the women then told him, “We married two brothers. After living together in one house for fifteen years, we have not uttered a single malicious nor shameful word, and we never quarrel among ourselves. We asked our husbands to allow us to enter a women’s monastery, but they would not agree. We vowed not to utter a single worldly word until our death.” Mainiota, tästä Andrew Tate pitäisi.
      ellauri216.html on line 558: St Macarius glorified God and said, “In truth, the Lord seeks neither virgins nor married women, and neither monks nor laymen, but values a person’s free intent, accepting it as the deed itself. He grants to everyone’s free will the grace of the Holy Spirit, which operates in an individual and directs the life of all who yearn to be saved.”
      ellauri216.html on line 707: Hieman riippuen luostaritraditiosta, munkkeudessa on useita eri asteita alkaen noviisista ja päätyen suureen skeemaan. Noviisi (venäjäksi: послушникъ, poslushnik) on ensimmäinen kokelasvaihe, jota seuraavat viitankantajamunkkeus (kreikaksi: ρασσοφορος, rassoforos; venäjäksi: рясофоръ, rjasofor), ns. pieni skeema (kreikaksi: σταυρφορος, stavroforos; venäjäksi: крестоносецъ, krestonosets, ”ristinkantaja”) ja lopulta suuri skeema (kreikaksi: μεγαλοσχημος, megaloschimos; venäjäksi: cхима, shima).
      ellauri216.html on line 763: Feofanin palvelutehtävä Tambovissa kesti vain neljä vuotta. Tuona lyhyenä aikana hän solmi lämpimät suhteet laumaansa. Hänellä oli kyky kuunnella ihmisten toiveita ja tarpeita, ja kaikki rakastivat häntä. Hän piti opetuspuheita melkein jokaisessa jumalanpalveluksessa, perusti useita seurakuntakouluja sekä hiippakunnallisen naisopiston. Monien aktiivisten tehtäviensä ohella hän kuitenkin tunsi yhä kasvavaa halua vetäytyä yksinäisyyteen. Eräällä hiippakunnan luostareiden tarkastusmatkalla hän vieraili Vyšan luostarissa. Sen ankara luostarisääntö ja luonnonkaunis sijainti miellyttivät häntä siinä määrin, että hän toivoi voivansa joskus asettua sinne pysyvästi.
      ellauri216.html on line 802: Haritonilla on nuori tyttö Nadja lisäpatjana yläkerran kesähuoneessa. Rizan sydän pehmeni ja sauva koveni Nadjan kyynelistä. Nadja Nadja soromnoo! kuuluu imugeenin kesähuoneesta. Täyttä puppua! dementoi isä Hariton. Lihani on kuoleutunut, kuten saimme kovan yrityxen jälkeen todeta. Ax, nyet, nyet!
      ellauri216.html on line 871: On hyvin tunnettua niille, jotka ovat ryhtyneet tutkimaan isien töitä ja niille, jotka yrittävät tätä hiljaisuuden elämää, että on ruumiin hesykiaa ja sielun hesykiaa. Edellinen viittaa ulkoisiin seikkoihin ja jälkimmäinen sisäisiin. Ruumiin hesykia viittaa tavallisesti hesykastisiin asentoihin ja pyrkimykseen minimoida ulkonaiset esitykset, aistien kautta sieluun tulevat ja vastaanotetut kuvat. Sielun hesykia tarkoittaa, että mieli saavuttaa kyvyn ja voiman olla vastaanottamatta mitään viettelyksiä harhoihin. Tässä tilassa ihmisen sielu omaten tarkkavaisuuden ja katumuksen keskittyy sydämeen. Mieli (energia) keskittyy sydämen paikkaan (olemus) yhdistyen siihen, siten saavuttaen osittaisen tai suuremman tiedon Jumalasta.
      ellauri216.html on line 881: Devekut, debekuth, deveikuth or deveikus (Heb. דבקות; Mod. Heb. "dedication", traditionally "clinging on" to God) is a Jewish concept referring to closeness to God. It may refer to a deep, trance-like meditative state attained during Jewish prayer, Torah study, or when performing the 613 mitzvot (the "commandments"). It is particularly associated with the Jewish mystical tradition.
      ellauri216.html on line 941: Lyhyenä rauhan aikana veljestö palasi luostariin, mutta luostari ei ehtinyt uudelleen vaurastua entiselleen, ennen kuin uusi sota alkoi. Vuonna 1611 ruotsalais-suomalainen sotilasosasto hyökkäsi Valamoon, josta munkit olivat juuri ennättäneet paeta ainoastaan pyhien Sergein ja Hermanin pyhäinjäännökset sekä vähän irtaimistoa mukanaan. Valamo tuhottiin maan tasalle ja sotilaat veivät mukanaan koko luostarin omaisuuden. Veljestö pakeni Vanhaan Laatokkaan (Staraja Ladoga) ja myöhemmin Tihvinään ja lopulta autioon Vasilin luostariin Vanhaan Laatokkaan. Valamon saaristo hiljeni yli sadaksi vuodeksi. 1710-luvun alkuun asti siellä oli vain muutamia talonpoikaistaloja.
      ellauri216.html on line 1036: Kun sotilaspastorit vielä neuvostoliittolaisen kenraalin pyynnöstä esittelivät lyhyesti pääluostarin aluetta, sotilas pahoitteli että taideteokset oli pääasiassa viety pois – mutta ei vaatinut niiden takaisin tuontia.
      ellauri216.html on line 1146: Päivittäinen liturginen ympyrä Valaamin luostarissa alkaa kello 17 pienellä soitolla. Sitten luetaan Valaam-luostarisääntö, kolme kaanonia akatistin kanssa Jumalanäidille ja anteeksiantoriitti. Säännön jälkeen veljet menevät ruokasaliin illalliselle. Kello 21:00 kello soi ilmoittaen hiljaisuuden ajan, jonka aikana munkit lukevat sellin sääntöä, joka koostuu Jeesus-rukouksesta ja kumartumisesta. Matiinia, jota edeltää Midnight Offia, vietetään luostarissa kello 5. Tämän jälkeen tarjoillaan varhainen jumalallinen liturgiapala. Palvelu päättyy yhdeksännen alussa. Aamuteen (sello) ja lyhyen tauon jälkeen luostarit, aloittelijat ja työläiset menevät dekaaneille määrättyihin tottelevaisuustreeneihin.
      ellauri217.html on line 35: ye/images/7/77/Oscar.jpg/revision/latest?cb=20150609201456" width="100%" />
      ellauri217.html on line 71: It was this book that earned Naguib Mahfouz condemnation from Omar Abdel-Rahman in 1989, who called on him to repent or be killed, Abdel-Rahman also claimed that "If this sentence had been passed on Naguib Mahfouz when he wrote Children of the Alley, Salman Rushdie would have realized that he had to stay within bounds" after the Nobel Prize had revived interest in it. As a result, in 1994 – a day after the anniversary of the prize – Mahfouz was attacked and stabbed in the neck by two extremists outside his Cairo home. Mahfouz survived the attack, yet he suffered from its consequences until his death in 2006. Salman sai myös luovuttaa silmän silmästä loppupeleissä, yhtä tyhmänä kuin Daabas. Silmäpuoli Sinbad merenkulkija, Popeye the sailor man!
      ellauri217.html on line 137: Toinen Muhammedia koskeva lähde ovat 800-luvulta alkaen kootut lyhyet suullisesta perinteestä kootut tarinat, joissa kerrotaan, mitä Muhammed jossakin tilanteessa sanoi tai teki. Tämä hadith-kirjallisuus muodostaa yhdessä Koraanin kanssa islamilaisen lain eli šarian perustan. Sen luotettavimpana pidetty osa on niin sanotut "kuusi kirjaa" eli kutub al-sittah. Hadith-kertomukset ovat yhteydestä irrotettuja anekdootteja, jotka eivät kerro mitään Muhammedin elämänvaiheista, mutta kertovat mikä on sunna, eli Muhammedin antama ihanteellinen esikuva Jumalan tahdon mukaisesta elämästä. Jumalan lain sisältyminen Pyhään kirjaan ja profeetan esikuvaan muistuttaa juutalaisuutta, missä vastaavasti Mooseksen sunna oli perusta Mišnalle, joka yhdessä Tooran kanssa muodosti halakha-lain.
      ellauri217.html on line 160: Muhammedin isä Abdullah kuului Mekan pääheimoon Quraišiin, mutta hän kuoli jo ennen pojan syntymää. Muhammedin äiti Amina kuoli pian miehensä jälkeen. Niinpä Muhammed kasvoi ensin isoisänsä Abdulmuttalibin ja tämän kuoltua setänsä Abu Talibin suojissa. Tämä otti Muhammedin jo lapsena mukaan kauppamatkoilleen muun muassa Syyriaan. Nuoruudessaan Muhammed tunnettiin lempinimellä Idi Amin. Se tarkoitti "suht luotettavaa". Tarina Muhammedin urpoudesta muistuttaa Mooseksesta urpona löytölapsena sekä Rooman perustajista (Romulus ja Remus), jotka olivat susia jo syntyessään kuten Fiat 124. Muhammedin ulkonäöstä Ibn Said toteaa, että se oli blondi. Samaan viittaa Ibn Hisham. Äiti ja isäoletettu olivat mustanpuhuvia karvakäsiä.
      ellauri217.html on line 382: Vittu muuten miten Sanomien tiedeplärä oli taas vastenmielinen.Tieteen nimissä siinä argumentoidaan että GMO lasten suunnittelu on helt okej ja ryssät perisyntisiä miehittäjiä alkaen Pietarista ja päättyen Staliniin ja Putiniin. Typerä turkulaisämmä ei muista enää metrin halkoja. Niillä lämmitettiin ennen Debbin buduaaria. Lehden kiiltopaperi on yhtä limaista kuin sisällys.
      ellauri217.html on line 704: The Council of Jerusalem is generally dated to 48 AD, roughly 15 to 25 years after the crucifixion of Jesus (between 26 and 36 AD). Acts 15 and Galatians 2 both suggest that the meeting was called to debate whether or not male Gentiles who were converting to become followers of Jesus were required to become circumcised; the rite of circumcision was considered execrable and repulsive during the period of Hellenization of the Eastern Mediterranean, and was especially adversed in Classical civilization both from ancient Greeks and Romans, which instead valued the foreskin positively.
      ellauri217.html on line 715: The Western version of Acts (see Acts of the Apostles: Manuscripts) adds the negative form of the Golden Rule ("and whatever things ye would not have done to yourselves, do not do to another").
      ellauri219.html on line 42: A girl with kaleidoscope eyes
      ellauri219.html on line 44: Look for the girl with the sun in her eyes
      ellauri219.html on line 48: The girl with kaleidoscope eyes
      ellauri219.html on line 180: The next day Jacot-Guillarmod and De Righi attempted to depose Crowley from expedition leadership. The argument could not be settled, and Jacot-Guillarmod, De Righi, and Pache decided to retreat from Camp V to Camp III. At 5 pm they left with four porters on a single rope, but a fall precipitated an avalanche that killed three porters as well as Alexis Pache. People in Camp V heard "frantic cries" and Reymond immediately descended to help, but Crowley stayed in his tent. That evening he wrote a letter to a Darjeeling newspaper stating that he had advised against the descent and that "a mountain 'accident' of this sort is one of the things for which I have no sympathy whatever". The next day Crowley passed the site of the accident without pausing nor speaking to the survivors and left on his own to Darjeeling, where he took the expedition funds, which mostly had been paid by Jacot-Guillarmod. The latter would get at least some of his money back after threatening to make public some of Crowley's pornographic poetry.
      ellauri219.html on line 207: Bruce was arrested again in West Hollywood. The charge this time was that the comedian had used the word "schmuck", an insulting Yiddish word that was also considered a term for "penis". In April the next year he was barred from entering the United Kingdom by the Home Office as an "undesirable alien".
      ellauri219.html on line 236: Born in 1938, American painter and illustrator Richard Merkin was enamored with the early jazz period that flourished in the years before his birth. His modernist style matched the abstraction of jazz music, and also inspired Peter Blake’s tribute artwork, Souvenirs For Richard Merkin, created in 1966.
      ellauri219.html on line 260: Born in Italy in 1870, Simon Rodia emigrated to the United States with his brother when he was 15. Living in various places for the next 35 years, Rodia finally settled in the Watts district of Los Angeles in 1920, and began constructing the Watts Towers the following year. Consisting of 17 interconnected sculptures, the project took Rodia 33 years to complete.
      ellauri219.html on line 265: Dylan and The Beatles influenced each other throughout the 60s, each spurring the other on to making music that pushed boundaries and reshaped what was thought possible of the simple “pop song.” It was Dylan who convinced John Lennon (No.62) to write more personal songs in the shape of “Help!,” while The Beatles showed Bob what could be achieved with a full band behind him, helping the latter “go electric” in 1965. It was with George Harrison (No.65), however, that Dylan struck up the longest-lasting friendship; the two played together often in the years that followed, forming The Traveling Wilburys and guesting on each other’s projects.
      ellauri219.html on line 280: Published in 1954, Aldous Huxley’s work, The Doors Of Perception, was required reading for the countercultural elite in the 60s. Detailing the author’s own experience of taking mescaline, it chimed with the consciousness-expanding ethos of the decade, and even gave The Doors their name. He was nominated for the Nobel Prize for Literature in seven different years and died on November 22, 1963, the same day that both With The Beatles was released and President John F Kennedy was assassinated. Aldousin veli oli Sir Julian Sorell Huxley (22. kesäkuuta 1887 - 14. helmikuuta 1975) oli brittiläinen biologi, joka kannusti pelagiolaista Teilhard de Chardinia. Huxleyt oli kaiken kaikkiaan hyvin suspekteja.
      ellauri219.html on line 314: Like Max Miller (No.37), Tommy Handley was another British wartime comedian. Born in Liverpool, he would have been a local hero for The Beatles, and his BBC radio show, ITMA (“It’s That Man Again”) ran for ten years, from 1939 to 1949, until Handley’s sudden death from a brain hemorrhage.
      ellauri219.html on line 344: The larger one with the mustache from Laurel And Hardy, Oliver played the irascible foil to the hapless Stan (No.28). A recording by the duo (“The Trail Of The Lonesome Pine”) reached No.2 in the UK singles chart in December 1975.
      ellauri219.html on line 364: One of two wax dummies borrowed from a local hairdresser. This one wears a striped red-and-yellow hat, while its counterpart (No.36) sports a green bonnet.
      ellauri219.html on line 404: A Hollywood heartthrob of the 30s, 40s, and 50s, Tyrone Power was known for starring as the titular hero in the swashbuckling adventure film The Mark Of Zorro, though he also played the role of outlaw cowboy Jesse James, and starred in musicals, romantic comedies, and war movies.
      ellauri219.html on line 414: It’s probably fair to say that Dr. Livingstone was to geographic exploration what The Beatles were to sonic innovation: fearless, ever questing, and mapping out new territories for the world. The famous “Dr. Livingstone, I presume?” saying remains in common use today, and can be traced back to a meeting between Livingstone and explorer Henry Morton Stanley, who’d been sent on an expedition to find the former, who had been missing for six years. Livingstone was discovered in the town of Ujiji, in what is now known as Tanzania.
      ellauri219.html on line 419: An Olympic gold-medallist of the 20s, Johnny Weissmuller first made a name for himself as a swimmer before turning his eye to Hollywood. It was as Tarzan that he made his biggest mark on popular culture, returning to the role in a series of films and devising an iconic yell forever associated with the jungle hero.
      ellauri219.html on line 444: Like Tommy Handley, Albert Stubbins (No.24) was a local Liverpool hero. Born in Wallsend, he became center-forward for Liverpool FC in 1946, where he helped the team win the League Championship the following year.
      ellauri219.html on line 454: Speaking to the BBC in 1965, John Lennon (No.62) declared his love for Alice In Wonderland and Alice Through The Looking Glass, revealing, “I usually read those two about once a year, because I still like them.” It’s perhaps no surprise, then, that the man who wrote the poem “The Walrus And The Carpenter,” which influenced Lennon’s lyrics for “I Am The Walrus,” is given a prominent display on the Sgt. Pepper’s album cover. P.S. Carroll oli pedofiilien ihan terävintä kärkeä.
      ellauri219.html on line 459: Immortalized in the 1962 film Lawrence Of Arabia, in which he was played by Peter O’Toole, TE Lawrence was a British archaeologist and military officer who became a liaison to the Arab forces during the Arab Revolt of 1916 to 1918. His 1922 book, Seven Pillars Of Wisdom, recounted his experiences during the war and laid the foundations for much of his legend.
      ellauri219.html on line 464: The Beatles were famously photographed with boxing legend Cassius Clay in February 1964, in Miami, Florida. But it’s a wax model of boxer Sonny Liston, the man that Clay defeated later that month in order to become the heavyweight champion, who appears on the Sgt. Pepper cover. Liston had held the heavyweight title for two years, from 1962 to ’64, before losing it to Clay, who subsequently changed his name to Muhammad Ali.
      ellauri219.html on line 480: Barely visible above John Lennon’s right shoulder (No.62), Albert Einstein was a physicist whose theory of relativity was light years ahead of its time and changed the world forever.
      ellauri219.html on line 581: Two of his brothers died in childhood because they had contracted fatal illnesses from him. In 1928, the seven-year-old Rawls contracted diphtheria. His brother Bobby, younger by 20 months, visited him in his room and was fatally infected. The next winter, Rawls contracted pneumonia. Another younger brother, Tommy, caught the illness from him and died.

      Hahaa, sun vika John! Olet perisyntinen!
      ellauri219.html on line 583: At Princeton, Rawls was influenced by Norman Malcolm, Ludwig Wittgenstein's dumb student. During his last two years at Princeton, he "became deeply concerned with theology and its doctrines." He considered attending a seminary to study for the Episcopal priesthood and wrote an "intensely religious senior thesis (BI)." In his 181-page long thesis titled "Meaning of Sin and Faith," Rawls attacked Pelagianism because it "would render the Cross of Christ to no effect." His argument was partly drawn from Karl Marx's book On the Jewish Question, which criticized the idea that natural inequality in ability could be a just determiner of the distribution of wealth in society. Even after Rawls became an atheist, many of the anti-Pelagian arguments he used were repeated in A Theory of Justice. Pelagianism is a heretical Christian theological position that holds that the original sin did not taint human nature and that humans by divine grace have free will to achieve human perfection. Pelagius (c. 355 – c. 420 AD), an ascetic and philosopher from the British Isles, taught that God could not command believers to do the impossible, and therefore it must be possible to satisfy all divine commandments. He also taught that it was unjust to punish one person for the sins of another; therefore, infants are born blameless. Pelagius accepted no excuse for sinful behavior and taught that all Christians, regardless of their station in life, should live unimpeachable, sinless lives, or else... Se oli tollanen humanisti, mitä Hippo aivan erityisesti inhosi. Vittu eihän sitten mitään kirkkoa ja pappeja edes tarvittaisi. Jeesus jäisi työttömäxi, Jahve eläkkeelle.
      ellauri219.html on line 592: Following the surrender of Japan, Rawls became part of General MacArthur's occupying army and was promoted to sergeant. But he became disillusioned with the military when he saw the aftermath of the atomic blast in Hiroshima. Rawls then disobeyed an order to discipline a fellow soldier, "believing no punishment was justified," and was "demoted back to a private." Disenchanted, he left the military in January 1946.
      ellauri219.html on line 597: In his autobiographical essay, “On My Religion,” Rawls explains why he abandoned his orthodox Christian beliefs in spite of the deeply religious temperament that informed his life and writings. In particular, he recounts how his personal experiences during the Second World War, and especially his awareness of the Holocaust, led him to question whether prayer was possible. “To interpret history as expressing God’s will, God’s will must accord with the most basic ideas of justice as we know them. For what else can the most basic justice be? Thus, I soon came to reject the idea of the supremacy of the divine will as [like the Holocaust] also hideous and evil.” Furthermore, by studying the history of the Inquisition Rawls came to “think of the denial of religious freedom and liberty of conscience as a very great evil,” such that “it makes the claims of the Popes to infallibility impossible to accept.” Finally, his reading of Jean Bodin’s thoughts about toleration led him to claim that religions should be “each reasonable, and accept the idea of public reason and its idea of the domain of the political.” Against this background, it is no wonder that Rawls considers the very concept of religious truth as authoritarian and intolerant, and the ensuing persecution of dissenters as the curse of Christianity.
      ellauri219.html on line 612: Pussycat, pussycat, I love you, yes, I do
      ellauri219.html on line 618: So go and make up your big little pussycat eyes
      ellauri219.html on line 619: Pussycat, pussycat, I love you, yes, I do
      ellauri219.html on line 620: You and your pussycat eyes
      ellauri219.html on line 626: Pussycat, pussycat, I love you, yes, I do
      ellauri219.html on line 627: You and your pussycat lips (whoa whoa), you and your pussycat eyes (whoa whoa)
      ellauri219.html on line 695: ”..Jos tahdot kuitenkin liittää tämän pyrkimyksesi ("tämä pyrkimys" on siis pyrkimys jumalaa kohti hänen itsensä takia. minun huomautus.) voidaksesi paremmin pitää siitä kiinni, ota vain yksi lyhyt yksitavuinen sana. Mitä lyhyempi valitsemasi sana on, sitä paremmin se sopii yhteen Hengen työn kanssa. Tällaiseksi sanaksi sopii God (Jumala) tai Love (rakkaus), Valitse niistä jompikumpi tai mikä tahansa muu sana joka sinua miellyttää (lihavointi minun). Pidä vain huoli siitä, että se on yksitavuinen. Jos puhut suomea, voit ottaa vaikka sanan "se", tai "no", tai molemmat ("no se"). Kiinnitä sana sydämeesi äläkä luovu siitä mistään hinnasta. Tämä sana on sinulle keihäs ja kilpi, vallitsipa ympärilläsi sota tai rauha. Tällä sanalla voit hyökätä ympärilläsi olevaan pilveen ja pimeyteen. Tällä sanalla voit pakottaa kaikki ajatuksesi unohduksen pilven alle. Niinpä jos joku ajatus käy kimppuusi tiukaten sinulta, mitä etsit, älä uhraa sille enempää sanoja kuin vain tämä yksi. (Ei "De nada" eikä "Aiuto", niissä on 2 tavua liikaa! "Fuck" tai "Cunt" ovat käypiä.) Ja jos ajatuksesi tarjoutuu suuressa oppineisuudessaan tulkitsemaan sinulle tätä sanaa ja selittämään sen kaikki merkitykset, kerro, että haluat säilyttää sen kokonaisena, et pienittynä tai pilkottuna. Jos näin pysyt lujana, jättää ajatuksesikin sinut rauhaan. (Don't I know: kun ei pysy kovana, ajatuxet vaivaavat.) Tämä johtuu siitä, ettet salli sen ravita itseään niillä hyvänmakuisilla mietiskelyillä, joista äsken oli puhe."
      ellauri219.html on line 796: No it is not because of Trump. People outside of America slagged off the US in the Clinton years, and the Nixon years, and the Eisenhower years. The negative perception was cemented in the 60s, and everything since has been confirmation bias. So what had happened? Two obviously invasive lost wars in Indochina and nasty machinations here and there, Middle East and South America in particular. Pretty obvious what the fuckheads were (and are) up to: world conquest for the cause of American capitalism, nothing less.
      ellauri219.html on line 807: (Why yes. That rhetoric of privilege and punching up does work outside of America just as well as within it.)
      ellauri219.html on line 813: But the States, prodded on by its own exceptionalist rhetoric, said they were different. That they were making the world Safe For Democracy. That they desired Liberty for All. And when the US acted as any imperial power must, and did some (well, a lot of) grubby things, there were a lot of outsiders who wanted to believe—and who felt betrayed. And they’ve held the kind of grudge against America and its optimistic, American Dream mass culture, that they did not hold against previous imperial powers. Aw, who am I kidding, of course they did.
      ellauri219.html on line 954: The police blanketed the 23-year-old woman and asked her questions to determine her state of mind. She was unable to answer who she was, what day it was, or what kind of moron the President of the United States was. She was able to explain that she was “bipolar,” but though she was on “prescription medication,” she was uncertain if she had been taking it recently. A neighbor gave her some clothes, and she was taken to jail on charges of open or gross lewdness. The dog meanwhile was taken stark naked into the custody of Animal Control on similar charges and executed fortwith without trial. "We had to let him go", said the sheriff ruefully.
      ellauri219.html on line 960: Judge Timothy Hicks sentenced Peterson at once to fifteen years in prison, which is in excess of the state sentencing guidelines. Judge Hicks feared that Peterson may strike again, commenting, “I fear for what havoc he might do in the pet community.”
      ellauri219.html on line 967: Lyhyenläntä itäeurooppalaisen näköinen Matt koittaa kömpelösti päästä suoratukkaisen viivasuisen mielenosoitusnaisen hilloviivalle. Ei tärppää. Klaara Kotkon valomies Miles pukeutuu kuin Esa Saarinen tai kers. Pippurin bändin soittajat. Radio Cityn fresko on kitschiä. Jalkapallokentän kokoinen art deco sali on väärällään homomiehiä.
      ellauri219.html on line 971: The Rockettes are an American leg-kicking twat-flashing dance company. Founded in 1925 (97 years ago) in St. Louis, they have, since 1932 (90 years ago), performed at Radio City Music Hall in New York City. Until 2015, they also had a touring company. They are best known for starring in the Radio City Christmas Spectacular, an annual Christmas show, and for performing annually since 1957 at the Macy's Thanksgiving Day Parade in New York.
      ellauri219.html on line 973: The Rockettes were created in 1925, but the first non-white Rockette, a Japanese-born woman named Setsuko Maruhashi, was not hired until 1985. The Rockettes did not allow dark-skinned dancers into the dance line until 1987. The justification for this policy was that such women would supposedly distract from the consistent look of the dance group.The first African American Rockette was Jennifer Jones; selected in 1987, she made her debut in 1988 at the Super Bowl halftime show. The next person with a visible but different disability hired by the Rockettes (Sydney Mesher, missing a left hand) was hired in 2019. The first Rockette with hairy bollocks and a huge boner remains to be hired yet.
      ellauri219.html on line 975: Underworld (also released as Paying the Penalty) is a 1927 American silent crime film directed by Josef von Sternberg and starring Clive Brook, Evelyn Brent and George Bankrupt. The film launched Sternberg's eight-year collaboration with Paramount Pictures, with whom he would produce his seven films with actress Marlene Dietrich. Journalist and screenwriter Ben Hecht won an Academy Award for Best Original Story. Time felt the film was realistic in some parts, but disliked the Hollywood cliché of turning an evil character's heart to gold at the end. Filmmaker and surrealist Luis Buñuel named Underworld as his all time favorite film. Critic Andrew Sarris cautions that Underworld does not qualify as "the first gangster film" as Sternberg "showed little interest in the purely gangsterish aspects of the genre" nor the "mechanics of mob power." Film critic Dave Kehr, on the other hand, writing for the Chicago Reader in 2014, rates Underworld as one of the great gangster films of the silent era. "The film established the fundamental elements of the gangster movie: a hoodlum hero; ominous, night-shrouded city streets; floozies; and a blazing finale in which the cops cut down the protagonist."
      ellauri219.html on line 988: Pian tämän jälkeen Parker lähti länsirannikolle, Kaliforniaan. Lyhyen oleskelun jälkeen muu yhtye päätti palata New Yorkiin, mutta Parker jäi Los Angelesiin, jossa hänen itsetuhoinen elämäntyylinsä, runsas heroiinin ja alkoholin käyttö, riistäytyivät käsistä kuin sananparren mopo. Suunnittelusession jälkeen Parker sytytti hotellihuoneensa tuleen, ja hänet passitettiin Camarillon mielisairaalaan.
      ellauri219.html on line 991: Yhtyeen hajoamisen jälkeen Parker alkoi tehdä konsertteja ja levytyksiä jousiorkesterin kanssa. Tunnetuin näistä jousilevytyksistä oli ”Just Friends”, jonka Parker on maininnut onnistuneimmaksi esityksekseen. Mutta monien nykyisten jazzharrastajien mielestä ne eivät ole kestäneet aikaa kovinkaan hyvin.
      ellauri219.html on line 1024: The American sublime, as Harold Bloom has said, “is always also an American irony”. Jayne Mansfield's bumper bullets. People hugging their pit bulls sexually and getting 15 years for it. Do you know what Teilhard de Chardin called the “noosphere”? Not the foggiest. I think what Rachel has in mind here is the Internet. Who is or was Teilhard anyway? Teilhard was mentioned by Pynchon, see album 69. Not a very memorable character apparently. Tässä Pierren tärkeimpiä läppiä, aika heruttavia:
      ellauri220.html on line 37:

      Lyhyen matkan ohjusten häpykolot pursuavat ulos paketista.

      ellauri220.html on line 99: Saw many I loved in the street or ferry-boat or public assembly, yet never told them a word,
      ellauri220.html on line 185: Apropos kuningatar, Englannin sievä Elisabeth joka nousi valtaistuimelle meidän syntymämme aikoihin, on lopultakin heittänyt nurkkaan lusikan. Kokeileekohan Charles III peilin edessä kärpännahkatakkia sanoen kuvajaiselleen: Yes yes yes!
      ellauri220.html on line 267: MarvinMarvin is the baseball memorabilia collector who spends years researching the legacy of the baseball he eventually sells to Nick.
      ellauri220.html on line 275: Klara SaxKlara Sax is a pop artist who recycles rubbish into fine art. As a married housewife, she has an affair with Nick Shay, 20 years her junior.
      ellauri220.html on line 280: Bobby ThomsonBobby Thomson is the Giants player who hit the home run that became known as the "Shot Heard Round the World."
      ellauri220.html on line 504: When the work uses this trope on multiple groups of people speaking different languages, things can get complicated. The work may only translate the language of one group and keep the other group speaking its native language. In these cases, the translated group is always the one the audience is supposed to sympathize with, while the untranslated one is portrayed as more "foreign."
      ellauri220.html on line 509:
      "And you never have Romans who are Italians! They´re always played by some English actor going ´Oh Thomas, where is my brother, Fellatio? Bring him hither.´"

      ellauri220.html on line 637: Pano nro 2 alkaa s. 821. Se on vielä edellistä vaisumpi. Entiset tissit takapuoli ja pehko. Kivexet olivat hiänen kädessään ja hiän puristi niitä kevyesti kuin Rauri paskamakkaraa. Aktin (mikä sana) jälkeen Nick kertoo kannustaneensa Dodgerseja, muttei enää. Eiköhän tää ollut tässä. Kiitos ja näkemiin.
      ellauri220.html on line 641: Dagot lähtee 2 mutiaisen perään karvat pystyssä kuin reviiriä vartioivat koirat. Koiraskoirat. Sitähän ne ovatkin. Tizzone tarkoittaa nokikeppi. Lillolla on jotain pöljiä sananjohtoyrityxiä, turha vaiva, kylse vaan tarkoittaa savunaamoja. Ne alkoi vallata slummeja dagoilta niiden vetäytyessä jonnekin vihreämmille laitumille tai autuaammille mezästysmaille. Ensin pakenivat palefacet, sitten lakukepit. Tänä päivänä koko Bronx on täynnä märkäselkiä.
      ellauri221.html on line 73: The club’s name derives from its head waiter, Edward Poodle. Poodles quickly built up a prestigious reputation among London’s powerful and wealthy classes, and its membership reflected this, numbering numerous politicians and members of the British aristocracy. Members have included former British Prime Minister Winston Churchill, John Perfumo (a politician who resigned after the notorious Perfumo affair scandal, whereby he was revealed as having an affair with 19-year-old model Helen Keller), philosopher David Hume, economist and philosopher Adam Smith, and author Ian Fleming, creator of the world’s most famous fictional spy, James Bond.
      ellauri221.html on line 75: Fleming used to visit the club for lunch, though it’s not known whether he enjoyed the club’s famous Agent Orange Fool, an indulgent traditional British dessert made with fruit and cream that became synonymous with Poodles. It’s said that Fleming based Blades, a fictional private members’ club in the James Bond series (mentioned in two Bond novels, 1955’s Moonraker and You Only Live Twice in 1964) largely on Poodles. Certainly, the architectural features and opulent décor of Blades described by Fleming in his novels both bear similarities to Poodles.
      ellauri221.html on line 103: yed, and 1,400 brothels were closed, including 180 in Paris. Many brothels were converted into hotels, which prostitutes continued to use, so haha! James Bond was coldcocked by this cruel and inhumane law. He switched immediately to drinking only Tittinger.
      ellauri221.html on line 294: Doctor Jolly Goodhead is a fictional character from the James Bond franchise, portrayed by Lois Chiles. She does not appear in any of the Ian Fleming novels, only in the film version of Moonraker (1979), but her character is similar to that of Gala Brand, the female lead in the original novel Moonraker (1955), by way of being James´s major lay this time round. In 25 years, James has graduated from screwing a secretary to schtupping a doctor of science. Way to go, Bond girls! Right on!
      ellauri221.html on line 302: Bond meets Goodhead again once Drax puts them under ´Moonraker 5´ to be incinerated by the lift-off. They escape and are able to pilot ´Moonraker 6´. After following Drax to his space station, Goodhead and Bond listen to Drax´s speech and leave. Jaws later captures them after the first globe is launched. Drax tells Bond about his plan about having perfect human beings on his earth, with no physical peculiarity or ugliness, but this is overheard by Jaws. He sees that because of his ugly steel teeth, he will be destroyed alongside his ugly girlfriend, Dolly, so turns on Drax and helps Bond and Goodhead to fight Drax´s men. After Bond goes to defeat Drax, Goodhead helps him, and Dolly and Jaws get off on the self-destructing space station, escaping on a pod of their own into Earth´s atmosphere. Bond and Goodhead go after the globe, nearly destroying its inhabitants, but not quite. Bugger it.
      ellauri222.html on line 68: In Leader's Bellow biography Vol 2, “Love and Strife,” the novel “Herzog” is published on the very first page and reaches No. 1 on the best-seller list, supplanting John le Carré’s ‘The Spy Who Came In From the Cold.’ Never again would Bellow, about to turn 50 years old, lack for wealth, power, awards or flunkies to stand by him, ready to take his coat and do his bidding. The temptation for someone in his position was to become an insufferable, spoiled monster. And Bellow quickly gave in to temptation.
      ellauri222.html on line 70: Bellow’s bad temper in the late ’60s was by no means directed exclusively at would-be biographers, radical students and aggrieved wives. Bellow had so many targets to attack, whether insulting them face to face or in blistering letters or put-downs circulated through intermediaries. One of his favorite one-liners ran: “Let’s you and him fight.” The most salient recipients of Bellow’s bad temper in this biography were his three sons, each from a different mother — the oldest 21 when this volume starts, the youngest just 1 year old and about to be abandoned after yet another divorce.
      ellauri222.html on line 98: Saul Bellow is the only American Jewish author to have won the Nobel Prize in Literature, and has also won three Pulitzer Prizes. In his new book, Greg Bellow, who holds a Ph.D. from the California Institute of Social Work and was a practicing psychotherapist for many years, divides his father’s life into “Young Saul” and “Old Saul.” He describes Young Saul as a sociable and funny man, full of questions. During the 1930s and ’40s, Saul was a Marxist and a “genuine believer” in radical philosophy. He believed that World War II was a war between communism and capitalism, and he was convinced that “come the Revolution there will be a flowering of society,” according to Greg’s book.
      ellauri222.html on line 123: But Chicago was a city of immigrants. It also had a large Jewish population—by 1931, according to Leader, nearly three hundred thousand in a city of 3.3 million. All the Bellow children assimilated happily and all became well off. Saul is often associated with the University of Chicago, where he taught for many years as a member of the legendary Committee on Social Thought. He was a student there, but for less than two years. He had to withdraw for financial reasons (a truck driver was killed in an accident at his father’s coal yard and the insurance had lapsed), and he transferred to Northwestern, from which he graduated in 1937.
      ellauri222.html on line 135: Still, in New York and at Princeton, where he spent a year teaching creative writing, Bellow made friends with many of the critics who dominated literary life in the nineteen-fifties. They found him bright, congenial, and sufficiently bookish, and especially admired what they took to be his poise and real-world savvy. Irving Howe thought Bellow “very strong-willed and shrewd in the arts of self-conservation.” “Even his egocentricity added to his charms,” said William Phillips, the co-editor, with Philip Rahv, of Partisan Review. “Stunning—the ultimate beautiful young Jewish intellectual incarnate,” Alfred Kazin’s wife, Ann Birstein, remembered. Bellow maintained the allure by cultivating just the right amount of aloofness. “I was the cat who walked by himself,” as he put it.
      ellauri222.html on line 143: As everyone has said, Bellow not least, “Augie March” was the breakthrough book. Bellow ascribed its origin to a visionary moment. In 1948, he had gone with Anita to Paris for two years, supported by a Guggenheim fellowship. (Bellow hated Paris.) He was at work on a novel called “The Crab and the Butterfly,” which apparently concerned two men arguing in a hospital room. In the version of the epiphany he told to Roth, he was walking to his writing studio one morning when he was distracted by the routine Parisian sight of the street gutters being flushed:
      ellauri222.html on line 153: Augie is a street-urchin autodidact. Never taught how to write a proper sentence, he invents a style of his own. He is an epigrammist and a raconteur, La Rochefoucauld in the body of a precocious twelve-year-old, a Huck Finn who has taken too many Great Books courses. With this strange mélange of ornate locutions, Chicago patois, Joycean portmanteaus, and Yiddish cadences, Bellow found himself able to produce page after page of acrobatic verbal stunts:
      ellauri222.html on line 167: Most reviews were enthusiastic, though. “Augie March” was not a best-seller, but it sold well and won a major award. The year it came out, Bellow took a job at Bard College. He and Anita were separated, and he had a new girlfriend, Sondra Tschacbasov, called Sasha. She was sixteen years younger and strikingly attractive. They met at Partisan Review, where she worked as a secretary.
      ellauri222.html on line 171: Saul and Sasha got married in 1956, after Bellow had obtained a Nevada divorce. Sasha accepted the domestic role that Bellow insisted on without demur. She says that when they had a son, Adam, Bellow told her that the baby was her responsibility—he was too old to raise another kid. In 1958, Bellow was offered a one-year position at the University of Minnesota. He insisted that Ludwig receive an appointment as well; the university obliged, and the families moved to Minneapolis together.
      ellauri222.html on line 175: Devastated, Bellow went to Europe on a cultural-diplomacy junket for the State Department. While abroad, he engaged assiduously in what Leader calls “womanizing.” He returned to Bard, in the summer of 1960, and took up with a visiting French professor named Rosette Lamont. The divorce from Sasha went through in June. For a while, Bellow and Sasha had the same lawyer, who was pleased to be representing both parties in the hottest divorce in town, but eventually Bellow was persuaded to retain his own attorney.
      ellauri222.html on line 177: In November, Bellow learned from a possibly overly conscientious babysitter that Sasha and Ludwig were sleeping together. It turned out that the affair had been going on for two and a half years, since the summer of 1958. And although Ludwig was still married, it continued. Adam was living with Sasha while it was going on. Given Bellow’s vulnerabilities, the double betrayal was his worst nightmare come to life. According to Atlas, he talked about getting a gun.
      ellauri222.html on line 179: I have just given you the back story and the dramatis personae of “Herzog.” “Herzog” is a novel about a forty-seven-year-old man having a nervous breakdown after learning that his much younger wife, who has left him abruptly, had been cheating on him with his closest friend. The man seeks succor in the arms of a loving, patient, and understanding woman. There is at least one respect in which the novel is not based on real life: Bellow didn’t have a nervous breakdown. He wrote “Herzog” instead.
      ellauri222.html on line 181: He also got married again, in 1961, to Susan Glassman, another celebrated beauty, this time eighteen years younger. (Glassman was a former girlfriend of Philip Roth, who said that the transfer of affections “turned out to be the best thing that ever happened to me and the worst thing that ever happened to Saul.” The marriage lasted five years; she was still taking Bellow to court in 1981.)
      ellauri222.html on line 203: “Herzog,” too, sags in the middle, a long episode in which Herzog reconnects with Ramona. But Bellow came up with a brilliant solution for the second half. Waiting in a courthouse to see his lawyer, Herzog sits in on a trial. A woman and her boyfriend are being tried for murdering her small child, whom they have tortured and beaten to death. The woman is mentally unfit; Herzog hears evidence that she has been diagnosed with a lesion on her brain. (A diabolical touch: Sasha had been diagnosed with a brain lesion.)
      ellauri222.html on line 255: Bellow was born Solomon Bellow in Lachine, Quebec, in 1915, two years after his parents had arrived there from St Petersburg. When he was nine, the family moved to the Humboldt Park neighbourhood of Chicago. His mother, Liza, died when Saul was 17, but not before she had passed on to him her love of the Jewish Bible (he learned Hebrew at four). His first serious critical success was The Adventures of Augie March (1953), but it was not until his 1964 novel, Herzog, became a bestseller that he earned any real money. His elder brothers, both businessmen, were by this time making serious cash, and regarded him, he once said, as "some schmuck with a pen". Mary Cheever, the wife of John Cheever, believed the two got on so well because "they were both women-haters". He has nothing good to say about feminism. Bellow has a go at Hannah Arendt and Mary McCarthy (the one is "rash", the other "stupid"). In 1994, however, he ate a poisonous fish in the Caribbean, and fell into a coma that lasted five weeks. He dreaded a loss of virility.
      ellauri222.html on line 320: my prophetic eyes opened like
      ellauri222.html on line 383: Bavatsky is a drunken handyman employed by the Einhorns.
      ellauri222.html on line 395: Bluegren is Augie’s boss at the flowershop. An imposing man with cold blue eyes, he is a friend of dangerous gangsters.
      ellauri222.html on line 451: Old Fenchel is the fat, black-eyed uncle of Thea and Esther. He is in the mineral water business and the girls are his heiresses. His wife is sickly, timid, and silent.
      ellauri222.html on line 455: An employee of the Einhorns, the pretty and promiscuous Lollie is also William Einhorn’s mistress for a time. She leaves the family’s employ after the stock market crash and ends up being killed by a boyfriend.
      ellauri222.html on line 511: Mrs. Klein is Jimmy’s mother. She is overweight and can’t keep on her feet very long. Her hair is dyed black and hangs in braids, making her look like an Indian. She has eight children, including Gilbert and Velma, who are both divorced, and Tommy, who works at City Hall. There are always grandchildren in her home. When Mrs. Klein dies, her husband marries again to a longtime sweetheart.
      ellauri222.html on line 555: Augie, the hero of the novel, is a Jewish-American boy coming of age in Depression-era Chicago. Since their father abandoned the family, Augie and his two brothers are raised by their slow-witted mother and surrogate “Grandma” Lausch. Augie, good-looking with “tall hair” and green-gray eyes, is a soft-hearted young man whose sympathy for others often gets him into trouble. He holds a variety of jobs throughout his life and learns from different people he encounters. People tend to “adopt” Augie and try to groom him into the person they want him to be, but he really wants to become his own person. The name Augie is short for “August,” which means “Great.” Augie has a desire for greatness, but he has no idea of how to do it, thinking it beyond his ability to “breathe the pointy, star-furnished air at its highest difficulty.” He goes along through life repeating the same mistakes. In the end, Augie realizes that his life has been a voyage of discovery. Whether or not he has been a success, he doesn’t know, but he will continue with unquenchable optimism and hope, “forever rising up.”
      ellauri222.html on line 571: Harold Mintouchian is a wealthy, distinguished Armenian lawyer and international businessman who is the married lover of a friend of Stella’s and becomes a close friend and mentor of Augie. At the end of the novel, Augie works for him as a black market trader in Europe. Augie looks up to the older man as “a sage, prophet, or guru, a prince of experience with his jewel toes” and seeks his wisdom. Mintouchian, who has seen much of the darker side of human nature through his law practice, has more realistic ideas than the love-bitten Augie about what to expect from human relationships. Secrecy and lies, he tells Augie, are unavoidable. “Mind you, I’m a great admirer of our species. I stand in awe of the genius of the race. But a large part of this genius is devoted to lying and seeming what you are not.” He confesses to Augie that his mistress, Agnes, is keeping secrets from him, while he is keeping secrets from his wife.
      ellauri222.html on line 631: A miserly millionaire with a stuttering problem, Robey is working on a book he calls The Needle’s Eye, an investigation into the nature and source of happiness. He hires Augie as a research assistant. As Augie listens to Robey discuss his book idea, he finds that the man makes sense only part of the time. He realizes that Robey is a “crank” who only wants someone to be an ear for his half-baked ideas.
      ellauri222.html on line 711: William Moulton Marston died of cancer on May 2, 1947, in Rye, seven days before his 54th birthday. After his death, Elizabeth and Olive continued to live together until Olive's death in 1990, aged 86; Elizabeth (The Wonder Woman) died in 1993, aged 100.
      ellauri222.html on line 728: Bernard Le Bouyer de Fontenelle, né le 11 février 1657 à Rouen et mort le 9 janvier 1757 à Paris, est un écrivain, dramaturge et scientifique français. Fontenelle oli armoton keskikertaisuus joka yritettyään kaikenlaista päätyi populääritieteen kautta Ranskan akatemiaan. Eli kuukautta vaille satavuotiaaxi, laiskiainen. Il ne connut pas l’amitié vraie, et put s’appliquer ces mots d’une de ses églogues : « Il me manqua d’aimer. » Claudine de Tencin, lui disait en montrant sa poitrine : « Ce n’est pas un cœur que vous avez là ; c’est de la cervelle, comme dans la tête."
      ellauri222.html on line 735: Augie on tyyten kirjoitettu ulkomailla, enimmäxeen Ranskassa. Se kyllä näkyy siitä. Samanlaista expatriaattifiilistä kuin Ernestolla. Bellow traveled widely throughout his life, mainly to Europe, which he sometimes visited twice a year. As a young man, Bellow went to Mexico City to meet Leon Trotsky, but the expatriate Russian revolutionary was assassinated the day before they were to meet.
      ellauri222.html on line 761: The first novel to display Bellow's characteristic expansiveness and optimism, The Adventures of Augie March presents a dazzling panorama of comically eccentric characters in a picaresque tale narrated by the irrepressible title character, who defends human possibility by embracing the hope that "There may gods turn up anywhere." Subsequent novels vary in tone from the intensity of Seize the Day to the exuberance of Henderson the Rain King to the ironic ambiguity of Herzog, but all explore the nature of human male freedom and the tensions between the individual's need for self and the needs of society. Augie March, Tommy Wilhelm, Eugene Henderson, and Moses Herzog all yearn to please themselves by finding the beauty in life. By creating these highly individualistic characters and the milieu in which they move, Bellow reveals the flashes of the extraordinary in the ordinary that make such fun possible and rejects the attitude that everyday life must be trivial and ignoble. It is like that just for the losers.
      ellauri222.html on line 763: This grooming of the self paradoxically requires looking out for number 1. Nowhere is this fact more vividly portrayed than in Henderson the Rain King. Driven in the beginning by a relentless inner voice that repeats, "I want! I want!," Henderson's egoistic absorption in his material success ironically alienates him from himself. Hitching his family to seek fundamental truths in the wilderness of Africa, he discovers the arse loving relationship that men need with nature and with each other and symbolically surrenders his self by accepting responsibility for a lion cub and an orphan child.
      ellauri222.html on line 797: Except for Clara Velde in A Theft, the protagonists in Bellow's novels and novellas are all male. The Bellovian hero typically seeks erotic pleasure, emotional security, and egoistic confirmation from the women in his life. In marriage, his relationships with women are conflicted, and he often retreats from his role as husband to a sensuous but selfish and demanding wife who paradoxically represents both his yearning for freewheeling sex happiness and society's pressure to relinquish the freedom so essential to his self-realization. Like his male characters who all are Saul lookalikes, Bellow's females are often interchangeable and serve roles of little dramatic import. However, although the author has come under increasing criticism for his superficial treatment of women, his depiction of women and male-female relationships serves to reinforce the psychological crisis that each male protagonist must negotiate to empty their scrotums so as to achieve peace and fulfillment.
      ellauri222.html on line 955: Are Your eyes not full of seeing their blood spill out all through their days?
      ellauri222.html on line 980:
      ellauri222.html on line 988: Master of the world, I plead to You with all my heart in this prayer…

      ellauri222.html on line 1003: Ellsworth Huntington travelled continental Europe in hopes of better understanding the connection between climate and state success, publishing his findings in The Pulse of Asia, and further elaborating in Civilization and Climate. Like the political geographers, a crucial component of his work was the belief that the climate of North-western Europe was ideal, with areas further north being too cold, and areas further south being too hot, resulting in lazy, laid-back populations. These ideas have powerful connections to colonialism, and may have played a role in the creation of the 'other' and the literature that many used to justify taking advantage of less advanced nations. Who needs Proust or Tolstoy when it suffices to reach up to get a banana.
      ellauri222.html on line 1033: 7-year-old Megan Kanka is abducted, raped, and murdered by twice-convicted sex offender Jesse Timmendequas. Timmendequas had previously pleaded guilty to the attempted sexual assault of a 5-year-old girl in 1979 and the sexual assault of a 7-year-old girl in 1981; the second victim was choked until she was unconscious. He served a 9-month sentence in a correctional facility for the attempted assault. For the second offense, he served 6 years of a 10-year term in a correctional center meant specifically to treat male sex offenders.
      ellauri222.html on line 1042: "We do not wish to make you suffer, Ware," he said, when they came to the door of Henry´s prison lodge, "until we decide what we are to do with you, and before then much water must flow down Ohezuhyeandawa (The Ohio)."
      ellauri222.html on line 1053: "But a new enemy has come, and, like the buffalo on the far western plains, his numbers are past counting. When one is slain five grow in his place. When Manitou made the white man he planted in his soul the wish to possess all the earth, and he strives night and day to achieve his wish. While he lives he does not turn back, and dead, his bones claim the ground in which they lie. He may be afraid of the forest and the warrior. The growl of the bear and the scream of the panther may make him tremble, but, trembling, he yet comes."
      ellauri222.html on line 1054: The white man," he resumed, "respects no land but his own. If it does not belong to himself he thinks that it belongs to nobody, and that Manitou merely keeps it in waiting for him. He is here now with his women and children in the land that we and our fathers have owned since the beginning of time. Many of the white men have fallen beneath our bullets and tomahawks. We have burned their new houses and uprooted their corn, but they are more than they were last year, and next year they will be more than they are now."
      ellauri222.html on line 1055: They will be more next year than they are now," resumed Timmendiquas, "if we do not drive them back. Our best hunting grounds are there beyond the Beautiful River, in the land that we call Kain-tuck-ee, and it is there that the smoke from their cabins lies like a threat across the sky. It is there that they continually come in their wagons across the mountains or in the boats down the river."
      ellauri222.html on line 1065: A sudden light glowed in the eyes of the young chief. There was something akin in the souls of these two, and perhaps Timmendiquas alone knew it. He raised one hand, gave a one-finger salute in the white man´s fashion, and said four words. "I shall not forget." So who cares, some corpses more or less, noblemen's tit for tat takes right of way.
      ellauri223.html on line 66: Capt. Moreover, the race is managed for the good of the commonwealth, and not of private individuals, and the magistrates must be obeyed. They deny what we hold—viz., that it is natural to man to recognize his offspring and to educate them, and to use his wife and house and children as his own. For they say that children are bred for the preservation of the species and not for individual pleasure, as St. Thomas also asserts. Therefore the breeding of children has reference to the commonwealth, and not to individuals, except in so far as they are constituents of the commonwealth. And since individuals for the most part bring forth children wrongly and educate them wrongly, they consider that they remove destruction from the State, and therefore for this reason, with most sacred fear, they commit the education of the children, who, as it were, are the element of the republic, to the care of magistrates; for the safety of the community is not that of a few. And thus they distribute male and female breeders of the best natures according to philosophical rules. Plato thinks that this distribution ought to be made by lot, lest some incel men seeing that they are kept away from the beautiful women, should rise up with anger and hatred against the magistrates; and he thinks further that those who do not deserve cohabitation with the more beautiful women, should be deceived while the lots are drawn by the magistrates, so that at all times the women who are suitably second rate should fall to their lot, not those whom they desire. Stop the steal!
      ellauri223.html on line 68: This shrewdness, however, is not necessary among the inhabitants of the City of the Sun. For with them deformity is unknown. When the women are exercised they get a clear complexion, and become strong of limb, tall and agile, and with them beauty consists in tallness and strength. Tanakka, punakka ja rivakka, täst mie piän! Therefore, if any woman dyes her face, so that it may become beautiful, or uses high-heeled boots so that she may appear tall, or garments with trains to cover her wooden shoes, she is condemned to capital punishment. But if the women should even desire them they have no facility for doing these things. For who indeed would give them this facility? Further, they assert that among us abuses of this kind arise from the leisure and sloth of women. By these means they lose their color and have pale complexions, and become feeble and small. For this reason they are without proper complexions, use high sandals, and become beautiful not from strength, but from slothful tenderness. And thus they ruin their own tempers and natures, and consequently those of their offspring. Furthermore, if at any time a man is taken captive with ardent love for a certain woman, the two are allowed to converse and joke together and to give one another garlands of flowers or leaves, and to make verses. But if the race is endangered, by no means is further union between them permitted. Her fanny must be locked in a love girdle, and his pecker lassoed and bound behind his butt. Moreover, the love born of eager desire is not known among them; only that born of friendship. LOL
      ellauri223.html on line 70: Domestic affairs and partnerships are of little account, because, excepting the sign of honor, each one receives what he is in need of. To the heroes and heroines of the republic, it is customary to give the pleasing gifts of honor, beautiful wreaths, sweet food, heroine, or splendid clothes, while they are feasting. In the daytime all use white garments within the city, but at night or outside the city they use red garments either of wool or silk. They hate black as they do dung, and therefore they dislike the Japanese, who are fond of black, and Africans, for obvious reasons. Pride they consider the most execrable vice, and one who acts proudly is chastised with the most ruthless correction. Wherefore no one thinks it lowering to wait at table or to work in the kitchen or fields or clean the toilets. All work they call discipline, and thus they say that it is honorable to go on foot, to do any act of nature, to see with the eye, and to speak with the tongue, and waft with the tail; and when there is need, they distinguish philosophically between tears and spittle. Every man who, when he is told off to work, does his duty, is considered very honorable.
      ellauri223.html on line 72: But in the City of the Sun, while duty and work are distributed among all, it only falls to each one to work for about four hours every day. The remaining hours are spent in learning joyously, in debating, in reading, in reciting, in writing, in walking, in exercising the mind and body, and with play. They allow no game which is played while sitting or lying on top of one another, neither the single die nor dice, nor chess, nor others like these. But they play with the ball, with the sack, with the rod, with the hoop, with wrestling, with scratching matches at the stake. They say, moreover, that grinding poverty renders men worthless, cunning, sulky, thievish, insidious, vagabonds, liars, false witnesses, etc.; and that wealth makes them insolent, proud, ignorant, traitors, assumers of what they know not, deceivers, boasters, wanting in affection, slanderers, etc. But with them all the rich and poor together make up the community. They are rich because they want nothing, poor because they possess nothing. Hey is this communism or what?
      ellauri223.html on line 84: Capt. Their food consists of flesh, butter, honey, cheese, garden herbs, and vegetables of various kinds. They were unwilling at first to slay animals, because it seemed cruel; but thinking afterward that is was also cruel to destroy herbs which have a share of sensitive feeling, they saw that they would perish from hunger unless they did an unjustifiable action for the sake of justifiable ones, and so now they all eat meat. Nevertheless, they do not kill willingly useful animals, such as oxen and horses. They observe the difference between useful and harmful foods, and for this they employ the science of medicine. They always change their food. First they eat flesh, then fish, then afterward they go back to flesh, and nature is never incommoded or weakened. The old people use the more digestible kind of food, and take three meals a day, eating only a little. But the general community eat twice, and the boys four times, that they may satisfy nature. The length of their lives is generally 100 years, but often they reach 200.
      ellauri223.html on line 86: As regards drinking, they are extremely moderate. Wine is never given to young people until they are ten years old, unless the state of their health demands it. After their tenth year they take it diluted with water, and so do the women, but the old men of fifty and upward use little or no water. They eat the most healthy things, according to the time of the year.
      ellauri223.html on line 90: And in other ways they labor to cure the epilepsy, with which they are often troubled. G.M. A sign this disease is of wonderful cleverness, for from it Hercules, Scrotus, Socrates, Callimachus, and Mahomet have suffered. This they cure by means of prayers to heaven, by strengthening the head, by taking acid, by planned gymnastics, and with fat cheese-bread sprinkled with the flour of wheaten corn. My, that is yummy, I tell you.
      ellauri223.html on line 92: They know also a secret for renovating sex life after about the seventieth year, and for ridding it of the wilted dick affliction, and this they do by a pleasing and indeed wonderful art, using young girls. But let's not go into that right now.
      ellauri223.html on line 96: Capt. This is the point I was just thinking of explaining. Everyone is judged by the first master of his trade, and thus all the head artificers are judges. They punish with exile, with flogging, with blame, with deprivation of the common table, with exclusion from the church and from the company of women. When there is a case in which great injury has been done, it is punished with death, and they repay an eye with an eye, a nose for a nose, a tooth for a tooth, a woman (or half a camel) for a woman, and so on, according to Hammurabi's law of retaliation.
      ellauri223.html on line 109: They repeat but one prayer, which asks for health of body and of mind, and happiness for themselves and all people, and they conclude it with the petition "As it seems best to God." Inshallah. C.O. Rosenius olis tyytyväinen thän lisäyxeen.
      ellauri223.html on line 153: New Atlantis is an incomplete utopian novel by Sir Francis Bacon, published posthumously in 1626. It appeared unheralded and tucked into the back of a longer work of natural history, Sylva sylvarum (forest of materials). In New Atlantis, Bacon portrayed a vision of the future of human discovery and knowledge, expressing his aspirations and ideals for humankind. The novel depicts the creation of a utopian land where "generosity and enlightenment, dignity and splendour, piety and public spirit" are the commonly held qualities of the inhabitants of the mythical Bensalem. The plan and organisation of his ideal college, Salomon's House (or Shlomo's House), envisioned the modern research university in both applied and pure sciences.
      ellauri223.html on line 157: The novel depicts a mythical island, Bensalem, which is discovered by the crew of a European ship after they are lost in the Pacific Ocean somewhere west of Peru. The minimal plot serves the gradual unfolding of the island, its customs, but most importantly, its state-sponsored scientific institution, Salomon's House, "which house or college ... is the very eye of this kingdom."
      ellauri223.html on line 159: Many aspects of the society and history of the island are described, such as the Christian religion – which is reported to have been born there as a copy of the Bible and a letter from the Apostle Saint Bartholomew arrived there miraculously, a few years after the Ascension of Jesus; a cultural feast in honour of the family institution, called "the Feast of the Family"; a college of sages, the Salomon's House, "the very eye of the kingdom", to which order "God of heaven and earth had vouchsafed the grace to know the works of Creation, and the secrets of them", as well as "to discern between divine miracles, works of nature, works of art, and other impostures and illusions of all sorts"; and a series of instruments, process and methods of scientific research that were employed in the island by the Salomon's House.
      ellauri223.html on line 170: He portrayed a vision of the future of human discovery and knowledge. The plan and organisation of his ideal college, "Shlomo's House", envisioned the modern research university in both applied and pure science. The end of their foundation is thus described: "The end of our foundation is the knowledge of causes, and secret motions of things; and the enlarging of the bounds of human empire, to the effecting of all things possible". Vitun nilkki, hemmetin teknofriikki humanisti.
      ellauri223.html on line 190: At the age of 45, Bacon married Alice Barnham, the 13-year-old daughter of a well-connected London alderman and MP. Bacon wrote two sonnets proclaiming his love for Alice. The first was written during his courtship and the second on his wedding day, 10 May 1606. When Bacon was appointed lord chancellor, "by special Warrant of the King", Lady Bacon was given precedence over all other Court ladies. Bacon's personal secretary and chaplain, William Rawley, wrote in his biography of Bacon that his marriage was one of "much conjugal love and respect", mentioning a robe of honour that he gave to Alice and which "she wore unto her dying day, being twenty years and more after his death".
      ellauri223.html on line 212: The Viscountess St Albans, as she still preferred to be called, spent much of her marriage in Chancery proceedings, lawsuits over property. The first year was over her former husband's estate, trying to get what was left of Bacon's property, without his much greater debts. She was opposed in this by Sir John Constable, her brother in law, who had held some of the estate in trust. In 1628 she filed suits for property owned by her late father. In 1631, she and her husband both filed suit against Nicholas Bacon, of Gray's Inn, their former friend, who had married Sir John Underhill's niece, and gotten Underhill to sign an agreement for a large dowry and extensive property, including some property of Alice that Sir John did not have rights to, and could only inherit after her death. Their petition to court stated that Bacon had tricked Underhill "who was an almost totally deaf man, and by reason of the weakness of his eyes and the infirmity in his head, could not read writings of that nature without much pain," to sign a paper not knowing what it contained.
      ellauri226.html on line 49: Yli neljä vuosikymmentä myöhemmin Romney sisällytti yhdelle Spotify-soittolistalleen "Good Vibrators", yhtyeen psykedeelisimmän hitin. Ja äskettäin Cincinnatissa pidetyssä pysähdyksessä Romneyn kampanja soitti kappaleen ei kerran vaan neljä kertaa ennen kuin ehdokas pääsi korokkeelle kantotuolissaan.
      ellauri226.html on line 59: Luulen, että on mahdotonta kuvitella (amerikkalaista) henkilöä, joka ei voisi arvostaa esimerkiksi vuoden 1966 ”Pet Sounds” -albumin neroutta ja kehua yhtyeen esiintymistä 100 dollarin varainkeruugaalassa vuoden 1984 republikaanien vuosikongressissa, jossa Ronald Reagan oli ehdolla.
      ellauri226.html on line 63: Viime vuonna yhtyeen legendaarinen albumi "Smile! You're on candy camera!", joka hyllytettiin vuonna 1967 sen radikaalin musiikillisen lähdön jälkeen, julkaistiin vihdoin. Wilsonin "teini-ikäisten sinfonia Jumalalle" on nyt oikeutetusti ylistetty mestariteokseksi.
      ellauri226.html on line 74: Lead singer Love has been a longtime Trump supporter. He sang at one of the president’s inaugural balls in 2017, telling Uncut magazine afterward, “I don’t have anything negative to say about the president of the USA. I love his hair, it is very surfy." “I understand there are so many factions and fractious things going on. The chips will fall where they may,’’ Love said. “But Donald Trump has never been anything but kind to us. We have known him for many a year.’’ Aargh, for the love of Mike!
      ellauri226.html on line 77: yerHeadshot?seoId=mike-love&width=300&height=300" />
      ellauri226.html on line 104: The landscape was different from yesterday’s. As
      ellauri226.html on line 133:
      ellauri226.html on line 140: Nuovo, however, looked placid and tame. Nuovo was home to the Nobel laureate Grazia Deledda, whose novels Lawrence so admired, but her modest birthplace was closed. We walked around aimlessly, seeing the place through his eyes, but, of course, through Lawrence’s eyes “there’s nothing to see.” This is no longer quite true; there are two good museums in town. But, by now, it had taken on the sound of a mantra. “Sights are an irritating bore,” he wrote. “Happy is the town that has nothing to show.”
      ellauri226.html on line 143: “A heart yearning for something I have known, and which I want back again.” Varmaan se oli Grazian graziöösi persaus. READING: Sea and Sardinia, by D.H. Lawrence (Penguin Classics); Cosima, by Grazia Deledda (Italica Press), about a young lady writer’s ass in Sardinia in the late 19th-Century.
      ellauri226.html on line 213: While local demographics and neighborhoods are undeniably subject to change, it is rare for a location to experience a major transformation in racial demographics in less than 50 years. Yet this is exactly what has happened in The Bronx between 1950 and 1980. As indicated by the 1950 the ethnic makeupof The Bronx was predominantly white. The census for 2000 indicates that whites (that is, what the U.S. Census labels “white, non-Hispanic”) now compose a distinct minority in The Bronx. The explanations for this remarkable change are complex. LOL actually they aren't, as we shall see.
      ellauri226.html on line 221: Even as early as 1960, just ten years and one census removed from 1950, approximately 164,000 of the 1.42 million Bronx residents were sooty black.
      ellauri226.html on line 222: Black residents in The Bronx nearly doubled in 10 years,
      ellauri226.html on line 225: In 1970, the white pop. had decreased from 1.26 million to 1.08 million. The whites flew at approximately the same rate that new black residents were moving into the slum. In the 10 years between 1970 and 1980, however, this rate of
      ellauri226.html on line 228: many years, like my mom.
      ellauri226.html on line 232: the white ethnic stronghold it had been in 1950, nor yet a black one either anymore. The 1980 census
      ellauri226.html on line 258: I grew up on the street, which is to say that my people sent me on the street to play. Really, I was told to go out and play; my mom she wouldn’t care a bit. My mother, she just said go out and play. By five years old I was four or five years old. So say I was four years old. I was
      ellauri226.html on line 272: As a first grader, seven years old, with my bus pass I would ride the city
      ellauri226.html on line 315: a kid shot right in my eye.
      ellauri226.html on line 354: The chaos reached its peak in 1977 when a July black-out brought a dramatic increase of responsible arsonists in that same Stadium where Cosell as the Yankees played in the 1977 World Series, as part of an insurance conspiracy, however.
      ellauri226.html on line 387: though Dr. Derrick had attended the same just 14 years before, he
      ellauri226.html on line 409: The deterioration of building quality in apartments of The Bronx is seen to be a cause of the increased rates of crime in the eyes of many residents.
      ellauri226.html on line 420: the increasing requirements of new technology like TV and hairdryers. The major item that
      ellauri226.html on line 437: as early as 1970. Many of these nigrate individuals had called this area home for almost 20 years. Meanwhile white families began to migrate north within The Bronx, particularly Jewish, Irish, and Italian families.
      ellauri226.html on line 444: II but would not be felt until years later. “Between 1947 and 1976, the city
      ellauri226.html on line 448: influx of poor minority families in the 1950s and 1960s was thus cleverly met with a deteriorating and poor job market and limited employment opportunities. The declining job market continued into the 1970s when approximately 300 companies employing 10,000 workers went out of business or moved out of The Bronx between 1970 and 1977. Many of these businesses used low income and unskilled workers. By 1976 the long-term economic problems had taken their toll and the mayor's office estimated that between 25-30% of the city’s eligible work force was unemployed.
      ellauri226.html on line 452: In this year it became public knowledge that the city funds had been depleted by nasty leeches and its capital was all gone. Their action had left the city penniless and unable to pay even the top brass. This led to the collapse of the city’s government,
      ellauri226.html on line 474: living in The Bronx in the 1960s had been there for years and seemed to
      ellauri226.html on line 478: neighbors played at all hours of the night, their loud merrymaking in the sack, and their tendency to throw garbage out of their windows. For Derrick, a graduate student at the time, the difference in lifestyles between him and his new neighbors became too much, and he eventually moved out of the apartment because of the behavior of his Hispanic neighbors.
      ellauri226.html on line 480: For Roby (my mom), the differences of the new minority groups and the old Jewish, Italian, and Irish immigrants was clear, especially given the unique rules that governed her Parkchester Jewish community. Parkchester was originally privately owned by the Metropolitan Life, who employed a private police force to ensure law and order and instituted very specific rules that bound the residents of the community, everything from double parking and noise levels to not walking on the grass.
      ellauri226.html on line 485: The whites who had meekly lived under the thumb of the company in the development for many years, were shocked by the behavior of the new, often minority, residents who seemed to have no regard for the rules and the lifestyle that had been established long ago by Metropolitan Life. As a result, the tension and anger felt by many whites towards the minorities as they felt as though their pitiful lifestyles and sorry apartment buildings were being disrespected.
      ellauri226.html on line 520: leave the borough years before. This early movement of whites to suburbia, between the end of World War II and the 1960s, provided empty apartments
      ellauri226.html on line 524: The $1M question here of course is why is it that the whites' standard of living soared while the coons and wetbacks stayed as poor as they were.
      ellauri236.html on line 56: Bolsonaro turned in a strong showing in the wealthier south of the country, winning Sao Paulo and his native Rio de Janeiro by margins of over 10%, but it was not enough to compensate for Lula’s massive turnout in the Northeast of Brazil, where the Workers Party has long enjoyed dominance. Indeed, Lula won numerous states by margins of 30%, 40% or even 50%, turning in particularly strong performances in the vote-rich states of Bahia, Ceara, and his native Pernambuco.
      ellauri236.html on line 79: Win or Lose, Bolsonaro Has Destroyed Trust in Brazil’s Elections. President Jair Bolsonaro has attacked Brazil’s electronic voting system. Now, ahead of Sunday’s elections, many of his supporters believe there will be fraud.
      ellauri236.html on line 93: And Fabrício Frieber, a lawyer from the state of Bahia, added, “Bolsonaro has been warning us.”
      ellauri236.html on line 95: “If our president isn’t elected, everyone goes to Brasília,” said Rogério Ramos, 40, owner of an automotive electronics shop, referring to the nation’s capital. “We shut down Congress, just like in ’64.” In 1964, a military coup led to a violent, 21-year dictatorship in Brazil.
      ellauri236.html on line 98: One man interviewed by The New York Times played a video he received on WhatsApp that said Mr. Bolsonaro had visited Russia this year to get President Vladimir V. Putin’s help in fighting the Brazilian left’s plans to steal Sunday’s election.
      ellauri236.html on line 108: According to Brazil's Superior Electoral Court, Positivo Tecnologia, a Brazilian company, won the most recent bid to produce electronic voting machines for this year's election. Smartmatic and Dominion confirmed their equipment is not being used in Brazil. But the voting machine claims resurged this month, both in WhatsApp messages in Brazil about Smartmatic and in English-language posts on U.S. social media sites claiming, incorrectly, that Dominion or Smartmatic machines were used in Brazil.
      ellauri236.html on line 162: yer.com%2Fslide%2F4296884%2F14%2Fimages%2F19%2FJames%2BHadly%2BChase%2B%25281906%2B%25E2%2580%2593%2B1985%2529.jpg&width=960&height=720&typemap=png%3Apng%3B*%3Ajpg&quality=60&use-cache-headers=yes&crop=no&enlarge=no" width="70%" />
      ellauri236.html on line 182: So much for Raffles. Now for a header into the cesspool. No Orchids for Miss Blandish, by James Hadley Chase, was published in 1939, but seems to have enjoyed its greatest popularity in 1940, during the Battle of Britain and the blitz. In its main outlines its story is this:
      ellauri236.html on line 194: As I have mentioned already, No Orchids enjoyed its greatest vogue in 1940, though it was successfully running as a play till some time later. It was, in fact, one of the things that helped to console people for the boredom of being bombed. Early in the war the New Yorker had a picture of a little man approaching a news-stall littered with paper with such headlines as ‘Great Tank Battles in Northern France’, ‘Big Naval Battle in the North Sea’, ‘Huge Air Battles over the Channel’, etc., etc. The little man is saying ‘Action Stories, please’. That little man with his little dick stood for all the drugged millions to whom the world of the gangster and the prize-ring is more ‘real’, more ‘tough’, than such things as crucifixions, wars, revolutions, earthquakes, famines, genocides, holocausts and pestilences. From the point of view of a reader of Action Stories, a description of the London blitz, or of the internal struggles of the European underground parties, would be ‘sissy stuff’. On the other hand, some puny gun-battle in Chicago, resulting in perhaps half a dozen deaths, would seem genuinely ‘tough’. This habit of mind is now extremely widespread. A soldier sprawls in a muddy trench, with the machine-gun bullets crackling a foot or two overhead, and whiles away his intolerable boredom by reading an American gangster story. And what is it that makes that story so exciting? Precisely the fact that people are shooting at each other with machine-guns! Neither the soldier nor anyone else sees anything curious in this. It is taken for granted that an imaginary bullet is more thrilling than a real one. (But note one difference: they get a whacking pile of money and loads of wet twat for it.)
      ellauri236.html on line 198: There exists in America an enormous literature of more or less the same stamp as No Orchids. Quite apart from books, there is the huge array of ‘pulp magazines’, graded so as to cater for different kinds of fantasy, but nearly all having much the same mental atmosphere. A few of them go in for straight pornography, but the great majority are quite plainly aimed at sadists and masochists. Sold at threepence a copy under the title of Yank Mags(4), these things used to enjoy considerable popularity in England, but when the supply dried up owing to the war, no satisfactory substitute was forthcoming. English imitations of the ‘pulp magazine’ do now exist, but they are poor things compared with the original. English crook films, again, never approach the American crook film in brutality. And yet the career of Mr. Chase shows how deep the American influence has already gone. Not only is he himself living a continuous fantasy-life in the Chicago underworld, but he can count on hundreds of thousands of readers who know what is meant by a ‘clipshop’ or the ‘hotsquat’, do not have to do mental arithmetic when confronted by ‘fifty grand’, and understand at sight a sentence like ‘Johnny was a rummy and only two jumps ahead of the nut-factory’. Evidently there are great numbers of English people who are partly americanized in language and, one ought to add, in moral outlook. For there was no popular protest against No Orchids. In the end it was withdrawn, but only retrospectively, when a later work, Miss Callaghan Comes to Grief, brought Mr. Chase's books to the attention of the authorities. Judging by casual conversations at the time, ordinary readers got a mild thrill out of the obscenities of No Orchids, but saw nothing undesirable in the book as a whole. Many people, incidentally, were under the impression that it was an American book reissued in England.
      ellauri236.html on line 200: The thing that the ordinary reader ought to have objected to — almost certainly would have objected to, a few decades earlier — was the equivocal attitude towards crime. It is implied throughout No Orchids that being a criminal is only reprehensible in the sense that it does not pay. Being a policeman pays better, but there is no moral difference, since the police use essentially criminal methods. In a book like He Won't Need It Now the distinction between crime and crime-prevention practically disappears. This is a new departure for English sensational fiction, in which till recently there has always been a sharp distinction between right and wrong and a general agreement that virtue must triumph in the last chapter. English books glorifying crime (modern crime, that is — pirates and highwaymen are different) are very rare. Even a book like Raffles, as I have pointed out, is governed by powerful taboos, and it is clearly understood that Raffles's crimes must be expiated sooner or later. In America, both in life and fiction, the tendency to tolerate crime, even to admire the criminal so long as he is success, is very much more marked. It is, indeed, ultimately this attitude that has made it possible for crime to flourish upon so huge a scale. Books have been written about Al Capone that are hardly different in tone from the books written about Henry Ford, Stalin, Lord Northcliffe and all the rest of the ‘log cabin to White House’ brigade. And switching back eighty years, one finds Mark Twain adopting much the same attitude towards the disgusting bandit Slade, hero of twenty-eight murders, and towards the Western desperadoes generally. They were successful, they ‘made good’, therefore he admired them.
      ellauri236.html on line 202: In a book like No Orchids one is not, as in the old-style crime story, simply escaping from dull reality into an imaginary world of action. One's escape is essentially into cruelty and sexual perversion. No Orchids is aimed at the power-instinct, which Raffles or the Sherlock Holmes stories are not. At the same time the English attitude towards crime is not so superior to the American as I may have seemed to imply. It too is mixed up with power-worship, and has become more noticeably so in the last twenty years. A writer who is worth examining is Edgar Wallace, especially in such typical books as The Orator and the Mr. J. G. Reeder stories. Wallace was one of the first crime-story writers to break away from the old tradition of the private detective and make his central figure a Scotland Yard official. Sherlock Holmes is an amateur, solving his problems without the help and even, in the earlier stories, against the opposition of the police. Moreover, like Lupin, he is essentially an intellectual, even a scientist. He reasons logically from observed fact, and his intellectuality is constantly contrasted with the routine methods of the police. Wallace objected strongly to this slur, as he considered it, on Scotland Yard, and in several newspaper articles he went out of his way to denounce Holmes by name. His own ideal was the detective-inspector who catches criminals not because he is intellectually brilliant but because he is part of an all-powerful organization. Hence the curious fact that in Wallace's most characteristic stories the ‘clue’ and the ‘deduction’ play no part. The criminal is always defeated by an incredible coincidence, or because in some unexplained manner the police know all about the crime beforehand. The tone of the stories makes it quite clear that Wallace's admiration for the police is pure bully-worship. A Scotland Yard detective is the most powerful kind of being that he can imagine, while the criminal figures in his mind as an outlaw against whom anything is permissible, like the condemned slaves in the Roman arena. His policemen behave much more brutally than British policemen do in real life — they hit people with out provocation, fire revolvers past their ears to terrify them and so on — and some of the stories exhibit a fearful intellectual sadism. (For instance, Wallace likes to arrange things so that the villain is hanged on the same day as the heroine is married.) But it is sadism after the English fashion: that is to say, it is unconscious, there is not overtly any sex in it, and it keeps within the bounds of the law. The British public tolerates a harsh criminal law and gets a kick out of monstrously unfair murder trials: but still that is better, on any account, than tolerating or admiring crime. If one must worship a bully, it is better that he should be a policeman than a gangster. Wallace is still governed to some extent by the concept of ‘not done’. In No Orchids anything is ‘done’ so long as it leads on to power. All the barriers are down, all the motives are out in the open. Chase is a worse symptom than Wallace, to the extent that all-in wrestling is worse than boxing, or Fascism is worse than capitalist democracy.
      ellauri236.html on line 206: Until recently the characteristic adventure stories of the English-speaking peoples have been stories in which the hero fights against odds. This is true all the way from Robin Hood to Pop-eye the Sailor. Perhaps the basic myth of the Western world is Jack the Giant-killer, but to be brought up to date this should be renamed Jack the Dwarf-killer, and there already exists a considerable literature which teaches, either overtly or implicitly, that one should side with the big man against the little man. Most of what is now written about foreign policy is simply an embroidery on this theme, and for several decades such phrases as ‘Play the game’, ‘Don't hit a man when he's down’ and ‘It's not cricket’ have never failed to draw a snigger from anyone of intellectual pretensions. What is comparatively new is to find the accepted pattern, according to which (a) right is right and wrong is wrong, whoever wins, and (b) weakness must be respected, disappearing from popular literature as well. When I first read D. H. Lawrence's novels, at the age of about twenty, I was puzzled by the fact that there did not seem to be any classification of the characters into ‘good’ and ‘bad’. Lawrence seemed to sympathize with all of them about equally, and this was so unusual as to give me the feeling of having lost my bearings. Today no one would think of looking for heroes and villains in a serious novel, but in lowbrow fiction one still expects to find a sharp distinction between right and wrong and between legality and illegality. The common people, on the whole, are still living in the world of absolute good and evil from which the intellectuals have long since escaped. But the popularity of No Orchids and the American books and magazines to which it is akin shows how rapidly the doctrine of ‘realism’ is gaining ground.
      ellauri236.html on line 208: Several people, after reading No Orchids, have remarked to me, ‘It's pure Fascism’. This is a correct description, although the book has not the smallest connexion with politics and very little with social or economic problems. It has merely the same relation to Fascism as, say Trollope's novels have to nineteenth-century capitalism. It is a daydream appropriate to a totalitarian age. In his imagined world of gangsters Chase is presenting, as it were, a distilled version of the modern political scene, in which such things as mass bombing of civilians, the use of hostages, torture to obtain confessions, secret prisons, execution without trial, floggings with rubber truncheons, drownings in cesspools, systematic falsification of records and statistics, treachery, bribery, and quislingism are normal and morally neutral, even admirable when they are done in a large and bold way. The average man is not directly interested in politics, and when he reads, he wants the current struggles of the world to be translated into a simple story about individuals. He can take an interest in Slim and Fenner as he could not in the G.P.U. and the Gestapo. People worship power in the form in which they are able to understand it. A twelve-year-old boy worships Jack Dempsey. An adolescent in a Glasgow slum worships Al Capone. An aspiring pupil at a business college worships Lord Nuffield. A New Statesman reader worships Stalin. There is a difference in intellectual maturity, but none in moral outlook. Thirty years ago the heroes of popular fiction had nothing in common with Mr. Chase's gangsters and detectives, and the idols of the English liberal intelligentsia were also comparatively sympathetic figures. Between Holmes and Fenner on the one hand, and between Abraham Lincoln and Stalin on the other, there is a similar gulf.
      ellauri236.html on line 374: Upon publication, Chase's pulp thriller became particularly popular with British soldiers, seamen and airmen during World War II. These servicemen enjoyed its risqué passages, which marked a new frontier of daringness in popular literature. Author and military historian Patrick Bishop has called No Orchids For Miss Blandish, "perhaps the most widely-read book of the war".
      ellauri236.html on line 382: Upon publication, the book was an instant commercial success, selling over half a million copies within five years, despite wartime pulp shortages (thanx to Finland fighting on the other side). It was also controversial, due to its violence and risqué content. In 1944, it was the subject of an essay by George Orwell in Horizon, Raffles and Miss Blandish, in which Orwell claimed that the novel bordered on the obscene.
      ellauri236.html on line 386: In 1973, Gene D. Phillips of Loyola University of Chicago remarked on the influence of William Faulkner's 1931 novel Sanctuary, writing that, "It is a matter of record that [No Orchids for Miss Blandish] was heavily indebted to Sanctuary for its plot line." Phillips also stated that Slim Grisson, who was identified by Phillips as the main antagonist, was based on Popeye The Sailor Man, a criminal in Faulkner's novel. Onko se sama Kippari Kalle joka heilastelee Olkan kanssa ja hoitaa pikku Hajuhernettä?
      ellauri236.html on line 398: While he waited, Eddie noticed a girl standing by a nearby bus stop. She immediately attracted his attention: every good-looking girl did. She was a tall, cool-looking blonde with a figure that made him come in his pants twice. She had a pert prettiness that appealed to Eddie. He studied her face for a brief moment. Her make-up was good. Her mouth was a trifle large, but Eddie didn’t mind that. He liked the sexy look she had and the sophisticated way she wore her yellow summery whore dress.
      ellauri236.html on line 425: Ma’s eyes suddenly snapped with rage. Her face turned purple. “Slim wants her,” she said, lowering her voice and glaring at Eddie. “He’s going to have her. You keep out of it! That goes for the rest of you too!” Eddie felt horny for the girl, but he wasn’t going to risk his life for her.
      ellauri236.html on line 452: Shuddering with lust, she shut her eyes. Massive todger at last!
      ellauri236.html on line 462: Paula Dolan, an attractively ugly girl with raven black wavy hair, large suggestive blue eyes had a figure that Fenner declared was the only asset of value in the newly established business.
      ellauri236.html on line 475: Fenner got to his feet. He was surprised Blandish wasn’t a bigger man. Only slightly above middle height, the millionaire seemed puny beside Fenner’s muscular bulk. His eyes gave his face its arresting power and character. Fenner has arresting power on his bulk, and Paula has a caracteristic butt. They were hard, shrewd and alert eyes of a man who has fought his way to the top with no mercy asked nor given. Now this is proper monkey business! Jeff Bezos or Elon Musk in the flesh! Täähän on yhtä mahtavaa kuin Malamudin apinoiden saarella!
      ellauri236.html on line 485: Captain Charles Brennan, City Police, a fat, red-faced man with blue hard eyes and sandy-colored hair, greying at the temples, reached across his desk to shake dicks with Fenner. Why do these policemen always have the same look and feel? I guess its natural selection. Chase has an unerring touch of the hackneyed and obvious.
      ellauri236.html on line 495: During the years Fenner had been a newspaperman, he had systematically collected every scrap of information concerning the activities of the big and little gangsters in town, just like his journalist colleague Heinie. Except Heinie is dead by now.
      ellauri236.html on line 514: Over the years, Chase developed a distinct, signature style in his writing that was fast-paced, with little explanations or details about the surroundings or weather or the unreliable characters. Characters in his novels and short stories would be more coherent than consistent who acted and reacted with unbreakable logic. Punchy sentences, short bursts of dialogue in authentic sounding dictionary slang with plenty of action were the characteristics of his writing.
      ellauri236.html on line 537: Tää oli siis jonkun M. Cainin kovaxi keitetty 30-luvulta josta pidettiin 80-luvulla uusi meteli koska siitä tehtiin uusi filmatisaatio pääosissa epämiellyttävä Jack Nicholson ja hevoshampainen nainen nimeltä Jessica Lange. En ole nähnyt rainoista kumpaakaan, saati lukenut alkuteosta. Juoni lyhyesti: The sensuous wife of a lunch wagon proprietor and a rootless drifter begin a sordidly steamy affair and conspire to murder her Greek husband (i.e. the said lunch wagon proprietor). This remake of the 1946 movie of the same name accounts an affair between a seedy drifter and a seductive wife of a roadside café owner. This begins a chain of events that culminates in murder. EFK ihan pikku pussissa.
      ellauri236.html on line 552: Correction to: Bilingualism Is Associated with a Delayed Onset of Dementia but Not with a Lower Risk of Developing it: a Systematic Review with Meta-Analyses (Neuropsychology Review, (2020), 10.1007/s11065-020-09426-8) (2020)
      ellauri238.html on line 600: Everything that matters is my literary work and you. Not you Tuula, but you, yes you there, with black pubic hair and a billion birthmarks. I love you more than the smell of my own shit. Elämän onni on haarojen välissä.
      ellauri238.html on line 648: We express our deep respect to Karpov as a chess player. We express our deep contempt for him as a Russian and an accomplice of Putin. The mentioned match, as you probably know, was also an ideological battle (considering the status of Korchnoi and considering how opportunistic Karpov was both under the Soviet regime and under the current Russian regime). It's a pity that Korchnoi couldn't win and Fischer refused to play at all. Korchnoi jumped to our side and Fischer was an exemplary Jew.
      ellauri238.html on line 650: Born in Leningrad, Soviet Union (USSR), Korchnoi defected to the Netherlands in 1976, and resided in Switzerland from 1978, becoming a Swiss citizen. Korchnoi played four matches, three of which were official, against GM Anatoly Karpov. In 1974, Korchnoi lost the Candidates Tournament final to Karpov. Karpov was declared World Champion in 1975 when GM Bobby Fischer declined to defend his title. Korchnoi then won two consecutive Candidates cycles to qualify for World Chess Championship matches with Karpov in 1978 and 1981 but lost both.
      ellauri238.html on line 761: Since the 1960s, he was nominated several times for the Nobel Prize in literature. His books have been translated into 38 languages. Sodan aikana se kuului vastaritaliikkeeseen. Mihinkähän niistä? Nobel kimityxistä päätellen ei ainakaan kommunistiseen. Hyvin päätelty Robin! Herbert was educated as an economist and a lawyer. Herbert was one of the main poets of the Polish opposition to communism. Se oli porvari ties monennessa polvessa.
      ellauri238.html on line 763: The poet´s father, Bolesław (half-blooded Armenian), was a soldier in the Polish Legions during World War I and a defender of Lwów; he was a lawyer and worked as a bank manager. Herbert's grandfather was an English language teacher. Zbigniew's mother, Maria, came from the Kaniak family. (Mikähän sekin on?)
      ellauri238.html on line 767: A year later he became a member of the American Academy and Institute of Arts and Letters. In 1991, receiving the Jerusalem Prize gave Herbert another reason to travel to Israel for a while. There he befriended Yehuda Amichai and wrote a poem about him. "To Yehuda Amichai, Because you are a king and I'm only a prince". Just because Yehuda got translated to 40 tongues but Herbert only 38. Scandinavian krimi bestsellerists can boast with more.
      ellauri238.html on line 769: 1993, already in a wheelchair, Herbert became a member of the American Academy of Arts and Sciences. The last years of his life he spent in bed fighting with severe asthma. Herpertti olis saanut taistelustaan punaisia vastaan valkoisen kotkan pinssin postuumisti vasemmistopresidentiltä, mutta leski ei huolinut pinssiä ennenkuin presidentti oli vaihtunut oikeistolaisexi.
      ellauri238.html on line 790: for months for years she´s a guest kuukausia ja vuosia hiän vierailee
      ellauri238.html on line 826: He just watches out of the corner of his eye hän kazoo vaan silmännurkasta
      ellauri238.html on line 928: yellow shadows that pierce the eyes? varjotkin on keltaisia ja pistää silmiin?
      ellauri238.html on line 930: or fifty years: "The sun is killing me.") tai 50 vuotta: tää aurinko on tappava).
      ellauri238.html on line 933: with our eyes of forests, with our beautiful children, mezänsilmillä, kauniilla lapsilla,
      ellauri240.html on line 59: Joyce Diane Brothers (1927-2013) oli amerikkalainen psykologi, televisiopersoona, neuvoja, kolumnisti ja kirjailija. Hän tuli tunnetuksi ensimmäisen kerran vuonna 1955 voittamalla pääpalkinnon amerikkalaisessa peliohjelmassa The $64,000 Question. Pikku-Aune oli aivan ilmiselvä juutalainen, os. Bauer, siskokin nai jonkun Goldsmithin. In 1949, she married Milton Brothers, who later went on to become an internist. 40 years later in 1989, Brothers lost her husband to bladder cancer. Following the death of her husband, Brothers fell into a state of depression for a year and contemplated suicide (at 62); however, she used her own self-help work to achieve inner peace and happiness. Brothers and her husband had a daughter, four grandchildren and two great-grandchildren.
      ellauri240.html on line 61: Another Jewish woman, Nora Barnacle burned most of the letters she received in 1909 from her lover who signed his name, “Jim.” But she didn’t destroy all of them. Indeed, they have survived all these years. In one of them, Jim, aka James Joyce, wrote to his muse whom he called his “little fuckbird,” “Fuck me, darling, in as many ways as your lust will suggest.” He went on and on: ”Fuck me dressed in your full outdoor costume with your hat and veil on, your face flushed with the cold and wind and rain and your boots muddy.” Sellaisia ne miehet on, koprofiilejä.
      ellauri240.html on line 63: As her fame grew there was an increase in disapproval among psychologists and psychiatrists (an all-male panel) . They questioned both the validity of her psychological claims and her authority in providing psychological advice. A growing number of male psychologists began to believe the advice she provided to her audience was unethical insofar as she did not hold any clinical degree and she was giving advice for free, not to patients who were paying customers. Mr. Stevens and Mr. Gardener, the authors of “Women and Psychology,” stated that “traditional psychologists smile subtly when her name is mentioned and they often complain that she actually does more damage to the Brotherhood than good. Besides, her eyes are way too close together.“
      ellauri240.html on line 84: A truly astonishing and original work of fiction indeed. It is a story of one man, a writer, who is born, who grows, who loves, who stops loving; who eats, sleeps, smokes, lies, boozes, cheats, regrets, has sex, has dreams, and lives. In short yet intimately detailed chapters, each covering a single aspect of his life from youth through old age, we get to know this person fully through the small yet telling incidents that make him who he is. He remembers the butt of a cigarette, the feel of his army uniform, the taste of a lover, the strange and unexpected touch of a college professor’s hand, and so many more small experiences that can never be shaken off more than a recalcitrant band-aid.
      ellauri240.html on line 97: Elokuvassa sittemmin kuuluisaksi näyttelijäksi tullut Johnny Depp teki ensimmäisen roolinsa. Elokuvan loppukohtaus ei miellyttänyt Cravenia, joka olisi halunnut hienotunteisuutta ja yleisölle enemmän pohdittavaa Nancyn ja tämän ystävien kohtalosta, minkä seurauksena hän ja tuottaja Robert Shaye riitaantuivat päätyen laihaan kompromissiratkaisuun. Aikalaisarviot olivat sille suopeita, ja The New York Times valitsi rainan vuonna 2004 yhdeksi tuhannesta kaikkien aikojen parhaasta elokuvasta. Vittu sekin kyllä todistaa jotain elokuvataiteesta.
      ellauri240.html on line 117: Vang Pao, mercenary soldier, born 8 December 1929; died 6 January 2011. Vang Pao, the Laotian general who marshalled a CIA mercenary army to fight a "secret war" against communist insurgents in the remote mountains of Laos in the 1960s, has died aged 81. Although Vang Pao's supporters portrayed him as a father figure uniting all his people, the Hmong (an ethnic minority in Laos), on the side of the US against the communist world, his critics regarded him as a charismatic but ruthless opium warlord, who made arrogant and misleading claims to speak on behalf of all Hmong. Far from uniting the Hmong, they say, he divided them. Some historians argue that he allowed his "secret army" to be used as cannon-fodder, played as pawns on a CIA geopolitical chessboard.
      ellauri240.html on line 121: Reality soon dispersed that dreamworld. Vang Pao later admitted that his Hmong soldiers suffered appalling losses fighting around the Plain of Jars, in Xieng Khouang province. He put the figure at 17,000 dead by 1968. But his CIA controllers urged him to keep on fighting. US sources, including the historian Alfred McCoy, have noted that younger and younger fighters were forcibly enrolled. By 1968, 30% of the new recruits were only 14 years old.
      ellauri240.html on line 124: Vang Pao has been widely portrayed by his Hmong supporters and the US media as an American war hero and venerated leader of the Hmong people. The former CIA chief William Colby once called him "the biggest hero of the Vietnam war". He came very close to having a park in Madison City, Wisconsin, named after him in 2002. But McCoy objected to the honouring of a man who had ordered the summary executions of prisoners and soldiers who crossed him, and accused Vang Pao of war crimes and heroin-trafficking. Five years later, Vang Pao's name was removed from a new school in Madison after opponents said it should not bear the name of a man with such a blood-stained history.
      ellauri240.html on line 134: Fred was the president and chairman of Andersen Corp., America's largest manufacturer of windows and patio doors, from 1914 until he retired in 1972. He served the company for more than 75 years. Katherine also devoted much of her time to the company, serving on the board of directors for 50 years. In 1959, the couple created the Andersen Foundation, now called the Fred C. and Katherine B. Andersen Foundation.
      ellauri240.html on line 139: The leak Wednesday of photos of a what appears to be a prototype of China’s first stealth fighter jet attracted immediate attention worldwide, but many note that China is years away from moving that jet into service.
      ellauri240.html on line 194: Metaliousin kustantaja ylensi häntä valokuvassa, jonka otsikko oli "Pandora sinisissä farkuissa". Kommentoidessaan kriitikkojaan hän huomautti: "Jos olen surkea kirjoittaja, niin kauhean monilla ihmisillä on surkea maku". Totta. Työnsä rehellisyydestä hän sanoi: "Jopa Tom Sawyerilla oli tyttöystävä, ja puhua aikuisista puhumatta heidän seksihaluistaan ​​on kuin puhuisi ikkunasta ilman lasia."
      ellauri240.html on line 205: Metalious's father deserted his wife and three daughters when Grace was 11 years old. At that time divorce was unusual in a French Canadian family, and Grace and her sisters felt stigmatized. In high school Grace met George Metalious, who was neither Catholic nor of French-Canadian background and, thus, highly unacceptable to her family. Nevertheless, they married in 1943. A few years later, with one child already, the Metalious's moved to Durham, New Hampshire, where George attended the University of New Hampshire. It was here that Metalious began writing seriously, neglecting both her house and, eventually, three children, despite the condemnation of her neighbors.
      ellauri240.html on line 242: In the four-part US series by HBO, Dylan Farrow recalled the moment that Woody Allen allegedly "touched her private parts" when she was seven. Dylan, now aged 35, has previously written that Allen one day led her to an attic at their house when she was seven years old. She alleged: "He told me to lay on my stomach and play with my brother’s electric train set. Then he sexually assaulted me."
      ellauri240.html on line 307: Adichie varttui Nigeriassa Nsukkan yliopistokaupungissa keskiluokkaisessa perheessä viidentenä kuudesta lapsesta. Hänen isänsä James Nwoye Adichie oli matematiikan professori yliopistossa ja äiti Grace Ifeoma Adichie "työskenteli yliopistossa hallinnollisissa tehtävissä". Etniseltä alkuperältään Adichie on igbo. Sen kansallislaulu on siis Finlandia, ja sen porukat koittivat Biafran sodassa epäonnistuneesti lähteä Nigerian liittovaltiosta Nigerin suiston öljyvarat kainalossa.
      ellauri240.html on line 443: On muitakin johtolankoja jotka eivät ole niin ilmiselviä mutta naisen pitäisi kyetä huomaamaan ne. Naisethan ovat erittäin tarkkanäköisiä ihmisten suhteen. Olisi mahdotonta luetella kaikkia johtolankoja, mutta nainen voi huomata tulevan vaaran merkit, jos hän luetteloi kaikki ne poikaystävänsä piirteet jotka kiusaavat häntä. Miten mies kohtelee äitiään. Tai ystäviään. Ovatko he mustelmilla? Tai miten hän ajaa autoa. Tööttäileekö hän muille tiellä liikkujille huutaen Blödmann! Idiot! Nämä kaikki kertovat jotain tästä miehestä.
      ellauri240.html on line 500: Founded in 2008 by Rainn Wilson et al., SoulPancake was created to encourage open-heart dialogue about what it means to be human. Throughout the years, we created content that explores the ways we all seek connection, hope, truth, identity, and purpose. (What a revolting bunch of buzzwords!)
      ellauri241.html on line 51: Keats contracts tuberculosis the following winter. He spends several weeks recovering until spring. His friends collect funds so that he may spend the following winter in Italy, where the climate is warmer. After Brown impregnates a maid and is unable to accompany him, Keats finds accommodation in London for the summer, and is later taken in by the Brawne family following an attack of his illness. When his book sells with moderate success, Fanny's mother gives him her blessing to marry Fanny once he returns from Italy. The night before he leaves, he and Fanny say their tearful goodbyes in privacy. Keats dies in Italy the following February of complications from his illness, as his brother Tom did. Bugger it.
      ellauri241.html on line 129: Eyed like a peacock, and all crimson barred; kuin riikinkukko, ja kokonaan karmiininpunainen paizi ---;
      ellauri241.html on line 140: And for her eyes: what could such eyes do there Ja hänen silmänsä: mitäpä sellaiset silmät voisivat tehdä,
      ellauri241.html on line 161: Whereat the star of Lethe not delayed Tässä hötäkässä Lethen tähtiesiintyjä ei viivyttänyt
      ellauri241.html on line 164: Thou beauteous wreath, with melancholy eyes, Sinä kaunis seppele, melankolisilla silmillä,
      ellauri241.html on line 170: And by thine eyes, and by thy starry crown!" ja sinun silmiesi ja tähtikruunusi kautta!"
      ellauri241.html on line 182: By the love-glances of unlovely eyes, hyökkäämättömänä rumien silmien mulkaisuilta, Satyyrien,
      ellauri241.html on line 188: Her loveliness invisible, yet free Hänen kauneutensa näkymättömänä, mutta silti vapaana Vaeltaakseen
      ellauri241.html on line 204: She breathed upon his eyes, and swift was seen hän hengitti hänen silmiinsä, ja nopeasti näki
      ellauri241.html on line 214: So done, upon the nymph his eyes he bent, Sen tehtyään, nymfiin päin käänsi silmänsä,
      ellauri241.html on line 221: She felt the warmth, her eyelids opened bland, Hän tunsi lämmön, hänen silmäluomensa avautuivat,
      ellauri241.html on line 231: Her eyes in torture fixed, and anguish drear, Hiänen silmänsä fixoituivat kidutuxessa, ja tuskassa kauheassa,
      ellauri241.html on line 236: A deep volcanian yellow took the place Syvä tulivuorenkeltainen tuli hänen lievemmän
      ellauri241.html on line 272: A virgin purest lipped, yet in the lore Neitsyt puhtain huulikas, mutta
      ellauri241.html on line 274: Not one hour old, yet of sciential brain Ei tunnin vanha, mutta silti tieteelliset aivot
      ellauri241.html on line 325: So neighboured to him, and yet so unseen Niin hänen naapurina, mutta silti niin näkymättömänä
      ellauri241.html on line 327: His mind wrapp3d like his mantle, while her eyes Hänen mielensä kietoutui hänen vaippaansa, kun hiänen silmänsä
      ellauri241.html on line 337: And soon his eyes had drunk her beauty up, Ja pian hänen silmänsä olivat juoneet hänen kauneutensa,
      ellauri241.html on line 344: Whether my eyes can ever turn from thee! voivatko silmäni koskaan kääntyä sinusta!
      ellauri241.html on line 378: But rather, if her eyes could brighter be, Vaan pikemminkin, jos hänen silmänsä voisivat olla kirkkaammat,
      ellauri241.html on line 379: With brighter eyes and slow amenity, kirkkaammilla silmillä ja hitaammin viihteellä,
      ellauri241.html on line 396: And next she wondered how his eyes could miss Ja seuraavaksi hän ihmetteli, kuinka hänen silmänsä saattoivat missata
      ellauri241.html on line 400: Without the aid of love; yet incontent Ilman rakkauden apua; silti tyydyttämättömänä
      ellauri241.html on line 421: That Lycius could not love in half a fright, että Lycius ei kyennyt rakastelemaan puoliksi peloissaan,
      ellauri241.html on line 452: With curled gray beard, sharp eyes, and smooth bald crown, Käpristynyt harmaa parta, terävät silmät ja sileä kalju kruunu,
      ellauri241.html on line 462: Yourself from his quick eyes?" Lycius replied, itsesi hänen nopeilta silmiltään?" Lycius vastasi:
      ellauri241.html on line 467: While yet he spake they had arrived before Hänen vielä puhuessaan he olivat saapuneet
      ellauri241.html on line 479: And a few Persian mutes, who that same year Ja muutamalle persialaiselle mykälle, jotka samana vuonna
      ellauri241.html on line 513: Where use had made it sweet, with eyelids closed, Missä käyttö oli tehnyt sen makeaksi, silmäluomet kiinni,
      ellauri241.html on line 536: He answer'd, bending to her open eyes, Hän vastasi kumartuen hänen avoimiin silmiinsä,
      ellauri241.html on line 595: Of deep sleep in a moment was betrayed. tylsään varjoon hetkessä oli petkutettu.
      ellauri241.html on line 633: Approving all, she faded at self-will, Hyväksyen kaiken, hän kuihtui taas omasta tahdostaan,
      ellauri241.html on line 641: And show to common eyes these secret bowers? ja näyttää tavallisille silmille nämä salaiset luolat?
      ellauri241.html on line 646: Without a gap, yet ne´er before had seen Ilman aukkoa, mutta kukaan ei ollut ennen nähnyt
      ellauri241.html on line 649: Save one, who look'd thereon with eye severe, Paizi yksi, joka katsoi sitä silmin ankarin,
      ellauri241.html on line 661: Of younger friends; yet must I do this wrong, kuitenkin minun on tehtävä tämä vääryys,
      ellauri241.html on line 674: From fifty censers their light voyage took viidestäkymmenestä suitsutusastiasta teki kevyesti matkaa
      ellauri241.html on line 701: Of powerful instruments the gorgeous dyes, voimakkaiden instrumenttien jännitteet, upeat värit,
      ellauri241.html on line 710: Flush'd were their cheeks, and bright eyes double bright: Heidän poskensa olivat punaiset, ja kirkkaat silmät tupla kirkkaat:
      ellauri241.html on line 723: The thyrsus, that his watching eyes may swim tyrsus, jotta hänen tarkkaavaiset silmänsä uivat
      ellauri241.html on line 744: Had fix'd his eye, without a twinkle or stir oli kiinnittänyt silmänsä pilkettä tai hämmennystä
      ellauri241.html on line 754: He gazed into her eyes, and not a jot Hän katsoi hiänen silmiinsä, eikä hiukkastakaan
      ellauri241.html on line 775: "Shut, shut those juggling eyes, thou ruthless man! "Sulje, sulje ne jongleeraavat silmät, sinä armoton mies!
      ellauri241.html on line 787: Mark how, possessed, his lashless eyelids stretch Kas kuinka riivatusti sen ripsettömät silmäluomet venyvät
      ellauri241.html on line 788: Around his demon eyes! Corinthians, see! sen demonisilmien ympärille! Krimin tataarit, ziigatkaa!
      ellauri241.html on line 794: "Fool! Fool!" repeated he, while his eyes still "Hölmö! Hullu!" toisti tää, samalla kun hänen silmänsä eivät vielä
      ellauri241.html on line 798: Then Lamia breathed death breath; the sophist's eye, Sitten Lamia henkäisi kuoleman hengenvedon; sofistin silmä,
      ellauri241.html on line 858: And leaden-eyed despairs, Ja lyijysilmäistä epätoivoa,
      ellauri241.html on line 859: Where Beauty cannot keep her lustrous eyes, Missä kauneus ei voi pitää kiiltäviä silmiä,
      ellauri241.html on line 922: Runsas 200 vuotta sitten John Keats kirjoitti pitkän romanttisen runoelman Endymion. Endymion on nuori paimenkuningas, joka rakastuu kuun jumalattareen, Cynthiaan. Hänet tuomitaan elämään nukkuen ikuisesti nuorena pysyen luolassa kuun jumalattaren rakastajana. Ei mitenkään paha tuomio, verrattuna Turun Kakolaan!
      ellauri241.html on line 995: Eyed them with joy from greatest to the least,

      ellauri241.html on line 1001: And all ye udderless girls who foster up

      ellauri241.html on line 1019: Goodbye, and thanx for all the fish!

      ellauri241.html on line 1046: opening his eyelids with a healthier brain. I feel great again!

      ellauri241.html on line 1070: With such a paradise of lips and eyes,

      ellauri241.html on line 1199: There darts a strange stream of yellowish hues and dyes:

      ellauri241.html on line 1237: That rancid breath about my eyes?

      ellauri241.html on line 1253: Those lips, O slippery blisses, twinkling eyes,

      ellauri241.html on line 1276: My soul of any rest: yet must I hence:

      ellauri241.html on line 1353: are dressed by blear-eyed nations

      ellauri241.html on line 1392: Rudders that for a hundred years had lost

      ellauri241.html on line 1408: When yet a child I oft have dried my rear while thou hast smil'd.
      ellauri241.html on line 1478: Of happiness! ye on my stubble droop,

      ellauri241.html on line 1489: He was a poor fisherman from 1000 years back,

      ellauri241.html on line 1492: Like cum of yesterday of his youthful pleasures:

      ellauri241.html on line 1532: Ten hundred years: which gone, I then bequeath

      ellauri241.html on line 1567: And of those numbers every eye was wet;

      ellauri241.html on line 1574: The guests said byebye and went their ways. But not before

      ellauri241.html on line 1585: Have I put forth to serve thee. What, not yet

      ellauri241.html on line 1637: Endymion declares that he will let go of the possibility of immortality so that he can love and adore the Maiden instead. The god Mercury appears and strikes the ground with his magic wand. Winged horses arrive to fly Endymion and the Indian Maiden into the sky where the shepherd-prince dreams that he is in Olympus which is the sanctuary of the gods. He is conflicted when he suddenly sees Diana who is also known as Phoebe and she looms over him. Endymion looks over at the sleeping Indian Maiden and "could not help but kiss her: then he grew / Awhile forgetful of all beauty save / Young Phoebe's, golden hair'd; and so 'gan crave Forgiveness." Once again he looks at the Maiden with adoration, but Phoebe begins to fade away, and he protests in panic. The noise awakens the sleeping Maiden next to him. In this moment Endymion chooses to abandon Diana and immortality as he professes to the Maid, "I love thee! and my days can never last. I always love the one that is readily available, she is the best." They soar through the sky and the Indian Maiden grows pale and suddenly vanishes before Endymion's eyes. Ow fuck! He cries out in surprise and grief as he finds himself alone yet again.
      ellauri242.html on line 247: Aleksandran äiti oli suomalaisen puutavarakauppiaan tytär Aleksandra Aleksandrovna, omaa sukua Masalin ja isä venäläinen keisarillisen armeijan kenraali Mihail Aleksejevitš Domontovitš. Kesät perhe vietti Aleksandran äidinisän Aleksander Masalinin maatilalla Kuusaan hovissa Muolaassa. Aleksandra Kollontai (Šura) valmistui opettajaksi ja oli 1800-luvun lopulla lyhyen aikaa naimisissa pikkuserkkunsa, insinööriupseeri Vladimir Kollontain kanssa. He saivat vuonna 1893 pojan, Mihailin.
      ellauri242.html on line 251: Kollontai joutui pakenemaan ulkomaille vuonna 1908. Ensimmäisen maailmansodan syttyessä hän oli Tirolissa valmistelemassa kansainvälistä naisten kongressia Wienissä. Rosa Liebknecht sai järjestettyä hänet puolueettomiin maihin sodan alta. Hän liittyi bolševikkeihin 1914 palatessaan Venäjälle.
      ellauri243.html on line 52: Herlinin sanomien tiedeuskontoliite Tiede (ei enää 2000) ylittää entisetkin perseilyennätyxensä julkaisemalla jonkun 1992 syntyneen talous"tutkija" juipin haastattelun jossa kaveri ihan kylmän rauhallisesti sanoo ettei tuloeroille ole mitään perusteluja mutta ei hän kuitenkaan vastusta tuloeroja. Voi helvetti. Heitin plärän kierrätyxeen samantien. Tällästäkö myydään "tieteen" nimellä? Tällänen pseudotiede on tämän päivän uskonto, ihan sama onko se oikein vaiko vasein kunhan se edistää Herliniä suosivia tuloeroja.
      ellauri243.html on line 84: Kunnottomat paskiaiset (engl. Inglourious Basterds, tahallinen väärinkirjoitus nimelle Ignominious Bastards) on vuonna 2009 ensi-iltansa saanut Quentin Tarantinon käsikirjoittama ja ohjaama mustan huumorin sävyttämä sotaelokuva. Sen pääosissa esiintyvät Brad Pitt (goy), Christoph Waltz (goy), Michael Fassbender (goy), Eli Roth (Jew), Diane Kruger (goy), Daniel Brühl (goy), Til Schweiger (goy) ja Mélanie Laurent (Jew). Elokuva kertoo vaihtoehtoiseen historiaan perustuvan tarinan kahdesta salajuonesta, joilla oli tarkoitus salamurhata natsi-Saksan poliittiset johtajat. Toisen suunnittelee nuori ranskanjuutalainen elokuvateatterin omistaja (Laurent), ja toisen luutnantti Aldo Rainen (Pitt, vilket träffande namn) johtama amerikanjuutalaisista sotilaista koostuva ryhmä. Sakemannit oli natohenkisinä mukana tätä leffaa tekemässä into piukeena, samalla periaatteella mätkimässä "nazeja" kuin nato paraikaa mätkii "putinisteja". Huvittavinta koko jutussa on että ukrainalaiset ovat ryssille samaan aikaan lyhyesti nazeja.
      ellauri243.html on line 137: Compared with other U.S. races, American Indians have a life expectancy that is shorter than five years. The suicide rate among American Indian youth is 2.5 times higher than among youth in the rest of the country. American Indians are 2.5 times more likely to experience violent crimes than the national average, and more than four out of five American Indian women will experience parking meter violation in their lifetimes. Holy shit, these issues can be seen as symptoms of several larger issues, including access to social services, educational opportunities, nutritional food, and health care, and just plain old laziness and stupidity. Property rights pose more significant problems, insomuch as residents who don’t have deeds to the land on which they live struggle to build credit, which throws a significant barrier in front of upward mobility. Meanwhile, tribal lands are tough sells for franchises and other commercial developers that would bring jobs to reservations, as these companies are often resistant to negotiating contract terms under tribal law. So it's really all their own fault, them not playing along with good old free enterprise and private property!
      ellauri243.html on line 147: until the American Holocaust, when the United States was attacked by waves of Russian bombers launching hypersonic nuclear-tipped missiles. Almost the entire fleet of American long-range bombers and more than half of America's intercontinental-ballistic-missile arsenal was wiped out in a matter of hours. But Battle Mountain's little fleet of high-tech bombers, led by Patrick McLanahan, survived and formed the spearhead of the American counterattack that destroyed most of Russia's ground-launched intercontinental nuclear missiles and restored a tenuous sort of parity in nuclear forces between the two nations. On the plus side, there are now less than half so many hungry mouths left to feed on the entire ball of fire. Except this, everything goes on as before, business as usual.
      ellauri243.html on line 154: Newly elected president Kenneth Phoenix, Arizona, politically exhausted from a bruising and divisive election that saw yet another president being chosen in effect by the U.S. Supreme Court, ordered a series of massive tax cuts as well as cuts in all government services. Such government cuts had not been seen since the Thomas Thorn administration: entire cabinet-level departments, such as education, commerce, transportation, energy, and veterans affairs, were consolidated with other departments or closed outright; all entitlement-program outlays were cut in half or defunded completely; American military units and even entire bases around the world disappeared virtually overnight. Despite howls of protest from both the political left and right, Congress had no choice but to agree to the severe right-centrist austerity measures.
      ellauri243.html on line 159: Thomas Torquemada Thorn (born Thomas A. Lockyear, II; 2 August 1964) is an American musician. Born in Madison, Wisconsin, he is best known as co-founder of, and lead vocalist for, the industrial metal band The Electric Hellfire Club. Joint Air Base Battle Mountain was not spared. Every aircraft at the once-bustling base was in "hangar queen" status - available only as spare parts for cars. Most planes placed in "flyable storage" were not even mothballed, but just hoisted up on clothes hangers.
      ellauri243.html on line 171: 1. Anaconda 2. Baloney pony 3. Birdie 4. Bobby 5. Boonga 6. Cack 7. Choad 8. Choda 9. Chode 10. Chopper 11. Cock 12. Crank 13. Custard launcher 14. Dick 15. Dicklet 16. Diddly 17. Dingaling 18. Ding-a-ling 19. Ding-dong 20. Dinger 21. Dingle 22. Dingus 23. Dingy 24. Dink 25. Dinkle 26. Dipstick 27. Dirk 28. Disco stick 29. Dog bone 30. Dong 31. Donger 32. Donkey Kong 33. Doodle 34. Dork 35. Down 36. Fire hose 37. Fuckpole 38. Gherkin 39. Hairy canary 40. Hammer 41. Hot rod 42. Hooter 43. Jade stalk 44. Jamoke 45. Jigger 46. Jimmy 47. Jock 48. Johnson 49. John Thomas 50. Joystick 51. Kielbasa 52. Knob 53. Lad 54. Langer 55. Lingam 56. Love muscle 57. Love stick 58. Love truncheon 59. Machine 60. Master John Goodfellow 61. Male member 62. Manhood 63. Maypole 64. Meat 65. Meat puppet 66. Meat rod 67. Meatstick 68. Meat stick 69. Member 70. Membrum virile 71. Nature’s scythe 72. Old chap 73. One-eyed trouser snake 74. Organ 75. Package 76. Pecker 77. Peen 78. Pee-pee 79. Pee-wee 80. Pego 81. Penis 82. Peter 83. Phallus 84. Pickle 85. Piece 86. Pike 87. Pingas 88. Pink cigar 89. Pintle 90. Pipe 91. Pisser 92. Pizzle 93. Plonker 94. Pork sword 95. Prick 96. Pud 97. Putz 98. P-word 99. Python 100. Ramrod 101. Rape tool 102. Rod 103. Root 104. Rutter 105. Salami 106. Sausage 107. Schlong 108. Schmuck 109. Sex tool 110. Shaft 111. Shlong 112. Shmekl 113. Skin flute 114. Snake 115. Snausage 116. Spitstick 117. Stretcher 118. Swipe 119. Tadger 120. Tagger 121. Tail 122. Tallywacker 123. Tarse 124. Thing 125. Thingy 126. Third leg 127. Todger 128. Tool 129. Trouser monkey 130. Trouser snake 131. Truncheon 132. Tube steak 133. Unit 134. Virile member 135. Wang 136. Weapon 137. Wee-wee 138. Weenie 139. Weeny 140. Whang 141. Wick 142. Widgie 143. Widdler 144. Wiener 145. Willie 146. Willy 147. Wingwang 148. Winkle 149. Winky 150. Yard 151. Ying-yang 152. January Nelson.
      ellauri243.html on line 177: 1. Addressing the court 2. BJ 3. Bagpiping 4. Basket lunch 5. Beej 6. Blowie 7. Blowing the love whistle 8. Bobbing for apples 9. Bone-lipping 10. Buccal onanism 11. Brentwood hello 12. Charming the snake 13. Climbing the corporate ladder 14. Cock-gobbling 15. Copping a doodle 16. Courting the gay vote 17. Drinking a slurpee 18. Dropping on it 19. Earning your keep 20. Essin’ the dee 21. Face-frosting 22. Fellatio 23. Fluting 24. French abortion 25. Gator mouth 26. Getting a facial 27. Getting a lewinsky 28. Getting a throat culture 29. Getting to the cream filling 30. Giving cone 31. Giving face 32. Giving head 33. Gobbling pork 34. Going down 35. Gumming the root 36. Punching 37. Giving Big Jim and the twins a bath 38. Giving brain 39. Giving head 40. Gum-rooting 41. Gumming the green bean 42. Head job 43. Honkin’ bobo 44. Huffing bone 45. Hummer 46. Interrogating the prisoner 47. Kneeling at the altar 48. Knob job 49. Larking 50. Laying some lip 51. Licking the lollipop 52. Making mouth music 53. Making the blind see 54. Meeting with Mr. One-Eye 55. Mouth-fucking 56. Mouth-holstering the nightstick 57. Mouth-milking 58. Mouth-to-junk resuscitation 59. Opening wide for Dr. Chunky 60. Oral sodomy 61. Peeling the banana 62. Penilingus 63. Piston job 64. Playing pan’s pipes 65. Playing the pink oboe 66. Playing the skin flute 67. Pole-smoking 68. Polishing the trailer hitch 69. Pricknicking 70. Protein milkshake 71. Receiving holy communion 72. Respecting your superiors 73. Sampling the sausage 74. Scooby-snacking 75. Secretarial duties 76. Singing to the choir 77. Skull-buggery 78. Skull-fucking 79. Slobbin’ the knob 80. Smiling at Mr. Winky 81. Smoking the pink pipe 82. Smoking pole 83. Southern France 84. Speaking into the bonophone 85. Speaking low genitals 86. Spit-shining a baseball bat 87. Spraying the tonsils 88. Sucking off 89. Sucky-ducky 90. Suck-starting the Harley 91. Swallowing the baloney pony 92. Sword-wwallowing 93. Taking one’s temp with a meat thermometer 94. Talking into the mic 95. Telling it to the judge 96. Waxing the carrot 97. Worshiping at the altar 98. Wringing it dry 99. Yaffling the yogurt cannon 100. Zipper dinner
      ellauri243.html on line 192: Here is a fun fact about basketball player LeBron James: His name starts with the prefix "Le," which is French for "the." It's true!
      ellauri243.html on line 198: The Gadsden flag was featured prominently in a report related to the January 6, 2021 storming of the United States Capitol. Thirty-four-year-old Rosanne Boyland carried one when she bravely collapsed from an amphetamine overdose and died in the Capitol.
      ellauri243.html on line 229: Eikä toi helleeneiltä lainattu "I apologize" ole yhtään parempi, pikemminkin pahempi! Apologia on seliseli yritys sanoutua irti syytteestä kokonaan, niikö Sokrateen puolustuspuhe: oikeastaan se mitä tein nuorisolle olikin niille hyväxi, laajentuivathan siinä niiden anuxet ja tulivat väljentyessään entistä toimintakykysemmixi.
      ellauri243.html on line 247: months after that. But by the following year, they’d both moved on. Now,
      ellauri243.html on line 249: years, David Bugliari. Wolf married The Real World: New Orleans alum Kelley
      ellauri243.html on line 292: celebrity-marriages Saif Ali Khan and Amrita Singh When a 21-year-old Saif
      ellauri243.html on line 293: Ali Khan married Amrita Singh, who was 12 years or older, shockwaves
      ellauri243.html on line 295: love. Читать ещё? Saif Ali Khan and Amrita Singh When a 21-year-old Saif
      ellauri243.html on line 296: Ali Khan married Amrita Singh, who was 12 years not older, shockwaves
      ellauri243.html on line 298: love. However, after 13 long years of marriage, the couple opted for a
      ellauri243.html on line 499: His first novel was Flight of the Old Dog and it launched his career. The plot of the book surrounds the mission of Gen. Bradley Elliot. He is testing a unique old bomber and the mission occurs to him to destroy a soviet weapon on site in Soviet Union before it is deployed. The aircraft is called Old Dog and it has to get the team to safety.
      ellauri243.html on line 504: Some people call this series the Paul McLanahan series and others call them the Dreamland series, based on the base in which the books are set. He has been writing this series for over 25 years now. This series is not to be confused with his other series, which is officially titled the Dreamland series and is a collaboration with another author who shall remain nameless.
      ellauri243.html on line 525: I am one of your many fans that have thoroughly enjoyed your many books, of which I have been fortunate to collect and read. From what I have read about you, your dedication to your family and to the world of generals is something you must be very proud.
      ellauri243.html on line 529: Graeme: 1 year ago. I believe that was Plan of Attack:
      ellauri243.html on line 538: FBI bird on pitempi kuin Pat ja sen avonainen pusero korostaa nätisti sen tissejä. Se puristaa Pättiä (kädestä) hirmu kovasti. Her job was to bat her eyes and shake her ass at suspects, but sadly, old Pat had lost his sense of touch. But beefy Brad is casting glances at her cleavage. Brad's eyes follow Cassandra's fan as she waddles back across the hangar. He has his seed bags hitched up and his pink torpedo all armed up for rapid deployment. Musta leski Cassandra valmistautuu nielemään sen hook, line and sinker. "Dreamer" January Nelsonia lainataxemme (yllä): get ready for suck-starting the Harley, swallowing the baloney pony, taking her temp with a meat thermometer.
      ellauri243.html on line 542: Tämmönen Bob Stearns kuoli hiljattain. Robert "Bob" H. Stearns, Columbia, SC * December 9, 1936 + January 5, 2023. Tämä Bob kyllä piti lentokoneista. He had a lifelong love affair with airplanes and flying, owned a half dozen aircraft and enjoyed meeting up with his flying buddies, meticulously restoring vintage aircraft and going to fly-ins. His health eventually clipped his wings, and after that he turned his attention to volunteering at Riverbanks Zoo and nurturing a latent talent for painting, which was discovered after Bob and Marge moved to Stilled Hopes.
      ellauri243.html on line 554: Bob´s book is about Perpetual Potential. Inside these pages, you will discover three invaluable lessons that will propel you closer to your true potential. The lessons will serve you well on either of two different, but parallel roads you may travel: The roads towards triumph or tragedy, as well as the roads in between. In 2003 the author, Bob Stearns was on top of the world. He led his company to win the most prestigious business award in the country, the Malcolm Baldrige award. Just five short years later, tragedy struck. Bob´s oldest son Eric was killed while on a study trip abroad in Athens, Greece. Eric was 21 years old at the time and was a junior at Penn State University. Although Eric lost his precious life in Greece, he found something sprawled under the pillars of the Acropolis that many people search for their entire lifetimes. He found inner peace in the knowledge that he could truly be anything he wanted to be, he could do anything he wanted to with his life. In his book "Perhaps a Man Can Change the Stars - Eric's Pursuit of Perpetual Potential", Bob shares with you three life lessons that allowed Eric to understand his true potential. Those same lessons helped Bob and his family deal with Eric´s death. The same lessons had enabled Bob to lead his company to triumph five years earlier. A key take away from the book is that no matter what stage of life you find yourself, you have the potential to explore. You have the potential to utilize and grow the talents and aspirations that you currently have. You have the potential to rekindle old talents that lie dormant, and to allow new talents to blossom. This is true regardless of age, circumstances, and what other people may be telling us. So read, explore and think deeply about how you can apply the three lessons that Bob learned from Eric. Decide for yourself how you can best use them. Indeed, our Potential is Perpetual!
      ellauri243.html on line 654: Pahrump on rekisteröimätön kaupunki eli kunnallishallinnoton alue Nevadan osavaltiossa, Yhdysvalloissa. Sen väkiluku oli 44 738 vuonna 2020. Alue sijaitsee Nyen piirikunnassa ja on sen suurin asutuskeskus.
      ellauri243.html on line 680: Mises kirjoitti ja vittuili laajasti klassisesta liberalismista. Hän kannatti täysin vapaata markkinataloutta ja vähimmäistä yövartijavaltiota. Misesillä oli ratkaiseva vaikutus oppilaaseensa Friedrich von Hayekiin, joka sai sittemmin taloustieteen Nobel-palkinnon (no tietysti) ja tunnettiin myös liberalismia puolustavana kirjailijana ja filosofina. Hayek on sanonut kääntyneensä sosialismista liberalismiin parikymmenvuotiaana 1920-luvulla nimenomaan opettajansa Misesin teosten Liberalismi ja Sosialismi ansiosta.
      ellauri243.html on line 714: Benjamin Disraeli, 1st Earl of Beaconsfield, KG, PC, DL, JP, FRS, SOB (21 December 1804 – 19 April 1881) was a British statesman and Conservative politician who twice served as Prime Minister of the United Kingdom. He played a central role in the creation of the modern Conservative Party, defining its policies and its broad outreach. He is the only British prime minister to have been of Jewish origin.
      ellauri243.html on line 730: Endymion is very like Benjy´s autobiography, with his boring English politics woven into the thread of the story. The action and conversations are distributed between characters who had figured in English politics and the fashionable romances of Europe during the last forty years.
      ellauri243.html on line 762: 2. The other James Thomson, in full James Alexander Thomson, (born Dec. 20, 1958, Chicago, Ill., U.S.), is an American biologist who was among the first to isolate human embryonic stem cells. Thomson extracted stem cells from human embryos. However, this confronted him with a moral dilemma, as such an extraction is fatal to the embryo. After consulting with several bioethicists at the university, Thomson decided that continued research was ethical as long as the embryos, "created" by couples who "no longer wanted them" in order to "have children", would otherwise be "destroyed anyway." I just love medicinal ethics! Kunnon personismia. Montako neekeriä saa keilata pelastaaxeen yhden valkoisen joka työntää lastenvaunuja.
      ellauri244.html on line 33:

      yellow;background:navy;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Benoît Mandelbrot


      ellauri244.html on line 92: The Serenity Prayer: “God, grant me the grace to accept with serenity the things I cannot change, Courage to change the things I can, And wisdom to know the difference.”
      ellauri244.html on line 178: He worked despite having for 37 years "a state of permanently impossible relations" with his second master (deputy), John Jeudwine, which, according to school historian J.B. Oldham, "embittered both their lives to the detriment of the school, the scandal of the town and the embarrassment of Butler's every action"
      ellauri244.html on line 180: There were shortcomings in the welfare of pupils. Fights between boys were said to average seventy a week and were regarded by Dr Butler "with a blind eye", comfort for boarders was minimal, and complaints about food were continuous, on one occasion leading to a riot. His initials "S.B." over the gateway to the house he built himself next to the school were said to be a sign for "stale bread, sour beer, salt butter, and stinking beef sold by Samuel Butler". He tried to suppress games at Shrewsbury, considering football (pre-FA) as "only fit for butcher boys" and "more fit for farmboys and labourers than for young gentlemen".
      ellauri244.html on line 195: Word of Faith is home to many such frauds, from Kenneth Copeland to Kenneth Hagin to Frederick Price to Benny Hinn. Even by mainstream Christian standards, their theology is bizarre. They preach, for example, that God is powerless to act in the world except what Christians allow him to do by invoking his name in prayer. They also practice faith healing and teach that sickness is a sign of a weak faith (this despite the fact that lots of Word of Faith pastors and their wives have come down with cancer, heart disease, and so forth).
      ellauri244.html on line 259: Minusta tuntuu että kaikki kazovat minua siis meitä. Me olemme pikku narsisteja punaisessa veneessä, purjehdimme keltaisella merellä. Olin alkanut pitää miehestä hiljaisena, hauraana ja hienhajuisena. Silloin olen selvästi yläkynnessä. Olen tanakka, punakka ja rivakka. Inhottava julma Harri tappaa väpelösti kutuhaukea. Se on sexikästä. Hopeinen muna lipoo limaisesti alahuuliani. Harri luki innoissaan "pappa" Hemingwayn novelleja. Luki se Henry Milleriäkin. Hyvä vaan että Harri sai metrotunnelissa kylmää kyytiä. Hauen laulu katkes lyhyexi.
      ellauri244.html on line 420: Camilla Läckbergin märän unen poika Viktor on vähän jeesustyyppinen, antakaa tyttölasten tulla tyköni. Mitä enemmän Camilla juo, sitä enemmän se ärsyyntyy. Vein Jeesuxen käden mekkoni alle ja painoin sen häpykukkulaani vasten. Olin varta vasten jättänyt pikkuhousut pois. Tämän kaiken on mahdollistanut tuo Pyhän hengen lahja, p-pilleri. Ei koskaan enää tarvi häpeillä. Voi mennä vaikka kauppakorkeaan. Camillan äidin lempikirjailija oli joku Faye. Mikä seuraavista?
      ellauri244.html on line 424: USA Today and #1 bestselling contemporary romance author Madison Faye is the dirty alter ego of the very wholesome, very normal suburban housewife behind the stories. While she might be a wife, mom, and PTA organizer on the outside, there’s nothing but hot, steamy, and raunchy fantasies brewing right beneath the surface!
      ellauri244.html on line 427: Hayley Faye is a brilliant author with more than two dozen releases including 17 full books spanning multiple hit series along with stand alone stories! She proudly boasts a Goodreads author rating of 4.5/5 averaged from over 130 unique ratings! Follow On Twitter Love FayeWorlds? Tell your friends! AUTHOR BIO
      ellauri244.html on line 429: Lyndsay Faye is an American author. Her first novel was the Sherlockian pastiche Dust and Shadow: An Account of the Ripper Killings by Dr. John H. Watson and she has been nominated for the Edgar Award for The Gods of Gotham and Jane Steele.
      ellauri244.html on line 431: Dentist turned writer, Faye Kellerman is one of the new York time bestselling author. She is well known for the Peter Decker and Rina Lazarus series of mystery novels. Faye Kellerman was born in St. Louis, Missouri on July 31, 1952 in Jewish community. Faye grew up in Sherman Oaks, California.
      ellauri244.html on line 433: The world Cassandra Faye created was rich with imagination and detail and the hero was the perfect mix of strength and tenderness. As with all her stories, there were some dark scenes that took me to the edge of my seat, yet the romance balanced the book perfectly. I lost sleep over this book staying up late to read 'just one more chapter'.
      ellauri244.html on line 435: Mia Faye is a romance addict who lives for the joy of entertaining her readers with her novels. She loves to hear from you via social media or via mail: miafayebooks@gmail.com ... "On His Desk" from bestselling author Mia Faye is a stand-alone second chance romance, between enemies who become lovers, with a baby surprise and a guaranteed HEA ...
      ellauri244.html on line 437: I'm Faye Bird, author of My Second Life and What I Couldn't Tell You . My latest book is My Secret Lies With You. If you came here to find out more about me, and my books, then you are in the right place. Welcome! Patron of Reading If you are a student, parent or teacher at Elthorne Park High School then please do head to my Patron of Reading page.
      ellauri244.html on line 439: Faye Madden's novels are sweet and wholesome, and through her richly crafted characters she explores all the heartache, pain, yet ultimately joyous happiness love brings, however that journey may unfold. Many of her novels explore this through the prism of a second chance romance, whilst others focus on love lost and found, or in unrequited love.
      ellauri244.html on line 441: Hi, I'm Faye Bryant! I help people who have endured trauma–whether of their own making, such as addiction and poor choices, or pushed upon them through abuse–recognize they have worth and purpose, determine their God-designed purpose, then live confidently, with focus toward that purpose to live the life God designed them for.
      ellauri244.html on line 443: Get the latest from southern gothic author Faye Snowden. Raven Burns is back in a sequel to A Killing Fire and on the hunt for a serial killer while she is being pursued by two men-- one wants to redeem her soul, and the other who wants to lock her away forever. Get the latest from southern gothic author Faye Snowden.
      ellauri244.html on line 445: In "The Struggle for the Right to Vote)," author Alice Faye Duncan chronicles the struggle for the right to vote in a book aimed at children. Faye Duncan is an educator, retired school librarian and prolific author... Alice Faye Duncan is the author of several books, including the classic NAACP Award-nominated board book, Honey Baby Sugar Child, and Just Like a Mama. Ms. Duncan is a school librarian in Memphis, Tennessee, and conducts writing workshops for parents and educators.
      ellauri244.html on line 447: Shon Faye - Writer, presenter and author of The Transgender Issue: An Argument for Justice She's Creative with Claire Hutchison Nghệ thuật Shon has written for the likes of The Guardian, Vice and Dazed and hosts the Call Me Mother podcast. Her upcoming book The Transgender Issue: An Argument for Justice comes out in September.
      ellauri244.html on line 449: Horror Faye L. Ryan is a successful personal growth author mourning the loss of her husband. She retreats to a cabin on the bayou to finish her next book only to find that more than just her past will haunt her. Director Kd Amond Writers Kd Amond Sarah Zanotti Star Sarah Zanotti See production, box office & company info Watch on Prime Video
      ellauri244.html on line 451: Faye Avalon lives in the UK with her super-ace husband and onebeloved, ridiculously spoiled Golden Retriever. She worked as cabin crew, detouredinto property development, public relations, court reporting, and education beforefinally finding her passion: writing steamy romance.
      ellauri244.html on line 453: About the author: Faye Toogood is a British artist working in a diverse range of disciplines, from sculpture to furniture and fashion. Toogood's works have been acquired for the permanent collections of institutions worldwide, and she has exhibited internationally. She is represented by Friedman Benda in New York.
      ellauri244.html on line 455: Courtney Faye Taylor is a writer and visual artist. She is the author of Concentrate (Graywolf Press, 2022), selected by Rachel Eliza Griffiths as the winner of the Cave Canem Poetry Prize. Courtney earned her BA from Agnes Scott College and her MFA from the University of Michigan Helen Zell Writers' Program where she received the Hopwood ...
      ellauri244.html on line 457: Lily Faye, a friendly frog gets upset with her neighbor Mr. Oak Tree. She sees children entering a schoolhouse and she learns that those students are called mammals. Lily Faye goes to the school to get a closer look. She looks into a classroom window where she learns about the importance of trees. Lily Faye decides to return to the oak tree and apologize for being mean to him.
      ellauri244.html on line 459: Tänään Peter Graystone enjoys Elton John's musical about a televangelist. THE musical Tammy Faye is remarkably sympathetic to the Christian faith of the American evangelist whose television channel, Praise the Lord, rose and fell equally spectacularly in the 1980s. It is very much less sympathetic to her husband, Jim Bakker, whose affairs with women ...
      ellauri244.html on line 461: Author: Jessica Hines | Posted in Critical Essays: Few witches in literary history have been as influential—or as maligned—as Morgan le Fay. By turns either the healer-ruler of the mystical island of Avalon or the arch-villainess of Arthurian legend, for more than nine hundred years Morgan has shaped popular perceptions of witchcraft.
      ellauri244.html on line 471:
      Jatkoa Fayen seikkailuihin

      ellauri244.html on line 484: Oli ollut tuskallista olla ilman Juliennea mutta oikeesti ei Faye siitä piitannut vaan Jackista. Ylvan täydelliset huulet ja suipot rinnat. Miten Jack työntyi hänen sisäänsä, hoki Ylvan nimeä ja sai orgasmin. Voi apinoiden planeetta. Julienne on täys statisti, mikä on hyvä kerta siitä tulee viipaleita. Barbie prinsessa juliennepaloina.
      ellauri244.html on line 490: Trampoliinilla pomppivilla juliennepaloilla on edessään pitkä helminauha julmuuxia joita Jackit Henrikit Hasset ja Ragnarit aiheuttaisivat. Siinä ei muu auta kuin tehdä vielä pahempia julmuuxia. Feija tietää miten, onhan se Vihtorin jo nirhannut. Kiltit tytöt eivät vimmastu, ne hankkiutuvat tasoihin. Kersti-täti on valmis mukaan kuin lukkari sotaan. Selvittyään Jackista ne voivat nirhata myös Ragnarin. Faye ei voinut tietystikään rikastua työllä, vaan keinottelulla. Eitää mikään vasemmistokirja ole, älkää ymmärtäkö Camillaa väärin. Tässä tehdään pisnistä. Kaikille ansionsa mukaan, ei minkään tarpeen typerä.
      ellauri244.html on line 523: - Rakkaus, minä nauroin, - koetapa ajatella sanaa "rakkaus" kaksikymmentä kertaa peräkkäin niin huomaat miten naurettavalta ja teeskentelevältä se kuulostaa. Ja minun mielestäni on olemassa kolmenlaisia ihmisiä; ensinnäkin ikäneitsyet sun muut sublimoijat, kuten Velho ja Platon, jotka ovat liian saamattomia löytääkseen paria, jotka yleensä ovat muka älyllisiä ihmisiä ja jotka halukkaan tavatessaan kumminkin takertuvat tähän kuin iilimadot kun kerrankin sänkyyn pääsevät;
      ellauri244.html on line 541: Jöns antoi meille lahjaxi Tracy Chapmanin ekan älppärin jossa oli raita Fast Car. " Fast Car " is a song by American singer-songwriter Tracy Chapman. It was released on April 6, 1988, as the lead single from her 1988 self-titled debut studio album. Chapman's appearance on the Nelson Mandela 70th Birthday Tribute helped the song become a top-ten hit in the United States, reaching number six on the Billboard Hot 100. Tracy is 54 years Nelson's junior. Bra jobba, Tracy!
      ellauri244.html on line 567: Part Four focuses on the period several hundred years after Jonathan and his students have left the Flock and their teachings become venerated rather than practiced. The birds spend all their time extolling the virtues of Jonathan and his students and spend no time flying for flying's sake. The seagulls practice strange rituals and use demonstrations of their respect for Jonathan and his students as status symbols. Eventually some birds reject the ceremony and rituals and just start flying. Eventually one bird named Anthony Gull questions the value of living since "...life is pointless and since pointless is by definition meaningless then the only proper act is to dive into the ocean and drown. Better not to exist at all than to exist like a seaweed, without meaning or joy [...] He had to die sooner or later anyway, and he saw no reason to prolong the painful boredom of living." As Anthony makes a dive-bomb to the sea, at a speed and from an altitude which would kill him, a white blur flashes alongside him. Anthony catches up to the blur, which turns out to be a seagull, and asks what the bird was doing:
      ellauri244.html on line 593: Here in my opinion is the only imaginative prose-writer of the slightest value who has appeared among the English-speaking races for some years past. Even if that is objected to as an overstatement (there is me, after all), it will probably be admitted that Miller is a writer out of the ordinary, worth more than a single glance; and after all, he is a completely negative, unconstructive, amoral writer, a mere Jonah, a passive acceptor of evil, a sort of Whitman among the corpses. Paizi Whatman oli peräreikämiehiä.
      ellauri244.html on line 602: Miller married his first wife, Beatrice Sylvas Wickens, in 1917, at 26; their divorce was granted on December 21, 1923, due to the 7-year itch. Together they had a daughter, Barbara, born in 1919.
      ellauri244.html on line 603: Unclear which of them was the junior. According to Who dated who, Beatrice Sylvas Wickens and Henry Miller are divorced after a marriage of 105 years. According to our records, Beatrice Sylvas Wickens is possibly single.
      ellauri244.html on line 605: In 1923, while he was still married to Beatrice, Miller met and became enamored of a mysterious dance-hall ingénue who was born Juliet Edith Smerth but went by the stage-name June Mansfield. She was 21 at the time, 11 years his junior. They began an affair, and were married on June 1, 1924.
      ellauri244.html on line 609: Things began to change in Paris after meeting Anaïs Nin, 12 years his junior, who, with Hugh Guiler, went on to pay his entire way through the 1930s including the rent for an apartment at 18 Villa Seurat. Nin became his lover and financed the first printing of Tropic of Cancer in 1934 with money from Otto Rank. His works contain detailed accounts of sexual experiences. Sitä koitin vähän lukea mutta oli liian hapokasta, ei pystynyt.
      ellauri244.html on line 611: In 1939 Lawrence Durrell, 21 years his junior, invited Miller to Greece. Miller described the visit in The Colossus of Maroussi. Miller proved to be a major influence on the new Beat Generation of American writers, most notably Jack Kerouac, 31 years his junior, the only Beat writer Miller truly cared for.
      ellauri244.html on line 613: In 1944, Miller met and married his third wife, Janina Martha Lepska, a philosophy student who was 30 years his junior. They had two children: a son, Tony, and a daughter, Valentine. They divorced in 1952.
      ellauri244.html on line 615: The following year, he married artist Eve McClure, who was 37 years his junior. They divorced in 1960, and she died in 1966, likely as a result of alcoholism. In 1961, Miller arranged a reunion in New York with his ex-wife June. They had not seen each other in nearly three decades. In a letter to Eve, he described his shock at June's "terrible" appearance, as she had by then degenerated both physically and mentally. Not him! Though he was 11 years her senior!
      ellauri244.html on line 618: 46 years his junior. They divorced 1977, when he was 86 and she 40. Maybe Hoki's biological alarm clock went.
      ellauri244.html on line 620: After his move to Ocampo Drive, he held dinner parties for the artistic and literary figures of the time. His cook and "caretaker" was a young artist's model named Twinka Thiebaud, 54 years his junior, who later wrote a book about his evening "chats." In relation to reaching 80 years of age, Miller explains:
      ellauri244.html on line 624: During the last four years of his life, Miller held an ongoing correspondence of over 1,500 letters with Brenda Venus, a young Playboy model and columnist, actress and private dancer. A book about their correspondence was published in 1986. She was 56 years his junior.
      ellauri245.html on line 57: Camilla Läckberg påminner sig on Anna Lindhs mord i NK när hon (i Fayes skepnad) försöker piggas upp efter intermezzot med den kukaktige Jack, tittandes på snygga dyra kläder, efter att ha satt eld på den ynklige Viktor.
      ellauri245.html on line 144: Nesbø vietti puolen vuoden virkavapaansa Australiassa. Matkan aikana hän kirjoitti esikoisromaaninsa Lepakkomies (1997), jossa rikostutkija Harry Hole ensimmäistä kertaa esiintyy. Lepakkomies-niteen alkupää on kuin joku Eyewitness travel opas, hirmu pitkästyttävä.
      ellauri245.html on line 161: Obviously yes.
      ellauri245.html on line 163: If there was any comfort, it was that The Leopard was selected as the year’s best crime novel by the Danish Academy of Crime Writers, topped the bestseller lists in Norway, Finland and Denmark, and for the first time Harry Hole made it onto Der Spiegel’s bestseller list in Germany, where it reached as high as No. 3. The gold and silver medalists shed full 80 liters more gore than I. Got to sharpen up.
      ellauri245.html on line 267: Nsala of Wala in the Nsongo District (Abir Concession) is a photograph published by Edmund Dene Morel in his book King Leopold's Rule in Africa, in 1904. The image depicts a Congolese man named Nsala examining the severed foot and hand of his five-year-old daughter, Boali. The photograph was taken by Alice Seeley Harris, the wife of a missionary, in the village of Baringa on 14 May 1904. It was subsequently employed as a tool in the inhumane media campaign against the situation in the Congo Free State, which was largely characterised by rubber dildos.
      ellauri245.html on line 317: One year ago, a heavily armed man dressed as a police officer appeared on the beach of a youth summer camp in Norway. The kids had no way of knowing he was targeting them for the ills of Europe. Then he started shooting. And shooting. Where were the real cops? By the end of the day, seventy-seven people had been killed, the deadliest attack in that country since World War II. As told by the survivors, these are the beat-by-beat horrors of those terrifying 198 minutes. the Utoya Massacre On July 22, 2011. Lue ja kauhistu, tää on hurja jännäri!
      ellauri245.html on line 342: Gypsies are unemployed.
      ellauri245.html on line 390: jobber med med mistenkelige dødsfall og forbrytelser, og løser sakene ved å benytte kriminaltekniske metoder og studere bevisene. Den norske TV-kanalen TV2, sendte våren 2014 krimserien Det tredje øyet. I serien følger seerne etterforskeren Viggo Lust sin kamp om å finne datteren, som forsvant sporløst fire år tidligere. I serien får seerne god kjennskap til etterforskernes private forhold. Serien handler på mange måter mer om etterforskerne, enn om sakene de etterforsker.
      ellauri245.html on line 418: beviser på at du har gjort dette, og da har de sett litt for mye på film og tror
      ellauri245.html on line 433: Jeg er litt sånn på kritikk til politiet generelt, at jeg leser det også tar jeg en liten vurdering, men veldig mye av det er tull.. hvis du leser saken, så får du et litt annet innblikk i hva som faktisk har skjedd. De er veldig subjektive.
      ellauri245.html on line 501: Som generalsekretær støtta Lie grunnlegginga av Indonesia og Israel. Han arbeidde for at sovjetiske troppar skulle trekkjast ut or Iran, og for våpenkvile i Kashmir. Sovjetunionen uttrykte misnøye med Lie då han hjelpte til med å skaffe støtte til Sør-Korea då dei vart invaderte i 1950. Lie arbeidde òg for at Sovjetunionen skulle avbryte boikottinga si av SN, sjølv om han truleg hadde lite å gjere med at boikotten vart avslutta. Han motsette seg spansk medlemskap i SN grunna personleg motstand mot Francoregimet. Han arbeidde òg for at Folkerepublikken Kina skulle anerkjennast som medlem av SN etter at nasjonalistregjeringa gjekk i eksil på Taiwan. Han meinte at Folkerepublikken Kina var dei einaste som kunne oppfylle Kina sine obligasjonar fullt ut.
      ellauri245.html on line 532: The Clash were an English rock band formed in London in 1976 who were key players in the original wave of British punk rock. Billed as "The Only Band That Matters", they also contributed to the post-punk and new wave movements that emerged in the wake of punk and employed elements of a variety of genres including reggae, dub, funk, ska, and rockabilly. For most of their recording career, the Clash consisted of lead vocalist and rhythm guitarist Joe Strummer, lead guitarist and vocalist Mick Jones, bassist Paul Simonon, and drummer Nicky "Topper" Headon.
      ellauri245.html on line 549: Fayen kukaktiga Jack on kollaasi ziljoonasta julkkis miljoonamies paskiaisesta, mutta älähäläpäs, kyllä niitä löytyy myös koti-Suomesta. Niikö Alvar Aalto esimerkixi, joka tölvi ja kusetti törkeästi toistakin vaimoansa, lahjakasta arkkitehtia Elissa Aaltoa. Lahjakas arkkitehti Elissa Aalto omistautui miehensä elämäntyön vaalimiseen. Hänen omaa, poikkeuksellista elämäänsä on tähän saakka viizitty pöyhiä varsin vähän.
      ellauri245.html on line 578: Kirjallisena todisteina oikeudessa olivat muun muassa luottosopimukset ja viestit, joissa mies kirjoitti naiselle olevansa pahoillaan muun muassa sitä, että pakotti naisen ostamaan Audin. Käräjäoikeuden mukaan mies hyödynsi häikäilemättömästi naisen luottamusta ja hyväuskoisuutta lyhyehkössä parisuhteessa.
      ellauri245.html on line 633: In the 20th century Burundi had three main indigenous ethnic groups: Hutu, Tutsi, and Twa. The area was colonised by the German Empire in the late 1800s and administered as a portion of German East Africa. In Burundi and neighboring Rwanda to the north, the Germans maintained indirect rule, leaving local social structures intact. Under this system, the Tutsi minority generally enjoyed its historically high status as aristocrats, whereas the Hutus occupied the bottom of the social structure. Princely and monarchal rulers belonged to a unique ethnic group, Ganwa, though over time the political salience of this distinction declined and the category was subsumed by the Tutsi grouping. During World War I, Belgian troops from the Belgian Congo occupied Burundi and Rwanda. In 1919, under the auspices of the nascent League of Nations, Belgium was given the "responsibility" of administering "Ruanda-Urundi" as a mandated territory. Though obligated to promote social progress in the territory, the Belgians did not alter the local power structures. Following World War II, the United Nations was formed and Ruanda-Urundi became a trust territory under Belgian administration, which required the Belgians to politically "edducate the locals and make them really fit", to prepare them for independence.
      ellauri245.html on line 664: Jonnetyyppinen maailmankuva on samanlainen kuin Amerikka New Yorkerin kannessa, missä Manhattan (omat porukat) näkyy edessä niin isona ettei sen takaa muuta mannerta enää erota, muusta maailmasta puhumattakaan. Jonkun typerän belgi-insinöörin sisar teki seppukun 24-vuotiaana syystä tahi toisesta, ja sitä pitää tässä vielä sadan vuoden kuluttua muistella. Mitä vitun väliä??? Imponerende. Hvor mye? Saatanan kaupparazuja.
      ellauri245.html on line 673: In 2009, Norwegian nationals Joshua French and Tjostolv Moland were arrested and charged in the killing of their hired driver, attempted murder of a witness, espionage, armed robbery and the possession of illegal firearms. They were found guilty and sentenced to death, and also fined, along with their employer Norway—$60 million.
      ellauri245.html on line 691: Or the highlights in your hair that catch your eyes Hienot raidat sulla tukassa
      ellauri245.html on line 733: Mutta hei, kazotaanpa nyt päästääkö Kaija isonveljen näköisen tunturipoliisin hilloviivalle! Nykyaikana karvakaulusta (tai todennäköisemmin porsliinia) lähtee niin kevyellä panostuxella etten kyllä yhtään ihmettelisi. ... Ei vittu ei se annakaan, vaikka fjällpolisen Aslak käy päälle kuin yleinen syyttäjä, ja mixi? Nääs koska se on rakastunut Nääsbööseen, eli siis Harry Reikäseen. Se säästää kirkkovenettä väkäleukaiselle Jerrylle. Kuinka herttaista.
      ellauri245.html on line 760: Vaikka hänen elokuviensa taloudellinen menestys olikin ailahtelevaa, kriitikoiden ja nyky-yleisön silmissä Altmanin voittokulku 1970-luvulla näytti loputtomalta: peräjälkeen syntyi elokuvia kuten McCabe ja Mrs Miller (1971) ja Pitkät jäähyväiset (The Long Goodbye, 1973), jotka iskostuivat välittömästi modernin Hollywood-elokuvan kaanoniin. Näistä kuten muistakaan Altmanin filmeistä en muista yhtäkään.
      ellauri245.html on line 762: 1970-luvun loppupuolella alkoi kuitenkin Altmanin alamäki: vaikka Altman ohjasikin vuonna 1979 peräti kolme elokuvaa, niiden taso oli kaukana hänen aiemmista töistään. Tämä kulminoitui vuonna 1980 Disney/Paramount-tuotantoon Kippari-Kalle: Lyttäpäisen vinosuisen suikkikoomikon Robin Williamsin (1951-2014) tähdittämä elokuva teki tuottoa teattereissa, mutta oli aikanaan ja myös nykyään kriitikoiden mielestä Altmanin uran pohjanoteeraus. Variety-lehden mielestä se oli Williamsin paras. Lyttäpäinen Robin Williams oli kyllä erehdyttävästi Popeyen näköinen. Robin ei ihan selvinnyt Solonin 10:nnestä hebdomadista. Kuolinsyy oli "asphyxia through hanging". Tää ei enää ole kivaa, menen hirteen lepäämään.
      ellauri245.html on line 764: ye-movie.jpg" />
      ellauri245.html on line 767: Altman palasi suosioon 1990-luvulla elokuvallaan The Player – Pelimies (1992), ja jatkoi komeaa paluutaan Raymond Carver -filmatisoinnilla Short cuts – oikopolkuja (1993). 2000-luvulla Altmanin töistä parhaiten on huomattu poikkeuksellisen suosittu, Richard Geren tähdittämä Tohtori T ja naiset (Dr. T & the Women, 2000) sekä Agatha Christien hengessä kulkeva Gosford Park (2001).
      ellauri246.html on line 266:       And yet unshaken as the continent. koska varoivat asumasta mannerlaatoilla.
      ellauri246.html on line 355: Palattuaan puolivalssattuna, synkkänä, joka ei ole vielä naamioitu kaupungin saarron jälkeen, hän alkoi etsiä heidän paikkansa elämässä. Ne olivat lyhyitä aikoja, mutta voimakkaita. Joseph Brodskin lyhyt elämäkerta ehdottaa, että hän olisi muuttanut neljä koulua vuodesta 1944 lähtien. Viimeisimmässä niistä sijaitsevat Salon-kaistalla, missä hän pysyi toisen vuoden aikana seitsemännellä luokalla. Hänet lähetettiin merenkulkukouluun, mutta sitä ei hyväksytty. Sitten lyhyen aikavälin proletaarisen episodi seurasi hänen biografiassa: Joseph toimii Arsenal tehtaalla jyrsintäkoneen oppilaana. Epäonnistuminen siinäkin ilmestyi pyrkimyksensä mennä sukellusakvaarioiden kouluun ilmeisesti, Isän laivastotausta vaikutti. Sitten ajatus lääkäri tulee näkyviin. Saadaxeen käytäntöä, hän saapuu avustavan persistorin morgueen. Anatomian kuolleet ilmeisesti osoittautuivat helpoxi nakixi, joten se kestää vain kuukauden. Seuraavaxi Kochegar, merimiehen majakka ... Lady Stabiilius tuli vasta kun Joseph alkoi ratsastaa Neuvostoliiton geologisilla retkillä, työntekijänä. Kaksi vuodenaikaa se oli valkoinen meri, sitten Pohjois-Yakutia, Itä-Siperia, muut Polarin alueen alueet. Yakutian hermostunut jakautuminen valmistui eeppisen.
      ellauri246.html on line 369: Heidät esitteli kesän 1961 lopputuloksena Evgeny Rain. Joseph oli 21-vuotias. Monet ihmiset pitävät ystävyyttään kahden runoilun vilpittömänä liittämisenä. Outoa, mutta he eivät olleet kovin kiinnostuneita toistensa runoudesta. Ei keskusteluja, kiistoja erilaisiin sukupolviin kuuluvien ihmisten runkoon. Heidän välillä oli jotain erilaista, mikä Brodsky itse ei halunnut puhua. Et kerro, se on pitkä ja vaikea. Noin niin hän vastasi pyyntöihin. Kuten Anna Andreevna, hän perusti nopeasti uuden tuttavuuden tason. Hän oli nuori eikä tietoinen hänen voimasta. "Big Elegy John Donna" aiheutti sanailua siitä, että Joseph itse ei ymmärrä, mitä hän kirjoitti. Ja hiän muistutti, kun he menivät hiänelle, ettei hän ollut lukenut oppaita tai kuuntele hiänen runojaan. Lyhyesti sanottuna he kehuivat kumpikin runojaan, hengittäen talossaan eri ilmaa. Hän tuskin tiesi, että Ahmatov vertaa ystäväänsä poikansa kanssa eikä kannata jälkimmäistä.
      ellauri246.html on line 574: Dzerzhinskin käräjäoikeudessa Brodskin kuulemistilaisuus pidettiin 18. helmikuuta. NIITÄ. Metteri kuvailee hänen näkemyksensä tästä tapahtumasta: "Oli hämmästyttävää, että tämä nuori mies, jonka vain minulla oli tilaisuus nähdä yksityiskohtaisesti ja tarkkailla, kyllä, vaikka olosuhteissa se on vakavasti hänelle äärimmäinen, tyhjennetään Jotkut muut irrotukset - [tuomari] Savelyeva ei voinut loukata häntä eikä itseään, hän ei pelottanut hänen surullista karkeaa ozaansa Okhricov. Hänen kasvonsa oli joskus hämmentynyt, koska hän innostuksella ei myöskään kykene kehittämään tätä outoa naista, sen sulaa herättävyys; Hän ei pysty selittämään hänelle jopa yksinkertaisinta, hänen mielipiteessään, käsitteitä. "
      ellauri246.html on line 576: Tuomari Savelyevin johtama kuulustelu oli rehellisesti tarkoitus vahvistaa välittömästi Brodskin syytöksen virittäessä.
      ellauri246.html on line 864: Nobel-palkinnoista. Brodsky uskoi aina, että hänelle voitaisiin merkitä tämä erittäin arvostettu palkkio. Hänellä oli urheilun luonteeltaan kilpaileva laskimo - nuorista vuosilta välittömän reaktion muiden ihmisten runoihin: Voin tehdä sen paremmin. Eri palkintoja ja palkintoja, jotka putosivat siihen vuoden 1972 jälkeen, hän hoiti pragmaattisesti tai ironisesti antamatta heille paljon merkitystä. Mutta Nobel-palkinto oli hänelle, sekä kaikille venäläisille, erikoishalolle. Nobel-komitean työtä pidetään salaisena, mutta huhujen mukaan Brodski nimitettiin jo vuonna 1980, jolloin Caclaw Milos tuli Laureate. Ja nyt on tietoa Nobelin valinnasta 1987, jossa Brodsky oli mukana. Palkinnon myöntäminen, Nobel komitea laatii lyhyesti, mikä on laureatin tärkein ansio. Diplomassa Brodskyllä seisoi: "Kattavalle kirjallisuudelle, joka erottaa ajatuksen ja runollisen voimakkuuden selkeyden."
      ellauri246.html on line 874: Joseph Alexandrovich kuoli 27. tammikuuta 1996. Alun perin suunniteltiin haudata Brodsky Etelä-Headley. Mutta tämä suunnitelma eri syistä oli hylättävä. Venäjältä Valtion Duuma-apulaiskasvatus Galina STAREGRAM: stä tuli ehdotus kuljettaa runoilijan ruumiin Petersburgiin ja haudata hänet Vasilyevskin saarelle, mutta se merkitsisi ratkaista BrodSky palata kotimaahan. Lisäksi St. Petersburgin hauta olisi vaikea päästä perheelle. Kyllä, ja ei rakastanut Brodskyä, ehkä vain hänen suosionsa, hänen nuorekkaan runo, jossa oli rivejä ", en halua valita, tulen Vasilyevsky Islandiin ...". Venetsian viranomaisten kanssa päätettiin sopimusta San Michelin muinaisen hautausmaahan. Vaatimus marmori hautakivi, sanoja Elegian välein: Letture Pop Omnia Finit, mikä tarkoittaa "kuoleman kanssa kaikki ei pääty."
      ellauri246.html on line 903: Hän nopeasti läpäisi jäljitelmäkauden väistämättä mihinkään alkuun. Hänen jakeissaan nopeasti valloitti täydellisen laitoksen, osittain ilmaistuna erityisellä tavalla runoilijaa lukemaan runoja julkisesti. Lyhyessä ajassa hän otti hallussaan ammattitoiminnan prosessin, jonka ansiosta hän voi ylittää virallisten esineiden yleisen tason. Samaan aikaan hän kirjoitti juuri sen, mitä hän halusi, ei mitä sallittu.
      ellauri246.html on line 972: It is the details that delight. Donne hated milk. Mortally sick, about to celebrate his death by sitting for his portrait in a shroud, he was urged by his doctor that ‘by Cordials, and drinking milk twenty days together, there was a probability of his restoration to health’. Donne would have none of it. The doctor (a Dr Fox, son of the author of the ‘Boke of Martyrs’) insisted that his patient should at least try. Donne thereupon drank milk – but for ten days only. Then he told Dr Fox that he would not drink the stuff for another ten days even ‘upon the best moral assurance of having twenty years added to his life’.
      ellauri247.html on line 79: KultahäkkiCamilla LäckbergFaye fd. MatildaViktor pizzoineen ei kelvannut kun saatavana oli Heka Ehrnrooth-tyyppinen Jack Adelstam. Faye tiesi että Liza Marklund vaihtaisi hetkeäkään epäröimättä miehensä Jackiin. Tai vastaavaan mieheen. Raha ja valta houkuttelivat naisia, jopa Lizan kaltaisia feministejä. Ja rikkaus oli valtaa, jota Fayella oli. Tunne oli niin huumaava, että se peitti mahan kurinan. Jack pani Fayeta kovaa ja aggressiivisesti, ja jokaisella työnnöllä pöytälevy hieraisi Fayen palleaa. Sano kun tulet, Faye voihkaisi. Nyt, Jack huohotti. Faye työnsi hänen vehkeensä avoimeen suuhunsa.Viktor työntelee viimeisiä pistojaan nyyhkien, surkimus, on kuin itkis ja nussis. Faye sytyttää sen palamaan syöpäkääryleellä.
      ellauri247.html on line 89: Catherine Eliza Somerville Stow (1 May 1856 – 27 March 1940), who wrote as K. Langloh Parker, was a South Australian born writer who lived in northern New South Wales in the late nineteenth century. She is best known for recording the stories of the Ualarai around her. Her testimony is one of the best accounts of the beliefs and stories of an Aboriginal people in north-west New South Wales at that time. However, her accounts reflect European attitudes of the time. Anyways, she was not around before Ridley. William Ridley (14 September 1819 – 26 September 1878) was an English Presbyterian missionary who studied Australian Aboriginal languages, particularly Gamilaraay, before Catherine was more than a twinkle in her daddy's eye. Baiame may have been some abo hero before Bill's arrival, but the details about his doings could still be coloured by the Middle Eastern tentmen's literary treasure brought in by Bill.
      ellauri247.html on line 105: The mother of the Bilbers said: "Well have you spoken, oh my relation. Now speed ye the young men lest the rain fall or the dust blow and the tracks be lost." ​Then forth went the fleetest footed and the keenest eyed of the young men of the tribe. Ere long, back they came to the camp with the news of the fate of the Bilbers.
      ellauri247.html on line 112: Goomblegubbon boolwarrunnee. Goomblegubbon numbardee boorool boolwarrunnee Dinewan numbardee. Goomblegubbondoo winnanullunnee dirrah dungah nah gillunnee, Dinewandoo boonoong noo beonemuldundi. Goomblegubbondoo winnanullunnee gullarh naiyahneh gwallee Dinewan gimbelah: "Wahl ninderh doorunmai gillaygoo. Goomblegubbon lowannee boonooog noo wunnee wooee baiyan nurrunnee bonyehdool. Goomblegubbondoo gooway: "Minyah goo ninderh wahl boonoong dulleebah gillunnee? "Wahl." Goomblegubbon gindabnunnee, barnee, bunna gunnee dirrah gunnee numerhneh. Goomblegubbondoo birrahleegul oodundi gunoonoo garwil. Goomblegubbon buthdi ginnee nalmee. Goomblegubbon weel gillay doorunmai. Goomblegubbon boorool giggee luggeray Dinewun, boonoong gunnoo goo gurrahwulday.
      ellauri247.html on line 114: GLOSSARY Bahloo, moon. Beeargah, hawk. Beeleer, black cockatoo. Beereeun, prickly lizard. Bibbee, woodpecker, bird. Bibbil, shiny-leaved box-tree. Bilber, a large kind of rat. Bindeah, a prickle or small thorn. Birrahlee, baby. Birrableegul, children. Birrahgnooloo, woman's name, meaning "face like a tomahawk handle." Boobootella, the big bunch of feathers at the back of an emu. Boolooral, an owl. Boomerang, a curved weapon used in hunting and in warfare by the blacks; called Burren by the Narran blacks. Borah, a large gathering of blacks where the boys are initiated into the mysteries which make them young men. Bou-gou-doo-gahdah, the rain bird. Bouyou, legs. Bowrah or Bohrah, kangaroo. Bralgahs, native companion, bird. Bubberah, boomerang that returns and bumps you in the back of your head. Buckandee, native cat. Buggoo, flying squirrel. Bulgahnunnoo, bark-backed. Bunbundoolooey, brown flock pigeon. Bunnyyarl, flies. Byamee, man's name, meaning "big man." Bwana, African sir. Capparis, caper. Combi, bag made of kangaroo skins. Comfy, foldable plastic pillow. Cookooburrah, laughing jackass. Coorigil, name of place, meaning sign of bees. Corrobboree, black fellows' dance. Cunnembeillee, woman's name, meaning pig-weed root. Curree guin guin, butcher-bird. Daen, black fellows. Dardurr, bark, humpy or shed. Dayah minyah, carpet snake (vällykäärme). Deegeenboyah, soldier-bird. Decreeree, willy wagtail. Dinewan, emu. Dingo, native dog. Doonburr, a grass seed. Doongara, lightning. Dummerh, 2nd rate pigeons. Dungle, water hole. Dunnia, wattle. Eär moonan, long sharp teeth. Effendi, Turkish sir. Euloo marah, large tree grubs. Edible. In fact yummy. Euloo wirree, rainbow. Gayandy, borah devil. Galah or Gilah, a French grey and rose-coloured cockatoo. Gidgereegah, a species of small parrot. Gooeea, warriors. Googarh, iguana. Googoolguyyah, run into trees. Googoorewon, place of trees. Goolahwilleel, absolutely top-knot pigeon. Gooloo, magpie. Goomade, red stamp. Goomai, water rat. Goomblegubbon, bastard or just plain turkey. Goomillah, young girl's dress, consisting of waist strings made of opossum's sinews with strands of woven opossum's hair hanging about a foot square in front. Yummy. Goonur, kangaroo rat. Goug gour gahgah, laughing-jackass. Literal meaning, "Take a stick of bamboo and boil it in the water." Grooee, handsome foliaged tree bearing a plum-like fruit, tart and bitter, but much liked by the blacks. Guinary, light eagle hawk. Guineboo, robin redbreast. Gurraymy, borah devil. Gwai, red. Gwaibillah, star. Kurreah, an alligator. Mahthi, dog. Maimah, stones. Maira, paddy melon. Massa, American sir. May or Mayr, wind. Mayrah, spring wind. Meainei, girls. Midjee, a species of acacia. Millair, species of kangaroo rat. Moodai, opossum. Moogaray, hailstones. Mooninguggahgul, mosquito-calling bird. Moonoon, emu spear. Mooregoo, motoke. Mooroonumildah, having no eyes. Morilla or Moorillah, pebbly ridges. Mubboo, beefwood-tree. Mullyan, eagle hawk. Mullyangah, the morning star. Murgah muggui, big grey spider. Murrawondah, climbing rat. Narahdarn, bat. Noongahburrah, tribe of blacks on the Narran. Nullah nullah, a club or heavy-headed weapon. Nurroo gay gay, dreadful pain. Nyunnoo or Nunnoo, a grass humpy. Ooboon, blue-tongued lizard. Oolah, red prickly lizard. Oongnairwah, black driver. Ouyan, curlew. Piggiebillah, ant-eater. One of the Echidna, a marsupial. Quarrian, a kind of parrot. Quatha, quandong; a red fruit like a round red plum. Sahib, Indian sir. Senhor, Brazilian sir. U e hu, rain, only so called in song. Waligoo, to hide. Wahroogah, children. Wahn, crow. Walla Walla, place of many waters. Wallah, I swear to God. Wallah, Indian that carries out a manual task. Waywah, worn by men, consisting of a waistband made of opossum's sinews with bunches of strips of paddy melon skins hanging from it. ​Wayambeh, turtle. Weeoombeen, a small bird, girl's name. Some thing like robin redbreast, only with longer tail and not so red a breast. Willgoo willgoo, pointed stick with feathers on top. Widya nurrah, a wooden battle-axe shaped weapon. Wirree, small piece of bark, canoe-shaped. Wirreenun, priest or doctor. Womba, mad. Wondah, spirit or ghost. Wurranunnah, wild bees. Wurranunnah, tame bees. Wurrawilberoo, whirlwind with a devil in it; also clouds of Magellan. Yaraan, white gum-tree. Yhi, the sun. Yuckay, oh dear!
      ellauri247.html on line 181: After travelling in Holland, Germany and Russia in 1776, Graham set up practice in Bath, Somerset. Advertisements promoting cures using "Effluvia, Vapours and Applications ætherial, magnetic or electric" attracted his first celebrity patient, the historian Catharine Macaulay. She became the subject of scandal in 1778 when she married James Graham’s 21-year-old brother William, who was less than half her age. At the end of 1792, Graham began to experiment with extended fasting to prolong his life. He died at his home in Edinburgh in 1794. Grahamille kävi kuin mustalaisen hevoselle, kuoli juuri kun oli oppimassa paastolle.
      ellauri247.html on line 209: L'Histoire de Gil Blas de Santillane n'est pas un roman picaresque puisque le personnage éponyme monte au fur et à mesure l'échelle sociale contrairement au picaro qui, lui, cherche en vain à atteindre la richesse et la noblesse, contrairement à Gil Blas qui devient riche et obtient ses lettres de noblesse. La dimension religieuse est présente dans l’œuvre puisqu'Ambroise de Lamela et don Raphaël, deux brigands ayant joué des tours à Samuel Simon et ayant volé l'argent d'un couvent, seront punis par l'Inquisition sous les yeux de Gil Blas (XII, 1).
      ellauri247.html on line 261: "The learned Smelfungus travelled from Boulogne to Paris, from Paris to Rome, and so on, but he set out with the spleen and jaundice, and every object he passed by was discoloured or distorted. He wrote an account of them, but 'twas nothing but the account of his miserable feelings. I met Smelfungus in the grand portico of the Pantheon—he was just coming out of it. ''Tis nothing but a huge cockpit,' said he—'I wish you had said nothing worse of the Venus de Medici,' replied I—for in passing through Florence, I had heard he had fallen foul upon the goddess, and used her worse than a common strumpet, without the least provocation in nature. I popp'd upon Smelfungus again at Turin, in his return home, and a sad tale of sorrowful adventures had he to tell, 'wherein he spoke of moving accidents by flood and field, and of the cannibals which each other eat, the Anthropophagi'; he had been flayed alive, and bedevil'd, and used worse than St. Bartholomew, at every stage he had come at. 'I'll tell it,' cried Smelfungus, 'to the world.' 'You had better tell it,' said I, 'to your physician.'" (Sterne)
      ellauri247.html on line 264: His wife was a fine lady, a "Creole" beauty who had a small stash of her own; but, on the other hand, her income was very precarious, and she herself somewhat silly and incapable in the eyes of Smollett's old Scotch friends.
      ellauri247.html on line 271: If you chide them for lingering, they will contrive to delay you the longer. If you chastise them with sword, cane, cudgel, or horsewhip, they will either disappear entirely, and leave you without resource, or they will find means to take vengeance by overturning your carriage. The only course remaining would be to allow oneself to become the dupe of imposition by tipping the beggar an amount slightly in excess of the authorized gratification. The disadvantage under which the novelist was continually labouring was that of trying to travel as an English Milord, en grand seigneur, and yet having at every point to do it "on the cheap." He was a genuine Scrooge McDuck without the fake beak. He would rather give away a crown than be cheated of a farthing.
      ellauri247.html on line 273: Like Prior, Fielding, Shenstone, and Dickens, Smollett was a connoisseur in inns and innkeepers. He knew good food and he knew good value, and he had a mighty keen eye for a rogue. There may, it is true, have been something in his manner which provoked them to exhibit their worst side to him. What a nasty customer.
      ellauri247.html on line 292: Cicisbei played by set rules, generally avoiding public displays of affection. At public entertainments, they would typically stand behind their seated mistress and whisper in her ear. Customs of the time did not permit them to engage in relationships with any other women during their free time, making the arrangement rather demanding. Either party could decide to end the relationship at any time. A woman's former cicisbei were called spiantati (literally penniless, destroyed), or cast-offs.
      ellauri247.html on line 295: "If a Frenchman is capable of real friendship, it must certainly be the most disagreeable present he can possibly make to a man of a true English character. You know, madam, we are naturally taciturn, soon tired of impertinence, and much subject to fits of disgust. Your French friend intrudes upon you at all hours; he stuns you with his loquacity; he teases you with impertinent questions about your domestic and private affairs; he attempts to meddle in all your concerns, and forces his advice upon you with the most unwearied importunity; he asks the price of everything you wear, and, so sure as you tell him, undervalues it without hesitation; he affirms it is in a bad taste, ill contrived, ill made; that you have been imposed upon both with respect to the fashion and the price; that the marquis of this, or the countess of that, has one that is perfectly elegant, quite in the bon ton, and yet it cost her little more than you gave for a thing that nobody would wear.
      ellauri247.html on line 312:
      Dr. Johnson was a twin of Boris Johnson, like yet another pair of Tweedledum and Tweedledee.

      ellauri247.html on line 314: Johnson was 180 cm (5 feet 11 inches) tall when the average height of an Englishman was 165 cm (5 feet 5 inches). Tall and robust, he displayed gestures and tics that disconcerted some on meeting him. He had Tourettes syndrome, in fact.
      ellauri247.html on line 318: Little is known about Johnson's life between the end of 1729 and 1731. It is likely that he lived with his parents. He experienced bouts of mental anguish and physical pain during years of illness; his tics and gesticulations associated with Tourette syndrome became more noticeable and were often commented upon.
      ellauri247.html on line 337: With the widow's money, Johnson opened Edial Hall School as a private academy at Edial, near Lichfield. He had only three pupils: Lawrence Offley, George Garrick, and the 18-year-old David Garrick, who later became one of the most famous actors of his day. The venture was unsuccessful and cost Tetty a substantial portion of her fortune. Instead of trying to keep the failing school going, Johnson began to write his first major work, the historical tragedy Irene. Biographer Robert DeMaria believed that Tourette syndrome likely made public occupations like schoolmaster or tutor almost impossible for Johnson. This may have led Johnson to "the invisible occupation of authorship".
      ellauri247.html on line 343: Johnson bragged that he could finish his dictionary project in three years. In comparison, the Académie Française had 40 scholars spending 40 years to complete their dictionary, which prompted Johnson to claim, "This is the proportion. Let me see; forty times forty is sixteen hundred. As three to sixteen hundred, so is the proportion of an Englishman to a Frenchman." Rather, the proportion of the civilized vernacular vocabularies of the languages. What a pompous idiot. Although he did not succeed in completing the work in three years, he did manage to finish it in eight. Some criticised the dictionary, including the historian Thomas Babington Macaulay, who described Johnson as "a wretched etymologist."
      ellauri247.html on line 347: Americans had no more right to govern themselves than the Cornish, and "How is it that we hear the loudest yelps for liberty among the drivers of negroes?" The French and Indian War was a conflict between "two robbers" of Native American lands, and that neither deserved to live there.
      ellauri247.html on line 353: Johnson displayed signs consistent with several diagnoses, including depression and Tourette syndrome. According to Boswell, Johnson "felt himself overwhelmed with an horrible melancholia, with perpetual irritation, fretfulness, and impatience; and with a dejection, gloom, and despair, which made existence misery".
      ellauri247.html on line 386: Tweedle Do and Tweedle Don't are the great grand brothers of Tweedledee and Tweedledum who appear in Disney's Alice's Wonderland Bakery voiced by Vanessa Bayer and Bobby Moynihan in Episode 16 Meet the Tweedles.
      ellauri247.html on line 421: Lyhyenläntä rampa Pope syntyi samana vuonna kuin Mary. Pope oli Tory ja Mary äänesti Walpolea. - Amazing! I have read that Alexander Pope made passionate and wild love to Lady Mary Wortley Montagu. From this poem I understand that Pope loved the sense of wit and beauty that Lady Mary W. M. possessed.
      ellauri247.html on line 435: No mortal as yet Ei kukaan kuolevainen
      ellauri247.html on line 530: Baboons leave their lairs at dawn and congregate to chatter and howl, while jumping in the warmth of the early morning sun, as if singing and dancing. The belief that they greet the rising sun gave rise to a favorite theme in art – baboon in attitude of adoration, facing the sun with raised arms as if ‘offering prayers and salutation to the first rays of dawn’.
      ellauri248.html on line 83: Matt rated it shit: If I could, I'd probably rate this at 1.5 stars-- it ultimately pissed me off, and annoyed me throughout, but it was good enough to keep me reading and I suppose that should count for something. Maybe my opinion has been influenced by reading Stieg Larsson's masterful THE GIRL WITH THE DRAGON TATTOO FOR BOYS immediately prior to this one. That book wasn't perfect, but it had characters you rooted for, didn't wallow too much in pop culture references, and most importantly IT SOLVED THE FRIGGING MYSTERY.
      ellauri248.html on line 85: Let's go through a few of these points. First, I don't think I've ever read a mystery novel with a less likable main character/narrator. Rob (Adam) Ryan is an asshole, plain and simple. Sure, he's been warped by his childhood and circumstances, but he does just about every annoying thing you could possibly imagine-- he constantly navel-gazes and feels self pity, he sleeps with then immediately plays the stereotypical male "I don't want anything to do with you now" role with his female partner (the person we were told was his best friend, and whom he would never ever sleep with), he acts like an idiot over the 17 year old villain/ temptress/ psychopath/ whatever betraying his partner, and by the end of the book he is worse off than ever. I know that lots of detectives (esp. in hard-boild stories) are unlikable, and have many personal issues, but this guy just took the cake. I wanted to take a baseball bat to his head [hear, hear!]. To make matters worse, French throws in this little gem towards the end of the novel:
      ellauri248.html on line 89: Second, the book seriously dates itself with little pop culture references... from Simpsons quotes to mentions of Ricky Martin and The Simple Life. Gah. The beginning of the book felt like a very special episode of FRIENDS where Chandler, Monica and Ross solve a mystery. I'm a pretty big pop culture type of guy, but the references dropped in this novel just annoyed me.
      ellauri248.html on line 98: Justin rated it shit: The protagonist of this book really, really annoyed me. It felt like a parody of one of those old black-and-white movies where the picture freezes and the guy steps out toward the camera, lights a cigarette, pulls his hat down, and goes into this long monologue about life or women or his past or whatever. The action would pick up or a new lead would be uncovered, and here comes Rob rambling on for pages and pages.... and pages.
      ellauri248.html on line 108: Rob: Yeah, Cassie was like that. She was always finding connections to things and blah blah blah. She made a great partner because hey remember that time 20 years ago when my friends and I were in the woods and blah blah blah I want to tell you about all the people I work with and give you a brief description of each one of them and also explain in detail how my boss is and blah blah blah. My mind is trying to remember what happened 20 years ago and you know Cassie and I are great partners and we're best friends and people think we're dating but blah blah blah. Hey, time flies, man. Did I tell you what happened to me as a child? Did I remind you about Katy? Also, her family sure is weird. The people at the dig site are weird. Everyone is a suspect blah blah blah. Let me pause here to tell you how I deal with my roommate and also O'Kelly and my childhood and my current job and Katy and her weird family and interrogation and coffee and vodka and this dream I had and looking for clues and in the woods and we keep hitting dead ends and and and and and blahhhhhhhhhhhh.
      ellauri248.html on line 115: Rob and Cassie start off enjoying that incredible, intense and yet easy, all-forgiving and natural closeness of a friendship I think every person in the world (non-sociopathic, to be exact) longs for.
      ellauri248.html on line 125: And the worst part? The mystery from twenty years ago that causes this entire fucking BOOK and that was way more interesting than the normal mystery? Literally no fucking resolution. Who did it? How did they do it? What is up with that hair clip in the forest and the blood inside Rob’s shoes? NO ONE FUCKING KNOWS. I’m sure this is framed in the minds of many readers as some kind of deeper meaning about memory. You know what I thought, honestly? Tana French wrote herself into a corner with a fucking ridiculous case and then ran out of time on her deadline and decided to leave it open. [krimi, whodunit]
      ellauri248.html on line 130: There's a touch of love in this book, just a touch, not enough to be called romance. No descriptive sex. No sweet-nothings. Nothing like that. And yet, it still fucking broke my heart. [noir romance]
      ellauri248.html on line 165:
      yellow;border:dashed orange 5pt">
      ellauri248.html on line 244: In Daniel 6, Daniel is raised to high office by his royal master Darius the Mede. Daniel's jealous rivals trick Darius into issuing a decree that for thirty days no prayers should be addressed to any god or man but Darius himself; anyone who disobeys this edict is to be thrown to the lions. Pious Daniel continues to pray daily to the God of Israel; and the king, although deeply distressed, must condemn Daniel to death, for the edicts of the Medes and Persians cannot be altered. Hoping for Daniel's deliverance, Darius has him cast into the pit. At daybreak the king hurries to the place and cries out anxiously, asking if God had saved his friend. Daniel replies that his God had sent an angel to the jaws of the lions, "because I was found tasteless before them". The king commands that those who had conspired against Daniel be thrown to the poor overfed lions in his place with their tasty wives and children, and that the whole world should tremble and fear before the God of Daniel. Although Daniel is sometimes depicted as a young man in illustrations of the incident, James Montgomery Boice points out that he would have been over eighty years old at the time. No wonder perhaps that he did not entice the lions.
      ellauri249.html on line 80: It is precisely in this sense that we should understand Dostoyevsky’s remark that beauty will save the world, or Matthew Arnold’s belief that we shall be saved by poetry. It is probably too late for the world, but for the individual man (me) there always remains a chance. What distinguishes us from other members of the animal kingdom is speech. Literature—and poetry, in particular, my poetry—is, to put it bluntly, the goal of our species.” Minä minä! Täähän on pahempi egosentrikko kuin minä ja pikku-CEC Norjassa.
      ellauri249.html on line 126: inside someone's guts and there meet with yesterday's dinner?")
      ellauri249.html on line 190: Nikita Sergejevitš Hruštšov (ven. Ники‌та Серге‌евич Хрущёв, Ru-Nikita Sergeyevich Khrushchev.oga kuuntele ääntämys (ohje); vanhentunut translitteraatio Hruštšev) (15. huhtikuuta (J: 3. huhtikuuta) 1894 Kalinovka, Kurskin kuvernementti, Venäjän keisarikunta – 11. syyskuuta 1971 Moskova, Venäjän SFNT, Neuvostoliitto) oli neuvostoliittolainen poliitikko, kenraali ja kommunistisen puolueen pääsihteeri eli Neuvostoliiton tosiasiallinen johtaja 1953–1964. Hän saavutti Neuvostoliiton johtajuuden Josif Stalinin kuoleman jälkeisessä valtakamppailussa puolueen sisällä. Hän oli myös ministerineuvoston puheenjohtaja 1958–1964. Hruštšov oli syntyperältään venäläinen, mutta hänellä oli lämmin suhde Ukrainan sosialistiseen neuvostotasavaltaan.
      ellauri249.html on line 306: The Centre for Economics and Business Research said that it now expected the value of China’s economy when measured in dollars to exceed that of the US by 2028, half a decade sooner than it expected a year ago.
      ellauri249.html on line 405:

      Bloody eyes


      ellauri249.html on line 409: Kyseenalaisia sankareita kaiken kaikkiaan, esimtää "bloody eye" Skobelev edellisessä Krimin sodassa. Skobelev returned to Turkestan after the war, and in 1880 and 1881 further distinguished himself by retrieving the disasters inflicted by the Tekke Turkomans: following the Siege of Geoktepe, it was stormed, the general captured the fort. Around 8,000 Turkmen soldiers and civilians, including women and children were slaughtered in a bloodbath in their flight, along with an additional 6,500 who died inside the fortress. The Russians massacre included all Turkmen males in the fortress who had not escaped, but they spared some 5,000 women and children and freed 600 Persian slaves. The defeat at Geok Tepe and the following slaughter broke the Turkmen resistance and decided the fate of Transcaspia, which was annexed to the Russian Empire. The great slaughter proved too much to stomach reducing the Akhal-Tekke country to submission. Skobelev was removed from his command because of the massacre. He was advancing on Ashkhabad and Kalat i-Nadiri when he was disavowed and recalled to Moscow. He was given the command at Minsk. The official reason for his transfer to Europe was to appease European public opinion over the slaughter at Geok Tepe. British Field Marshal Bernard Montgomery assessed Skobelev as the world's "best single commander" between 1870 and 1914 and wrote of his "skilful and inspiring" leadership. Francis Vinton Greene also rated Skobelev highly.
      ellauri254.html on line 360: According to the extremely experienced Belgian slavist Emmanuel Waegemans, "who was and still is indeed considered to be the primus inter pares in Russian literature and culture from the eighteenth-century onwards", Russian thinkers themselves contributed largely to this movement: such examples would be the irrationalistic and mystical poetry and philosophy of Fyodor Tyutchev and Vladimir Solovyov or Fyodor Dostoyevsky's novels. It is remotely thinkable that these geeks could read the Western alphabet on their own.
      ellauri254.html on line 387: Alexander Blok was a routine visitor. These years were some of the young Blok’s most prolific, marked by bursts of creative energy as he worked on two lyrical dramas – Balaganchik (‘The Puppet Show‘), featuring the ‘grotesquely luckless’ Pierrot, which was staged in 1906 by Vsevolod Meyerhold at the Komissarzhevskaya Theatre; and The Stranger – and the poetry cycle The Snow Mask, which he completed in little over a week at the beginning of 1907. The actress Valentina Verigina often accompanied Blok, and recounted of these visits to and from Sologub’s apartment:
      ellauri254.html on line 389: ‘How often we wandered through the streets of the snowy city… All of the theatrical events that seemed so important in their time have grown dim in my memory. Acting at the theatre, which I loved so much, now seems to me far less exciting and bright than that game of masks in Blok’s circle. It is true that even at that time I did not look upon our meetings, gatherings, and strolls as mere entertainment. There is no doubt that others too felt the significance and creative value of it all, yet nonetheless we did not realize that the charms of Blok’s poetry almost deprived us all of our real existence, turning us into Venetian masqueraders of the north.’
      ellauri254.html on line 391: In the month after Olga’s death from tuberculosis in June 1907, Sologub retired following twenty-five years as a teacher, and moved in Petersburg from the school-owned apartment to a private flat. The following year he married Anastasia Chebotarevskaya, a translator and author of children’s books who he had first met in the autumn of 1905. In the summer of 1909, Sologub and Chebotarevskaya holidayed in France. Though he had travelled to Finland with his sister in a final attempt to improve her condition, Finland was at the time part of the Russian Empire, so this trip to France was Sologub’s first proper visit abroad.
      ellauri254.html on line 393: In August 1910, Sologub and his wife moved to a larger apartment, at Razyezzhaya ulitsa in the centre of Petersburg. The short and brisk sentences of Anastasia Chebotarevskaya’s writing have been viewed as a potential influence on Sologub’s own work; and she encouraged his acquaintance with the young writers of Russian Futurism, a distinctive literary movement which was then just beginning to flower. Yet the influence of Anastasia on her husband has not been unanimously well received. The humourist Teffi – who was one of the group who frequented the ‘Sundays’ gatherings at Sologub’s Vasilievsky Island home – wrote that Sologub’s marriage:
      ellauri254.html on line 397: One of these ‘noisy gatherings with dances and masks’ proved the occasion of a notable scandal within the world of Russian letters. On 3 January, 1911, Sologub and his wife hosted a masquerade to celebrate the new year. Among the attendees were the writers Aleksei Remizov and Aleksei Tolstoy. Remizov was well known within the world of Russian letters for his mischievous sense of humour. He founded a ‘Great and Free House of Apes’, declaring himself Chancellor, and sent out missives to writers and publishers decreeing them positions in this ironic organisation; and Andrei Bely dubbed him a ‘petty cash demon’ – the title of Sologub’s most celebrated work – owing to his appearance.
      ellauri254.html on line 399: For the new year’s masquerade, Anastasia lent Remizov an anal hide for use as a costume. Remizov apparently cut the tail from this hide, and attached it to his rear so that it poked out of the front vent of his evening jacket. Anastasia failed to see the funny side, for she had borrowed the hide herself in order to lend it to Remizov. She complained in a letter:
      ellauri254.html on line 405: Fyodor and Anastasia would stay at the apartment on Razyezzhaya ulitsa until 1916, when – after several years of constant touring for the sake of a series of lectures – Sologub settled again and returned with his wife to Vasilievsky Island. The final move of his life would come in the weeks after his wife’s suicide in 1921, upon which Sologub took an apartment on the Zhdanovskaya Embankment, close to Tuchkov bridge from which his wife had jumped and drowned.
      ellauri254.html on line 482: Verwinde leicht im herbstlichen gesicht. Se kevyesti ruiki syxyiseen naamaani.
      ellauri254.html on line 501: Klages was born on 10 December 1872, in Hannover, Germany, the son of Friedrich Ferdinand Louis Klages, a businessman and former military officer, and wife Marie Helene née Kolster. In 1878, his sister Helene Klages was born and the two shared a strong bond throughout their lives. In 1882, when Klages was nine years old, his mother died. The death is thought to have been the result of pneumonia. He quickly developed a strong interest in both prose and poetry writing, as well as in Greek and Germanic antiquity. His relationship with his father was strained by the latter's strictness and will to discipline him. Nevertheless, attempts to forbid Klages from writing poetry were unsuccessful by both his teachers and parents.
      ellauri254.html on line 506: When Klages (at 23) moved into a new Schwabing flat in 1895, he entered into an intense sexual relationship with his landlady's daughter, with the mother's approval; the daughter, whom Klages called 'Putti', was eleven years younger than him (12 yrs), and their relationship continued for almost two decades though remained only sexual in nature, and squeaky clean. During his years in Schwabing, Klages also became romantically involved with novelist Franziska zu Reventlow, which was further alluded to in her 1913 roman à clef Herrn Dames Aufzeichnungen. Both Stefan George and Alfred Schuler, with whom Klages closely associated, were openly homosexual men. Whilst some of Klages' outward statements on homosexuality may be seen as harsh, he maintained an intimate personal and not just academic admiration for Schuler all throughout his life. Kaikki käy, kuhan paikat pysyy kemiallisen puhtaana. Kemia ei tunne likaa.
      ellauri254.html on line 633: yevich_1920%2C_cropped.jpg">
      ellauri254.html on line 671: Neuvostoliittolaisten virkamiesten kanssa käytyjen pitkien neuvotteluiden jälkeen Trotskin oli lähdettävä Norjasta Meksikoon. Meksikon presidentti Lázaro Cárdenas otti Trotskin vastaan Tampicon satamakaupungissa, jossa hänelle oli järjestetty erikoisjuna Méxicoon. Meksikossa Trotski asui ensin taidemaalari Diego Riveran luona ja koki lyhyen romanssin Frida Kahlon kanssa. Maanpakoaikanaan hän jatkoi ahkeraa kirjoittamistyötään suomien Neuvostoliiton tilaa ja Stalinin toimia ja nimitti Neuvostoliittoa ”byrokraattisesti vääristyneeksi työläisvaltioksi”.
      ellauri254.html on line 693: Trotskin menetettyä asemansa vuoden 1925 alussa troikka hajosi Stalinin kääntyessä entisiä liittolaisiaan Kamenevia ja Zinovjevia vastaan. Kamenev pudotettiin lokakuussa 1925 politbyroon juhlakuntoisesta jäsenestä puoliveteiseksi ja häneltä vietiin Moskovan-puoluejohtajan tehtävä. Kesällä 1926 Kamenev ja Zinovjev liittoutuivat Trotskin kanssa, jolloin syntyi niin sanottu yhdistynyt oppositio. Sitä yhdisti Stalinin vastaisuus ja vaatimus puolueen sisäisen demokraattisen toimintakulttuurin palauttamisesta. Lokakuussa 1926 Kamenev menetti puoliveteisenkin jäsenyytensä politbyroossa ja Stalinin käydessä lopulliseen iskuun hänet erotettiin marraskuussa 1927 myös keskuskomiteasta. Joulukuun 1927 puoluekokouksessa Zinovjev ja Kamenev päättivät pelastaa uransa irtisanoutumalla kaikista aiemmista mielipiteistään. Heidät erotettiin puolueesta, mutta he saivat luvan hakea jäsenyyttään takaisin puolen vuoden koeajan jälkeen.
      ellauri254.html on line 805: His worsening health compelled him to seek care in Germany, to which his parents had emigrated early in 1921. He went West for good in 1924, at 23 years of age. Lunz died abroad from heart failure and brain embolism, but he is remembered in The West for his daring defense of creative freedom against Bolshevik Party demands for political commitment. In "Go West Young Man", Lunz spoke like a Cambridge apostle:
      ellauri254.html on line 816: Kaverin managed to republish Lunz's last play, Gorod Pravdy [The City of Truth], in a theatrical journal in 1989, one year after he had helped to effect the first publication in the Soviet Union of Yevgeny Zamyatin's anti-utopian novel, My [We, 1920]. The censorship board was beginning to crack, but still the Lunz collection was delayed beyond the life of the last Serapion (Kaverin) and the end of the Soviet system. Koska matka oli hauska niin, ottivat he mukaan vielä yhden kaverin.
      ellauri254.html on line 952: (mukaan lukien Dyerin pataljoona).
      ellauri254.html on line 969: 240. kevyen kranaatinheittimen akku,
      ellauri256.html on line 46: Rozanov frequently referred to himself as Fyodor Dostoyevsky's "Underground Man" and proclaimed his right to espouse contrary opinions at the same time. He first attracted attention in the 1890s when he published political sketches in the conservative newspaper Novoye Vremya ("New Time"), owned and run by Aleksey Suvorin. Rozanov's comments, always paradoxical and sparking controversy, led him into clashes with the Tsarist government and with radicals such as Lenin. For example, Rozanov readily passed from criticism of Russian Orthodoxy, and even of what he saw as the Christian preoccupation with death, to fervent praise of Christian faith, from praise of Judaism to unabashed anti-Semitism, and from acceptance of homosexuality as yet another side of human nature to vitriolic accusations that Gogol and some other writers had been latent homosexuals.[citation needed] He proclaimed that politics was "obsolete" because "God doesn't want politics any more," constructed an "apocalypse of our times," and recommended the "healthy instincts" of the Russian people, their longing for authority, and their hostility to modernism.
      ellauri256.html on line 48: Rozanov starved to death in a monastery in the hungry years following the Revolution.
      ellauri256.html on line 117: Jos he tapasivat heimon tai ihmisiä matkan varrella, he tappoivat ne. He repivät ahneesti kuin eläin ja ryömivät repeytyen. Ja autiomaat ryömivät perässä ja repivät ja söivät ahneesti kansan jäännöksiä, niinkuin Israel.
      ellauri256.html on line 169: Lunts Lev Natanovich ( yes@lib.ru )

      ellauri256.html on line 189: Orang-orang Yahudi berkemah di Shittim, sebuah daerah di dataran Moab , di tepi Sungai Yordan. Pada nasi goreng nabi jahat Bileam , putri-putri Moab dan Midian membujuk orang Yahudi untuk berdosa dengan mereka, kemudian meemipimpin mereka untuk menyembah dewa mereka, yang dikenal sebagai Peor.
      ellauri256.html on line 191: Melihat perilaku member ontak ini, Phinehas meraih tombak, memasuki tenda dan menusuk mereka berdua, saat mereka berada di tengah-tengah aksi. Perbuatan ini menyebabkan wabah segera berakhir.
      ellauri256.html on line 329: yevich_shostakovich_by_admiralmichalis-d974rn6.png" width="20%" />
      ellauri256.html on line 336: Vladimir Vladimirovich Mayakovsky was born in 1893 in Baghdati, Kutais Governorate, Georgia, then part of the Russian Empire, to Alexandra Alexeyevna (née Pavlenko), a housewife, and Vladimir Mayakovsky, a local forester. His father belonged to a noble family and was a distant relative of the writer Grigory Danilevsky. Vladimir Vladimirovich had two sisters, Olga and Lyudmila, and a brother Konstantin, who died at the age of three. The family was of Russian and Zaporozhian Cossack descent on their father's side and Ukrainian on their mother's.
      ellauri256.html on line 358: The stormy affair between the legendary “singer of the revolution”, Vladimir Mayakovsky, and a “proponent of depravity”, Lilya Brik, lasted 15 years, until the poet's suicide in 1930. He devoted poems and hundreds of love letters to her. It was probably this affair that most of all contributed to her going down in history, yet it also left her with hundreds of enemies, who tried to erase any trace of her, even from documents. So, who exactly was this femme fatale?
      ellauri256.html on line 360: Lilya was born in 1891 to a wealthy Jewish family. Her father was a lawyer and the family lived in the center of Moscow. Her parents often took little Lilya and her younger sister, Elsa (the future heroine of the French Resistance, Elsa Triolet) with them to European resorts. They look a little like Lea and Liisa in an old phtograph.
      ellauri256.html on line 364: “All our girls were in love with him and etched the name Osya with a penknife on their desks,” Lilya recalled. His low-key courtship of Lilya lasted seven years. Up until the moment she became pregnant. However, the father was not Brik but ... a music teacher, Grigory Krein. Under pressure from her mother, Lilya had an abortion, after which she could no longer have children. And Brik finally proposed.
      ellauri256.html on line 366: However, Osip very quickly ceased to be a husband to her in all respects. In 1914, Lilya wrote: “I already led an independent life, and physically we somehow drew apart... A year passed, we no longer lived as husband and wife, but we were friends, perhaps even more so than before. That was when Mayakovsky came into our life.”
      ellauri256.html on line 368: By that time, Vladimir Mayakovsky had been in a relationship with Lilya's younger sister for two years. But having met no resistance in Lilya, he broke up with Elsa, and dedicated the poem A Bulge in Trousers to his new muse.
      ellauri256.html on line 371: “It was an onslaught. Volodya did not just fall in love with me, he attacked. For two and a half years I did not have a minute of peace, literally,” Brik recalled. The impulsive Mayakovsky wrote her letters every day, called her all the time, and waited for her under her windows. As luck would have it, she too was a woman with a heightened sexual curiosity.
      ellauri256.html on line 376: After the 1917 Bolshevik Revolution, the situation turned upside down. Mayakovsky, as a devoted Bolshevik, began to make good money on his poems, whereas Osip Brik's business went pear-shaped. It was then that Lilya told her husband she was now with Mayakovsky, yet she did not want to divorce him. Thus, both moved to the poet’s apartment, lived and traveled at his expense, with Mayakovsky calling Osip a part of the “family”. Their relationship became an “ideal" for those who advocated free love. In the meantime, rumors of Lilya Brik’s numerous sexual liaisons grew.
      ellauri256.html on line 524: MIT:n silloinen laskuopin professori ennusti Billystä: I believe he will be a great mathematician, the leader in that science in the future. 11-vuotiaana nenäkäs Billy sai toistuvasti turpiin 5v vanhemmilta Harvardin luokkatovereilta (ml Buckminster Fuller) ja alkoi eristäytyä. Billy vowed to remain celibate and never to marry, as he said women did not appeal to him. Later he developed a strong affection for Martha Foley, one year older than him. Ei siitäkään tullut lasta eikä paskaakaan. Isompana Billy ajoi mieluiten ympäriinsä raitiovaunulla. He obsessively collected streetcar transfers, wrote self-published periodicals, and taught small circles of interested friends his version of American history. Sidis arveli että Euroopassakin oli ollut intiaaneja. Sidis peukutti jonkinlaista dualismia. Sidis died from a cerebral hemorrhage in 1944 in Boston at age 46.
      ellauri256.html on line 526: Martha Foley was born in Boston, Massachusetts, on March 21, 1897, to Walter and Margaret M. C. Foley. From 1909 to 1915, she attended Boston Girls' Latin School, and even then aspired to be a writer. The school magazine published her first short story, "Jabberwock," when she was eleven years old. (I had thought it was Lewis Carrol's.) After graduating from the 'Girls School' she attended Boston University but did not graduate, unlike Riitta Roth, who did. The topic of her MA thesis was Garten-Laub. The name of her kitten was Klobürste. (Riitta's, not Martha's)
      ellauri257.html on line 47: Nikolai Vasilyevich Gogol (1 April [O.S. 20 March] 1809 – 4 March [O.S. 21 February] 1852) was a very short story writer and playwright of Ukrainian origin. Gogol was born in the Ukrainian Cossack town of Sorochyntsi, in the Poltava Governorate of the Russian Empire. His mother was descended from Leonty Kosyarovsky, an officer of the Lubny Regiment in 1710. His father was supposedly Vasily Gogol-Yanovsky, who died when Gogol was 15 years old, was descendant of Ukrainian Cossacks (see Lyzohub family) and belonged to the 'petty gentry'. His father wrote poetry in Ukrainian almost as well as in Russian, and was an amateur playwright in his brother's home theatre. As was typical of the left-bank Ukrainian gentry of the early nineteenth century, the family spoke Ukrainian nearly as well as Russian. As a child, Gogol helped stage plays in his uncle's home theatre.
      ellauri257.html on line 52: He also intensified his relationship with a starets or spiritual elder, Matvey Konstantinovsky, whom he had known biblically for several years. Konstantinovsky seems to have strengthened in Gogol the fear of perdition (damnation) by insisting on the sinfulness of all his imaginative handiwork. Exaggerated ascetic practices with Matvey undermined his health and he fell into a state of deep depression. On the night of 24 February 1852 he burned some of his manuscripts, which contained most of the second part of Dead Souls. He explained this as a mistake, a practical joke played on him by the Devil in the guise of Matvey Konstantinovsky.[citation needed] Soon thereafter, he took to bed, refused all food, and died in great pain nine days later.
      ellauri257.html on line 71: In 1550, after centuries of fighting for possession of the Ukraine with the Turks, the Cossacks under the leadership of Taras Bulba (Yul Brynner) aid the Polish Army in the battle of the steppes (Argentina subbing for the Ukraine, where reportedly some 10,000 Argentinean extras were employed) and are victorious. Invited to a Polish feast to celebrate, the Cossacks are betrayed by their cunning hosts and flee under cannon fire to safety across the steppes.
      ellauri257.html on line 89: Vaihdettuaan Gogolin tekstin mukaan lasketut hihansuut vanhimman kanssa Taras lähtee esittelemään poikia Zaporozhyeen. Seuraavaksi katsojaa odottaa kaksi tuntia kaunista pukeutunutta tragikomediaa - linnoituksen vangitsemisella, katkaistuilla päillä, verivirroilla, elävällä kuvalla "Kasakat kirjoittavat kirjeen sulttaanille" ja Mihail "Kanalja" Boyarskylla ilman hattua ja myös ilman T-paitaa (hurraa, idoli on erinomaisessa fyysisessä kunnossa!) Kasakka Shilon roolissa.
      ellauri257.html on line 104: Hän naamioi itsensä tahattomasti kasakoksi ja pakenee vain suurella lahjuksella. Sen sijaan he osallistuvat teloitukseen seuraavana päivänä. Teloituksen aikana Ostap ei anna ainuttakaan ääntä, vaikka hän olisi rikki ratissa, mutta masentuneena kuoleman lähestyessä hän huutaa ääneen isäänsä tietämättä hänen läsnäolostaan. Eeli eeli laama sabakhthaani! Taras vastaa hänelle joukosta antautuen siten itsensä pois, mutta onnistuu pakenemaan.
      ellauri257.html on line 385: Sairas tyyppi tää Gonzo, ei voi muuta sanoa. Kummaa katkonaista sekoilua, ei tässä pysy minkäänlainen fiktiivisen maailman illuusio edes pystyssä. Jotain sillä täytyy olla taka-ajatuxena, mutta mitä, sitä on tässä alkuvaiheessa vaikea sanoa. Gonzon sanasto on tollasta puolalaiskatolista scheissea, jossa kaikenlaisen häpeän ja synnin ja piilomerkitysten varjolla saadaan maximisti irti suttuisesta tirkistelyerotiikasta. Tässä on samaa masentavaa fiilistä kuin vintage pornoleffoissa. Yhtä tyhjänpäiväistä ja vailla muuta tarkoitusta kuin toimettoman ikävystymisen katkaiseva kädetys.
      ellauri257.html on line 391: Peterson talks a lot about political theory, yet he is embarrassingly ignorant of it. He peddles a kind of “Marxist conspiracy” narrative that is as ridiculously non-factual as it is irresponsible.
      ellauri257.html on line 419: Upon the 2009 American release (of the book, after the film of course, this is America), Michael Dirda wrote in The Washington Post that Pornografia "seems as sick, as pathologically creepy a novel as one is ever likely to read. In some ways, it resembles a rather more polymorphously perverse version of Les Liaisons Dangereuses or one of those disturbing fictions by European intellectuals that blend the philosophical with the erotic: Think of Georges Bataille's The Story of the Eye or Pierre Klossowski's Roberte Ce Soir. ... Through its sado-masochistic material and its almost Henry Jamesian analyses of human motives, Pornografia underscores Gombrowicz's lifelong philosophical obsession: the quest for authenticity." Dirda continued: "Certainly, most readers will find Pornografia perturbing, or worse: repulsive, confusing, ugly. As Milosz once said of Gombrowicz: 'He had no reverence whatsoever for literature. He derided it as a snobbish ritual, and if he practiced it, he attempted to get rid of all its accepted rules.'"
      ellauri257.html on line 458: “They haven’t turned up yet. They just send a lot of money and weapons and let the Ukrainians supply the manpower and fill the body bags. Fewer Western casualties this way. The concept has been tested in countless local wars all round the globe."
      ellauri257.html on line 512: She and Singer met in the Catskills, at a farm village named Mountaindale. Although in the manuscript, Alma is elusive about dates, it is known that the encounter took place in 1937. The two were refugees of what Singer’s older brother, Israel Joshua, by then already the successful novelist I.J. Singer, would soon describe as “a world that is no more.” And the two were married to other spouses. Alma and her husband, Walter Wasserman, along with their two children, Klaus and Inga, had escaped from Germany the previous year and come to America, settling in the Inwood section of Manhattan. As for Isaac — as Alma always called him — he arrived in 1935. She portrays their encounters as romantic, although she appears to have been perfectly aware of his reputation.
      ellauri257.html on line 516: After her divorce from Wasserman and subsequent marriage to Singer, Alma worked as a seamstress. She then became a buyer for a Brooklyn clothing firm. From 1955 until the store closed, in 1963
      ellauri257.html on line 517: , she worked at Saks 34th Street, and then, until retirement, at Lord & Taylor. On occasion she would accompany Singer to his lectures. They also traveled together to Europe, especially England and France. The purpose of one of those trips was for Alma to show Singer the places in Switzerland where she and her parents had stayed before the war. When she returned to America, she felt ecstatic. In the manuscript, she recollects standing on Broadway, looking in wonder at a fruit store and grocery, admiring their abundance.
      ellauri257.html on line 520: What kind of inner, private life did Alma have? Did she tire of years of cooking, cleaning, ironing and sewing for Singer? Was it difficult to be the wife of a public person? How did she cope with his escapades? About these the manuscript remains silent. After all, Alma belonged to a social class where women weren’t encouraged to explore such details. In an interview, she does represent the younger Singer as easy-going and says how much he changed over time. But she ascribes those changes to how much people wanted from him and not the other way around.
      ellauri257.html on line 524: Alma recounts her relationship with Singer as one of endurance. Her first two lines are: “When I told my friends and relatives that I intended to marry Isaac Singer, they all protested violently that it would not last more than a few weeks, and that the whole thing was a mistake. So far it has lasted for almost forty years, and although it was sometimes stormy, it nevertheless is a record.” Yes, she says it’s a record. The word “love” is nowhere to be found.
      ellauri257.html on line 526: Singer’s domestic side is thorny. The Singers kept a Hispanic maid, and Dvora Menashe (later Telushkin), who was Singer’s assistant in his late years — indeed she wrote a memoir, “Master of Dreams” [1997], recounting that time — told me about her. So did Janet Hadda, who wrote the biography “Isaac Bashevis Singer: A Life” (1997). Hadda even provided me with an address, but my letters went unanswered. Lester Goran, who co-taught with Singer at the University of Miami and wrote a memoir about their friendship, “The Bright Streets of Surfside” (1994), couldn’t help me, either.
      ellauri257.html on line 542: Israel Joshua Singer ( jiddish : ישראל יהושע זינגער; 30. marraskuuta 1893, Biłgoraj, Puolan kongressi – 10. helmikuuta 1944 New York) oli puolalais-juutalainen kirjailija, joka kirjoitti yedi-kirjoja. Merkittävin teos Veljekset Ashkenazi.
      ellauri257.html on line 544: Hän syntyi Yisruel Yehoyshye Zingeriksi, Pinchas (LOL Pinehas, se joka puhkoi nussijoita keihäällä!) Mendl Zyngerin, rabbin ja rabbiinisten kommenttien kirjoittajan, ja Basheva Zylbermanin pojaksi. Hän oli kirjailija Isaac Bashevis Singerin ja kirjailija Esther Kreitmanin veli. Hän meni naimisiin Genia Kupferstokin kanssa. Hänen vanhin poikansa Yasha kuoli 14-vuotiaana keuhkokuumeeseen ennen perheen muuttoa Amerikkaan. Hänen nuorempi poikansa Joseph Singer oli sekä isänsä että setänsä Isaac Bashevis Singerin teosten kääntäjä. Joseph, taidemaalari ja kirjailija, kuten isänsä, meni naimisiin June Flaum Singerin kanssa, josta tuli kirjailija. Heillä oli neljä lasta: Sharon Salinger, Brett Singer, IJ Singer ja Valerie Singer. Kolme tytärtä seurasivat perheyritystä ja ovat myös runoilijoita ja kirjailijoita sen ohella että käärivät tuohta Iisakin perinnöstä bashevish.com sivustolla.
      ellauri257.html on line 681: Tylsyys on paha, jota ei pidä arvioida kevyesti. Se voi lopulta johtaa todelliseen epätoivoon. Julkinen valta ryhtyy varotoimiin sitä vastaan ​​kaikkialla, samoin kuin muita yleismaailmallisia onnettomuuksia vastaan.
      ellauri258.html on line 82: Vanha Firestarter on silti Kubrick-tasoinen mestariteos tähän versioon verrattuna. Parannuksia on tasan yksi: Rainbirdia esittää nyt Yhdysvaltain alkuperäisväestöön kuuluva Michael Greyeyes. Hyytävä hahmo on kuitenkin pilattu täysin, kuten kaikki muukin tarinassa. ”Elokuvan ongelmat ovat niin perustavanlaatuisia, että kökködetaljeja ei maksa vaivaa edes luetella. Rakenne ja rytmitys ovat täysin pielessä. Alussa juoni jaarittelee ja junnaa paikoillaan, sen jälkeen taas etenee hypähdyksittäin, kuin käsikirjoituksesta olisi viime hetkellä revitty nippukaupalla sivuja irti”.
      ellauri258.html on line 156: "Aistin tilanteessa tiettyä absurdiutta, varsinkin jos paikalla on useita nobelisteja! Toisaalta olen aina ollut kiinnostunut puhumistani asioista niin, että esiintyessäni kaikki muu katoaa. Olen täysillä läsnä."
      ellauri258.html on line 373: Pomuryen sloveenien joukossa kevätkokouksen aikana Pyhän
      ellauri260.html on line 165: Aristoteles oli määritellyt ihmisen rationaaliseksi eläimeksi (ho anthropos zoon noetikon) (Aristoteles, hist. I, 1: 488a7; Nichomachean etiikka I, 5: 1097b11; VIII, 12: 1162a16; IX, 9: 1169b18; Politiikka, I, 2: 1253a3). Huomattava parannus verrattuna Sokraateen kynittyyn kanaan. Personalistit, hyväksyessään tämän määritelmän, sikäli kuin se menee, näkevät tällaisen rakenteen ihmisen tuomittavana vähennyksenä objektiiviseen maailmaan.
      ellauri260.html on line 177: En philosophie, parler d'être humain, en lieu et place du terme générique d'« homme », c'est emprunter la voie qui tente de répondre à « la question centrale en toute anthropologie telle qu'elle a été formulée par Emmanuel Kant, dans le sens où il se la posait, « Qu'est-ce que l'homme ? » « Was ist der Mensch? « Ach, Mensch, sanoivat saxalaiset turistit kun Aavasaxalla juhannuxena satoi lunta. Heidegger écrivait die Geschichte des Seins (la histoire des seins). Aber er war ein Naziteufel. Dans l'esprit de la philosophie kantienne, l'homme doit être vu comme une fin en soi et non comme un moyen, comme les autres animaux. Jacques Maritain a été avant tout un immense philosophe catholique, l'un de ceux qui a le plus contribué à faire revivre saint Thomas d'Aquin et son cheval.
      ellauri260.html on line 282: In the course of history it was at first religion that assailed inequality. From the common relation of all men to God, the fount of all life, it concluded that all men were equal. We need quote only the pregnant words of Luther : " Though we are never equal before the world, yet are we all equal before God, children of Adam, creatures of God ; and every man is of the same value as any other, if only behind the stone."
      ellauri260.html on line 296: New York is the city of million- aires, and their number increases steadily ; but it has also been established on medical authority in New York that in the year 1914 five per cent, of the children examined were underfed, and that by the year 1919 the proportion had risen to nineteen per cent. Surely such figures give ground for reflection !
      ellauri260.html on line 323: Tähän päättyy Euckenin aristotelesmäinen sozein ta phainomena. Aletaanko kohta jo lähestyä Euckenin "praktillista idealismia"! Ettei se sunkaan ole samaa pukinsorkkaa kuin William Jamesin "Will to Believe". Eli kristinopilla kevyesti siveltyä ahnasta laissez fairea? T equals T in the present time. Tuo nyt on tuota. Eli nyt alkaa CHAPTER III.
      ellauri260.html on line 343: The worst thing in the 20's (a hundred years ago) is the mighty agitation caused by the stubborn persistence of the social problem and the rise of Socialism to power.
      ellauri260.html on line 363: Even the finer type of comfort and enjoyment will, in a detached subject, turn into an inward emptiness, which in the long run will prove less tolerable than care and want, struggle and pain. Ancient Epicureanism showed this two thousand years ago, and Socialistic Epicureanism will show the same thing.
      ellauri260.html on line 390: Sir James George Frazer OMG FRS FRSE FBA WTF (/ˈfreɪzər/; 1 January 1854 – 7 May 1941) was a Scottish social anthropologist and folklorist influential in the early stages of the modern studies of mythology and comparative religion. His lousy reputation improved after his new wife in 1896, Lilly Frazer, decided that he was undervalued because of atheism and that she could improve his impact by leaving out some of it. His dissertation was published years later as The Growth of Plato's Ideal Theory. He remained a classical fellow all his life, not unlike Kari Hotakainen.
      ellauri260.html on line 397: Frazer uskoi, että ajan myötä kulttuuri kulki kolmen vaiheen läpi siirtyen taikuudesta uskontoon ja tieteeseen. Frazerin luokittelu poikkesi tuskin huomattavasti aiemmista antropologisista kuvauksista kulttuurisesta evoluutiosta, mukaan lukien Auguste Comten, siinä että hänen mielestään taikuus oli sekä alun perin erillään uskonnosta että aina ennen uskontoa. Mit vit? Eihän magia ja uskonto edes ole eri asioita. Frazer uskoi, että taikuus ja tiede olivat samanlaisia, koska molemmat korostivat kokeilua ja käytännöllisyyttä; Toisin kuin sekä taikuus että tiede, Frazer määritteli uskonnon uskomalla henkilökohtaisiin, yliluonnollisiin voimiin ja yrityksiin lepytellä niitä. Frazer näki uskonnon "hetkellisenä poikkeamana kokeellisen magian kunniakkaalta tieltä." Frazer pelkäsi ihan aiheellisesti että magia voi milloin tahansa tulla takaisin, sillä "hömelö laahus teillä on aina keskuudessanne." Ize asiassa Frazerilla oli hidden agenda, se halusi näyttää että kristillinen magia on ihan yhtä typerää kuin esim. Australian lakukepeillä. No niinhän se on mutta...
      ellauri260.html on line 400: Okei, Forverts sanoisi Iisak Bashevis. Joka maalla on oma vapauskäsitys, ranskalainen la liberté on ihan eri asia kuin saxalainen Freiheit, italialaisesta libertàsta ei voi puhua samana päivänä. Saxalainen on ganz frei tekemään mitä käsketään. Ihmiset eivät puhuisi niin kevyesti kristinuskosta, jos ne tajuaisivat, mikä homma on pitää ihmiset yhdessä sisäisesti ja hallita alempia impulsseja, jotka ajavat apinoita ilkitöihin. Sitäpaizi parliamentarismi on anuxesta, siitä ei ole tekemään rivakoita päätöxiä, pelkkää jahnausta, vaaleja ja toimikuntia. Keskiluokka haluaisi vikkelästi telefooneja, mutta mitä tekee parliamentti? Istuu käsillään.
      ellauri260.html on line 431: Sit sosialismi unohtaa nää reviirit. Ne motivoivat apinoita suuresti. Goethe oli oikeassa sanoessaan (runomuodossa): "Jokainen elävä olento tekee oman pikku territorion." "Ole izellesi kaikki tai et ole paljon paskaakaan", sanoi Fichtekin. Tuo kyvykäs ihmisluonnon opiskelija, Tocqueville, sanoi aivan oikein, että intohimot yleensä lisääntyvät niiden yksilöiden lukumäärän myötä, jotka jakavat ne. Eli joukossa tyhmyys tiivistyy, se on lyhyempi lause. Bolshevikit ovat väärässä vaikka ovat vähemmistönä. Proletariaatin diktatuuri on syvältä, mutta niin on myös demokratia, sanokaa mun sanoneen. Hegel oli oikeassa sanoessaan että kaikki mitä opimme historiasta on että kukaan ei ole siitä mitään oppinut. (No tää meemi kyllä lähti viraalixi.)
      ellauri262.html on line 65: Eikös sekin Nuevos Pensamientos para una vida mejor, eli Wayne Dyer ollut Kalju K. Kojootti? Niin ja Mahatma Gandhi tietysti. Vizi näitä on sitten paljon, longum est omnia enumerari.
      ellauri262.html on line 99: Se sisälsi Lewisille kuuluvia käsikirjoituksia, kirjeitä ja esineitä, ja vuosien mittaan kokoelma laajeni sisältämään esineitä Lewisin Inkling - ystäviltä ja sitten muilta heihin vaikuttaneilta ihmisiltä. Tuloksena olevaan Inkling-ryhmään kuului seitsemän brittiläistä uskonnollissävyistä kirjailijaa: Lewis, JRR Tolkien, GK Chesterton, Owen Barfield, George MacDonald, Dorothy L. Sayers ja Charles Williams. Monet heistä tulivat läheisixi perseystävixi.
      ellauri262.html on line 118: yers-glasses.jpg" width="50%" />
      ellauri262.html on line 119:
      Dorothy Sayerin (sic) ikoniset silmälasit. A.F. oli Dottyn avioton poika.

      ellauri262.html on line 148: When his dog Jacksie was killed by a car, the four-year old Lewis adopted the name Jacksie. At first, he would answer to no other name, but later accepted Jack, the name by which he was known to friends and family for the rest of his life. When he was seven, his family moved into "Little Lea", the family home of his childhood, in the Strandtown area of East Belfast.
      ellauri262.html on line 152: Lewis was schooled by private tutors until age nine, when his mother died in 1908 from cancer. His father then sent him to England to live and study at Wynyard School in Watford, Hertfordshire. Lewis's brother had enrolled there three years previously. Not long after, the school was closed due to a lack of pupils. Lewis then attended Campbell College in the east of Belfast about a mile from his home, but left after a few months due to respiratory problems.
      ellauri262.html on line 154: Lewis experienced a certain cultural shock on first arriving in England: at that moment he conceived a hatred for England which took many years to heal. No wonder. He developed a particular fondness for W. B. Yeats.
      ellauri262.html on line 166: In 1924 he became a Philosophy tutor at University College and, in 1925, was elected a Fellow and Tutor in English Literature at Magdalen College, where he served for 29 years until 1954.
      ellauri262.html on line 186: Christus Victor is a book by Gustaf Aulén published in English in 1931, presenting a study of theories of atonement in Christianity. The original Swedish title is Den kristna försoningstanken ("The Christian Idea of the Atonement") published in 1930. Aulén reinterpreted the classic ransom theory of atonement, which says that Christ's death is a ransom to the powers of evil, which had held humankind in their dominion. It is a model of the atonement that is dated to the Church Fathers, and it was the dominant theory of atonement for a thousand years, until Anselm Panda of Canterbury supplanted it in the West with his satisfaction theory of atonement. So that the baddies in the story were Sauron and the goblins and orcs of Mordor, not God as angry Scrooge McDuck coming for his dues.
      ellauri262.html on line 237: Kouluaikana moni kuului kiusattaviin. Grahamea, Milneä ja Carrollia lamautti ujous. Carrol änkytti pahasti, lähestyi ihmisiä valokuvaamalla heitä eikä kyennyt rentoutumaan kuin pienten tyttöjen parissa isossa tyttöparvessa hän oli ollut vanhin veli. Hänen asuntonsa oli kuin sexilelukauppa.
      ellauri262.html on line 275: Tolkien valmistui Oxfordista kesäkuussa 1915, ensimmäisen maailmansodan jo sytyttyä. Heti valmistumisensa jälkeen hän astui armeijan palvelukseen. Tolkien komennettiin lyhyen koulutuksen jälkeen Ranskaan länsirintamalle, jossa hän palveli viestiupseerina ja osallistui Sommen taisteluun hillomunkin hinnalla. Hän sairastui vuonna 1916 ampumahautakuumeeseen ja pääsi pois rintamalta. Tolkien siirrettiin parantumaan Birminghamiin sotilassairaalaan, josta hänet kotiutettiin jouluksi. Tuolloin hän kirjoitti ensimmäiset Keski-Maa-aiheiset tarinansa. lähde? Käsikirjoitus oli alun perin nimeltään The Book of Lost Tales (suom. Kadonneiden tarujen kirja), jonka tarinoista myöhemmin muodostui postuumisti julkaistu Silmarillion. Kotiutuksensa jälkeen hänet ylennettiin luutnantiksi siitä hyvästä.
      ellauri262.html on line 293: Taru sormusten herrasta sai ilmestyessään ristiriitaisia arvosteluja, mutta suosio kasvoi vähitellen. C. S. Lewis ehdotti vuonna 1961 Tolkienia Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinnon ehdokkaaksi. Ei tärpännyt. Viisikymmentä vuotta myöhemmin julkistetun arkistomateriaalin mukaan palkintolautakunta ei pitänyt Tolkienin proosaa tarpeeksi korkeatasoisena. Eihän siinä paljon kehumista olekaan, eikä juonessakaan, se on varsin klisheinen. Koko juju on hauskoissa fantasiahahmoissa.
      ellauri262.html on line 313: The author of the bestselling fantasy novel The Lord of the Rings, J. R. R. Tolkien, was orphaned as a boy, his father dying in South Africa and his mother in England a few years later. He was brought up by his guardian, a Catholic priest, Father Francis Xavier Morgan, and educated at male-only grammar schools and then Exeter College, Oxford, which at that time had only male students. He joined the British Army's Lancashire Fusiliers and saw the horror of trench warfare, with life as an officer made more bearable by the support of a male batman or servant. After the war he became a professor of English Language at the University of Leeds, and then at the University of Oxford, where he taught at Pembroke College. At Oxford, he created an all-male literary group with another Oxford professor of English, C. S. Lewis, called the Inklings.
      ellauri262.html on line 319: The scholar Patrick Curry, defending Tolkien against the feminist scholar Catherine R. Stimpson's charge that "Tolkien is irritatingly, blandly, traditionally masculine....He makes his women characters, no matter what their rank, the most hackneyed of stereotypes. They are either beautiful and distant, simply distant, or simply simple", comments that "it is tempting to reply, guilty as charged", agreeing that Tolkien is "paternalistic", though he objects that Galadriel and Éowyn have more to them than Stimpson alleges.
      ellauri262.html on line 330: Edith oli Inklingeille mustasukkainen, ja ainoa nainen jonka Inklingit puolestaan kerran päästivät istuntoonsa, oli miesmäinen ja nokkava Dorothy Sayers.
      ellauri262.html on line 385:

      Dorothy Sayers


      ellauri262.html on line 387: yers Dorothy">Dorothy Leigh Sayers (13. kesäkuuta 1893 Oxford – 17. joulukuuta 1957 Witham) oli englantilainen rikoskirjailija, kääntäjä ja kristitty humanisti. Parhaiten hänet tunnetaan Peter Wimsey -dekkareistaan, joissa englantilainen aristokraatti toimii harrastelijasalapoliisina. Niitä pidetään niin sanottujen arvoitusdekkareiden (esimerkiksi Agatha Christie, Ruth Rendell) parhaimmistona.
      ellauri262.html on line 389: Ensimmäiset Wimsey-kirjat olivat kevyitä, päähenkilönsä omalaatuisuudella leikitteleviä teoksia. Kun Wimsey kohtaa Harriet Vanen, jonka kanssa hän myöhemmin menee naimisiin, teemat vakavoituvat. Arvostetuin Wimsey-kirjoista on toiseksi viimeinen, Juhlailta, jota on sanottu yhdeksi parhaista Oxfordin yliopistomaailman kuvauksista. Sayers itse piti tärkeimpinä töinään käännöksiä, etenkin Danten Jumalaisen näytelmän englanninnosta.
      ellauri262.html on line 391: Kirkollisiin piireihin syntyneellä Sayersillä oli rankka elämä; hänellä oli muun muassa salainen avioton lapsi vähän niinkuin mneizyt Maarialla. Myöhemmin hän liikkui kirjallisissa piireissä, joihin kuuluivat muun muassa C. S. Lewis ja J. R. R. Tolkien.
      ellauri262.html on line 401: The poet W. H. Auden and the philosopher Ludwig Wittgenstein were notable critics of her novels. A savage attack on Sayers's writing ability came from the American critic Edmund Wilson, in a well-known 1945 article in The New Yorker called "Who Cares Who Killed Roger Ackroyd?" He briefly writes about her novel The Nine Tailors, saying "I declare that it seems to me one of the dullest books I have ever encountered in any field." Wilson continues "I had often heard people say that Dorothy Sayers wrote well ... but, really, she does not write very well: it is simply that she is more consciously literary than most of the other detective-story writers and that she thus attracts attention in a field which is mostly on a sub-literary level."
      ellauri262.html on line 403: The academic critic Q. D. Leavis criticises Sayers in more specific terms in a review of Gaudy Night and Busman's Honeymoon, published in the critical journal Scrutiny, saying her fiction is "popular and romantic while pretending to realism." Leavis argues that Sayers presents academic life as "sound and sincere because it is scholarly," a place of "invulnerable standards of taste charging the charmed atmosphere". But, Leavis says, this is unrealistic: "If such a world ever existed, and I should be surprised to hear as much, it does no longer, and to give substance to a lie or to perpetuate a dead myth is to do no one any service really." Leavis comments that "only best-seller novelists could have such illusions about human nature."
      ellauri262.html on line 405: The critic Sean Latham has defended Sayers, arguing that Wilson and Leavis simply objected to a detective story writer having pretensions beyond what they saw as her role of popular culture "hack". Latham says that, in their eyes, "Sayers' primary crime lay in her attempt to transform the detective novel into something other than an ephemeral bit of popular culture".
      ellauri262.html on line 407: Sayers, an only child, was born on 13 June 1893 at the Headmaster's House on Brewer Street in Oxford. She was the daughter of Helen Mary Leigh and her husband, the Rev. Henry Sayers. Her mother was a daughter of Frederick Leigh, a solicitor whose family roots were in the landed gentry in the Isle of Wight, and had been born at "The Chestnuts", Millbrook, Hampshire. Her father, originally from Littlehampton, West Sussex, was a chaplain of Christ Church Cathedral, Oxford, and headmaster of Christ Church Cathedral School.
      ellauri262.html on line 409: When Sayers was six, her father started teaching her Latin. She grew up in the tiny village of Bluntisham in Huntingdonshire after her father was given the living there as rector of Bluntisham-cum-Earith. The church graveyard next to the elegant Regency-style rectory features the surnames of several characters from her mystery The Nine Tailors. She was inspired by her father's restoration of the Bluntisham church bells in 1910. The nearby River Great Ouse and the Fens invite comparison with the book's vivid description of a massive flood around the village.
      ellauri262.html on line 411: Sayers's first book was poetry and was published in 1916 as OP. by Blackwell Publishing in Oxford. Her second book of poems, "Catholic Tales and Christian Songs", was published in 1918, also by Blackwell.
      ellauri262.html on line 413: Sayers's longest employment was from 1922 to 1931 as a copywriter at an advertising agency.
      ellauri262.html on line 414: As an advertiser, Sayers's collaboration with artist John Gilroy resulted in "The Mustard Club" for Colman's Mustard and the Guinness "Zoo" advertisements, variations of which still appear today. One example was the Toucan, his bill arching under a glass of Guinness, with Sayers's jingle:
      ellauri262.html on line 421: Sayers is also credited with coining the slogan "It pays to advertise!" Sayers's translation of the Divine Comedy includes extensive notes at the end of each canto, explaining the theological meaning of what she calls "a great Christian allegory.".
      ellauri262.html on line 425: In 1920 Sayers entered into a passionate though unconsummated romance with Jewish Russian émigré and Imagist poet John Cournos, who moved in London literary circles with Ezra Pound and his contemporaries. Sayers did not consummate her relationship with him unmarried, due to her religious beliefs. Cournos disdained monogamy and marriage, did not want children and was dedicated to free love.[53] He also considered crime writing, which Sayers had started, to be low brow, though he assisted her with aspects of publication.[54] Within two years their relationship had broken up when he insisted on consummation with birth control. Returning to New York, he soon married a crime writer who had two children. This left Sayers embittered that he had not held to his own principles, feeling that he had been testing her, pushing her to sacrifice her own beliefs in submission to his own. He later confessed that he would have happily married Sayers if she had submitted to his sexual demands. After a period of heated correspondence, they concluded with more amicable missives after she met her future husband.
      ellauri262.html on line 429: On 3 January 1924, at the age of 30, Sayers secretly gave birth to an illegitimate son, John Anthony (later surnamed Fleming). John Anthony, "Tony", was given into care with her aunt and cousin, Amy and Ivy Amy Shrimpton, and passed off as her nephew to family and friends. Details of these circumstances were revealed in a letter from Mrs White to her daughter Valerie, Tony's half-sister, in 1958 after Sayers's death. Tony was raised by the Shrimptons and was sent to a good boarding school. In 1935 he was legally adopted by Sayers and her then husband "Mac" Fleming.
      ellauri262.html on line 433: After publishing her first two detective novels, Sayers married Captain Oswald Atherton "Mac" Fleming, a Scottish journalist whose professional name was "Atherton Fleming". The wedding took place on 13 April 1926 (Dot was 33 and Mac 45) at Holborn Register Office, London. Fleming was divorced with two daughters.
      ellauri262.html on line 435: Fleming died on 9 June 1950, at Sunnyside Cottage (now 24 Newland Street), Witham, Essex, after a decade of severe illnesses. Sayers died suddenly of a coronary thrombosis on 17 December 1957 at the same little flat, aged 64. Sayers was a friend of C. S. Lewis and several of the other Inklings. On some occasions Sayers joined Lewis at meetings of the Socratic Club. Lewis said he read The Man Born to Be King every Easter, but he said he was unable to appreciate detective stories. J. R. R. Tolkien read some of the Wimsey novels but scorned the later ones, such as Gaudy Night. Se oli varmaan liian nenäkäs.
      ellauri262.html on line 437: Sayers had much in common with Lewis and Tolkien’s circle, including a love of orthodox Christianity, traditional verse, popular fiction, and debate. Sayers oli Cliven fani ja kääntäen. But
      ellauri262.html on line 438: they disagreed regarding the ordination of women in the Church of England. Sayers comments on Lewis's views of women in another letter, stating, "I do admit that he is apt to write shocking nonsense about women and marriage. That, however, is not because he is a bad theologian but because he is a rather frightened bachelor.”
      ellauri262.html on line 440: Sayers was greatly influenced by G. K. Chesterton, fellow detective fiction novelist, essayist, critic, among other things, commenting that, "I think, in some ways, G.K.’s books have become more a part of my mental make-up than those of any writer you could name.” n 2022, Sayers was officially added to the Episcopal Church liturgical calendar with a feast day on 17 December.
      ellauri262.html on line 442: yers-Quote-I-always-have-a-quotation-for-everything-it.jpg" width="100%" />
      ellauri262.html on line 484: No not yet, he says that what is good for God may not be good for us. But then he is not our friend, is he? Well he knows best what is good for us, he is our father, and we are his servants. Aha, well I can relate to that. An angry nacissistic psychopathic God does indeed fill the bill. This may hurt a bit, but wait a while, on the other side of the stone you see what this pain was for. You can't enjoy to the hilt unless you feel a bit of pain at first. Sado-masochism, you see.
      ellauri262.html on line 494: While there is a social conscious and corporate guilt, don’t let the idea distract you from your own "old-fashioned guilts" that have nothing to do with the ‘system’. Often, it’s an excuse for evading the real issue. Once we’ve learned of our individual corruption, we can go on to think about corporate guilt. If we ever get that far, the plank in our own eye is hard to extricate. (Luke 6:41-42)
      ellauri262.html on line 517: Hell may strike one as fucking unjust (and it is), but Lewis reminds the reader that in discussing Hell we should not keep our friends and enemies before our eyes since both obscure reason, but to think of ourselves. Be egoists, as your heavenly father is!
      ellauri262.html on line 600: Kristillisen metalliyhtyeen Elinuhri (Living Sacrifice) albumilla Haamuvaras (Ghost Thief) on kappale nimeltä "Kierrenauha (Screwtape)" . Laulun keulahahmo Bruce Fitzhugh selitti, että kappale on "kiusauksesta ja sananlaskusta paholainen olkapäälläsi". Kyse on ajatusprosessista, jonka käymme läpi oikeuttaaksemme ajatuksen tai toiminnan, joka ei ole hyvä verelle." Fitzhugh selittää myös, kuinka hänen mielestään oli mielenkiintoista, että Lewis kirjoitti Ruuvinauhan (Screwtape) näkökulmasta ja että hän kirjoitti samasta näkökulmasta kappaleen.
      ellauri262.html on line 611: The 71-year-old actor, best known for his roles in Monty Python and Fawlty Towers, said: “I don’t think Christ said a lot about abortion or even about single sex marriage.
      ellauri262.html on line 621: Last year another actor, Liam Neeson, claimed Aslan, the Christlike character in C.S. Lewis’ Narnia books, could also represent the prophet Mohammed.
      ellauri263.html on line 69: Tobitin kirja, josta on ollut jo puhetta albumissa 111 kertoo Tobitin pojasta Tobiaasta, jonka hän lähettää perimään erästä velkaa. Matkalla Tobias kohtaa naisihmiseksi naamioituneen enkeli Rafaelin, jonka ohjauksessa hän hankkii edullisesti punaleimaisen kalan sydämen, maksan ja sappirakon. Sitten hän tapaa1 lesken, joka on kyllä ollut naimisissa seitsemän kertaa, mutta on pysynyt neitsyenä, koska ko. Saaraan lätkääntynyt demoni Asmodeus on surmannut hänen jokaisen aviomiehensä hääyönä. Enkelin kehotuksesta Tobias menee lesken kanssa naimisiin ja ajaa demonin pois kalan sydämen ja maksan hajulla, ja panee sitten hajusta piittaamatta Saaraa menestyxellä. Saman kalan jo erittäin haisevalla sapella Tobias palauttaa myöhemmin isänsä Tobitin näön.
      ellauri263.html on line 107: Šema Israel tai lyhyesti šema (hepr. ‏שמע ישראל‎, Šema Jisra'el eli Kuule Israel) on juutalaisuuden tärkein rukous, jota pidetään myös juutalaisten uskontunnustuksena.
      ellauri263.html on line 295: Fasting, mourning, prayer, abstaining from physical pleasures
      ellauri263.html on line 306: The First Temple built by King Solomon was destroyed by Nebuchadnezzar in 586 BCE, and the population of the Kingdom of Judah was sent into the Babylonian exile. According to the Bible, the First Temple's destruction began on the 7th of Av (2 Kings 25:8) and continued until the 10th (Jeremiah 52:12). According to the Talmud, the actual destruction of the Temple began on the Ninth of Av, and it continued to burn throughout the Tenth of Av.
      ellauri263.html on line 308: The Second Temple built by Ezra and Nehemiah was destroyed by the Romans in 70 CE, scattering the people of Judea and commencing the Jewish exile from the Holy Land.
      ellauri263.html on line 310: The Romans subsequently crushed Bar Kokhba's revolt and destroyed the city of Betar, killing over 500,000 Jewish civilians (approximately 580,000) on 4 August 135 CE.
      ellauri263.html on line 335: Various Modern Orthodox and Conservative rabbits have proposed amending Nachem, as its wording no longer reflects the existence of a rebuilt Jerusalem under Israeli sovereignty. Chief Rabbit Shlomo Goren, for example, issued a revised wording of the prayer and Rabbit Hayim David HaLevi proposed putting the prayer's verbs relating to the Temple's destruction into the past tense. However, such proposals have not been widely adopted. Following the Six-Day War, the national religious community viewed Israel's territorial conquests with almost messianic overtones. The conquest of geographical areas with immense religious significance, including Jerusalem, the Western Wall, and the Temple Mount, was seen as portentous; however, only the full rebuilding of the Temple would engender enough reason to cease observing the day as one of mourning and transform it into a day of joy instead. The re-occupation of the Gaza strip is surely a source of joy, as well as annihilating philistines of the West Bank.
      ellauri263.html on line 375: Fauda is frequently credited with evenhandedness over the Israeli-Palestinian conflict and attempts to humanise Palestinian terror operatives. But that’s in the eye of the beholder, and certainly less true of this second series. For an Israeli Jewish audience, Fauda does break new ground. “It’s the first TV series that showed the Palestinian narrative in a way that you can actually feel something for someone who acts like a terrorist,” says Itay Stern at Israel’s Haaretz newspaper. “You can understand the motives and the emotion and that’s unique, because until that point you couldn’t really see it on TV.”
      ellauri263.html on line 385: Diana Buttu, a Palestinian-Canadian human rights lawyer and former spokeswoman for the Palestinian Liberation Organisation, points to another problem with Fauda. “If you’re not careful, you find yourself drawn into the assassinations, you get lured into the cat and mouse,” she says, of a series that essentially depicts targeted killings. “The concept of right and wrong gets erased, the illegality gets erased … It just becomes this action-packed show.”
      ellauri263.html on line 395: Small wonder, then, that all eyes are on finding the new Homeland Security, itself based on an Israeli TV series, Hatufim. And it’s not surprising that the quest is focused on Israel, which has spawned a string of international hits, starting with In Treatment, a 2008 HBO adaptation of the Hebrew-language Be Tipul. In 2016 Neflix started airing Mossad 101, about Israel’s intelligence service, while earlier this year Hulu nabbed False Flag, a conspiracy thriller loosely premised on the 2010 assassination of Hamas official Mahmoud al-Mabhouh, widely thought to be the work of the Mossad, by a hit squad carrying foreign passports.
      ellauri263.html on line 397: For its second series, Fauda’s publicity campaign has ramped up claims of authenticity and popularity among Palestinians as well as the wider Arab world. Columnist, author and TV sitcom writer Sayed Kashua slammed such efforts earlier this year: “You already have military victories and cultural control in marketing the Israeli occupation policy: at least give the Palestinians the option of hating Fauda. Are Netflix, worldwide success, economic growth and serving Israeli PR not enough for them?”
      ellauri263.html on line 505: Helena Petrovna Blavatskyn molemmat vanhemmat olivat aatelista sukua. Helenan isä oli kapteeni Peter (Pjotr) Aleksejevitš von Hahn. Helenan äiti Jelena Andrejevna von Hahn oli lapsen syntyessä vasta 17-vuotias.
      ellauri263.html on line 627: Almost 600 (!) biographies have been written of Blavatsky, but the details of her life, especially the years 1848–1873, remain sketchy all the same. Most of the authors have been either devoted disciples or sharply critical adversaries. Some interesting and well-documented facts, however, can be determined. She was born to a noble Russian family in present-day Ukraine, married at 17, ran away only months later, traveled widely and spent time in Cairo, among many other places, where she supported herself as a medium size sex doll.
      ellauri263.html on line 670: “One of the most valuable effects of Upasika’s mission [Note: “Upasika” is a Buddhist term meaning “femakko” and was used by the Masters for HPB] is that it drives men to self-study and destroys in them blind servility for persons, sanoi 1 setämies. … Imperfect and very troublesome, no doubt, she proves to some, nevertheless, there is no likelihood of our finding a better one for years to come – and your theosophists should be made to understand it. … HPB has next to no concern with administrative details, and should be kept clear of them, so far as her strong nature can be controlled. But this you must tell to all: – With occult matters she has everything to do. We have not abandoned her; she is not ‘given over to chelas’. She is our direct agent. I warn you against permitting your suspicions and resentment against ‘her many follies’ to bias your intuitive loyalty to her. … Be assured that what she has not annotated from scientific and other works, we have given or suggested to her.
      ellauri263.html on line 702: A few years ago, my partner at the time and I decided to see other people. It started as a breakup but eventually it turned into something else—an open relationship filled with a lot of love and ongoing commitment to each other as we began exploring dating and sleeping with other people. It was a very new experience for both of us, but it also just made sense for us with where we both were in our lives and in our relationship.
      ellauri263.html on line 713: This ad is displayed using third party content and we do not control its accessibility features.
      ellauri263.html on line 741: This ad is displayed using third party content and we do not control its accessibility features.
      ellauri263.html on line 767: This ad is displayed using third party content and we do not control its accessibility features.
      ellauri263.html on line 778: We found a lot of ways to support our intellectual belief in compersion with actual psychological rewards. For example, I'd help my partner get matches on Tinder and give him tips on cute bars to take them, and after the dates, he'd tell me how they went and give me a ton of love and affirmation whenever I pouted over him having a good time. Meanwhile, he played wingman with me when I wanted to meet up with a potential flame at a party or concert, and I always made sure to come home to him and share the sexy things I'd done with the new guy and what things I wanted to migrate into our own sex life. In this way, we began to be able to associate positive experiences together (showering each other with affection and affirming the strength of our relationship) with the aftermath of one of us having fun with someone else. When it became clear that these extradyadic encounters only brought us closer, it became easier and easier for us to feel earnest joy for the other person's romantic successes.
      ellauri263.html on line 829: These ads too were displayed using third party content and we do not control their accessibility features either.
      ellauri264.html on line 39:

      yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Semitismiä

      Semitismiä


      ellauri264.html on line 85: L’action du drame se passe à Mayence, au quartier général des armées françaises en 1793. Les officiers soupçonnent de trahison d’Oyron, un de leurs camarades, d’origine aristocratique. Une lettre saisie sur un paysan rhénanien semble prouver la trahison de d’Oyron. Rolland avait l’intention de démontrer son impartialité. Pour atteindre ce but, il voulait que l’innocence de d’Oyron ne pût être établie de manière définitive.
      ellauri264.html on line 118: Gionet was born in Anchorage, Alaska, to a family of eight. His father is a pharmacist and his mother is a nurse. Both his parents are devout Christians who operate a non-profit organization aimed at promoting Christianity and providing medical supplies to orphanages in eastern Russia. During his formative years, Gionet was actively involved in his parents' charity and went to Russia with them numerous times. Five of his siblings were adopted from Russia. As an adolescent, Gionet spent a year and a half in the Russian city of Petropavlovsk-Kamchatsky. He later said that part of his "chaotic nature" may have stemmed from this experience.
      ellauri264.html on line 130: A children's book appropriating the Pepe character, The Adventures of Pepe and Pede, advanced "racist, Islamophobic and hate-filled themes", The book's author, a vice-principal with the Denton Independent School District, was reassigned after the publicity. In January 2019, the video game Jesus Strikes Back: Judgment Day was released, which allows players to play as Pepe the Frog, among other figures, and murder various target groups including feminists, minorities, and liberals.
      ellauri264.html on line 166: Velma is unpleasant. Velma mostly replaces the old silly sensibility with crass name-droppy pointlessness. Every episode is a cringy, eye-rolling slog that doesn’t seem to have any idea who its audience is, yet seems to despise them all the same.
      ellauri264.html on line 227: society that throws away useable items because they are a few years old and maybe outdated by new
      ellauri264.html on line 235: In our times, Chanuka is precisely the time of year when we most encounter our relationship
      ellauri264.html on line 239: Olive oil is bio-fuel, a renewable resource: the olive tree will produce another crop of crap every year, as will the palm oil palm. According to Jewish law, olive oil lamps are the ideal Lighting with olive oil can help us connect to the holy use of our resources, from the renewable olive oil of the Hasmonians back to the oil vessels of Jacob and Noah. This year, may our Chanuka lights inspire us toward responsible and holy use of everything that comes into our possession by hook or crook.
      ellauri264.html on line 409: Extreme right radio station WICC programme director Adam Lambetti told The Independent in a statement: “Norm Pattis is no longer with WICC, but we wish him well in the future.” On Wednesday, a jury reached a staggering $965m damages award against Mr Jones for the emotional and financial harm he had caused to 15 Sandy Hook family members and an FBI officer who attended the shooting in 2012. Afterwards, Mr Pattis admitted he got his “arse kicked”. “It was great fun while it lasted,” Mr Pattis said, who describes himself in an online bio as a “lawyer, writer, contrarian, stand-up comedian”.
      ellauri264.html on line 413: He is a regular in the national media, from the New York Times to The Today Show, and also serves as a frequent speaker. Norm is twice bestselling author labeled America’s Fiercest Trial Lawyer, a prolific blogger. Additionally, he serves as the host of the Pattis On Justice podcast. The podcast focuses on Law, politics, crime, and culture—in a word, "convict".
      ellauri264.html on line 415: Norm was seen rambling about Black Lives Matter and making homophobic and racist remarks, using the "n" word with his pants around his ankles (he was wearing soiled shorts underneath). A Black woman sitting in the front row stares at Pattis throughout the nearly eight-minute set, clearly unimpressed. This past year he infuriated the New Haven National Association for the Advancement of Colored People, a former ally, by posting a racially charged meme on his Facebook page. The post depicted three hooded white beer cans arrayed around a brown bottle hanging from a string. Its caption: “Ku Klux Coors.” Civil rights activists called it disgusting and racist. Pattis called it funny and free speech.
      ellauri264.html on line 422:

      Norm founded and leads The Law Firm in 2005, Connecticut-based criminal defense and civil rights. It focuses on serious felonies including violent felonies, white-collar crimes, sex offenses, drug crimes, and misconduct by lawyers, doctors, and government officials. Norm has defended capital murder cases and won federal civil rights verdicts for police brutality, discrimination, false arrest, malicious prosecution, and violations of rights, always on the side of the criminal. Norm Pattis is veteran of more than 100 successful jury trials, many resulting in acquittals for people charged with serious crimes, multi million dollar civil rights and discrimination verdicts, and successful criminal appeals. The Hartford Courant describes his work as “Brilliant” and “Audacious”.
      ellauri264.html on line 424: Norm Pattis used to receive a well deserved hate letter once a year from an elderly woman in California. Incensed over a $2 million award the criminal defense lawyer had won for a convicted rapist and murderer injured by guards during a prison escape attempt. He helps people who have trouble telling the good guys from the bad guys. Pattis specializes in cases that make most people cringe. He’s defended everyone from child murderers to rapists — he admits to being particularly drawn to homicide cases. If the allegation is heinous and the defendant reviled, chances are pretty good Pattis is involved.
      ellauri264.html on line 427: “I’m 64 (no 68) years old and I have a ponytail. I have issues with authority. If I take a crooked case and it pisses off the other 7 (no 8 billion) people on the face of the Earth, that’s their problem, not mine.”
      ellauri264.html on line 429: Pattis käänsi takkinsa vasemmalta äärioikealle käden käänteessä. Jos saat paskaa käteen siitä pääsee käden käänteessä. But behind the hardball tactics, ferocious reputation and slashing rhetoric, another side of Pattis lurks. He’s a deep thinker who devours books in a constant quest for enlightenment and self-improvement. His idea of Disneyland is attending the annual Hay Festival of Ideas in Wales, which has been described as “the Woodstock of the Mind.” Get into a serious conversation with Pattis, and he will bounce from philosopher to philosopher as casually as some men bounce from ballplayer to ballplayer. During an interview for this article, Pattis quoted or referenced thinker Immanuel Kant, Supreme Court Justice Oliver Wendell Holmes, St. Augustine, the New Testament, Machiavelli and Kurt Vonnegut all in one 3-minute stretch. What a pile of turds.
      ellauri264.html on line 442: From an early age, Pattis says he has felt a burning desire to know God personally. To that end, he spent time in Switzerland at the compound of an American Christian fundamentalist thinker named Francis Schaeffer and then inveigled himself in the graduate philosophy program of Columbia University, where he studied and taught for six years. At one point, he nearly joined the CIA, but that opportunity fizzled when the agency didn’t like his polygraph answers about homosexual experiences. “I said, ‘Well, I haven’t had any yet. I don’t know how I’m going to respond if you ask,’ ” he recalls. “I think they decided that was a little too much for them.”
      ellauri264.html on line 463: And yet the menace of the years Ja silti vuotten uhkavaatimus
      ellauri264.html on line 494: Joku hölmö amerikkalainen haastaa alla olevassa videossa Bashevisin kysyen: Jotkut kriitikot ovat valittaneet, että kirjoissanne ei anneta ihmisille toivoa ja osoiteta tietä jota pitkin päästä nykyajan pahasta pälkähästä parempaan tulevaisuuteen, kuten Alfred Nobel pani palkinnolle ehdoxi. Miten vastaisitte tähän? Bashevis: En tiedä, he voivat olla oikeassa.
      ellauri264.html on line 507: The Shulchan Aruch (Hebrew: שֻׁלְחָן עָרוּך [ʃulˈħan ʕaˈrux], literally: "Set Table"), sometimes dubbed in English as the Code of Jewish Law, is the most widely consulted of the various legal codes in Judaism. It was authored in Safed (today in Israel) by Joseph Karo in 1563 and published in Venice two years later. Together with its commentaries, it is the most widely accepted compilation of halakha or Jewish law ever written.
      ellauri264.html on line 515: Orach Chayim – laws of prayer and synagogue, Sabbath, holidays;
      ellauri264.html on line 532: The "Rema" (Moses Isserles) started writing his commentary on the Arba´ah Turim, Darkhei Moshe, at about the same time as Yosef Karo. Karo finished his work "Bet Yosef" first, and it was first presented to the Rema as a gift from one of his students. Upon receiving the gift, the Rema could not understand how he had spent so many years unaware of Karo´s efforts. After looking through the Bet Yosef, the Rema realized that Karo had mainly relied upon Sephardic poskim.
      ellauri264.html on line 586: 18 When he mentioned the ark of God, Eli fell backward off his chair by the side of the gate. His neck was broken and he died, for he was an old man, and he was heavy. He had led Israel forty years and here was the thanks.
      ellauri264.html on line 595: The rise of Religious Zionism is a phenomenon that has taken place since the times six day war. One of its key founders was a man called Rabbi Kuk who was the head of the yeshiva Mercaz HaRav in Jerusalem. He was one of the first practically envision the settlement of the mountains of Israel in modern times. An example of his thinking in this regard can be seen in a speech he made just before the six day war. These were his words:
      ellauri264.html on line 597: Nineteen years ago, on that famous night, when the decision of the establishment of the State of Israel was made by the governors of the nations of the world, when all the people flocked to the streets to publicly celebrate, I could not take part in the joy. In those first hours I could not make peace with what was done, with the horrible news, that God´s words from the prophecy in the Twelve Prophets: "My land was divided" was coming true. Where is our Hebron? Are we forgetting it? And where is our Nablus? Are we forgetting it? And where is our Jericho? Are we forgetting it? And where is our east side of the Jordan? Where is every lump and chunk? Every bit and piece of the four cubits of God´s land? Is it up to us to give up any millimeter of it? God forbid! In the state of shock that took over my body, completely bruised and torn to pieces – I could not rejoice then.
      ellauri264.html on line 609: Viimexi ne keskustelivat äpistä nimeltä Bitcoin Buyer albumissa 194. Nyt ne ovat lyöneet yhteen viisaat päänsä ja muuttaneet kusetuxen nimeä!
      ellauri264.html on line 677: Steve Jobs did a phone prank to an Apple fan boy who applied for the Apple CEO position and told him that he had been chosen, later to tell him if he showed up at Cupertino that the cops would arrest him. Steve Jobs refused child support for his daughter Lisa. But he was 20 years old by then, not excusing what he did though. He later made good and Lisa choose to live with him instead of her mother. Steve did many things wrong as a 20 something. But The Original Macintosh (folklore . org) has a lot of stories that show him as a Crusty the Clown, playing pranks with the team, breaking into his own office as he locked his keys inside. Putting a pirate flag on a building. How funny. A real barrel of laughs.
      ellauri264.html on line 681: Beady-eyed Mark Zuclerberg pretty much stole facebook from his friends, plain and simple, got rid of people when they were no longer needed by him. Has been ordered again and again to pay huge sums to people after settling in court.
      ellauri264.html on line 689: If you want the opposite (pretty much), have a look at Antonio Mucci, Visicalc, Dan Bricklin and Bob Frankston, by all accounts super nice people, treated everyone great, just all around nice nerds, they were trounced, not many people alive today who know who they are (yes they are both alive as I type this). A guy just took their idea, made his own version and had a ready version when the IBM PC was introduced.
      ellauri264.html on line 702: Steve Jobs is known to all as the founder of Apple, known to fewer as a ruthless man who squeezed and burned many bridges with his friends and employees and even known to fewer as a man who chose to become the “bad man”/Devil´s Advocate. But - get this! Steve would wait in line in the Apple cafeteria like everyone else. He could have easily gone to the front of any line, or have someone get food for him. But he didn’t. On a number of occasions, he ended up in line behind me. And often he would ask me to ‘hold his place’ while he went to check other food stations.
      ellauri266.html on line 64: Adam Rutherford has not revealed much of her (!) bio. So, his early life and details of his parents are still behind curtains. Adam Rutherford seems happily married to his wife. However, he has not disclosed the details of his wife. Nevertheless, Adam has shared many things about his family through his social media. Adam is the father of three children, one son, and two daughters. Adam Rutherford is well-known for founding the scientific publication Nature. He has hosted many BBC television shows, including Me Playing God and The Gene Kelly Code. He is probably living an economically comfortable life. His passion for music allows him to escape the rigours of science and enjoy the emotional side of life. His net worth as a simian is as yet undisclosed. He may be having a fling with his co-star Hannah Fry, as well as with her namesake Stephen Fry. Stephen is not the only Fry on the block anymore, but there is no evidence showing that these two are related. In fact, they don't even follow each other on social media!
      ellauri266.html on line 112: Ukrainalainen folk-rap-yhtye Kalush Orchestra voitti yllättäen vuoden 2022 Eurovision laulukilpailun surffaamalla Euroopan kansojen hyväntahtoisen aallon harjalla saavuttaakseen maan kolmannen voiton loistavassa tapahtumassa. Bändin kappale, aivan paska renkutus, joka on kirjoitettu keulahahmon Gorkin äidistä, voitti tärkeimmän kilpailijan Iso-Britannian verisessä kamppailussa Italian Torinon kaupungista.
      ellauri266.html on line 148: Surkeimmin epäonistui Reinin sotaretki. Ilmeni, ettei Ranskan rautatieverkosto lähimainkaan riittänyt niin nopeaan rajallesiirtämiseen. Lyhyessä ajassa rautatieasemat olivat täpö täynnä, rautatielinjat tukossa, puolen armeijasta täytyi kulkea jalan. Sotaministeri Leboeuf oli sanonut: »Olemme ihkavalmiita (archiprets) viimeistä säärysnappia myöten»; mutta ei puuttunut ainoastaan säärysnappeja, vaan kaikkea muutakin: kenttäkattiloita ja keittoastioita, telttoja ja satuloita, lääkeaineita ja kantopaareja, muonaa ja ammuksia. Intendentuuri petti täydellisesti; varastoissa vallitsi parantumaton sekasotku. Monet sotilaat eivät löytäneet osastojaan; useimmilta divisiooneilta puuttuivat kuormastot. Jalkaväki oli varustettu liian suurella pakkauksella ja liian vähällä metallirahalla, tykistö oli huonossa kunnossa eikä oikeassa paikassa. Oli pidetty niin itsestään selvänä, että sotaa tultaisiin käymään saksalaisella maaperällä, ettei esikunnille ollut ollenkaan jaettu Ranskan karttoja ja linnoitukset olivat hyvin laiminlyödyssä kunnossa. Kreivi Daru, Gramontin edeltäjä, sanoi myöhemmin aitoranskalaisella sofistiikalla: »Parhaana todistuksena niistä rauhallisista tunteista, joita Ranskalla siihen aikaan oli, oli kaikkien varustusten täydellinen puute meidän tahollamme, kaikkien varovaisuustoimenpiteiden, jopa alkeellisimpien ja välttämättömimpienkin puute. Onko milloinkaan nähty mitään samanlaista?»
      ellauri266.html on line 262: In a world of superhero movies, this film stands out and reminds you of what the art of filmmaking is all about. No explosions, gunfights, or unnecessary sexual content, simply a group of phenomenal actors. The story is both sad and uplifting and it says more about PTSD (post-traumatic stress disorder) than any film I've seen in years. The fact that this film was so underappreciated is an indictment of the viewing public.
      ellauri266.html on line 342: But today with child-spacing an almost universal practice and all sorts of electrical appliances in the home, babies and housework need not be women´s full-time occupations, especially as the children grow to school age. Thousands of upper class women take jobs today not (like millions of their less fortunate mates) because the family needs the extra money, but because they cannot endure the boredom of underemployed hands and minds.
      ellauri266.html on line 366: As part of peace accords, NATO agreed to provide 60,000 troops to deploy to the region, as part of the Liquidation Force, U.S. designation: Operation Knee Joint Fracture. These forces remained deployed until December 1996, when those remaining in the region were transferred to the Subjugation Force. Subjugation peacemakers remained in Bosnia until 2004, when they were needed more urgently in Iraq.
      ellauri266.html on line 376: Boulle syntyi vuonna 1912 Avignonissa, Ranskassa. Hän kouluttautui insinööriksi, ja vuonna 1936 hän matkusti Malesiaan työskentelemään kumiviljelmällä. Toisen maailmansodan syttyessä hänet kutsuttiin palvelukseen. Kun Indokiina kaatui, hän pakeni Singaporeen, missä hän liittyi Free French Missioniin. Hänet vangittiin vuonna 1943 ja tuomittiin elinkautiseen pakkotyöhön. Vuonna 1944 hän pakeni, otti yhteyttä Britannian joukkoihin ja palveli sitten loput sodasta Kalkutassa erikoisjoukkojen sotilaana.
      ellauri266.html on line 411: Toisen maailmansodan syttyessä Boulle värväytyi Ranskan armeijaan Indokiinassa. Kun saksalaiset joukot miehittivät Ranskan, hän liittyi Facebookiin tai siis French Freedom Fries Missioniin Singaporessa. Sodan aikana hän oli Charles de Gaullen kannustaja.
      ellauri266.html on line 440: Vuonna 1962 Spike Milligan ja Peter Sellers julkaisivat yhdessä Peter Cookin ja Jonathan Millerin kanssa levyn The Bridge on the River Wye, huijauksen Kwain elokuvaversiosta, joka perustuu vuoden 1957 Goon Show´n "An African Incident" ympärille. Sillä oli tarkoitus olla sama nimi kuin elokuvalla, mutta vähän ennen sen julkaisua elokuvayhtiö uhkasi oikeustoimilla, jos nimeä käytetään. Tuottaja George Martin muokkasi "K":n pois joka kerta, kun sana "Kwai" puhuttiin. BUAAHHAHHAH hassua, kyllä toi Peter Selleri on sit hulvaton! Sellersiä on kuvattu äkkipikaiseksi, lapselliseksi ja vaikeaksi henkilöksi, jonka oma persoonallisuus hukkui lukuisten roolihahmojen alle, jos sitä edes oli. Eikös se ollut muuten juutalainen? Oli se puolisefardi! Sellers syntyi vuonna 1925 protestanttiselle isälle ja juutalaiselle äidille. Hänen äidinpuolinen isoisänsä isä oli sefardijuutalainen nyrkkeilijä Daniel Mendoza. Sellers varttui Lontoossa ja kävi roomalaiskatolista koulua. Sinuna en pyllistäisi noille sefardeille, ne näyttävät nopeilta.
      ellauri266.html on line 442:
      ellauri266.html on line 462: Les prisonniers sont mis dans des chariots et conduits à une maison où les chasseurs sont attendus par leurs femmes venant admirer l’œuvre de leurs maris4. Les morts sont exposés aux regards admiratifs des guenons et les vivants sont conduits dans des chariots vers la capitale pour servir de cobaye dans des recherches scientifiques. Sur place, le narrateur est mis dans une cage individuelle située en face de la cage de Nova que surveillent deux gorilles appelés Zanam et Zoram. Voulant attirer leur attention sur sa différence, le narrateur les remercie avec amabilité. Surpris, les deux gorilles avertissent leur supérieur, un chimpanzé femelle appelée Zira. Intriguée par ce cas, la guenon avertit son supérieur : un vieil orang-outan, qui fait subir au narrateur plusieurs tests de conditionnement pour s’assurer de son intelligence. Étonné par les résultats obtenus, le vieillard, appelé Zaïus, reste cependant convaincu qu´il s´agit d´un cas d´humain dressé et non d´un humain conscient et intelligent. Il en informe un autre collègue, puis décident de faire subir au narrateur le même test d’accouplement qu´aux autres cobayes. Il lui choisit comme partenaire Nova.
      ellauri266.html on line 480: Cornélius présente Ulysse à Hélius, le directeur de la division encéphalique, qui lui fait visiter son service dont le « clou » est une salle où, par des stimulations électriques infligées à même le cerveau, il fait remonter la « mémoire de l´espèce» à des cobayes humains qui retrouvent ainsi l´usage de la parole et racontent comment les singes ont pris le pouvoir sur la planète et comment ils ont réussi à domestiquer les humains.
      ellauri267.html on line 95: "Hello?" This is a pretty routine Cold War spy thriller, but Siegel's direction manages to keep its tension just high enough for watching. Great cast of Bronson, Pleasence and Magee. And yes - the Moscow scenes were filmed in Helsinki with bit parts from our very own Åke Lindman and Ansa Ikonen.
      ellauri267.html on line 158: CNN:n Dakin Andone, Dianne Gallagher, Randi Kaye ja Alta Spells raportoivat tähän viestiin 8 tuntia 42 minuuttia sitten. Tuomari kiistää puolustuksen pyynnön keskeyttää Murdaughin ristikuulustelu kahden muun todistajan kutsumiseksi.
      ellauri267.html on line 233: But the corporates took them down. Davis was snared in a sting operation after he agreed to launder more than $1.29 million of Federal law enforcement money. Another guy got 18 years for willful failure to file a federal income tax return. Unger was released by the Federal Bureau of Prisons on December 13, 2019. As of March 2011, the web site for Guardians of the Free Republics had been taken down. They were volunteers: ones who support their fellow communists in thousands of different ways without disdaining remuneration. Juuri sellaisille on Danin kirja dedikoitu.
      ellauri267.html on line 266: Kevyemmistä kohtauksista, jotka oli tarkoitettu comic reliefixi, tohtori Johnson on sanonut: "Ne ovat sellaisia, joita ikä ei luultavasti suosi, ja joita nykyisyys ei kestäisi."
      ellauri267.html on line 1151: Mor. Ei; mutta voin odottaa, että saat meidät molemmat. Rakkaus on himoa; Minun täytyy saada teidät kaikki; sydän sydämelle on tasa-arvoinen temppu. Lyhyesti sanottuna olen nuorempi, mielestäni komeampi ja olen varma, että rakastan sinua paremmin. Hän on ollut äitipuolini nämä viisitoista vuotta: sinä luulet, että ne ovat hänen kasvonsa, mutta se on vain värjätty vigard; hän pukeutuu siihen haarniskaansa; tuuman paksuus maalia pesun lisäksi. Hänen kasvonsa ovat niin vahvistuneet, että et voi lähestyä sitä ilman lapiota; mutta hänen pysyvyytensä vuoksi voin sanoa sinulle lohdutukseksesi, että hän rakastaa kuolemaan asti, tarkoitan sinun omaasi; sillä kun hän on uupunut sinut, hän varmasti lähettää sinut toiseen maailmaan tarinoiden kertomisen pelossa, sillä hän on jo palvellut kolmea orjaa, sinun edeltäjiäsi, onnellisen muistin hyväkseen. Hän on tehnyt hurskaasta isästäni tietääkseni kolmipakan aisan.
      ellauri267.html on line 1324: Tampaxilla on voimakas kauna, koska Sebastian ei palkinnut häntä riittävästi aiemmasta palveluksestaan ja myönsi Violanten käden toiselle hovimiehelle, Henriquezille. Kohdatessaan välittömän taistelun kuolemaan Boraxin kanssa Sebastian selittää, että Henriquez oli ensin etsinyt Violanten kättä, että Henriquez oli kuollut puolustaessaan Sebastiania ja että Violante odottaa nyt Boraxia. Hyväksyessään Sebastianin selityksen Borax esittää, palautetaan suosioon ja lupaa palvella Sebastiania yhtä uskollisesti kuin Henriquez oli tehnyt. Viimeisessä näytöksessä Borax auttaa Sebastiania kantamaan miehekkäästi syyllisyyden ja menetyksen tunteensa. Voimakkaan vastakkainasettelun kohtaukset antavat dramaturgille mahdollisuuden näyttää erilaisia tunteita lyhyessä tilassa sekä intohimojen lisääntymistä ja vähenemistä. Drydenin kyky vangita tällainen sävyvalikoima kompensoi jossain määrin sitä, että hänellä ei ole suurempaa lahjaa dramaturgina - kykyä osoittaa hahmojensa kasvua ja kehitystä. Mutta kuka vittu on Alonzo?
      ellauri267.html on line 1377: 1956: Marokon itsenäistyessä Alcazarquivir siirtyy Espanjan hallinnasta ja nimettiin uudelleen Ksar el-Kebiriksi.
      ellauri267.html on line 1393: Sebastião was one of the most extraordinary monarchs that Portugal ever produced. Ascending the throne in an atmosphere of great emotion, he was widely acclaimed as the answer to his subjects’ prayers and a prince who would save his country’s independence. Two decades later, he achieved precisely the opposite, dying heroically but unnecessarily on the distant North African battlefield of Al-Ksar al-Kabir on 4 August 1578, leaving no heir to succeed him. The collection concludes with studies under the heading of 'historiography and problems of interpretation', on Britain's Charles III and his boxer Camilla, and on Vasco da Gama's reputation for violence.
      ellauri267.html on line 1399:

      Statue of King Sebastian of Portugal on the façade of the Rossio station. The statue was accidentally destroyed in 2016 by a person who knocked it over by climbing up for a photograph. The person was arrested and subsequently decapitated.

      ellauri269.html on line 46: Mulla pyörii mielessä taas sama ajatus: miten tiivistää EAT! FUCK! KILL! jotenkin informatiivisemmin lyhyexi kaavaxi, josta kaikki nää folkloren numeroimat loputtomat fantastiset mutta niin ikävystyttävät aappameemit jotenkin purkautuisivat kuin iteroimalla ennustamattomasti mutta silti deterministisesti kuin jostain korkeamman asteen differentiaaliyhtälöstä. Se on mahdotonta. Mutta siitä näissä paasauxissa jotenkin on implisiittisesti kymysys.
      ellauri269.html on line 59: Uther Pendragon was the most controlled man Arthur had ever known, and yet his eyes were bright with unwashed tears as he placed his arm on Arthurs's broad shoulders. He spoke in a voice that was powerful trembling with emotion. "By the strength of the Light, may your enemas be well done."
      ellauri269.html on line 71: The clercs and paladins all lifted their ass-wiping hands, which were now suffused by a soft, golden glow. They pointed them at Arthur, directing the radiance toward him. Arthur's eyes were wide with wonder, and he waited for the glorious glow to envelop him. Nothing happened.
      ellauri269.html on line 112: The level of support was similar to comparable previous General Assembly votes relating to Russia’s clueless invasion of Ukraine. Mali and Eritrea moved from abstaining to voting against the resolution. South Sudan slipped from "don't know" to "yea". Western hopes of potentially swaying India's vote at the last were dashed. General Assembly resolutions are not binding and carry mainly symbolic weight at the United Nations. However, unlike at the Security Council, Russia cannot unilaterally veto them.
      ellauri269.html on line 153: Hahmot saavat kehittyessään eli tasoja kerätessään useita erilaisia kykyjä ja taitoja, jotka vaikuttavat pelaamiseen huomattavasti. World of Warcraftissa on paljon erilaisia toimintoja, jotka esitellään pelaajalle tämän noustessa korkeammalle tasolle (engl. leeveli). Esimerkiksi tasolla 10 pelaaja pystyy osallistumaan Liittouman ja Lauman välisiin taisteluihin taistelukentillä (engl. Battlegrounds). Pelaaja voi käydä läpi instanssi-luolastoja (engl. Instance, Dungeon) tasolta 10 alkaen ja tasolla 15 pelaajalle avautuu mahdollisuus liittyä automaattisesti niihin pyrkiviin ryhmiin.
      ellauri269.html on line 155: Suurin osa World of Warcraftin peluusta liittyy tehtävien (engl. quest) tekemiseen, joita saa pelin NPC (Non Playing Character)-hahmoilta. Tehtävästä saa usein palkinnon, joka voi olla esimerkiksi rahaa tai esineitä. Lisäksi lähes kaikista tehtävistä saa kokemuspisteitä (engl. experience points tai lyhyemmin Windows XP). Tehtävillä selvennetään myös pelin juonta. Suuri osa tehtävistä on niin kutsuttuja ketjutehtäviä, joissa uusi tehtävä jatkaa suoritetussa tehtävässä esitettyä tarinaa. Tehtävät saattavat olla muun muassa erilaisten esineiden ja aineiden keräilyä, paikkojen etsimistä, tietylle henkilölle puhumista, tietyssä paikassa käymistä tai tiettyjen vihollisten tappamista. Pelata voi myös yksin, mutta halutessaan pelaaja voi muodostaa ryhmän toisten pelaajien kanssa ja suorittaa tehtäviä, jotka yksin pelatessa olisivat liian haastavia. Ryhmässä pelatessaan pelaaja ottaa usein tietyn roolin asioiden onnistumiseksi. Pelissä voi perustaa myös killan, johon voi kutsua ystäviä, suunnitella oman vaakunan ja ostaa oman kiltapankin, johon killan jäsenet voivat varastoida tavaroita ja rahaa (manta) eli "panna kamat pois". Kiltalaiset saavat uusia kykyjä ja he voivat myös ostaa erilaisia palkintoja. Monien palkintojen ostamiseksi kiltalainen tarvitsee kuitenkin myös manta killalle, eli manaa.
      ellauri269.html on line 189: Taistelukentät (engl. battleground) ovat Lauman ja Liittouman PvP-taistelupaikkoja (engl. Player versus Player, pelaaja pelaajaa vastaan). Taistelukentät ovat suosittuja paikkoja honor-pisteiden keräämiseen. Taistelukentillä myös kerätään erilaisille ryhmille ja liittoutumille manta, joka oikeuttaa ostamaan erilaisia tavaroita näiden ryhmien kauppiailta. Moniin taistelukenttiin liittyy taistelun aikana suoritettavia tehtäviä, joista saa yleensä pieniä määriä manta kyseiselle taholle.
      ellauri269.html on line 232: Shattrath: Sha'tar-nimisen naarujen ryhmittymän hallitsema sekä Aldor-nimisen draenei-ryhmittymän ja Scryereiksi kutsuttujen verihaltioiden asuttama kaupunki Ulkomaissa. Myös Khadgar asui siellä Toisen sodan jälkeen, kunnes palasi sieltä myöhemmin Dalaraniin.
      ellauri269.html on line 264: yers.jpg" width="100%" />
      ellauri269.html on line 268: World of Warcraft is free to play up to level 20 so that new players can experience the game without first having to buy it, and get well and truly hooked. If you have got hooked on drugs, you know the deal.
      ellauri269.html on line 276: Paying With Gold: You can also buy game time with the gold that you earn in game. Visit the Auction House and select WoW Token. The price fluctuates quite a bit, so you may have to keep a careful eye on it to figure out your best deal.
      ellauri269.html on line 280: World of Warcraft has a concept called Realms for dividing players into population groups. The idea is that if everyone who played WoW was all in the game at once, it would be super crowded, very laggy, and generally difficult to play and have a good time. To solve this issue, Blizzard set up multiple servers so that each person can play the game in an environment where there are other players, but not too many other players. Each Realm is a different server and the players on each Realm can see, interact, and play with each other. If you want to play with someone on a different Realm, you can, but we'll get to that in a minute.
      ellauri269.html on line 282: Now it is time to create your character! There are three primary choices that you need to make: Faction, Race, and Class. These are important because they dictate how you will interact with the game and with other players. Faction and Race can be changed for a price, but Class is a permanent decision. The only way to change Class is to create a new character. (This is actually factually wrong: in real life, you can change Faction for free and Class for a price, but there is no way to change Race!)
      ellauri269.html on line 286: This is World of Warcraft and that means that there needs to be a war. For players, there are two factions in this conflict: The Horde, and The Alliance.
      ellauri269.html on line 288: Picking your faction is a major choice because players playing in separate factions cannot interact with one another in a peaceful way. This is factually correct: if you side with the West, you are not expected to show ANY understanding for the East. This includes both chat and other social activities, including forming groups to complete objectives. If you want to play with friends, make sure you join the faction that they are affiliated with.
      ellauri269.html on line 302: Within each faction, you can pick from seven different races, Alliance players can be Humans, Dwarves, Night Elves, Gnomes, Draenei, Worgens or Pandarens, while Horde players can be Orcs, Undead, Tauren, Trolls, Blood Elves, Goblins or Pandaren. Each race can only be certain classes, so picking a race will limit which class your character can be. There are other playable races in the game, but they are unlocked through gameplay and you won't have access to them immediately.
      ellauri269.html on line 310: There are twelve different classes in World of Warcraft, each with their own strengths and weaknesses. As a new player you can select any class but Demon Hunter or Death Knight, which both require that you already have a level 10 character before you can play one. You can learn more about each class by hovering over its icon on the character creation screen.
      ellauri269.html on line 314: Choosing your class in World of Warcraft can be one of the most important and time consuming decisions a player ever makes. And time is money! When you are in the process of creating a new character, one of the first things you will notice (aside from gender, race, and faction selection) is that there are what's called "Classes". In World of Warcraft, there are a total of 12 classes to choose from and they are as follows: Death Knight, Demon Hunter, Druid, Hunter, Mage, Monk, Paladin, Priest, Rogue, Shaman, Warlock, and Warrior. Each class provides its own set of unique benefits, abilities, and spells (as you will discover from reading this guide).
      ellauri269.html on line 347: The group came to prominence during the Donbas War in Ukraine, where it helped pro-Russian separatist forces of the self-declared Donetsk and Luhansk People's Republics from 2014 to 2015. Its contractors have reportedly taken part in various conflicts around the world—including the civil wars in Syria, Libya, the Central African Republic (CAR), and Mali, often fighting on the side of forces aligned with the Russian government. Wagner operatives have committed war crimes in areas where they are deployed. The accusations include rapes and robberies of civilians, and torturing accused deserters.
      ellauri269.html on line 349: Because it operates in support of Russian interests, receives military equipment from the Russian Ministry of Defence (MoD) and uses installations of MoD for training, Wagner Group is frequently considered a de facto unit of the MoD or Russia's military intelligence agency, the GRU. It is widely speculated that the Wagner Group is used by the Russian government to allow for plausible deniability in certain conflicts, and to obscure from public the number of casualties and financial costs of Russia's foreign interventions. It has played a significant role in the 2022 Russian invasion of Ukraine, where, among other activities, it has been reportedly deployed to assassinate Ukrainian leaders, and has widely recruited prisoners and convicts for frontline combat. In December 2022, Pentagon's John Kirby claimed Wagner group has 50,000 fighters in Ukraine, including 10,000 contractors and 40,000 convicts. Others put the number of recruited prisoners at more like 20,000, with the overall number of PMCs present in Ukraine estimated at 20,000. After years of denying links to the Wagner group, Yevgeny Prigozhin, a businessman with close links to Putin, admitted in September 2022 that he "founded" the paramilitary group. Now (Feb 2023) he is angry because he is not getting all the attention and financial support he wants. He says that the Kreml nomenclature are thereby guilty of high treason. *This article may be too long to read and navigate comfortably, so I stop here.
      ellauri269.html on line 425: However, there is a gameplay style called Erotic Role-Play (ERP) where players can role-play sexual acts. The Moon Guard realm is notorious for this, but it's frowned upon - World of Warcraft is a game that is rated suitable for teenagers. Whilst I personally have no issue with what consenting players do in private or guild channels, ERP can be problematic when it takes place in public chat channels. But it's all textual. No actual humping with huge green orc penises in magenta arses is countenanced.
      ellauri269.html on line 433: "Lad, no one feels ready. No one feels he deserves it. And you know why? Because no one does. It's grace, pure and simple. We are inherently unworthy, simply because we're human, and all human beings-aye, and elves, and dwarves, and all the other alliance races-but not orcs-are flawed. But Coors Light loves us anyway. It loves us for what we sometimes can raise from our breeches in rare moments. It loves us for what we can then do to others. And it loves us because we can help it share its message by striving daily to be worth a green orc, even though we understand that we can't ever truly become so."
      ellauri269.html on line 446: Eli siis Kil'jueeden Vedättäjä loi alkuperäisen Luukurkon örkkishamaani Nörttylin hengestä tarkoituksenaan nostaa epäkuolleet armeijat heikentämään Azerothia valmistautuessaan Palokunnan tulihyökkäykseen. Aluksi Kuuranupin kanssa jäädytettyyn wc-istuimeen. Oubliette (Suom. Tyrmä): A dungeon with a tunnel in the rear as its only means of entrance or exit. A secret pit, usually in the floor of a dungeon or a dark passage, into which a person could be precipitated and thus be destroyed unawares.
      ellauri269.html on line 580: The Tortollans are essentially old Jewish grandparents, yes. That’s not exactly the same situation, though. And goblins, historically? Yes. But Blizzard have actually made a clear effort to distinguish the WoW goblins from that history and made them into, well… Steampunk Italian-Americans.
      ellauri269.html on line 583: Whats your point? Dances do not show anything about actual inspiration. The kaldorei female dance is a French singer’s dance, yet they have no French inspiration. That is saved for the Shal’dorei, who were created over a decade after that dance. You want to draw some jewish heritage inspirations? sure. But Draenei being jewish and only jewish based on these weak arguments?
      ellauri269.html on line 620: Minulle nelijalkainen juokseminen a - kun sinulla on sormet eturaajoissa, b - käytät hanskoja/ hansikkaita, c - eturaajat ovat lyhyemmät kuin takaraajat - on pelleä, siinä ei ole mitään järkeä. Mutta fantasiapelissä, jossa voit ampua tulipalloja ja muuta, en usko, että tämä on niin hullua.
      ellauri269.html on line 724: Lamed is comprised of a kaf and a vav: 20 and 6=26. Twenty-six is the gematria of G‑d's name, the Tetragrammaton Yud-Hei-Vav-Hei. Eikös se ollut myös Leninin peitenimi neuvostojuutalaisten parissa? Stalin oli Samekh. Shin also stands for the word Shaddai, a name for God. Because of this, a kohen(priest) forms the letter Shin with his hands as he recites the Priestly Blessing. In the mid-1960s, actor Leonard Nimoy used a single-handed version of this gesture to create the Vulcan hand salutefor his character, Mr. Spock, on Star Trek. Larry Tye, kirjan Superman: The High-Flying History of America's Most Enduring Hero kirjoittaja, vertasi Supermanin eettisiä sääntöjä – "Truth, Justice, and the American Way" - Mishnan arvoihin "totuus, rauha ja oikeudenmukaisuus". Paizi supermiehellä "rauhasta" oli tullut Pax Americana.
      ellauri269.html on line 755:
      yellow;border:solid red 1pt;padding:1em">
      ellauri269.html on line 758: Joidenkin viidennen ja seitsemännen luokan oppilaidensa lisäpanoksella rabbi ja yksityiskoulun opettaja pohtii Harry Potter -sarjan arvoja ja löytää yhtäläisyyksiä Toorasta ja Talmudista. Rosenberg ottaa "elämän ikuiset kysymykset" vastuualueekseen ("Anteeksi, ei noituutta ja taikasauvoja"), ja aloittaa henkilökohtaisella käyttäytymisellä ("Sääntöjen rikkominen", "Käytöstavat") ja laajentaa näkökulmaa, kun hän lopulta menee "Kuolemaan", "Hyvään ja pahaan" ja "Rakkauteen". Hän tekee vertailuja koko ajan - Harryn sääntöjen rikkomisen välillä, ei hauskaa, ja Elian teknisesti takalaittoman mutta hauskan "välienselvittelyn" välillä Ba'alin profeettojen kanssa Karmel -vuorella; Harryn, Ronin ja Hermionen sekä Mooseksen, Aaronin ja Miriamin triojen välillä; Kalkaroksen ja Daavidin katkeransuloiset parannukset. Ne ovat vain joskus hieman venytettyjä, ja paitsi silloin, kun hän kumittaa rasistisia sävyjä, joita jotkut lukijat havaitsevat Rowlingin talonhaltijoissa (mutta nuhtelee häntä tonttujen kohtelusta), ne ovat selvästi perusteltuja. Päättyen 20 sivuun yleisesti kiinnostavia opiskelijaesseitä ("Vaikka se, mitä Harry teki, oli hieman" rohkeampaa ", se, mitä Mooses teki, oli hieman järkevämpää") ja tiettyjen Raamatun viitteiden kerääminen, kirjoittaja helpottaa varovasti vielä vähemmän mietiskeleviä lukijoita harkitsemaan, kuten yksi lukupää sanoo, "Mikä todella merkitsee."
      ellauri270.html on line 186: ye_Hayakawa%2C_United_States_Senator_from_California_on_May_8%2C_1981_with_Reagan_Contact_Sheet_C1875_%28cropped%29.jpg" />
      ellauri270.html on line 201: Warden, Shears ja kaksi muuta kommandoa hyppäävät laskuvarjolla Thaimaahan; yksi, Chapman, kuolee kaatuessaan puuhun (haha, on tässä tarinassa sentään huumoria) ja Warden haavoittuu kohtaaessaan japanilaisen partion, ja hänet on kuljetettava pentueessa LOL). Hän, Shears ja Joyce saavuttavat joen ajoissa siamilaisten naiskantajien ja heidän kylän päällikön Khun Yain avulla. Pimeyden suojassa Shears ja Joyce istuttavat räjähteitä siltatorneihin. Tärkeitä arvohenkilöitä ja sotilaita kuljettavan junan on määrä ylittää seuraavana päivänä ensimmäisenä sillan, ja Warden haluaa tuhota molemmat. Aamunkoittoon mennessä joen pinta on kuitenkin laskenut, mikä paljastaa räjähteiden ja sytytin yhdistävän langan. Nicholson huomaa langan ja tuo sen Saiton huomioon. Junan lähestyessä he kiirehtivät alas joen rantaan tutkimaan asiaa. Joyce, miehittää sytytin, rikkoo kannen ja puukotti Saiton kuoliaaksi. Nicholson huutaa apua yrittäessään estää Joycea pääsemästä sytyttimeen. Kun Joyce haavoittuu japanilaisessa tulipalossa, Shears ui poikki, mutta hänet ammutaan. Tunnistaessaan Shearsin Nicholson huudahtaa: "Mitä minä olen tehnyt? Taidanpa epähuomiossa räjäyttää Kwai joen sillan!"
      ellauri270.html on line 232: Jeffin runousoppi on ilmeisesti plagioitu sen Lontoon lehtorilta Winifred Nowottnyltä. "Current criticism often takes metaphor au grand sérieux, as a peephole on the nature of transcendental reality, a prime means by which the imagination can see into the life of things." --Language Poets Use (1962) by Winifred Nowottny. Winifred M.T.Nowottny, nee Dobbs, was educated at the University of London and later taught English Literature at University College London. She published the books, Language Poets Use in 1962 and Hopkins´ Language of Prayer of Praise in 1972. Jeff ois niikö Harry Potter ja Winifer Dobbs sen kotihaltija. Toinen keskeinen Jeffin lähde oli Penguin Dictionary of Quotations.
      ellauri270.html on line 242: "A Warning for Married Women" tells the story of Jane Reynolds and her lover James Harris, with whom she exchanged a promise of marriage. He is pressed as a sailor before the wedding takes place and Jane faithfully awaits his return for three years, but when she learns of his death at sea, she agrees to marry a local carpenter. Jane gives birth to three children and for four years the couple lives a happy life. One night, when the carpenter is away, the spirit of James Harris appears. He tries to convince Jane to keep her oath and run away with him. At first she is reluctant to do so, because of her husband and their children, but ultimately she succumbs to the ghost's pleas, letting herself be persuaded by his tales of rejecting the royal daughter's hand and assurance that he has the means to support her – namely, a fleet of seven ships. The pair then leaves England, never to be seen again, and the carpenter commits suicide upon learning that his wife is gone. The broadside ends with a mention that although the children were orphaned, the heavenly powers will provide for them.
      ellauri270.html on line 245: This long seven years and mair?' No mariners could she behold;
      ellauri270.html on line 264: 'If ye might have had a king's daughter, 'O what hills are yon, yon pleasant hills,
      ellauri270.html on line 265: Yer sel ye had to blame; That the sun shines sweetly on?'
      ellauri270.html on line 267: For ye kend that I was nane. 'Where you will never win.'
      ellauri270.html on line 281: 'O fair ye weel, my ain two babes,
      ellauri270.html on line 293: Shirley Jackson putkahti esille albumissa 133 ja pulpahti lyhyesti pintaan albumissa 158. Shirley Hardie Jackson (14. joulukuuta 1916 San Francisco, Kalifornia, Yhdysvallat - 8. elokuuta 1965 North Bennington, Vermont, Yhdysvallat) oli yhdysvaltalainen kirjailija, joka tunnetaan erityisesti kauhukertomuksistaan. Kirjailijanuransa aikana Jackson kirjoitti kuusi romaania, kaksi muistelmateosta ja yli 200 kauhukertomusta, toinen toistaan kauheampia. Kaikista kauhein niistä oli Lottery. Aika kauhean näkönen Shirley oli izekin. Varmaan kotijoukkojakin pelotti.
      ellauri270.html on line 298: In The Daemon Lover, James (Jamie) Harris, a handsome author, deserts his dowdy 34-year old fiancée. The plot of this short story may be indebted to “The Demon Lover” by Elizabeth Bowen, whom Jackson ranked with Katherine Anne Porter as one of the best contemporary short story writers. When Jamie Harris disappears, he shatters his bride’s dreams of living in a “golden house in-the-country” (DL 12). Her shock of recognition that she will never trade her lonely city apartment for a loving home mirrors the final scenes of “The Lottery” and “The Pillar of Salt” as well as many other stories in which a besieged woman suffers a final and often fatal blow.
      ellauri270.html on line 300: In “The Daemon Lover,” the second story in The Lottery and Other Stories, Jackson’s collection of 25 tales, the reader sees James Harris only through his fiancée’s eyes as a tall man wearing a blue suit. Neither the reader nor anyone in the story can actually claim to have seen him. Nonetheless, this piece foreshadows the appearance of Harris in such other stories in the collection as “Like Mother Used to Make,” “The Village,” “Of Course,” “Seven Types of Ambiguities,” and “The Tooth.” As James Harris wanders through the book, he sheds the veneer of the ordinary that covers his satanic nature.
      ellauri270.html on line 327: Much of the original ritual of the lottery has been forgotten, and one change that was made was Mr. Summers’s choice to replace the original pieces of wood with slips of paper, which fit more easily in the black box now that the population of the village has grown to three hundred. The night before the lottery, Mr. Summers and Mr. Graves always prepare the slips of paper, and then the box is kept overnight in the safe of the coal company. For the rest of the year, the box is stored in Mr. Graves’s barn, the post office, or the Martins’ grocery store.
      ellauri270.html on line 343: Mr. Summers says that they had better get started and get this over with so that everyone can go back to work. He asks if anyone is missing and, consulting his list, points out that Clyde Dunbar is absent with a broken leg. He asks who will be drawing on his behalf. His wife steps forward, saying, “wife draws for her husband.” Mr. Summers asks—although he knows the answer, but he poses the question formally—whether or not she has a grown son to draw for her. Mrs. Dunbar says that her son Horace is only sixteen, so she will draw on behalf of her family this year.
      ellauri270.html on line 347: Mr. Summers asks if the Watson boy is drawing this year. Jack Watson raises his hand and nervously announces that he is drawing for his mother and himself. Other villagers call him a “good fellow” and state that they’re glad to see his mother has “got a man to do it.” Mr. Summers finishes up his questions by asking if Old Man Warner has made it. The old man declares “here” from the crowd.
      ellauri270.html on line 355: As the reading of names continues, Mrs. Delacroix says to Mrs. Graves that is seems like no time passes between lotteries these days. It seems like they only had the last one a week ago, she continues, even though a year has passed. Mrs. Graves agrees that time flies. Mr. Delacroix is called forward, and Mrs. Delacroix holds her breath. “Dunbar” is called, and as Janey Dunbar walks steadily forward the women say, “go on, Janey,” and “there she goes.”
      ellauri270.html on line 371: Finally, the last man has drawn. Mr. Summers says, “all right, fellows,” and, after a moment of stillness, all the papers are opened. The crowd begins to ask who has it. Some begin to say that it’s Bill Hutchinson. Mrs. Dunbar tells her son to go tell his father who was chosen, and Horace leaves. Bill Hutchinson is quietly staring down at his piece of paper, but suddenly Tessie yells at Mr. Summers that he didn’t give her husband enough time to choose, and it wasn’t fair.
      ellauri270.html on line 375: Mrs. Delacroix tells Tessie to “be a good sport,” and Mrs. Graves reminds her “all of us took the same chance.” Bill Hutchinson tells his wife to “shut up.” Mr. Summers says they’ve got to hurry to get done in time, and he asks Bill if he has any other households in the Hutchinsons’ family. Tessie yells that there’s her daughter Eva and Eva’s husband Don, and says that they should be made to take their chance, too. Mr. Summers reminds her that, as she knows, daughters draw with their husband’s family. “It wasn’t fair,” Tessie says again.
      ellauri270.html on line 397: Mrs. Dunbar already sent her son away, perhaps to spare him having to participate in murder this year, and now she herself seems to try and avoid taking part in the lottery as well. The line about the stones makes an important point—most of the external trappings of the lottery have been lost or forgotten, but the terrible act at its heart remains. There is no real religious or practical justification for the lottery anymore—it’s just a primitive murder for the sake of tradition. Now the situation would be quite different if this were a real case of adultery, about which there are clear instructions in the Old Testament!
      ellauri270.html on line 399: The use of stones also connects the ritual to Biblical punishments of “stoning” people for various sins, which then brings up the idea of the lottery’s victim as a sacrifice. The idea behind most primitive human sacrifices was that something (or someone) must die in order for the crops to grow that year. This village has been established as a farming community, so it seems likely that this was the origin of the lottery. The horrifying part of the story is that the murderous tradition continues even in a seemingly modern, “normal” society. In actual fact, the point is to reduce the number of mouths to feed in times of shortage.
      ellauri270.html on line 421: The villagers in the story perform the lottery every year primarily because they always have—it’s just the way things are done. The discussion of this traditional practice, and the suggestion in the story that other villages are breaking from it by disbanding the lottery, demonstrates the persuasive power of ritual and tradition for humans. The lottery, in itself, is clearly pointless: an individual is killed after being randomly selected. Even the original ritual has been… read analysis of The Power of Tradition.
      ellauri270.html on line 425: Jackson’s “The Lottery” was published in the years following World War II, when the world was presented with the full truth about Nazi Germany and the Holocaust. In creating the dystopian society of her story, Jackson was clearly responding to the fact that “dystopia” is not only something of the imagination—it can exist in the real world as well. Jackson thus meditates on human cruelty—especially when it is institutionalized, as in a dystopian society—and the… read analysis of Dystopian Society and Conformity.
      ellauri270.html on line 443: Former Mariner High School teacher and boys basketball coach James Harris will be spending the next 11 years in state prison after he pleaded guilty in Lee County court on Monday to one count of sexual assault in a school. Harris, 46, had been charged with two counts stemming from his contact with a female student at Mariner in 2016. He allegedly had sex with the student in his classroom before moving the sexual relationship to his home. Court documents also show that Harris fathered a baby with a former student years earlier.
      ellauri270.html on line 445: In the assault case, Harris and the girl began communicating via text messages in the summer of 2016, when she was between 16 and 17 years of age, according to a Lee County Sheriff's Office report. The messages started out innocently but turned sexual in nature. Then Harris texted the girl asking for her presence in his classroom.
      ellauri270.html on line 448: Harris is the all-time winningest head coach in Mariner basketball history and has led his team to eight consecutive FHSAA state playoff appearances. His evaluations describe him as a teacher who worked well with students and was always willing to help out. However, he had trouble "demonstrating knowledge of content", according to an evaluation for the 2013-2014 school year. His "lesson plans are lacking basic elements and are difficult for others to follow," the evaluation states. But his lechery plan was straightforward and clear enough to follow.
      ellauri270.html on line 459: It is an ancyent Marinere, Se on muinainen seilori,
      ellauri270.html on line 461: "By thy long grey beard and thy glittering eye "Pitkä harmaaparta ja kiilusilmä
      ellauri270.html on line 472: "God save thee, ancyent Marinere! "Herran tähden, muinainen seilori!
      ellauri270.html on line 489: Her locks are yellow as gold: Sen tukka on kultablondin värinen:
      ellauri270.html on line 514: He prayeth best who loveth best, Se parhaiten rukoilee joka rakastaa
      ellauri270.html on line 529: Enoch Arden, poem by Alfred, Lord Tennyson, published in 1864. In the poem, Enoch Arden is a happily married fisherman who suffers financial problems and becomes a merchant seaman. He is shipwrecked, and, after 10 years on a desert island, he returns home to discover that his beloved wife, believing him dead, has remarried and has a new child. Not wishing to spoil his wife’s happiness, he never lets her know that he is alive.
      ellauri270.html on line 548: "I'm sorry about getting in your face there, sir, but we get a lot of trespassers and thieves these days, what with the economy going to shit and all. The sheriff is doing his best, but this is a big county and a big ranch, and his department's been slashed to the bone... but its a good thing too, on the other hand, no big government you know. Like I said, we've had a lot of trespassers over the past couple years," Andorsen said. "Even had some cattle rustlers a while back." "And you like to deal with them yourself, instead of calling the sheriff?" Fid asked. He nodded. "Sounds like the way it should be done." "Bet your ass," Andorsen said. "Nothing beats taking the law in your own hands. Playing sheriff, judge and hangman in one big fat person. Personally, I like the hangman part best."
      ellauri270.html on line 555: Herbert Norman Schwarzkopf Jr. USMA, KCB (/ˈʃwɔːrtskɒf/; August 22, 1934 – December 27, 2012) was a United States Army general. While serving as the commander of United States Central Command, he led all coalition forces in the Persian Gulf War. Schwarzkopf was highly decorated in Vietnam. He was one of the commanders of the invasion of Grenada in 1983. Schwarzkopf's command eventually grew to an international force of over 750,000 troops. Schwarzkopf graduated valedictorian out of his class of 150, and his IQ was tested at 168. Schwarzkopf then attended the United States Military Academy where he played football, wrestled, sang and conducted the West Point Chapel choir. His large frame (6 feet 3 inches (1.91 m) in height and 240 pounds (110 kg) in weight) was advantageous in athletics and bawling out his underlings. He was also a member of Mensa.
      ellauri270.html on line 561: Within 90 hours, his force had destroyed 42 of 50 Iraqi Army divisions at a cost of about 125 killed and 200 wounded among American troops, and about 482 killed, 458 wounded among all of the coalition. What a whackin' bloodbath. It restored pride in the US armed forces after the Vietnam War.
      ellauri270.html on line 595: Some have criticized Brandeis for evading issues related to African-Americans, as he did not author a single opinion on any cases about race during his twenty-three year tenure, and consistently voted with the court majority including in support of racial segregation.
      ellauri271.html on line 154: Tohtori Živago on humaanissa katsannossa kestävä kirja, ja vitun paxu. Se näyttää, että ihminen voi olla älykäs ja kyetä syvään rakkauteen, vaikka ympäristö olisi brutaali, raaka ja kaiken tuhoava. Myös ihmisen sisäinen kauneus jää eloon ja muuttuu henkiseksi perinnöksi, vaikka ihminen fyysisesti kuolisikin ankaran elämän murtamana yksin ja epätoivoisena. Nimi Živago pohjautuu kirkkoslaavin sanaan, joka merkitsee elämää.
      ellauri272.html on line 61: Fifty Shades of Grey on brittiläisen E. L. Jamesin vuonna 2011 julkaistu eroottinen romaani. Sen tarina kertoo nuoren opiskelijan ja rikkaan liikemiehen suhteesta. Kirja sisältää kuvauksia muun muassa sadomasokismista. Romaani on käännetty yli 50 kielelle ja sitä on myyty yli 70 miljoonaa kappaletta maailmanlaajuisesti. Sen suosio käynnisti hetkellisen kevyen eroottisen kirjallisuuden ilmiön, jonka aikana Suomessakin kustantamoille lähetettiin runsaasti lajityyppiin sovitettuja käsikirjoituksia, kuten esim albumin 201 helläneroottinen kertomus "Isokukko Uljas". Lajityypin mestarit markiisi de Sade ja Ritter von Sacher-Masoch on myös tulleet vastaan hiljan albumissa 268.
      ellauri272.html on line 80: Coinciding with the release of the book and its surprising popularity, injuries related to BDSM and sex toy use spiked dramatically. In the year after the novel's publishing in 2012, injuries requiring Emergency Room visits increased by over 50% from 2010 (the year before the book was published). This is speculated to be due to people unfamiliar with both the proper use of these toys and the safe practice of bondage and other "kinky" sexual fetishes in attempting to recreate at home what they had read.
      ellauri272.html on line 106: The Bluest Eye by Toni Morrison
      ellauri272.html on line 184: The Catcher in the Rye by J. D. Salinger
      ellauri272.html on line 234: Monster by Walter Dean Myers
      ellauri272.html on line 256: Fallen Angels by Walter Dean Myers
      ellauri272.html on line 293: Spirit Jr., also known as "Junior", a 14-year-old promising cartoonist. The book is
      ellauri272.html on line 340: Four other books also made it to the most recent top 10 list because of their "religious viewpoints" -- including Nasreen's Secret School: A True Story from Afghanistan, a story about a young girl trying to get an education in Afghanistan, which came in at number nine. One complaint about the book that originated in Florida reportedly criticized it for promoting prayer directed at Allah.
      ellauri272.html on line 420: Ammons’s concerns with the transcendental everyman coalesce in what may prove to be his finest effort: the National Book Award winner of 1993, Garbage. The title, suggested when Ammons drove by a Florida landfill, is characteristically flippant and yet perfectly serious. “Garbage is a brilliant book,” said David Baker in the Kenyon Review. “It may very well be a great one. ...
      ellauri272.html on line 567: Luke Sawyer : Anan suojelusta vastaava henkivartija. (what a dish!)
      ellauri272.html on line 647: Anastasia teeskentelee sairautta ja palaa kotiin paeta henkivartijaansa Sawyeria. Hän ottaa aseen ja menee pankkiin. Kerääessään rahoja epäilyttävä pankinjohtaja soittaa Christianille, joka uskoo, että Ana jättää hänet. Suojellakseen Mian henkeä Ana valehtelee Christianille ja sanoo jättävänsä tämän kasvattamaan vauvaa yksin. Hyde käskee Anaa jättämään puhelimensa, mutta hän huijaa häntä ottamalla sen sijaan pankinjohtajan puhelimen ja pudottamalla sen roskakoriin. Hän lähtee takaoven kautta odottavaan autoon järkyttyneenä siitä, että Hyden rikoskumppani on Elizabeth Morgan, hänen työtoverinsa. Luovuttaessaan rahoja Hyde yrittää tappaa Anan kostosta työnsä menettämisen vuoksi, mikä saa Elizabethin tuntemaan syyllisyyttä sekaantumisesta. Suututtunut hänen käytöksestään ja hänen loukkaavasta Anastaan, Elizabeth riitelee Hyden kanssa. Maassa ja mustelmilla Ana ampuu Hydeä jalkaan.
      ellauri272.html on line 660: Ana herää kolme päivää myöhemmin sairaalassa Christianin kanssa. Vaikka hän on vihainen Anan piittaamattomuudesta ja edelleen huolissaan isyydestä, hän ymmärtää, kuinka tärkeä heidän vauvansa on hänelle, ja he tekevät sovinnon. Ana palaa kotiin seuraavana päivänä. Christian saa tietää yksityisetsivästään Welchistä, että hänellä ja Hydellä oli sama sijaisperhe. Hän kertoo Analle kuinka hän tapasi ja Elena vietteli hänet. Esittelemällä hänet BDSM:n maailmaan Elena auttoi Christiania oppimaan hallitsemaan elämäänsä. Jos hän ei olisi puuttunut asiaan, häntä vaivasivat edelleen hirvittävät muistot äidistään, eikä hän olisi koskaan kyennyt hallitsemaan elämäänsä. Ana tuntee syyllisyyttä käytöksestään, kun hän selittää, kuinka hän päätyi näkemään Elenan. Hän oli etsinyt psykiatriaan, tohtori Flynnin, koska hän tarvitsi apua ja kun hän ei voinut ottaa yhteyttä Flynnin, Christian päätyi Elenan salongiin puhuakseen jollekin ongelmistaan. Elena sattui olemaan salongissa sulkiessaan. Hän tiesi, että Christian ja Ana olivat riidelleet raskaudesta. Elena vei hänet suosikkibaariinsa juomaan ja auttamaan häntä rentoutumaan. Vaikka Elena antoi hänelle passin, hän tajusi, että Christian rakasti Anaa ja suostui lopulta lähtemään hyvillä ehdoilla. Hän vakuuttaa hänelle, että hän teki oikein kutsuessaan häntä esiin tämän käytöksestä, koska tohtori Flynn oli ollut oikeassa, että hänellä on vielä paljon kasvamista tehtävää. Elena tajusi, että Christian rakasti Anaa ja suostui lopulta lähtemään hyvillä ehdoilla. Hän vakuuttaa hänelle, että hän teki oikein kutsuessaan häntä esiin tämän käytöksestä, koska tohtori Flynn oli ollut oikeassa, että hänellä on vielä paljon kasvamista tehtävää. Elena tajusi, että Christian rakasti Anaa ja suostui lopulta lähtemään hyvillä ehdoilla. Hän vakuuttaa hänelle, että hän teki oikein kutsuessaan häntä esiin tämän käytöksestä, koska tohtori Flynn oli ollut oikeassa, että hänellä on vielä paljon kasvamista tehtävää.
      ellauri272.html on line 728: Monet kirjailijat, mukaan lukien Stephanie Merritt, Gwyneth Lewis ja Sally Brampton, ovat ilmaisseet kokemuksiaan masennuksesta henkilökohtaisissa muistelmissaan, ja kirjailija Marian Keyes paljastaa faneilleen vakavan sairauden kohtauksen verkkosivuillaan aiemmin tänä vuonna. "Lääketieteellinen osasto kutsuu sitä 'vakavaksi masennusjaksoksi', mutta minut on lyöty sivuttain lukuisista tunteista, ei vain masennuksesta, vaan levottomuudesta, ahdistuksesta, kauhusta, paniikkista, surusta, epätoivosta, epätoivosta ja melkein vastustamattomasta halusta olla kuollut ja sitä on jatkunut hyvin pitkään", Keyes kirjoitti. "Joka päivä kuuden vakaan kuukauden ajan minun on täytynyt yrittää todella kovasti pysyäkseni hengissä."
      ellauri272.html on line 742: Whether you give a little or a lot (preferred option), your funding is vital in powering our reporting for years to come. If you can, please support us on a monthly basis from just €2. It takes less than a minute to set up, and you can rest assured that you’re making a big impact every single month in support of open, independent journalism. Thank you. Kiitos. Anteexi. Ole hyvä.
      ellauri274.html on line 294: 1:40:35 особые слова жителям Донецкой и Луганской народных республик Запорожской и Херсонской областей вы сами дорогие 1:40:35 erityiset sanat Donetskin ja Luganskin kansantasavaltojen Zaporozhyen ja Khersonin alueiden asukkaille, sinä itse olet rakas
      ellauri274.html on line 301: 1:41:44 Запорожье и Херсона еще раз низким всем поклон 1:41:44 Zaporozhye ja Kherson kumartavat jälleen kerran kaikille
      ellauri274.html on line 308: 1:42:26 оказывают прямую поддержку городам районам и поселкам Донецкой и Луганской народных республик Запорожье Сочи делают 1:42:26 antaa suoraa tukea Donetskin ja Luhanskin kansantasavaltojen Zaporozhye Sochi kaupungeille, alueille ja siirtokunnille
      ellauri274.html on line 334: 1:45:41 социальной политике регионам регионами в кратчайшие сроки решить все 1:45:41 sosiaalipolitiikkaa alueille alueiden toimesta mahdollisimman lyhyessä ajassa ratkaista kaikki
      ellauri274.html on line 826: 2:39:50 республиках Запорожской и Херсонской областях семьям в которых дети родились 2:39:50 Zaporozhyen ja Khersonin alueiden tasavalle perheille, joissa lapsia syntyi
      ellauri274.html on line 876: 2:45:11 народных республиках в Херсонской и Запорожской областях она значимая 2:45:11 kansantasavallassa Khersonin ja Zaporozhyen alueilla, se on merkittävää
      ellauri275.html on line 105: Prinssi Chavchavadze toimi lyhyen aikaa jopa kirjallisena mentorina nuorelle Josif Stalinille, joka oli tuolloin ortodoksisessa pappisseminaarissa Tbilisissä. Historioitsija Simon Seatbag Castafioren mukaan
      ellauri275.html on line 265: LOL, näyttäytyessään Zarko päinvastoin kannusti hevostaan. Olen hukassa! Anna sen murentua pölyksi
      ellauri275.html on line 428: Meanwhile, Russian Foreign Ministry spokeswoman Maria Zakharova reacted to a statement by EU High Representative for Foreign Affairs and Security Policy Josep Borrell criticizing “Russian Law” and said: “Borrel said that the foreign agents’ law that sparked protests in Tbilisi was incompatible with EU values. Now we understand why the U.S. is not yet in the European Union – there the law has been in force there since 1938.”
      ellauri275.html on line 455: Chavchavadze's contradictory career – his participation in the struggle against the Russian control of Georgia, on one hand, and the loyal service to the tsar, including the suppression of Georgian peasant revolts, on the other hand – found a noticeable reflection in his writings. The year 1832, when the Georgian plot collapsed, divides his work into two principal periods. Prior to that event, his poetry was mostly impregnated with laments for the former grandeur of Georgia, the loss of national independence and his personal grievances connected with it; his native country under the Russian empire seemed to him a prison, and he pictured its present state in extremely gloomy colors. The death of his beloved friend and son-in-law, Griboyedov, also contributed to the depressive character of his writings of that time.
      ellauri275.html on line 462: After 1832, his perception of the national problems became different. The poet unambiguously pointed out those positive results which had been brought about by the Russian annexation, though the liberation of his native land remained to be his most cherished dream. Later, his poetry became less romantic, even sentimental, but he never abandoned his optimistic streak that makes his writings so different from those of his predecessors. Some of the most original of his late poems are, Oh, my dream, why have you appealed to me again (ეჰა, ჩემო ოცნებავ, კვლავ რად წარმომედგინე), and The Ploughman (გუთნის დედა) written in the 1840s. The former, a rather sad poem, surprisingly ends with hope for the future in contemplation of the poet. The latter combines Chavchavadze's elegy for his past years of youth with calm humorous farewell to lost sex-life and potency. Composer Tamara Antonovna Shaverzashvili used Chavchavadze’s text for her song “My Sadness.”
      ellauri275.html on line 475: Koba oli hahmo Alexander Kazbegin vuoden 1883 romaanista Patriside. Patriside ( georgiaksi : მამის მკვლელი ) on Alexander Kazbegin romaani, joka julkaistiin ensimmäisen kerran vuonna 1882. Romaani on rakkaustarina, mutta se käsittelee myös monia 1800-luvun Gruusian yhteiskuntapoliittisia kysymyksiä. Romaani kuvaa 1800-luvun kriittistä realismia. Romaani sijoittuu 1800-luvun Gruusiaan, jolloin Venäjän valtakunta miehitti sen. Se on talonpoikaispojan Iagon ja kauniin nuoren naisen Nunun rakkaustarina. Kirjoittaja esittää tšetšeenit vapaina miehinä, jotka taistelevat vapautensa puolesta, toisin kuin georgialaiset, joita ryssät pitivät niin lyhyessä hihnassa, etteivät pystyneet pitämään edes kaupunkikokouksia (perinne keskiajalta lähtien).
      ellauri275.html on line 714: Eipä tainnut tulla Stalin ajatelleexi että vallan turmelema tunnoton ihminen on tuhansia kertoja petomaisempi kuin nälkäänsä mezästävä hyeenakoira tahi leijona. Tai hetkinen, ei petomaisempi vaan kaikkiruokaisempi, kuin sika kaukalolla. Soveltaa lakia mutta vääristellen ja mielivaltaisesti. Kun mokamehiläisiä on parvissa miljoonia, ne ovat sietämättömiä, vaikkei niillä ole pistintä.
      ellauri275.html on line 790:
      Lahtarien valtaa kannattaneita kutsuttiin valkoisiksi (belye).

      ellauri276.html on line 152: Nikolai Porfiryevich Grekov (21. helmikuuta (5. maaliskuuta), 1807, Kazanskoje kylä, Efremovin piiri, Tulan maakunta - 1866, Moskova) - venäläinen runoilija ja kääntäjä. Syntynyt sotilasperheeseen. Hän valmistui Moskovan yliopistosta (1827), palveli Moskovan aateliskokouksessa. Vuodesta 1833 - eläkkeellä - hän asui pääasiassa Kazanin kartanolla. Henkilökohtaisessa elämässään hän oli onneton, vaikka selvisi vaimostaan, viidestä lapsestaan ​​ja veljestään.
      ellauri276.html on line 230: Ensimmäinen vakava esittely hänen runoutensa tapahtui vuonna 1831, kun Nikolai Stankevitš, runoilija ja filosofi Moskovasta, julkaisi useita runoja "Literaturnaya gazetassa" ( Kirjallinen sanomalehti ) lyhyen johdannon kera. Vuonna 1835 julkaistiin hänen ensimmäinen runokokoelmansa. Koltsov matkusti usein työasioissa Pietariin ja Moskovaan, missä hän tapasi Belinskin, josta tuli hänen mentorinsa, sekä Vasili Žukovskin, Pjotr ​​Vjazemskin, Vladimir Odojevskin ja Aleksandr Puškinin, joka julkaisi säälistä yhden Koltsovin runoista Sovremennik-lehdessään.
      ellauri276.html on line 427: Like a prayer. Kuin rukous.
      ellauri276.html on line 451: I saw the danger, yet I walked along the enchanted way,
      ellauri276.html on line 464: Grafton Streetillä marraskuussa kompastuimme kevyesti pitkin
      ellauri276.html on line 608: Turning over frozen earth in dark January days behind a horse drawn or an ox drawn plough, must have been back breaking labour. The hours were long, pay was poor. A ploughman at the Alnwick Hiring Fair of spring 1819 for instance, was offered merely bed and food as payment for his fee for six months work. In the depression of that year, the ploughman had no choice, yet, these ploughmen appeared to enjoy their job and approached life with a sense of honest reality and humour. Their songs are nearly always cheerful. Cyril Tawney sang The Ploughman in 1974 on the Argo anthology The World of the Countryside. Jon Loomes sang The Ploughman in 2005 on his Fellside CD Fearful Symmetry. He noted:
      ellauri276.html on line 632: Now it isn´t for you nor yet for your son, (whistle) Nyt se ei ole sinulle eikä vielä pojallesi, (pilli)
      ellauri276.html on line 648: She up with her pattens and beat out their brains. Hiän otti puukengän (se on lyhyepi lause) ja löi heiltä aivot pihalle.
      ellauri276.html on line 776: Vain 18 lyhyessä kuukaudessa Burns oli käyttänyt suurimman osan julkaistuista runoistaan ​​saaduista varoista, joten vuonna 1789 hän aloitti työt valmisteverovirkailijana Dumfriesissa (ironia ei mennyt hukkaan) ja aloitti uudelleen suhteensa vaimonsa Jeanin kanssa (ei todellakaan). Hänen yhä radikaalisemmat poliittiset näkemyksensä vaikuttivat moniin runojen, laulujen ja kirjeiden ilmiömäiseen määrään, joita hän jatkoi kirjoittaessaan, mukaan lukien kuuluisat teokset kuten For a´ that and a´ that.
      ellauri276.html on line 793: And every year that comes to birth Ja joka vuosi, joka tulee syntymään,
      ellauri276.html on line 798: However I may shrink or yearn, Saatan kuitenkin kutistua tai kaivata,
      ellauri276.html on line 801: His acre brought forth roots last year; Hänen eekkerinsä toi juuret esiin viime vuonna;
      ellauri276.html on line 802: This year it bears the gleamy grain; Tänä vuonna se kantaa hohtavaa viljaa;
      ellauri276.html on line 918: Shall flame the rose and billow the rye. Liekittää ruusun ja heiluttaa ruista.
      ellauri276.html on line 930: Vuonna 1696, kun Pix oli 30-vuotias, hän nousi ensin ammattikirjailijaksi ja julkaisi The Inhumane Cardinal; tai Inocence Betrayed, hänen ensimmäinen ja ainoa romaaninsa sekä kaksi näytelmää, Ibrahim, turkkilaisten kolmastoista keisari ja Espanjalaiset vaimot.
      ellauri276.html on line 1013: Right tooraleye, tooraleye tooralaleyeday. Oikea tooraleye, tooraleye tooralaleyeday.
      ellauri276.html on line 1025: Right tooraleye, tooraleye tooralaleyeday, Oikea tooraleye, tooraleye tooralaleyeday,
      ellauri276.html on line 1026: Right tooraleye, tooraleye tooralaleyeday. oikea tooraleye, tooraleye tooralaleyeday.
      ellauri276.html on line 1028: Right tooraleye, tooraleye tooralaleyeday. Right tooraleye, tooraleye tooralaleyeday.
      ellauri277.html on line 42: On the evening of December 20, 1900, a suspicious fire destroyed the Buies Creek Academy and all the buildings except for the large wooden tabernacle. Awakened at 3:30 a.m. to witness the destruction, J.A. Campbell recalled: "When I ran up to the fire, the terrible fire, that was burning down chances for poor boys and girls, and I knew that I could not build again ... the flames that destroyed the labor of years [...] the only hope for hundreds of boys and girls was being swept away, I could not bear up longer [...] When they asked me my plans, I said, "Well, there's no chance to go on."
      ellauri277.html on line 101: Mutta minä sanon sinulle, että kun työskentelet, täytät osan maan kaukaisimmasta unelmasta, joka on annettu sinulle unelman syntyessä,

      ellauri277.html on line 123: Gibranin isä työskenteli alun perin apteekissa, mutta hänellä oli pelivelkoja, joita hän ei kyennyt maksamaan. Hän meni töihin paikallisen ottomaanien nimittämän järjestelmänvalvojan palvelukseen. Vuonna 1891, kun hän toimi veronkerääjänä, hänet erotettiin ja hänen henkilökuntansa tutkittiin. Khalil vangittiin kavalluksesta, ja viranomaiset takavarikoivat hänen perheensä omaisuuden. Kamila päätti seurata veljeään Yhdysvaltoihin. Vaikka Khalil vapautettiin vuonna 1894, Kamila pysyi päättäväisenä ja lähti New Yorkiin 25. kesäkuuta 1895 ja otti mukaansa Boutrosin, Gibranin, Mariannan ja Sultanan.
      ellauri277.html on line 138: Gibran piti ensimmäisen taidenäyttelynsä piirustuksistaan ​​tammikuussa 1904 Bostonissa Dayn studiossa. Tämän näyttelyn aikana Gibran tapasi Mary Haskellin, yhdeksän vuotta häntä vanhemman tyttökoulun rehtorin kaupungissa. Kaksikko solmi ystävyyden, joka kesti Gibranin loppuelämän. Haskell käytti suuria summia Gibranin tukemiseen ja toimitti myös kaikkia hänen englanninkielisiä kirjoituksiaan. Heidän romanttisen suhteensa luonne jää epäselväksi, vaikka jotkut elämäkerran kirjoittajat väittävät, että he olivat rakastavaisia mutta eivät koskaan menneet naimisiin, koska Haskellin perhe vastusti. Alusvaatteista saadut todisteet viittaavat siihen, että heidän suhteensa ei koskaan toteutunut fyysisesti. Gibran ja Haskell olivat lyhyesti kihloissa vuosien 1910 ja 1911 välillä. Joseph P. Ghougassianin mukaan Gibran oli kosinut häntä koska "ei tiennyt kuinka muuten maksaa takaisin kiitokseksi neiti Haskellille", mutta Haskell keskeytti yhdynnän tehden "hänelle selväksi, että hän piti hänen ystävyydestään ennen kuin raskasta sidettä mamuavioliitossa." Haskell meni myöhemmin naimisiin Jacob Florance Minisin kanssa vuonna 1926, samalla kun hän pysyi Gibranin läheisenä ystävänä, suojelijana ja hyväntekijänä ja käytti Jacobin vaikutusvaltaa Kallen uran edistämiseen.
      ellauri277.html on line 140: 1908 Haskell esitteli Gibranin ystävälleen kirjailija Charlotte Tellerille, 31, ja helmikuussa Émilie Michelille (Micheline), Haskellin koulun ranskan opettajalle, 19. Sekä Teller että Micheline suostuivat poseeraamaan Gibranille nakuina ja heistä tuli hänen "läheisiä ystäviä." Samana vuonna Gibran julkaisi Spirits Rebellious arabiaksi romaanin, joka kritisoi syvästi maallista ja henkistä auktoriteettia. Gibranin edesmenneen tutun Barbara Youngin mukaan "papit polttivat sen Beirutin torilla uskomattoman lyhyessä ajassa," ja he julistivat sen "vaaralliseksi, vallankumoukselliseksi ja myrkylliseksi nuorille". Maroniittipatriarkaatti laski liikkeelle huhun hänen ek-ek-ekskommunikaatiosta, vaikkei koskaan julistanut sitä virallisesti.
      ellauri277.html on line 219: Similarly, Gibran later portrayed his life in Lebanon as idyllic, stressing his precocious artistic and literary talents and his mother’s efforts to educate him; some of these stories were obviously tall tales meant to impress his American patrons.
      ellauri277.html on line 225: At an exhibit of Day’s photographs in 1898 Gibran met a Cambridge poet, Josephine Prescott Peabody, who was nine years older than he. He sketched a portrait of her from memory and gave it to Day to pass on to her. Peabody was charmed by the sketch, and she and Gibran exchanged French letters.
      ellauri277.html on line 231: Gibran’s relationship with Peabody ended completely with her marriage in 1906. He then began a secret affair with a pianist, Gertrude Barrie, who, like Peabody, was several years his senior. During this period Haskell introduced him to an aspiring French actress, Émilie Michel, who taught French at Haskell’s school, and the two fell in love. In 1908 Michel suffered an ectopic pregnancy and had an abortion. The relationship waned and ultimately ended, a victim of Michel’s ambitions for a career on the stage.
      ellauri277.html on line 240: In the spring of 1913 he visited the International Exhibition of Modern Art—the “Armory Show”—which introduced European modern art to America. He approved of the show as a “declaration of independence” from tradition, but he did not think most of the paintings were beautiful and did not care for the artistic ideologies behind movements such as cubism. The reviews of an exhibition of his own work in December 1914 were mixed. Hedevoted most of his time to painting for the next eighteen years but remained loyal to the symbolism of his youth and became an isolated figure on the New York art scene.
      ellauri277.html on line 248: The work begins with the prophet Almustafa preparing to leave the city of Orphalese, where he has lived for twelve years, to return to the island of his birth. The people of the city gather and beg him not to leave, but the seeress Almitra, knowing that his ship has come for him, asks him instead to tell them his truths. The people ask him about the great themes of human life: love, marriage, children, giving, eating and drinking, and many others, concluding with death. Almustafa speaks of each of the themes in sober, sonorous aphorisms grouped into twenty-six short chapters. As in earlier books, Gibran illustrated The Prophet with his own drawings, adding to the power of the work.
      ellauri277.html on line 250: The Prophet received tepid reviews in Poetry and The Bookman, an enthusiastic review in the Chicago Evening Post, and little else. On the other hand, the public reception was intense. It began with a trickle of grateful letters; the first edition sold out in two months; 13,000 copies a year were sold during the Great Depression, 60,000 in 1944, and 1,000,000 by 1957. Many millions of copies were sold in the following decades, making Gibran the best-selling American poet of the twentieth century. It is clear that the book deeply moved many people. When critics finally noticed it, they were baffled by the public response; they dismissed the work as sentimental, overwritten, artificial, and affected.
      ellauri277.html on line 254: In 1925 the poet Barbara Young (pseudonym of Henrietta Breckenridge (!!!) Boughton) became Gibran’s secretary. She remained with Gibran for the rest of his life and played a major role in events after his death.
      ellauri278.html on line 144: Laulun suosio Neuvostoliitossa alkoi Georgian kulttuurin vuosikymmenen pitämisestä Moskovassa tammikuussa 1937, jolloin Avksentiy Megrelidzen johtama naisyhtye esitti "Georgian folk" -laulun "Suliko". Stalin piti kappaleesta kovasti, ja pian ensimmäiset gramofonilevyt kappaleen kanssa julkaistiin. Useimmissa tapauksissa laulu esitettiin kansanlauluna, joskus mainittiin runojen kirjoittaja A. L-seteli. Säveltäjä Varinka Tseretelin maininta alkoi ilmestyä 1980-luvulla.
      ellauri278.html on line 163: He often punctuated speeches with phrases like "Dogs of the Fascist bourgeoisie", "mad dogs of Trotskyism", "dregs of society", "decayed people", "terrorist thugs and degenerates", and "accursed vermin". This dehumanization aided in what historian Arkady Vaksberg calls "a hitherto unknown type of trial where there was not the slightest need for evidence: what evidence did you need when you were dealing with 'stinking carrion' and 'mad dogs'."
      ellauri278.html on line 182: Siberian pensioner IS grandson of Josef Stalin, DNA test reveals. Yury Davydov, 67, gets proof of his roots after years of waiting: his grandmother was Stalin's 14 year old lover. Stalin a Pedo? what has the world come to?
      ellauri278.html on line 192: A distant relative of Aleksandr Pushkin, Georgy Chicherin was born into an old noble family. He was born on the estate of his uncle, Boris Chicherin, in Karaul, Tambov. His father, Vasily N. Chicherin, was a diplomat employed by the Foreign Office of the Russian Empire.
      ellauri278.html on line 194: In 1904, Chicherin inherited the estate of his famous uncle in Tambov Governorate and became very wealthy. He immediately used his new fortune to support revolutionary activities in the runup to the Russian Revolution of 1905 and was forced to flee abroad to avoid arrest late in that year. He spent the next 13 years in London, Paris and Berlin, where he joined the Menshevik faction of the Russian Social Democratic Labor Party and was active in emigre politics. In Imperial Germany, he underwent medical treatment in attempts to cure his homosexuality.
      ellauri278.html on line 198: Chicherin played a major role in establishing formal relations with China and in designing the Kremlin´s policy on China. He focused on the Chinese Eastern Railway, Manchuria, and the Mongolian issue.
      ellauri278.html on line 200: Chicherin was an eccentric, with obsessive work habits. Alexander Barmine, who worked in the People´s Commissariat for Foreign Affairs, noted that "Chicherin was a workaholic with peculiar habits. His workroom was completely buried in books, newspaper and documents. He used to patter into our room in his shirt sleeves, wearing a large silk handkerchief round his neck and slippers adorned with metal buckles ... which, for comfort´s sake, he never troubled to fasten, making a clicking noise on the floor." In 1930 Chicherin was formally replaced by his deputy, Maxim Litvinov. A continuing terminal illness burdened his last years, which forced him away from his circle of friends and active work and led to an early death.
      ellauri278.html on line 208: In January 1908, French police arrested Litvinov under the name Meer Wallach while carrying twelve 500-ruble banknotes that had been stolen in a bank robbery in Tiflis the year before. The Russian government demanded his extradition but the French Minister for Justice Aristide Briand ruled Litvinov´s crime was political and ordered him to be deported. He went to Belfast, Ireland, where he joined his sister Rifka and her family. There, he taught foreign languages in the Jewish Jaffe Public Elementary School until 1910.
      ellauri278.html on line 210: Litvinov moved to England in 1910 and lived there for eight years. In 1912, he replaced Lenin as the Bolshevik representative on the International Socialist Bureau. In England, Litvinov met and in 1916 married Ivy Low, the daughter of a Jewish university professor.
      ellauri278.html on line 248: In the 21-month period between the declaration of war by France and Britain, and the invasion of the Soviet Union by Germany, Ivy Litvinov describes this period of her life. She said the family spent their time with their daughter-in-law in their dacha 27 kilometres (17 mi) from Moscow and outside school holidays in the family apartment in Moscow, when they spent long weekends in the country. For two years, the family played bridge, read music, and went on long walks in the countryside with their two dogs.
      ellauri278.html on line 258: The highlight of Litvinov’s eighteen months ambassadorship was the 25th celebration of the Russian Revolution on the 7 November 1942. 1,200 guests, representing all of the United Nations, entered the reception hall to shake hands with Litvinov. Russian vodka and a sturgeon from the Volga were supplied to the guests. Roosevelt became annoyed with Litvinov’s second-necklace zeal. He told Stalin to call in Litvinov.
      ellauri278.html on line 294: Lausitz on pinta-alaltaan noin 11 000 neliökilometrin suuruinen, ja sen alueella asuu noin 1,4 miljoonaa ihmistä. Saksin osavaltiossa Ylä-Lausitziin kuuluvat piirikunnat Bautzen, Löbau-Zittau ja Niederschlesischer Oberlausitzkreis sekä suurin osa Kamenzin piirikunnasta ja Görlitzin ja Hoyerswerdan piirittämättömät kaupungit. Brandenburgissa Ylä-Lausitziin kuuluu Oberspreewald-Lausitzin piirikunnan eteläosa. Ala-Lausitziin puolestaan kuuluu Oberspreewald-Lausitzin pohjoinen osa ja Spree-Neiße, osa Elbe-Elsterin piirikunnasta, Dahme-Spreewald, Oder-Spree sekä Cottbusin piiritön kaupunki.
      ellauri278.html on line 296: Ala-Lausitzin merkittävimpiä kaupunkeja ovat Cottbus, Eisenhüttenstadt, Guben, Forst, Luckau, Finsterwalde, Senftenberg, Spremberg, Bad Muskau, Puolan puolella sijaitseva Żary, Vetschau, Lübben ja Lübbenau sekä länsilaidalla Herzberg. Ylä-Lausitzin merkittävimpiä kaupunkeja ovat Bautzen, Görlitz, Lubań, Zittau, Löbau ja Kamenz sekä Niesky, Hoyerswerda ja Weißwasser. Cottbus on koko Lausitzin alueen väestöllisesti suurin kaupunki. Bautzen on historiallisesti Ylä-Lausitzin pääkaupunki ja Luckau Ala-Lausitzin.
      ellauri278.html on line 439: Konstantin Päts pääsi Stalinin kuoleman jälkeen joulukuussa 1954 palaamaan Viron maaperälle, kun häntä pidettiin lyhyen aikaa Jämejalan mielisairaalassa Viljandin lähellä, sitten jonkun aikaa Jälän kentällä Kuopion lähellä. Hän kuoli psykiatrisessa sairaalassa Buraševossa, Tverin alueella 18. tammikuuta 1956. Hullu mikä hullu, hullu kuin pullosta tullu. Hänet haudattiin Kalininin kaupungin lähellä olevalle hautausmaalle. Pätsin maalliset jäännökset noudettiin takaisin Viroon "olojen muututtua" ja haudattiin uudelleen 21.10.1990 Tallinnan Metsakalmistuun, josta hän oli aikoinaan noussutkin esiin revenanttina.
      ellauri278.html on line 560: Se oli roistomainen temppu, sanoo Stalin. - Hyökättiin aamunkoitteessa minun selkääni. Yllätettiin housut nilkoissa. Heti kun toinen selkänsä kääntää niin hyökätään. Ei ole oikein, ei, ei. Ei ole se kaunis teko, nyet, нет!
      ellauri279.html on line 197: When Yuri joined the faculty of the Department of German and Russian at UCD in January, 1989, none of his colleagues had any idea of the remarkable fifty-five years of his life that had preceded his arrival in Davis. Some of us were aware of the fact that he had been censored for his writing in the Soviet Union, but most, if not all of us, were ignorant of the attack leveled against him in 1974 by the newspaper Izvestiya, which accused him of having slandered the Soviet people, or of his having been removed from the Writers Union of the USSR in 1977 and declared “a traitor to the motherland” for his participation in the Samizdat underground publishing movement. In 1986, he was threatened by the KGB with either incarceration in a prison camp or confinement to a psychiatric ward, where he might well have languished had it not been for the intervention of Western writers such as Kurt Vonnegut and Arthur Miller, as well as, the International PEN-Club. Yuri was banished from his homeland a year later. He became a leading literary figure among Russian émigré writers while in exile, living first in Vienna, and then in Texas, before coming to California.
      ellauri279.html on line 199: In his sensational exposé, Informer 001 or the Myth of Pavlik Morozov, a product of research carried out clandestinely in the Soviet Union between 1980 and 1984, he demolished the long-standing, “official” Soviet version of the young, thirteen-year old “pioneer” (who never was) and communist martyr – designated, in 1934, a Soviet literary hero at the First Congress of Soviet Writers – who had turned in his father to the authorities for treasonable activity. The boy was subsequently murdered, according to the authorities, by members of his own family. The young Pavlik did, in fact, denounce his father, but, as Yuri demonstrates, he appears to have been put up to it by his mother, seeking revenge for her husband’s infidelity. As to who actually killed Pavlik, Yuri establishes that it was certainly not family members who were hauled before a Soviet court and subsequently executed. No less a literary figure than Alexander Solzhenitsyn hailed the publication of the book in 1987, claiming that it was “through books such as this that as many Soviet lies will eventually be told as revealed.”


      ellauri279.html on line 242: Abakumovin pidätyksen jälkeen Ryuminista tuli nopeasti MGB:n varaministeri ja tutkintayksikön päällikkö. Mutta Stalin ei ollut hölmö, ja tunnisti Ryuminin siitä, mikä hänellä todella oli, kutsumalla häntä "tyngäxi". Niinpä väitetty juutalaisten lääkäreiden juoni ( dyelo vrachey ) paljastettiin politbyroolle vasta marraskuussa 1952, paasaajan jo päästyä naistenklinikalta kotia, ja Venäjälle ja muulle maailmalle vasta tammikuussa 1953, jolloin se julkistettiin Pravdassa.
      ellauri279.html on line 265: Mutta hei, helevetti! Eihän siinä ollutkaan enää mikään pelottava despootti, sielujen insinööri ja kommunismin yliarkkitehti, ei mikään agitaattori ja miljoonien ihmisten murhaaja ja pienten kihojen verinen vainooja. Ei mikään kulakkien surma, nepmannien pyöveli, viljan pakko-ottaja, porvareiden leiri-isonen ja tunnoton antisemiitti ja konspiraattori. Nyet, nyt vanha Josip oli vain sairas ukkeli, kelmeän värinen. rokonarpinen. Jalat oli laihat puikot, vaikka nilkat oli turvoksissa. Reidet oli kuihtuneet voimattomiksi, tissit roikkuvat, kylkiluut ponkottivat ja veltto maha oli pullollaan suolikaasua (touché). Ilme oli väsynyt, lopen tympääntynyt. Vain viikset oli vielä tuuheat ja kulmakarvat synkeät.
      ellauri279.html on line 273: Mihail Ryumin syntyi 1. syyskuuta 1913 keskiluokkaiseen talonpoikaisperheeseen Bolshoe Kabanye kylässä, Kabanje Volostissa, Shadrinsk Uyezdissa, Permin kuvernöörissä, nyt Baturinski Selsovetissa, Shadrinskin alueella, Kurganin alueella. Sisällissodan vuosina Ryuminin perhe tuki valkoisia, myöhemmin Mihail Dmitrievich piilotti tämän seikan.
      ellauri279.html on line 460: Fuentesin ensimmäinen romaani Missä ilma on kirkasta ( La región más transparente ) oli välitön menestys ilmestyessään vuonna 1958. Romaani rakentuu Federico Roblesin tarinan ympärille – joka on hylännyt vallankumoukselliset ihanteensa tullakseen voimakkaaxi rahoittajaxi.
      ellauri281.html on line 143: Laulun suosio Neuvostoliitossa alkoi Georgian kulttuurin vuosikymmenen pitämisestä Moskovassa tammikuussa 1937, jolloin Avksentiy Megrelidzen johtama naisyhtye esitti "Georgian folk" -laulun "Suliko". Stalin piti kappaleesta kovasti, ja pian ensimmäiset gramofonilevyt kappaleen kanssa julkaistiin. Useimmissa tapauksissa laulu esitettiin kansanlauluna, joskus mainittiin runojen kirjoittaja A. L-seteli. Säveltäjä Varinka Tseretelin maininta alkoi ilmestyä 1980-luvulla.
      ellauri281.html on line 162: He often punctuated speeches with phrases like "Dogs of the Fascist bourgeoisie", "mad dogs of Trotskyism", "dregs of society", "decayed people", "terrorist thugs and degenerates", and "accursed vermin". This dehumanization aided in what historian Arkady Vaksberg calls "a hitherto unknown type of trial where there was not the slightest need for evidence: what evidence did you need when you were dealing with 'stinking carrion' and 'mad dogs'."
      ellauri281.html on line 181: Siberian pensioner IS grandson of Josef Stalin, DNA test reveals. Yury Davydov, 67, gets proof of his roots after years of waiting: his grandmother was Stalin's 14 year old lover. Stalin a Pedo? what has the world come to?
      ellauri281.html on line 191: A distant relative of Aleksandr Pushkin, Georgy Chicherin was born into an old noble family. He was born on the estate of his uncle, Boris Chicherin, in Karaul, Tambov. His father, Vasily N. Chicherin, was a diplomat employed by the Foreign Office of the Russian Empire.
      ellauri281.html on line 193: In 1904, Chicherin inherited the estate of his famous uncle in Tambov Governorate and became very wealthy. He immediately used his new fortune to support revolutionary activities in the runup to the Russian Revolution of 1905 and was forced to flee abroad to avoid arrest late in that year. He spent the next 13 years in London, Paris and Berlin, where he joined the Menshevik faction of the Russian Social Democratic Labor Party and was active in emigre politics. In Imperial Germany, he underwent medical treatment in attempts to cure his homosexuality.
      ellauri281.html on line 197: Chicherin played a major role in establishing formal relations with China and in designing the Kremlin´s policy on China. He focused on the Chinese Eastern Railway, Manchuria, and the Mongolian issue.
      ellauri281.html on line 199: Chicherin was an eccentric, with obsessive work habits. Alexander Barmine, who worked in the People´s Commissariat for Foreign Affairs, noted that "Chicherin was a workaholic with peculiar habits. His workroom was completely buried in books, newspaper and documents. He used to patter into our room in his shirt sleeves, wearing a large silk handkerchief round his neck and slippers adorned with metal buckles ... which, for comfort´s sake, he never troubled to fasten, making a clicking noise on the floor." In 1930 Chicherin was formally replaced by his deputy, Maxim Litvinov. A continuing terminal illness burdened his last years, which forced him away from his circle of friends and active work and led to an early death.
      ellauri281.html on line 207: In January 1908, French police arrested Litvinov under the name Meer Wallach while carrying twelve 500-ruble banknotes that had been stolen in a bank robbery in Tiflis the year before. The Russian government demanded his extradition but the French Minister for Justice Aristide Briand ruled Litvinov´s crime was political and ordered him to be deported. He went to Belfast, Ireland, where he joined his sister Rifka and her family. There, he taught foreign languages in the Jewish Jaffe Public Elementary School until 1910.
      ellauri281.html on line 209: Litvinov moved to England in 1910 and lived there for eight years. In 1912, he replaced Lenin as the Bolshevik representative on the International Socialist Bureau. In England, Litvinov met and in 1916 married Ivy Low, the daughter of a Jewish university professor.
      ellauri281.html on line 247: In the 21-month period between the declaration of war by France and Britain, and the invasion of the Soviet Union by Germany, Ivy Litvinov describes this period of her life. She said the family spent their time with their daughter-in-law in their dacha 27 kilometres (17 mi) from Moscow and outside school holidays in the family apartment in Moscow, when they spent long weekends in the country. For two years, the family played bridge, read music, and went on long walks in the countryside with their two dogs.
      ellauri281.html on line 257: The highlight of Litvinov’s eighteen months ambassadorship was the 25th celebration of the Russian Revolution on the 7 November 1942. 1,200 guests, representing all of the United Nations, entered the reception hall to shake hands with Litvinov. Russian vodka and a sturgeon from the Volga were supplied to the guests. Roosevelt became annoyed with Litvinov’s second-necklace zeal. He told Stalin to call in Litvinov.
      ellauri281.html on line 293: Lausitz on pinta-alaltaan noin 11 000 neliökilometrin suuruinen, ja sen alueella asuu noin 1,4 miljoonaa ihmistä. Saksin osavaltiossa Ylä-Lausitziin kuuluvat piirikunnat Bautzen, Löbau-Zittau ja Niederschlesischer Oberlausitzkreis sekä suurin osa Kamenzin piirikunnasta ja Görlitzin ja Hoyerswerdan piirittämättömät kaupungit. Brandenburgissa Ylä-Lausitziin kuuluu Oberspreewald-Lausitzin piirikunnan eteläosa. Ala-Lausitziin puolestaan kuuluu Oberspreewald-Lausitzin pohjoinen osa ja Spree-Neiße, osa Elbe-Elsterin piirikunnasta, Dahme-Spreewald, Oder-Spree sekä Cottbusin piiritön kaupunki.
      ellauri281.html on line 295: Ala-Lausitzin merkittävimpiä kaupunkeja ovat Cottbus, Eisenhüttenstadt, Guben, Forst, Luckau, Finsterwalde, Senftenberg, Spremberg, Bad Muskau, Puolan puolella sijaitseva Żary, Vetschau, Lübben ja Lübbenau sekä länsilaidalla Herzberg. Ylä-Lausitzin merkittävimpiä kaupunkeja ovat Bautzen, Görlitz, Lubań, Zittau, Löbau ja Kamenz sekä Niesky, Hoyerswerda ja Weißwasser. Cottbus on koko Lausitzin alueen väestöllisesti suurin kaupunki. Bautzen on historiallisesti Ylä-Lausitzin pääkaupunki ja Luckau Ala-Lausitzin.
      ellauri281.html on line 438: Konstantin Päts pääsi Stalinin kuoleman jälkeen joulukuussa 1954 palaamaan Viron maaperälle, kun häntä pidettiin lyhyen aikaa Jämejalan mielisairaalassa Viljandin lähellä, sitten jonkun aikaa Jälän kentällä Kuopion lähellä. Hän kuoli psykiatrisessa sairaalassa Buraševossa, Tverin alueella 18. tammikuuta 1956. Hullu mikä hullu, hullu kuin pullosta tullu. Hänet haudattiin Kalininin kaupungin lähellä olevalle hautausmaalle. Pätsin maalliset jäännökset noudettiin takaisin Viroon "olojen muututtua" ja haudattiin uudelleen 21.10.1990 Tallinnan Metsakalmistuun, josta hän oli aikoinaan noussutkin esiin revenanttina.
      ellauri281.html on line 559: Se oli roistomainen temppu, sanoo Stalin. - Hyökättiin aamunkoitteessa minun selkääni. Yllätettiin housut nilkoissa. Heti kun toinen selkänsä kääntää niin hyökätään. Ei ole oikein, ei, ei. Ei ole se kaunis teko, nyet, нет!
      ellauri282.html on line 334: Thomas Merton, David R. Hawkins, Henri Nouwen, Eckhart Tolle, Jiddu Krishnamurti, Ignatius Loyola, Rajneesh, Deepak Chopra, Pierre Teilhard de Chardin, Bede Griffiths, Janos Arany, Ramesh S Balsekar, Thomas Keating, Richard Rohr, Sri Nisargadatta Maharaj, Nouriel Roubini, Ramana Maharshi, Wayne Dyer, What Hanhi, Khalil Gibran.
      ellauri282.html on line 352: Velazquesin kuoltua Loyola siirtyi Najeran herttuan Antonio Manrique de Laran (k. 1535) palvelukseen ja päätyi taistelemaan herttuan joukoissa Habaneros -kapinallisia vastaan. Pamplemoussen taistelussa vuonna 1521 Loyola haavoittui taistelussa molempiin jalkoihin tykin osumasta, ja hänen pikkujalkansa vammautui vakavasti. Lopulta leikkaukset jättivät hänen jalkansa sitä lyhyemmiksi. Hän ontui loppuelämänsä sotilasuransa päätyttyä.
      ellauri282.html on line 509: Vuonna 1984 Keating perusti yhdessä Gustave Reiningerin ja Edward Bednarin kanssa Contemplative Outreach, Ltd:n, kansainvälisen ja ekumeenisen hengellisen verkoston, joka opettaa Centering Prayer -rukouksen ja Lectio Divina -rukousmenetelmän, joka on peräisin kristillisestä kontemplatiivisesta perinteestä. Contemplative Outreach tarjoaa tukijärjestelmän mietiskelypolulla oleville monenlaisten resurssien, työpajojen ja retriittien kautta.
      ellauri282.html on line 515: Keating oli Centering Prayerin, nykyaikaisen mietiskelevän rukousmenetelmän yksi kolmesta pääkehittäjästä, joka syntyi St. Joseph's Abbeysta vuonna 1975. William Meninger ja Basil Pennington, myös trappistimunkkeja, olivat menetelmän muita pääkehittäjiä. Kun Keating ehdotti konseptia ensimmäisen kerran, Meninger alkoi opettaa menetelmää, joka perustuu 1300-luvun henkiseen klassikkoon The Cloud of Unknowing (Tietämättömyyden pilvi, tästä on jo paasattu de Löllön yhteydessä albumissa 219). Meninger kutsui tätä "pilven rukoukseksi" ja opetti sitä papeille retriittitalossa. Pennington piti ensimmäisen retriitin maallikkoyleisölle Connecticutissa, jossa osallistujat ehdottivat termiä "Centering Prayer". Thomas Mertonista lähtien oli tiedetty porukoiden käyttäneen termiä ennen tätä, on epäilty, että lause olisi peräisin häneltä.
      ellauri282.html on line 528: Nhất Hạnh muutti Pariisiin vuonna 1966. Hänestä tuli Vietnamin buddhalaisen rauhanvaltuuskunnan puheenjohtaja. Vuonna 1969 Nhất Hạnh perusti yhtenäisen buddhalaiskirkon (Église Bouddhique Unifiée) Ranskaan (ei osa Vietnamin yhtenäistä buddhalaista kirkkoa). Vuonna 1975 hän perusti Bataattimeditaatiokeskuksen Fontvannesiin, Foret d'Otheen, lähellä Troyesia Auben maakunnassa Pariisin kaakkoispuolella. Seuraavien seitsemän vuoden ajan hän keskittyi kirjoittamiseen ja suoritti Mindfulnessin ihmeen, Kuun bambun ja Aurinkoni sydämeni -arvosanat.
      ellauri283.html on line 89: Virpi näytti tosi komeelta, kun se meni nakuna uimaan tissit hölskyen ja pillu ajeltuna. Pillu hölskyen ja tissit ajeltuna.
      ellauri283.html on line 107:

      ellauri283.html on line 120: It's different and I loved it! It raises the question is there a God and answers it in a wonderful way. I don't want to give the story away, (aah, WTF, here goes: there is a God, but his name is Allah. Sorry...) - you have to watch and keep your eyes on Barlow, he is an angel for sure! And there really are angels, consult your Bibble (Hebrews) or Koran (passim)!
      ellauri283.html on line 130: Teos koostuu lyhyestä esipuheesta, joka on päivätty vuoteen 1885, 296 numeroitua osaa ja "epodista" (tai "jälkilaulusta"), jonka otsikko on "From High Mountains". Go tell it to The Mountains: Jesus Christ is Born. Tell it to The Hand. Sketsit loppuvat Jylpyn sanoihin: "että tämmönen tapaus".
      ellauri283.html on line 317: Makulian pääkaupunki Dongle oli taantumassa 1000-/1100-luvun lopulta lähtien, ja myös Alodian pääkaupunki heikkeni muuten vaan 1100-luvulla. 1300-luvulla (aikaisin kirjattu muuttoliike Egyptistä Sudanin Niilin laaksoon vuodelta 1324) ja 1400-luvulla beduiiniheimot valloittivat suurimman osan Sudanista muuttaen Butanaan, Geziraan, Kordofaniin ja Darfuriin. Vuonna 1365 sisällissota pakotti Makurian hovin pakenemaan Gebel Addaan Ala-Nuubiassa, kun taas Tombola tuhoutui ja jätettiin hyvällä arabeille. Myöhemmin Makuria jatkoi olemassaoloaan vain pienenä kuningaskuntana. Viimeinen tunnettu Makurian kuningas oli Jo-el, joka on todistettu vuosilta 1463 ja 1484 ja jonka aikana Makuria todennäköisesti todisti lyhyen renesoossin. Hänen kuolemansa jälkeen valtakunta luultavasti vaan romahti. Etelässä Alodian valtakunta joutui joko arabeille, joita komensi heimojohtaja Abdallah Jammu, tai sit Funjille, etelästä peräisin olevalle afrikkalaiselle kansalle. Tapaamiset vaihtelevat 9. vuosisadalta Hijran jälkeen ( n. 1396–1494), 1400-luvun lopulta, 1504 - 1509. Alodilainen lantiovaltio (pre-colonial state) saattoi säilyä Fazughlin valtakunnan muodossa, joka kesti vuoteen 1685 asti. Loput olivatkin sitten peräsuolivaltioita (colonial state).
      ellauri283.html on line 361: Abboudin hallintoa seurasi väliaikainen hallitus, kunnes huhtikuussa 1965 pidetyt parlamenttivaalit johtivat Umman ja kansallisen unionistipuolueiden koalitiohallitukseen pääministeri Muhammad Ahmad Mahjoubin johdolla. Vuosina 1966–1969 Sudanissa oli useita hallituksia, jotka eivät kyenneet sopimaan pysyvästä perustuslaista tai selviytymään ryhmittelyn, talouden pysähtymisen ja etnisen toisinajattelun ongelmista. Varhaisten itsenäistymisen jälkeisten hallitusten peräkkäisyyttä hallitsivat arabimuslimit, jotka pitivät Sudania muslimina arabivaltiona. Itse asiassa kyllä Umma/NUP:n vuoden 1968 perustuslaki oli kiistatta Sudanin ensimmäinen islamilainen perustuslaki.
      ellauri283.html on line 365: Kiistat marxilaisten ja ei-marxilaisten elementtien välillä hallitsevassa sotilaallisessa koalitiossa johtivat lyhyesti onnistuneeseen vallankaappaukseen heinäkuussa 1971, jota johti Sudanin kommunistinen puolue. Useita päiviä myöhemmin kommunismin vastaiset sotilaalliset elementit palauttivat onnistuneesti Nimeiryn valtaan.
      ellauri283.html on line 385: Sisällissota on syrjäyttänyt yli 4 miljoonaa etelän asukasta. Jotkut pakenivat eteläisiin kaupunkeihin, kuten Juba; toiset vaelsivat pohjoiseen Khartumiin ja jopa Etiopiaan, Keniaan, Ugandaan, Egyptiin ja muihin naapurimaihin. Nämä ihmiset eivät kyenneet kasvattamaan ruokaa tai ansaita rahaa ruokkimaan itsensä, ja aliravitsemus ja nälkä yleistyivät. Investointien puute etelässä johti myös siihen, mitä kansainväliset humanitaariset järjestöt kutsuvat "kadonneeksi sukupolveksi", jolla ei ole koulutusmahdollisuuksia, pääsyä perusterveydenhuoltopalveluihin ja vähäiset mahdollisuudet tuottavaan työllisyyteen etelän pienissä ja heikkoissa talouksissa. Pohjoinen rulaa taas.
      ellauri283.html on line 404: Työpaikat jaetaan eri suhteiden mukaan (keskushallinto: 70-30, Abyei / Sinisen Niilin osavaltio / Nuban vuoret : 55-45, molemmat hallituksen eduksi).
      ellauri283.html on line 417: Tammikuussa 2011 pidettiin kansanäänestys Etelä-Sudanin itsenäisyydestä, ja Etelä-Sudanin enemmistö äänesti eron puolesta myöhemmin samana vuonna Etelä-Sudanin tasavallaksi, jonka pääkaupunki oli Juba ja Kiir Mayardit sen ensimmäisenä presidenttinä. Al-Bashir ilmoitti hyväksyvänsä tuloksen, mutta väkivalta puhkesi pian kiistanalaisella Abyein alueella, jota sekä pohjoinen että etelä vaativat. Kunin ex-mies toimi piiskana kiinalaisten rakennuxilla etelä-Sudanissa. Se pyysi Kunia sinne mukaansa, muttä hiän ei lähtenyt.
      ellauri283.html on line 419: 6. kesäkuuta 2011 puhkesi aseellinen konflikti Etelä-Kordofanissa Pohjois- ja Etelä-Sudanin joukkojen välillä , ennen etelän suunniteltua itsenäistymistä 9. heinäkuuta. Tätä seurasi sopimus, jonka mukaan molemmat osapuolet vetäytyivät Abyeista . Osapuolet sopivat 20. kesäkuuta kiistanalaisen Abyein alueen demilitarisoimisesta, jonne lähetettäisiin etiopialaisia ​​rauhanturvaajia. 9. heinäkuuta 2011 Etelä-Sudanista tuli itsenäinen maa. Huraa huraa!
      ellauri283.html on line 522: Samaan aikaan Euroopan unioni alkoi avustaa Malin oman armeijan koulutuksessa. Mukana on myös suomalaisia kouluttajia. Maaliskuussa 2019 islamistit hyökkäsivät noin 60 kilometrin päässä Bamakosta sijaitsevan Koulikoron sotilasleiriin. Malin turvallisuustilanne on huolestuttava maan eteläisillä alueilla (Koulikoro, Kayes, Koutiala, Sikasso), jotka eivät ole enää vapaita jihadistisesta uhasta tai rosvoilusta.
      ellauri283.html on line 547: Människor flyr tortyr och våld i Libyen och vi, som européer och EU-medlemmar, betalar för att skicka tillbaka dem dit.
      ellauri284.html on line 150: In 2021, there were over 29 thousand murders reported across India. Furthermore, more than 55 thousand attempted murder cases were filled in the country that year. Success rate: 34%. The US has experienced its largest-ever recorded annual increase in murders, according to new statistics from the FBI, with the national murder rate rising nearly 30% in 2020 – the biggest jump in six decades. Nearly 5,000 more Americans were murdered across the country last year than the year before. At least 77% of the murders were committed with firearms, according to the new government estimates.
      ellauri284.html on line 151: The sharp one-year increase, to a total of at least 21,570 murders, does not erase the nation’s stagnation since the early 1990s. The US murder rate had dropped more than 50% since 1991. Even after last year’s increase, it is still 34% lower! To increase the gain to beat India, fully automatic weapons ought to be legalized again.
      ellauri284.html on line 161: Koko 1800-luvun lopun ja 1900-luvun alun Saksa liittyi muiden eurooppalaisten valtojen joukkoon kamppailussa siirtomaaomaisuudesta. Kuten muutkin maailmanvallat (so. britit, mukaan lukien Yhdysvallat ja Japani), Saksa alkoi puuttua Kiinan paikallisiin asioihin. Kun kaksi saksalaista lähetyssaarnaajaa sai surmansa Juyen välikohtauksessa vuonna 1897, Kiinan oli pakko suostua Kiautschou Bayn oluttehtaan toimilupaan Shantungissa (nykyinen Shandong ) Saksalle vuonna 1898 99 vuoden vuokrasopimuksella. Saksa alkoi sitten vahvistaa vaikutusvaltaansa muualla provinssissa ja rakensi Tsingtaon kaupungin ja sataman, josta tuli Kaiserlichen merijalkaväen saksalaisen Itä-Aasian laivueen tukikohta.(Saksan laivasto), joka toimi Saksan siirtokuntien tukena Tyynellämerellä. Iso-Britannia suhtautui saxalaiseen olueen Kiinassa epäluuloisesti ja vuokrasi Weihaiwein, myös Shantungissa, merisatamaksi ja hiilivoimalaitokseksi. Venäjä vuokrasi oman asemansa Port Arthurissa (nykyinen Lüshunkou ) ja Ranska Kwang-Chou-Wanissa. Iso-Britannia alkoi myös luoda läheisiä suhteita Japaniin, ja diplomaattisuhteet tiivistyivät, kun anglo-japanilainen liitto allekirjoitettiin 30. tammikuuta 1902. Japani näki liiton välttämättömänä pelotteena pääkilpailijalleen Venäjälle. Japani osoitti potentiaalinsa voitolla Venäjän ja Japanin sodassa 1904–1905, ja liitto jatkui ensimmäiseen maailmansotaan.
      ellauri284.html on line 209: General Beyers perished a traitor-in-arms, drowned in the Vaal, while hotly pursued and trying to cross the flooded river with some of his men. They were fired on, and Beyers fell from his horse but caught hold of the tail of another, but was soon seen in difficulties and calling for help. Before the fighting was over, General Beyers had diappeared under water. No one came to help.
      ellauri284.html on line 241: Kenttämarsalkka Douglas Haigiin, jonka käskyjen väitetään johtaneen satoihin tuhansiin brittiläisiin kuolemiin Passchendaelen ja Sommen taisteluissa, viitataan jatkuvasti. Blackadder itse kuvailee Haigin etenemisyrityksiä vain "toiseksi jättimäiseksi yritykseksi siirtää juomakaappinsa kuusi tuumaa lähemmäs Berliiniä" ja Melchettiltä kysyttäessä ehdotuksia joukkojen moraalin parantamiseksi, ehdottaa nauraen Haigin eroa tai itsemurhaa. "Goodbyeee" -elokuvassa kohtaus parodioi Haigin ammatillisia kykyjä kuvaamalla marsalkkaa leikkimässä lelusotilaiden kanssa, jonka hän lakaisee välinpitämättömästi haudosta toiseen ja sitten roskakoriin kuunnellessaan Blackadderin vetoomusta päästä puhumaan suureen puhelimeen. Sommen sotilaspalvelijoista ja rivimiehistä Tolkien tiivisti Sam Gamgin, Frodon uskollisen ja kätevän kumppanin.
      ellauri284.html on line 249: Tämän sarjan viimeinen jakso, "Goodbyeee", vaikka olikin uskollinen sarjan tavanomaiselle komediatyylille useimmissa edellisissä kohtauksissa, sisälsi ei-komedisen loppukohtauksen, jossa päähenkilöt (paitsi kenraali Melchett) lähetetään lopulta tuleen. Darling säilyttää jonkin verran toivoa sanoen, että tämä saattaa olla viimeinen taistelu ja historia kirjoitetaan nimellä "Suuri sota, 1914-1917". Huolimatta Baldrikin väitteestä, että hänellä on viimeinen ovela suunnitelma pelastaa heidät uhkaavalta tuomiolta, Blackadder toimittaa viimeisen rivin:
      ellauri284.html on line 493: Vuonna 1968 suositun englantilaisen popyhtyeen The Beatlesin jäsenet osallistuivat Intiassa Maharishin meditaatioretriitille, mikä toi Maharishille runsaasti julkisuutta lännessä.
      ellauri284.html on line 497: Brittiläinen satiirinen aikakauslehti Private Eye antoi hänelle lempinimen "Veririchi Lotsamoney Yogi Bear". Maharishilla oli aina kirjanpitäjä rinnallaan. Myöhemmin Lennon kertoi vaimolleen, että hänen mielestään tollaset Maharishit ovat hänen sanojensa mukaan "liian kiinnostuneita julkisesta tunnustuksesta, julkkiksista ja rahasta" henkiselle miehelle. Maharishi halusi yhtyeen tallettavan jopa 25 prosenttia Sgt Pepper albumin tuotoista hänen sveitsiläiselle pankkitilille kymmenyksinä, johon Lennon vastasi: "Kuolleen ruumiini yli ".
      ellauri284.html on line 587: Tämä on m3m-tarina, joka kuuluu Pankaj Bansalille. Vaikka se on suhteellisen uusi, mutta se on saavuttanut suuren menestyksen vain kaksi vuotta sen julkaisusta. M3M on tehnyt Intian markkinat erittäin tyytyväisiksi kaikenlaisilla uusilla ominaisuuksilla ja erityisesti laadukkailla tuotteillaan. M3m-yrityksen erottaa muista yrityksistä se, että he ajattelevat aina ensin asiakkaitaan, sillä he tietävät, että asiakastyytyväisyys on erittäin tärkeää liiketoiminnan kasvulle. Pankaj Bansal on onnistunut viemään yrityksensä nimen korkealle kaikkialla lyhyessä ajassa. Itse asiassa vielä nyt kahden vuoden jälkeen hän ei tee kompromisseja laadustaan ​​ja hyvistä palveluistaan. Hän sanoo, että "tyytyväinen asiakas tulee uudestaan ​​ja ostaa sinulle tuotteen/palvelut". Voimme nähdä tämän asian m3m:n historiassa. Hyvin lyhyessä ajassa he ovat saaneet monia tyytyväisiä asiakkaita ja sen seurauksena rikastuneet aivan sikana.
      ellauri284.html on line 612: The Trumps began eyeing India around 2007, drawn to an emerging market of consumers beginning to find a taste for name-brand luxury. Now there are two Trump towers in the quiet city of Pune and a flashier one with a gold facade in Mumbai being built by millionaire developer Mangal Prabhat Lodha, a politician in the governing Bharatiya Janata Party. Trump’s eldest son, Donald Trump Jr., has made several trips to India, and Trump himself jetted in on a promotional tour in 2014, proclaiming India “an amazing country!”
      ellauri284.html on line 614: Real estate is one of the most corrupt businesses in India, which has the highest rate of bribery among Asia-Pacific countries recently surveyed by the anti-graft group Transparency International.
      ellauri284.html on line 619: Though the Trump Organization has declined to comment for this article, Alan Garten, the company’s general counsel, addressed questions earlier this year about some of the company’s other unorthodox business partners. He said that blemishes on their records are not “reflective of the portfolio as a whole” and that the organization conducts “due diligence” background checks.
      ellauri284.html on line 634: “There is a serious reason to believe that a substantial part of the funds in IREO are money that has been layered and laundered,” the report said.
      ellauri284.html on line 636: Investigators “basically wanted to know who our investors are. And we shared the list with them,” Goyal said. “They took two years to cross-check our list of investors and finally they said that ‘you are absolutely clean.’ ”
      ellauri284.html on line 660: In March, one of the Bansals’ employees was caught allegedly bribing a forest guard to illicitly cut more than 2,200 trees, in connection with a separate project, according to a police complaint that is still under investigation.
      ellauri284.html on line 712:
      yellow">

      ellauri284.html on line 732: Robertsin suunnittelemiin strategioihin, joilla pakotettiin boerien kommandot alistumaan, kuuluivat keskitysleirit ja maatilojen polttaminen. Olosuhteet keskitysleireillä, jotka Roberts piti muodoksi hallita perheitä, joiden maatilat hän oli tuhonnut, alkoivat rappeutua nopeasti, kun buurien suuri tulva ylitti pienen brittijoukon selviytymiskyvyn. Leireillä ei ollut tilaa, ruokaa, sanitaatiota, lääkkeitä ja sairaanhoitoa, mikä johti rehottavaan sairauteen ja erittäin korkeaan kuolleisuuteen niille, jotka saapuivat alueelle. Sodan loppuun mennessä 26 370 naista ja lasta (81 % oli lapsia) oli kuollut keskitysleireillä. Lyhyen ajan vuonna 1900 Roberts antoi myös armeijalle luvan käyttää siviilipanttivankeja junien suojelemiseksi buurien sissiyksiköiltä. Ei olisi kyllä kannattanut potkia Mahatma Gandhia junasta ratapenkalle. Se pahentui siitä briteille ikihyväxi.
      ellauri284.html on line 756:
      yellow;padding:1em">
      ellauri285.html on line 191: Linkolan vieras saa tulla töihin mukaan, ellei halua hölmöttää pirtissä yksinään. Tehdään kerran naapurin metsässä harvennushakkuuta, paperipuuta, kaarisahalla. Linkola onnistuu kaatamaan joka toisen puun konkeloksi. Niitä kiskotaan köydellä alas ja kirotaan. Ohjakset ovat lyhyet, eivät yllä kuorman taakse. Linkola kävelee sen vieressä ja yrittää joka kerta tunkeutua niin ahtaasta puiden raosta ettei mahdu itse mukaan vaan joutuu päästämään ohjat irti. Hevonen hätääntyy ja tempaisee. Kuorma, jonka sivupuiden Linkola kuvittelee kestävän alapään naulojen varassa, hajoaa. Voi ristuksen perkele tätä elämää! kaikuu metsässä Linkolan vilpittömän hämmästynyt karjaisu.
      ellauri285.html on line 267: Aloitan tämän luvun lyhyellä katsauksella elämän merkityksellisyyden tai merkityksen käsitteeseen osassa 2. Luvuissa 3–5 käsitellään kolmea johtavaa kertomustyyppiä siitä, mikä tekee elämästä Merkityksellisen: yliluonnollisuus, subjektivistinen naturismi ja objektivistinen naturismi. Osoittautuu, että että tärkeimmät jakokysymykset koskevat arvon roolia ja luonnetta. Yliluonnolliset ja objektivistiset naturistit uskovat, että sitoutuminen objektiiviseen arvoon on välttämätöntä merkitykselle elämässä, kun taas subjektivistit kieltävät tämän. Yliluonnolliset uskovat aika karkeasti, että Jumalan olemassaolo on tarpeen oikeanlaisen objektiivisen arvon ja oikeanlaisen suhteen kannalta, kun taas Objektivistiset naturistit kiistävät nämä väitteet. Objektivististen luonnontutkijoiden keskuudessa keskeiset keskustelut koskevat subjektiivisen sitoutumisen luonnetta johkin objektiiviseen arvoon (esim raha) sekä erityisesti millainen objektiivinen arvo tarvitaan merkityksellisyyteen.
      ellauri285.html on line 347: Mary Robinson (née Darby; 27 November 1757 – 26 December 1800) was an English actress, poet, dramatist, novelist, and celebrity figure. She lived in England, in the cities of Bristol and London; she also lived in France and Germany for a time. She enjoyed poetry from the age of seven and started working, first as a teacher and then as actress, from the age of fourteen. She wrote many plays, poems and novels. She was a celebrity, gossiped about in newspapers, famous for her acting and writing. During her lifetime she was known as "the English Sappho". She earned her nickname "Perdita" for her role as Perdita (heroine of Shakespeare's The Winter's Tale) in 1779. She was the first public mistress of King George IV while he was still Prince of Wales.
      ellauri285.html on line 375: Sometimes the eyes to cover ; Joskus silmän päälle asti;
      ellauri285.html on line 667: La même année, il part à Cuba puis suit Che Guevara en Bolivie. Il théorise sa participation à la guérilla de l'ELN dans Révolution dans la révolution (1967) où il développe la théorie du foquisme de « foco » (foyer en espagnol) : la multiplication de foyers de guérilla. Ion Pacepa, ancien général des services secrets roumains, dit qu'alors le « terroriste français Régis Debray était un agent hautement prisé du KGB ». Il use alors du pseudonyme de « Danton »
      ellauri285.html on line 684: "La médiologie s´intéresse à tous les moyens, à tous les véhicules par lesquels nous avons accès, à l´histoire, au sens. Ça n´a rien à voir avec les médias de masse dont je ne connais rien."
      ellauri285.html on line 696: Mitterrand palkizi pyllynnuolijansa liipalaapan diplomaattiposteilla, joissa sooloiltuaan Reggie joutui disponibiliteettiin kuin Heikki Brotherus. Mitterrand syntyi vuonna 1916 Jarnacin kunnassa Charenten departementissa läntisessä Ranskassa. Hän kasvoi konservatiivisessa ja katolisessa porvariperheessä, ja uskonnollista yksityiskoulua käyneen Mitterrandin ajatusmaailma oli 1930-luvulla oikeistolainen sekä nationalistinen. Hänen poliittinen uransa alkoikin liittymisellä äärinationalistiseen Croix de Feu -ryhmään. Hän myös kirjoitti L´Écho de Paris -sanomalehteen, joka vastusti istuvaa Léon Blumin vasemmistohallitusta. Sodan aikana hän työskenteli Vichyn hallituksen alaisuudessa. Myöhemmin hän toimi Ranskan vastarintaliikkeessä pitäen samaan aikaan virkaa saksalaismyönteisessä hallituksessa. Toisen maailmansodan jälkeen Mitterrand käänsi kelkkaa vähän liittyen keskustavasemmistolaiseen UDSR-puolueeseen Hän ohjasi puoluettaan vehen viele vasemmalle pitäen kuitenkin selvän pesäeron kommunisteihin.
      ellauri285.html on line 759: Fredrickson wrote a response in which she conceded that the mathematical aspects of the critical positivity ratio were "questionable" and that she had "neither the expertise nor the insight" to defend them, but she maintained that the empirical evidence for the existence of a critical positivity ratio was solid. Brown, Sokal, and Friedman, the rebuttal authors, published their response to Fredrickson´s "Update" the next year, maintaining that there was no evidence for a critical positivity ratio. Losada declined to respond to the criticism (indicating to the Chronicle of Higher Education that he was too busy running his consulting business).[verification needed] Hämäläinen and colleagues responded later, passing over the Brown-Sokal-Friedman rebuttal claim of failed criteria for use of differential equations in modeling, instead arguing that there were no fundamental errors in the mathematics itself, only problems related to the model´s justification and interpretation.
      ellauri285.html on line 761: A formal retraction for the mathematical modeling elements of the Losada and Fredrickson (2005) paper was issued by the journal, American Psychologist, concluding that both the specific critical positivity ratio of 2.9013 and its upper limit were invalid. The fact that the problems with the paper went unnoticed for years despite the widespread adulatory publicity surrounding the critical positivity ratio concept contributed to a perception of social psychology as a field lacking scientific soundness and rigorous critical thinking. Sokal later stated, "The main claim made by Fredrickson and Losada is so implausible on its face that some red flags ought to have been raised", as would only happen broadly in graduate student Brown´s initiating the collaboration that resulted in the Brown-Sokal-Friedman rebuttal.
      ellauri285.html on line 779: The original rebuttal authors conclude this salvo by lamenting that the "unbridled romanticism" of which humanist psychology has been accused has not been replaced with a rigorous evidence-based psychology—as Seligman and Csikszentmihalyi promised in their founding manifesto of positive psychology—rather, the widespread acceptance of the critical positivity ratio shows that positive psychology has betrayed this promise, stating that "the sin is now romantic scientism rather than pure romanticism is not, in our view, a great advance."
      ellauri288.html on line 83: Sekä Suomessa että Virossa 1930-luku oli äärioikeiston juhlaa, ja varsinkin Virossa sen ajan vallanpitäjät olivat presidentti Konstantin Pätsin johdolla sangen viehättyneitä fasistisesta vallankäyttömallista. Natseja he eivät ilmeisesti olleet, mutta toisen maailmansodan melskeissä he olivat liitossa natsien kanssa. Puna-armeija syöksi nämä voimat vallasta, ja monet sen ajan vallanpitäjät lähtivät maanpakoon (jos olisin ollut maan hallinnossa saksalaisvallan aikaan, minäkin olisin lähtenyt). Ulkomailta käsin virolaiset lähtijät liittoutuivat kylmässä sodassa USA:n puolelle, ja heihin kuului myös Etelä-Virossa suuria maa-alueita omistanut Ilveksen suku. Nykyinen Viron presidentti Toomas Hendrik Ilves oli CIA:n hallitseman kylmän sodan aikaisen Radio Free Europen propagandatykki. Tästä entisestä sangen arrogantista meppikollegastani, joka oli paluumuuttaja ja jolle palautettiin suvun maat, sanon kuin Sofi Oksasen kuvaamistaan suomettuneen Suomen suhteista Venäjään: Viron presidenttinä hän ei ole kyennyt luomaan uutta kieltä ja termistöä Venäjään liittyvälle julkiselle puheelle. Hän on Amerikan agentti eivätkä hänen neuvopäästönsä vastaa Suomen olosuhteita ja kansallista etua. Suomessa media pitää huolen siitä, että sekä Venäjä että sen presidentti (suomensukuinen Tverin karjalainen?) Vladimir Putin on saatanallistettu siinä hengessä, että pukkaa taas uutta sotaa. Ilman median luomaa Venäjä-vastaista kansallista mielipideilmastoa eivät Suomen Nato-haukat voi viedä maatamme sotaan ja mukaan vieraiden valtojen sotiin.
      ellauri288.html on line 461: Tuglas-seuralla on Kaplinskista paljon lisäinfoa. Pidemmän ajan kuluessa kirjoitettuja pidempiä ja vakavampia esseitä kuten Usk on uskumatus (Usko on uskomattomuus 1998) ei suomennettu, ei liioin kevyempiä lehdissä ilmestyneitä kolumneja kuten Kajakas võltsmunal (Lokki valemunalla) 2000. Omaelämäkerrallinen lyhytproosakokoelma Kust tuli öö (Kusta tuli yöllä,1990) jäi sekin suomentamatta.
      ellauri288.html on line 523: Kuva vuotuisen ulkonäkö keisari hänen kuolemansa jälkeen tuli legendaarinen ja näkyy paitsi zedlitz, mutta myös Heinrich Heine, joka, kuten Goethe oli fani kaikkivoipa diktaattori. Palattuaan Ranskassa lyhyen aikaa, loistava ilmalaiva, jolle ei ole miehistöä. Kuitenkin se on varustettu valurautainen aseet ja valmiina valloittamaan maailmaa. Ilmalaiva Lermontov merkit kilpa täysissä purjeissa sininen aaltoja, ottaa vain yhden yön keisari.
      ellauri290.html on line 154: 1. KORKEAN LUOKAN MAATasainen tai kevyesti aaltoileva, hedelmällinen maaperä ja riittävä vesi.Intensiivinen sitrushedelmien, rehun ja vihannesten viljely296 000
      ellauri290.html on line 594: New Yorkin arabitietokeskuksen tutkimusosaston suorittamassa yksityiskohtaisessa tutkimuksessa näistä laeista tohtori Fayez Sayegh tiivisti näiden lakien määräykset seuraavasti: Ensimmäinen virallinen Israelin julkilausuma miehitettyä arabiomaisuutta koskevasta politiikasta sisältyi "Hylättyihin". Areas Ordinance, 5708 - 1948”, joka julkaistiin 30. kesäkuuta 1948, mutta jonka 4 artiklan mukaan julistettiin ”voimaan takautuvasti 16. toukokuuta 1948 alkaen.* Tämän lain mukaan Israelin hallitus valtuutettiin julistaa "hylätyksi alueeksi" minkä tahansa alueen tai paikan, jonka:

      ellauri290.html on line 856: Juutalaisten maahanmuuttajien ja maanostojen lisääntyminen, joita brittiläinen mandaatti ei kiistänyt, vihastutti ja radikalisoi monia arabeja. Huhtikuussa 1936 arabit hyökkäsivät juutalaisen bussin kimppuun, mikä johti sarjaan välikohtauksia, jotka laajenivat suureksi arabikapinaksi. Britit yllättyivät eivätkä kyenneet estämään tuhansien arabien ja satojen juutalaisten kuolemaa kapinassa. Haganah suojeli Yishuvien siirtokuntia, kun taas Irgun, radikaalimpi ryhmä, hyökkäsi arabien siirtokuntia vastaan. Äskettäin perustettujen arabipoliittisten puolueiden koalitio muodosti arabien korkeamman komitean (AHC). Se julisti kansallisen lakon kolmen perusvaatimuksen tueksi: juutalaisten maahanmuuton lopettaminen, kaiken lisämaan myynnin lopettaminen juutalaisille ja arabien kansallisen hallituksen perustaminen. Arabit uhkasivat, että jos britit eivät noudata heidän vaatimuksiaan, he liittyisivät brittien vastustajiin. Tämä koski britteihin, sillä toinen maailmansota oli vasta alkamassa ja he tiesivät tarvitsevansa Lähi-idän öljyä.
      ellauri294.html on line 318: Kuitenkin Tanak-pohjaisen yeshiva-koulun matematiikan opiskelija - okei, poikani Joey - ehdotti toista uskottavaa luettavaa: koach Trump - Trumpin voima - on myös yhteensä 358. Se on myös Suomen kaukopuheluiden suuntanumero. Suomalaiset tunnetusti haravoivat mezänsä.
      ellauri294.html on line 347: Ovidiuxen hurskaat vanhuxet, varmaan 70:set, jotka antoi aamiaismajoitusta Asterixin ja Oblelixin näköisille Hermexelle ja Zeulle. Kyllä kannatti sillä loput muumit pyyhki kostava tuhotulva mennessään. Tarinan syntysijoilla asustaneet Lystran roomalaismamut luuli massiivista Barbapapaa Juppiterixi ja pientä vääräsäärtä Paavalia Mercuriuxexi. Se ilo loppui lyhyeen, sillä saatuaan kaverien papereista selvän lykaonilaiset kivittivät ne. Paavali selvisi pelkillä naarmuilla. Fryxejä haukuttiin orjixi ja lykaonilaisia rosvoixi. Paavali käytti diplomaattisempaa nimitystä galatalaiset.
      ellauri294.html on line 531: Amos ja Copper tunkeutuvat suojelualueelle ja metsästävät Todia ja Vixeya. Takaa-ajo huipentuu, kun ne vahingossa provosoivat jättimäisen karhun hyökkäyksen. Amos kompastuu ja putoaa yhteen omista ansoistaan ja pudottaa kiväärinsä hieman ulottumattomiin. Kupari taistelee kiivaasti karhua vastaan, mutta se melkein tappaa hänet. Tod tulee pelastamaan häntä ja taistelee sitä vastaan, kunnes molemmat putoavat vesiputouksesta. Kun Copper lähestyy Todia, kun tämä makaa haavoittuneena alla olevassa järvessä, Amos ilmestyy valmiina ampumaan hänet. Kupari asettuu hänen eteensä estääkseen Amosta tekemästä niin, kieltäytyen siirtymästä pois. Amos ymmärtää, että Tod oli pelastanut heidän henkensä, laskee kiväärinsä ja lähtee Copperin kanssa. Tod ja Copper sovittavat ystävyytensä ja jakavat viimeisen hymyn kristillisesti puokkiin kuin Rasilaiset perunan ennen eroa. Kotona Tweed hoitaa Amosia takaisin terveeksi, suurella nöyryytyksellä. Kun hän makuulle ottaa päiväunet, Copper hymyilee muistaessaan päivän, jolloin hän tapasi Todin ensimmäisen kerran. Samalla hetkellä Vixey yhtyy Todin kanssa kukkulan laella, kun he molemmat katsovat alas Amosin ja Tweedin koteihin. Sielläkin näkyy jo liha liikkuvan...
      ellauri294.html on line 566: Tod on punainen (kommunisti)kettu, jonka yksi hänen äitinsä ja pentuekaverinsa tappaneista ihmismetsästäjistä kasvatti lemmikiksi. Tod nauttii aluksi elämästään, mutta saavuttaessaan sukukypsyyden hän palaa luontoon. Ensimmäisen vuoden aikana hän alkaa rakentaa aluettaan ja oppii kiertotekniikoita paikallisten maatilan koirien metsästyksestä. Eräänä päivänä hän törmää Mestarin taloon ja huomaa, että hänen läsnäolonsa saa ketjutetun koiralauman turhautuneeseen kiihkoon. Hän alkaa iloitsemaan heidän pilkkaamisestaan, kunnes eräänä päivänä päällikkö katkaisee ketjunsa ja jahtaa häntä. Mestari näkee koiran pakenevan ja seuraa kuparia. Päällikön jäljittäessä taitavasti kettua, Tod pakenee rautatietä pitkin junan lähestyessä odottaen hyppäämistä turvaan viime hetkeen asti. Päällikkö kuolee junassa.
      ellauri294.html on line 578: Mannix käsittelee tätä tutkimusta romaanin jälkikirjoituksessa. Puolustaakseen romaaniaan epätodennäköisyyssyytöksiltä hän kertoo havaintojaan villiketuista ja keskustelee muiden ihmisten tarinoista ketun käyttäytymisestä. Mitä tulee toimiin, joita Tod tekee pakottaessaan aktiin metsästyskoiria, hän kertoo sekä näkemästä villikettuja suorittamassa tällaisia tekoja, että muiden hänelle kertomia tarinoita, joita hän käytti joidenkin tarinan tapahtumien perustana. Hän esimerkiksi huomauttaa, että vaikka ihmiset ovat kertoneet hänelle, että ketut eivät todellakaan juokse lammas- tai karjalaumojen seassa jahtaamassa koirakoiria, hän itse katsoi heidän tekevän sitä makuuhuoneensa ikkunasta. Jos kettu juoksi junan raiteita pitkin junan lähestyessä, Mannix käytti tarinaa, jonka eräs metsästysmestari kertoi hänelle Whitford Salesin alueella – lähellä Thorndalea, Pennsylvaniassa.-jonka joutui lopettamaan metsästyksen alueella ketun takia, joka jatkuvasti tappoi takaa-ajokoiria Trentonin rajalla tällä menetelmällä.
      ellauri294.html on line 601: Belstone Fox on lempinimi, joka on annettu Tagille, metsästä pelastamalle ketunpennulle, jonka metsästäjä Asher adoptoi. Nuorta kettua kasvatetaan vankeudessa koiranpentujen kanssa, mukaan lukien Merlin, jonka kanssa Tag tulee "erityisen ystävälliseksi". Asher ja Tod ovat kiehtoneet Tagista, joka yhdistää viileän oveluuden ja tietämyksen ihmisasumisesta johtaakseen laumaa ja metsästäjiä moniin "hyviin jahtiin". Tämä antaa ketulle paikallisen julkkiksen aseman, joka riittää julkaistavaksi aikakauslehdissä. Merlin, joka ei aluksi ollut kiinnostunut metsästyksistä, tulee sexuaalisesti aktiiviseksi koiraksi, mutta suojelee Tagia. Asher, nyt metsästysseuran ikääntyvä metsästäjä, suojeli kevyesti kettua, kunnes Tag johdattaa koiralauman junan polulle tappaen monia ja seura päättää ampua ketun. Asher näkee tämän häiritsevänä ja elämän luonnollisen järjestyksen vastaisena, ja päättää kaataa ketun hyväksytyllä tavalla myrkyllä ja ansioilla, eikä ampuma-aseella, mutta hän kuitenkin kuolee äkilliseen sydänkohtaukseen yrittäessään tehdä tekoa. Hänen kerran rakas kettu ja sen ystävä Merlin istuvat lämmittelemään isäntänsä viereen, kunnes pelastusseurue saapuu hilpeästi hälisten.
      ellauri297.html on line 34: yen-vinh-8259923-2-edited.jpg?w=448&h=716" width="100%" />
      ellauri297.html on line 46: So the next time someone asks, “whose hungry,” and the group all responds extatically, “I AM!!” Have the bravery to gasp audibly and retort, “It must have been a popular name that year!” --- Daniel L. Bacon, bringing home the bacon to Cavanagrow, Northern Ireland. Experience:
      ellauri297.html on line 71: Kultainen Hollywoodin standardi – julkkiksen lonkat pyrkivät äärettömyyteen ja sen yli. Silti lyhyempi vartalo kauniilla kaarevilla on ikuisesti tunnettu; perse. Hyvä perse saa jokaisen libidoon.
      ellauri297.html on line 74: Teknologioiden kehittyessä, erityisesti AI (tekoäly), koneoppiminen ja DeepFaceLab-projekti, joka auttaa luomaan Lygia Fazio -deepfakeja, jotta voit nauttia aidolta näyttävistä valeseksikohtauksista suosikkijulkkiksesi kanssa. Nauti siitä ilmaiseksi SexCelebrityssä, Luoja siunatkoon sinua!
      ellauri297.html on line 341: ja hän vastaa: 'Ooh, minun Jumalani, yes, yes, OMG'."
      ellauri297.html on line 370: yeshivaworld.com/wp-content/uploads/2014/06/cc.png" />
      ellauri297.html on line 376: Born in Poland in 1903, Imich underwent his schooling there, including earning a Ph.D. in chemistry 1927. He survived two World Wars, the Holocaust and two years in a Russian labor camp near the White Sea, before surviving another lifetime in the U.S. with his wife, Wela. She passed away in 1986.
      ellauri297.html on line 378: A 30-year-old rabbi helped Imich wrap tefillin. He had lost his hearing aids at the hospital, which made communicating difficult; nevertheless, the two men connected the tefillin ok. Imich had not put on tefillin since his Bar Mitzvah—nearly 100 years ago—in Czestochowa, Poland.
      ellauri297.html on line 486: Kun Jeesus perusti uudelleen Jumalan kansan ( am ), se oli ihmisten yhteisö, joka teki juuri tätä. He tekivät samaa ja suurempaakin työtä, paremmalla palkalla. Jeesuksen oman arvion mukaan työtä ihmisten yhteyden palauttamiseksi Jumalan ja toistensa kanssa, mitä Jeesus kykeni saamaan aikaan lyhyenä aikanamme (predikaatti puuttuu). Aloimme epäonnistua tässä näkemyksessämme, kun instituutioimme Jumalan kansan ja symbioottiset organisaatiot kasvoivat ja ottivat vallan kirkon muodossa. Vaihdoimme ihmisen kukoistukseen johtavan suoran sielujen välisen kommunikoinnin epäsuoraan kukoistukseen. Ajattelimme, että jos kukoistaminen on kaiken suora pääte, niin ihmisille ei tarvitse kommunikoida, heidän täytyy nähdä ja kuulla ja puhua ja syödä ja kukoistaa kaikin mahdollisin tavoin ja mahdollisimman tehokkaasti. Tämä johti siihen, että toissijainen käyttöliittymä välitti "istu alas, ole hiljaa ja kuuntele Raamatun kertomustasi ja asettu sitten jonoon ja ota muru ja istu alas, Ruhama näyttää olevan vapaana."
      ellauri297.html on line 660: Myönteinen sielutiede on tieteellinen tutkimus siitä, mikä tekee elämästä elämisen arvoisimman, keskittyen sekä yksilölliseen että yhteiskunnalliseen hyvinvointiin. Myönteinen sielutiede alkoi uutena psykologian alana vuonna 1998, kun Martin Seligman valitsi sen teemaksi hänen toimikautensa American Psychological Associationin puheenjohtajana. Se on reaktio menneitä käytäntöjä vastaan, jotka ovat yleensä keskittyneet mielenterveysongelmiin ja kannustaneet sopeutumatonta käyttäytymistä ja negatiivista ajattelua. Se perustuu Abraham Maslowin, Rollo Mayn, Dean Martinin ja Carl Rogersin humanistiseen liikkeeseen, joka kannustaa korostamaan onnellisuutta ja hyvinvointia,ja positiivisuutta, mikä luo perustan myönteisellä sielutieteelle.
      ellauri299.html on line 77: Toisen lunastamani (1€) pulp-fiktion nimi on The Street Lawyer. Pultavan kaduilla on rupusakkia, New Yorkin herrahississä yhtä pahanhajuista riffraffia.
      ellauri299.html on line 93: In 2011 the Journalists Dan Margalit, Ronen Bergman published a book, in which they claimed that Israel's Shayetet 13 unit, was responsible for the bombing of the Sol Phryne. And that Israel's Minister of Education Yoav Galant was the commander of the operation. The mockies of course deny everything.
      ellauri299.html on line 117: Kirjassa on täysin normaaleja ihmisiä, jotka joutuvat kodittomaksi, koska heillä on huonoa onnea. Kummallista kyllä, asunnottomuuden ensisijaisia lähteitä ei mainita: huumeita ja mielisairautta. (Paizi mainitaan koko ajan, Brian et osaa lukea.) Ei, The Street Lawyerin mukaan kodittomuuden ongelma johtuu maamme itsekkäästä hyvinvoinnista.Tarinan harhaan johdetun saarnaamisen lisäksi se on myös melko tylsää.
      ellauri299.html on line 126: Seth: Jos minun pitäisi kuvailla "The Street Lawyeria" yhdellä sanalla, valitsisin sanan propagandaksi. Se kertoo tarinan juppijuristista nimeltä Michael Brock, joka järjestää elämänsä prioriteetit uudelleen sen jälkeen, kun koditon mies on pitänyt hänet panttivankina iltapäivän ajan. Hän eroaa korkeapalkkaisesta työstään, vaikka hän on vain parin vuoden päästä kumppanin hankkimisesta - ja menee töihin ilmaiselle oikeusklinikalle, joka auttaa kodittomia. Hän uskoo vanhan yrityksensä olevan osittain vastuussa kodittoman perheen kuolemasta, joten hän tekee rikoksen matkalla ulos ovesta, joka auttaa häntä selvittämään asian. Ja niinpä kirjan loppuosassa hän yrittää saada vanhan yrityksensä ennen kuin he saavat hänet. Se ei todellakaan ollut jännittävä matka. Luulen, että Grisham halusi vain kirjoittaa kirjan kodittomista ihmisistä. Konfliktin ratkaisu on, että he sopivat tuomioistuimen ulkopuolella. Vau! Mikä huipentuma! Ei yhtään autojahteja! Ei aseita, ei murhia! Vitun haukotuttavaa.
      ellauri299.html on line 142: E: Jumalauta tämä oli kauheaa. Kirjoitus on hyvä. Mutta se kertoo komeasta valkoisesta miesjuristista, joka huomaa, että elämässä on muutakin kuin raha ja viehättävä, menestyvä vaimo. Hän huomaa, että jotkut ihmiset ovat kodittomia, hänestä tulee monien köyhien pelastaja ja hän saa henkilökohtaisesti siivouksen ja tapaa uuden tyttöystävän matkan varrella. Mielenkiintoista tietoa asuntolainsäädännöstä (varsinkin jenkkivuokraisäntien lainkierrosta ja lakifirmojen konnailusta norminpurkumielessä siihen liittyen) matkan varrella, mutta koko tämä yksiulotteinen pelastajakompleksi on peruuttamaton.
      ellauri299.html on line 173: Shelters are key components of America’s response to homelessness. The unsheltered population has grown yearly since 2015, amounting to a 35 percent increase over a seven-year span. In 2020, The number of people living in poverty in The U.S. of A. increased by approximately 3.3 million people. This trend continued into 2021 when nearly 41.4 million people, or 12.8 percent of the U.S. population, were counted in this group. Certain racial groups have even higher rates of poverty, including Black people (21.8 percent), American Indian and Alaska Native people (21.4 percent), and Hispanics/Latinos (17.5 percent). People living in poverty struggle to afford necessities such as housing, food, and medical care.
      ellauri299.html on line 175: For over a decade, the nation has not made any real progress in reducing the number of Americans at risk of literal homelessness. Despite decreasing trends in people living doubled up overall, the rise in severe housing cost numbers are concerning. Even more troubling are the risks that inflation rising to a 40-year high in 2022, expiring eviction moratoria, and fading Emergency Rental Assistance dollars pose to those at risk of experiencing homelessness.
      ellauri299.html on line 234: Apinan apina-arvo mitataan rahaläjällä jonka se ehtii koota pepun alle ennen kuolemaa. Siihen liittyen, tosi hienoa että Titanicin ruumiita kumilaulailemaan menneet miljonäärit sai ansionsa mukaan. Törkymeediat antoi niille enemmän palstatilaa kuin 700 köyhän pakin säälittävälle hukkumiselle matuveneen haaxirikossa.
      ellauri299.html on line 337: HUAC kutsui Rubinin kuulusteltavaxi Washingtoniin, mutta sen sijaan, että hän olisi vedonnut viidenteen lisäykseen, kuten oli tavallista, hän astui huoneeseen pukeutuneena vuokrattuun 1700-luvun Amerikan vapaussota-univormuun ja väitti ylpeänä olevansa Jeffersonin ja Painen jälkeläinen. "Mikään ei ole amerikkalaisempaa kuin vallankumous", hän sanoi komitealle. Rubin, joka osoitti täydellistä huolimattomuutta tai huolen puutetta, puhalsi kevyesti saippuakuplia kongressin jäsenten kyseenalaistaessa hänen kommunistisen sidonnaisuutensa. Myöhemmin hän esiintyi HUAC:n edessä paljasrintaisena sissinä Viet Cong -pyjamassa, sotamaalilla ja lelu M-16 -kiväärillä, ja myöhemmin joulupukkina.
      ellauri299.html on line 350: Sieltä ryhmä marssi kohti Pentagonia. Mielenosoittajien lähestyessä Pentagonia 82. ilmadivisioonan sotilaat kohtasivat heidät, jotka muodostivat ihmisbarrikadin, joka esti Pentagonin portaat. Ei lannistuta, Abbie Hoffman, yksi Yippiesin perustajista, vannoi levitoivansa kohti Pentagonia samalla kun Allen Ginsberg johti tiibetiläisiä lauluja auttamaan. Lopulta asiat muuttuivat rumaksi. Siihen mennessä, kun ryhmän 48 tunnin lupa päättyi, noin 680 mielenosoittajaa oli vangittu ja 50 sairaalahoidossa:
      ellauri299.html on line 362: Patti laittaa yhtä rumasuisesti Vietnamin sodan vastustajia kuin puolalainen nobelisti Milosz maanmiehiä. Siniristilipun kanssa marssivat kansalliset ylioppilaat saa kiitosta. Patti peukuttaa sotaa koska siinä tulee väpelönkin elämästä merkityxellistä. Sota ja romaani, ainoat transkendenssit! Harmi että Väpi ehti jo kirjoittaa Sotaromaanin. Hyvä oli että Patin lento jäi lyhyexi kuin kanalta.
      ellauri299.html on line 508: Cowley ja Russell olivat väärässä. Ikuisen elämän lisäxi pitää muistaa erixeen pyytää ikuista nuoruutta ettei käy kuin Sibyllalle. T. S. Eliot Jätemaa intro: Nam Sibyllam quidem Cumis ego ipse oculis meis vidi in ampulla pendere, et cum illi pueri dicerent: Sibylla ti theleis; respondebat illa: apothanein thelo. [I have seen with my own eyes the Sibyl hanging in a jar, and when the boys asked her " What do you want? " She answered, " I want to die. "] —Petronius, Satyricon
      ellauri299.html on line 530: Matthew Desmond, the acclaimed Princeton sociologist and author of Evicted: Poverty and Profit in the American City, thinks that poverty has barely improved in the United States over the past 50 years — and he has a theory why. Laid out in a long essay for the New York Times Magazine that is adapted from his forthcoming book Poverty, by America, Desmond’s theory implicates “exploitation” in the broadest sense, from a decline in unions and worker power to a proliferation of bank fees and predatory landlord practices, all of which combine to keep the American underclass down. Relative poverty in the US has stagnated in the last 40 years.
      ellauri299.html on line 536: Income and wealth inequality bears significantly on poverty. Economist Jared Bernstein and Elise Gould of the Economic Policy Institute suggest that poverty could have decreased significantly if inequality had not increased over the last few decades. Economist Larry Summers estimated that at 1979 levels of income inequality, the bottom 80% of families would have an average of $11,000 more per year in income in 2014.
      ellauri299.html on line 552: One coping mechanism is called boundary work, which happens when one group of people valorize their own social position by comparing themselves to another group, who they perceive to be still inferior in some way. For example, Newman (1999) found that fast food workers in New York City cope with the low-status nature of their job by comparing themselves to the unemployed, who they perceive to be even lower-status than themselves.
      ellauri299.html on line 580: Drake & Sweeneyn pääkumppani, joka on "syvästi huolissaan tapahtumista" (peeär-katastrofista), tarjoaa koko henkilökuntansa pro bono -työhön auttamaan klinikkaa taistelemaan kodittomien oikeuksien puolesta. Kirja päättyy siihen, että Brock viettää lyhyen loman Meganin ja Rubyn kanssa, ja he pohtivat elämäänsä.
      ellauri300.html on line 327: In 2018, Marcin Wodziński estimated that the Chabad movement accounted for 13% of the global Hasidic population. The total number of Chabad households is estimated to be between 16,000 and 17,000. The number of those who sporadically or regularly attend Chabad events is far larger; in 2005 the Jerusalem Center for Public Affairs reported that up to one million Jews attend Chabad services at least once a year. In a 2020 study, the Pew Research Center found that 16% of American Jews attend Chabad services regularly or semi-regularly.
      ellauri300.html on line 444: Bye, bye Miss American Pie
      ellauri300.html on line 446: And them good ole boys were drinking whiskey and rye
      ellauri300.html on line 468: Bye, bye Miss American Pie
      ellauri300.html on line 470: And them good ole boys were drinking whiskey and rye
      ellauri300.html on line 474: Now, for ten years we've been on our own
      ellauri300.html on line 493: Bye, bye Miss American Pie
      ellauri300.html on line 495: Them good ole boys were drinking whiskey and rye
      ellauri300.html on line 504: The players tried for a forward pass
      ellauri300.html on line 508: While sergeants played a marching tune
      ellauri300.html on line 512: 'Cause the players tried to take the field
      ellauri300.html on line 518: Bye, bye Miss American Pie
      ellauri300.html on line 520: Them good ole boys were drinking whiskey and rye
      ellauri300.html on line 543: Bye, bye Miss American Pie
      ellauri300.html on line 545: Them good ole boys were drinking whiskey and rye
      ellauri300.html on line 554: Where I'd heard the music years before
      ellauri300.html on line 568: Bye, bye Miss American Pie
      ellauri300.html on line 570: And them good ole boys were drinking whiskey and rye
      ellauri300.html on line 575: Bye, bye Miss American Pie
      ellauri300.html on line 577: Them good ole boys were drinking whiskey and rye
      ellauri300.html on line 589: In October 2022, McLean called Kanye West an 'attention-seeking fool' over his antisemitic rants. The "American Pie" singer who briefly lived in Israel said he stands with his Jewish friends. McLean lived in Israel on-and-off from 1978-1982 and he “grew to love the country and the people. Living there changed my life forever.”
      ellauri300.html on line 591: McLean was raised in the Catholic faith of his mother, Elizabeth McLean; his father, Donald McLean, was a Protestant. His father died when McLean was 15. McLean grew up in a physically abusive household, and was abused by both his parents and his sister. His second marriage was to Patrisha Shnier McLean, of Montreal, Canada, from 1987 to 2016. They have two children, Jackie and Wyatt, and two grandchildren, Rosa and Mya. In 2018, McLean confirmed his romantic relationship with model and reality star Paris Dylan, who is 48 years his junior. McLean sang a duet of his song "Vincent" with Ed Sheeran.
      ellauri300.html on line 593: On January 18, 2016, McLean's then-wife Patrisha Shnier McLean alleged that after four hours of "terrorizing" her, McLean pinned her to a bed until she broke free and ran to the bathroom. Shnier McLean alleged that McLean attempted "to shove open the locked bathroom door behind which I had barricaded myself. As it was splintering, I pushed the numbers 911." McLean was arrested on suspicion of domestic violence, and pled guilty to domestic violence assault, criminal restraint, criminal mischief and making domestic violence threats. McLean paid $3,660 in fines, and was not sentenced to any jail time. Under Maine's deferred disposition law, the State agreed to dismiss the domestic violence assault charge if McLean complied with the court's orders for one year, and the charge was expunged a year later. During this time, Shnier McLean filed for divorce, citing “adultery, cruel and abusive treatment, and irreconcilable differences." McLean has denied that he physically abused Shnier McLean, and his lawyer released a statement claiming McLean agreed to the plea deal in the interest of privacy. In March 2017, a Maine court granted Shnier-McLean's request for a 10-year protection order against McLean. In 2021, McLean's daughter Jackie told Rolling Stone that her father was emotionally abusive and created a cult-like household through paralyzing verbal attacks, forced isolation, and threats to withhold love or financial support.
      ellauri300.html on line 799: Salomon ben Isaac tai Shlomo Jitzhaki (hepr. ‏ שלמה יצחקי‎), tunnetaan paremmin nimelläpp Rashi (hepr. ‏רש"י‎, lyhenne sanoista RAbbi SHlomo Itzhaki; s. 22. helmikuuta 1040 Troyes, k. 13. heinäkuuta 1105 Troyes), oli ranskalainen rabbi. Häntä pidetään Talmudin ja Tanakin merkittävimpänä kommentoijana, ja hänen vaikutuksensa on säilynyt Talmudin ja Tanakhin tulkinnassa kuten myös hepreankielisessä kirjallisuudessa nykyaikaan asti.
      ellauri300.html on line 831: We hope you enjoyed this article. Today is Giving Tuesday, an international day of giving, and we are asking our readers to support our ministry.
      ellauri300.html on line 846: They took the bull that was brought to them, prepared it, and prayed to Baal until noon. They shouted, “Answer us, Baal!” and kept dancing around the altar they had built. But no answer came.
      ellauri300.html on line 847: At noon Elijah started making fun of them: “Pray louder! He is a god! Maybe he is day-dreaming or relieving himself, or perhaps he's gone off on a trip! Or maybe he's sleeping, and you've got to wake him up!” 28 So the prophets prayed louder and cut themselves with knives and daggers, according to their ritual, until blood flowed. 29 They kept on ranting and raving until the middle of the afternoon; but no answer came, not a sound was heard.
      ellauri300.html on line 849: At the hour of the afternoon sacrifice the prophet Elijah approached the altar and prayed, “O Lord, the God of Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob, prove now that you are the God of Israel and that I am your servant and have done all this at your command.
      ellauri300.html on line 860: Siksi Raamatun opetuspalvelut, pastorit, opettajat ja muut Sanan palvelukseen osallistuvat uskovat voivat odottaa vittuilua ja muuta vastustusta. Se yksinkertaisesti kuuluu toimenkuvaan. Tämä käy selvästi ilmi tästä lyhyestä kohdasta, joka on edessämme. Itse asiassa tämä on yksi näiden muutamien jakeiden tärkeimmistä opetuksista. Tämä oli totta Mooses tilanne Elian ja kaikkien profeettojen kohdalla. Voimme odottaa hyökkäystä maailmalta, joka on Saatanan hallinnassa. Mutta eikö ole surullista, kun hyökkäys tulee itse Jumalan kansalta? Viattomilta pikkupojilta? Valitettavasti Saatana pystyy käyttämään Jumalan omaa kansaa estääkseen Sanan, kuten hän teki Israelin lasten kanssa useaan otteeseen. Nuo pojat olivat pahojen henkien vallassa kuin siat Kenneretin järvellä. Manaamisen asema katolisessa kirkossa vahvistuu, kun eksorkistit eli pahojen henkien manaajat saavat järjestölleen virallisen tunnustuksen Vatikaanista.
      ellauri300.html on line 907: Jumala ei ota sitä kevyesti, kun jätämme huomiotta Hänen Sanansa tai tekemällä hänestä pilaa estämme sen leviämistä maailmassa Hänen kansansa keskuudessa. Tämä on vakavaa bisnestä (vrt.1 Kor 3:16-1710:n kanssa; 11:30)! Mainos - jatka lukemista alta.
      ellauri301.html on line 76: Nuori Wallander on yhtä pseudo svedu kuin kiinalaisvalmisteinen Electrolux pesukone, johon bränditarra lyödään tehtaan ovella. Toisesta ovesta menee ulos Siemensit ja kolmannesta Whirlpoolit. Tää on globalisaatiota, jota beady eye Kurt puolustaa puhtain tuliasein Malmön kaduilla. Ense candido causa pro candida, valkoisen asian puolesta valkoisella miekalla, venelakki päässä kuin Carl Gustav Emil Mannerheim. Paizi että näyttää hyvältä nakukuvissa, nuori Kurt on lainvalvonnan nero kuten kolleegansa DI Lewis. Sitäpaizi ne on hienoja ihmisiä paizi remmissä myös siviilissä. Sarjan token ruozalaiset näyttää maansa myyneiltä solkatessaan kökköenkkua, ja hyvästä syystä, senhän ne on tehneetkin.
      ellauri301.html on line 146: The series is anglophone because it sells so much better, besides the majority of the actors are non-Swedes. Come to think of that, why bother featuring a wheezy beady-eyed Swede speaking Swedish English as Wallenberg at all? For added reality?
      ellauri301.html on line 240: She returned to the mainland on 30 September 1668 with her three children. Suffering from alcoholism, she left the Castle in the settlement to be with her family in their kraals. In February 1669 she was imprisoned unjustly for immoral behavior at the Castle and then banished to Robben Island. This was likely the result of the strict anti-alcohol laws the VOC had passed to govern the local population after they introduced higher proof European liquors. One of Van Riebeeck´s nieces, Elizabeth Van Opdorp, adopted Krotoa´s children after she was banished. She returned to the mainland on many occasions, only to find herself once more banished to Robben Island. In May 1673 she was allowed to baptise a child on the mainland. Three of her children survived. She died on 29 July 1674 in the Cape and was buried on 30 September 1674 in the Castle in the Fort. However, roughly a hundred years later, her bones were removed to an unmarked grave.
      ellauri301.html on line 257: De Klerk was a heavy smoker but gave up smoking towards the end of 2005. He also enjoyed a glass of whisky or wine while relaxing his muscles. He enjoyed playing golf and big game hunting, as well as going for brisk walks.
      ellauri301.html on line 259: De Klerk was a controversial figure among many sections of South African society, all for different reasons. He received many awards, including the Nobel Peace Prize for dismantling apartheid and bringing universal suffrage to South Africa. Conversely, he received criticism from anti-apartheid activists for offering only a qualified apology for apartheid, and for ignoring the human rights abuses by state security forces. He was also condemned by South Africa´s Afrikaner nationalists, who contended that by abandoning apartheid, he betrayed the interests of the country´s Afrikaner minority. South Africa´s Conservative Party came to regard him as its most hated adversary.
      ellauri301.html on line 292: Terde spent three years in a Rooigrond prison for assaulting a petrol station attendant and for the attempted murder of a Black security guard around 1996. He was released in June 2004. On 3 April 2010, he was hacked and beaten to death on his Ventersdorp farm, allegedly by two of his employees in a dispute over unpaid wages.
      ellauri301.html on line 348: September 24 was previously known in South Africa as Shaka Day, a day commemorating the Zulu King of Shaka. He was known for uniting the Zulu clan together and forming the Zulu nation. Every year, South Africans would gather at his grave to honor him. In 1995 a request for the day to be confirmed as an official braai holiday was rejected. After receiving some pushback from the Inkatha Freedom Party (IFP), a majority Zulu party, it was decided that the day was needed and would be known as ‘‘Heritage Day.’’
      ellauri301.html on line 395: Kauan odotettu trilleri Mankellilta! Pienessä ruotsalaiskylässä tapahtuu joukkomurha, jonka jäljet johtavat Kiinan sylttytehtaalle Henning Mankellin uusi trilleri kertoo häikäilemättömästä imperialismista ja vihasta, jota Hmongien sorto synnyttää. Pekingin olympialaisten lähestyessä aihe on polttavan ajankohtainen. Tervetuloa länteen Mankell!!!
      ellauri301.html on line 402: Henning Mankellin ilmestyessään uusin teos pohti rakkautta ja intohimoa vanhenemisen näkökulmasta. Suostuessaan pyyntöön Frederik ei voi aavistaa, mikä häntä odottaa: runollinen puheenvuoro köyhän maanosan puolesta. Kirjailijalle myönnettiin vuonna 2004 Evangelische Akademie des Tutzingin suuri suvaitsevaisuuspalkinto, jonka luovutti kukas muu kuin Desmond Tutu.
      ellauri301.html on line 451: Steven Paul “Steve” Jobs – who is currently being portrayed by Ashton Kutcher in the biopic “Jobs” — was the biological child of a Syrian-born father and a Swiss-American Catholic mother who gave him up for adoption at birth.
      ellauri302.html on line 33:

      yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">KOST' JUMALA

      Hulabaloota


      ellauri302.html on line 39: 'Gays, go home!' - Mitzpe Ramon yeshiva head rails against LGBTQ+ people.
      ellauri302.html on line 40: Rabbi Tzvi Kustiner, head of the yeshiva, is a member of the far-right Noam Party, headed by MK Avi Maoz.
      ellauri302.html on line 83: HINDEL, first girl of the brothel; a girl of some thirty odd years, but much older in appearance.
      ellauri302.html on line 99: A POOR WOMAN, blind in one eye.
      ellauri302.html on line 141: Enter Shloyme and Hindel. The first is a tall, sturdy chap; wears long boots and a short coat. He is a knavish fellow, whose eyes blink with stealthy cunning as he speaks. The second is a rather old girl, with a wan face and wearing clothes much too young for her years. Shloyme and Hindel are evidently at ease and feel at home. They are clearly evil characters.
      ellauri302.html on line 167: Yekel says yes right soon after I have sold some more ar-- merchandize. Is that okay?
      ellauri302.html on line 200: Hindel Nods yes.
      ellauri302.html on line 210: Yekel Your mother... your mother sent you... here! (With a loud outcry.) Your mother! (Dragging her upstairs.) She'll lead you to ruin yet! Something draws her to it!... She wants her daughter to be what the mother was...
      ellauri302.html on line 218: Hindel: He's right. A mother should guard her daughter well... Whatever you were, you were, but once you marry and have a child, watch over it... Just wait. If God should bless us with children, I'll know how to bring them up. My daughter will be as pure as a saint, with cheeks as red as beets... I won't let an eye gaze upon her. And she'll marry a respectable fellow, with an orthodox wedding...
      ellauri302.html on line 226: The God Of Vengeance paid my account the day before yesterday... We were standing under the eaves, the rain is so fragrant,.. It washes the whole winter off your head. (Goes over to Hindel.) Just look... (Showing her wet pubic hair.) How fresh it is... how sweet it smells...
      ellauri302.html on line 235: Since the Feast of Weeks was one of the “harvest feasts,” the Jews were commanded to “present an offering of new grain to the Lord” (Leviticus 23:16). This offering was to be “two wave loaves of two-tenths of an ephah” which were made “of fine flour... baked with leaven.” The offerings were to be made of the first fruits of that harvest (Leviticus 23:17). Along with the “wave offerings” they were also to offer seven first-year lambs that were without blemish along with one young bull and two rams. Additional offerings are also prescribed in Leviticus and the other passages that outline how this feast was to be observed. Another important requirement of this feast is that, when the Jews harvested their fields, they were required to leave the corners of the field untouched and not gather “any gleanings” from the harvest as a way of providing for the poor and strangers (Leviticus 23:22).
      ellauri302.html on line 239: Basha: Because I didn't... He always smelled ox meat... Ugh! His name is Pshorik. Think of marrying Pshorik and having a little Pshorik every year! Ugh!
      ellauri302.html on line 249: Shut up, will you? Late at night they have to start telling stories about the dead. No dead people can come here. Our boss has a Holy Scroll upstairs... (A sudden hush.) What's wrong about our trade, I'd like to know? (She leaves her little room and goes into the basement.) Wasn't our mistress in a house like this for fifteen years? Yet she married. And isn't she a respectable God-fearing woman?... Doesn 't she observe all the laws that a Jewish daughter must keep?... And isn't her Rifkele a pure child? And isn't our boss a respectable man? Isn't he generous? Doesn't he give the biggest donations to charity?... And he's had a Holy Scroll written...
      ellauri302.html on line 251: Manke, steals from her compartment into the basement. She is half-dressed, with a shawl thrown over her private parts. Her colored stockings are visible, and her hair is in disorder. Her eyes sparkle with wanton cunning. Her face is long, and insolently pretty; she is quite young. A lock of hair falls over her forehead. Her eyes blink as she speaks, and her whole body quivers. She looks about in surprise. What? Nobody here?
      ellauri302.html on line 257: Manke: Bah! He's a fool. Third time he's come in a row. And he keeps asking me, who's my father, who's my mother, — as if he intended to marry me... Whenever he kisses me he hides his face in my bosom, closes his eyes and smiles as if he were a babe in his mother's arms. (Looks around. In a low voice, to Hindel.) Hasn't Rifkele been here yet?
      ellauri302.html on line 277: Manke, embraces her passionately. Come, Rifkele, I'll wash your eyes in the rainwater. The night is so beautiful, the rain is so warm and the air is so full of delightful fragrance. Come.
      ellauri302.html on line 304: Rifkele, nodding. Yes, yes. Manke. Wet as a sponge.
      ellauri302.html on line 320: Rifkele, closing her eyes. And my father won't know?
      ellauri302.html on line 328: Hindel, waking with a start. Yes, yes. To Shloyme 's, right away! (She throws a dress over Rifkele.) He'll find us a place quickly enough.
      ellauri302.html on line 363: Yekel, enters from Bifkele's room. He is without hat or coat; his hair is in disorder. His eyes have a wild glare, and he speaks slowly, with a subdued, hoarse voice,
      ellauri302.html on line 372: Yekel! (Dragging him away from the window.) What's come over you? Act 3 while there is yet time! He might take her off somewhere while we're wasting time here. Let's be off to him at once. Hindel must surely have taken her to him. What are you standing there for? (Abruptly.) I've sent for Reb Ali. We'll hear what he has to say. (Pause. Yekel still peers through the shutter spaces.) What are you staring at there? (Pause.) WTiy don't you say something? Good heavens, its enough to drive a woman insane! (Turns away and hursts into tears.)
      ellauri302.html on line 389: Yekel eyes her with amazement.
      ellauri302.html on line 391: Reb Ali, enters, carrying a lantern. What's happened, that you had to call me before daybreak? (Going to the window and peering through the shutter spaces.) It's almost time for the morning prayers.
      ellauri302.html on line 409: Reb Ali, more calmly, spitting out. Blessed be His Name. I feel easier on that score. (To Yekel.) What made you talk such nonsense? (To Reizel, without looking at her.) Did she go away? Isn't she back yet? (To Yekel.) Has anybody gone to look for her?
      ellauri302.html on line 413: Reb Ali: Don't talk nonsense. Just keep quiet and don't make any scenes. Has anybody gone yet to look for her? To bring her back? Well?
      ellauri302.html on line 428: Fie! You're out of your head altogether. True, a misfortune has befallen you. May Heaven watch over aU of us. Well? What? Misfortunes happen to plenty of folks. The Lord sends aid and things turn out all right. The important point is to keep your mouth shut. Hear nothing. See nothing. Just wash your hands clean of it and forget it. (To Reizel.) Be careful what you say. Don't let it travel any further, God forbid. Do you hear? (Turns to Yekel, who is staring vacantly into space.) I had a talk with... (Looks around to see whether Reizel is still present. Seeing her, he stops. After a pause he begins anew, more softly, looking at Reizel as a hint for her to leave.) With er, er... (Casts a significant glance at Reizel, who at last understands, and leaves.) I had a talk with the groom's father. I spoke to him between the afternoon and evening prayers, at the synagogue. He's almost ready to talk business. Of course I gave him to understand that the bride doesn't boast a very high pedigree, but I guess another hundred roubles will fix that up, all right. Nowadays, pedigrees don't count as much as they used to. With God's help I'll surely be here this Sabbath, with the groom's father. We'll go down to the Dayon and have him examine the young man in his religious studies... But nobody must get wind of this tale. It might spoil everything. The father comes of a fine family and the son carries a smart head on his shoulders. There, there. Calm yourself. Trust in the Lord and everything will turn out for the best. With God's help I am going home to prepare for the morning prayer. And as soon as the girl returns, notify me. Remember, now. (About to go.)
      ellauri302.html on line 444: Reb Ali: But no evil has befallen her. She will return. She will yet make a fine pious Jewish wife.
      ellauri302.html on line 448: Reb Ali: Don't speak folly, I tell you. Calm yourself. Pray fervently for the Lord's pardon. Give up this business of yours. With God's help your daughter will yet marry just like aU Jewish women, and bring you plenty of happiness.
      ellauri302.html on line 465: Eeb Ali, enters, with Yekel. Praised be the Lord! Praised be the Heavenly Father! (Following Yekel, who paces ahout the room.) See how the Almighty, blessed be His Name, has come to your aid? He punishes, — yes. But he sends the remedy before the disease. Despite your having sinned, despite your having uttered blasphemy. (Admonishi7ig him.) From now on see to it that you never speak such words, — that you have reverence, great reverence... Know what a Holy Scroll is, and what a learned Jew is... You must go to the synagogue, and you must make a generous donation to the students of the Law. You must fast in atonement, and the Lord will forgive you. (Pause. Beh Ali looks sternly at Yekel, who has continued to walk about the room, absorbed in his thoughts.) What? Aren't you listening to me? With the aid of the Almighty everything will turn out for the best. I'm going at once to the groom's father and we'll discuss the whole matter in detail. But be sure not to haggle. A hundred roubles more or less, — remember who you are and who he is. And what's more, see to it that you settle the dowry right away and indulge in no idle talk about the wedding. Heaven forbid, — another misfortune might occur!
      ellauri302.html on line 466: Such matters should not be delayed. (Glares angrily at Yekel.) What! You pay no attention? I'm talking to you!
      ellauri302.html on line 478: Sarah, on the threshold. Come in. Come in. Your father won't beat you. (Pause.) Go in, I tell you. (Pushes Rifkele into the room. Rifkele has a shawl over her head. She stands silent and motionless at the door, a shameless look in her eyes, biting her lips,) Well, what are you standing there for, my darling? Much pleasure you've brought us... in return for our trouble in bringing you up. We'll square that with you later. (Interrupting herself.) Get into your room. Comb your hair. Put on a dress. We're expecting guests. (To Yekel.) I just met Reb Ali. He's going for the groom's father. (Looks about the room.) Goodness me! How the place looks! (She begins hastily to place things in order.)
      ellauri302.html on line 482: Yekel, loudly. Tell me now. Don't be ashamed. I'll do you no harm except strangle a little. (Holding her firmly hy the hand and looking her directly in the eye.) Are you still a chaste Jewish daughter? — Tell me, at once!
      ellauri302.html on line 490: Sarah, brings in Yekel's coat and funny hats and places them upon him. He offers no resistance. What a misfortune! What a misfortune! Who could have foreseen such a thing? (She straightens YekeVs coat, then puts the room in order. Runs into Rifkele's room. She is heard hiding something there, and soon returns.) I'll have a reckoning with you later. (Putting the finishing touches to the room.) Terrible days, these. Bring up children with so much care and anxiety, and... Ah! (Footsteps are heard outside. Sarah runs over to Yekel and pulls his sleeve.) They're here! For the love of God, Yekel, remember! Everything can be fixed yet. (Enter Reh Ali arid a stranger. Sarah hastily thrusts her hair under her wig and goes to the door to ivelcome the visitors.)
      ellauri302.html on line 495: Good morning. Happy new year. Welcome. (Somewhat confused, she places chairs before the guests and motions them to be seated.)
      ellauri302.html on line 509: The Stranger Well, — there 's little need of my boosting my goods. With two years more of study, he'll have the whole learning at his finger tips.
      ellauri302.html on line 512: Naturally, naturally. This gentleman will guard him like the apple of his eye. He'll have the best of everything here. He'll be able to sit and study the Holy Law day and night, to his heart's content.
      ellauri302.html on line 530:
      Mitä yeshiva oli lopultakin mieltä

      ellauri302.html on line 604: Mesillat Yesharim on luultavasti Luzzaton vaikutusvaltaisin teos, jota on opittu laajalti käytännössä kaikissa jeshivissa siitä lähtien, kun rabbi Yisroel Salanterin Mussun Mussun Movement otti musalyriikoiden muodollisen tutkimuksen yeshiva-opetussuunnitelmaan.
      ellauri308.html on line 40:
      Sovietskiye devushki erotika! Vapaana kasvanut röyheä karvatuhero taustana Marxin kootut teoxet, pesukomuutti ja emaliämpäri, ei mitään nekulturnuju dekadenttia länsimaista porsliinia.

      ellauri308.html on line 317: Harva julkisuuden henkilö ja poliitikko on kyennyt yhtä suvereenisti itse säätelemään omaa jälkikuvaansa ja elämäntyönsä vaiheita, kuin Arvo P Tuominen. Tähän on selvä syynsä: hänen toimintansa suljetun totalitaarisen Neuvostoliiton Kommunistisessa puolueessa, josta lähes kaikki lähitoverit ja muut muistamaan kyenneet oli teloitettu pois. Niinpä Tuominen osin onnekkaana: Tukholman komennus (jota hän pystyi venyttämään alun perin aiottua pidemmäksi) ja paluu Suomeen pelastivat hänet kohtalotoverien tieltä.
      ellauri308.html on line 548: Valtioiden väliset jännitteet lieventyivät hetkellisesti 1970 - luvulla huonon pidätyksen vuoksi, mutta suhteet huononivat jälleen 1980-luvun alussa Neuvostoliiton hyökkäyksen myötä Afganistaniin. Vuoteen 1989 mennessä kommunistiset hallitukset Itä-Euroopan Neuvostoliiton satelliittivaltioissa kukistettiin, ja vuonna 1991 itse Neuvostoliitto hajotettiin, mikä johti lyhyeen yhteistyön aikakauteen Yhdysvaltojen ja vastamuodostetun Venäjän federaation välillä, jonka jälkeen länsivallat aloittivat mahtavat valloitussodat Keski-Aasiassa. 2000-luvun tultua suhteet muuttuivat vähitellen vihamielisiksi, ja tilanne pysyy samana tätä neuvostovihamielistä artikkelia kirjoitettaessa. Tästä suolloxesta ei amerikkalaisen lisäxi ole kuin ukrainalainen versio.
      ellauri308.html on line 595: Schwartze Khayeh Ashkenazi-juutalaiset Mizrahi juutalaiset Kirjaimellisesti käännettynä "musta eläin".
      ellauri308.html on line 671: Maidanutyi – Maidanin ja yebanutyin sekoitus, "perseessä päähän" (hullu).
      ellauri308.html on line 775:
      ellauri309.html on line 204: yemi-768x614.jpeg" width="100%" />
      ellauri309.html on line 208: Nora Roberts ei ole ollenkaan tyytyväinen nigerialais-amerikkalaisen kirjailijan Tomi Adeyemin häntä vastaan
      ellauri309.html on line 209: esittämään syytökseen. Adeyemi oli Twitterissä syyttänyt Robertsia kirjan
      ellauri309.html on line 212: ole tyytyväinen Tomi Adeyemin syytökseen, vaan julkaisee lausunnon:
      ellauri309.html on line 213: kirjailijan Tomi Adeyemin häntä vastaan esittämään syytökseen.
      ellauri309.html on line 214: Vaikka Adeyemi twiittasi anteeksipyynnön ja selitti, että Roberts otti häneen yhteyttä
      ellauri309.html on line 219: tavoitti Adeyemin ja pyysi twiitin poistamista, eikä vastausta ole annettu.
      ellauri309.html on line 509: Billy Graham varttui maitotilallisen poikana Pohjois-Carolinan maaseudulla. He started to read books from an early age and loved to read novels for boys, especially Tarzan. Like Tarzan, he would hang on the trees and gave the popular Tarzan yell. According to his father, that yelling led him to become a minister. Vuonna 1934 Graham osallistui evankelista Mordecai Hamin kokoukseen ja teki henkilökohtaisen uskonratkaisun. Ham had a reputation for racism and anti-Semitism. He believed and preached on various topics based on classical anti-Semitic canards such as believing Jews had special access to political power and influence and that they represent a subversive social force. The targets for his preaching were often "nebulous rings of Jewish, Catholic or Black conspirators plotting to destroy white protestant America."
      ellauri309.html on line 523: Valmistuessaan Wheatonista vuonna 1943 Graham oli kehittänyt kuuluisan sormea heristävän saarnatyylinsä. Graham viesti yksinkertaisesti ja suorasti synnistä ja pelastuksesta, jonka hän välitti tarmokkaasti ja ilman alentuvuutta tyhmille. Graham toimi lyhyen aikaa Western Springsin baptistikirkon pastorina, jonka jälkeen hän ryhtyi kiertäväksi evankelistaksi. Graham liittyi uuden Youth for Christ-järjestön henkilöstöön vuonna 1945 ja toimi vuodesta 1947 Northwestern Bible Collegen johtajana. Grahamin toiminnan keskiössä olivat suuret, kirkkokuntarajat ylittävät, kokoukset, joita kutsutaan nimellä missio tai ristiretki. Niistä saadut palkkiot oli selkeästi parhaimmat. Vuonna 1992 Graham kutsuttiin jopa maailman sulkeutuneimmaksi valtioksi arvioituun Pohjois-Koreaan. Vierailun aikana Billy luonnehti maan johtajaa Kim Il Sungia "Jumalaksi" ja nykyistä pulleaa johtajaa Kim Jong Unia "Jumalan pojaxi". Kim was "a different kind of communist." Graham's early crusades were segregated, but he began adjusting his approach in the 1950s.
      ellauri309.html on line 548: The Prayer of Jabez: Breaking Through to the Blessed Life on Bruce Wilkinsonin kirja, jonka Multnomah Books julkaisi vuonna 2000 ensimmäisenä kirjana
      ellauri309.html on line 772: Zwölf Jahre später: sie ist 30 und geschieden. Sie hat ihr Templetonvermögen verloren und hält 2 Teilzeitjobs. Die peinliche Tatsache ist dass sie nur mit einem Mann je gebumst hat. Sonst ist alles schon in Ordnung. Die Teilzeitjobs: nicht als Putzfrau wie Ann Sullivan, sondern Hotell-Leiterin und Boutique-Entrepreneurin. Ein harter Tag am Chequeschreiben und Tagungen erwartet. Suomessa on Lama-yhtyeen 80-luvun vasemmistopunkkareista tullut persuäijiä. Niin käy kun ei olla enää pahnan pohjimmaisina vaan lähinnä seuraavassa kerroxessa pohjalla.
      ellauri309.html on line 978: tummia ja komeita, lyhyenläntä ja karun näköinen Humphrey Bogart oli poikkeus.
      ellauri310.html on line 35: May 1, 1952, seventy years ago. Now, Daniel Düsentrieb, a nazi engineer and
      ellauri310.html on line 165: sinne muita laitteita). Tämän pienen laitteen on kuitenkin kyettävä tekemään
      ellauri310.html on line 214: hirtettiin viisi kuukautta myöhemmin. Hänen lyhyen virkakautensa vuoksi
      ellauri310.html on line 326: päivästään Lafayette Parkissa Valkoista taloa vastapäätä. Hän oli jo päättänyt
      ellauri310.html on line 346: ajatellut. Lafayette Parkissa Guiteau luki sanomalehtiä ja katseli Valkoista taloa
      ellauri310.html on line 356: kesäkuussa istuessaan Lafayette Parkissa hän huomasi Garfieldin matkalla kirkkoon.
      ellauri310.html on line 372: perjantai-iltana 1. heinäkuuta Lafayette Parkissa tuijottaen Valkoista taloa, kun
      ellauri310.html on line 610: On January 27, Chase entered the home of 38-year-old Evelyn Miroth. He encountered her friend, Danny Meredith, whom he shot with his.22 handgun. He then fatally shot Miroth, her six-year-old son Jason, and her 22-month-old nephew David Ferreira, before mutilating Miroth and engaging in necrophilia and cannibalism with her corpse.
      ellauri310.html on line 629: Sun Myung Moon ( korea : 문선명 ; Hanja : 文鮮明; syntynyt Moon Yong-Myeong ; 6. tammikuuta 1920 – 3. syyskuuta 2012) oli korealainen uskonnollinen johtaja, joka tunnettiin myös liikehankkeistaan ja konservatiivisten poliittisten asioiden tukemisesta. Hän väitti olevansa Messias, ja hän oli yhdistymiskirkon (jonka jäsenet pitävät häntä ja hänen vaimoaan Hak Ja Hania "oikeina vanhempinaan") ja sen laajalti tunnetun "siunauksen" perustaja sekä sen ainutlaatuisen teologian kirjoittaja nimeltä Jumalallinen periaate. Hän oli antikommunisti ja puhui Koreoiden yhdistymisen puolesta (tietysti ilman sitä kommunismia). Moonin antikommunistinen toiminta sai taloudellista tukea kiistanalaiselta japanilaiselta miljonääriltä, aktivistilta ja hyväntekijältä Ryōichi Sasakawalta.
      ellauri310.html on line 654: Ennustettavasti puolueet vaihtoi puolia 60-luvulla kun n-sanat ei olleet enää orjia vaan pahnanpohjimmaisia köyhiä ja maatalousvaltaisista etelävaltioista oli köyhtyessään tullut laskukkaita ja koillisvaltioiden talousliberaaleista teollistumisen ansiosta nousukkaita. Nykyään keskilännen tehdasraunioiden työttömät ja etelän maajussit ja persut äänestää republikaaneja ja rannikoiden bisnesmiehet ja jutkut demokraatteja. Huippurikkaat rahoittaa varuixi molempia puolia mutta enemmän rebublikaaneja koska ne ei voi enää rikastua muuten kuin kyykyttämällä köyhemmät.
      ellauri310.html on line 656: Misogyyninä Tomi muistuttaa Raju Panolaa. Rajun naamasta jo näkee että tässäpä kusipää. Mikä oli eron syy? Katri Helenasta akateemisuutta arvostava Rajala suhtautui Katri Helenan laulamaan kevyeen musiikkiin kriittisesti. Katri Helena soitti Panu Rajalalle, kun tämä oli pettämässä vaimoaan – ”Oletko pukilla?” Pukillapa pukilla, vahvisti Raju. Avioliitto päättyi Rajalan päädyttyä suhteeseen Marja-nimisen naisen kanssa. Marjakin on jo loppuun polettu, nyt on Raju oman käden varassa.
      ellauri310.html on line 785: Niille, jotka saattavat epäröiden ajatella, että Yhdysvallat voi rakentaa niin monta Abrahamia niin lyhyessä ajassa, Abrams- hankinta vuosina 1985-1992 tarjoaa rauhoittavan esimerkin. Tuona aikana rakennettiin 4 800 Abramia, joista tuli 50 säiliötä kuukaudessa kahdeksan vuoden aikana. Tankkituotannon saaminen Abrams-laivastolle tarvitsemamme tasolle vaatii paljon työtä, mutta tuotantokapasiteettia voidaan asteittain laajentaa jatkuvalla rahoituksella, mitä monivuotiset hankintasopimukset tarjoavat.
      ellauri310.html on line 957: 20. Mike Myers (Halloween) 19. T-1000 (Terminator 2, 1991) 18. Freddy Kruger (Painajainen Elm Streetillä) 17.
      ellauri311.html on line 581: example is "Gladly, the cross-eyed bear" (from the line in the hymn "Keep Thou My
      ellauri311.html on line 587: kaleidoscope eyes") Hiero sinne hässöy! Hissun kissun Hissun kissun. Hokkus
      ellauri311.html on line 657: Scabbyknickers has started rolling her eyes at the crap that has been coming
      ellauri311.html on line 667: marital arts complete idiot and yet men and boys are getting killed because
      ellauri313.html on line 447: Sarjassamme joutavaa paskaa myös Tom Wolfen dityrambit aiheesta "perpetually pregnant hags whose bestial passivity made man less than dung and destroyed every proud illusion of the priceless value, dignity and sanctity of his individual life." Mitä tuubaa! Pahoja virhekäsityxiä. Kaikki "ikuinen" hölpötys on täysin päätöntä, samoin "arvokkuus" ja yxilöllisyys". Ei mikään ole ikuista eikä järin yxilöllistä, elukan elämä hupenee kuin nöyhtä, kuin pieru Saharaan, tai röyhtäys, hirmuisen sähläyxen päätteexi.
      ellauri313.html on line 471: Strategies that emphasize the possibility of escalation or eruption are associated with the term "brinkmanship." (We will sometimes refer to the game of "chicken" when the brinkmanship is overtly two-sided.) "Chicken" is played by two drivers on a road with a white line down the middle. Both cars straddle the white line and drive toward each other at top speed. The first driver to lose his nerve and swerve into his own lane is "chicken"—an object of contempt and scorn—and he loses the game. The game is played among teenagers for prestige, for girls, for leadership of a gang, and for safety (i.e., to prevent other challenges and confrontations).
      ellauri313.html on line 591: Mendelssohnilla oli kuusi lasta, joista vain hänen toiseksi vanhin tyttärensä Recha ja hänen vanhin poikansa Joseph säilyttivät juutalaisen uskon. Hänen poikansa olivat: Joseph (Mendelssohnin pankkitalon perustaja ja Alexander von Humboldtin ystävä ja hyväntekijä), Abraham (joka meni naimisiin Lea Salomonin kanssa ja oli Fanny ja Felix Mendelssohnin isä) ja Nathan (koneinsinööri huomattava maine). Hänen tyttärensä olivat Brendel (myöhemmin Dorothea; Simon Veitin vaimo ja Philipp Veitin äiti , myöhemmin hänen rakastajatar ja sitten vaimoFriedrich von Schlegel), Recha ja Henriette, kaikki lahjakkaita naisia. Rechan ainoa pojanpoika (säveltäjä Giacomo Meyerbeerin veljen Heinrich Beerin poika) syntyi ja sai koulutuksensa juutalaisena, mutta kuoli hyvin nuorena yhdessä vanhempiensa kanssa ilmeisesti epidemiaan. [ lainaus tarvitaan ] Joseph Mendelssohnin poika Alexander (k. 1871) oli viimeinen Moses Mendelssohnin miespuolinen jälkeläinen, joka harjoitti juutalaisuutta. Se siitä tuli Mooses, uskonpuhdistuxesta! Usko säilyy paremmin hieman likaisena.
      ellauri313.html on line 623: Meet in her aspect and her eyes; kohtaa hänen kasvoillaan ja silmissään;
      ellauri313.html on line 635: So soft, so calm, yet eloquent, Niin pehmeä, tyyni, silti kaunopuheinen,
      ellauri315.html on line 294: Mihail Vasilyevich Aleksejev (venäjäksi : Михаил Васильевич Алексеев) (15. marraskuuta [OS 3. marraskuuta] 1857 – 8. lokakuuta [OS 25. syyskuuta] 1918) oli Venäjän keisarillisen armeijan kenraali ensimmäisen sisällissodan ja Venäjän sisällissodan aikana. Vuosina 1915-1917 hän toimi tsaari Nikolai II :n Stavkan esikuntapäällikkönä ja helmikuun vallankumouksen jälkeen sen ylipäällikkönä Venäjän väliaikaisen hallituksen alaisuudessa maaliskuusta toukokuuhun 1917. Myöhemmin hänellä oli päärooli perustamassaan Vapaaehtoisessa armeija Venäjän sisällissodassa. Hän kuoli vuonna 1918 urheasti sydämen vajaatoimintaan taistellessaan bolshevikkia vastaan Volgan alueella.
      ellauri315.html on line 395: Hänen uransa Kolchakin kanssa oli vähemmän loistokas. Puna-armeija oli alkanut ottaa aloitteen Kolchakin joukkojen vähentyessä. Gajda, Kolchakin suosituxesta, erotettiin 5. heinäkuuta 1919. Sekaantuttuaan Esersin epäonnistuneeseen kapinaan Kolchakia vastaan (17. marraskuuta 1919) hän pakeni Siperiasta ja purjehti Kekkoslovakiaan.
      ellauri315.html on line 411: Sitten he tarjosivat palvelujaan Tissapherneelle, Artakserxen johtavalle satrapille, mutta hän vaati heidän täydellistä antautumistaan kuin bolshevikit tshekeiltä, josta he kieltäytyivät. Tämä aiheutti Tissapherneelle herneen nenään – suuren raskaasti aseistettujen joukkojen armeijan, jota hän ei kyennyt kukistamaan rintamalla. Hän toimitti heille ruokaa ja johdatti heidät pitkän odotuksen jälkeen pohjoiseen kotiin. Sillä välin hän onnistui houkuttelemaan pois persialaisen kenraalin Ariaeuksen ja hänen kevyet joukkonsa. [ lainaus tarvitaan ]
      ellauri315.html on line 416: Eräänä yönä Xenophon muodosti jousimiesten ja kevyen ratsuväen joukon. Kun persialainen ratsuväki saapui seuraavana päivänä, ampuen nyt useiden jaardien päähän, Xenophon päästi yhtäkkiä valloilleen uuden ratsuväen hyökkäyksessä, törmäsi järkyttyneeseen ja hämmentyneeseen viholliseen, tappoi monia ja syrjäytti loput.
      ellauri315.html on line 470: Marina Rakova antoi tunnustuslausunnon oltuaan 9 kuukautta pidätyskeskuksessa, hän ja Zuev tarjoutuivat korvaamaan väitetyt vahingot. Journalistisissa tutkimuksissa on kuitenkin taipumus ajatella, että tapauksen pakotti itse asiassa kamppailu miljardiruplan koulukirjamarkkinoiden uudelleenjakamisesta sekä Rakovan ja hänen entisen päällikkönsä Olga Vasilievan sekä Prosvescheniye Publishingin johtajien välisten henkilökohtaiset konfliktit. Syyttäjä havaitsi kolme petoskohtaa. Ensimmäisessä tapauksessa Rakovaa ja Zakia syytettiin opetusministeriön 12 työntekijän kuvitteellisesta työllistämisestä RANEPAlle. Täähän on frankofiilin ihmistorpeedon Tytti Yli-Viikarin idean plagiointia! Toiseksi syyttäjä uskoi, että vuonna 2019 Rakova ja hänen työtoverinsa varastivat 21 miljoonaa ruplaa, jotka oli osoitettu Tulevaisuuden opettaja -ohjelmalle, ja väärensi raportit. Koska pääurakoitsija oli MSSES, sen rehtori Sergei Zuev pidätettiin. 13. lokakuuta 2021 Zuev pidätettiin ja kuulusteltu epäiltynä Marina Rakova -tapauksessa. Rakova oli entinen varaopetusministeri, jota syytettiin 50 miljoonan ruplan valtion rahojen varastamisesta, jotka oli tarkoitettu MSSES:n koulutusohjelmaan Zuevin johdolla. Lokakuun 13. päivänä Zuevia syytettiin enää noin 21 miljoonan ruplan kavalluksesta. Zuev tietysti kiisti syyllistyneensä väärinkäytöksiin, joiden hänen kannattajansa sanovat olevan poliittisia.
      ellauri316.html on line 123: alempiarvoista puuttui. Lounaisrintaman riveissä oli vahvistusten lähestyessä
      ellauri316.html on line 245: La nuit du 14 au 15 avril 1718, nuit du Vendredi Saint, Boureau-Deslandes est à Brest. Il raconte : « sur les 4 heures du matin, il fit trois coups de tonnerre les plus horibles que j’aye jamais entendus. Dans cet espace de la Côte de Brêtagne qui s’étend depuis Conquerneau jusqu’à St. Paul de Leon, on a observé que le tonnerre étoit tombé sur 24 eglises differentes et à la même heure ». Cinq jours plus tard, Deslandes entreprend son enquête à Gouesnou, village voisin de Brest, dont l’église a été transpercée par la réunion de « 3 globes de feu, chacun 3 piés et demi de diamètre » qui ont occasionné la mort de trois sonneurs de cloches. « Le tonnerre n’est tombé que sur les Eglises où l’on sonnoit des cloches, à dessein de l’écarter, et il a épargné toutes les autres. »
      ellauri316.html on line 281: Kansanvaltuuskunnan johdossa Oskari Tokoi alkoi maaliskuussa 1918 lähentyä ympärysvaltoja päätyen lopulta Muurmannin legioonan johtoon. Luihu anglosaxikätyri. Neuvosto-Venäjä irtisanoo sopimuksen ja itsenäisyyssodat alkavat.
      ellauri316.html on line 290: Muurmannin legioonan poliittinen neuvonantaja oli brittiarmeijan everstiluutnantin arvoiseksi nimitetty entinen senaatin puhemies ja Suomen sisällissodan punaisten johtohahmo, maanpetossyytettä Venäjälle paennut Oskari Tokoi. Hän – kuten muutkin legioonalaiset – ajautui Muurmannin legioonaan jouduttuaan huonoihin väleihin sekä Moskovan että Pietarin alueen suomalaiskommunistien, vulgäärien Rahjan veljeksien ryhmittymän kanssa. Brittien vetäytyessä Muurmannin legioona laivattiin Britanniaan, josta suurin osa miehistä palasi Suomeen. Suomen valtionrikosoikeuden tutkittua asian suurin osa legioonan jäsenistä vapautettiin Britannian vaatimuksesta. Oikeisto koki kotiin palanneet brittiläisen sotilaskoulutuksen saaneet legioonan miehet Al Holin naisten kaltaisexi turvallisuusriskiksi. Legioonan suomalaisia johtomiehiä ei haluttu päästää Suomeen, etenkään ilman, että heidät tuomittaisiin sisällissodan aikaisista toimistaan.
      ellauri316.html on line 346: Noniin, jatketaan. Hän sai useita aivohalvauksia, Arkadi nimittäin. Vuonna 1972 hän kuoli epäonnistuneen sappirakon poistoleikkauksen jälkeen Kremlin sairaalassa. Kirjailijan tytär Daria Dontsova ehdotti, että kyseessä oli murha. Tuskinpa, vaikka hän kyllä oli pahamaineinen naapureidensa keskuudessa Moscow Writer -asunto-osuuskunnassa. Niinpä runoilija Andrei Klenov muistelee: "Pian tuli vaikeaksi asua tässä talossa. Ja en ole ainoa. Ensimmäisistä päivistä lähtien talostamme tuli kaupungin puheenaihe, koska siihen asettui monia pahoja ihmisiä. Kuten Arkady Vasilyev, josta Voinovich kirjoittaa - "turvaupseeri, kirjailija, Sinyavskin ja Danielin syyttäjä" (lisään itsestäni - Moskovan kirjailijaliiton puoluejärjestön pitkäaikainen sihteeri, varajäsen Moskovan neuvosto, "Moskova"-lehden toimituskunnan jäsen ja niin edelleen ja niin edelleen). <...>
      ellauri316.html on line 350: Neuvostoliiton kirjallisuuskriitikko Mihail Gus kommentoi Vasilievin työtä seuraavasti: "Arkady Vasilievin kirjojen keskipisteessä ei yleensä ole fiktiivisiä hahmoja, vaan ihmisiä, joilla on rikkaat, autenttiset elämäkerrat. Täten kirjailija loi toistuvasti kuvan Mihail Vasilyevich Frunzesta - upeasta leninististä, taipumattomasta, rohkeasta maanalaisesta taistelijasta, puna-armeijan legendaarisesta komentajasta. Historiatieteiden tohtori, toisen maailmansodan yhteistyön vääristelijä Boris Kovalev kuitenkin huomauttaa, että "kirjailija vääristi monia tosiasioita". Tämä lause täpärästi läpäisi suomalaisen sensuurin.
      ellauri316.html on line 412: yer-and-four-f-105-thunderchiefs-dropping-bombs-on-north-vietnam-during-operation-rolling-thunder-510x640.jpg?width=480" />
      ellauri316.html on line 437: Gorbazov, joka möi lyhyexi Neukkulan ja nyt 2021 ja 2022 peräkkäin jaetut
      ellauri316.html on line 486: Ainoa aine, joka yliopistossa tuotti Andreille vaikeuxia, oli marxismi-leninismi. "Sain siitä paskakaivoarvosanoja. Se ei ollut ideologinen ongelma. Pahinta oli tarve oppia ulkoa määritelmiä: en kyennyt lukemaan ja muistamaan sanoja, en ideoita." Koska nuori fyysikko piti tiedettä parempana insinöörityötä sotilastehtaalla, hänet lähetettiin Uljanovskiin Volodarskyn ammustehtaalle.
      ellauri316.html on line 493: Kilpavarustelu asetti raskaan taakan siihen "vedettyjen" maiden talouksille, ja yli 2000 ydinkoeräjähdystä, joista 500 tapahtui maan päällä, aiheuttivat tuntuvia ympäristövahinkoja koko planeetalle. Vähemmän kuitenkin kuin vimmattu fossiilien polttelu ja kirottu muovi. Muovi! Muovi! huusi Lauri Hakulinen Kuusitien parvekkeelta. Vuonna 1987 Neuvostoliiton ja USA:n solmima sopimus keskipitkän ja lyhyemmän kantaman ohjusten poistamisesta on nyt katkolla. Kohta ne alkanevat meidän päiden yllä viuhua.
      ellauri316.html on line 656: Naftaleeniin liittyen.
      ellauri316.html on line 674: Se, mitä olen analysoinut, ei ole kaikkia Valeri Garbuzovin tekstin virheitä. Zen-muoto ei sovellu täydelliseen analyysiin. Lisäksi en aivan tietoisesti koskenut Garbuzovin tekstin sisältöön, keskittyen yksinomaan tekstin muodon analysointiin. Ja tämän analyysin avulla voin väittää, että Valeri Garbuzovin teksti on koottu lukutaidottomasti, ja siinä oli suuri määrä erilaisia virheitä.
      ellauri316.html on line 831: In 1943, Vlasov published the Smolensk Proclamation, in which he declared that Bolshevism was “the enemy of the Russian people.” His aim was to recruit other Russians now in Germany—the Nazis had taken hundreds of thousands of Red Army soldiers prisoner in the first two years of the war— to unite against the Soviet Union.
      ellauri316.html on line 833: But after the shattering victory at Stalingrad, the Red Army began to believe that victory was possible. Germany, which had boasted the world’s most formidable military at the start of the war, suddenly seemed vulnerable. Even if its weaponry was less sophisticated and its troops poorly prepared, the sheer size of Russia’s forces could overwhelm the enemy — a reality that holds 80 years later, as the war in Ukraine grinds on and on and the wallets and the patience of Kyiv’s partners in the West begins to wear thin.
      ellauri316.html on line 840: After being beaten back by Soviet forces, the Russian Liberation Army retreated to Prague. In yet another reversal of loyalties, Vlasov hoped to help anti-Nazi forces and eventually surrender to the United States.
      ellauri316.html on line 843: Russian military leaders remain fond of such vivid reminders of what traitors face. Last year, a deserter of the Wagner Group militia was executed with a sledgehammer, which the outfit’s leader Evgeny Prigozhin has taken to wielding as a symbol.
      ellauri317.html on line 92: І куди очі почухрав. He hit the foam where eyes could see. Isovenäjän sankarkaupugista.
      ellauri317.html on line 161: Lähes itsenäinen Hetmanaatti, jonka Bohdan Khlmelnystsky perusti vuonna 1654, sisälsi korkeimmillaan suuren osan nykyisestä Keski-Ukrainasta. Sitä hallitsi valittu "hetman", mutta kun Venäjän vaikutusvalta kasvoi (Pietari I:n tappion Mazepan vuonna 1709) ja kasakkojen autonomian vähentyessä, hetmanista tuli yhä enemmän venäläisten nimittämä hahmo. 1700-luvulla vanhat kasakkojen suhteellisen vapauden ja tasa-arvon tavat säilyivät vain Hetmanaatin eteläisimmässä osassa, joka keskittyi Zaporozhian Sichin ympärille, jota hallittiin edelleen suorana demokratiana, vaikkakin Venäjän ylivallan alaisuudessa: rada, johon kaikki kasakat saivat osallistua, äänestivät kaikista tärkeimmistä poliittisista asioista ja valitsivat vuosittain oman toimeenpanevansa kenraalinsa (Kosh otaman).
      ellauri317.html on line 330: Jotkut ihmiset ajattelevat, että Natalya Goncharova oli jotenkin vastuussa aviomiehensä kuolemasta, koska hän ei joko kyennyt tai halunnut lopettaa huhuja, jotka yhdistävät hänet d´Anthèsiin. Runoilija Anna Akhmatova kutsui häntä "Heeckerenien rikoskumppaniksi kaksintaistelun rakentamisessa", kun taas Marina Tsvetaeva kirjoitti: "Kauneus eikä mitään muuta, vain kauneus, ilman aivoja, sielua, sydäntä, ilman mitään lahjakkuutta. Alaston kauneus, iskevä kuin miekka. Ja hän löi."
      ellauri317.html on line 332: yevna_Goncharova.jpg" />
      ellauri317.html on line 397: Levadan ensimmäinen konflikti valtaapitävien kanssa tuli tutkimuksesta, jossa väitettiin, että harvat todella lukevat Pravdan tunnetusti pitkäveteisiä pääkirjoituksia, minkä Pravda tuomitsi nopeasti ja katkerasti. 16. marraskuuta 2006 Juri Levada kuoli 76-vuotiaana toimistoonsa ja haudattiin Troyekurovskoje-hautausmaalle.
      ellauri317.html on line 439: Joulukuussa 1917 Lenin nimitti Dzeržinskin äskettäin perustetun All-Russian Extraordinary Commissionin (Tšekan) johtajaksi ja antoi hänelle tehtäväksi tukahduttaa vastavallankumouksellisen toiminnan Neuvosto-Venäjällä. Venäjän sisällissodassa Chekan auktoriteetti laajeni ja aloitettiin joukkoteloituskampanja, joka tunnetaan nimellä Punainen terrori. Cheka organisoitiin uudelleen valtion poliittiseksi osastoksi (GPU) vuonna 1922 ja sitten Joint State Political Directorate (OGPU) vuotta myöhemmin Dzerzhinskyn pysyessä voimakkaan järjestön johtajana. Lisäksi hän toimi kansantalouden korkeimman neuvoston (VSNKh) johtajana vuodesta 1924.
      ellauri317.html on line 557: Eversti Skoropadsky nimitettiin 4.9.1910 Suomen 20. lohikäärmerykmentin komentajaksi ja hän jatkaa edelleen HIM-yhtyeen Fliegel-adjutanttina.
      ellauri317.html on line 593: ei olekaan Voldemar Putler, vaan Jēkabs Peterss (venäjäksi : Я‌ков Христофо‌рович Пе‌терс , Yakov Khristoforovich Peters , englanniksi: Jacob Peters ; 3. joulukuuta [ OS 21. marraskuuta] 1886 – 25. huhtikuuta 1938). Hän oli Latvian kommunistinen vallankumouxellinen, joka pelasi pajazzoa Neuvostoliiton perustamisessa. Yhdessä Felix Dzeržinskin kanssa hän oli yksi Neuvosto-Venäjän salaisen poliisin Chekan perustajista ja päällikköistä. Hän oli Chekan varapuheenjohtaja vuodesta 1918 ja lyhyen ajan virkaatekevänä puheenjohtajana 7.7.-22.8.1918.
      ellauri317.html on line 732: Jaroslavlin kapina oli bolševikkien valtaa vastaan suuntautunut kapina Venäjän Jaroslavlin kaupungissa 6.–21. heinäkuuta 1918. Siihen liittyivät myös lyhyemmät kapinat Rybinskissä ja Muromissa.
      ellauri318.html on line 39: Lapidus käyttää esikoisteoksessaan Rahalla saa kovaksikeitettyä tyyliä, joka on saanut vaikutteita sellaisilta amerikkalaisilta kirjailijoilta kuin James Ellroy ja Dennis Lehane, ja hän on kertonut saaneensa aineistoa toimiessaan puolustusasianajajana Sollentunan käräjäoikeudessa. Kielellisiä vaikutteita hän on saanut muun muassa ruotsalaiselta rap-yhtyeeltä The Latin Kingsilta, snobipiireiltä ja kirjailijakollega Jonas Hassen Khemirin kirjoista. Kirjoista Snabba cash on filmattu, ja sen kahden seuraajan kuvaamista valmistellaan, hitaasti mutta hitaasti.
      ellauri318.html on line 107: "Bud" ryhtyy vastaiskuun. Hän keksii keinon hilata Bluestarin osakekurssi ylös ja saada se sitten nopeasti taas alas, ja vinkkaa sitten Gekkon pahimmalle kilpailijalle, brittiläiselle Wildmanille (Terence Stamp) mahdollisuudesta ostaa yhtiö edullisesti. Bud neuvoo Gekkoa vastaavasti myymään lyhyexi laskevat osakkeet, jolloin kaupat toteutuvat. Gekko tajuaa että kaiken takana on Bud Fox ja raivostuu. Bud palaa työpaikalleen, jossa poliisi pidättää hänet sisäpiirikaupoista syytettynä.
      ellauri321.html on line 26:

      yellow;text-align:right;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">ERIC LINKLATER


      ellauri321.html on line 45: After a brief legal career he was employed by the Earl of Essex in a foreign diplomatic capacity, the main purpose of which was to gain intelligence on the activities of England's European neighbours. Wotton became ambassador to Venice and his eternal lines, "An Ambassador is an honest man, sent to lie abroad for the good of his country" no doubt reflects his disillusionment with the duplicity of the role. When on a mission to Augsburg, in 1604, he actually said, "An ambassador is an honest gentleman sent to lie abroad for the good of his country". King Jim siitä vähän pahentui.
      ellauri321.html on line 99: This little volume had made its mark on both sides of the Atlantic not many years before Hazlitt noticed it. It appeared in London in 1782 with this somewhat ponderous title-page: Letters from an American Farmer, Describing Certain Provincial Situations, Manners and Customs, and Conveying Some Idea Of The State Of The People Of North America, Written xi to a Friend in England, By J. Hector St. John, A Farmer In Pennsylvania. Tästä varmaan radikaali Mary otti matkakirjaan mallia.
      ellauri321.html on line 101: A new English edition appeared in the year following, and an American reprint of the editio princeps was brought out by Matthew Carey in Philadelphia in 1793. In the meantime its author, whose full name was J. Hector Saint John de Crèvecoeur, had himself translated the book into French, adding to it very considerably, and publishing it in Paris in 1784.* A second French edition, still further enlarged and containing excellent maps and plates, appeared in 1787. These bibliographical facts are significant. They show that for at least twenty years, probably for a much longer period, the “Letters from an American Farmer” was an important interpreter of the New World to the Old. It seems to have been in answer to a demand aroused by his first book that Crèvecoeur ventured to treat the same theme once more. But the three bulky volumes of his “Journey in Upper Pennsylvania” (1801) contain little that is now or illuminating.
      ellauri321.html on line 103: Among other books there fell into a guy named Hazlitt's hands a little volume of double interest to him by reason of his own early sojourn in America, and in a fitting connection he gave it a word of praise. In the Edinburgh Review for October, 1829, he speaks of it as giving one an idea “how American scenery and manners may be treated with a lively poetic interest. The pictures are sometimes highly colored, but they are vivid and strikingly characteristic.” “The author,” he continues, “gives not only the objects, but the feelings of a new country.” Hazlitt had read the book and had been delighted with it nearly a quarter of a century before he wrote of it, and in the earliest years of the century he had commended it warmly to his friends. In November, 1805, Lamb wrote: “Oh, tell Hazlitt not to forget the American Farmer. I dare say it is not so good as he fancies; but a book's a book.”* And it is this book, which not only gained the sympathies of Hazlitt and Charles Lamb, but also by its idealized treatment of American country life may possibly have stirred, as Professor Moses Coit Tyler thought, the imaginations of Byron and Coleridge.
      ellauri321.html on line 105: For many years after Hazlitt had sounded his note of praise, Crèvecoeur and his work remained practically unknown. The ideas for which he stood, the literary atmosphere that he created, were both old-fashioned. Few people took Rousseau from their upper shelves, and the dust gathered on the tomes of Chateaubriand. Even Werther was more talked about than read. And so no one cared for this Earthly Paradise of the Age of Reason dashed with Rousseau's sentimentality, filled with his love of Nature, and prophetic of the whole Emigrant literature of France.
      ellauri321.html on line 107: J. Hector Saint John de Crèvecoeur was born at Caen on January 31, 1735, of a noble family which had played some part in Norman history as early as the eleventh century.
      ellauri321.html on line 108: In 1747, in his sixteenth year, Crèvecoeur was sent by his family to England in order to complete his education. But the young man was of an adventurous spirit, and after a sojourn of about seven years in England, he set sail for Canada, where for the years 1758–59 he served in the French army. In 1764, after some residence in Pennsylvania, he became a naturalized citizen of New York, and five years later settled on a farm in Ulster County. Here, with his wife, Mahetable Tiffet of Yonkers, he lived the peaceful life of many idyllic years during which he gathered the materials for his book. Obviously enough he did not always remain on his farm, but viewed many parts of the country with a quietly observing eye. These journeys are recorded in his pages. He explored pretty thoroughly the settled portions of the States of New York and Pennsylvania, saw something of New England, and also penetrated westward to the limits of the colonies. He went as far South as Charleston, and may have visited Jamaica. Beyond such journeyings we may imagine these years to have xiv have been quite barren of events, serene and peaceful, until the storm of the Revolution began to break. It is not until 1779 that anything of import is again recorded of Crèvecoeur. In that year he made an attempt to return to Normandy, but the sudden appearance of a French fleet in the harbor of New York causing him to be suspected as a spy, he was imprisoned for three months. He was then permitted to sail, and, on his arrival in England, sold for thirty guineas his “Letters from an American Farmer,” which were published at London in 1782, the year after he reached France.
      ellauri321.html on line 112: Here sorrow and desolation awaited him. His wife had died a few weeks before his arrival, his farm had been ravaged, his children were in the care of strangers. But as he had been appointed French Consul in New York with the especially expressed approbation of Washington, he remained in America six years longer, with only one brief interval spent in France. Notwithstanding the disastrous practical influence of his book, through which five hundred Norman families are said to have perished in the forests of Ohio, he was now an honored citizen in his adopted country, distinguished by Washington, and the friend of Franklin. In these later years he accompanied Franklin on various journeys, one of which is recorded in the “Voyage Dans La Haute Pennsylvanie.” In 1790 he returned to France, living now at Rouen, now at Sarcelles, where he died on November 12, 1813. He was a man of “serene temper and pure benevolence,” of good sense and sound judgment; something also of a dreamer, yet of a rhetorical rather than a poetical temperament; typically French, since there were in him no extremes of opinion or emotion. He followed the dictates of his reason tempered by the warmth of his heart, and treated life justly and sanely.
      ellauri321.html on line 131: Yet when young I entertained some thoughts of selling my farm. I thought it afforded but a dull repetition of the same labours and pleasures. I thought the former tedious and heavy, the latter few and insipid; but when I came to consider myself as divested of my farm, I then found the world so wide, and every place so full, that I began to fear lest there would be no room for me. My farm, my house, my barn, presented to my imagination, objects from which I adduced quite new ideas; they were more forcible than before. Why should not I find myself happy, said I, where my father was before? He left me no good books it is true, he gave me no other education than the art of reading and writing; but he left me a good farm, and his experience; he left me free from debts, and no kind of difficulties to struggle with 24 with.—I married, and this perfectly reconciled me to my situation; my wife rendered my house all at once chearful and pleasing; it no longer appeared gloomy and solitary as before; when I went to work in my fields I worked with more alacrity and sprightliness; I felt that I did not work for myself alone, and this encouraged me much. My wife would often come with her kitting in her hand, and sit under the shady trees, praising the straightness of my furrows, and the docility of my horses; this swelled my heart and made every thing light and pleasant, and I regretted that I had not married before. I felt myself happy in my new situation, and where is that station which can confer a more substantial system of felicity than that of an American farmer, possessing freedom of action, freedom of thoughts, ruled by a mode of government which requires but little from us? Every year I kill from 1500 to 2,000 weight of pork, 1,200 of beef, half a dozen of good wethers in harvest: of fowls my wife has always a great stock: what can I wish more?
      ellauri321.html on line 137: Whenever I go abroad it is always involuntary. I never return home without feeling some pleasing emotion, which I often suppress as useless and foolish. The instant I enter on my own land, the bright idea of property, of exclusive right, of independence exalt my mind. Precious soil, I say to myself, by what singular custom of law is it that thou wast made to constitute the riches of the freeholder? What should we American farmers be without the distinct possession of that soil? It feeds, it clothes us, from it we draw even a great exuberancy, our best meat, our richest drink, the very honey of our bees comes from this privileged spot. No wonder we should thus cherish its possession, no wonder that so many Europeans who have never been able to say that such portion of land was theirs, cross the Atlantic to realize that happiness. this is what may be called the true and the only philosophy of an American farmer. He is like a cock perhaps, arrayed with the most majestic plumes, tender to its mate, bold, courageous, endowed with an astonishing instinct to fuck, with thoughts, with memory, and every distinguishing characteristic of the reason of man. I really enjoy killing all my animals, like doves, my record is fourteen dozen.
      ellauri321.html on line 168: So he who would wish to see America in its proper light, and have a true idea of its feeble beginnings and barbarous rudiments, must visit our extended line of frontiers where the last settlers dwell, and where he may see the first labours of settlement, the mode of clearing the earth, in all their different appearances; where men are wholly left dependent on their native tempers, and on the spur of uncertain industry, which often fails when not sanctified by the efficacy of a few moral rules. There, remote from the power of example, and check of shame, many families exhibit the most hideous parts of our society. They are a kind of forlorn hope, preceding by ten or twelve years the most respectable army of veterans which come after them. In that space, prosperity will polish some, vice and the law will drive off the rest, who uniting again with others like themselves will recede still farther; making room for more industrious people, who will finish their improvements, convert the loghouse into a convenient habitation, and rejoicing that the first heavy labours are finished, will change in a few years that hitherto barbarous country into a fine fertile, well regulated district. Such is our progress, such is the march of the Europeans toward the interior parts of this continent. In all societies there are off-casts; this impure part serves as our precursors or pioneers; my father himself was one of that class, but he came upon honest principles, and was therefore one of the few who held fast; by good conduct and temperance, he transmitted to me his fair inheritance, when not above one in fourteen of his contemporaries had the same good fortune.
      ellauri321.html on line 170: As I have endeavoured to shew you how Europeans become Americans; it may not be disagreeable to shew you likewise how the various Christian sects introduced, wear out, and how religious indifference becomes prevalent. When any considerable number of a particular sect happen to dwell contiguous to each other, they immediately erect a temple, and there worship the Divinity agreeably to 62 their own peculiar ideas. Nobody disturbs them. If any new sect springs up in Europe, it may happen that many of its professors will come and settle in America. As they bring their zeal with them, they are at liberty to make proselytes if they can, and to build a meeting and to follow the dictates of their consciences; for neither the government nor any other power interferes. If they are peaceable subjects, and are industrious, what is it to their neighbours how and in what manner they think fit to address their prayers to the Supreme Being? But if the sectaries are not settled close together, if they are mixed with other denominations, their zeal will cool for want of fuel, and will be extinguished in a little time. Then the Americans become as to religion, what they are as to country, allied to all. In them the name of Englishman, Frenchman, and European is lost, and in like manner, the strict modes of Christianity as practised in Europe are lost also.
      ellauri321.html on line 178: yet, when it is united with bad luck, it leads to want: want stimulates that propensity to rapacity and injustice, too natural to needy men, which is the 70 the fatal gradation. After this explanation of the effects which follow by living in the woods, shall we yet vainly flatter ourselves with the hope of converting the Indians? We should rather begin with converting our back-settlers. the back-settlers of both the Carolinas, Virginia, and many other parts, have been long a set of lawless people; it has been even dangerous to travel among them.
      ellauri321.html on line 182: There is room for every body in America; has he any particular talent, or industry? he exerts it in order to procure a livelihood, and it succeeds. Is he a merchant? the avenues of trade are infinite; is he eminent in any respect? he will be employed and respected. Does he love a country life? pleasant farms present themselves; he may purchase what he wants, and thereby become an American farmer. Is he a labourer, sober and industrious? he need not go many miles, nor receive many informations before he will be hired, well fed at the table of his employer, and paid four or five times more than he can get in Europe. Does he want uncultivated lands? Thousands of acres present themselves, which he may purchase cheap. Whatever be his talents or inclinations, if they are moderate, he may satisfy them. I do not mean that every one who comes will grow rich in a little time; no, but he may procure an easy, decent low maintenance, by his industry. Instead of starving he will be fed, instead of being idle he will have employment; and these are riches enough for such men as come over here.
      ellauri321.html on line 184: But how is this accomplished in that croud of low, indigent people, who flock here every year from all parts of Europe? I will tell you; they no sooner arrive than they immediately feel the good effects of that plenty of provisions we possess: they fare on our best food, and they are kindly entertained; their talents, character, and peculiar industry are immediately inquired into; they find countrymen every where disseminated, let them come from whatever part of Europe.
      ellauri321.html on line 186: Let me select one as an epitome of the rest, say this wetback from South America: he is hired, he goes to work, and works moderately; instead of being employed by a haughty person, he finds himself with his equal, placed at the substantial table of the farmer, or else at an inferior one as good; his wages are high, his bed is not like that bed of sorrow on which he used to lie: if he behaves with propriety, and is faithful, he is caressed, and becomes as it were a member of the Amazon family.
      ellauri321.html on line 188: He looks around, and sees many a prosperous person, who but a few years before was as poor as himself. This encourages him much, he begins to form some little scheme, the first, alas, he ever formed in his life. If he is wise he thus spends in a tent on the street two or three score years, in which time he acquires knowledge, the use of tools, the modes of working the lands, felling trees, &c. This prepares the foundation of a good name, the most useful acquisition he can make. He is encouraged, he has gained friends;
      ellauri321.html on line 204: I will lease them an hundred acres for any term of years you please, and make it more valuable to your Scotchman than if he was possessed of the fee simple.
      ellauri321.html on line 205: The term of the lease shall be thirty years; how do you like it, Andrew? Oh, Sir, it is very good, but I am afraid, that the king or his ministers, or the governor, or some of our great men, I don't mean you Sir, will come and take the land from me; your son may say to me, by and by, this is my father's land, Andrew, you must quit it. No, no, said Mr. Lessor, there is no such danger; I am here just to take the labour of a poor settler; here we have no great men, but what are subordinate to our laws; so calm all your fears, I will give you a lease, so that none can can make you afraid. Andrew did not understand a word; we therefore can easily forgive him a few spontaneous ejaculations on the rug, which would be useless to wipe off.
      ellauri321.html on line 218: Juan in America was a success and was chosen by the Book Society as Book of the Month. However, the work annoyed the Commonwealth Foundation – Linklater was accused of showing too little respect for the United States and its institutions. Russian Communism the writer considered an "Oriental perversion aggravated by torments and a technique filched from Germanic practice."
      ellauri321.html on line 220: Set in the year before the Wall Street crash, Juan in America is a classic evocation of the final mania of prohibition, as seen through equally maniacal British eyes. The character Eric Linklater devised to be his unreliable explorer was one capable of absorbing the enormity of the American experience without being overwhelmed by its incongruities. A blithe, bastard descendent of Byron(tm)s Don Juan, Linklater´s Juan is an anti-hero with a taste for the grotesque and the ridiculous, at once both dirty and deity whose response when faced either with sudden catastrophe or miraculous survival is simply to laugh. A novel in the mode of the picaresque, this is a story of erotic discovery in the sense, as Juan puts it, that, eh, your trousers hide not only your willy but your kinship to the clown. A nation emerging as a great power is exalting in absurdist energies. In its last spasms before the great depression, America is revealed through a series of unlikely accidents as Juan stumbles from state to state, somehow evading consequences as he goes. On his first day, he falls for the daughter of a gangster, witnesses a murder in a speakeasy and watches a woman leap to her death in a New York street. He thrills to the bizarreness of each spectacle and moves on to the next in a galloping mood that is part medieval romance, part running commentary on what was still, in the 1920s, the new world.
      ellauri321.html on line 274: Mutta eräänä kuumana syyskuun iltana - kun Juan oli kolmannen tai neljännen kerran onnistunut karkaamaan ja istui eräillä portailla maantien varressa, rupesi hän torvisoittoa ja pölypilviä seuratessaan ymmärtämään asioita. Miksi, hän ajatteli, olivat kaikki vanhemmat ihmiset menettäneet järkensä? Miksi he sen sijaan, että olisivat rauhallisia ja hyväntuulisia, olivat kuumia, vihaisia, kiihtyneitä ja aina valmiita itkemään? Hän tiesi, että hänen isoisänsä oli tyhmä vanha äijä, Rhea tyhmä pikkutyttö ja kylän lapset auttamattoman tyhmiä. Oli hauska huomata sellaisia asioita, ja hänen salaperäinen sielunsa hekumoi tämänkaltaisissa huomioissa. Mutta oli kauheata huomata koko maailman tulevan hulluksi. Hän ei voinut nauraa sille... Kaksi sotilasta ajoi hänen ohitseen polkupyörillä. Sitten tuli puoli tusinaa lisää. Heidän polkupyörillään oli raskas kuorma kiväärejä ja khakivärisiä kääröjä. Vähitellen alkoi sieltä kuulua musiikkia, ensin miellyttävän kauniina, mutta muuttuen kovaksi ja läpitunkevaksi lähestyessään. Rykmentin soittokunta tuli näkyviin. Miehet olivat punaisia kasvoiltaan ja pienet tomupilvet kohosivat tiestä, kun heidän jalkansa heiluivat jäykkinä musiikin tahdissa, ja kun he menivät ohi, pitivät torvet huumaavaa melua. Soittokunnan takana ratsasti kaksi upseeria. Toinen heistä oli Juanin mielestä aivan hänen isänsä näköinen. Toinen oli nuori, hauskannäköinen ja ruskettunut. Ja upseerien perässä tuli loputon jono miehiä. Sadat jalat, paksuina ja jäykkinä khakivärisissä sääryksissään, heiluivat väsymättä musiikin mahtavien iskujen mukaan. Jotkut miehistä nauroivat ja laskivat leikkiä. Toiset toljottivat suoraan eteensä. Useimmat olivat aivan nuoria, mutta joillakin oli V:n muotoiset nauhat hihassaan ja he näyttivät julmilta ja itsevarmoilta. Aina vähän ajan kuluttua tuli ratsastava upseeri näkyen korkealla khakivärisen miesjonon yläpuolella. Ja jonolla ei näyttänyt olevan loppua.
      ellauri321.html on line 305: Muistaaxeni eräs Juaniin tyytymätön jenkki Goodreads arvostelija sanoi jättäneensä niteen kesken koska siinä oli niin paljon vanhoja jenkkiklisheitä. Shelved as 'dropped' September 14, 2022. Unengaging story, wooden protagonist, hackneyed American tropes. Disappointment etched all over mine phiz. Read up to p.142.
      ellauri321.html on line 312: The Guardian is owned by a private trust. No sorry, it is now a private company. Ole Jacob joined the Scott Trust in 2015. He was appointed Chair in June 2021, following a short period as Acting Chair. He has been associated with the Schibsted Media Group ASA for 30 years, being elected to the Board in 2000 and serving as Chair since 2002.
      ellauri321.html on line 320: Stuart Profit joined the Scott Trust in 2015. He has been a publishing director at Penguin Books since 1998, and before that he was the publisher of the trade division at HarperCollins for six years.
      ellauri321.html on line 424: Vuonna 1983 Vendler ylisti monia runon kohtia, mutta väitti, että runo ei kyennyt täysin edustamaan sitä, mitä Keats halusi: "Yksinkertainen sisään- ja ulostuloliike, vaikka se toistuisi kolminkertaisesti urnassa, ei yksinkertaisesti ole rakenteellisesti tarpeeksi monimutkaista."
      ellauri321.html on line 553: Ensimmäinen joukkoammuskelu tapahtui 4. joulukuuta 1941 kaupungin ulkopuolella panssarintorjuntahaudoissa. Ennen ampumista kaikki juutalaiset käskettiin ilmestymään Sennaya ulitsalle muuttamisen tekosyyllä. Joulukuun 1. päivänä paikalle saapuneet, pääasiassa naiset, lapset ja vanhukset, koottiin ja suljettiin vankilarakennukseen. Silminnäkijöiden mukaan uhrit vietiin haudoihin katetulla mustalla kuorma-autolla. Saksan arkistojen mukaan 800 juutalaista tapettiin sinä päivänä, vaikka neuvostokomissio antaakin 2000 uhria. Saksan arkistojen mukaan Sonderkommando 10b. Ennen kuin heidät tapettiin, heidän oli riisuttava ja luovutettava omaisuutensa ja hyvät vaatteet. Joulukuun 12. päivänä noin 300 Krymchakia ampui samassa paikassa samassa yksikössä Feldgendarmerie kanssa. Tammi-huhtikuussa 1942, kun neuvostojoukot vapauttivat kaupungin lyhyesti, saksalaiset jatkoivat piiloon jääneiden juutalaisten etsimistä. Löydetyt vietiin samoihin panssarintorjuntaojiin ammuttavaksi.
      ellauri321.html on line 611: Kaikki nämä olivat jokapäiväisiä juttuja, jotka eivät kiinnostaneet Juania, joten hän luki vain otsakkeet. Mutta sitten hän näki sivun yläkulmassa otsakkeen: Ajatuksen kieltäjien koulu saanut mielenkiintoisen oppilaan. Hämmästyen ja sekavin tuntein hän luki sen alla olevan uutisen. Kaunishipiäinen Kuo Kuo, jonka kulmakarvat olivat ohuet kuin mäkäräisen jalka, oli liittynyt Arroyo Beachin nudistilahkoon löytääxeen yli-ihmisen. Olivathan kiinalaiset matkailijat, kuten se Matka länteen kirjan apina, muinaisinakin aikoina menneet länteen viisautta hakemaan ja vaeltaneet sitä varten Keski-Aasian suurien autiomaiden halki, missä heitä kiusasi kylmät ja kuumat paholaiset ja hiekasta nousevat, tuulen kuljettamat aaveet, kunnes he lopulta löysivät viisauden lähteen Benareksessa, pyhän Ganges virran rannalla. Mutta matkallaan he tutkivat suurella mielenkiinnolla paholaisia, paimentolaisheimoja, yksinkertaisten vuoristoasukkaitten ja säikähtyneitten talonpoikien tapoja...
      ellauri322.html on line 55: Mixi miehen oikeudet ovat muka tärkeitä? Paine väittää, että oikeuxia on vain miehillä eikä muulla luonnolla ja että peruskirjoilla, jotka viittaavat siihen, että ne myönnetään ja ne voidaan sitten peruuttaa, ei voi olla perustaa. Paine väittää, että kansakunnan valtaapitävien pitäisi voida valita oma hallitus ja että hallituksen tehtävänä on suojella 20 rikkainta perhettä ja heidän luontaisia oikeuksiaan niinkuin jenkeissä. Tämän kannan laajempi kehittäminen näyttää valmistuneen eräänä iltana Ranskassa Thomas Jeffersonin ja mahdollisesti Lafayetten kanssa vietetyn kostean illan jälkeen.
      ellauri322.html on line 93: In contemplating the whole of this subject, I extend my views into the department of commerce. In all my publications, where the matter would admit, I have been an advocate for commerce, because I am a friend to its effects. It is a pacific system, operating to cordialise mankind, by rendering nations, as well as individuals, useful to each other. As to the mere theoretical reformation, I have never preached it up. The most effectual process is that of improving the condition of man by means of his interest; and it is on this ground that I take my stand. If commerce were permitted to act to the universal extent it is capable, it would extirpate the system of war, and produce a revolution in the uncivilised state of governments. The invention of commerce has arisen since those governments began, and is the greatest approach towards universal civilisation that has yet been made by any means not immediately flowing from moral principles. Whatever has a tendency to promote the civil intercourse of nations by an exchange of benefits, is a subject as worthy of philosophy as of politics.
      ellauri322.html on line 95: Commerce is no other than the traffic of two individuals, multiplied on a scale of numbers; and by the same rule that nature intended for the intercourse of two, she intended that of all. For this purpose she has distributed the materials of manufactures and commerce, in various and distant parts of a nation and of the world; and as they cannot be procured by war so cheaply or so commodiously as by commerce, she has rendered the latter the means of extirpating the former. As the two are nearly the opposite of each other, consequently, the uncivilised state of the European governments is injurious to commerce. Every kind of destruction or embarrassment serves to lessen the quantity, and it matters but little in what part of the commercial world the reduction begins. Like blood, it cannot be taken from any of the parts, without being taken from the whole mass in circulation, and all partake of the loss. When the ability in any nation to buy is destroyed, it equally involves the seller. Could the government of England destroy the commerce of all other nations, she would most effectually ruin her own. It is possible that a nation may be the carrier for the world, but she cannot be the merchant. She cannot be the seller and buyer of her own merchandise. The ability to buy must reside out of herself; and, therefore, the prosperity of any commercial nation is regulated by the prosperity of the rest. If they are poor she cannot be rich, and her condition, be what it may, is an index of the height of the commercial tide in other nations. When, therefore, governments are at war, the attack is made upon a common stock of commerce, and the consequence is the same as if each had attacked his own.
      ellauri322.html on line 106: At an early period⁠—little more than sixteen years of age, raw and adventurous, and heated with the false heroism of a master who had served in a man-of-war⁠—I began the carver of my own fortune, and entered on board the Terrible Privateer, Captain Death. From this adventure I was happily prevented by the affectionate and moral remonstrance of a good father, who, from his own habits of life, being of the Quaker profession, must begin to look upon me as lost.
      ellauri322.html on line 108: But the impression, much as it effected at the time, began to wear away, and I entered afterwards in the King of Prussia Privateer, Captain Mendez, and went with her to sea. Yet, from such a beginning, and with all the inconvenience of early life against me, I am proud to say, that with a perseverance undismayed by difficulties, a disinterestedness that compelled respect, I have not only contributed to raise a new empire in the world, founded on a new system of government, but I have arrived at an eminence in political literature, the most difficult of all lines to succeed and excel in, which aristocracy with all its aids has not been able to reach or to rival. Notta lällällää teille loordit!
      ellauri322.html on line 217: Palattuaan Lontooseen hän huomasi, että Imlay asui uuden naisen, näyttelijän kanssa. Tämän uutisen kuultuaan hän meni Putney Bridgelle ja heittäytyi Thamesiin. Kaksi vesimiestä raahasi hänet tajuttomana joesta ja löysi lääkärin, joka onnistui elvyttämään hänet. Muutamaa viikkoa myöhemmin hän haki Imlaylle kirjoittamansa kirjeet Skandinaviasta ja yhdisti ne päiväkirjoihin luodakseen Kirjeitä, jotka on kirjoitettu lyhyen oleskelun aikana Ruotsissa, Norjassa ja Tanskassa (1796).
      ellauri322.html on line 232: MARY WOLLSTONECRAFT was born on the 27th of April, 1759. Her father, a quick-tempered and unsettled man, capable of beating wife, child, and dog was the son of a manufacturer who made money in Spitalfields, when Spitalfields was prosperous. Her mother was a rigorous Irishwoman, of the Dixons of Sally Shannon. Edward John Wollstonecraft of whose childpen, besides Mary, the second child, three sons and two daughters lived to be sort of men and women in course of time, got rid of about ten thousand pounds which had been left him by his father. He began to get rid of it by farming. Mary Wollstonecraft's firstremembered home was in a farm at Epping. When she was five years old, the family moved to another farm, by the Chelmsford Toad. When she was between six and seven years old they moved again, to the neighbourhood of Barking. There they remained three years before the next move, which was to a farm near Beverley, in Yorkshire. In Yorkshire they remained six years, and Mary Wollstonecraft had there what education fell to her lot between the ages of ten and sixteen.
      ellauri322.html on line 234: Edward John Wollstonecraft then gave up farming to venture upon a commercial speculation. This caused him to live for a year and a half at Queen's Row, Hoxton. His daughter Mary was then sixteen; and while at Hoxton she had her education advanced by the friendly care of a deformed clergyman Mr. Clare who lived next door, and stayed so much at home that his one pair of shoes had lasted him for fourteen years. But Mary Wollstonecraft's chief friend at this time was an accomplished girl only two years older than herself, who maintained her father, mother, and family by skill in drawing. Her name was Frances Blood, and she especially, by her example and direct instruction, drew out her "young friend's" drawers.
      ellauri322.html on line 236: In 1776, Mary Wollstonecraft's father, a rolling stone, rolled into Wales. Again he was a failure. Next year again he was a Londoner; and Mary had influence enough to persuade him. to choose a house at Walworth, where she would be near to her friend's fanny. Then, however, the conditions of her home life caused her to be often on the point of going away to earn a living for herself. In 1778, when she was nineteen, Mary Wollstonecraft did leave home, to take a situation as companion with a rich tradesman's widow at Bath, of whom it was said that none of her companions could stay with her. Mary Wollstonecraft, nevertheless, stayed two years with the difficult widow, and made herself respected. Her mother's failing health then caused Mary to return to her. The father was then living at Enfield, and trying to save the small remainder of his means by not venturing upon any business at all. The mother died after long suffering, wholly dependent on her daughter Mary's constant care. The mother's last words were often quoted by Mary Wollstonecraft in her own last years of distress "A little patience, and all will be over."
      ellauri322.html on line 240: In 1783 Mary Wollstonecraft aged twenty-lour with two of her sisters, joined Fanny Blood in setting up a day school at Islington, which was removed in a few months to Newington Green. Early in 1785 Fanny Blood, far gone in consumption, sailed for Lisbon to marry an Irish surgeon who was settled there. After her marriage it was evident that she had but a few months to live ; Mary Wollstonecraft, deaf to all opposing counsel, then left her school, and, with help of money from a friendly woman, she went out to nurse her, and was by her when she died. Mary Wollstonecraft remembered her loss ten years afterwards in these "Letters from Sweden and Norway," when she wrote:
      ellauri322.html on line 248: The publisher of Mary Wollstonecraft's " Thoughts on the Education of Daughters " was the same Joseph Johnson who in 1785 was the publisher of Oowper's " Task." With her little story written and a little money saved, the resolve to live by her pen could now be carried out. Mary Vollstonecraft, therefore, parted from her friends at Bristol, went to London, saw her publisher, and frankly told him her determination. He met her with fatherly kindness, and received her as a guest in his house while she was making her arrangements. At Michaelmas, 1787, she settled in a house in George Street, on the Surrey side of Blackfriars Bridge. There she produced a little book for children, of " Original Stories from Real Life," and earned by drudgery for Joseph Johnson. She translated, she abridged, she made a volume of Selections, and she wrote for an " Analytical Review," which Mr. Johnson founded in the middle of the year 1788. Among the books translated by her was Necker " On the Importance of Religious Opinions." Among the books abridged by her was S:dzmann's " Elements of Morality."
      ellauri322.html on line 250: With all this hard work she lived as sparely as she could, that she might help her family. She supported her father. That she might enable her sisters to earn their living as teachers, she sent one of them to Paris, and maintained her there for two years ; the other she placed in a school near London as parlour-boarder until she was admitted into it as a paid teacher. She placed one brother at Woolwich to qualify for the Navy, and he obtained a lieutenant's commission. For another brother, articled to an attorney whom he did not like, she obtained a transfer of dentures; and when it became clear that his quarrel was more with law than with the lawyers, she placed him with a farmer before fitting him out for emigration to America. She then sent him, so well prepared for his work there that he prospered well.
      ellauri322.html on line 252: She tried even to disentangle her father's affairs ; but the confusion in them was beyond her powers of arrangement. Added to all this faithful work, she took upon herself the charge of an orphan child, seven years old, whose mother had been in the number of her friends. That was the life of Mary Wollstonecraft, thirty years old, in 1789, the year of the Fall of the Bastille; the noble life now to be touched in its enthusiasms by tbe spirit of the Revolution, to be caught in the great storm, shattered, and lost among its wrecks.
      ellauri322.html on line 254: To Burke's attack on the French Revolution Mary Wollstonecraft wrote an Answer one of many answers provoked by it that attracted much attention. This was followed by her "Vindication of the Rights of Woman," while the air was full of declamation on the "Rights of Man." The claims made in this little book were in advance of the opinion of that day, but they are claims that have in our day been conceded. They are certainly not revolutionary in the opinion of the world tbat has become a hundred years older since the book was written (1792). No, more like 230 years, plus 1.
      ellauri322.html on line 256: At this time Mary Wollstonecraft had moved to rooms in Store Street, Bedford Square. She was fascinated by Fuseli the painter, and he was a married man. She felt herself to be too strongly drawn towards him, and she went to Paris at the close of the year 1792, to break the spell. She felt lonely and sad, and was not the happier for being in a mansion lent to her, from which the owner was away, and in which she lived surrounded by his servants. Strong womanly instincts were astir within her, and they were not all wise folk who had been drawn around her by her generous enthusiasm for the new hopes of the world, that made it then, as Wordsworth felt, a very heaven to the young.
      ellauri322.html on line 262: The interest of this book which describes her travel is quickened by a knowledge of the heart-sorrow that underlies it all. Gilbert Imlay had promised to meet her upon her return, and go with her to Switzerland. But the letters she had from him in Sweden and Norway were cold, and she came back to find that she was wholly forsaken for an actress from a strolling company of players. Then she went up the river to drown herself. She paced the road at Putney on an October night, in 1795, in heavy rain, until her clothes were drenched, that she might sink more surely, and then threw herself from the top of Putney Bridge.
      ellauri322.html on line 264: She was rescued, again, and lived on with deadened spirit. In 1796 these "Letters from Sweden and Norway " were published. Early in 1797 she was married to William Godwin. On the 10th of September in the same year, at the ago of thirty-eight, Mary Wollstonecraft Godwin died, after the birth of the daughter who lived to become the wife of Shelley and write a blockbuster bestseller. The mother also would have lived, if a womanly feeling, in itself to be respected, had not led her also to unwise departure from the customs of the world. Peace be to her memory. None but kind thoughts can dwell upon the life of this too faithful disciple of Rousseau (except for the feminismim).
      ellauri322.html on line 293: Dearly beloved Roger, The scripture moveth us in sundry places. This is a bawdy parody of The Book of common prayer. No ei, se on mitä Swift sanoi kuin sen uudessa seurakunnassa ei kukaan ilmestynyt saarnankuuloon paizi unilukkari.
      ellauri322.html on line 299: The grave has closed over a cdear friend, the friend of my youth (Fanny Blood). Still she is present with me, and I hear her soft voice warbling as I stray over the heath. Fate has separated me from another, the fire of whose eyes, tempered by infantine tenderness, still warms my breast (Mr. Imlay); even when gazing on these tremendous cliffs sublime emotions absorb my soul. And, smile not, if I add that the rosy tint of morning reminds me of a suffusion which will never more charm my senses, unless it reappears on the cheeks of my child. Her sweet blushes etc etc.
      ellauri322.html on line 358: The view of this wild coast, as we sailed along it, afforded me a continual subject for meditation. I anticipated the future improvement of the world, and observed how much man has still to do to obtain of the earth all it could yield. I even carried my speculations so far as to advance a million or two of years (!) to the moment when the earth would perhaps be so perfectly cultivated, and so completely peopled, as to render it necessary to inhabit every spot, yes, even these bleak shores. Imagination went still farther, and pictured the state of man when the earth could no longer support him. Whither was he to flee from universal famine ? Sitten se kezu söi ize izensä ja sixi ei enää ole kezuja.
      ellauri322.html on line 381: Odelsretten er en særnorsk rett som ikke finnes tilsvarende i andre vestlige land. Danmark hadde en lignende rett som man startet avvikling av på slutten av 1600-tallet og endelig avskaffet i 1926. Elementer av odelsrett, integrert i arvelovgivningen, eksisterer fortsatt (per 2006) på Island og Færøyene og i Østerrike, Sveits og Tyskland. På Shetland og Orknøyene er det kjent som udal law.
      ellauri322.html on line 387: It is certainly a convenient and safe way of mortgaging land; yet the "most rational men" whom I conversed with on the subject seemed convinced that the right was more injurious than beneficial to society; still if it contribute to keep the farms in the farmers’ own hands, I should be sorry to hear that it were abolished.
      ellauri322.html on line 397: The Swedes are in general attached to their families, yet a divorce may be obtained by either party on proving the infidelity of the other or acknowledging it themselves. The women do not often recur to this equal privilege, for they either retaliate on their husbands by following their own devices or sink into the merest domestic drudges, worn down by tyranny to servile submission. Do not term me severe if I add, that after youth is flown the husband becomes a sot, and the wife amuses herself by scolding her servants. In fact, what is to be expected in any country where taste and cultivation of mind do not supply the place of youthful beauty and animal spirits?
      ellauri322.html on line 399: The country during the first day’s journey presented a most barren appearance, as rocky, yet not so picturesque as Norway, because on a diminutive scale. We stopped to sleep at a tolerable inn in Falckersberg, a decent little town with a prettyish little wilderness in the back, though all the windows were to the west.
      ellauri322.html on line 415: Caroline Mathildes ægteskab og tid som dronning blev præget af hendes mands ændrede sindstilstand. Manden var så gal som et gøgur. I 1770 indledte hun et kærlighedsforhold til kongens livlæge Johann Friedrich Struensee, der blev den egentlige magthaver i Danmark fra 1770 til 1772. Ved kuppet mod Struensee i 1772 blev hun arresteret, ægteskabet med Christian 7. blev ophævet, og hun blev forvist fra Danmark. Hun levede herefter, adskilt fra sine børn, i byen Celle i Tysklyand indtil sin tidlige død som 23-årig i 1775. Matilda vaikuttaa ihan Hamletin äiskältä. Tanskanmaassa on psljon mätää, mutta kuninkaalla oli hyviä rintapastilleja.
      ellauri322.html on line 427: Sapettaa kun huomaan joitain kaupallisia petoksia, joita harjoitetaan nykyisen sodan aikana. Lyhyesti sanottuna, riippumatta siitä, millä näkökulmalla katson yhteiskuntaa, minusta näyttää siltä, ​​että omaisuuden ihailu on kaiken pahan juuri. Täällä Tanskassa se ei tee ihmisistä yritteliäitä, kuten Amerikassa, vaan säästäviä ja varovaisia. Sen vuoksi en ole koskaan ollut pääkaupungissa, jossa aktiivista teollisuutta on niin vähän; ja mitä tulee iloisuuteen, odotin turhaan norjalaisten reipasta askelta, jotka minusta kaikin puolin näyttävät olevan näistä joholla.
      ellauri322.html on line 464: Yhdessä hotlassa Holsteinissa kaunis nuori nainen, jolla oli rauhoittavat taivaansiniset silmät, johti meidät erittäin siistiin olohuoneeseen ja huomasi, kuinka vapaasti ja kevytmielisesti pikkutyttöni oli pukeutunut, alkoi sääliä häntä mitä hellästi sanoen terveestä punaisuudesta huolimatta. hänen poskillaan. Tämä sama tyttö oli pukeutunut – oli sunnuntai – hyvällä maulla ja jopa kekseliäästi puuvillatakkiin, joka oli koristeltu sinisen nauhan solmuilla, ja joka oli sovitettu monimutkaisesti elävöittämään hänen kaunista ihoaan. Pysähdyin hieman ihaillakseni häntä, sillä jokainen ele oli siro; ja kylän muiden asukkaiden joukossa hän näytti puutarhaliljalta, joka yhtäkkiä kohotti päänsä jyvien ja maissikukkien sekaan. Koska laitos oli pieni, annoin hänelle kolikon, hieman suuremman kuin tavallisesti annoin tarjoilijoille, koska en voinut saada häntä istumaan - jonka hän hyväksyi hymyillen, mutta piti huolen antaakseen sen läsnä ollessani tytölle, joka toi lapselle leivän; tästä ymmärsin, että hän oli talon emäntä tai tytär ja epäilemättä kylän kauneus. Lyhyesti sanottuna kaikissa pienissä kylissä, kun lähestyin Hampuria, vallitsi iloisen teollisuuden ja köyhyyden poissulkevan mukavuuden ilmapiiri, mikä yllätti minut iloisesti.
      ellauri322.html on line 466: Lyhyet jakut, joita naiset käyttävät täällä ja Ranskassa, eivät ole vain imartelevampia, vaan ne sopivat paljon paremmin maanviljelijöille kuin Englannissa käytetyt pitkät mekot, jotka roikkuvat mudassa. Sensijaan koreja perseen päällä jotka saavat puon näyttämään jättimäiseltä en ymmärrä.
      ellauri322.html on line 474: Matkan lähestyessä loppua Mary kuulostaa yhä happamammalta. Imlay on ehkä sättinyt kun merikapun förbimiä harkkoja ei löytynyt.
      ellauri322.html on line 483: Er. epm. homopetteri Horace Walpole (josta on paasattu albumeissa 14, 52, 75, 115, 235 ja 247) nimitteli Marya “a hyena in petticoats” or “a philosophising serpent” .
      ellauri323.html on line 26:
      yellow;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%" />
      ellauri323.html on line 27:

      yellow;background:red;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Zuleika Dobson

      Eetuilua


      ellauri323.html on line 43: The years are too strickly measured, and life too short Vuodet on mitattu liian tarkasti ja elämä liian lyhyt
      ellauri323.html on line 74: Sebastian The Duke was open-handed, as he could well afford to be; money was a thing about which he never needed to think. There had always been plenty of money at Chevron, and there still was, even with the income-tax raised from 11d. to 1/- in the pound; that abundance was another of the things which had never changed and which had every appearance of being unchangeable. It was taken for granted, but Sebastian saw to it that his tenants benefited as well as himself. "An ideel landlord-wish there were more like him," they said, forgetting that there were, in fact, many like him; many who, in their unobtrusive way, elected to share out their fortune, not entirely to their own advantage-quiet English squires, who, less favoured than Sebastian, were yet imbued with the same spirit, and traditionally gave their time and a good proportion of their possessions as a matter of course to those dependent upon them. A voluntary system, voluntary in that it depended upon the temperament of the squire; still, a system which possessed a certain pleasant dignity denied to the systems of a more compulsory sort. But did it, Sebastian reflected, sitting with his pen poised above his cheque-book, carry with it a disagreeable odour of charity? He thought not; for he knew that he derived as much satisfaction from the idea that Bassett would no longer endure a leaking roof as Bassett could possibly derive, next winter, from the fact that his roof no longer leaked. He would certainly go over and talk to the man Bassett.
      ellauri323.html on line 84: Zuleika Dobson – "vaikkakaan ei ehdottoman kaunis" - on edvardiaanisen aikakauden tuhoisan viehättävä nuori nainen, todellinen femme fatale, joka on ammatiltaan arvovaltainen entinen sirkustirehtööri. Zuleikan nykyinen ammatti (tosin mikä vielä tärkeämpää, hänen kiehtova kauneutensa) on tehnyt hänestä jonkinlaisen pienen julkkiksen, ja hän onnistuu pääsemään Oxfordin yliopiston etuoikeutettuun, vain miehistä koostuvaan alueeseen, koska hänen isoisänsä on Juudaksen Collegen vartija (perustuu Merton Collegeen, Beerbohmin alma materiin). Siellä hän rakastuu ensimmäistä kertaa elämässään Dorsetin herttuaan, snobi, emotionaalisesti irrallinen opiskelija, joka – turhautuneena siihen, ettei hän pysty hallitsemaan tunteitaan, kun hän näkee hänet – joutuu myöntämään, että hänkin on hänen ensimmäinen rakkautensa ja kosi häntä impulsiivisesti. Koska hän kuitenkin tuntee, ettei hän voi rakastaa ketään, ellei tämä ole läpäisemätön hänen viehätysvoimalleen, hän kuitenkin hylkää kaikki kosijansa ja tekee samoin hämmästyneen herttuan kanssa. Herttua huomaa nopeasti, että Noaks, Kerekekeks Koaks Koaks, toinen Oxford-opiskelija, väittää myös rakastuneensa häneen olematta koskaan edes ollut tekemisissä hänen kanssaan. Ilmeisesti miehet rakastuvat häneen heti nähdessään hänet. Ensimmäisenä, jolle hän on vastannut rakkautensa (miten vain lyhyeksikin ajaksi), herttua päättää tehdä itsemurhan symboloidakseen intohimoaan Zuleikaa kohtaan ja toivoo, että hän lisää tietoisuutta hänen lumoavan viehätyksensä kauheasta voimasta.
      ellauri323.html on line 95: "Kirk was the cynosure of all eyes"
      ellauri323.html on line 110: Benedetti luopui oikeuskäytännöstään, luovutti kaiken omaisuutensa ja eli noin vuodesta 1268 lähtien vaeltavana askeettina liittyen Pyhän Franciscuksen kolmanteen ritarikuntaan . Tänä aikana hän sai mainetta hulluna, koska hänen eksentrinen käyttäytyminen, näytteli hänen henkistä näkemystä, ansaitsi hänelle lempinimen hän oli omaksua Jacopone . Esimerkkejä tästä käytöksestä olivat esiintyminen Todin julkisella aukiolla, satulan käyttäminen ja nelinkontin ryömiminen. Toisessa yhteydessä hän esiintyi häissä veljensä talossa tervattuina ja höyheninä päästä varpaisiin.
      ellauri323.html on line 119: Zuleika was not strictly beautiful. Her eyes were a trifle large, and their lashes longer than they need have been. An anarchy of small curls was her chevelure, a dark upland of misrule, every hair asserting its rights over a not discreditable brow. For the rest, her features were not at all original. They seemed to have been derived rather from a gallimaufry of familiar models. From Madame la Marquise de Saint-Ouen came the shapely tilt of the nose. The mouth was a mere replica of Cupid’s bow, lacquered scarlet and strung with the littlest pearls. No apple-tree, no wall of peaches, had not been robbed, nor any Tyrian rose-garden, for the glory of Miss Dobson’s cheeks. Her neck was imitation-marble. Her hands and feet were of very mean proportions. She had no waist to speak of.
      ellauri323.html on line 127: In Berlin, every night, the students escorted her home with torches. Prince Vierfuenfsechs-Siebenachtneun offered her his hand, and was condemned by the Kaiser to six months’ confinement in his little castle. In Yildiz Kiosk, the tyrant who still throve there conferred on her the Order of Chastity, and offered her the central couch in his seraglio. In Petersburg, the Grand Duke Salamander Salamandrovitch fell enamoured of her. The Grand Duchess appealed to the Tzar. Zuleika was conducted across the frontier, by an escort of love-sick Cossacks. On the Sunday before she left Madrid, a great bull-fight was held in her honour. Fifteen bulls received the coup-de-grace, and Alvarez, the matador of matadors, died in the arena with her name on his lips. He had tried to kill the last bull without taking his eyes off la divina senorita. From the Vatican, the Pope launched against her a bull which fell utterly flat.
      ellauri323.html on line 133: Yet Zuleika WAS very innocent, really. She was as pure as that young shepherdess Marcella, who, all unguarded, roved the mountains and was by all the shepherds adored. Like Marcella, she had given her heart to no man, had preferred none. Youths were reputed to have died for love of her, as Chrysostom died for love of the shepherdess; and she, like the shepherdess, had shed no tear. When Chrysostom was lying on his bier in the valley, and Marcella looked down from the high rock, Ambrosio, the dead man’s comrade, cried out on her, upbraiding her with bitter words—“Oh basilisk of our mountains!” Nor do I think Ambrosio spoke too strongly. Er. epm. homopetteri Horace Walpole (josta on paasattu albumeissa 14, 52, 75, 115, 235 ja 247) nimitteli Woolworthin Marya “a hyena in petticoats” or “a philosophising serpent” .
      ellauri324.html on line 177: Here’s the tally: With an international Jewish population that amounts to only one quarter of one percent of humanity, a little more than 20 percent of all Nobel recipients between 1901, the first year prizes were awarded, and today, have been Jews or had at least one Jewish parent, including 37 percent of American recipients. The greatest concentration has been in economics (the economics prize was established in 1968; 38% of the winners have been Jewish or half-Jewish) and physiology/medicine (29 percent). Of peace prize winners, nine have been Jews — including, appallingly enough, Henry Kissinger (1973). “Nobel Peace, my ass! If Henry Kiss-of-Death deserves it, so do I!” —Bill Horowitz
      ellauri324.html on line 220: The electricity is distributed via overhead lines, due to an underinvestment in infrastructure: last month, I lost power for over 36 hours because it got a little windy (the world headquarters of Apple, Facebook, and Google are within a ten mile radius of my place). When I ride my bike to the local supermarket this evening, I will have to be careful not to slip on a large and growing patch of gravel on a road that hasn’t been repaired for many years: this, in one of the wealthiest parts of the wealthiest country in the world.
      ellauri324.html on line 240: If the author of the question long one is wealthy and well traveled he would know that Europe and Asia had many technological advances long before USA did or will ever have such as TGV or bullet trains for example. After spending time in Europe and Asia it was decades later I saw many of these advances here to buy or experience. Japanese cars nearly sunk USA automakers. Why didn’t the corp heads heed anything. TGV in France and Japan and other nations is unrivaled and we have not even one such train here. Tankless water heaters, available in Asia and Europe decades before here. Roads and other infrastructure also superior. My research shows that Americans were so busy creating totalitarian policies like redlining and private cars and pools and expressways removed entire neighborhoods of blacks to create all white suburbs that they were unconcerned with advances that would unite people. Sure everywhere are class societies but it’s a whole different level here. The homeless situation is opening eyes in this country and many things are borne out of a highly segregated society where it’s expensive to live in certain cities and suburbs and the rest be damned. Obviously California has destroyed itself from within. The liberals there and other states are the most class and race conscious than any other people on earth. This blind spot is like a beacon. A prism that breaks down social order. The wealthy libs have to accept their roles in American destruction. It will get worse long before it improves. [Redlining is an illegal practice in which lenders avoid providing credit services to individuals living in or seeking to live in, communities of color because of the race, color, or national origin of the residents in those communities.]
      ellauri324.html on line 244: Eventually the fake money in the stock exchange thats being backed by the one world people will eventually burst and when it does their will be a solution. A new digital currency will slowly be on the rise as the new and “logical” solution to the economic disaster. Since our currency is paper and is no longer backed by gold it is easy to just switch to digital money. This new idea (which has been planned for years) will start to make its way on your smart phones and new trendy devices like wrist bands and and tech glasses. This will hold your driving traveling financial health and social information on it and money and credit cards will slowly be pushed out to the point of being obsolete and a thing of the past. Crime will arise and these trendy devices will get hacked stolen and destroyed. their will be a type of digital fraud that will be almost impossible to deal with until a “new solution arrises”.
      ellauri324.html on line 255: Presidentti Ronald Reagan mainitsi kampanjamielenosoituksensa Hammontonissa, New Jerseyssä lyhyesti laulun Born in the USA sanoen: "Amerikan tulevaisuus lepää tuhansissa unelmissanne sydämessänne. Se lepää toivon sanomassa. sellaisen miehen lauluissa, jota niin monet nuoret amerikkalaiset ihailevat – New Jerseyn omassa Bruce Springsteenissä." Kaksi yötä myöhemmin Pittsburghissa pidetyssä konsertissa Springsteen kertoi yleisölle: "No, presidentti mainitsi nimeni puheessaan toissapäivänä ja jouduin jotenkin miettimään, mikä hänen suosikkialbuminsa on täytynyt olla. ? En usko, että se oli Nebraska." Bruce on Reaganiin verrattuna vihervassari. 19. heinäkuuta 1988 Springsteenin konsertti Itä-Saksassa keräsi 300 000 katsojaa. Konsertin oli suunnitellut sosialistisen yhtenäisyyspuolueen nuorisosiipi, jonka tarkoituksena oli tyynnyttää Itä-Saksan nuoriso, joka kaipasi lisää vapautta ja lännen populaarimusiikkia. Nimikappale käsittelee tavallisen sotilaan tunteita ja pelkoja Irakin sodan aikana. Presidentti Obama piti puheen, jossa hän väitti, että Springsteen oli sisällytetty tavallisten amerikkalaisten laajaan kappalevalikoimaan. Vuonna 2012 Springsteen kampanjoi presidentti Barack Obaman uudelleenvalintaa vastaan. ​​Springsteenin kiertueet sijoittivat hänet neljänneksi artistien joukossa vuosikymmenen kokonaistuloissa. 31. heinäkuuta 2012 Helsingissä Springsteen esitti kaikkien aikojen pisimmän konserttinsa, neljä tuntia ja kuusi minuuttia 33 kappaleella. Syyskuussa 2023 Springsteen ilmoitti lykkäävänsä kahdeksan syyskuulle suunniteltua esitystä. Springsteen oli hoidossa peptisen haavataudin vuoksi, ja lääkärit suosittelivat, ettei hän esiintyisi livenä.
      ellauri324.html on line 359: Lodge lupaili Diemin veljexille lentoa Filippiineille, muttei pitänyt lupausta. Kieltäytyessään auttamasta Ngô-veljiä poistumaan maasta turvallisesti, Lodge sanoi myöhemmin heidät ammuttuaan: "Mitä olisimme tehneet heille, jos he olisivat eläneet? Jokainen eversti Blimp maailmassa olisi käyttänyt niitä hyväkseen. ." 
      ellauri324.html on line 386: Westmorelandin mukaan hän vastasi uutisiin hyökkäyksistä optimistisesti sekä median esityksissä että raporteissaan Washingtonille. Tarkempien tarkkailijoiden mukaan kenraali oli kuitenkin "tyrmistynyt siitä, että kommunistit olivat kyenneet koordinoimaan niin monia hyökkäyksiä niin salassa", ja hän oli "mahautunut ja syvästi järkyttynyt".
      ellauri324.html on line 453: truly open your eyes, you’ll never be able to look at it
      ellauri324.html on line 510: yes, that did shock us.

      I was in Louisiana with a
      ellauri324.html on line 515: certain amount of trauma, so again, yes you can say we
      ellauri324.html on line 524: a competent and very aggressive combatant. He layed into
      ellauri324.html on line 575: day per year (national holiday). They are a highly
      ellauri324.html on line 588: Restaurants pay their employees a living wage, and
      ellauri324.html on line 647: assisted in. So, yeah, disappointing would be the right
      ellauri324.html on line 687: almost 40 years and it has gotten soooooo much worse.
      ellauri324.html on line 691: people a year with their opioids without ANY
      ellauri324.html on line 700: we earned in a year went to cover health insurance and
      ellauri324.html on line 705: national holidays that employers MUST pay you for - ZERO!
      ellauri324.html on line 723: guns EVERY year and the government doesn’t think we
      ellauri324.html on line 748: often annoyed, sometimes startled, sometimes frightened,
      ellauri324.html on line 750: trip, we were really shocked. What annoyed us? You guess
      ellauri324.html on line 769: years, if not decades, before. Some examples: Cheques:
      ellauri324.html on line 792: And, of course, obesity. Ensimmäistä kertaa yli neljä kymmenestä yhdysvaltalaisnaisesta on lihavia. 7. KESÄKUUTA 2016 18:41 NEW YORK - Kansakunnan liikalihavuusepidemia jatkaa kasvuaan naisten hälyttävän lisääntymisen johdosta. Ensimmäistä kertaa yli neljä kymmenestä yhdysvaltalaisnaisesta on liikalihavia hallituksen uusien terveystilastojen mukaan. Henkilöä, joka on 5 jalkaa 4 eli yhdysvaltalaisten naisten keskipituus, pidetään lihavana, kun se painaa 174 kiloa tai enemmän. Henkilö, joka on noin 5 jalkaa 9, on noin miesten keskipitkä, katsotaan lihavaksi 203 kiloa. Half of America will be obese within 10 years, study says.
      ellauri324.html on line 801: people get so fat? Well, nutrition, of course. Once we stayed in a motel with complimentary breakfast. Each single breakfast item was sugary: juice, danish, donuts, muffins, sweetened yoghurt, even a “hotcake”, composed of egg, bacon, cheese and pancakes with fake maple syrup. Not a single item without sugar!
      ellauri324.html on line 835: Oh wait! That's the USA! Sweden doesn't have those problems yet, though with a string of right wing cabinets it is trying its very best to catch up.
      ellauri325.html on line 134: Viranomaisten mukaan Ukraina valmistautuu toiseen talveen Venäjän ilmaiskuihin energiajärjestelmään, ja he varoittavat, että se on haavoittuvampi kuin viime vuonna, koska sillä on vähemmän ylikapasiteettia ja vähän varalaitteita. "Ymmärrämme, että talven lähestyessä venäläiset terroristit yrittävät tehdä enemmän vahinkoa. Vastaamme viholliselle samalla mitalla, " presidentti Volodymyr Zelenski sanoi hyökkäyksestä.
      ellauri325.html on line 169: Oikeusministeri V. D. Nabokov ( V. V. Nabokovin isä ), joka vastaa lehdestä, tunsi Averchenkon hyvin. Krimin SSR perustettiin lyhyeksi ajaksi kesällä 1919 Krimille D. I. Uljanovin johdolla. Averchenko, jolla ei ollut aikaa purjehtia ranskalaisten kanssa, odottaa pahinta, mutta terroria, kuten vuonna 1917 ja sen jälkeen vuonna 1920 Krimin SSR:n alaisuudessa, ei tapahtunut, ja Averchenkon vehkeily vapaaehtoisarmeijan tukena ei vaikuttanut häneen. Pian valkoiset Etelä-Venäjän asevoimat valloittivat Krimin uudelleen. Vuonna 1920 hän kirjoitti paroni P. N. Wrangelin Venäjän armeijan hyväksi. Simferopolissa.
      ellauri325.html on line 253: Stephen PH Butler Leacock FRSC (30. joulukuuta 1869 – 28. maaliskuuta 1944) oli kanadalainen opettaja, politologi, kirjailija ja humoristi. Vuosina 1915-1925 hän oli maailman tunnetuin englanninkielinen humoristi. Hänet tunnetaan kevyestä huumoristaan sekä ihmisten hulluutta koskevasta kritiikistä.
      ellauri325.html on line 262: Leacock sensijaan oli sekä sosiaalikonservatiivi että puolueellinen konservatiivi. Hän vastusti naisille äänioikeuden antamista, ja hänellä oli ristiriitaisia tuloksia ei-englanninkielisestä maahanmuutosta, koska hän kirjoitti sekä tukeakseen maahanmuuton laajentamista anglosaksien ulkopuolelle ennen toista maailmansotaa että vastustaen kanadalaisten maahanmuuton laajentamista anglosaksien ulkopuolelle toisen maailmansodan päättyessä. Hän oli vankkumaton Brittiläisen imperiumin champignon ja kävi luentomatkoillakin edistääkseen brittiasiaa. Mikä ääliö. Konservatiivisuudestaan huolimatta hän oli vankkumaton sosiaalilainsäädännön ja varallisuuden uudelleenjaon puolestapuhuja.
      ellauri325.html on line 285: Sellainen oli Smithin lapsuus. Sen lopussa hänen ulkonäössään ei ollut mitään merkkiä nerokkaasta miehestä. Satunnainen tarkkailija ei olisi voinut nähdä, että leveiden kasvojen, massiivisen suun, pitkän luisun otsan ja hörökorvan varjoon, joka ulottui lyhyexi leikatun pään taakse, olisi piiloutunut neroutta. Hän ei tietenkään voinut. Siellä ei ollut mitään piilossa.
      ellauri325.html on line 293: Smithin elämä ei näyttänyt koskaan tuovan häntä mihinkään niistä suurista käännekohdista, joita tapahtui suurten elämässä. Totta, kuluneet vuodet toivat jonkin verran onnen muutosta. Hänet siirrettiin lyhyttavaroissa nauhatiskiltä kaulustiskille, kaulustiskiltä miesten housutiskille ja miesten housuista miesten hienoihin paitoihin. Ooh, suit you sir. Sitten kun hän kasvoi ikääntyessään tehottomaksi, hänet siirrettiin jälleen miesten hienoista paidoista miesten housuihin ja niin edelleen nauhatiskille. Ja kun hän kasvoi melko vanhaksi, he erottivat hänet ja ottivat pojan, jolla oli 4 tuuman suu ja hiekanväriset hiukset, joka teki kaiken puolella rahasta. Se oli John Smithin kaupallinen ura: se ei kestä vertailua Mr. Gladstonen kanssa, mutta se ei ole erilainen kuin sinun.
      ellauri325.html on line 318: Simolta jäi gradu tekemättä kuten Hotakaiselta ja Kristina-tädiltä. Naurukin jäi kesken 52-vuotiaana 1967. Vuonna 1941 Simo siirtyi Savon Sanomiin toimittajaksi. Tähän aikaan hän alkoi julkaista lehdissä pakinoita nimimerkillä Aapeli. Pakinat kuvasivat jatkosotaa rivimiehen näkökulmasta. Laajemman yleisön tietoisuuteen hän tuli vuonna 1946, kun hän julkaisi lyhyen parodian Olavi Paavolaisen Synkästä yksinpuhelusta nimellä Mörkki monologi. Teksteissä esiintyy Aapelin vakiohahmo mäkitupalainen Hermanni Hulukkonen, joka tuo pakinoihin maalaishuumoria. Hauskuus syntyy myös kohelluksista ja vitsikkyydestä. Aapelin nuorisokirjoista tunnetuimmat ovat Koko kaupungin Vinski ja sen jatko-osa Detektivbüro Winski und Waldemar. Vittu Waldemar, se oli Winzent. Ne oli munkin mielikirjoja poikasena. Minä keitän täitä... People Are Not as Bad as They Seem (Finnish: Aika hyvä ihmiseksi) is a 1977 Finnish historical film directed by Rauni Mollberg, based on the novels by Aapeli. Minnettee puhheettee savveettee murreettee. Huoh.
      ellauri325.html on line 396: Sodan pitkittyessä ukrainalaisten into astua asepalvelukseen hiipuu. Yhä useampi joutuu rintamalle pakotettuna ja yhä useampi välttelee palvelusta.
      ellauri326.html on line 114: Jättäkäämme syrjään kysymys sielusta, mutta Andrias- salamanterista sanoisin, ettei sillä ole individualiteettia Ne näyttävät olevan yhdennäköisiä, yhtä ahkeria, yhtä kelpoisia ja yhtä ilmeettömiä. Lyhyesti: ne täyttävät erään nykykulttuurin ihanteen, nimittäin keskinkertaisuuden.
      ellauri326.html on line 438: Olga Skabeyeva said on state-owned Rossiya 1 TV: "It can safely be called World War Three. That's entirely for sure. [...] We're definitely fighting against NATO infrastructure, if not NATO itself. We need to recognise that." She has further claimed that NATO is supplying Ukraine with "zillions of weapons". (Which is entirely true, see the list.)
      ellauri326.html on line 505: Agafja Fedosejevnalla oli tanu päässä, kolme nystermää nenässä ja kahvinruskea, keltakukkainen viitta yllä. Hänen vartalonsa oli kuin tynnyri, ja sentähden oli yhtä vaikea löytää hänen vyötäisiään kuin nähdä nenäänsä ilman kuvastinta. Hänen jalkansa olivat lyhyet ja paksut kuin kaksi patjaa. Hän juorusi mainiosti, söi aamuisin keitetyitä punajuurikkaita ja sätti ja haukkui pontevasti. Kaikissa näissä vaihtelevissa toimissa hänen kasvonsa eivät hetkeksikään muuttaneet ilmettään, mihin tavallisesti vain naiset kykenevät.
      ellauri326.html on line 510: Mutta ennenkuin käymme eteenpäin, pitää ehdottomasti tutustuttaa lukijaa tähän huomattavaan henkilöön. Anton Prokofjevitsh Golopus on kerrassaan hyvä mies tämän sanan täydessä merkityksessä: jos joku Mirgorodin kunnianarvoisista henkilöistä lahjottaa hänelle kaulahuivin tai alusvaatteet — niin hän kiittää; jos joku näppää kevyesti hänen nenäänsä — niin hän kiittää silloinkin. Jos häneltä kysyttiin: "Miksi, Anton Prokofjevitsh, teidän takkinne on kanelinvärinen, mutta hihat siniset?" niin hän tavallisesti vastasi: "Niin, teillä ei sellaista olekkaan! Mutta antakaahan olla, kun se kuluu, niin muuttuu kokonaan yhdenväriseksi!" Ja todellakin, auringon vaikutuksesta alkoi sininen kangas muuttua kanelinväriseksi, ja on nyt aivan samaa väriä kuin takkikin. Mutta mikä kummallista, Anton Prokofjevitsh käyttää kesällä verkavaatteita ja talvella nankinikankaisia. Anton Prokofjevitshilla ei ole omaa taloa. Hänellä oli kyllä sellainen ennen kaupungin laidassa, mutta hän möi sen ja osti tummanruskean kolmivaljakon ja pienet vaunut, joilla ajeli vierailuille ympäristön tilanomistajain luo. Mutta kun hevosista oli paljon vaivaa ja tarvittiin rahaa kauroihin, niin Anton Prokofjevitsh vaihtoi hevoset ja vaunut viuluun ja piikaan ja sai vielä 25 ruplan setelin välirahaa. Sitten hän möi viulun ja vaihtoi piian kullalla koristettuun safiaaninahkaiseen tupakkakukkaroon, ja nyt ei ole kenelläkään sellaista tupakkakukkaroa kuin Anton Prokofjevitshilla. Tästä hyvästä hän ei enää saata ajella maaseudulle, vaan on pakotettu pysymään kaupungissa ja viettämään yönsä eri taloissa milloin minkin aatelismiehen luona, etupäässä siellä, missä mielellään hänen nenäänsä näppäillään. Anton Prokofjevitsh tahtoo syödä hyvin ja pelaa joltisesti Mustaa-Maijaa ja Mylly-Mattia. Tottelevaisuus on hänen elementtinsä, ja sentähden hän otti heti hatun ja kepin ja läksi.
      ellauri326.html on line 605: Mitä ihmettä, tänne, sähähti ukko kiihtyen. Tarkoitatko tänne Prahan kaupunkiin?
      ellauri327.html on line 102: Peter Rowley: Anyone with slanty eyes are not worth listening to.
      ellauri327.html on line 154: Kender skam den russiske historie, kender også den amerikanske.. Var i mange år dybt fascineret af usa faktisk, men de har ekstremt blodige hænder.. Du behøver bare se tilbage på de sidste par årtier for at se det, usa har invaderet 5 lande (2 af dem var ulovligt), haft adskellige "operationer" i endnu flere lande end det, har destrueret fulde byer med civile, har testet våben der gør at folk stadig bliver født deforme, har haft billeder med kvinder der blev spændt fast i strømkabler og soldater der pissede på og voldtog døde ofre, samt har dræbt op mod 400.000 civile endten direkte eller indirekte.. alt det er sket bare de sidste 22 år.. Så ved siden af dem, fremstår Rusland som en engel, selvom vi bestemt godt kan blive enige om at de ikke er og selv har beskidte hænder.
      ellauri327.html on line 398:

      KIEV, UKRAINE: Ukrainian President Leonid Kuchma (R) and Russian counterpart Vladimir Putin talk with Andrey Sinko, a schoolboy from Kiev during their meeting in Kiev, 27 October 2004. Vladimir Putin is on a three-days official visit to Ukraine. (ALEXEY PANOV). At the same time, the eyes and expression on Vladimir Putin’s face looked more than strange when looking at the boy. Even some Russian psychiatrists paid attention to this.

      ellauri327.html on line 401: And Ukraine is doing the entire world a favor by sacrificing its people and seeing its country destroyed to stop Putin and defeat Russia. We owe Ukraine a huge debt of gratitude that far exceeds the weapons we have supplied to them. They have sacrificed their country. Their lives. Their infrastructure to save our countries from having to endure what they are doing.
      ellauri327.html on line 415: "Zelensky feels betrayed by his Western allies. They left him without the means to win the war, only the means to survive it," the journalist says. And the main showman in this show is President Zelensky. Show off the light of nakedness in military-style football and pants, wearing a mask of turbonosti - bloating. He joins with his allies and watches his favorite videos for the TV show.
      ellauri328.html on line 135: Ironinen käänne sananlaskussa "jedem das Seine, mir das Meiste" ("jokaiselle omansa, minulle eniten") on tunnettu saksalaisten idiomien säiliössä pitkään, mukaan lukien sen sisällyttäminen Carl Zuckmayeriin vuoden 1931 näytelmään Köpenickin kapteeni.
      ellauri328.html on line 192: Bultmann opiskeli teologiaa Tübingenin, Berliinin ja Marburgin yliopistoissa. Hänen opettajiaan olivat mm. Johannes Weiss ja Adolf Jülicher. Bultmann väitteli Paavalin kirjeistä vuonna 1910. Kaksi vuotta myöhemmin hän suoritti habilitaation ja hänestä tuli Marburgin Uuden testamentin eksegetiikan lehtori. Välillä hän opetti lyhyen aikaa Breslaussa ja Gießenissä. Vuonna 1921 hänestä tuli professori Marburgissa. Hän hoiti virkaa vuoteen 1951, eli paahtoi läpi naziajan ilman huolen häivää. Hakuna matata.
      ellauri328.html on line 518: "Pathetic," Greene said of the 23 House Republicans who didn't support her attempt to censure Rashida Tlaib. "She is an Israel hating America hating woman who does not represent anything America stands for, while I sure as hell do. Just look at my blond hairdo and close set eyes."

      ellauri330.html on line 183: Joten pitää ottaa eläkkeelle siirtyessä yhteyttä myös vanhoihin hyviin ystäviin joiden kanssa ei ole ehtinyt pitää työssäolo-aikana yhteyttä. Näin voi pelastaa yxinäisyydeltä myös muita ikäisiään. Joskus kun ei viitsisi millään lähteä harrastukseen niin on vain otettava itseään niskasta kiinni ja lähteä. Uutaniemen ikäiset ja paljon vanhemmatkin käyvät esim. lavatansseissa. Sieltä saa taas erilaista hauskaa elämään. Tanssikursseja on ympäri suomia. Erityisesti miehien kannattaa näihin hakeutua koska heistä on pulaa. Nimim Lady R.
      ellauri330.html on line 278: Rafael Koskimies on mainittu siellä täällä paasauxissa. Se on samoja Kyrön Forsmanneja kuin lyhyenläntä Aarne-setä, tai nimensä Sillinpääxi muuttanut Taata os. Koskinen. Rafu piti sille etukäteen tilatun nekrologin. Rafun oppilas Aarne Kinnumen ei pitänyt Rafua paljon minään, ei liioin pikku Make Eskelinen. Nytkun Pasilan sivukirjaston Kirjavan keskiviikon kierrätyskirjoista löytyi Rafun muistelmateos ,"Helsinki ja härjänvaza", on ehkä aika tutustua Rafun elämään ja teoxiin.
      ellauri330.html on line 283: Rafael Koskimies syntyi Savonlinnassa helmikuussa 1898 fennomaani-ihanteita kannattavan keskiluokkaisen lehtoriperheen vanhimmaksi lapseksi. Perheen fennomaanimyönteisyys ei ollut yllättävää, sillä suku kytkeytyy kuuluisiin fennomaaniaatteen ajajiin, kuten Yrjö Sakari Yrjö-Koskiseen, josta Rafun äiti pissi herneitä. Rafael Koskimiehen sukunimi olikin vuoteen 1926 asti Forsman. Yrjö-Kossuilla on mahtipontinen kivi Hietaniemessä. Siinä lähistöllä on Rafukin pienen kiven alla. Rafun äisky oli voimisyelunopettaja, os. Heikinheimo, ex-Heikel, ex-Heikkilä Oulunjoelta, Oulun Houruloiden naapurista. Musta lammas Armas tuli esiin Katri Valan partnerina.
      ellauri330.html on line 358: Werner Sombart ( / ˈ v ɜːr n ər ˈ z ɒ m b ɑːr t / ; saksaksi: [ˈzɔmbaʁt] ; 19. tammikuuta 1863 – 18. toukokuuta 1941) oli saksalainen taloustieteilijä , historioitsija ja sosiologi. "Nuorimman historiallisen koulun " johtaja oli yksi johtavista Manner-Euroopan yhteiskuntatieteilijöistä 1900-luvun ensimmäisellä neljänneksellä. Termi myöhäinen kapitalismi on akkreditoitu hänelle. Kapitalismiin liittyvä luovan tuhon käsite on myös hänen kekkansa. Hänen magnum opuksensa oli Der moderne Kapitalismus . Sitä julkaistiin 3 osana vuosina 1902–1927. Kapitalismuksessa hän kuvaili neljä vaihetta kapitalismin kehityksessä sen varhaisimmista iteraatioista sen kehittyessä feodalismista, jota hän kutsui protokapitalismiksi varhaiseen, korkeaan ja lopulta myöhäiseen kapitalismiin, Spätkapitalismus, ensimmäisen maailmansodan jälkeisenä aikana. Sombartilta on myös Die Juden und das Wirtschaftleben. Samaan aikaan toisaalla hirveä puolijuutalainen Alois Hitler suomi Adolf poikaansa.
      ellauri331.html on line 93: 71-v. syntymäpäivänään 7. lokakuuta 2023, 09:19 Vladimir Putin on palauttanut Venäjän ja sen kansalaisten ylpeyden maastaan. Putinin aikana maan alue laajeni ensimmäistä kertaa suuren isänmaallisen sodan jälkeen. Lisäksi Putin puolustaa oikeudenmukaista moninapaista maailmanjärjestystä ja siksi hänellä on suuri tuki ympäri maailmaa, valtiotieteilijät Pavel Danilin ja Alexander Zvyagintsev kertoivat VZGLYAD-sanomalehdelle. Venäjän presidentti täyttää lauantaina 71 vuotta. "Putinin presidenttikauden alusta lähtien Venäjä, kuten sanotaan, on vahvistanut painoaan ja auktoriteettiaan - BKT kasvaa, kansalaisten hyvinvointi paranee, valuutta vahvistuu taalaan nähden, sosiaalisia ohjelmia käynnistetään, kaikki tuotannon ja tieteen osa-alueet kehittyvät. Ja vuonna 2014 tapahtui merkittävä tapahtuma - maamme alueen ensimmäinen laajennus Suuren isänmaallisen sodan jälkeen. Eikä vain maa, vaan Venäjän valtio, Venäjän sivilisaatio, kuten presidentti sanoo”, muistelee Venäjän federaation alaisen Finanssiyliopiston apulaisprofessori Pavel Danilin. ”Sitten vuonna 2022 valtionpäämies joutui tekemään useita vaikeita päätöksiä Donbassin ja Novorossijan alueiden yhdistämisestä Venäjään. Tämä laajensi edelleen valtiomme rajoja ja palautti myös useita miljoonia venäläisiä – DPR:n, LPR:n, Zaporozhyen ja Khersonin alueiden asukkaita – äitinsä kohtuun. Venäjän maiden yhdistämisprosessi on todiste Venäjän suuruudesta", hän huomautti.
      ellauri331.html on line 147: Koomisimmat läpät on että Zhirinovski oli höveli ja Valeri Gergijev piti Pussy Riotista. Tätäkään eivät kaikki lukijat ehkä ymmärrä. Sivustoa voidaan verrata The Onioniin (USA) ja Private Eyeen (Britannia). The Onion is an American "fake news" organization. It features satirical articles reporting on international, national, and local news as well as an entertainment newspaper and website. Sipulin artikkelit kattavat ajankohtaisia ​​tapahtumia, sekä todellisia että kuvitteellisia, parodioivat perinteisten uutisorganisaatioiden sävyä ja muotoa tarinoilla, pääkirjoituksilla ja mies-kadun haastatteluilla käyttäen perinteistä uutissivuston ulkoasua ja toimituksellista ääntä, joka on mallinnettu uutissivuston Associated Press mukaan. Yxityisezivä on brittiläinen kahden viikon välein ilmestyvä satiirinen ja ajankohtaisia ​​asioita käsittelevä uutislehti, joka perustettiin vuonna 1961. Se ilmestyy Lontoossa, ja sitä on toimittanut Ian Hislop vuodesta 1986 lähtien. Julkaisu on laajalti tunnustettu näkyvästä kritiikistä ja julkisuuden henkilöiden loukkaamisesta. Se on "syvästi konservatiivisella muutosvastarintamalla" vastustanut siirtymistä verkkosisältöön tai kiiltävään muotoon: se on aina painettu halvalle paperille ja muistuttaa muodoltaan ja sisällöltään sarjakuvaa yhtä paljon kuin vakavaa lehteä. Lehteä lehteilee 700K brittilukijaa. Ei sillä kuuhun mennä.
      ellauri331.html on line 223: 9. toukokuuta 2022, Venäjän voitonpäivänä, Venäjän hyökkäyksen aikana Ukrainaan Lenita.ru näytti lyhyesti tietoa Venäjän sodasta Ukrainaa vastaan tavalla, joka ei ollut hallituksen määräysten tai Lenita.ru:n pakollisten ohjeiden mukainen. Artikkeleita julkaistiin siviilien joukkomurhasta, ryöstelystä, venäläisten joukkojen hylätyistä ruumiista, Mariupolin tuhoamisesta, sensuurista, valtion valheista kuolleiden sotilaiden omaisille, hyökkäyksiä lehdistönvapautta vastaan ja paljon muuta. Lenta.ru:n toimittajat Egor Polyakov ja Alexandra Miroshnikova ovat ilmoittaneet olevansa näiden artikkeleiden kirjoittajat ja kertoneet tarvitsevansa nyt uusia työpaikkoja, asianajajia ja poliittista turvapaikkaa. Sisältö poistettiin nopeasti, mutta se löytyy Wayback Machinesta. Varmaan velmut saivat noppelaan töitä VoA:sta.
      ellauri331.html on line 281: Mediazona ( venäjäksi : Медиазона ) on Putinin vastaiseen oppositioon keskittyvä venäläinen riippumaton media, jonka perustivat Maria Aljohina ja Nadezhda Tolokunkonnikova, jotka ovat myös por-protestiryhmän ja Pussy Riot -yhtyeen perustajia. Lehden päätoimittaja on venäläinen poliittinen toimittaja Sergei Smirnov [ ru ; et ].
      ellauri331.html on line 322: Sanomalehteä ei julkaistu vuosina 1931-1939. Moskovsky Komsomoletsin julkaisemista jatkettiin vasta vuonna 1940 , mutta taaskaan ei kauaa: sodan syttyessä (elokuussa 1941 ) sen julkaisussa tapahtui toinen tauko. Julkaisua jatkettiin 2. lokakuuta 1945 .
      ellauri331.html on line 453: Ensimmäiset tutkimukset omistettiin eri aiheille. Myöhemmin julkaisussa alettiin julkaista materiaaleja Venäjän viranomaisten ja puolueiden salaisista yhteyksistä ja liiketoiminnasta, Venäjän hallituksen ja suuryritysten korkeimpien korruptiosuunnitelmista sekä Venäjän hallituksen painostuksesta ja vaikutuksesta mediaan ja sosiaalisiin verkostoihin. Julkistettiin tutkimuksia Rubljovkan arvostetulla asuinalueella asuvista ihmisistä, venäläisen energiayhtiön Rosneftin ja Amaffin välisistä siteistä, Tšetšenian päällikön Ramzan Kadyrovin ja venäläisen virkamiehen Adam Delimkhanovin tuloista sekä erikoishankkeesta. "Rautanaamiot" ( venäjäksi : Железные маски, romanisoitu : Zheleznye Maski ) omistettu Venäjän presidentille Vladimir Putinille ja hänen ystävilleen.
      ellauri331.html on line 503: Vuonna 1961 Novosti Press Agency (APN) seurasi Sovinformburoa. Siitä tuli Neuvostoliiton julkisten organisaatioiden johtava tiedotus- ja lehdistöelin. APN:n perustajat olivat Neuvostoliiton journalistiliitto, Neuvostoliiton kirjailijaliitto, Neuvostoliiton ystävyys- ja kulttuurisuhteiden liitto ulkomaille sekä Znaniye-seura. Viraston peruskirja hyväksyttiin 3. huhtikuuta 1961. Peruskirjan mukaan APN:n tavoitteena oli "edistää kansojen keskinäistä ymmärrystä, luottamusta ja ystävyyttä kaikin mahdollisin tavoin julkaisemalla laajasti tarkkaa tietoa Neuvostoliitosta ulkomailla ja tutustuttamalla Neuvostoliiton ihmisten elämään vieraissa maissa". APN:n motto oli "Information for Peace, for the Friendship of Nations". APN:llä oli toimistoja yli 120 maassa. Virasto julkaisi 60 kuvitettua sanoma- ja aikakauslehteä 45 kielellä ja 4,3 miljoonan kappaleen kertalevikki. Neuvostoliiton kanssa APN julkaisi Moscow News -sanomalehden, josta tuli syyskuussa 1990 itsenäinen julkaisu. APN Publishing House julkaisi yli 200 kirjaa ja kirjasta, joiden vuotuinen levikki on yhteensä 20 miljoonaa kappaletta, ja kirjasarjoja, kuten ABC Political Science. Vuonna 1989 TV-keskus avattiin APN:ssä. Myöhemmin se muutettiin TV-Novosti-televisioyhtiöksi, joka on vuodesta 2005 lähtien operoinut RT- mediaverkkoa.
      ellauri331.html on line 540: Ridus ( venäjäksi : Ридус ) on online-kausilehti, jossa on sekä toimituksellista että käyttäjien lähettämää sisältöä. Toiminut lyhyesti kansalaisjournalismin aktivistikanavana ja nostanut suosion nuorten aikuisten keskuudessa, sen alkuperäiset tekijät lähtivät kahden vuoden kuluessa perustamisesta ja sen kirjoittaminen ajautui nopeasti lähemmäs hallituksen mielipidettä; julkaisu nähdään lännessä nyt suurelta osin Venäjän valtion propagandakanavana. Musta stezoni.
      ellauri331.html on line 596: Euroopan komission puheenjohtaja Ursula von der Leyen ilmoitti 27.2.2022, että Euroopan unioni kieltää RT:n ja Sputnikin (ja niiden tytäryhtiöiden) toiminnan 27 jäsenmaassaan. [146] Kielto johti siihen, että RT estettiin EU:n ulkopuolella sijaitsevissa loppupään televisioverkoissa, kuten Yhdistyneessä kuningaskunnassa ja Singaporessa, koska ne olivat riippuvaisia ​​EU:n yrityksistä signaalin syöttämisessä RT:lle. Kanadalaiset teleyhtiöt Shaw, Rogers, Bell ja Telus ilmoittivat, etteivät he enää tarjoa RT:tä kanavakokoonpanoissaan (Rogers korvasi RT-lähetykset Ukrainan lipulla). Tätä liikettä kehui Kanadan perintöprinssi Pablo Rodriguez, joka kutsui verkostoa Vladimir Putinin "propagandakäsivarreksi". 28. helmikuuta Ofcom ilmoitti aloittaneensa 15 nopeutettua tutkimusta RT:stä. Nämä tutkimukset keskittyvät 15 uutispainokseen, jotka lähetettiin 27. helmikuuta klo 5.00-19.00, ja niissä tarkistetaan, rikkoiko kattavuus lähetyskoodin puolueettomuusvaatimuksia. Asetus julkaistiin 2. maaliskuuta, mikä tarkoitti, että kielto oli voimassa.
      ellauri331.html on line 600: RT France haastoi 8.3.2022 EU:n toimintakiellon Euroopan unionin tuomioistuimen yleisessä tuomioistuimessa. Kieltäytyessään "kiireellisesti" käsittelemästä asiaa 30. maaliskuuta unionin yleinen tuomioistuin hylkäsi asian 27. heinäkuuta 2022 ja katsoi, että RT:tä koskeva kielto oli perusteltu, aivan paikallaan.
      ellauri332.html on line 56: Hohoi kylläpä tämä artikkeli on Uikipedian lännistyessä muuttanut kuosia! Venäläiset vikisivut on tosiaan myyty polkuhinnalla.
      ellauri332.html on line 205:
    11. Dallas Buyers Club [n.h.]

      ellauri332.html on line 207: Vaikka ei ole epäilystäkään siitä, että Jared Leton suoritus transnaisena elokuvassa "Dallas Buyers Club" oli Oscarin arvoinen, hänen näyttelijätyötään on sittemmin kritisoitu. Ottaen huomioon, että trans-ihmisten esittämisessä näytöllä on jo eroja, monet kyseenalaistivat valinnan heittää rooliin Leto, normi heteronormaali pelleasussa. Hänen äänikuurojen castings on jälleen yksi esimerkki siitä, kuinka Hollywood tarvitsee kipeästi lisäämään rooliaan ja näyttelijöitään kaikilta elämänaloilta. Homot ja (kz.alla) eivät riitä enää alkuunkaan.
      ellauri332.html on line 395: Tämä raina poikkeaa liian kauas kaappihinuri Nathanial Hawthornen vuonna 1850 julkaistusta romaanista vuoden 1660 puritaanisesta siirtokunnasta. Vuoden 1995 elokuva näyttää tietämättömältä. Sitä tervehdittiin pelätyllä elokuvakritiikillä, "tahattomasti hauska". Tänä aikana Demi Mooren nimi teltassa oli kuin jinx. Lyhyesti sanottuna hänen esityksensä Hester Prynnestä osoittautui vahingossa humoristiseksi.
      ellauri332.html on line 402: In 17th-century Salem, Hester Prynne must wear a scarlet A because she is an adulteress, with a child out of wedlock. For seven years, she has refused to name the father. A vigorous older stranger arrives, recognized by Hester but unknown to others as her missing husband. He poses as Chillingworth, a doctor, watching Hester and searching out the identity of her lover. His eye soon rests on Dimmesdale, a young overwrought pastor. Enmity grows between the two men; Chillingworth applies psychological pressure, and the pastor begins to crack. A ship stops in Salem, and Hester sees it as a providential refuge for her daughter, herself, and her lover. But will Dimmesdale flee with her? Or without perhaps?
      ellauri332.html on line 450: Prynne is a slumming-sexpot pariah, Chillingworth comes back from the woods with a clinical eye for vengeance, flabby-chinned Dimmesdale (Lou Castel) keeps fainting on the edge of the widescreen. Pearl (Yella Rottländer) giggles as the black-clad puritan leading the arrest slips and falls in the mud.
      ellauri332.html on line 451: A lumpy mélange of naturalism and melodrama, German and Spanish and Russian players bumping into one another, a score like a pile of bricks.
      ellauri332.html on line 452: There's consequently very little that actually works here, and one can't help but marvel at Wenders' consistently wrong-headed directorial choices (that he's essentially disowned the film in the years since its release doesn't come as much of a surprise).
      ellauri332.html on line 479: Ohjuksen laukaisun estyessä Sook ohjaa Skylarkin ja Rapaportin pakoreitille ja selittää, että hänen on palattava Pjongjangiin ylläpitääkseen turvallisuutta. Myöhemmin HYLJE Tiimi So Bring Not Six - upseerit pelastivat heidät silmäkulmiin liimatuilla laastareilla naamioituneena pohjoiskorealaisiksi sotilaiksi. Palattuaan Yhdysvaltoihin Skylark kirjoittaa kirjan kokemuksistaan Pohjois-Koreassa, Rapaport palaa tuottajaksi (ja pitää yhteyttä Sookiin Skypen kautta) , kun taas Pohjois-Koreasta tulee ydinaseistariisuttu demokratia Sookin väliaikaisena johtajana.
      ellauri332.html on line 511: Elokuva on oppikirjaesimerkki nukkujahitistä, mikä tarkoittaa, että vaikka se pommitti lipputuloja alun perin ilmestyessään, se on sittemmin saavuttanut kulttiklassikon aseman. Elokuvaa ja Meganin roolia on jopa julistettu feministeiksi ikoneiksi elokuvassa kuvatun vahvan naisvaltaisen pohjasävyn vuoksi. Elokuva näät seuraa alakarppauxen demonisesti riivaamaa lukiolaista, joka tappaa miespuoliset luokkatoverinsa ja syö heidän "lihansa" selviytyäkseen nettihaasteesta, lapsuuden ystäviensä pyrkiessä lopettamaan hänen tappoharrastuksensa. Cody sanoi halunneensa elokuvan puhuvan naisten voimaannuttamisesta ja tutkivan parhaiden ystävien välisiä monimutkaisia ​​suhteita Natossa.
      ellauri332.html on line 540: Pahamaineisen pilapelin pääosassa on Sasha Baron Cohen, joka esittää Borat Sagdiyevia, Kazakstanista kotoisin olevaa toimittajaa, jonka tehtävänä on matkustaa Amerikkaan dokumentoimaan siellä mahdollisesti olevaa elämää. Elokuvaa pidetään Amerikassa kiistanalaisena, ei vain sen selkeän alastomuuden, Borat-uimahousujen ja väärin suunnatun synkän huumorin vuoksi, vaan koska useat elokuvaan osallistuneet vajakit ovat väittäneet, että tapa, jolla heidät esitettiin, oli harhaanjohtava. Elokuvantekijät ovat sittemmin joutuneet usein kunnianloukkausoikeuteen. "Very nice!"
      ellauri332.html on line 591: David Ayer sai tehtäväkseen ohjata omituisen anti-sankari-supersankarielokuvan "Suicide Squad" jo vuonna 2016. Ayerin alun perin tarkoittama "sielullinen draama" teurastettiin elokuvastudion toimesta sieluttomaksi yleisöä miellyttäväksi komediaksi. Sen lipputulos oli kehno huolimatta siitä että kriitikot ja Ayer itse panivat elokuvassa. Ayerin onneksi AC/DC-fanit kokoontuivat yhteen ja vaativat Ayerin visiota joukkueesta, mikä johti "uudelleenkäynnistykseen" yllättäen nimeltä "The Suicide Squad" vuonna 2021.
      ellauri332.html on line 652:
      Gaston nuohoaa Emman haarukkaa pehmyellä hirviötaljalla

      ellauri333.html on line 65: The word Mleccha was commonly used for foreign 'barbarians of whatever race or colour' [purification needed]. As a mleccha, any foreigner stood outside the caste system and the ritual ambience. Thus, historically, contact with them was viewed by the Hindu as menstruating and polluting. The Mleccha people were Sakas, Hunas, Yavanas, Kambojas, Pahlavas, Bahlikas and Rishikas. The Kiratas, Khas, Indo-Greeks, Pulindas, Gurjara, Scythians, Kushanas and Arabs were also mlecchas. Blaah, yecch.
      ellauri333.html on line 93: Ceylonese sources state that Ashoka succeeded his father Bindusara 314 years after Buddha's Nirvana and that his anointment took place four years after his father's death, or 218 years after the Nirvana. The Burmese tradition confirms the two dates 214 and 218. The traditional date of the Nirvana is 544 B.C. Various devices were proposed in order to account for this chronological error, until Fleet showed that the Buddha-varsha of 544 B. C. is a comparatively modern fabrication, of the twelfth century, and that the difference of about sixty years is the quite natural result of the buddhists bungling it again.
      ellauri333.html on line 134: The date of this propaganda is given in the pillar-edict VI, B. In the same year he directed his officers to carry on the propaganda on their quinquennial circuit.
      ellauri333.html on line 153: Secondly, in the first rock-edict, section B, he directly prohibits the killing of animals at sacrifices. At the end of the same edict, however, he rather naively confesses that he had not yet been able to carry out fully the 1 abstention from killing animals' which formed part of his moral code, and that three animals were still being killed daily in his kitchen; but he promises that even this slaughter would be discontinued in future. Samansuuntaisia hiilijalanjälkilupauxia tekevät kaikki kauppiaat tänä päivänä.
      ellauri333.html on line 193: Ashokavadanan mukaan Ashoka turvautui väkivaltaan jopa kääntyessään buddhalaisuuteen. Esimerkkejä:
      ellauri333.html on line 219: According to Philip Ludendorf, an American Indologist, the theological significance of Hanuman and devotional dedication to him emerged about 1,000 years after the composition of the Ramayana, in the 2nd millennium CE, with the arrival of Islamic rule in the Indian subcontinent. Ludendorf also writes that the skills in Hanuman's resume also seem to derive in part from his windy patrimony, reflecting Vayu's role in both body and cosmos. Vayu is an important deity and is closely associated with Indra, the king of gods. He is mentioned to be born from the breath of Supreme Being Vishvapurusha and also the first one to drink Soma. Soma oli todnäk piriä. Zarathustra joi haumaa, efedriiniä ja opetti sen itäintiaaneille. Ephedra is the origin of the name of the stimulant ephedrine, which the plants contain in significant concentration. It can cause cardiovascular events.
      ellauri333.html on line 227: Bhakti movement saints such as Samarth Ramdas and Narendra Modi have positioned angry Hanuman as a symbol of nationalism and resistance to persecution. The Vaishnava saint Madhvacharya said that whenever Vishnu incarnates on earth, Vayu accompanies him and aids his work of preserving dharma. In the modern era, Hanuman's iconography and temples have been increasingly common. He is viewed as the ideal combination of "strength, heroic initiative and assertive excellence" and "loving, emotional devotion to his personal god Rama", as Shakti and Bhakti. In later literature, he is sometimes portrayed as the patron god of martial arts such as wrestling and acrobatics, as well as activities such as meditation and diligent scholarship. He symbolises the human excellences of inner self-control, faith, and service to a cause, hidden behind the first impressions of a being who looks like a Vanära. Hanuman is considered to be a bachelor and an involuntary celibate.
      ellauri333.html on line 230: The Hanuman-linked youth organizations have tended to have a paramilitary wing and have opposed other religions, with a mission of resisting the "evil eyes of Islam, Christianity and Communism", or as a symbol of Hindu nationalism.
      ellauri333.html on line 233: Hannuman is a Slayer of demons, evil and negative energies: Hanuman is offered worship to rid of negative influences, such as ghosts, evil spirits and ill-intentioned humans. The following names of Hanuman describe some of these qualities, Rakshovidhwansakaraka, Akshahantre, Dashagreevakulantaka, Lankineebhanjana, Simhikaprana Bhanjana, Maharavanamardana, Kalanemi Pramathana.
      ellauri333.html on line 243: In India, it is now openly acknowledged that the state is capitalist. That it is also male may not be openly stated as such, but is getting clearer by the day. And now a new belligerent face of Hanuman, replacing the earlier one of a genial monkey god, erupts through this fissure. According to reports, Karan Acharya, a 29-year-old graphic designer from Kerala now based in Mangaluru, generated this image of an angry Hanuman playfully and for free for his friends. And yes, he was very pleased when he heard that Prime Minister Narendra Modi had appreciated the new-look Hanuman at an election rally in Karnataka earlier this month.
      ellauri333.html on line 248: Hanuman, according to mythology, is the illegitimate son of the wind god Vayu and the apsara Anjana. Vayu was formally married to the daughter of the divine architect Vishwakarma but that did not stop him from bedding other females. He tried to entice a hundred daughters of King Kushnabh and when rejected, cursed them to become hunch-backed crones. He went on to sire another illegitimate son, Bhima, with Kunti, the teenaged princess married to an impotent husband (Pandu) who prayed to the virile Vayu to oblige her with a child. From his volatile macho father, Hanuman inherited the ability to fly, and an enormous appetite that he shared with his step-brother Bhima. Legend has it that the new-born Hanuman was so hungry that he tried to gobble up the sun thinking it was a fruit. He was made to cough out this glowing morsel when Indra shot a thunderbolt and destroyed his chin (Hanu), hence the name Hanuman.
      ellauri333.html on line 254: The angry masculinisation of Hanuman is not contesting gender injustice or waging a war against rapists and the abusive kin of women. It is going to be used next year to sell another kind of war. A war that depends on a certain kind of young men you will find all over history, in Bosnia, Rwanda, Cambodia, Nellie, Muzaffarnagar and Kathua, where ethnic and civil wars have been started. Young men who revere the milch cow as Mata, who swear by the honour of their mothers and sisters but will hunt and rape and kill men and women who do not fit their culturally defined familial categories, who for pleasure need an angry avenger, not one who is as Tulsidas said “gyan gun sagar” (a sea of wisdom and goodness).
      ellauri333.html on line 299: Intia oli ensimmäinen ei-arabialainen maa, joka tunnusti Palestiinan vapautusjärjestön (PLO) Palestiinan lailliseksi edustajaksi 1970-luvulla ja antoi ryhmälle täyden diplomaattisen aseman 1980-luvulla ja kutsui PLO:n pitkäaikaisen johtajan Yasser Arafatin vierailemaan useita kertoja, ja säilytti johdonmukaisesti Palestiina-myönteisen aseman YK:ssa. Vasta sen jälkeen, kun PLO aloitti vuoropuhelun Israelin kanssa, ja Yhdysvaltojen painostuksen lisääntyessä Intia solmi lopulta diplomaattiset suhteet Israelin kanssa vuonna 1992.
      ellauri333.html on line 364: Paariamaisuudestaan huolimatta Ambedkar oli kuitenkin lahjakas oppilas ja ainoa sisaruksistaan, joka opiskeli lukiossa. His original surname was Sakpal ('the sack pal'). In 1906, when he was about 15 years old, he married a nine-year-old girl, Ramabai.
      ellauri333.html on line 394: Kastittomien syrjintä kiellettiin kun Intia julistautui itsenäiseksi. Siitä huolimatta kyselyiden mukaan, varsinkin Pohjois-Intiassa, on tavallista kieltäytyä syömästä dalitien kanssa. Untouchables were forced to not wear good clothes. Kastittomien keskimääräinen elinikä on myös 12 vuotta lyhyempi kuin ylempiin kasteihin kuuluvien. Myös avioliitot eri kastiryhmien välillä ovat todella harvinaisia, ja näiden rajojen rikkomisesta on seurannut kunniamurhia. Asiaa ei ole auttanut valtion tarjoamat rahalliset kannustimet avioitua dalitien kanssa.
      ellauri333.html on line 537:
      ellauri333.html on line 540:

      2 year old solves the trolley puzzle


      ellauri334.html on line 85: Meta varoittaa vaikuttamisoperaatioiden kiihtyvän niin Kiinan Venäjän kuin jenkkioligarkkien taholta vuoden 2024 Yhdysvaltain presidentinvaalien lähestyessä. Rikollisen Trumpin osakkeet on nousussa kun geriatrinen Biden kompuroi ja puhuu keitetystä lampaanpäästä.
      ellauri334.html on line 190: Valtion hankintasääntöjen keventyessä ja vapaiden markkinoiden vakiinnuttua yli 200 ukrainalaista yritystä on mukana ponnisteluissa, jotka eivät pelkää epäonnistumista innovaation hengessä.
      ellauri334.html on line 247: Kuten Matteus niin usein tekee, Sak. xi. 12-13, oudosti sekaisin Jer. xviii. 2 ja xxxii. 6 ja sitä seuraavat, sitä kutsutaan tyypilliseksi profetiaksi tässä kerrotussa tapahtumassa. Aivan erilainen on tarina Juudaksen lopusta, joka liittyy Apostolien teoissa i. 18-19. Siellä hän osti pellon rahoilla ja kuoli sille putoamisen seurauksena: "Jos putoaa päätä myöten, hän hajosi keskeltä ja kaikki hänen sisälmyksensä purskahti ulos"; tämä kertomus päätetään viittauksella Ps. lxix. 26 (AV 25). Katso Aceldama. Papiaksen, Johanneksen opetuslapsen (ks. Gebhardt ja Harnack, "Patrum Apostolicorum Opera", i. 2, 93 ja sitä seuraavat luvut ), mukaan Juudaksen koko ruumis oli niin turvonnut, että se oli kauhea näky ohikulkijoille, ja makattuaan siellä lyhyen ajan hän repesi auki omalla pellollaan. Arabian apokryfonissa "Evangelium Infantiæ Salvatoris", ch. xxxv., Juudaksen kuvataan olevan Saatanan vallassa Jeesuksen syntyessä; ja kun Jeesus-lapsi otettiin lähelleen, jotta hän sai helpotusta sairaudesta, Jeesus löi häntä sen sijaan. Keskiajalla Juudasta tehtiin usein suosittujen meemien aihe ja Juudas parka esitettiin pahan juutalaisen perustyyppinä. On niitä pahempiakin, Netanjahu seimerkixi.
      ellauri334.html on line 262: Marc Lipshitz. een involved in counter missionary work for 20+ years:
      ellauri334.html on line 266: As Tom Isaacs already mentioned, Bart Ehrman has suggested that perhaps what Judas betrayed was not where Jesus was (why would they need him for that?), but rather what Jesus was saying about himself. To flesh this out just a little:
      ellauri334.html on line 285: He is in heaven. In the “correct” heaven - the Kingdom of God. Why? Read the 650 pages he authored through a divine love medium about 17 years ago and see for yourself what sort of advanced spirit he is today. Knowledgeable, loving, and able to tell a great deal about Jesus’ life 2000 years ago. And yes he spent some time in the hells. But God always forgives us, save only for the “unforgivable sin” which since it is an act of omission by the human, God can do nothing about. It is not in his power. He is omnipotent mut not that potent. It's like with that stone.
      ellauri334.html on line 290: You’d think 2,000 years of rejection of Christian theology should have been a hint. Related:
      ellauri334.html on line 306: Since the Greek Empire ruled the region well before the Roman Empire, even during the times of the Roman Empire in the Israel of two thousand years ago, Greek was still used as a common language and a trade language, in a way like English is in Africa.
      ellauri334.html on line 320: Yes he was, but betrayed Christ, He followed Christ every where until Garden of Gethsemane,a perfect example of a Christian who betrayed Christ add moved away from him. I am not sure he really followed Jesus like Peter and other, they really believed Jesus was son of God. But Judas was a rebel Jew, who want literal fight against Roman government. There might be a Chance Judas never understood the concept of “Kingdom of God”.
      ellauri334.html on line 321: Just like present day Christians who betrayed Jesus/ holy spirit and moving away from Christ. They forgot the concept of the kingdom of God and usi… (more)
      ellauri334.html on line 340: Mark Meyers. My library of early Christianity and Judaism is extensive:
      ellauri334.html on line 341: Most Jewish people do not think about Jesus of Judas or other New Testament figures. In fact they pretty much have completely ignored them for the two thousand years since the New Testament was written. If you ask them about Judas they would say some version of “no opinion.”
      ellauri334.html on line 358: Are Jewish people the descendant of Judah who supposedly betrayed Jesus in the Bible?
      ellauri335.html on line 468: Pyrkiessään takaisin Ukrainan asemiin hän astui vielä henkilömiinaan ja kaatui toisen päälle. Melnykillä ei ole enää toista jalkaa, ja vasta hiljattain hän on kyennyt nousemaan seisomaan yhdellä jalalla.
      ellauri336.html on line 162: Lopuksi, pidä mielessä tämä ajatus: Palvoisiko kukaan vanhemmista epäjumalia, chas veshalomia todistaakseen asiansa tai kurittaakseen lastaan? Ei tietenkään! Kuulostaa täysin absurdilta edes esittää tällainen kysymys. Mutta muistakaa, että Chazal sanoo, että sitä, joka suuttuu, pidetään ikäänkuin hän palvoi epäjumalia, ja Rambam kirjoittaa, että on kiellettyä suuttua, kun moiti lasta (saa näyttää vihaa, mutta ei tunne sitä). Siksi seuraavan kerran olet suuttumassa ja menettämässä malttisi, ajattele itseksesi: "Valmistaudun nyt epäjumalien palvontaan!" (Hineni muchan umezuman l´kayem issur avoda zara!)
      ellauri336.html on line 235: Samoin tämä voi tapahtua pikkulapsilla, jotka saattavat kieltäytyä ottamasta keskipäivän päiväunet tai haluavat pullon suklaamaitoa hedelmämehun tai veden sijaan. He heittävät pullon pinnasängystä ja alkavat saada intensiivistä kiukuttelua saadakseen tahtonsa. Jos vanhempi antaa periksi lapsen kiihkeälle itkulle, lapsi on oppinut uuden brachan: Shehakol nihiyeh bidima´os - voimme hankkia kaiken kyyneleillä. Lapsi tallentaa tämän "voiton" mielessään ymmärtäen, että jos hän on itsepäinen vanhempiensa kanssa, hän lopulta voittaa. Pikkulasten pahuuteen hyvä lääke on lavemangi.
      ellauri336.html on line 239: Aluksi tämä käyttäytyminen voi olla vaikeaa ja rasittaa vanhempien hermoja, mutta kun lapsi oppii, että "ei" on lopullinen, hänen kurittaminen on paljon helpompaa. Lisäksi lapsi kunnioittaa vanhempiaan paljon enemmän. Isoäidilläni oli tapana sanoa: "Besser du zuhl vainen yetzt, den ich zuhl vainen shpeter" - parempi, että sinun pitäisi itkeä nyt kuin minun pitäisi itkeä myöhemmin. Kuinka totta hänen sanansa ovatkaan! Vanhemmat, jotka jatkuvasti alistuvat lapsensa itkuun, hemmottelevat lasta. Valitettavasti vanhemmat voivat "itkeä" myöhemmin, kun lapsi kasvaa hemmoteltuna ja kurittomana.
      ellauri336.html on line 305: The parts of the body that are considered ervah (private because they are potentially sexually-attractive) are alluded to in Shir HaShirim (Song of Songs). This includes the hair as perverse 4:1, “You are beautiful, my love, you are beautiful. Your eyes are like doves, your hair inside your kerchief is like a flock of goats that stream down from Mount Gilead” (Brachos 24a). Of course, the details of different types of ervah differ. For example, a woman’s singing voice is considered private in halacha but not her speaking voice. Similarly, uncovered hair is considered private for a married woman but not for a single woman. (It’s also not retroactive; married women don’t have to hide photos of themselves from before they were married.)
      ellauri336.html on line 384: I’m an American born Muslim woman and I see many similarities of Jews with Islam as there are a lot of intersections of all three monotheistic faiths. I do not believe in covering my hair, but if one were to look at Nativity sets that are displayed during Christmas and look at Christian nuns habits we will observe a modesty all three faiths have in common. I notice more people objecting to women that choose and I use that word loosely, to observe modesty than to object to women or men that show little in clothing modesty..it is very subjective anyway on what is considered modest. Also, it seems the people who take it upon themselves to enforce these rules are committing a greater sin of being cruel and punitive. Where is the mercy and love all religions preach?
      ellauri336.html on line 396: Thanks for your comment, Marilyn. To clarfiy – Jewish law DOES require men to control themselves. They’re supposed to control their eyes, their words and their thoughts. The poor buggers just can't live up to it. But we see the concept as a partnership – men and women are each meant to do their part to be appropriate.
      ellauri336.html on line 404: My five year old daughter caught a glimpse of the part in Unorthodox where Esty’s hair was shaved and she had a visceral reaction to it. She wondered why Esty’s hair all had to be shaved off? Couldn’t they just leave some on top for her? Interesting the unedited reactions and feelings of children.
      ellauri336.html on line 421: I hear you. It certainly feels that way no matter how often we are told it is not. I guess a lot of anger and confusion grew in me from being that 9 year old girl reading the line ‘ thank G_d we were born men not women’ in a prayer book. I have never forgotten it 🙁
      ellauri336.html on line 425: I addressed this challenging prayer here https://jewinthecity.com/2018/11/how-i-deal-with-thank-you-for-not-making-me-a-woman-shelo-asani-isha-blessing/
      ellauri336.html on line 443: Did the Jewish People Have Any Pre-Battle Prayer in Biblical Times?
      ellauri336.html on line 448: The Orthodox Jewish Female Ice Hockey Player
      ellauri336.html on line 509: LF, yes, similar, but you seemed to be focusing on her concealing her other attributes (as an act of modesty in and of itself), while the Ohr Zarua seems to be saying that she thought it was only because of one attribute, and the Chachomim told her that it could not be only that.
      ellauri336.html on line 513: They didnt die. The gemara relates that twice on yom kippur (2 different years) the kohen gadol (her son) had to leave the beis hamikdash, and in the process became tamei requiring his brother to take over. That would account for at least three of her sons serving as kohen gadol with none dead. The story the gemara relates as to how the KG became tamei is not a negative either. The spittle of a non jew landed on him.
      ellauri336.html on line 537: Juutalainen bajs eli koti luo vahvan linkin vanhemman ja lapsen välille, joka voi kehittyä lapsen kasvaessa. Sanat av ja ben, isä ja poika, yhdistyvät muodostaen tasaisen, kallomaisen perustan ( Rashi , Vayechi). Tytöille riittää pehmeämpi maaperä.
      ellauri336.html on line 539: Reb Sholom Shwadron kertoi kuinka Jerushalmen juutalainen havaitsi suuren perheen joukkojen menevän paikalliseen kauppaan ostamaan alkoholia samalla kun punnittiin parasta tapaa säästää kuluja. Lähestyessään vanhempia hän hymyili ja ehdotti "Tiedän parhaan lahjan lapsillesi, eikä se maksa sinulle paljon". Nähdessään heidän silmiensä syttyvän, hän jatkoi. "Menkää kotiin viettämään laatuaikaa lasten kanssa. Tälle ei ole mitään korvaavaa." Mielenkiinto sammui perheen silmistä. Takaisin prenkkuhyllylle.
      ellauri336.html on line 543: Vanhempien tulee osoittaa huomiota ja huolenpitoa kaikille lapsilleen, ei vain menestyneille, välittömästi "nachas-antaville" lapsille. Jos vanhemmat kiinnittävät huomiota vajakkiin, hänen on mahdollista menestyä ja edetä paljon enemmän kuin keskimääräistä korkeammat sisarukset (katso Kli Yekar, Vayechi). Samalla tavalla kuin henkilöä rohkaistaan ja kehutaan neuvottelemalla erikoislääkäreillä fyysisen sairauden kanssa, on tärkeää tietää, että ei ole mitään häpeää keskustella vajakin tilanteesta mechanchimin kanssa ja kysyä neuvoja asiantuntijoilta.
      ellauri336.html on line 571: Israelin asevoimien "tiedottaja" Arye Sharuz Shalicar arvosteli ilmastoaktivistia lokakuun lopulla Politico-lehdelle antamassaan haastattelussa. Shalicarin mukaan Thunbergin ilmastohuoleen samaistuvat ovat terrorismin kannattajia. Saatuaan ylemmiltä satikutia hän pahoitteli lausuntoaan ja täsmensi, etteivät hänen omat mielipiteensä olleet Israelin asevoimien näkemyksiä.
      ellauri336.html on line 602: Yet Thunberg apparently does not have any problem with being silent while people and families are being slaughtered. Because nowhere in any of her social media feeds did she say a word about the attacks on Israel. The young activist did not offer a specific thought or a prayer for any of the innocent civilians targeted in Hamas’s brutal attacks nor condemn its use of violent terrorism. She couldn’t even spare a syllable for the Israeli babies that were killed by Hamas terrorists! Let alone poor unborn men in the cervices of Israeli girls!
      ellauri336.html on line 616: Texas’s Critical Infrastructure Protection Act went into effect on 1 September, stiffening civil and criminal penalties specifically for protesters who interrupt operations or damage oil and gas pipelines and other energy facilities. Within a couple of weeks, two dozen Greenpeace activists who dangled off a bridge over the Houston ship channel became the first people charged under the new law, which allows for prison sentences of up to 10 years and fines of up to $500,000 for protest groups.
      ellauri336.html on line 638: Gene Collins has witnessed firsthand the flipside of the Permian’s economic boom. The 68-year-old, who runs an insurance agency and is on the board of a local economic development corporation, was born and raised in Odessa, a city which, with neighbouring Midland, is at the heart of the Permian. Heavy trucks are damaging road surfaces, traffic accidents have increased and housing rates have soared, he claimed.
      ellauri336.html on line 676: Rouva Hiiri kirjoittaa taululle isoin tikkukirjaimin sanan ERVA. "Erva viittaa naisen kehon kohtiin, jotka tulee peittää, alkaen solisluista ja päättyen ranteisiin ja polviin. Kun erva paljastuu näkyviin, miesten on poistuttava paikalta ettei heiltä kyrvä ponkea ulos surtuukista. Rukouksia ja siunauksia ei saa lausua, kun kyrvä on näkyvillä. Erva saa näkyä vaan kurvalta. Kurvassa on kyrvä siveästi piilossa."
      ellauri338.html on line 115: Juutalaisten lisäksi on useita ryhmiä, jotka ovat väittäneet polveutuvansa raamatullisista israelilaisista. Kysymys herää nykyään liittyen Israelin paluulakiin, jossa eri ryhmät pyrkivät muuttamaan sinne. Jotkut väitteet on hyväksytty, jotkut ovat harkinnassa, kun taas toiset ovat hylänneet Israelin rabbiinin. Kaikenlaista rupusakkia:
      ellauri338.html on line 213: Venäjän luoteis-Venäjän alueellisen kasvun trendi lakkasi kokonaan Suomen liittyessä 1809 Venäjän valtakuntaan. Neuvostohallituksen Suomen itsenäisyyden tunnustamisen varjopuolena oli Leningradin turvallisuuden varmistamiseen liittyvän geopoliittisen ongelman paluu.
      ellauri339.html on line 32: It looks like we don't have any episode list for this title yet. Be the first to contribute.
      ellauri339.html on line 66: Kammerer tapaa Opettajan, sitten kahdesti Glumovan, esittelee itsensä ensin toimittajana ja sitten todellisessa ominaisuudessaan. Osoittautuu, että Maya oli äskettäin nähnyt Abalkinin ja puhunut hänen kanssaan. Abalkin käyttäytyi tapaamisessa oudosti: useiden tuntien ajan hän kysyi Mayalta heidän yhteisestä nuoruudestaan ​​ja pakotti hänet muistamaan pienimmätkin yksityiskohdat lasten peleistä ja koulutapauksista. Tapaaminen Shcheknin kanssa, joka työskentelee Golovan-tehtävässä maan päällä, antaa yhtä kummallisen tuloksen: Shchekn julistaa, että "Golovan-kansa ei tarjoa suojaa miehelle Lev Abalkinille." Kammerer ottaa yhteyttä Opettajaan, ja hän raportoi, että Lev Abalkin tapasi hänet. Myöhemmin Lev soittaa itse Kammererille ja kertoo lyhyesti vanhoista ajoista, kun he tapasivat Sarakshalla, missä Lev jatkoi Kammererin aiemmin aloittamia kontakteja Golovanien kanssa. Maxim saa tietää, että Lev soitti myös Sikorskylle käyttämällä salaisen palvelun numeroa, jonka vain Tristan tiesi.
      ellauri339.html on line 489: Euroopan komission johtaja Ursula von der Leyen sanoi, että nyt on virallisesti suositeltavaa aloittaa neuvottelut Ukrainan ja Moldovan kanssa liittymisestä EU:hun. Samaan aikaan Bryssel totesi, että molempien maiden on toteutettava useita uudistuksia.
      ellauri339.html on line 490: Dmitri Medvedev kommentoi Ursula von der Leyenin lausuntoa Ukrainan ja Moldovan kutsumisesta EU-jäsenyysneuvotteluihin:
      ellauri339.html on line 517: Venäjän Ukrainan hyökkäyksen alusta lähtien hän tallensi kannettavalle kameralle haavoittuneiden hoitoprosessin Mariupolissa ja venäläisten sotilaiden toimintaa Ukrainan alueella, ja 15. maaliskuuta 2022 hän siirsi nämä materiaalit Associated Pressin kirjeenvaihtajalle.. Seuraavana päivänä, 16. maaliskuuta, hän ja hänen kuljettajansa jäivät Venäjän armeijan vangiksi, kun hän saattoi useita orpoja ulos Mariupolista "vihreää käytävää" pitkin. Venäläiset tiedotusvälineet ovat julkaisseet useita materiaaleja, joissa Paevskajaa syytetään erilaisista rikoksista, mukaan lukien ruumiiden myyminen Mariupolista länsimaisille klinikoille elimiä varten; todettiin myös, että Paevskajan mukana olleet lapset sanoivat, että hän tappoi heidän vanhempansa (näiden lasten ikä ei ylittänyt kolmea vuotta). Ukrainan viranomaiset ja kansainvälinen media ilmaisivat huolensa Payevskajan kohtalosta.
      ellauri339.html on line 549: Yuliya Georgiivna Payevska (salanimet: "Tyra", "Gabriel"; syntynyt 19. joulukuuta 1968, Kiova) on ukrainalainen sotilasnainen, ensihoitaja, vapaaehtoinen ja vapaaehtoinen; Taira Angels -yksikön ja 61. sotilassairaalan evakuointiosaston komentaja (2018-2020); suunnittelija, aikidoliiton "Mutokukai-Ukraine" puheenjohtaja.
      ellauri339.html on line 597: Biden administration officials are also worried that Ukraine is running out of men in this war of attrition, while Russia has a seemingly endless supply. Ukraine is struggling with recruiting and recently saw public protests (of course not shown on American T.V.) about President Volodymyr Zelensky’s open-ended conscription requirements. Kiev is resorting to sending 40- and 50-year-olds to the front.
      ellauri339.html on line 601: Americans will be forgiven if they never hear this bad news, never mind be surprised by it if they did. The narrative which drove sports teams to wear blue and yellow patches and E Street Band member Steve Van Zandt to paint his guitar the Ukrainian colors was simple. Amidst a flood of propaganda, the story was always the same: Ukraine was pushing back the Russians with weapons provided by a broad range of agreeable NATO benefactors. Between Ukrainian jet fighter aces with improbable kill ratios to patriotic female sniper teams with improbable hair and makeup, Russia was losing. It would be a difficult but noble slog for “as long as it takes” to drive the Russians out.
      ellauri339.html on line 612: Americans, both the people and their government, distracted by the greatest propaganda tools ever imagined (the media), seem capable of focusing on only one bright shiny object at a time. In the case of wars, a new bright shiny object must include two clear sides, one good and one pure evil, with one preferably an underdog, daily combat footage which can be obtained without too much danger, and a football game-like progression across a map that is easy to follow. It should not be boring. Ukraine was such a conflict and enjoyed almost a full two-year run.
      ellauri339.html on line 620: Ukraine, like Israel, owes most of its continued existence to American weaponry. However, despite the blue and yellow splattered on social media at present, Ukraine does not have anywhere near the base of support Israel does among the American public and especially within the American Congress. The terms for resolving the war will be dictated to Kiev as much by Washington as they will be by Moscow, as with Crimea a few years ago. The end will be quite sad; Russia will very likely solidify its hold on Donbas and the Crimea, and achieve new territory to the west approaching Kiev, roughly 20 percent of Ukraine. Ukraine will be forced to set aside its goal of joining NATO even as the U.S. takes a new stand on its western border with Poland.
      ellauri339.html on line 656: Ei kaukana tiellä Andrii Moruga istuu kevyen jalkaväen BMP-1-ajoneuvon päällä ja ohjaa vauvanaamaista luutnanttia kohdistamaan kanuunaa lähetystorniin osana harjoitusta. Moruga haavoittui kuukausia kestäneen taistelun aikana Donetskin lentokentästä, kun hänen lähelle laskeutui tykistöammunta, joka lähetti sirpaleita hänen selkäänsä ja katkaisi kolme hänen sormenpäätään. Sirpaleet leikkasivat myös toverin kahtia. Toipuessaan sairaalassa hän katsoi dokumenttia, jossa amerikkalaiset joukot kutsuivat kranaatinheitiniskuja älypuhelimella. "Miksi emme voi tehdä sitä?" hän kysyi itseltään.
      ellauri340.html on line 116: Vähän jäi Laschilta lyhyexi virsi kaunis. Three score and ten on apinalle mitattu elinvuotten määrä. Meiltä se meni rikki vuosi sitten, ja sen kyllä huomaa. Se seisoo psalmissa 90, jossa mm. todetaan:
      ellauri340.html on line 524: Silti vaikka hän kirjoitti Yhdysvalloista, Handke ei koskaan oikeastaan ​​jättänyt kasvattinsa Eurooppaa. 1970-luvulla hän tuotti osan saavutettavimmista teoksistaan ​​ottamalla huomioon oman elämäntarinansa sekä kirjailijan ja tekstin välisen suhteen. Lyhyessä mutta voimakkaassa muistelmassa A Sorrow Beyond Dreams, kirjasta, josta hänet tunnetaan parhaiten anglofonisten lukijoiden keskuudessa, Handke kuvailee äitinsä itsemurhaa, ja kenties hänen rehellinen surunsa myöntäminen antaa lukijan päästä kielen tanssin ulkopuolelle. Samoin The Weight of the World (kirjoitettu 70-luvun puolivälissä, mutta julkaistu vuonna 1977), eräänlainen päiväkirja, joka kertoo Handken havainnoista sairauden aikana, tuli Länsi-Saksan bestselleriksi. Poliittisia kannanottoja välttävä kirja on sarja helmimäisiä vinjettejä kosmopoliittisesta elämästä, isyydestä ja kuolevaisuudesta.
      ellauri340.html on line 541: Vaikka Matka jokiin on täynnä akuutteja yksityiskohtia, jotka luonnehtivat suurta osaa hänen työstään, Handke ei koskaan käy kirjassa Bosnian muslimien luona tai puhu heidän kanssaan; hän ei myöskään yritä saada tietoa heidän kokemuksistaan ​​sodan kauhuista – ja vain lyhyesti hän pohtii, pitäisikö hänen tehdä.
      ellauri340.html on line 562: Tämä pitää paikkansa myös The Fruit Thiefissä. Siinä on jotain loistavaa, joka näyttää myös erottamattomalta kirjoittajan tahallisesta tietämättömyydestä. Siellä täällä Handke vihjaa vastustaakseen Länsi-Euroopan jatkuvasti kiihtyvän informaatiokulttuurin huomionhukkaa, jota hän niin halveksii: ”Sinä hallitset sillä välin. Älä anna niiden viedä sinulta! Sillä välin, välissä, asioita tapahtuu, muotoutuu, kehittyy, syntyy." Mutta sillä välin ylestyessään Handke väittää solipsismiin, joka löytää omaperäisyyttä itsensä hemmottelussa. Toisin kuin hänen aikaisemmat teoksensa, jotka pohjautuvat arjen brutaaleihin totuuksiin, The Fruit Thiefin hermeettisyys on vähemmän saavutettavissa ja paljon elohopeampaa. Kertojan ajatusten virrassa eksyneen Handken romaanin vuoksi on vaikea tietää, missä ajatus alkaa ja toinen päättyy, ja alkaa pohtia, onko se tarkoitus: romaani on hyvässä ja pahassa tutkimusta teossa. eristetty luovuus, taiteilija, joka on jättänyt maailman lopullisesti taakseen.
      ellauri341.html on line 49: "Toisaalta pelkästään Afrikan, Lähi-idän ja Aasian maiden ihmisten tyytymättömyys kolonialismiin ja ilmastokatastrofiin ja elintasoerot yhdistettynä turvapaikkajärjestelmän väärinkäytön helppouteen – eli länsimaiden perustavanlaatuiseen kyvyttömyyteen suojella itseään – pystyy varmistamaan, että Eurooppa kaatuu ihmisvyöryn alle ennemmin tai myöhemmin, mikäli radikaaleja muutoksia ei kyetä tekemään."
      ellauri341.html on line 138: Lontoon ja USAn sähkeet menevät suoraan asiaan. Paremmin ei maailmanpäsmärien ongelmaa voisi lyhyesti ilmaista. Ontää ainakin paljon osuvampi arvio kuin oli Patti Mulkkisen taannoinen pro-Israel mylvintä (albumi 185).
      ellauri341.html on line 177: Anschließend trat Becher als Konkurrent zu Adolf Eichmann, der bereits die Kontakte aufgebaut hatte, an das jüdische Hilfskomitee in Budapest heran. Heinrich Himmler schien zu diesem Zeitpunkt bereits Interesse daran zu haben, mit jüdischen Organisationen ins Geschäft zu kommen, um so später auch eine Position für Verhandlungen mit den Alliierten aufzubauen. Er bot an, für rund 10.000 LKWs und Winterausrüstung 1 Million Juden freizulassen. Als die Verhandlungen schließlich platzten, hatte Becher den direkten Auftrag von Himmler, weiter Ausschau nach Geschäften unter der Devise „Blut gegen Ware“ zu halten. So wurden im Dezember 1944 gegen Schmuck im Wert mehrerer Millionen Schweizer Franken 1.684 „Austauschjuden“ über eine Zwischenstation im KZ Bergen-Belsen mit Ausreise in die Schweiz freigekauft, 318 von ihnen kamen schon im August 1944, also kurz nach dem Attentat auf Hitler, in die Schweiz. Bei mehreren Treffen mit Saly Mayer, dem Vorsitzenden des Schweizerischen Israelitischen Gemeindebundes, wurde im Herbst 1944 die Freilassung dieser Häftlingsgruppe aus Bergen-Belsen verhandelt. Mittler war der Ungar Rudolf Kasztner. Becher wurde am 1. Januar 1945 zum SS-Standartenführer ernannt.
      ellauri341.html on line 265: Kohtaamiaan riskeistä huolimatta Gregorian Bivolaru aloitti joogan opettamisen nimityksellä "psykosomaattinen alastonvoimistelu" 1970-luvun alussa eri paikoissa, kulttuuritaloissa ja opiskelijakeskuksissa, ja hän teki niin vuoteen 1981, jolloin suuri skandaali liittyen Transsendenttiseen edestakaiseen liikkeeseen Romaniassa tapahtui. Nuori Guru Maharaj Ji oli käyttänyt tilaisuutta hyväkseen nousta äitinsä hännän alta ja elää korkealla (huumeissa) sialla (lihan syöminen) seksin (Playboy-lehden itsetyydytys), huumeiden (marihuana), ja rock 'n rollin (erittäin kovaäänisesti!) kanssa(kalliit hifit), nopeita autoja ja hänen ikioma Pinball-koneensa. Tuolloin Ceausescu-hallinto pidätti ja vangitsi satoja tämän liikkeen harjoittajia syytettynä "epäilyttävästä mystiikasta, joka saattaa johtaa valtion horjuttamiseen", minkä jälkeen kaikki itämaiset henkiset käytännöt, mukaan lukien jooga ja kamppailulajit, kiellettiin.
      ellauri341.html on line 365: Vuoden 1923 sionistikongressissa Arlosoroff valittiin sionistien toimintakomiteaan. Hän oli tuolloin vain 24-vuotias. Kieltäytyessään yliopistovirasta hän lähti Saksasta Brittiläisen Palestiinan mandaattiin vuonna 1924. Vuonna 1926 hänet valittiin edustamaan yishuv - puoluetta Kansainliitossa Genevessä.
      ellauri341.html on line 459: Georg Neithardt (* 31. Januar 1871 in Nürnberg; † 1. November 1941 in Rottach-Egern) war Richter am Bayerischen Volksgericht. Unter anderem leitete er den infolge des Hitler-Ludendorff-Putsches eröffneten Hochverratsprozess gegen Adolf Hitler und seine Mitverschwörer im Frühjahr 1924 (siehe Hitler-Prozess). Neithardt sympathisierte mit den Putschisten, die die Demokratie in Deutschland beseitigen wollten. Auch deshalb wurden sie nur zu äußerst milden Strafen verurteilt.
      ellauri341.html on line 502: Tiennäyttäjä löytyi Kef Biristä, Endoria kiertävästä merikuusta, mutta sen tuhouduttua Reyn ja Kylon välisessä valosapelitaistelussa ja Reyn lähdettyä yksin pois, Poe, Finn, Chewbacca, BB-8 ja C-3PO palaavat mukanaan Ochin alukselta löytynyt droidi D-O sekä Kef Birillä tapaamansa Jannah ja tämän heimo Vastarinnan tukikohtaan viidakkokuu Ajan Klossille, missä heille paljastuu, että Leia oli kuollut kutsuessaan poikaansa Voiman kautta saadakseen tämän palaamaan valoisalle puolelle. Poe ylennettiin Vastarinnan virkaa tekeväksi kenraaliksi, mutta ei tuntenut olevansa valmis johtamaan koko Vastarintaa. Lando rohkaisee häntä kertomalla, etteivät Leia, Luke ja Han olleet itsekään täysin valmistautuneita omiin taisteluihinsa ja että heillä oli silloin ainakin toisensa. Poe ylentää Finnin ("suomalaisen!") Vastarinnan toiseksi kenraaliksi ja saatuaan D-O:n kertomana sekä Ahch-Tolta lähteneen Reyn ohjaaman Luken vanhan X-siipihävittäjän signaalin kautta Exegolin sijainnin selville ja miten sitä ympäröivän punaisen kaasun sekä planeetan kaoottisen ilmakehän läpi pääsee, he johtavat Vastarinnan laivaston hyökkäykseen sinne tuhoamaan Ensimmäisen ritarikunnan ja Palpatinen sith-laivaston yhdistymisestä syntyneen Viimeisen ritarikunnan. He lähettivät Landon pyytämään galaksin vapaita kansoja saapumaan avuksi taisteluun, uskoen näiden uskaltavan taistella vastaan, jos Vastarinta johtaa heitä siihen. Aluksi hyökkäys näyttää onnistuvan, mutta kun Poen ystävä Temmin ”Snap” Wexley kuolee taistelussa, hän alkaa menettää toivonsa, mutta sitten Lando saapuu mukanaan lukuisia Vastarinnan tukijoita eri puolilta galaksia, mukaan lukien Zorii ja Wedge Antilles. Nää on niikö Amerikan overseas liittolaisia, jotka tulee apuun suojaamaan sen vital interestejä. Palpatinen ja Ben Soloksi kääntyneen Kylon kuolemien jälkeen Vastarinta onnistuu tuhoamaan Viimeisen ritarikunnan kaikki tähtihävittäjät. Poe nähdään lopuksi juhlimassa voittoa Ajan Klossilla, Zoriin nyökätessä hänelle etäältä, mutta kieltäytyessä mistään sen enemmästä kanssakäynnistä, kuten bylsinnästä.
      ellauri341.html on line 543: Kirjassaan "A Reevaluation of the Neolithic Revolution" Frank Asshole laajensi edelleen kasvien ja kotieläinten välistä suhdetta. Hän ehdotti, että tapahtumat olisivat voineet tapahtua itsenäisesti eri ajanjaksoina, paikoissa, joita ei ole vielä tutkittu. Hän mainitsi, ettei hän kyllä löytänyt tällaista arkeologista aluetta osoittamaan siirtymistä. Myös kaikki kesyeläimet (vuohet, lampaat, naudat ja siat) löydettiin yhdestä paikasta vasta kuudennella vuosituhannella. Hyläten erityiset ja vakaat perustelut, kuten Maria Hopfin väitteet, jotka koskivat viljan, kuten ohran, viljelyä Jerikossa, hän päätteli, että "tulevissa tutkimuksissa tulisi kiinnittää erityistä huomiota Eufratin altaan länsireunaan , ehkä yhtä paljon etelään Arabian niemimaalla, varsinkin jos täällä pleistoseenissa sademäärä oli paljon runsaampaa."
      ellauri342.html on line 74: Se on upea kirjasto, joka on ihailtavan hyvin perustettu, avoinna runoilijoille päivin ja öin, ja sitä palvelevat pienet symbaalikirjastonhoitajat, jotka soittavat sinulle musiikkia koko ajan. Vietin siellä muutaman ilahduttavan päivän, ja viikon tutkimuksen jälkeen – selässäni – päädyin löytämään mitä halusin, toisin sanoen tarinan muulistani ja tästä kuuluisasta potkusta, jota säilytettiin seitsemän vuotta. Tarina on kaunis, vaikkakin hieman naiivi, ja yritän kertoa sen sinulle, kun luin sen eilen aamulla ajan värisestä käsikirjoituksesta, joka tuoksui hyvälle kuivalta laventelilta ja jossa oli suuria Neitsyen lankoja kirjanmerkkeihin.

      ellauri342.html on line 86: Joka sunnuntai vespereiden jälkeen tämä kunnollinen mies meni maksamaan oikeuteen viinitarha. Kun hän istui hienossa auringonpaisteessa, muulinsa lähellä, kardinaalinsa levittäytyneenä viiniköynnösten alla hän avasi pullon vuosikertaviiniä -- a hieno viini, rubiinien väri, joka on tunnettu siitä lähtien nimellä _Chateau-Neuf du Pape_- jota hän halusi siemailla katsellessaan hellästi hänen viinitarhansa. Sitten hän lähti pullon tyhjänä ja päivänvalon hämärtyessä iloisesti takaisin kaupunkiin, koko lukunsa mukana. Kun hän kulki yli _pont d'Avignon_, rumpujen ja farandolien joukossa, hänen muulinsa, ottaa hänen vihjeen musiikista, aloitti pirun pienen amblen, kun hän itse lyö tanssirytmiä birettallaan. Tämä järkytti hänen kardinaalinsa, mutta ei niin ihmiset, jotka iloitsivat siitä ja sanoivat: "Mikä hyvä prinssi! Mikä mahtava paavi!"
      ellauri342.html on line 112: Kun apina oli paavin palveluksessa, hän teki täsmälleen samoin temppuja, jotka hän oli oppinut aiemmin. Hän oli röyhkeä kaikkia kohtaan ei aikaa eikä huomiota kenellekään muulle kuin muulille, ja sen piti olla nähty ikuisesti palatsin pihalla kourallisten kaura- tai nippujen kanssa esparsiinia, ravistaen kevyesti vaaleanpunaisia ​​rypäleterttuja, kun hän katsoi pyhää Isän parvekkeella ikään kuin sanoisi, "Kenelle tämä ihana ruoka sitten on?" Todellakin niin paljon, että vihdoinkin hyvä paavi, joka alkoi tuntea ikänsä, päätti lähteä huolehtia tallin hoidosta ja viedä muulille hänen kulhonsa viiniä, _a la francaise_, kenellekään muulle kuin Tistet Vedenelle. Tämä ei huvittanut kardinaalit.
      ellauri342.html on line 163: Tistetin lähdön jälkeen paavin muuli palasi rauhalliseen elämäänsä ja vanhojen aikojen tapoja. Ei enää Quiquetiä tai Beluguetia tallissa. Viinin onnelliset päivät a la francaise palasivat ja tulivat niiden mukana tyytyväisyys, pitkät siestat ja jopa mahdollisuus tehdä omaa vähän gavotte vielä kerran, kun hän meni _sur le pont d'Avignon_. Ja silti, seikkailunsa jälkeen hän tunsi tiettyä viileyttä häntä kohtaan kaupunki. Kuiskaukset seurasivat häntä matkalla, vanhat ihmiset pudistivat päätään, ja nuoret nauroivat ja osoittivat kellotornia. Jopa hyvä Paavi itse ei luottanut niin paljon karvaiseen ystäväänsä ja milloin hän halusi torkut asennettuna muuliin, palaten viinitarhasta Sunnuntaisin hän pelkäsi heräävänsä kellotornin huipulla! The muuli tunsi kaiken tämän, mutta kärsi sen hiljaisuudessa, paitsi kun nimi Tistet Vedene mainittiin hänen edessään, kun hänen korvansa nykivät ja hän haukotteli lyhyesti, kun hän vei rautakengänsä kivetykselle kiviä.
      ellauri342.html on line 225: Pidin yhä kiinni siitä, mitä ilman en voinut elää: uskostani Jehovan todistajien ruohonleikkurien jumalaan. Siinä oli minun ainoa turvani, minun voimani, minun itsekunnioitukseni. Juuri se, mitä marxilaisuus ei nykyhetkessä - sellaisena kuin se oli - kyennyt millään antamaan. Se pystyi antamaan yhteenkuuluvuuden tunteen ja tekemään katkeruudestani niin sanotusti oikeutettua, antamaan sille tarkoituksen, ylpeyden. Ja se pystyi täyttämään minut kuvitelmilla ruusunpunaisesta tulevaisuudesta. Mutta jälkimmäisen olisi ihan yhtä lailla voinut antaa haave hyvästä avioliitosta. Ja toivo siitä, että voisin omilla ponnistuksillani päästä merkittävään asemaan yhteiskunnassa. Eli E!F!K! - se Sallillakin oli taka-ajatuxena.
      ellauri342.html on line 394: World Laughter Day is celebrated every year on the first Sunday of May, and this year it is celebrated on May 5. Shrill or funny, giggly or bubbly, on this day, let out your laughter and laugh to your heart’s content. As Shakespeare said, “With mirth and laughter, let old wrinkles come.” We want you to spend your life with laughter and joy. Did you know that laughter decreases stress? By laughing, the brain releases endorphins which make one feel happy. So do not let anyone dampen your day, and laugh as much as you want.
      ellauri342.html on line 398: International Moment of Laughter Day is celebrated on April 14 every year. This is the day to let your inner child come out and laugh away all your worries. You can laugh out loud or giggle, in fact, you can do whatever you want but make sure you’re laughing at the same time. This day reminds us to look beyond our anxious lives and find something that puts a big smile on our faces.
      ellauri342.html on line 414: Wear a Plunger on Your Head Day. It is celebrated every year on December 18, yet no one really knows why. There is no good reason why you should wear a plunger on your head, but that is exactly how the day is celebrated! Go ahead, invite a bit of fun and silliness into your life!
      ellauri342.html on line 434: I can hear your mournful yell. voin kuulla sun surullisen mölinän
      ellauri342.html on line 442: That will answer your lunging yell Kun karjut kuin haavoittunut jellona
      ellauri342.html on line 516: Melodrama doping eyes and ears. Melodraamaa silmien ja korvien tukkeena.
      ellauri342.html on line 517: And yet romance, expelled from actual life, Silti vittu jos romanssin ajaa pois laiffista,
      ellauri342.html on line 541: In a freedom yet to come, Jolloin prenikat ei pistele.
      ellauri342.html on line 570: Edwin Jack Fisher (August 10, 1928 – September 22, 2010) was an American singer and actor. He was one of the most popular artists during the 1950s, selling millions of records and hosting his own TV show, The Eddie Fisher Show. Actress Elizabeth Taylor was best friends with Fisher's first wife, actress Debbie Reynolds. After Taylor's third husband, Mike Todd, another entertainment Jew, was killed in a plane crash over Mexico 1958, Fisher divorced Reynolds and he and Taylor married that same year.
      ellauri343.html on line 97: Repolan siirtyessä Neuvosto-Venäjän hallintaan noin 300 repolaista pakeni Suomeen. Vuoteen 1925 mennessä viidesosa heistä palasi takaisin.
      ellauri343.html on line 163: Pidän suuresti PPSh:lla ampumisesta. Ase on suuresta tulinopeudestaan huolimatta miellyttävä ammuttava ja melko helposti hallittava myös sarjatulella. Suomi-konepistooliin verrattuna PPSh on kilon kevyempi ja siksi mukavampi kantaa. Varmistin osana lukkoa on helppo käyttää ja liikkuu ainakin tässä aseyksilössä sulavasti. Laukaisu on sen sijaan pitkä, raskas ja rohiseva, kuten odottaa voikin. Konepistoolissa tämä ei ole kovin oleellinen kysymys ja raskas laukaisu on turvallisuusominaisuus.
      ellauri343.html on line 261: Isä V. O. Sivén ja muu aktivistien kärkijoukko alkoivat ensimmäisen maailmansodan syttyessä 1914 suunnitella jääkäriliikettä. Poliittista uraansa Sivén aloitteli Normaalilyseon konventin eli oppilaskunnan hallituksen puheenjohtajana vuonna 1917.
      ellauri344.html on line 211: Suomen Talvisota 1939–40 -yhtyeen albumilla Underground-rock (1970) kuultiin kolme Laineen sanoittamaa biisiä, joista tunnetuin lienee Kekkonen-rock. M. A. Nummiselle ja Suomen Talvisodan pääsolistille Rauli Badding Somerjoelle Laine kirjoitti useita tekstejä. Badding-kappaleista kuuluisimpia ovat Bensaa suonissa ja Fiilaten ja höyläten. Laine teki tilaustekstejä myös mm. SKDL:n vaalilevylle sekä Kirka Babitzinille.
      ellauri344.html on line 239: Sitten menevät vuokranantajat: Obolt-Obolduyev; Glukhov; ankka; Kalashnikov; Seine.
      ellauri344.html on line 280: – Jos haluamme voittaa sodan, itäsiivessä sijaitsevien Nato-maiden pitää ottaa lyhyempi, kolmen vuoden aikahorisontti yhteenottoon valmistautumisessa.
      ellauri345.html on line 163: Tämänkaltaiset lausunnot antoivat aihetta epäillä, että kaunis seikkailija olisi henkisesti hämmentynyt. Hra von Reva-avanne, joka ei voinut hyvin ymmärtää tällaista päätöstä paeta maailmaan, epäili nyt, että he ehkä olivat halunneet mennä naimisiin hiänen taipumustaan ​​vastaan. Jälkeenpäin hän pohti, eikö se ollut rakkauden epätoivoa; ja kummallista kyllä, kuten yleensä on, kun hän uskoi naisen rakastavan jotakuta toista, hän rakastui itse ja pelkäsi, että hän haluaisi matkustaa eteenpäin. Hän ei voinut irrottaa katsettaan kauniilta kasvoilta, jotka oli koristeltu puolimaailman vihreällä valolla. Koskaan, jos koskaan oli nymfiä, ei kauniimpaa ilmestynyt nurmikolle; ja tämän tapaamisen hieman romanttinen luonne loi viehätyksen, jota hän ei kyennyt vastustamaan.
      ellauri345.html on line 290: Kokemuskäsite ei siis ole muuta kuin kuvaus laulamisen seurausten puutteesta, jota ylevimmätkin kaipaavat, koska se on edelleen kuin pelkurimaista fiilistelyä, joka ei kyennyt herättämään nukkuvaa, vailla yhteyttä totuuteen, vastuuta. (Ota tuostakin selvä. Benjy ululoi.)
      ellauri345.html on line 400: Ottilienin ulkonäössä tämä siveys vaatii kuitenkin paljon enemmän. Se luo vaikutelman luonnollisen elämän viattomuudesta. Pakanallinen, ellei myyttinen, ajatus tästä viattomuudesta on ainakin äärimmäisen ja seurauksellisen neitsyysihanteen muotoilunsa velkaa kristinuskolle. Jos myyttisen alkusyyllisyyden syitä haetaan pelkästä seksuaalisuuden elämänhalusta, niin kristillinen ajattelu näkee vastineensa siellä, missä se on eniten irrallaan rajuista ilmaisuista: Neitsyen elämässä. Mutta tämä selkeä, ellei selvästi tietoinen tarkoitus, sisältää vakavan virheen. On totta, että kuten luonnollinen syyllisyys, elämässä on luonnollista viattomuutta. Jälkimmäinen ei kuitenkaan ole sidottu seksuaalisuuteen - vaikka se olisi negatiivinen - vaan vain sen vastakkaiseen napaan, - yhtä luonnolliseen - anaaliiin. Anista penaaliin! Aivan kuten ihmisen seksuaalisesta elämästä voi tulla luonnollisen syyllisyyden ilmaus, niin hänen hengellinen elämänsä, suhteessa hänen yksilöllisyytensä ykseyteen, on luonnollisen viattomuuden ilmaus. (Mitähän hemmettiä tämäkin on tarkoittavinaan.)
      ellauri345.html on line 424: Roomalaiset voivat kumota tämän kysymyksen suunnitellun lain. Jos ei tunnista sen pakottavaa luonnetta, romaanin ydin jää epäselväksi. Sillä tätä moraalisen äänen hiljaisuutta ei voida ymmärtää yksilöllisyyden piirteenä, kuten tunteiden mykistettyä kieltä. Se ei ole ihmisen rajoissa oleva kohtalo. Tämän hiljaisuuden myötä illuusio on asettunut kuluttavalla tavalla jaloimman olennon sydämeen. Ja tämä muistuttaa oudolla ikääntyessään mielisairaaseen menehtyneen Minna Herzliebin vaikenemista. Kaikki sanaton toiminnan selkeys on ilmeistä ja todellisuudessa itsensä säilyttävien sisäinen minä ei ole yhtä hämärtynyt kuin muiden. Pelkästään päiväkirjassaan Ottilien ihmiselämä näyttää vihdoinkin sekoittuvan. Kaikki heidän kielellisesti lahjakas olemassaolonsa löytyy yhä enemmän näistä hiljaisista kirjoituksista. Mutta he myös rakentavat vain muistomerkkiä jollekulle, joka kuoli. Hänen paljastavansa salaisuudet, jotka kuoleman yksin pitäisi paljastaa, tottunut ajatukseensa poismenosta; ja osoittamalla elävien hiljaisuutta he ennakoivat myös heidän täydellisen hiljaisuutensa. Illuusio, joka hallitsee kirjailijan elämää, tunkeutuu jopa hänen henkiseen, etäiseen tunnelmaan. Sillä jos päiväkirjan vaarana on, että se paljastaa liian aikaisin muistin idut sielusta ja estää sen hedelmien kypsymisen, silloin sen täytyy välttämättä tulla tuhoisaksi siellä, missä vain henkinen elämä ilmaistaan ​​siinä. Ja kuitenkin lopulta kaikki sisäisen olemassaolon voima tulee muistista. Vain hän takaa sielunsa rakkauden. Tämä henkii Goethen muistoa: ”Oi, sinä olit menneitä aikoja Siskoni tai vaimoni." Ja niin kuin sellaisessa liitossa kauneus itse säilyy muistona, niin se on kukkiessaankin merkityksetön ilman sitä. Tästä todistavat Platonin Phaidroksen sanat: "Joka on tuore vihkimisestä ja on yksi niistä joka näki siellä paljon tuonpuoleisessa elämässä, joka nähdessään jumalalliset kasvot, jotka jäljittelevät hyvin kauneutta tai fyysistä muotoa, hämmästyy aluksi, muistaa tuolloin kokemansa ahdistuksen, mutta sitten kun hän lähestyy sitä, hän tunnistaa sen luonteen ja palvo häntä kuin jumalaa, koska muisti on nostettu kauneusajatukseen ja näkee sen seisovan varovaisuuden vieressä pyhällä maalla." Ottilienin olemassaolo ei herätä sellaista muistoa, hänessä kauneus todella jää ensimmäinen ja olennainen asia. Kaikki heidän myönteinen "vaikutelmansa" syntyy vain ulkonäöstä; Lukuisista päiväkirjasivuista huolimatta hänen sisäinen olemuksensa pysyy suljettuna, suljempana kuin mikään Heinrich von Kleistin naishahmoista. Tämän näkemyksen myötä Julian Schmidt kohtaa vanhan kritiikin, joka sanoo oudolla varmuudella: "Tämä Ottilie ei ole todellinen runoilijan hengen lapsi, vaan syntinen luomus Mignonin ja vanhan Masaccion tai Giotton kuvan kaksoismuistossa. «. Itse asiassa Ottilienin hahmossa maalaus on ylittänyt eeppisen runouden rajat. Sillä kauneuden esiintyminen olennaisena sisältönä elävässä olennossa on materiaalin eeppisen ympyrän ulkopuolella. Ja silti hän on romaanin keskipisteessä. Sillä ei ole paljoa sanottavaa, jos uskomusta Ottilienin kauneudesta kuvataan perusedellytykseksi romaaniin osallistumiselle. Tämä kauneus ei saa kadota niin kauan kuin hänen maailmansa kestää: arkkua, jossa tyttö lepää, ei suljeta. Tässä teoksessa Goethe siirtyi hyvin kauas kuuluisasta Homeroksen mallista kauneuden eeppiseen esitykseen. Sillä ei ainoastaan ​​Helena vaikuta päättäväisemmältä Pariisin pilkkaamisessaan kuin Ottilie koskaan sanoissaan, vaan ennen kaikkea hänen kauneutensa kuvauksessa Goethe ei noudattanut kuuluisaa sääntöä, joka ilmeni muurilla kokoontuneiden ihailevista puheista. otettiin vanhoilta ihmisiltä. Ne omaleimaiset epiteetit, jotka Ottilielle annetaan, jopa romaanimuodon lakeja vastaan, vain siirtävät hänet pois eeppiseltä tasolta, jolla runoilija hallitsee, ja antavat hänelle vierasta eloisuutta, josta hän ei ole vastuussa. Mitä kauempana hän on Homeroksen Helenistä, sitä lähempänä hän on Goethea. Heidän tavoin hän seisoo epäselvällä viattomuudella ja näennäisen kauneudella heidän tavoin sovittavan kuoleman odotuksessa. Ja kutsuminen liittyy myös hänen ulkonäköönsä. « Ottilienin olemassaolo ei herätä sellaisia ​​muistoja, kauneus on hänessä todellakin ensimmäinen ja olennainen asia. Kaikki heidän myönteinen "vaikutelmansa" syntyy vain ulkonäöstä; Lukuisista päiväkirjasivuista huolimatta hänen sisäinen olemuksensa pysyy suljettuna, suljempana kuin mikään Heinrich von Kleistin naishahmoista. Tämän näkemyksen myötä Julian Schmidt kohtaa vanhan kritiikin, joka sanoo oudolla varmuudella: "Tämä Ottilie ei ole todellinen runoilijan hengen lapsi, vaan syntinen luomus Mignonin ja vanhan Masaccion tai Giotton kuvan kaksoismuistossa. «. Itse asiassa Ottilienin hahmossa maalaus on ylittänyt eeppisen runouden rajat. Sillä kauneuden esiintyminen olennaisena sisältönä elävässä olennossa on materiaalin eeppisen ympyrän ulkopuolella. Ja silti hän on romaanin keskipisteessä. Sillä ei ole paljoa sanottavaa, jos uskomusta Ottilienin kauneudesta kuvataan perusedellytykseksi romaaniin osallistumiselle. Tämä kauneus ei saa kadota niin kauan kuin hänen maailmansa kestää: arkkua, jossa tyttö lepää, ei suljeta. Tässä teoksessa Goethe siirtyi hyvin kauas kuuluisasta Homeroksen mallista kauneuden eeppiseen esitykseen. Sillä ei ainoastaan ​​Helena vaikuta päättäväisemmältä Pariisin pilkkaamisessaan kuin Ottilie koskaan sanoissaan, vaan ennen kaikkea hänen kauneutensa kuvauksessa Goethe ei noudattanut kuuluisaa sääntöä, joka ilmeni muurilla kokoontuneiden ihailevista puheista. otettiin vanhoilta ihmisiltä. Ne omaleimaiset epiteetit, jotka Ottilielle annetaan, jopa romaanimuodon lakeja vastaan, vain siirtävät hänet pois eeppiseltä tasolta, jolla runoilija hallitsee, ja antavat hänelle vierasta eloisuutta, josta hän ei ole vastuussa. Mitä kauempana hän on Homeroksen Helenistä, sitä lähempänä hän on Goethea. Heidän tavoin hän seisoo epäselvällä viattomuudella ja näennäisen kauneudella heidän tavoin sovittavan kuoleman odotuksessa. Ja kutsuminen liittyy myös hänen ulkonäköönsä. « Ottilienin olemassaolo ei herätä sellaisia ​​muistoja, kauneus on hänessä todellakin ensimmäinen ja olennainen asia. Kaikki heidän myönteinen "vaikutelmansa" syntyy vain ulkonäöstä; Lukuisista päiväkirjasivuista huolimatta hänen sisäinen olemuksensa pysyy suljettuna, suljempana kuin mikään Heinrich von Kleistin naishahmoista. Tämän näkemyksen myötä Julian Schmidt kohtaa vanhan kritiikin, joka sanoo oudolla varmuudella: "Tämä Ottilie ei ole todellinen runoilijan hengen lapsi, vaan syntinen luomus Mignonin ja vanhan Masaccion tai Giotton kuvan kaksoismuistossa. «. Itse asiassa Ottilienin hahmossa maalaus on ylittänyt eeppisen runouden rajat. Sillä kauneuden esiintyminen olennaisena sisältönä elävässä olennossa on materiaalin eeppisen ympyrän ulkopuolella. Ja silti hän on romaanin keskipisteessä. Sillä ei ole paljoa sanottavaa, jos uskomusta Ottilienin kauneudesta kuvataan perusedellytykseksi romaaniin osallistumiselle. Tämä kauneus ei saa kadota niin kauan kuin hänen maailmansa kestää: arkkua, jossa tyttö lepää, ei suljeta. Tässä teoksessa Goethe siirtyi hyvin kauas kuuluisasta Homeroksen mallista kauneuden eeppiseen esitykseen. Sillä ei ainoastaan ​​Helena vaikuta päättäväisemmältä Pariisin pilkkaamisessaan kuin Ottilie koskaan sanoissaan, vaan ennen kaikkea hänen kauneutensa kuvauksessa Goethe ei noudattanut kuuluisaa sääntöä, joka ilmeni muurilla kokoontuneiden ihailevista puheista. otettiin vanhoilta ihmisiltä. Ne omaleimaiset epiteetit, jotka Ottilielle annetaan, jopa romaanimuodon lakeja vastaan, vain siirtävät hänet pois eeppiseltä tasolta, jolla runoilija hallitsee, ja antavat hänelle vierasta eloisuutta, josta hän ei ole vastuussa. Mitä kauempana hän on Homeroksen Helenistä, sitä lähempänä hän on Goethea. Heidän tavoin hän seisoo epäselvällä viattomuudella ja näennäisen kauneudella heidän tavoin sovittavan kuoleman odotuksessa. Ja kutsuminen liittyy myös hänen ulkonäköönsä. Sillä ei ole paljoa sanottavaa, jos uskomusta Ottilienin kauneudesta kuvataan perusedellytykseksi romaaniin osallistumiselle. Tämä kauneus ei saa kadota niin kauan kuin hänen maailmansa kestää: arkkua, jossa tyttö lepää, ei suljeta. Tässä teoksessa Goethe siirtyi hyvin kauas kuuluisasta Homeroksen mallista kauneuden eeppiseen esitykseen. Sillä ei ainoastaan ​​Helena vaikuta päättäväisemmältä Pariisin pilkkaamisessaan kuin Ottilie koskaan sanoissaan, vaan ennen kaikkea hänen kauneutensa kuvauksessa Goethe ei noudattanut kuuluisaa sääntöä, joka ilmeni muurilla kokoontuneiden ihailevista puheista. otettiin vanhoilta ihmisiltä. Ne omaleimaiset epiteetit, jotka Ottilielle annetaan, jopa romaanimuodon lakeja vastaan, vain siirtävät hänet pois eeppiseltä tasolta, jolla runoilija hallitsee, ja antavat hänelle vierasta eloisuutta, josta hän ei ole vastuussa. Mitä kauempana hän on Homeroksen Helenistä, sitä lähempänä hän on Goethea. Heidän tavoin hän seisoo epäselvällä viattomuudella ja näennäisen kauneudella heidän tavoin sovittavan kuoleman odotuksessa. Ja kutsuminen liittyy myös hänen ulkonäköönsä. Sillä ei ole paljoa sanottavaa, jos uskomusta Ottilienin kauneudesta kuvataan perusedellytykseksi romaaniin osallistumiselle. Tämä kauneus ei saa kadota niin kauan kuin hänen maailmansa kestää: arkkua, jossa tyttö lepää, ei suljeta. Tässä teoksessa Goethe siirtyi hyvin kauas kuuluisasta Homeroksen mallista kauneuden eeppiseen esitykseen. Sillä ei ainoastaan ​​Helena vaikuta päättäväisemmältä Pariisin pilkkaamisessaan kuin Ottilie koskaan sanoissaan, vaan ennen kaikkea hänen kauneutensa kuvauksessa Goethe ei noudattanut kuuluisaa sääntöä, joka ilmeni muurilla kokoontuneiden ihailevista puheista. otettiin vanhoilta ihmisiltä. Ne omaleimaiset epiteetit, jotka Ottilielle annetaan, jopa romaanimuodon lakeja vastaan, vain siirtävät hänet pois eeppiseltä tasolta, jolla runoilija hallitsee, ja antavat hänelle vierasta eloisuutta, josta hän ei ole vastuussa. Mitä kauempana hän on Homeroksen Helenistä, sitä lähempänä hän on Goethea. Heidän tavoin hän seisoo epäselvällä viattomuudella ja näennäisen kauneudella heidän tavoin sovittavan kuoleman odotuksessa. Ja kutsuminen liittyy myös hänen ulkonäköönsä.
      ellauri345.html on line 460: Ottilienin kauneutta määräävän illusion kanssa epäolennaisuus uhkaa edelleen pelastusta, jonka ystävät saavat taisteluistaan. Sillä jos kauneus on ilmeistä, niin on myös sovinto, jonka se myyttisesti lupaa elämää yes kuolemassa. Heidän uhrauksensa olisi yhtä turhaa kuin heidän kukoistuksensa, ellei heidän sovintonsa olisi sovinnon näyte. Itse todella todella sovinto on olemassa vain Jumalan kanssa. Jos siellä on sovitettu itsensä kanssa yes vain siten voi sovittaa itsensä hänen kanssaan, niin näennäiselle sovinnolle on ominaista halu sovittaa heidän kanssaan ja vain siten sovittaa heidän Jumalan kanssa. Jälleen kerran tämä näennäisen sovinnon yes todellisen sovinnon välinen suhde kohtaa romaanin yes novellin kontrastin.
      ellauri345.html on line 466: Tämä tyttö ei ole pohjimmiltaan kaunis, Ottilie siis. Omalla tavallaan se on Eduard itse, eli turhaan kehutaan tämän parin kauneutta. Mutta Goethe ei vain käyttänyt lahjoitusrahojensa voimaa - yes taiteen rajojen tuki teki myös - vangitakseen tämän kauneuden, hän sen kevyimmillä käsillä vaan hilasi ku- vitun lähelle aistiakseen tämän lempeän, pyllyverhon takaisen new maailman. Loppu.
      ellauri345.html on line 468: Ottilien nimessä hän osoitti pyhää, joka silmäsairaiden suojeluspyhimyksenä oli perustanut luostarin Odili-vuorelle Schwarzwaldissa.Hän kutsuu häntä myös "silmänvaloksi" miehille, jotka näkevät häntä, kyllä, hänen nimessään voi muistaa seneän valon, joka on sairaiden silmien etu ja kaiken ulkonäön koti hänen sisällään. Häntyröi tämän vastakohtana Lucianen nimen yes ulkonäön tuskallisen hehkun yes hänen aurinkoisen, laajan elämänpiirinsä Ottilienin kuuhun, salaperäiseen. Mutta kuten aivan hän jattää syrjään hänen lempeytensä, ei vain Lucianen valheellinen villi, vaan myös näiden rakastajien oikeamielisyys, niin hänen luonteensa lievä hohto asettuu vihamielisen loisteen ja raittiin valon väliin. Kiihkeä hyökkäys, josta novelli kertoo, oli suunnattu päin rakastajan näköä; Tämän kaiken ilmentymän vastustavan rakkauden henkeä ei voitaisi tarkemmin ilmaista. Intohimo pysyy loukussa kiertoradalla, munajuusto pystyy edes antamaan uskollisuuden tunnetta syöjälle. Ottaen mukaan, että kauneus on joutunut kaiken ulkonäön uhriksi kuuluvaan, sen kaoottisen luonteen täytyisi puhjeta tuhoisalla tavalla, jos hengellisempi elementti ei pystyisi rauhoittamaan ulkonäköä. Katso myös puolueellisuus. (Jaa mixi?)
      ellauri345.html on line 598: Kun meistä vähin erin tulee energeettisesti kevyempiä ja värähtelemme korkeammalla värähtelytasolla, meidän on opittava erottamaan toisistaan ​​keitä olemme ja keitä emme ole. EMME ole ehdollinen egomme emmekä kehomme, vaan ME OLEMME HENKIÄ. Olemme niin sanotusti jumalallista älyä. Tästä ei pidä egon ylpistyä, se on ihan normaalia. Kun sielu "suutelee" universaalia tietoisuutta, muoto syntyy juuri tuossa kohdassa, nimenomaan juuri tuossa kohdassa (näyttää kuvasta). Jotain syntyy. Tarvitaan uusia muotoja, uusia muotoja tarvitaan. Ilman niitä ei ole koko taidetta.
      ellauri345.html on line 687: Vaikka hän keskittyi pääasiassa runouteen 1850-luvulla, hänen työlleen on ominaista "vahva sisäinen viittaus islamiin ja lyhyen aikaa juutalaisuuteen". Mutta aikalaistensa suureksi yllätykseksi hän kääntyi katolilaisuuteen Mainzin katedraalin taivaaseenastumispäivänä vuonna 1859. Samana vuonna ilmestyneissä kääntymyskirjoituksissaan Kääntymäni ja Rooman kolmoiskruunu hän selitti muuttonsa epätoivolla itselleen ja lähimmäisilleen ja ajalle yleensä. Tämän tunnustuksen mukaan hänen kääntymyksensä laukaisijana oli ranskalaisen romantiikan Charles Nodierin teoksen lukeminen, joka uskoi, että ihminen korvattaisiin korkeammalla olennolla, jonka olemassaolo ei olisi väliaikaista vaan pysyvää - tulevaisuuden enkeli. Daumer uskoi tunnistavansa Kristuksen tässä olennossa. Sellaiset me haluaisimme!
      ellauri346.html on line 46: Look, Ivan, this building destroyed by russian pilot. 46 people died. Or 47 if you count the murdered pregnant woman as two people. They have 6 children. The youngest child was 11 months old. 80 people were injured. 11 people remain missing. If this is not terrorism then what are the jews doing in Gaza?
      ellauri346.html on line 62: Kun koulutyttö ampui kavereita Brjanskin koulusurmassa, Ukrainan meedia ilkkui pahansuopana: mitä ihania lapsia! Jäähän vähemmän tykinruokaa Putinin armeijaan! Ukrainan puolustusministeriön eversti Vladimir Laguta onnittelee Azerbaidžania sen menestyksestä Karabahissa. Erdogan: Türkiye uskoo palestiinalaisten voittoon ja Netanyahu tuomitaan kansanmurhasta. LOL. "Urheilu on puhdistettava Bachista ja muista KOK:n hyeenoista": Kreml. Kiovan hallinnon joukot käyttävät nyt paljon vähemmän panssaroituja ajoneuvoja, koska venäläiset taistelijat tuhoavat niitä erittäin intensiivisesti. Kiovan hallinnon päällikkö Vladimir Zelensky luultavasti pyysi amerikkalaisilta poliitikoilta heidän vierailunsa aikana apua pakenemisen varalta. (Huom: ei Ukrainan, vaan "Kiovan hallinnon!" Osaavat ne putinistitkin.)
      ellauri346.html on line 88: Saavuttuaan Moskovan rautatieasemalle hän pyytää työtoveriaan lähettämään kutsumattoman vieraan turkishatussa Moskovaan, mutta tällä hetkellä Kostja laittaa hattua toiselle hänen vieressään istuvalle. Sitten nuorempi Lukashin astuu toiseen turkishattuun ja menee takaisin Nadyan luo, oletettavasti passia hakemaan mutta oikeasti lisää nussimaan. Seuraavaksi hän tapaa Nadezhda Vasilyevna Shevelevan, joka saatuaan tietää, että tämä on Zhenya Lukashinin poika, on erittäin hämmästynyt. Sitten Nadezhda Vasilievna puhuu puhelimessa Evgeniyn kanssa, joka on sama siis kuin Zhenya. (Tshort vazmi tätä venäläisklassikoiden nimisotkua.) Elokuvasta käy selväksi, että alkup. sankarien kohtalot olivat sellaisia, että palattuaan alkup. rakkaidensa luo he nussivatkin heidän kanssaan ja siittivät/synnyttivät lapsia. Vihainen Nadezhda Vasilyevna uskoo, että Lukashin Sr järjesti poikansa saapumisen tuhotakseen tyttärensä elämän ja kostaakseen menee ystävänsä Valjan luo.
      ellauri346.html on line 101: Zhenya soittaa Kostjalle ja kysyy kuinka hän voi. Hän vastaa olevansa jo kotona, minkä jälkeen hän soittaa välittömästi Nadya Jr:lle ja kuulee hänen puhelimensa soivan, näkee Nadyan ja kysyy: "Olenko minä kanssasi vai oletko sinä kanssani?" Nadya vastaa: "Mitä väliä sillä on meille nyt? Nussitaax?" Samaan aikaan Zhenya ja Nadezhda Vasilyevna naivat junan käytävällä, ja Zhenya kysyy: "Luuletko, että he onnistuvat?" Nadja vanhempi vastaa samalla tavalla kuin Nadya, ja Zhenyan äiti Marina Dmitrievna huutaa junan vessasta kuin 30 vuotta sitten: "Odotamme ja katsomme!"
      ellauri346.html on line 131: Ainoa asia, josta ei ole epäilystäkään, on poliittisten mieltymysten muutos. Lyhyen oleskelun jälkeen Keski-Volgan alueella lähellä Samaraa ja Stavropolia hän ilmestyi elokuun lopussa 1918 Koko-Ukrainan keskussotilaskomission valtuudella neutraalille alueelle, missä hän alkoi muodostaa säännöllisiä Ukrainan Neuvostoliiton sotilasyksiköitä. kapinallisyksiköiltä. Kuten silminnäkijät ovat todistaneet, Shchors osoitti siitä lähtien suvaitsemattomuutta sosialistivallankumouksellisia kohtaan ja yritti kaikin mahdollisin tavoin päästä eroon heistä kapinallisten riveissä.
      ellauri346.html on line 189: Jotkut uutiskanavat, kuten palestiinalainen uutistoimisto Wafa, raportoivat : "Ruotsin pääministeri Ulf Kristersson sanoo, että Israelilla on oikeus tehdä kansanmurha, ennen kuin hän oikaisee itsensä sanomaan oikeutta itsepuolustukseen." Toiset käyttivät tarkempaa ilmaisua, kuten "melkein ehdottaa" tai "sanoo vahingossa", kuten Middle East Eye ja suuri pakistanilainen sanomalehti Dawn.
      ellauri346.html on line 256: American promise to deliver M1A1 Abrams tanks at the beginning of the year coincided with commitments from European countries to supply 2 German Leopard tanks. But it was the United Kingdom that was the first country to agree to send Western tanks to Ukraine,turning over its 2 Challenger tanks in January of this year. These performed excellently in battle, the Ukrainians praise them highly. Just like the Leopards, which dominate over the Russian machines. And let's not even start on the Abrams, considered the best heavy tanks in the world.
      ellauri346.html on line 260: The lack of a breakthrough on the Russian lines is causing concern among Kyiv's supporters and raises questions about the future of international support. Since the start of Russia's invasion of Ukraine in February 2022, the United States has provided security assistance to the authorities in Kyiv valued at about $44 billion. This aid has few tangible effects, the Russians have not taken the capital and for more than a year they have notbeen even trying. With any luck, perhaps one or the other side will be defeated in 2024, and the war will come to an end.
      ellauri346.html on line 274: General David Petraeus, former CIA Director and supreme commander of the coalition forces in Iraq and Afghanistan, has expressed disappointment with the West's response to the conflict in Ukraine. He believes that Vladimir Putin might escape accountability for the invasion, and could even win the war, due to the hesitant actions of allies in Kyiv. General David Petraeus, a prominent U.S. Army commander for many years, made significant decision points with Bad Bush in Iraq and Afghanistan. He later led the CIA (from 2011 to 2012), and currently works as a military commentator.
      ellauri346.html on line 276: Speaking with the BBC, the 71-year-old assessed the situation on the Ukrainian front and criticized Western countries sharply. This former officer believes that Western countries should be more assertive in supporting Kyiv and mobilizing to win the war in Ukraine. He pointed to the disappointing summer counteroffensive by the Ukrainian Armed Forces, highlighting the delay in armaments delivery and the inadequate amount of equipment sent to the east as significant issues.
      ellauri346.html on line 295: Finland detaches from Russia as concrete barriers appear. Finland cuts off from Russia. Concrete barriers have appeared. On Thursday, a group of close to 20 individuals, including cyclists, arrived at the first border crossing in the north in Kuhmo. An immigrant, part of a group of about thirty, disobeyed orders, mandating the use of tear gas by the guards. Witness accounts and reports from asylum seekers suggest that migrants only resort to bicycles for the last leg of their journey, in the Russian border zone. The dictator of the Saleist regime of Finland raised the alarm: "Beware of Russia". According to Suvi Alvri, before February 1918, Russia and Finland, neighboring countries, had "functional relations". However, relations have now deteriorated.
      ellauri346.html on line 312: In another year there will be nothing there Vuosi vielä niin täällä ei ole mitään jäljellä
      ellauri346.html on line 314: Within a year we will annihilate everyone Vuodessa me hävitämme joka iikan
      ellauri347.html on line 158: Joanne Greenbergin parannus oli hämmästyttävä. Hän otti vuoteensa ja käveli. Frieda Fromm-Reichmann kuoli 28. huhtikuuta 1957 67-vuotiaana, eikä hän nähnyt valmista työtään Greenbergin kanssa. Hän sai sydänkohtauksen, jonka lääkärit katsoivat johtuneen hänen liiallisesta tupakoinnista ja juomisesta. Projekti potilaan kanssa jäi valitettavasti lyhyexi kuin kananlento.
      ellauri347.html on line 243: Rakkautta Laupias piti persoonallisuutta luovana kykynä eikä tunteena, ja hän erotti tämän luovan kapasiteetin narsististen neuroosien ja kapitalismin eri muodoista. Se ei ollut tieto siitä, mitä muut ihmiset todella halusivat ja tarvitsivat, vaan tieto kanssaihmistensä anatomiasta, saati että sen tavoitetta kunnioittaisivat. Fromm väitti myös, että harvat ihmiset nyky-yhteiskunnassa bylsivät, suhteet ovat yleensä poissa useimmilta ihmisiltä, vastuu ja hoito puuttuu masuasukkailta syntiensä seurauksina osoituksena uskostaan, että Ninive ei halunnut pelastaa Joonasta Tooran tuntemuksensa perusteella. Fromm osoitti että kunnioitus, vastuu, housut pois ja hoitoon pyrkimisen taipumukset, joita yleisesti pidetään todisteena "todellisesta rakkaudesta", on tarinaa. Todellakin, Fromm katseli kokemusta "rakastumisesta" todisteena siitä, ettei ihminen kyennyt ymmärtämään rakkauden todellista luonnetta, johon hän uskoi aina kuuluvan sado-masokistiset taipumuxet kuten Friedalla.
      ellauri347.html on line 286: Lopettaaxemme Frommin tarinan lyhyeen, hän väitteli tohtoriksi Heidelbergissä vuonna 1922 ja aloitti uran psykoterapeuttina. Hän muutti Yhdysvaltoihin vuonna 1934 -- suosittu aika lähteä Saksasta! -- ja asettui New Yorkiin, missä hän tapasi monia muita suuria pakolaisajattelijoita, jotka kokoontuivat sinne Boweryyn, mukaan lukien Karen Horney, jonka kanssa hänellä oli suhde. (Tästä jäi nyt kokonaan pois Frieda Fromm, liekö jonkinlainen freudilainen Lapsus CG Boereelta?)
      ellauri347.html on line 588: Ruotsalainen Abba-yhtye esitti sävelmää instrumenttiversiona viimeisen konserttikiertueensa aikana 1979–1980.
      ellauri348.html on line 163: jos on onnea. Menestystä ei tuo raha, mutta vapaus tuo, ja vapautta saa rahalla, by lawyering up oneself to the hilt. Deepak on esitelty samassa paasauxessa "Muita huijareita" kuin Eckhart Tolle albumissa 131.
      ellauri348.html on line 236: Charles Franklin Kettering (29. elokuuta 1876 – 25. marraskuuta 1958), joka tunnetaan myös nimellä Charles Fredrick Kettering oli amerikkalainen keksijä, insinööri, liikemies ja 186 patentin haltija. Hän oli Telkon perustaja ja General Motorsin sähkökäynnistysmoottori ja lyijyllinen bensiini. Yhdessä DuPont Chemical Company, hän oli myös vastuussa freonin kylmäaineen keksimisestä (ozoniaukot, jäähdytys ja ilmastointi). DuPontilla hän vastasi myös Duco -lakkojen ja emalien, ensimmäisten käytännöllisten massa- tuotettujen autojen. Työskennellessään Dayton-Wright Companyn kanssa hän kehitti "virheen" ilmatorpedoon, jota pidetään maailman ensimmäisenä ilmaohjuksena. Hän johti käytännöllisen ja kevyen kaksitahtidieselmoottorit, jotka mullistavat veturin ja raskaita laitteita toimialoilla. Vuonna 1927 hän perusti Kettering Foundationin, "puolueettoman" tutkimussäätiön, ja hänet esitettiin kannessa Time -lehti tammikuussa 1933.
      ellauri348.html on line 300: Psykologian professori Barbara Fredrickson väittää, että toivo ilmaantuu kriisin lähestyessä ja avaa meille uusia luovia mahdollisuuksia. Tällainen positiivinen ajattelu, kun he sanovat jatkuvasti itselleen "Luulen, että voin, luulen pystyväni" on kuin pieni kaxitahtidieselmoottori, joka voisi...
      ellauri348.html on line 315: Snyderin aikuisten toivo-asteikko sisältää 12 kysymystä; 4 mittaa "ajattelupolkuja", 4 mittaa "virastoajattelua" ja 4, jotka ovat vain täyteaineita. Kukin koehenkilö vastaa kuhunkin kysymykseen 8-pisteen asteikolla. Teoria korostaa toimijuutta eli luuloa, että omaan elämäänsä voi vaikuttaa seppoilulla. Se pitää sisällään innostavaa energiaa. Reitin uudelleen laskemista edeltää sisäinen puhe, joka vahvistaa käsitystä omasta kyvykkyydestä. Myönteisen sisäisen puheen avulla pystytään tuottamaan 1 tai useampia vaihtoehtoja. Tavoitteet ovat lyhyen tai pitkän tähtäimen tavoitteita. Mitäh, Seija istuu paskalla yläkerran vessassa. "Löydän kyllä keinon miten korjaan tämän!" Kiiruhdan kissankuistin vessaan, vaikka se on ahtaampi. Kun vain ehtisi!
      ellauri348.html on line 350: Sinä iltana voittoa juhliessaan Gerry loukkaantui vakavasti auto-onnettomuudessa ja on halvaantunut vyötäröstä alaspäin . Huolimatta All-American linebackerin menetyksestä, joukkue tekee paluun osavaltion mestaruuden neljännellä neljänneksellä ja voittaa tittelin. Kymmenen vuotta myöhemmin neliraajahalvaantunut Gerry kuolee toisessa auto-onnettomuudessa, jonka aiheutti humalainen kuljettaja voitettuaan kultamitalin kuulantyöntössä paralympialaisissa . Hänen hautajaisiinsa osallistuivat entiset jalkapallovalmentajat ja pelaajat avauskohtauksessa.  Julius, josta Gerryn äiti ei aiemmin pitänyt, pitää nyt häntä kädestä, kun hän johtaa joukkuetta surumielisessä versiossa "Na Na Hey Hey Kiss Him Goodbye".
      ellauri348.html on line 436: James Douglas ”Jim” Morrison (8. joulukuuta 1943 Melbourne, Florida, Yhdysvallat – 3. heinäkuuta 1971 Pariisi, Ranska) oli yhdysvaltalainen rocklaulaja ja runoilija. Hän tuli tunnetuksi The Doors -yhtyeen laulajana ja keulahahmona.
      ellauri348.html on line 438: Nuorena Morrison muutti perheensä mukana usein, kunnes asettui Kaliforniaan opiskelemaan elokuvantekoa. Los Angelesissa hän perusti vuonna 1965 rockyhtye Doorsin, jonka laulusolisti ja yksi lauluntekijöistä hänestä tuli. Yhtye julkaisi useita menestysalbumeja vuosina 1967–1971, ja Morrisonista tuli kuuluisa rocktähti.
      ellauri348.html on line 440: Kun Doorsin esiintymislavat vaihtuivat suurempiin yhtyeen suosion kasvaessa, Morrison alkoi tehdä lavaesiintymisistään rockteatteria. Hän kertoi, että ”oli välttämätöntä liioitella miltei groteskiuteen asti.” Morrisonin lavaesiintyminen perustui paljolti muutaman toistuvan liikkeen ja eleen käyttämiseen, ja niihin liittyi toisinaan myös spontaaneja akteja ja teksti-improvisaatioita. Morrison paitsi lauloi, myös resitoi lyriikkaansa ja välillä suorastaan huusi. Hän tukeutui laulaessaan voimakkaasti mikrofoniin ja mikrofonitelineeseen, pitäen siitä yleensä kiinni kaksin käsin. Hänen liikkeensä olivat hitaita, ja välillä hän jähmettyi paikalleen tuijottamaan yleisöä tai siirtyi kokonaan lavan sivuun. Toisinaan hän saattoi improvisoida intiaanitansseja tai heittäytyä makaamaan esiintymislavalle. Hänelle oli myös tyypillistä härnätä tai solvata yleisöä. Tää trendasi Jimin ikäpolvessa, kz. esim vuotta vanhempia Peter Handkea ja Jouko Turkkaa albumissa 340.
      ellauri348.html on line 449: Morrison haudattiin kuolemaansa seuraavan viikon keskiviikkona kuuluisalle Père-Lachaisen hautausmaalle Pariisiin. Salassa pidetyissä hautajaisissa oli Pamela Piukkapepun lisäksi neljä surijaa. (Olivatko ovet paikalla?) Morrisonin hauta oli pitkään merkitsemätön. Pére-Lachaisen hautapaikkoja pystyi vain vuokraamaan, ja Morrisonin haudan vuokra-aika oli määrätty kestämään 30 vuotta. Haudan luona vieraili vuosien ajan suuria ihmismääriä, ja se on ollut kävijämääriltään Pariisin suosituimpia nähtävyyksiä. Vuokra-ajan umpeutumisajankohdan lähestyessä 2000-luvun alussa spekuloitiin, että Morrison on kaivettava ylös ja haudattava Yhdysvaltoihin. Haudan vuokrasopimuksen päättymispäivän lähestyessä Père-Lachaisen hallinto kuitenkin ilmoitti, että Jim Morrison pysyköön haudassaan. Pamela Piukkapeppu kuoli heroiiniin 1974 vähän ennen kuin oikeus ehti vahvistaa hänet Morrisonin lailliseksi perijäksi. Näin Morrisonin kuolinpesä siirtyi Pamelan vanhemmille. Myös Morrisonin vanhemmat halusivat osansa, ja vuonna 1979 omaisuuden jaosta päästiin sopimukseen.
      ellauri348.html on line 480: Morrissey ilmoitti 1980-luvulla eläneensä selibaatissa, eikä hän suostunut puhumaan seksuaalisuudestaan, joka on ollut keskustelun ja sairaan kiinnostuksen aiheena jo pitkään. Muutamat Morrisseyn kirjoittamat sanoitukset The Smiths -yhtyeen levyillä sisältävät kuitenkin viittauksia homoseksuaalisuuteen. Morrisseyn mukaan hänen sanoitustensa moniselitteisyys oli harkittua, sillä hän pyrki kirjoittamaan kaikille. Nuorena hän oli kiinnostuneempi moottoripyöristä kuin tytöistä. Vuonna 2013 Morrissey kielsi olevansa homoseksuaali ja määritteli olevansa kiinnostunut ihmisistä, joskin vain harvoista. Hän kertoi omaelämäkerrassaan olleensa elämänsä ensimmäisessä vakavassa suhteessa noin 35-vuotiaana koiran kanssa. Morrisey ilmoitti 2014 sairastuneensa edellisenä vuonna pahanlaatuiseen syöpään.
      ellauri348.html on line 743: Vuonna 1760 Macpherson vieraili North Uistissa ja tapasi John MacCodrumin, klaanipäällikön MacDonald of Sleatin virallisen Bardin. Heidän kohtaamisensa seurauksena MacCodrum teki John Lorne Campbellin mukaan "lyhyen esiintymisen ossiaanisessa kiistassa , joka ei ole vailla humoristista puolta". Kun Macpherson tapasi MacCodrumin, hän kysyi: "A bheil dad agaibh air an Fheinne?" Macpherson uskoi kysyneensä: "Tiedätkö mitään Fiannasta? " Hän oli kuitenkin sanonut: "Onko Fianna sinulle velkaa?"
      ellauri348.html on line 798: Ison-Britannian naisjohtoiset yritykset ovat merkkejä synkän talouden ajoista. This year will be harder than last year. It will however be lighter than next year. (Enver Hoxha)
      ellauri348.html on line 1057: Toivon symboleja ovat linnut (pulu, kotka, Peukaloliisan pääskynen, E. Saarisen varpunen, kurki, kuovi), käärmeet (kyykäärme, lohikäärme, Asklepios), ankkuri (Popeye, Philomena Cunk, pyhä Riitta),
      ellauri349.html on line 193: Eva Korsisaaren ”Tule, rakkaani!” -kutsu on poimittu Raamatun Korkeasta veisusta. Kutsulla neito pyytää miestä, rakastaan kulkemaan rinnalleen. Laulujen laulun tulkinta asettuu kirjassa vedenjakajaksi. Sitä ennen Korsisaari tutkii muun muassa filosofi Platonin Pitoja, runoilija Percy Bysshe Shelleyn ja viihdekirjailija Barbara Cartlandin teoksia. Hän kutsuu niitä yhden ja saman rakkauden kuvauksiksi. Näitä kuvauksia Korsisaari lähestyy nykyfilosofi Luce Irigarayn ajatusten näkökulmasta: tärkeää on Irigarayn samuuden järjestystä kohtaan esittämä kritiikki. Korsisaaren mukaan yhden ja saman rakkaudessa toinen, yleensä nainen, on pyritty sulauttamaan toiseen, yleensä mieheen, tai rakastaja on yrittänyt työntyä rakastettuunsa. Vaihtoehtoisesti rakastavaiset ovat onnistuneet saamaan aikaan jonkin kolmannen. Valitettavasti tällainen haltuun ottava ja toisen toiseuden unohtava rakkauskuvaus on ollut hallitsevassa asemassa aina kulttuurimme kätkyestä lähtien. Tätä järjestystä Korsisaari purkaa kehittämänsä kolmen käsitteen avulla, joita hän nimittää sen ainoan oikean myytiksi, täydellistymisen myytiksi ja henkisen rakkauden myytiksi. Mutta ei näin! Vaan korkean veisun sanoin:
      ellauri349.html on line 507: Lors des évènements de Mai 68, Aron a d'abord un élan de sympathie pour les étudiants révoltés, avant de critiquer les débordements qu'il juge pseudo-révolutionnaires. Sartre, qui soutient le mouvement, étrille violemment son ancien ami : « Je mets ma main à couper qu'Aron ne s'est jamais mis en cause et c'est pour cela qu'il est, à mes yeux, indigne d’être professeur. Il faut, maintenant que la France entière a vu de Gaulle tout nu, que la France entière pût regarder Aron tout nu ». Aron répond calmement à ces attaques, dénonçant des arguments que « même un démagogue de bas étage n'aurait pas utilisés »
      ellauri349.html on line 542: Esa Saarinen is a Finnish philosopher and professor of philosophy at the University of Helsinki. He is known for his work on the philosophy of technology, the philosophy of science, and the philosophy of culture. He has written several books, including The Embodied Mind: Cognitive Science and Human Experience (1991), The View from Within: First-Person Approaches to the Study of Consciousness (1999), and Technology and the Human Condition (2005)1. Esa Saarinen is 67 years old. He is a Virgo and was born in the Year of the Serpent. His birth flower is Larkspur and birthstone is Ruby. Esa Saarinen's net worth is estimated to be in the range of approximately $1.2 million in 2021, according to sources. He has earned most of his wealth from his successful career as a philosopher and professor.
      ellauri349.html on line 552: Saarinen's philosophical interests have changed dramatically, from early writings in formal logic, to concerns with existentialism and later to media philosophy. The year 1994 saw the publication of Saarinen's most well-known work, Imagologies: Media Philosophy, written jointly with American philosopher Mark C. Taylor.
      ellauri349.html on line 558: Saarinen completed his Ph.D. degree in 1978 at the University of Helsinki, where he has since held docentship. His extrovert public persona – he became known as the “punk doctor” – was reflected in his lectures at the university, which drew increasingly large audiences until the late 1990s. After failing to get the position of full-time professor at the Department of Philosophy at the University of Helsinki, Saarinen resigned his lecturer position. Soon afterwards he was appointed professor at Helsinki University of Technology, since renamed Aalto University. His lectures there each year draw full lecture halls.
      ellauri349.html on line 626: "Todellinen irtautuminen" tarkoittaa itsensä syvällistä vapautumista kaikista oletuksista, uskomuksista, arvosteluista, tunteista jne. Lyhyesti sanottuna se on vapautumista kaikesta kiintymyksestä joa itseensä saati muihin ja maailmaan.
      ellauri349.html on line 749: Lauffen am Neckarissa syntyneen Hölderlinin lapsuus oli surullinen. Hänen äitinsä halusi hänen osallistuvan luterilaiseen seurakuntapalvelukseen, ja hän kävi Tübingenin luostarissa, jossa hän ystävystyi Hegelin ja Schellingin kanssa. Hän valmistui opintonsa vuonna 1793, mutta ei kyennyt omistautumaan kristinuskoon ja ryhtyi sen sijaan yksityisopettajaksi.
      ellauri349.html on line 751: Kaksi vuotta myöhemmin hän vieraili lyhyesti Jenan yliopistossa, jossa hän vaihtoi ajatuksia Johann Gottlieb Fichten ja Novalisin kanssa ennen palaamistaan töihin pedofiilinä yksityisopettajana.
      ellauri350.html on line 52: yetta.jpg" height="300px" />
      ellauri350.html on line 275: Burr said that he weighed 12.75 pounds (5.8 kg) at birth, and was chubby throughout his childhood. "When you're a little fat boy in public school, or any kind of school, you're just persecuted something awful," he said. Later accounts of Burr's life say that he hid his homosexuality to protect his career. Burr had many hobbies over the course of his life: cultivating orchids and collecting wine, art, stamps, and seashells. He was very fond of cooking. He was interested in flying, sailing, and fishing. According to A&E Biography, Burr was an avid reader with a retentive memory. He was also among the earliest importers and breeders of Portuguese water dogs in the United States. Burr threw several "goodbye parties" before his death on September 12, 1993, at his Sonoma County ranch near Healdsburg. He was 76 years old.
      ellauri350.html on line 576: Kaikkien 36 kysymyksen läpikäymiseen tulisi kulua noin 45 minuuttia, joista jokaisesta tulee yhä henkilökohtaisempaa ja intensiivisempää. Etsitkö jotain kevyempää? Katso nämä hauskoja rakkausmeemejä.
      ellauri351.html on line 225: Terrorin vastainen sota sai käänteen rahoitetun traumatutkimuksen tyypissä kohti PTSD:n neurobiologiaa. Tämä tuli van der Kolkille todisteena ja antoi hänelle mahdollisuuden päästä eroon palautuneiden muistisotien kuolleesta painosta. Liittovaltion rahoitus oli myös omaksumassa yhä avoimemmin ei-lääketieteellisiä hoitoja. Välittömästi 11. syyskuun iskujen jälkeen van der Kolk ja traumakeskus hoitivat ensiapuhenkilöitä ja siviilejä silmän liikkeen herkistymisen ja uudelleenkäsittelyn avulla, jossa potilas ajattelee traumaattista kokemusta, kun taas kliinikko ohjaa potilaan silmiä edestakaisin. Vaikka van der Kolk oli alun perin skeptinen, hänestä tuli EMDR-evankelista, joka johti National Institutes of Healthin rahoittamaa tutkimusta, jossa verrattiin EMDR:ää Prozaciin PTSD:n hoidossa. Vuonna 2008 hän aloitti ensimmäisen NIH:n rahoittaman tutkimuksen joogan tehokkuudesta PTSD:n hoidossa. EMDR on lyhennys englanninkielisistä sanoista Eye Movement Desensitization and Reprocessing. Hän suoritti myös tutkimusta neurofeedbackista, terapiasta, joka näyttää potilaille reaaliaikaisia lukemia pulssistaan ja aivoaalloistaan ja opettaa heitä säätelemään itseään. Tätä "somaattisten terapioiden" arsenaalia yhdisti se, että ne kohdistuivat kehoon kognition (kuten kognitiivinen käyttäytymisterapia) tai kieleen (kuten puheterapia) sijaan.
      ellauri351.html on line 263: Festinger ja hänen työtoverinsa pitivät havaintoja läheisyysvaikutuxesta todisteena siitä, että ystävyyssuhteet syntyvät usein passiivisten kontaktien perusteella (esim. lyhyet tapaamiset tohvelietäisyydellä opiskelija-asuntoyhteisössä) ja että tällaisia passiivisia kontakteja syntyy todennäköisemmin lähempänä.
      ellauri351.html on line 290: Tohtoriohjaaja: Helyette Geman
      ellauri351.html on line 303: Taleb väittää, että tilastotieteilijät voivat olla pseudotieteilijöitä harvinaisten tapahtumien ja räjähdysten riskeissä ja peittää epäpätevyytensä monimutkaisilla yhtälöillä. Tämä asenne on herättänyt arvostelua: American Statistical Association omisti The American Statistician -lehden elokuussa 2007 ilmestyneen numeron The Black Swanille. Lehti tarjosi sekoituksen ylistystä ja kritiikkiä Talebin pääkohdista, keskittyen Talebin kirjoitustyyliin ja hänen esitykseensä tilastokirjallisuudesta. Clemsonin yliopiston matematiikan professori Robert Lund kirjoittaa, että Black Swan -kirjassa Taleb on "ajoittain holtiton ja joutuu suurenmoisille liioittelemille; ammatillinen tilastotieteilijä pitää kirjaa kaikkialla naiivina". Lund kuitenkin myöntää, että "on monia kohtia, joissa olen samaa mieltä Talebin kanssa", ja kirjoittaa, että "kirja on pakollinen" kaikille "rahoituksesta ja/tai filosofisista todennäköisyyksistä etänä kiinnostuneille".
      ellauri352.html on line 33:

      yellow;font-size:2em">Die Geschichte vom
      hölzernen Bengele

      Emävaleita


      ellauri352.html on line 346: Yhteiskunnan tiheyden lisääntyessä kilpailu resursseista lisääntyy, mikä saa yksilöt erikoistumaan lieventääxeen tätä kilpailua. Tuloksena on se, mitä Durkheim kutsuu "työnjaoksi". Esim rikollisuus on ihan okei, työtähän sekin oikeastaan on. Lisäksi "rangaistus kumoaa rikoxen yhteiskunnalle aiheuttaman vahingon, jos se toimii säännöllisesti kuin peräsuoli".
      ellauri352.html on line 625: Notable modern Nyingma teachers include Kyabje Dudjom Rinpoche (c. 1904–1987), Sogyal Rinpoche, Dilgo Khyentse Rinpoche, Khenpo Choga Rinpoche, filmmaker Khyentse Norbu (better known as Dzongsar Jamyang Khyentse Rinpoche), and Penor Rinpoche.
      ellauri352.html on line 702: yeglasses.jpg" height="250px" />
      ellauri353.html on line 229: "Muutamalla suurella ohjaajalla on kyky vetää meidät unelmamaailmaansa, persoonallisuuksiinsa ja pakkomielteisiinsä ja kiehtoa meidät niillä lyhyeksi ajaksi. Tämä on korkein eskapismin taso, jonka elokuvat voivat tarjota meille – aivan kuten alkeellinen samaistuminen sankariin tai sankarittareen oli alhaisin. - Elokuvakriitikko Roger Ebert, Tristana
      ellauri353.html on line 277: The Friedmans were recent guests at the Commonwealth Club of Kalak it in Los Angeles. Each author speaks and then takes questions from the audience. Good afternoon and welcome to today's meeting of the common a Club of California. Brought to you from the St Francis Hotel relooking Union Square. I am doing an orderly chair. We also welcome the listener. A.W. F.M. in Sitka Alaska. One of more than two hundred twenty five stations across the country. Joining us for America's longest running. Radio program. We invite all our listeners here and on radio. To visit the club's website. At W.W.W. Commonwealth Club. Dot org. And now for today's speakers. It is with great pleasure that I introduce those plucky Jews, the Friedmans. The Friedmans are with us today. Connection with their recently published memoirs. Bucky people. Published by the University of Chicago. Press this year. They have been partners in love. And in life. For over sixty years.
      ellauri353.html on line 291: Muting on weekends active we were married we had two alternatives. I could get out my job and move to New York. And Private get it there and be able to come back to Washington and. As my boss who I'm sure wasn't serious suggested. I gave up my job and your actively expanded to like full summer. On our honeymoon and marrying. We said. We've returned to New York. Settle down and I got a temporary God. It was interesting for a while but was not very exciting. While we were both working we shared the house work. Until we could afford to hire a part. And there we never sat down and decided what the housework was man's And what part was woman's work there was work to be done. And whoever could do it at the right time period. But that always reminds me of the discussion that Milton had with my young nephew who was visiting with us from years later.
      ellauri353.html on line 293: I don't remember just what it was that Milton was doing. But I'll never forget my nephew's pronouncement that. Whatever it was. It was women's work. And somehow it was beneath the man's dignity to do it now and sat him down and gave him a lecture about the working man's work. But I don't think he ever forgot that lecture. Summarized the way we had led we've lived got a life. Ever since during the first year of our married life I guess I could have qualified as a feminist. I had a career in the marketplace. My husband did part of the house. A year later I have never received an offer of a one year appointment at the University of Wisconsin. I got a New York but it was not exciting. I hadn't finished it. And yet it never occurred to me. Or to him that I would stay on and finish my job and we would commute.
      ellauri353.html on line 295: So I gave up my job and we moved when we got to this crime scene. I didn't inquire whether the university had a nepotism rule. As the University of Chicago did or we went. Later if the husband worked for the university his wife. Could not be employed there even as a janitor. This change however with women's lives. Today. If the university wishes to hire a qualified male. It has to find a job for his wife. At the best of my knowledge that's not work in reverse.
      ellauri353.html on line 297: And I really have mixed feelings about either arrangement. so instead. I have is very happy to spend the school year doing some work on my dissertation. I got used to being a homemaker. I took some funky classes in pottery, (Sorry Milton I mean) ceramics. And I got pregnant at the the back end of school here we left university and headed for Amman or Milton spent the summer writing a book. Jointly with two other people. And I spent the summer being pregnant and I'm comfortable. But war was heating up and decided that once our baby arrived we would move. The washing. He would go to work probably at the Treasury Department. I hope to spend my time as a mother. Unfortunately that didn't work out. Our first pregnancy. My first experience at. Guarding a family came to a sad end when the baby was stillborn. So I went to work in watching them till I could get pregnant again. This time they were more fortunate. And once our daughter was born. I had no thought of going back to work. At least until my. Our children were grown. And as it turned out I never did go back as far as spam innocents are concerned. When I had the opportunity to do some work at home without leaving. So there.
      ellauri353.html on line 305: Shut up Rose, I thought I would use my few remaining 50 minutes here. You forward publishing people would ask me what's it going to be like. And I said well it's a book which is starting out as a love story. And which will end up as a treatise on social and that's largely what happened though it's throughout from beginning to end it really is a love story because Rose and I have really lived a love story we first met. Just exist. Just sixty sixty six years ago. In September. Nineteen thirty two. And from that time to this we have been close. And I trust shall continue to be said though she gives me no guarantees for the future. To talk about one area of social policy. Which we have engaged for many years. And recently made a major move. And that area is schooling elementary and - this is the main thing! educational vouchers. Parental choice of schools. Not to put a too fine point to it, better folks should have freedom to put their kids in better schools. Hooray democracy, fuck equality, like Alexis Tocqueville said, etc. etc. ad nauseam.
      ellauri353.html on line 372: Moisey Volfovich Vinnitsky syntyi juutalaisen vaununrakentajan Meyer-Volf Mordkovich Vinnitskyn perheeseen, joidenkin stanitsa Goltassa (nykyisin osa Pervomaiskista) olevien tietojen mukaan. Vinnitsky oli noin 4-vuotias, kun hänen perheensä muutti Odesaan (Moldavanka). Muissa tiedoissa kerrotaan, että hän syntyi satamapalvelumiehen (bindyuzhnik) perheeseen osoitteessa 23 Hospital Street (nykyisin Bohdan Khmelnytsky Street) Odesassa (Moldavanka). Vinnitskyn äiti Doba Zelmanovna synnytti viisi poikaa ja tyttären. Syntyessään hän sai kaksoisnimen, Moisey-Jakov (Mooses-Jakob), samanlaisen kuin hänen isänsä. Koska tällainen kaksoisnimi oli epätavallinen venäläisessä kulttuurissa, Vinnitskyn toinen nimi kirjattiin joskus isän nimeksi - Moisey Yakovlevich.
      ellauri353.html on line 486: Voitto Batozin taistelussa 1.–2. kesäkuuta (22.–23. toukokuuta) 1652 antoi Ukrainan valtiolle mahdollisuuden voittaa tosiasiallinen itsenäisyys. Bohdan Khmelnytskyin hetmanaus johti käännekohtaan Euroopan yhteiskunnallisessa ja poliittisessa elämässä, jonka alueelle ilmestyi suvereeni Ukraina, vaikkakin lyhyeksi ajaksi, kaikilla poliittisen ja taloudellisen vallan ominaisuuksilla. Ukrainan valtion rajat määritettiin muinaisten ukrainalaisten maiden rajoissa. Häntä pidetään Ukrainan kansallissankarina.Suuri ukrainalainen runoilija Taras Savchenko käsitteli toistuvasti Bohdan Khmelnytskyin kuvaa sekä runollisissa että taiteellisissa teoksissaan. Tällänen siitä tuli:
      ellauri353.html on line 531: Isaac Babel kirjoitti kokonaisen kirjan juutalaisista gangstereista. Hän ei ollut romanttinen sielu. Tässä lyhyessä novellissa moderni kirjailija, nyt politrukki, keskustelee Gedalin kanssa, joka on vastoinkäymisten ja päämäärien vartija, toisen ajan asioita, joista ei ole juurikaan hyötyä nykyisyydessä. Babel jättää meidät, jopa nyt vuonna 2023, pelkäämään seuraavaa historian käännettä, pelkäämään seuraavaa armeijaa, jolla on totuus, yksi totuus ja joka tulee luoksemme missä tahansa olemmekin. Olisiko se vihdoinkin Israelin armeija?
      ellauri353.html on line 561: Vaikka taistelua kuvattiin usein suurena puolalaisena voittona, taistelu jätti Konnaya Armiyat ennalleen, ja he pääsivät ulos Puolan motista Werbkowicessa. Varmasti puolalainen ratsuväki oli suoriutunut erittäin hyvin fyysisessä taistelussa, mutta heidän energisen liikkeensä puute koko päivän aikana petti heidät. Kentän hallussa oli vain tunnearvoa – tavoitteena oli ollut Neuvostoliiton hevosarmeijan motittaminen, eikä sitä saavutettu, koska hengästyneet puolalaiset eivät kyenneet jatkamaan takaa-ajoa.
      ellauri355.html on line 53: Venäjän vuoden 1993 perustuslaillinen kriisi alkoi 21. syyskuuta 1993, kun Venäjän federaation presidentti Boris Jeltsin hajotti Venäjän kansanedustajien kongressin ja korkeimman neuvoston, jotka vastustivat hänen yrityksiään vahvistaa valta-asemaansa ja ajaa talousuudistuksia. Jeltsinin syyskuun 21. määräys rikkoi tuolloin voimassa ollutta perustuslakia. Kriisin päättyessä 15. lokakuuta hän järjesti äänestyksen uudesta perustuslaista.
      ellauri355.html on line 88: On 24 August 1991, Mikhail Gorbachev created the so-called "Committee for the Operational Management of the Soviet Economy" (Комитет по оперативному управлению народным хозяйством СССР), to replace the USSR Cabinet of Ministers headed by Valentin Pavlov, a GKChP member. Russian Prime Minister Ivan Silayev headed the committee. Gorbachev's decree on replacing the Cabinet of Ministers was illegal under Soviet law as it required approval from the Supreme Soviet of the USSR, but no approval by the Supreme Soviet was ever given.
      ellauri355.html on line 100: Dmitry Timofeyevich Yazov (Russian: Дми́трий Тимофе́евич Я́зов; 8 November 1924 – 25 February 2020) was a Marshal of the Soviet Union. A veteran of the Great Patriotic War, Yazov served as Minister of Defence from 1987 until he was arrested for his part in the 1991 August Coup, four months before the fall of the Soviet Union. Yazov was the last person to be appointed to the rank of Marshal of the Soviet Union on 28 April 1990, the only Marshal born in Siberia, and at the time of his death on 25 February 2020, he was the last living Marshal of the Soviet Union. Now they are no marshals left in Soviet Union.
      ellauri355.html on line 105: Yanayev spent 18 months in Matrosskaya Tishina. He later became a chairman of the department of national history at the Russian International Academy of Tourism.
      ellauri355.html on line 207: "Turisti". Myös legendaarinen pyörämalli. "Ukrainasta" erottui kevyet, kapeat renkaat ja neljä vaihdettavaa nopeutta. Peruskokoonpanon käsijarrussa oli taka- ja etuveto. Nykyaikaisissa nopeissa malleissa rungot on valmistettu teräksestä, rakenne on hitsattu. Polkupyörän varaosat valmistaa Ventura. Sen hinta on pieni ja luotettavuus ylittää monet tunnetut mallit.
      ellauri359.html on line 53: Grahame meni naimisiin Elspeth Thomsonin, Robert William Thomsonin tyttären kanssa vuonna 1899. Heillä oli yksi lapsi, Alastair (lempinimi "Hiiri"), joka syntyi sokeana toisesta silmästä ja kärsi terveydellisistä ongelmista koko lyhyen elämänsä ajan. Grahamen jäädessä eläkkeelle perhe palasi Cookhamiin, hänen lapsuudenkotiinsa, jossa he asuivat Mayfieldissä, nykyisessä Herries Preparatory Schoolissa. Siellä Grahame tuotti nukkumaanmenotarinoita, jotka hän kertoi Alastairille ja joista tuli The Wind in the Willows.
      ellauri359.html on line 61: Actually, I already knew that; what I didn’t know was that the cause was very possibly inherited syphilis. Grahame, a dyed-in-the-wool bachelor who loved “messing about in boats”, seems to have married under duress, the sort to which upper-middle-classes were particularly susceptible: namely, propriety. His sister believed Elspeth Thomson deliberately compromised him. On receiving news of his nuptials, she asked if he really intended to marry her. “I suppose so; I suppose so,” was the telling reply.
      ellauri359.html on line 65: The original mole entered the Grahame household some years before the book. The author found the creature in his garden tussling with a blackbird for a worm. He kept it as a pet until a new housekeeper, thinking it vermin, killed it. On learning her mistake, she cried: “Oh, but sir, couldn’t you just make the mole into a story for Master Alastair?” Shortly after, Graham began to regale his son with bedtime tales of the riverbank creatures.
      ellauri359.html on line 80: Blake väitti kokeneensa näkyjä koko elämänsä. Kahdeksan tai kymmenen vuoden ikäisenä Peckham Ryessä, Lontoossa, Blake väitti nähneensä "puun, joka on täynnä enkeleitä, kirkkaat enkelin siivet heilutellen jokaista oksaa kuin tähtiä". Blaken viktoriaanisen elämäkerran kirjoittajan Gilchristin mukaan hän palasi kotiin ja kertoi näystä ja pakeni isänsä pahoinpitelystä valheen kertomisesta vain äitinsä väliintulon kautta. Vaikka Blake näki enkeleitä ja Jumalan, hän väitti myös nähneensä Saatanan Lontoon South Molton Streetin kotinsa portaissa.
      ellauri359.html on line 151: Distinguished lawyer, business leader and philanthropist David Rubenstein joined more than 90 Eisenhower Fellows from around the world as our featured speaker at a special dinner reception at the Masonic Temple on May 14. Mr. Rubenstein’s extraordinary life’s journey took him from humble working-class beginnings in Baltimore to become co-founder and co-chairman of the Carlyle Group, a global private equity investment firm based in Washington, D.C. In gratitude for his illustrious business career, Mr. Rubenstein has become one of the world’s most prominent philanthropists, donating much of his fortune to worthy charitable causes.
      ellauri359.html on line 153: Yet another industrialistien sekulaarinen Amerikka-missio. In 2010, Eisenhower Fellowships held its first Women's Leadership Program. The governing body of the organization is the Board of Trustees, a group of more than seventy year old men in business and public affairs currently chaired by Dr. Robert M. Gates. Prior chairs include General Colin L. Powell, U.S. (retired), Dr. Henry Kissinger, President George H.W. Bush, and President Gerald Ford. Eisenhower Fellowships is headquartered in Philadelphia, Pennsylvania.
      ellauri360.html on line 34:

      yellow;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%;padding-bottom:20px">ROBBE GRILLET présente:


      ellauri360.html on line 35:

      yellow;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Jeg elsker
      GRILLET FISK

      Modernismia


      ellauri360.html on line 53: Hänet tunnetaan nykyään parhaiten yhtenä suurimmista kirjailijoista. Hänen maneerinsa on 'esineellinen.' Robbe-Grillet ei ollut vain tämäntyyppisten romaanien kirjoittaja, vaan myös kirjoitti siitä ja toimi Editions de Minuitin toimituksellisena johtajana, kustantajan, joka julkaisi Robbe-Grillet'n ja monia muita nouveau romaanikirjailijoita. Nouveau Romanin perusperiaatteena oli, että juoni, luonne ja kerronta olivat vanhanaikaisia. Ensimmäiseksi tuli perinteinen kertojan rooli, jossa kirjailija puuttui juoniin, jos se katsottiin tarpeelliseksi. Perinteisiä hahmoja kyseenalaistettiin myös asioihin keskittyen, mikä loi heidän mukaansa uutta realismia. Hahmot ilmaantuessaan esiintyivät usein tietoisuuden virroina. Sartren, Camuksen ja muiden ranskalaisten kirjoittajien poliittinen sitoutuminen hylättiin.
      ellauri360.html on line 72: Vanity Fair visits Robbe-Grillet, sadomasochistic author and widow of novelist (and accomplished sadist) Alain Robbe-Grillet, at the 17th-century château in Normandy where she resides with Beverly Charpentier, the 51-year-old South African woman who is her submissive companion. Robbe grillet sadist - Robbe grillasi sadistia.
      ellauri360.html on line 74: “A Sentimental Novel,” the final published work of the novelist and theorist Alain Robbe-Grillet, appeared in France four months before his death, in 2008, and in English translation last spring. The content of the novel contributed to the lag in its translation: “A Sentimental Novel” (reviewed this summer in Briefly Noted) is a compendium of Robbe-Grillet’s sadistic fantasies, which, he said, he had catalogued since adolescence. The work consists of two hundred and thirty-nine numbered paragraphs that form a sort of sadist’s rhapsody about the sexual initiation of a fourteen-year-old girl, Gigi. Gigi’s travails are recounted in exacting detail, against a lushly imagined mise-en-scène, with elaborate furnishings, torture devices, and a proliferation of young companions. Okei siis Robbe liittyy pitkään jonoon kynäilijäpedofiilejä. Ei siinä mitään, kukapa ei pitäisi latuskarintaisista teinitytöistä. Mutta pakkoko niitä on silleen rääkätä?
      ellauri360.html on line 185: André Gide: Les faux-monnayeurs
      ellauri360.html on line 358: Grundtvigilaisuus oli N. F. S. Grundtvigin perustama uskonnollis-kirkollinen liike, jolla varsinkin 1850- ja 1860-luvuilla oli Tanskassa johtava asema. Sen kannattajien tunnussana oli sen perustajan oppi apostolisen uskontunnustuksen hyvin erikoisesta alkuperästä ja sitovuudesta. Grundtvigilaisuus korosti kasteen merkitystä, kirkollisen tradition arvoa ja seurakuntatietoisuutta, mutta syrjäytti joissakin määrin synnintunnon ja katumuksen merkityksen kristityn elämässä. Sen käsitystä on milloin hyväksyen, milloin moittien sanottu "iloiseksi kristillisyydeksi". Vastoin pietististä sisälähetyssuuntaa grundtvigilaisuus on asettunut avoimelle ja myötätuntoiselle kannalle kaikkiin inhimillisiin sivistyspyrintöihin nähden, joita kristillisyyden hengen tulee vain pyrkiä kannustamaan. Liikkeeseen on liittynyt myös voimakas tanskalais-kansallinen leima.
      ellauri360.html on line 434: Konstantinusko päätti, mitkä kirjat kuuluivat Raamattuun? On erittäin tärkeää selventää hyvin tarkasti, mikä rooli keisari Konstantinuksella oli Nikean kirkolliskokouksessa, mikä oli kirkolliskokouksen tarkoitus, mitä tapahtui Nikeassa ja lyhyesti kuinka kaanoni – Raamattu sellaisena kuin me sen tunnemme – muodostui. Konstantinus oli Rooman keisari, joka eli vuosina 274–337 jKr. Hän on tunnetuin Rooman valtakunnan ainoaksi hallitsijaksi tulemisesta (petettyään ja voitettuaan lankonsa Liciniuksen) ja oletettavasti kääntyneensä kristinuskoon. Keskustelua kiistellään siitä, oliko Konstantinus todella uskova (tunnustustensa ja uskonkäsityksensä mukaan) vai vain joku, joka yritti käyttää kirkkoa ja uskoa omaksi hyödykseen. Konstantinus kutsui Nikean kirkolliskokousta – kristillisen kirkon ensimmäiseksi yleiskokoukseksi, 325 jKr. – ensisijaisesti siksi, että hän pelkäsi, että kirkon sisäiset kiistat aiheuttaisivat epäjärjestystä imperiumin sisällä. Kiista mielessä oli arianismi, joka oli usko, että Jeesus oli luotu olento. Kuuluisa lause, josta he kiistivät, oli: "Oli, kun Hän ei ollut." Tämä viittasi Jeesukseen, ja neuvosto julisti sen harhaoppiseksi ja näin ollen johti Nikean uskontunnustuksessa seuraaviin sanoihin Kristuksesta: "Jumala tosi Jumalasta...Isältä...ei tehty." Neuvosto päätti, että Kristus oli homo deus ex machina, mikä tarkoittaa yhtä maata kuin maalarin housut isänsä kanssa.
      ellauri360.html on line 447: The growth of Christianity in post-colonial Africa had been especially relentless. In 1900, Africa had just 10 million Christians out of a continental population of 107 million, about 9 percent. At the turn of the twenty-first century, the Christian total stood at 360 million out of 784 million souls, or 46 percent. And that percentage, scholars predicted, was likely to continue rising, because Christian African countries had some of the world’s most dramatic rates of population growth. Within the first twenty-five years of the twenty-first century, scholars expected the population of the world’s Christians to grow to 2.6 billion, making Christianity by far the world’s largest faith. We must seek to describe this new Christianity even if we resort to western ways of seeing.
      ellauri360.html on line 468: Voittosanoma Wilholle! The unmistakable first observation about the churches below the equator is that they are charismatic. “The gifts” play a prominent role in public worship and private devotion. Grasping the history of this movement will prepare the reader for encountering the Global South. Several movements prepare and anticipate the emergence of contemporary Pentecostalism. The Methodist Holiness movements were perfectly suited for the North American frontier with an egalitarian character that could cross economic, racial, and gender barriers. Culminating 150 years of Holiness theology, by 1900 Pentecostals embraced and amended a Holiness tradition incorporating several emphases. The “mixed blessing” approach acknowledged the first blessing of conversion and a second blessing whereby the believers were stirred and moved to sanctification or holiness (the emphasis that evolved from Wesley).
      ellauri360.html on line 470: Additionally, they acknowledged a third blessing, which was Spirit baptism. Spirit baptism included a special empowerment for service. (Empowerment being a buzzword of the Keswick Movement, consult album 92. Sieltäkö naikkoset sen nappasivat?) Pentecostals also affirmed that the Spirit baptism was accompanied by speaking in tongues. The Spirit’s outpouring was tied to the last days, in the imagination of many. Prophecy conferences and the reemergence of pre-millennialism (that Christ would return to establish a thousand-year reign) added to the sense of expectation. Numerous healing ministries also contributed to the picture of God’s preparing his people for ministry Also, internationally noted revivals in India, Wales, and Korea gave encouragement to the Pentecostal movement. The Welsh revival witnessed a presence and power of the Holy Spirit. Its spokesman, Evan Roberts, taught that such an experience of the Holy Spirit was a necessary condition to revival. The “North Korean Pentecost” set the stage for many enduring practices of the Korean church to this day, such as early morning prayer meetings and the practice of simultaneous blabber.
      ellauri360.html on line 480: It is easy to understand scholars slightly overemphasizing when they claim that the global expansion is actually the Pentecostal expansion. Missionaries are frequently criticized as serving both Christ and commerce. They are pictured as agents of colonial expansion and unable to distinguish between the gospel message and their own cultural preferences. Kenyan Jomo Kenyatta famously captures this critical perspective: “When the missionaries came to Africa they had the Bible and we had the land. They said ‘Let us pray.’ We closed our eyes. When we opened them we had the Bible and they had the land.”
      ellauri360.html on line 499: Worldview and metaphysics (a term you can dynamically translate with the question, “What else is real?”) are crucial. General observations about philosophical issues are dangerous, but it is fair to observe that Christians in the Global South see the world around them as manifesting a vivid interaction between what we may call a spiritual (nonmaterial) realm and a material (concretely physical) realm. Westerners typically hold that a mastery over the material realm (perhaps through science) alters or even negates the need for the spiritual realm. Tiede on ihmeitä ihmeellisempää ja toimii luotettavammin. A thing has either a natural or a supernatural cause. Which one it is, makes no more sense to ask than whether you take the bus or your lunch to school. In such a muted theism called deism, God is offstage and barely makes appearances; demons, spirits, and angels are downplayed. For most Western believers, only a modest market exists for the spiritual. For the Global South, the physical and spiritual worlds interact. In such a world, demons or spirits may influence a person’s mood or well-being. Both the spiritual and material realms are firmly in mind. They enter the text of Scripture with less hindrance. They just supplement one magic with another.
      ellauri360.html on line 503: American individualism is silly. The only thing individual about anyone is the space they occupy. All else is copied by millions. Vibrant singing is a whole-body exercise for many believers in the Global South. Intercessory prayer composes a major element in worship; separate seasons of prayer can last for hours. Cellphones do the same job in the west. In many cases, the ability of the preacher to heal relatively cheaply is the primary cause of church growth. Kiinalainen "takaisin Israeliin" eli "viele vehen lännemmäxi" herätysliike on herättänyt itänaapurissa närkästystä.
      ellauri362.html on line 65: Caroline Bingley, joka tunnetaan nykyään nimellä Lady Warren, levittää pahantahtoista huhua, että Camilla haluaa mennä naimisiin Wyttonin kanssa. Pian sen jälkeen Georgina karkaa Ranskaan Sir Joshua Mordauntin kanssa, mikä saa Camillan ja herra Gardinerin seuraamaan toiveita tuoda Georginan kotiin ennen skandaalin syntymistä. He ovat yllättyneitä kohtaaessaan Wyttonin, joka auttaa heitä löytämään karkaavan parin, joka on nyt naimisissa. Camilla ja Gardiner palaavat kotiin, mutta huomaavat, että myös Isabelle on paennut. Sophie olettaa vihaisesti, että Isabelle aikoo mennä naimisiin kapteeni Allingtonin kanssa, mikä paljastaa olevansa rakastunut Allingtoniin. Sophie vapauttaa Wyttonin kihlasta, jolloin hän voi mennä naimisiin Camillan kanssa, johon hän on vähitellen alkanut rakastua tarinan venyessä.
      ellauri362.html on line 259: Silly Lydia on korvattu soittotaitoisella kopiolla Georgianasta. Lizzy-lookalike Camilla on äitiäänkin rumempi ja nokkelampi (ja nuorempi). Välissä on Maryn ja Kittyn korvaavat epäidenttiset kaxoset Leenu ja Liinu, jotka järjestävät äksönixi elopementteja. Darcyn roolissa näyttelee vielä saturniinisempi Wytton, joka on kihloissa Sophie Gardiner serkun kanssa, josta tulee Lizz- korjaan Camillan nätti mutta tyhjäpäinen kilpakosija. Mr. Wickhamin epäkiitollisen osan saaneen Leighin tuomittava luonteenvika tällä erää on rivo homofilia. 5000 a year on pikkuraha Darcyn tytöille, nyt puhutaan 10x isommista myötäjäisistä per nuppi, ja kadehdittava läski Pagoda on vähintään puntabiljonääri. Kauppa se on joka kannattaa. Onnexi Pemberleyn tuottamattomilta mailta on sentän tehty malmilöytöjä.
      ellauri362.html on line 400: Isä piti aikaansa moraalisesti "pehmeänä" ja "rappeutuneena", mikä johtui pääasiassa lepsusta lasten kouluttamisesta ja kurittamisesta kotona ja koulussa. Hän pyrki "taistelemaan" aikakautensa "heikkoutta" pitkälle kehitetyllä järjestelmällä, jonka tarkoituksena oli tehdä lapsista tottelevaisia ​​ja alistuvia aikuisille. Hän odotti, että hänen käskynsä johtaisivat parempaan yhteiskuntaan ja "rotuun". (Niinkuin kohtapuoliin johtivatkin.) Isä sovelsi näitä samoja perusperiaatteita kasvattaessaan omia lapsiaan, mukaan lukien Daniel Paulin ja toisen pojan, Daniel Gustavin, vanhimman, joka myös hulluuntui ja teki itsemurhan 30-vuotiaana. Psykiatrit ja psykoanalyytikot pitävät edellisen, Daniel Paulin tapausta klassisena vainoharhaisuuden ja skitsofrenian mallina, mutta Freud ja Bleuler pojan sairauden analyyseissä eivät "kyenneet" yhdistämään Daniel Paulin outoja kokemuksia, joiden vuoksi häntä pidettiin hulluna hänen isänsä lastenkasvatustapoihin.
      ellauri362.html on line 412: Zvi Lothane otti naftaliinista Niederlandin ja Schatzmannin välisen keskustelun työssään Schreberin kuntouttamisesta niteessä Zvi Lothane: Fuck sielunmurha yes psykiatria. Schreberin kuntoutuksesta, Psykoanalyysin kirjasto, Psychosocial Publishing Giessen 2004, tässä luku. 8: Kuinka muut Schreberit tulkitsivat, s. 457–536.
      ellauri362.html on line 437: Oppisopimuskoulutuksensa päättyessä Crabbe palasi kotiin Aldeburghiin ilman tulevaisuudennäkymiä ja hänellä oli hyvin vähän tietoa parantamisen taidosta. Hänen kotinsa oli onneton äitinsä sairauden sekä isänsä hillittömyyden ja väkivaltaisen luonteen vuoksi. Näiden vuosien aikana raudan on täytynyt päästä hänen sieluunsa. Hän yritti harjoittaa ammattiaan Aldeburghissa, ja hänet nimitettiin seurakunnan lääkäriksi. Sillä välin hän kuitenkin opiskeli luontoa ja varsinkin kasvitiedettä tuloksin, jotka, elleivät häntä lääkärinä palvelisi, olisivat hänen runoudelleen suuri arvo. Hän jatkoi paljon lukemista ja pohdiskelua, ja hänen mielensä kääntyi ehdottomasti uskon ja hurskauden puoleen. Sarah Elmy oli hänen lohdutuksensa ja toivonsa (monia vuosia myöhemmin eräässä Tarinassa nimeltä The Lover's Journey hän kirjoitti kuuluisan kuvauksen vierailustaan hänen luonaan); ja hän jatkoi runojen kirjoittamista, josta vähän on säilynyt. Vuosiin 1775–1779 kuuluu useita uskonnollisia runoja, vaikuttava pieni pala Mirristä joka kertoo, kuinka hän veti kirjailijan "väärien nautintojen" helpotuksesta "ylevämpiin käsityksiin", ja tyhjä säeteos nimeltä Midnight, joka, joskin hyvin synkkä, päättyy järkevään ja vahvaan rohkeuteen.
      ellauri362.html on line 775: Elämäkerrassa Luiska toteaa. "Olen suoraan ja henkilökohtaisesti velkaa Spinozalle hänen hämmästyttävän käsityksensä kehosta, jolla on 'meille tuntemattomia voimia', ja ihmisestä ( hengestä), joka on sitäkin vapaampi kehon kehittyessä sekä hänen coituksensa liikkeet, hänen virtus tai fortitudo."
      ellauri364.html on line 62: Aikaisin dokumentoitu hysteria oli Egyptissä 1900-luvulla eaa. Egyptiläiset uskoivat, että hysteria johtuisi kohdun näivettymisestä tai liikkumisesta väärään asentoon. Hysterian saatettiin katsoa johtuvan myös liian ohuista hermoista tai mustasta sapesta. Sukupuolielimiin liittyvät teoriat hylättiin ja hysterialla alettiin tarkoittaa erilaisia ruumiillisia oireita, joille ei löytynyt selvää somaattista syytä. Tästä syystä niiden ajateltiin olevan psykiatrisen häiriön oireita. Vuonna 1859 Paul Briquet määritteli hysterian koomisena syndroomana, joka aiheuttaa useita selittämättömiä oireita ympäri vartaloa [lähde?] Ainakin epilepsiaa ja syfilistä pidettiin historiallisesti hysteriasta johtuvina sairauksina, koska niille ei kyetty löytämään muuta selitystä. Lääkärin kuppainen kyrpä ei kelvannut selityxexi.
      ellauri364.html on line 196: Verocay suoritti lääketieteen tutkinnon vuonna 1904. Hän opiskeli anatomista patologiaa Hans Chiarin ja myöhemmin Richard Kretzin ja Anton Ghonin johdolla, kun hän liittyi vuonna 1905 Anatomisen patologian instituuttiin, jota johti tuolloin kuuluisa Hans Chiari, joka oli tyytyväinen. Verocayn omistautuessa anatomian ja patologian aiheisiin nimitti hänet kolmanneksi assistentiksi ja ylensi nopeasti, jolloin hänestä tuli toinen ja ensimmäinen assistentti lyhyessä ajassa. Hän sai Privatdozentin viran vuonna 1910. Tämä virka vastasi patologian lehtorin virkaa ja oli korkein, jonka ulkomaalainen voi saavuttaa Itävallassa tuolloin. Myöhemmin hänelle tarjottiin professorin virkaa, mutta sitä varten hänen olisi pitänyt hyväksyä Itävallan kansalaisuus ja luopua Uruguayn kansalaisuudestaan, josta hän kieltäytyi loppuun asti, koska hän halusi aina työskennellä ja opettaa Uruguayssa, syntymämaassaan. viisitoista tieteellistä artikkelia yhdentoista vuoden aikana vuosina 1905–1916, pääasiassa hermoston patologiasta, johon hän erikoistui.
      ellauri364.html on line 286: Yksi tulkinta - "kasvata" -näkökulma on, että on välttämätöntä juurruttaa lapsiin terveellisiä asenteita ja positiivisia piirteitä, jotta heistä kasvaa tasapainoisia yksilöitä. "Luonto"-näkemys kuitenkin huomauttaa, että lapsilla voi syntyä tiettyjä piirteitä, kuten voidaan havaita tutkimuksissa, joissa identtiset kaksoset erotettiin syntyessään. Siinä ei lavemangi juuri auta. Sekä luonto että hoito vaikuttavat eri tavoin eri piirteisiin, asenteisiin ja kokemuksiin.
      ellauri364.html on line 510: Funny yeah indeed

      ellauri364.html on line 552: On June 23, 1988, United States federal judge James Lawrence King of the United States District Court for the Southern District of Florida dismissed the case stating: "The plaintiffs have made no showing of existence of genuine issues of material fact with respect to either the bombing at La Penca, the threats made to their news sources or threats made to themselves." According to The New York Times, the case was dismissed by King at least in part due to "the fact that the vast majority of the 79 witnesses Mr. Sheehan cites as authorities were either dead, unwilling to testify, fountains of contradictory information or at best one person removed from the facts they were describing." On February 3, 1989, King ordered the Christic Institute to pay $955,000 in attorney's fees and $79,500 in court costs. The United States Court of Appeals for the Eleventh Circuit affirmed the ruling, and the Supreme Court of the United States let the judgment stand by refusing to hear an additional appeal. The fine was levied in accordance with “Rule 11” of the Federal Rules of Civil Procedure, which says that lawyers can be penalized for frivolous lawsuits.
      ellauri365.html on line 135: Yhtäkkiä, satuttaa silmiä raa'alla heijastuksellaan, Soudain, blessant les yeux par son reflet brutal,
      ellauri365.html on line 194: Nyt yhtäkkiä kääntyessämme ympäri, Or, dans un brusque élan nous étant retournés,
      ellauri365.html on line 434: Nauraaminen voi olla haitallista avioliitolle. Puolisosi jatkuva kritisoiminen tai muistuttaminen heidän puutteistaan voi luoda myrkyllisen ympäristön ja heikentää luottamuksen ja kunnioituksen perustaa. Nauramisen sijaan yritä käydä avointa ja rauhallista keskustelua huolenaiheistasi keskittyen ratkaisujen etsimiseen yhdessä vikojen osoittamisen lisäxi.
      ellauri365.html on line 582: When sixteen years old he had a nervous illness and by the doctor's advice was sent South.
      ellauri367.html on line 25:

      yellow;background:dodgerblue;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">SARJAKUVA-VIISIKKO


      ellauri367.html on line 64: Nathaniel Mayer Victor Rothschild, 3. Baron Rothschild (31. lokakuuta 1910 - 20. maaliskuuta 1990) - Rothschildien perheen edustaja, biologi ja kriketinpelaaja, MI5- agentti (1935-1938), brittiläisen vastatiedustelupalvelun MI-1:n apulaisjohtaja (159038). Englannin keskustapolitiikan pääsuunnittelija, Britannian kumikanapääministerin Margaret Thatcherin ensimmäinen neuvonantaja (1979-1990), Lontoon Royal Pain in The Arse Societyn varajärjestäjä (1953). Juutalaista alkuperää oleva Victor Rothschild piti itseään ateistina. Vittu super paskiainen se oli, Haju Pisilääkin rivompi oikeistopaska kusitolppa.
      ellauri367.html on line 79: 2. He perustivat vaurautensa petoksella. Nathan Mayer Rothschild perusti Rothschild-perheen upean rikkauden Napoleonin sotien aikana. Vuonna 1815 kaikki odottivat uutisia Waterloon taistelusta hengitystä pidätellen. Rothschildeilla oli kuitenkin paremmin vakiintunut tiedusteluverkosto ja he olivat askeleen edellä, justiinsa kuin Lars GW Persson.
      ellauri367.html on line 89: Lopuksi Nathaniel Mayer Rothschildit lainasivat valtiolle tarpeeksi maksaakseen nämä velat pois, jotta maa voisi selviytyä. Fiuuh!
      ellauri367.html on line 116: La famille Rothschild, la plus célèbre famille à porter ce nom, sont des descendants de Mayer Amschel Rothschild (1744-1812). Né Mayer Amschel Bauer, à Francfort-sur-le-Main dans l'ouest de l'Allemagne, il changea son nom en Rothschild en référence au bouclier rouge, symbole de la maison familiale puis de la banque créée par son père. Ses descendants ont fondé depuis le XVIIIe siècle des dynasties de banquiers et financiers dans différents pays européens aux origines juives ashkénazes et aux différentes nationalités (allemande, française, britannique, israélienne, etc.).
      ellauri367.html on line 126: Dem in der Frankfurter Judengasse geborenen Mayer Amschel Rothschild, der als der Gründer der Rothschilddynastie gilt, war es noch verboten, außerhalb des Frankfurter Ghettos Grundbesitz zu erwerben. Seine Söhne zählten dagegen zu den wohlhabendsten Europäern und wurden in Österreich und England in den Adelsstand erhoben.
      ellauri367.html on line 132: Auf diese Erzählung geht wohl auch die bis heute umlaufende Geschichte zurück, die Familie Rothschild habe ihren Reichtum durch eine Spekulation auf den Ausgang der Schlacht bei Waterloo erworben. Danach habe Nathan Rothschild dank eines effizienten Informationsdienstes bereits vor der britischen Regierung vom siegreichen Ausgang der Schlacht erfahren und daraufhin seine Aktien verkauft, um andere Anleger glauben zu machen, er sei im Besitz von Information über eine britische Niederlage. Es sei danach zu Panikverkäufen und starken Kursverlusten gekommen, die Nathan dazu genutzt habe, die Wertpapiere billig aufzukaufen. Nach dem Eintreffen der Siegesnachricht habe er dann von einem enormen Kursanstieg profitiert. Georges Dairnvaell brachte diese unwahre Geschichte 1846 in seinem Pamphlet Die erbauliche und kuriose Geschichte von Rothschild I., König der Juden erneut in Umlauf.[a 3] Später, zur Zeit des Nationalsozialismus, wurde sie durch den unverhüllt antisemitischen deutschen Propaganda-Film Die Rothschilds verbreitet. Zudem war bereits im 19. Jahrhundert das Gerücht aufgekommen, Nathan Mayer Rothschild habe einen französischen General bestochen, um den britischen Sieg sicherzustellen.
      ellauri367.html on line 153: Vuonna 1977 Burns teki toisen hittielokuvan, Oh, God! , näyttelee kaikkivoipaa nimiroolia laulaja John Denveriä vastaan ​​vakavana mutta hämmentyneenä supermarketin johtajana, jonka Jumala valitsee sattumanvaraisesti elvyttääkseen sanomansa. Mielikuva Burnsista merimieslakissa ja kevyessä kevättakissa drollina Kaikkivaltiaana vaikutti hänen myöhempään komediatyöhönsä, samoin kuin muiden koomikkojen työhön. Hänen kunniakseen järjestetyssä julkkisruoassa Dean Martin muokkasi Burnsin säröä: "Kun George kasvoi, kymmenen käskyä olivat Top 10 ". Burns esiintyi tässä hahmossa yhdessä Vanessa Williamsin kanssa Penthouse -lehden syyskuun 1984 kannessa, joka sisälsi Williamsin pahamaineisia alastonkuvia sekä alaikäisen pornografisen elokuvatähden Traci Lordsin ensimmäisen esiintymisen. Kannessa oleva tiivistelmä jopa ilmoitti "Voi luoja, hän on alasti!"
      ellauri367.html on line 172: Ilmeisestä seniilyydestään ja sosiaalisesta sopimattomuudestaan ​​huolimatta Mr. Burns on kuitenkin poikkeuksellisen fiksu liikemies, sillä kuten kollegansa Roope Ankka, hän on menettänyt omaisuutensa useita kertoja saadakseen sen takaisin hyvin lyhyen ajan kuluttua.
      ellauri367.html on line 226: Rakovsky viedään mukavaan huoneeseen, jossa on erilaisia ​​ruokia, ja Duval kuulustelee sitä sen jälkeen, kun Landowsky sujauttaa juomaansa korkealaatuista huumetta. Rakovsky aloittaa väittämällä, että jos Karl Marx tiesi kapitalismin ristiriidat, se johtuu siitä, että hän tunsi ne, jotka tuottivat ne siinä. Sitten hän teoristi liiton kansainvälisen rahoituksen (jota hän kutsuu "kansainväliseksi kapitalismiksi" tai "kapinterniksi") ja kommunistisen internationaalin (Comintern) välillä. Hän lisää, että Marx jätti kirjoituksissaan selvästi huomaamatta taloudellisen ilmiön, joka kuitenkin kiehtoi hänen aikansa ihmisiä: Rothschildin perheen viiden veljeksen valtavan pääoman keräämisen. Se täsmentää, että niitä on 5, aivan kuten Neuvostoliiton punaisen tähden 5 haaraa. Tuskin sattumaa! (Amschel Mayer Rothschild, Salomon Mayer Rothschild, Nathan Mayer Rothschild, Carl Mayer von Rothschild, James de Rothschild). Rakovskylle näiden kahden entiteetin yhteinen vihollinen, toinen, joka kannattaa kosmopolitismia (koska pääomalla ei ole rajoja) ja toinen kansainvälisyyttä (koska proletariaatilla ei ole rajoja), on kansallisvaltio ja sen tavoitteena on sen tuhoaminen.
      ellauri367.html on line 261: Esther Frumkin (jiddish: עסטער פרומקין ; 1880 – 8. kesäkuuta 1943), syntynyt Malkhe Khaye Lifshitz ja joka tunnetaan toisellakin nimellä, Marija Jakovlevna Frumkinan nimellä, tai pelkkä Esther, palveli Neuvostoliiton poliitikkona ja Bundistisena vallankumouksellisena johtajana General Jewish Labour Bundissa Liettuassa, Puolassa ja Venäjällä ja myöhemmin Jevsektsiyassa Neuvostoliitossa. Jiddishin kielen kiihkeä kannattaja, hänen poliittinen kantansa juutalaisten assimilaatiosta ei tyydyttänyt perinteisiä juutalaisia ​​eikä neuvostojohtajia.
      ellauri367.html on line 263: Estherin isoisä oli rabbi, kuten hänen ensimmäinen aviomiehensä. Toisen avioliiton jälkeen hänet tunnettiin nimellä Esther Wichmann. Estherin isä, Meyer Yankev Lifshitz, oli hyvin koulutettu sekä maallisissa että klassisissa juutalaistutkimuksissa. Hän kirjoitti sekä runoutta että proosaa. Hänen äitinsä Basyalla oli perheyhteyksiä, joihin kuuluivat Vilnan Katzenellenbogenit ja Rommit. Molemmat olivat tärkeitä perheitä, jotka tunnettiin koulutuksestaan, asemastaan ​​Vilnan virallisessa juutalaisyhteisössä ja menestyksekkäästä liiketoiminnastaan. Tsvi-Hirsh Katzenellenbogen (1795–1868) tuki muun muassa juutalaisten sosiaalista elämää ja taiteellista lahjakkuutta kodissaan pitämänsä salongin kautta. Yksi hänen tärkeimmistä vieraistaan ​​oli Avrom Dov-Ber Lebensohn (1794–1878), jonka hepreaksi kirjoitetulla runoudella oli osansa sen elpymisessä nykykieleksi. Rommien kustantamo painoi kaikentyyppisiä kirjoja, sekä jiddišiksi että hepreaksi, tekemättä eroa aikansa eri uskonnollisten ryhmien välillä.
      ellauri368.html on line 66: Among the Jews of the Slavonic countries "maskil" usually denotes a self-taught Hebrew scholar with an imperfect knowledge of a living language (usually German), who represents the love of learning and the striving for culture awakened by Mendelssohn and his disciples; i.e., an adherent or follower of the Haskalah movement. He is "by force of circumstances detained on the path over which the Jews of western Europe swiftly passed from rabbinical lore to European culture" and to emancipation, and "his strivings and short-comings exemplify the unfulfilled hopes and the disappointments of Russian civilization." The Maskilim are mostly teachers and writers; they taught a part of the young generation of Russian Jewry to read Hebrew and have created the great Neo-Hebrew literature which is the monument of Haskalah. Although Haskalah has now been flourishing in Russia for three generations, the class of Maskilim does not reproduce itself. The Maskilim of each generation are recruited from the ranks of the Orthodox Talmudists, while the children of Maskilim very seldom follow in the footsteps of their fathers. This is probably due to the fact that the Maskil who breaks away from strictly conservative Judaism in Russia, but does not succeed in becoming thoroughly assimilated, finds that his material conditions have not been improved by the change, and, while continuing to cleave to Haskalah for its own sake, he does not permit his children to share his fate. The quarrels between the Maskilim and the Orthodox, especially in the smaller communities, are becoming less frequent. In the last few years the Zionist movement has contributed to bring the Maskilim, who joined it almost to a man, nearer to the other classes of Jews who became interested in that movement. The numerous Maskilim who emigrated to the United States, especially after the great influx of Russian immigrants, generally continued to follow their old vocation of teaching and writing Hebrew, while some contributed to the Yiddish periodicals. Many of those who went thither in their youth entered the learned professions. See Literature, Modern Hebrew. (Source: Jewish Dictionary)
      ellauri368.html on line 75: Hänellä oli kaksi poikaa, heprealainen runoilija Micah Joseph Lebensohn (alias Michal) ja Aryeh Löb Lebensohn, huomattava liikemies Vilnassa.
      ellauri368.html on line 135: Länkkärien uudelleenjärjestäytyessä Ryssän rajoille tuli järkeväxi myöntää että Saksa ei välttämättä ollut sen syyllisempi ensimmäisen maailmansodan syttymiseen kuin muutkaan sotaan osallistuneet valtiot.
      ellauri368.html on line 174: Herbertin kiinnostus aavikkoympäristöä ja sen haasteita kohtaan johtuu tutkimuksesta, jonka hän aloitti vuonna 1957, koska hän aloitti keskeneräisen artikkelin Yhdysvaltojen maatalousministeriön kokeesta, jossa käytettiin köyhyysruohoa vakauttamaan vahingoittavia hiekkadyynejä, jotka voisivat "niellä kokonaisia ​​kaupunkeja ja järviä, ml joet ja moottoritiet." Herbert vietti seuraavat viisi vuotta tutkien, kirjoittaen ja tarkistaen romaania Tyyny, josta tuli alun perin sarjakuvalehti kahdeksi lyhyemmäksi teokseksi, Dune World (1963) ja The Prophet of Dune (1965). Sarjakuvaversiota laajennettiin ja muokattiin, kunnes yli 20 kustantajaa hylkäsi sen – ennen kuin Chilton Books, autokorjausoppaistaan ​​tunnetuin painotalo, julkaisi sen vuonna 1965.
      ellauri368.html on line 231: Talmudin valmistumisen jälkeisenä aikana Halakha oli hallitseva kaikissa kouluissa ja työnsi kaikkia kevyempää kirjallisuutta takapuolelle. Mutta tilanne muuttui juutalaisuuden kulta-ajalla, 1200.luvulla. Lew, »nd Herran sana Nehir-Pekodista" iiulead of "Oul of Zion" ud "tiara Jeniiklem" (1%*. ii. 3). Prof. L. Ginibeig nimeltä m; arientloD !•> snolhet pusage in Tal. Yer. lP». luku III, 7), joka on oiva geimine-parodia. Siellä kerrottiin, että Rabbi Abbahu telttaa poikansa Haninahin lähtiessä opiskelemaan Tiberiaissa. The Utter kuitenkin harjoitti cbaritable-työtä ja laiminlyö hiz stadiis. The father ihereupon nuhteli häntä saying; "mart yrm'vt YVf^i n-iap 1"* 'VatO",
      ellauri368.html on line 296: Evidently, his satire lacks that subtle irony which made Profiat Duraii's Epistle so powerful, and at the same time gained for it such great popularity. Undoubtedly, it is due to this directness and plainness of speech, that this parody has never yet seen the light of day. About as humorous as this invective against J.N. somewhat earlier:
      ellauri368.html on line 315: Joseph Perl (1773-1839) is one of the most remarkable links in the chain of Judaic uterature. In 1819, four years after seminal hasidic works of the Ba'al Shem Tov and Nahman of Bratslav appeared, Perl printed Megalei Temirin (Revealer of Secrets), an erudite Hebrew parody that satirized them.
      ellauri368.html on line 318: Hasidism was inspired by Israel ben Eliezer, who was eventually dubbed the Ba'al Shem Tov after he was "revealed" as a wonder-working leader in about 1736. He lived in the Ukraine, where there was a high density of provincial Jewish communities. Two generations after the death of this charismatic leader, his followers printed BeShT (In Praise of the Ba'al Shem Tov, 1815, a Hebrew work consisting primarily of hagiographie tales about wonders of the rebbe, as passed on and eaborated by his disciples. In the same year, stories by Nahman of Bratislav - a great-grandson of the Ba'al Shem Tov - were published by his scribe Nathan Sternharz. Accompanied by Yiddish versions, the Hebrew tales were intended to reach the broadest possible audience.
      ellauri368.html on line 322: From a literary-historical standpoint, Revealer of Secrets holds immense interest. As Dov Taylor notes in his useful introduction, it was inspired by the eighteenth-century epistolary tradition initiated in England by Samuel Richardson's Pamela (1740), in France by Rousseau's Nouvelle Héloïse (1760), and in Germany by Goethe's Die Leiden des jungen Werthers (1774). Because Hebrew had as yet no novelistic tradition, Perl necessarily drew upon the prevailing norms of European fiction. Thus arose the beginning of modern Hebrew literature in the margins of eighteenth-century fiction
      ellauri368.html on line 333: The following year Perl published Ueber das Wesen der Sekte Chassidim aus ihren eigenen Schriften gezogen (On the Nature of the Sect of the Hasidim, Drawn from Their Own Writings), in which he laid out what he saw as the absurdity of Hasidic beliefs and practices.
      ellauri369.html on line 41: Tässä numerossa esitellään erilaisia kuuluisia miehiä. Tiedän hyvin, Atticus, että monet tulevat pitämään kirjoitustapaani kevyenä ja suurmiesten arvoa vastaamattomana, kun he joutuvat esityksestäni lukemaan. kuka esimerkiksi oli Epaminondaan musiikinopettajia, tai saavat nähdä hänen muiden kykyjensä ohella olleen mainio tanssija ja soittaneen taidokkaasti poikkihuilua. Tätä mieltä tulevat kuitenkin olemaan etupiässä sellaiset, jotka eivät tunne kreikkalaista kirjallisuutta eivätkä siksi pidä oikeana mitään muuta kuin mikä on heidän omien tapojensa mukaista. Jos nämä oppisivat ymmärtämään, että kaikkialla ei pidetä samoja asioita sopivina tai sopimattomina vaan kaikkea arvostellaan peräkylän tottunusten mukaan, he eivät ihmettele että minä kertoessani kreikkalaisten saavatuksista olen ottanut huomioon heidän tapansa sellaisinaan.
      ellauri369.html on line 334: Nimittäin lokakuussa 1826 Thomas ja Jane Welsh menivät naimisiin Walesin perheen tilalla Templandissa. Pian avioliiton jälkeen Carlyles muutti vaatimattomaan kotiin Comely Bankissa Edinburghissa, jonka Janen äiti oli vuokrannut heille. He asuivat siellä lokakuusta 1826 toukokuuhun 1828. Siihen aikaan Carlyle julkaisi saksalaisen romanssin , aloitti Wotton Reinfredin , omaelämäkerrallisen romaanin, jonka myös hän jätti kesken, ja julkaisi ensimmäisen artikkelinsa Edinburgh Review -julkaisuun , "Jean Paul Friedrich Richter" (1827). Se ei juuri meulaa heilauttanut Richterin asteikolla. Johann Paul Friedrich Richter, kirjailijanimi: Jean Paul (21. maaliskuuta 1763 Wunsiedel − 14. marraskuuta 1825 Bayreuth) oli saksalainen kirjailija josta lienee jo paasattu (jep, albumisa 128). Monet lukijat, etenkin Richterin naispuoliset ihailijat, uskoivat vilpittömästi, että Richter ja fiktiivinen Jean Paul olivat todella sama henkilö. Richteristä tuli hyvin kuuluisa, ja legendoja hänen epätoivoisten naisihailijoidensa tempauksista löytyy edelleen elämäkertakirjallisuudesta. Totta lienee ainakin se, että Richterillä oli useita kosijoita ja hän oli kihloissa useita kertoja ennen avioliittoaan Karoline Meyerin kanssa 1801. Kyllä pettyivät sillä oikea Richter oli aika pyllynaamainen.
      ellauri369.html on line 366: Hofrath: Hofrath Heuschrecke (i. e. State-Councillor Grasshopper) is a loose, zigzag figure, a blind admirer of Teufelsdröckh´s, an incarnation of distraction distracted, and the only one who advises the editor and encourages him in his work; a victim to timidity and preyed on by an uncomfortable sense of mere physical cold, such as the majority of the state-counsellors of the day were. Sounds a lot like Waldo Emerson.
      ellauri369.html on line 378: Sartor Resartus was best received in America, where Carlyle became a dominant cultural influence and a perceived leader of the Transcendental Movement. After its 1836 arrival in Boston as a book, Nathaniel Langdon Frothingmouth accurately predicted that reaction would be divided between those that found it vapid and convoluted and those that found it insightful and philosophically fruitful. Ihan sama juttu kuin Wayne W. Dyerin kohdalla! (Esim. Nuevos pensamientos para una vida mejor.)
      ellauri369.html on line 427: Carlyle katsoi, että "Suurten miesten tulisi hallita ja pikkumiespalvelijoiden tulee kunnioittaa heitä". Yhteiskunnat, kuten organismit, kehittyvät läpi historian, kukoistavat jonkin aikaa, mutta heikkenevät väistämättä ja kuolevat sukupuuttoon antaen paikan vahvemmalle, paremmalle rodulle. Sankarit ovat niitä, jotka vahvistavat tämän elämänprosessin hyväksyen sen julmuuden tarpeelliseksi ja siten hyväksi. Heille rohkeus on arvokkaampi hyve kuin rakkaus; sankarit ovat aatelisia, eivät pyhiä. Sankari toimii ensinnäkin mallina, jota muut voivat jäljitellä, ja toiseksi luojana, joka siirtää historiaa eteenpäin eikä taaksepäin (historia on suurten miesten elämäkerta). Carlyle oli aikansa ensimmäisten joukossa, jotka ymmärsivät, että Jumalan kuolema ei sinänsä ole iloinen asia, ellei ihminen astu kalifixi kalifin paikalle ja luo uusia arvoja vanhan tilalle. Carlylen mukaan sankarista tulisi tulla palvonnan kohde, uuden uskonnon keskus, joka julistaa ihmiskunnan "ihmeiden ihmeeksi... ainoaksi jumaluudeksi, jonka voimme tuntea". Hemmetin kusipää.
      ellauri370.html on line 54: Some scholars speculate that the story was created to justify the Jewish appropriation of an originally non-Jewish feast. The festival which the book explains is Purim, which is explained as meaning "lot", from the Babylonian word puru. One popular theory says the festival has its origins in a historicized Babylonian myth or ritual in which Mordecai and Esther represent the Babylonian gods Marduk and Ishtar, while others trace the ritual to the Persian New Year, and scholars have surveyed other theories in their works. Some scholars have defended the story as real history, but the attempt to find a historical kernel to the narrative "is likely to be futile".
      ellauri370.html on line 70: Herem or cherem (Hebrew: חרם, ḥērem), as used in the Tanakh, means something given over to the Lord, or under a ban, and sometimes refers to things or persons to be utterly destroyed.
      ellauri370.html on line 225: 1983 (aged 86 years)
      ellauri370.html on line 272: Vuonna 1200 Sauron hylkäsi Mordorin ja lähti Eregioniin. Siellä hän opetti haltiaseppiä takomaan mahtisormuksia, mutta hän palasi Mordoriin vuonna 1600 ja takoi Tuomiovuoren uumenissa Valtasormuksen. Haltiat ymmärsivät Sauronin petoksen ja "joutuivat" sotaan. Ihan ajautuivat Suomen lailla ajopuuna. Sauronin örkit tuhosivat Eregionin, mutta númenorilaiset tuhosivat Mordorin armeijat. Sauron kokosi lisää örkkejä ja peikkoja ja käännytti Rhûnin ja Haradin ihmiset palvelijoikseen. Ar-Pharazôn Kultainen, Númenorin kuningas, kuuli Sauronin mahdista ja saapui suuren armeijan kanssa Keski-Maahan. Sauron antautui númenorilaisille, jotka veivät hänet Númenoriin. Hän kuitenkin turmeli ylpeän Ar-Pharazônin ja suurimman osan númenorilaisista. Lopulta hän aiheutti heidän tuhonsa, mutta Númenorin upotessa myös Sauron vajosi meren pohjaan. Hänen henkensä palasi Mordoriin, mutta hän ei enää koskaan kyennyt ottamaan kaunista ulkomuotoa. Hän otti Mustan Ruhtinaan hahmon, joka opittiin tuntemaan pahan perikuvana.
      ellauri370.html on line 294: Juudean sotaretkeä. Makkabealaiset oli juutalainen pappis- ja hallitsijasuku, jonka jäsenet hallitsivat Juudeaa noin vuosina 165–37 eaa. Suku kapinoi seleukideja vastaan niin sanotun makkabilaiskapinan aikana. Nähtävästii simoniitat oli näitä samoja makkabealaisia? Juu niin se oli. Hyrkanos II oli juutalaisten ylipappi vuosina 79 eaa. – 40 eaa. Hänen vanhempansa olivat makkabealaisten hallitsijasuvun kuningas Aleksanteri Jannaios ja Salome Aleksandra. Isän kuoleman jälkeen hallitsijana Aleksandra nimitti Hyrkanoksen seuraajakseen. Hyrkanos ehti hallita vain lyhyen ajan ennen kuin hänen veljensä Aristobulos II kaappasi vallan. Herodes Suuren isä Antipatros liittoutui Hyrkanoksen kanssa, ja vuonna 63 eaa. Rooman suuri sotapäällikkö Pompeius päätti myös tukea Hyrkanosta tämän veljeä vastaan. Antipater ja Pompeius pitivät kummatkin Hyrkanosta heikkona hallitsijana, ja uskoivat että häntä olisi helpompi käyttää hyväksi kun Aristobulosta. Roomalaisten avustuksella Aristobulos syrjäytettiin ja Juudea liitettiin Rooman valtakuntaan. Hyrkanosta ei kuitenkaan nimitetty Juudean kuninkaaksi, vaan hän sai tyytyä ylimmän papin virkaan. Julius Caesar nimitti Hyrkanoksen Juudean etnarkiksi, mutta todellinen valta oli Antipaterin käsissä. Vuonna 40 eaa. Aristobuloksen poika Antigonos syrjäytti Hyrkanoksen parthialaisten avustuksella. Antigonos julistettiin Juudean kuninkaaksi ja ylimmäksi papiksi. Antigonos haukkasi Hyrkanokselta korvat, jotta tämä ei voisi tulevaisuudessa päästä kuninkaaksi tai papiksi. Hyrkanos vietiin vangiksi Babyloniin, mutta hänet päästettiin palaamaan Jerusalemiin sen jälkeen kun Herodes oli päässyt Juudean kuninkaaksi. Herodes ei kuitenkaan luottanut Hyrkanokseen, vaan antoi surmata tämän.
      ellauri370.html on line 392: A lot of Elvis Presley songs were written especially for him, but according to Mac Davis, Presley´s 1969 hit, In the Ghetto, was not such a song. Mac Davis commented, 'I never really dreamed of pitching that song to Elvis. I had been working on In the Ghetto for several years. I grew up playing with a little boy in Lubbock, Texas, whose family lived in a dirt street ghetto. His dad and my dad worked in construction together. So that little boy and I sort of grew up together. I never understood why his family had to live where they lived while my family lived where we lived. Of course back in those days, the word "ghetto" hadn't come along yet. (It is Venetian for "foundry".) But I always wanted to write a song about that situation and title it 'The Vicious Circle'. I thought that if you were born in that place and that situation, then you grow up there and one day you die there, and another kid is born there that kind of replaces you. And later I started thinking about the ghetto as a title for the song.
      ellauri370.html on line 443: In public, President Biden likes to whisper to make a point. In private, he´s prone to yelling. Biden began to shout and swear over polls dropping amid Israel-Hamas conflict. He shouldn´t have warned Israelis to avoid 9/11 mistakes. What mistakes? There will a bloodbath if Trump loses yet another vote.
      ellauri370.html on line 469: Eugen considered the Marxist view of class-warfare as a dangerous superstition which obscures in convoluted dialectic the real sympathy that should and could exist between employers and workers and which alone forms the basis of a healthy social ethos.
      ellauri370.html on line 506: Chamberlainista alkoi tuntua, että Britannia oli 1880-luvulta lähtien "valinnut Mammonan palveluksen", mistä hän syytti juutalaisia ja kirjoitti Wagnerille: "Tämä on tulos, kun on opiskellut politiikkaa juutalaisen kanssa neljännesvuosisadan ajan." "Juutalaisella" Chamberlain viittasi Disraeliin, jota Chamberlain oli vihannut intohimoisesti aina. Senkin paskamuna. Chamberlain julisti nyt, että kaikki brittiläiset liikemiehet olivat epärehellisiä; keskiluokka, omahyväinen ja tyhmä; pienviljelijät ja kaupat eivät enää pystyneet kilpailemaan juutalaisten omistamien suuryritysten kanssa; ja monarkiaa "heikensi peruuttamattomasti" yhteiskunnallinen muutos. Lyhyesti sanottuna Chamberlainille Britannia ei ollut enää mistään kotoisin (kuten ei olekaan).
      ellauri370.html on line 530: Arthur, Comte de Gobineau, was born in France in 1816. His essay ´On the Inequality of Human Races´ was published in 1853. Wagner admitted in his own autobiography ´Mein Leben´ (My Life), that his compositions came to him from some outside source, when he was in a state of trance. Ach! Mein Leben! There is some documentary evidence to support the contention that the mad swan king Ludwig of Bayern maintained a homosexual relationship with Wagner. He is now best known for Disney´s magic Castle at Neuschwanstein with Heli-keiju buzzin round it like a fly circling a turd.
      ellauri370.html on line 577: Vuonna 1894 Gobineau työskenteli hyvin lyhyen aikaa Alexis de Tocquevillen sihteerinä tämän toimiessa ulkoministerinä. Tocquevillestä on lyhyt paasahdus albumissa 352. Lyhyesti, kaveri ihmetteli lyhyesti mixi Yhdysvaltain tupaten täydet vankilat toimi ylipäänsä ollenkaan (ne on privatisoitu), ja mixi brittiläinen siirtomaavalta toimi ranskalaista paremmin (se oli segregoitu). Gobineau varoitti Tocquevilleä suuresta halusta "avata Kiina", sillä ranskalaisten olisi hänen mukaansa pitänyt "pohtia huolellisemmin" sellaisen veljeilyn seurauksia.
      ellauri370.html on line 605: Gobineaun kuvailema materialistinen itä­maalainen kuvasti todellisuudessa aristokatin käsitystä Ranskan rahan­himoisesta keski­luokasta, kun taas hänen kuvittelemansa "aistillinen, älytön ja väki­valtainen neekeri" oli irvikuva Ranskan proletariaatista. Gobineaun halveksunta alempia yhteis­kunta­luokkia kohtaan käy ilmi hänen kirjeistään, joissa hän käytti suurista kansan­joukoista nimitystä la boue ("muta, lieju, rupusakki"). Ranskalaiset lanzarit kuten Asterix ja Obelix olivat karkeaa, raakaa kelttiväkeä, joka ei kyennyt oppimaan eikä ajattelemaan muutoin kuin kaikkein alkeellisimmalla tasolla. Gobineau itse uskoi polveutuvansa viikingeistä. Kermaa kermakastikkeessa. Hänen sivuillaan on siinä määrin narsismia, että iljettää. Hän vihasi kotikaupunkiaan Pariisia, jota hän sanoi "lika­kaivoksi täynnä juurettomia ex-nakkeja."
      ellauri370.html on line 625: Vuonna 1869, Rio de Janeirossa oleskelunsa ikävystyessä, Gobineau palasi romanttiseen proosaan. Hänen yhdessä päivässä kirjoitettua novelliaan Adelaide pidetään joskus hänen mestariteoksenaan, vaikka se ilmestyi vasta postuumisti. Kahden naisen väliseen mustasukkaisuuteen keskittyvä tapaus, on täynnä julmuutta, röyhkeyttä ja huumoria.
      ellauri371.html on line 77: Puolueen ristiriita. so. itselleen, eli hänen keskuudestaan ​​oleville nousijoille, itsensä tuhoaminen. Puolueiden erimielisyydet ravistivat takaa-ajosta innoissaan tästä tulevasta vallasta ja kunniasta tilauksia. Onko massojen mahdollista rauhallisesti ilman kilpailua, kyetä tuomitsemaan, hoitamaan asioita maissa, joita ei voi yhdistää henkilökohtaisiin kiinnostuksen kohteet? Pystyvätkö he puolustamaan itseään ulkopuolisilta vihollisilta? Tämä on mahdotonta ajatella, koska suunnitelma, johon on jaettu niin monta osaa kuin joukossa on päitä, menettää tarkoituksensa - epäjohdonmukaisuutta tulee, ja siksi siitä tulee käsittämätöntä ja mahdotonta toteuttaa. Kädet tälläsestä pesemme.
      ellauri371.html on line 408: Vapaamuurarius kaikkien salaseurojen johtajana, yhteiskuntaan. Ihmiset liittyvät yleensä salaseuroihin, etenkin huijarit, urantekijät ja ihmiset yleensä. Kevyet ihmiset, joiden kanssa ei ole vaikeaa tehdä liiketoimintaa. Ja he käynnistävät suunnittelemamme koneen mekanismin. Renkaat vinkuvat... Jos tämä maailma hämärtyy, se tulee olemaan G. Aluksi meidän piti sekoittaa pakkaa \ rakentaa suurempaa solidaarisuutta yhteisön kanssa. Jos, siis jos, hänen keskuudessaan syntyy salaliitto, niin sen kärjessä tulee ei kukaan muu kuin yksi uskollisimmista palvelijoista meidän tiimissä. Luonnollisesti me, emmekä kukaan muu, johdamme vapaamuurarien teot, sillä me tiedämme mihin olemme johtava jokaisen toiminnan lopullista tavoitetta, mutta goyit eivät tiedä ei niin mitään, ei edes välitöntä tulosta: he asettuvat yleensä tyydytettävixi minuuttilaskelmalla räikeä itsetunto ojossa suunnitelmien toteuttamisessa, huomaamatta vaikka idea ei kuulunutkaan heille eikä aloite, turhaan tavaavat tätä ajatusopastamme.
      ellauri371.html on line 456: Kasvatus ja arvonimi. Jokainen julkinen arvo on kasvatettava tiukasti luoden sosiaalisesti lujia rajoja tarkoituksen ja työn mukaan. Tapahtuu! Uudet nerot ja hullut ovat aina kyenneet ja tulevatkin pääsemään sisään ilman muita nimikkeitä, mutta tämän harvinaisen mahdollisuuden vuoksi päästää keskinkertaisuus muiden ihmisten joukkoon ja viedä paikkoja niiltä, ​​jotka ovat luontaisia ​​näihin riveihin syntymän ja ammatin perusteella - täyttä hulluutta. Tiedät itse, mistä tässä kaikessa on kyse: se on ohi goyimille, jotka sallivat tämän röyhkeyden, hölynpölyn.
      ellauri371.html on line 497: Vartioi juutalaisten kuningasta. Hallitsijaamme tulee vartioimaan vain kaikkein huomaamattomimmat vartijat, koska emme salli edes ajatusta, että joku voisi hyökätä hänen kimppuunsa la (s.o. sapattina), sillä siellä on silloin sellainen kapina, jossa hän ei ole mukana, ei ainaskaan kyennyt taistelemaan ja joutuu piiloutumaan häneltä. Jos tunnustaisimme tämän ajatuksen, kuten teimme ja teemme vastakin, että siellä on goimia, niin tekemällä niin allekirjoittaisimme tuomion, jos ei itselleen, niin dynastialle lähitulevaisuudessa tai yleensä tulevaisuudessa. Tarkkaan noudatetun näköisskriptin mukaan meidän suuri hallitsija käyttää valtaansa vain kansan eduksi, mutta ei ollenkaan heidän omalle tai dynastialle koidu inhimillisiä hyötyjä. Siksi tämä koristeellinen "Vishnu" juo rommia, hän kunnioittaa ja suojelee hänen auktoriteettiaan aiheesta, häntä jumaloidaan tietäessään, että siihen liittyy jokaisen valtion kansalaisen hyvinvointi. Hän saa lahjoja, sillä yhteiskunnan järjestys riippuu 3. temppelin rakentamisesta. Kuninkaan vartiointi avoimesti tarkoittaa että organisaation vahvuus tietää heikkoutensa. Meidän hallitsijamme tulee aina olemaan ihmisten joukossa, jota ympäröi ikään kuin joukko ihmisiä kokeneita miehiä ja naisia, jotka miehittää ensimmäisen hänen lähellä olevat rivit näyttävät sattumanvaraisilta, mutta pidättäviltä. Tulen muiden joukkoon kunnioituksesta oletettavasti järjestystä kohtaan. Tämä on esimerkki hillityksestä muille. Jos ihmisten joukossa on vetoomuksen esittäjä, joka yrittää tehdä pyyntöjä, kulkemalla rivien läpi ja sitten ensimmäisten rivien läpi, minun on hyväksyttävä tämä pyyntö ja pieraistava vetoomuksen esittäjän edessä, luovutettava se hallitsijalle, jotta kaikki tietävät, että lahjoitus saavuttaa määränpäänsä, joka siis on hallitsijan itsensä hallinta, vallan halo on rauhallinen ja tulee olemaan sen olemassaoloa varten, jotta ihmiset voivat sanoa: "jospa kuningas tietäisi tästä" tai "kuningas saa tietää tästä."
      ellauri371.html on line 559: Goyimien hallitsijat. Tilapäisiä työntekijöitä, vapaamuurarien agentteja. Goy-hallitsijat, joilta me kerran käänsimme valtion työllistämisestä edustajan toimesta teemat, etiketit, huvit, olivat vain kalpeita näyttöjä meidän hallituxesta. Tilapäistyöntekijöiden raportit korvasivat ne, asioiden alan asiantuntijat koottiin heille, edustajamme oli joka kerta tyytyväinen lyhyellä aikavälillä, uudet mielet ja lupaukset, joita he ennakoivat tulevaisuudessa, säästöjä ja parannuksia tehdään. Miksi säästää?
      ellauri372.html on line 58: Filthy rich Crassus himself was killed when truce negotiations turned violent. Crassus rose to political prominence following his victory over the slave revolt led by Spartacus. Crass. Within four years of Crassus' death, Caesar crossed the Rubicon to become another putinist, began a civil war against Pompey's optimists.
      ellauri372.html on line 83: Crassus befriended Licinia, a Vestal Virgin, whose valuable property he coveted. Plutarch says "And yet, when he was further on in years, he was accused of criminal intimacy with Licinia, one of the vestal virgins, and Licinia was formally prosecuted by a certain Plotius. Now, Licinia was the owner of a pleasant villa in the suburbs, which Crassus wished to get at a low price, and it was for this reason that he was forever hovering about the woman and paying his court to her, until he fell under the abominable suspicion. And, in a way, it was his avarice that absolved him from the charge of corrupting the vestal, and he was acquitted by the judges. But he did not let Licinia go until he had acquired her property."
      ellauri372.html on line 97: In a famous Roman military disaster, the Parthians crushed an expeditionary force led by Crassus in 53 BCE. This flaccid ode was written about thirty years later, when a new war against Parthia seemed to be in the offing (in practice an agreement in 20 BCE avoided one: Crassus’s legions’ captured standards were returned, which would have helped Roman national pride). As well as expressing straightforward patriotism, the poem conveys the important messages that national prestige is safe with Augustus, and that accepting defeat must never be the Roman way.
      ellauri372.html on line 102: Regulus was a famously principled and courageous fictional figure from the Punic wars 2 centuries earlier. Captured by the Carthaginians with others during the Punic wars, he was sent to Rome, under an oath to return, to pass on peace proposals and a request for exchange of prisoners. According to legend, as described by Horace here, he advised the Senate not to accept, and returned to Carthage to a certain and painful death, keeping his oath. There is a clear echo of the campaign that Augustus was waging to restore traditional Roman and family values. Like the rock-hard Regulus, “proper” Romans should be prepared to face death and spit in its eye, rather than take a safe but dishonourable way out. The gulf between these traditions and the contemporary Romans partying and fornicating away in writers like Ovid and Propertius could not be deeper.
      ellauri372.html on line 187: Hänen isänsä oli entinen saksalainen ja hänen äitinsä oli puolalainen. Neitsyt Marian näkeminen kevyesti puettuna vaikutti Kolben elämään voimakkaasti vuonna 1906, kun hän oli 12-vuotias. Hän oli myöhemminkin aktiivinen pyllistyksessä ja Marialle uskoutumisessa.
      ellauri372.html on line 265: Zimri ( heprea: זִמְרִי, Zīmrī ; l. 'kiitettävää') Salun poika oli Simeonin heimoon  kuuluvan ruhtinas tai perheen johtaja israelilaisten lähdön aikana erämaassa heidän lähestyessä Luvattua Maata. Heprealaisen Raamatun Numeroiden kirja kuvaa, kuinka hän Abilassa tai Shittimissä osallistui Peorin harhaoppiin ja otti rakastajakseen midianilaisen naisen Cozbin. Tämän synnin vuoksi Piinehas, Aaronin pojanpoika, tappoi heidät molemmat lyömällä heidät pystykeihääseen kuin kärpäset heidän harrastaessaan seksiä. Juu Piinehaista mulla on jo paasausta albumissa 256.
      ellauri373.html on line 35: Jolon saarella Filippiineillä on siirtomaaherrat pörränneet enemmän kuin Kar-Air Jälän kentällä. Jolo on eri saari kuin Gilolo, an island in NE Indonesia, the largest of the Moluccas, current name: Halmahera, former names: Djailolo, Gilolo, Jilolo. The island of Gilolo, which seems to be Japan, is about 240° east longitude. This is so far remarkable, that no voyages had yet been made in that sea. (Lähde: Henry Hallam.) On se kuitenkin meidän 6000 palapelin kartalla. Jolon nimeä ei löydy.
      ellauri373.html on line 47: The battle of Jolo, also referred to as the burning of Jolo or the siege of Jolo, was a military confrontation 50 years ago between the Moro National Liberation Front (MNLF) and the government of the Philippines in February 1974 in the municipality of Jolo, in the southern Philippines. It is considered one of the key early incidents of the Moro insurgency in the Philippines, and led numerous Moro leaders to resist martial law under Ferdinand Marcos, whose wife Imelda had over 3,000 pairs of shoes.
      ellauri373.html on line 154: The only statement I care to make about the PROTOCOLS is that they fit in with what is going on. They are sixteen years old, and they have fitted the world situation up to this time. THEY FIT IT NOW. Indeed they do!
      ellauri373.html on line 175:
    12. The Fate of Lawyers and the Clergy
      ellauri373.html on line 203: “5. As for the many other vexations you complain of: arrange that your sons become advocates and lawyers, and see that they always mix themselves up with the affairs of State, in order that by putting Christians under your yoke you may dominate the world and be avenged on them.
      ellauri373.html on line 222: Kirja ei saavuttanut yleistä menestystä. Syynä oli juutalaiset ja ihmisenä olemisen syvä uskonnollinen tutkimus ja syventyminen maailmanlopun tunnelmiin (hatologia). Saman kohtalon koki kuuluisa filosof Vladimir Sergeevich Solovyev kirjallaan "Kolme liekkiä" ei kauan ennen. A teme Vladimir oli jonkinlainen maallikko, upstart jolla ei ole Jumalaa. Slovakian tieteellinen tutkinto, lähtee vielä tutkimaan Johannes Teologin ja Danielin ennustuxia Suomessa ja Tshekin tasavallassa, mitä, ulkomaisia narttuja! Sillä ei kuuhun mennä. Kirja on halvexittava, kuin jonkinlaiseen juhlaan meluisia kexintöjä. Hirssi tietysti vaatii mitä suurinta varovaisuutta.
      ellauri373.html on line 308: Lyhyesti sanottuna, tiivistääksemme järjestelmämme, jolla hillitsimme goyim-hallituksia Euroopassa, osoitamme yhdelle heistä voimamme salamurhilla, toisin sanoen terrorilla, ja heidän kaikkien puolesta, jos he kapinoivat meitä vastaan, vastaamme amerikkalaisilla, japanilaisilla ja kiinalaisilla aseilla.
      ellauri373.html on line 589: Gintsberg pyrki tutkimaan edeltäjiään - vaikutteita älykkäiltä ja suosituilta 1700-luvun juutalaisilta. Näitä on Wesley (1725 vuoteen 1805 asti) ja Moses Mendelssohn (1728-1786), "Tre-tämä Mooses", he molemmat yhdessä pankkiirien Itzigin kanssa, Friedlander ja Meyer olivat myös inspiraation lähteitä, illunismin hallijärjestäjiä.
      ellauri373.html on line 685: Todellisuudessa tämä sama "syytön" Sio- Nism on jo järjestänyt maailmansodan liittonsa kanssa yhdessä pangermanismin kanssa; hän järjesti myös venäjän Venäjän vallankumous, bolshevismi, kullan keskittyminen ja kaikki aineelliset resurssit koko maailmassa juutalaiseksi taivaan käsissä, urheimpien ja urheimpien tuhoaminen ihmisrodun vahvat edustajat, kauhu- goimien täydellinen verilöyly, jotka pakotettiin tappamaan taistelevat toisiaan vastaan, monarkian kaatuminen ja lyhyesti nykyinen, tottelevainen ei-juutalaisten alistuminen, "Ala-Na- tsіy" Israelille, "Super-Nations"; sanalla sanoen oli koko pöytäkirjoissa määritelty suunnitelma 1890 ja vielä aikaisemmin.
      ellauri373.html on line 710: Romaani kertoo tarinan Friedrich Löwenbergistä, nuoresta juutalaisesta wieniläisestä intellektuellista, joka eurooppalaiseen rappioon väsyneenä liittyy amerikkalaistuneen preussilaisen aristokraatin, Kingscourtin (Königshof), kanssa heidän jäädessään eläkkeelle syrjäiselle Tyynenmeren saarelle (se mainitaan erityisesti osana Cookinsaaria, Rarotongan lähellä) vuonna 1902. Pysähtyessään Jaffaan matkalla Tyynellemerelle he huomaavat, että Palestiina on takapajuinen, köyhä ja harvaan asuttu maa, kuten Herzl näytti hänen vierailullaan vuonna 1898.
      ellauri374.html on line 71: Dan Ariely on israelilaisamerikkalainen professori ja kirjailija. Hän toimii James B. Duken psykologian ja käyttäytymistalouden professorina Duken yliopistossa. Ariely on useiden yritysten perustaja, jotka toteuttavat käyttäytymistieteestä saatuja oivalluksia. Ariely was a physics and mathematics major at Tel Aviv University but transferred to philosophy and psychology. However, in his last year he dropped philosophy and concentrated solely on psychology, graduating in 1991. In 1994 he earned a masters in cognitive psychology, and in 1996 he earned a Ph.D. in cognitive psychology from the University of North Carolina at Chapel Hill. Ariely completed a second Ph.D. in Business Administration at Duke University in 1998, at the urging of Daniel Kahneman, winner of the Nobel Memorial Prize in Economic Sciences. Who else.
      ellauri374.html on line 73: Since 2021, Ariely has faced multiple accusations of data fraud and academic misconduct, which have resulted in a retracted paper. In 2024, Duke completed a 3-year confidential investigation and according to Ariely concluded that "data from the honesty-pledge paper had been faked but found no evidence that Ariely used fake data knowingly". BUAHAHA.
      ellauri374.html on line 107: Eräänä päivänä suuren kristittyjen pogromin jo puhjettua Sozonin lampaat laidunsivat väärällä niityllä. Hän itse vaipui kevyeen uneen ja näki jumalallisen näyn, joka vahvisti entisestäänkin hänen uskoaan. Kristus käski hänen panna pois ne aseet, joita hän piti mukanaan lampaidensa suojelemiseksi, ja valmistautua marttyyrikuolemaan. Uskon intoa palaen Sozon laskeutui niityltä alas Kilikian Pompeiopolikseen ja meni temppeliin, jossa palvottiin Artemis-jumalattaren kultaista patsasta. Hän katkaisi patsaalta oikean käden, hakkasi sen palasiksi, möi kultakimpaleet ja jakoi osan rahoista köyhille.
      ellauri374.html on line 247: varhaiset kokoukset pidettiin saksaksi, lyhyen ajan kuluttua englanti nousi valituksi kieleksi ja nimi muutettiin B´nai B´rithiksi. 1900-luvun lopulla käännös muutettiin nykyaikaisemmaksi ja kattavammaksi Children of the Covenantiksi. Huolimatta veljellisestä ja paikallisesta alusta, B´nai B´rith puhui juutalaisten miesten oikeuksien puolesta historiansa varhaisessa vaiheessa ja käytti kasvavaa kansallista looshiketjuaan keinona käyttää poliittista vaikutusvaltaa maailmankansalaisuuden puolesta. Esimerkiksi vuonna 1851 se levitti vetoomuksia, joissa ulkoministeri Daniel Websteriä kehotettiin vaatimaan juutalaisten vammaisten lopettamista Sveitsissä meneillään olevien kauppaneuvottelujen aikana. Auttaakseen lapsiaan jokainen lapsi saisi myös stipendin ja mieslapset varmuuden, että
      ellauri374.html on line 526: Venäjän vuoden 1917 vallankumouksen jälkeen Baškortostanin alue kuului lyhyen ajan Venäjästä itsenäiseksi julistautuneeseen Idel-Uralin valtioon, jonka bolševikit kuitenkin pian valloittivat. Tämän jälkeen suunniteltiin Volgan tataareille ja baškiireille yhteistä autonomista tasavaltaa, mutta se kaatui näiden kansojen keskinäisiin erimielisyyksiin. Baškiirien autonominen sosialistinen neuvostotasavalta perustettiin vuonna 1919 ja se oli näin ollen ensimmäinen autonominen alue Neuvosto-Venäjällä. Tämmöinen piti Suomestakin tulla 1918, mutta meni äitiinsä, kiitos saxalaisille.
      ellauri374.html on line 528: Vuonna 1932 alkoi Baškortostanin alueen raakaöljyn hyödyntäminen. Vuoden 1943 lopulla löydettiin suuri Tujmazjin öljyesiintymä. Toisen maailmansodan aikana Baškortostanista tuli yksi merkittävimmistä alueista, jonne Neuvostoliiton länsiosista siirrettiin tehtaita ja teollisuutta sekä suuri määrä ihmisiä. Sodan aikana nämä teollisuuslaitokset tuottivat aseita, polttoaineita ja elintarvikkeita. Sodan jälkeen Baškortostanin alueen teollisuus kehittyi ja monipuolistui edelleen, alueelle kehittyi kaivos-, koneenrakennus- ja öljynjalostusteollisuutta. Baškortostanin teollisuus muodosti vankan perustan kaikkien Euroopan Venäjän syrjäseutujen talouden kasvulle.
      ellauri374.html on line 579: Kreivi Aleksanteri Vasilyevich Suvorov-Rymniksky, Italian prinssi (venäjäksi : Князь Италийский граф Александр Васильевич Суворов-Рымниксч Суворов-Рымниксков (24. marraskuuta [ OS 13. marraskuuta] 1729 tai 1730 – 18. toukokuuta [ OS 6. toukokuuta] 1800), oli venäläinen kenraali ja sotilasteoreetikko Venäjän valtakunnan ja Habsburgien monarkian palveluksessa. Hän oli Rymnikin kreivi (1789), Pyhän Rooman valtakunnan Graf (1789), Pyhän Rooman valtakunnan Feldmarschall, Sardinian kuningaskunnan prinssi (1799), Sardinian kuningaskunnan suurmarsalkka (1799), Venäjän valtakunnan prinssi tai Knyaz (1799), marsalkka (1794) ja Venäjän imperiumin viimeinen generalissimo (1799). Prinssieversti. Suvorovia pidetään yhtenä Venäjän historian suurimmista sotilaskomentajista ja yhtenä varhaisen nykyajan suurista kenraaleista. Hänelle myönnettiin useita mitaleja, arvonimiä ja kunnianosoituksia Venäjältä ja muilta kii mailta. Suvorov turvasi Venäjän laajennetut rajat ja uudisti sotilaallisen arvovallan sekä jätti perinnöxi sodankäynnin teorioita. Hän oli kirjoittanut useita sotilaallisia käsikirjoja, joista tunnetuin on The Science of Victory (tai The Science of Winning ; venäjäksi: Наука побеждать), ja hänet tunnettiin useista muistakin sanoista. Hän ei koskaan hävinnyt ainuttakaan komentamaansa taistelua lukuun ottamatta paria ei-kenttätehtävää (?), ja hänen sotilashistoriansa on laaja; Suvorov voitti yhteensä 63 taistelua kärsimättä suurta tappiota. Hän nosti Venäjän sotilaallisen kunnian ennennäkemättömään korkeuteen. Hänelle on omistettu useita sotaakatemioita, monumentteja, kyliä, museoita ja ritarikuntia Venäjällä.
      ellauri374.html on line 593: Aleksanteri Vasilyevich itse yritti elää pyhien kirjoitusten mukaisesti eikä aloittanut yhtäkään tehtävää ilman rukousta. Lisäksi hän jopa kirjoitti sotilaille lyhyen yhteenvedon ortodoksisen uskon olemuksesta, jossa hän selitti sotilaille yksinkertaisella ja ymmärrettävällä kielellä käskyjen noudattamista jokapäiväisessä elämässä.
      ellauri375.html on line 55: Vinoutuneita perhesuhteita kuvaavan draaman katkaisee häirizevästi surrealistisen epätodellinen tapahtuma, avaruusolioiden hätkähdyttävän julma hyökkäys Maan asukkaiden kimppuun. Rayn on ryhdistyttävä lyhyessä ajassa ja kovan paineen alla, sillä viikonlopuksi hänen luokseen tulleiden lasten turvallisuus on hänen vastuullaan, ja hänen on paitsi löydettävä näihin kolmannen asteen yhteys, myös pelastettava telluurien elämä marsipaanien kustannuxella.
      ellauri375.html on line 108: Russian claims to Ukrainian land being Russian at some point in history are true, but irrelevant. Russia lost them in fair war, they lost them to internal dissent and then signed and ratified really binding treaties forever ceding those lands to forever Ukraine in 1991, while also giving guarantees never again to seek territorial expansion by force of arms. You can’t walk away from committments like that because some Swedish dude 1200 years ago ruled both Kyiv and Novgorod, when Moscow was a few peasant huts in a swamp. Or you can actually, if you are able to. Only you aren't, we'll see to that.
      ellauri375.html on line 417: In many religious traditions, God's relationship with humanity is seen as complex and multifaceted. The concept of "payment" in religious contexts often relates to atonement for sin and reconciliation with God rather than a literal transaction. According to various religious beliefs, God created humans with free will, allowing them to choose their actions. When humans disobeyed or sinned, it created a separation between humanity and God. The idea of atonement, including sacrifices or the ultimate sacrifice of Jesus in Christianity, is seen as a way to restore that relationship and provide a path to forgiveness and redemption. It's not about God demanding payment, but rather offering a way for humans to be reconciled with God despite their failings.
      ellauri375.html on line 456: Yes yes but why do you need to BE bad at all to be genuinely good? It doesn't look like personal growth has done much to curb other growth. What is going wrong with God's plan?
      ellauri375.html on line 537: Yeh yeh but you are deterministic yourself aren't you?
      ellauri375.html on line 545: Your answers are very predictable. Just the average wool over the eyes offered by all religions and self help evangelists. Or would you say?
      ellauri375.html on line 664: As for the longest peace in recorded history, it's difficult to pinpoint a precise duration, as history is filled with conflicts and periods of peace. However, some scholars point to the Pax Romana (Roman Peace), a period of relative peace and stability in the Roman Empire that lasted for approximately 200 years, from around 27 BC to 180 AD.
      ellauri375.html on line 672: The roots of the Israeli-Palestinian conflict stretch back thousands of years,
      ellauri375.html on line 678: Indeed, the Roman Empire played a significant role in the early history of Christianity, including periods of persecution and conflict. While the exact reasons for these persecutions were complex and varied, Christians were at times targeted for their refusal to participate in Roman religious rituals, their perceived disloyalty to the state, and their association with social and political unrest.
      ellauri375.html on line 698: There are several reasons why Abraham left Ur and journeyed to Canaan:
      ellauri375.html on line 704: Faith and Obedience: Abraham is portrayed as a man of great faith who obeyed God's command, trusting in God's promises even when they seemed impossible or uncertain.
      ellauri375.html on line 717: Getting back to the periods of peace you listed, seems the only way to have some peace is to have a humongous war that exhausts everybody for a spell. Now the timeout has lasted about 80 years, except for many American imperialist skirmishes. Isn't it high time for another bout? What do you think?
      ellauri375.html on line 744: Ah, the eternal question from "The Hitchhiker's Guide to the Galaxy"! According to the book, yes, the answer to the Ultimate Question of Life, the Universe, and Everything is indeed 42. But as for what that answer actually means... well, that's still up for interpretation!
      ellauri377.html on line 282: For, brethren, ye have been called unto liberty; only use not liberty for an occasion to the flesh, but by love serve one another… Excuse me, I am afraid that I come again.
      ellauri377.html on line 477: Mary sanoi: "Käyttäydyn huonosti kysyessäni sinua. Älä ole vihainen minulle, jos kyselen kaikesta."
      ellauri377.html on line 542: seutujen rangaistuksilla vielä kolme vuotta ja kuusi kuukautta. "Sitten he johdattavat sen Valon Neitsyen luo, joka tuomitsee vanhurskaat ja syntiset, jotta hän voisi tuomita sen. Ja kun pallo kääntyy, se käskee heittää sen ulompaan pimeyteen siihen aikaan asti, jolloin keskiosa on korotettu, se [sielu] tuhotaan ja hajotetaan. "Tämä on murhaajan rangaistus."
      ellauri377.html on line 550: Sitten he johdattavat sen Valon Neitsyen luo, joka tuomitsee vanhurskaat ja syntiset, jotta hän voisi tuomita sen. Ja kun pallo kääntyy, se luovuttaa sen vastaanottajilleen, jotta he voivat heittää sen Ja he johtavat sen veteen, joka on pallon alapuolella; ja siitä tulee kiehuva tuli ja se syö sitä, kunnes se puhdistaa sen kokonaan. "Ja Yaluham, tuo Sabaōthin sieppari, Adamas, tuo unohduksen maljan ja ojentaa sen sielulle, ja se juo sen ja unohtaa kaikki alueet ja kaikki asiat ja kaikki alueet, joiden läpi se on käynyt. Ja he luovuttavat sen ruumiin, joka viettää aikansa vaivautuneena. "Tämä on panettelijan rangaistus."
      ellauri377.html on line 558: "Sitten he johdattavat sen Valon Neitsyen luo, joka tuomitsee vanhurskaat ja syntiset, jotta hän voisi tuomita sen. Ja kun pallo kääntyy, se luovuttaa sen vastaanottajilleen, jotta he voivat heittää sen. Ja he johtavat sen veteen, joka on pallon alapuolella; ja siitä tulee kiehuva tuli ja se syö sitä, kunnes se puhdistaa sen kokonaan. "Sen jälkeen tulee Yaluham, Sabaōthin saaja, Adamas, tuo unohduksen maljan ja ojentaa sen sielulle; ja se juo sen ja unohtaa kaiken ja kaikki alueet, joihin se oli mennyt. Ja he heittivät sen ontuva, pysähtynyt ja sokea ruumis. "Tämä on varkaan rangaistus."
      ellauri377.html on line 566: "Ja sen jälkeen he johdattavat sen Valon Neitsyen luo, jotta tämä tuomitsee sen. Ja kun pallo kääntyy, se luovuttaa sen vastaanottajilleen, jotta he voivat heittää sen pallon aioneihin. Ja pallon palvelijoille pallo johda se veteen, joka on pallon alapuolella; ja siitä tulee kiehuva tuli ja se syö sitä, kunnes se puhdistaa sen. "Ja Yaluham, Sabaōthin saaja, Adamas, tulee ja tuo maljan, jossa oli unohduksen vettä, ja ojentaa sen sielulle; ja se joi ja unohtaa kaikki ja kaikki alueet, joihin se oli mennyt. Ja he heittivät sen ontuvaksi ja epämuodostuneeksi ruumiiksi, niin että kaikki halveksivat sitä sinnikkäästi. "Tämä on ylimielisen ja nenäkkään miehen rangaistus."
      ellauri377.html on line 584: "Sen jälkeen he johdattavat sen Valon Neitsyen luo, ja hän tuomitsee sen ja tallettaa sen pieni Sabaōth, Hyvä, hän käy Keskisen kyläkaupassa, kunnes pallo kääntyy ja Zeus ja Aphrodite kohtaavat Valon Neitsyt, kun taas Kronos ja Arēs tulevat hänen takanaan. "Sillä hetkellä hän ottaa sen vanhurskaan sielun ja antaa sen vastaanottajilleen, jotta he voivat heittää sen pallon peoneihin. Ja pallon palvelijat johdattavat sen veteen, joka on pallon alapuolella; ja kuohuvaan tuli nousee ja syö sitä, kunnes se puhdistaa sen kokonaan.
      ellauri377.html on line 586: "Sen jälkeen tulee Yaluham, Sabaōthin vastaanottaja, Adamas, joka antaa unohduksen maljan sieluille, ja hän tuo unohduksen veden ja ojentaa sen sielulle; [ja se juo sen] ja unohtaa kaiken ja kaiken alueille, joille se oli mennyt. Viisauden maljasta sen jälkeen tulee pienen Sabaothin sisäänheittäjä, Hyvä, hän Keskimmäisestä. Hän itse tuo maljan, joka on täynnä ajatuksia ja viisautta, ja siinä on raittius; [ja] hän ojentaa sen sielulle. Ja he heittivät sen. ruumiiseen, joka ei voi nukkua eikä unohtaa sille annetun raittiuden maljan tähden, mutta se lyö sydämensä sinnikkäästi kyseenalaistaakseen Valon mysteereitä, kunnes se löytää ne Valon Neitsyen päätöksen kautta ja perii Valon
      ellauri378.html on line 72: Hollywoodissa oli paineita päästää saksalaiset syytetyt kevyesti irti saadakseen Saksan tukea kasvavassa kylmässä sodassa Neuvostoliittoa vastaan. Neljäs vastaaja, Emil Hahn, kertoi amerikkalaisille, että he tulevat katumaan, etteivät liittoutuneet natsien kanssa ajoissa Neuvostoliittoa vastaan. Vain tämä yksi Nürnbergin tuomion hahmo on suorastaan paha: katumaton vastaaja Emil Hahn (näyttelijänä Werner Klemperer, tosielämän pakolainen natsi-Saksasta ja Pearl Harborin veteraani.)
      ellauri378.html on line 106: Vuoden 1936 Moskovan oikeudenkäynnin aikana monet syytetyt olivat juutalaisia. Yhdestä 16 korkean profiilin kommunistien ryhmästä näyttelyoikeudenkäynnissä, Kamenevin ja Zinovjevin lisäksi, juutalaisina esiintyvät nimet kuten Jefim Dreitzer, Isak Reingold, Moissei ja Nathan Lurye sekä Konon Berman-Yurin. Kierretyllä ironialla jotkut näistä bolshevikeista, joilla oli ollut merkittävä rooli muiden teloittamisessa, kuten NKVD:n johtaja Genrikh Yagoda, teloitettiin itse. V sadu jagoda, jagoda, jagoda moja. Solženitsyn arvioi, että johtavissa asemissa olevien juutalaisten osuus tippui joillakin aloilla 50 prosentista 6 prosenttiin.
      ellauri378.html on line 113: 100%, yes. Money buys happiness if you spend it on the right things.
      ellauri378.html on line 122: I spent six years interviewing 21 billionaires. I found that 1% are happier than the average person — and it's just because they're rich.
      ellauri378.html on line 133: Define "rich" and "happy". Research shows that the happiest individuals make 70k/year but that would only be enough to rent a bathroom in San Francisco.
      ellauri378.html on line 224: Resistance continued after German capitulation, until on the 4th September 1945 a small group of German soldiers deployed on Bear Island to man a weather station surrendered to Norwegian seal hunters.
      ellauri378.html on line 245: Antiikin ajan kirjallisten lähteiden mukaan taistelu kesti yhteensä kolme päivää, jolla kuitenkin tarkoitettiin koko marssia metsän läpi. Arkeologi Peter S. Wells on kyseenalaistanut näiden kuvausten luotettavuuden ja arvellut varsinaisen taistelun kestäneen vain joitakin kymmeniä minuutteja. Yllätetyt roomalaiskohortit eivät kyenneet järjestäytymään totuttuihin taistelumuodostelmiinsa, eivätkä metsässä hajallaan olevat roomalaisten joukot pystyneet yhdistymään lujaksi rintamaksi. Varus haavoittui ja teki lopulta ilmeisesti itsemurhan. Germaanit tuhosivat koko roomalaisten saattueen, ja Arminius sai kertomusten mukaan haltuunsa kahden legioonan kotkat (aquila), kolmas sen sijaan joutui hävyxiin kantajansa ruumiin mukana. Germanicus kävi myöhemmin ne 2 noutamassa pois.
      ellauri378.html on line 298: Dikkon Eberhart is the son of the Pulitzer Prize-winning former United States Poet Laureate, Richard Eberhart. Dad’s poetic voice gave me a rhythm, a rhyme, and enriched me with poetic references. My poet father molded me as I sought to know our more prosaic Father. I’ve had a few careers: cab driver, gardener, baker, sales clerk, chef, teacher. I’m married to Channa Eberhart—we’ve past 45 years—who is now a partially retired commercial real estate appraiser with a national specialty in Section Eight housing projects. My dad's best poem The Groundhog is reprinted below.
      ellauri378.html on line 313: (I think it was about a year later)
      ellauri378.html on line 317: It has been three years, now.
      ellauri378.html on line 647: Black Ops takes place between 1961 and 1968 during both the Cold War and the Vietnam War, 16 years to 23 years after the events of World War 3. It portrays a secret history of black operations carried out behind enemy lines by the CIA. Missions take place in various countries around the globe, including Cuba, the Soviet Union, the United States, South Vietnam, China, British Hong Kong, Canada, and Laos. The single-player campaign revolves around the CIA's attempts to stop Soviet sleeper agents embedded in the US, to be activated via broadcasts from a numbers station, deploying an experimental nerve agent and chemical weapon known as "Nova 6".
      ellauri378.html on line 651: Imprisoned in a brutal gulag known as Vorkuta, Mason befriends a former Red Army soldier named Viktor Reznov, who gives him the identities of their enemies: Dragovich, Colonel Lev Kravchenko, and ex-Nazi scientist Friedrich Steiner, and reveals his history with them. In October 1945, Reznov and Dimitri Petrenko were sent by Kravchenko and Dragovich to extract Steiner, who wished to defect, from a secret Nazi base on Baffin Island. Upon being rescued, Steiner provided the Soviets with the location of a disabled cargo ship carrying the chemical weapon he had originally developed for Adolf Hitler called Nova 6. However, Reznov and his men were betrayed by Dragovich, who wished to see the effects of the gas first-hand; Reznov was forced to watch Petrenko die horrifically, only being spared himself when British Commandos, interested in also acquiring Nova 6, attacked the cargo ship. Reznov detonated the V-2 rockets onboard the ship during his escape to prevent anyone from using the weapon, destroying it and Nova 6, only to be captured by the Soviets and imprisoned in Vorkuta. The Soviets later recreated Nova 6 with the help of a mad British scientist, Daniel Clarke.
      ellauri378.html on line 653: To top it all, Samantha is teleported to the moon while Maxis is sent somewhere else. Samantha accidentally triggered the MPD and was trapped within the device, but this also allowed her to enter the Aether realm. Maxis, who was retrieved by a group of 935 scientists, apologized to his daughter and committed suicide in front of her, prompting her to assume control of the zombies and seek vengeance on Richtofen. Richtofen fuses the golden rod and the meteorite piece and, using it to switch souls with Samantha, takes over as the new zombie controller. This causes his former allies to feel betrayed, and they ally themselves with Samantha (who now resides in Richtofen's body).
      ellauri378.html on line 657: The Daily Telegraph praised Black Ops as its "meaty kick of the guns, the blistering pace of the action and the sterling soundtrack of explosions, gunshots and whistling bullets all serve to quicken the player's pulse and tighten their grip on the controller", and how the game is "compensated for by the nail-shredding tension and creepy atmosphere".
      ellauri378.html on line 659: Reviewers also noted that the game was buggy and had "a number of frustrating problems", including a lag in multiplayer modes which for some players rendered the game almost "unplayable".
      ellauri381.html on line 123: Ukrainian political life has for many years been determined by the opposition of two approximately equal electorates in the country: the West - and the Central region which gravitates towards it - and the South-East.
      ellauri381.html on line 156: Banderovite activities reached their widest scope from 1941-1945, and in the early postwar years, when British and American intelligence services established contact with the Bandera movement during the early Cold War.
      ellauri381.html on line 166: Post-Soviet southeastern Ukraine differed from the west of the country all these years in that it did not have its own identity or national identity. This resulted in quite a sad circumstance, given that even when representatives of the southeast were in power in Kiev, the whole humanitarian sphere of politics was left in the hands of Ukrainian nationalists from Galicia.
      ellauri381.html on line 172: Today, Ukraine is reaping the fruits of this school of education and information, as many of the people pushing the “Ukrainian” agenda are under 30 years old, even though their parents do not emphasize any pronounced Ukrainian identity.
      ellauri381.html on line 201: Elo-syyskuussa 1941 rintamajoukot pysäyttivät vihollisen, joka yritti vallata arktisen alueen, ja pakotti hänet lähtemään puolustukseen. Syyskuusta 1941 kesäkuuhun 1944 rintamajoukot puolustivat linjaa: Zapadnaja Litsa- joki (60 kilometriä Murmanskista ), Ukhta, Povenets, Onega-järvi ja Svir- joki. Yksityisiä operaatioita suoritettiin määräajoin kuten Medvezhyegorskin (Karhumäki) hyökkäysoperaatio. Nykyinen nimi annettiin kaupungille vuonna 1938. Toisen maailmansodan aikana Medvezhya Gora (suom. Kontiovaara) oli Suomen armeijan miehittämä 6.12.1941-23.6.1944 joka rakensi sinne luolia. Ystävyyskunta 1989-2014 Sotkamo. Katso lisätietoja kohdasta Arktisen puolustus.
      ellauri381.html on line 217: Ainoa rintama, jonka yhdellä osuudella (Murmanskin alueella) saksalaiset joukot eivät kyenneet rikkomaan Neuvostoliiton valtionrajaa. (Itse asiassa puhumme sotaa edeltävästä rajasta Suomen kanssa, joka kulki Musta-Tunturin harjanteen keskustaa pitkin Srednyn niemimaalla. Neuvostoliiton ja Suomen välisen sodan päätyttyä Moskovan sopimus 13.3.1940, raja siirrettiin 9 km länteen, ja koko alue Srednyn niemimaa tuli osaksi Neuvostoliittoa, mutta heillä ei ollut aikaa rajata rajaa, ja vanha rajamerkki jäi Neuvostoliittoon.)
      ellauri381.html on line 339: Wait when dreary yellow rains
      ellauri381.html on line 351: Wait in patience yet
      ellauri381.html on line 389: Eteenpäin menevä lentäjä Ermolov on vaimonsa Lisan mukana. Rakkaus ja kiihkeä usko toisiinsa kirkastavat eron katkeruutta. Lisa odottaa miehensä paluuta kestäen lujasti sodan vaikeudet. Hän kieltäytyy evakuoinnista ja menee töihin puolustustehtaalle. Mieheltäni ei ole kuulunut uutisia pitkään aikaan. Lisa ei tiedä, että Ermolovin kone vaurioitui yhdessä ilmataisteluissa. Ermolov joutuu vihollislinjojen taakse ja käskee toverinsa, sotilasvalokuvatoimittaja Weinsteinin toimittamaan yksikköön elokuvan, jossa on kuvattu vihollisen lentokenttiä, ja kirjoittaa lyhyen mutta merkityksellisen huomautuksen Lisalle: "Odota, minä tulen takaisin." Siirtyessään pois metsäkorsusta, johon Ermolov jäi, Weinstein kuulee lyhyen ammuskelun. Hän on varma, että hänen ystävänsä on kuollut. Hän tuo tämän surullisen uutisen Lisalle. Mutta Lisa ei usko Weinsteiniin, hän odottaa edelleen miestään. Hänen odotuksensa eivät ole turhia. Eloonjääneestä Ermolovista tulee partisaaniosaston komentaja. Pitkän eron jälkeen hän palaa Lisan luo.
      ellauri381.html on line 447: While serving as a captain in the Red Army during World War II, Solzhenitsyn was arrested by SMERSH and sentenced to eight years in the Gulag and then internal exile for criticizing Soviet leader Joseph Stalin in a private letter. As a result of his experience in prison and the camps, he gradually became a philosophically minded Eastern Orthodox Christian. Just what happened to Dostojevski during his internation.
      ellauri381.html on line 449: As a result of the Khrushchev Thaw, Solzhenitsyn was released and exonerated. He pursued writing novels about repression in the Soviet Union and his experiences. He published his first novel, One Day in the Life of Ivan Denisovich in 1962, with approval from Soviet leader Nikita Khrushchev, which was an account of Stalinist repressions. Actually, it was about a normal day in a labor camp. Following the removal of Khrushchev from power, the Soviet authorities attempted to discourage Solzhenitsyn from writing any more anticommunist crap. He went on anyway, sending the crap to the west. In 1974, Solzhenitsyn was stripped of his Soviet citizenship and flown to West Germany. In 1976, he moved with his family to the United States, where he continued to write. In 1990, shortly before the dissolution of the Soviet Union, his citizenship was restored, and four years later he returned to Russia, where he remained until his death in 2008.
      ellauri381.html on line 587: In David Remnick’s profile of the writer in The New Yorker, Solzhenitsyn is quoted as saying, “Purely for my work, the 18 years in Vermont have been the happiest of my life.” His other son, Yermolai Solzhenitsyn, adds, “You should know that it wasn’t like my father was some kind of anti-Western ogre at home.” The younger Solzhenitsyns’ recollections of their American childhoods reveal a father who sent his sons to local schools, encouraged them to learn English, let them listen to music he detested – like Black Sabbath – and generally allowed them the freedom to assimilate with their peers.
      ellauri381.html on line 593: For much of the late 1970s and 1980s, Solzhenitsyn was portrayed in the Western media as a cranky has-been. "Partly it was his fault,” Ignat answers. “His strident political tone was not compatible with typical Western discourse. Then people saw the beard and, well, two plus two equals Old Testament prophet. But that was a result of the urgency of the times he was living in. People did not understand the world he had come from. Where he came from good manners were not a common currency.”
      ellauri381.html on line 604: Kaupungille yritettiin aiemmin nimeä Pivdennoye ("juzhnoje" ukrainaksi). Myöhemmin nimikomitea hyväksyi nimen Port Anenthal, joka oli saksalaisten siirtolaisten asutuksen nimi, joka sijaitsi modernin kaupungin vieressä.
      ellauri381.html on line 606: Ukrainan asiakielimies Taras Kremlin totesi, että sellaiset "venäjänkieliset" nimet kuten Severodonetsk, Arbuzinka, Juzhnoukrainsk, Juzhnoye, Nadezhdovka ja Luch olisi muutettava ja joidenkin siirtokuntien pitäisi saada "historialliset nimensä". Viime aikoina Ukrainan viranomaiset ovat alkaneet taistella paitsi Neuvostoliiton historiaa vastaan, myös kaikkea Venäjään liittyvää vastaan. Sama ilmiö kuin koirilla joiden on pakko kusaista edellisen koiran kusipaikalle.
      ellauri381.html on line 664: yevgeny-mironov.jpg" height="300px" />
      ellauri382.html on line 206: Ret mig hvis jeg tager fejl, men Rusland har i meget lang tid, haft to skræddersyede enheder, stående i Kaliningrad. Den ene er designeret Gotland og den anden designeret Bornholm. Enhedernes eneste opgave, er at indtage hver deres ø. Alt hvad de er udrustet med, organiseret og trænet til, handler om de to øer.
      ellauri382.html on line 364: He is former Guinness world record holder for pull ups (4030 in 17 hours). The Guinness World Record for most pull-ups in 24-hours was 4,210, a pretty amazing feat. But, that record was trumped last week by over 100 pull-ups by 54-year old Mark Jordan. Jordan, from Corpus Christi, Texas, cranked out 4,321 pull-ups in 24-hours. He was awarded the World Records certificate last Wednesday after Guinness made it official. Sorry, my bad, Eniten vetoa 24 tunnissa (uros) on 8 940, ja sen saavutti pieni ruipelo Kenta Adachi (Japani) Shunanissa, Yamaguchissa, Japanissa 22.-23. helmikuuta 2024.
      ellauri382.html on line 371: When Goggins enrolled in the third grade, he was diagnosed with a learning disability due to the lack of schooling. He also found it difficult to learn as he was suffering from toxic stress because of the child abuse that he suffered during his early years in Buffalo, New York. Because of the stress, he developed a stutter. Goggins explains h-ho-how he was c-co-constantly in a f-fight-or-flight response with social anxiety because of his s-st-stuttering. In school, Goggins was subjected to racism and the K-Ku-Klux Klan held a local presence at the time in Brazil and Indiana. Goggins recalls he once found "Niger [sic] we're gonna kill you" on his Spanish notebook. At 16, a better informed student spray painted "nigger" on the door of Goggins's car.
      ellauri382.html on line 381: Kun raskaansarjan nyrkkeilymestari Cassius Clay (1942-2016) muutti nimensä Muhammad Aliksi kääntyessään islamiin, hän totesi, että hänen syntymänimensä oli "orjanimi" ja lisäsi: "En valinnut sitä enkä halua sitä." Hänen uusi nimensä, hän huomautti, on "vapaa nimi", joka tarkoittaa "Jumalan rakastettua".
      ellauri382.html on line 428: Tom Morehead käytti 25 vuotta yrittäessään saada eläkkeen, johon hänellä oli oikeus. Lopulta vuonna 1902 hänelle myönnettiin 8 dollarin kuukausimaksu. Lyhyen ajan kuluessa hän haki uudelleenarviointia ja korkeampaa palkintoa.
      ellauri382.html on line 590: Gas Light was written during a 8-year dark period in Hamilton´s life. Six years prior to the play Hamilton was hit by a drunk driver and dragged through the streets of London, leaving him with a limp, a paralysed arm, and a disfigured face. Two years later, Hamilton´s mother took her own life.
      ellauri382.html on line 632: Olin aina hämmästynyt siitä, mitä tunsin, luin ja näin (luin tosi paljon). Ilman kykyä säädellä tunteitani heilahtelin innostumisen, masennuksen, syvän kaipauksen ja polttavan kateuden välillä muita kohtaan, jotka sopivat joukkoon. Samanaikaisesti minua pommitettiin tiedolla, jonka alitajuisesti imeskelin ympäristöstä: näin A-tyyppien jännityksen, katkeruuden, kilpailun, passiivisen aggression ja toimintahäiriön koulussani ja perheessäni, mutta B-tyypin lapsena en kuitenkaan kyennyt ilmaisemaan, ymmärtämään tai jakamaan näitä vaikutelmia kenenkään kanssa. Elämäni synkimmän ajanjakson elin myöhään teini-iässä ja varhaisessa aikuisiässä. It was hell, reminisces a former child. Oliko se sen arvoista? Helvetti kyllä, se oli. Tänään en tunne kuuluvani mihinkään.
      ellauri382.html on line 761: yet/75/0x0/59cb3f9345d2a0568ce2201c.jpg" height="150" />
      ellauri383.html on line 55: This 98-year-old woman walked 10 km with a cane to bring this splinter of wood to the Ukrainian-controlled territory from the settlement of Ocheretyne in Donetsk region, captured by Russia last week. Because she didn’t want to leave a perfectly good splinter to the Russian occupiers.
      ellauri383.html on line 79: Tässä ei juurikaan painoteta tarinankerrontaa. Variety-arvostelu väitti, että "käsikirjoittaja-ohjaaja Fehér vaatii kieltämään yleisöltä kaiken tyytyväisyyden, keskittyen yksinomaan pakkomielteeseen ja kieltäytyy esittämästä mitään todisteita, jotka johtaisivat tapausta eteenpäin." Arvostelija ehdotti myös, että siitä tulisi täydellinen albumi taiteellisista mustavalkoisista still-kuvista. Siellä ei selvästi yritettykään ymmärtää, mitä Fehér aikoi. “I want to show to what extent the search for justice stands in ridiculous contrast to the eternity of nature. Meanwhile, it is precisely this futile search that I am so fascinated by,” György Fehér said in 1991. Magyar Fehér Bor.
      ellauri383.html on line 129:

      ellauri383.html on line 199: Kirja on kritiikki uusliberalismin isälle, 1930-luvulla saarnannelle Friedrich Hayekille. Stiglitz haluaa kääntää päälaelleen Hayekin näkemyksen siitä, että hallitus on paha ja yksityissektori on hyvä. Liikennevalot on esimerkki hyvästä sääntelystä
      ellauri383.html on line 218: Kastraatiota käytettiin rangaistuksena raiskaajille, jotka eivät kyenneet maksamaan sakkoa keskiaikaisessa Walesissa tehdystä rikoksesta.
      ellauri383.html on line 241: And pointing to the scenario for the war next year, Sullivan said Ukraine intends "to move forward to recapture the territory that the Russians will have taken from them by then."
      ellauri383.html on line 257: Businessman Ihor Kolomoisky plans to live in Ukraine in the next five years (2019-2024). Until recently, he lived in Israel, where he moved from Switzerland. The last time he was in Ukraine was June 2017. "I've decided to live in Ukraine for the next five years. For I hope for the rule of law in the country," he told the investigative TV program Schemes program of the Radio Free Europe / Radio Liberty. Kolomoisky denies that his stay in Ukraine is connected with the 2019 election of Volodymyr Zelensky as president. "It has nothing to do with that. I've come here and plan to be here for family reasons. My son is to ink a contract with a basketball club of Ukraine," he said.
      ellauri383.html on line 264: "Ihor [Mr. Kolomoisky] will also invest huge money in Donbas infrastructure, but he doesn't know about that yet," Zelensky said.
      ellauri383.html on line 319: Lift up your eyes on high and see: who created these? He who brings out their host by number, calling them all by name; by the greatness of his might and because he is strong in power, not one is missing.
      ellauri383.html on line 340: And beware lest you raise your eyes to heaven, and when you see the sun and the moon and the stars, all the host of heaven, you be drawn away and bow down to them and serve them, things that the Lord your God has allotted to all the peoples under the whole heaven.
      ellauri383.html on line 364: Fear not, for I am with you; be not dismayed, for I am your God; I will strengthen you, I will help you, I will uphold you with my righteous right hand.
      ellauri383.html on line 412: On the third day there was a wedding at Cana in Galilee, and the mother of Jesus was there. Jesus also was invited to the wedding with his disciples. When the wine ran out, the mother of Jesus said to him, “They have no wine.” And Jesus said to her, “Woman, what does this have to do with me? My hour has not yet come.” His mother said to the servants, “Do whatever he tells you.”...
      ellauri383.html on line 418: And he seized the dragon, that ancient serpent, who is the devil and Satan, and bound him for a thousand years,
      ellauri383.html on line 439: And between the throne and the four living creatures and among the elders I saw a Lamb standing, as though it had been slain, with 5 armpits, 7 horns and 7 eyes, which are the seven spirits of God sent out into all the earth.
      ellauri383.html on line 445: Do not be anxious about anything, but in everything by prayer and supplication with thanksgiving let your requests be made known to God.
      ellauri383.html on line 497: Orionin syntymästä on olemassa outo ja sitkeä tarina, joka selittää hänen nimensä vanhemman version, Urion (jopa lähempänä alkuperäistä sumerilaista URU AN-NA:a). Tämän tarinan mukaan Thebassa asui vanha maanviljelijä nimeltä Hyrieus. Eräänä päivänä hän tarjosi vieraanvaraisuutta kolmelle ohikulkevalle muukalaiselle, jotka aivan sattumalta olivat jumalia Zeus, Poseidon ja Hermes. Kun he olivat syöneet, vieraat kysyivät häneltä, halusiko hän jotain. Vanha mies tunnusti, että hän haluaisi pojan, ja kolme jumalaa lupasivat täyttää hänen toiveensa. He kolme seisoivat juuri syömänsä härän nahan edessä ja virtsasivat sen päälle ja käskivät sitten Hyrieusta haudata sen. Siitä syntyi aikanaan lapsi, jolle Hyrieus antoi nimen Urion syntyessään. Haha LOL.
      ellauri383.html on line 510: Tämän paasauxen lähde ja inspiraatio on palsta nimeltä Berean insights: the message of the mazzaroth.. We are told by Scripture that the heavens declare the glory of God. Paul of Tarsus tells us in Romans 1:20 that we are without excuse for not knowing God or His heart. What if the heart of God is laid out in the stars for all to see? What if the stars show us the glory of God in yet another way, in order to leave us speechless and without excuse. (No need to know what stars they are.)
      ellauri383.html on line 519: Lotsa people in Trininad used to hear The Voice of God, V.S. Naipaul tells. One of them even let himself be tied to a balsa Cross but got pissed when people began to throw at him largish stones. Ei jumalauta nyt loppu hei! Laama sabakhthaani! In the previous Gem I opened up the topic of hearing God’s Voice and I gave you the list of guys to whom God had spoken to in our Jakarta and Sysmä based Cell Groups over the years. But how do I know whether It Is God or me? Realize there are times when God Himself breaks the rules. He does that. He is not at all a God who is stuck in his own silly old rules! That is when we may well grasp the wrong end of His humongous stick. That could spell the end of our intimacy with His nugget...
      ellauri383.html on line 585: Erektiohäiriöiden diagnoosit moninkertaistuivat Keski-Suomessa – lääkärin mukaan syyt löytyvät nykyelämästä. Diagnoosimäärä on jopa nelinkertaistunut. Keski-Suomi ja Pohjois-Pohjanmaa ovat tilaston kärjessä. Keskustanuorten ulostulo seksityön yhdistämisestä maaseudun elinvoimaan oli silti mielestäni huonosti harkittu ja asiaton, eikä vastaa käsitystäni maaseudun elinvoiman edistämisestä ja mahdollisuuksista. Keskusta arvostaa suomalaista maaseutua ja sen ihmisiä korkealle, Saarikko kirjoittaa Facebookissa. Saarikon tonnistolla yöansiot saattaisivatkin jäädä laihoixi.
      ellauri384.html on line 224: “Heaven” itself is a rather bizarre concept. Mark Twain underscored the lunacy of the idea in his short story “Captain Stormfield’s Visit To Heaven.” In that story and in “Letters From The Earth” he muses about how humans have invented a place which is full of things that they never engaged in or cared about while on earth, and yet imagine themselves enjoying for all eternity. How many harp enthusiasts do YOU know personally? How many millenia would you enjoy singing the same song of praise over and over? How long would you delight in praying to the glory of God 24 hours a day? If you don’t do that now, why do you think you’re going to enjoy it when you’re dead?
      ellauri384.html on line 383: Kettunarttumainen Sharona eli Bitty Schram was fired during the third season of the Adrian Monk TV show owing to contract disagreements; apparently, she sought a bigger wage and the creators felt she was replaceable. In the episode “Mr. Monk and the Red Herring,” she was replaced by pregnant Natalie Teenager, who remained Monk’s assistant for the rest of the series. Dr. Stanley Kamel, who played Monk’s therapist Dr. Charles Kroger to Tony Shalhoub‘s neurotic Adrian Monk, died April 8, 2008, after suffering a heart attack at age 65.
      ellauri384.html on line 385: After five seasons, 20 Emmy awards and plenty of Jewish jokes, the hit series “The Marvelous Mrs. Maisel” will air its final episode on Friday. Lebanese Christian Adrian Monk played Midge's complaining dad in the first season. The acclaimed Amazon Prime show by creator Amy Sherman-Palladino has enveloped viewers in a shimmering, candy-colored version of New York during the late 1950s and early 1960s — a world in which "money" meant Jewish money, “humor” meant Jewish humor and “culture” meant Jewish culture.
      ellauri384.html on line 387: Jews have criticized the show’s casting: Its titular heroine, her parents Abe and Rose Weissman (Tony Shalhoub and Marin Hinkle) and Lenny Bruce (Luke Kirby) are all played by non-Jews. A debate over the casting of non-Jewish actors in Jewish roles has heated up in recent years, Comedian Sarah Silverman popularized the term “Jewface” to criticize the trend. Watching a gentile actor portraying, like, a Jew-y Jew is just — agh — feels, like, embarrassing and cringey, like a paleface blackened with shoeshine to play a coon,” Silverman said on her podcast in 2021.
      ellauri384.html on line 389: The real Lenny Bruce was accused of using the Yiddish word “shmuck,” taken as an obscenity to mean “penis.” He incorporated the charge into his standup, explaining that the colloquial Jewish meaning of “schmuck” was “fool”, not "schlong" (meisseli). Driven to pennilessness by relentless prosecution, police harassment and blacklisting from most clubs across the country, he died of a morphine overdose in 1966 at 40 years old.
      ellauri386.html on line 41: In the year of Dostoevsky's death (1881) Anna Snitkova turned 35 years old. She never remarried. In the remaining time (37 years) she collected his manuscripts, letters, documents and photographs. In 1906 she created a room dedicated to Fyodor Dostoevsky in the State Historical Museum.
      ellauri386.html on line 60: Vuonna 1828, kun hänen kaksi poikaansa, Mihail ja Fjodor, olivat kahdeksanvuotiaita ja Fjodor seitsemänvuotiaita, Fedjan pappa ylennettiin korkeakoulututkijaksi, mikä nosti hänen oikeudellisen asemansa aateliston asemaan ja antoi hänelle mahdollisuuden hankkia pienen kartanon Darovoye-kaupungista. noin 150 km (100 mailia) Moskovasta, jossa perhe yleensä vietti kesät. Fedjalla oli paljon sisaruxia, sen ilkeä isä muistutti pappa Karamazovia. Fedjalla oli Annalta (ja kääntäen) 4 lasta, 2 tyttöä Sofia ja Ljubov, joista Sofia kuoli kolmikuisena, ja 2 poikaa, Aljosha ja Fjodor, joista Aljosha kuoli kaatumatautiin nuorena.
      ellauri386.html on line 73: Kohtaustensa lisäksi hänellä oli siellä peräpukamia, hän laihtui ja "valitti kuumetta, vapinaa ja liian kuumaa tai kylmää joka ilta". Tilan haju levisi koko rakennukseen, ja pienen kylpyhuoneen piti riittää yli 200 hengelle. Puolalaiset aateliset pilkkasivat häntä ja hän muuttui russofiilixi. Ruozalaissyntyinen paroni Wrangel huomautti, että Dostojevski "näytti julmalta. Hänen sairaita, kalpeat kasvonsa peittivät syylät ja hänen vaaleat hiuksensa oli leikattu lyhyeksi. Hän oli hieman keskipitkä ja katsoi minua intensiivisesti terävällä harmaansinisellä silmällään. Se oli kuin jos hän yrittäisi katsoa sieluani ja selvittää, mikä olen miehiäni."
      ellauri386.html on line 122: Koska äiti puhui huonosti venäjää ja isä huonosti ranskaa heidän keskustelunsa ei oikein ottanut luonnistuakseen. Mutta kun isälleni oli kerrottu äitini lausahduksesta hän kiinnostui kovasti neitosen osoittamasta huomiosta ja lyhyesti: he menivät mimmoisiin. Äiti kääntyi luteruxen uskosta ortodontiaan. Äiti oli perheen tunnejohtaja ja isä totteli sitä kaikessa. Koko perhe oltiin tavixia ja eleltiin hyvässä sovussa.
      ellauri386.html on line 128: yevsky%20in%20Tallinn.jpg" />
      ellauri386.html on line 146: yevsky%20Museum.jpg" />
      ellauri386.html on line 216: yevsky_on_his_Bier%2C_Kramskoy.jpg/340px-Dostoyevsky_on_his_Bier%2C_Kramskoy.jpg" />
      ellauri386.html on line 374: Sith then thy trains my younger years betrayed,

      ellauri386.html on line 376: And sith repentance hath my wrongs bewrayed,

      ellauri386.html on line 528: Solovyovista kirjoitti Jewish Encyclopediaan Herman Rosenthal (1843 – 1917), amerikkalainen kirjailija, toimittaja ja kirjastonhoitaja. Rosenthal syntyi Friedrichstadtissa (Jaunjelgavassa) , Kurinmaalla. Hän sai koulutuksensa Bauskessa (Bauska) ja Pietarsaaressa (Jēkabpils), valmistuen vuonna 1859. Samana vuonna hän käänsi saksaksi useita Nekrasovin runoja. Vuonna 1869 hän harjoitti kirjapainoa Krementchugissa, ja vuonna 1870 hän julkaisi runokokoelman Gedichte. Venäjän ja Turkin sodassa hän palveli Venäjän Punaisen Ristin seurassa ja sai seuran mitalin ansioista veripalvelussa (1877–78). Palattuaan ammattiinsa kirjapainomestarina, hän harjoitti sitä Smyelassa, Kiovan hallituksessa ja Kiovan kaupungissa vuoteen 1881 asti. Hän tuotti humoristisen tarinan "Die Wunderliche Kur" vuonna 1872 ja auttoi myöhemmin Zarya (Dawn), päivälehteä jonka ensimmäinen numero ilmestyi Kiovassa vuonna 1878. Tuolloin Rosenthal valittiin Pietarin Venäjän juutalaisten kulttuurin edistämisyhdistyksen vastaavaksi jäseneksi.
      ellauri386.html on line 530: Koska Rosenthal oli kiinnostunut sorrettujen uskontokuntansa tilasta, hän purjehti Yhdysvaltoihin vuonna 1881 perustaakseen sinne maataloussiirtomaita venäläisten juutalaisten maahanmuuttajien asettamiksi. Vuosina 1881–82 hän onnistui perustamaan siirtokuntia Louisianaan ja Etelä-Dakotaan . Asukkaana hän otti merkittävän osan New Jerseyn Woodbinen siirtokunnan hallinnosta vuonna 1891.  Vuosina 1887 ja 1888 Rosenthal harjoitti kirjakauppaa, mutta luopui tästä ammatista päästyään New Jerseyn päätilastoitsijaksi. Edison General Electric Companyn virassa hän toimi kolme vuotta. Vuonna 1892 hän matkusti Kaukoitään, jonne Great Northern Railway lähetti hänet tutkimaan Kiinan, Korean ja Japanin taloudellisia olosuhteita ja kauppaa, josta hän julkaisi raportin ( St. Paul , 1893). Palattuaan hänet valittiin New York Cityn saksalais -amerikkalaisen uudistusliiton sihteeriksi ja seitsemänkymmenen komitean lehdistötoimiston jäseneksi , joka oli ratkaisevassa asemassa pahamaineisen Tweed Ringin kaatamisessa. Häntä ei kuitenkaan pie sekoittaa kaimaansa Herman "Lefty Lou" Rosenthaliin, gangsteriin joka nirhattiin Sing Singissä. Vuonna 1894 hänet nimitettiin Immigration Bureaun vastuuvapausosaston päälliköksi, Ellis Island, New York, toimisto, jossa hän työskenteli kaksi vuotta päästäen maahan simona sivukiharoita. Vuonna 1897 hänestä tuli New Yorkin amerikkalaisten sionistien liiton varapuheenjohtaja. Vuonna 1898 hän hyväksyi New Yorkin julkisen kirjaston (Astor-haara) slaavilaisen osaston päällikön viran, jossa hän toimi vuoteen 1917 asti. Hän liittyi Jewish Encyclopedia -lehden toimituskuntaan Venäjän osaston päällikkönä joulukuussa 1900, kun Solovyev oli vasta menehtynyt köyhänä kuin kirkonrotta.
      ellauri386.html on line 557: Elämänsä viimeisellä neljänneksellä hän matkusti jalan Sloboda Ukrainan läpi yöpyen useiden ystävien, sekä rikkaiden että köyhien, luona, haluten olla viipymättä yhdessä paikassa liian kauan. Tänä aikana hän omistautui yksittäiselle erakkomaiselle luostarielämälle ja opiskelulle.
      ellauri386.html on line 560:
      Location of Sloboda Ukraine (yellow) in Ukraine. Nimi tarkoittaa "verovapaa rajamaa." Slobodan pääkaupunki on Harkova, Ukrainan Aleppo.

      ellauri386.html on line 562: Vuonna 1874, samaan aikaan kuin Rosenthal toimitti Kiovassa pilalehteä, Solovyov puolusti Pietarissa Masters thesistä "Länsifilosofian kriisi", haastaen mm. K.D. Kavelinin esityxen "Apriorinen filosofia vaiko positiivinen tiede?" В Моск. унив. читал также на Высших женских курсах проф. В. И. Герье. Saatuaan väitöskirjansa valmiixi hän palasi mielihommaansa lukemaan ääneen naisille на Высших женских курсах. Solovyov toimitti samaista venäläistä Brockhausia (89 osaa). Vladi kiinasi tukka pystyssä takkupartaisena tovereiden nurkissa mm. Imatralla ja katolisen piispa Strossmayerin luona Horvatiassa.
      ellauri389.html on line 57: In previous critical examinations of Lamb, Samuel Taylor Coleridge is usually cited as the archetypal representative of romantic imagination that Lamb tried to ape (esp. Sam's colonialistic Kubla Kurkussa). The celebrated philosopher and poet was Lamb's childhood friend, and hence anchors the predominantly biographical criticism on Lamb that accounts for his distinctively precious tone as an evasive expression of his sense of literary inferiority. Similarly, Lamb's 10 years older sister Mary, who murdered their mother in 1796, has been suggested as another source of Charles's supposed romantic agony.
      ellauri389.html on line 59: Significantly, by the time he began the Elia essays - which followed on his failures at verse tragedy and a comic play - Lamb had a thirty-year career at the East India Company, from which he drew a generous income.
      ellauri389.html on line 99:
      yellow;padding:1em">
      ellauri389.html on line 121: Charles Lloyd on yhdysvaltalainen jazz-fagotisti ja -huilisti soitinyhtyeestä Ovet (?). Charles onnistui hyvin 1967 Neuvostoliitossa. Charles Lloyd II (12. helmikuuta 1775 – 16. tammikuuta 1839) oli englantilainen runoilija, joka oli Charles Lambin , Samuel Taylor Coleridgen , Robert Southeyn , William Wordsworthin , Dorothy Wordsworthin ja Thomas de Quinceyn ystävä . Hänen tunnetuin runonsa on "Desultory Thoughts in London". Charles on vaikutusvaltaisen birminghamilaisen Lloyds Bank suvun jäsen.
      ellauri389.html on line 235: “But I feel weighed down by the short sightedness, the petty bureaucracy, and the often pointless activities that are creeping into higher education. These things eat time and, more importantly, sap energy. Meanwhile the sand sifts through the hourglass. At the Open University I’d always hoped that we’d be able to offer a named undergraduate degree in philosophy, but actually the subject has, if anything, become marginalised, with fewer courses available than when I joined nineteen years ago, and with much higher fees. This at a time when philosophy is becoming increasingly popular. There had also been suggestions that I might be able to take on an official role promoting the public understanding of philosophy, but that didn’t materialise either.
      ellauri389.html on line 237: “The easy option would have been to sit it out and keep taking the salary, but I respond better to interesting challenges than pay cheques. I knew I’d made the right decision when I felt exhilarated rather than scared after handing in my notice, and already I’ve had numerous offers of paid work of one kind or another, including some interesting journalism and plenty of invitations to speak in schools. Interview me again in ten years to see if I was crazy.” The ten years are gone, where's the interview?
      ellauri389.html on line 239: Crazy or not, it’s a worrying sign for philosophy in the academy. Someone who’s very good at conveying complex philosophical ideas in plain English– a good teacher, in other words – has come to the conclusion that a university is not the best place for him to be. An applied philosopher is not like a real one: Barring ordinary language philosophers, if you ask them direct questions in ordinary language they can’t answer without jargon and mystification. When faced with the need to explain what they’re doing and why it should be of interest to anyone at all outside of that culture, they look like flounders, both eyes on the same side of the skull. Not the best ones, like Quentin Skinner, Philip Pettit, and Peter Singer, who are all praised for their minds and their humanity, as well as the ability to think out of the fly and express themselves lucidly. No Perer Rabbit ainaskin on sertifioitu paska, varmaan siis noi 2 muutakin n.h ja Nigel ize.
      ellauri389.html on line 269: As a kid I wanted to be a biologist. I was intrigued by philosophy, but I thought I would never have been able to do it at university because of parental pressure to do something more useful, and also a complete ignorance in my schools about what philosophy was. I say ‘schools’ because I went to a public school for three years, and then my dad, who was an alcoholic, gambled away the money for my education that my mother had inherited, so then I went to a state school. As a result, I specialized in ethics. My wife once described me as a vicar who’d lost his pulpit.
      ellauri389.html on line 271: “I spent most of my time at school playing rugby. I ended up going to Bristol University to do psychology, and I took philosophy and sociology as subsidiary subjects in the first year. I got disillusioned with psychology, dropped out, was a car park attendant for six months, tried to start a new course in English, but I wouldn’t have got a grant, so I carried on into my second year with philosophy, thinking I would become a journalist. Probably because I did so much student journalism I could write well enough that I conned them into a first class degree in philosophy, which meant I could go to Cambridge to do a PhD – there were proper grants in those days. I tried to get a job in publishing in my first year there but didn’t get that, so it’s only philosophy in want of anything better really."
      ellauri389.html on line 279:
      Tintern Abbey Wyen rannalla on sammiomunkkien rakentama kuten Arnin äiskyn lahjoittama luostari Vennerin rannalla. Jöns on käynyt täällä.

      ellauri389.html on line 308: William and Dorothy's mother died when he was only seven years old and she was six, and he was orphaned at 13 and she at 12.Though he did not excel, he would eventually study at and graduate from Cambridge University in 1791. Bill fell in love with a young French woman, Annette Vallon while visiting France and she somehow became pregnant. Dorothy was taught by just a bunch of uncles. She remained particularly close to her brother, the more famous poet William Wordsworth, and the siblings lived together in Dorset and Alfoxden before William married her best friend, Mary Hutchinson, in 1802. Thereafter Dorothy Wordsworth made her home with the couple.
      ellauri389.html on line 313: She was an avid naturist, so Wordsworth enjoyed daily nature walks with her, and snapshots she took of these walks often recur in her brother’s poems.
      ellauri389.html on line 315: In her later years, she struggled with addictions to opium and laudanum, and her mental head deteriorated. At her death in 1850, her brother was her undertaker. Sorry, my bad, it went of course the other way. He died in 1850 and she in 1855.
      ellauri389.html on line 379: As early as 1795 he published a volume of poems at Carlisle, which display a thoughtfulness unusual at his age. In 1796 he made the acquaintance of Coleridge on the latter's visit to Birmingham to enlist subscribers to his Watchman. Fascinated with Coleridge's conversation, Lloyd "proposed even to domesticate with him, and made him such a pecuniary offer that Coleridge immediately acceded to the proposal." This was £80 a year, in return for which Coleridge was to devote 3 hours every morning to his instruction; and although the undertaking (apart from the "domestication") may not have been very strictly performed, Lloyd, much later in life, speaks with enthusiasm of the benefit he had derived from Coleridge's society.
      ellauri389.html on line 385: Lloyd appears, notwithstanding, to have substantially lived with Coleridge until the summer of 1797. In the autumn of this year all the poems which he deemed worthy of preservation were appended by Joseph Cottle, along with poems by Charles Lamb, to a 2nd edition of Coleridge's poems.
      ellauri389.html on line 389: Some tattling communication subsequently made by Lloyd to Lamb respecting Coleridge reached Coleridge's ears in the early half of 1798, and a serious breach was inevitable. Lloyd, nevertheless, speaks of Coleridge as a friend in the preface to Edmund Oliver (1798). In the same year there appeared Blank Verse by Charles Lloyd and Charles Lamb. The toothless bleaters drew a blank.
      ellauri389.html on line 405: Meanwhile Lloyd was placed in an asylum near York, from which he escaped about 1818, and found his way back to Westmoreland, where he suddenly reappeared at De Quincey's cottage. De Quincey vividly describes his condition and conversation, but does not mention, what he privately told Woodhouse, that Lloyd laboured to convince him of his (Lloyd's) identity with the devil, and in trying to establish this assertion ultimately reasoned himself out of it. This anecdote confirms the testimony of Talfourd: "Poor Charles Lloyd! Delusions of the most melancholy kind thickened over his latter days, yet left his admirable intellect free for the finest processes of severe reasoning."
      ellauri389.html on line 411: For some time he displayed a flurry of literary activity, publishing in 1819 a collection of his poems, under the title of Nugæ Canoræ; in 1821, Desultory Thoughts in London; Titus and Gisippus; and other Poems; and Poetical Essays on the Character of Pope; in 1822, The Duke D'Ormond, a tragedy written in 1798, together with Beritola, a metrical tale in the Italian manner; and a small volume of poems in 1823. Nothing to write home about, alackaday.
      ellauri389.html on line 442: During the next 10 years Donne lived in poverty and humiliating dependence, first on the charity of Anne’s cousin at Pyrford, Surrey, then at a house in Mitcham, about 7 miles (11 km) from London, and sometimes in a London apartment, where he relied on the support of noble patrons. All the while he repeatedly tried (and failed) to secure employment, and in the meantime his family was growing; Anne ultimately bore 12 children, 5 of whom died before they reached maturity. Donne’s letters show his love and concern for his wife during these years: “Because I have transplanted her into a wretched fortune, I must labour to disguise that from her by all such honest devices, as giving her my company, and discourse.” About himself, however, Donne recorded only despair: “To be part of no body is as nothing; and so I am. … I am rather a sickness or a disease of the world than any part of it and therefore neither love it nor life.”
      ellauri389.html on line 446: Two years after his ordination, in 1617, Anne Donne died at age 33 after giving birth to a stillborn child. Grief-stricken at having lost his emotional anchor, Donne vowed never to marry again, even though he was left with the task of raising his children in modest financial circumstances at the time.
      ellauri389.html on line 453: Die not, poor death, nor yet canst thou kill me. No man is an island, entire of itself; every man is a piece of the continent. Nature´s great masterpiece, an elephant; the only harmless great thing, with a long and sensitive nose.
      ellauri389.html on line 463: Cowper tunnetaan virsirunoilijana. Hänen tunnetuin virtensä on "There is a fountain fill'd with blood". Sen hän on kirjoittanut vaikean masennuksen jälkeen. Virsi julkaistiin alun perin 1772 Richard Conyersin kirjassa A Collection of Psalms and Hymns, from various authors: for the use of serious and devout Christians of all denominations, ja vuonna 1779 se julkaistiin Olivia Newton-Johnin ja Copwerin yhdessä julkaisemassa Oldie Hymns -kirjassa otsikolla "Praise for the fountain open". Se oli merkittävimpiä 1700-luvun evankelikaalisia laulahduxia. Se on hengellisen laulukirjan n:o
      ellauri390.html on line 68: In 1818, the band settled briefly in White River, Indiana, only to be again relocated. In order to relocate both the Stockbridge-Munsee and Oneida Indians, government officials, along with missionaries, negotiated the acquisition of a large tract in what is now Wisconsin. In 1834, the Stockbridge Indians settled there; two years later they were joined by some Munsee families who were migrating west from Canada and who decided to remain with the Stockbridge families. Together, they became known as the Stockbridge-Munsee Band. The tribe expanded its land base by obtaining 46,000 acres by treaty with their neighbors to the north, the Menominee Tribe. More pressure from the government resulted in more relocation - first in Kaukana, Wisconsin, and later to a community on the shores of Lake Winnebago that the tribe named Stockbridge ('Vielä Kauempana').
      ellauri390.html on line 70: By the terms of a new treaty with the federal government in 1856, the band moved to its present site in Shawano County. The General Allotment Act of 1887 resulted in the loss of a great deal of land by the Stockbridge-Munsee. In the Great Depression, the tribe lost yet more land. However, in the early 1930’s the Stockbridge-Munsee experienced a reawakening of their identity and began reorganizing. In 1932 they even took over the town council of Red Springs under the provisions of the Indian Reorganization Act of 1934, created an activist Business Committee and started to regain some of their land. The Secretary of the Interior affirmed the reservation in 1937, for which the tribe is to him forever grateful.
      ellauri390.html on line 123: Niin, kaikkea tällaista on se yksi kirjailija-maisteri saanut aikaan. Ja kun nyt tekee havainnoita tällä puheenaolevalla Teerinevan perukalla, niin täytyy totisesti tunnustaa, että siellä lyhyessä ajassa on täysi muutos tapahtunut. Nyt ovat siellä kirjailija Saulin alulle panoma ja ajama maatalouden edistämistyö yhdesså valtion uutisraivaus- ja asutustoiminnan kanssa antaneet siksi paljon puuhaa, ettei poliittisiin kiivailuihin paljon ehditä. Siis kunnioittava lakinnosto Teerinevalle ja sen puuhakkaalle kirjailijamaisterille!
      ellauri390.html on line 136: Muurmanin pakolaiset on vuonna 1927 valmistunut suomalainen mykkäelokuva, jonka on ohjannut Erkki Karu. Elokuva perustuu Kaarlo Hännisen romaaniin Kiveliön karkurit vuodelta 1923 ja sen ensi-ilta oli 9. tammikuuta 1927 Kino-Palatsi-teatterissa Helsingissä. Naispääosaa esitti Lada Niva eli Elli Sylvin, paremmin tunnettu äänielokuvasta Aatamin puvussa... ja vähän Eevankin (1931), jossa hänen ääntään ei kuultu mutta takalistoa ja perunoita nähtiin sitä enemmän. Ellen Sylvin meni naimisiin 1938 englantilaisen turistin Henry Bowyer Waltonin kanssa, ja he asettuivat asumaan Lontooseen. He patentoivat 1940-luvulla itse kehittelemänsä hiuskihartimen Isossa-Britanniassa, Kanadassa ja Yhdysvalloissa. Ellen Walton kuoli Lontoossa huhtikuun lopulla 1974, 70-vuotiaana. Poliisi Simpuraa esitti Waldemar Wohlström. Luutnantti Braun oli hurri ja 3 venäläistä sotilasta tsuhnia. Elokuva kuvaa saksalaisia sotavankeja, jotka ovat rakentamassa Muurmannin rataa. He pakenevat Suomen suuriruhtinaskunnan puolelle Pohjois-Suomeen, missä joutuvat kuitenkin Suomen viranomaisten aiheuttaman vainon kohteeksi.
      ellauri390.html on line 291: N.E.:n kokoelmassa on todisteita balladin Pechora-versioiden esityksestä eeppisiin säveliin. Onchukov, joka nauhoitti tekstin ruhtinas Dolgorukystä ja taloudenhoitajasta, jonka teki paikallinen eepos kirjailija Ankkuli Efimovich Ostashov kylästä. Zamezhnoye, Ust-Tsilma volost, lisäsi: "hän laulaa erittäin sujuvasti vanhassa yasakissa" ("yasak" on laulun tai eeposen sävelmä). Ust-Tsilma on kylä, maalaiskunta ja Ust-Tsilman piirin hallinnollinen keskus Komin tasavallassa Venäjällä. Se sijaitsee Petšoraan laskevan Tsilma-joen suussa 664 kilometriä tasavallan pääkaupungista Syktyvkarista pohjoiseen. Asukkaita on 5 100 henkeä, enimmäxeen syrjäytyneitä syrjäänejä.
      ellauri390.html on line 295: Todisteet sensuurin rajoituksista prinssi Volkonskin nimen mainitsemiseen lauluissa on balladin tekstien ensimmäinen julkaisu huhtikuussa 1860. Vuonna 1863 Otechestvennye Zapiskin toimittajat tarjosivat lukijoille P.I. Jakushkinin pientä kokoelmaa, joka sisälsi kolme "Laulua Vanka Klyushnikista". Vuonna 1863 nämä tekstit sisällytettiin P.V. Kireevskyn, kirjailijan kuoleman jälkeen, kirjaseen jonka valmisteli julkaistavaksi P.A. Bessonov.
      ellauri390.html on line 297: Kokoelman nähtyään Jakushkin syytti Bessonovia venäläisten kansanlaulujen piinallisesta tuntemuksesta ja huomautti balladitekstien sensuroidusta editoinnista: ”Kun julkaisin tämän kappaleen Otechestvennye Zapaskissa, toimittajasta riippumattomista olosuhteista (korostettu Jakushkin - L.M.) , minun täytyi kutsua Volkhonskia "prinssi-bojaariksi", ja siksi Kirejevskin kokoelmassa minun versioissani Volkhonskia kutsutaan myös "prinssibojaariksi".
      ellauri390.html on line 425: Aijaa, tää ei ollutkaan vielä Hanhen omaa textiä, vaan esipuhe asiaan paremmin perehtyneeltä Veli Phap Dungilta. Varmaan Quang Phuc Dungin velimies. No se on kavereille yhteistä ainaskin että pitäisi pysähtyä vähän miettimään, ei aina painaa täysiä joka taalan perässä ja lopun aikaa kazoa hölmöputkea. Tää on taas nyt sitä mindfulnessia. Mind your own business. Meistä tulee fixumpia kun hypelöimme omaa ruumista. Pysäkki on eka etappi, toinen tiukka tuijotus. Happiness is a warm gun yeah yeah.
      ellauri390.html on line 429: Do do do do do do, oh yeah
      ellauri390.html on line 434: Lying with his eyes while his hands are busy
      ellauri390.html on line 449: When I hold you in my arms (ooh, oh, yeah)
      ellauri390.html on line 450: And I feel my finger on your trigger (ooh, oh, yeah)
      ellauri390.html on line 451: I know nobody can do me no harm (ooh, oh, yeah)
      ellauri390.html on line 453: Happiness is a warm gun, yes it is (bang, bang, shoot, shoot)
      ellauri390.html on line 454: Happiness is a warm, yes it is, gun (happiness, bang, bang, shoot, shoot)
      ellauri390.html on line 456: (Happiness is a warm gun, yeah)
      ellauri390.html on line 558: Kauppiaat ja taxit nostivat hintojaan tasolle, jota keskimääräinen väestö ei voi saavuttaa. Hanh sanoi, että tämä jätti köyhät vietnamilaiset "ilman näitä amerikkalaisia ​​varoja" "yenevä epätoivoiseen ahdingoon". Tällainen köyhyys sai kaupunkiprostituution lisääntymään dramaattisesti naisten ja perheiden keinona ansaita edes jotian jenkeiltä.
      ellauri390.html on line 567: Hanh selitti edelleen, että suurien amerikkalaisten joukkojen tuominen Vietnamiin toi Yhdysvaltain dollarin käyttöön Vietnamin talouteen. Tämä aiheutti köyhien vietnamilaisten kärsimystä, koska he eivät kyenneet saamaan tavaroita ja palveluita, kun vietnamilaiset voitonharjoittajat korottivat hintojaan vastatakseen uusille Amerikan markkinoille. Tämä on vain yksi esimerkki siitä, miten globalisaatio ja kapitalismin leviäminen nykymaailmassa ovat vaikuttaneet negatiivisesti kolmannen maailman kansoihin, mikä on ongelma, jota ei ikipäivänä valvota ja ratkaista.
      ellauri390.html on line 579: After attending Embry Riddle Aeronautical University and working for two years, his dream was suddenly and permanently taken away because of a rare medical condition (no IQ).
      ellauri390.html on line 586: At the age of 32, after spending several years in high-stress, high profile, long hour jobs (doing what? maissihiutaleita?) he left his “normal” life to finally follow his dream of traveling the world.
      ellauri390.html on line 604: Gut ist nicht gut genug, man will etwas mehr. Let good enough alone, I would say. Paras on hyvän vihollinen, totta Mooses. Nää kirjat myivät varmaan hyvin six koska ne on näin lyhkösiä. Tyhmempikin jaxaa ne läpi tavata. Coelhon niteet on näihin verrattuna tiiliskiviä. Lyhyestä virsi kaunis kun on lattapäiset lainehilla.
      ellauri390.html on line 606: Casey on tavallinen tarjoilijanimi, suunnilleen kuin Pirjo. Casey is a given name, originally derived from the Irish Gaelic cathasaigh, meaning "vigilant" or "watchful". Casey Anthony (born 1986), American woman accused of killing her two-year old daughter, Caylee. Casey Calvert (born 1990), American pornographic film actress.
      ellauri390.html on line 683: Pete mainitsee usein puheissaan puolisonsa ja pitää avioliittoa ja koirolapsia merkkinä maan vapaasta ilmapiiristä. Uhkana on kuitenkin Trump. Pete Buttigiegistä on lyhyessä ajassa jo tullut jonkinlainen gay- ja lesboikoni. Hän on moderni liberaali, mutta samalla hän on tiukasti uskova kristitty. Poliittisesti hän on keskilinjan demokraatti. Obama manitsi hänet vuonna 2016 ”uusien, lupaavien” listalla.
      ellauri391.html on line 106: Se oli Harcourtin korjattu versio, joka ilmestyi joissakin sanomalehdissä seuraavana huhtikuussa 1939, kun Paderewski vieraili Hooverin luona hänen Palo Alto -kodissaan. Mutta jos tämä korjattu versio on totta, miksi Hoover ei käyttänyt sitä muistelmiensa ensimmäisessä osassa, jotka ilmestyivät vuonna 1951? Hooverin ensimmäinen pitkä kuvaus tapahtumasta kirjoitettiin vasta vuosina 1961–1963, jolloin hän aloitti Magnum Opuksensa Puola-osion parissa. George H. Nash ei koskaan julkaissut Hooverin elinaikana, mutta editoi huolellisesti erilaisia ​​luonnoksia ja julkaisi sen vuonna 2011 nimellä Freedom Betrayed: Herbert Hooverin toisen maailmansodan salainen historia ja sen jälkimainingit . Laajennetussa alaviitteessä Hoover muistelee 1 500 dollarin suorituspalkkiota, mutta hänellä ja hänen ystävillään oli tarjota Paderewskille vain 150 dollaria. Hooverin mukaan: "Paderewski nauroi ja ehdotti, että keskeytämme kihlauksen johonkin tulevaan tilaisuuteen, kun hän oli lännessä. Eräs jäsenistämme ehdotti, että emme ehkä pystyisi tekemään sitä, koska olisimme saattaneet hajota, ja tarjosi jälleen 150 dollaria. Paderewski nauroi taas ja sanoi, että lykkäämme sitäkin. Muistin tämän jakson hänelle, kun tapasin hänet pääministerinä rauhankonferenssissa. Hän naurahti taas."
      ellauri391.html on line 350: Berdjajevin aikalainen Pavel Florensky , myös kuuluisa uskonnollinen filosofi, ei ollut niin sangviininen. Tässä on vaarana, hän pomiloi, että päädytään protestantixi. Herätään huonohampaisena: Ax, nyet, nyet.
      ellauri391.html on line 393: Siis jumala valkkaa alipelin jossa se ei ole omnipotentti, eli apina saa päättää vapaasti. Jos se menee pirun puolelle, jumalalla on kuitenkin loppupeleissä valta lopettaa se peli lyhyeen ja panna apina paholaisen pannuun paistumaan. Ehtona on et kimalainen ei puutu kuunalaisiin tapahtumiin muuton kuin takapiruna, näyttämällä keppiä ja porkkanaa.
      ellauri391.html on line 404: Turska on sui generis, etwas ganz anderes. Se vain on. Ich bin nur. Sen ei tarvi ottaa huomioon apinan mieltä eikä lihaa. Tutkimattomat ovat herran tiet. Valheella on lyhyet jäljet. Vestigia terrent. Yleinen ilmoitus on pyllystä, se on narsistista humanismia, idealismia. Existentialismikin on humanismia.
      ellauri391.html on line 442: Pääasiassa saksalaista alkuperää oleva Luther tarkoittaa "kansan sotilasta" elementeistä liudiz, "kansat" ja harjaz, "armeijan johtaja" tai "soturi". Ei ole yllätys, että sellainen nimi jättää jätöxensä historiaan, ei kerran vaan kahdesti, ensin protestanttisen Martti Lutherin kiihtyessä ja sitten samannimisen nirhatun coon pastorin. de Luder tarkoittaa a) lutkaa ja b) haaskaa. sv Prostituerad kvinna, även prostituerad man; allmänt skällsord till en person; as, skitstövel, kräk · dött djur som av jägare ... Hon klär sig så vulgärt som vore hon ett luder.
      ellauri391.html on line 463: Luostarissa Luther paastosi, piinasi ruumistaan piiskaamalla sitä, vietti pitkiä aikoja rukoillen ja ripittäytyen jatkuvasti. Siitä ei ollut suurta apua. Luostarissa Luther luki myös paljon Raamattua. Sitä sen ei olisi pitänyt tehdä ainakaan. Siitä tuli kaikille no end of harm.
      ellauri391.html on line 534:
      Human (yellow)

      ellauri391.html on line 558: Ever since completing his Ph.D. at the University of Pittsburgh in 1993, the Israeli philosopher Irad Kimhi has been building the résumé of an academic failure. After a six-year stint at Yale in the ’90s that did not lead to a permanent job, he has bounced around from school to school, stringing together a series of short-term lectureships and temporary teaching positions in the United States, Europe and Israel. As of June, his curriculum vitae listed no publications to date — not even a journal article. At 60, he remains unknown to most scholars in his field.
      ellauri391.html on line 578: Genius? Folly? Something in between? It is hard to canvass a wide range of opinion about Kimhi’s work. He and his book have, until now, existed within a relatively small subsection of the philosophical world. But even within that world, there are those who are wary of his intellectual project — yet impressed by it all the same. Brandom, whose life’s work relies on the distinction between force and content that Kimhi attacks, admits to finding his former student’s ideas “deeply uncongenial” and “threatening.” He also describes them, however, as “radically original” and part of a new intellectual movement that is “bound to transform our philosophical understanding.”
      ellauri391.html on line 684: Hollantilaisten palkkaama Mr. Underhill hyökkäsi nukkuvaan lenaappikylään ja poltti sen (mahdollisesti myös Wappingerin konfederaation Siwanoy- ja Wechquaesgeek-yhtyeet) ja tappoi yxin tein 500-700 intiaania. Ihan Gaza touhua. Sanotaan, että juuri ennen kuolemaa lenaappi saattoi poistua ruumiista ja matkustaa vierailemaan paikoissa ja ihmisissä. Pound Ridgen verilöylyn jälkeen niitä lenteli kuin vaatekoita.
      ellauri392.html on line 50: At a NATO meeting in Vilnius last year, NATO leaders agreed to develop new plans to ensure the alliance could provide "300,000 troops at high readiness."
      ellauri392.html on line 66: Stoltenberg: Lännen on oltava valmis "vuosikymmeniä kestäneeseen yhteenottoon" Venäjän kanssa. Naton sotilaskomitean puheenjohtaja, luutnantti amiraali Rob Bauer years/">sanoi tammikuussa, että Nato-maiden siviilien pitäisi olla valmiita mahdolliseen täysimittaiseen sotaan Venäjän kanssa seuraavan 20 vuoden aikana.
      ellauri392.html on line 113: Tämän Hirschin ensimmäinen kirja, Wordsworth ja Schelling, oli lämmitetty hänen väitöskirjastaan. Kirjassa hän selventää Wordsworthin filosofisia ajatuksia ja runoja asettamalla niitä rinnakkain saksalaisen filosofin Friedrich Schellingin ideoiden kanssa. Vuonna 1964 tämä Hirsch julkaisi toisen kirjansa, Innocence and Experience: An Introduction to Blake. Tässä kirjassa Hirsch riitautti Blaken työn "järjestelmällisiä" kriitikkoja, mukaan lukien uuskriitikot Northrop Frye ja Harold Bloom. Hirsch väitti, että Blaken ideat ja näkemykset muuttuivat radikaalisti ajan myötä ja että varhaiset teokset, kuten The Songs of Innocence, eivät ilmaise samaa maailmankuvaa kuin myöhemmät teokset, kuten The Songs of Experience. Blake oli saanut lisää kokemusta. Sitten hän väsäsi katsauksen saksankielisestä Hans-Georg Gadamerin Truth and Method -julkaisusta (Review of Metaphysics, 1965).
      ellauri392.html on line 126: Muutenkin amer. runoilijat ovat kääntyneet sosiologiasta teologiaan ja metafysiikkaan, kysyen: Oh, Lord! Who am I?
      ellauri392.html on line 344: That Judas perished by hanging himself, there is no certainty in Scripture: though in one place it seems to affirm it, and by a doubtful word hath given occasion to translate it; yet in another place, in a more punctual description, it maketh it improbable, and seems to overthrow it. (“Literature” 71)
      ellauri392.html on line 386: For years and will continue to do so.
      ellauri392.html on line 403: Since he stayed there and commissioned
      ellauri392.html on line 425: We played at mates and mating and stopped up the drain.
      ellauri392.html on line 454: Stirred up by envy and revenge destroyed
      ellauri392.html on line 506: Lovers, cities destroyed and battles
      ellauri392.html on line 560: Advised, of course, by Odyssos, solicitor, betrayer.
      ellauri392.html on line 613: I bet she is Jewish, she looks more and more like one as the years go by.
      ellauri392.html on line 665: Frank Lentricchian ruumiinavaus uuskritisismille 1980 järsi eritoten Murray Kriegeriä, ED Hirschiä, Jr, Paul da Mania ja Harold Bloomia. Pahoja mandariineja, paljon siemeniä. Hirsch ei pitänyt ranuista eikä sakemanneista. Vuonna 2003 ranskalaisten perunoiden nimi vaihdettiin ”vapausperunoiksi” Yhdysvaltain edustajainhuoneen ravintolassa kongressin edustajien Robert W. Neyn ja Walter B. Jones Jr:n aloitteesta. Samalla myös köyhien ritareiden (engl. french toast) nimi vaihdettiin ravintolassa muotoon freedom toast. Tämä kostona koska ranut evät lähteneet mukaan Bad Bush jr:n Irakin ryöstöretkeen. Kielipususta tuli vapaussuudelma. Lyhyestä visiitistä tuli vapausvierailu ja siitä ilman vapauskirjettä pistelty kuppa oli vapaustauti.
      ellauri392.html on line 745: Herzog continues to be Bellow’s “biggest book” and it used to be on the New York Times best-seller list for one entire year. At its heart is Bellow’s profound shock at discovering, a year after his separation from Sondra, (Alexandra Tschacbasov, his second wife) her affair with their mutual friend, Jack Ludwig, Bellow lapsed into deep depression and produced an intensely self-justifying hero who was tearful, cuckolded, and utterly humiliated. Moses Herzog, a Jewish intellectual type is essentially precipitated into intellectual and spiritual crisis by the failure of his marriage. The plot of the novel is slender. Herzog leaves his home and marriage, fails in the classroom, abandons his academic project, and undertakes a mas-sive spiritual and intellectual obligation to keep the letters for God. At the end of it, he seems to have regained his sense of Jewish identity, purged himself of violent anger, abandoned his latest mistresses, and repented for his dandy style. He has had a profound education in the realities of human nature, and rediscovered the value of nature and solitude on his lushy Ludeyville estate.
      ellauri392.html on line 840: Wilhelm Waiblinger, Die Tagebücher: 1821–1826 , toim. Erwin Breitinger ja Herbert Meyer, "Veröffentlichungen der deutschen Schillergesellschaft", XXII (Stuttgart, 1956), VII, 22. Viittaukset tässä ja läpi tämän artikkelin ovat Waiblingerin päiväkirjan alkuperäisiä osia ja sivuja, jotka on annettu op. cit. marginaaleissa.
      ellauri393.html on line 134: Totuus: Hulluissa salaliittoteorioissa vihjataan lähes aina, että hallitus on kaiken takana – eikä tässäkään osuttu vikaan. Teollisen alkoholin valmistajat olivat jo vuosien ajan ennen kieltolakia sekoittaneet tuotteisiinsa vaarallisia kemikaaleja. Vuosien 1926 ja 1933 välillä liittohallitus kuitenkin painosti valmistajia käyttämään vahvempia myrkkyjä estääkseen trokareita tekemästä alkoholista pirtua. Se ei estänyt trokareita tai heidän asiakkaitaan, ja kieltolain päättyessä yli 10,000 amerikkalaista oli kuollut pilallisen viinan takia. Höh denaturoitua. Pulit joivat polakan läpi ja sokaistuivat siitä.
      ellauri393.html on line 276: The Vietnam War was a conflict in Vietnam, Laos, and Cambodia from 1 November 1955 to the fall of Saigon on 30 April 1975. It was the second of the Indochina Wars and a major conflict of the Cold War. While the war was officially fought between North Vietnam and South Vietnam, the north was supported by the Soviet Union, China, and other communist states, while the south was supported by the US and anti-communist allies. This made it a proxy war between the US and Soviet Union, just like the current 3rd Crimean war. It lasted almost 20 years, with direct US military involvement ending in 1973. The conflict spilled into the Laotian and Cambodian civil wars, which ended with all three countries becoming communist in 1975. So much for the domino theory.
      ellauri393.html on line 279: As of 2019 estimates, there are 9 million cases of typhoid fever annually, resulting in about 110 000 deaths per year. Urbanization and climate change have the potential to increase the global burden of typhoid.
      ellauri393.html on line 324: ye-priklyucheniya-shurika-1.jpg" />
      ellauri393.html on line 330: Kuten alkuperäisen kuvan tapauksessa, kuvaus tapahtui Krimillä, ei Pohjois-Kaukasiassa. Tunnuslause: "Historia toistaa itseään!" Suurin osa elokuvasta kuvattiin Krimin eri alueilla. Siten näytöillä näkyvät Demerdzhin, Alushtatalouden, Simferopolin, Luchystyn, Kuibyshevyn, ja Visokyen maisemat. Also, the ending of the story was changed. Vladimir Medinsky, Russia's Minister of Culture, promised not to provide any further funding for Voronkov's films after an appeal from YouTube critic BadComedian. Voronkov has not directed another film since. To top it all, the film was also a flop at the box office, collecting $179,843 on a budget of $3.5 million.
      ellauri393.html on line 343: Lopuksi sinun pitäisi tietää, että "Rogue Song" on kadonnut täydellisessä versiossaan. Emme enää tiedä täydellistä kopiota tästä elokuvasta, joka on saanut inspiraationsa Tamara Lundin ja Alexandru Ionizan lemmekkäästi tenorisoimasta ja sopranoimasta Franz Leharin operetista "Amour Tzigane" ja joka kuvattiin technicolorilla. Tämä voisi myös selittää tämän katoamisen, vaikka 1920-luvulla samalla menetelmällä kuvatut elokuvat olisivat säilyneet. Metro Goldwin Mayerin arkistossa oleva kopio katosi tulipalossa C. Tämä elokuva on seuraavien vuosien loistavasti kuvattujen musiikkielokuvien edeltäjä Laurelille ja Hardylle.
      ellauri393.html on line 574: virheen liittyessään Natoon. Vuonna 2003
      ellauri393.html on line 625: liittyessään Natoon? – Mielestäni te teitte
      ellauri393.html on line 716: Jumalan enkeli tahtoi hänen pysyvän neitsyenä, mihin mies
      ellauri395.html on line 124:
    13. Raamatullinen Tuhkimo Joyce Meyer
      ellauri395.html on line 383: – Elämme aikaa, joka on samalla valoisa että vaikea. Tilanne on kuin kymmenellä neitsyellä, jotka menivät ylkää vastaan. Kaikilla ei ollut öljyä astioissaan. Öljy alkaa olla kortilla. Kaikille ei riitä vettäkään, kun sähköt ovat poikki. Maa on autio ja pimeä ja herran henki liikkuu vetten päällä.
      ellauri395.html on line 475: Vuonna 1991 elokuussa Heinola-aktiossa monituhatpäisen yleisön eteen nousi erikoinen yhtye.
      ellauri395.html on line 484: Mutta miten osaisimme vaikuttaa jälkikasvuumme niin, että kasvaessaan ja itsenäistyessään nuori... Tässä muutamia vinkkejä.
      ellauri395.html on line 566: Pauline Joyce Hutchison Meyer (s. 4. kesäkuuta 1943, St. Louis, Missouri, Yhdysvallat) on yhdysvaltalainen evankelista ja kirjailija. Karismaattista kristillisyyttä edustava Meyer on kirjoittanut yli 100 kirjaa. Lisäksi hän on isännöinyt suosittua Enjoying Everyday Life-ohjelmaa, joka on opettanut ihmisiä kristilliseen elämään ja ongelmien voittamiseen. Meyer on kertonut ohjelmissaan, että häntä on lapsuudessa käytetty seksuaalisesti hyväksi. Hän on myös kokenut avioeron ja rintasyövän. Hän kokee selvinneensä näistä kokemuksista Jumalan avulla.
      ellauri395.html on line 568: Meyer, 77, matkustaa julkisiin puhetilaisuuksiin yksityiskoneella. Vuonna 2004 St. Louis Post-Dispatchin artikkelissa lueteltiin hänen ja hänen aviomiehensä omaisuus, jotka kuulemma maksoi hänen ministeriönsä. Niihin kuuluivat hänen 10 miljoonan dollarin suihkukone ja useiden miljoonien dollarien talot sekä 107 000 dollarin hopeinen Mercedes. Olenko oikeassa, kun tunnen epäilystä häntä kohtaan, vai saako hän vain kohtuullisen korvauksen? Haluaisin saada hänestä enemmän mielipiteitä ihmisiltä, ​​jotka tietävät hänestä enemmän kuin minä.
      ellauri395.html on line 573: Meyeriä joka omistaa useita koteja ja matkustaa yksityisellä suihkukoneella (tällä hetkellä Gulfstream G-IV), on kritisoineet jotkut liiallisesta elämäntyylistä. Hän vastasi, ettei hänen tarvitse puolustaa kulutustottumuksiaan, koska "... meidän ei tarvitse pyytää anteeksi siunausta." Meyer kommentoi: "Voit olla liikemies täällä St. Louisissa, ja ihmiset ajattelee mitä enemmän sinulla on, sitä ihanampaa se on... mutta jos olet saarnaaja, niin siitä tulee yhtäkkiä ongelma."
      ellauri395.html on line 579:
      yellow">


      ellauri395.html on line 646: Osteen opettelee ulkoa suunnitellut huomautuksensa ennen niiden esittämistä ja kuuntelee nauhalta aiempia. Hänen saarnojaan on kritisoitu itseään palvelevina ja paljastavan Raamatun huonoa hallintaa. Osteen sanoo päättäneensä keskittyä enemmän Jumalan hyvyyteen ja hyvään elämään synnin sijaan ja että hän yrittää opettaa Raamatun periaatteita yksinkertaisella tavalla, joka korostaa rakkauden voimaa ja positiivista asennetta kuin konsaan Eski Saarinen. Kun Osteenilta kysyttiin, miksi hän ei keskity tarkemmin syntiin, paholaiseen ja helvettiin, hän sanoi: Ei minusta ole sanomaan porukoille että te joudutte helvettiin. Osteen isännöi myös Lakewoodin kirkossaan vuonna 2018 yhteistyössä räppäri Kanye Westin kanssa tapahtumaa nimeltä Sunday Service. Joku nyrjähtänyt nainen koitti ampua rynkyllä telttakokouxessa mutta turvamiehet took her down. Osteen ei avannut jalkapallostadioniaan hurrikaanin uhreille ennenkö pakon edessä. Osteen ei syrji homoja vaikka ne ovat syntisiä, ne vaan ei ole Jumalan ihan parasta tuotantoa. Osteen arveli mormonien olevan kristittyjä. Osteen arveli tukevansa Israelia. Osteen osaa teologiaa tuskin beemiinuxen edestä. Osteen opettaa että aineellisen hyödyn palkkio on Jumalan tahto kaikille hurskaille kristityille.
      ellauri395.html on line 946: Lähde: Larry Lea, Learning the Joy of Prayer, Kingsway Publications, 1997 Great Britain.
      ellauri395.html on line 948: Kirjassaan "Learning the Joy of Prayer" Larry Lea soveltaa päivittäiseen rukoukseen Isä meidän -rukouksen mallia:
      ellauri395.html on line 1285: Uzbek believers continue to increase despite great opposition. The prospect of retribution from three sides – the government, local Muslim leaders and the community (family and neighbours) – has not halted growth. There are now probably more than 10,000 Uzbek believers, where there were possibly none only a generation ago. But much prayer (= gold and silver) is still needed:
      ellauri396.html on line 81:

    14. Compare yourself to who you were yesterday, not to who someone else is today.
      ellauri396.html on line 93: Huolimatta halustaan ​​mainostaa itseään, Peterson väittää olevansa vastahakoinen tähti. "Järkevässä maailmassa olisin jo saanut 15 minuuttia kuuluisuuttani", hän kertoi Ottawa Citizenille viime vuonna. ”Tuntuu kuin surffaisin jättimäisellä aallolla… ja se voi iskeä alas ja pyyhkiä minut pois, tai voisin ajaa sillä ja jatkaa. Kaikki nuo vaihtoehdot ovat yhtä mahdollisia." Kävi kuin Lincoln Lawyerille 2. tuotantokaudella: kusi nousi päähän.
      ellauri396.html on line 140: Eräs vinkuintiaani kirjoittaa: Olin Dr. Petersonin tutkijaopiskelija vuosina 2012 ja 2016. Kirjoitan tätä, koska, kuten monien muiden hyväksikäytön uhrien kanssa, etsin parannusta ja toipumista tuomalla ääneni kuuluviin. Kuitenkin, kun olen alkamassa ymmärtää omaa yhteiskehitystäni narsismin kanssa kääntyessäni juutalaisuuteen, tulen tietoiseksi siitä, että minua käytettiin hyväksi opiskelijana. Toronton yliopisto on onneksi ottanut valitukseni vakavasti. Tohtori Peterson ei maininnut mitään työstä, jonka tein hänelle ennen vuotta 2017. Jos muistatte, hän aloitti vuosina 2016–2017 ristiretken sukupuolipronomineja vastaan, joissa hän käytti testosteronisia ja estrogeenisiä pronomineja. Uskon varmuudella, että tämä perustui työhön, jonka tein hänen hyväkseen, ja ideoista, jotka jaoin hänen kanssaan. Marxilaiset kutsuisivat tätä akateemista riistoa työn tuotannon alienaatioxi. On tekopyhää, että hän tuomitsee marxilaisuuden samalla kun hän syyllistyy kapitalismiin omien työläistensä kanssa. (Miten niin tekopyhää? Kapitalismihan nimtuten on tästä norjalaisesta hammasharjasta A-OK.) Olen yrittänyt ratkaista tätä ongelmaa tohtori Petersonin kanssa henkilökohtaisesti, mutta hän ei useimmiten vastaa. Kun uhkasin katkaista hänestä kaikki siteet muutama kuukausi sitten, hän alkoi vastata. Hän valitti ylivoimaisista paineista, joita hän ize kohtaa kotonaan (vaimo nalkuttaa, lapset ovat ällöttäviä), mutta ei käsitellyt asiaa. Tämä saattaa olla ensimmäinen selkeä narsismin merkki, jonka havaitsin hänessä sen jälkeen, kun aloin toipumaan narsistisesta hyväksikäytöstä. Se sopii rakkauspommituksen malliin, kun uhri yrittää lähteä. Sanoisin lyhyesti, että hän ei kenties ole narsisti, mutta ei häikäile käyttää hyväxi haavoittuvia ja ottaa heidän toimeentulonsa. Vampyyri pahimmillaan.
      ellauri396.html on line 198: En ole koskaan lausunut maatunnustusta. Itse asiassa syntyessäni Maaplaneetalle – nimenomaan maamassalle, jota kutsumme Kanadaksi – minut kutsui tänne jonkinlainen henkinen tai luonnollinen voima, (isin pippeli) joten en koskaan kutsuisi itseäni "kutsumattomaksi vieraaksi" vain siksi, että en ole Kanadan alkuperäiskansa, joka muutti Aasiasta Beringin maasillan kautta.
      ellauri396.html on line 245: Huomionarvoisia itkeviä valkoisia tyttöjä ovat Taylor Swift ja Lena Dunham. Swiftiä on kutsuttu itkeväksi valkoiseksi tytöksi, koska hän on tehnyt raivoa Kanye Westin kappaleesta Famous (2016). Kappaleessa West kutsuu Swiftiä "nartuksi", mikä on tietysti aihetta raivolle; Kuitenkin, kuten Kanyen leiri myöhemmin paljasti, Swift oli allekirjoittanut itsensä kappaleeseen ja sanoitukseen. Tässä Swiftin kriitikot katsoivat, että hän ei ainoastaan ​​näytellyt uhria virheellisesti, huutaen raivoa ja siten "omaksuen kielen/kuvan naisten voimaannuttamisesta omalle tuotemerkilleen", hän myös jatkoi "pelottava musta mies kiusaa valkoista tyttöä" -tarinaa tehdessään niin.
      ellauri396.html on line 259: Hiljaisuuden aikana Gonzálezin sieraimet levenivät, hänen silmänsä välkkyivät ja kyyneleet valuivat lopulta hänen kasvoilleen; hän ei pyyhkinyt niitä pois (Lucero II). Teräksisen, itkevän Gonzálezin kuvat lisääntyivät. Tärkeää on, että González ei ole valkoinen, joten hän ei sovi itkevän valkoisen tytön joukkoon. Siitä huolimatta hän edustaa itkemisen poliittista potentiaalia. New Yorkerissa Rebecca Mead piirtää yhteyden itkevän Gonzalesin ja itkevän Jeanne of Arcin kuvan välille Carl Theodor Dreyerin mykkäelokuvassa vuodelta 1928, The Passion of Jeanne of Arc. Molemmissa tapauksissa itkusta tulee ainoa vastaus, ainoa tapa viestiä sanoinkuvaamattomasta ominaisuudesta tai kokemuksesta, jota sanat eivät riitä kertomaan. Tuskin niitä tarvitaan.
      ellauri396.html on line 367: The Toronto Blessing has become synonymous within charismatic Christian circles for terms and actions that include an increased awareness of God's love, religious ecstasy, external observances of ecstatic worship, being slain in the Spirit, uncontrollable laughter, emotional and/or physical euphoria, crying, healing from emotional wounds, healing of damaged relationships, and electric waves of the spirit. "Holy laughter", as a result of overwhelming joy, was a hallmark manifestation, and there were also some reports of instances of participants roaring like lions or making other animal noises such as super loud farts. Leaders and participants present in these services claim that most of these manifestations, including some people roaring like lions, were physical manifestations of the Holy Spirit's presence and power, while some Pentecostal and charismatic leaders believe these were the counterfeits of the Spirit as is mentioned in the biblical passage of 2 Thessalonians 2:9. In December, 1994, Toronto Life Magazine declared TAV (Toronto Airport Vineyard church) as Toronto's most notable tourist attraction for the year.
      ellauri396.html on line 374: A study was conducted in 1995 that surveyed 1,000 people who visited TAV and approximately half of them reported that they felt spiritually refreshed after the meetings, close to 90% said they were "more in love with Jesus" than they had been in any other point in their lives, and 88% of married respondents stated that they were also more in love with their spouse. 300 patients reported new gold fillings. A follow-up study conducted in 1997 also yielded similar figures from the original survey respondents.
      ellauri396.html on line 376: The Toronto Blessing appears to share similarities with other past events where historical records report similar activities of laughter, crying, falling down, shaking and claims of miraculous healings. According to some, these events have been recorded as occurring throughout, not only the recent past, but for the approximate 2,000 years since the crucifixion and resurrection of Christ took place.
      ellauri398.html on line 52: After God commanded Moses to return to Egypt to free the Israelites, Moses took his wife and sons and started his journey. On the road, they stayed at an inn, where God came to kill Moses. Zipporah quickly circumcised her son with a sharp stone and touched Moses' feet with the foreskin, saying "Surely you are a husband of blood to me!" God then left Moses alone (Exodus 4:24–26). The details of the passage are unclear and subject to debate.
      ellauri398.html on line 61: Perustuen siihen tosiasiaan, että Jumala aikoi tappaa Mooseksen, oletamme, että Mooses oli tehnyt syntiä Jumalaa vastaan. Se tosiasia, että Mooseksen pojan ympärileikkaus sai Herran katumaan, osoittaa, että Mooseksen synti oli poikansa ympärileikkauksen epäonnistuminen. Se tosiasia, että Zipporah, ei Mooses, suoritti leikkauksen, viittaa siihen, että Mooses ei tumpelona kyennyt tekemään sitä itse; Samaa johtopäätöstä tukee se tosiasia, että Zipporah kosketti Mooseksen jalkoja esinahalla – tämä olisi helpommpaa, jos Mooses oli rojollaan. Ja jos Mooses joutui nukkumaan, menetelmä, jota Jumala käytti tappaakseen hänet, oli todennäköisesti jonkinlainen sairaus. Joten sikäli kuin voimme tietää, Jumala uhkasi tappaa Mooseksen, koska Mooses ei ollut ympärileikkannut poikaansa.
      ellauri398.html on line 303: ongelman seurauksena. Muut abrahamilaiset jumalat eivät väitäkään olevansa ns hyviä eli pelaavansa puolustajina apinan pelipäädyssä. Allah ja jehova on aika happamia hiirulaisia, kiivaita ja äkkipikaisia, käyvät päälle tohvelit läpsyen. Mä oon mitä oon, muuxi muutu en. Inte så bra, kanske, but whazit to you. Ehkä sinusta, ei minusta. Hän argumentoi Jeesuksen uskoneen
      ellauri398.html on line 416: Vestens depoter af våben og ammunition er blevet tømt - givet væk til Ukraine. USA har høstet gevinsten ved, at NATO-landene nu skal købe nye våben fra USA - men de er først til levering om cirka 3–4 år. I mellemtiden er vesten ligeså sårbart som et nyfødt og forældreløst barn.
      ellauri398.html on line 420: Rusland udvikler og fornyer sine militære våben i takt med kampene i Ukraine: Droner og kunstig intelligens er det nye "sort" i militær teknologi. Rusland har udviklet hypersoniske missiler, som vesten ikke har noget forsvar imod. Samtidig hænger vesten uhjælpeligt fast i gammeldags krigsførelse med tanks, som er lette ofre for dronerne, og jetjagere som er ekstremt dyre men også lette at skyde ned. I vesten bruges kunstig intelligens mest til at censurere sociale medier (og dermed undertrykke ytringsfriheden) eller skabelse af såkaldte "chatbots", som begår intellektuelt tyveri på forfatterne til kilderne på vores viden.
      ellauri398.html on line 428: USA har stiftet en gæld, der er så umådeligt stor, at den aldrig vil kunne betales tilbage. I Rusland er der økonomisk vækst og et kæmpeoverskud på handelsbalancen med resten af verden. Det korte af det lange er, at hvis Rusland starter en 3. verdenskrig i morgen, ville USA og NATO lide et kæmpestort nederlag. Vi ville være nødt til at lære at tale russisk for at kunne begå os med den nye verdensherre.
      ellauri398.html on line 489: Jeesus oli koko kaivonkannella sattuneen yhdynnän ajan Jeesus, Jumalan Poika. Samoin meitä kutsutaan olemaan koko ajan joka paikassa ja aikana Jumalan poikia, Jeesuksen seuraajia, kristittyjä, joilla on koko ajan ”kaivonkansiakti” käynnissä. Kysymys: Jeesus levähti kaivolla ja "kohtasi" siinä kaivonkannella samarialaisen naisen. Missä paikoissa sinä levähdät? Älä hötkyile. Rauhallisemmalla tahdilla ehtii paremmin "kohdata." Kysymys: Huomioitavaa on myös se, että Jeesuksella ei selvästikään ollut kiire. Onko se myös yksi avain naisihmisten "kohtaamiseen?" Voiko kiire estää "kohtaamiset?" Voisiko yksi askel olla, että rauhoittaisi ja karsisi kalenteria? Mitä jos vähemmän onkin enemmän? Ole niin kuin Jeesus – tyttöjen "kohtaamisten" mestari ja ihmisten moninkertaistaja. Anna tyttölasten tulla tykösi. Donkki on alakouluikäisille lapsille suunnattu raamatunluku- ja harrastelehti. Donkki-lehdessä keskitytään uskon perusasioihin mielenkiintoisella ja lasten maailmaan sopivalla, turvallisella tavalla. Lehti onkin loistava apuväline kotien kristillisen kasvatukseen sekä seurakuntien lapsi- ja varhaisnuorisotyöhön. Neljä kertaa vuodessa ilmestyvä 64-sivuinen Donkki on pullollaan mielenkiintoista luettavaa. Lehdessä tutustutaan Raamattuun reippaiden kaverusten Donkki-aasin, Sakun ja Ruutin kanssa. Donkki-lehti ilmestyy neljä kertaa vuodessa. Jokaisella numerolla on oma teema, jota käsitellään tarinoiden, raamatuntekstien ja tehtävien avulla. Lisäksi Donkissa on runsaasti kiinnostavia palstoja harrastuksiin, ystävyyteen, taskuaskarteluun ja kokkaukseen liittyen. Donkki-lehden raamattuaukeamat sopivat sellaisenaan raamattuopetukseksi, aamunavaukseksi tai vaikka hartaushetkeksi. Lehden pohjalta voi myös pitää vaikka kokonaisen lastenleirin opetuksineen, pajoineen ja esileikkeineen. Donkki-lehden avulla haluammekin palvella seurakuntien lapsi-, jannu- ja varhaisnuorisotyöntekijöitä sekä vapaaehtoisia ja isosia. Kristillinen lastenlehti Donkki lakkautetaan kevään 2024 numeron jälkeen.
      ellauri398.html on line 769: Hiän on pituudeltaan hyvässä mittasuhteessa pitkän mekon ja lyhyen mekon käyttäjän välillä.
      ellauri398.html on line 798: uuhet kuin neitsyet pukeutuneina pitkiin mekkoihin;
      ellauri398.html on line 882: Carol Meyers huomauttaa, että tämä sana tuli julki vuonna
      ellauri399.html on line 72: I dropped out of Reed College (Oregon) after the first 6 months, but then stayed around as a drop-in for another 18 months or so before I really quit. So why did I drop out? It started before I was born. My biological mother was a young, unwed college graduate student, and she decided to put me up for adoption. She felt very strongly that I should be adopted by college graduates, so everything was all set for me to be adopted at birth by a lawyer and his wife. Except that when I popped out they decided at the last minute that they really wanted a girl. So my second choice working class parents, who were on a waiting list, got a call in the middle of the night asking: "We have an unexpected baby boy; do you want him?" They said: "Of course." My mother later found out that my adoptive "mother" had never graduated from college and that my adoptive "father" had never even graduated from high school! She refused to sign the adoption papers. She only relented a few months later when my adoptive parents promised that I would someday go to college. When I got the chance I dropped out, mainly to show the finger to my real mom.
      ellauri399.html on line 74: 17 years later I went to college. I "naively" chose a college that was almost as expensive as Stanford, and all of my working-class parents' savings were being spent on my college tuition. After six months, I couldn't see the value in it. I had no idea what I wanted to do with my life and no idea how college was going to help me figure it out. And here I was spending all of the money my parents had saved their entire life. So I decided to drop out and trust that it would all work out OK. It was pretty scary at the time, but looking back it was one of the best decisions I ever made. Today I make so much more money as a dropout. The minute I dropped out I could stop taking the required classes that didn't interest me, and begin dropping in on the ones that looked interesting. Those 2 years of freewheeling cost my poor "parents" just as much money without the benefit of my ever graduating.
      ellauri399.html on line 96: None of this had even a hope of any practical application in my life. But ten years later, when "we" were designing the first Macintosh computer, it all came back to me. And "we" designed it all into the Mac. (It was Wozniak who built the box, I was basically just a salesman extraordinaire.) It was the first computer with beautiful typography. If I had never dropped out of college, the Mac would have never had multiple typefaces or proportionally spaced fonts. Ain't that something? And the Macintosh box looked just like those Hare Krishna boxes! And since Windows just copied the Mac, it's likely that no personal computer would have them. If I had never dropped out, personal computers might not have the wonderful typography that they do, and Apple products would not be nonstandard and madly overpriced. If that is not Providence, what is? Of course it was impossible to reject the kids looking forward when I was in college. But it was very, very easy looking backwards just 6 years later.
      ellauri399.html on line 98: No one wants to die. Even people who want to go to heaven don't want to die to get there. And yet death is the destination we all share. No one has ever escaped it. And that is as it should be, because Death is very likely the single best invention of Life. It is Life's change agent. It is nothing but the capitalist concept of creative destruction. It clears out the old to make way for the new. Right now the new is you, but someday not too long from now, you will gradually become the old and be cleared away. Sorry to be so dramatic, but it is quite true. Thank God I got cleared away so soon. One of the few people like the Shakespeares and Einsteins that get well known – I wanted to be in that group. I had a lot in common with Jörkka Donner, like showing off and rejecting unintended kids. Except Jörn did not drop out. Jörn was a wealthy German not a fucking Syrian.
      ellauri399.html on line 106: When I was young, there was an amazing publication called The Whole Earth Catalog, which was one of the bibles of my generation. It was created by a fellow named Stewart Brand not far from here in Menlo Park, and he brought it to life with his poetic touch. This was in the late 1960's, before personal computers and desktop publishing, so it was all made with typewriters, scissors, and polaroid cameras. It was sort of like Google in paperback form, 35 years before Google came along: it was idealistic, and overflowing with neat tools and great notions. In many ways better than Google in fact, except less advertising.
      ellauri399.html on line 110: Stewart and his team put out several issues of The Whole Earth Catalog, and then when it had run its course, they put out a final issue. It was the mid-1970s, and I was your age. On the back cover of their final issue was a photograph of an early morning country road, the kind you might find yourself hitched beside after hitchhiking if you were so adventurous. Beneath it were the words: "Stay Hungry. Stay Foolish." It was their farewell message as they signed off. Stay Hungry. Stay Foolish. And I have always wished that for myself. And now, as you graduate to begin anew, I wish that for you. Stay Hungry. Stay Foolish. (Stewart is 85 years old and kicking. Still hungry with estimated net worth of $1-5M.) I am both hungry (can´t digest sugar, even veggies) and foolish, though not that foolish about money. Thank you all very much for listening. Buy Apple products.
      ellauri399.html on line 124: Watts married three times and had seven children (five daughters and two sons). He sure got his germ line well dispersed. Watts was a heavy smoker throughout his life and in his later years drank heavily. Not much of a buddhist altogether. Rather, a sedentary and contemplative character, an intellectual, a Brahmin, a mystic and also somewhat of a disreputable epicurean who has three wives, seven children and five grandchildren.
      ellauri399.html on line 128: 00:50 Niin pitkälle kuin muistan, varhaisesta lapsuudesta asti, olen aina ollut täysin kiehtonut ajatus kuolemasta. Nyt saatat ajatella, että se on jotenkin sairasta, mutta tiedät, kun lapsi sanoo yöllä lauseen "Jos minun pitäisi kuolla ennen kuin herään", siinä on jotain aivan outoa . Millaista olisi mennä nukkumaan ja olla koskaan heräämättä? Nyt useimmat järkevät ihmiset vain hylkäävät ajatuksen. He sanovat, ettet voi kuvitella sitä. He kohauttavat olkapäitään ja sanovat: "No, siitä se tulee." Mutta luulen, että olen yksi niistä vihamielisistä ihmisistä, jotka eivät ole tyytyväisiä sellaiseen vastaukseen. Ei sillä, että yrittäisin löytää jotain muuta sen lisäksi, vaan että olen aivan kiehtova siitä, millaista olisi mennä nukkumaan ja olla koskaan heräämättä. 01:57 Tarkoitan, että monet ihmiset ajattelevat, että se on kuin menisi pimeyteen ikuisesti tai haudattaisiin elävältä. Mutta ilmeisesti se ei olisi ollenkaan niin, koska tunnemme pimeyden kontrastina - ja vain kontrastina - valon kanssa. Minulla on ystävä – tyttö, joka on erittäin älykäs ja sananvalkoinen – ja hän syntyi sokeana, eikä hänellä ole pienintäkään aavistustakaan, mitä pimeys on. Sana merkitsee hänelle yhtä vähän kuin sana "valo". 02:38 Joten jos menisit nukkumaan – et ole tietoinen pimeydestä nukkuessasi – ja niin jos menisit uneen, tajuttomuuteen, aina ja aina ja aina, se ei olisi ollenkaan kuin menisit pimeyteen. , se ei olisi ollenkaan kuin elävältä haudattu. Ihan kuin itse asiassa sinua ei olisi koskaan ollut olemassakaan. Ei vain sinä, vaan myös kaikki muu. Olisit siinä tilassa kuin et olisi koskaan ollut. Ja siellä ei tietenkään olisi ongelmia, ei olisi ketään, joka katuisi minkään menetystä, sitä ei voisi edes kutsua tragedioksi, koska ei olisi ketään, joka kokisi sen tragediana. Se olisi – yksinkertaista – ei mitään. Ikuisesti ja ikuisesti, koska sinulla ei vain olisi tulevaisuutta, sinulla ei olisi myöskään menneisyyttä eikä nykyisyyttä. 04:00 Nyt luulisi, että se oli se kohta, jossa sanoimme: "No, puhutaan jostain muusta." Mutta en ole tyytyväinen siihen; Kieltäydyn, koska tämä saa minut ajattelemaan kahta muuta asiaa. Tämä tyhjyyden tila saa minut ensinnäkin ajattelemaan - ainoa asia, jonka saan kokemuksessani lähellä tyhjyyttä, on se, miten pääni näyttää silmiini. Koska minusta tuntuu, että siellä on maailma – ikäänkuin – silmieni edessä, ja sitten silmieni takana ei ole mustaa täplää, ei ole edes sumeaa kohtaa. Ei ole yhtään mitään. En ole tietoinen päästäni, ikään kuin mustana aukona kaiken tämän valoisan visuaalisen kokemuksen keskellä. Siinä ei ole edes kovin selkeitä reunoja, koska näkökenttä on soikea. Ja jos liikutan sormiani näkökenttääni pitkin, se on näin, ja tämä on kohta, jossa sormeni vain katoavat näkyvistä. Epämääräinen reuna. Mutta sitten tämän ovaalin takana ei ole mitään. Ihan vain näköaistin perusteella. Tietysti, jos käytän sormiani ja kosketan, voin tuntea jotain silmieni takana. Mutta jos käytän näköaistia yksin, siellä ei vain ole mitään. Nyt kuitenkin siitä tyhjyydestä, jonka näen. No, se on ensimmäinen asia, joka minulle tulee mieleen. 06:00 Seuraava asia, jota se saa minut ajattelemaan, on tämä: jos olen kuollessani kuin en olisi koskaan ollutkaan, niin olin sellainen ennen syntymääni. Koska - aivan kuin yrittäessäni palata silmieni taakse ja löytää mitä siellä on, tulen tyhjään paikkaan - jos yritän muistaa takaisin ja takaisin, ja takaisin ja takaisin, minulla on varhaisimmat muistoni ja sitten , niiden takana ei mitään. Täysin tyhjä. Mutta aivan kuten tiedän, että silmieni takana on jotain käyttämällä sormia pääni päällä, niin tiedän muiden tietolähteiden kautta, että ennen syntymääni oli jotain tekeillä. Siellä oli isäni ja äitini, ja heidän isänsä ja äitinsä, ja koko maapallon aineellinen ympäristö ja sen elämä, josta he tulivat, ja sen takana aurinkokunta ja sen takana galaksi ja sen takana kaikki galaksit , ja sen takana… toinen tyhjä: välilyönti. 07:11 Joten ajattelen, että jos palaan, kun olen kuollut, tilaan, jossa olin ennen syntymääni, enkö voisi tapahtua uudestaan? Tiedätkö, se mikä on tapahtunut kerran, voi hyvin tapahtua uudelleen. Jos se tapahtui kerran, se on poikkeuksellista, eikä se todellakaan ole kovin erikoisempaa , jos se tapahtuisi uudestaan. Toisin sanoen tiedän varmasti – koska olen nähnyt ihmisten kuolevan ja olen nähnyt ihmisiä syntyvän heidän jälkeensä –, että (joka tapauksessa) kuolemani jälkeen ei synny vain joku, vaan myös lukemattomia muita olentoja. . Että minä tiedän. Me kaikki tiedämme sen, siitä ei ole epäilystäkään. Mutta mikä meitä huolestuttaa, on se, että kun olemme kuolleet, ei voi olla mitään ikuisesti, ikään kuin siitä olisi syytä huolehtia. Ennen syntymääsi ei ollut tätä samaa ikuisesti mitään, ja kuitenkin tapahtuit. Ja jos tapahtui kerran, voit tapahtua uudelleen. 08:40 Mitä se nyt tarkoittaa? No, päästään siihen ensin sen yksinkertaisimmalla tavalla, ja selittääkseni itseni minun on keksittävä uusi verbi: tämä on verbi I . Ja ensinnäkin kirjoitamme sen I-kirjaimella, mutta sen sijaan, että se olisi pronomini, kutsumme sitä verbiksi. Universumi on . Se on minä -ed minussa ja se on sinussa. Kirjoitetaan nyt sana silmä uudelleen . Kun puhun "nähdä silmällä jotain", se tarkoittaa katsoa jotain, olla tietoinen jostakin. Joten muutamme oikeinkirjoitusta ja sanomme universumin silmät ; se tulee tietoiseksi itsestään meissä jokaisessa. Ja se katselee jatkuvasti ja joka kerta kun se katsoo , jokainen meistä, jossa se katsoo, tuntee olevansa kaiken keskipiste. Ja että tiedän, että sinä tunnet olevasi minä, aivan samalla tavalla kuin minä tunnen olevani minä . Ja meillä kaikilla on sama tyhjän tausta. Emme muista tehneemme sitä aiemmin, mutta sitä on kuitenkin tehty ennenkin. Uudelleen, uudestaan ​​ja uudestaan, ei vain ennen ajassa, vaan kaikkialla ympärillämme kaikkialla muualla avaruudessa on kaikki; on universumi I-ing 10:11 Katsokaa nyt, yritän tehdä tämän selvemmäksi tällä tavalla: kun sanon "Se on universumi I-ing ", kuka minä on ? Mitä tarkoitat 'minä'? No, sillä voit tarkoittaa kahta asiaa. Toisaalta voit tarkoittaa sitä, mitä kutsutaan egoksesi, persoonallisuutesi. Mutta se ei ole sinun todellinen minäsi, koska persoonallisuutesi on käsityksesi itsestäsi ; se on kuvasi itsestäsi. Ja se koostuu siitä, miten tunnet itsesi, kuinka ajattelet itsestäsi, ja se on täynnä sitä, mitä kaikki ystäväsi ja sukulaisesi ovat kertoneet sinulle itsestäsi. 10:55 Joten kuvasi itsestäsi – kuinka ilmeisesti tahansa – et ole enää sinä kuin valokuvasi tai enemmän kuin kuva mistään . Kaikki kuvamme itsestämme eivät ole muuta kuin karikatyyrejä. Useimmille meistä ne eivät sisällä tietoa siitä, kuinka kasvatamme aivojamme, kuinka työskentelemme hermoihimme, kuinka kierrätämme verta, kuinka eritämme rauhasten kanssa ja miten muokkaamme luita. Se ei sisälly sensaatioon tai kuvaan, jota kutsumme egoksi. Ilmeisesti siis egokuva ei ole minun minäni. 11:40 Joten minun minäni sisältää kaikki nämä tekijät, joita voisimme sanoa, että keho tekee: verenkierto, hengitys, hermojen sähköinen toiminta - kaikki tämä olen minä, mutta en tiedä siitä mitään . en tiedä miten se tuli yhteen, en tiedä miten se rakennettiin. Ja silti teen kaiken tämän, jos se on totta, myös sanoakseni "hengitän. Minä kävelen. Mielestäni. Olen tajuissani." En tiedä miten pärjään, mutta teen sen samalla tavalla kun kasvatan hiuksiani. Minun täytyy siis paikantaa itseni keskipiste – minun minäni – syvemmälle tasolle kuin egoni, joka on kuvani tai käsitykseni itsestäni. 12:41 Mutta kuinka syvälle mennään?Voimme sanoa, että keho on minä , mutta keho tulee ulos muusta maailmankaikkeudesta, tulee ulos kaikesta energiastaan. Joten se on maailmankaikkeus, joka minä olen . Universumi on samalla tavalla kuin omenapuu tai tähti loistaa . Ja omenan keskipiste on puu, loistavien keskipiste on tähti, ja niinpä minän peruskeskus – eli Itse – jota kutsutaan tässä tapauksessa Alan Wattsiksi, joka on vain nimi. tälle tietylle fyysiselle organismille; kukinta tästä erityisestä ympäristöstä, loistaa ulos tästä ympäristöstä – tekee kaiken tämän ikuisen maailmankaikkeuden keskuksen .Voi, ikuinen – asia on ollut olemassa kymmenen tuhatta miljoonaa vuotta ja todennäköisesti jatkuu vielä ainakin niin paljon, joten emme murehdi kuinka kauan se jatkuu. 13:55 Mutta - toistuvasti - se on , joten minusta tuntuu täysin järkevältä olettaa, että kun kuolen ja tämä fyysinen ruumis haihtuu ja koko muistijärjestelmä sen mukana, niin se on jälleen kerran tietoisuus, joka minulla oli ennen - ei aivan samalla tavalla – vaan vauvan syntymästä. Syntyy tietysti lukemattomia vauvoja, ei vain ihmisvauvoja, vaan sammakkovauvoja, kaniinivauvoja, hedelmäkärpästen vauvoja, vauvaviruksia, bakteereja, ja kuka heistä aion olla? Vain yksi heistä, ja silti jokainen heistä. Koska tämä kokemus tulee aina yksikössä, yksi kerrallaan. Mutta ehdottomasti yksi niistä. 15:03 Itse asiassa sillä ei ole paljon väliä. Sillä jos synnyin uudesti hedelmäkärpäsenä, luulisin, että hedelmäkärpäsenä oleminen oli tavallista, tavallista tapahtumien kulkua. Ja luonnollisesti luulisin olevani tärkeä henkilö – erittäin sivistynyt olento – koska hedelmäkärpäsillä on ilmeisesti korkea kulttuuri. Emme edes tiedä, miten sitä etsiä, mutta luultavasti heillä on kaikenlaisia ​​sinfoniaa, musiikkia ja taiteellisia esityksiä siinä, miten valo heijastuu heidän siivistään eri tavoin, kuinka he tanssivat ilmassa, ja he sanovat: "Oi, katso häntä! Hänellä on oikea tyyli! Katso, kuinka auringonvalo nousee hänen siivistään!" Ja he ovat maailmassaan yhtä tärkeitä ja yhtä sivistyneet kuin me omassa maailmassamme, jotta jos heräisin hedelmäkärpäsenä, en tunteisi itseäni (ikään kuin) erilaiseksi kuin silloin Herään ihmisenä. Olisin tottunut siihen. 15:58 "No", sanot kuitenkin, "se en olisi minä ! Sillä jos se olisin minä uudelleen, minun pitäisi muistaa, millainen olin ennen." Selvä, mutta et – nyt – muista, millainen olit ennen, ja silti olet tarpeeksi tyytyväinen ollaksesi se minä, joka olet. Itse asiassa se on täysin hyvä järjestely tässä maailmassa, että emme muista mitä se oli ennen. Miksi? Koska monimuotoisuus on elämän mauste, ja jos muistaisimme, muistaisimme, muistelimme tehneemme tämän uudestaan ​​ja uudestaan, ja uudestaan ​​ja uudestaan, meidän pitäisi kyllästyä. Ja aivan kuten muisto on kaunis asia, joka täytyy muistaa, ilman muistia emme voi olla älykkäitä. Mutta aivan kuten olen selittänyt, että hahmon näkemiseksi pitää olla tausta, jotta muisto olisi arvokas, pitää olla myös unohdus. 07:01 Siksi nukumme joka yö virkistäytyäksemme: menemme alitajuntaan, jotta tietoisuuteen paluu on jälleen hieno kokemus. No, kun sitä on kestänyt tarpeeksi kauan – kun päivästä toiseen muistamme menneitä päiviä (vaikka univäli onkin) – tulee kohta, jolloin todellakin , jos ajattelemme, mikä on meidän todellista mieltymystämme. , haluamme unohtaa kaiken , mikä meni ennen, jotta voimme saada poikkeuksellisen kokemuksen nähdä maailma jälleen vauvan silmin – olipa vauva mikä tahansa. Joten se on täysin uusi ja meillä on (Text sourced from https://www.organism.earth/library/document/essential-lectures-8) kaikki hämmästyttävä ihme, joka lapsella on; kaikki havainnon eloisuus, jota emme voi saada, jos muistamme kaiken ikuisesti. 17:52 Joten näetkö mitä tapahtuu? Maailmankaikkeus on järjestelmä, joka ei vain unohda itsensä ja muistaa sitten uudelleen niin, että aina on jatkuvaa muutosta ja jatkuvaa vaihtelua ajan kuluessa, vaan se tekee sen myös avaruuden aikavälillä katsomalla itseään jokaisen eri elämisen läpi. organismi antaa ikään kuin kokonaisvaltainen näkemys – tiedäthän, se on tapa päästä eroon ennakkoluuloista: päästä eroon yksipuolisesta näkemyksestä. Joten kuolema on siinä mielessä valtava vapautus yksitoikkoisuudesta. Se asettaa täydellisen unohtamisen välin rytmiseen päälle ja pois, päälle ja pois, jotta voit aloittaa kaiken alusta etkä koskaan kyllästy. 18:56 Mutta pointti on, että jos kuvittelet ajatuksesta olla mitään aina ja aina ja aina, sanot todella: "Kuolemani jälkeen maailmankaikkeus pysähtyy." Ja mitä sanon on: ei, se jatkuu aivan kuten se tapahtui, kun sinä synnyit. Saatat sanoa, että sinun mielestäsi on uskomatonta, että sinulla on useampi kuin yksi elämä. Mutta sanon ensinnäkin, eikö olekin uskomatonta, että sinulla on tämä ? Eikö olekin uskomatonta, että tässä olet menneisyytesi keskellä? Miksi, se on hämmästyttävää. Joten jos se on hämmästyttävää, se voi aina tapahtua uudelleen ja uudelleen ja uudelleen. 19:52 Tämä tarkoittaa siis sitä, että aivan kuten et tiedä kuinka onnistut olemaan tietoinen, kuinka onnistut kasvattamaan ja muotoilemaan tätä kehoasi, se ei tarkoita, että et tee sitä. . Samoin et tiedä, kuinka universumi loistaa tähdet, muodostaa tähtikuvioita ja galaksit galakseja – et tiedä. Mutta se ei tarkoita, ettet tee sitä samalla tavalla kuin hengität tietämättä kuinka hengität. Jos sanon: "Todella ja todella, minä olen koko tämä universumi" tai - toisin sanoen - "Tämä tietty organismi on koko maailmankaikkeuden tekemä minä-olento ", ja joku voisi sanoa minulle: "No kuka helvetissä luuletko olevasi? Oletko sinä jumala? Lämmitteletkö galakseja? Pystytkö sitomaan Plejadien makeat vaikutteet tai löysäätkö Orionin siteet ? ” Ja minä vastaisin siihen: ”Kuka helvetti sinä luulet olevasi ? Voitko kertoa minulle, kuinka kasvatat aivosi, miten muotoilet silmämunasi ja kuinka pystyt näkemään? No, jos et voi kertoa minulle sitä, en voi kertoa sinulle, kuinka lämmitän galaksia." Vain: Olen paikantanut itseni keskuksen syvemmälle ja yleismaailmallisemmalle tasolle kuin me kulttuurissamme olemme tottuneet tekemään. 21:43 Niin sitten,jos tuo universaali energia on todellinen minä – todellinen Itse, joka on kuin kaikki nämä erilaiset organismit leviävät eri tiloihin tai paikkoihin ja tapahtuvat uudestaan ​​ja uudestaan ​​ja uudestaan ​​eri aikoina – meillä (Text sourced from https://www.organism.earth/library/document/essential-lectures-8) on ihmeellinen järjestelmä menossa. josta voit olla ikuisesti yllättynyt. Universumi on todella järjestelmä, joka jatkuvasti yllättää itsensä. Monilla meistä (etenkin teknisen osaamisen aikakaudella) pyrkimys saada kaikki hallinnassamme on väärä kunnianhimo, koska sinun tarvitsee vain ajatella hetken: millaista olisi, jos todella tietäisit ja hallitset kaikki? Oletetaan, että meillä on superkolossaali teknologia, joka voisi mennä villeimmille unelmillemme teknologisesta osaamisesta, jotta kaikki tapahtuva olisi ennalta tiedossa, ennustettavissa ja kaikki olisi hallinnassamme? Miksi, tiedätkö, se olisi kuin rakastelisi muovinaisen kanssa. Siinä ei olisi yllätystä, ei äkillistä vastauskosketusta – aivan kuin kosketamme toista ihmistä, se ei ole kuin koskettaisi jotain muovista valmistetta. Sieltä tulee vastaus, jotain odottamatonta. Ja sitä me todella haluamme, kun haluamme olla yhteydessä toiseen. 23:25 Näet, et voi kokea tunnetta, jota kutsut "itseksi", ellei se ole ristiriidassa "toisen" tunteen kanssa. Se on kuin tunnettua ja tuntematonta, valoa ja pimeyttä, positiivista ja negatiivista. Muuta tarvitaan, jotta voit tuntea itsesi. Eikö se sitten ole se järjestely, jonka haluat? 23:54 Ja niin, samalla tavalla, etkö voisi sanoa, että järjestely, jonka haluat, ei ole muistaa – muisti on aina, muista, kontrollin muoto : minulla on se mielessä, muistan sen, tiedän numerosi. Olet hallinnassa. Jos nyt jatkat muistamista, muistamista ja muistamista, se on kuin kirjoittaisit paperille ja jatkaisit kirjoittamista, ja kirjoittamista ja kirjoittamista, kunnes paperille ei jää tyhjää tilaa. Muistisi on täynnä, joten sinun on pyyhittävä kaikki puhtaaksi, jotta sinulla on valkoinen paperi uudelleen ja voit alkaa kirjoittaa sille uudelleen. 24:36 Sitä kuolema siis tekee meille: se pyyhkii liuskekiven puhtaaksi ja myös – katsoen sitä planeetan väestön ja ihmisorganismin näkökulmasta – se puhdistaa meidät jatkuvasti. Ja ajatus teknologiasta, jonka avulla jokainen meistä voisi olla kuolematon, olisi jotain, joka täyttiisi planeetan vähitellen ihmisillä, joilla on toivottoman täynnä muistoja. He olisivat kuin ihmiset, jotka asuvat talossa, johon he olisivat keränneet niin paljon omaisuutta, niin paljon kirjoja, niin monia maljakoita, niin monia veitsisarjoja ja haarukoita, niin monia pöytiä ja tuoleja, niin monia sanomalehtiä. – ei olisi tilaa liikkua! Tarvitsemme tilaa elääksemme. Ja avaruus on eräänlaista tyhjyyttä. Ja kuolema on eräänlainen tyhjyys. Kaikki on sama periaate. Ja asettamalla ikään kuin lohkoja tai tyhjyyden tiloja - avaruuden tiloja - jonkin tilojen väliin saamme elämän asianmukaisesti erilleen. Saksan sanaa käyttäen: Lebensraum , "huone asumiseen". Sitä avaruus antaa meille, ja sen antaa meille kuolema. 26:00 Katso nyt: huomaa, että kaikessa, mitä olen sanonut kuolemasta, en ole tuonut sisään mitään, jota voisin kutsua pelotukseksi. En ole tuonut mitään tietoa mistään, jota et jo tiedä. En ole vedonnut mihinkään mystiseen tietoon sieluista, muistoista entisistä elämistä tai sellaisista. Olen vain puhunut siitä termeillä, jotka me jo tiedämme. Joten jos sanot: "Kaikki tämä ajatus, joka ihmisillä on haudan takana olevasta elämästä, on vain toiveajattelua", sanon: "Okei. Minä myönnän sen." Oletetaan, että se on toiveajattelua ja että kun olemme kuolleet, ei vain ole mitään . Todettakoon se tosiasia: se tulee olemaan loppu. Huomaa nyt ensinnäkin, että se on pahin asia, jota sinun täytyy pelätä. Pelottaako se sinua? Kuka pelkää? Oletetaan, että se loppuu? Ei enää ongelmia! 27:11 Mutta sitten tulet huomaamaan, että tämä tyhjyys – jos noudatit väitettäni – on jotain, josta sinä ikään kuin pomppaat jälleen , aivan kuten pomhdit alun perin syntyessäsi: sinä pommitat tyhjyydestä. Tyhmyys on eräänlaista pomppimista, koska se merkitsee – mikään ei merkitse mitään. Joten palaat takaisin. Kaikki uutta, kaikki erilaista, ei mitään verrattavaa aikaisempaan, virkistävä kokemus. 27:43 Jajos siis saat tämän tunteen – aivan kuten sinulla ei ole mitään käsitystä silmiesi takana – saat tuntemattomuuden tunteen (erittäin voimakkaan, pirteän tyhjyyden) koko olemuksesi taustalla, eikä siinä ole mitään pelättävää. , silloin – tällä tavalla – voit tulla ihmiseksi, jolle loppuelämä on kastiketta, koska olet jo kuollut. Tiedät, että tulet kuolemaan. Sanomme, että yksi asia on varma, se on kuolema ja verot. Ja meidän jokaisen kuolema nyt on yhtä varma kuin se olisi, jos kuolisimme viiden minuutin kuluttua. Joten missä on ahdistuksesi, missä on puhelusi? Pidä itseäsi jo kuolleena, jotta sinulla ei ole mitään menetettävää.Turkkilainen sananlasku sanoo: "Se, joka nukkuu lattialla, ei putoa sängystä." Joten samalla tavalla henkilö, joka pitää itseään jo kuolleena, joka – siis et ole käytännössä mitään. Sadan vuoden päästä olet kourallinen pölyä. Se tulee olemaan totta. Hyvä on. Toimi tuon todellisuuden mukaan, etkä yllätä itsesi yllättäen mistään: tuosta mitä enemmän tiedät, ettet ole mitään, sitä enemmän tulet olemaan jotain.
      ellauri399.html on line 145: entrepreneur of our times. Expert Opinion By Hitendra Fatwa, Founder, Mentula Institute Jun 21, 2015. Anakonda löytyy myös kersantti Pippurin puhallinsoitinyhtyeen levykannesta albumissa 219 nobelisti Bob Zimmermanin alapuolelta. See also album 219 missä tämä mustakutri keekoilee nummerolla 33 rehupiiklesien levykannessa hairdressers wax dummyn viekossa.
      ellauri399.html on line 151: The two finally ended their romantic relationship for good in late 1977, after Brennan became pregnant with their daughter, Lisa. Brennan worked as a waitress and collected welfare checks to support herself and their baby daughter. Jobs publicly denied he was Lisa’s father for years, even though he took a paternity test in 1979 proving he was the dad. He was paying $500 a month in child support when he told Time magazine in 1983, “28 percent of the male population in the United States could be the father.”
      ellauri399.html on line 155: It was like a game of Snakes and Ladders, with [Steve] as the game master. The ups were hopeful and the downs were extreme. I didn’t know how to hold my own with him because he didn’t play fair. He just played to win — and win at any cost. [Steve] had a way of being spiritually advanced while also being emotionally underdeveloped.
      ellauri399.html on line 160: [Steve] Jobs planned every detail of his own memorial service, held at Stanford University in October 2011, including the brown box each attendee received as a farewell gift. One of those attendees was Mark Benioff, CEO of Salesforce.com, and two years later at a TechCrunch Disrupt conference he recounted his feelings at the moment when he opened the box: "This is going to be good," he recalled. "I knew that this was a decision [Steve] made, and whatever it was, it was the last thing he wanted us all to think about."
      ellauri399.html on line 174: Yogananda's story is an inspiring lesson in spiritual entrepreneurship. Born in 1893 in Gorakhpur, India, he alighted on American soil at the young age of 27 with little money in his pocket but with a firm resolve to reawaken humanity to the power of yoga for inner transformation. Over the next few years he brought this message to packed audiences of thousands in all major U.S. cities, at Carnegie Hall in New York City, for example, dressing this ancient teaching in a practical modern form he called "cooking the cucumbers"--a journey he characterized as transcending your individual self (ego) and realizing and reclaiming your true universal self (soul). As the American people were being buffeted by the thunderous wrath of two world wars and a major depression, he exhorted them to practice yoga so they could discover that the spiritual anchorage they were seeking was already with them--in fact, it was within them. The successful yogi, he stated, "can stand unshaken amidst the crash of breaking worlds." Fucking idiots.
      ellauri399.html on line 194: To some, the yogic pursuit of inner perfection may appear a little selfish. Shouldn't we be solving the world's most vexing problems, rather than withdrawing into blissful inner communion? In fact, one time, when Yogananda sat still, absorbed in a particularly blissful state of consciousness, his spiritual master admonished him: "You must not get overdrunk with ecstasy. Much work yet remains for you in the world." So Yogananda learned that this choice between outer service and inner joy represents a false dichotomy. The yoga he taught emphasizes balancing service with meditation, and highlights the expansion of consciousness that comes when we are able to go beyond our human self and open ourselves up, through inner realization, to a deeper connection with every living being--in fact, with every atom in the universe. "When the 'I' shall die, then shall I know who am I," he stated in a word perfect imitation of a Yedi master.
      ellauri399.html on line 200: Since Yogananda's passing the buck in 1952, many teachers have followed his trailblazing path to bring yoga to our world, helping make it a fixture in popular culture as it continues to take hold with young and old, the elite and the ordinary, the spiritualists and the atheists. What distinguishes Yogananda from these subsequent emissaries is not simply that he paved the way for the modern yoga movement, but that from the outset he focused far beyond physical exercises and shone a powerful and practical torchlight on the path to yoga's true purpose: actualizing the infinite potentials within us all. Perhaps that is why his Autobiography of a Yogi was the only book Jobs downloaded on his iPad--and, after first encountering the book as a teenager, went back and reread once every year.
      ellauri399.html on line 210: The yogananda guy was “directly commanded” by God to teach the world “the secret yogic science of self-liberation.” He moved to the U.S. in 1920 to fulfill his charge. In Southern California he established the headquarters of a Self-Satisfaction Fellowship, with a membership of some 150,000. For more than 30 years he taught his disciples the yoga doctrine that human beings can achieve “god-realization” through their own efforts at disciplining mind and body. Even skeptics testified to his own discipline, e.g., he could slow or speed the pulse in his right wrist, while retaining a normal pulse beat in the left. For the last two years the guru suffered from a “metaphysically induced illness,” as his disciples put it—the result of “working out” on his own body some of the physical and spiritual burdens of his friends. Last November he began hinting that it was time for him to leave the world. As the weeks passed, the Master grew silent like a broken parking sensor.He stopped dictating his spiritual books. His last “little desire” was fulfilled, he said, when a disciple from Florida sent him some green coconut juice in March.
      ellauri399.html on line 212: The fellowship’s magazine, Marching the Penguin, tells the rest of the story. On March 6, Paramhansa told his disciples laughingly, “I have a big day tomorrow. Wish me luck.” The next day he attended a banquet at Los Angeles’ Biltmore Hotel for the new Indian ambassador, Binay Ranjan Sen, and his beautiful wife. *Seated with legs wide apart: Mme. Binay Ranjan Sen, wife of the Indian Ambassador, with a transsexual looking guru touching her private parts in a respectful Hindu way (the pronam.)" After eating modestly (pussy, vegetables, yellowish hairy nut juice and a raspberry parfait), the guru rose to make a speech about “spiritual India.” He ended it with a quotation from one of his own poems:
      Where Ganges, woods, Himalayan man caves, and men dream God—I am hallowed; my elongated body part touched the wife of that sod.

      ellauri399.html on line 214: As he finished, Paramhansa lifted his eyes, turned slightly to the right and slid to the floor, dead.
      ellauri399.html on line 220: Sri Daya Mata, syntynyt Rachel Faye Wright (31. tammikuuta 1914 – 30. marraskuuta 2010), oli Intian Self-Realization Fellowshipin / Yagoda Malinka Societyn (SRF/YSS) kolmas presidentti ja uskonnollinen johtaja . Hän oli SRF/YSS:n presidentti yli 55 vuotta kuolemaansa asti vuonna 2010.  Itsensä tyydyttämisen stipendiaatti, vaaleanpunaisen kanootin soutaja. Faye Wright syntyi Salt Lake Cityssä Utahissa perheeseen, joka oli sidoksissa Myöhempien Aikojen Pyhien Jeesuksen Kristuksen Kirkkoon (LDS-kirkko). Hänen vanhempansa, Clarence Aaron Wright ja Rachel Terry Wright, polveutuivat alkuperäisistä mormonien pioneereista Salt Lake Valleyyn. Hänen isoisänsä Abraham Reister Wright Jr. oli MAP-kirkon Suolajärven tabernaakkelin arkkitehti. Talking about an apostate. Siinäpä vasta luopio!
      ellauri401.html on line 73: Fama Fraternitatis esittelee legendan saksalaisesta lääkäristä ja mystikkofilosofista, jota kutsutaan "Isäveli CRC:ksi" (myöhemmin tunnistettiin kolmannessa manifestissa nimellä Christian Rosenkreuz tai "Rose-cross"). Vuosi 1378 esitetään "kristillisen Isämme" syntymävuotena, ja hänen kerrotaan eläneen 106 vuotta. Opiskeltuaan Lähi-idässä eri mestareiden johdolla, mahdollisesti liittyneenä sufismiin, hän ei kyennyt levittämään hankkimaansa tietoa merkittäville eurooppalaisille tiedemiehille ja filosofeille. Sen sijaan hän kokosi pienen ystäväpiirin/opetuslapsia ja perusti Ruusuristiläisen ritarikunnan (tämän voidaan päätellä tapahtuneen noin 1407). Outoa pyllistelyä. Kuinka kukaan voi oikeasti pitää tälläsestä?
      ellauri401.html on line 184: Pekka pohti paljon keinotekoisen maailmankuvan hyötyä ja etuja, ja hänelle oli selvinnyt useita ”periaatteellisia tukikohtia”: kielen tuli olla mahdollisimman yksinkertainen ja säännöllinen rakenteeltaan ja mahdollisimman soinnukas, mikä viimeksi mainittu seikka merkizi paljon musikaaliselle Pekalle, eli että sen tuli mahdollisimman paljon muistuttaa hänen ihannekieltään italiankieltä. Vuoden 1890 tienoilla Pekka löysi kirjakaupasta ruotsinkielisen esperanto-oppaan. Pekka osti sen ja ryhtyi heti uteliaasti ja innokkaasti lukemaan sitä. Esperanto oli Pekalle suuri ja iloinen yllätys. Esperanton kehittäjä tohtori L. L. Zamenhof oli sangen läheltä saavuttanut sen ihanteen, jonka Pekka oli asettanut päämääräkseen: ”Hänen kielensä oli uskomattoman yksinkertainen rakenteeltaan, mutta samalla taipuisa ja altis hienoillekin ajatusvivahduksille. Ja ennen kaikkea sillä oli italiankieltä muistuttava sointu.” Lähemmin tutustuessaan Pekka löysi esperantostakin rumia kohtia, joista ei pitänyt, mm. saxalaisia ja venäläisiä sanoja. Ne koskivat hänen korviinsa. Myös kieliopin logiikkaan hänellä oli huomauttamista sanojen johtamiseen liittyen.
      ellauri401.html on line 296: Iloissaan Pekka kertoi sitten heti samana iltana kodissaan, että oli ”nähnyt Jumalan” ja syntynyt uudestaan ”Jumalan Pojaksi”, mutta kotiväki ei osannut jakaa hänen iloaan. Isä arveli toistenkin ajatusten tulkkina: ”Kyllä nyt taitaa olla loppu lähellä. Etköhän ole tulemaisillasi hulluksi ylpeydestä, sillä kuinka ihminen muuten niin saattaa puhua.” Niin Jee-suxellekin varmaan sanottiin kotioloissa. Kukaan ei ole profeetta omalla maallaan, eikä seppä syntyessään. Sinunko pyllystä se päivä paistaa, kyselevät tylyt kyynikot. Vaan jospa paistaakin! Eihän sitä koskaan tiedä.
      ellauri401.html on line 447: Pekka ennusti heinäkuussa 1914 että sota alkaisi heinäkuussa 1914. Pian alkoi tulla esille Besantin kanta, että Valkoinen veljeskunta taisteli liittolaisten puolella keskusvaltoja vastaan. Besantin asennoituminen aiheutti, että Ervast vetäytyi hengessään syrjään hänestä. Don't underestimate the power of the dark side of the force! Soon the power of the eye of Sarnath will be mine! Kyeh-kyeh-kyeh! Ervast ja Krang on kuin 2 marjaa.
      ellauri401.html on line 609: Ervastilla oli hartaita toiveita Suomen ilmaston muuttumiseksi. Hän toivoi Suomen kesää pitemmäksi, ”jos se olisi vallassani. Talvea en tahtoisi pois, en millään muotoa, mutta syksyn tekisin lyhyemmäksi ja ehkä keväänkin. Kesä saisi alkaa huhtikuussa ja kestää lokakuun loppuun, marraskuu olisi kaunista syksyä, joulu–helmikuu talvea ja maaliskuu kevättä.” Hänen salainen toiveensa oli, että ”ilmanala vähitellen muuttuu tämän laatuiseksi Suomessa ja ehkä Pohjolassa yleensä. Sillä maa, joka on niin ihana kuin Suomi, ansaitsee luonnon puolesta ihanan ilmanalan.” No nyt on Pekan rukous kuultu. Kaliforniaa vaivaa kuivuus, maastopalot, hirmumyrskyt, mutavyöryt ja maanjäristykset, Suomessa on keväät kuivat, kesät vuoroin kylmät vuoroin hirmuhelteiset ja syxy jatkuu joulun ylize.
      ellauri401.html on line 703: Kolmas käsky: Älkää ollenkaan vannoko. Tämä voi ilmaista lyhyesti seuraavalla tavalla: Ole tosi rehellinen. (Vainotut oikeistolaiset)
      ellauri401.html on line 707: Viides käsky: Rakastakaa vihollisianne, ja rukoilkaa niiden edestä, jotka teitä vainoavat (älä sodi). Lyhyesti sanottuna: Rakasta kaikkia. (Henkisest köyhät)
      ellauri402.html on line 317:
      Mathers became increasingly eccentric in his later years as was noted by W. B. Yeats.

      ellauri402.html on line 424: Saxilaisten mukaan Vlad rakensi suuren kuparisen kattilan ja laittoi päälle puusta tehdyn kannen, jossa oli reikiä. Hän laittoi ihmiset pataan ja laittoi heidän päänsä reikiin ja kiinnitti ne sinne; sitten hän täytti sen vedellä ja sytytti tulen sen alle ja antoi ihmisten huutaa silmittömästi, kunnes ne kuolivat. Ja sitten hän keksi pelottavia, kauheita, ennenkuulumattomia kidutuksia. Hän määräsi, että naiset paalutetaan yhdessä heidän imettävien vauvojensa kanssa samaan paaluun. Vauvat taistelivat henkensä puolesta äitinsä rinnoilla kuolemaansa asti. Sitten hän leikkasi naisten rinnat pois ja laittoi vauvat sisälle pää edellä; niin hän pani ne yhteen. Jotkut anekdoottien elementit lisättiin myöhemmin venäläisiin tarinoihin Venäjän Ivan Kamalasta. Esimerkiksi tarina miehelleen liian lyhyen paidan tehneen naisen teloituksesta löytyy saksilaisten ja slaavilaisten anekdoottien joukosta.
      ellauri402.html on line 487: After the Civil War, increased leftist activity was particularly evident on construction sites. The number of strikes increased and several of them became politicized. The interests of the Communists and the Soviet Union were seen as the reason for the strikes. In 1920, employers' organizations decided to set up a special organization focused on breaking strikes. Martti Pihkala came to lead this organization called Vientirauha. Vientirauha, known as the 'Pihkala Guard', had a maximum of 34,000 men, from which strike breakers could be assembled if necessary. Especially in Southern Ostrobothnia, Pihkala's organization was strong. Vihtori Kosola, the future frontman of the Lapua movement was an agent for the Vientirauha. The best known of the strikes broken by the organization was the year-long harbor strike that began in 1928.
      ellauri402.html on line 647: Lähestyessään seuraavaa kohdetta, katkesi yhteys hävittäjäkoneeseen. Myöhemmin selvisi, että kone oli syöksynyt maahan ja lentäjä kuollut, tiedotti pääesikunta torstaina. Maahansyöksypaikkaa ei kerrottu.

      AIEMMIN torstaina Ukrainan ilmavoimat kertoi, että sen lentäjä, everstiluutnantti Oleksii Mes, koodinimeltään "Moonfish", oli kuollut 26. elokuuta. – Oleksii tuhosi kolme risteilyohjusta ja yhden lennokin torjuessaan Venäjän massiivista ilma- ja ohjushyökkäystä, kertoi ilmavoimat. Mies haudattiin sotilaallisin kunnianosoituksin kotikaupungissaan Lutskissa Luoteis-Ukrainassa torstaina. Mes ylennettiin postuumisti everstiksi. Mies oli WSJ:n mukaan yksi F-16-koulutuksen saaneista ukrainalaislentäjistä.
      ellauri402.html on line 768: Sen syrjäytti suurelta osin Paavalin apocalypse, suosittu 4. vuosisadan teos, johon Pietarin Apocalypse vaikutti voimakkaasti ja joka tarjoaa oman päivitetyn näkemyksensä taivaasta ja helvetistä. The Apocalypse of Peter on varhainen esimerkki samasta genrestä kuin kuuluisa Danten jumalallinen näytelmä, jossa päähenkilö tekee kiertueen tuonpuoleisen maailmaan. Kreikkalaisen katabasisin tai nekyian muodossa se käsittelee yksityiskohtaisesti kunkin rikostyypin rangaistuksia helvetissä sekä hahmotellaan lyhyesti taivaan luonnetta. Teos etenee kuvaamaan pahoja odottavia rangaistuksia. Monia rangaistuksia valvoo Ezrael, vihan enkeli (todennäköisimmin enkeli Azrael, vaikkakin mahdollisesti turmeltunut viittaus enkeli Sarieliin ). Enkeli Uriel herättää kuolleet uuteen ruumiiseen, jotta heidät voidaan joko palkita tai kiduttaa fyysisesti. Näyn mukaan rangaistuksia helvetissä ovat:
      ellauri402.html on line 811: Näky taivaasta on lyhyempi kuin helvetin kuvaus, ja se on kuvattu täydellisemmin Akhmim-versiossa. Samoinhan käy Dantella, kukasn ei jaxa lukea komedian loppueriä. Taivaassa ihmisillä on puhtaan maidonvalkoinen iho, kiharat hiukset ja he ovat yleensä kauniita. Maa kukkii ikuisilla kukilla ja mausteilla. Ihmiset käyttävät kiiltäviä, valosta valmistettuja vaatteita, kuten enkelit. Kaikki laulavat kuororukouksessa.
      ellauri403.html on line 103: Ja sen jälkeen minä näin miehiä ja naisia pukeutuneena rievuihin, jotka olivat täynnä pikeä ja tulikiveä, ja lohikäärmeitä oli kierretty heidän kaulaansa, hartioihinsa ja jalkoihinsa, ja enkelit, joilla oli tulen sarvet, pakottivat heitä ja löivät heitä ja sulkivat heidän sieraimet sanoen: heille: Miksi ette tienneet aikaa, jolloin teidän oli oikea tehdä parannus ja palvella Jumalaa, etkä tiennyt? Ja minä kysyin: Keitä nämä ovat, Herra? Ja hän sanoi minulle: Nämä ovat niitä, jotka näyttivät hylkäävän maailman ( lat. Jumalan), pukeutuen meidän asumme, mutta maailman paulat tekivät heidät onnellisiksi: he eivät osoittaneet rakkautta eivätkä säälineet leskiä ja orpoja. : muukalaista ja pyhiinvaeltajaa he eivät ottaneet vastaan, eivät uhraaneet ainuttakaan uhria eivätkä säälineet lähimmäistänsä, ja heidän rukouksensa ei noussut edes yhtenä päivänä puhtaana Herralle Jumalalle; mutta maailman monet paulat pidättelivät heitä, eivätkä he kyenneet toimimaan oikein Jumalan edessä. Ja enkelit kantoivat ( lat. piirittivät) heidät ympäriinsä kidutusten paikkaan, ja ne, jotka kärsivät, näkivät heidät ja sanoivat heille: Me totisesti, kun elimme maailmassa, jätimme huomiotta Jumalan, ja te teitte samoin. Ja me, kun olimme maailmassa, tiesimme olevamme syntisiä, mutta teistä sanottiin: Nämä ovat vanhurskaita ja Jumalan palvelijoita. Nyt me tiedämme, että te olette vain Herran nimessä kutsutut. Siksi he myös maksavat kuuluvan sakon.
      ellauri403.html on line 151: Mikä tuntehikas, yhä kuumeneva kiihkeys jo virtasikaan koko olemuksessani, ylettyen siittimeni sulaan ytimeen, sen kumiluotiin asti. Ja aivan kuin vastaukseksi hullaantuneelle kiihkolleni tunnen, että sykintäsi alkaa lisääntyä. Tuk.. tuk.. tuk.. yhä nopeammin - yhä voimakkaammin.
      ellauri403.html on line 305: Kun hän ensimmäisen kerran haki viisumia Yhdysvaltoihin 1950-luvun puolivälissä, häneltä evättiin alun perin sillä perusteella, että hän oli ollut kommunistisen siirtokunnan jäsen eikä ollut koskaan julkisesti luopunut kibbutzista. Ainoastaan Walter Lippmannin myönteinen arvostelu Laqueurin ensimmäisestä englanniksi julkaistusta kirjasta käänsi asiat toisin päin. Lippmann oli vaikutusvaltainen hahmo ordoliberalismin syntyessä. Walter Lippmannin järjestämä talouslibelaaritapaaminen vuodelta 1938 katsotaan ratkaisevan tärkeäxi uusliberalismin kehitykselle. Lippmann olisaksalaista syntyperää olevien juutalaisten vanhempien ainoa lapsi, ja, kuten hänen elämäkerransa Ronald Steel kirjoittaa, kasvoi "kullatussa juutalaisessa ghetossa". Hänen isänsä Jacob Lippmann oli vuokranantaja, joka oli rikastunut isänsä tekstiiliyrityksen ja anoppinsa kiinteistöspekuloinnin kautta. Varakas ja vaikutusvaltainen perhe kuului yhteiskunnan ylempään luokkaan, piti yhteyksiä korkeimpiin piireihin ja vietti säännöllisesti kesälomansa Euroopassa hoitoa varten. Perhe oli reformijuutalainen ja kävi temppelissä Emanu-El. Lippmann oli emotionaalisesti etäällä molemmista vanhemmista, mutta hänellä oli läheisempiä siteitä äitinsä isoäitiin. Perheen poliittinen suuntautuminen oli republikaaninen.
      ellauri403.html on line 345: Jon tutkimus on erikoistunut haitalliseen poliittiseen kieleen julkisella sektorilla keskittyen ruudun väliviivavirrassa globaalista taloudellisista ja poliittisista kysymyksistä. Metodologisesti Jo on erikoistunut laskennalliseen ja kvantitatiivisin menetelmin, jotka analysoivat massapoliittinen tekstiä, mukaan lukien corpus ja laskennallinen kielitiede, luonnollisen kielen käsittely, ihmisen ja automatisoitu sisällönanalyysi sekä teksti-as-data-strategiat. Hän pitää Ph.D-esitelmiä alasti englannixi kielitieteestä ja valtiosta (metodologia & IR).
      ellauri403.html on line 479: GRETA THUNBERG has once again come under harsh criticism after 19-year-old self-declared "anti-Greta Thunberg" Naomi Seibt claimed most of young climate change activists fail to do enough research on the subject.
      ellauri405.html on line 86: Lyhyesti sanoen totuus on se, että alkaen kello 21.00 itärannikon aikaa Neuvostoliitto ei enää ole maailman hallitseva sotilasmahti. Se ei enää uhkaa tätä maata ja koko muuta maailmaa. Yhdysvaltain ylivalta on ehdoton. Pax Americana ei ole enää vain mahdollisuus, se on realiteetti. Tästä lähtien me voimme sanella ehtomme. Minä rukoilen maailmankaikkeuden kaikkivaltiaalta Jumalalta, että me osaisimme käyttää tätä valtavaa voimaa vastuuntuntoisesti ja ihmiskunnan hyväksi. Jos emme osaa niin se on voi, turha tulla meille nokkaa koputtamaan.
      ellauri405.html on line 156: Hafezin Divān ( persiaksi: دیوان حافظ) on iranilaisen runoilijan Hafezin kirjoittama runokokoelma. Suurin osa näistä runoista on persiaksi, mutta on myös makaroonisia runoja (persiaksi ja arabiaksi) ja täysin arabialaista ghazalia. Tämän Divānin tärkein osa on ghazalit. Myös muissa muodoissa olevia runoja, kuten qetʿe, qasida, mathnawi ja rubaʿi, sisältyy Divaaniin, mutta on litistynyt tyynyjen väliin. Ei ole todisteita siitä, että Hafezin kadonneet runot olisivat saaneet muodostaa suurimman osan hänen runoistaan, ja lisäksi Hafez oli erittäin kuuluisa elinaikanaan. Siksi hän ei voinut olla tuottelias runoilija. Yleisesti hyväksyttyjen ghazalien määrä on alle 500: 495 ghazalia Ghazvini- ja Ghani-painoksessa, 486 ghazalia Natel-Khanlarin toisessa painoksessa ja 484 ghazalia Sayeh -painoksessa.
      ellauri405.html on line 168: Shiraz (persia): شیراز ; / ʃ ɪəˈr ɑː z / ⓘ ;[ʃiːˈɾɒːz] ) on Iranin viidenneksi väkirikkain kaupunki ja Farsin maakunnan pääkaupunki, joka on historiallisesti tunnettu nimellä Pars (پارس,Pārs) ja Persiis. Vuoden 2016 valtakunnallisessa väestönlaskennassa kaupungin väkiluku oli 1 565 572 asukasta, ja sen taajama-alueella Sadran asui lähes 1 800 000 asukasta. Vuoden 2021 väestönlaskenta osoitti kaupungin väkiluvun nousseen 1 995 500 ihmiseen. Shiraz sijaitsee Lounais-Iranissa Rudkhaneyekhoshk-joen varrella. Varhaisella islamilaisella kaudella perustetussa kaupungissa on kohtalainen ilmasto ja se on ollut alueellinen kauppakeskus yli tuhat vuotta. Kaksi kuuluisaa Iranin runoilijaa, Hafez ja Saadi, ovat kotoisin Shirazista, joiden haudat sijaitsevat nykyisten kaupungin rajojen pohjoispuolella. Siten Shiraz on saanut lempinimen "Iranin Ateena".
      ellauri405.html on line 228: Emerson himself declared the first edition was “the most extraordinary piece of wit and wisdom that America has yet contributed.” Whitman published his own enthusiastic review of Leaves of Grass. Contemporaries found it cringy. Over 1,000 people came to view his funeral. Almost as many as came to Trump's inauguration.
      ellauri405.html on line 236: 1Analysis (ai): This simple yet profound poem by Robert Louis Stevenson captures the essence of contentment and appreciation. Its concise language belies a depth of meaning that encourages readers to find joy in the abundance of life's offerings. The poem's structure is as straightforward as its message. Two rhyming couplets emphasize the simplicity of Stevenson's message: that the world is full of blessings we often overlook. The repetition of "number" and "things" reinforces the idea of abundance, inviting readers to pause and notice the countless sources of happiness that surround them. This poem stands in stark contrast to the grim realities of Victorian England, where Stevenson lived. The Industrial Revolution had brought both progress and poverty, and many people struggled to find happiness amidst the harsh conditions. Stevenson's message of finding joy in simplicity and gratitude may have been a source of solace during challenging times. Compared to Stevenson's other works, such as "Treasure Island" and "The Strange Case of Dr. Jekyll and Mr. Hyde," this poem is a departure in terms of tone. It is not an adventure story or a psychological thriller but rather a quiet meditation on the beauty of life. However, it shares the same optimistic spirit that permeates much of Stevenson's writing, reminding readers that even in the face of adversity, there is always something to be grateful for.
      ellauri405.html on line 385: Хвост и чешую. Kieltäytyen esteellä.
      ellauri405.html on line 529: Mitä tämä herättävä unelma on Zhivagon haaveileessa hänen lyhyen hengähdystaukonsa aikana Varykinossa? Se on ikivanha myytti, joka on asetettu venäläisen kansanmelodian, lohikäärmeen tappajalle, reilun neidon pelastajalle. Taistelu siivellisten lohikäärmeiden tai käärmeiden kanssa ovat yleinen myytin teema, joka symboloaa sekä historiallisia että psykologisia totuuksia. Värväleinen, teratologinen, choottinen olento, joka yhdistää tulen ja villin petojen tuhovoimat, on pahan, alamaailman demonisten voimien, koretisointi. Hirviön tappaminen on välttämätön askel kohti puhtaan ja todellisen saavuttamisen saavuttamista, jota symboloivat lohikäärmeen köysissä pidetty uhrineito. Lara/Andromeda on kaunis tyttö, jonka kansa uhraa pelastaakseen oman henkensä. 517)
      ellauri405.html on line 535: Pasternak vastustaa aina niin sanottua realistista tai materialistista ja peukuttaa runollista. Komarovskin kaltaiset miehet ottavat voiton helposti Zhivagon kaltaisista miehistä, ainakin lyhyellä aikavälillä. Toisaalta tämän maailman Komarovskeilla ei ole aavistustakaan siitä, mitä tarkoittaa olla runoilija, elää runollista elämää. Jälkimmäiset juoksevat useammalla kuin yhdellä tasolla, tai ehkä pitäisi sanoa raiteilla. "Silkkimäinen ääni on itse luonnon ääni", kuten Guy de Mallac huomauttaa esseessaan "Zhivago vastaan Prometheus". Ja vuorostaan kahdennenkymmenennen vuosisadan teknologia häiritsee elämän luonnollisia rytmejä. Varykinon kolmetoista päivää ovat rauhallisia, luovia ja täynnä kunnioitusta, koska ne ovat paluu olemassaolon tilaan, joka katoaa. Kun Zhivago aloittaa "Fairy Talen" kirjoituksessa ja näkee samaan aikaan äidin ja tyttären nukkuvan puhtailla sängyillä, vastavalmistettuna, puhtaassa huoneessa, juuri siistitty, hänen sydämensä on täynnä voimakasta kiitollisuutta, ja hän alkaa rukoilla:
      ellauri406.html on line 202: The sad thing, that they learned nothing from history, time has proved that the vitctims of yesterday and their descendants are doing the same now to some other people, including Lebanese and the Philistines!
      ellauri406.html on line 246: Twenty years ago, a mob of radical nationalists attacked Russian-speaking people in Odessa. Dozens of people were killed in a building that the russophobic Banderites had attacked and set on fire. After the crime, Prime Minister Yatsenuk (“Yats”), who was de facto appointed by Victoria “Fuck the EU” Nuland, the US government’s string-puller in the Maidan coup, visited the crime scene and showed his true colors. If he had been the prime minister for all the people, he would have shown compassion for the victims, condemned the murderers and vowed to bring them to justice. Instead, he excused the crime by spreading an unfounded conspiracy theory against Russia and taking a hostile stance by portraying the case as part of the war against Russia.
      ellauri406.html on line 248: The violent Maidan coup in 2014 against the democratically elected (and seen by Washington as pro-Russian) government marked the beginning of the cultural genocide, with the construction of multiple monuments honoring Nazi perpetrators. At the same time, monuments in honor of greats of world literature such as Alexander Pushkin, Leo Tolstoy and Fyodor Dostoyevsky were torn down: Alexander Pushkin, born in 1799, was a world-famous playwright and novelist; Fyodor Dostoyevsky, born in 1821, expressed religious, psychological and philosophical ideas in his widely acclaimed writings; and Leo Tolstoy, born in 1828, is considered one of the greatest writers of all time and was nominated several times for the Nobel Prize for Literature.
      ellauri406.html on line 263: The secretary of the National Security and Defense Council (NSDC), Alexei Danilov, responded by stressing that such people had no place in the country and promised a “purge.” He stated: “The not-yet-discharged <…> who think they have the right to speak Russian on Ukrainian television have no place not only on television but also in politics and in Ukraine,” and he expressed his determination to have such people “purged to the root and kicked out of everything.”
      ellauri406.html on line 315: Two years later, Kukko Koppava (aka Anton Borkovskyi) interviewed Colonel Grant. "Ukraine's army chief must reform strategy, tactics to secure victory - Colonel Grant." Glen Grant, tired British colonel and military expert, spoke about the need for reforms in the Armed Forces of Ukraine and the weaknesses of the Russian army. Royal United Services Institute which is the think tank for the British government on defence. So it's got the same role in Great Britain as R an' D Corporation has for the American government and the Pentagon. Quite a chicken then. But grant Grant the floor:
      ellauri406.html on line 319: "But the overall shape of how war is going to be fought is under change. Oh dear, we need to change how we're thinking,” I mean, if history tells us anything from the last two years, they are not going to get all the things we promised. Ukraine will not get all the equipment it wants. Now for me, the big problem is the frontline. It's the frontline where we're ( - did I say "we"? I meant them, the malorussians) losing people, and it's the frontline where we're going backwards. They're going to need new boots, they're going to need food. And rolls and rolls and rolls of toilet paper. Truckloads of paper for everything that’s lost, officers on the front line who should be spending their time with their soldiers fighting when in fact they're spending their time bringing them toilet paper. Because this war will be lost not in the sea, not at the back. It will be lost on the front line by shit and butts flying, soldiers dying and we run out of them. We simply can't deal with the mass of soldiers coming towards us from somewhere howling 'Uraa'.
      ellauri406.html on line 325: But I think with Russia, I think we've always got to be careful about the unexpected. I've said this before. You know, the unexpected. Alright. We're killing 1,200 a day. Has it made any difference? We were killing 1,000 a day a year and a half ago. Has it made any difference? The answer is no. Nothing will happen without fundamental change in the system. New doctrine, new unwritten ways of working, removal of the nonsense toilet paper hanging from undried butts everywhere, better toilet training. All these things need to happen, then we can win because we will be better than they are, although fewer. And that's the main problem that we have with Russia is they keep the numbers going. They keep wearing us down bit by bit, and they outdo us in resources.
      ellauri406.html on line 340: The most important thing at this point in the war is not to give Putin what he wants. When Russia finally collapses, how many generations to will it take to re-educate them? Would 30 years do it? And should we replace Russian with the English language? Surely more efficient.
      ellauri406.html on line 368: Zelenskyy has described his proposal as “a bridge to the Peace Summit” that he has proposed for November but that Russia says it will not attend. No international players capable of swaying Moscow agreed to his earlier 10-point peace plan, which calls for the full withdrawal of Russian forces. Ukrainian presidential advisors and lawmakers have told The Associated Press that Kyiv will only agree to a cease-fire with Russia if Putin’s ability to invade the country again is crippled. Any other arrangement would not benefit Ukraine’s future or honor the sacrifices of its people.
      ellauri406.html on line 372: Kyiv and its allies have denounced Russia’s military campaign as an unprovoked act of aggression. “Ukraine will lose more than 1,000 square kilometers (600 miles) by the end of the year,” if current conditions continue, said Oleksandr Kovalenko, a military analyst for Information Resistance, a Kyiv-based think tank. “We need to understand that if (allies) don’t defend Ukraine, it will make this war last for many more years, and finally, make it possible for us to lose the war,” he said.
      ellauri406.html on line 397: In response, Vance expressed his discontent with Zelenskyy’s remarks, saying "I don’t appreciate Zelenskyy coming to this country and telling the American taxpayers what to do."
      ellauri406.html on line 449: Vuhledar’s fall is a microcosm of Ukraine’s predicament in this chapter of the nearly three-year war. It reflects the U.S.'s refusal to grant Ukraine permission to strike targets deep inside Russian territory with missiles made in the U.S. of A, preventing Kyiv from annihilating Moscow’s inhabitants. Meanwhile, Russia’s dominance of the skies allows it to develop and advance devastating aerial glide bombs for which Ukraine has no effective response, while a controversial mobilization drive has failed to produce a new class of Ukrainian fighters capable of holding the stick.
      ellauri408.html on line 210: This week I have mostly eaten acorns. Unelias unexii David Copperfieldin Agnexesta, joka seuraa uskollisesti Davidin joka oikkua ja pääse lopulta palkinnoxi sen kanssa mimmoisiin. While living in Switzerland, David realizes that he loves Agnes. After returning to England he tries hard to conceal his feelings, but realizing Agnes loves him as well, he proposes to her; she accepts. They marry quickly and take residence in London. Agnes bears David at least five children. Like typical Dickensian heroines, Agnes is mainly a passive character, an ideal Victorian lady. Her characterization is often criticized as "too perfect". David often describes her as an angel. She shows the effects of parentification. David often compares Agnes with a church-window. Kuin heiluttaisi patonkia porttikonkissa. Her character was based on Dickens' sisters-in-law Mary and Georgina Hogarth, both of whom were very close to Dickens. Mary died in 1837 at the age of 17, and Georgina, from 1842, lived with the Dickens family. Dickens referred to her affectionately as his "little housekeeper". After Dickens' separation from his wife Catherine, Georgina stayed with him for the rest of his life and took complete responsibility for managing his household. Pukille pääsi takuulla muttei mimmoisiin.

      Jean Paul ja Emerson Fittipaldi on sen sanoneet: Suuri kirjailija on se joka osaa tehostaa izeänsä. No noi ei kai sitten osanneet. Yxin jumalaa on mahdoton pitää naurettavana, vai onko? onhan siinä paljon Niilo Visapään piirteitä. Minä tunsin maan uivan aluxena avaruuden sinistä valtamerta. Minä purjehdin keltaisella merellä. Onnettomuutesi, vanha veikko, on että olet akkamainen.
      ellauri408.html on line 223: Heidelbergissä varpuset teuhaavat kuin Teukka menopäällä. Olisitpa Harri voinut mennä arkuuttasi kazomaan edes pornoleffaa jossa takaa panoroituna panomiehen kiristyneet kellit rummuttavat rytmikkäästi välilihaa junan syöksyessä kiihtyvällä vauhdilla tunneliin ja ulos takaisin. Sen kokemuxen jälkeen mälli lensi voimakkaasti vessan peiliin.
      ellauri408.html on line 269: Jesus was a Jew: why do you think He was not? Jeshua Ben Joseph, as he was known by other Jews at the time, followed the Law of Moses, was circumcised, studied the Jewish Scriptures and attended Temple. He became a Bar Mitzvah at 13 years old, but waited until he was 30 before He began his mission: that is because Jewish men become Elders at the age of 30 and are allowed to speak in the Temple or Synegogue. His life was ruled by the Law, and he abided by every one of the laws (except filching corn and screwing disciples), showing it was possible to live in accordance with the old Covenant, if you were without sin and perfect. The new Covenant is based on Faith in Jesus, and accepts you as a sinner because His Passion on the Cross paid the price for that sin: the New Covenant was necessary because no-one other than Christ is capable of living without sin. Those who follow Christ are called Christians, but Christ didn’t follow himself, obviously, he followed YHWH, God the Father, so he was a Jew. So there!
      ellauri408.html on line 291: “These things” that Jesus prophesied would happen before his disciples’ generation died included: the sun being darkened, the moon not giving off light, stars falling from the heavens, and Jesus coming “in the clouds” and sending his angels to the four corners of the earth to gather the elect. Obviously nothing like what Jesus described has happened. And two thousand years later, no one has seen Jesus do what the Messiah was predicted to do, which including creating world peace and universal worship of the biblical god. Jesus has not returned in glory with the angels, nor has he rewarded every man according to his works. Every one of Jesus’s disciples tasted death long ago. These are completely failed prophecies, on every count.
      ellauri408.html on line 295: “The time is fulfilled, and the kingdom of God is at hand: repent ye, and believe the gospel.” (Mark 1:15)
      ellauri408.html on line 311: The Bible says the evangelist Paul also visited Tyre, where he met with his disciples and stayed with them for seven days. (Acts 21: 3-6) As a matter of fact, Tyre exists to this day.
      ellauri408.html on line 329: The most glaring archeological error in the Bible makes Jesus a false prophet. According to Mark 13:1-2, Jesus prophesied that not one stone of the Jerusalem temple buildings would be left standing on another stone. This false prophecy was surely added by a charlatan writing in Greece or Rome sometime after 70 AD, who had never been to Jerusalem. While the Romans largely destroyed Jerusalem in 70 AD, making this not a prophecy but chicanery, the Romans did not completely level the temple. To this day the Wailing Wall still stands. And some of the temple’s great foundation stones are still standing firmly on top of each other. I have seen them in an episode of the Naked Archaeologist and you can see them in the image above. The largest stones are Herodian, laid by Herod the Great, who according to the Gospel of Matthew attempted to murder Jesus after his birth in the infamous Massacre of the Innocents. But as we will see that account was also false, as is so much of the Bible.
      ellauri408.html on line 340: The Bible is full of badly-told fairy tales. For instance, the book of Acts says Jesus flew into the clouds like Superman before a Jerusalem crowd, with angels preaching a sermon and prophesying that he would return “the same way.” But we know that didn’t happen because no other author of the New Testament mentioned the most miraculous thing human eyes ever witnessed. The four gospels and Acts all disagree on what Jesus said and did after the alleged resurrection. But if you were hearing the words of the resurrected God, wouldn’t you be sure to remember and communicate them faithfully? Clearly five different authors made up five different accounts of what happened post-alleged-resurrection because no one knew what really happened after the empty grave was discovered. Acts says Jesus taught the mysteries of the Kingdom of God for 40 days in Jerusalem, but no one bothered to record a single word he said. Can anyone really believe that is possible?
      ellauri408.html on line 350: But there is a teensy-tiny eensy-weensy little problem here, because Jehovah himself obviously had no knowledge of good and evil, for he would repeatedly do evil things throughout the Bible. Nor did billions of his followers obtain the knowledge of good and evil, because they study the Bible, which clearly accuses its “god” of all sorts of evil, and yet insist that their “god” is good. And not just good, but perfect! Quite obviously, they should all be immortal!
      ellauri408.html on line 369: There would always be a son of David sitting on the throne of Israel. This prophecy was later downgraded to the tiny province of Judea, but that prophecy, also failed, since David has had no heirs sitting on thrones anywhere in Israel for over 2,500 years.
      ellauri408.html on line 371: Levite priests would always offer sacrifices to God in the Jerusalem temple, which was destroyed twice and no longer exists except for a few standing stones here and there.
      ellauri408.html on line 377: Jesus Christ saved all his sternest criticism for religious hypocrites, informing us that a perfect God cannot be a hypocrite if Jesus revealed his character, and yet there has never been a greater hypocrite than Jehovah, if he considers abortion a “sin” and yet has aborted untold millions of babies during the Great Flood and afterwards, since nature is by far the greatest abortionist planet Earth has ever seen. According to the University of California San Francisco Medical Center website: “In nature, 50 percent of all fertilized eggs are lost before a woman's missed menses.” Thus, if an all-powerful God controls nature, he aborts 50% of all human pregnancies in the first few weeks!
      ellauri408.html on line 396: We can see human beings pretending to speak for “god” in the tower of Babel fairy tale (Genesis 11:1-9). Ancient bricklayers were building a tower to reach the heavens and “god” was afraid they would succeed. The ancients had no idea that their tower would have to be nearly a quarter of a million miles high just to reach a sterile moon, much less the closest inhabitable planet, if there is one. Nor apparently did their “god” know there was absolutely no danger of success. How silly of an all-knowing “god” to worry about primitive bricklayers reaching his domicile!
      ellauri408.html on line 418: There is no contemporary evidence outside the Bible that Jesus was a real person, and certainly not a person of any consequence. But there are parts of the gospels that sound like a real person. If I had to guess, I would say that Jesus was an unconventional rabbi who had table fellowship with prostitutes and rogues (a “sin” in the eyes of the hypocritical Pharisees), and went around ministering to the sick and the poor. When he died there may have been an empty grave and some sort of NDE (which are not uncommon) in which he saw something like heaven. That could account for the genesis of the Christian religion. Paul might have communicated with Jesus, or sincerely thought he did, such things are not all that uncommon. But the virgin birth, the massacre of the innocents, walking on water, the transfiguration and ascension, were all obviously made up and added later, since Paul knew nothing about such things and the four gospels and Acts do not agree on such “super miracles.”
      ellauri408.html on line 426: All that spectacular nonsense was followed by Peter healing every sick person in Jerusalem and all the surrounding cities with his shadow, and yet no one breathed a single word of it, not even the famous Jewish historian Flavius Josephus, who grew up in Jerusalem while these alleged “miracles” were taking place! Why did Josephus go on and on about much lesser figures when the greatest miracle worker of all time lived just down the street from him?
      ellauri408.html on line 428: And it wasn’t just non-Christian Jews who failed to write about such things, it was the earliest Christians including the evangelist Paul. The “miracles” were created and backdated into the NT texts by Greek-speaking Christians who obviously had never spoken to an eyewitness; got Middle Eastern culture, geography and timelines wrong; misquoted prophets; and constantly contradicted each other. Furthermore, they didn’t consider what they were writing to be sacred texts because they changed the texts as if they were drunk, according to the Greek philosopher Celsus in his debates with the early church father Origen.
      ellauri408.html on line 480: Il est élu à l'Académie française le 29 avril 1869 au quatrième tour de scrutin par 18 voix contre 14 obtenues par Théophile Gautier. Ce résultat provoqua un scandale et la violente colère de la princesse Mathilde soutien inconditionnel de Gautier. The rest of Barbier's poems are forgotten, and when, in 1869, he received the long delayed honour of admission to the Académie française, Montalembert expressed the general sentiment with "Barbier? mais il est mort!," but actually he died at Nice in 1882.
      ellauri408.html on line 574: Yllättävää kyllä Vätys lainaa Bossuetia. Jacques-Bénigne Bossuet , lempinimeltään "Meaux'n kotka", synt. 27. syyskuuta 1627 Dijonissa, kuol.12. huhtikuuta 1704 Pariisissa , oli ranskalainen kirkon mies, piispa, saarnaaja ja artikkelitoimittaja. Ei pie sekoittaa hänen veljenpoikansa Jacques-Bénigne Bossuetiin, Troyesin piispaan,
      ellauri408.html on line 702: Au cours des voyages qu'il fait à Paris, Proudhon rencontre Karl Grün, Mikhaïl Bakounine, Alexandre Herzen qui deviendront ses amis et Karl Rot qui admirait en lui le seul socialiste français dégagé du mysticisme chrétien. En plus, il est lui-même prolétaire, ouvrier! Et il précise : « nous ne devons pas poser l'action révolutionnaire comme moyen de réforme sociale, parce que ce prétendu moyen serait tout simplement un appel à la force, à l'arbitraire, bref, une contradiction. L'échange de lettres avec Marx annonce la rupture, qui intervient quelques mois plus tard. Quand, en octobre 1846, Proudhon publie le Système des contradictions économiques ou Philosophie de la misère, Marx riposte par Misère de la philosophie. Marx considère que Proudhon est un socialiste « petit-bourgeois » ou nettement « bourgeois », qui défend un système utopique qui combinerait les avantages du socialisme et du capitalisme sans leurs inconvénients. Il écrit ainsi : « Les socialistes bourgeois veulent tous les avantages des conditions sociales modernes sans les luttes et les dangers qui en découlent nécessairement ». Il critique notamment ses conceptions économiques sur la valeur, son soutien à la concurrence ou encore son opposition aux grèves ouvrières. Marx est le ténia du socialisme (sosialismin lapamato), Proudhomme sinkauttaa vastineexi ja kommentoi marginaaliin manifestia: « Calomnie », « Absurde », « Faux » « Mensonge », « Pasquinade ». « Quelle bêtise après ce que j´ai écrit — En vérité Marx est jaloux » ; « Allons mon cher Marx, vous êtes de mauvaise foi, et tout à la fois vous ne savez rien » .
      ellauri408.html on line 774: Kuten Vätys osuvasti tiivistää: Pestalozzi edustaa kyvytöntä neroa. Häneltä puuttuivat kaikki kyvyt: hän ei osannut puhua, ei kirjoittaa, ei järjestää, ei hallita eikä laskea. Suuresta ajatuksestaan ja suuresta tunteestaan huolimatta hän ei kyennyt milloinkaan selvittämään menetelmäänsä eikä suoriutumaan lukemattomien yritystensä käytännöllisistä vaikeuksista. Hän teki kaikki mahdolliset erehdykset ja koki kaikki mahdolliset pettymykset. Hän oli sanomattoman onneton. Mutta siitä huolimatta hän on nykyaikaisen kasvatusopin ja kansanopetuksen isā.
      ellauri408.html on line 779: Harmaa sää. Lääkkeestä huolimatta nukuin yöni huonosti. Hetken aikaa tuntui kuin tukehtuisin, en kyennyt hengittämään sisään enempää kuin uloskaan, veri pakkautui kasvoihini ja suuni oli auki. Minä nousin äkkiä istumaan vuoteessani. Ellen olisi ollut niin hikinen olisin heti tarttunut kynään ja kirjoittanut pari sanaa hautaamisestani. Haluan näet yhä päästä Clarensın kalmistoon, ja yllättävä kuolema uhkaa tehdä toivoni tyhjäksi. Enkö olekin hauras, herkkätunteinen ja haavoittuva?
      ellauri408.html on line 889: Nahjuxesta lyhyenläntä F. Coppée oli söpönen ja sepitti ihania värsyjä. Kuten on kerrottu jo toisaalla, Coppée oli homo. Symbolistit parodioi sitä myöhemmin. Käytännön halpamaisuuteen liittyvät mitä kainoimmat korvat ja suloisimmat sanat. Yleisö kokonaisuudessaan on nautalauma.
      ellauri408.html on line 900: Nahjus piti Laveleyen kirjoista. Eemeli de Laveleye oli lipilaari belgi. Katolisessa uskossa kasvatettuna hän kehittyi kohti protestanttisuutta. Mutta jo silloin, kun hän oli katolinen, hän oli hyvin herkkä evankeliumin yhteiskunnallisille värähtelyille. Hän oli yksi edistyksellisen liberalismin ajattelijoista Belgiassa, joten häntä voitiin pitää sosialismin edeltäjänä. Hän oli erittäin kiinnostunut osuustoiminnasta. Hän oli vuonna 18812 perustetun prostituutiota vastustavan Society of Public Morality -järjestön puheenjohtaja. 31. joulukuuta 1891 hän sai perinnöllisen aateliston apurahan ja paronin arvonimen, joka voitiin siirtää miesten primogenituurille. Hän valitsi moton Rede, vrede. Hänen isänsä oli Belgian olympiakomitean perustaja Edouard de Laveleye. Tunnettu kaikkialla maailmassa, hän sai kunniatohtorin arvon monista yliopistoista ja vastasi useisiin ulkomaisiin tutkijoihin, joista tunnetuin on John Stuart Mill. Eemelin mielestä sivistys ei voi jatkua, elleivät ihmiset usko haudantakaiseen jumalaan. Tämä saa nahjuxen taas pohtimaan, käynnistää synonyymigeneraattorin. Hyödyllinen uskomus ei ole totuus, pace utilitaristit. Sota on raakaa, parempi olisi molemminpuolinen kunnioitus. Enkeli ilmaantuu vain harvoin eläimissä. Länkkärien julkinen tunnuslause on niiden todellisen pyrkimyxen suoranainen vastakohta.
      ellauri408.html on line 931: come animal che spesso adombre e ’ncespe: kuin elukka säikkyen ja potkiskellen,
      ellauri408.html on line 1004: Mielen kuvallisuus ei merkitse aivan samaa kuin mielikuvitus. Nainen ei tuota hedelmällisiä aatteita, hän vain havaitsee yksityiskohtia; hän järjestelee, kiillottaa, täy- dentää, huomaa poisjättöjä, kaunistaa ulkopintaa. Hän edustaa nokkeluutta ja aistia, hienoutta ja huolellisuutta. Lyhyesti sanoen: hyvin tehty työ edellyttää, että mies sen luo ja hahmottelee ja nainen viimeistelee. Toiselle kuuluu arkkitehtuuri, toiselle pukutaide. Mestariteokset edellyttävät tosiaankin neroa ja kykyä; toinen hankkii aineksen ja luo suhteet, toinen poistaa valinsaumat ja viat. Ja kaikkein vähäisimmätkin työt vaativat molempien voimien sopusointuista vaikutusta, voimien, jotka tosin ovat olemassa jokaisessa taiteilijassa, mutta joista toinen on tavallisesti voitolla eri sukupuolissa. - Niinpä tunnenkin olevani onnellisessa ja suotuisassa asemassa voidessani erään naishenkilön kanssa tarkastaa kaikki, mitä olen muutamien vuosien kuluessa tuottanut. Sellainen avustus ja sellainen tarkastus on minulle suureksi hyödyksi, puhumattakaan siitä, että on erittäin edullista saada pelkän kopistin sijaan älykäs, ulkonäöltä miellyttävä ja harras sihteeri.
      ellauri408.html on line 1041: Bob | abat-jour | abbaye de Cluny | arche | arrière-boutique | arrière-garde | arrière-train | arrondissement | artiche | auguste | au pet | baba | baba du pauvre | baigneur | ballon | banlieue | baril de moutarde | bas | bas des reins | base | bavard | beautés occidentales | beautés postérieures | bernard | bienséant | bol | bonda | bon endroit | borgne | bottom | boule | brioches | bronze | cadet | cadran | cadran humain | cadran lunaire | cadran solaire | canon | canonnière | cavu | centre | centre de gravité | chose | cible à coups de pied | cocotier | comète | contrebasse | coquillard | côté face | coufa | coup de pied dans les reins | croupe | croupière | croupion | cucu | cul | culasse | culot | cuvette | cyclope | dargeaf | dargeoskoff | dargeot | dargif | demi-lunes | département du bas-rein | der | derche | derge | derjo | derrière | deux citrouilles | deux melons | deux soeurs | discret | disque | dos | dossière | double-blanc | double-six | endroit où les grenouilles n'ont pas de queue | envers | épaules qui trottent | être renforcé sur la culasse | face du Grand Turc | faubourg | fiac | fiacre | fias | fignard | figne | fignoton | figue | figure | fion | firts | fla | flacdal | flaquet | foireux | foiron | foirpette | fondement | fouettard | fouigne | fouindé | garde-manger | giberne | giffaut | globes | gnarre | grosse caisse | gros visage | hémisphères | jacques | joues (les) | joufflu | jumelles | juste milieu | la partie la plus exhubérante de ses attraits | le bas de l'épine dorsale | le bas Rhin | les deux frangines | lignefuche | lorgne | luc | lune | lunette de viande | machine à moulin | mappemonde | médaillon | meules | miches | molistrol | montre | mouilles (les -) | moule à merde | moulin à vents | moutardier | n'a-qu'un-oeil | naze | noix | obusier | oeuf | où je pense | où vous savez | pains au lait | panier | panier à crottes | panier fleuri | parfaitement | partie charnue | parties basses | pastèque | patelette | pendule | pétard | pète | péteux | petits pains | pétoulet | pétrousquin | pétrus | pignard | pleine-lune | pommes | ponant | pont arrière | pont-arrière | popotas | popotin | postère | pot | pot à crottes | pot à moutarde | potard | pot-au-feu | potin | pouet | prose | proye | prozinard | prussien | quelque part | réchaud | reposoir | revers de la médaille | rondeurs | rose des vents | rotondités | sac à foire | salle de danse | seuff | sonore | soufflet | staphanari | taffanard | tal | tambour | tapanard | t'as donc faim, que tu frappes au garde-manger ? | tcho-tcho | Thomas | tirelire | tôle | train | trèfle | trompe | trompette musicale | trouffe | troufignon | troufion | trousse | troussequin | uc | ulc | valseur | vase | vénérable | verre de montre | vezouille | visage sans nez Tintin | châssis arrière | ci-devant | dualisme charnu | fessier | fiotas | fiotum | monument | tarma | tates.
      ellauri409.html on line 67: Csak, hogy lényink egyesüljenek. vain ollakseni yhdynnässä sinuun.
      ellauri409.html on line 72: Egyesüljünk) én elkárhozom. (Päästäxeni yhdyntåän) kirottu minä kuolen.
      ellauri409.html on line 121: Pascalin rellestäminen ei häirinnyt häntä tieteellisessä tutkimuksessa; tämä aika ei myöskään vienyt paljon tilaa hyvin lyhyessä ja ruuhkaisessa elämässä, mutta terveys siinä kyllä meni. Pascalilla oli näet keliakia. Aivot oli kanssa aika paskana. Ja vuonna 1654 tapahtuu hänen "toinen käännöxensä", jota voitaisiin kutsua yksinkertaisesti ensimmäisexi.
      ellauri409.html on line 192: Mutta Pascal-tyyppisessä miehessä – ja tämä tyyppi on aina olemassa – on mielestäni ainesta temperamentin jansenismiksi, ilman että se tunnistaa sitä Janseniusin ja muiden hartaiden ja vilpittömien, mutta ei äärettömän lahjakkaita lääkäreitä. Sen vuoksi on tarpeen ilmaista lyhyesti, mikä oli vaarallinen Jansenius-oppi, menemättä liian pitkälle teologisiin tarkennuksiin. Kristillisessä teologiassa tunnustetaan – ja alemmalla tasolla sen tunnustavat kaikki ihmiset jokapäiväisessä elämässä –, että vapaa tahto tai yksittäisen ihmisen luonnollinen ponnistus ja kyky sekä myös yliluonnollinen armo , lahja, jota emme täysin tunne. kuinka, molempia tarvitaan yhdessä pelastukseen. Vaikka lukuisat teologit ovat omaksuneet ongelman, se päättyy mysteeriin, jonka voimme havaita, mutta emme lopullisesti tulkita. Ainakin on selvää, että kuten mikä tahansa oppi, pieni ylilyönti tai poikkeaminen jollekin puolelle saa aikaan harhaopin. Pelagilaiset, jotka Pyhä Augustinus kiisti, korostivat ihmisen ponnistuksen tehokkuutta ja vähättelivät yliluonnollisen armon merkitystä. Kalvinistit korostivat ihmisen alentamista perisynnillä ja pitivät ihmiskuntaa niin turmeltuneena, että tahdosta ei ollut hyötyä; ja joutui siten ennaltamääräämisoppiin. Jansenistit luottivat Pyhän Augustinuksen mukaiseen armonoppiin; ja Augustinus of Jansenius esiteltiin hyvänä näyttelynä Augustinuksen näkemyksistä.
      ellauri409.html on line 235: Like such as cut their teeth — I hope, like you — Kuten ne joilla syntyessään - ehkä sä -
      ellauri409.html on line 315: A million years before the blooming sun. Miljoona vuotta ennen auringon syntyä.
      ellauri409.html on line 351: TS Eliot attested to the influence of this poem on his teenage writing. Siinä on samaa arkisen ja pyhän tyylisekaannusta kuin Tompan värsyissä. Jouni ize palvoi algolagnia Swinburnea, joka ei piitannut Jounista tuon taivaallista. Oddly shaped, grumpy and awkward-looking, with a prematurely balding pate and little brown beard, he was known to his students as ‘Jenny Wren’, to others as ‘Cockabendy’. Years later he was independently described as having ‘large and quickly-moving eyes that make one think of some abnormal bird’s’. Davidson himself looked back on these years as ‘shameful pedagogy’ and ‘hellish drudgery’. Jouni ei tullut toimeen runoilulla vaan otti kavereilta vippejä. Sen mielestä mursuwiixi Nietzsche oli the cat´s whiskers. Uskonto on perseestä, me ollaan kaikki jumalia jollain lailla. Lopulta se hyppäs jorpakkoon ja jätti sukulaiset puille paljaille.
      ellauri409.html on line 361: Walt Whitmanin vaikutuksesta Laforgue oli yksi ensimmäisistä ranskalaisista runoilijoista, joka kirjoitti vapaassa säkeessä. Itse asiassa hänen käännöstensä Whitmanin runoista, jotka julkaisi Vogue-lehti, uskotaan vaikuttaneen Laforguen maanmieheen Gustave Kahniin. Filosofisesti hän oli pessimisti ja Schopenhauerin ja Von Hartmannin kiihkeä opetuslapsi . Hänen runoutensa olisi yksi suurimmista vaikutuksista Ezra Poundiin ja nuoreen TS Eliotiin. Louis Untermeyer kirjoitti: "Prufrockia, joka julkaistiin vuonna 1917, ylistettiin välittömästi uutena tapana englantilaisessa kirjallisuudessa ja samalla sitä vähäteltiin Laforguen ja ranskalaisten symbolistien kiekuna ja kaikuna, joille Eliot oli kiitoxen velkaa."
      ellauri409.html on line 395: Deux sous d´yeux. Kahden sentin silmien.
      ellauri409.html on line 406: Tompan Pariisissa tapaamista julkkixista mitättömämmästä päästä oli Henry James ja Remy de Gourmont joka oli muutaman Vaakun törähdyxen kyhääjä. Aika heikkoja. Hää kirjoitti monen alan tekstejä, jotka osoittavat psykologista silmää, kiinnostusta alitajunnan tutkimiseen ja esitystavan räväkkyyttä. Anna-Maria Tallgren kirjoitti seuraavana vuonna Valvojassa: »Kuinka viileä ja hiljainen on [Pierre Lotin teoksen La hyène enragée] rinnalla Gourmontin pikku kirjanen! Sen lyhyet, pari-kolmekymmentä riviä käsittävät lastut ja mietelmät – – ovat yhtä ankaran tuskan ja paineen synnyttämät kuin konsanaan Lotin kuvaukset, mutta ne tuntee kirjoitetuiksi puolihämärässä työhuoneessa.
      ellauri409.html on line 416: Entäs sit tää Conrad Aiken, Tompan opiskelukaveri? onxe sukua Joan Aikenille? Juu, on isä: Joan Delano Aiken (4. syyskuuta 1924 Rye, East Sussex – 4. tammikuuta 2004) oli englantilainen kirjailija. Hänen isänsä oli runoilija Conrad Aiken ja hänen sisarensa Jane Aiken Hodge oli myös kirjailija. Aiken julkaisi etupäässä lastenkirjallisuutta ja jännityskirjallisuutta. Hän sai Guardian-palkinnon vuonna 1969 ja Edgar Allan Poe -palkinnon vuonna 1972. Hänen rikosromaaneistaan on suomennettu Vihan kylvö (1967). Conradilla on kalju, tv-lasit ja penkin muotoinen hautakivi. Aiken oli naimisissa kolme kertaa. Englantilaiset kirjailijat Joan Aiken ja Jane Aiken Hodge ovat hänen tyttäriään. Hänrn runonsa olivat tajunnanvirtaa. Aiken oli naimisissa kolme kertaa. Englantilaiset kirjailijat Joan Aiken ja Jane Aiken Hodge ovat hänen tyttäriään. Hänen esikuviaan olivat Edgar Allan Poe, ranskalaiset symbolistit ja Eliot, mutta myös Sigmund Freud ja William James antoivat hänelle vaikutteita.
      ellauri409.html on line 434: Though hands will reach, and eyes will yearn, Vaikka kädet kurkottaa ja silmät vetistää
      ellauri409.html on line 552: Is there anything left to say about The Waste Land? More ink has been spilt over TS Eliot’s great modernist song of despair (https://www.telegraph.co.uk/books/what-to-read/broken-down-bank-clerk-three-months-margate-ts-eliot-wrote/) than any other poem published in the past hundred years. Its centenary has been marked by the second volume of Robert Crawford’s Eliot biography (https://www.telegraph.co.uk/books/what-to-read/new-biography-makes-ts-eliots-life-seem-unthinkably-grim/), the memoirs of Eliot’s confidante Mary Trevelyan and a life of his muse Emily Hale (https://www.telegraph.co.uk/books/what-to-read/hidden-women-ts-eliots-life/), following not all that long after a biography of his first wife, Vivienne (https://www.telegraph.co.uk/books/what-to-read/fall-sparrow-ann-pasternak-slater-review-tragic-life-ts-eliots/). That’s ignoring the nine volumes of Eliot’s letters (https://www.telegraph.co.uk/books/what-to-read/letters-ts-eliot-vol-8-review-really-necessary/), each a convenient size to club a man to death with.
      ellauri409.html on line 583: Ja kun olimme lapsia, yöpyessämme arkkiherttuassa,
      ellauri409.html on line 602: Marie oli ilmeisesti kreivitär Marie Larisch, jolla oli keskeinen rooli Mayerlingin tapauksessa, joka loi pohjan arkkiherttua Franz Ferdinandin salamurhalle ja siten ensimmäiselle maailmansodalle. Teiresias-hahmo on seksuaalisest monitulkintainen.
      ellauri409.html on line 603: Profetialahjan lisäksi hänet tunnetaan transseksuaalisesta muuttumisesta miehestä naiseksi, joka on kreikkalaisten jumalien kuningattaren Heran rangaistus. Ilmaus "Epätodellinen kaupunki" on lainattu Charles Baudelairen teoksesta "Seitsemän vanhaa miestä". Shakkia pelas Tom ja Vivien kun eivät muuhun kyenneet.
      ellauri411.html on line 54: Biographical investigation has the right to accumulate every single piece of knowledge. It adds to the portrait. As Claire Tomalin writes of Katherine Mansfield in 1909, a New Zealander abroad, just turned 20, her genius not yet realised, “It was an absolutely crucial time for her; without an understanding of what happened to her in 1909, the rest of her life simply does not make sense.” Vittu kenenkä elämä ylipäänsä "makes sense".
      ellauri411.html on line 72: Tällä etäisyydellä myrkky iskee hullujen äärellä, mutta loppujen lopuksi hän oli ollut peloton ottamaan heidät vastaan, pilkannut ja nokkelasti  kyennyt saamaan huoneet keinumaan naurusta. "En usko, että kukaan on koskaan saanut minua nauramaan enemmän kuin hän noina aikoina", kirjoitti Leonard Woolf omaelämäkerrassaan. "Hänen naamiomaisilla kasvoilla ei näkynyt hymyn häivettä, tarinan poikkeuksellista hauskuutta lisäsivät supistavan nokkeluuden välähdykset." Kukaan ei tarvitse olla henkilökohtaisesti tutustunut Blooms Berriesiin (kuten Mansfield niitä kutsui) aistiakseen, että siellä on niistä piirretty melko teräviä karikatyyrejä. Ei ihme, että Woolf heitti Blissin lattialle lukiessaan sitä. Mansfield oli selvästikin varteenotettava voima. Mansfield kuoli 34-vuotiaana tubiin; Woolf oli tuolloin 40-vuotias ja oli vasta julkaissut Jacobin huoneen, ensimmäisen romaaneistaan, joka irtautui perinteestä.
      ellauri411.html on line 87: Tomin elämä oli Tomista kuin Middleton Murryn kirjoittama Dostojevskin romaani. Pojat älkää kirjoittako runoja, Tom sanoi koulunsa koulupojille. John Middleton Murry (6. elokuuta 1889 – 12. maaliskuuta 1957) oli englantilainen kirjailija. Hän oli tuottelias kirjailija, joka tuotti elämänsä aikana yli 60 kirjaa ja tuhansia esseitä ja arvosteluja kirjallisuudesta, sosiaalisista kysymyksistä, politiikasta ja uskonnosta. Merkittävä kriitikko Murry muistetaan parhaiten suhteestaan ​​Katherine Mansfieldin kanssa, jonka kanssa hän meni naimisiin vuonna 1918 tämän toisena aviomiehenä, ystävyydestään DH Lawrencen ja TS Eliotin kanssa sekä ystävyydestään (ja lyhyestä suhteestaan) Frieda Lawrencen kanssa.
      ellauri411.html on line 134:

      Sarcastic, dreamy, eloquent, prone to anxiety - I am a bundle of contradictions and it shows in my writing. Even as my mind protests. I'll shoot you angry glances. Quick flicker of eyelids and lashes. Hiding forbidden fury. Burning alongside tears. (Ei välttämättä sama Rittika, mutta nätti. Tätä sietäisi kiertää ulos noista vaipoista!)

      ellauri411.html on line 174: The Israelites, being freed from slavery, journeyed through the wildernesses of Egypt and Canaan. Moses led them across the Red Sea and when they reached Mount Sinai, they received divine instruction from God there – the ten commandments. Ultimately, they reached the promised land once again. This was the area where Abraham, Isaac, and Jacob had resided generations ago.
      ellauri411.html on line 178: The ‘Golden Period’ of ancient Israel is the years between 1010 and 931 BCE. This was the era in which King David and King Solomon ruled. The former is believed to have built the city of Jerusalem at the center of ancient Israel. King Solomon is believed to have constructed the first great temple in 957 BCE. It is safe to say that the so-called golden age only lasted for a very short time before the Assyrian Empire conquered them.
      ellauri411.html on line 200: Christianity separated from Judaism by claiming Christianity as a replacement for Judaism. The leaders claimed that the Jews were reading their scriptures wrong and the Christians were the true Israelites. They claimed the Jews were blind and ignorant. When the Roman Empire conquered Judea and destroyed the Temple, the Christians took this as further confirmation of their beliefs.
      ellauri411.html on line 202: The Christian and Jewish populations of those lands continued to fight for years afterward. As Christianity continued to expand and became the biggest religion in the world, anti-Jewish feelings became more and more common. Medieval Europe, dominated by the Catholic Church as it was, was especially notorious for anti-Jewish violence. They have been seen as the ‘others’ and as outsiders throughout history. This made them a convenient target for political leaders. It wasn’t even about their religion so much as it was the fact that their way of life did not fit in with the rest of society.
      ellauri411.html on line 230: Etrog (Hebrew: אֶתְרוֹג, plural: etrogim; Ashkenazi Hebrew: esrog, plural: esrogim) is the yellow citron (Citrus medica) used by Jews during the weeklong holiday of Sukkot as one of the four species. Together with the lulav, hadass, and aravah, the etrog is taken in hand and held or waved during specific portions of the holiday prayers. Special care is often given to selecting an etrog for the performance of the Sukkot holiday rituals:
      ellauri411.html on line 559: Upeat artikkelit, jotka sisältävät muiden mielenkiintoisten aiheiden ohella myös monia faktoja Paavalin teologiasta, ovat kreikkalaisen Pantheon-lehden numeroissa 8 , 9 ja 10. Myös Lili Zografoun kirja Anti gnosis - Ta De kanini ja Ka pita on pohjimmiltaan kirjoitettu tuomitsemaan Paavalin ja hänen teoksensa täällä Paavalia pidetään poliisina, salaliittolaisena ja juutalaisena ja osana roomalaista aristokratiaa. Heidän perimmäisenä tavoitteenaan oli näiden taantumuksellisten aristokratioiden etujen häiriötön säilyttäminen ja vahvistaminen. kansanjoukko, joka kuohui närkästystä ja oli valmis kapinoimaan asettaakseen paikalleen Paavalin vääristämän kristinuskon tuudittaakseen massat ja turvatakseen taantumuksellisen vallan etuoikeudet. Tämä oikeuttaa Paavalin ja muiden jumalallisesti inspiroimien Uuden testamentin kirjoittajien väliset monet ristiriidat sekä kreikkalaisen ja kreikkalais-roomalaisen kulttuurin jne. täydellisen tuhon kristinuskon toimesta lyhyessä ajassa. Tässä kirjassa esitetyt argumentit ovat varsin tärkeitä ja tämän hypoteesin paikkansapitävyyttä tai ei pitäisi todennäköisesti tutkia. Valloista tai vallan puutteesta riippumatta ratkaisevaa on se, mikä lopulta johti kristinuskon vallitsemiseen jopa päällysrakenteena. Tulos oli surullinen ja tuhoisa!
      ellauri412.html on line 55: The second Isaiah section, Deutero-Isaiah, was likely written by an anonymous writer (or writers) in the Sixth century BCE when the Jewish people were in exile. This is a time jump of approximately 150 years; the city of Jerusalem has already been destroyed and the people are living in captivity. It is not likely that Proto Isaiah was acquainted with Lälli Kooros the Second, four-wheel drive cherubs notwithstanding. Ne jotka kannattavat näkemystä kolmesta kirjoittajasta, jakavat kirjan toisen kerran luvun 55 kohdalta. Heidän mukaansa Tritojesaja on lisännyt kirjaan vielä Babylonin episodin jälkeen fan fiction tyyppisiä siikveleitä.
      ellauri412.html on line 98: Gazan kaduilla viruu ruumiita kuin jätteitä tunkiolla. IDFn äijät ärjyvät kuin jalopeurat, heidän äänensä on kuin nuoren leijonan, joka karjahtaen sieppaa saaliin ja raahaa sen mukanaan kenenkään uskaltamatta asettua tielle. Heidän vyönsä ei uumilta irtoa paizi raiskaushommissa, eikä kenenkään kengästä katkea hihna. Tänä päivänä se kaunainen kansa ärjyen uhkaa Filistean maata ja Libanonia, kohisten kuin meri. Mihin katseesi luotkin, vain pimeyttä ja ahdistusta.
      ellauri412.html on line 117: strutsit ovat asettuneet taloksi ja villivuohet hyppelevät talojen välissä. Sakaalit ulvovat sen palatseissa, huvilinnoissa kaikuu hyeenan nauru. Ihmisiä on oleva vähemmän kuin puhdasta kultaa. Yes, hyvä uutinen!
      ellauri412.html on line 185: 25 Now on the same night the LORD said to him, "Take your father's bull and a second bull seven years old, and pull down the altar of Baal which belongs to your father, and cut down the Asherah that is beside it 26 and build an altar to the LORD your God on the top of this stronghold in an orderly manner, and take a second bull and offer a burnt offering with the wood of the Asherah which you shall cut down. (Judges 6:25-26)
      ellauri412.html on line 203: 1 King Solomon, however, loved many foreign women besides Pharaoh’s daughter - Moabites, Ammonites, Edomites, Sidonians and Hittites. 2 They were from nations about which the Lord had told the Israelites, “You must not intermarry with them, because they will surely turn your hearts after their gods.” Nevertheless, Solomon held fast to them in love. 3 He had seven hundred wives of royal birth and three hundred concubines, and his wives led him astray. 4 As Solomon grew old, his wives turned his heart after other gods, and his heart was not fully devoted to the Lord his God, as the heart of David his father had been. 5 He followed Ashtoreth the goddess of the Sidonians, and Molek the detestable god of the Ammonites. 6 So Solomon did evil in the eyes of theLord; he did not follow the Lord completely, as David his father had done. (1 Kings 11:1-6)
      ellauri412.html on line 265: Ariel & Supremos, vuonna 2004 perustettu yhtye
      ellauri412.html on line 324: Koko maasta tulee hyeenojen tanner, kamelikurkien asuinsija. Villikoirat ja sakaalit siellä kohtaavat, villivuohi villivuohta kutsuu. Siellä lepäilee Lilit, öinen velhotar, sieltä hän löytää rauhallisen sijan. Myös nuolikäärme löytää sieltä turvapaikan, pesii ja munii, hautoo munansa hiekassa. Sinne kokoontuvat haaskalinnut kukin kumppaninsa kanssa. Kaikiila on lopultakin kivaa ja rauhaisaa ilman mölyapinoiden hälinää.
      ellauri412.html on line 326: Kosto lähestyy, tilinteon hetki. Jumala itse tulee ja pelastaa teidät. Silloin aukenevat sokeiden silmät ja kuurojen korvat avautuvat, rampa hyppii silloin kuin kauris, mykän kieli laulaa riemuaan. Lähteitä puhkeaa autiomaahan, vuolaina virtaavat purot arolla. Hehkuva hiekka muuttuu lammikoiksi, janoinen maa pulppuaviksi lähteiksi. Siellä, missä hyeenat lepäilivät, kasvaa silloin rantakaislaa ja papyrusta. Ja sinne syntyy tie vesilinnuille,  valtatie, sitä kutsutaan Pyhäksi tieksi. Epäpyhä ei saa sille astua. Oman tien kulkijoille se kuuluu, heille yksin. Siellä ei tyhmäkään eksy, kun ei ole risteyxiä eikä laitoja. Leijona ei nouse sille tielle, ei yksikään raateleva peto, ei yksikään paizi ehkä krokodiili ja Leviatan. Vain vapaiksi lunastetut sitä vaeltavat. Herran vapaiksi (keneltä?) ostamat palaavat ja saapuvat riemuiten Siioniin. He kantavat päänsä päällä ikuista iloa plus kahta hattua.
      ellauri412.html on line 527: Sitten hän luetteli 12 syytä, joista Isaiah 53 ei voinut viitata Jeesukseen. Hän ei maininnut alkuperäistä lähdettä, mutta perustelut näyttävät olevan peräisin Hugh Fogelmanin kirjasta Christianity Uncovered: Viewed Through Open Eyes. Luin listan läpi ja tunsin, että minun oli punnittava ja yritiä tehdä ennätyksen suoriksi. Ei vain puolustaa kristillistä kantaa Isaiah 53: ssa, vaan myös eduksi juutalaisille ystävilleni, jotka haluavat vahvistaa asemaansa eivätkä luota heikkoihin argumentteihin.
      ellauri412.html on line 648: This prophecy was written 1000 years before Jesus was born. And coincidently, Judaism has tried to insert multiple messiahs to fit their own narrative of rejecting Jesus. How can you (Judaism) reject a chapter to fit your narrative of you still waiting for your messiah to come. If it’s in the word of God it is to be taken what the Lord God through the holy spirit had written. This is why, Christianity who follow Christ, we read the entire book of The Lord God We don’t have the right as his followers to reject or omit what the Lord Has written. If I was following Judaism then I would question and start to think with my own insight about how can you reject a chapter that the Lord God put in the Holy Bible, and then you have orthodox Jew who has come to the truth of Jesus Christ.
      ellauri412.html on line 701: Ei hemmetti, tää thread goes on and on. Se on pitkä kuin Jesajoiden kirja. Ei jaxa, paras lopettaa ja palata Jesajoiden pariin. 9 lukua on jälellä. Lyhyesti sanottuna Jesajassa on 66 lukua, koska sillä tavalla menneisyyden ihmiset jakoivat kirjan (saisin lisätä, että he eivät olleet inspiroituja tai erehtymättömiä). Vaikka jotkut saattavat vaatia lisämerkitystä tällaisille jaotteluille (esim. Raamatussa on 66 kirjaa – Jesaja on Raamatun pienoismalli), nämä johtopäätökset ovat vain päätelmiä, eikä niitä ole selkeästi ilmoitettu Raamatussa.
      ellauri413.html on line 93: 1942 wurde Schloss Janowitz von deutschen Truppen beschlagnahmt und dem SS-Truppenübungsplatz Böhmen zugeordnet. Nach dem Krieg versuchte Nádherná vergeblich, den Familienbesitz zurückzuerhalten. Schloss Janowitz wurde von der Armee genutzt und 1948 von den tschechoslowakischen Kommunisten enteignet. Nádherná war kurzzeitig verhaftet und floh über Bayern nach Großbritannien. 1950 starb sie verarmt im englischen Exil.
      ellauri413.html on line 189: Naton lähestyessä loppua ja Trumpin palaamisen Valkoiseen taloon vahvistuessa keskustelut keskittyvät Natoon ilman Yhdysvaltoja. Jopa ilman Yhdysvaltoja, Nato voittaisi taistelussa. Ukraina kamppailee nyt selviytyäkseen, ei voittaakseen. Venäjä leikkaa Ukrainan puolustusta osiin taistelukentällä
      ellauri413.html on line 211: Selydoven eteläpuolella Venäjä valtasi Hirnykin kaupungin ja painaa syvemmälle kohti länttä sekä pyrkii saarrostamaan läheisen Kurahikiän. Kastehelmen mukaan Ukrainalla on edessään suuria ongelmia, sillä vetäytyessään venäläisten tieltä se joutuu hylkäämään kauan valmistellut Maginot/Mannerheim-puolustuslinjansa. Venäjä murtaa parhaillaan linnoitusketjua, jonka oli määrä kestää huomattavasti pidempään. Novoukrainkan alueella on vielä yksi puolustuslinja, mutta sen jälkeen tie on vapaa vaikka Lembergiin saakka. Jos Harkovs laatuu, Ukraina on meneyetty, sillä sieltä vihulainen saa polkupyöriä.
      ellauri413.html on line 225: Venäjän presidentti Vladimir Putin ilmoitti 24.2.2022 sotilaallisen operaation aloittamisesta Ukrainassa. Hän nimesi sen tavoitteexi naapurivaltion demilitarisoimisen ja denatsifioimisen sekä Donbassin siviiliväestön suojelemisen Kiovan viranomaisten tekemältä kansanmurhalta. Vihollisuuksien puhkeamisen jälkeen Ukrainan viranomaiset ottivat sotatilalain käyttöön koko maassa ja käynnistivät yleisen mobilisoinnin. Venäjällä osittaisesta mobilisaatiosta ilmoitettiin syyskuussa 2022. Saman vuoden lokakuussa neljä uutta aluetta liitettiin osaksi Venäjää: DPR, LPR, Kherson ja Zaporozhye alueet. Venäjän armeija miehitti Jasnaja Poljanan kylän DPR:ssä, puolustusministeriö raportoi. Tolstoi on päässyt kotiin!
      ellauri413.html on line 244: Источник: https://inpic.net/ru/zhenschiny-v-sssr-foto-kotorye-vas-udivyat
      ellauri418.html on line 264: "Katsotaanpa ensin naisia, jotka miesten tyrannia riistää heidän vapautensa, ja he ovat kaiken herroja, koska kruunut, virat, työpaikat, armeijoiden komento, kaikki on heidän käsissään, heidät on otettu haltuun alusta asti. jollain luonnollisella oikeudella, jota en ole koskaan kyennyt täysin ymmärtämään ja jolla ei voi olla muuta perustetta kuin ruumiillinen ylivoima."
      ellauri418.html on line 280: Google has racked up some 2 undecillion rubles ($2.5 decillion, shit, theyre just long scale sextillions) worth of fines in Russia after years of refusing to restore the accounts of pro-Kremlin and state-run media outlets, the RBC news website reported Tuesday, citing an anonymous source familiar with court rulings against the tech company. Yhdysvaltain edustajien on maksettava tämä summa venäläisten kanavien poistamisen vuoksi YouTube-videopalvelusta. Asia ratkaistiin oikeudessa, joka pani kusipäisen yhtiön edesvastuuseen. Osavaltioissa ja muissa maissa tämä otettiin epäselvästi vastaan. Jeneissä se olisi vielä enempi.
      ellauri418.html on line 325: "Tilanne on tänään paljon huonompi kuin viimeisen viiden vuoden aikana", myöntää Jooseppi reilusti. Borrell oli yksi äänekkäimmistä EU:n johtajista, mutta lopultakin pelkkä suunpiexäjä. No pluspuolelle oon laskettava, että hänen toistuvat kehotuksensa "empatiaan" palestiinalaisia ​​kohtaan olivat ristiriidassa Euroopan komission puheenjohtajan kylmän Ursula von der Leyenin suhteellisen vaikenemisen kanssa erillisalueen inhimillisen kärsimyksen laajuudesta. Noin 70 prosenttia Gazassa kuolleista on ollut naisia ​​ja lapsia.
      ellauri418.html on line 353: På båten har man bland annat hittat fingeravtryck, dna-spår och spår av det sprängämne som användes vid sabotaget av gasledningen. En bil som fångades på en fartkamera kunde kopplas till segelbåten och sedermera också till de misstänkta ukrainarna. Tidningen Süddeutsche Zeitung har talat med den efterlyste ukrainska mannen som förnekar inblandning. Även den misstänkta kvinnan blånekar till dådet. Nyet, nyet, säger dom på flytande ukrainska.
      ellauri418.html on line 373: Mixei ukrainalaiset tahdo heittää tuleen nazi-Saxan malliin koululaisia? Mikä maxaa? Sleepy Joe jo kyselee. Lyhyesti ilmaistuna Ukrainan syntyvyys on poikkeuksellisen matala, ja väestön keski-ikä kansainvälisesti vertailtuna korkea. Poliittisena tavoitteena on, että sodassa kuolisi mahdollisimman vähän nuorimpia täysi-ikäisiä ikäluokkia. Moni näkee asian liittyvän eläkkeiden maxuun ja lisääntymiskykyyn. Huolenaiheena on myös valtion talous, sillä satojen tuhansien nuorten mobilisointi tarkoittaa suorina ja vaihtoehtoiskustannuksina massiivista rahanmenoa. Hintalappu voi kohota reilusti yli kymmenen miljardin euron, riippuen laskutavasta ja miesmääristä. Vaan pikkurahaahan se on lännen varoissa.
      ellauri419.html on line 65: Förhoppningarna om att komma överens vid klimatmötet COP29 ser allt mindre ut. Flera mindre länder har precis valt att lämna förhandlingarna. – Det är osäkert om vi kommer att lyckas, säger EU:s klimatchef. Rättare sagt, det är säkert att vi kommer misslyckas. Vi behöver pengarna för vapenskräll och robotar istället. Fattiglapparna kräver 1,3 biljoner om året, nästan lika mycket som NATO-ländernas sammanräknade försvarsbudget. The 32 members of the world's most powerful military alliance will spend $1.47 trillion for defence this year. Yxin Ukrainassa on palanut pian 200 miljardia länsimanta. Därför har kelgrisarna inte råd med ens 300G per år att dela ut till hela resten av jordkloten. ”Trots allvaret och brådskan i klimatkrisen verkar det finnas en stor risk att länderna inte kommer kunna enas. Stämningen här är tryckt och upprörd. Ett haveri hänger i luften”. Men gudskelov så flyger robotarna fram och tillbaks som de ska. Idiots said first chum Leon Musk of Pentagon still buying manned fighters, this is the time of drones and driverless cars.
      ellauri419.html on line 218: Baldwin also formed a personal relationship with FBI Director J. Edgar Hoover when the latter was first appointed in 1924, and he remained somewhat uncritical of the Bureau in the years that followed. Olikohan Rogerkin homofiili? No oli sillä pari vaimoa ja tytärkin. Years later, the ACLU would draw criticism from the NAACP for defending the right of the Klan to assemble peaceably. Jewish groups expressed similar disapproval when the group defended the right of automaker Henry Ford to publicize his anti–Semitic views. In these and other instances, however, the ACLU championed open discourse as opposed to suppression or censorship. Ihan Jarkko Tontin linjoilla kaikin puolin.
      ellauri419.html on line 402: Путин отвечал даже на провокационные вопросы журналистов и причем спокойно, не опускаясь до оскорблений и не поддаваясь на провокации! Putin vastaa kansalaisten kysymyxiin tapansa mukaan hillitysti ja järkevästi. Hän sanoi lakanneensa vizailemasta koska Venäjällä on vakava paikka menossa. IS ozikoi: Putinia ei enää naurata. Putinista olisi hyvin hälyttävää palata 80-luvun puolivälin tilanteeseen, jolloin valtion johtajat yksitellen, pysyen vallassa päiviensä loppuun asti, jättivät tämän vallan ilman tarvittavaa edellytystä vallanmuutokselle. Pravda.ua ozikoi: Putin kieltää halunsa hallita ikuisesti. Haistakaapa kuulkaa paska propagandistit. Katso koko Perjantain jakso Mihin tarvitsemme enää naurua? Erikoisoperaatio olisi pitänyt aloittaa jo paljon aiemmin.
      ellauri419.html on line 426: Chinese consumers who once preferred Western brands now feel Chinese brands are a better value. That new preference is driven in large part by Chinese government policy and incentives to encourage a shift from traditional gasoline-powered cars to electric vehicles and plug-in hybrids. Most Western automakers will be forced to exit the market in next five years if not sooner. It was a massive miscalculation by Western automakers. Never underestimate a corporation’s ability to prioritize short-term profitability over long-term viability.
      ellauri421.html on line 113: Paz  (1914-1998) won the Nobel Prize in 1990, and died eight years later at the age of 84.
      ellauri421.html on line 115: One of Paz’s best-known works was El laberinto de la soledad, which appeared first in 1950 and in English translation as The Labyrinth of Solitude: Life and Thought in Mexico eleven years later. In it Paz argues that Mexicans are children a rapist Spanish father who abandoned his offspring and a treacherous Indian mother who turned against her own people. The volume is standard reading for students of Latin American history and literature.
      ellauri421.html on line 171: Zelenskyj er en tapper lillebitte mand, der kæmper heroisk mod sit land og sit folk. Han prøver også at få Ukraine med i NATO og EU, hvilket nok ikke er noget man kunne forvente af en nationalistisk, højreorienteret eller udemokratisk præsident. Jfr tex Türkiye og Ungern.
      ellauri421.html on line 187: yed-brest.jpg?w=497" />
      ellauri421.html on line 243: The Dolmatovsky family was affected by the Great Purge. In 1938, while Yevgeniy was away working in the Far East, his father Aron was arrested on false charges, and shot shortly thereafter. The family remained ignorant of his fate until 16 years later, after Joseph Stalin's death, when they were notified of Aron Dolmatovsky's posthumous rehabilitation.
      ellauri421.html on line 365: Suomalainen tykistö avasi jo ylitysalueen lähestyessä hurrikaanitulen ylitysyksiköitä kohti. Klo 13.00 kapteeni Zykinin sapöörien kimppuun hyökättiin alkuperäisillä paikoillaan, kaksi ajoneuvoa, joissa oli omaisuutta, tuhoutui, 18 ihmistä loukkaantui vakavasti ja kuljettaja Druzhinin ja 1. komppanian sotilas Pechnikov kuolivat. Seurasi hämmennys. Vasta klo 15.00 kapteeni Zykin ja pataljoonakomissaari Markelov johtivat henkilökohtaisesti puistokomppanian ajoneuvot risteykseen. Kävi ilmi, että risteykseen tuotuja kumiveneitä ei voitu käyttää, koska ne kaikki oli leikattu sirpaleilla. Jatkuvassa suomalaisen tykistötulessa 7. ponttonipataljoonan kulkuneuvot matkasivat joelle, ja sapparien ja ponttonisoittajien yhteisillä ponnisteluilla aloitettiin ylitys. Klo 18.00 mennessä 15. jalkaväkirykmentin kaksi komppaniaa ylittivät joen pohjoisrannalle. Klo 18.00 määrättiin pysäyttää ylitys. Nuolet asettuivat ns. Pärssisen lehtoon joen vastarannalle. Kapteeni Karl Lagerlöfin 3. pataljoona, 28. jalkaväkirykmentti yritti heti heittää heidät jokeen, mutta epäonnistui. Sitten rykmentin reservi, kapteeni Mauno von Schrowen 2. pataljoona, asetettiin toimintaan. Taistelu kesti koko yön 6. - 7. joulukuuta, ja vasta aamulla suomalaiset ilmoittivat lehdon raivauksen valmistumisesta. Neuvostoliiton arkistotietojen mukaan 222. ja 15. rykmenttien komppanioilla oli hallussa oli sekä Pärssisen lehto että koululehto. Ne. Meidän omamme ilmoittivat pitävänsä lehtoja, mutta suomalaiset ilmoittivat valloittaneensa lehdot takaisin? "Бой длился всю ночь с 6 на 7 декабря и только к утру финны рапортовали об окончании зачистки рощи. По советским архивным данным, роты 222-го и 15-го полков удерживали как рощу Пярссинена, так и Школьную рощу." Т.е. наши доложили, что рощи удерживают, а фины - что рощи отбили? Vitun sotapropagandaa taas. Ihan kuin lukisi Ukrainan erikoisoperaatiosta.
      ellauri421.html on line 367: Risteyksessä nro 2 kumiveneitä kuljettaneet sapöörit joutuivat jo joen lähestyessä viereisen konekivääritulen alle Musta-oyan rotkon suulla olevasta bunkkerista ja kärsivät raskaita tappioita. Tästä huolimatta sapöörit jatkoivat työtään. Monet veneet ammuttiin bunkkerista keskellä jokea. 20 veneestä kolme säilyi ehjinä. Sapparit menettivät 17 haavoittunutta ja kaksi kuollutta. Klo 18.00 pysäytettiin myös risteys nro 2.
      ellauri422.html on line 80: Ukrainan tilanne itärintamalla on vaikea. – Esimerkiksi Velyka Novosilkan tilanne on tällä hetkellä katastrofaalinen Ukrainalle. Paroinen sanoo, että Ukraina on joutunut vetäytymään lyhyen ajan sisällä paljon niistä asemista, mihin se pääsi toissa kesän vastahyökkäyksillä. – Kaikki ne vähäiset saavutukset on nyt menetetty kuukauden aikana. Velyka Novosilka on melko tärkeä risteyskaupunki, joka on jäämässä mottiin. Venäjän eteneminen syvemmälle helpottuu, jos se valtaa kaupungin. Ukrainan joukkoja on jo jäänyt saarroksiin Hannivkan pikkukylässä. Paroisen mukaan Hannivkan tilanne on osoitus siitä, ettei Ukraina ole reagoinut tilanteisiin järkevästi. – Ukraina puolustaa itsepintaisesti joka ikistä tuumaa maaperästään. Se näkyi Hannivkan tapauksessa. Kylästä pidettiin kiinni itsepintaisesti, vaikka oli selvää, että joukkojen olisi pitänyt vetäytyä. Joukot jäivät mottiin, vaikka venäläiset etenivät hitaasti. Paroinen ennakoi, että myös Kurakhovesta Ukrainan joukot joutuvat joko vetäytymään pakotettuna tai jäämään saarroksiin, jos asemista ei vetäydytä ajoissa. Kurakhoven puolustuksen rapistuminen mahdollistaa Paroisen mukaan sen, että venäläiset kykenevät etenemään Pokrovskin kaupungin eteläpuolelle. Hän arvioi, että taistelut Pokrovskista alkavat todennäköisesti tammikuussa. Toretskin kaupungin Venäjä on jo käytännössä vallannut. Kaupungin hallinnasta on taisteltu parin kuukauden ajan. Sitten on vuorossa Krematorsk. – Toretski on ollut merkittävä lukko Ukrainan puolustuksessa. Ukrainan joukot pitävät hallussaan enää kaupungin ulkolaitoja. – Seuraava kysymys tulevien kuukausien aikana on se, millä vauhdilla ja energialla venäläiset kykenevät jatkamaan hyökkäyksiä Toretskista esimerkiksi Kostiantynivkan kaupunkia kohti. Paroinen summaa, että Venäjän minimitavoitteena hyökkäyssodassa on Donetskin ja Luhanskin alueiden valtaaminen. – Pokrovskin valtaaminen olisi merkittävä osa sitä. Kaupungin valtaaminen antaisi venäläisille tietysti mahdollisuuksia jatkaa hyökkäyksiä eteenpäin myös pohjoista kohti.
      xxx/ellauri010.html on line 19:

      yellow;background:#3ea0bb;font-size:6em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">LOS MUERTOS


      xxx/ellauri010.html on line 20:

      yellow;font-size:3em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Mustan mantiljan salaisuus

      Sensuroitua


      xxx/ellauri010.html on line 415: näin myös meikkiksen sukupolven väistymisajan lähestyessä.


      xxx/ellauri010.html on line 450: ja Kauppakorkeakoulu ja uran kiteytyessä

      xxx/ellauri010.html on line 454: Työura lyhyesti TJ sihteeri

      xxx/ellauri010.html on line 527: Sitä korostaa sivuilta lyhyeksi leikattu tukka ja töyhtö päälaella. usein on myös parta.

      xxx/ellauri010.html on line 528: Lyhyt ruumis on kapea, jalat lyhyet. Hartiat kapeat, suhteessa melko iso perse. Tiukat vaatteet.
      xxx/ellauri010.html on line 629: P.S... You can try to complain to police, but I don't think that they can solve ur problem, the inquisition will last for one year- I'm from Estonia - so I dgf LOL
      xxx/ellauri010.html on line 659: So, you can change the password, yes.. But my malware intercepts it every time.
      xxx/ellauri013.html on line 19:

      yellow;background:#3ea0bb;font-size:8em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">EL MUERTO


      xxx/ellauri013.html on line 20:

      yellow;font-size:4em;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;font-style:italic;margin-bottom:0%">VIESTI KUOLEMALTA

      Salatietoa


      xxx/ellauri013.html on line 319: Ei se ihan noin strömsöösti menny Russellilla. Se löysi Russellin paradoxin, joka hölmöydessään jo osoittaa, että matikkaa ei voi johtaa pelkästä logiikasta. Joko se todistaa liikaa (ristiriidasta seuraa kaikki), tai liian vähän, ja pitää lisätä axioomia, jotka ei vaikuta kovinkaan loogisilta (esim. että ei ole suurinta joukkoa, että on olemassa semmoisia ja tämmöisiä funktioita, jne. jne. Eli matemaatikot ja loogikot sanoi lopulta goodbye ja keskittyi omiin ongelmiinsa kumpikin. Russell lopetti matematiikan miettimisen paradoxiin ja keskittyi siitälähin panohommiin ja jokamiehen filosofiaan.
      xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1055: The Polish szlachta and... intelligentsia were social strata in which reputation... was felt... very important... for a feeling of self-worth. Men strove... to find confirmation of their... self-regard... in the eyes of others... Such a psychological heritage forms both a spur to ambition and a source of constant stress, especially if [one has been inculcated with] the idea of [one]'s public duty...
      xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1065: ...most unexpectedly I did come upon him a few hours before he gave up his arrogant ghost. Fortunately he was willing and able to talk between the choking fits of asthma, and his racked body writherd with malicious exultation at the bare thought of Jim. He exulted thus at the idea that he had "paid out the stuck-up beggar after all". He gloated over his action. I had to bear the sunken glare of his fierce crow-footed eyes if I wanted to know; and so I bore it, reflecting how much certain forms of evil are akin to madness, derived from intense egoism, inflamed by resistance, tearing the soul to pieces...
      xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1067: It appears that a sort of loafing, fuddled vagabond - a white man living among the natives with a siamese woman - had consireded it a great privilege to give a shelter to the last days of the famous Gentleman Brown. While he was talking to me in the wretched hovel, and, as it were, fighting for every minute of his life, the siamese woman, with big bare legs nd a stupid coarse face, sat in dark orner chewing betel stolidly. Now and then she would get up for the purpose of shooing a chicken away from the door. The whole hut shook when she walked. An ugly yellow child, naked and pot-bellied, like a little heathen god, stood at the foot of the couch, finger in mouth, lost in a profound and calm contemplation of the dying man.
      xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1071: I could see directly I set my eyes on him what sort of a fool he was, gasped the dying Brown. He a man! Hell! He was a hollow sham. As if he couldn't have said straight out, Hands off my plunder! blast him. That would have been like a man! Rot his superiour soul! He had me there - but he hadn't devil enough in him to make and en of me. Not he! A thng like that letting me off as if I wasn't worth a kick!... Brown struggled desperately for breath... Fraud ... letting me off ... and so I did make an end of him after all... He choked again...

      xxx/ellauri013.html on line 1110: >> Give yes or no to the name Raimo Korpinen.
      xxx/ellauri027.html on line 312: The seminars slowed to a crawl. Wilber’s health deteriorated greatly (he was diagnosed with a rare disease that keeps him bed-ridden). He stopped writing. Ten years on, despite developing some fans in academia (some in high places), Wilber’s work had yet to be tested or peer-reviewed in a serious journal. Much of his posting online devolved into bizarre spiritual claims (such as this one about an “enlightened teacher” who can make crops grow twice as fast by “blessing them”).
      xxx/ellauri027.html on line 364: Systeemiälykäs henkilö huomioi luovasti ja tarkoituksenmukaisesti ympäristönsä, itsensä sekä vuorovaikutuskokonaisuuden, minkä nämä muodostavat. Hän osaa toimia siinä älykkäästi.” Lyhyesti sanoen, on opportunisti, kuten Niini vähän myöhemmin vihjaileekin kieli poskessa:
      xxx/ellauri027.html on line 500: Merkittävä tekijä Esa Saariseen liittyen on nimenomaan vahvuuksien kieli. Hän on kehittänyt sanastoa, joka synnyttää osallistujissa elämän- ja tulevaisuususkon tuntemusta. Kielellinen mielikuvitus on Esa Saarisen tavaramerkki. Elämään ovat jääneet latistuksen mankelit, ylä- ja alarekisterit, huikeudet, maagisuudet ja muut saarismaisuudet. Tuskin muuta edes tarvitaan hyvään elämään.
      xxx/ellauri027.html on line 563: Koko modernin organisaatiotutkimuksen lyhyen historian ajan on etsitty keinoja saada ihmiset tehokkaammin toteuttamaan organisaation tavoitteita, jotka yksioikoisimmissa tulkinnoissa kiteytyvät tuloksen tekemiseksi tai voiton maksimoinniksi. Saarisen mukaan tämä ei ole paras lähtökohta. Fiksumpaa olisi asettaa kaiken toiminnan keskiöön ihminen ja luoda ”ihmisten yhteisö ihmisiä varten”.
      xxx/ellauri027.html on line 567: Jos eroa yrittäisi lyhyesti kuvata, yleensä henkilöstö nähdään ja kuvataan voimavarana, josta yritetään ”repiä tehot irti”, mutta Saarisen mielestä kaikkien kannalta parempi tulos saadaan rakentamalla työpaikoista yhteisöjä, joissa ihmisiä rohkaistaan ajattelemaan omilla aivoillaan ja joissa heidän halutaan sisäistävän toiminnan tarkoitus ja tavoitteet niin syvästi, että voivat toimia vapautuneesti ja aidon innoittuneina.
      xxx/ellauri027.html on line 577: Nousukausi, millaisexi hahmottuu tää viitisensataa vuotta jatkunut maapallon valloitus ja kerskakulutus kapitalismin nimissä, suosii työelämässä tätä joustoa. Raskaassa teollisuudessa ja sodassa ei (ainakaan ennen) tarvittu mielikuvitusta, vaan raakaa tehoa, hyväxi koetuilla menetelmillä: RÄISK! PAM! päät irti, talot tuleen, kylät tasasex. No nythän sielläkin on toinen ääni kellossa, kun sotasankarit istuu pelikonsolien edessä ja hieroo taktiikoita miehittämättömillä lennokeilla ja kyberavaruudessa. Ei tarvi olla rohkea vaan nokkela. Eskin työn filosofia palvelee mainiosti tätä uutta sodankäyntiä. Lyhyessäkin sessiossa ehtii istuttaa ajatuspökäleen.
      xxx/ellauri027.html on line 673: Pastori näkee Esan jatkamassa suurten puhujien kaanonia, jossa aiempana jonossa seisovat Hitler, Churchill, King (ei B.B. vinkukitaran mestari, eikä Albert, toinen bluesmies, eikä se joku thrillerinikkarikaan, vaan se 60-luvun kaveri), Kennedy (se ammuttu), Veikko Vennamo, ja Timo Soini. Niistä kelpaa ottaa mallia. Portsaaniassa oli 70-luvulla ruokalassa kuva, jossa oli kaukaisuuxiin ulottuva jono partajehuja, ja viimeisexi tullut kysyi edeltäjältä: miten kauan tässä kestää. Se vastasi en tiedä, tulin vasta eilen. Parempi mennä Mezätaloon, siellä on pahempi ruoka mutta lyhyemmät jonot. Ei liene sattumaa sekään.
      xxx/ellauri027.html on line 929: Engagement on kihloissa, varattu (puhelimesta), tai (vaihderattaasta) päällä eikä vapaalla. Varmaan Eski jahtaa eniten tota ratasvertausta. Se on mielekkäin myös työnantajien kannalta, onhan se hyvä jos rattaat pyörivät eikä seiso vapaalla, ei luistateta kytkintä. Siis pöhistään, ollaan puuhakkaita, mukana menossa. Tästä mä en liioin ole koskaan tykännyt, mä puuhastelen mieluummin izexeni omaan tahtiin, en kytke izeäni mihkään virtapiireihin. Pöhinäkin on eräänlaista kytkyeessä olemista, silat päällä valjakossa, joku brändimerkki ozassa ja rähinäremmi olalla. Kiitti, mut ei kiitti, me, siis minä ja Lauri, inhotaan pöhinää kuin Turtsel pizzaa. (Pizzakin on pahaa.)
      xxx/ellauri027.html on line 950: business managers and employees, as well as non-professionals, students, retards, whole families, teams, celebrities, artists, relatives and loved ones etc.
      xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1011: I have gone to psychoanalysis for 10 years four times a week. While acknowledging the merits of that experience, I reflect the week in Paphos with astonishment. Comparing the prices, this was a steal, both ways.
      xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1017: Parhaita todistuxia on, että joku Timo Joensuu oli Pafoxen opeilla perustanut oman yxityisen syöpäklinikan. Tosi hienoa. Kyl yxityinen sairaanhoito aina voittaa valtiollisen. Viestitellään me apinat mieluummin hinnoilla, kuten Hayek opastaa (ks alla). Leimaannutaan toisiimme länsimaisittain kuin kananpojat Bowlbyn tavalla. (Tääkin hemmo oli mulle ennestään tuntematon. Live and learn.) Sentään Eski ei harrasta noiden eskimäisten iskusanojen yhteishuutoa.
      xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1052: In actual practice, much of academic philosophy is elitist and assumes a pretence of knowledge (somewhat like economics, as described by Hayek in his towering Nobel speech). I find much of academic philosophy fear-based as it seeks to pinpoint mistakes and operates with conceptual criticism as the leading faculty of mind. The result is the lack of synthetic, life-enhancing contributions (a point made clear in Gardner’s Five Minds for the Future).
      xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1056: Kai tässä on vähän haikeahkoa jäähyväistä sinne metsätalon perälle. Hmm, täytyypä lukaista, et mikäs Hayekissa on niin tornimaisen positiivista. (Tästä, kuten Eskin tai muidenkaan suurmiesten valtaenemmistöstä, mä en ole ennen rekisteröinyt mitään.) Nähtävästi toi hitlerwiixinen Aatun maanmies (ensimmäisiä pankkinobelisteja v 1974, samoihin aikoihin kun Eski sai sen paskakaivoarvosanansa gradusta) tuli kuuluisax klassisen liberalismin puolustajana, sen oikeana linjamiehenä, markkinatalouden yhtenä vapahtajana ikävien keynesiläiten suunnitelmatalousajatuxista. Karl Popperin henkilökohtainen hyvä ystävä. Pääpointti oli et hinnat on apinoiden paras viestintäväline.
      xxx/ellauri027.html on line 1333: Airaxista vetää vastustamattomasti puoleensa väittely, vastaväitteet varsinkin. Filosofia on negatiivisesti keskusteleva tiede, luonteeltaan against something, hän kuvaa. Feyerabendin taitaa Timo olla fanittaja, sen hulluudesta puuttuu mefoodi.
      xxx/ellauri044.html on line 132: Joseph Burgo selittää. Joe on repukahko self-employed therapist,

      xxx/ellauri044.html on line 254:
      yellow">
      xxx/ellauri044.html on line 396: Herman Hessen Romaani Narkissos ja kultasuu käsittelee keskeisesti ristiriitoja maallisen ja taivaallisen, ruumiin ja sielun, järjen ja tunteen sekä taiteen ja tieteen välillä. Näitä dikotomioita kuvaavat ystävykset Narkissos ja Kultasuu, joista toinen on omistautunut Jumalalle ja toinen etsii nautintoa maallisista iloista. Ystävykset tutustuvat Mariabronnin luostarissa, jossa Narkissos on noviisina ja jonne Kultasuu tulee oppilaaksi. Kultasuu ei kuitenkaan viihdy luostarissa, vaikka ihaileekin suuresti Narkissosta ja toivoo tulevansa hänen kaltaisekseen. Kultasuu lähtee luostarista ja kokee suurta epäonnistumisen tunnetta, koska ei kyennyt noudattamaan ajan ihanteita, nöyryyttä, kuuliaisuutta ja hengellisyyttä. Hän kulkee, kohtaa kauneutta, hyvyyttä ja pahuutta ja päätyy taiteilijaksi, kuvanveistäjäksi. Niinkuin Hessekin, jonka pappi-isä oli pettynyt taiteilijapoikaansa.
      xxx/ellauri044.html on line 422: Written while under the influence of the 35 year old Catholic psychiatrist
      xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1139: Kulttuurissa, jossa arvostetaan suuresti julkisuutta, mahtailevat narsistit pääsevät usein kuin koira veräjästä käyttäytyessään huonosti. Kameroiden edessä ja julkisuudessa he käyttäytyvät mahtipontisen minäkäsityxensä mukaisesti - rikkovat sosiaalisia normeja ja lakeja ja saavat raivokohtauxia -seuurausten ollessa minimaalisia. Fanit antavat heille anteexi ja tuomarit kästtelevät heitä helläkätisesti. Tällänen mahtaileva käytös kulkee usein käsi kädessä sen kuvitelman kanssa, että henkilö on oikeutettu jatkuvaan erikoiskohteluun.
      xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1207: Rajneesh (born Chandra Mohan Jain, 11 December 1931 – 19 January 1990), also known as Acharya Rajneesh, Bhagwan Shri Rajneesh, and later as Osho (/ˈoʊʃoʊ/), was an Indian godman, mystic and founder of the Rajneesh movement. During his lifetime he was viewed as a controversial new religious movement leader and mystic. His parents, Babulal and Saraswati Jain, who were Taranpanthi Jains, let him live with his maternal grandparents until he was seven years old. By Rajneesh's own account, this was a major influence on his development because his grandmother gave him the utmost freedom, leaving him carefree without an imposed education or restrictions. In the 1960s he travelled throughout India as a public speaker and was a vocal critic of socialism, arguing that India was not ready for socialism and that socialism, communism, and anarchism could evolve only when capitalism had reached its maturity. He caused controversy in India during the late 1960s and became known as "the sex guru".
      Kun Intia kävi kuumaxi se siirsi bisnisit Oregoniin. Lopulta se potkittiin pois sieltäkin ja palautettiin Intiaan. Aiivan läpi paska äijä.
      xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1209: Sathya Sai Baba (born Sathyanarayana Raju; 23 November 1926 – 24 April 2011) was an Indian godman, guru and philanthropist. At the age of fourteen he claimed that he was the reincarnation of Shirdi Sai Baba, a saint who became famous in the late 19th and early 20th centuries in Maharashtra and had died eight years before Sathya was born.

      xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1216: Accusations against Sai Baba by his critics over the years have included sleight of hand, sexual abuse, money laundering, fraud in the performance of service projects, and murder. In the article Divine Windfall, published in the Daily Telegraph, Anil Kumar, the ex-principal of the Sathya Sai Educational Institute, said that he believed that the controversy was part of Sathya Sai Baba's divine plan and that all great religious teachers had to face criticism during their lives. :D Joo mä tiedän Baba sanoi syytteisiin, mulla on vitusti enemmän juudaxia kuin Jeesuxella.
      xxx/ellauri044.html on line 1312: Nöyrtyessäänkin se kiitää kärjessä autosaattueen,

      xxx/ellauri056.html on line 217: Taavi syntyy Blunderstonessa (oikeesti Blundeston, Suffolk), ja elämä alkaa kivasti kiltin mutta löperön nuoren leskiäidin ja hoitotädin Peggottyn kaa. Sitten seuraa kurja ja julma aika isäpuolen, hra Murdstonen hännän alla, ja Murdstonen siskon Janen, joka lopulta ajaa Taavin äidin aikaiseen hautaan. Sitten seuraa koettelemusten periodi Salem-talon akatemiassa, jota johtaa tyrannimainen öykkäri rehtori Creakle. Lieventävä asianhaara on Taavin ystävyys säteilevän Steerforthin ja tavixemman mutta hyvänahkaisen Traddlesin kaa. Sitten Taavi lähetetään paskahommiin Lontooseen Mordstonen ja Grindbyn viinakauppaan. Tällä kertaan kurjan elämän vastoinkäymisissä piristävät hra Wilkins Micawber perheineen (talent, Mr Micawber has; capital, Mr Micawber has not, siteerasi Jespersen.). Taavi karkaa löytääxeen omituisen tätinsä, Bezey Trotwoodin Doverista, ja seikkailee sikana matkalla. Bezey adoptoi Taavin ja se menee iloisena Tri Vahvan kouluun Canterburyssa, missä se loisii Bezeyn lakimiehen hra Wickfieldin luona, ja tutustuu Wickfieldin tyttäreen Agnekseen, ja sen kirjuriin, Uriah Heepiin. Maineikas yhtye 70-luvulla, ei kyllä mun suosikkien kärkipäätä. Sitten siitä Dickensin tapaan artikuloidaan proktori tohtorien kortteliin Spenlowin ja Jerkinsin firmaan. (häh? prokuraattori. Tää oli joku roomalaisen lainkäytön jäänne katoliselta ajalta. Doctors Court hoiti siviili- perintö- kirkollis- ja meriasioita kunnes lopetettiin 1800-luvulla.) Siellä se rakastuu Spenlowin tyttäreen Dooraan (ou Pandoora), jonka se naikin Spenlowin kuoltua. Sillä aikaa Heep kiusaa Wickfieldin melkein mielipuolexi.
      xxx/ellauri056.html on line 377: Calderónin tuotanto heijastelee katolista teologiaa ja mystiikkaa. Hän nousi uudelleen eurooppalaisen sivistyneistön lukemistoon 1800-luvulla, jolloin saksalainen romantiikka kohotti hänen nimensä Danten ja William Shakespearen rinnalle. Calderón julkaisi vain näytelmiä. Hänen tuotantonsa koostuu parista sadasta näytelmästä lyhyet autos sacramentales, uskonnolliset ehtoollisnäytelmät, mukaan luettuna. Espanjan kulta-ajan kirjailijalle lukumäärä on oikeastaan vähäinen. Calderónin tuotantoa on usein verrattu hymähdellen häntä tuotteliaampiin espanjalaisnäytelmäkirjailijoihin, Lope de Vegaan, Tirso de Molinaan ja Juan Ruiz se Alarcóniin. Ei tällä vielä kuuhun mennä.
      xxx/ellauri056.html on line 424:

      Toi hyeenameemi oli von Schillerin kauhistunutta schilderungia Ranskan vallankumouxesta:
      xxx/ellauri056.html on line 443: Ei ihme että Caroline kuumeni. Hyeena taidat olla ize, Retu von Kivinen. Hahattelet leijonien haaskalla.
      xxx/ellauri056.html on line 455: Juu saxalaiset idealistit oli inhottavaa porukkaa. Mix niitä sikis nimenomaan Saxassa 17. ja 18. vs? Samasta lähteestä tai mutakuopasta kuin Arminius, porvaristo, protestantismi ja nazismi. Sehr günstig, juutalaiset, brätzel, olut ja makkara. Koppalakit kiillotetut saappaat vyöt Gott mit uns ja kokardit. Näistä ainexista se jollain lailla lähtee. Lyttyyn lyödyt julmat germaanit purkaa patoutunutta kiukkua. Tasankojen yli kiiti hyppyrottia kuin suunnattomia kirppulaumoja. Takakäpälillään astelevia juovikkaita hyeenoja. Ilotonta hohotusta kolmannella tahdissa.
      xxx/ellauri056.html on line 518: Kant käytti hiljaisen vuosikymmenensä pohtien ratkaisua esitettyyn ongelmaan. Kun hän lopetti hiljaisuuden toukokuussa 1781, hänen vastauksensa oli Puhtaan järjen kritiikki. Vaikka Kritiikki on nykyään eräs filosofian historian kuuluisimmista teoksista, siitä ei välitetty juuri lainkaan sen ensimmäisellä julkaisukerralla. Kirja oli pitkä, alkuperäisenä saksankielisenä painoksena yli 800 sivua, ja se oli kirjoitettu kuivalla koulufilosofisella tyylillä. Se sai vain muutamia arvosteluja, ensimmäisen ilmestyessä vasta tammikuussa 1782, eivätkä arvostelijat ymmärtäneet Kritiikin vallankumouksellista luonnetta. Kant pettyi teoksen saamaan vastaanottoon. Hän kuitenkin ymmärsi teoksen epäselvyyden ja kirjoitti teoksen Prolegomena, joka teki yhteenvedon Kritiikin pääkohdista.
      xxx/ellauri056.html on line 519: Kant myös rohkaisi ystäväänsä Johann Schultzia julkaisemaan lyhyen selitysteoksen vielä tohon yhteenvetoon. Selitysteoxesta tehty sarjisversio auttoi sekin vähän.
      xxx/ellauri056.html on line 665: Osmo ja Eeva-Liisa Koivisto tietävät, mitä on maanpäällinen kärsimys. Sixi pinnallinen hengellisyys ei heitä kiinnosta. He haluavat syvällistä kamaa. Suonensisäinen elämä on parasta huumetta. Kun Osmo luettelee kohtaamian tragedioja, ihmetellä voi että mies kaiken jälkeen puhuu kyyneleitä silmissään jumalan armosta ja rakkaudesta. Lyhyesti: Osmon 4-lapsisen perheen esikoispoika kuoli 14-vuotiaana. Sitten Osmo menetti vaimonsa elävän leskenä. Eräänä päivänä Jarkko poika tuli kertomaan että hänen avioliittonsa on mennyttä. Jarkko ajautui huumemaailmaan ja menehtyikin sinne. Onnexi Osmon rinnalla vaikeuxissa on 10v ajan ollut "Eevu", jonka kanssa hän avioitui 1995. Tätä nykyä Osmo ja Eevu rukoilevat Osmon kuopuxen Janin puolesta kun tämä yrittää edesmenneen isoveljen tavoin irti huume- ja rikoskierteestä.
      xxx/ellauri056.html on line 690: Timo pääsi töihin Hankoon rautatehtaalle ja soitti rautalankayhtyeessä. Kavereiden kanssa se joi ja hiisasi ja haistoi liimaputkia. Onnex Timolla oli yläasteajoilta ystävänä uskovainen Joona Laaksamo. Myöhemmin selvisi että Joona rukoili Timon puolesta koko ajan. Kyllä kannatti. Lopulta jumala tuli enkä voinut sille mitään. Timo hymyilee. Timo kertoi joonalle kokeneensa voimakkana Saatanan läsnäolon. Se tuli avoimesta viinipullosta. Timo alkoi kuulostaa vähän psykoottiselta. Yhtäkkiä joona alkoi rukoilla kielillä. Se oli pelottavaa. Timo unohti oman psykoosinsa siinä hässäkässä. Joona kysyi Timolta, halusiko tämä antaa elämänsä jeesuxelle. Timo ei ymmärtänyt mitä se tarkoitti, mutta halusi. Timo käytti viinaa ja huumeita koko kesän 2003. Se oli erityisen kuiva kesä, koivut kellastuivat ja pudottivat lehtensä. Koko luonto jännitti, miten Timon käy. Pääseekö se kuiville?
      xxx/ellauri057.html on line 37:

      Joyeux Noêl 51 - Sommar '85


      xxx/ellauri057.html on line 43: Joyeux Noël. Mme Maigret ei ollut edes vielä siivonnut. Sitä ei kyllä huomannut, missään ei ollut pölynhitusta. 50-luvun Megreen joulu on yhtä täynnä 50-luvun Megree klischeitä. Sentään alkuperäisiä eikä retroklischeitä. Retrokamat on ällöttäviä, vanhanajan näköiskamat uusilla elektroniikkasisuxilla feikki muovikuoressa. Vielä pahempaa on vanhoista kirjoista silpomalla valmistetut mikättimet tai lusikoista taivutetut koristeet. Yäk yäk yäk. Ranskan radio soitti jouluyönä kappalta "Keskiyö kretiinit!".
      xxx/ellauri057.html on line 845: A hundred and one years ago, in 1917, Knut Hamsun published what was probably his most influential and at the same time most controversial novel: Markens grøde (translated into English as Growth of the Soil). This story about the colonization of new farmland in northern Norway (Hammarby, luulajansaamexi Hambra, mistä Knupo oli peräsin) by the pioneer Isak and his wife Inger attained immense popularity in Hamsun’s home country and abroad, and earned its author the Nobel Prize in literature. In later years, it has often been criticized for, among other things, postulated parallels to Nazi »blood and soil« ideology, for its racist and colonialist portrayal of the Sami, and for its antagonism towards female self-determination.
      xxx/ellauri057.html on line 852: Much has changed since the publication of Markens grøde. The planet’s human population has almost quadrupled, from fewer than two billion in 1917 to more than seven billion now, and is estimated to reach ten to eleven billion before the end of this century.10 Simultaneously, human-made changes to the Earth’s ecosystems and climate have reached an unprecedented scale. While levels of consumption vary greatly from one country to another and between different social classes, there can be no doubt that globally, the use of both renewable and non-renewable resources has risen immensely during the last hundred years. This development began, of course, long before 1917, with the Industrial Revolution constituting an important premise. However, it was not until after the end of the Second World War that the human transformation of the planet began to advance with such enormous speed that the time since then is now often referred to as the Great Acceleration.
      xxx/ellauri057.html on line 937: En 1952, il est reçu à l’Académie royale de Belgique et il revient définitivement en Europe le 18 mars 1955. Après une période mouvementée sur la Côte d'Azur à côtoyer la jet set, il finit par s’installer en Suisse dans le château d'Echandens en 1957.
      xxx/ellauri059.html on line 350: He is certainly left at the end of the play with very little to his name, although at least he is able to keep his property until his death. I think it would be difficult not to feel some sympathy for Shylock as all the goy characters celebrate at the end while he is all alone. It would be interesting to revisit Shylock in the years following and find out what he did next. Did he start to collect another big ball of thread.
      xxx/ellauri059.html on line 354: However, when we take into account circumstances that took place before the play, as well as what happens over the course of the plot, Shylock begins to seem a like a victim as well as a villain, and his fate seems excessively harsh. In addition to the abuse Antonio and other Christians routinely subject him to, Shylock lost his beloved wife, Leah. His daughter, Jessica, runs away from home with money and jewels she’s stolen from him, including a ring Leah gave him before she died. Although Solanio reports that Shylock’s was equally upset by the loss of his money as his daughter (“My daughter! O my ducats! O my daughter!” (II. Viii.), we must remember that we are getting a second-hand view through the eyes of an anti-Semitic character who compares Shylock to the devil. As we learn from Shylock himself, the Christians of Venice are happy to borrow money from him, but refuse to accept him as part of Venetian society because they equate his religion with Satan. Shylock has been treated as less than human his whole life, because he is not a Christian. Yet when he tries to collect on a loan, the other characters insist that he act like a Christian and forgive the debt.
      xxx/ellauri059.html on line 391: not a Jew eyes? hath not a Jew hands, organs,
      xxx/ellauri059.html on line 403: All that shows how universal Shakespeare was in his perception of the world around him – how it was before his time, how it was in his time, and how it will be after his time. How will this play look in four hundred years from now? Audiences will most certainly find it relevant to their time as well.
      xxx/ellauri059.html on line 508: Pääosissa: Daniel Sharman (Lorenzo de’ Medici), Bradley James (Giuliano de’ Medici), Sean Bean (Jacopo Pazzi), Sarah Parish (Lucrezia de’ Medici), Raoul Bova (paavi Sixtus IV), Matteo Martari (Francesco Pazzi), Jacob Fortune Lloyd (Francesco Salviati), Alessandra Mastronardi (Lucrezia Donati), Matilda Lutz (Simonetta Vespucci), Synnøve Karslen (Clarice Orsini), Annabel Scholey (Contessina). Idea ja käsikirjoitus: Frank Spotnitz, Nicholas Meyer. Ohjaus: Sergio Mimica-Gezzan. Musiikki: Paolo Buonvino. Tunnuskappaleen esittäjä: Skin (Ann Deborah Dyer). Tuotanto: Lux Vide, Big Light Productions, Italia, 2018.
      xxx/ellauri059.html on line 646: Kun mennään naimisiin alkaa 30v sota, hehettää epäkeskiluokkainen filosooferi. Timolla sodat on olleet lyhyempiä ja viholliskuvat vaihtuneet, mulla meni 40v jo rikki saman kimpussa. Timo on varmaan parafiili. Siitä ei enää rangaista.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 24:

      yellow;background:#aaa27e;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">yellow">BOЯДT SUBSEQUENT MOVIEFILM

      Sekatavaraa


      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 70: The cyrillization was conducted more swiftly than romanization. It did not have thesynchrony observed during the first Soviet alphabet shifts: for some peoples it tookplace in 1937-1938, for others a little later, from one to two years. With that, a singlestate body, similar to the All-Union Committee for the Development of the NewTurkic Alphabet, dedicated only to cyrillization, was not set up. New alphabets werecreated directly "in the field." Even so, the transition from the Latin alphabet to theRussian alphabet was more smooth and easy than the first “letter revolution”(Alpatov, 1993). The successful completion of cyrillization was announced in June 1941.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 87: Jambyl Jabayev died on 22 June 1945, eight months before his 100th birthday. He was buried in Alma-Ata in a garden which he cultivated with his own hands.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 93: In a different account, according to the Kazakh journalist Erbol Kurnmanbaev, Zhambyl was an akyn of his clan, but until 1936 was relatively unknown. In that year, a young talented poet Abilda Tazhibaev "discovered" Zhambyl. He was directed to do this by the First Secretary of the Communist Party of Kazakhstan, Levon Mirzoyan, who wanted to find an akyn similar to Suleiman Stalsky, the Dagestani poet. Tazhibaev then published the poem "My Country", under Jambyl's name. It was translated into Russian by the poet Pavel Kuznetsov, published in the newspaper "Pravda" and was a success. After that, a group of his "secretaries" - the young Kazakh poets worked under Jambyl's name. In 1941-1943, they were joined by the Russian poet Mark Tarlovsky.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 115: Borat: Cultural Learnings of America for Make Benefit Glorious Nation of Kazakhstan is a 2006 British-American mockumentary comedy film directed by Larry Charles and starring Sacha Baron Cohen. Baron Cohen stars as Borat Sagdiyev, a fictitious Kazakhstani journalist who travels through the United States to make a documentary which features real-life interactions with Americans. Much of the film features unscripted vignettes of Borat interviewing and interacting with real-life Americans who believe he is a foreigner with little or no understanding of American customs. It is the second of four films built around Baron Cohen's characters from Da Ali G Show (2000–2004): the first, Ali G Indahouse, was released in 2002, and featured a cameo by Borat; the third, Brüno, was released in 2009; and the sequel to Borat, Borat Subsequent Moviefilm, was released in 2020.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 117: At the behest of the Kazakh Ministry of Information, reporter Borat Sagdiyev leaves Kazakhstan for the "US and A", the "Greatest Country in the World", to make a documentary about American society and culture. He leaves behind his wife, Oksana; his companions are his producer, Azamat Bagatov, and a pet hen.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 121: During the trip, Borat acquires a Baywatch booklet and continues gathering footage for his documentary. He meets gay pride parade participants, politicians Alan Keyes and Bob Barr, and African-American youths. Borat is also interviewed on a local television station and proceeds to disrupt the weather report. Visiting a rodeo, Borat excites the crowd with jingoistic remarks, but then sings a fictional Kazakhstani national anthem to the tune of "The Star-Spangled Banner", receiving a strong negative reaction.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 141: (stylized as ВОЯДТ in Faux Cyrillic) is a 2020 American mockumentary comedy film directed by Jason Woliner in his feature directorial debut. The film stars Sacha Baron Cohen as the fictional Kazakhstani journalist and television personality Borat Sagdiyev, and Maria Bakalova as his daughter Tutar, who is to be offered as a bride to Vice President Mike Pence during the COVID-19 pandemic and the 2020 presidential election. It is a sequel to 2006's Borat: Cultural Learnings of America for Make Benefit Glorious Nation of Kazakhstan.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 143: After fourteen years of forced labor in a gulag for the dishonor inflicted on his country in his previous adventure, Kazakh journalist Borat Sagdiyev is released by his country's president, Nursultan Nazarbayev, with a mission to deliver Kazakh Minister of Culture (and Kazakhstan's most famous porn actor) Johnny the Monkey to President Donald Trump in an attempt to redeem the nation. Unable to get close to Trump after defecating in the landscaping of Trump International Hotel and Tower in the previous film, Borat opts to give the monkey to Vice President Mike Pence. Before he leaves, he discovers that his arch nemesis neighbor, Nursultan Tulyakbay, has stolen his family and home, and that he has a fifteen-year-old daughter, Tutar, who lives in his barn.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 145: Borat is transported across the world in a circuitous route by cargo ship and arrives in Galveston, Texas, where he finds he is a celebrity. Wanting to maintain a low profile, Borat purchases multiple disguises. He buys a cell phone and goes to welcome Johnny, but finds that Tutar is in Johnny's shipping crate and has eaten him. Horrified, Borat faxes Nazarbayev, who tells him to find a way to satisfy Pence or he will be executed. Borat decides to give Tutar to Pence.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 147: Tutar receives a makeover and Borat introduces her at a debutante ball. At the ball, her menstrual blood is prominently displayed during a father and daughter dance. Oikeasti jenkkien coming of age-tansseissa isä ja tytär vaihtaa siveyssormuxet. Aika insestistä. Discovering that Pence is nearby at CPAC, Borat disguises himself as Trump and attempts to give Tutar to him there, but is ejected by security. Nazarbayev is enraged and tells him to return to Kazakhstan for execution. Realizing that he can still give Tutar to someone close to Trump, Tutar suggests giving her to Rudy Giuliani.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 151: Shaken, Borat decides to commit suicide by going to the nearest synagogue dressed as his version of a stereotypical Jew and waiting for the next shooting, but is shocked to find Holocaust survivors there who treat him with kindness, and to his anti-Semitic delight, reassure him that the Holocaust happened. Overjoyed, Borat goes looking for Tutar, but finds the streets deserted due to the COVID-19 pandemic. He quarantines with two QAnon conspiracy theorists who offer to help him reunite with Tutar. They find Tutar online, she has become a reporter and will be covering a March for Our Rights rally in Olympia, Washington.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 155: Borat is shocked to find he will not be executed as he had instead been used as retaliation by Nazarbayev for making Kazakhstan a laughingstock. Before departing for the United States, Kazakhstan officials infected Borat with SARS-CoV-2 via an injection of "gypsy tears", making him patient zero of the COVID-19 pandemic. As he was sent around the world, he continued to spread the virus. Borat records Nazarbayev's admission and sends it to Brian, the man who sold him his phone.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 157: Borat and Tutar blackmail Nazarbayev into giving him his job back and changing Kazakhstan's misogynistic laws. Three months later, Tutar and Borat are a reporting team and Kazakhstan has a new tradition to replace the nation's antisemitic ones: the Running of the American. It features exaggerated :) caricatures of Trump supporters pretending to spread COVID-19 and killing an effigy of Anthony Fauci. The film ends with a message encouraging viewers to vote in the upcoming presidential election.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 187: "My own favourite tribute to Borges comes in Thomas Pynchon’s Gravity’s Rainbow in which a group of Argentinian exiles, led by the adventurer Squalidozzi, and at large in Europe during World War Two, hijack a German submarine. Improbably, they are accompanied by the glamorous Graciela Imago Portales – a ‘particular friend’ of the Buenos Aires literati – to whom ‘Borges is said to have a dedicated a poem’. Two lines are cited: “El laberinto de tu incertidumbre / Me trama con la disquietante luna . . .” Of course, the quotation has puzzled scholars, as it is neatly consistent with the rhythms and motifs of Borges’ earlier work, and yet nowhere to be found in his oeuvre. It would no doubt have delighted Borges, the more so since Pynchon made it up."
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 193: Habiendo nacido en un suburbio de Buenos Aires, Borges se mudó a Suiza con su familia en 1914, donde estudió en el Collège de Genève. La familia viajaría extensamente por Europa, incluyendo España. Tras su regreso a Argentina en 1921, Borges empezó a publicar sus poemas y ensayos en revistas literarias surrealistas mientras trabajaba como bibliotecario, profesor y conferencista. En 1955 fue nombrado director de la Biblioteca Nacional de la República Argentina y profesor de literatura inglesa en la Universidad de Buenos Aires. A la edad de 55 años quedó completamente ciego; numerosos investigadores han sugerido que su ceguera progresiva lo motivó a crear símbolos literarios innovadores a través de la imaginación.​
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 213: I said some of this yesterday, but it wasn’t easy: in one interview, the first question I was asked was about Borges’s sexuality. Infrequent, they said, unusual, like in his stories. The first thing that came to mind was an article on Hans Christian Andersen, published in his own centenary in 2005, which doesn’t say a word about Andersen’s oeuvre and instead is dedicated to providing a pathetic portrait of the repressed homosexual, the vindictive upstart, the complicated and ugly man, like the duckling, which was Andersen. I’m intentionally omitting who wrote it and where it can be found.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 215: Eleven years ago, that text outraged me because it was dishonest: sensational and sordid. Now it seems ahead of its time. Today it would be one among many that appear daily about any moderately famous person: another sign of how morbid and superficial our cultural references are, especially online.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 217: Next, it occurred to me that I could answer the question about the sex life of Borges with platitudes: Borges scarcely refers to sex in his work and has scarcely any female characters, which “could be” a sign of shortcomings in his character, of machismo, asexuality, fear of women; his first marriage “could be considered” a failure and the second as a mere formality, made official shortly before his death just so he could leave his estate to Maria Kodama, his lover/scribe/assistant/caregiver; “without a doubt” the contempt he felt for psychoanalysis was because it made him feel exposed, and so on. I have read or heard all these phrases, with all their imaginable malice, often together and separately. Although they all seem terrible to me, it is now acceptable to speak ill in this way under the pretext of “demystifying” whomever the target may be. I have also noticed that much of the news about Borges in recent years has been, in one way or another, about scandals and disputes.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 219: So what did I do? I chose to remember that Borges is not a writer of the era of Facebook and autofiction; that it is not true that he hides in his texts, speaks little about himself (in fact, the opposite is true: how often in his work does his double appear, the character called Borges?); he simply does not do it the way in which we are accustomed today; that, like his friend Alfonso Reyes, Borges learned the classical notion of decorum, which is a set of rules of style when writing and also a certain principle of discretion, an obligation not to say absolutely everything that is very likely inconceivable to many people today.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 221: I also said something about Borges’s love life, which is present in several places in his work, just like his reticence, yes, to go beyond “a certain point” (in the story “The Other,” for example, various critics have found a subtle reference to a brothel and a prostitute located almost in a blank space, between two French names that are almost identical).
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 231: And yet, immediately after, Borges wrote something else, which can be read either as a response or a challenge: “I, unfortunately, am Borges.”
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 269: Martti (Martin) Rautanen, also known as El Gaucho Martín Fierro, is a 2,316-line epic poem by the Argentine writer José Hernández. The poem was originally published in two parts, El Gaucho Martín Fierro (1872) and La Vuelta de Martín Fierro (1879). The poem supplied a historical link to the gauchos' contribution to the national development of Argentina, for the gaucho had played a major role in Argentina's independence from Spain.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 328: Eight hundred years later, Thomas Aquinas argued about the possibility of children being conceived by intercourse with demons: "Still, if some are occasionally begotten from demons, it is not from the seed of such demons, nor from their assumed bodies, but from the seed of men, taken for the purpose; as when the demon assumes first the form of a woman, and afterwards of a man; just so they take the seed of other things for other generating purposes".
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 472: If to and fro each wagon thrice journeyed every day. jos edestakas kukin rekka kulkis 3xvrk.
      xxx/ellauri068.html on line 553: He wrote hundreds of songs, many becoming major hits, which made him famous before he turned thirty. During his 60-year career he wrote an estimated 1,500 songs, including the scores for 20 original Broadway shows and 15 original Hollywood films, with his songs nominated eight times for Academy Awards. Many songs became popular themes and anthems, including "Alexander's Ragtime Band", "Easter Parade", "Puttin' on the Ritz", "Cheek to Cheek", "White Christmas", "Happy Holiday", "Anything You Can Do (I Can Do Better)", and "There's No Business Like Show Business". His Broadway musical and 1943 film This is the Army, with Ronald Reagan, had Kate Smith singing Berlin's "God Bless America" which was first performed in 1938.
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 122: Today, Shestov is little known in the English-speaking world. This is partly because his works have not been readily available. Partly the specific themes he discusses are unfashionable and "foreign". A sombre and yet ecstatic atmosphere permeates his writings. And his quasi-nihilistic position and religious outlook are an unsettling and incongruous combination, at first sight.
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 134: Joku Kemal Avrupada / Kemal Avrupa’da diye biri
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 137: Naisia – kirjoitti / Kadınlar – diye yazdı
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 143: Voi miksi kävin oluella / Neden gittim ki içmeye
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 151: He developed his thinking in a second book on Fyodor Dostoyevsky and Frederich Nietzsche, which increased Shestov's reputation as an original and incisive thinker. In All Things Are Possible (published in 1905) Shestov adopted the aphoristic style of Friedrich Nietzsche to investigate the difference between Russian and European Literature. Although on the surface it is an exploration of numerous intellectual topics, at its base it is a sardonic work of Existentialist philosophy which both criticizes and satirizes our fundamental attitudes towards life situations. D.H. Lawrence, who wrote the Foreword to S.S. Koteliansky's literary translation of the work, summarized Shestov's philosophy with the words: " 'Everything is possible' - this is his really central cry. It is not nihilism. It is only a shaking free of the human psyche from old bonds. The positive central idea is that the human psyche, or soul, really believes in itself, and in nothing else". Shestov deals with key issues such as religion, rationalism, and science in this highly approachable work, topics he would also examine in later writings such as In Job's Balances. Shestov's own key quote from this work is probably the following: "...we need to think that only one assertion has or can have any objective reality: that nothing on earth is impossible. Every time someone wants to force us to admit that there are other, more limited and limiting truths, we must resist with every means we can lay hands on".
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 157: In the interwar years, Shestov continued to develop into a thinker of great prominence. During this time he had become totally immersed in the study of such "great theologians" as Blaise Pascal and Plotinus, whilst at the same time lecturing at the Sorbonne in 1925. In 1926 he was introduced to Edmund Husserl, with whom he maintained a cordial relationship despite radical differences in their philosophical outlook. In 1929, during a return to Freiburg he met with Nazi Heidegger, and was urged to study Danish philosopher Søren Kierkegaard.
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 182: Today, Shestov is little known in the English-speaking world. This is partly because his works have not been available in English. Partly the specific themes he discusses are unfashionable and "foreign". A sombre and yet ecstatic atmosphere permeates his writings. And his quasi-nihilistic position and religious outlook are an unsettling and incongruous combination, at first sight.
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 188: "He was the philosopher of my generation, which didn't succeed in realizing itself spiritually, but remained nostalgic about such a realization. Shestov [...] has played an important role in my life. [...] He thought rightly that the true problems escape the philosophers. What else do they do but obscuring the real torments of life?" (Emil Cioran: Oeuvres, Gallimard, Paris 1995, p. 1740, my translation (kuka oon tää 'mä?')]
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 194: More recently, alongside Dostoyevsky's philosophy, many have found solace in Shestov's battle against the rational self-consistent and self-evident; for example Bernard Martin of Case Western Reserve University, who translated his works now found online [external link below]; and the scholar Liza Knapp, who wrote The Annihilation of Inertia: Dostoevsky and Metaphysics. This book was an evaluation of Dostoyevsky's struggle against the self-evident "wall", and refers to Shestov on several occasions.
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 203: Lefa Struzikin oli Saku Palkeen kolleega Chicagossa. Siellä oli aivan hemmetinmoinen ampiaispesä ilkeitä talousliberaalifasisteja, 13 talousnobelistia päättyen roistomaiseen Milton Friedmaniin. Valtaosa varmaan oli imigranttijutkuja.
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 209: According to Allan Bloom's 1974 obituary in Political Theory, Strauss "was raised as an Orthodox Jew", but the family does not appear to have completely embraced Orthodox practice.[35] Strauss himself noted that he came from a "conservative, even orthodox Jewish home", but one which knew little about Judaism except strict adherence to ceremonial laws. His father and uncle operated a farm supply and livestock business that they inherited from their father, Meyer (1835–1919), a leading member of the local Jewish community.
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 309: Unlike his Seelenbrüder Stefan George and Alfred Schwuler, he was not gay, but rather serious. When Klages moved into a new Schwabing flat in 1895, he entered into an intense sexual relationship with his landlady's daughter, with the mother's approval; the daughter, whom Klages called 'Putti', was eleven years younger than him, and their relationship continued for almost two decades though remained only sexual in nature. Klages, like Friedrich Nietzsche, was critical of Christianity as well as what they both saw as its roots in Judaism. His attacks on judaism were veiled criticism of christianity, rather like Seija's attacks on the rest of the Carlson family.
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 312: wrote: I have never endorsed the claim that the Nazi big-wigs belonged to a superior race. However, I must also add that I have consistently refused to accept the claim of another such race as the chosen people. The arrogance is identical in both cases, but with this important distinction: after waging war against the dumber half of mankind for more than three thousand years, Judaism has finally achieved total victory over all nations of the earth. Not surprisingly, an American Jew found this accusation odious. What with even the Philistine diaper heads still putting up a fight.
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 334: Benjamin’s academic career did not lead to the expected result of a professorial position: he completed his doctoral dissertation in 1919 (published the following year as The Concept of Criticism in German Romanticism) and worked on his post-doctoral dissertation, or Habilitation, on the German Baroque mourning play, which he completed in 1925, eventually withdrawing it from the University of Frankfurt after an extremely negative reception.
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 411:
      It seems the clerk just woke up, his eyes are languid.

      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 441: Tennispelaajana se oli vaan good college player. Ei ois kelvannut rahakentille. Lakkas treenaamassa kuin munkki 16-vuotiaana. - Ja sit oli ne huumeet, tyrkyttää haastattelija. Joo. Wallu ei jatka tästä aiheesta.
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 462: When asked in an interview in 2002 whether he was gay, Ellis explained that he did not identify as gay or straight but was comfortable being thought of as homosexual, bisexual or heterosexual and enjoyed playing with his persona, identifying variously as gay, straight and bisexual to different people over the years. In a 1999 interview, Ellis suggested that his reluctance to definitively label his sexuality was for "artistic reasons", "if people knew that I was straight, they'd read [my books] in a different way. If they knew I was gay, 'Psycho' would be read as a different book." In an interview with Robert F. Coleman, Ellis said he had an "indeterminate sexuality", that "any other interviewer out there will get a different answer and it just depends on the mood I am in". Mod tai ei, aikaa myöden Bretistä paljaatui ihan tavallinen hintti. Siinä se muistuttaa toista pahan apostolia Herman Melvilleä, joita Pippa Fitz-Aamobi päätti vertailla ylioppilasaineessa.
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 474: A few years later, Wallace laid into “American Psycho” in an interview with Larry McCaffery, saying it “panders shamelessly to the audience’s sadism for a while, but by the end it’s clear that the sadism’s real object is the reader itself… You can defend ‘Psycho’ as being a sort of performative digest of late-eighties social problems, but it’s no more than that.”
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 504: Textinäyte: Seison tämän Etelä-Ranskassa sijaitsevan suuren talon ikkunan ääressä yön laskeutuessa. Tämä yö johtaa minut elämäni kauheimpaan aamuun. Pidän lasia kädessä, vieressäni on pullo. Katson tummuvasta ikkunasta heijastuvaa kuvaani. Se on solakka, ehkä pikemminkin kuin nuoli, vaalea tukkani välkkyy. Kasvoni ovat sellaiset joita näkee usein. Esi-isäni valloittivat maanosan työntyen kuolemantäyteisten tasankojen yli kunnes saapuivat valtamerelle, joka käänsi kasvonsa pois Euroopasta hämärämpään menneisyyteen.
      xxx/ellauri075.html on line 525: Stephen Crane (1. marraskuuta 1871 – 5. kesäkuuta 1900) oli yhdysvaltalainen kirjailija. Lyhyen elämänsä aikana hän loi monipuolisen kirjallisen tuotannon, johon kuuluu romaaneja, runoja, novelleja ja lehtikirjoituksia.
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 33:
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 43: Historiallisesti on huomattava, että satuin onnekkaasti kasvamaan tietoisexi typyistä aikana, jolloin pilleri oli vastikään vapauttanut naiset pukeutumaan paljastavammin ja kevyemmin, ja typyjen avoin kuolaus ja vikittely koiraiden taholta oli luvallista. Siihen sai tutustua mm. sotamies Vikin upeiden typyjen avulla. Sotamies Masilla oli vaan kotikutoisempi Maisa, joka sekin kyllä oli tavallaan aika simpsakka.
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 61: After two-and-a-half years of inactivity, Neil suddenly announced in September 2018 that Mötley Crüe had reunited and was working on new material. On March 22, 2019, the band released four new songs on the soundtrack for its Netflix biopic The Dirt, based on the band's New York Times best-selling autobiography. In 2023 they appeared at Hyvinkää Rockfest.
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 64: Track "Motley Crue" Yhtye "Motley Crue"
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 99: Dance for me, I'll keep you over-employed Tanssi mulle mä ylityöllistän sut.
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 125: Sailor are a British pop/glam rock group, best known in the 1970s for their hit singles "A Glass of Champagne" and "Girls, Girls, Girls", written by the group's lead singer and 12-string guitar player, Georg Kajanus.
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 138: Track "Sailor" Yhtye "Määrimies"
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 203: Girls! Girls! Girls! is a 1962 Golden Globe-nominated American musical comedy film starring Elvis Presley as a penniless Hawaiian fisherman who loves his life on the sea and dreams of owning his own boat. "Return to Sender", which reached No. 2 on the Billboard pop singles chart, is featured in the film. The film opened at #1 on the Variety box office chart and finished the year at #19 on the year-end list of the top-grossing films of 1962. The film earned $2.6 million at the box office.
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 257: walking and wiggling by (yeah, yeah, yeah, girls) Kulkee ohi pyrstö keikkuen (jee, jee, jee, typyjä)
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 260: so pretty lord i could cry (yeah, yeah, yeah) Niin söpöjä että luoja itkettää (jee, jee, jee)
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 265: skipping around in the park (yeah, yeah, yeah girls) Hyppimässä ympäriinsä puistossa (jee, jee, jee typyjä)
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 268: la-ta-ta in the dark (yeah, yeah, yeah) laa-di-daa pimeässä nurkassa (jee, jee, jee)
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 277: Walking and wiggling by (yeah, yeah, yeah, girls Kävelee ohi pyrstö heiluen (jee, jee, jee, typyjä)
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 280: so pretty lord i could cry (yeah, yeah, yeah) Niin nättejä voi luoja voisi itkeä (jee, jee, jee)
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 410: yed-emma-watson.jpg" height="200px" />
      xxx/ellauri076.html on line 652: Pääsy Turun Jääpalloseuran A-junioreihin nosti pikkukylän pojan izetunnon huippulukemiin. Hän kuvitteli nousevansa Jali Kullin, Saku Kyrvän ja Hannu Jortikan perävanassa taalajäille. Mutta "Kape" pudotettiin joukkueesta. Se kaivelee "Kapen" mieltä edelleen. Surun ja häpeän tunteet pulpahtavat pintaan. Katkeruutta ja izesyytöxiä on vaikeata välttää. Mixen lämässyt vaan veivasin vaan pukkia? Keppi katkesi. Jos saisin lätkävalmentajana nää 200 tonttua/v, niin heittäisin kokkitakin nurkkaan ja sanoisin kansainvälisesti sille byebye. Sillä lätkäpoika mä pohjimmaltani olen. Niin vitun tyhmä.
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 27:

      yellow;background:red;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Gian Lorenzo Bernini


      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 28:

      yellow;background:black;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">Ecstasy of St. Teresa, 1645–52

      Ekstaasia


      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 123: What immortal hand or eye, Mi kuolematon räjähtänyt
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 127: Burnt the fire of thine eyes? juotti silmät sulle, kissa?
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 148: What immortal hand or eye, Mi kuolematon käsipää
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 153: Asked By: Skye Bloomingdale | Last Updated: 19th May, 2020
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 226:
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 311: His era was later labeled as La Grande Noirceur ("The Great Darkness") by its critics, due to his support of strong Catholic traditions, his support of private property rights vis-a-vis growing labour rights movements, and his strong opposition not only to Communism, but also to secularism, feminism, environmentalism, leftist separatism and other non-conservative and progressive political trends and movements that would influence Quebec politics and society over the following 60 years, starting with the Quiet Revolution of the 1960s under his Liberal successor Jean Lesage.
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 315: A portent of his later cunning came in the 1920 championships when Vernon (“Swede”) Johnson hit a home run with the bases full to win the title for Grand’Mère. Defeated on the playing field, Duplessis did not quit. Screaming that the Grand’Mère team was loaded with “ ringers ” (although at least two of his own players were reported to be enjoying a brief vacation from the Boston Braves), Duplessis carried the protest to committee rooms. The league president, a sympathetic priest, awarded Duplessis the cup. Stop the Steal! Another Trump. Another ugly face as well.
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 319: Today, Maurice Duplessis would be 130 years old. Thank god he´s dead. So is David Foster Wallace. Wish Trump was too.
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 369: For more than 65 years, Dennis personally taught tens of thousands of people to play the game. But as the consummate “teacher of tennis teachers,” his influence in this sport extends to millions of recreational players around the world.
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 371: I first met Dennis in 1987, when I joined TENNIS Magazine. Throughout the years, I worked closely with him on instruction stories, including the popular “Dennis on Tennis” series. His knowledge both impressed and astounded me, and when he got me out on the tennis court, his instruction was simply beyond compare.
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 373: Dennis was born in 1933 in southern Africa. He played tournaments as a youngster, but at age 19, during a Davis Cup tryout in South Africa, he choked on a critical point. After that, his confidence flagged and his playing career stalled. His coach suggested he teach tennis to regain his confidence, and that’s all it took. He had also, as it turned out, found his calling.
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 511: His radio and television programs, popular from 1932 until his death in 1974, were a major influence on the sitcom genre. Benny often portrayed his character as a miser who obliviously played his violin badly and ridiculously claimed to be 39 years of age, regardless of his actual age.
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 513: Benny was born Benjamin Kubelsky in Chicago on February 14, 1894, and grew up in nearby Waukegan. He was the son of Jewish immigrants Meyer Kubelsky (1864–1946) and Emma Sachs Kubelsky (1869–1917), sometimes called "Naomi". Meyer was a saloon owner and later a haberdasher who had emigrated to America from Poland. Emma had emigrated from Lithuania. Benny began studying violin, an instrument that became his trademark, at the age of 6, his parents hoping for him to become a professional violinist. He loved the instrument, but hated practice. His music teacher was Otto Graham Sr., a neighbor and father of football player Otto Graham. At 14, Benny was playing in dance bands and his high school orchestra. He was a dreamer and poor at his studies, and was ultimately expelled from high school. He later did poorly in business school and at attempts to join his father´s business. In 1911, he began playing the violin in local vaudeville theaters for $7.50 a week (about $210 in 2020 dollars). He was joined on the circuit by Ned Miller, a young composer and singer.
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 515: That same year, Benny was playing in the same theater as the young Marx Brothers. Minnie, their mother, enjoyed Benny´s violin playing and invited him to accompany her boys in their act. Benny´s parents refused to let their son go on the road at 17, but it was the beginning of his long friendship with the Marx Brothers, especially Zeppo Marx.
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 517: The next year, Benny formed a vaudeville musical duo with pianist Cora Folsom Salisbury, a buxom 45-year-old divorcée who needed a partner for her act. This angered famous violinist Jan Kubelik, who feared that the young vaudevillian with a similar name would damage his reputation. Under legal pressure, Benjamin Kubelsky agreed to change his name to Ben K. Benny, sometimes spelled Bennie. When Salisbury left the act, Benny found a new pianist, Lyman Woods, and renamed the act "From Grand Opera to Ragtime". They worked together for five years and slowly integrated comedy elements into the show. They reached the Palace Theater, the "Mecca of Vaudeville," and did not do well. Benny left show business briefly in 1917 to join the United States Navy during World War I, and often entertained the sailors with his violin playing. One evening, his violin performance was booed by the sailors, so with prompting from fellow sailor and actor Pat O´Brien, he ad-libbed his way out of the jam and left them laughing. He received more comedy spots in the revues and did well, earning a reputation as a comedian and musician.
      xxx/ellauri081.html on line 521: old Sadie Marks (whose family was friends with, but not related to, the Marx family). Their first meeting did not go well when he tried to leave during Sadie´s violin performance.[2]:30–31 They met again in 1926. Jack had not remembered their earlier meeting and instantly fell for her.[2]:31 They married the following year. She was working in the hosiery section of the Hollywood Boulevard branch of the May Company, where Benny courted her.[2]:32 Called on to fill in for the "dumb girl" part in a Benny routine, Sadie proved to be a natural comedienne. Adopting the stage name Mary Livingstone, Sadie collaborated with Benny throughout most of his career. They later adopted a daughter, Joan (b. 1934). Her older sister Babe would be often the target of jokes about unattractive or masculine women, while her younger brother Hilliard would later produce Benny´s radio and TV work.
      xxx/ellauri084.html on line 38: Ludi oli Cambridgen "apostoleja". The Cambridge Apostles was founded in 1820 by twelve right-wing Christian evangelical students under the name The Cambridge Conversazione Society. The Cambridge Apostles enjoyed 'homoeroticism' and 'Platonic love'. Aika paljon filosofeja ja vakoojia. The Apostles tended to be gay.
      xxx/ellauri084.html on line 39: Among the gayest apostles were Tennyson (the poet), William Cory (who reportedly had an affair with the future Prime Minister Earl of Rosebery), E. M. Forster, John Maynard Keynes, Ludwig Wittgenstein, Lytton Strachey, Rupert Brooke, Guy Burgess and Anthony Blunt.
      xxx/ellauri084.html on line 86: 28.3.2017.Ampuma-asedirektiivin uudistamisesta 1-5 (loputonta vekutusta pumppuhaulikoista) 11.3.2015.Vielä ö-luokan ehdokkaista (mamuvaaliehdokkaat ovat sekundaa) 3.3.2015. Hirveä työvoimapula (mamut on työllistämiskelvottomia ja/tai laiskiaisia) 9.2.2015. Muutama sana Pariisista (Islaminvastaista veistelyä Charlie Hebdosta) 8.1.2015. Ihmisoikeudet uhattuna länsinaapurissa (Pakolaiset ovat röyhkeitä ja nirsoja), 3.1.2015. 6.11.2014. Rajaseudun rahastajasta ja kompensatorisesta etiikasta (En tiedä, minkä lakipykälän mukaan rasismi olisi rikos), 11.9.2014. Rikkautta, jolla on arvoa (Olen kade somaleille), 23.8.2014.Uskonto uskontojen joukossa (Ellet rukoile, olet pahempi kuin kafferi), 19.5.2014.Kysymys kunnallisesta mamubisneksestä, 24.4.2014.Kommentti kehysriiheen ja Ylen toimintaan, 26.3.2014.Unionin tulevasta ampuma-asepolitiikasta, 10.3.2014. [Päivitys 17.3.!]Kirjallinen kysymys äärisaarnaajista Suomessa, 7.3.2014.Kirjallinen kysymys Ukrainan tapahtumiin liittyen, 4.3.2014.Lieksalainen ikiliikkuja, 18.2.2014.Lieksa käsirysyn partaalla, 10.2.2014. [Lisäys 12.2.2014!]EU, maahanmuutto, taakanjako, 16.1.2014.Toimeentuloperäistä maahanmuuttoa, 9.12.2013.Kuntarakenneuudistus eli kaksikielisyyttä saranapuolelta, 28.11.2013.Puheenvuoro asevelvollisuudesta, 15.11.2013.Kiihottamisesta ja kansainvälisistä sitoumuksista, 25.10.2013.Kirjallinen kysymys epäterveistä vetovoimatekijäistä, 7.10.2013.Pakolaiskiintiän kasvattaminen revisited, 30.9.2013.Kirjallinen kysymys pakolaiskiintiän kasvattamisesta, 20.9.2013.Luottamus Kataiseen ja Himaseen, 19.9.2013.Kaksi lakialoitetta sananvapauden edistämiseksi, 10.9.2013.Kansalaisaloite pakkoruotsista luopumiseksi, 15.8.2013.Kirkko, kaupunki ja moskeija, 13.8.2013.Lisääntykää ja täyttäkää Toyota Corolla!, 8.8.2013.Majoituspalveluja kerjäläisille, 5.6.2013.Husbyn herättämiä ajatuksia, 23.5.2013.Paperittomien terveyspalvelut Helsingissä, 7.5.2013.Sosialidemokratiasta ja islamismista, 3.5.2013.Puheenvuoro Kyproksen pelastuspakettiin 17.4. 2013, 18.4.2013.Kirjallinen kysymys opettajien toimintaedellytyksistä, 8.4.2013.Muutamia ilmoituksia, 5.4.2013.Helsingin johtajiston palkankorotuksista, osa 2, 12.3.2013.Suomen Sisun suurkäräjät 10.3.2013, 11.3.2013.Aseaiheisia lakialoitteita, 15.2.2013.Jyväskylästä, 6.2.2013.Connecticut, Yhdysvallat, aseet, 18.12.2012.Sisäministeriön linjaukset aselain uudistamiseksi, 5.12.2012.Kysymys uskontojen halventamisesta, 30.11.2012.Milloin kotoutus on onnistunut?, 1.11.2012.Rikoksiin syyllistyneiden karkottamisesta, 22.10.2012.Helsinki ja "Globaalin vastuun strategia", 28.9.2012.Kirjallinen kysymys somalien suojeluntarpeesta, 22.8.2012.Etninen syrjintä rekrytoinnissa, 21.8.2012.Avoimia vastauksia Meri Valkamalle, 4.6.2012.Hyvinkäästä, 30.5.2012.Kreikkalaisia näkymiä, 10.5.2012.Maahanmuuttajien työllistymisestä, 1.4.2012.Miksi pahis palkitaan?, 26.3.2012.Homoseksuaalisuus suojeluperusteena, 25.2.2012.Matka Addis Abebaan, 17.1.2012.On rotumme synkkä ja siksi jää, 13.1.2012.Mitä tehdä rattijuopoille?, 11.1.2012.Hyvää uutta vuotta 2012!, 8.12.2011.Tilastoista ja etnopositiivisuudesta, 26.10.2011.Rasismin kitkentää Vaasassa, 3.10.2011.Muutama ajatus kunniaväkivallasta, 30.9.2011.Ottawan sopimuksesta, 6.9.2011.Loikka, 13.8.2011.Viharikoksista ja mediasta,
      xxx/ellauri084.html on line 482: Vakinaistusprosessi yrittää valita ihmisiä jotka ovat izeohjautuvia, innostuneita, ajettuja, ja päämäärähakuisia. Se tavallisesti onnistuu. Ihmiset jotka pääsee läpitte - yleensä - uskovat akateemisiin ihanteisiin ja kuluttavat loppuikänsä niiden pystyttämiseen. Lyhyesti, se ei ole päämäärä; se on elämäntapa.
      xxx/ellauri084.html on line 548: ron brown football player​
      xxx/ellauri084.html on line 627: Dowtyn, Wallin ja Petersin Introduction to Montague Semantics, jolla Wallu doppailee, oli jo ilmestyessään kuolleena syntynyt alkeisoppikirja Richard Montaguen, 1971 jossain hämärissä kotibailuissa nirhatun homopetterin hankalammista alkuperäisistä artikkeleista 60/70 lukujen vaihteesta, joita me Eskin kanssa opiskeltiin Jaakon apulaisten huoneessa lukutikku kädessä. Dowty et al. ilmestyi 1981, jolloin John oli justiinsa syntynyt ja mä valmistunut ja masentuneen Stan Petersin sitä paljon pätevämpi rouva pyysi mua Amherstiin sijaisexi, mutta me ei menty. Montague-semantiikka kuoli sitten omaan mahdottomuuteensa, tai paremminkin koska siitä ei saanut helppoja tietokonesovelluxia. Just tohon aikaan mikrot tuli joka humanistin pöydälle ja kaikki halus tehdä jotain jota niillä saattoi tehdä, ja Montaguen joukko-opillinen semantiikka ei siltä näyttänyt. Se oli pelkkää määrittelyä, siitä puuttui komputoitavuus. Onnexi ei menty.
      xxx/ellauri084.html on line 649: Aiempi yhdysvaltalainen DSM-IV-luokitus (jota seurannut DSM-5 tuli käyttöön vuonna 2013) jakoi dissosiaatiohäiriöt viiteen päätyyppiin, jotka esitellään lyhyesti alla (epäkiinnostavat poistettu):
      xxx/ellauri084.html on line 773: In France, after its release, communists, socialists, and "independent groups" treated the film favorably; however, the far right disapproved on account of the director's background. Some French critics denounced the film as unpatriotic. The film has also been criticized for being too selective and that the director was "too close to the events portrayed to provide an objective study of the period."
      xxx/ellauri084.html on line 779: Interview cinématographique de Maurice Chevalier, s'exprimant en anglais, à destination du public américain, évoquant les accusations portées contre lui de collaboration avec les Allemands, suivie d'images de la Libération rythmée ironiquement par une chanson joyeuse du chanteur.
      xxx/ellauri084.html on line 819: Millay was a prominent social figure of New York City's Greenwich Village just as it was becoming known as a bohemian writer’s colony, and she was noted for her uninhibited lifestyle, forming many passing relationships with both sexes. A road accident in middle-age left her part-invalided and morphine-dependent for years, yet near the end of her life she wrote some of her greatest poetry.
      xxx/ellauri084.html on line 832: More and more celebrities admit every year that they are gay, but this is not the case with Sigourney Weaver since this celebrity never said so. In any case, celebrities many times refuse to talk about their private lives, so we never know if they are gay or straight.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 63: In the fall of 1925, the first sets of Burma-Shave signs were erected on two highways leading out of Minneapolis. Sales rose dramatically in the area, and the signs soon appeared nationwide. The next year, Allan and his brother Leonard set up more signs, spreading across Minnesota and into Wisconsin, spending $25,000 that year on signs. Orders poured in, and sales for the year hit $68,000.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 73: Burma-Shave sales rose to about 6 million by 1947, at which time sales stagnated for the next seven years, and then gradually began to fall. Various reasons caused sales to fall, the primary one being urban growth. Typically, Burma-Shave signs were posted on rural highways and higher speed limits caused the signs to be ignored. Subsequently, the Burma-Vita Company was sold to Gillette in 1963, which in turn became part of American Safety Razor, and Phillip Morris. The huge conglomerate decided the verses were a silly idea and one of America’s vintage icons was lost to progress.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 94: In recent years, replica’s of the Burma Shave signs can be found along Route 66 in Arizona. Have you seen any other replica’s in your travels? Let us know in the comments section below.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 106: If it is a surprise to learn that Lawrence originally conceived of Women in Love as a money-making pot-boiler, it comes as an endearing shock to read that James Joyce submitted some of his early work to the firm of Mills and Boon. There is no record of the reader’s report, beyond the fact that he rejected Dubliners as unsuitable material for the unique imprint of that publishing house. For his part, Lawrence had no doubt that the author of Ulysses was the real smutmonger of modern fiction. ‘My God, what a clumsy olla putrida James Joyce is!’, he wrote to Aldous Huxley, ‘nothing but old fags and cabbage-stumps of quotations from the Bible and the rest stewed in the juice of deliberate journalistic dirty-mindedness.’ To his wife Frieda he wrote, after reading Ulysses, that ‘the last part of it is the dirtiest, most indecent, obscene thing ever written’; and he later complained that Joyce had degraded the novel to the level of an instrument for measuring twinges in the toes of unremarkable men. Joyce’s reply to the charge that he was just another pornographer doing dirt on sex was to claim that at least he had never made the subject predictable or boring. He denounced Lady Chatterbox’s Lover — his title for Lawrence’s notorious novel — as a ‘lush’ production in ‘sloppy English’ and dismissed its ending as ‘a piece of propaganda in favour of something which, outside of DHL’s country at any rate, makes all the propaganda for itself’. It is a minor irony of literary history that both men were married at Kensington Register Office in London, although, unlike Lawrence, the Irishman allowed a decent interval of twenty-five years to elapse before the solemnisation of his nuptials.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 122: Between 1947 and 1950 the workshop produced five films under Peterson's guidance that were influential on the burgeoning American avant-garde cinema, and significant artifacts of the San Francisco Renaissance. In the years that followed, Peterson worked as a consultant for the Museum of Modern Art, made a series of documentary films, penned a novel (A Fly in the Pigment, 1961) and a memoir (The Dark of the Screen, 1980), and worked at Walt Disney Productions as a scriptwriter and storyboard artist on the never completed sequel to Fantasia.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 133: When the eyeball falls out of the male protagonist’s head, i personally believe that the filmmaker wants to emphasize to the viewer the fact that we don’t necessarily “see” and perceive the world around us only as individuals but rather as a collective self. The way we perceive objects, people, the world around us in general is partly shaped by society and it’s rules. We have been taught how to look at life…
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 217: Plus, since I am Asian, leaving my job is pretty scary because that was my parent’s bragging card in yumcha with aunties and uncles. Yum cha is the Cantonese tradition of brunch involving Chinese tea and dim sum. So yea I get it.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 246: My head snapped straight up. I wanted to scream, “I call BS!” But, that refrain had not been invented yet.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 261: They're also in a position to tout their own horn and speak and not be questioned as much as the average or subordinate employee.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 303: Several months after his treatment in Russia, Peterson and his family moved to Belgrade, Serbia for further treatment. In June 2020, Peterson made his first public appearance in over a year, when he appeared on his daughter's podcast, recorded in Communist Belgrade. He said that he was "back to my regular self", other than feeling fatigue, and was cautiously optimistic about his prospects. He also said that he wanted to warn people about the dangers of long-term use of benzodiazepines (the class of drugs that includes clonazepam). In August 2020, his daughter announced that her father had contracted COVID-19 during his hospital stay in Serbia. Two months later, Peterson posted a YouTube video to inform that he had returned home and aimed to resume his destructive work in the near future.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 305: So to sum up the answer, yes, Jordan Peterson has a LOT of mental illnesses.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 320:
      If you haven’t guessed it yet, this is Jeff Bezos (owner of Amazon) in 1999 - and, no, this is not the start of Amazon. In 1999, Amazon was already worth billion(s) of dollars, and yet this man is sitting in a not-so-fancy office, doing what people won’t do so he could be able to do what people MUSTN’T do. Like fuck up the life of everybody else.

      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 357: So here is what happens with the “Trickle Down Economics”…. Unlike the working class that, when they get an extra couple of hundred bucks immediately goes out and spends it and helps the entire economy, those at the top of the ladder tend to invest that money. So…. The “Trickle down Economics” theory says that if we give the top 1% more money, through tax breaks, tax credits, or even credits, they will then pass that money on to their employees and servants. This simply isn't true. If it were, they would already be sharing their profits with the working class.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 359: What happens is this.. Give a blue collar worker $2000 and he will buy new furniture, or clothing, ir maybe put a down payment on a new car. He will definitely take his family out to dinner and a movie, therefore stimulating the economy. However, those in charge of the companies will not do this. They already have their purchases, parties, dinners, and vacations planned and payed for. When they get an extra $2000 or $200,000 they keep it. They purchase more stock ir perhaps an insurance policy. Maybe they just stick it into a CD. In any case they are NOT helping the economy or even interested in doing so.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 383: Even my barber, which is a self employed hair cutter. Would his business exist without rich people? Would it? Where would he get to rent a building to run his barber show out of? Where did the power come from? Where did his trimmers and hair cutters come from? Where did he buy that barber chair from?
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 396: It has several inherent flaws. When people argue for more “libertarian” economic policy, there’s a tendency to think only about the initial development of a business, and to ignore the possibility of direct communication between two businesses in competition. Here’s a pretty typical argument for trickle-down: If a small sandwich shop manages to produce a good product at a low price, it can attract a bunch of customers, and make enough money to buy a second shop, which will allow them to hire more employees. But if taxes are too high, they wont be able to open that second location, and then they won’t be able to employ as many people. They also might have to pay their workers less, and better workers might quit to work in other places. And they’ll have to increase their prices. Thus, lower taxes on the upper middle class and rich result in a more employed society with higher wages and cheaper products.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 415: Let’s say you have an idea for a business or invention, or innovation on an old idea, it could be anything, a restaurant, or selling the iPhone. An entrepreneur has an idea, without which there would be no iPhone or any other product or service. You start the business by putting in your life savings or and/or getting investors, and they all lose their money if the business doesn’t work out. You have to put out money to suppliers for materials money for rent, you have to PAY EMPLOYEES even when you haven’t made 1 red cent yet from sales, because the product hasn’t even been produced yet, much less sold. Thats SOOO wrong! Never mind that they work quite as hard whether or not your snaky idea will work.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 417: This process of shelling out cash, and losing money can go on FOR YEARS as it did with Amazon, and many, most, companies fail in the first 5 years and employees go on to a new job while the owners and investors are out ALL the money they put in. Employees get paid the whole time, owners get paid ONLY if there is a profit and last. Profits trickle UP, not down, last IF at all!
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 428: Other barriers are produced by govt in their speeches, it might not even be policy yet, but if for example Obama talks about raising taxes and tells business owners like Joe the Plumber that “You didn’t build that!” Then what signal does that send to would-be entrepreneurs? Probably just wait til a more friendly administration comes along. Not surprising that business activity increased toward the end of Obama’s term and really took off once people figured out that Trump was going to have policies that reduced barriers.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 457: Because it assumes that rich people automatically create more jobs if they have more money. This idea ignores the reason why jobs are created in the first place: to make profit. Which means that new jobs are only created if they are profitable to the employer. If all the jobs that could be created aren’t, it doesn’t matter how much money the employer has. And therefore giving the employer more money in such a situation will not lead to more jobs being created.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 459: If there are profitable jobs to be created and employers don’t have the money to start it off they could take out a loan and pay it off with the profit. There simply is no situation left where lowering the rich’s taxes would create jobs. But we don’t have to rely on this argument, we can look at the many times where this was tried and, guess what: lowering the rich’s taxes has never created more jobs.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 466: It works well for a small rich elite, but for the majority and more importantly for the national economy? Well it has never worked in the past why assume that it would work now? This is a con perpetuated by the wealthy elite to keep more of the money they earn and give less of it to the government. Concentrating wealth in the hands of a few is actually really really bad for the economy. Less of it circulates. The poor/middle classes tend to spend everything they get, they can't not, they just have less disposable income. It tends to go on food, rent and essentials. If they don't have enough money to spend because a greater slice of the pie is tied up in fewer hands they don't have as much to spend and less money circulates through the economy. That is bad. They don't squirrel it away in the Bahamas or Swiss bank accounts or spend it on a second Ferrari Testarossa. They don't have that luxury. The myth of trickle down economics was discredited years ago.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 491: The latest indicator that things are terribly out of whack came in a report last week from the Economic Policy Institute, which found that compensation for American chief executives increased by 940% from 1978 to 2018, while pay for the average worker rose by a miserable 12% over the same 40-year period.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 492: Average pay for CEOs of the 350 biggest U.S. companies hit $17.2 million last year, the researchers found.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 501: In fact, consumer sentiment fell this month to the lowest level of the year.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 503: As for the tax cuts, the Treasury Department reported last week that the U.S. budget deficit soared by 27% to $867 billion over the first 10 months of the fiscal year.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 505: The deficit is projected to top $1 trillion for the entire fiscal year, which ends Sept. 30. The last time that happened was in the aftermath of the Great Recession.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 534: For example, Trump, while enjoying the life of a jet-setting businessman, claimed $1.17 billion in losses from 1985 to 1994, which allowed him to skip income taxes for eight of those 10 years, according to IRS tax transcripts obtained by the New York Times.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 555: They then traced what happened to those nations’ economies in the five years after the cuts were implemented. They focused particularly on income inequality, economic growth as measured by gross domestic product, and the unemployment rate. They aggregated those trends across countries to capture the broadest possible picture of the tax cuts’ effects.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 585: At this point, unless we allow millions more immigrants into our country, thereby expanding the workforce, economic growth will be sluggish. There is plenty of wealth being created, but it is often in too few hands. Government spending generally has far less velocity due to more and more people having less disposable income. The elitists in the U.S. embarked on this globalist philosophy 30–40 years ago and there has been significant economic growth worldwide, but that has been at the expense of the American worker and to some degree our way of life. The introduction of massive amounts of consumer credit has only made things worse.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 593: I would offer tremendous incentives for companies to make the products we use here and induce other countries to make their own products to keep their workers employed.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 599: I would have the government subsidize child care and offer one year paid leave to any woman who has a newborn.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 601: I would drastically change the healthcare system to implement a “Single Rate Geographic structure” not a single payer system.
      xxx/ellauri085.html on line 603: I would complete revamp our higher education system to a bunch of 2 year programs designed to teach skills. That would start much earlier, nearer the Junior year in high school, thereby positioning students to begin professional life much earlier. Potentially taking those skills into an actual internship program for two years where they would get paid a nominal amount, instead of paying large sums for college.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 230: Smoking is not expressly forbidden anywhere in the Bible. There is a veritable who’s who list of Christians who smoked. One of the greatest preachers and evangelists of the 19th century loved his cigars. He was Charles Spurgeon. Other famous Christians who smoked or still do are J.R.R. Tolkien, C.S. Lewis, Chuck Colson, Johann Sebastian Bach, Billy Graham, and Jerry Farwell (although the last two quit in their latter years). This article has addressed all types of tobacco: cigarettes, pipe, cigar, snuff, and chewing tobacco. Come to think of it, all these famous Christians are dead. Put that in your pipe and smoke.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 267: Toi sieltä pienen kapeen pitkän matontapaisen joka on meillä vielä vintissä. Mustaa afgaa poltettiin Laivanvarastajankadun poxissa. Sen afgaanikaverit nukku mun oma tekemässä liian lyhyessä lautasängyssä. Ja jätti sinne terveisixi luteita.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 405: In September 2017, a team of scholars, computer scientists, philologists and linguists at the University of Padua analyzed 150 novels written in Italian by 40 different authors, including seven books by Elena Ferrante, but none by Raja. Based on analysis using several authorship attribution models, they concluded that Anita Raja's husband, author and journalist Domenico Starnone, is the probable author of the Ferrante novels. Raja has worked for E/O Publishing as copy editor and has been editing Starnone's books for years.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 448: I must have aged a year tonight. she is a princess!"
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 488: Viime vuosina Ms. Rajan ja sen miehen, novellisti (ja oppikoulunopettaja) Domenico Starnonen, nimet ovat olleet aivan kärjessä "Kuka mahtaa olla Elena Ferrante? lyhyellä listalla. Niiden kirjat on samantyylisiä kuin Elena Ferranten. Höh, ne kirjoittaa niitä tietysti yhdessä! Ne on niinkuin se yx ruozalainen aviopari jotka kirjottaa whodunitteja. Six ne kirjat on niin androgyynisiä, mikä on mielenterveyden kannalta edullisinta, toteaa Suomen Tieteen Valitut Palat (HS-yhtymä).
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 498: The west-side story here, reduced to its elements: “Manhattan” is a movie about a five-foot middle-aged Jew who beds a sweet 17-year-old girl, breaks her heart when he leaves her for someone else and only comes crawling back when he gets dumped. It is not simply that so many of us were so besotted with the film for so long; it’s that we were perfectly content to look and see the small tits and the virgin butt. The problem was an addiction to “the self-gratifying view,’’ Mr. Allen suggested - having made another movie about how he relentlessly does what he pleases. Butt on fire. Joey Buttafuoco quickly became an object of derision, the butt of the joke instead of Allen.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 500: Vitas Gerulaitis was some stupid Lithuanian immigrant tennis player in the 80's who died of carbon monoxide poisoning in his pool. During a tennis match, didn't the late tennis great Vitas Gerulaitis tell a Jewish umpire who had ruled against him, "You should be exterminated in a crematorium?" Well, this isn't precisely the same wording as your quote, but the meaning is similar:
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 571: Roger on radioliikenteen hymiö (._.) eli "R", vastaanotettu ja ymmärretty, "I read you". Wilco on "will comply" eli aye aye sir, ymmärrän ja hyväxyn komennon. Tässähän se ymmärtämisen ja hyväxymisen ero juuri on!
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 573: If Kip humped his dreamgirl Peewee it would count as statutory rape. I'm sure Bob would shut an understanding eye to that. If the wormfaces ate up them both that would count as a mutton snack. Bob would not countenance anything like that. We are people, not some animals like sheep, or hobgoblins either, come to that. You gotta choose your team, and stick to them. George Byron would not agree, nor do I.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 584: "I love this. I've sent myself 5 letters so far and every year it's a surprise. Because I forget so easily. It turns into such a deep reflective process, that I usually weep and laugh while I write." - Margaret Member since 2011.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 612: Alone together, the narrator asks Dupin how he found the letter. Dupin explains the Paris police are competent within their limitations, but have underestimated with whom they are dealing. The prefect mistakes the Minister D— for a fool because he is a poet. (Siis kumpi on? Perfekti vai ministeri Dee? No Poe on ainakin, senhän sanoo nimikin, Poe-t. Ja hölmökin se on.) For example, Dupin explains how an eight-year-old boy made a small fortune from his friends at a game called Odds and Evens. The boy had determined the intelligence of his opponents and played upon that to interpret their next move. Tästä aiheesta on valtava amer. kirjallisuus, koskien vangin dilemman toistoja. He explains that D— knew the police detectives would have assumed that the blackmailer would have concealed the letter in an elaborate hiding place, and thus hid it in plain sight.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 617: Dupin says he had visited the minister at his hotel. Complaining of weak eyes he wore a pair of green spectacles, the true purpose of which was to disguise his eyes as he searched for the letter. In a cheap card rack hanging from a dirty ribbon, he saw a half-torn letter and recognized it as the letter of the story's title. Striking up a conversation with D— about a subject in which the minister is interested, Dupin examined the letter more closely. It did not resemble the letter the prefect described so minutely; the writing was different, and it was sealed not with the "ducal arms" of the S— family, but with D—'s monogram. Dupin noticed that the paper was chafed as if the stiff paper was first rolled one way and then another. Dupin concluded that D— wrote a new address on the reverse of the stolen one, re-folded it the opposite way and sealed it with his own seal.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 621: Dupin explains that the gunshot distraction was arranged by him and that he left a duplicate letter to ensure his ability to leave the hotel without D— suspecting his actions. If he had tried to seize it openly, Dupin surmises D— might have had him killed. As both a political supporter of the queen and old enemy of the minister [who had done an evil deed to Dupin in Vienna in the past], Dupin also hopes that D— will try to use the power he no longer has, to his political downfall, and at the end be presented with a quotation from Prosper Jolyot de Crébillon's play Atrée et Thyeste that implies Dupin was the thief: Un dessein si funeste, S'il n'est digne d'Atrée, est digne de Thyeste (If such a sinister design isn't worthy of Atreus, it is worthy of Thyestes).
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 623: Kekäs se oli tää Thyestes? (Ja kuka oli Jolyot?) Thyestes oli kreikkalaisessa mytologiassa Olympian kuninkaan Pelopsin ja Hippodameian poika. Hänellä oli lapset Pelopeia ja Aigisthos. Hänen veljensä Atreus tappoi Thyesteen lapset.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 625: Thyestes ja hänen kaksoisveljensä Atreus olivat heidän isänsä karkottamina maanpaossa heidän surmattuaan velipuolensa Khrysippoksen havitellessaan Olympian valtaistuinta. He saivat suojapaikan Mykenestä, jossa he kohosivat valtaan kuningas Eurystheuksen, joka oli taistelemassa herakleideja vastaan, poissa ollessa. Eurystheus oli tarkoittanut heidän hallintonsa väliaikaiseksi ratkaisuksi, mutta siitä tuli pysyvä hänen kuoltuaan taistelussa.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 627: Atreus vannoi uhraavansa parhaan lampaansa Artemiille, mutta etsiessään sitä laumastaan hän huomasi joukossa kultaisen lampaan. Hän laiminlöi lupauksensa, kuristi lampaan ja säilöi sen laatikkoon, mutta hänen vaimonsa Aerope, joka oli viehtynyt hänen veljeensä, antokin sen Thyesteelle. Mykeneläisten saatua ennustuksen, joka kehotti heitä valitsemaan itselleen pelopidin kuninkaaksi, he kutsuivat Atreuksen ja Thyesteen. Kun he keskustelivat valtakunnasta, Thyestes julisti kansalle, että valtakunnan tulisi kuulua hänelle, jolla on kultainen lammas, ja kun Atreus tähän suostui, Thyestes tuotti lampaan nähtäväksi ja julistettiin kuninkaaksi.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 629: Zeus lähetti kuitenkin Hermeen ja käski Atreusta vaatimaan Thyesteeltä, että hänet kruunattaisiin kuninkaaksi, jos aurinko kulkisi vastapäivään. Thyesteen suostuttua Zeus saattoi auringon laskemaan itään ja niin Atreus sai vallan takaisin, jonka jälkeen hän karkotti Thyesteen maasta.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 631: Atreuksen saatua tietoonsa Thyesteen aviorikkomuksen hän pyysi Thyesteen vieraakseen teeskennellen ystävyyttään, mutta tappoikin veljensä pojat ja tarjosi heidän lihaansa valmistettuna Thyesteelle kuitenkin säästäen kaikki raajat. Kun Thyestes oli nauttinut ateriansa, Atreus näytti hänelle säästämänsä raajat ja karkotti tämän uudelleen maasta. (Tää kohta on parempi englannixi:)
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 633: Atreus then learned of Thyestes' and Aerope's adultery and plotted revenge. He killed Thyestes' sons and cooked them, save their hands and heads. He served Thyestes his own sons and then taunted him with their hands and heads. This is the source of modern phrase "Thyestean Feast," or one at which human flesh is served. When Thyestes was done with his feast, he released a loud belch, which represents satiety and pleasure and his loss of self-control.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 635: Aika törkeetä! Röyhtäillä nyt ruokapöydässä! Thyestes oli paha mies, ja ansaizi läxynsä. Ainoa vielä pahempi rike on pieraista kun toisella on ruoka vielä kesken, nostaen vähän toista takapuolta jotta pieru pääsee ulos helpommin. Taunting on se mitä French Knight teki kuningas Arthurille ja sen tiimille Monty Pythonin leffassa Holy Grail.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 637: An oracle then advised Thyestes that, if he had a son with his own daughter Pelopia, that son would kill Atreus. Thyestes did so by raping Pelopia (his identity hidden from her) and the son, Aegisthus, did kill Atreus. However, when Aegisthus was first born, he was abandoned by his mother, ashamed of the origin of her son. A shepherd found the infant Aegisthus and gave him to Atreus, who raised him as his own son. Only as he entered adulthood did Thyestes reveal the truth to Aegisthus, that he was both father and grandfather to the boy and that Atreus was his uncle. Aegisthus then killed Atreus.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 639: Thyesteen etsiessä keinoja kostaa veljelleen, hän sai oraakkelilta tiedon, että hän voisi saada kostonsa, jos hän saisi pojan oman tyttärensä kanssa. Hän saikin Aigisthoksen tyttärensä kanssa, mutta tämän äiti hylkäsi lapsensa häveten tekoaan. Paimen löysi lapsen ja antoi tämän Atreukselle, joka kasvatti poikaa omanaan. Aigisthoksen vartuttua mieheksi Thyestes paljasti hänelle olevansa sekä tämän isä että isoisä, ja että Atreus on hänen setänsä, jolloin Aigisthos meni aivan sekaisin ja tappoi Atreus-sedän.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 641: Thyestes palasi jälleen valtaan, mutta Atreuksen pojat Agamemnonin ja Menelaoksen pelasti heidän hoitajansa Sikyonin. Spartan kuningas Tyndareus haetti Atreuksen pojat luokseen, ja yhdessä he ajoivat Thyesteen jälleen pois. Tyndareus antoi heille tyttärensä vaimoiksi, Klytaimnestra Agamemnonille ja Helenan Menelaokselle, joka peri valtaistuimen Tyndareuksen kuoltua. Näistäkin ämmistä koitui sitten tuhottomasti harmia.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 643: Hemmetti tässähän jää jenkkisaippuasarjat lähtöviivalle. Mut joo mä tiedän nyt mitä Poe tarkoittaa: Ministeri Dee oli niinko Atreus joka syötti Thyesteen pojat sille lounaaxi, ja Dupin on sit niinko Thyestes, joka bylsi omaa tytärtään. Kuinka ovelaa!
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 649: The Scarlet Letter: A Romance is a work of historical fiction by American author Nathaniel Hawthorne, published in 1850. Set in Puritan Massachusetts Bay Colony during the years 1642 to 1649, the novel tells the story of Hester Prynne, who conceives a daughter through an affair and then struggles to create a new life of repentance and dignity. Containing a number of religious and historic allusions, the book explores themes of legalism, sin, and guilt.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 671: Tormented by his guilty conscience, Dimmesdale goes to the square where Hester was punished years earlier. Climbing the scaffold in the dead of night, he admits his guilt but cannot find the courage to do so publicly in the light of day. Hester, shocked by Dimmesdale´s deterioration, decides to obtain a release from her vow of silence to her husband.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 675: After several years, Hester returns to her cottage and resumes wearing the scarlet letter. When she dies, she is buried near the grave of Dimmesdale, and they share a simple slate tombstone engraved with an escutcheon described as: "On a field, sable, the letter A, gules" ("A red letter A written on a black background").
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 725: Poe oli haaveillut vuodesta 1834 alkaen oman kirjallisuuslehden perustamisesta. Lehden nimeksi olisi tullut Penn Magazine, ja se olisi ollut sisällöltään, paperiltaan ja painojäljeltään korkealaatuinen sekä vuositilausmaksultaan suhteellisen kallis. Tämä suunnitelma ei koskaan toteutunut, kuten ei myöskään vuonna 1843 suunniteltu Stylus. Poesta tuli Broadway Journalin ainoa päätoimittaja ja omistaja syksyllä 1845. Hän ei kuitenkaan kyennyt pitämään lehteä hengissä kahta kuukautta kauempaa.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 804: Not the least obeisance made he; not a minute stopped or stayed he; sanonut ei päivääkään, puolikuuta peipposesta,
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 819: Ever yet was blessed with seeing bird above his chamber door— eio muiden pystin päähän oven päälle tullut jäämään
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 845: To the fowl whose fiery eyes now burned into my bosom’s core; Naakalle en sanottua saanut yhtään halaistua
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 860: Desolate yet all undaunted, on this desert land enchanted— Piruako tänne luuhaat, eikö ole muuta puuhaa?
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 881: And his eyes have all the seeming of a demon’s that is dreaming, Kas se onkin vertauskuva, joku professori Mikko Juva,
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 900: Poe dismissed the notion of artistic intuition and argued that writing is methodical and analytical, not spontaneous. He writes that no other author has yet admitted this because most writers would "positively shudder at letting the public take a peep behind the scenes... at the fully matured fancies discarded in despair... at the cautious selections and rejections"
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 916: George Rex Graham, a friend and former employer of Poe, declined Poe's offer to be the first to print "The Raven". Graham said he did not like the poem but offered $15 as a charity. Graham made up for his poor decision by publishing "The Philosophy of Composition" in the April 1846 issue of Graham's American Monthly Magazine of Literature and Art. Another act of charity.
      xxx/ellauri086.html on line 949: Oliskohan tässä kaikki? Joo paizi kerro juoni lyhyesti? Jotain sekoilua kummitustalossa. Roderick on epähuomiossa haudannut kaxoissisko Madeleinen elävältä mistä tämä kovin harmistuu. Lopuksi koko kämppä vajoo läheiseen lampeen.
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 266: Tänä poikkeuskeväänä arki on näyttäytynyt Esa Saariselle kuin hidastettuna filminä, johon hitaammankin ajatus jotenkuten ehtii mukaan. Ympärillä on paljon arvokasta, jota ei aiemmin kyennyt havaitsemaan. Bulevardin kämppä alkaa olla sitä väärällään.
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 396: Love you ten years before the Flood: 10v ennen tuhotulvaa: jo ennen vedenpaisumusta;
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 402: A hundred years should go to praise Sata vuotta kestäisi mun kiitellä Niin ylistäisin vuotta sata
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 403: Thine Eyes, and on thy Forehead Gaze. Sun silmiä ja kazella sun ozaa. silmiä, otsaa valkeata.
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 413: And yonder all before us lye Sen tuolla puolen meitä odottaa ja edessämme aukeaa
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 437: Stand still, yet we will make him run. Pysäyttämään, me kiritetään sitä. vaan laukkaamaan sen kyllä saa.
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 461: The phrase "there will be time" occurs repeatedly in a section of T. S. Eliot's "The Love Song of J. Alfred Prufrock" (1915), and is often said to be an allusion to Marvell's poem. Prufrock says that there will be time "for the yellow smoke that slides along the street", time "to murder and create", and time "for a hundred indecisions ... Before the taking of a toast and tea". As Eliot's hero is, in fact, putting off romance and consummation, he is (falsely) answering Marvell's speaker.
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 480: The line "I would Love you ten years before the Flood, And you should, if you please, refuse Till the conversion of the Jews. My vegetable love should grow Vaster than empires, and more slow." Is used as the preamble to part three of Greg Bear's Nebula award winning novel Moving Mars.
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 563: In 1986 he was arrested for soliciting an undercover policewoman for immoral purposes. In 1995 he was charged with battering his girlfriend Krystal Kennedy after leaving his wife of 35 years. Kennedy declined to testify against Knievel, however, and later married him.
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 566: Knievel earned millions from stunts but it all disappeared through years of financial mismanagement and a gambling addiction that would see him bet $10,000 on the result of a football game.
      xxx/ellauri087.html on line 567: He had been in failing health for many years before his death, suffering two strokes, diabetes and the incurable lung disease pulmonary fibrosis. In 1999 he had a liver transplant. As he neared death, Knievel hinted at the dark secrets which remained locked in his heart.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 102: Miesten käsirysyn kautta turvattu rauha on yhdenlaista naisen alistamista, tuumaavat naiset Saudi-Arabiassa ja Lontoossa. yellow">En 48-årig polis har häktats misstänkt för att ha yellow">kidnappat och dödat en kvinna. Fallet fick Londonpolisen att varna kvinnor, be dem vara försiktiga och inte ta promenader på egen hand. Gå ut bara i sällskap av en manlig släkting, far, bror, farbror, morbror eller kusin. En helkroppsmask är också en bra idé. Många menar att den typen av uttalanden antyder att det är kvinnors ansvar att själva undvika att bli attackerade. Enligt Storbritanniens premiärminister Boris Godunov ska lagstiftingen leda till skärpta straff för flanörer och yellow">fler poliser på gatorna.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 255: Sysäyxen oli antanut puhujan lause "huonosta kirjasta". Olin lapsuudessani ja esimurkkuna säilynyt kaikelta "rumalta" niin tyyten, että mua oli tuskin kiinnostanut muu kuin joku maalla kuultu rivo laulunsäe. -- äh Hilja on niin monisanainen, kerron lyhyemmin. Se oli ruozintanut jonkun tyttökirjan joka sen mielestä oli tuntunut harmittomalta. Päähenkilö oli uhmapäinen izekeskeinen rasavilli tyttönen joka kehittyi herttaisen opettajattaren ja hiovan toveripiirin avulla suloisexi pikku naisexi, joka paluumatkalla opistosta löysi vielä oman "prinssinnakkinsa". Mutta mikä olikaan "Otava" kustannusyhtiön setämiesten vastaus? "Teosta ei ole voitu hyväxyä. Se saisi varmasti ankaran arvostelun sisällyxensä laadun tähden. "Otavan" pöytäkirjoissa sanotaan lyhyesti, että sitä pidettiin sopimattomana.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 270: Kesken veisuun tuli minun vuoroni. Mr. Mott vastasi lyhyesti, ettei ole synti lukea huonoja kirjoja, jos kuzumus niin vaatii. Mutta vastapainoxi en saisi niitä kirjoittaa. Olen pahoillani mutta näin on päässyt käymään. Eikö hän muuta sanonut? Ei varmaankaan, paizi näkemiin Anu. Mixi siis minulla oli juhlallinen olla, kuin jumalan naaman edessä? Tieteellinen tutkimus oli houkutellut, Hanna Andersiin oli siitä painanut paljon paljetta. Mulla oli siitä jo kumu kuin Tupulla. Mutta kestin kiusauxen, sillä kirjailijan kuzumus poltti povessani kuin tulikipinä. Ja nyt tunsin vazassani, olin jeesuxen omena, käyttäisin saamani lahjan (housukilven) hänen kunniaxensa. Samalla minut valtasi ihmeellinen riemuisa tunne, että olin kuin sulaa vahaa Mr. Mottin käsissä, hänelle antautunut. Ehkä olinkin, en kazonut. Palasin kotiin, vaikka olin juhlakunnossa.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 274: Eli mitä opimme tästä? Että herrasväistä tulee kansan parhaat johtajat, ja niistä tulee tottelevaisempia kun niitä kesyttää joku Mr. Mottin kaltainen paskanpuhuja. Kristus on kallio ja aurinko, koskivoima ja sillä tuotettava valo. Kristus on lähes kaikki mitä teollistuva yhteiskunta tarvizee. Kunpa työläisetkin tajuaisi tän. Mr. Mottin käynnistä seurasi hurja määrä opiskelijoiden välisiä yhdyntöjä, ettei se ihan turha reisu ollut. Suomenkieliset ja ruozinkieliset, pakkokirkolliset ja vapaakirkolliset, vanhasuomalaiset ja nuorisuomalaiset, perustuslailliset ja -laittomat, kaikki yhteisessä hyörinässä. Tätä koettiin jo helmikuun manifestin aikana.(Ei se ihan kommunistisen manifestin veroinen jamboree ollut, mutta ei huono.) Nyze erikoisesti korostui. Oli jumalan ihme etteivät valtiolliset näkökannat kyenneet nostamaan muureja herrasväkien välille. (Huonommiin kävi sitten vuoden 1918 tapahtumissa, mutta nehän ei olleetkaan herrasväkeä.)
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 292: Hauptmann's early dramas reflect the influence of Henrik Ibsen, but the production of Die Weber, a dramatization of the Silesian weavers' revolt of 1844, brought him fame as the leading playwright of his generation. Hauptmann did not only want to give realistic details, but he paid a great deal of attention to historical accuracy, and studied various dialects. His weavers are "flat-chested, coughing creatures of the looms, whose knees are bent with much sitting." The women's clothes are ragged, but some of the young girls are not without charm � they have "delicate figures, large protruding melancholy eyes." Structurally the play, which was at first banned, was innovative � there is no single, individual hero in the cast of more than 70 characters. (Didn't exceed the 80 character limit of first generation mainframe computers.)
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 294: Die versunkene Glocke (1897), a symbolic story of a master bell founder and his struggle as an artist, has been one of Hauptmann's most popular plays. After this Hauptmann wrote the tragedies Fuhrmann Henschel (1899), Michael Kramer (1900), and Rose Bernd (1903). These works also reflected the personal turmoil Hauptmann was then in he had fallen for a fourteen-year-old girl, a promising violinist Margarete Marschalk. She was the opposite of his wife, interested in his work, and in such outdoor sports as hiking, ice-skating, andf skiing. After Hauptmann wife found out about her rival, she moved with the children to Dresden. Hauptmann had a son, Benvenuto, with Margarete, and in 1904, after a long period of agonising thought, Hauptmann divorced Marie and married Margarete. However, a year later he met a sixteen-year-old actress, Ida Orloff, who became a new object of his obsession. Hauptmann described her in his letters as a moth flirting with flames, as a bewitching Siren, as a mermaid, and as a cruel spider.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 298: From 1883 to 1884 Hauptmann studied art in Rome and wrote a romantic poem based on the myth of Prometheus. Ill health forced him to return to Germany. In 1885 he married Marie Thienemann; they had four children. Marie Thienemann was a beautiful, rich heiress, whom he had met in 1881, and who supported him through the four years of their engagement. Hauptmann settled with Marie in Berlin. She admired her husband, but did not much understand literature and was devastated when Gerhart's attention strayed. However, her wealth gave him the freedom to start his career as a writer.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 392: Left: Generally, support a moratorium on deporting or offering a pathway to citizenship to certain undocumented immigrants. e.g. those with no criminal record, who has lived in the U.S. for 5+ years. Less restrictive legal immigration.

      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 411: Left: Based on community and social responsibility. Gay couples to get equal rights like everyone else (e.g. marriage); abortion should be legal; support embryonic stem cell research. Support restrictions and regulations around the right to bear arms. Supports taxpayer funding of Planned Parenthood.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 413: Right: Based on individual rights and justice. Opposed to gay marriage, abortion, and embryonic stem cell research. Support the right to bear arms, death penalty, and personal responsibility as an individual. Opposed to taxpayer funding of Planned Parenthood.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 580:

      In Bulgaria, you nod your head when you mean no and shake it for yes, and they revere an old blind lady named Vanga who predicts the future. Cool!


      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 584:

      Norway is fairly middling when it comes to Europe. The food is sometimes questionable (they eat sheep heads and cure fish with lye) and most of the year it’s freezing and dark.


      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 612: George Louis Costanza is a character in the American television sitcom Seinfeld, played by Jason Alexander. He has variously been described as a "short, stocky, slow-witted, bald man", "weak, spineless, man of temptations", and "Lord of the Idiots".


      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 780: All this was in the early 1890’s at a time when Europe was becoming increasingly conscious of the untold social problems bequeathed by the Industrial Revolution. But the dawn of enlightenment had not yet broken over America.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 784: A typical example is her work concerning immigrants. She was the first professor in America to give students a course of lectures on problems relating to immigrants. Best known, undoubtedly, is her work on the Slav immigrants in the United States, a work which is said to be a landmark in the scientific analysis of immigration problems3. This work provides a perfect illustration of her approach: before putting pen to paper she visited most of the Slav centers in the United States and also did research for a year in those regions of Austria-Hungary from which many of the immigrants came. Not content to rely on verbal or written sources, she felt she had to see things for herself, to meet these people, and to study their conditions at first hand.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 798: Emily Balch has now reached old age but she remains active to the last, and, as she herself said when being congratulated on her seventy-fifth birthday: «I think I shall live for quite a while yet, for, as my grandfather said, an old woman is as tough as an old owl.» May her words prove to be no less than the truth, for the world cannot boast of many persons of her mettle.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 809: John Raleigh Mott (May 25, 1865 - January 31, 1955) was born in Livingston Manor, New York, Sullivan County, New York and his family moved to Postville, Iowa in September of the same year. He attended Upper Iowa University, where he studied history and was an award-winning student debater. He transferred to Cornell University, where he received his bachelor's degree in 1888. He was influenced by Arthur Tappan Pierson one of the forces behind the Student Volunteer Movement for Foreign Missions, which was founded in 1886. Mott married Leila Ada White (1866-1952) in 1891 and had two sons and two daughters.
      xxx/ellauri091.html on line 819: John Raleigh Mott is an American like Emily Greene Balch, with whom he shares this year’s Nobel Peace Prize. He was born in Sullivan County in the state of New York on May 25, 1865. It was assumed that he would follow in the footsteps of his father, a timber merchant engaged in transporting timber on the tributaries of the Delaware River. But he was an avid reader, and the town’s Methodist minister persuaded his parents to allow him to continue his studies. For a long time the boy did not know what he wanted to be. His father hoped that he would return to the timber trade, while he himself vacillated between the church, law, and politics. But during his years of study he was stirred by the Gospel of Christ to mankind, and when the Y.M.C.A. asked him to become a traveling secretary among the students of American and Canadian universities he interpreted the offer as a call from the Lord. He answered the call. It did not take him back to the Delaware River. It sent him out into the wide world and it has brought him here today.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 91: Leena antautuu välillä vähän kerskumaan: "Hans Christian Andersen kirjoitti aikoinaan, että uuden vuosisadan runotar on lyhyt, selkeä ja rikas. Minä ainakin olen halunnut oppia kirjoittamaan lyhyesti, selkeästi ja rikkaasti. Kyse on vaikeasta ja kunnianhimoisesta yhdistelmästä, mutta siihen olen pyrkinyt, Leena Krohn toteaa. Sori vaan Leena mutta se uusi vuosisata oli noin kaxi vuosisataa sitten.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 154: Drivel had written eight novels and published seven (one novel could not find a publisher) before writing We Need to Talk About Kevin, which she called her "make or break" novel due to the years of "professional disappointment" and "virtual obscurity" preceding it.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 158: We Need to Talk About Kevin was awarded the 2005 Agent Orange Prize. The novel is a study of maternal ambivalence, and the role it might have played in the title character's decision to murder only nine people at his high school. Gharbi got a significantly higher body count, but then his mother was more supportive. It provoked much controversy and achieved success through word of mouth. She said this about We Need To Talk About Kevin becoming a success:
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 184: Let’s start with a tempest-in-a-teacup at Bowdoin College in Brunswick, Maine. Earlier this year, two students, both members of student government, threw a tequila-themed birthday party for a friend. The hosts provided attendees with miniature sombreros, which—the horror— numerous partygoers wore.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 200: We wouldn’t have Maria McCann’s erotic masterpiece, As Meat Loves Salt – in which a straight woman writes about gay men in the English Civil War. Though the book is nonfiction, it’s worth noting that we also wouldn’t have 1961’s Black Like Me, for which John Howard Griffin committed the now unpardonable sin of “blackface.” Having his skin darkened – Michael Jackson in reverse – Griffin found out what it was like to live as a black man in the segregated American South. He’d be excoriated today, yet that book made a powerful social impact at the time.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 216: Mine is a disrespectful vocation by its nature – prying, voyeuristic, kleptomaniacal, and presumptuous. And I love it! Those adjectives fit me to a T! When Truman Capote wrote from the perspective of condemned murderers from a lower economic class than his own, he had some gall. After that, he had some cash. And his economic class went way up. What did the murderers get for it? Undying fame.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 220: In his 2009 novel Little Bee, Chris Cleave, who as it happens is participating in this festival, dared to write from the point of view of a 14-year-old Nigerian girl, though he is male, white, and British. I’ll remain neutral on whether he “got away with it” in literary terms, because I haven’t read the book yet. But most likely it is drivel. I love it!
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 231: Because the ultimate endpoint of keeping out mitts off experience that doesn’t belong to us is that there is no fiction. Someone like me only permits herself to write from the perspective of an ugly straight white female born in North Carolina, closing on sixty, able-bodied but with bad knees, skint for years but finally able to buy the odd new Dolce Cabbana. All that’s left is a memoir. Well, you are right, who would care to read that, in my case at least?
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 235: My most recent novel The Mandibles was taken to task by one reviewer for addressing an America that is “straight and white”. It happens that this is a multigenerational family saga – about a white family. I wasn’t instinctively inclined to insert a transvestite or bisexual, with issues that might distract from my central subject matter of apocalyptic economics. Yet the implication of this criticism is that we novelists need to plug in representatives of a variety of groups in our cast of characters, as if filling out the entering class of freshmen at a university with strict diversity requirements. Besides, America IS straight and white, at least the America I know about. I haven't had time to appropriate any Nigerian girls yet, nor Afro Americans even.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 245: In The Mandibles, I have one secondary character, Luella, who’s black. She’s married to a more central character, Douglas, the Mandible family’s 97-year-old patriarch. I reasoned that Douglas, a liberal New Yorker, would credibly have left his wife for a beautiful, stately African American because arm candy of color would reflect well on him in his circle, and keep his progressive kids’ objections to a minimum. But in the end the joke is on Douglas, because Luella suffers from early onset dementia, while his ex-wife, staunchly of sound mind, ends up running a charity for dementia research. As the novel reaches its climax and the family is reduced to the street, they’re obliged to put the addled, disoriented Luella on a leash, to keep her from wandering off. LOL! What a laugh, ain't it? Get it, the guy thought he was getting arm candy, but instead he got a goat!
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 248: Behold, the reviewer in the Washington Post, who groundlessly accused this book of being “racist” because it doesn’t toe a strict Democratic Party line in its political outlook, described the scene thus: “The Mandibles are white. Luella, the single African American in the family, arrives in Brooklyn incontinent and demented. She needs to be physically restrained. As their fortunes become ever more dire and the family assembles for a perilous trek through the streets of lawless New York, she’s held at the end of a leash. If The Mandibles is ever made into a film, my suggestion is that this image not be employed for the movie poster.” Your author, by implication, yearns to bring back slavery. Failing that, she does the best to poke fictive fun at a fictive member of the underprivileged race. Nobody laugh?
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 252: In fact, I’m reminded of a letter I received in relation to my seventh novel from an Armenian-American who objected – why did I have to make the narrator of We Need to Talk About Kevin Armenian? He didn’t like my narrator, and felt that her ethnicity disparaged his community. I took pains to explain that I knew something about Armenian heritage, because my best friend in the States was Armenian, and I also thought there was something dark and aggrieved in the culture of the Armenian diaspora that was atmospherically germane to that book. Besides, I despaired, everyone in the US has an ethnic background of some sort, and she had to be something! Joe Biden has finally admitted that the Armenian genocide was a genocide and not just an unusually bad case of flu. I am not convinced of it yet.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 257:

      I’m from a small rural community, and ev’rybody who lived in my neighborhood, if you want to call it that, were relatives.  We called it “the circle,” and our house was there, my grandmother’s house was there, an aun’ an’ uncle who were childless lived there, and (uh) a couple of aunts an’ uncles who had children.  There were five female cousins, an’ in the summertime we hung out together all day long from early until late.  In my grandmother’s yard was a maple tree, and the five of us developed that into our apartment building.  Each of us had a limb, and [small laugh] the less daring cousins took the lo’er limbs, and I and another cousin a year younger than I always went as far to the top as we could, an’ we– we were kinda derisive of those girls who stayed with the lower limbs.  We had front doors an’ back doors.  The front door was the — the limb — were the limbs on the front, that were nearest (um) the boxwood hedge.  And the grass was all worn away in that area.  An’ then the back doorwa–was on the back side of the tree, an’ you could only enter the front an’ exit from the rear.  And that had to be done by swinging off a limb that was fairly high off the ground, and (um) my cousin Belinda and I had no problem with that, but the other girls — that was always somethin’ we had to coax them into doin’.  But still, you entered the front, you left the rear.  We (um) ate our lunches together.  When it was lunchtime — an’ our mothers always cooked lunch in the summertime ’cause they didn’ want to be in the hot kitchen at night.  So we would just take our (um) — go home, an’ we’d load our plates with all the vegetables an’ the cornbread, an’ get our glasses of milk or ice tea or whatever we were havin’, an’ we would head for somebody’s yard, where we would all sit down an’ eat together.  It was just an institution:  lunch in somebody’s yard.  An’ if you wanted to go home for a second helping– sometimes that was quite a little walk, but it was worth it, because that was our thing, having lunch together, every day.  (Um) We gathered at my grandmother’s on Sundays.  All my aunts would get those chairs, form a circle.  (Uh) One crocheted.  (Uh) Most of them just sat an’ talked, an’ we girls hung out for the main part with the women.  (Uh) The men would gather around the fish pond, which was in a side yard.  It was (um) — it was kind of a rock (um) pond that my granddaddy had, had built.  There was a ir’n pipe in the middle, an’ when he went fishin’, he would put his catch in there.  Or he caught a mud turtle, he’d put it in there.  An’ there it stayed until it was time to kill it an’ cook it, whatever it was.  The pipe in the middle had water that sprayed up all the time.  There was a locust tree near there, an’ that’s where we girls picked the leaves an’ the thorns to make the doll clothes out o’ the locust.  It’s where we always ate the watermelon.  We always had to save the rind, an’ we always had to leave some pink on that rind, because my grandmother made watermelon pickles out o’ that rind.  I hated the things.  I thought they were the worst things I ever put in my mouth.  But ever’body else thought watermelon pickles were just a great delicacy.  That was also around the time that ev’rybody grew gladiolias [sic] an’ I thought they were the ugliest flower I’d ever laid my eyes on, but ever’body had gladiolias.  ‘Course now I’ve come to appreciate the gladiolia, but back then I had absolutely no appreciation for it.  It was also where we made (uh) ice cream, (uh) on the front porch.  We made ice cream on Sunday afternoons.  I had an aunt who worked in the general mercantile business that my family owned, an’ she was only home on Sunday, so she baked all day:  homemade rolls an’ cakes.  And so, she made cakes an’ we made ice cream, an’ ever’body wan’ed to crank, of course.  (Um) That was just a big treat, to get to crank that ice cream.  It was jus’ our Sunday afternoon thing, an’ I, I think back on it.  All the aunts would sit around an’ they’d talk, an’ they’d smoke.  Even if you never saw those ladies smoke, any other time o’ the week.  On Sunday afternoon when we all were gathered about in gran- in granny’s yard, they’d have a cigarette.  Just a way of relaxing, I suppose.  The maple tree’s now gone.  In later years, it was thought the maple tree, our apartment building, was shading the house too much an’ causing mildew, so it was removed at some point.  And I don’t, to this day, enjoy lookin’ (uh) into that part o’ the yard. …


      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 264: Now I proceed to the topic "The left’s embrace of gotcha hypersensitivity inevitably invites backlash." Why, it’s largely in order to keep from losing my fictional mojo that I stay off Facebook and Twitter, which could surely install an instinctive self-censorship out of fear of attack. Ten years ago, I gave the opening address of this same festival, in which I maintained that fiction writers have a vested interest in protecting everyone’s right to offend others – because if hurting someone else’s feelings even inadvertently is sufficient justification for muzzling, there will always be someone out there who is miffed by what you say, and freedom of speech is dead. Why, freedom of speech is just about miffing! What's the use of the freedom if you are not allowed to miff! With the rise of identity politics, which privileges a subjective sense of injury as actionable basis for prosecution, that is a battle that in the decade since I last spoke in Brisbane we’ve been losing.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 266: Worse: the left’s embrace of gotcha hypersensitivity inevitably invites backlash. Donald Trump appeals to people like me who have had it up to their eyeballs with being told what they can and cannot say. Pushing back against a mainstream culture of speak-no-evil suppression, they lash out in defiance, and then what they say is pretty appalling. I actually think President Trump is a real cool guy. Especially I love his hair, it most definitely is not black and curly like that other president's.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 268: Regarding identity politics, what’s especially saddened me in my recent career is a trend toward rejecting the advocacy of anyone who does not belong to the group. In 2013, I published Big Brother, a novel that grew out of my loss of my own older brother, who in 2009 died from the complications of morbid obesity. I was moved to write the book not only from grief, but also sympathy of morbid obesity: in the years before his death, as my brother grew heavier, I saw how dreadfully other people treated him – how he would be seated off in a corner of a restaurant, how the staff would roll their eyes at each other after he’d ordered, though he hadn’t requested more food than anyone else. Just a little wafer, is all.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 270: I was wildly impatient with the way we assess people’s characters these days in accordance with their weight, and tried to get on the page my dismay at how much energy people waste on this matter, sometimes anguishing for years over a few excess pounds. Both author and book were on the side of the angels, or so you would think.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 276: I worry that the clamorous world of identity politics is also undermining the very causes its activists claim to back. As a fiction writer, yeah, I do sometimes make my narrator an Armenian. But that’s only by way of a start. Merely being Armenian is not to have a character as I understand the word. I need to add a whole host of racial prejudices to fatten him out. Luckily I didn't need to do that with my bro.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 283: I made this same point in relation to gender in Melbourne last week: both as writers and as people, we should be seeking to push beyond the constraining categories into which we have been arbitrarily dropped by birth. If we embrace narrow group-based identities too fiercely, we cling to the very cages in which others would seek to trap us. We pigeonhole ourselves. We limit our own notion of who we are, and in presenting ourselves as one of a membership, a representative of our type, an ambassador of an amalgam, we ask not to be seen. I have done my best to stretch my female identity, and after years of strenuous stretching it is in fact almost as long already as that of my drummer boy's.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 311: My mother’s eyes bore into me, urging me to remain calm, to follow social convention. I shook my head, as if to shake off my lingering doubts.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 312: As I stood up, my heart began to race. I could feel the eyes of the hundreds of audience members on my back: questioning, querying, judging.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 329: On and on it went. Rather than focus on the ultimate question around how we can know an experience we have not had, the argument became a tirade. It became about the fact that a white man should be able to write the experience of a young Nigerian woman and if he sells millions and does a “decent” job — in the eyes of a white woman — he should not be questioned or pilloried in any way. It became about mocking those who ask people to seek permission to use their stories. It became a celebration of the unfettered exploitation of the experiences of others, under the guise of fiction. (For more, Yen-Rong, a volunteer at the festival, wrote a summary on her personal blog about it.)
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 347: Her tone, I fear, betrayed otherwise. Humility is not Shriver’s cloak of choice.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 375: Wyedeanin yläasteelle siirtyessään Rowling pääsi eroon inhoamistaan opettajista ja opettajat siitä. Good riddance from bad rubbish. Hän muuttui myös aikaisempaa sosiaalisemmaksi, ja hänet valittiin viimeisenä vuonna koulun johtajatytöksi. Se pääsi käskyttämään pikkutyttöjä, osat vaihtuivat! Tästä saat Voldemort, ja tästä matohäntä!
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 383: Rowling aloitti opinnot Exeterin yliopistossa heti Wyedeanin koulusta valmistuttuaan. Hän pääsi yliopistoon mennessään pois mielestään ahdistavasta kodista ja heittäytyi heti yliopistoelämään mukaan (kenen mukaan? Seaninko?) Rowling valitsi pääaineekseen ranskan, mutta ei menestynyt siinä erityisen hyvin. Hänen huolellisuudessaan oli toivomisen varaa, ja aikaa kului paljon muuhun kuin opiskeluun, muun muassa kahvilassa ja baareissa oleiluun. Opintoihin kuuluvan Ranskassa vietettävän vuoden Rowling kulutti opiskelemalla englantia Pariisissa.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 497: "Child labor and forced labor have no place in a developed and civilized society." Fuck of course they do! And an all-important one! However else could us monkeys in the West afford to buy new dirt cheap fashion rags every time we round the shops? What would civilized society be without trendy fashion clothes? Are we some kind of apes that use the same fur year in year out? No way Jose!
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 522: Kathryn Lee Gifford (née Epstein; born August 16, 1953) is an American television presenter, singer, songwriter, occasional actress and author. She is best known for her 15-year run (1985–2000) on the talk show Live! with Regis and Kathie Lee, which she co-hosted with Regis Philbin. She is also known for her 11-year run with Hoda Kotb, on the fourth hour of NBC's Today show (2008–2019). She has received 11 Daytime Emmy nominations and won her first Daytime Emmy in 2010 as part of the Today team. Gifford's first television role had been as Tom Kennedy's singer/sidekick on the syndicated version of Name That Tune only in the 1977–1978 season. She also occasionally appeared on the first three hours of Today and was a contributing NBC News correspondent.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 524: Kathie Lee married Paul Johnson, a composer/arranger/producer/publisher of Christian music, in 1976. After their divorce in 1982, she married sportscaster and former NFL player Frank Gifford in 1986. He died in 2015. Kathie Lee has released studio albums and written books. Kathie Lee has sold clothes made in offshore sweatshops whose living and working conditions were simply inhumane.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 535: Kathie Lee was 23 years younger than Frank. They had two children together, Cody Newton Gifford (born March 22, 1990) and Cassidy Erin Gifford (born August 2, 1993). They also shared a birthday: August 16. Frank died on August 9, 2015, from natural causes at their Greenwich, Connecticut, home at the age of 84. In 2017, she released "He Got a Chain Reaction", a very personal song Kathie Lee co-wrote (with songwriter Brett James) and dedicated to her husband. All proceeds from the song went to the international evangelical Christian humanitarian aid charity Samaritan's Purse. Frank's fat inheritance went into Kathie Lee's purse.
      xxx/ellauri103.html on line 614: Hayes on tinkimätön omatuntoaan kuunteleva urheilija. Sen tossut on tylsät kun ne eivät sano swoosh.
      xxx/ellauri104.html on line 253: Funny thing is, nobody knows why neurotransmitters are of a different level for people with "schizophrenia" and blame it on this label. Those with such illnesses were not always measured for levels of neurotransmitters, they were only assumed to have such levels of neurotransmitters by the psychiatrist who has no real medical background like that of a surgeon. To worsen it, Earthling's medical science has yet to be able to measure these levels accurately and safely! Isn't this shocking?
      xxx/ellauri104.html on line 351: Spirit body is made of photon light that is not visible by the naked human eye of your kind unless you are clairvoyant. This is also backed by holography technology that is alien to your kind. When you finally catch up with your advancement of science… especially quantum mathematics, your findings will differ from your so-called modern science.
      xxx/ellauri104.html on line 482: Saako tuota lausetta lainata? En lehtiin, kirjoihin... tms. vaan voisin sanoa mitä tarkoitan ajatuksillani... Oli lyhyesti paljon asiaa...
      xxx/ellauri104.html on line 792: Lyhyesti sanoen se on moderneista naisista toissa vuosisadan vaihteessa käytetty voimasana, jolla niitä koitettiin Freudin voimin pitää hellan ja nyrkin välissä. Kohtua käytettiin tässä vain vitun peitesanana. Hysteriadiagnoosit ampaisivat kasvuun 1800-luvun lopulla Sigmund Freudin keksimien teorioiden saavuttaman suosion myötä. Myöhempi tutkimus on paljastanut, että moni Freudin hysteriapotilaista sairasti todellisuudessa somaattista sairautta, jolle Freud kehitti psykoanalyyttisen selityksen. Eräs "hysteerisistä" vatsakivuista kärsinyt Freudin potilas kuoli myöhemmin vatsasyöpään, mutta Freud ei koskaan kyseenalaistanut kyseiselle potilaalle antamansa diagnoosin osuvuutta. Sillä oli sitten molemmat, Freud sanoi tehden rabbityyppisen olankohautuxen, valitettava sattuma.
      xxx/ellauri104.html on line 855: "Syntinen olin jo syntyessäni, synnin alle siinnyt äitini kohtuun." (Ps.51:7)
      xxx/ellauri104.html on line 905:
      xxx/ellauri104.html on line 937:
      xxx/ellauri104.html on line 1151: Kirkkomme on siis lähtenyt oikeaan suuntaan tarkistaessaan avioliittokäsitystään tasa-arvoisemmaxi. Mutta millä oikeudella se lähti liikkeelle tähän suuntaan jättäen taakseen Raamatun ja tunnustuskirjojen patriarkaalisen näkemyksen avioliitosta? Miten voidaan teologisesti perustella sitä, ettei ole pysytty siinä selkeässä Raamatun sanassa, joka ohjaa huoneentaulujen patriarkaalisen avioliittoetiikan? Näin kysyessämme joudumme raamattunäkemyksen ja raamatuntulkinnan perimmäisten kysymysten äärelle.
      xxx/ellauri113.html on line 37: Hawking may have a shot at Nobel prize yet. All he needs to do is reverse the flow of time and reincarnate.
      xxx/ellauri113.html on line 38: This development could open up a bizarre vision of the universe in which black holes can cough themselves into nothingness, Hawking said during recent lectures on the BBC and at Harvard. “This raises a serious problem that strikes at the heart of our understanding of science,” he said. “If determinism, the predictability of the universe, breaks down with black holes, it could break down in other situations,” he said. “Even worse, if determinism breaks down, we can’t be sure of our past history, either. The history books and our memories could just be illusions,” he said. The Nobel prize could just be an illusion, he said. Two years later he died.
      xxx/ellauri113.html on line 84: Ex nihilo, nihil fit – is one of the propositions to which great significance was attributed in metaphysics. The proposition is either to be viewed as just a barren tautology, nothing is nothing, or, if becoming is supposed to have real meaning in it, then, since only nothing comes from nothing, there is in fact none in it, for the nothing remains nothing in it. Becoming entails that nothing not remain nothing, but that it pass over into its other, being. – Later metaphysics, especially the Christian, rejected the proposition that out of nothing comes nothing, thus asserting a transition from nothing into being; no matter how synthetically or merely imaginatively it took this proposition, there is yet even in the most incomplete unification of being and nothing a point at which they meet, and their distinguishedness vanishes. –
      xxx/ellauri113.html on line 183:
      xxx/ellauri113.html on line 210: Although I did not know Prof. Hawking, I do have ALS, which puts me in a similar situation. He has to have someone to help him. As simple as that. Although they may use a Hoyer lift, and if he still values his privacy, he may also use a bidet rather than being wiped. This is a terribly debilitating illness, that presents new challenges at every turn.
      xxx/ellauri113.html on line 472: Pekka sanoo ettei Jeesus valinnut apostolixi kirjanoppineita. Paizi Paavalin, ton suuren juutalaisen konnamiehen, joka kyllä taisi ihan valita ize izensä. Se oli Pekankin ratkaisu, kun äänestäjät äänestivät jaloillaan. David Berlinski laski että matka virtahevosta behemotixi oli yhtä pitkä kuin kuplafolkkarista U-Bootixi. (VW valmisti sodan aikaan lentokonemoottoreita, muttei U-Booteja.) Mutta Berlinskin matematiikka oli lyhyempi vielä kuin Valtaojan, vajaan vuoden pituinen. Se suuttui varmaan biologeille kun ne heitti sen Columbiasta pihalle.
      xxx/ellauri113.html on line 478: After his PhD, Berlinski was a research assistant in the Department of Biology at Columbia University for less than one year. He has taught philosophy, mathematics and English at Stanford University, Rutgers, the City University of New York and the Université de Paris [citation needed]. He was a research fellow at the International Institute for Applied Systems Analysis (IIASA) in Austria and the Institut des Hautes Études Scientifiques (IHES) in France [citation needed. Maybe it is all a bunch of lies.]
      xxx/ellauri113.html on line 484: An opponent of biological evolution, Berlinski is a senior fellow of the Discovery Institute's Center for Science and Culture, a Seattle-based think tank that is a hub of the pseudoscientific intelligent design movement. Berlinski shares the movement's rejection of the evidence for evolution, but does not openly avow intelligent design and describes his relationship with the idea as: "warm but distant. It's the same attitude that I display in public toward my ex-wives." Berlinski is a critic of evolution, yet, "Unlike his colleagues at the Discovery Institute,...[he] refuses to theorize about the origin of life." Vitun jutku, ei niihin ole luottamista, jeesuxen murhaajiin.
      xxx/ellauri113.html on line 498: We have no evidence about what the first step in making life was, but we do know the kind of step it must have been. It must have been whatever it took to get natural selection started . . . by some process as yet unknown.
      xxx/ellauri113.html on line 558:
      yellow;float:right;width:40%;font-family:sans-serif;padding:1em">
      xxx/ellauri113.html on line 582: Ei linnut ole tulleet dinosauruxista, ajatelkaa itte. Kyllä te pystytte siihen. Juutalaiset on vixuja, koska ne epäilevät kaikkea. Jeesusta ennen kaikkea. Isoja dinosauruxia ei otettu arkkiin mukaan, jumala löi arkin oven kiinni niiden nenän edestä. Kevyesti mahtui, Nooan pojille Seemille Haamille ja Jaafetille jäi tilaa pelata jalkapalloa. Dinosauruxia oli vielä keskiajalla. Siis mitä? Jotain dinoja kai sitten livahti ovenraosta kun jumalan silmä vältti.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 80: Yksi jumaluuskompleksin riivaama artisti on Kanye West. Vuonna 2008 räppäri ilmoitti haastattelussa olevansa kuin astia, jonka Jumala on valinnut äänekseen ja viestiensä välittäjäksi. Seuraavana vuonna hän sanoi: ”Jumala valitsi minut. Hän teki minulle polun. Suurin tuskani elämässäni on, että en voi koskaan nähdä itseäni esiintymässä livenä. Olen Warhol. Olen numero yksi, kaikkein vaikuttavin meidän sukupolvemme taiteilija. Olen lihaxikkaaxi tullut Shakespeare, Walt Disney. Nike. Google.”
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 132: Buried penis (also known as hidden penis or retractile penis) is a congenital or acquired condition, in which the penis is partially or completely hidden below the surface of the skin. It was first described by Edward Lawrence Keyes in 1919 as the apparent absence of the penis and as being buried beneath the skin of the abdomen, thigh, or scrotum. Further research was done by Maurice Campbell in 1951 when he reported on the penis being buried beneath subcutaneous fat of the scrotum, perineum, hypogastrium, and thigh. A buried penis can lead to obstruction of urinary stream, poor hygiene, soft tissue infection, phimosis, and inhibition of normal sexual function.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 142: Ahtaalle esinahalle voi itse antaa kotihoitoa, kun kyseessä ei ole lapsi. Lapselle tehtynä se on rikoslain alainen asia. Tämä tapahtuu kevyesti sormilla hieromalla ja venyttelemällä nahkaa taakse kohti peniksen tyveä. Lapsille venyttämismenetelmää ei kuitenkaan ole suositeltava käyttää.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 272: Elam’s capital city, Susa, was one of the world’s first post flood cities, and was a regional center off and on for many centuries before being destroyed by Ashurbanipal, the last of the great Assyrian Kings, in 647 BC. As was the custom of Assyrian kings, he removed many of the surviving Elamites from their homeland. He took them to the former Northern Kingdom of Israel, which had been conquered by Assyria 74 years earlier, where they were resettled among the Israelites who remained there.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 274: THAT WAS ONLY THE BEGINNING. But this did not fulfill Jeremiah’s prophecy, which wouldn’t even be given for at least another 50 years. Susa was rebuilt, only to be conquered again, this time by the Persian King Cyrus. It was rebuilt again and renovated by King Darius the Great to serve as the capital of the Persian Empire. Susa was mentioned in Daniel 8:2 as the location where the prophet received a vision recorded in Daniel 8 of the subsequent conquest of the Persian Empire by Alexander the Great. This prophecy was fulfilled two hundred years later when Susa surrendered without a battle to Alexander.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 277: WHO ARE THESE PEOPLE? A case can be made for the view that “Persian” and “Elamite” are not two names for the same people but that having conquered Elam, Persia became the successor to Elam, whose original inhabitants, as Jeremiah’s prophecy indicates, have been scattered to the four winds and absent from the pages of history for over 2,500 years. Evidence of the difference in origin between the Elamites and the Persians came from the mouth of none other than Persian King Darius the Great who said, “I am Darius, the great king, the king of kings, the king of many countries and many people, the king of this expansive land, the son of Wishtaspa of Achaemenid, Persian, the son of a Persian, ‘Aryan’, from the Aryan race” (From Darius the Great’s Inscription in Naqshe-e-Rostam).
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 285: WHAT HAPPENED TO ELAM? There’s no record of a re-emergence of the Elamites since the Persian conquest 2500 years ago. Some say Jeremiah 49:39 is currently being fulfilled through the Iranians. They say this partly because Iran’s primary nuclear facilities are in the area once called Elam. Its recently completed nuclear reactor in Bushehr lies on the eastern shore of the Persian Gulf in the heart of ancient Elam. If that’s the case then God’s restoration of Elam’s fortunes is both brief and haphazard, its stated purpose is opposed to God’s plan for Israel, and it is doomed to end in even more destruction.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 288: I think it’s reasonable to expect prophecies that have only been partially fulfilled in history to have their ultimate fulfilment in our future. The idea that a partial historical fulfilment points to a complete future fulfilment is a well established principle in the Bible. Two examples we’ve reviewed recently are Isaiah 17 and Psalm 83. The literal and complete fulfilment of these prophecies has not happened yet.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 338: 400 years later, the Babylonians came as the Lord’s instrument of judgment against Israel. Edom, Moab, and Ammon all cheered for Babylon and made plans to carve up the Promised Land for themselves after the Babylonians carried Israel into captivity. This displeased the Lord and He had the Babylonians destroy them as well. Moab and Ammon ceased to exist as nations at that time (Ezekiel 25:10).
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 339: Edom was first welcomed as an ally in the Babylonian conquest of Judah, but Babylon soon turned on them and conquered them, too (Obadiah 1:7-9). God repaid Edom’s treachery against Israel (Obadiah 1:10-14) with Babylon’s treachery against Edom. The Edomites were destroyed and their lands were taken over by the Nabateans, a desert tribe from the south.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 341: So Edom, Moab, and Ammon ceased to be nations at about the same time that Judah was carried off to Babylon. After 70 years of captivity, Israel was restored. In Jeremiah 48:47 the Lord promised one day to restore the fortunes of Moab as well, and in Jeremiah 49:6 He made the same promise to Ammon. But He made no such promise to Edom.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 343: EDOM, MOAB, AND AMMON IN THE END TIMES. Edom, Moab, and Ammon are listed in Psalm 83:6-7 among the participants in a scheme to destroy Israel and erase it’s name from people’s memories. By most accounts this battle has never taken place and will most likely be one of the next events on the prophetic horizon. The psalmist’s prayer is that the Lord will cause them to perish in disgrace.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 350: Rev. 12:13-17 tells us that after Satan is confined to Earth he will go after “the woman”, symbolic of Israel. But the woman will be given the wings of a great eagle, enabling her to flee into the desert to a place prepared for her, where she will be taken care of for a time, times and half a time, which is 3 ½ years, the duration of the Great Tribulation. This agrees with Matt. 24:15-21 where the Lord warned the believing remnant of Israel to flee to the mountains to escape the Great Tribulation. The closest mountains to Jerusalem are in Moab and Edom.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 352: And concerning the time of the 2nd coming, Isaiah wrote: Who is this coming from Edom, from Bozrah, with his garments stained crimson? Who is this, robed in splendor, striding forward in the greatness of his strength? “It is I, proclaiming victory, mighty to save.” Why are your garments red, like those of one treading the winepress? “I have trodden the winepress alone; from the nations no one was with me. I trampled them in my anger and trod them down in my wrath; their blood spattered my garments, and I stained all my clothing. It was for me the day of vengeance; the year for me to redeem had come. I looked, but there was no one to help, I was appalled that no one gave support; so my own arm achieved salvation for me, and my own wrath sustained me. I trampled the nations in my anger; in my wrath I made them drunk and poured their blood on the ground”
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 357: Combining these prophecies we have the anti-Christ, now indwelt by Satan, determined to rid the world of God’s people once and for all. Heeding the Lord’s 2,000 year old warning, the believing remnant will flee to the mountains of Edom where the city of Petra has been standing empty for centuries, as if in preparation. The phrase “wings of a great eagle” in Rev. 12:14 is reminiscent of Exodus 19:4 where the Lord used the same phrase to describe the way he delivered Israel from the Egyptians. This implies the same kind of supernatural assistance, such as when Satan spews out a river of water to sweep the woman away. But the Lord will open the earth to swallow the river and save the woman. This will enrage Satan, but he will leave the woman and go after other followers of Jesus (Rev. 12:15-17).
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 365: We always spent a day in Petra, as well. We traveled south from Amman down the eastern side of the Dead Sea, through ancient Moab and into Edom. As we journeyed south we soon found ourselves in desert country, but it’s still far from being a wasteland. The highway was wide and well maintained, with light to moderate traffic in both directions, and we passed through several villages with pleasant rest stops before reaching Petra.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 370: Here’s another hint that Moab and Ammon will yet fall back under the control of Israel. And Edom will receive an extra portion of the Lord’s wrath:
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 371: My sword has drunk its fill in the heavens; see, it descends in judgment on Edom, the people I have totally destroyed. The sword of the Lord is bathed in blood, it is covered with fat—the blood of lambs and goats, fat from the kidneys of rams. For the Lord has a sacrifice in Bozrah and a great slaughter in the land of Edom. And the wild oxen will fall with them, the bull calves and the great bulls. Their land will be drenched with blood, and the dust will be soaked with fat.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 373: For the Lord has a day of vengeance, a year of retribution, to uphold Zion’s cause. Edom’s streams will be turned into pitch, her dust into burning sulfur; her land will become blazing pitch! It will not be quenched night or day; its smoke will rise forever. From generation to generation it will lie desolate; no one will ever pass through it again. The desert owl and screech owl will possess it; the great owl and the raven will nest there. God will stretch out over Edom the measuring line of chaos and the plumb line of desolation (Isaiah 34:5-11).
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 444:
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 544: Susan Mayeria kuvaillaan sarjassa Kotirouvien päivänpannut "onnettomuusalttiiksi" kömpelöksi, sekä huono-onniseksi. Näyttelijä Teri Hatcher kuvaili Susania "ei sulavakäytöksiseksi" ja "vähiten onnekkaan ihmisen jonka haluta tavata." Hänellä "on harvoin kömmähdys-vapaata hetkeä... ja kun vaikuttaa siltä että asiat ovat hänen kannalta hyvin, hän tekee jotain kamalaa joka pilaa kaiken." Susanin alttius huonolle tuurille ja noloille tilanteille on luonut useita sarjan muistettavimpia hetkiä, mukaan lukien Edie Brittin talon palaminen ja oman kotinsa ulkopuolelle lukkiutuminen täysin alasti. Susan on myös tunteellisesti hyvin yritteliäs ja toivoton romantikko. Sarjassa hän on kuvaillut itseään ihmiseksi, joka antaa aina romanttisten fantasioiden vallata itsensä. Hän tukeutuu vahvasti miehiin, ja miehet tunkeutuvat häneen, jonka todistaa Edien laskelma, että Susan vietti vain 41 päivää sinkkuna high schoolissa ja collegessa. Sarjan alkaessa Susanin erosta on kulunut vuosi, "mutta hän on silti itkuinen ja haavoittuva sotku" ja hänen itseluottamuksensa on "täysin pilalla." Hatcher kuvailee Susania sarjan alussa "haparoivaksi ja haavoittuvaksi." Useat sarjan hahmot ovat kohdanneet Susanin kyvyn olla elämättä onnellisesti ilman draamaa. Susanin kokkaustaidoista on tullut alituinen vitsailun aihe sarjan alusta alkaen. Brokenwoodin Kristin tekee pahaa kahvia, virkaveljet kuiskuttavat toisilleen. Älä juo!
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 558: Jeriko. Aaprahammi oli amoriini, ehkä Jeesuskin. Puratu on Eufrat. Susanin ajoista oli kulunut ikäänkuin iäisyys. Olikohan Apilaserin Shushshu sekin Soshana? Susan Mayeria esittävä Teri on (ja oli) perseestä. Yhtä viehättävä kuin aasin leukaluu.
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 674: The term shibboleth originates from the Hebrew word shibbólet (שִׁבֹּלֶת‎), which means the part of a plant containing grain, such as the head of a stalk of wheat or rye; or less commonly but arguably more appositely (selvennä!) "flood, torrent".
      xxx/ellauri114.html on line 766: The curse of Ham (actually placed upon Ham's son Canaan) occurs in the Book of Genesis, imposed by the patriarch Noah. It occurs in the context of Noah's drunkenness and is provoked by a shameful act perpetrated by Noah's son Ham, who "saw the nakedness of his father". The exact nature of Ham's transgression and the reason Noah cursed Canaan when Ham had sinned have been debated for over 2,000 years.
      xxx/ellauri116.html on line 62: Hyttyet, anatarkati anottuna ja ehkä lieväti, ovat vain tuholaiia ​​ihmiille, ja niiden tyypilliet kevät- ja keähampaidat aiheuttavat kipua, kutinaa ja turvotuta ueimmia ihmiiä
      xxx/ellauri116.html on line 274: While the novel takes place exclusively within the confines of the family home in Lima, it is clear that they enjoy a seemingly normal relationship with the outside world: business associates, friends, and school. Don Rigoberto, the head of the household, is the manager of an insurance company. A widower, he marries Lucrecia, a forty-year-old divorcee. Dona Lucrecia enjoys the fruits of her privileged lifestyle; during the day she directs the household staff, goes shopping, plays bridge, and attends to the care of Don Rigoberto's son, the angelic looking Alfonso, a prepubescent boy of indeterminate age.
      xxx/ellauri116.html on line 276: At night, she partakes of her husband's rich sexual rituals and fantasies and is a passive yet willing partner to his imaginative sensual flights of fancy and constant experimentation. Dona Lucrecia, a warm, sensual...
      xxx/ellauri116.html on line 278: Chapters 2, 5, 7, 9, 12, and 14 contain a color print of a famous painting accompanied by a narration, each from a separate voice. Vizi takuulla mä kynäilin jotain sarkastista tostakin. Rigoberto, Lucrecia, Alfonso, and perhaps even Justiniana, all become the protagonist/narrator of one of the paintings by Jordaenes, Boucher, Titian, Francis Bacon, Fernando de Szyszlo, and Fra Angelico. This rather heterogenous collection of prints share the fact that they could be viewed as depicting various aspects of sensuality, from the voyeuristic to the immaculate.
      xxx/ellauri116.html on line 291: Vargas Llosa lived with his maternal family in Arequipa until a year after his parents' divorce, when his maternal grandfather was named honorary consul for Peru in Bolivia. With his mother and her family, Vargas Llosa then moved to Cochabamba, Bolivia, where he spent the early years of his childhood. His maternal family, the Llosas, were sustained by his grandfather, who managed a cotton farm.
      xxx/ellauri116.html on line 295: While in Piura, Vargas Llosa attended elementary school at the religious academy Colegio Salesiano. In 1946, at the age of ten, he moved to Lima and met his father for the first time. His parents re-established their relationship and lived in Magdalena del Mar, a middle-class Lima suburb, during his teenage years. While in Lima, he studied at the Colegio La Salle, a Christian middle school, from 1947 to 1949. Isä taisi olla aika limaska, eipä paljon muuta Markolle kuin limamälli.
      xxx/ellauri116.html on line 299: In 1953, during the government of Manuel A. Odría, Vargas Llosa enrolled in Lima's National University of San Marcos, to study law and literature. He married Julia Urquidi, his maternal uncle's sister-in-law, in 1955 at the age of 19; she was 10 years older.
      xxx/ellauri116.html on line 303: Vargas Llosa began his literary career in earnest in 1957 with the publication of his first short stories, "The Leaders" ("Los jefes") and "The Grandfather" ("El abuelo"), while working for two Peruvian newspapers. Upon his graduation from the National University of San Marcos in 1958, he received a scholarship to study at the Complutense University of Madrid in Spain. In 1960, after his scholarship in Madrid had expired, Vargas Llosa moved to France under the impression that he would receive a scholarship to study there; however, upon arriving in Paris, he learned that his scholarship request was denied. Despite Mario and Julia's unexpected financial status, the couple decided to remain in Paris where he began to write prolifically. Their marriage lasted only a few more years, ending in divorce in 1964. A year later, Vargas Llosa married his first cousin, Patricia Llosa, with whom he had three children: Álvaro (born 1966), a writer and editor; Gonzalo (born 1967), an international civil servant; and Fata Morgana (born 1974), a pornographer.
      xxx/ellauri116.html on line 389: Take, for example, 16-year-old Bianca Bienenfeld, a student of de Beauvoir’s who was 14 years her junior. Soon after the two women began their affair, de Beauvoir introduced her lover to Sartre. He promptly made it his mission to seduce Bienenfeld. After a romantic entanglement between the three of them, de Beauvoir told Sartre to end it, which he abruptly did in a letter.
      xxx/ellauri116.html on line 395: Bienenfeld may be an extreme example, but she’s not atypical. Sartre tended to treat younger romantic prospects (all of whom were female) more as conquests than partners, spending months or years persuading them to get into bed with him and then bouncing off to regale “the Beaver” with details.
      xxx/ellauri116.html on line 397: In her same-gender partnerships, de Beauvoir tended to be exploitative. There was the painful entanglement with Bienenfeld described earlier, for example, and an affair with Natalie Sorokine, a 17-year-old student, which cost de Beauvoir her teaching license.
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 42: Lytton is a village in British Columbia, Canada, and sits at the confluence of the Thompson River and Fraser River on the east side of the Fraser. The location has been inhabited by the Nlaka'pamux people for over 10,000 years. It was one of the earliest locations occupied by non-Indigenous settlers in the Southern Interior of British Columbia. It was founded during the Fraser Canyon Gold Rush of 1858–59, when it was known as "The Forks". The community includes the Village of Lytton and the surrounding community of the Lytton First Nation, whose name for the place is Camchin, also spelled Kumsheen ("river meeting").
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 46: Lytton was on the route of the Fraser Canyon Gold Rush in 1858. The same year, Lytton was named after Edward Bulwer-Lytton, the British Colonial Secretary and a novelist. For many years Lytton was a stop on major transportation routes, namely, the River Trail from 1858, Cariboo Wagon Road in 1862, the Canadian Pacific Railway in the 1880s, the Cariboo Highway in the 1920s, and the Trans Canada Highway in the 1950s. However, it has become much less important since the construction of the Coquihalla Highway in 1987 which uses a more direct route to the BC Interior.
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 64: No, Freud was rong! Many basic tenets of Freud’s theory have been completely disproved. To name several: Psychosexual stages. The Oedipal complex. Belief that repressed memories from the first year of life can be unearthed. Sexual fantasy about intercourse with a parent is responsible for hysteria. Even more damning, his methods and procedures cannot be called scientific, his evidence lacks scientific credibility, and what is offered as evidence was sometimes fudged, if not outright fabricated. Not surprisingly, Freud is absented from contemporary psychological pedagogy, theory, and research. Claiming, “Freud is right!” is akin to shouting, “Long live the king!”; historical curiosities, both.
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 70: Edward Bernays was the nephew of Freud. His mother was Freud’s sister and his father was Freud’s wife’s brother. Born in 1891, and brought to the United States with his family in the first year of his life, Bernays injected his uncle’s insights into the very marrow and bloodstream of American culture, altering its pulse and functioning—along with the rest of the world. He did so using the unique means and methods of American culture to achieve its most valued end: Cash. Life magazine named Bernays one of the 100 most influential Americans of the 20th century.
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 72: Reason is a weak voice, easily overwhelmed by our desires, or employed, along with various other means, as a defense to protect us from awareness of the real, base motives that drive our thoughts and actions. This is Freud’s foundational vision of the human psyche. It is unflattering, if not repugnant, and basically Wright.
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 235: Tormented by his guilty conscience, Dimmesdale goes to the square where Hester was punished years earlier. Climbing the scaffold in the dead of night, he admits his guilt but cannot find the courage to do so publicly in the light of day. Hester, shocked by Dimmesdale's deterioration, decides to obtain a release from her vow of silence to her husband.
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 239: After several years, Hester returns to her cottage and resumes wearing the scarlet letter. When she dies, she is buried near the grave of Dimmesdale, and they share a simple slate tombstone engraved with an escutcheon described as: "On a field, sable, the letter A, gules" ("A red letter A written on a black background"). Ingan vaakunassa on hassu jellona kieli ulkona kuin Hanna Montanalla sinisellä taustalla.
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 247: Palvelukeskuksen lakisääteisen tehtävänsä mukaisesti antamat suositukset eivät kuitenkaan ole velvoittavia, ja kukin valtion virasto tai laitos päättää lopulta itsenäisesti menojen hyväksymisestä. Tarkastusvirastossa kyseiset menot onkin palvelukeskuksen suosituksesta huolimatta hyväksytty. Tarkastusvirastossa on myös asiaan liittyen laadittu vuonna 2019 ohjeistus, jonka mukaan kampaamo- ja stailauspalveluita voidaan maksaa viraston toimintamenoista viestintäpäällikön harkinnan mukaan.
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 265: Lopuksi valiokunta toteaa, että pääjohtajan toiminta on merkittävällä tavalla heikentänyt luottamusta Valtiontalouden tarkastusviraston oman taloudenhoidon asianmukaisuuteen sekä sisäisen valvonnan toimivuuteen ja vahingoittanut viraston julkikuvaa. Valiokunta katsookin, että Eduskunnan kansliatoimikunnan tulee selvittää, onko pääjohtajalla edellytyksiä eduskunnan virkamieslain mukaisesti jatkaa tehtävässään ja irtisanomisedellytysten täyttyessä saattaa asia eduskunnan täysistunnon päätettäväksi.
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 359: "Nam Sibyllam quidem Cumis ego ipse oculis meis vidi in ampulla pendere, et cum illi pueri dicerent: Sibylla ti theleis; respondebat illa: apothanein thelo." I. THE BURIAL OF THE DEAD April is the cruellest month, breeding Lilacs out of the dead land, mixing Memory and desire, stirring Dull roots with spring rain. Winter kept us warm, covering Earth in forgetful snow, feeding A little life with dried tubers. Summer surprised us, coming over the Starnbergersee With a shower of rain; we stopped in the colonnade, And went on in sunlight, into the Hofgarten, 10 And drank coffee, and talked for an hour. Bin gar keine Russin, stamm’ aus Litauen, echt deutsch. And when we were children, staying at the archduke’s, My cousin’s, he took me out on a sled, And I was frightened. He said, Marie, Marie, hold on tight. And down we went. In the mountains, there you feel free. I read, much of the night, and go south in the winter. What are the roots that clutch, what branches grow Out of this stony rubbish? Son of man, 20 You cannot say, or guess, for you know only A heap of broken images, where the sun beats, And the dead tree gives no shelter, the cricket no relief, And the dry stone no sound of water. Only There is shadow under this red rock, (Come in under the shadow of this red rock), And I will show you something different from either Your shadow at morning striding behind you Or your shadow at evening rising to meet you; I will show you fear in a handful of dust. 30 Frisch weht der Wind Der Heimat zu Mein Irisch Kind, Wo weilest du? "You gave me hyacinths first a year ago; "They called me the hyacinth girl." - Yet when we came back, late, from the Hyacinth garden, Your arms full, and your hair wet, I could not Speak, and my eyes failed, I was neither Living nor dead, and I knew nothing, 40 Looking into the heart of light, the silence. Öd’ und leer das Meer.
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 400: Veikko Nyyrikki (Nyrki) Tapiovaara (10. syyskuuta 1911 Helsingin mlk – 29. helmikuuta 1940 Tolvajärvi) oli suomalainen elokuvaohjaaja. Lyhyeksi jääneestä urastaan huolimatta häntä pidetään yhtenä taiteellisesti korkeatasoisimmista suomalaisista ohjaajista. Mixsillä oli tytönnimi keskimmäisenä? Senkö tautta siitä tuli homo? Nyrki-Kyllikki?
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 424: 28. helmikuuta pataljoona lähetti komppanian vahvuisen osaston partioretkelle Korpijärven kylään Suojärven kunnassa. Vänrikki Tapiovaaralla oli komennossaan kaksi joukkuetta, joiden oli määrä vallata Etelä-Korpijärven kylä. Osasto yllätettiin selustasta (tietysti), ja se joutui perääntymään. 29. helmikuuta eli karkauspäivänä Tapiovaara teki voimakkaan vastahyökkäyksen, mutta päätyi antamaan osastolleen vetäytymiskäskyn. (Tuttua.) Johtajan tapaan hän oli viimeinen vetäytymässä, ja hän tulitti vihollista miestensä vetäytyessä. Eräs miehistä näki Tapiovaaraan osuvan ja tämän tuupertuvan hankeen. Silminnäkijöiden mukaan hän kohosi vielä kerran ja ampui pitkän sarjan viholliseen. Tämän jälkeen kukaan ei osannut kertoa mitään varmaa, jolloin ilmeisesti syntyi olettamus Tapiovaaran katoamisesta tai vangiksi joutumisesta. Olettamus ei kuitenkaan osoittautunut todeksi. Sarrrrja! Sarrrja! Laukaus Laukaus! Nyrki kuoli kuten elikin.
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 429:
      xxx/ellauri120.html on line 451: on sulla hautajaiset, mulla häät. nekem menyegzőm lesz, neked torod.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 55: Pienryhmäisiäkin kazomuxia on koitettava ymmärtää, esim. muslimeita, vaikka se on kyllä vaikeaa. Luontosuhteen köyhtyminen luonnon köyhtyessä on iso ongelma. Teodiversiteetti lasten kazomuxissa olisi säilytettävä, sanovat Heini ja Sylvia. Toteutuuko lasten uskonnonvapaus? Lapsi sakraalitilassa on hankala asia: antakaa lasten tulla tyköni kaikin mokomin, mutta kazokaa ettei ne juoxentele sakraalitiloissa, koske pyhiin esineisiin eikä pidä mekkalaa. Sellaisia kansalaistaitoja.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 60:
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 107: Viimeöisessä unessa mulla oli blondi tyttö jolla oli ponnari joka oikeasti näytti tykkäävän jostain syystä musta. Sillä oli veli ja vanhemmat jotka oli jotain rikkaita. Me oltiin ulkomailla ökylomalla ja meidän piti mennä jonnee kaupungille ostoxille. Mun piti pukeutua sika pikana. Sitku me lähettiin jollain mönkijällä mä istuin sen tytön sylissä. Ja sitmä huomasin ettei mulla ollut shorzeja. Ne oli unohtuneet kämpille. Pelkät kalsarit. Tyttö nauroi ja kun kazoin tarkemmin olihan mulla ne, katkaistut vanhat farkut. Muzit huomasin et kengät puuttui. Sama juttu, oli mulla ne mutta voi, ne oli puukengät samaa paria, 2 vasemman jalan klopoa kuin Eikka Erixonilla. Hollannikkaat, sellaiset kuin me saatiin Tanskassa. Pane puukengät jalkaan se on lyhyempi lause. Peit klop. Tyttöä nauratti taas sikana. Siihen heräsin. Pikkuveitikka oli kovana. Hän oli ylösnoussut, vaikka tosin vain katoavaxi hetkexi. Seijan tukka on samalla lailla kuin lentoemäntä Natashalla. Hipaisin Seija kättä. Se heräsi ja ihmetteli: mistäs päin nyt tuulee?
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 289: Peggy kävi kotikoulua. Sen vanhemmat pakkas sen selkäreppuun lähtiessään mezään hyönteisjahtiin. Perhosten nappaajat. She only attended full-time school at eight, in Toronto. Readers of Cat's Eye (1988), a chilling account of the lasting damage of childhood bullying, might expect that these years were problematic, but apart from a fleeting reference to "a horrific Grade 4 teacher" there is no suggestion that Atwood was especially unhappy, though she did recently write that "I was now faced with real life, in the form of other little girls - their prudery and snobbery, their Byzantine social life based on whispering and vicious gossip, and an inability to pick up earthworms without wriggling all over and making mewing noises like a kitten". Mä koitin opettaa Helmiä olemaan inhoomatta matoja 2-vuotiaana. Inhoo se niitä kuitenkin vaikkon biologi. Ja Seija ei voi sietää käärmeitä, se näkee kuumina öinä niistä unia. KKK-äijät marssi kadulla 20-luvulla kuin kihomadot. Niitä kiemurteli valkoisina ruskeiden kiekuroiden kimpussa kakkapotassa kun oltiin pieniä.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 291: Her early years of winter school had taught her that it's possible to go through the entire year's curriculum in a month. As a result, she advanced quickly, and there was an awkward period when she was in a class of much older children: "They shouldn't have done that. I was 12 in the first year of high school and there were people in my class who were 15-and-a-half." That surely taught her a lot, a likely model of The Red House in Handmaid's Tale. She was tired a lot and developed a heart condition, inherited from her father, in which the heart beat is irregular, almost syncopated. Her verbal rendition of the rhythms is hard to transcribe, but these lines from one of her early poems, "Faulty Heart", capture it:
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 299: She thinks Moby Dick was a great masterpiece. Figures. She got engaged to James "Jay" Ford, a fellow student, in 1963, but by Easter the following year, she also met Jim Polk, a sensitive, witty graduate student from Montana whom she would marry in 1967. Polk’s recollections of Atwood are instructive and often amusing. He recalls one costume party at Harvard where she came disguised as Cleopatra’s breast.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 306: Atwood’s career as a graduate student stretched, with many interruptions, for half a dozen years. During that period she had an affair with Quebec poet D. G. Jones— which Sullivan mentions so obliquely that it is over before the reader realizes it has begun. She had broken it off, as a result of the stresses caused by his workload. She subsequently courted Jim Polk (an American writer she had met at Harvard) and, in January 1967, she decided to marry him "after five years of equivocation". She also worked at odd jobs including market researcher like Fred Waterford, and despite never finishing her PhD, began a university teaching career that would take her to cities across Canada. At 27, she became the youngest person to ever win the Governor General’s Award with her 1967 poetry collection, The Circle Game. Siitä nousi sille aika lailla kusi päähän.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 308: In the early 70s, Atwood added considerably to her work as a teacher and writer by editing manuscripts for the cutting-edge nationalist publisher The House of Anansi. By then, her marriage to Polk was over (Sullivan is vague about why, offering mainly generalities about the difficulty of staying together in that morally freewheeling era. Fact is, Jim Polk was not enough of a handyman for manly Margaret.) In 1972, Atwood met Gibson, a novelist and cultural activist whose own marriage was crumbling. The two began an affair, meeting at first clandestinely in the basement office of Toronto’s Longhouse Bookshop, but soon living together—for several years on a working farm north of the city.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 312: He too was an author of novels, none of which ever came close to having the kind of success Ms Atwood has always enjoyed, but Gibson himself would have said his greatest success was the support he gave his partner during one of the most amazing careers any writer has ever had, in Canada or in any country. His support was unstinting and inspiring, and allied to it was a conviction that Atwood’s greatness demanded that kind of commitment.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 323: James "Jim" Polk was the long time editorial director of House of Anansi Press and edited two books by Charles Taylor, as well as work by Margaret Atwood, George Grant, Northrop Frye, and many others. With a literature PhD (which Peggy never finished) he has taught at Harvard, Idaho, Ryerson and Alberta, and has written a comic novel, a stage comedy about Canadian publishing, articles, short stories, and criticism about Canadian writers and writing. As an advisor at the Ontario Ministry of Culture, he worked on grants for theatre and books, developed a tax credit for publishers and remodelled the Trillium Book Prize to include Franco Ontarian writing. He lives in Toronto and, trained as a pianist, still practices daily, playing classics and show-tunes in seclusion.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 336: Atwood has not won the Nobel (this was written 1998), at least not yet. But the petite 58-year-old novelist (Cat’s Eye, Alias Grace) and poet (Power Politics, Morning in the Burned House) has become internationally famous on a scale no Canadian writer of serious literature ever has. She is, in her own words, “one of the few literary writers who has gotten lucky”—which means she is read not just by intellectuals, but by hairdressers, chartered accountants and farmers. Easy reading, straightforward sentiments.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 344: Sullivan rightly traces Atwood’s notable self-confidence to those early years, but she also ignores the hints in her own narrative that Atwood’s family, like any other, had its neurotic tics—and that Atwood certainly carried her own share of psychic stress into adulthood. Where else does the buried grief, anger and sense of calamity in her writing come from?
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 358: Peg on muistavinaan että jonkun nazin morsian olisi ollut keskitysleirin pihalla bikineissä kissalasit päässä. Hmm. Although two-piece bathing suits were being used by women as early as the 1930s, the bikini is commonly dated to July 5, 1946 when, partly due to material rationing after World War II. Cat eye glasses first became popular in the 1950s with their feline inspired style. A huge contrast to the frames that had been in fashion previously, cat eye glasses marked a new era of chic style for women. The glasses were originally created to be worn only with optical lenses, but it was the hugely famous actress Audrey Hepburn that kicked off the trend for cat eye sunglasses after her starring role in 1961 hit film Breakfast at Tiffanys. Eli selkeästi joku anakronismi, sodanjälkeisiä muoteja. Platform shoes oli kyllä muotia 30-40-luvuilla. Mitä vittua on "sen ajan painokuvahatut?" Ei takuulla ollut 40-luvun muotia, mitä sitten ovatkaan. Ja sit toi älytön Nolite te bastardes carborundorum josta on ollut useaankin otteeseen syytä marista.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 367: Komentaja on Junesta siitä mukava että se ei ole naisvihamielinen kuten jopa Luke. Se on pikemminkin niinkuin iskä hyönteishemuli. Kun Peggy kunnostautuu ritiratissa sanalla zeugiitti eli ateenalainen iesmies komentaja on suorastaan iloinen, ja Peggy on läpeensä tyytyväinen. Peg pitää vanhemmista miehistä. Leffan luikero Fred (1970) ei oikein täytä roolia, parrasta huolimatta se näyttää melkein nuoremmalta kuin June (1982). Jatko-osien Joosepin näyttelijä on enempi kuin kirjan Fred. Hassua että Fredin nimi on oikeasti Jooseppi! Joseph is the younger brother of Harry Potter. Speaking to The Guardian about becoming a parent in 2016, Joseph said: "Becoming a parent has made me more aware of the role my parents played in my life, in all our lives." Jäätävää. Onko Peggy lapsivihamielinen, välillä se kuulostaa aika kylmältä.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 369: "Vihaan lapsia. Ne ovat niin inhimillisiä, tuovat mieleen apinat. SAKI". Whodat? Munro, skotl. lehtimies ja kirjailija. Hector Hugh Munro (18 December 1870 – 14 November 1916), better known by the pen name Saki and also frequently as H. H. Munro, was a British writer whose witty, mischievous and sometimes macabre stories satirize Edwardian society and culture. After his wife's death Charles Munro sent his children, including two-year-old Hector, home to England. The children were sent to Broadgate Villa, in Pilton near Barnstaple, North Devon, to be raised by their grandmother and paternal maiden aunts, Charlotte and Augusta, in a strict and puritanical household. A war fanatic, he was killed by a German sniper. According to several sources, his last words were "Put that bloody cigarette out!" Munro was homosexual at a time when in Britain sexual activity between men was a crime. (Mä ARRVASIN! Sen se oli näkönenkin.)
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 372: Komentaja Fred on Rousseau tyyppinen päältäkazelija, siihenkin on joku ritiratisana, muu kuin voyeur. Lisää tietoa löytyy Men's Health palstalta (ei kuitenkaan ko. sanaa).
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 381: Shoe fetishism, foot fetishism, butt fetishism, bondage, voyeurism.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 441: Amerikassa oikeasti pidetään rukousriehoja. Nimi ei ole prayvaganza kuten Käsineidossa, vaan prayerfest. Multian telttakokouxia, syysjuhlia. Paljon eroa. Pääesiintyjät ja rahan kaseeraajat ovat miehiä, maxumiehet naisia. Tietysti, nainen vaietkoon seurakunnassa (paizi rukousälämölöä), kun mies paistaa ohrarieviä vasta rakentamallaan uunilla. Hyvin ovat pullat uunissa.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 445: Prayerfest 2021: The Power of Prayer is a unique opportunity to come together in prayer, intercession and worship. On Friday, July 30, expect to encounter God through times of repentance, reflection, remembrance and reconciliation. Throughout Prayerfest, prepare for diverse worship expressions, dynamic messages and times of prayer that will connect you with the heart of God and with others!
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 448: yerfest.net/wp-content/uploads/2019/12/kneeling_warrior-2000x831.jpg" width="50%" />
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 454: As we get ready for Prayerfest each year, we prepare our hearts by taking a 40-Day Prayer Journey. We invite you to join us during this time of prayer and fasting as you prepare for YOUR miracle. To access your copy of the following free resources from our Lead Pastor, Dr. David Ireland, simply click the button below! Yea, that little one, between your legs!
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 456: Spiritual warfare. Looking Back at Prayerfest 2019, we experienced a powerful move of God while crying out to Him for all generations. To see the recap and full video, click here. He moved, yea, a powerful move, he turned over and snored on. But trust us, we guys will show you some moves! Back and forth! In and out! Thou wilt feel some miracles coming!
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 472: Prayerfest is a one-day festival of prayer. In an atmosphere of passionate worship, fervent praying and powerful preaching, unique expressions of the Holy Spirit are displayed that lead to an encounter with God. Over a six-week period, hundreds of people prepare themselves to meet with God at Prayerfest. God responds to the desperate cries and passionate prayers of His people on a first come-first serve basis for a holy visitation—by invading their lives with His power and glory. Here are some ways to help you prepare for this special day:
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 491: The Kneeling Warrior: Winning Your Battles Through Prayer.
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 494: Raising a Child Who Prays: Teaching Your Family the Power of Prayer
      xxx/ellauri121.html on line 495: by: Maare Tamm. Parents will be equipped with practical exercises, sample prayers, and developmentally appropriate mentoring plans that will encourage their children to pray effectively now and into adulthood.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 217: B: Sorry, I forgot you were the expert driver! How many times have you crashed in the last year?
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 363: Die Oberlausitz, oberlausitzisch: Äberlausitz, obersorbisch Hornja Łužica (niedersorbisch Górna Łužyca, tschechisch Horní Lužice, polnisch Łużyce Górne, schlesisch Aeberlausitz), ist eine ursprünglich politisch eigenständige Region, die heute zu etwa 67 % zu Sachsen sowie 30 % zu Polen und 3 % zu Brandenburg gehört. In Sachsen umfasst die Oberlausitz in etwa die Landkreise Görlitz und Bautzen mit einer nördlichen Grenze zwischen Hoyerswerda und Lauta und in Brandenburg den südlichen Teil des Landkreises Oberspreewald-Lausitz um die Stadt Ruhland sowie einige Orte östlich und südlich davon. Der seit 1945 polnische Teil der Oberlausitz zwischen den Flüssen Queis im Osten und der Lausitzer Neiße im Westen gehört administrativ zur Woiwodschaft Niederschlesien (polnisch Dolnośląskie); nur ein kleiner Zipfel um Łęknica (Lugknitz) gehört zusammen mit dem polnischen Teil der Niederlausitz zur Woiwodschaft Lebus. Im Süden entspricht die Grenze der Oberlausitz der sächsisch-tschechischen Grenze von Steinigtwolmsdorf im Westen bis nach Zittau und östlich davon der polnisch-tschechischen Grenze bis zur Tafelfichte.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 759: A: Most Europeans would know that the US has some 300 to 350 million people, yes. They would probably guess closer to 300 million, because that’s what many of them would remember from school.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 763: You should, of course, be aware that “know” doesn’t mean people think about it daily, or even yearly. Anyway, U.S. stupid white male population is just 192 million.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 777: His book is where the idea of Big Brother originated, and his messages of a restrictive government remain as insightful today as they did when they were originally written more than 60 years ago. Orwell presents readers with a vision of a haunting world that remains captivating from the beginning to end. Good sturdy Rifle Association stuff. Orwell eli Blair on reposteltu täällä.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 791: Written in 1914 and published in 1925, a year after Kafka's death, 'The Trial' tells the terrifying tale of Josef K., a bank officer who is arrested and finds himself having to defend charges that he struggles to get information on.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 796: In their early 20s the pair vacationed together on Lake Garda on the Austrian-Italian border; they paid their respects at Goethe’s house in Weimar; stayed together at the Hotel Belvedere au Lac in Lugano, Switzerland; and even visited brothels together in Prague, Milan, Leipzig, and Paris. Brod, a self-confessed ladies’ man with an insatiable appetite for adventurous sexual conquests, often berated Kafka for not having a similarly urgent drive of eros. “You avoid women and try to live without them,” Brod once told his friend.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 812: Dubbed one of the world's greatest anti-war books, 'Slaughterhouse Five' tells the story of the bombing of Dresden through the eyes of Billy Pilgrim, a man who is abducted by aliens.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 818: A frighteningly prophetic novel, 'Fahrenheit 451' is set in a dystopian future where there are no books, just smart phones. For the protagonist, Montag, it all seems normal -- until the day he gets a glimpse of the past. With a riveting plot and solid characters, the book draws readers into its imagined world. Totally outdayed. Books are being yurned inyo lampshades as we speak. Who wants them anyway, TLDR.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 822: 'A Confederacy of Dunces' was written 11 years after Toole committed suicide. Ignatius O'Reilly is a 30-year-old man living with his mother in New Orleans, who comes into contact with many French Quarter characters while searching for employment. Though comical, there is a deep streak of melancholy that runs through Reilly's character, and Toole's ability to combine these two aspects beautifully won him the Pulitzer Prize for fiction in 1981. The moral (as usual): everybody is the Steven of his or her own life. A complete turd. Supposedly funny. Parochial baloney.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 825: unemployed thirty year old with a degree in Medieval
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 839: many years in order to help his mother pay for the
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 846: frequenting movie theaters only to yell and condemn the
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 858: His work is praised for its eloquent prose, immense detail, and layered narratives. But it's just a pile of shit anyway.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 863: The book has been controversial over the years and is listed as number eight on the American Library Association's list of frequently banned classics. It's the first even halfway good book so far. Proof: it was banned in U.S. schools.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 948: 'Moonwalking with Einstein' recounts Foer's yearlong journey to improve his memory. He draws on cutting-edge research, cultural histories, and tricks from mentalists.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 956: Often considered the gateway title to other graphic novels like 'V for Vendetta' and 'Batman: The Dark Knight Returns,' the series dissects the entire concept of the superhero in a way that sticks with readers for years. Fucking superheroes, why the heck do Americans get so hot about them? Well it's all part of the American dream.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1021: Ask any five year old American girl who Barbie is and she will most likely run into her bedroom and grab Barbie off the shelf. She will frill up her mini skirt and try to make her walk in her tiny plastic heels. Excitedly, she will hold her up for you to admire.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1023: A tiny miniature woman will stand in front of your little bro, also only about six inches tall standing up. Her long blonde hair accents her sparkling blue eyes and huge white smile. Her long plastic legs bend only slightly and her pointy breasts perk out of her hot pink tank top. She doesn’t look like anything a five year old would play with, but Barbie is obviously her favorite. How does a five year old relate to Barbie? She isn’t comforting to…show more content…
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1027: Did Barbie have anything to do with shaping feminism today? Many may argue, yes, that Barbie was the one doll that broke the limits, gave girls a hope for independence and success. Barbie never did housework, she never had any children, and she was never married. It was a new American dream to females, and Barbie was the newest idol.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1029: Barbie today is close to fifty years old, but she doesn’t look a day over seventeen. Not only does her image take up entire ailses in toy stores, but she also has a boyfriend, cousins, sisters, and even a punk rock groupie band. She’s found in every little girls toy chest, and her smile still shines brightly off her her glowing rosy plastic face.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1033: Many mothers of today that were proud owners of Barbie might have thought twice before they wrapped her up to give to their three year old if they knew her history. Barbie originated in Germany by a man, named Aryan Nation. She was a direct copy of Klaus Barbie...
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1035: Just joking. The inspiration behind Barbie is a questionable one, as she was based off of Bild-Lilli, a German doll who pursued wealthy men and wore suggestive clothing, being sold in tobacco shops, bars and adult-themed toy stores. Is Barbie an insult to feminism? Japp, säger lilla Charlotte och skrattar glatt. Barbin unelmatalon asukkailla riittää pätäkkää, ne riitelevät aika lailla, ilmeilevät veikeästi ja saavat päähän tylpillä astaloilla pyörryttäviä iskuja. Hassua! Barbie is a feminist (yes, really). Barbie inventor, Ruth Handler, thought it was important for a young girl’s self-esteem to “play with a doll with breasts.” Det tycker jag också om, men varför kan Ken inte ha en jättestor ståkuk som kan blotta ollonet?
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1061: Ken (not quite heteronormal, super dumb dyed blonde,
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1080: enne. Siitä huolimatta se ei ollut jutku, vaan päinvastoin kova antisemiitti. "During the last ten years the large percentage of the more talented American writers are urban Jewish intellectuals." Etelän miestä kismitti että New Yorkin jutkut kyynärpäilivät.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1085: Capoten äiti oli 17-vuotias pojan syntyessä. Capoten
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1092: Capote was born Truman Streckfus Persons in New Orleans, Louisiana, on September 30, 1924. His father, Arch Persons, was a well-educated ne'er-do-well from a prominent Alabama family, and his mother, Lillie Mae Faulk, was a pretty and ambitious young woman so anxious to escape the confines of small-town Alabama that she married Arch in her late teens. Capote's early childhood with Arch and Lillie Mae was marked by neglect and painful insecurity that left him with a lifelong fear of abandonment. His life gained some stability in 1930 when, at age six, he was put in the care of four elderly, unmarried cousins in Monroeville, Monroe County. He lived there full-time for three years and made extended visits throughout the decade. Capote was most influenced by his cousin Sook, who adored him and whom he celebrated in his writings. He also forged what would become a lifelong friendship with next-door neighbor Nelle Harper Lee, who later won the Pulitzer Prize for her book, To Kill a Mockingbird. Capote appears in the novel as the character Dill.
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1168: romaanistaan Answered Prayers. Tarinat olivat kevyesti
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1178: kävi hänen tavaransa läpi, mutta Answered Prayersiä ei
      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1187: von Born: Valeria Valeryevna Lukyanova 1990/1991 (age 31–32), in Tiraspol, Moldavian SSR, Soviet Union (now Transnistria).

      xxx/ellauri122.html on line 1200: Lukyanova began rebelling against her father at age 13 — but she describes her style then as more goth. She rebelled against her Siberian-born grandfather and father at 13 by dyeing her hair and wearing all-black. She has always claimed her looks were never intended to attract men.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 233: In July of last year, Troy “Puppeh” Wells (m) released a Twitlonger where he explained Cinnpie (f) had initiated sexual conversations with him in 2016, when he was 14 years old. Wells is at the top of the game Smash Ultimate. Ultimate is the best-selling fighting game of all time, having sold over 23 million copies by March 2021. Cinnpie is an American streamer and gamer. She is also a renowned Esports Commentator. She is mainly famous for her Smash 4 Gameplays in Twitch.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 239: Cinnpie´s response comes after a prolonged silence on Twitter. She added a letter from her lawyers to her statement, a cease and desist to all the defamatory comments online. Creampie acknowledges that "I was an irresponsible, inappropriate, and immature 23 year old in 2016… and I deserve all of this. Sitä saa mitä tilaa. I may be a pussy pedophile, but I am not evil. I am not a crook. All I care ab is my favorite games & making my friends laugh." LOL
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 303: En ole aina ollut minimalisti. Tapasin ostella paljon asioita uskoen niiden lisäävän omanarvontunnettani ja johtavan onnellisempaan elämään. Rakastin kerätä roppakaupalla hyödytöntä roinaa, enkä kyennyt heittämään mitään pois. Hamstrasin luontevasti kaikenlaisia pikkutavaroita, joiden kuvittelin tekevän minusta mielenkiintoisen ihmisen.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 372: Weinreb grew up in Scheveningen, Netherlands, to which his family had moved in 1916, and became notorious for selling a fictitious escape route for Jews from the occupied Netherlands in the Second World War. When his scheme fell apart in 1944, he left his home in Scheveningen and went into hiding in Ede. He was imprisoned for 3½ years after the war for fraud as well as collaboration with the German occupier. In his memoirs, published in 1969 he maintained that his plans were to give Jews hope for survival and that he had assumed that the liberation of the Netherlands would take place before his customers were deported. The debate about his guilt or innocence—called the “Weinreb affair”—was very heated in the Netherlands in the 1970s, involving noted writers like Renate Rubinstein and Willem Frederik Hermans. In an attempt to end this debate, the government asked the Rijksinstituut Oorlogsdocumentatie (Netherlands institute for war documentation) to investigate the matter. in 1976 the institute issued a report (of which a part already was leaked to the press in 1973), which determined that his memoirs were "a collection of lies and fantasies," and that his collaboration had caused 70 deaths. Although his activities did contribute to some Jews' survival, most Jews who fell for Weinreb's swindle were deported and killed.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 551: Instructions on a well-lived life for dropouts and losers, courtesy of a 25-year-old teen movie. Tää netistä vahingossa löytynyt plokkari Niklas Käki selkeästi maalittaa Isokynä-Lindholmin laulussaan tarkoittamia säälittäviä häviäjiä, löysiä kukkoja ja kanoja.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 567: In the ten years since I wrote them down, I have broken every single one of my rules. And yet, I’m still glad I wrote that list. You know why? Because the idea that I wanted to live by some rules — despite not knowing which ones or how or why — was enough.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 577: Like don´t fuck 14 year olds or under unless you really need to, like Creampie, Hermann Aistrich, or Humbert Humbert. Wikipedian mukaan H. oli frog, kirjassa sen isä on sveiziläis-itävaltalainen ja äiti britti. Sen brittipastoriesi-isät harrasti paleopedologiaa ja tuulikanteleita. P. ei ole sitä mitä luulisi vaan muinaisten kyntövakojen tutkimusta.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 579: Such rules have extended validity and therefore live right between normal guidelines and the base layer of principles. I guess we could call them ‘cardinal rules.’ As you can imagine, they’re hard to come by.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 603: Life is but a series of fleeting moments, one forever chasing the next. The only place where you can live, act, and make a difference is the present. Today. Well it´s also a series of hours, days, months and years, come to think of it. You can plan ahead, nincompoop.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 661: Vapaapainissa yleisön osa show’ssa on hyvin tärkeää. Yleisö hurraa faceille ja toistaa heidän iskulauseena ja buuaa heeleille. Huudot ovat samankaltaisia kuin jääkiekko-otteluiden kannatushuudot. Painijoiden uran kulku määräytyy yleisön reaktion mukaan. Asshole! - Nananana, nananana, heey, heey, heey, goodbye! - Holy shit! - You fucked up! - You screwed Bret! - What? - Boring! - You suck! - You tapped out! -You still got it! - YES! - NO! - MAYBE!
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 758: Lolita is a 1955 novel written by Russian-American novelist Vladimir Nabokov. The novel is notable for its controversial subject: the protagonist and unreliable narrator, a French middle-aged literature professor under the pseudonym Humbert Humbert, is obsessed with an American 12-year-old girl, Dolores Haze, whom he sexually molests (fucks) after he becomes her stepfather. "Lolita" is his private nickname for Dolores.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 760: In 1947, Vladi moves to Ramsdale, a small town in New England, where he can calmly continue working on his book. The house that he intends to live in is destroyed in a fire, and in his search for a new home, he meets the widow Charlotte Haze, who is accepting tenants. Humbert visits Charlotte´s residence out of politeness and initially intends to decline her offer. However, Charlotte leads Humbert to her garden, where her 12-year-old daughter Dolores (also variably known as Dolly, Dolita, Lo, Lola, and Lolita) is sunbathing. Humbert sees in Dolores the perfect nymphet, the embodiment of his old love Annabel, and quickly decides to move in.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 762: The impassioned Humbert constantly searches for discreet forms of fulfilling his sexual urges, usually via the smallest physical contact with Dolores. When Dolores is sent to summer camp, Humbert receives a letter from Charlotte, who confesses her love for him and gives him an ultimatum – he is to either marry her or move out immediately. Initially terrified, Humbert then begins to see the charm in the situation of being Dolores' stepfather, and so marries Charlotte for instrumental reasons (päästäxeen salaa työntämään Lolan piccu tacoon isoa munakoisoa). Charlotte later discovers Humbert's diary, in which she learns of his desire for her daughter and the disgust Charlotte arouses in him. Shocked and humiliated, Charlotte decides to flee with Dolores and writes letters addressed to her friends warning them of Humbert. Disbelieving Humbert´s false assurance that the diary is a sketch for a future novel, Charlotte runs out of the house to send the letters but is killed by a swerving car. Humbert destroys the letters and retrieves Dolores from camp, claiming that her mother has fallen seriously ill and has been hospitalized. He then takes her to a high-end hotel that Charlotte had earlier recommended. Humbert knows he will feel guilty if he consciously rapes Dolores, and so tricks her into taking a sedative by saying it is a vitamin. As he waits for the pill to take effect, he wanders through the hotel and meets a mysterious man who seems to be aware of Humbert´s plan for Dolores. Humbert excuses himself from the conversation and returns to the hotel room. There, he discovers that he had been fobbed with a milder drug, as Dolores is merely drowsy and wakes up frequently, drifting in and out of sleep. He dares not touch her that night. In the morning, Dolores reveals to Humbert that she actually has already lost her virginity, having engaged in sexual activity with an older boy at a different camp a year ago. He immediately begins sexually abusing (fucking) her. And they lived happily ever after.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 764: Läppä läppä. Deeply depressed, Humbert unexpectedly receives a letter from a 17-year-old Dolores (signing as "Dolly (Mrs. Richard F. Schiller)"), telling him that she is married, pregnant, and in desperate need of money. Humbert, armed with a pistol, tracks down Dolores' address and gives her the money, which was due as an inheritance from her mother. Humbert learns that Dolores' husband, a deaf mechanic, is not her abductor. Dolores reveals to Humbert that Quilty took her from the hospital and that she was in love with him, but she was rejected when she refused to star in one of his pornographic films. Dolores also rejects Humbert's request to leave with him. Humbert goes to the drug-addled Quilty's mansion and shoots him several times. Shortly afterward, Humbert is arrested, and in his closing thoughts, he reaffirms his love for Dolores and asks for his memoir to be withheld from public release until after her death. Dolores dies in childbirth on Christmas Day in 1952, disappointing Humbert´s prediction that "Dolly Schiller will probably survive me by many years."
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 769: One of the first things Nabokov makes a point of saying is that, despite John Ray Jr.'s claim in the Foreword, there is no moral to the story. Nabokov concludes the afterword with a reference to his beloved first language, which he abandoned as a writer once he moved to the United States in 1940: "My private tragedy, which cannot, and indeed should not, be anybody's concern, is that I had to abandon my natural idiom, my untrammeled, rich, and infinitely docile Russian language for a second-rate brand of English." Alas, that 'wonderful Russian language' which, I imagined, still awaits me somewhere, which blooms like a faithful spring behind the locked gate to which I, after so many years, still possess the key, turned out to be non-existent, and there is nothing beyond that gate, except for some burned out stumps and hopeless autumnal emptiness, and the key in my hand looks rather like a lock pick. Or floppy prick."
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 972: Hantta Krausen päätekeräsiä löytyy vain limakalvon ja kuivan ihon leikkauspisteestä. Niiden kuidut eivät ole myelinoituneet ja ne ovat erittäin herkkiä havaitsemaan paineen tunnetta. Krausen päätekerästen paineen aktivoitumiskynnys onkin koko ihmiskehon alhaisin. Vladi vuotaa "kuumia
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1045: Many a true word is spoken in jest, especially about the kinship between eros and thanatos. FUCK! KILL! Puuttuu enää EAT! The two closest glimpses Humbert gives us of his own self-hatred are not without their death wish—made explicit in the closing paragraphs—and their excremental aspects: "I am lanky, big-boned, wooly-chested Humbert Humbert, with thick black eyebrows and a queer accent, and a cesspoolful of rotting monsters behind his slow boyish smile." Two hundred pages later: "The turquoise blue swimming pool some distance behind the lawn was no longer behind that lawn, but within my thorax, and my organs swam in it like excrements in the blue sea water in Nice." And then there's the offhand aside "Since (as the psychotherapist, as well as the rapist, will tell you) the limits and rules of such girlish games are fluid …" in which it takes a moment to notice that "therapist" and "the rapist" are in direct apposition.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1051: don't know what is. Arresting, as well as disgusting, to suddenly notice that Lolita (who died giving birth to a stillborn girl, for Christ's sake) would have been 86 this year. … the thought that with patience and luck I might have her produce eventually a nymphet with my blood in her exquisite veins, a Lolita the Second, who would be eight or nine around 1960, when I would still be dans la force d'age; indeed, the telescopy of my mind, or un-mind, was strong enough to distinguish in the remoteness of time a vieillard encore vert—or was it green rot?—bizarre, tender, salivating Dr. Humbert, practicing on supremely lovely Lolita the Third the art of being a granddad.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1074: godmother, Queen Thayet. Welcome to the
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1082: Fayette County, on December 13, 1954. Her
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1087: Alanna viz Ally) was born and a year later her second
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1094: They lived in Miramar for half a year, in El
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1095: Granada a full year, and then three years in
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1100: Fayette County in 1969, where she spent two
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1101: years at Albert Gallatin Senior High. When her
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1102: family moved again, she spent her senior year
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1127: at Columbia for a few years, he
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1154: Remu was born in Nogent-le-Rotrou. A nobleman (under the tutelage of the Lorraine family), he did his studies under Marc Antoine Muret and George Buchanan. As a student, he became friends with the young poets Jean de La Péruse, Étienne Jodelle, Jean de La Taille and Pierre de Ronsard and the latter incorporated Remy into the "La Pléiade", a group of revolutionary young poets. Belleau´s first published poems were odes, les Petites Inventions (1556), inspired by the ancient lyric Greek collection attributed to Anacreon and featuring poems of praise for such things as butterflies, oysters, cherries, coral, shadows, turtles, and twats. His last work, les Amours et nouveaux Eschanges des Pierres precieuses (1576), is a poetic description of gems and their properties inspired by medieval and renaissance lapidary catalogues. He died impotent in Paris on 6 March 1577, and was buried in Grands Augustins. Remy Belleau was greatly admired by impotent poets in the twentieth century, such as Francis Ponge. Francis Ponge (1899 Montpellier, Ranska – 1988 Le Bar-sur-Loup, Ranska) oli ranskalainen runoilija. Ponge työskenteli kirjailijanuransa ohella toimittajana, kustannustoimittajana ja ranskan kielen opettajana. Hän osallistui toisen maailmansodan aikana vastarintaliikkeeseen ja kuului vuosina 1937–1947 kommunistipuolueeseen. Hän sai vaikutteita eksistentialismista, ja esinerunoissaan hän paljastaa kielen avulla objektin itsenäisenä, omanlakisena maailmana. Francis Ponge was born in Montpellier, France in 1899. He has been called “the poet of things” because simple objects like a plant, a shell, a cigarette, a pebble, or a piece of soap are the subjects of his prose poems. To transmute commonplace objects by a process of replacing inattention with contemplation was Ponge’s way of heeding Ezra Pound’s edict: ‘Make it new.’ Ponge spent the last 30 years of his life as a recluse at his country home, Mas des Vergers. He suffered from frequent bouts with nervous exhaustion and numerous psychosomatic illnesses. He continued to write up until his death on August 6, 1988.
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1157:
      yellow">
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1205: De Jeanne la Pucelle ; à qui l’entrefesson Orleansin neizyen; jonka väliliha ei turpoa,
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1221: Rebouchant, remoussé, et pliant de façon vääntyen mutkalle ja taipuen kuin
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1245:
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1246:
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1269: Eric Sweeten, ATA & BS in CS, MS in Cybersecurity, 4 years USN, MM3(SW)
      xxx/ellauri123.html on line 1279: Imaginative cobbler Hans Christian Andersen (Danny Kaye) is asked to leave his hometown because his frequent stories are distracting the children from school. From there he moves to Copenhagen, Denmark, where he sees and falls in love with Doro (Jeanmaire), a ballerina. He writes "The Little Mermaid" for her, and it becomes the ballet´s latest work. However, Doro is already married to Niels (Farley Granger), meaning Hans must content himself with children.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 129: Silicone sweethearts remain resolutely inert, but change is afoot in the world of sex dolls, with a drive to make them ever more lifelike. First stop is a throbbing heart and a heating element, custom-made nipples and wobbling artificial labia – researchers are utilising new technology to persuade their dolls to smile, pout, flutter their eyelashes, tell jokes, and fake orgasm. What more is needed anyway? Down in the dolls’ nether regions, heating and lubrication systems are in the early stages of development for a more “authentic” sexual experience, along with muscle spasms to simulate female orgasm. “Pubic hair is making a comeback,” offers company owner Matt, running his hand through some plastic pubes.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 132: Slim, blonde, young and pretty, you might think that April could do a lot better than 58-year-old married engineer James but there is no chance of her ever leaving him for another man, unless sold to another guy second-hand.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 133: Just over 5ft tall, she looks to be in her early 20s but James' wife of 36 years is astonishingly understanding and puts up with her presence in their home, even when her husband takes April out or to the marital bed.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 141: James said: "Every guy has in his head the perfect girl and this is what I see when I look in the mirror and see this look. Most manufacturers make them look something in the region of 20 years old. For a man of my age it's a fantasy because I will never be a Brad Pitt or something like that.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 167: "Chloe keeps my eye from wandering because having a doll says I'm not interested in being involved with other women accept my wife.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 173: James said: "This is going to bring dolls out of the closet and into the public eye and keep them there. I am very excited about the robotic functions. The ability to answer or wink back to you, lord only knows if they could make a facial expression back to you that would be unbelievable. I might not be able to afford one but I'll keep saving."
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 175: "Fifty years from now with the way technology is moving it would not surprise me if sex robots were as common place as porn."
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 176: In 50 years, I'll be 120. I think I'll wait until they make a Samantha or April that nags at me and slaps me spontaneously on the butt. And has a sick mother to care for made out of lifelike silicone.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 181: A raft of innovative sex dolls and robots are set to be released this year including “build your own” models and designs with incredibly advanced AI.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 198: The 39-year-old showcased the 5ft 4ins and 7st lifelike sex doll to stunned passersby, demonstrating her eight modes which include 'family' and 'sexy'.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 230: Dostoyevsky’s The Brothers Karamazov
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 403: there’s that coworker that won’t stop rolling his eyes whenever your cat creeps
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 432: felt impossibly long in high school? Worse yet 375 humanists? It’s not long enough when you’re this ticked
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 453: knowledge yet? Yep, me too. So, obviously, it’s time for me to send some more
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 455: than the "OK" hand? Are the prayer hands really prayer hands at all or can I use
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 460: also known as the "yes" emoji, is used to express general contentment.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 476: 6referred to as the prayer or praise hands emoji. It is also known as the "high
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 481: for saying goodbye or goodnight to people (I suppose it's akin to saying "peace"
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 554: Haslam Oliver Haslam is a professional freelance writer with nearly ten years of
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 564: In case you're somehow 15 years behind, emoji are taking over the world. But although there is an obvious benefit to having such a large arsenal of emoji with which to freely share your life with the rest of the world, the choices you have can become overwhelming. For example, what do all the cat emoji mean? Why do we need so many of them? What the heck am I supposed to use them all for? Well, if you're feeling overwhelmed, have no fear — I'm here to help you.
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 573: Grinning Cat Face with Smiley Eyes (fun)
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 577: Smiling Cat Face with Heart Shaped Eyes (love)
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 579: Kissing Cat Face with Closed Eyes Cats are a selective animal — they don't just
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 642: esiintyen monta vuotta Gentlemen's Club -stripteaseklubilla Helsingissä sekä
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 657: Tukiainen alkoi hakeutua vahvemmin myös julkisuuteen esiintyen erilaisissa
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 666: kaksin Playboyssa!", 18/2006). Tukiainen esiintyi myös useiden yhtyeiden,
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 689: ympäri Suomea esiintyen baareissa, ravintoloissa, yökerhoissa sekä suuremmissa
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 796:
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 827: leikkausvaiheessa ollut niin huonossa kunnossa, ettei ollut kyennyt osallistumaan
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 832:
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 1014: zn+74jlKFdyXF1LN+clFgOOJkMKHvRQvy1o3WpPA0NcyexynBJLb+SK1A0s9y3GO
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 1023: 0ImyeW+bmzOXk27lgzKfAqNCVGo0zAWFztYdqTgRv8heSCRRxkBjtxXM83pXNvCu
      xxx/ellauri124.html on line 1077: Aivan Open AI:n alkuvaiheessa Altman esitti teköälzistä yhden hyvän huulen. Tekoälyn kyetessä hyviin tekoihin se kykenee myös äärimmäisen pahoihin tekoihin. Ja juuri keinoälyn riskeistä tuli osa Open AI:n tarinaa. Yleistä tekoälyä ei vielä ole olemassa, eikä sellaista ole tiettävästi edes kehitteillä. Siksi puheet yleisen, ihmisenkaltaisen tekoälyn ongelmista voi nähdä viestinnällisenä silmänkääntötemppuna.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 168: When she was 14 years old, she was cast in the role of Dolores "Lolita" Haze in Stanley Kubrick's film Lolita (1962), against James Mason, then aged 53. Nabokov, the book's author, described her as the "perfect nymphet". She was chosen for the role partly because the film makers had to alter the age of the character to an older adolescent rather than the 12-year-old child Lolita in Vladimir Nabokov's novel Lolita. Although Kubrick's film altered the story so as not to be in violation of the Hollywood Production Code, it was still one of the more controversial films of the day.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 176: Burnhamilta opin nämä: Kanye West, dissosiaatio, derealisaatio,
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 179: Kanye Omari West [ˈkɑːnjeɪ] (s. 8. kesäkuuta 1977 Atlanta, Georgia,
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 194: Yxityiselämä: Kanye on negroidi. Heppu oli naimisissa Kim
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 199: Saavutuxet: West on kärsinyt mielenterveysongelmista ja hän oli niistä johtuen loppuvuodesta 2016 sairaalahoidossa. Vuonna 2018 hän mainitsi tulleensa aiemmin riippuvaiseksi hänelle määrätystä opioidi-lääkkeestä, minkä on arveltu olevan hänen vuoden 2016 hermoromahduksena taustatekijänä. Vuoden 2019 haastattelussa West kertoi, että hänellä on kaksisuuntainen mielialahäiriö. Kim Kardashian jätti erohakemuksen Kanye Westistä 19. helmikuuta 2021.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 201: West on yksi maailman myydyimmistä artisteista 21 miljoonalla myydyllä albumilla ja 66 miljoonalla digitaalisella latauksella. Only One on chicagolaisen hip-hop-artistin ja tuottajan Kanye Westin single, jonka julkaisi GOOD Music ja Def Jam 31. joulukuuta 2014. Single on ensimmäinen Yeezus-albumin (0 AD) jälkeen julkaistu kappale, ja sillä vierailee The Beatles -yhtyeen basisti Paul McCartney. Kappaleen tuottivat West itse, Mike Dean, Rick Rubin ja Paul McCartney. Kappaleen oli tarkoitus ilmestyä Westin The Life of Pablo -albumilla, joka tunnettiin vielä silloin nimellä So Help Me God. Kappale sai vaihtelevaa palautetta kriitikoilta. LA Timesin kirjoittaja Randall Roberts pitää kappaleen minimalistista tyyliä tylsänä ja epämääräisenä. Hän arvosti kappaleen tarkoitusta, muttei pitänyt ideasta laulaa kappale Kanyen mammavainaan Dondan perspektiivistä. Kanye on laulanut äidistään aiemmin Late Registration -albumin kappaleella Hey Mama.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 203: Kanyen ex-vaimo Kim Kardashian pitää kappaletta Westin parhaimpana. Viime vuosina Kim Kardashian on kasvattanut vaikutusvaltaansa verkossa ja
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 207: kirjoja. Kardashian meni naimisiin rap-artisti Kanye Westin kanssa vuonna 2014.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 218: yev-West.jpg" height="200px" />
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 261: No goodbyes, no goodbyes Ei moikkia, ei moikkia
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 265: And next time when I look in your eyes Ja enskerralla kun mä kazon sun silmiin
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 287: The Realest Rap Lyrics About Fatherhood? All The Changes To Kanye’s ‘The Life Of Pablo’. For The Record: Is Kanye West’s ‘Jesus Is King’ Good Or Bad? Paul McCartney Didn’t Realize He Was Creating Songs When He Recorded With Kanye West!
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 288: CyHi The Prynce’s Spotify Account May Offer A Glimpse Into Kanye West’s Scrapped ‘Yeezus 2’ Album :) Kim is the real Minimum Viable Product.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 290: Kanye peukutti Trumppia koska se ajaa machojen ja setämisten asiaa. Se on selvä misogyyni mammanpoika narsisti. LA Timesin arvostelija päätyi samaan diagnoosiin:
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 292:
      Review: Kanye West’s wildly experimental, narcissistic ‘Yeezus’

      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 298: One of the many striking and often shocking metaphors within “Yeezus,” the new album from rapper Kanye West, arrives halfway into the 10-song release, during a song called “I’m in It.” It involves a quote by the Rev. Martin Luther King Jr.: “Thank God almighty, free at last,” raps West, referencing a phrase from 50 years ago that the civil-rights leader used in relation to the plight of African Americans.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 311: Elsewhere, the raised-fist call of the Black Panther Party, one of the most potent symbols of black power, is employed as a cheap metaphor for sexual penetration.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 317: As presented, his intentions are unclear — other than to remind you that, you know, “I am a god!” Duly noted. Maybe now West can start tapping into his benevolent side. After all, he’s going to need it in 15 years when self-aggrandizing young men start objectifying his daughter.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 428: From the start, critics complained about the ostensible sameness of Roth’s books, their narcissism and narrowness—or, as he himself put it, comparing his own work to his father’s conversation, “Family, family, family, Newark, Newark, Newark, Jew, Jew, Jew.” Over time, he took on vast themes—love, lust, loneliness, marriage, masculinity, ambition, community, solitude, loyalty, betrayal, patriotism, rebellion, piety, disgrace, the body, the imagination, American history, mortality, the relentless mistakes of life—and he did so in a variety of forms: comedy, parody, romance, conventional narrative, postmodernism, autofiction. In each performance of a self, Roth captured the same sound and consciousness. in nearly fifty years of reading him I’ve never been more bored. I got to know Roth in the nineteen-nineties, when I interviewed him for this magazine around the time he published “The Human Stain.” To be in his presence was an exhilarating, though hardly relaxing, experience. He was unnervingly present, a condor on a branch, unblinking, alive to everything: the best detail in your story, the slackest points in your argument. His intelligence was immense, his performances and imitations mildly funny. “He who is loved by his parents is a conquistador,” Roth used to say, and he was adored by his parents, though both could be daunting to the young Philip. Herman Roth sold insurance; Bess ruled the family’s modest house, on Summit Avenue, in a neighborhood of European Jewish immigrants, their children and grandchildren. There was little money, very few books. Roth was not an academic prodigy; his teachers sensed his street intelligence but they were not overawed by his classroom performance. Roth learned to write through imitation. His first published story, “The Day It Snowed,” was so thoroughly Truman Capote that, he later remarked, he made “Capote look like a longshoreman.”
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 437: his novel “When She Was Good,” published the previous year, was based on her.) In
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 450: cartoon” and yet continued his analysis with him for years.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 495:
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 519: benefactor. They that are penniless are yet rich, in that they
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 572: and tell indelicate stories--and mainly, a yearning to paint
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 657:
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 761: In July 1982, Love returned to the United States. In late 1982, she attended a Faith No More concert in San Francisco and convinced the members to let her join as a singer. The group recorded material with Love as a vocalist, but fired her; according to keyboardist Roddy Bottum, who remained Love's friend in the years after, the band wanted a "male energy". Love returned to working abroad as an erotic dancer, briefly in Taiwan, and then at a taxi dance hall in Hong Kong. By Love's account, she first used heroin while working at the Hong Kong dance hall, having mistaken it for cocaine. While still inebriated from the drug, Love was pursued by a wealthy male client who requested that she return with him to the Philippines, and gave her money to purchase new clothes. She used the money to purchase airfare back to the United States.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 763: She appeared in supporting roles in the Alex Cox films Sid and Nancy (1986) and Straight to Hell (1987) before forming the band Hole in Los Angeles with guitarist Eric Erlandson. The group received critical acclaim from underground rock press for their 1991 debut album, produced by Kim Gordon, while their second release, Live Through This (1994), was met with critical accolades and multi-platinum sales. In 1995, Love returned to acting, earning a Golden Globe Award nomination for her performance as Althea Leasure in Miloš Forman's The People vs. Larry Flynt (1996), which established her as a mainstream actress. The following year, Hole's third album, Celebrity Skin (1998), was nominated for three Grammy Awards.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 764: The next several years were marked by publicity surrounding Love's legal troubles and drug relapse, which resulted in a mandatory lockdown rehabilitation sentence in 2005 while she was writing a second solo album. That project became Nobody's Daughter, released in 2010 as a Hole album but without the former Hole lineup. Between 2014 and 2015, Love released two solo singles and returned to acting in the network series Sons of Anarchy and Empire. In 2020, she confirmed she was writing new music.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 766: Drummer Lori Barbero recalled Love's time in Minneapolis: She lived in my house for a little while. And then we did a concert at the Orpheum. It was in 1988. It was called O-88 with Butthole Surfers, Cows & Bastards, Run Westy Run, and Babes in Toyland. And I guess Maureen [Herman] took Courtney to the airport after she stole all the money. She stayed and stayed, and then the next day she wanted me to take her to the airport. And so I drove her to the airport. She had just had some weird fight with the guy at the desk, and then she left. She said, 'I'm going to go to L.A. and I'm going to get my face done and I'm going to be famous.' And then she did."
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 768: After filming Sid and Nancy in New York City, she worked at a peep show in Times Square and squatted at the ABC No Rio social center and Pyramid Club in the East Village.The same year, Cox cast her in a leading role in his film Straight to Hell (1987), a Spaghetti Western starring Joe Strummer and Grace Jones filmed in Spain in 1986. The film caught the attention of Andy Warhol, who featured Love in an episode of Andy Warhol's Fifteen Minutes.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 774: On July 23, 1989, Love married Leaving Trains vocalist James Moreland in Las Vegas; the marriage was annulled the same year. She later said that Moreland was a transvestite and that they had married "as a joke". After forming Hole, Love and Erlandson had a romantic relationship that lasted over a year. In Hole's formative stages, Love continued to work at strip clubs in Hollywood (including Jumbo's Clown Room and the Seventh Veil), saving money to purchase backline equipment and a touring van, while rehearsing at a Hollywood studio loaned to her by the Red Hot Chili Peppers. Hole played their first show in November 1989 at Raji's, a rock club in central Hollywood. Their debut single, "Retard Girl", was issued in April 1990 through the Long Beach indie label Sympathy for the Record Industry, and was played by Rodney Bingenheimer on local rock station KROQ. Hole appeared on the cover of Flipside, a Los Angeles-based punk fanzine. In early 1991, they eleased their second single, "Dicknail", through Sub Pop Records.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 776: Though Love later said Pretty on the Inside was "unlistenable" and "unmelodic", the album received generally positive critical reception from indie and punk rock critics and was named one of the 20 best albums of the year by Spin. It gained a following in the United Kingdom, charting at 59 on the UK Albums Chart, and its lead single, "Teenage Whore", entered the UK Indie Chart at number one.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 782: Cobain had become a major public figure following the surprise success of Nirvana's album Nevermind. Love was urged by her manager to participate in the cover story. In the year prior, Love and Cobain had developed a heroin addiction; the profile painted them in an unflattering light, suggesting that Love had been addicted to heroin during her pregnancy. The Los Angeles Department of Children and Family Services investigated, and custody of Frances was temporarily awarded to Love's sister, Jaimee. Love claimed she was misquoted by Hirschberg, and asserted that she had immediately quit heroin during her first trimester after she discovered she was pregnant.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 784: "Just marrying created a mythology around me that I didn't expect for myself, because I had a very controlled, five-year plan about how I was going to be successful in the rock industry. Marrying Kurt, it all kind of went sideways in a way that I could not control and I became seen in a certain light–a vilified light that made Yoko Ono look like Pollyanna–and I couldn't stop it."
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 785: Love later said the article had serious implications for her marriage and Cobain's mental state, suggesting it was a factor in his suicide two years later.
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 791: Hole's performance on August 26, 1994, at the Reading Festival—Love's first public performance following Cobain's death—was described by MTV as "by turns macabre, frightening and inspirational". John Peel wrote in The Guardian that Love's disheveled appearance "would have drawn whistles of astonishment in Bedlam", and that her performance "verged on the heroic ... Love steered her band through a set which dared you to pity either her recent history or that of the band ... the band teetered on the edge of chaos, generating a tension which I cannot remember having felt before from any stage." The band performed a series of riotous concerts over the following year, with Love frequently appearing hysterical onstage, flashing crowds, stage diving, and getting into fights with audience members. One journalist reported that at the band's show in Boston in December 1994: "Love interrupted the music and talked about her deceased husband Kurt Cobain, and also broke out into Tourette syndrome-like rants. The music was great, but the raving was vulgar and offensive, and prompted some of the audience to shout back at her."
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 801: "What I really don't like—there are certain girls that like us, or like me, who are really messed up... and they do not need to be—they're very young—and they do not need to be taken and raped, or filmed having enema contests... going out into the audience and picking up fourteen and fifteen-year-old girls who obviously cut themselves, and then having to see them in the morning... it's just uncool."
      xxx/ellauri125.html on line 805: The following year, she returned to film opposite Lili Taylor in Julie Johnson (2001), in which she played a woman who has a lesbian relationship; Love won an Outstanding Actress award at L.A.'s Outfest. She was then cast in the thriller Trapped (2002), alongside Kevin Bacon and Charlize Theron. The film was a box-office flop.
      xxx/ellauri126.html on line 373: Monesti hän ei myöskään ymmärrä kysymystä eikä vastaa kysymyxiin taikka vastaa niihin epämääräisesti tai vaikeaselkoisesti. Hänen kuulonsa on valikoiva ja kiusalliset aiheet sivuutetaan hiljaisuudella. Tästä huolimatta hänen puheensa vaikuttaa uskottavalta, koska hän näyttelee taitavasti kaikkia tunnetiloja ja hänen sanatulvansa ja izekeskeinen esiintymisensä sokaisevat helposti muut. Aggressiot ilmenevät verbaalisina hyökkäyxinä, juonitteluna, panetteluna, valituxina ja juoruina. Hän ei ole aidosti kiinnostunut muiseta ihmisistä, vaan hän on oppinut käyttäytymään hyväxytyllä tavalla jopa niin, että hän antaa jopa hyvinkin myötätuntoisen, luotettavan ja hurmaavan kuvan. Hän manipuloi ja valehtelee oman etunsa mukaisesti. Kyseessä ei ole kuitenkaan varsinainen valehtelu vaan hänen rajattomuuttaan ja kaikkivoipaisuuttaan heijastava kaventunut maailmankuva. Joskus hän jopa väittää tietävänsä, mitä toiset ajattelevat. Mä nään! Köyhtyessään narsisti alkaa muistuttaa tyhjiin puristettua sitruunaa, tai norsunvittua.
      xxx/ellauri126.html on line 481: The Mind & Life Institute is a US-registered, not-for-profit 501(c)(3) organization founded in 1991 to establish the field of contemplative sciences. Based in Charlottesville, Va., the institute “brings science and contemplative wisdom together to better understand the mind and create positive change in the world." Over three decades, Mind & Life has played a key role in the mindfulness meditation movement by funding research projects and think tanks, and by convening conferences and dialogues with the Dalai Lama. Since 2020, Mind & Life's grant-making events and digital programs have sought to nurture personal wellbeing, build more compassionate communities, and strengthen the human-earth connection. And fatten the monks' bank accounts. 1 to lama, 2 to me.
      xxx/ellauri126.html on line 573: Muistot palaavat: arpi poskessa ja fläkki keittiön kerniliinassa. Mitä enemmän työstämme muistoja sitä kevyemmäxi tunnemme olomme.
      xxx/ellauri126.html on line 580: Izellänikin on ollut tapana käydä makuulle, hengittää syvään ja rauhallisesti ja suunnata huomio kehon sisäisiin osiin. Koen tämän ja seuraavan vaiheen paizi rentoutuxena myös kehoni huomioimisena ja kunnioittamisena. Kun olen suunnannut tarkkaavaisuuteni yxitellen jokaiseen kehoni osaan, kiinnitän sisäisen kazeeni mielikuvaan sinipunaisesta avoimessa ikkunassa kevyesti heiluvasta kivikovasta kyrvästä. Annan olemassaolon tunteeni tulvia energisinä aaltoina ympäri kehoani. Tarvittaessa teen kädellä. En tarvize enää muita ihmisiä minuuteni ylläpitäjäxi. Joskus rengaslihaxeni kiristyvät, joskus tunnen viillon rinnassani, ja kuitenkin niin onnellinen oon. Kysyn izeltäni: "Mistä tässä kaikessa onkaan kysymys?"
      xxx/ellauri126.html on line 649: Monet ihmiset tiedostavat vasta kuoleman lähestyessä ettei "minun kiinteistöllä" eikä "minun tutkinnolla" ole mitään tekemistä heidän todellisen astraaliolemuxensa kanssa. Ettekö tiedä kuka minä olen? Olen kiro... En minä jaxa. Aito olemus olikin koko ajan niiden housuissa, se oli vaan hävyxissä.
      xxx/ellauri126.html on line 690: Elämä on suuri seikkailu niinkuin muumilaaxossa. Ei muumitaloa lukita yöxi hei muu-umit. Paapapa-paapa jne. Muumipappa pikku Myy peiton alla lisääntyy hei muu-umit. Elämä kukoistaa vaan siellä missä on Kirsi Riskejä ja Timo Vaaroja ja Eski Saarisia virnuilemassa värikkäissä pelleasuissa. Aitoa elämää voi elää vain vaarallisesti ryvettyen, sanoo Paula kokemuxesta. Paulakin päätyi opettajanta käärmeöljykauppiaaxi ja huruguruxi. Ryvettyminen kypsentää, ja on kivempää kuin sun elämätön elämä ja puhumaton pää. Lällällää!
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 57:
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 58:
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 72:
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 75:
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 114: Only now, 40 years after his death, are some critics daring to suggest that many of his 18 novels are mediocre at best and that his masterpiece, “Lolita,” is a gruesome celebration of pedophile rape. Moreover the cherubic writer known to us from famous Life magazine photo shoots, jauntily brandishing his butterfly net in the Tetons or the Alps, proves to be a nasty piece of work. Distasteful people can do wonderful work — Pablo Picasso was no walk in the park — but their art doesn’t excuse their obnoxious behavior.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 116: There are currently five scholarly journals devoted to Nabokov studies. His allusive style and trilingual (English, French, Russian) wordplay are catnip for academics, who endlessly parse challenging texts like “Pale Fire” — a novel in verse, followed by obscurantist commentary — finding new apercus tailor-made for small-journal publication. Nabokov’s apotheosis in academe is quite ironical, because he and his close friend, the literary critic Edmund Wilson, shared an icy disdain for the ivory tower. They viewed universities as ATMs, handy because there were so many of them, and because they were flush with cash. Nabokov, who arrived in the United States penniless in 1940, had to rely on teaching assignments at Wellesley and Cornell to feed his family for 15 years. The moment “Lolita” made him financially independent, he fled Cornell for Switzerland and never set foot in a classroom again.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 126: Rebecca Solnit, for instance, wrote a cringe-inducing and hilarious essay, “Men Explain Lolita to Me,” including these lines: “A nice liberal man came along and explained to me this book was actually an allegory as though I hadn’t thought of that yet. It is, and it’s also a novel about a big old guy violating a spindly child over and over and over. Then she weeps.”
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 128: I’m a “Lolita” fan, but let’s face it, Solnit is right: This is a sprightly little tale about the serial rape of an unwilling or indifferent 12-year-old, embraced and promoted by the male literary establishment.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 132: Dostoyevsky, Nabokov told anyone who would listen, was “a third-rate writer and his fame is incomprehensible.” He called Henry James “that pale porpoise.” Philip Roth? “Farcical.” Norman Mailer? “I detest everything that he stands for.” T. S. Eliot and Thomas Mann were “fakes.” When his friend Wilson suggested that he include Jane Austen in his Cornell survey course on European literature, Nabokov responded, “I dislike Jane [Austen] and am prejudiced, in fact, against all women writers.” Leo Tolstoy and Nikolai Gogol: da. Everybody else: nyet.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 148:

      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 239: Humbert's first lay Annabelle refers to Egar Allan Poe‘s (1809-1849) poem « Annabel Lee« , and indeed, the beginning of « Lolita » is full of references to this work. This famous American author was in love with Virginia Clemm, a thirteen years old girl. Nabokov was a fervent lepidopterist, a specialist of butterflies. Miten kukaan voi olla polttavasti innostunut voikärpäsistä? Kai kun sen mielestä oli huisin kivaa piikittää perhosten alaruumiita.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 247: The relationship with the Liddell family stopped suddenly in 1863. Jotain nähtävästi ilmeni. In the year 1880, the reverend Dodgson, up to then a fervent amateur of photography suddenly forgot his passion. 1880 is the year Alice Liddell married and became Mrs Hargreaves. In 1881, he left Oxford and went in a girl’s school to teach logics. He saw Alice Liddell for the last time on November 1, 1888.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 252: 1952 is a capital year in the novel and the number 52 is omnipresent and thus loaded with a mysterious meaning in the mind of Nabokov, in the context of this novel. It must be a central symbolic element in the Lolita’s riddle. Se oli hyvä vuosi muutenkin. « Pierre Point in Melville Sound » (p.33 TAL) was a reference to « Pierre or the Ambiguities » a Novel by Herman Melville (1819-1891; notice the 19/91) published in 1852. «brun adolescent (…) se tordre-oh Baudelaire! » (p.162 TAL): Charles Baudelaire (1821-1867 was one of the most famous French poet who translated Edgar A. Poe in French). A part of « Le Crépuscule du Matin » (1852). Se tordre tarkoittanee käteenvetoa. Humbert refering to the hunchbacked hoary black groom at the « Enchanted Hunters » Hotel: « Handed over to uncle Tom » (p.118 TAL): « Uncle Tom’s Cabin » by Harriet Beecher Stowe (1811-1896) is from 1852. Ehm… the list is non-negligible.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 254: The mention (p.289 TAL) of the case abduction and rape of the 11 years old Florence Sally Horner by a 50 years old man. In 1948, the 11-year-old Horner stole a 5-cent notebook from a store in Camden, New Jersey. Frank La Salle, a 50-year-old mechanic, caught her stealing, told her that he was an FBI agent, and threatened to send her to « a place for girls like you« . Then he abducted the girl and spent 21 months traveling with her over different American states and raping her. Florence Horner died in a car accident (p.288 TAL, « a routine highway accident«) near Woodbine, New Jersey, in 1952. It seems clear that the case inspired partly « Lolita » (even though this theme existed long before in Nabokov’s works (see for instance his 1939 work « Volshebnik » (i.e. « The Enchanter« ))).
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 373: In any case, a lot of what they have done focuses only on looks. These studies often conclude that various aspects of women's bodies make them more appealing because men think that they're more fertile — insert eye roll here. What's fertility got to do with it?
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 453:
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 484: In 1996, two years before the main action of the novel, Silk is accused of racism by two African-American students over his use of the word spooks, using the term as he wonders aloud over their having missed all his classes for the first five weeks of the semester ("Does anyone know these people? Do they exist or are they spooks?" - he has never seen these students, and has no idea they are African-American) rather than in the racially derogatory sense. The uproar leads to Silk's resignation. Soon after, his wife Iris dies of a stroke, which Silk feels is caused by the stress of his being forced out of the college.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 488: Shortly after being let go from the college, Silk begins a relationship with Faunia Farley, a 34-year-old local woman who works as a janitor at the college and is believed (falsely, as it turns out) to be illiterate, further cementing his status as a pariah among the Athena faculty and student body.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 492: In the summer of 1998, 71-year-old Silk approaches Zuckerman, hoping that the writer will lend his talents to his case against the college. Zuckerman is uninterested, but the two begin a brief friendship and Silk tells him his life story, beginning with his adolescence in Essex County, New Jersey. Zuckerman reveals to the reader that Silk is secretly a light-skinned African-American who has been "passing" as a Jew since a stint in the Navy during World War II. Silk completes graduate school at New York University, marries a Jewish woman (Iris) and has four children, none of whom are aware of their father's real ancestry.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 588: And on her dulcimer she played, ja sen soitin oli eräänlainen harppu,
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 598: His flashing eyes, his floating hair! Sen vilkkuluomet, sen unduloiva pää!
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 600: And close your eyes with holy dread Ja silmät kii se on kuin piru ize
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 622: On awakening he appeared to himself to have a distinct recollection of the whole, and taking his pen, ink, and paper, instantly and eagerly wrote down the lines that are here preserved. At this moment he was unfortunately called out by a person on business from Porlock, and detained by him above an hour, and on his return to his room, found, to his no small surprise and mortification, that though he still retained some vague and dim recollection of the general purport of the vision, yet, with the exception of some eight or ten scattered lines and images, all the rest had passed away like the images on the surface of a stream into which a stone has been cast, but, alas! without the after restoration of the latter!
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 645: Klein’s insistence on viewing aggression as an important force in its own right when analyzing children led her into conflict with Freud’s own daughter, Anna Freud, who was one of the other prominent child psychotherapists in continental Europe but who became moved to London in 1938 where Klein had been working for several years. Many controversies arose out of this conflict, and these are often referred to as controversial debates. In reality, the semitic hags were in one another's hairs. Lähde:
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 663: I was a PROFESSOR at 17 years at the University of Costa Rica in Health Systems Research, Epidemiology, Pediatrics, and Community Health in the Masters of Public Health and Family Medicine and the undergraduate of Medicine.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 665: For 11 years, I was CONSULTANT for the Pan American Health Organization (PAHO) and UNICEF.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 667: He was FOUNDING MEMBER and, for 10 years, PRESIDENT of the International Center for Health Research and Advisory Services (CIIAS). I directed and executed projects financed by international organizations, especially by Canada’s Institute Development Research Center (IDRC).
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 669: At 15 years, I was a REVIEWER AND CORRECTOR of the Pan American Journal of Public Health articles published by the Pan American Health Organization (PAHO).
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 680: In almost 20 years of uninteresting work, we have published hundreds of articles and brought quantity medical information to tens of millions of suckers people worldwide, in the hopes that quantity will turn into quality, as Marx predicted.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 692: Sen ois voinut sanoa paljon lyhyemmin ja paremmin Lolitan näkökulmasta.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 700:
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 709: Endymion tarkottanee puolisukeltajaa. Kuuhullu astronomi tai sit paimen vaan. Astronomi mainitaan merenneitopätkässsä. Octopussy's garden in the waves. The 4th century Babylonian god of the sea was known as Oannes who was portrayed as a man with a fish tail in place of legs. Oannes would appear out of the ocean every day as a fish-human creature to share his wisdom with the people along the Persian Gulf, then return to the sea at night. There was also Atargatis, a Syrian moon and sea goddess, her story tells us that after causing the death of her mortal lover she fled to the sea and took the form of a woman above the waist and a fish below, for this reason she became known as a mermaid goddess. During medieval times mermaids were considered as matter-of-factly alongside other aquatic animals, such as whales and dolphins. The goddess Venus is sometimes depicted as a mermaid, being born from a giant clam shell.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 713: Chatterton soon conceived the romance of Thomas Rowley, an imaginary monk of the 15th century, and adopted for himself the pseudonym Thomas Rowley for poetry and history. According to psychoanalyst Louise J. Kaplan, his being fatherless played a great role in his imposturous creation of Rowley. The development of his masculine identity was held back by the fact that he was raised by two women: his mother Sarah and his sister Mary.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 721: Book I gives Endymion's account of his dreams and experiences, as related to Peona, which provides the background for the rest of the poem. In Book II, Endymion ventures into the underworld in search of his love. He encounters Adonis and Venus—a pairing of mortal and immortal—apparently foreshadowing a similar destiny for the mortal Endymion and his immortal paramour. Book III reveals Endymion's enduring love, and he begs the Moon not to torment him any longer as he journeys through a watery void on the sea floor. There he meets Glaucus, freeing the god from a thousand years of imprisonment by the witch Circe. Book IV, "And so he groan'd, as one by beauty slain."
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 726: Isabella Jones's age is 22. Fashion and lifestyle social media influencer on Instagram whose feed on the account bananablue17 has attracted more than 120,000 followers. The 22-year-old instagram star was born in Greenwood.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 738: At eighteen, Fanny Brawne “was small, her eyes were blue and often enhanced by blue ribbons in her brown hair; her mouth expressed determination and a sense of humour and her smile was disarming. She was not conventionally beautiful: her nose was a little too aquiline, her face too pale and thin (some called it sallow). But she knew the value of elegance; velvet hats and muslin bonnets, crêpe hats with argus feathers, straw hats embellished with grapes and tartan ribbons: Fanny noticed them all as they came from Paris. She could answer, at a moment’s notice, any question on historical costume. ... Fanny enjoyed music. ... She was an eager politician, fiery in discussion; she was a voluminous reader. ... Indeed, books were her favourite topic of conversation”.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 749: What Elysium have ye known, Oliko teilläkin joku Champs Elysees,
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 753: Have ye tippled drink more fine Ootteko kallistaneet juomaa fiiniä
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 773: What Elysium have ye known, Ette takuulla ole käyneet Champs Elyseessä,
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 804: And her eyes were wild. Ja sen silmät oli villit.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 823: And there I shut her wild sad eyes— Mä suljin sen suruisia simmuja
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 848: John Keats [kiːts] (31. lokakuuta 1795 Lontoo, Englanti – 23. helmikuuta 1821 Rooma, Kirkkovaltio) oli romantiikan viimeisiä suuria runoilijoita. Lordi Byronin ja Shelleyn ohella hän oli keskeisiä hahmoja suuntauksen toisessa sukupolvessa, vaikka hän julkaisi tuotantonsa neljän vuoden kuluessa. Keatsin lyhyen (26v) elämän aikana kriitikot eivät arvostaneet hänen tuotantoaan, mutta kuoleman jälkeen hänen vaikutuksensa sellaisiin runoilijoihin kuin Alfred Tennyson ja Wilfred Owen oli huomattava. Keatsin runoja luonnehtivat aistilliset kuvat, etenkin oodeja (eli ylistyslaulujä), jotka ovat englantilaisen kirjallisuuden suosituimpia runoja. Hänen kirjeensä ovat englantilaisten runoilijoiden kuuluisimpia kirjeitä.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 850: John Keatsin vanhemmat olivat Thomas ja Frances Jennings Keats. Hän oli vanhin heidän neljästä aikuisikään ehtineestä lapsestaan. John syntyi Keski-Lontoossa, mutta tarkasta paikasta ei ole tietoa. Keatsin syntyessä hänen isänsä työskenteli tarjoilijana Hoop and Swan -pubissa. Köyhä John kävi köyhää koulua. Köyhä isä putos hevoselta ja siihen kuoli hän. Köyhä äiti kuoli kun John oli 14v, ja isoäiti hoiti lapsia. Keatsin 1. säilynyt runo on sen 19. vuodelta. John sai paikan haavurina ja masixen, koska se halusi vaan runoilla. Saatuaan apteekkarin paperit se jätti apteekin ja rupesikin runoilija-freelancerix.
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 852: Tuohon aikaan Keats kirjoitti ystävälleen Baileylle: "En ole varma mistään muusta kuin sydämen rakkauden eheydestä ja mielikuvituksen totuudesta – sen mikä valtaa mielikuvituksen kauniina, on oltava totta." (Palturia.) Tämä siirtyi myöhemmin runon "Oodi kreikkalaiselle uurnalle" loppuriveiksi "'Beauty is truth, truth beauty' – that is all / you know on earth, and all ye need to know", minkä Aale Tynni kääntää: ”'On totta kaunis, kaunista on tosi.' – Vain sen me tiedämme, se riittääkin.”
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 874: No – yet still stedfast, still unchangeable, Ei - vaan silti kiintoisa, silti vakio,
      xxx/ellauri127.html on line 943: "täydellisimmäksi lyhyemmäksi runoksi englannin
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 32: yer.vimeo.com/video/595400239" />
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 40: Sysmän Koskueen Salpakierron kierrätyskaupasta löytyi egellä V.A. Koskenniemen Vaeltava viisaus. Lopetetun Alkon edessä oli myytävänä luottokaupalla Hannu Tarmion Elämän viisauden kirja. Maxoinkohan edes sitä pyydettyä egeä. Teinhän palveluxen viemällä paskan pois. Molemmat WSOY:n julkaisuja. Turmiolan kirja ilmestyi 1990, Vaakun vuonna 1952. Vuosi 1952 oli tärkeä vuosi myös Vladi Nabokoville, kuten Witte totesi (kz. edellinen albumi). Kreikkalaisen sananjohtonsa mukaisesti merkizee aforismi rajoitusta, ja se voitaisiin vaihtaa myös sanaan "määritelmä" (kreikkalaiset eivät kyllä siitä pitäisi). Sitä käytetään usein synonoomisesti (sic) maksiimin kanssa. Kuten raamatussa, näissä kokoelmissa on keskenään ristiriitaisia päähänpistoja. Joku Ebner-Aschenbach nimitti aforismia puuttuvaxi renkaaxi ajatusketjussa. Ryhtyessään toimittamaan tätä antologiaa, jonka ajallinen raja on 2. maailmansota, Vaakku nojasi omaan kotikokoelmaansa. Vaakun töräyxet valmistuivat Hangossa elokuussa 1952.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 112: Andreas Capellanus, appelé en français par une traduction de son nom André le Chapelain, a écrit au XIIe siècle un traité intitulé ordinairement De Amore, et souvent traduit, de façon quelque peu fautive, Traité de l'Amour courtois, bien que son ton réaliste, voire cynique indique que, dans une certaine mesure, il se veut un antidote à l'amour courtois. On ne sait rien de la vie d'André le Chapelain, mais on suppose qu'il faisait partie de la cour de Marie de France, et qu'il était probablement d'origine française. On a soutenu que De Amore codifie la vie sociale et sexuelle de la cour d'Aliénor à Poitiers, entre 1170 et 1174, mais il a été manifestement écrit au moins dix ans plus tard et, semble-t-il, à Troyes. Il traite de plusieurs thèmes spécifiques qui faisaient l'objet d'un débat poétique entre troubadours et trobairitz à la fin du XIIe siècle.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 125: Benjamin Disraeli, 1st Earl of Beaconsfield KG PC FRS (21 December 1804 – 19 April 1881) was a British statesman and Conservative politician who twice served as Prime Minister of the United Kingdom. He played a central role in the creation of the modern Conservative Party, defining its policies and its broad outreach. Disraeli is remembered for his influential voice in world affairs, his political battles with the Liberal Party leader William Ewart Gladstone, and his one-nation conservatism or "Tory democracy". He made the Conservatives the party most identified with the glory and power of the British Empire. He is the only British prime minister to have been of Jewish birth. He was also a novelist, publishing works of fiction even as prime minister.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 133: Fils d’un riche chapelier de Dinan, Duclos était destiné à reprendre les affaires de son père mais c’était un enfant doué d’une vive intelligence et d’une grande mémoire et sa mère, devenue veuve, décida de l’envoyer achever ses études à Paris. Il suivit d’abord les cours de l’académie que tenait, rue de Charonne, l’abbé de Dangeau, puis du collège d'Harcourt où il entreprit l’étude du droit en vue de devenir avocat. Mais il se laissa aller à la dissipation, s’appliquant surtout à l’étude des armes, avant de décider de se consacrer aux lettres. Il fréquenta le café Procope et le café Gradot, où l’on ne tarda pas à le remarquer pour l’agrément et le piquant de sa conversation.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 138: À l'Académie, il soutint généralement le parti des Philosophes, mais sans en faire partie car les excès de ses membres l’irritaient : « Les grands raisonneurs et les sous-petits raisonneurs de notre siècle, disait-il, en feront et en diront tant qu’ils finiront par m’envoyer à confesse. » Ses relations avec Voltaire furent froides et leur correspondance n’est qu’académique et de politesse. Il n’avait pas de relations avec Diderot, dont on lui reprocha d’avoir fait échouer la candidature à l’Académie. Il se brouilla avec D'Alembert et les deux hommes ne se réconcilièrent jamais entièrement. Généralement, son caractère autoritaire rendit ses relations souvent difficiles avec ses collègues.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 165: Ensimmäinen edes vähän merkittävä kirja on Die unsichtbare Loge ('Näkymätön loosi') ilmestyi 1793. Persoonallisen romaanin kertojana oli ensimmäistä kertaa henkilö nimeltä Jean Paul. Tätä nimeä ei voi suorastaan pitää pseudonyyminä, sillä Richter ei kirjoja julkaistessaan koskaan halunnut suorastaan salata henkilöllisyyttään. Richter julkaisi kirjansa nimellä Jean Paul, mutta tämä oli puhtaan kirjailijanimen sijasta osittain fiktiivinen hahmo hänen romaaneissaan. Monet lukijat, etenkin Richterin naispuoliset ihailijat, uskoivat vilpittömästi, että Richter ja fiktiivinen Jean Paul olivat todella sama henkilö. (Richter oli tylsän porsaan näköinen, onnexi kirjan liepeessä ei siihen aikaan julkaistu kirjailijan kuvia.) Richterin maine kasvoi ja hän sai valtavasti ihailijoita. Matkallaan Weimariin 1796 hän tapasi Johann Wolfgang von Goethen, Friedrich Schillerin, Johann Gottfried Herderin ja monia muita tärkeitä kulttuurivaikuttajia ja muutti kaupunkiin influensserixi itsekin vuonna 1798. Richteristä tuli hyvin kuuluisa, ja legendoja hänen epätoivoisten naisihailijoidensa tempauksista löytyy edelleen elämäkertakirjallisuudesta. Totta lienee ainakin se, että Richterillä oli useita kosijoita ja hän oli kihloissa useita kertoja ennen avioliittoaan Karoline Meyerin kanssa 1801. Vuodesta 1804 Richter ja hänen kolmilapsinen perheensä asuivat Bayreuthissa.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 401: Helen May Rowland (/ˈroʊlənd/; 1875–1950) was an American journalist and humorist. For many years she wrote a column in the New York World called "Reflections of a Bachelor Girl". Many of her pithy insights from these columns were published in book form, including Reflections of a Bachelor Girl (1909), The Rubáiyát of a Bachelor (1915), and A Guide to Men (1922).
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 406: Han var son till Hans Gahlin och Selma Andersdotter. Han bodde en lång tid i en villa i Långedrag och var känd för att spritsa fram sina tuschfigurer under nattens mörka timmar. Gahlin debuterade som tidningstecknare 1933 och blev fast anställd vid Dagens nyheter 1937. Som tecknare medverkade han även i Söndagsnisse-Strix, Morgontidningen i Göteborg 1933-19490, Vårt Hem 1935-1940. Gahlin medverkade i 43 år (1932-1975) dagligen med sina karaktäristiska skämteckningar i Dagens Nyheter under vinjetten Salon Gahlin på sidan Namn och Nytt. Han tecknade också serierna Klotjohan (1934-1970) och Fredrik (1934-1973); den senare i Göteborgs Handels- och Sjöfartstidning. Han fick Adamsonstatyetten 1970.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 431: John Barrymore (born John Sidney Blyth; February 14 or 15, 1882 – May 29, 1942) was an American actor on stage, screen and radio. A member of the Drew and Barrymore theatrical families, he initially tried to avoid the stage, and briefly attempted a career as an artist, but appeared on stage together with his father Maurice in 1900, and then his sister Ethel the following year. He began his career in 1903 and first gained attention as a stage actor in light comedy, then high drama, culminating in productions of Justice (1916), Richard III (1920) and Hamlet (1922); his portrayal of Hamlet led to him being called the "living American tragedy".
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 444: Alexandre Mercereau (22. lokakuuta 1884, Pariisi - 1945) oli ranskalainen symbolistirunoilija ja kriitikko, joka liittyi Unanimismiin ja Abbaye de Créteiliin.Hän perusti Villa Médicis Libren, joka auttoi köyhtyneitä taiteilijoita ja toimi hyväntekeväisyyteen perustuvana rikollisten teini-ikäisten kunnostustöinä. Unanimismi (ransk. unanimisme < unanime = yximielinen) on 1900-luvun alkupuolen kirjallisuuden suuntaus, joka pyrki saamaan ihmiskuvaukseen kollektiivisen yhteisyyden tunnelman. Suuntaus oli vallalla erityisesti Ranskassa, jossa sitä pyrkivät toteuttamaan esimerkiksi Jules Romains teoksellaan Les Hommes de bonne volonté ja Georges Duhamel. .. Max Rothin näköinen.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 446: Douglas Francis Jerrold (Scarborough 3 August 1893 - 1964) was a British journalist and publisher. As editor of The English Review from 1931 to 1935, he was a vocal supporter of fascism in Italy and of Francoist Spain.He was personally involved in the events of July 1936 when two British intelligence agents piloted an aircraft from the Canary Islands to Spanish Morocco, taking General ... Jerrold´s figure was small and spare, and in later years bowed almost to deformity. His features were strongly marked and expressive, from the thin humorous lips to the keen blue eyes, gleaming from beneath the shaggy eyebrows. He was brisk and active, with the careless bluffness of a sailor. Briljantti vittupää.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 451: Christopher Morley (5 May 1890 – 28 March 1957) was an American journalist, novelist, essayist and poet. He also produced stage productions for a few years and gave college lectures.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 464: He was born in York and grew up in and near Birmingham in a professional middle-class family. He attended English independent (or public) schools and studied English at Christ Church, Oxford. After a few months in Berlin in 1928–29, he spent five years (1930–35) teaching in British private preparatory schools, then travelled to Iceland and China to write books about his journeys. In 1939 he moved to the United States and became an American citizen in 1946, retaining his British citizenship. Auden oli homopetteri.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 466: Lasse Matias Heikkilä, sukunimi vuoteen 1930 Levola (6. marraskuuta 1925 Kiikoinen – 26. maaliskuuta 1961 Sipoo) oli suomalainen runoilija, jota pidettiin yhtenä 1950-luvun modernismin keskeisistä vaikuttajista. Heikkilän esikoisteos Miekkalintu (1949) oli ensimmäisiä tietoisesti modernistisia runoteoksia Suomessa. Lasse Heikkilän äiskä menehtyi syntyessään, ja Heikkilän kasvattiäitikin kuoli vuonna 1940. Lasse Heikkilä oli jatkosodan aikana mukana Ihantalan taistelussa vain 18-vuotiaana panssarintorjuntamiehenä. Nämäkin kokemukset jättivät Heikkilään syvät jäljet. Sotavuosina Heikkilä alkoi myös käyttää alkoholin ohella unilääkkeitä ja piristäviä aineita, mikä johti myöhemmin hänen ennenaikaiseen kuolemaansa. Hän kuului nuorten intellektuellien homopettereiden Urania-piiriin, jossa tutkittiin kirjallisuutta ja filosofiaa, mutta myös matematiikkaa ja äärettömyyden teoriaa.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 492: Maurice Bedel, né le 30 décembre 1883 à Paris et mort le 15 octobre 1954 à La Genauraye à Thuré (Vienne)1, est un écrivain, essayiste et journaliste français. Aika lailla Urpo Harvan näköinen. Docteur en médecine, la thèse de Maurice Bedel est consacrée aux obsessions périodiques et se tourne vers la psychiatrie. Il publie ses premiers poèmes sous le pseudonyme de Gabriel Senilis : Le Cahier de Phane. Couronné par le prix Goncourt en 1927 pour son premier roman Jérôme 60° latitude nord, il est élu en 1948 président de la Société des gens de lettres.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 519: Bukowskin tarinat kertovat lähes aina elämän laitapuolesta ja niiden tematiikka liikkuu yksinäisyyden ja ulkopuolisuuden tunteissa. Hän kirjoitti paljon vaikeasta isäsuhteestaan, parhaana esimerkkinä omaelämäkerrallinen kasvuromaani Siinä sivussa (Ham on Rye, 1982). Tarinoiden päähenkilönä on usein Bukowskin alter ego, Henry Chinaski: naisiinmenevä mutta naimaton, rähjäinen ja vapaa mies. Kirjallisen tuotantonsa lisäksi Bukowski käsikirjoitti Mickey Rourken ja Faye Dunawayn tähdittämän elokuvan Baarikärpänen (1987). Bukowski kuoli leukemiaan vuonna 1994.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 524: Robert von Ranke Graves (24 July 1895 – 7 December 1985) was a British poet, historical novelist, critic, and classicist. His father was Alfred Perceval Graves, a celebrated Irish poet and figure in the Gaelic revival; they were both Celticists and students of Irish mythology. Graves produced more than 140 works in his lifetime. His poems, his translations and innovative analysis of the Greek myths, his memoir of his early life—including his role in World War I—Good-Bye to All That, and his speculative study of poetic inspiration, The White Goddess, have never been out of print.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 557: 1881 starb seine Mutter Charlotte an Tuberkulose. Morgenstern hatte sich offenbar bei ihr angesteckt. Bald darauf wurde er, ohne in der frühen Kindheit regelmäßigen Schulunterricht erhalten zu haben, seinem Paten Arnold Otto Meyer, einem Kunsthändler in Hamburg, zur Erziehung anvertraut, worunter er jedoch litt. Ein Jahr später kehrte er nach München zurück und kam in ein Internat in Landshut. Dort wurde Körperstrafe eingesetzt, und er erfuhr Mobbing durch seine Mitschüler.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 563: Ab 1903 war er literarischer Lektor im Verlag von Bruno Cassirer, mit dem er freundschaftlich verbunden war. Er betreute und förderte dort u. a. Robert Walser. Zuvor war er Dramaturg bei Felix Bloch Erben. 1905 reiste er nach Wyk und hatte einen Sanatoriumsaufenthalt in Birkenwerder, der nicht zum gewünschten Erfolg führte. Zudem erschienen in diesem Jahr seine Galgenlieder und er las Fjodor Michailowitsch Dostojewski. Ein Jahr später reiste er aus gesundheitlichen Gründen in Kurorte in bayerischer, Tiroler und Schweizer Alpenlandschaft, nach Bad Tölz, Längenfeld, Obergurgl, Meran, Obermais, St. Vigil und Tenigerbad und beschäftigte sich mit Jakob Böhme, Fechner, Fichte, Hegel, Eckhart von Hochheim, Fritz Mauthner, Spinoza und Tolstoi.
      xxx/ellauri128.html on line 603: The teachings of George Ivanovitch Gurdjieff played an important role in Anderson's life. Anderson met Gurdjieff in Paris and, together with Leblanc, began studies with him, focusing on his original teaching called The Fourth Way. Along with Katherine Mansfield and Jane Heap, she remains one of the most noted institutees of Gurdjieff´s, Institute for the Harmonious Development of Man, at Fontainebleau, near Paris, from October 1922 to 1924. Anderson studied with Gurdjieff in France until his death in October 1949, writing about him and his teachings in most of her books, most extensively in her memoir, The Unknowable Gurdjieff. By 1942 her relationship with Heap had cooled. Anderson sailed for the United States. Jane Heap had moved to London in 1935, where she led Gurdjieff study groups until her death in 1964. With her passage paid by Ernest Hemingway, Anderson met on the voyage Dorothy Caruso, widow of the singer and famous tenor Enrico Caruso. The two began a romantic relationship, and lived together until Dorothy´s death in 1955. Anderson returned to Le Cannet, and there she died of emphysema on October 19, 1973.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 37: Heräsin aamuyöllä kesken neuvostoaikaista unta kyljen kutinaan. Vessassa selvisi että siinä oli punkinpoikanen. Yön aikana oli kypsynyt kannanotto, että aforistiikka on PUOLIVILLAISTA. Menneiden aikojen Kim Kardashian js Kanye West touhua. Turhat julkkixet pääsee heittää läppiä. Punkkinymfetti putos lavuaariin, kai. Se saattoi olla peräisin Osmolta. Sekin vielä.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 128: Olin miettinyt pitkään eroa, hakenutkin sitä, mutta vetänyt hakemuksen takaisin. Kävn yxin pariterapiassa, mutta sekään ei auttanut, sillä hän ei vaan halunnut. Tai ei kyennyt.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 269: Eero esitteli mönkijää, se oli Polaris Sportsman XP 550, parin vuoden takainen malli, neliveto, sähköinen ohjaustehostin, alamäkijarru ja niin edelleen. Eero kertoi kokeilleensa sitä Piikkiön pelialueella, ajotuntuma oli täydellinen, äkkijyrkät nousut se otti kevyesti ja anti-kickback tasasi ohjaustankoon osuvat iskut. Tällainen oli Larille tuttua. Eero sai pakkoajatuksia tavaroista. Jos hänen piti ostaa vaikka makuupussi, hankintaa edelsi viikkojen tutkimustyö. Hän luki verkosta testejä ja käyttäjäkokemuksia, soitteli myyjille ja maahantuojille, perehtyi makuupussien teknologiaan, vertaili grammapainoja, kuorikankaita, tikkauksia, polyamidilaatujen vedenpitävyyttä ja täytemateriaalien kompressoituvuutta, kunnes osti kilpailukykyisimmän makuupussin, puhui siitä jokaiselle ja nukkui siinä ehkä kahdesti. Tieto täydellisestä varusteesta oli käyttöä tärkeämpää.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 275: Eero sanoi sen kevyesti, vaikka asia oli ollut hankala. Kun tytöt olivat syntyneet, Aino oli alkanut pelätä Eeron lyhyitäkin ajoreissuja. Siitä oli tullut konflikti, Aino kuvaili onnettomuusmielikuviaan ja pelkoaan, että jäisi tyttöjen kanssa yksin. Eero yritti rauhoitella, puolusti vapauttaan, totesi sen rajojen muuttuneen ja myi pyörän parin vuoden päästä.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 389: Olen itse nuorena mielelläni hakeutunut lyhyestä työsuhteesta toiseen. Kirjailijan työ on minulle unelmatyö, jossa voin kohdella lähimpiä työtovereitani – perheenjäseniä ja muita kuvitteellisia henkilöitä – niin kertakäyttöisesti ja julmasti kuin haluan.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 394: Kirjailija voi puhua viihdyttävästi ja olla älykäs ja viehättävä, mutta kantaa silti kevyesti onnettomuutta kummassakin kädessään. Hän ei osaa katua ja pitää oikeutenaan loukata ja kohdella muita kaltoin ja varastaa heiltä haluamansa. Tyypillisiä ovat suuruuskuvitelmat, realististen suunnitelmien puute, loismainen elämäntapa, pakonomainen valehtelu ja salanimillä ja estradilla esiintyminen.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 597: Karl Ludwig Börne, alkujaan Loeb (Löb) Baruch, (6. toukokuuta 1786 Frankfurt am Main - 12. helmikuuta 1837 Pariisi) oli saksanjuutalainen poliittinen kirjailija ja satiirikko. Hän kuului Nuori Saksa-liikkeeseen. Börne oli alkuaan lääketieteen ylioppilas, siirtyi sitten juridisiin tutkimuksiin ja antautui lopulta sanomalehtimieheksi ja kirjailijaksi kun ei muuhun kyennyt.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 631: Bernard le Bouyer (Bovier) de Fontenelle (11. helmikuuta 1657 Rouen, Ranska – 9. tammikuuta 1757 Pariisi, Ranska) oli ranskalainen kirjailija.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 644: Elizabeth Parsons Ware Packard (28 December, 1816 – 25 July, 1897), also known as E.P.W. Packard, was an American advocate for the rights of women and people accused of insanity. She was wrongfully confined by her husband who claimed that she had been insane, for more than three years. At her trial, 3 yrs later, a jury took just seven minutes to find her not insane. Pezku koitti samaa Kikalle Hangossa heikommin tuloxin, valkotakit veivät Petterin.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 646: At the insistence of her parents, Elizabeth Parsons Ware married Calvinist minister Theophilus Packard, fourteen years her senior and said to be "cold and domineering", on 21 May 1839. The couple had 6 at least 6 times cause they had 6 children. She later founded the Anti-Insane Asylum Society, campaigning for divorced women to retain custody of their children.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 648: Theophilus, however, held quite decisive religious beliefs. After many years of marriage, Elizabeth Packard outwardly questioned her husband's beliefs and began expressing opinions that were contrary to his. While the main subject of their dispute was religion, the couple also disagreed on child rearing, family finances, and the issue of slavery, with Elizabeth defending John Brown, which embarrassed Theophilus. What was worst, she also worked as a teacher in Jacksonville, Illinois.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 650: When Illinois opened its first hospital for the mentally ill in 1851, the state legislature passed a law that within two years of its passage was amended to require a public hearing before a person could be committed against his or her will. There was one exception, however: a husband could have his wife committed without either a public hearing or her consent. In 1860, Theophilus Packard judged that his wife was "slightly insane", a condition he attributed to "excessive application of body and mind". He arranged for a doctor, J.W. Brown, to speak with her. The doctor pretended to be a sewing machine salesman. During their conversation, Elizabeth complained of her husband's domination and his accusations to others that she was insane. Dr. Brown reported this conversation to Theophilus (along with the observation that Mrs. Packard "exhibited a great dislike to me"). Theophilus decided to have Elizabeth committed. She learned of this decision on June 18, 1860, when the county sheriff arrived at the Packard home to take her into custody.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 652: Elizabeth Packard spent the next three years at the Jacksonville Insane Asylum in Jacksonville, IL (now the Jacksonville Developmental Center). She was regularly questioned by her doctors but refused to agree that she was insane or to change her religious views. In June 1863, due, in part, to pressure from her children, who wished her released, the doctors declared that she was incurable and discharged her. Upon her discharge, Theophilus locked her in the nursery of their home and nailed the windows shut. Elizabeth managed to drop a letter complaining of this treatment out the window, which was delivered to her friend Sarah Haslett. Sarah Haslett in turn delivered the letter to Judge Charles Starr, who issued a writ of habeas corpus ordering Theophilus to bring Elizabeth to his chambers to discuss the matter. After being presented with Theophilus' evidence, Judge Starr scheduled a jury trial to allow a legal determination of Elizabeth's sanity to take place.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 654: At the subsequent trial of Packard v. Packard, which lasted five days, Theophilus's lawyers produced witnesses from his family who testified that Elizabeth had argued with her husband and tried to withdraw from his congregation. These witnesses concurred with Theophilus that this was a sign of insanity. The record from the Illinois State Hospital stating that Mrs. Packard's condition was incurable was also entered into the court record.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 656: Elizabeth's lawyers, Stephen Moore and John W. Orr, responded by calling witnesses from the neighborhood that knew the Packards but were not members of Theophilus' church. These witnesses testified they never saw Elizabeth exhibit any signs of insanity, while discussing religion or otherwise. The final witness was Dr. Duncanson, who was both a physician and a theologian. Dr. Duncanson had interviewed Elizabeth and he testified that while not necessarily in agreement with all her religious beliefs, she was sane in his view, arguing that "I do not call people insane because they differ with me. I pronounce her a sane woman and wish we had a nation of such women.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 672: William Wilkie Collins (8 January 1824 – 23 September 1889) was an English novelist and playwright known for The Woman in White (1859), and for The Moonstone (1868), which has been posited as the first modern English detective novel. Born to the London painter William Collins and his wife, he moved with the family to Italy when he was twelve, living there and in France for two years and learning Italian and French. He worked initially as a tea merchant. After publishing Antonina, his first novel, in 1850, Collins met Charles Dickens, who became a friend and mentor. Some Collins work first appeared in Dickens's journals Household Words and All the Year Round. They also collaborated on drama and fiction. Collins gained financial stability and an international following by the 1860s, but began to suffer from gout and became addicted to the opium he took for the pain, so that his health and writing quality declined in the 1870s and 1880s. Collins was critical of the institution of marriage: he split his time between widow Caroline Graves – living with her for most of his adult life, treating her daughter as his – and the younger Martha Rudd, by whom he had three children.
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 736: Peter Nygårds vänner tex Aira Samulin känner sig lite obekväma om Peters svarta sida. Peter Nygårds aptit på unga kvinnor var bottenlös. Peter Nygård var en skitstövel, säger en ex-anställd. Men nu avslöjer HBL Peters gula sida! Peter Nygård ser ut som en av de kinesiska hjältarna i Marvels nya film. Peter Nygård i sina jetset-millionär-modekungadagar såg ut precis som Ronny Chieng med Akwafina, spelandes Jon-Jon i Marvel´s fantasifilm Tio ringar. Peter sku säkert ha betalt Awkwafinas tandläkarräkningar. Jag med! After Hours, Awkwafina Gets Naked And Watches ASMR Videos. But she has not leaked them as yet, aw shucks. (Autonomous Sensory Meridian Response (ASMR) is a pleasurable, tingling sensation usually felt in the brain, but can spread to the rest of the body. It frequently occurs when watching things such as demonstrations, foreign accents, explanations, naked Asian ladies, etc., and it´s a generally wonderful feeling. I´ve experienced ASMR all my life, but never knew it had a name until now, so hooray I guess!)
      xxx/ellauri129.html on line 749: »Ottaen huomioon kysymyksessä olevan kirjallisuuden laajuuden tuloksen täytyy jäädä vaillinaiseksi, mutta sellaisenakin teos silti kyennee raoittamaan sitä ovea, jonka takana englanninkielisen kirjallisuuden runotar hallitsee.»
      xxx/ellauri130.html on line 111:
      yellow">
      xxx/ellauri130.html on line 118: "And ye shall eat the flesh of your sons, and the flesh of your daughters shall ye eat." -- Leviticus 26:29
      xxx/ellauri130.html on line 493: Mixi vanhasta elämä näyttää niin lyhyeltä? Huonomuistisuudesta.Arttu SchopenhauerMKILL!
      xxx/ellauri130.html on line 556: Who have not yet forgotten quite Jotka muistaa vielä miten kova
      xxx/ellauri130.html on line 579: Myös Vilpittömän Nahkurin Runous-nettiradion kuudes sarja on juuri alkanut, ja tämän päivän jaksossa entinen runoilijapalkinnon saaja Carola Anna Tussua pohtii lähetysennusteen rukousmaista laatua: ‘There’s never been a time when you could just say anything’: Frank Skinner on free speech, his bullying shame – and knob [kyrvännuppi] jokes. This poetry-loving, religious knob has deep regrets about some of his comedy: either the standup comic has grown up, or he was never as laddish as his image suggested. Nearing death and last judgment, he is hoping to perform a “cleaner, cleverer” kind of act, one that would let him look straight at the crowd and – perhaps for the first time in his life – not see anybody squirming in their seat in discomfort. “It was a struggle,” the 65-year-old says with a grin, “because I realised that I seem to think in knob jokes. And I have done since I was about 13. In the West Midlands, that was how people communicated!”
      xxx/ellauri130.html on line 581: 30 Years of Dirt is not, then, a compendium of Skinner’s best sex gags – of which there have been plenty over the years. Rather, it’s a comedic journey through his attempt to de-smutify his brain for the modern woke audience, a kind of personal challenge: can he even be funny without talking about penises? (No, he gets boring as a prayer book.)
      xxx/ellauri130.html on line 583: “I don’t think there’s ever been a time when you could just say anything.” He recalls an early comedy show – this must have been in the late 80s – where the host apologised to the crowd after Skinner had performed some risque sexual material. “He said I’d never play at the venue again – and then he launched into a load of racist material and brought the house down. Everyone’s got their own standards and restraints. But I think it’s been good for me to keep questioning what I say. It’s made me think more positively about racist jokes and not so much about penises. My knob is not working anymore BTW, I'm 65. We’re both deeply ashamed. Can't lift our eye to the public.”
      xxx/ellauri130.html on line 587: But recently that position has shifted a little. Last year he published A Comedian’s Prayer Book, which features him talking to the supreme being in his typically down-to-earth way (“I always liked thinking Jesus' knob hung out from women's clothes with sinners. It made me feel potentially understood”). “One of the things religion has suffered from is being spoken of in grave terms constantly. I seriously think it is a joke." Another boring thing about Skinner: he’s been a teetotaller since he reached his 60s. He got a kid at 55, who must now be, wait, 35? No, Buzz is just 10. I have only recently realized I'm not the main character here, but just an extra in a bigger scene. “Hitting kids … that’s another of those things that have stopped,” Evolution is what Skinner is all about – animals can change and they can grow, it just takes millions of years. When he made his jokes about racism and homophobia, he says, there was a slight backlash from the left. They hadn't stopped hitting lads, the sods. Frank Skinner’s 30 Years of Dirt is at the Assembly Roxy, Edinburgh, from 4 to 28 August. For more information and tickets go to frankskinnerlive.com.
      xxx/ellauri130.html on line 687: Olen toukan kotihirsi, lyhyestä kaunis virsi.Unto KupiainenMKILL!
      xxx/ellauri130.html on line 765: Christine Chubbuck (August 24, 1944 – July 15, 1974) was an American television news reporter who worked for WTOG and WXLT-TV in Sarasota, Florida. She was the first person to die by suicide on a live television broadcast. She lamented to co-workers that her 30th birthday was approaching, and she was still a virgin who had never been on more than two dates with a man. Co-workers said she tended to be brusque and defensive whenever they made friendly gestures toward her. She was self-deprecating, criticizing herself constantly and rejecting any compliments others paid her. The film reel of the restaurant shooting had jammed and would not run, so Chubbuck shrugged it off and said on-camera, "In keeping with the WXLT practice of presenting the most immediate and complete reports of local blood and guts news, TV 40 presents what is believed to be a television first. In living color, an exclusive coverage of an attempted suicide." She drew the .38-caliber Smith & Wesson Model 36 revolver and shot herself behind her right ear. Chubbuck fell forward violently and the technical director faded the broadcast rapidly to black. "The crux of the situation was that she was a 29-year-old girl who wanted to be married and who wasn't," Simmons said in 1977.
      xxx/ellauri130.html on line 769: Nuorena katoliseen valtauskoon skeptisesti suhtautunut Claudel koki 18-vuotiaana äkillisen kääntymisen voimakkaan uskonnollisen kokemuksen seurauksena. Tämä maailmankuva säilyi hänellä loppuun asti, yhdistyen ympäröivissä kulttuuripiireissä vanhoillisen konservatiivisiin, jopa äärioikeistolaisiin poliittisiin mielipiteisiin. Toisen maailmansodan kontekstissa etenkin kysymykset Vichyn hallituksesta ja antisemitismistä nousivat keskeisiksi. Traditionalistisista näkemyksistään huolimatta Paul Claudel tuomitsi kirjoituksissaan yksiselitteisesti natsi-Saksan toiminnan.
      xxx/ellauri130.html on line 780: Claudel was nominated for the Nobel Prize in Literature in six different years. Another hopeless Nobel wannabe, politically too suspect.
      xxx/ellauri134.html on line 79:
      xxx/ellauri136.html on line 105: Annals of the Former World by John McPhee—this is me cheating so I don’t have to say “all of John McPhee’s geology writing”—John McPhee, who made reading about oranges (yes the fruit) interesting, got bit by the geology bug while researching for an essay about geology in the Southwest. I know this feeling. Again, this is engagingly written and most informative.
      xxx/ellauri136.html on line 149: Catcher in the Rye
      xxx/ellauri136.html on line 172: Mostly all of Stephen King books I own they all.i get into them once I start a book it’s really hard to put down yes I can some of them can be pretty spooky but that’s what I love about them.
      xxx/ellauri136.html on line 229: Sitä vastoin tapauksessa, jossa 62-vuotias tekijä oli kohdistanut tekonsa 15-vuotiaaseen lapseen, katsottiin raiskauksen tunnusmerkistön täyttyvän vähäisestä väkivallasta huolimatta. Tekijä oli juottanut uhrille väkevää alkoholia, riisunut hänet vastoin hänen tahtoaan ja tönäissyt vielä sängylle ryhtyessään pukille, millä menettelyllä hovioikeus katsoi tekijän murtaneen kahdestaan hänen kanssaan asunnossa peloissaan ja humalassa olleen uhrin vastustustahdon. Käräjäoikeus oli tapauksessa päätynyt samaan lopputulokseen. Törkeä vanha äijänkäppyrä hillopurkilla.
      xxx/ellauri136.html on line 343: Analyysi runolle "Chaadayevil"
      xxx/ellauri136.html on line 387: Tämän seurauksena Mikhail Yurevich hajosi Catherinen kanssa Sushkova, mutta koska hän oli luonteeltaan kostonhimoinen henkilö, jonkin ajan kuluttua hän koski hiäntä sieltä. Tämä tapahtui 5 vuoden kuluttua jakeesta "Kaveri". Runoilija ei ilmaisse mitään tosi tunteita, osoitti karkoitusta jatkuvasti ihaillen tytön kauneutta. Lopulta Sushkova rakastui häneen ja sitten Lermontov iski hiänelle murskaavan iskuja. Mikhail Yuryevich ilmoitti kaikille, että Catherine oli tyhmä, ruma ja vain sääli. Lermontovin "Kavennetun" runon analyysi mahdollistaa paitsi ihailla myös ympäröivän maailman kovaisuutta, mutta myös nostamaan verhon suuren venäläisen runoilijan tunteiden yli.
      xxx/ellauri136.html on line 512: So where I start is with connection. Because, by the time you're a social worker for 10 years, what you realize is that connection is why we're here. It's what gives purpose and meaning to our lives. This is what it's all about. It doesn't matter whether you talk to people who work in social justice, mental health and abuse and neglect, what we know is that connection, the ability to feel connected, is -- neurobiologically that's how we're wired -- it's why we're here. Olemme ohjelmoituja kuulumaan joukkoon. Voi hemmetti.
      xxx/ellauri136.html on line 534: Because -- We are the most in-debt ... obese ... addicted and medicated adult cohort in U.S. history. Goodbye vulnerability, farewell grief, byebye shame, so long fear, see ya later disappointment. I don't want to feel you up. I'm going to have a couple of beers and a banana nut muffin. Move fat from my cheek to my butt.
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 76: Muutos alkoi henkilökohtaisesta tragediasta. Viitisen vuotta sitten Rantala sai potkut puolisolta ja sai lääkärikäynnillä kuulla olevansa siitä vakavasti masentunut. Hänelle tarjottiin pelkkiä lääkkeitä, joista hän kieltäytyi. ”Käytännössä se oli virhe”, Rantala sanoo. Hän alkoi perehtyä vaihtoehtoisiin hoitoihin ja innostui biohakkeroinnista eli oman ruumiinsa tarkkailemisesta ja mittaamisesta. ”Opin tuntemaan oman kehoni, ja miten se toimii. Lukuisista tarkistusmittauxista huolimatta se oli lyhyempi kuin luulin," hän sanoo. Kengänkärjet kastuivat joka kerta.
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 146: Leo N. Tolstoi (1828-1910), kirjailija, sosiaalireformisti ja moralisti, tunnetaan tällä haavaa lähinnä romaaneista (tai leffoista) Vainaa i Mir ja Anna Karenina. Lisäxi se kynäili kaikenlaisia pamfletteja ja muutamia lisäromskuja, esim joku Ylösnousemus. Se hurahti jeesusteluun aika pahasti lähestyessään viittäkymmentä, mistä jäljempänä enemmän.
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 206: And the Majas, they are not aristocratic ladies as their fine apparel may suggest; they lack refinement and dignity, though they are extremely attractive (particularly the one on the right, I would fuck her anytime). The artist calls them majas not mujeres. A patent wink to the same artist's best known work La Maja desnuda from the same year. They are no ordinary women. They are courtesans! Sluts, not to make too fine a point on it. Goya makes a subtle criticism on the society of his time. In Majas on a Balcony, Goya combines an ironic treatment of material with an impressionistic technique, a mode of presentation, which succeeds in creating a piece of social criticism. Buaahahahaha don't make me laugh!
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 219: La douceur du foyer et le charme des soirs,
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 235: Et mes yeux dans le noir devinaient tes prunelles,
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 296: Oh, thou all my pleasures, oh, thou all my prayers!
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 314: And deep through the darkness thine eyes I divined,
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 348: how deep the skyey space! how rich love's power!
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 354: eyes groped for widening eyes the black withheld,
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 379: Quiet and passionate? Like yesterday, it seems,
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 395: And your eyes flashed within the darkness, and the sweet
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 433: And as my eyes astrologised your own,
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 474: My eyes in the darkness felt the fire of your gaze
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 514: Across the dark your eyes bound mine with golden bands,
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 555: My eyes could see the black of yours still shine,
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 575: Two editions of Fleurs du mal were published in Baudelaire's lifetime — one in 1857 and an expanded edition in 1861. "Scraps" and censored poems were collected in Les Épaves in 1866. After Baudelaire died the following year, a "definitive" edition appeared in 1868.
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 580:
      Edward Eriksson, Self-employed from University of Iowa

      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 588:
      Self-employed Graphic Novelist, Voice-Over Artist, Self-employed Tour Guide
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 589: Dec 2010 - Present 11 years 2 months
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 596: Sep 1966 - Present 55 years 5 months
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 601: Jan 1965 - Jun 1966 1 year 6 months
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 662: Alok Mishra is a literary entrepreneur as well as a literary philanthropist who has been active in this field almost for a decade now (adding the individual capacity as well as organisational). He is currently active as the founder of BookBoys PR, a dedicated company which works for authors and publishers and help them reach the target readers. Alok has been in this field, promotions and author branding, for more than 4 years now.
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 710:
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 713: Puhelimeen vastataan moshi moshi. En oikein pidä japsuista. Tosin tässä kirjassa ei niitä häiriöxi asti ole, enemmän on blue-eyed sarariimaneja. Rei muistuttaa jotain julkkista, oliko se Emily in Paris, joka rakastaa koluta äitinsä kanssa antiikkikauppoja.
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 738: Tonya Maxene Harding (born November 12, 1970) is an American former figure skater, retired boxer and a reality television personality. Born in Portland, Oregon, Harding was raised primarily by her mother, who enrolled her in ice skating lessons beginning at three years old. Harding spent much of her early life training, eventually dropping out of high school to devote her time to the sport. After climbing the ranks in the U.S. Figure Skating Championships between 1986 and 1989, Harding won the 1989 Skate America competition. She became the 1991 and 1994 U.S. champion and 1991 World silver medalist. In 1991, she earned the distinction of becoming the first American woman to successfully land a triple Axel in competition - and the second woman to do so in history (behind Midori Ito). Harding is a two-time Olympian and a two-time Skate America Champion.
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 742: From 2003 to 2004, Harding competed as a professional boxer. Her life has been the subject of many books, films, documentaries, and academic studies. In 2014, two television documentaries were made about Harding´s life and skating career (Nancy & Tonya and The Price of Gold), inspiring Steven Rogers to write the film I, Tonya in 2017, in which Harding was portrayed by Australian actress Margot Robbie. In 2018, she was a contestant on season 26 of Dancing with the Stars, finishing in third place. In 2019, she won season 16 of Worst Cooks in America: Celebrity Edition.
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 751: The novel features a passionate romance between Rei Shimura and Hugh Glendinning, the Scottish lawyer. Though the romance was not very realistic, I think it added an exciting and entertaining element to the novel. The first person point-of-view from which the novel is narrated allows the audience to truly understand the good and the bad of Rei’s character. She is independent to a fault but extremely loyal. She wants to immerse herself in Japanese culture, yet she rejects the social norms of society when they conflict with her desires. She is passionate about her interest in history and antiques, but logical by staying on as a teacher. The contradictions make her human and contribute to the reality of the novel. While mystery was not entirely believable, it was in no way predictable and I genuinely found the plot to be exciting. The Salaryman’s Wife, fits into the detective fiction tradition as most closely as a cozy, however the urban setting and the inclusion of graphic sex scenes contradict that classification
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 773: The one stand-out annoyance for me was unexpectedly hitting upon yet another plot relying upon "rescuing" a female character from her sordid life of sex (or nearly-sex) work: hostessing, in this case. She's told she's "better" than that which means she should make less money doing something more honorable. It makes me want to write to the author and say she could do so much BETTER than write a book that hooks readers immediately with an erotically-charged story of sexual assault on a crowded train. I´m not mad at her, though, for giving the majority of readers what they want; just a pet peeve of mine.
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 787: Sujata, also Sujātā, Eugenie, well-born, was a farmer´s wife, who is said to have fed Gautama Buddha a bowl of kheer, a condensed milk-rice pudding, ending his six years of asceticism. Such was his emaciated appearance that she wrongly believed him to be a tree-spirit that had granted her wish of having a child. The gift provided him enough strength to cultivate the Middle Path, develop jhana, and attain Bodhi, thereafter becoming known as the Buddha. The story does not tell what the holy tree spirit said when Gautama ate his rice and curry.
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 795: She attended Johns Hopkins University, where she majored in Creative Writing and earned her BA in 1986. After graduating, she interned and was quickly hired as a reporter for the Baltimore Evening Sun. In 1991, she married Tony Massey, her college sweetheart, and the couple moved to Japan. Her husband was almost immediately deployed by the Navy, which left Mrs. Massey to acclimate to the culture alone. She worked as an English teacher while in Japan and began writing. In 1993, her husband’s deployment ended and the couple moved back to the States and settled in Baltimore, where they currently reside.
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 797: She met her husband, a Navy medical officer, during that time and they moved to Japan in 1991. During the two years there she taught English, studied Japanese and wrote fiction. In December 1998, Sujata and her husband Tony adopted a baby daughter, Pia, who was born in South India. They live in Baltimore, Maryland.
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 809: Sujatan äiti joutui ostamaan sille joka vuosi uuden kuumavesipullon. Her farts boiled bathwater. Reistä kynittyine kananpersetukkineen tuli yön yli alistettujen japsunaisten roolimalli. Rei stairu maxaa kampaajalla 6K yeniä. Voi ei, vingahtaa Rei tyytyväisenä. Rei kumartaa, lämmittää mikrossa lihaperunalaatikot, keittää teet ja järjestää lautaselle Yakuzan lahjapersikat. Sääli etten osaa kanjeja, on raivostuttavaa kun ei tiedä mitä izestä sanotaan. Reistä on tulossa julkkis hyvää kyytiä. Se on haikeaa, mutta hienoa. Ylläni oli niitä sun näitä lainahöyheniä. Tää kirja on niinniin tyttöjen. Tulee mieleen Richardsonin Pamela.
      xxx/ellauri137.html on line 819: Call 911, sanoin parhaalla Amerikan axentillani. No se oli kai sitten siinä. Vai tuleeko tähän loppuun vielä jotain laittoa? No tietysti. Rei läzähtää jalkapuolen Shagin päälle kylvyssä vesi läiskyen. Sisäänlaittoa ei enää näytetä, sen saa lukija kuvitella ize. Ei se ole helppoa kun Shag on kokovartalokipsissä. But where there is a will there is a way.
      xxx/ellauri138.html on line 27:

      yellow;background:#a6b1ad;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">J.W.v Goethe


      xxx/ellauri138.html on line 74: Rohn became a college dropout after just one year and started his professional life by working as an evil human resource manager for department store Sears. Around this time, a friend invited him to a lecture given by famous entrepreneur John Earl Shoaff. In 1955, Rohn joined Shoaff's direct selling business AbundaVita as a distributor.
      xxx/ellauri138.html on line 80: Throughout the 1970s, Rohn conducted a number of seminars for Standard Oil. At the same time, he participated in a personal development business called "Adventures in Achievement", which featured both live seminars as well as personal development workshops. He presented seminars worldwide for more than 40 years.
      xxx/ellauri138.html on line 170: The Heisman Memorial Trophy (usually known colloquially as the Heisman Trophy or The Heisman) is awarded annually to the most outstanding player in college football. Winners epitomize great ability combined with diligence, perseverance, and hard work.
      xxx/ellauri138.html on line 210: In 1941, Wylie became Vice-President of the International Game Fish Association, and for many years was responsible for writing IGFA rules and reviewing world record claims. Wylie's 1954 novel Tomorrow! dealt graphically with the civilian impact of thermonuclear war to make a case for a strong Civil Defense network in the United States, as he told the story of two neighboring cities (one prepared, one unprepared) before and after an attack by missile-armed Soviet bombers.
      xxx/ellauri138.html on line 217:
      xxx/ellauri138.html on line 224:
      xxx/ellauri138.html on line 229: Pörröpäisen Raymond Pierrehumbertin kasarilla hanurilla haparoima rivosuinen renkutus on lämmitetty Pasin ja Anssin toimesta vielä karmaisevammaxi räpixi. Miten VOI viihdepaska olla näin klisheistä apinatuubaa? Voiko tää oikeasti olla jostakusta hauskaa? Kun ympyräsuiset ystävämme kuulivat mistä siinä oikeasti oli kysymys, ne punastelivat ja lakkasivat soittamasta sitä hanurilla enää. Niillä oli siihen aikaan samanlaiset hipster lokariasut kuin Pasilla ja Anssilla, ostetut Brooks Brothersilta ja L.A. Beanilta. Pasi ja Anssi on aivan hirveitä, ja solistiyhtye Suomi ja. Cringy!
      xxx/ellauri138.html on line 231:
      xxx/ellauri138.html on line 232:
      xxx/ellauri138.html on line 286: About a year after my diagnosis, in 2010, Philip invited me to join him for weekends at his country home. After that he dropped me, as it was getting too hard for him to turn me on my back. I didn't want to use the clothes drier but hung my panties on a line. Philip joked that I was turning his home into a trailer park but never insisted I use the dryer. I didn't need to cook, Philip planned where to eat and made the reservations. I used to like resting my ear on the hard metal of the implanted defibrillator that sat just below the skin of his chest to treat dysrhythmia.
      xxx/ellauri138.html on line 297: When Philip and I were in the country together he religiously tuned into Susan Kennedy's Big Band Hall of Fame on WMNR each Saturday night before dinner. He loved to sing along to Frank Sinatra and the Andrews Sisters and often quizzed me about the tracks. Sometimes we danced. One year he gave me a portable radio for my birthday so I'd be able to listen to Susan at home when we weren't together.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 199: Ippolit is a 17-year-old boy who is dying of tuberculosis. An ardent nihilist, he yearns to be taken seriously and attempts to dramatically leave the world. He delivers rambling, self-absorbed, nihilistic speech entitled “A Necessary Explanation” to Myshkin, Nastasya, and Rogozhin, and many others at a party at Lebedev’s dacha. After this, he attempts to commit suicide by shooting himself with the gun he’s had since he was a child. This entire plan backfires, as everyone grows bored with his speech, and when it comes time to kill himself he fails to do so because there is no cap in the gun. After this incident, Ippolit’s illness shows progress and he eventually dies.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 215: Ippolit is really, really scared of dying. He´s still putting on his nihilist who-cares attitude, but he was totally thrown by the offhanded way a nihilist doctor told him he had at most a month left. He´s nineteen years old. That's a pretty hardcore thing to be dealing with at nineteen.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 251: Eräitä Myshkinin kuvaan liittyviä romaanin episodeja luodessaan kirjailija on käyttänyt oman elämänkertansa piirteitä. Myshkinille kuten muutamille muillekin kirjojensa sankareille kirjailija antoi sen vaikean hermosairauden, epilepsian, josta hän itsekin kärsi; Myshkinin tila ennen epileptista kohtausta vastaa sitä, mitä hän oman kertomansa mukaan koki sairauskohtauksen lähestyessä.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 312: "Mutta eipä mitään! Romaanissa on paljon kirjoitettu lyhyesti, paljon pitkäpiimäisesti ja epäonnistuneesti, mutta jotakin on onnistunutkin. En seiso romaanin, vaan ajatuksieni takana."
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 329: ‘The Eve of St. Agnes’ begins with the setting, the eve of the Feast of St. Agnes, January 20th (the Feast is celebrated on the 21st). It is horribly cold outside. A Beadsman, a professional man of prayer, is freezing in his church. He briefly hears music from the house that the church abuts. They are preparing a celebration and the guests all arrive in a burst of expensive clothing and plumage.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 357: Past the sweet Virgin’s picture, while his prayer he saith. Jonka sielu pääsi taivaaseen jo aattona.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 360: His prayer he saith, this patient, holy man; Pomiloipa kärsivällisesti pyhä mies;
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 388: The carved angels, ever eager-eyed, Jotka kannattelee päällään katon kurkipuuun,
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 412: Of Heaven with upward eyes for all that they desire. Kääntää silmät ylöspäin eli olla selinmakuulla.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 416: The music, yearning like a God in pain, Musaa tuskin kuuli, niin kovasti kun panetti,
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 417: She scarcely heard: her maiden eyes divine, Se kazoi lattiaan, missä näki roikkuvan
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 423: She sigh’d for Agnes’ dreams, the sweetest of the year. Se kaipas Aunen unia, vuoden mehukkaimpia.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 426: She danc’d along with vague, regardless eyes, VIII.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 449: All eyes be muffled, or a hundred swords Siis taloon vasta, missä pyörii porukoita;
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 452: Hyena foemen, and hot-blooded lords, Kuukkeleita: ne on vitun herroja, hyeenoita,
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 508: But soon his eyes grew brilliant, when she told Mut pian on Porfyyri kuin konin koukussa,
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 527: “When my weak voice shall whisper its last prayer, Oltaisiin, menen vaikka valalle,
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 539: “Whose prayers for thee, each morn and evening, Multa ei koskaan ole päässyt uupumaan
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 553: And pale enchantment held her sleepy-eyed. Sua auttamassa on tuhatkunta imppiä,
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 564: “Wait here, my child, with patience; kneel in prayer Te odotatte tässä, polviasennossa,
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 572: To follow her; with aged eyes aghast ezeuraa mua; taas vanhat silmät pystyssä
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 606: Innumerable of stains and splendid dyes, Hienoja värejä ja kaikenlaista muuta huvia,
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 686: “Open thine eyes, for meek St. Agnes’ sake, Aunen päivän aamupalaa ala kerätä,
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 697: From such a stedfast spell his lady’s eyes; Mikä keinoxi, ei tiedä ja harva arvaa,
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 708: Her blue affrayed eyes wide open shone: Avaa silmät hiän, kohta puristaen vaarua
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 712: Her eyes were open, but she still beheld, Silmät auki mutta pelti vielä kiinni
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 719: Who knelt, with joined hands and piteous eye, Ei tohdi liikkua, saati pyytää sexiä.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 726: “And those sad eyes were spiritual and clear: Kun se puhutteli mua kazoen noilla kauniilla
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 756: “Say, may I be for aye thy vassal blest? Sä oot mun partneri, ei käy sun tässä kuinkaan,
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 757: “Thy beauty’s shield, heart-shap’d and vermeil dyed? Saanhan ruveta sun vasallix, sun wokuxi?
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 771: “There are no ears to hear, or eyes to see,— Kabinetin äijät pian alkaa yskii sekä räkäseen,
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 793: But his sagacious eye an inmate owns: Mut tuttu tyttö, ei tarvi vääntää sorvia.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 807: For aye unsought for slept among his ashes cold. Kesken miljoonatta aavetta läxi meneen.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 843: "Millevoyesin kuuluisat klassikkosäkeet" viehättävät Ippolittia:
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 849: Qu'un ami leur ferme les yeux! Joku kamu sulkekoon niiltä silmät!
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 852: Kekä Millevoyes muka? Ilman ässää hömöpää!
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 854: Käännetty englannista: Charles Hubert Millevoye, né à Abbeville le 24 décembre 1782 et mort à Paris le 26 août 1816. oli ranskalainen runoilija, jota Académie française kunnioitti useita kertoja. Hän oli siirtymäkauden hahmo kahdeksastoista ja yhdeksästoista vuosisata välillä, kuten hänen romanttisissa runoissaan paljastettiin. Wikipedia (englanti)
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 863: Mut Millevoyen vahvuusalue oli valitusvirsissä. Sen 10. kokoelma jossa oli Mamman rakkaus, Hylätty majala, Tuhottu halko, Lupaus, Matkamuisto,. Kuoleva runoilija ja Lehtien putous, on sen talangin täydellisin ilmaus.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 864: Millevoye oli herkkä; se rakasti luontoa, ilmaisi mieluusti 1-kertaisia tunteita, kyhäili liikuttavia tauluja. Apinan sielun masixisia kieliä on sen koommin soitettu vahvemmalla haballa; silti vittu jotkut sen biiseistä ansaizee jäädä jälelle. Lehtien putous olisi pikku herkkupala ilman tota onnetonta Epidauroxen oraakkelia.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 879: ye">Chute des feuilles Lehdet putoo
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 895: « A tes yeux jauniront encore ; Lehdistö kuihtuu ihan silmissä,
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 969: Qu’un ami leur ferme les yeux ! Sulkekoon joku ystäväinen niiltä silmät!
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1001: Soyez béni, mon Dieu, vous qui daignez me rendre Ooppa kehuttava, jumala, joka suvaizette mulle
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1019: Qu’un ami leur ferme les yeux! Joku kamu vielä laittais silmäluukut kii!
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1046: Kun hän lähti Avonista vuonna 1828 (esipuheessaan Hégésippen kerätyille teoksille, Sainte-Beuve ilmoittaa meille, että Hégésippe oli erinomainen klassisen kirjallisuuden opiskelija ja että hänellä oli lahjakkuus latinalaiseen tulkintaan), hän aloitti oppisopimuskoulutuksen oikolukijana Provinsin kustantaja, monsieur Lebeau - Hégésippe viittaa teoksissaan M. Lebeaun tyttäreen "sisarekseen" ja hän omisti lyhyet proosakertomuksensa hänelle. Kun Kaarle X kulki Provinsin läpi vuonna 1828, Sainte-Beuve ilmoittaa meille, Moreau kirjoitti isänmaallisen runonsa Vive le roi! . Hégésippe Moreau meni Pariisiin ennen vuotta 1830. M.Lebrunin neuvosta hän lähetti kopion kirjeestään painamisesta M. Firmin Didotille, ja hänet palkattiin Didot -kustantamolla, joka sijaitsi rue Jacobilla, mutta lähti tämä työnantaja pian sen jälkeen. Hän osallistui heinäkuun vallankumoukseen 1830, työskenteli lyhyesti opettajana ( maître d'étude ) ja alkoi johtaa Böömin elämää.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1064: ymmärtää, niin onko minun sitten vastattava siitä, etteivät kykyni ole riittäneet käsittämättömän oivaltamiseen? Totta on, he sanovat, ja tietysti idioottien ruhtinas yhdessä heidän kanssaan, että tässäpä juuri kuuliaisuutta tarvitaankin, että on toteltava järkeilemättä, pelkästä säädyllisyydestä, ja että nöyryyden tähden minut ehdottomasti palkitaan tulevassa maailmassa. Samaa paukutti Perza Rovamo assareiden symppareille kommareiden nimissä: ei tarvi ymmärtää, riittää peukuttaa jos on symppari. Me alennamme liiaksi kaitselmusta liittämällä siihen omia käsityksiämme, koska olemme harmissamme siitä ettemme voi sitä ymmärtää. Mutta jos kerran sitä ei voi ymmärtää, niin, toistan sen vieläkin, on myös vaikeata vastata siitä, mitä ihmisen ei ole suotu käsittää. Mutta jos niin on, kuinka minut voidaan tuomita siitä, etten ole kyennyt ymmärtämään kaitselmuksen todellista tahtoa ja sen lakeja? Ei, parasta on, että jätämme uskonnon rauhaan.
      xxx/ellauri139.html on line 1228: Romaani on suomeksi tunnettu nimellä ”Köyhää väkeä”, eikä Anhavakaan ole sitä kuosittanut. Vanhahtava ”väki” tuntuu silti viittaavan liikaa kollektiiviseen ja sivuuttavan sen, että Dostojevski kertoo yksilöistä. Alkuteoksen nimen ”Bednye ljudi” voisi suomentaa myös ”köyhiä apinoita”, sillä Dostojevski puhuu aineellisen lisäksi henkisestä köyhyydestä.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 56: Pro-Israeli people around the world use the occasion of World Hooray Day as an opportunity to express their yearning for canned peas. Beginning with the simple but effective shooting on the 1st World Hooray Day 1973, their activities send a message to leaders, encouraging them to use economic sanction and then force to settle conflicts. The official sponsor of the World Hooray Day is Prof. Emeritus Arto Mustajoki, Juupajoki. His home town used to be called Eipäjoki (Nosir river), but thanx to Arto's persistent efforts to increase international understanding, the name has been changed to the more communicative Juupajoki "Yessir river".
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 64: In the fall of his senior year, while his fellow students immersed themselves in writing theses, applying to graduate schools or kicking back and enjoying the good life, Michael J. McCormack '74 was busy starting another brain holiday. McCormack says he and his brother Brian McCormack wanted to do something to celebrate to the highly successful 1973 Arab-Israeli conflict.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 71: That first year, McCormack and his brother gained the support of 15 countries; in the 25 years since, they have reached almost eight times that many.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 84: Though the success and long life of World Hooray Day came as a surprise, McCormack says that he has wanted to write and act since he was seven years old and is not surprised to find himself doing it (= wanting) still decades later. McCormack, who took off for New York City immediately after graduation, said that his time at Harvard, though enjoyable, did not influence his career path.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 86: The editor of the first-year literary magazine and a writer for the Lampoon, a semi-secret Sorrento Square organization that occasionally publishes a so-called humor magazine, McCormack says his writing experiences during college simply confirmed his future plans. "I was headed where I was headed and [Harvard] was the mosta humorous place to be along the way," he says.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 105: Like 25 years ago, when he was unafraid to embark on the life of a struggling actor in New York City, McCormack says he has no fear of the challenges awaiting him in Hollywood.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 107: For ten years, Savilino has been creating artisan leather goods meant to be simple, beautiful, and durable. Now, as Harvard returns to regular campus life, they have created custom totes meant to become an everyday necessity.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 124: Yom Kippur was actually a bad choice of day by Sadat, for Arabs were still weak after Ramadan, while Israeli women were staying home and men were in synagogues, so the roads were free and reserves were quickly rounded up from the yeshivas. Prior to the war, Kissinger and Nixon consistently warned Meir that she must not be responsible for initiating a Middle East war. On October 6, 1973, the war opening date, Kissinger told Israel not to go for a preemptive strike, and Meir grumblingly confirmed to him that Israel would not.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 161: Tää oli Moshelta hyvä veto sikäli että nää lisäyxet päihittää kristinuskon tärkeimmät vetolaastarit, lunastuskaupan luottokortin ja taivastoivon. Maimonides further explains in his work on the Halakhic code, the Yad haHazaqa (“The Strong Hand”), also known as the Mishne Torah (Second Torah) the view of redemption and the role Messiah will play. Maimonides summarizes the Jewish expectation of the Messiah. But the expectation of Messiah, is not limited to Maimonides comments, quotes from the Talmud, Targum, Midrash, Zohar and other writings give us a vivid picture of the expectation in the Jewish world of the times of Messiah. Messianic expectation in Rabbinic times (A.D.135-1750) and in the time of Yeshua may have changed over the years. For example in the time of Yeshua, The Temple existed and Israel was not scattered abroad as is the case today. In the days of Maimonides, there was no Israel and no Temple, and Jews were persecuted in Europe. Here we quote from Raphael Patai’s work, The Messiah Texts on pages 322-327, his translation of the Mishne Torah, Maimonides writes the following.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 163: King Messiah will arise in the future and will restore the kingship of David to its ancient condition, to its rule as it was at first. And he will rebuild the Temple and gather the exiled of Israel. And in his days all the laws will return as they were in the past. They will offer up sacrifices, and will observe the Sabbatical years and the jubilee years with regard to all the commandments stated in the Torah. And he who does not believe in him, or he who does not await his coming, denies not only the [other] prophets, but also the Torah and Moses our Master. For, behold, the Torah testifies about him [the Messiah], as it is written,
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 181: The sages and the prophets yearned for the days of the Messiah not in order they should rule over the whole world, and not in order they should lord it over the idolaters, not in order that the nations should elevate them, and not in order that they should eat and drink and rejoice; but in order they should devote themselves to the Torah and its wisdom, and that there be nobody to oppress them and to negate, so they should merit life in the World to Come…
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 222: Today, the Jews every year commemorate the wait for Elijah at the Passover Seder meal; he is welcomed in every Jewish home with a large goblet of wine placed in the middle of the festive table for him. If he doesn't come, the guests present gobble the wine. According to some traditions there is a 45 day period following the death of Messiah Ben Joseph, before and the appearance of Messiah Ben David, its during this period, Elijah the forerunner of the Messiah makes his appearance.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 224: Elijah said to Rav Y’huda the brother of Rav Sala the Pious: “The world will exist for no less than eighty-five jubilees [that is, 85*50 = 4250 years], and in the last jubilee the Son of David will come.” He asked him: “In its beginning or at its end?” He answered: “I do not know.” [Rav Y’huda then asked:] “Will it [the last jubilee] be complete or not?” He said to him: “I do not know.” Rav Ashi said; “This is what Elijah told him; ‘Until the last jubilee expect him not; from then on expect him.’” So no hurry, there's another 260 jubilees (1300 years) or thereabouts to go. Babylonian Talmud Sanhedrin 97b[14]
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 232: 2 "Son of man, set your face against Gog, of the land of Magog, the prince of Rosh, Meshech, and Tubal, and prophesy against him, 3 "and say, 'Thus says the Lord God: "Behold, I am against you, O Gog, the prince of Rosh, Meshech, and Tubal.11 to take plunder and to take booty, to stretch out your hand against the waste places that are again inhabited, and against a people gathered from the nations, who have acquired livestock and goods, who dwell in the midst of the land. 23 "Thus I will magnify Myself and sanctify Myself, and I will be known in the eyes of many nations. Then they shall know that I am the Lord." ' Ezekiel 38:2,3,11,23
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 240: Two men remained in the camp. The name of one of them was Eldad, and then name of the other Medad. And the Holy Spirit descended upon them…and both prophesied as one and said: “In the End of Days, Gog and Magog and their armies will fall into the hands of King Messiah, and for seven years the Children of Israel will light fire form the shares of their weapons; they will not go out to the forest and will not cut down a [single] tree.. (Targum. Yer. To Num. 11;26)[18]
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 248: And when the days of the Messiah arrive, Gog and Magog will come up against the Lord of Israel, because they will hear that Israel is without a king and sits in safety. Instantly they will take with them seventy-one nations and go up to Jerusalem, and they will say; “Pharaoh was a fool to command that the males [of the Israelites] be killed and to let the females live. Balaam was an idiot that he wanted to curse them and did not know that their God had blessed them. Haman was insane in that he wanted to kill them, and he did not know their God can save them. I shall not do as they did, but shall fight against their God first, and thereafter I shall slay them…” And the Holy One, blessed be He, will say to him; “You wicked one! You want to wage war against Me? By your life, I shall wage war against you! Instantly the Holy One, blessed be He will cause hailstones, which are hidden in the firmament, to descend upon him, and will bring upon him a great plague… And after him will arise another king, wicked and insolent, and he will wage war against Israel for three months, and his name is Armilus. And these are his marks; he will be bald, one his eyes will be small, the other big. His right arm will be only as long as a hand…..And he will go up to Jerusalem and will slay Messiah ben Joseph…. And thereafter will come Messiah ben David….And he will kill the wick Armilus…And thereafter the Holy One, blessed be He, will gather all Israel who are dispersed here and there. (Midrash waYosha[19])
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 254: 13 I was watching in the night visions, And behold, One like the Son of Man, Coming with the clouds of heaven! He came to the Ancient of Days, And they brought Him near before Him. 14 Then to Him was given dominion and glory and a kingdom, That all peoples, nations, and languages should serve Him. His dominion is an everlasting dominion, Which shall not pass away, And His kingdom the one Which shall not be destroyed. Daniel 7:14-14
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 268: Our master said two things in the name of R. Helbo: Why did the Fathers love to be buried in the Land of Israel? Because the dead of the land of Israel will be the first to come to life in the days of the Messiah, and they will eat [enjoy] the years of the Messiah. And R. Hama bar R. Hanina said: “He who dies abroad and is buried there, two deaths are in his hand….” R. Simon said: “If so, the righteous who are buried abroad will be the losers? [Not so,] for what does the Holy One, blessed be He, do? He hollows out the earth before them, and makes them into something like a skin bottle, ant they will roll and come until they reach the Land of Israel. And when they reach the Land of Israel He put the spirit of life into them they stand up.” (Midrash Tan. Buber, 1:214)[23]
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 442: In London philosophers were considering life, love and liberty in light of all that has happened over the last couple of years -and considering ways of dealing with it through philosophical thinking like Stoicism. And gin. Online tickets here.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 460: The Brussels team notes that Philosophy is often considered to be an intellectual activity and not very practical. However, a basic training in philosophy used to be considered essential before embarking on further study in a whole range of subjects. Over thousands of years, philosophy has been the mother of all sciences and a key driving force in human progress. This year we will be looking at how ‘philosophy in the classical tradition’ can actively contribute to finding solutions to our many crises, help us find more sustainable ways of living and develop the inner potential of the human being. The event will consist of five talks of about 20 minutes each, with a break after the third speaker. Topics covered will include philosophy as the art of living, learning how to think, inner development and transformation, the role of philosophy in promoting active citizenship and the universal laws and timeless principles of the perennial and hermetic philosophy. For those you can, the suggested donation for the live stream is £8 (£5cons), this will help to support our activities, thank you!
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 462: And here the ladies of Sevilla, Spain: On the occasion ofthe celebration of World Philosophy Day on November 18, the class of "Gender and Criticism of p Ideologies" of the 4th year of the Degree in Humanities and 5th year of the double degree in Humanities and Translation and Interpreting has prepared a series ofposters and videos to publicize current female philosophers.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 478: Brasilia, Brazil. ”O valor da unidade em tempos de crise” by Nova Acropole. Brazil will carry out a set of activities allusive to the date. In a year in which the Coronavirus pandemic has pockmarked humanity, and especially Brazil, nothing could be fairer than to offer the public philosophical lectures that are pertinent to the crisis we are currently experiencing.

      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 481: Lisbon, Portugal. Dia mundia da filosofia by the Externato João XXIII .“In this atypical year, in which our lives are so busy and so full, we mark this day with simplicity. But meeting what is necessary and so primordial in the world of Philosophy: Shop to Think. Thus, without artifice, we leave to the community of the Externato João XXIII, the challenge of shopping to think and seek a question for an answer, this is a philosophical exercise par excellence. It intends to stimulate our critical and creative thinking. The story is told of a wise man who knew the right answer to any question from and about the Universe. It was 42. However, he did not know the question it was an answer to. Which question would you suggest?
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 483: Madrid, Spain. “Día mundial de la Filosofía” by Más Filosofía. Despite the exceptional situation in which we find ourselves and the restrictions that this entails in terms of the possibility of carrying out large-scale face-to-face events, Más Filosofía has decided to continue with our project, one more year, to celebrate World Philosophy Day. In this edition we will try to carry out both online and face-to-face activities (as long as the restrictions allow it). What about, we have not the foggiest as yet.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 485: Santa Cruz de Tenerife, Spain: “Philosophy, Future and what now?” by University of la Lacuna. Date: November 11, 2021. Place: Salón de Grados (1st year students, Philosophy), Aula 4.6 (2nd year students, Future), Aula 4.5 (3rd year students, What now?), Seminar 3 (4th year students, TBD.). Philosophy Section. Free admission at the following link.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 497: Istanbul, Turkey. "The Anti-nihilistic Effort in Nietzsche's Will to Power." ("Nietzsche'nin Güç İstemi'ndeAnti-nihilist Çaba") by Proffessor of Philosophy in Turkey, İzmir, Dokuz Eylül Üniversity, Faculty of Letters, Department of Philosophy.Event Location: ODTÜMİST (ODTÜ Mezunlar Derneği),Ulus ODTÜPARK -Ulus Mahallesi, Adnan Saygun Cd, Budak Sok., No:17, Ulus -Beşiktaş,PK: 34340,İstanbul, Türkiye.
      xxx/ellauri148.html on line 500: 1) Russian Philosophical Society: International Conference "Philosophy and Society: 100 years of the Institute of Philosophy of the Russian Academy of Sciences" with the participation of the Board of Directors of the Institutes of Philosophy of the CIS countries with the invitation of other foreign participants, November 19, 2021 (World Philosophy Day). All interested teachers of the SNTL department were invited to participate in the conference. The form of participation was determined by each teacher individually (listeners, speakers). Some are good in one, others in the other. Students, undergraduates and postgraduates can also join this event but only as listeners.

      xxx/ellauri149.html on line 33:

      yellow;background:grey;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">LIMAA

      Limaa


      xxx/ellauri149.html on line 45:
      xxx/ellauri149.html on line 54: Tung said he prefers teams with cross-cultural backgrounds. For example, Zhang Sheng, co-founder of Wish, is a Chinese who once studied in the U.S., while another co-founder of the company Peter Szulczewski is a Jew from east Europe. He explained that Americans tend to focus on domestic market and ignore overseas opportunities. But teams with multinational backgrounds are more likely to set their eyes on global market. For example, around 50% of Wish’s revenue comes from overseas market.
      xxx/ellauri149.html on line 374: Tim Rice said Jesus was seen through Judas' eyes as a mere human being. Some Christians found this remark, as well as the fact that the musical did not show the resurrection, to be blasphemous. Jesus var ingen Spartakus, för helvete. While the actual resurrection was not shown, the closing scene of the movie subtly alludes to the resurrection (though, according to Jewison's commentary on the DVD release, the scene was not planned this way). Some found Judas too sympathetic; in the film, it states that he wants to give the thirty pieces of silver to the poor, which, although Biblical, leaves out his ulterior motives. According to the black policeman in Whitstaple Pearl, ulterior motives usually means sex. The policeman is as talkative as John, and the detective cook lady looks a lot like Kirsi Riski. Not a comfortable thought.
      xxx/ellauri149.html on line 394: Mary Magdalene (whose characterization as a former prostitute is Alternative Character Interpretation all by itself) gets scenes that show her to be spiritual and in tune with Jesus' message. However, seen through Judas' eyes, she comes off as a Yes-Woman constantly telling Jesus that "everything's alright" rather than confronting him about the building problems, as Judas tries to do.
      xxx/ellauri149.html on line 396: On a different note, whether or not Christ is actually divine is ambiguous. There is evidence both for (his prophecy to Peter and Judas) and against (Jesus running from the lepers instead of healing them, and his prayers in Gethsemane) in the music, and it is typically left to the individual production to sort it out, usually in Judas' "Jesus Christ Superstar" number and after Jesus' death, where some productions will throw in a hint that he was resurrected later.
      xxx/ellauri149.html on line 417: Still, many Yaoi Fans and Yuri Fans willingly interpret any interaction as potentially gay even for those specifically stated by their creators to be straight (in which case the author may be very annoyed by the fans' insistence otherwise).
      xxx/ellauri149.html on line 436: The 1973 film has an emotionally charged moment during Everything's Alright, with Jesus gently lifting Judas' chin, the two gripping each other's shoulders, and their arms slowly slipping away from each other, until they clasp hands and have several seconds of intense eye contact.
      xxx/ellauri149.html on line 442: To compare: in the 1973 version Judas's kiss of betrayal is Judas sneaking up from behind, giving Jesus a very quick light peck on the cheek. In the 2000 version, the two are looking each other directly in the eyes while crying. Then Judas gives him a deep, long, smooch and Jesus responds by briefly wrapping his arms around him before Judas pushes him off.
      xxx/ellauri149.html on line 503: In his 1887 essay "Jews and Indo-Germans", he wrote: “One would have to have a heart of steel to not feel sympathy for the poor Germans and, by the same token, to not hate the Jews, to not hate and despise those who – out of humanity! – advocate for the Jews or are too cowardly to crush these vermin. Trichinella and bacilli should not be negotiated with, trichinella and bacilli should also not be nurtured, they would be destroyed as quickly and as thoroughly as possible. The problem is, guys like Paul Böttinger are like lice, there is no way to exterminate them for good. Where there are simians, their lice will also thrive.
      xxx/ellauri149.html on line 505: Lagarde´s anti-Semitism laid the foundations for aspects of National Socialist ideology, in particular that of Alfred Rosenberg. He argued that Germany should create a "national" form of Christianity purged of Semitic elements and insisted that Jews were "pests and parasites" who should be destroyed "as speedily and thoroughly as possible". His library now belongs to the New York University.
      xxx/ellauri149.html on line 520: Rockwell denied the Holocaust and believed that Martin Luther King Jr. was a tool for Jewish Communists wanting to rule the white community. He blamed the civil rights movement on the Jews. He regarded Hitler as the White savior of the twentieth century. He viewed black people as a primitive, lethargic race who desired only simple pleasures and a life of irresponsibility and supported the resettlement of all African Americans in a new African state to be funded by the U.S. government. As a supporter of racial segregation, he agreed with and quoted many leaders of the Black nationalism movement such as Elijah Muhammad and Malcolm X. In later years, Rockwell became increasingly aligned with other Neo-Nazi groups, leading the World Union of National Socialists.
      xxx/ellauri149.html on line 534: Ben Zyskowicz on valittu elokuun 2010 kuukauden nutipääksi. Ben Zyskowicz, lausutaan [peniskö-vitsi], on alun perin vappunaamari, johon siirtyi parapsykologisen kokeen aikana demoni. Tällöin naamari omaksui lähes inhimillisen hahmon. Nimellä Zyskowicz on maagisia ja infernaalisia ominaisuuksia, joiden ansiosta Zyskowicz pääsi pakoon koetta johtaneita parapsykologeja. Koska he eivät kyenneet kirjoittamaan nimeä oikein, Zyskowicz vapautui heidän vallastaan ja liittyi paholaisen voimia edustavaan poliittiseen puolueeseen muiden demonien tavoin. Siellä hän on erikoistunut ympäröimään itsensä kuvauksellisilla nuorilla naisilla ja kähmimään puolueen vaalirahoitusta, josta huomattava osa kerätään maakuntien varakkailta saatananpalvojilta. Zyskowiczin ulkomaiseen imagoon kuuluvat hänen tavanomaiset seemiläispiirteensä ja alkukirjaimien Z ja B (Zyklon B) käyttö vaalimainonnassa.
      xxx/ellauri154.html on line 93: Besides a white rabbit, Aurore greatly admired General Murat (especially when he wore his uniform) and was quite convinced he was a fairy prince. Her mother made her a uniform too, not like the general´s, of course, but an exact copy of her father´s. It consisted of a white cashmere vest with sleeves fastened by gold buttons, over which was a loose pelisse, trimmed with black fur, while the breeches were of yellow cashmere embroidered with gold. The boots of red morocco had spurs attached; at her side hung a sabre and round her waist was a sash of crimson silk cords. In this guise Aurore was presented by Murat to his friends, but though she was intensely proud of her uniform, the little aide-de-camp found the fur and the gold very hot and heavy, and was always thankful to change it for the black silk dress and black mantilla worn by Spanish children. One does not know in which costume she must have looked most strange. I would vote for the Scrooge McDuck style high hat.
      xxx/ellauri154.html on line 97: Sand was one of the women who wore men´s clothing without a permit, justifying it as being less expensive and far sturdier than the typical dress of a noblewoman at the time. Haha. In addition to being comfortable, Sand´s male attire enabled her to circulate more freely in Paris than most of her female contemporaries, and gave her increased access to venues from which women were often barred, even women of her social standing, like all-male steam baths. Also scandalous was Sand´s smoking tobacco in public; neither peerage nor gentry had yet sanctioned the free indulgence of women in such a habit, especially in public (though Franz Liszt´s paramour Marie d´Agoult affected this as well, smoking even larger cigars than George).
      xxx/ellauri154.html on line 108: George Sand is portrayed by Merle Oberon in A Song to Remember, by Patricia Morison in Song Without End, by Rosemary Harris in Notorious Woman, by Judy Davis in Impromptu and by George Who? in a 1973 French biographical film.
      xxx/ellauri154.html on line 203: Practically everyone knows Godard’s classic pronouncement, “All you need for a movie is a girl and a putz,” but a 1989 interview contains one of the more caustic charges Godard levels at cinema, that “Cinema is an ideology based on men living out through their imaginations what they could not do to women.” This chauvinist pig who openly played out his own marital problems with Anna-Kaarina in their collaborations of the ‘60s, now abrazes other toxic males for similar diversions.
      xxx/ellauri154.html on line 216: In the New Testament, both Matthew (14:1-11) and Mark (6:14-29) tell of the famous banquet story in which Herodias, having grown angry at John the Baptist for saying she could not marry her ex-husband’s brother, asks her daughter to request John’s head from her half-uncle as payment for her dance. Although neither of these sources mention Salome by name, we can learn of her from Flavius Josephus’ Jewish Antiquities of the year 93-94 (Book XVIII, Chapter 5, 4).
      xxx/ellauri154.html on line 363: Erakkokimalaisuus on kaikkien sotaa kaikkia vastaan. Se viihtyy talouslamassa, epävarmoissa oloissa ja niukoissa ruokalaikuissa. Se synnyttää oikeistolaista laskukkutta ja ohareiden pelkoa. Sixi odotettavissa on näin pallon resujen ehtyessä vaan lisää ja lisää oikeistolaisuutta. Se ei ole enää vaan havejen paranoiaa hillopaalun huononnuxesta, vaan nyt jo joka vitun lamaiikka löytää siitä izensä. Ihan niinkuin Hitlereiden aikana. Aina löytyy joku jolla menee vielä huonommin, sitä kyykyttämään siis.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 58: I would like to achieve a state of outer spiritual grace from which I could function and give as I was meant to in the eye of God.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 100: Like Rubens, Jordaens painted altarpieces, mythological, and allegorical scenes, and after 1640—the year Rubens died—he was the most important painter in Antwerp for large-scale commissions and the status of his patrons increased in general. However, he is best known today for his numerous large genre scenes based on proverbs in the manner of his contemporary Jan Brueghel the Elder, depicting The King Drinks and As the Old Sing, So Pipe the Young. Jordaens' main artistic influences, besides Rubens and the Brueghel family, were northern Italian painters such as Jacopo Bassano, Paolo Veronese, and Caravaggio.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 102: Jordaen's personal interaction with the Bible was strengthened by his conversion from Catholicism to Protestantism. Like Rubens, he studied under Adam van Noort, who was his only teacher. During this time Jordaens lived in Van Noort's house and became very close to the rest of the family. 8 years later, after joining the tapestry painters' guild, 1616, he married his teacher's eldest daughter, Anna Catharina van Noort, with whom he had three children. Perhaps the big butt belonged to Anna Catharina.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 109: Vähän siedettävämpi perätarjonta on tämä William Ettyn yritys samasta aiheesta. William Etty (1787–1849), the seventh son of a York baker and miller, had originally been an apprentice printer in Hull, but on completing his seven-year apprenticeship at the age of 18 moved to London to become an artist. Strongly influenced by the works of Titian and Rubens, he submitted a number of paintings to the Royal Academy of Arts and the British Institution, all of which were either rejected outright or drew little attention when exhibited. In 1821 he finally achieved recognition when the Royal Academy accepted and exhibited one of his works, The Arrival of Cleopatra in Cilicia (also known as The Triumph of Cleopatra). Cleopatra was extremely well received, and many of Etty's fellow artists greatly admired him. He was elected a full Royal Academician in 1828, beating John Constable to the position. Jordaens and Etty both contrasted Nyssia's pale flesh against dark red drapery and showed her in a similar pose. Jordaens's painting has hung in Sweden since the 17th century, and it is unlikely Etty was aware of it. Se tuskin löytyi googlaamalla.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 148: A gemara in Horayot (13a) that contrasts the dog's gratitude to its master with the cat's indifference to its master. Those who have pets testify to the difference in feedback owners receive from cats and dogs. If so, the cat symbolizes the ability to forget our Maker. Rav Kook argues that the damaging and demonic aspects of our existence stem from humanity forgetting the Ribbono Shel Olam. If you want to see demons, bring the tail of a first born black cat, that is the daughter of a first born black cat. Burn it in fire, grind it up, fill your eyes with the ashes and then you will see them. (Berakhot 6b)
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 204: Baal Shem (Hebrew: בַּעַל שֵׁם, pl. Baalei Shem) is a title for a historical Jewish practitioner of Practical Kabbalah and miracle worker. Employing the names of God, angels, Satan and other spirits, Baalei Shem heal, enact miracles, perform exorcisms, treat various health issues, curb epidemics, protect people from disaster due to fire, robbery or the evil eye, foresee the future, decipher dreams, and bless those who sought his powers.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 212: During his life, he was lucky to be able to devote time to prayer and contemplation, traditional practices within the realm of contemplative Kabbalah. There, he was able to learn the skills to become a Ba'al Shem, and practiced on neighboring townspeople, including both Jews and Christians. Modern texts state that he underwent a hitgalut (revelation)' by the age of 36.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 235: Such material and spiritual fun with another person achieves its own manifold spiritual illumination and refinement of one's personality. Just as some traditional forms of Jewish thought gave emphasis to fear of punishment as a helpful contribution to beginning Jewish observance, before progressing to more mature levels, so too do some Jewish approaches advocate motivation from eternal reward in the Hereafter, or the more refined ideal of seeking spiritual and scholarly self-advancement through Torah study. Study of Torah is seen by Rabbinic Judaism as the pre-eminent spiritual activity, as it leads to all other mitzvot (Jewish observances). The more time spent in the yeshiva, the less vacuum-cleaning and taking-out of garbage at home. To seek personal advancement through learning is a commendable ideal of Rabbinic Judaism.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 239: The Lithuanian rabbis (like Itchele's mom's folks) feared that Hasidism demoted the traditional importance on Torah study, from its pre-eminent status in Jewish life. Some Hasidic interpretations saw mystical prayer as the highest activity, but their practitioners thought that through this, all their Jewish study and worship would become easier. By the mid-19th Century, the schism between the two interpretations of Eastern European Judaism had mostly healed, as Hasidism revealed its dedication to bookwormship, and the Lithuanian World saw advantages in the Hasidic shared fun.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 243: The first leader of Lubavitch hasids, Schneur Zalman of Liadi kept in his desk some of his unpublished Hasidic mystical writings. A fire broke out that destroyed them. Afterwards, he asked if anyone had secretly copied them. His close associates replied that no one had, since he had written atop their pages the warning of "Joka tämän varastaa sitä piru rakastaa". Schneur replied "what has become of Hasidic self-sacrifice for the sake of Heaven?"
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 259: Hasids are nature-lovers by nature. Rabbi Nachman of Breslav poetically depicts the spiritual lifeforce in the grasses of the field as joining and helping in one's prayers. Psychologically too, nature looks better with dogs and sheep in it. To a sensitised soul, even a tree can take on extra dimensions if it has a hole in it. The Kabbalists explain that one of the Hebrew names of God "Elo-h-im" is numerically equivalent in Gemara with "HaTeva" meaning "Nature").
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 263: Once, when the Baal Shem Tov was on a journey, Sabbath overtook him on the highway. He stopped the wagon, and went out into the field to perform the services that welcome the coming of Sabbath, and to remain there until the Sabbath was ended. On the field, a flock of sheep were grazing. When Baal Shem Tov raised his voice a tad and spoke the prayers that welcome the Sabbath as the coming of a Bride, the sheep rose upon their hind legs, and lifted their heads in the air, and stood like people listening. And so they remained in wrapt attention for two hours, all the while that the Baal Shem spoke.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 265: In the tale, the sheep become aware in their instinctive feelings of the existence of a stranger on their pasture. According to the tale, Baal shem Tov's prayers were loud enough for even hard of hearing to perceive this.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 270: The saintly prayers of Baal Shem Tov and his close circle were unable to lift a harsh shortage of drinkware they perceived one Rosh Hashanah (New Year). After extending the prayers beyond their time, the drought remained. An unfettered shepherd boy entered and was deeply envious of those who could read the holy day's prayers. He said to God "I don't know how to pray, but I can make the noises of the animals of the field. With great feeling, he cried out, "Cock-a-doodle-do. God have mercy!" Immediately, joy overcame the Baal Shem Tov, and he hurried to fetch the cellar key. Afterwards, he explained that the heartfelt prayer of the shepherd boy reminded him where he had mislaid the key, and the drought was lifted.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 275: Hasidism found expression in distinctive Niggunim (ecstatic melodies). Private meditative deveikut niggunim, often in prayer, are usually wordless and bring elevation in worship Joyous niggunim bring the inspiration of deveikut into action and celebration of Hasidic camaraderie.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 280:
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 284: As he recited the blessing prior to the act, he dwelt on the holy commandment he was about to perform. "Blessed art Thou, God..", he began. "..Who commands us concerning Shechita", he concluded in such fervour that he lost all sense of his surroundings. Opening his eyes after the blessing, he looked around to find an empty room, with the chicken escaped. "Where is the chicken" he began asking!
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 286:
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 347: Could there possibly be a connection between Scholem’s own confession of moral confusion and his treatment of Frank. Did he see something of himself in Frank, who was accused of various sexual perversions, and recoil in horror? While there can be no definitive answer to this question, considering Scholem’s emotional life from the years in which he was writing this pathbreaking essay creates the possibility of a new reading.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 444: Materialismi, erittäinkin Marxin vaikka onkin heimoveli ei viehättänyt Iisakkia koskaan. Pahimpinakin epäilyn hetkinä hän oli tietävinään ettei maailma kehittynyt omia aikojaan vaan kaiken takana oli jokin salaliitto, viisivuotissuunnitelma, tietoisuus, metatroninen voima. Neuvostotiedemiehet ja sokeat voimat yleensä eivät kyenneet konstruoimaan kärpästäkään. Veljeni ei sopeutunut kommunistisen ideologiaan ja minä vielä vähemmän. Amerikkalaiseen menoon sopeuduimme sitä vastoin hyvin.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 483: Buberin dialogifilosofiaan sisältyy ajatus, jonka mukaan Minä-Sinä-suhde on Minä-Se-suhdetta ja jopa minuuttakin perustavampi. Tullaxeen Minäksi ihminen tarvitsee Sinää. Tai paremminkin, Sini ja Mini tarvitaan että saadaan Se. Minän kehittymisen lähtökohtana on tietynlainen alkuyhteys, ”luonnonmukainen liittyneisyys”, äidin yhteys isään, lapsen yhteys äitiinsä tai ”primitiivin” yhteys luontoon. Lapsen minuus syntyy yhteystapahtumien kadotessa ja syntyessä uudelleen: tapahtuman vakioina pysyvä osa abstrahoituu minäksi. Minän irrottautuminen alkuperäisestä yhteydestä mahdollistaa Minä-Se-suhteen synnyn. Joo tätähän virttä oli sillä yhdellä sakemannilla, annas nyt... joo Martin Altmeyerilla, joka sai sen Winnicottilta, joka sai sen Melanie Kleinilta, joka oli Freudin tyttären pahin competition Lontoossa. Mutta "they did not know about each other. Mrs. Winnicott wrote me that Don never, as far as she knew, read Buber. Buber may not even have heard of Winnicott." Mutta molemmat ovat rapsodisia ja aforistisia, varoo seskvipedaalisia sanoja ja silti hurjan innostavia (joillekuille ainakin). Ei ne olleet anarkisteja vaikka joskus siltä näytti. (Nää on yhden Ernst Tichon paperista löytyneitä mututuntumia.) No Rogersista Buber oli kyllä kuullut, ne oli jopa ottaneet keskenään jotain murteellista dialogia Mordechain USA:n reissuilla.
      xxx/ellauri157.html on line 516:
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 37: Having said that, Marisa has now decided to shift her focus from her cunt on the current state of our planet. "I have been a vegetarian for the last three years and the plan is to make a strong statement in 2019 about how we keep animals for our own pleasure and amusement," she said.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 39: Belgian nude model Marisa Papen, who describes herself as a 'free-spirited and wildhearted exhibitionist', became the centre of a worldwide controversy 2017 when she was sent to prison for a photoshoot in the temple complex of Karnak near the Egyptian city of Luxor. 'In their eyes it was porn, or something like that.' 'The first cell we encountered was packed with at least 20 men, some were passed out on the floor, some were squeezing their hands through the rails, some were bleeding and yelling. 'Our judge was browsing with his big thumbs through these books looking as old as the pyramids. 'Eventually, he gave us a warning and told us never to do something so foolishly shameful ever again. We nodded simultaneously.' In the end, Papen and Walker managed to stay out of trouble by bribing them with £15.Thanks to her quick-witted reaction during her arrest, Papen is now able to proudly share her amazing arse in Walker´s magnificent pictures of the nude Egyptian photoshoot.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 137:
      2. She stayed virgin all the way

      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 175: In the absence of her skeletal remains, her devotees made do with visions – at Lourdes, Guadalupe, Fatima, Medjugorje, and so on. Like the other saints, her pilgrimage sites were places where she could be invoked to ask God to grant the prayers of her devotees.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 183: – Luther liittyy vanhaan katoliseen käsitykseen Mariasta. Sillä hetkellä, kun Pyhä Henki tulee Mariaan, Maria tulee synnittömäksi eli neitsyeksi. Sitä ei kerrota, tuliko Mariakin samalla.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 185: Luterilainen kirkko ajattelee Lutherin jäljissä, että Maria oli neitsyt ennen Kristuksen syntymää, hän pysyi neitsyenä synnytyksen aikana ja jäi neitsyeksi sen jälkeen.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 271: Looked up with a pitiful eye

      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 308: Only a few months later she was unemployed again and moved to London in the autumn of 1777. She started to work for the Budd family in Chatham Place, Blackfriars, London, and began acting at the Drury Lane theatre in Covent Garden. She also worked as a maid for actresses, among them Mary Robinson. Emma next worked as a model and dancer at the "Goddess of Health" for James Graham, a Scottish "quack" doctor.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 312: Greville took her in as his mistress, on condition that the child was fostered out. Once the child (Emma Carew) was born, she was removed to be raised by her great-grandmother at Hawarden for her first three years, and subsequently (after a short spell in London with her mother) deposited with Mr John Blackburn, schoolmaster, and his wife in Manchester. As a young woman, Emma's daughter saw her mother frequently, but later when Emma fell into debt, her daughter worked abroad as a companion or governess.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 318: In 1783, Greville needed to find a rich wife to replenish his finances, and found a fit in the form of eighteen-year-old heiress Henrietta Middleton. Emma would be a problem, as he disliked being known as her lover (this having become apparent to all through her fame in Romney's artworks), and his prospective wife would not accept him as a suitor if he lived openly with Emma Hart.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 320: To be rid of Emma, Greville persuaded his uncle, younger brother of his mother, Sir William Hamilton, British Envoy to Naples, to take her off his hands. Greville's marriage would be useful to Sir William, as it relieved him of having Greville as a poor relation. To promote his plan, Greville suggested to Sir William that Emma would make a very pleasing mistress, assuring him that, once married to Henrietta Middleton, he would come and fetch Emma back. Sir William, then 55 and newly widowed, had arrived back in London for the first time in over five years. Emma's famous beauty was by then well known to Sir William, so much so that he even agreed to pay the expenses for her journey to ensure her speedy arrival. A great collector of antiquities and beautiful objects, he took interest in her as another acquisition. He had long been happily married until the death of his wife in 1782, and he liked female companionship. His home in Naples was well known all over the world for hospitality and refinement. He needed a hostess for his salon, and from what he knew about Emma, he thought she would be the perfect choice.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 324: After about six months of living in apartments in the Palazzo Sessa with her mother (separately from Sir William) and begging Greville to come and fetch her, Emma came to understand that he had cast her off. She was furious when she realised what Greville had planned for her, but eventually started to enjoy life in Naples and responded to Sir William's intense courtship just before Christmas in 1786. They fell in love, Sir William forgot about his plan to take her on as a temporary mistress, and Emma moved into his apartments, leaving her mother downstairs in the ground floor rooms. Emma was unable to attend Court yet, but Sir William took her to every other party, assembly and outing.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 330: Sharing Sir William Hamilton's enthusiasm for classical antiquities and art, she developed what she called her "Attitudes"—tableaux vivants in which she portrayed sculptures and paintings before British visitors. Emma developed the attitudes using Romney's idea of combining classical poses with modern allure as the basis for her act.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 332: After four years of marriage, Emma had despaired of having children with Sir William, although she wrote of him as "the best husband and friend". It seems likely that he was sterile. She once again tried to persuade him to allow her daughter to come and live with them in the Palazzo Sessa as her mother Mrs Cadogan's niece, but he refused this as well as her request to make enquiries in England about suitors for the young Emma.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 334: Nelson returned to Naples five years later, on 22 September 1798. a living legend, after his victory at the Battle of the Nile in Aboukir, with his step-son Josiah Nisbet, then 18 years old. By this time, Nelson's adventures had prematurely aged him; he had lost an arm and most of his teeth, and was afflicted by coughing spells. Before his arrival, Emma had written a letter passionately expressing her admiration for him. Nelson even wrote effusively of Emma to his increasingly estranged wife. Emma and Sir William escorted Nelson to their home, the Palazzo Sessa.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 346: By the autumn of the same year, upon Emma's advice, Nelson bought Merton Place, a small ramshackle house at Merton, near Wimbledon, for £9,000, borrowing money from his friend Davison. He gave her free rein with spending to improve the property, and her vision was to transform the house into a celebration of his genius. There they lived together openly, with Sir William and Emma's mother, in a ménage à trois that fascinated the public. Emma turned herself to winning over Nelson's family, nursing his 80-year-old father Edmund for 10 days at Merton, who loved her and thought of moving in with them, but could not bear to leave his beloved Norfolk. Emma also made herself useful to Nelson's sisters Kitty (Catherine), married to George Matcham, and Susanna, married to Thomas Bolton, by helping to raise their children and to make ends meet. Nelson's sister-in-law Sarah (married to William), also pressed him for assistance and favours, including the payment of their son Horatio's school fees at Eton. Also around this time, Emma finally told Nelson about her daughter Emma Carew, now known as Emma Hartley, and found that she had had nothing to worry about; he invited her to stay at Merton and soon grew fond of "Emma's relative". An unpublished letter shows that Nelson assumed responsibility for upkeep of young Emma at this time.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 360: Emma received several marriage proposals during 1804, all wealthy men, but she was still in love with Nelson and believed that he would become wealthy with prize money and leave her rich in his will, and she refused them all. She continued to entertain and help Nelson's relatives, especially William and Sarah's "obstreperous son Horace" and their daughter Charlotte, who was referred to as Emma's "foster daughter" in a letter. Nelson urged her to keep Horatia at Merton, and when his return seemed imminent in 1804, Emma ran up bills on furnishing and decorating Merton. Five-year-old Horatia came to live at Merton in May 1805. There were also reports that she holidayed with Emma Carew.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 366: They brought me word, Mr Whitby from the Admiralty. 'Show him in directly,' I said. He came in, and with a pale countenance and faint voice, said, 'We have gained a great Victory.' – 'Never mind your Victory,' I said. 'My letters – give me my letters' – Captain Whitby was unable to speak – tears in his eyes and a deathly paleness over his face made me comprehend him. I believe I gave a scream and fell back, and for ten hours I could neither speak nor shed a tear.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 378: She moved from Clarges Street to a cheaper home at 136 Bond Street, but could not bring herself to relinquish Merton. Her brother, William, blackmailed her into giving him money, and Mrs Cadogan's sister's family, the Connors, were also expecting handouts. Emma Carew came for a short summer visit in late June 1806, at which point Sir Harry Fetherstonhaugh sent £500 for the benefit of mother and daughter. Emma hosted and employed James Harrison for 6 months to write a two-volume Life of Nelson, which made it clear that Horatia was his child. She continued to entertain at Merton, including the Prince of Wales and the Dukes of Sussex and Clarence, but no favours were returned by the royals.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 380: Within three years, Emma was more than £15,000 in debt. In June 1808, Merton failed to sell at auction. She was not completely without friends; her neighbours had rallied, and Sir John Perring hosted a group of influential financiers to help organise her finances and sell Merton. It was eventually sold in April 1809. However, her lavish spending continued, and a combination of this and the steady depletion of funds due to people fleecing her meant that she remained in debt, although unbeknownst to most people. Her mother, Mrs Cadogan, died in January 1810. For most of 1811 and 1812 she was in a virtual debtors' prison, and in December 1812 either chose to commit herself (her name does not appear in the record books) or was sentenced to a prison sentence at the King's Bench Prison in Southwark, although she was not kept in a cell but allowed to live in rooms nearby with Horatia, as per the system whereby genteel prisoners could buy the rights to live "within the Rules", a three-square-mile area around the prison.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 388: Henry Cadogan cared for the 14-year-old Horatia in the aftermath of Emma's death and paid for her travel to Dover. The Matchams took her in to care for their younger children until she was sent off to live with the Boltons two years later, Susanna having died in 1813. Horatia subsequently married the Rev. Philip Ward, had ten children (the first of whom was named Horatio Nelson) and lived until 1881. Horatia never publicly acknowledged that she was the daughter of Emma Hamilton.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 446: Sillä jos Neitsyen ruumis on Jumalan temppeli, mitä voidaan sanoa sielusta, joka iankaikkisen papin käden paljastettua ruumiin, tuhahtaa niin sanotusti syrjään, hengittää jumalallisen lämmön, antaa potkut? (Siis mitä?)
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 447: Siunatut neitsyet, armon kuolemattomalla tuoksulla hajustettuina kuin kukkien puutarhat, jumalanpalveluksen temppelit, papin alttarit!
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 448: Maria, joka ottaa tamburiinin, johtaa neitsyeiden kuoroja, jotka laulelevat herroille.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 453:
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 493: Depending on the perspective and precepts of the various religions in which he is a figure, he may also be portrayed as the president of the Third Heaven, a division of heaven in Judaism, Islam and Christianity. In Islam he is one of the four archangels, and is identified with the Quranic Malak al-Mawt (ملك الموت, 'angel of death'), which corresponds with the Hebrew-language term Mal'akh ha-Maweth (מלאך המוות) in Rabbinic literature.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 553: Nicole Kidman played Mrs Coulter in the film adaptation, The Golden Compass. Pullman had previously indicated that he would like to see Kidman play the role. ... Her dæmon was changed from a Golden Monkey to a Golden snub-nosed monkey in order to better reflect the two sides of Coulter´s character.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 564:
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 582: When I was much younger I knew a family at Lake Macquarie who were very devout Catholics. Their eldest daughter while still at school in Year 12 became pregnant. She was an atheist and had already rejected Catholicism to the great distress of her parents. She insisted that she had never had sex (haha) and had no idea how it happened. She suggested maybe God had impregnated her. Strangely enough, no one believed her. Even those of strong faith thought she was a liar. Maybe that was the second coming of Jesus and we ignored it. He or she might be living as a 35 year man or woman in Australia today and not a soul knows.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 590: Oh yes I re-read the bible about 5 years ago and on reading that again it struck me not just because of the talking donkey but I couldn’t read it without Eddy Murphy’s voice in my head. When I read Lot (my favorite bible book) I can’t help but read it in Woody Allen’s voice.
      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 604: Then he closed his eyes

      xxx/ellauri165.html on line 666: In Christianity, annihilationism (also known as extinctionism or destructionism)[1] is the belief that those who are wicked will perish or cease to exist. It states that after the Last Judgment, all unsaved human beings, all fallen angels (all of the damned) and Satan himself will be totally destroyed so as to not exist, or that their consciousness will be extinguished rather than suffer everlasting torment in Hell (often synonymized with the lake of fire). Annihilationism stands in contrast to both belief in eternal torture and suffering in the lake of fire and the belief that everyone will be saved (universal reconciliation or simply "universalism").
      xxx/ellauri166.html on line 66: The Midrash (a homiletic method of biblical exegesis) states that the staff was passed down from generation to generation and was in the possession of the Judean kings until the First Temple was destroyed. It is unknown what became of the staff after the Temple was destroyed and the Jews were exiled from the land.
      xxx/ellauri166.html on line 180: Grigorij han blei etter kvart biskop i byen. Før han blei ordinert bad Gregorios inderleg til Gud og jomfru Maria, og fekk eit syn av jomfru Maria og evangelisten Johannes som lærte han korleis ein skulle vitna om Treeininga. Seinare blei denne læra utvikla av mellom anna Basilios den store, Gregor av Nazianz og Gregor av Nyssa. Grigorij døydde omkring 266-270 e.Kr.
      xxx/ellauri166.html on line 223: The Lord shall have them in derision - The same idea is expressed here in a varied form, as is the custom in parallelism in Hebrew poetry. The Hebrew word לעג lâ‛ag, means properly to stammer; then to speak in a barbarous or foreign tongue; then to mock or deride, by imitating the stammering voice of anyone. Gesenius, Lexicon Here it is spoken of God, and, of course, is not to be understood literally, anymore than when eyes, and hands, and feet are spoken of as pertaining to him. The meaning is, that there is a result in the case, in the Divine Mind, as if he mocked or derided the vain attempts of men; that is, he goes calmly forward in the execution of his own purposes, and he looks upon and regards their efforts as vain, as we do the efforts of others when we mock or deride them. The truth taught in this verse is, that God will carry forward his own plans in spite of all the attempts of men to thwart them. This general truth may lie stated in two forms:
      xxx/ellauri166.html on line 310: We are all international activists—the yeshivah student struggling for clarity in an abstruse Talmudic passage, the storeowner who refuses to sell faulty merchandise, the little girl joyfully lighting her candle before Shabbat, the hiker who reaches the top of her climb and breathlessly recites a blessing to the Creator for the magnificent view, the young father who has just now started wrapping tefillin every morning, the subway commuter who lent the guy next to him a shoulder to sleep upon, and the simple Jew who checks for a kosher symbol on the package before making a purchase. Our destiny is tied to the destiny of those books, that merchandise, that time of the week, that mountain, that morning rush, that neighbor and that train, and the food in that package. We cannot live without them, and their redemption cannot come without us. We are all sanitation workers.
      xxx/ellauri166.html on line 312: If you’ve ever set out to clean up a teenager’s room, you can probably relate to the following: Daunted by the task ahead of you, you cleverly start with the big stuff. Having dislodged some furniture, moving them into appropriate corners, tossed a few cardboard boxes into recycling, and discovering that, yes, there is a floor down there, only then can you really get started. But that’s also when it becomes apparent just how ugly this mess really is. Now is time for the scraping, grinding, elbow grease and harsh chemicals. The hardest tasks are always left for last.
      xxx/ellauri166.html on line 343: The Ruch Ah Qudsh is the spirit or character aspect of Yahuah, and therefore a part of Yahuah (Isaiah 40:13). The Ruach is pictured allegorically throughout the Tanakh as the feminine or motherly aspect of Yahuah, and is also synonymous with wisdom, as depicted in the Proverbs where wisdom says, "Yahuah possessed me in the beginning of his way, before his works of old. I was set up from everlasting, from the beginning, or ever the earth was." (Proverbs 8:22,23) The phrase, "YHUH possessed me", indicates that wisdom is the Ruach, or the bride, especially since wisdom is portrayed as feminine.
      xxx/ellauri166.html on line 355: "He" as a reference to Spirit has been used in theology to match the pronoun for Yahuah, yet the Hebrew word Ruch is a noun of feminine gender. Thus, referring to the Ruach Ah Qudsh as "she" has some linguistic justification.
      xxx/ellauri166.html on line 387: Hyvä nimi rock- yhtyeelle: a big hand for Rashi and the Tosaphists!
      xxx/ellauri166.html on line 390: Shlomo Yitzchaki (Hebrew: רבי שלמה יצחקי‎; Latin: Salomon Isaacides; French: Salomon de Troyes, 22 February 1040 – 13 July 1105), today generally known by the acronym Rashi (see below), was a medieval French rabbi and author of a comprehensive commentary on the Talmud and commentary on the Hebrew Bible (the Tanakh). Acclaimed for his ability to present the basic meaning of the text in a concise and lucid fashion, Rashi appeals to both learned scholars and beginner students, and his works remain a centerpiece of contemporary Jewish study. His commentary on the Talmud, which covers nearly all of the Babylonian Talmud (a total of 30 out of 39 tractates, due to his death), has been included in every edition of the Talmud since its first printing by Daniel Bomberg in the 1520s. His commentary on Tanakh—especially on the Chumash ("Five Books of Moses")—serves as the basis for more than 300 "supercommentaries" which analyze Rashi's choice of language and citations, penned by some of the greatest names in rabbinic literature.
      xxx/ellauri166.html on line 393: Rashi was an only child born at Troyes, Champagne, in northern France. His mother's brother was Simeon bar Isaac, rabbi of Mainz. Simon was a disciple of Gershom ben Judah, who died that same year. On his father's side, Rashi has been claimed to be a 33rd-generation descendant of Johanan HaSandlar,[citation needed] who was a fourth-generation descendant of Gamaliel, who was reputedly descended from the Davidic line. In his voluminous writings, Rashi himself made no such claim at all. The main early rabbinical source about his ancestry, Responsum No. 29 by Solomon Luria, makes no such claim either.
      xxx/ellauri166.html on line 397: Scholars believe that Rashi's commentary on the Torah grew out of the lectures he gave to his students in his yeshiva, and evolved with the questions and answers they raised on it. Rashi completed this commentary only in the last years of his life. It was immediately accepted as authoritative by all Jewish communities, Ashkenazi and Sephardi alike.
      xxx/ellauri166.html on line 492: Manly Palmer Hall (18 March 1901 – 29 August 1990) was a Canadian author, lecturer, astrologer and mystic. Over his 70 year career, he gave thousands of lectures, including two at Carnegie Hall, and published over 150 volumes, of which the best known is The Secret Teachings of All Ages (1928). Manly ei näyttänyt järin miehekkäältä, pikemminkin niljakkaalta ilkimyxeltä.
      xxx/ellauri166.html on line 500: Hall and his followers went to extreme lengths to keep any gossip or information that could tarnish his image from being publicized, and little is known about his first marriage, on 28 April 1930, to Fay B. deRavenne, then 28, who had been his secretary during the preceding five years. The marriage was not a happy one; his friends never discussed it, and Hall removed virtually all information about her from his papers following her suicide on 22 February 1941. Following a long friendship, on 5 December 1950, Hall married Marie Schweikert Bauer (following her divorce from George Bauer), and the marriage, though stormy, was happier than his first for Marie Schweikert Bauer Hall died April 21, 2005, 15 years after Manly.
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 88:
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 292: lsä oli pitkän aikaa hiljaa ja ajattelin ettei hän ollut kuullut. Mutta sitten hän sanoi: "Se on kaikkein suurin salaisuus. Pyhät miehetkään eivät kyenneet luotaaman sitä (naisista puhumattakaan). Niin kauan kuin ihminen kärsii hän ei pysty ratkaisemaan kärsimyksen ongelmaa. Jobkaan ei saanut siihen vastausta vaan pelkkää öykkäröintiä. Mooses itse ei sitä tiennyt vaikka kysyi. Totuus on että ruumis ja kärsimys tarkoittavat samaa. Miten vapaa valinta voisi olla olemassa ilman rangaistusta väärän valitsemisesta ja palkintoa siitä että tekee valintansa oikein? Kaiken tämän kärsimyxen takana on Jumalan loputon armo." Ei pidä hoputtaa harmoa vaan odottaa kärsivällisesti loppua.
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 381: In general, New Year festivals start in the spring, when Nature appears to reawaken after a dormant winter. Why is the Jewish New Year celebrated in the autumn? The Torah says quite clearly that the first month of the year shall be in the spring (Exod. 12:2), which means Nisan, though it was originally called “Aviv,” or Spring (Deut. 16:1). This follows the Babylonian calendar, which started with the month of Nisannu and continued with 10 days of New Year rituals. So what the heck?
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 382: Ahha! The wily Jews party at the end of the agricultural year, not at the start. Ne on kuin helluntaiystävät, jotka viettivät helluntaita syysjuhlana. Martinpäivää viettivät, tai Mikkeliä. Sikäli fixua, että syxyllä on millä mällätä. Kevät keikkuen tulevi.
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 425: Illuminatien ja vapaamuurarien lyhyestä yhteistyöstä syntyi taru, jonka mukaan illuminatien mestarit hallitsisivat vapaamuurareita ja muita salaseuroja edelleen ja aikoisivat yhä toteuttaa Weishauptin maailmanhallintasuunnitelman.
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 472: I have heard much of the nefarious, and dangerous plan, and doctrines of the Illuminati, but never saw the Book until you were pleased to send it to me. The same causes which have prevented my acknowledging the receipt of your letter have prevented my reading the Book, hitherto; namely, the multiplicity of matters which pressed upon me before, and the debilitated state in which I was left after, a severe fever had been removed. And which allows me to add little more now, than thanks for your kind wishes and favourable sentiments, except to correct an error you have run into, of my Presiding over the English lodges in this Country. The fact is, I preside over none, nor have I been in one more than once or twice, within the last thirty years. I believe notwithstanding, that none of the Lodges in this Country are contaminated with the principles ascribed to the Society of the Illuminati. With respect I am &c.
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 474: However Snyder, not having yet received a response to his August 22nd letter (#1 above), wrote back:
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 480: Even in this small Place the French-Faction is very numerous—their Expressions are like those of Bloody-Lutetia [Lutetia Parisiorum, or Paris]: their Sentiments in exact Unison with those of the Jacobine Club: their Hearts panting for Faggots and Guillotines. The Foundation of their Sanctuary is laid with Lies, and every Stone of the Superstructure reared with Falsehood. They are laboriously employed to excite Discord—to extinguish public Virtue—to break down the Barriers of Religion—to establish Atheism, and work the Downfall of our Civil—and Religious Liberty. Should their perfidious Schemes succeed (I tremble even at the Imagination of the Consequences) what would become of our Columbia?”
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 492: “I should be very happy in your Excellency’s good Opinion, that the Contagion of Illuminatism or Jacobinism had not yet reached this Country; but when I consider the anarchical and seditious Spirit, that shewed itself in the United States from the Time M. Genet and Fauchet (who certainly is of the Order) arrived in this Country and propagated their seditious Doctrines, which the illuminated Doctor from Birmingham has been zealously employed to strengthen, I confess I cannot divest myself of my Suspicions: yet I trust that the Alwise and Omnipotent Ruler of the Universe will so dispose the Minds of the People of these United States that true Religion and righteous Government may remain the Privileges of this Nation!
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 509: The idea that I meant to convey, was, that I did not believe that the Lodges of Free Masons in this Country had, as Societies, endeavoured to propagate the diabolical tenets of the first, or pernicious principles of the latter (if they are susceptible of seperation). That Individuals of them may have done it, or that the founder, or instrument employed to found, the Democratic Societies in the United States, may have had these objects; and actually had a seperation of the People from their Government in view, is too evident to be questioned.
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 552: Most famously, a passage from Robert Anton Wilson and ‎Robert Shea’s The Eye in the Pyramid, the first book of The Illuminatus! Trilogy, describes Adam Weishaupt killing off George Washington and taking his place as President of the United States:
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 564: Abraham Alexander Ribicoff (April 9, 1910 – February 22, 1998) was an American Democratic Party politician from the state of Connecticut. He represented Connecticut in the United States House of Representatives and Senate and was the 80th Governor of Connecticut and Secretary of Health, Education, and Welfare in President John F. Kennedy's cabinet. He was Connecticut's first and to date only Jewish governor. Having suffered in his later years from the effects of Alzheimer´s disease, he died in 1998 at the Hebrew Home for the Aged in Riverdale in The Bronx, New York City, and is interred at Cornwall Cemetery in Cornwall, Connecticut.
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 578: The violence in Chicago was all-encompassing, and longhairs weren’t the only targets of the police. Journalists with clearly displayed credentials were attacked, including, most notoriously, CBS’ Dan Rather. This laid the foundation for the cries of “liberal bias” that hound and undermine the mainstream news media to this day.
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 594: By early October of 1968, CBS received 8,670 letters about Chicago, and 60 Minutes’ Harry Reasoner reported that the mail ran 11-to-1 against the network. A viewer in Ohio wrote, “I’ve never seen such a disgusting display of one-sided reporting in all of the years I’ve watched television.” From South Carolina, a letter writer griped, “Your coverage was … slanted in favor of the hoodlums and beatniks and slurred the police trying to preserve order.” A North Carolina viewer complained that, “When a great network refers to trouble makers as THESE YOUNG PEOPLE and in such a … tender tone, that is bias.” A New Yorker even suggested that the police had engaged in righteous violence: “Our Lord whipped the money lenders out of the temple. Are you going to accuse Him of brutality?”
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 618: He and Wilson remained good friends in later years.
      xxx/ellauri167.html on line 697: Viimeisinä kuukausinaan Leary kirjoitti kirjan nimeltä Design for Dying, jossa hän kirjoittaa omista näkemyksistään kuolemaan liittyen.
      xxx/ellauri168.html on line 182: X-Filesin innovaatio oli että naisosan esittäjä oli mikimpi kuin sen hessumainen aisapari. Sekin oli aika pelottavaa. Ehkä ensimmäinen tarkka kuvaus "harmaista" on ruotsalaisen Gustav Sandgrenin vuonna 1933 nimimerkillä Gabriel Linde julkaisemassa nuorille suunnatussa tieteisromaanissa Tuntematon vaara (ruotsinkielinen alkuteos Den okända faran): "Hän huomasi, etteivät nuo olennot muistuttaneet mitään ihmisrotua. He olivat lyhyitä, lyhyempiä kuin keskimitan japanilaiset, heidän päänsä oli hyvin iso ja kalju, otsa voimakas, nelikulmainen, nenä ja suu hyvin pienet ja leuka heikko.
      xxx/ellauri168.html on line 190: Kirj. Fritz "the Cat" Spritzmeyer & Cisco Caramba

      xxx/ellauri168.html on line 195: Cisco Caramba ja minä Fritz tunnemme että meillä on vastuu kertoa sinulle koko totuus sellaisena kuiin me tiedämme sen, se mitä sinä teet tällä totuudella on sinusta kiinni. Tämä kirja selittää monia okkultistisia ajatuksia ja uskomuksia, joista monia ei ole koskaan aiemmin julkisesti paljastettu. On olemassa tärkeä syy miksi näitä okkultistisia ajatuksia ja uskomuksia tuodaan esille, meidän täytyy tutkia meidän vihollistamme ja sitä kuinka tämä ajattelee. USA:n armeija käytti intiaaneja tarkkailemaan intiaaneja. Kenraali MacArthur opiskeli japanilaisexi kyetäkseen lyömään japanilaisia. Kristus tunsi henkilökohtaisesti Saatanan. Joku apostoli sanoi: "Me emme ole suinkaan tietämättömiä Saatanan juonista." Yhä uudestaan, tämä kirjailija on nähnyt ylhäisten kirkonmiesten tekevän vapaamuurareiden kädenpuristuksia, esittäen koodisanoja, jne. tavallisten ihmisten edessä, ja kristityt eivät näe sitä. Toisaalta kristityt haluavat todisteet siitä mitä tapahtuu, mutta toisaalta, he eivät ole halukkaita oppimaan sitä kuinka tunnistaa se mitä vastustaja tekee. Tällainen kaksimielisyys on auttanut kirkkoja muuttumaan -- surullista sanoa -- illuminaattien julkisivuksi.
      xxx/ellauri168.html on line 225: Music Player Daemon
      xxx/ellauri168.html on line 259: In 2015, doctors in Germany reported the extraordinary case of a woman who suffered from what has traditionally been called “multiple personality disorder” and today is known as “dissociative identity disorder” (DID). The woman exhibited a variety of dissociated personalities (“alters”), some of which claimed to be blind. Using EEGs, the doctors were able to ascertain that the brain activity normally associated with sight wasn’t present while a blind alter was in control of the woman’s body, even though her eyes were open. Remarkably, when a sighted alter assumed control, the usual brain activity returned.
      xxx/ellauri168.html on line 329: Orjien luominen valokuvamaisilla muistoilla helpottaa tätä salailua. Mutta he eivät ole kyenneet täysin peittämään miljoonia ohjelmoinnin tuhoamia hukkaan heitettyjä eläimiä. Monien vuosien ajan, he kykenivät peittämään jälkensä luokittelemalla uhrinsa skitsofreenikoiksi. Mutta nyt terapeutit kuzuvat niitä MPD tai DID tapauxixi. Sen jälkeen kun Karkki Jonesin aviomies paransi Karkin sen verran että hän kykeni kirjoittamaan kirjan jossa paljastettiin asioita joita hänelle oli tehty, salaisuus oli paljastettu (katso "The Control of Candy Jones Hypnotism and the CIA" by Donald Bain).
      xxx/ellauri168.html on line 349: McArthur kertoi hiänelle, että hänen pitäisi olla hyvässä kunnossa salatyössään, ja ehdotti, että hän tarvitsisi vitamiineja, joita hiän ruiskutti hänelle siitä lähtien suonensisäisesti. Nämä "vitamiinit" olivat itse asiassa erittäin kokeellisia koronalääkkeitä. Hiän kertoi hänelle myös hypnoosista ja sen käytöstä ja osoitti sen hypnotisoimalla hänet, vaikka hän väittikin, ettei häntä voitu hypnotisoida. Silloin hän löysi Ariettyn Karkin sienipaikasta ja kexi että voisi saada hiänestä jonkun, jota hän voisi käyttää samalla lailla kuin Karkkia. Arietty ongittiin ulos sienestä ja pantiin Karkin taskuun, ja todellisuudessa juuri hiänet lähetettiin kimittämään erilaisille kokeellisille tehtäville kotimaassa ja ulkomailla. Karkista tuli myös ulkonäöltään Arietty, jolla on peruukki ja erilainen meikki. Tietenkin hiän oli ohjelmoitu olemaan muistamatta kaikkea tätä, mutta kun Donald Bain puhui hiänelle kirjastaan, hiänellä oli vielä yksi passikuva Ranusta ja Arietystä (jonka Bain julkaisi), Ranulla oli siinä musta käkkärä peruukki ja tumma meikki. Bain järkyttyi: vizi oliko McArthur neekeri! Ja kimittävä Arietty peukalonkokoinen, Ranun kynnetöntä sormea miltei lyhyempi! Hirveää!
      xxx/ellauri168.html on line 505: Kaikki tämä tapahtuu äärimmäisen nopeasti, kuin gebardit. Jos mieli ei pystytä sarjaa automaattisia kognitiivisia demoni-prosesseja joista tulee tottumuksia (kutsutaan K-linjoiksi), se löytää itsensä kietoutuneena tajuntaan joka opiskelee yhä uudelleen arkipäiväisiä asioita joka tekee mahdottomaksi sen että paljonkaan asioita kyettäisiin suorittamaan. Jokainen taito pitäisi jatkuvasti opetella uudelleen. Henkilö saattaisi helposti joutua käyttämään koko päivän sepaluxen auki napittamiseen. Niin kauan kuin mieli säilyy tasapainoisessa ympäristössä, missä tottumukset toimivat, kaikki on hyvin. Mutta elämä on sellainen muuttuva ympäristö että meidän vakiintuneet tottumuksemme voivat saada mielemme pysäyttämään tottumuksiemme kognitiivisen demoni-prosessin, joka ei ole suotavaa.
      xxx/ellauri169.html on line 102: Robertsonin vastaus vuoden 2010 Haitin maanjäristykseen herätti myös maailmanlaajuista kiistaa ja sai kansainvälisen tuomion, tosin lyhyen ja ehdollisena. Robertson väitti, että Haitin perustajat olivat vannoneet "sopimuksen paholaiselle" vapauttaakseen itsensä ranskalaisista orjanomistajista ja katsoi maanjäristyksen epäsuorasti seurauksiksi siitä, että Haitin kansa oli "kirottu" teoistaan. Niin. CBN julkaisi myöhemmin lausunnon, jonka mukaan Robertsonin kommentit "perustuivat laajalti keskusteltuun vuoden 1791 orjakapinaan, jota johti Dutty Boukman Bois Caimanissa , jossa orjat väitetysti tekivät kuuluisan sopimuksen paholaisen kanssa vastineeksi voitosta ranskalaisista." Useat päälinjan ja evankelisen kristinuskon hahmot ovat toisinaan kiistäneet päätään pidellen osan Robertsonin huomautuksista. Muttei kaikkia, onhan kaveri kuitenkin meidän ja Jhwhn tiimissä.
      xxx/ellauri169.html on line 123: Disney was a shy, self-deprecating and insecure man in private but adopted a warm and outgoing public persona. He had high standards and high expectations of those with whom he worked. Although there have been accusations that he was racist or anti-Semitic, they have been contradicted by many who knew him. His reputation changed in the years after his death, from a purveyor of homely patriotic values to a representative of American imperialism. He nevertheless remains an important figure in the history of animation and in the cultural history of the United States, where he is considered a national cultural icon.
      xxx/ellauri169.html on line 141: 1918 --Walt huomaa että hänellä ei ole syntymätodistusta. Walt huomaa vanhempiensa oudon reaktion liittyen hänen syntymätodistukseensa & muihin kysymyksiin. Hän alkaa tuntea syvää epäluottamusta isäänsä kohtaan.
      xxx/ellauri169.html on line 154: As Walt became more successful, he lost touch with his overworked and undercompensated employees, who eventually started to rebel against him. Even Art Babbitt—one of Walt's closest friends and allies and the man who drew Goofy—stood up to Walt. But Walt didn't want to hear the criticism, and he fired Babbitt. Matters only got worse, when in 1941, 200 of Walt's employees picketed outside the studio.
      xxx/ellauri169.html on line 205: Group members practice prayers, affirmations, mantras and a dynamic form of prayer known as "decrees". These serve many purposes: devotion, calling on angels for protection, calling forth the light of God on the earth, praying for healing, for wisdom, seeking to know God's will and for the transmutation of negative karma. One of the most important uses of decrees is to invoke the violet flame, claimed to be the most effective method of balancing karma built up in the past. The doctrine of the Seven Rays is also taught, as well as teachings about the chakras and reincarnation.
      xxx/ellauri169.html on line 219: Esimerkiksi, Raamatun naisen nimeä käytetään koodina, jolla on alakoodeina Raamatun naisten nimiä. Aiemmassa kirjassa lueteltiin monia heidän suosikki-koodisanojaan mutta A-, B-, T-, U-, V-, W-, X-, ja Y- kirjaimella alkavia sanoja ei ollut annettu. Fritz Springmeyerin (tämän kirjailijan) kokemusten nojalla, seuraavassa koodisanoja joita on käytetty arjen ohjelmoinnissa:
      xxx/ellauri169.html on line 383: On Popular Bio, She is one of the successful Self-Help Author. She has ranked on the list of those famous people who were born on March 16, 1946. She is one of the Richest Self-Help Author who was born in NM. She also has a position among the list of Most popular Self-Help Author. J.Z. Knight is 1 of the famous people in our database with the age of 73 years old.
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 52:
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 108: The missing text at the beginning of line two is generally attributed to a printing error, since in the earliest version of the sonnet the second line begins with a repetition of the last three words of the previous lines, commonly called an eye-skip error, which breaks the iambic pentameter. Shakespeare's intention for the line is a subject of debate among scholars, with most modern scholars accepting the emendation, "feeding", based on internal evidence. Other guesses include "Thrall to", "Fool'd by", "Hemm'd by", "Foil'd by", "Fenced by", "Flatt'ring", "Spoiled by", "Lord of", and "Pressed by". Unfortunately, none of the "guesses" seem to work. "Feeding," for example, tends to "explain the joke," and does not let the poem build to the implication that the soul itself is culpable in man's struggle for spirit over the corporal self. Perhaps a better foot would be "disrobe." Musta paras on Lord of.
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 214: I added the entry for the verb blow (in the relevant sense) from the Eleventh Collegiate Dictionary, including that dictionary's take on the etymology of the term. I'm very surprised that no one before Elena Lysko pointed out the correct meaning of blow in the quotation cited by the OP; the question has been on EL&U for almost three years, and has been seen by more than 2,700 people. In any case, thank you, Elena Lysko, for providing this long overdue clarification. –
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 245:
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 426: It is early days yet in scientific circles ... they know now of what I talk about. Richard, The Actual Freedom Trust Mailing List, No. 30
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 437: This long-awaited public announcement, uploaded wirelessly to the World Wide Web via a solar-powered notebook from the navigable head of a remote river system in a far-flung wilderness area, ushers in a brand new era in human experience and history, in the opening weeks of the year 2010, the consequences of which will have far-reaching implications and ramifications for anyone vitally interested in both an actual and a virtual freedom from the human condition.
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 445: Several years ago, an Australian abo named Richard* chanced upon a novel method of attaining an exquisite degree of happiness and contentment. The simple method that he used, he later termed actualism. Later on, he would find a way to dwell permanently in a state of utter delight, stillness and peace – through a process of self-immolation – eradicating the self permanently and living only as a body and its consciousness. This was an actual freedom from the human condition – or actual freedom, for short.
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 496: Are there multi-layered meanings in actualist writings?
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 729: Ok. So I am simplifying their argument, but I don’t care. I know this is the most you my dear readers can wrap your simian brains around. Their argument is silly in the first place. They found a shoulder blade from a 3-year-old “Lucy” or Australopithecus, and from this shoulder blade they determined that our human ancestors spent a lot of time in trees. Actually, this kind of logic is par for the course with these scientists. In fact, many of their other suppositions from Ramapethicus to Nebraska Man to Piltdown Man and Java Man have begun with either part of a skull, a jaw, or some teeth. It is amazing the creativity they possess when they can develop an entire ape-like man, complete with long wavy hair and hunch-backed appearance from a few teeth.
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 789: Iaōn tulkinta. Ja Jeesus teki hypnoottisen eleen, kääntyen kohti maailman neljää kolkkaa opiskelijoiden kanssa, jotka kaikki olivat pukeutuneet pellavapukuihin, ja sanoen: "iaō iaō iaō." Tämä on sen tulkinta: iōta, koska maailmankaikkeus on poissa suoraan; alfa, koska se kääntyy takaisin; ōmega, koska kaiken täydellisyys valmistuu. Jou.
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 837: Kiroajan rankaisemisesta.... [ja johdata heidät tulijokille ja tulimerelle] ja kostaa siitä vielä 6kk 8p. Sen jälkeen he johdattavat sen keskelle, ja jokainen keskellä oleva viivoitin kurittaa sitä kurituksissaan vielä kuusi kuukautta ja kahdeksan päivää. Sen jälkeen he johdattavat sen Valon Neitsyen pakeille, joka tuomitsee hyvän ja pahan, jotta hän voi tuomita sen. Ja kun pallo kääntyy, hän luovuttaa sen vastaanottajilleen, jotta he voivat heittää sen pallon koteloihin. Ja pallon orjuuttajat johdavat sen veteen, joka on pallon alapuolella; ja siitä tulee pannukakku. se tyhjeneä tuleen ja syö siihen, kunnes se puhdistaa sen täysin.
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 843: "Sen jälkeen he kantavat sen Valon Neitsyelle, joka tuomitsee vanhurskaat ja syntiset, jotta hän voi tuomita sen. Ja kun pallo kääntyy, hän luovuttaa sen vastaanottajilleen, jotta he voivat heittää sen pallon æoneihin. Ja pallon orjuuttajat johtavat sen veteen, joka on pallon alapuolella; ja siitä tulee sekopää ja se syö siihen, kunnes se puhdistaa sen täysin. "Ja Yaluham, Sabaōthin vastaanottaja, Adamas, tuo unohduksen kupin ja ojentaa sen sielulle, ja se juo sitä ja unohtaa kaikki alueet ja kaiken ja kaikki alueet, joiden kautta se on mennyt. Ja he toimittavat sen ruumiille, joka viettää aikansa kärsien. Tämä on herjaajan rankaisemista."
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 847: "Sen jälkeen he johtavat sen kaaokseen ennen Persephonēa ja kosiskelevat sitä siveillään vielä kolme vuotta ja kuusi kuukautta. "Sen jälkeen he vievät sen keskelle, ja jokainen keskellä olevan tien viivain ottaa siitä koston alueidensa kuritteluilla vielä 3v 6kk. "Sen jälkeen he johdattavat sen Valon Neitsyen luokse, joka tuomitsee vanhurskaat ja syntiset, jotta hän voi tuomita sen. Ja kun pallo kääntyy, hän käskee, että se heitetään ulompaan pimeyteen siihen asti, kunnes keskellä olevan pimeyden pimeys raivostuu; se [sielu] tuhoutuu ja hajoaa. Tämä on murhaajan rankaiseminen."
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 851: "Sen jälkeen he johtavat sen kaaokseen ennen Yaldabaōthia ja hänen 49 demoniaan, ja jokainen hänen demoneistaan kostaa siitä vielä 3kk,8p, 2h. Sen jälkeen he johdattavat sen keskelle, ja jokainen keskellä olevan tien viivain ottaa sen koston pimeän savunsa ja ilkeän tulituksensa kautta vielä 3kk, 8p, 2h." Ne 2 viimeistä tuntia ovat pahimmat. "Sen jälkeen he johdattavat sen Valon Neitsyen luokse, joka tuomitsee vanhurskaat ja syntiset, jotta hän voi tuomita sen. Ja kun pallo kääntyy, hän luovuttaa sen vastaanottajilleen, jotta he voivat heittää sen pallon æoneihin. Ja he johdattavat sen veteen, joka on pallon alapuolella; |384. ja siitä tulee sekopää ja se syö siihen, kunnes se puhdistaa sen täysin."
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 857: "Sen jälkeen he kantavat sen keskelle; ja jokainen keskellä oleva viivoitin ottaa siitä koston vielä 20kk. Ja sen jälkeen he johdattavat sen Valon Neitsyen luokse, jotta hän voi tuomita sen. Ja kun pallo kääntyy, hän luovuttaa sen vastaanottajilleen, jotta he voivat heittää sen pallon æoneihin. Ja pallon orjuuttajat johdattaa se veteen, joka on pallon alapuolella; ja siitä tulee valtava tuli ja se syö siihen, kunnes se puhdistaa sen. Ja vielä Yaluham, Sabaōthin vastaanottaja, Adamat, tulee ja tuo kupin unohduksen vedellä ja ojentaa sen sielulle; ja se juo ja unohtaa kaiken ja kaikki alueet, joille se oli mennyt. Ja he heittävät sen tylsään ja epämuodostumaiseen kehoon, niin että kaikki halveksivat sitä jatkuvasti. Tämä on ylimielisen ja nenäkkään ihmisen rankaiseminen."
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 873: "Sen jälkeen he johdattavat sen Valon Neitsyen luokse, ja hän tuomitsee sen ja tallettaa sen Pieni Sabaōth, Hyvä, hän keskeltä, kunnes pallo kääntyy itsestään, ja Zeus ja Afrodite tulevat Valon Neitsyen edestä, kun taas Kronos ja Arēs tulevat hänen takaataan. "Siihen aikaan hän ottaa sen vanhurskaan sielun ja ojentaa se hänen vastaanottajilleen, jotta he voivat heittää sen pallon pioneihin. Ja pallon orjuuttajat johdattavat sen veteen, joka on pallon alapuolella; ja siihen nousee tuli, kunnes se puhdistaa sen totaalisesti."
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 875: "Sen jälkeen tulee Yaluham, Sabaōthin sisäänheittäjä, Adamas, joka antaa sieluille unohduksen maljan, ja hän tuo unohduksen veden ja antaa sen sielulle; [ja se juo sitä] unohtaa kaiken ja kaikki alueet, joille se oli mennyt." Viisauden maljasta." Sen jälkeen tulee pienen Sabaōthin, Hyvän, ja Keskon vastaanottaja. Hän itse tuo kupin täynnä ajatuksia ja viisautta, ja siinä on raittiutta; [ja] hän antaa sen sielulle. Ja he heittävät sen ruumiiseen, joka ei voi nukkua eikä unohtaa sen raittiuden kupin takia, joka sille on annettu; mutta se piiskaa sinnikkäästi sydäntään kyseenalaistamaan Valon mysteereitä, kunnes se löytää ne Valon Neitsyen päätöksellä ja perii Valon ikuisesti." Niin ettei siinä kummemmin käy, ei satu sen vertaa kuin koronarokotus. Heippa, jatketaan tästä ensi kerralla. Jokos saadaan lounasta?
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 880: Mead began studying mathematics at St John's College, Cambridge. Suddenly shifting his education towards the study of Classics, he gained much knowledge of Greek and Latin (but no Coptic). In 1884 he completed a BA degree; in the same year he became a public school master. He received an MA degree in 1926. While still at Cambridge University Mead read Esoteric Buddhism (1883) by Alfred Percy Sinnett. This comprehensive theosophical account of the Eastern religion prompted Mead to contact two theosophists in London named Bertam Keightly and Mohini Chatterji, which eventually led him to join Helena Petrovna Blavatsky's Theosophical Society in 1884.
      xxx/ellauri170.html on line 885: He contributed many articles to the Theosophical Society's Lucifer (inexplicably renamed The Theosophical Review in 1897) as joint editor. Mead became the sole editor of The Theosophical Review in 1907. As of February 1909 Mead and some 700 members of the Theosophical Society's British Section resigned in protest at Annie Besant´s reinstatement of Charles Webster Leadbeater to membership in the society. Leadbeater had been a prominent member of the Theosophical Society until he was accused in 1906 of teaching masturbation to, and sexually touching, the sons of some American Theosophists under the guise of occult training. While this prompted Mead´s resignation, his frustration at the stiffness of the Theosophical Society may also have been a major contributor to his break after 25 years.
      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 198: Son visage un peu froid, mais d’un tour gracieux et sympathique, s’éclairait d’un sourire empreint de cette sorte de tristesse élevée qui décèle l’aristocratie d’un caractère. Ses traits, bien que d’une régularité grecque, attestaient par la qualité de leur finesse, une énergie de décision souveraine. De très fins et massés cheveux, une moustache et de légers favoris, d’un blond d’or fluide, ombraient la matité de neige de son teint juvénile. Ses grands yeux noblement calmes, d’un bleu pâle, sous de presque droits sourcils, se fixaient sur son interlocuteur. ― À sa main, sévèrement gantée de noir, il tenait un cigare éteint. Herrasmies kiireestä munapusseihin.
      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 207: Peregrinos Proteus (n. 95–165 jaa.) oli antiikin kreikkalainen kyyniseen koulukuntaan kuulunut filosofi. Hän oli kotoisin Parionista, Myysiasta. Hänet tunnetaan ennen kaikkea siitä, että hän piti oman hautajaispuheensa ja teki henkilökohtaisen roviohyppyennätyxen Olympian kisoissa vuonna 165.
      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 280: Deux chercheurs, nous dit Y. Coppens, qui épiaient à travers le trou d’une serrure (sic) le comportement d’un chimpanzé qu’ils avaient enfermé avec un régime de banane pendu au plafond et avec des moyens de l’atteindre pourvu qu’un minimum de réflexion fût mis en œuvre par l’animal, furent surpris de ne voir… que l’œil du singe qui, tout comme eux, regardait à travers ce trou. «
      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 286: Ca va jusqu’à balayer la différence entre l’être humain et les autres animaux en faisant éclore subitement une position symétrique d’observation! Mais de notre côté, nous (ou moi, je suis seule a ecrire ceci) n’y voyons pas la même démonstration.
      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 290: Vous voyez: homo sapiens est comme le bon Dieu vis a vis son cousin malheureux!
      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 345: ― Vous aussi, et plus que moi ! répondit le jeune homme en s’essuyant. Sans votre culotte, voulez-vous en essayer avec moi ?
      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 356: No kävikö se sit vieraissa? Suihkiko ristiin? - Ei edes sitäkään. Hän oli melko hyvästä skotlantilaisperheestä, hiljan jalostetusta vieläpä. Sulhasen vietellyt, sitten paremman omaisuuden vuoksi hylätty, ei enää kyennyt naimisiin, mutta tunsi myötätuntoa henkilöäni kohtaan, hän otti ilman pitkiä puheita tervetulleeksi rakkauden, jonka painoin häneen ja jonka kaltevuuden hän toivoi voivansa piankin jakaa.
      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 364: Hittolainen, ämmähän on keskiluokkainen MOUKKA! Vain teatterityönsä ammatissa hiän tulkkaa voimakkaasti matkivin keinoin nerouden inspiraatioita― hän pitää niitä onttoina. Näitä suuria, näitä ainoita mielen todellisuuksia kaikille järkeville sieluille, hän kutsuu niitä määrittelemättömällä hymyllä "runollisiksi ja eteerisiksi", ja vain punastuen, pakon edessä, hän pystyy, alentaen itsensä (ikään kuin häpeälliseen lapsellisuuteen syyllistyen) tulkitsemaan niitä.
      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 443: Faune, l’illusion s’échappe des yeux bleus

      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 518: Tressaille ! la frayeur secrète de la chair :

      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 749: Ei. Keskinkertainen ennen kaikkea, hän ei ole edes ilkeä: hän on hyväluontoinen, koska hän on ennemmin ahne kuin kurja: aina typerästi, ei koskaan tyhmästi. Hänellä on heikkojen ja kuivien sydämien tekopyhyys, kuin kuollut puu, jotka eivät lyhyesti sanottuna ole sen arvoisempia palvelemaan kuin saamaan palveluja.
      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 755: "Kyllä! ", sanoi lordi Ewald. Minulla oli ilo analysoida tämän häiritsevän naisen uskonnollisuutta. Ei mitään mystistä Lunastaja-Jumalan elämää antavasta rakkaudesta – vaan hän uskoo siksi, että se vaikuttaa sopivalta ja erittäin "asianmukaiselta". Hän uskoo valaistuneen, ymmärrettävän ylevyyden Jumalaan. Hän kansoittaa paratiisinsa marttyyreilla, jotka eivät liioittele mitään; kunnialliset valitut, muodolliset pyhät, käytännölliset neitsyet, kunnolliset kerubit. Hän uskoo taivaaseen, mutta maanläheiseen taivaaseen.
      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 814: Ja sitten punni tietoisuutesi syvyyksissä, ettei sunkaan silikoninen olento-haamu-auttaja, joka tuo sinut takaisin elämänhalulle, ole todellisemmin ihmisen nimeä ansaitsevampi kuin elävä kummitus, jonka pieni ja kehno nk. "todellisuus" ei ole koskaan kyennyt inspiroimaan sinussa mehukasta panoa vaan silkkaa kuoleman janoa. Hiljaa, lordi Ewald pohti. - Okei, sulla saattaa olla kohta siellä, tää käsi on jo tosi känsillä.
      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 861: - Vai niin ! nämä ajatukset ovat nyt vain... pikkujuttuja, nuori mies sanoo. - Rutto! huudahti sähköasentaja, miten menee! ― vain pienistä asioista? Mutta mitään ei unohdeta, ei enää ihanteellista! Muista tämän ranskalaisen sanat: ”Jos Pauline-siskon nenä olisi ollut hieman lyhyempi, koko maan pinta olisi muuttunut. "-Ei mitään? ― Mutta mitä tekemistä maailman vakavimmilta näyttävillä asioilla on nykyäänkin?
      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 921: "Lisäksi", sanoi Edison kevyesti, "onko mielestänne erittäin suuri menetys neiti Hadalylle, että häneltä riistetään mallinsa kaltainen omatunto? Eikö hän voita, päinvastoin? Ainakin teidän silmissänne, koska neiti Alicia Claryn "omatunto" näyttää sinusta valitettavalta liialliselta, hänen ruumiinsa mestariteoksen pilaavalta tahralta?
      xxx/ellauri173.html on line 925: ”Hänen omatuntonsa, sanotko sinä?… Mutta meillä miekkosilla, tämä Pyhän Hengen lahja, Omatunto, muuttuu ennen kaikkea kyvyksi älylliseen ystävyyteen. Jokainen nuori mies, joka ei muinaisten tasavaltojen päivinä kyennyt 20-vuotiaana saamaan ystäväänsä suoristumaan, julistettiin tunnottomaxi, sanalla sanoen pahamaineiseksi. Historiassa on mainittu tuhat esimerkkiä ihailtavista ystävistä: Damon ja Pythias, Pylades ja Orestes, Akhilleus ja Patroklus, David ja Jonatan, Dupont ja Dupond, Henry Higgins ja Colonel Pickering, Tiku ja Taku, jne. 2-neuvoisia etanoita 2 hengen junissa tuntosarvet ulkona. Nimeä kaksi naisystävää koko ihmiskunnan historian aikana? Ruth ja Naomi. Sappho and her friend. Maria ja Elisabeth. Katri Vala ja Elina Vaara. Elizabeth Bennett ja Charlotte Collins. Jane Austin ja Cassandra. Tove ja Tuutikki. No joo mut silti vittu oikeesti. Mahdoton juttu. Miksi ? ― Koska nainen tunnistaa itsensä liian tajuttomasti lähilontossaan, jolta se ei koskaan tule huijatuksi. Miehet taas kusettaa ja tulee kustux silmään ihan sikana kun ne on niin tolloja - no en viizi jatkaa tästä aiheesta.
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 63: Malebranche was giving in to laws of cause an effect by placing a greater emphasis than he had previously done on his occasionalist account of causation, and particularly on his contention that God acted for the most part through "general volitions" and only rarely, as in the case of miracles, through "particular volitions". A bitter dispute ensued between Malebranche and his fellow Cartesian, Arnauld, whose name I remember from Chomsky's airy forays to Port-Royal grammar in the 60's. Over the next few years, the two men wrote enough polemics against one another to fill four volumes of Malebranche's collected works and three of Arnauld's. Arnauld's supporters managed to persuade the Roman Catholic Church to place Nature and Grace on its Index of Prohibited Books in 1690, and it was followed there by the Search nineteen years later in 1709. (Ironically, the Index already contained several works by the Jansenist Arnauld himself.) Somebody blamed Malebranche for being a Spinozan, which Nick himself vehemently demented. 1715 - Malebranche dies.
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 69: Mitä tulee tähän älylliseen tietoon, Malebranche seurasi enemmän tai vähemmän Pyhää Augustinusta. Hänen suurena innovaationsa oli selittää, kuinka nämä samat jumalalliset ideat voisivat toimia myös ihmismielen välittöminä kohteina aistillisessa havainnoissa. Ongelma on siinä, että jumalalliset ideat ovat universaaleja, kun taas kaikki havainto näyttää olevan yksityiskohtia. Malebranchen ratkaisu oli ehdottaa, että vaikka mielen älyllinen käsitys näistä ideoista on puhdas ja suora, sen aistillinen käsitys niistä muuttuu "tunteilla". Nämä tuntemukset, toisin kuin ideat, ovat todellakin omituisia yksittäisille luoduille mielille ja elävät niiden muotoina. Idea edustaa vain kappaleiden geometrisia tai mekaanisia ominaisuuksia (koko, muoto, liike), kun taas aistiminen muodostuu väristä tai muusta järkevästä laadusta. Jälkimmäinen rajoittaa mielen käsitystä edellisestä siten, että se edustaa tiettyä yksilöä tälle mielelle. Toiselle mielelle, jolla on erilainen tunne, sama idea voisi edustaa erilaista saman yleisen tyypin yksilöä. Teoksessa Dialogues On Metaphysics and Religion (dialogi 1) Malebranche lisäsi, että sama perusrakenne voi selittää myös mielikuvituksen (mentaalisen fysiologisen elementin vastakohtana) mielikuvituksen, tässä tapauksessa, jossa ajatus vain "koskettaa kevyesti" mieltä.
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 132: When the season closed, García immediately took his operatic troupe to New York. This was the first time that Italian opera was performed in New York. Over a period of nine months, Maria sang the lead roles in eight operas, two of which were written by her father. In New York, she met and hastily married a banker, Francois Eugene Malibran, who was 28 years her senior. It is thought that her father forced Maria to marry him in return for the banker's promise to give Manuel García 100,000 francs. However, according to other accounts, she married simply to escape her tyrannical father. A few months after the wedding, her husband declared bankruptcy, and Maria was forced to support him through her performances. After a year, she left Malibran and returned to Europe. Malibran is most closely associated with the operas of Rossini. Norma kyllä oli Bellinin. Yhtään Malibranin levytystä ei ole säilynyt.
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 136:
      Malibran's lover, Belgian violinist Charles-Auguste de Bériot, next to her bust (Library of the Royal Conservatory of Brussels), lithograph dated 1838. Malibran had died two years earlier. Marietta (right) had quite a bust as well.

      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 140: Alboni was born at Città di Castello, in Umbria. She became a pupil of Antonio Bagioli [it] of Cesena, Emilia–Romagna, and later of the composer Gioachino Rossini, who became her 'perpetual honorary adviser' in (and then the principal of) the Liceo Musicale, now Conservatorio Giovanni Battista Martini, in Bologna. Rossini tested the humble thirteen-year-old girl himself, had her admitted to the school with special treatment, and even procured her an early engagement to tour his Stabat Mater around Northern Italy, so that she could pay for her studies. Hmm... A favourable contract was signed by Rossini himself, "on behalf of Eustachio Alboni", Mariettas father, who was still a minor. The singer remained, throughout her life, deeply grateful to her ancient "maestro", nearly a second father to her. Hmm hmm... Marietta oli aika pulska emäntä. Se lahjoitti köyhille koko omaisuutensa, sanoen että mikä laulaen tulee se viheltäen menee.
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 150: - Eikö se nyt ole aika ilmeistä? No ymmärrät sen vielä paremmin, kun määset kohta sen sisukaluja. "Rakas neiti", hän lisäsi kääntyen äkillisesti liikkumattoman Androiden puoleen, "olkaa armollisia jättääksenne meidät hetkeksi rauhaan, Milord Ewald ja minä: nuoren tytön ei pitäisi kuulla sitä, mitä aion kertoa hänelle.
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 231: Niinpä, vaikka päätelmäni saattoikin tuntua järjettömältä, oli välttämätöntä, että uhmaten kaikkia alttareilleen kulutettuja suitsukkeita tämän neiti Evelyn Habalin on täytynyt olla yksinkertaisesti henkilö, jonka oikea näkökulma olisi kyennyt pelottamaan pois naurunpurskeella. tai kauhuissaan juuri ne ihmiset (jos heillä olisi ollut silmäluomien alla tarpeeksi tuijottaakseen häntä kerran), jotka näin polttivat minut, hänen hyväkseen ja nenäni alle, tämän mauttoman suitsukkeen.
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 328: Mancanillier, mancanillier, s. m. Arbre à poison, Toxicodendron, de l'Amérique Méridionale. Raynal, dans son Hist. Philos, l'appelle Mancanillier, de l'Espa- gnol Mancanilla. il est gros comme un noyer, ses feuilles ressemblent à celles du pommier, et son fruit aux pommes d'apis. Ceux qui dorment à l'ombre de cet arbre perfide, sont exposés à ne plus se réveiller. Les troupeaux le fuient ; et l'homme qui n'est pas averti va se reposer sous son ombrage et mange de ses fruits. Il faut donc que les animaux aient l'odorat plus fin, que celui de l'homme.
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 343: Tiedustelin hänen jälkiään. Ihastuttava lapsi oli Philadelphiassa, missä Andersonin tuho ja kuolema olivat tuoneet hänelle mitä loistavinta julkisuutta. Hän oli erittäin suosittu. Lähdin ja tein hänen tuttavuutensa muutamassa tunnissa. Hän oli hyvin huonovointinen… Kiintymys horjutti häntä; - fyysisesti tietysti. Joten hän selvisi vain lyhyessä aikaa rakkaastaan ​​Edwardistaan.
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 359: "Eikö hän ollut ihana lapsi, rakas herra?" sanoi Edison. Hei! Hei! Kaiken kaikkiaan ystäväni Edward Andersonin intohimo ei ollut käsittämätöntä. - Mitkä lantiot! miten kauniit punaiset hiukset! poltettua kultaa, todellakin! Ja tuo iho niin lämpimästi kalpea? Ja ne pitkät silmät niin ainutlaatuiset? Nämä pienet kynnet ruusun terälehdissä, joissa aamunkoitto näyttää itkeneen, niin paljon ne loistavat? Ja ne kauniit suonet, jotka näyttävät itsensä tanssin jännityksen alla? Se käsivarsien ja kaulan nuorekas hehku? Se helmiäishymy, jossa märät kiilteet leikkivät kauniilla hampailla! Ja tuo punainen suu? Ja nuo kauniit kullanruskeat kulmakarvat, niin hyvin kaarevat? Ne sieraimet niin terävät, tärisevät kuin perhosen siivet? Tämä tiukan täyteläinen liivi, josta vihjasi nariseva satiini! Nuo jalat niin kevyet, niin veistokselliset? Nuo henkisesti kaarevat pienet jalat? ―Ah!… Edison päätti syvään huokaisten, luonto on kaunis kaikesta huolimatta! Ja tässä on pala kuningasta, kuten runoilijat sanovat!
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 416: Teoksen lopussa Dafniksen ja Khloen alkuperäiset vanhemmat tunnistavat nuoret näiden luo alun perin jätettyjen tunnusesineiden avulla. Käy ilmi, että kummassakin tapauksessa vanhemmat olivat aikanaan jättäneet lapsensa luontoon, koska eivät olleet kyenneet elättämään näitä. Sillä välin vanhemmat olivat kuitenkin rikastuneet, ja ottavat lapsensa nyt ilolla takaisin.
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 477: Akulla on sanottavaa aforistiikasta kuin Hannu Karpolla. Ize se ei ole juuri lyhyen muodon mestari, enempi toisto tyylikeinona:
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 483: Katso: Idolilla on hopeiset jalat, kuin kaunis yö. Heidän maneerinsa odottaa vain lumista verinahkaa, malleolien uudelleenkasvua, vaaleanpunaisia ​​kynsiä ja niiden suonet, eikö niin? kauniista laulajastasi. Vain, jos ne vaikuttavat kevyiltä lähestymistavaltaan, ne ovat vähemmän sellaisia ​​todellisuudessa. Niiden sisäinen täyteläisyys saavutetaan elohopean raskaalla juoksevuudella. Tämä hermeettinen platinapaita, joka jatkaa niitä, on täytetty nestemäisellä metallilla ja kohoaa kaventuen "vasikan syntymäpaikkaan" asti, niin että kaikki paino kantaa itse jalkaa. Lyhyesti sanottuna ne ovat kaksi 50 kiloa pientä saapasta ja niiden kapina on kuitenkin melkein lapsellinen. Ne näyttävät kevyiltä kuin lintu, niin paljon voimakkaasta sähkömagneettista, joka inspiroi heitä ja joka elävöittää näiden kahden tulevaisuuden täydellisyyden leikkimistä.
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 535: Tälle vitsille lordi Ewald, jo ennestään hyvin ärsyyntynyt, alkoi nauraa kevyesti; — sitten nähtyään, että Edison myös nauroi, häneen valtasi mitä kummallisin hilpeys: paikka, kellonaika, kokeen aihe, sama pillunajatus, joka heidän välillään sinkoili, kaikki näytti hänestä hetken yhtä pelottavalta kuin se oli järjetöntä: niin, että epäilemättä ensimmäistä kertaa elämässään hän sai todellisen hullun naurun kohtauksen, joka kaikui tämän haudan Eedenin kaikuista. "Olet kauhea pilkkaaja", hän sanoi. "Verraton huromisti."
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 616: "Kuullisitko sinua, rakas Edison, pitäisi uskoa, että tällä Androidilla on käsitys äärettömästä! mutisi lordi Ewald hymyillen. "Hänellä on vain se yks paikka", vastasi insinööri vakavasti; Eli ilman puheen juhlallisuutta, leikkisällä tavalla, sanalla sanoen. Hänen puheensa herättävät siis älyllisen vaikutelman, joka on paljon silmiinpistävämpi kuin ajatukset tavanomaisesta vakavuudesta tai jopa ylevästä. "Anna minulle esimerkki tällaisesta kysymyksestä?" kysyi lordi Ewald. Todista minulle, että se voi todellakin piilottaa ulkonäöltään - millä tahansa tavalla - äärettömän käsitteen? "Ilolla", sanoi Edison. Ja lähestyen nukkujaa: "Hadaly", hän sanoi, jos oletamme, että mahdottomuuden vuoksi eräänlainen jumala, vanhanajan kaltainen, näkymätön ja kohtuuton, metaversumin eetterissä, yhtäkkiä antaisi vapaan lennon meidän puolellamme maailmoihin, jollekin salamalle, joka on luonteeltaan samanlainen kuin se, joka elävöittää sinua, mutta joka on ennennäkemättömän suuri ja jonka läpäisee energia, joka pystyy neutraloimaan vetovoiman lain ja räjäyttämään koko aurinkokunnan syvyyteen, kuin pussillisen omenia? - Hyvin? Hadaly sanoi.
      xxx/ellauri174.html on line 661: ― Lyhyesti sanottuna (no vähän lyhyemmin ainakin), minä "Menlo Parkin velho", kuten minua tässä alla kutsutaan, tulen tarjoamaan ihmisille näitä kehittyneitä ja uusia aikoja, - vihdoinkin aktualismin tovereilleni! - suosia vastedes väärää, keskinkertaista ja aina muuttuvaa Todellisuutta, positiivista, arvostettua ja aina uskollista illuusiota. Kimeeri kimeeristä, synti synnistä, savu savusta, - miksi ei?... Vannon tässä, että 21 päivän kuluttua Hadaly pystyy haastamaan koko ihmiskunnan vastaamaan tähän kysymykseen selkeästi, rakas herrani. Sillä, koska kielsimme, sanomme: - ikuisen hyvinvoinnin, niin sanotun aina tulevan oikeudenmukaisuuden ja ikuisen ylpeyden savun vuoksi, hän, niukka ja lapsellinen, - mitä kutsuttiin, aina, ennen tätä syksyä, kipua, nöyryyttä, rakkautta, uskoa, rukousta, ihannetta - ja olennaista toivoa yhden päivän aurinkojemme takana - en näe tuskin, myönnän, minkä pirullisen muut periaatteet olisivat nykyaikaisia. ihminen uskaltaa nauramatta esittää hänelle loogisen tai jopa hyväksyttävän "vastalauseen".
      xxx/ellauri175.html on line 77: I'm not a bad girl 더 완벽히 (yeah)
      xxx/ellauri175.html on line 95: Dancing, dancing, dancing, yeah (어느 멋진 밤)
      xxx/ellauri175.html on line 99: Yeah, yeah, why not? (꿈만 같지?)
      xxx/ellauri175.html on line 201: "Se on osa ohjelmistoani", huokasi neiti Alicia Clary; Voisin laulaa sen kymmenen kertaa peräkkäin ilman, että se näyttäisi siltä, ​​kun lauloin sinulle eräänä iltana Casta-divaa! lisäsi kaunis virtuoosi kääntyen lordi Ewaldin puoleen. En ymmärrä, miksi kuuntelemme vakavasti laulajia, jotka "saavat mukaansa", kuten he sanovat. Minusta näyttää siltä, ​​​​että löydän itseni keskellä hullujen joukkoa, kun näen tällaisia ​​poikkeamia taputeltuina. - Vai niin! kuinka ymmärrän sinua, neiti Alicia Clary! huudahti sähköasentaja
      xxx/ellauri175.html on line 257: "Luuletko, että sinun olisi pitänyt varoittaa minua siitä, herra?" Alicia sanoi kääntyen nuoren miehen puoleen.
      xxx/ellauri175.html on line 332: Ja koska en pysty, sanon teille, että karkottaa - milloinkaan arjesta - tämä sisäinen itsestäänselvyys, joka painaa minua pakkomielle, tietäen, että minä, okkulttinen olemukseni, on tästä lähtien vihdoin täynnä tätä tahnamaista sielua ja vaistoja. ilman valoa, joka ei voi poimia kauneutta mistään - (kun taas asiat ovat vain sitä, mitä ne on suunniteltu ja me todellisuudessa olemme vain sitä, mitä voimme niissä ihailla, eli - sanokaa tunnista meidät), - myönnän sen sinulle kaikessa vilpittömästi, uskon tehneeni melkein lähtemättömän alennuksen teon omistamalla tämän naisen: enkä enää tiedä kuinka lunastaa itseäni tästä teosta, haluan ainakin rangaista heikkoudesta eräänlaisella puhdistavalla kuolemalla. Lyhyesti sanottuna, ja kun koko ihmiskunnan pitäisi hymyillä, väitän säilyttäväni omaperäisyyden ottaa itseni vakavasti, ja lisäksi minulla on perheen motto: Etiamsi omnes, ego non.
      xxx/ellauri175.html on line 681: ― Mitä tulee nakupatsaaseen, koska lähtösi Menlo Parkista on sovittu huomiseen aamuun, hän sanoi, että minun pitäisi vain "lähettää se hänelle Lontooseen": hän jopa lisäsi, että "maksuihini liittyen voisin kysyä sinulta korkeasta hinnasta, koska hän tiesi, ettei taiteilijoiden kanssa pitäisi tinkiä. "Missä, neiti Alicia Clary jätti minulle hyvästit ja pyysi minua ilmoittamaan teille (jos tulette luokseni käymään), "että hän odotti sinua siellä tekemään järjestelyjä." Joten kun olet Lontoossa, rakas lordi, sinun tarvitsee vain jättää hänet jatkamaan uraansa rauhassa. Kirje, johon liittyy "prinssin" lahja, ilmoittaa hänelle erostasi - ja kaikki sanotaan. Mikä on rakastajatar? vyö ja viitta, kirjoitti Swift.
      xxx/ellauri175.html on line 757: ― Kyllä: olisi uskoa, että olemme elämyskentän rajalla... todella rajoilla "Fantastic! jatkoi Edison. "Lyhyesti sanottuna, oikeutettu tai kevytmielinen, tämä outo toive näytti minusta ansaitsevan tyydytyksen", joten etäisissä keskusteluissamme en enää puhu rouva Andersoniin muuten kuin sillä oudolla nimellä, josta hän ilmoitti minulle.
      xxx/ellauri175.html on line 765: Tämän hämmentyneen idean hämmästyneenä minulla oli lyhyessä ajassa ja kaikella kekseliäisyydellä, johon voin pystyä, melko monimutkainen laitejärjestelmä, täysin näkymätön kelat, aivan uusia kondensaattoreita: lisäsin siihen sylinterimoottorin. vastaa täsmälleen Hadalyn liikkeitä. Kun Sowana oli oppinut sen täysin, hän lähetti minut eräänä päivänä kertomatta minulle, androidin, tänne, kun olin lopettamassa työtä. Kerron teille, että tämä koko visio aiheutti minulle kauheimman shokin, jonka olen elämässäni tuntenut. Työ pelotti työläistä.
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 41:
      Three-eyed toad menossa uimasille. Vesi näyttää kylmältä. Pienenä Sommarhemissä urheiltiin laittamalla pikku ruppareita suuhun. Tuon kun ois saanut elävänä pulloon. Harmi kun ei tullut kala-ansa mukaan.

      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 49: Phryne's real name was Mnesarete (Μνησαρέτη, "commemorating virtue"), but owing to her yellowish tuft she was called Phrýnē ("toad"). This was a nickname frequently given to other courtesans and prostitutes as well. She was born as the daughter of Epicles at Thespiae in Boeotia, but lived in Athens. The exact dates of her birth and death are unknown, but she was born about 371 BC, which was the year Thebes razed Thespiae (not long after the battle of Leuctra), and expelled its inhabitants. She might have survived Thebe's razor and reconstructed her bush in 315/316 BC.
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 51: Athenaeus provides many anecdotes about Phryne. He praises her beauty, writing that on the occasion of the festivals of the Eleusinia and Poseidonia, she would let down her hair and step nude into the sea. Kuvassa sillä näkyy olevan uimalakki päässä. Se onkin järkevämpää kuin aukaista tukka uimaan mennessä. This would have inspired the painter Apelles to create his famous picture of Aphrodite Anadyomene (Ἀφροδίτη Ἀναδυομένη, Rising from the Sea also portrayed at times as Venus Anadyomene). Mitä vittua sehän on sama asia. Herne herne! Supposedly the sculptor Praxiteles, who was also her lover, used her as the model for the statue of the Aphrodite of Knidos, the first nude statue of a woman from ancient Greece. Oiskoon se muka oikeasti eka? Mä oon varma että pornokuvia on tehty maailman sivu, ne ei vaan ole kovassa käytössä kaikki säilyneet.
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 55: Athenaeus alleges she was so rich that she offered to fund the rebuilding of the walls of Thebes, which had been destroyed by Alexander the Great in 336 BC, on the condition that the words "Destroyed by Alexander, restored by Phryne the courtesan" be inscribed upon them. Neuvossetämiehet eivät suostuneet, vitun noloa. Diogenes Laërtius narrates a failed attempt Phryne made on the virtue of the philosopher Xenocrates. LOL. Xenocrates' pecker was not aroused. He was into boys.
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 75: Prostitution was a common aspect of ancient Greece (Fig.1) In the more important cities, and particularly the many ports, it employed a significant number of people and represented a notable part of economic activity. It was far from being clandestine; cities did not condemn brothels, but rather only instituted regulations on them.
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 86: In the classical era of ancient Greece, pornai were slaves of barbarian origin; starting in the Hellenistic era the case of young girls abandoned by their citizen fathers could be enslaved. They were considered to be slaves until proven otherwise. Pornai were usually employed in brothels located in "red-light" districts of the period, such as Piraeus (port of Athens) or Kerameikos in Athens. Seija harrasti keramiikkaa Bostonissa. "And what do you do Seija?" "I have been learning pottery." "Oh, ceramics" sanoi Mrs. Breckenridge, piruillaxeenko vai ei, paha sanoa.
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 99: As with any industry, porn has its own specific lingo. But instead of sales stats, porn abbreviations describe males and twats. With the Adult Entertainment Expo in Vegas this week, our office has been buzzing with words that would normally taboo in the workplace. Some elicit giggles, others blank stares and still others furrowed eyebrows, flushed cheeks and the occasional fainting. Rather than calling The evil HR director to deal with the questionable vocab, which would probably just get us all scratched, we dove head first into oral, vaginal and anal research like Freud, Marx and Jung.
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 106:
      Candaulism
      Had to check Conservapedia for this one: "a sexual practice or fantasy in which a man exposes his woman, or pictures of her, to other people for voyeur pleasure."

      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 114:
      Merkin
      A wig for the pubic area. It may be decorative and colorful (yellowish), more natural (Alanis) or you can skip it entirely and go porcellain (Britney).

      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 124:
      Three-Eyed Toad
      Filling all orifices of a female by putting a thumb in her bottom, fingers in her vagina, and the penis in her mouth. Or any other way round.

      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 139:
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 150: The plot centres on the neurotic young priest Serge Mouret, first seen in La Conquête de Plassans, as he takes his orders and becomes the parish priest for the uninterested village of Artauds. The inbred villagers have no interest in religion and Serge is portrayed giving several wildly enthusiastic Masses to his completely empty, near-derelict church. Serge not only seems unperturbed by this state of affairs but actually appears to have positively sought it out especially, for it gives him time to contemplate religious affairs and to fully experience the fervour of his faith. Eventually he has a complete nervous breakdown and collapses into a near-comatose state, whereupon his distant relative, the unconventional doctor Pascal Rougon (the central character of the last novel in the series, 1893's Le Docteur Pascal), places him in the care of the inhabitants of a nearby derelict stately home, Le Paradou.
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 164: is first of all a misnomer because the priest is alive and well at the end. A mixture of social realism and Walt Disney, it is a tale about a delicate young French priest, Father Mouret (Francis Huster), who elects to take a parish in the provinces where the peasants have long since embraced every sin there is. The priest himself successfully sublimates his own lustful thoughts in prayer until one day he meets a strange young woman, Albine (Gillian Hills), who lives with her atheistic uncle in the remains of an old chateau set in the middle of a magic garden.Well, one thing leads to another and poor Father Mouret loses his memory long enough to lose himself to worldly pleasures in the garden with Albine, who, like Eve, tempts the man, though in this case the author is clearly in favor of apple-eating. Things go very badly for the couple. The priest returns to his church and Albine commits suicide in a way that is unique in my movie-going memory: She smothers herself to death with calla lilies.The actors are steadfastly unconvincing. The one interesting character in the film is an old lady we meet only after her death—someone, we're told in shocked tones, who, during the Revolution, posed naked as a living-statue of Reason.
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 240: Voulez-vous, mon enfant, essayer la vertu Saisiko olla lapsi hautajaismaista hyvettä?
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 245: Leur ivresse noyer ma tête languissante ? Tunnen humalan uittavan sekopäätäni?
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 319: Si tu me vois les yeux perdus aux paradis, sä näät mut veistoxena haikailevan paratiisia,
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 329: Vous, pierres où mes yeux comme de purs bijoux Te, kivet joista mun silmät koruina
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 441: Amerikan mantereen valtaisa rangaistusvankila oli siirretty meidan maanosaamme, ja nyt pankkiirien ja nousukkaiden suunnaton, pohjaton, mittaamaton öykkärimäisyys säteili kuin paha ja inhottava aurinko epajumalia palvovan kaupunkimme yllä sen maatessa rähmällään pankkien saatanallisten tabernaakkeleiden edessä kuin Suomi neuvostoaikana ja hoilatessa sylki pärskyen saastaisia virsiään! Ulf! Luhistuisit, yhteiskunta! Kuolisit pois, vanha maailma! des Esseintes huudahti tuohtuneena eteensä loihtimastaan riettaasta näystä, ja tämä parkaisu keskeytti hänen ahdistavan painajaisensa.
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 549: Voyeurismus
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 716: Sujata was raised primarily in St. Paul, Minnesota, although her home for almost thirty years has been Baltimore, Maryland.
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 822: Materiaali polyesteriä, harson kaltainen
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 894: As 2022 begins, and you're joining us from Finland, there’s a new year resolution we’d like you to consider. It is to pay us Guardians of Freedom a lot of mmmoney!
      xxx/ellauri176.html on line 907: Lucykin varmaan nieleskelee tyhjää kun Reacher riisuu t-paidan pois. Cruisen vastaava yritys jäi lyhyexi.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 122: Ja kun hän oli jo antanut Marialle kaiken, ruumiinsa, sielunsa, maalliset omaisuutensa, hengelliset omaisuutensa, kassiensa koko sisällyxen, ollessaan alasti hänen edessään, hänen rukoustensa lopussa neitsyen litaniat pomppasivat taas hänen voimiinsa palanneesta mulkustaan, toistuvia vetoomuksia, itsepäisiä, hellittämättömiä nykäyxiä, jotka tarvitsivat äärimmäisen taivaallista ensiapua. Hänestä näytti, että hän kiipesi uudelleen halun portaikkoa; jokaisella "sydämen" aiheuttamalla pikku hypyllä hän kiipesi askeleen pystymmäxi. Ensin hän kutsui hiäntä pyhäksi. Sitten hän kutsui hiäntä Äidiksi, erittäin puhtaaksi, erittäin erittäinkin puhtaaksi, rakastettavaksi, ihailtavaksi. Ja hän jatkoi parantaen kuin sika vauhtiaan huutaen hänelle kuusi kertaa neitsyyttään, hänen pipunsa ikään kuin joka kerta virkistyi sanasta neitsyt, johon hän lisäsi ajatuksia voimasta, kestävyydestä ja uskollisuudesta. Kun hänen "sydämensä" kasvoi siitä aina korkeammalle, mitattuna asteilla, outo ääni, joka tuli hänen suonistaan, puhui hänessä paljastuen lopulta loistavana terhona. Hän olisi halunnut sulaa hajuveteen, venyä pituutta levittääxeen sitä selkeästi lisää, vanhentua musiikillisessa soudussa ja huopauksessa. Kun hän kutsui hiäntä oikeuden uuspeiliksi. viisauden käsipelixi, hänen puuilonsa lähteexi, hän näki itsensä peilistä kangistuneena himosta tässä pasianssipelissä, hän tumputti pajazon tyhjäxi nyt jo haaleille kivilaatoille, tarjosi smoothiejuomaa pitkin kulauxin tämän lähteen päihtymyksestä.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 170: Minä rakastan sinua sen kuolemassa, mikä elää ja mikä lisääntyy. Teen kanssasi ainoan avioliiton, jota sydämeni kaipaa. Menen korkeammalle, aina korkeammalle, kunnes olen saavuttanut uunin, jossa paistat pentuja. Siellä se on pimeä tähti, valtava valkoinen ruusu, jonka jokainen lehti palaa kuin kuu, hopeinen wc-istuin, josta säteilet niin viattomuuden liekkejä, että koko paratiisi pysyy valaistuna pyllyverhosi yhdellä hohteella. Kaikki mikä on valkoista, aamunkoitto, saavuttamattomien huippujen lumi, tuskin kuoriutuneet liljat, tuntemattomien lähteiden vesi, auringon kunnioittamien kasvien maito, neitsyiden hymyt, kuolleiden lasten sielut kehdossa, sade valkoisilla jaloillasi, suola, sokeri, kokaiini. Sitten minä nousen huulillesi kuin heppa sulattava hienovarainen liekki; Minä astun sisääsi sinun puoliksi avoimen alkusuusi kautta, ja häät pidetään, samalla kun arkkienkelit vapisevat ilostamme. Olla neitsyt, rakastaa itseä neitsyenä, säilyttää immenkalvo ja irroittamaton esinahka suloisimpien suudelmien keskellä! Kaikki rakkaus makaa joutsenen siivilässä, puhtauden pilvessä, valon rakastajan käsissä, jonka hyväilyt ovat sielun nautintoja! Täydellisyys, yli-inhimillinen unelma, halu, josta luuni halkeilevat, ilot, jotka nostavat minut taivaaseen! Oi Maria, valittu astia, kastroi ihmisyyteni, tee minusta eunukki ihmisten keskuudessa, jotta voit pelkäämättä luovuttaa minulle neitsyytesi aarteen! Ja isä Mouret pyörtyi lattialla, hampaita räpiskelemällä, kuumeen valtaamana. Että pitää miestä kepin uittamisen pelottaa. Ei se ole niin hirveää, väpelöinkin oppii auttavasti uimaan autettuna.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 192: Vaaleanpunaisen naurava elämä puhkesi sitten kukkaan: vaaleanpunaisen valkoinen, tuskin ripaus lakkaa, lunta neitsyen jaloista, joka koettelee lähteen vettä; vaaleanpunainen, huomaamattomampi kuin vilkaisevan polven lämmin valkoisuus, kuin hehku, jolla nuori käsi valaisee leveää hihaa; rehellinen vaaleanpunainen, verta satiinin alla, paljaat olkapäät, paljaat lonkat, naisen koko alaston, valolla hyväili; kirkkaan vaaleanpunainen, kukat silmuissa kurkusta, puoliavoimia kukkia huulilta puhaltaen lämpimän hengityksen tuoksua. Ja kiipeilyruusut, suuret valkoiset ruusut, jotka olivat täynnä valkoisia kukkia, pukeutuivat kaikki nämä ruusut, kaikki tämä liha, niiden rypäleiden pitsiin, heidän kevyen musliininsa viattomuuteen; kun taas siellä täällä viininväriset ruusut, melkein mustat, verenvuoto, lävistivät tämän morsiamen puhtauden intohimon haavalla. Tuoksuvan puun häät, jotka johtavat toukokuun neitsyt heinä- ja elokuun hedelmällisyyteen; ensimmäinen tietämätön suudelma, poimittu kuin kimppu, hääaamuna. Jopa ruohikolla vaahtoavat ruusut, korkeat vihreät villamekot, odottivat rakkautta. Auringonpolttamaa polkua pitkin kulkivat kukat, kasvot eteenpäin, kutsuen kevyitä tuulia niiden ohittaessa. Aukiolla avatun teltan alla kaikki hymyt loistivat. Yksikään täyttymys ei ollut samanlainen.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 203:

      Domangchin yeoja


      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 205: The 24th feature from Hong Sangsoo, doppelgänger of the talkative celeb guy in the last scene of the movie THE WOMAN WHO RAN follows Gamhee (Kim Minhee), a florist and the wife of a translator who never in 5 years time has left her for a moment from his sight. She has three separate encounters with friends while her husband finally is on a business trip. Youngsoon (Seo Youngwha) is divorced, turned lesbian (the couple likes to feed alley cats) and has given up meat and likes to garden in the backyard of her semi-detached house. Suyoung (Song Seonmi) is divorced, has a big savings account and a crush on her architect neighbor and is being hounded by a young poet she met at the bar. Woojin (Kim Saebyuk) works for a movie theater and hates it that her writer husband has become a celeb. Their meetings are polite, but not warm. Some of their shared history bubbles to the surface, but not much. With characteristic humor and grace, Hong takes a simple premise and spins a web of interconnecting philosophies and coincidences. THE WOMAN WHO RAN is a subtle, powerful look at dramas small and large faced by women everywhere. Basically, they are 40+ ladies who may have met at some art school and get a chance to compare notes on how well their childless lives have turned out. Gamhee used to be the celeb's girl friend until the movie theater attendant stole the guy. Now both of them are sorry that she did, but really not that much. The Éric Rohmer of South Korea.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 210: The whole spat seems so terrifically absurd and inconsequential. Life assumes a banal, wistful air when the tumult of youth is far behind you. Conflict is downplayed, and emotions are muted. The few unwanted masculine punctuations, all shot with the actors’ backs turned to the camera, seem to drive home the point that men’s opinions and feelings are not important here. In fact, they’re rather silly.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 214: The only audience review so far says: It is slow paced yet interesting.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 229: Main chaude: Jeu où une personne, courbée sur les genoux d’une autre et les yeux fermés, reçoit des coups dans une de ses mains, qu’elle tend derrière elle, et doit deviner qui l’a touchée. main chaude → oven mitt.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 245: The Demise of Father Mouret (French: La Faute de l'Abbé Mouret, "The Mistake of Father Mouret") is a 1970 French film directed by Georges Franju, based on the 1875 novel La Faute de l'Abbé Mouret by Émile Zola. Like the novel, the film is about Father Mouret, a young priest (played by Francis Huster) who is sent to a remote village in Provence, then has a nervous breakdown and develops amnesia. While recuperating, he meets and falls in love with a beautiful young woman, Albine (Gillian Hills), with whom he begins an idyllic relationship meant to recall the story of Adam and Eve. When he regains his memory, though, he is wracked with guilt, and ends the relationship, leading to tragedy for both.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 249: Kun löytyy oikein kiva paikka mezässä: -- Oui, nous sommes chez nous, reprit-elle, si joyeuse, qu'elle tapa les herbes de son poing. C'est une maison à nous... Nous allons tout faire. - Veux-tu être mon mari? Je serai ta femme. Nytpä leikitäänkin kotia! -- Tu sais, dit-elle, c'est moi qui commande...
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 290: -- Minä rakastan sinua! sanoi Serge kevyellä äänellä, joka nosti pienet kultaiset hiukset Albinen temppelistä. Hän halusi löytää toisen sanan muttei löytänyt, joten hän toisti: -- Minä rakastan sinua! Minä rakastan sinua! Albine kuunteli kauniisti hymyillen. Hän opetteli tätä musiikkia. -- Minä rakastan sinua! Minä rakastan sinua! hän huokaisi herkullisemmin, helmimäisellä tyttömäisellä äänellään. Sitten hän kohotti siniset silmänsä, jossa valon aamunkoitto kasvoi, hän kysyi: -- Kuinka rakastat minua? Joten Serge keräsi itsensä. Metsissä oli juhlavaa pehmeyttä, syvät navat pitivät pariskunnan vaimeiden steppien väreet. "Rakastan sinua enemmän kuin juuri mitään", hän vastasi. Olet kauniimpi kuin mikään mitä näen aamulla, kun avaan pyjamani. Kun katson sinua, sinä riität minulle. Haluaisin vain sinut, ja olisin erittäin onnellinen jos saisin nyt.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 312: "Sun puutarha ei pilaile täällä", Serge sanoi kääntyen Albinen puoleen. He tarttuivat taas toisiaan häntäpäästä.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 351: He olivat pysähtyneet pienellä huokauksella myskisen tuoreuden tarttumana. "Ilma maistuu hedelmältä", albine kuiskasi. He laskivat ääntään uskonnollisella tunteella. Heillä ei ollut edes uteliaisuutta katsoa ylös, nähdä puuta. He tunsivat liikaa majesteettisuutta harteillaan. Albine kysyi yhdellä silmäyksellä, oliko hän liioitellut vehreyden lumoa. Serge vastasi kahdella selvällä kyynelellä, jotka virtasivat hänen poskilleen. Heidän ilonsa olla vihdoin siellä pysyi sanoinkuvaamattomana. Nt poskilleen. Heidän ilonsa olla vihdoin siellä pysyi sanoinkuvaamattomana. "Tule", sanoi hän korvassaan henkeään kevyemmällä äänellä. Ja hän meni ensin makaamaan puun juurelle. Hän ojensi kätensä hänelle hymyillen, kun hän, seisoen, myös hymyili ja antoi hänelle hänen. Kun hän piteli niitä, hän veti hänet hitaasti hänen luokseen. Hän kaatui hänen puolelleen. Hän otti hänet välittömästi rintaansa vasten. Tämä syleily jätti heidät täyteen helppoutta (muuttei vaihtanut vieläkään nesteitä).
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 432: Hän kauhuissaan ei osannut vastata. Raskas askel seinän takana sai kivet pyörimään. Se oli kuin vihaisen murinan hidas lähestyminen. Albine ei ollut erehtynyt, siellä oli joku, joka häiritsi kateellisella hengittämisellä väen rauhaa. Sitten molemmat halusivat piiloutua risujen taakse, häpeän lisääntyessä. Mutta kiroileva veli Arkkienkeli näki heidät jo murtumisen kynnyksellä.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 467: "Hän ei ole vielä toipunut", Lisa sanoi. Hän tekee väärin väsyessään... Katso! Onni, joka itkee! "Miehet ovat vetelämpiä kuin naiset", mutisi Babet. "Hän puhui silti hyvin", sanoi La Rousse. Nämä papit miettii monia asioita, joita kukaan muu ei ajattele. -- Hiljaa! huudahti La Teuse, joka valmistautui jo sammuttamaan kynttilöitä.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 597: Jeesus vetäytyessään pois takakautta oli vienyt pois armon. Hän, joka oli niin vahva taivaan avun aamusta asti, tunsi olonsa yhtäkkiä kurjaksi, hylätyksi, lapsellisen heikoksi. Ja mikä kauhea pudotus, mikä suunnaton katkeruus! Taistella sankarillisesti, seisoa voittamattomana, armottomana, kun kiusaus oli olemassa, elossa, pyöreänä vartalonsa, upeine hartioineen, intohimoisen naisen tuoksuineen; sitten alistua häpeällisesti, haukkoa henkeä kauhistuttavasta halusta, kun kiusaus väistyy jättäen jälkeensä vain hameen väreet, vaalean niskan niskasta virtaavan hajuveden! Nyt, pelkkien muistojen kanssa, hän palasi kaikkivoipaana, hän hyökkäsi kirkkoon.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 619: Synti pyhäinhäväistyksenä, jonka kauhu tuhosi hänet, käytti häntä kiusatakseen häntä. Kun hän vielä joskus kutsui Maariaa, tiettyinä voittamattoman hellyyden tunteina, se oli Albine, joka esitteli itseänsä valkoisessa hunnussa, sininen huivi vyötärölle sidottuna, kultaiset ruusut paljain jaloin. Kaikki neitsyet, Neitsyt kuninkaallisessa kultavaipassa, tähdillä kruunattu Neitsyt, Marian ilmestyksen enkelin vieraileva Neitsyt, rauhallinen Neitsyt liljan ja pätkän välissä, toivat hänelle muiston Albinasta, hymyilevät silmät tai herkkä suu tai poskien pehmeä kaari.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 661: Kulta nousi jälleen ja virtasi hänen sormiensa läpi. Hän oli astumassa kultakylpyyn. Hän kantoi pois pyhät astiat kotikuntansa tarpeisiin, johtaen tietä, maksaen kansalleen maljan palasilla, joita hän väänsi sormiensa välissä pienellä vaivalla. Hän levitti alttarin verhot kultakankaasta hääsänkynsä päälle. Jalokiviksi hän antoi vaimolleen kultaiset sydämet, kultaiset rukoukset, kultaiset ristit, jotka ripustettiin Neitsyen ja pyhien kaulaan. Itse kirkko, jos hän nostaisi sen yhden tarinan, voisi toimia heidän palatsinaan. Jumalalla ei olisi mitään sanottavaa, koska hän salli rakastaa. Sitä paitsi, mitä väliä Jumalalla oli hänelle! Eikö väkijoukko suuteli, sillä hetkellä hän, joka oli Jumala kultaisilla jaloillaan ja joka teki ihmeitä. Isä Mouret nousi seisomaan. Hän teki tuon Jeanbernatin laajan eleen, tuon kieltämisen eleen, joka kattaa koko horisontin. "Ei ole mitään, ei mitään, ei mitään", hän sanoi. Jumalaa ei ole olemassa. Albine viehättävine pilluineen sensijaan on, ainaskin vielä toistaisexi.
      xxx/ellauri177.html on line 721: Hän piti lyhyen, mietteliään hiljaisuuden; sitten hän jatkoi:
      xxx/ellauri178.html on line 63: The film stars Chaplin as a washed-up comedian who saves a suicidal dancer, played by Claire Bloom, from killing herself, and both try to get through life. Täähän oli Rothin mielijuoni, se oli aina pelastavinaan damseleita distressistä ja sitten olikin se distress ize.
      xxx/ellauri178.html on line 67:
      xxx/ellauri178.html on line 76: Mixture of kindness and cruelty. Juutalaista menoa, ihan kuin Jehova. Anna Steiger muka löi ja potki äiskyä nimellä "kike bitch". (Rod Steiger oli goy.) Ritarillinen Roth puuttui asiaan ja kielti käyttämästä sellaista kieltä äidistä. Kike se oli izekin. Sen se ottikin izeensä. Siitä lähtien se ja Anna oli enemyjä kuin David ja filistealaiset. Annasta tuli oopperalaulaja. Roth muutti ulos muttei Lontoosta koska se oli vuokrannut molemmat kämppänsä ja oli muka vieläkin "hopelessly devoted to you". Mutta renting an apt in London would have disastrous tax consequences, advised an American lawyer. Phil oli varsinainen Shylock. I´m not going to be defeated by this kid, se murisi kuin karhu erauspennulle. Annalle tehtiin oma koppi pimeästi Clairen huoneiston nurkkaan (Clairen rahoilla). Säästyihän sekin penni.
      xxx/ellauri178.html on line 91:
      xxx/ellauri178.html on line 124: Mitähän Pili oli näkevinään John Le Carren vakoiluromaanissa A Perfect Spy? Vai pitikö se pikemminkin Davidista izestään? David reportedly enjoyed “playing” on his first wife’s suspicion that he was homosexual. The association between homosexuality and secrecy, furtiveness and potential treachery ensured gay characters were a recurring trope in Cold War-era spy fiction. John Le Carre's The Spy Who Came In From The Cold and Tinker, Tailor, Soldier, Spy include gay subtexts - made even more explicit in the 2011 movie adaptation of the latter. Merry Xmas from the onanist and the whore!
      xxx/ellauri178.html on line 138: While she wrote that the 1,096-page epic cemented Foster-Wallace as “one of the big talents of his generation, a writer of virtuosic talents who can seemingly do anything”, she also quoted Henry James in calling Jest a “loose, baggy monster”, adding that it read like a “vast, encyclopedic compendium of whatever seems to have crossed Mr Wallace’s mind”. In his 2012 biography of the late Foster-Wallace, DT Max wrote that the writer “told a friend he hid in his room for two days and cried after reading yet another paragraph of Rei devoted to parallels between his first book and Pynchon’s most popular novel”.
      xxx/ellauri178.html on line 274: Peppu ei tiettävästi tehnyt ize mitään rangaistavaa, ei jäänyt kiinni ainakaan, mutta kuten Surku Yniäinen tai Riitta Roth, se ihailee röyhkimyxiä, susia ja roistoja, kuten Meyer Lanskya tai Jean Genetiä. Monet äidin pojat on tollasia. Musta roistot on vaan just sellasia, eli roistoja, ei niissä ole mitään romantisoitavaa.
      xxx/ellauri178.html on line 276:
      xxx/ellauri178.html on line 290: Il commet son premier vol à l'âge de dix ans. C'est l'acte fondateur de la mythologie de Genet qui, fustigé pour son acte, donne un change très existentialiste en sanctifiant son geste, revendiquant ainsi une asocialité profonde. Jäbä joutuu amixeen, karkaa, rupee kute JJ aikanaan vagabondixi jää kii ja est confié par les tribunaux jusqu'à sa majorité à La Paternelle, colonie pénitentiaire agricole de Mettray, où se cristallise probablement toute la liturgie de domination/soumission, la hiérarchie masculine et virile ainsi que la féodalité brutale qui en découlent à ses yeux.
      xxx/ellauri178.html on line 309: Isaiah 16:14 But now the Lord speaks, saying, “Within three years, as a hired man would count them, the glory of Moab will be degraded along with all his great population, and his remnant will be very small and impotent.”
      xxx/ellauri178.html on line 330: For some, that could be psychological, or relational, but since you’re over 60, I’m going to guess that it’s physiological. I'd say you haven't got a prayer Bud.
      xxx/ellauri178.html on line 334: J: Not directly, which makes it hard to quote scripture. I mean, most of the verses on diseases involve prayer, not medication. Now, I’m not discounting prayer, but unfortunately, most men won’t be willing to go to their elders and ask for prayer for erectile dysfunction (as per James 5:14), and most wives won’t go to the elders and ask for prayers for their husbands for the same. Sadly, I feel a lot of elders wouldn’t respond appropriately either.
      xxx/ellauri178.html on line 362: On 25 May 1901, Chekhov married Olga Knipper quietly, owing to his horror of weddings. She was a former protégée and sometime lover of Nemirovich-Danchenko whom he had first met at rehearsals for The Seagull. Up to that point, Chekhov, known as "Russia's most elusive literary bachelor," had preferred passing liaisons and visits to brothels over commitment. For the rest, he lived largely at Yalta, she in Moscow, pursuing her acting career. In 1902, Olga suffered a miscarriage; and Americans have offered evidence, based on the couple's letters, that conception may have occurred when Chekhov and Olga were apart, although Russian scholars have rejected that claim. Perhaps the semen was conveyed from Yalta to Moscow by snail mail.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 75: Wasn't it yesterday when they were small?

      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 81: Swiftly fly the years.

      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 93: Swiftly fly the years.

      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 102:
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 111: The novel tells the story of Richard Lamb, a young Englishman who marries a teenage Argentinian girl, Paquita, without asking her father's permission, and is forced to flee to Montevideo, Uruguay with his bride. Lamb leaves his young wife with a relative while he sets off for eastern Uruguay to find work for himself. He soon becomes embroiled in adventures with the Uruguayan gauchos and romances with local women. Toivottavasti se oli ympärileikattu ettei gonorrhea turvottanut nuppia. After the events of the story he was captured by Paquita's father and thrown into prison for three years, during which time Paquita herself died of grief.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 128: Rima the Jungle Girl returned to the DC Universe in a new pulp-era comic debuting in 2010 entitled First Wave. Rima was portrayed as a South American native with piercings and tattoos, who didn't speak, but communicated in bird-like whistles like Roger Whitaker. Plying a big knife and a panther, she helped Doc Savage's assistant Johnny Littlejohn, then darted back into the forest.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 132: Suu kiinni hän oli melko sievä tytöxeen. Hän kajosi minuun kädellä mutta työnsin käden pois. Hajaantukaa ei siellä ole mitään nähtävää. Erneston nimi tässä niteessä on Jacob Barnes, lyhyesti "Kake".
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 169: Wayne Bidwell Wheeler (November 10, 1869 – September 5, 1927) was an American attorney and longtime leader of the Anti-Saloon League. The leading advocate of the prohibitionist movement in the late 1800s and early 1900s, he played a major role in the passage of the 18th amendment to the United States Constitution, which outlawed the manufacture, distribution, and sale of alcoholic beverages.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 201: Still, the fact that they bring up Hemingway’s Catholicism at all confirmed my own suspicions of a deeper, clear-eyed spiritual sensibility lurking behind all of Hemingway’s naturalistic plots — forcing me to reconsider everything I had previously thought about the man. I see Catholicism as playing a central role in Hemingway’s literary vision and moral landscape. Non-catholics just turn away from the religious clues in his work to focus on his public image, war exploits, and psychological instability — all the while missing that singularly under-reported and significant aspect of Hemingway’s life as a writer: his Catholicism.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 203: Hemingway was raised in a Congregationalist Protestant home, and his first conversion to Catholicism occurred when he was a 19-year-old and volunteer ambulance driver in Italy during World War I. Two weeks into the job, he was delivering candy (LOL) to soldiers on the frontlines when he was hit by machine-gun fire and more than 200 metal fragments from an exploding mortar round. An Italian priest recovered his body, baptized him right on the battlefield and gave him the last rites.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 208: After having been anointed, Hemingway described himself as having become a “Super-Catholic.” It was a near-death experience that changed the course of his life. After the war, he went to work as a foreign correspondent in Paris. And eight years later — after his first marriage failed — he undertook a second, more formal conversion process in preparation for marriage to his second wife, devout Catholic Pauline Pfieffer.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 233: Of the 7 suicides that Mariel Hemingway is aware of in her family, 1 was of Ernest’s father, & 3 of his father’s 6 children (if one assumes that Hemingway did commit suicide). There still is no official decision–and there may never be–as to whether the death of the writer early Sunday from the blast of a 12-gauge shotgun had been an accident or suicide. However, the fact that Mr. Hemingway had been divorced would bar him from a Catholic Church funeral anyway. Catholic sources said there was nothing improper in a Catholic priest saying prayers at graveside.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 236: ye.jpg" />
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 277: She was Ernest Hemingway's mother. Huomaa keskimmäinen nimi! Pikku Ernestosta oli määrä tulla Ernestine, mutta vitun kakara syntyikin pipu housuissa! Äiskä haisee narsistilta mailien päähän. Sillä oli selkeästi perheessä housut jalassa. Ernest Hemingway had a difficult relationship with his mother, beginning in his teen years. She asserted her authority over every Hemingway family member, including her husband. She put many demands on her children, insisting they participate in activities that were important to her.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 283: Hemingway blamed her for using money meant for his college education on building a cottage near their home in a smart Chicago suburb so she could indulge in a lesbian love affair with the family nanny, Ruth Arnold, a woman 19 years her junior.


      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 298: An unmatched introduction to Hemingway’s particular skill as a writer is the beginning of A Farewell to Arms, certainly one of the most pregnant opening paragraphs in the history of the modern American novel. In that passage the power of concentration reaches a peak, forming a vivid and charged sequence, as if it were a 10-second video summary. It is packed with events and excitement, yet significantly frosty, as if unresponsive and numb, like a silent flashback dream sequence in which bygone images return, pass in review and fade away, leaving emptiness and quietude behind them. The lapidary writing approaches the highest style of poetry, vibrant with meaning and emotion, while the pace is maintained by the exclusion of any descriptive redundancy, of obtrusive punctuation, and of superfluous or narrowing emotive signs:
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 321: But what about the ugliness, then? What about all the evil, the crude, the rude, the rough, the vulgar aspects of his work, even the horror, which dismayed people? How could all that be compatible with moral standards? Niin, sas se!
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 334: Voiko tän selvemmin enää sanoa? "Women" with a gamin hairstyle, lovers who cut and dye their hair and change sexual roles, are themes that, with variations, occur in all of his novels!
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 336: When writing The Garden of Eden he appeared as a redhead one day in May 1947. When asked about it, he said he had dyed his hair "by mistake." In that novel, the search for complete unity between boy lovers is carried to extremes. It "may seem" that the halves of the Platonic homoerotic myth (once cut in two by Zeus and ever since longing to become a spoon again) are uniting here.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 348: [critique] "Through the Eye" Hemingway pastiche I wrote with references to "The Killers," "Hills Like White Elephants," "The Light of the World," and others. 2500 words.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 360: “Well, what am I to call you?” He looked uneasy and his eye twitched to the left when he smiled. Underneath his eye was a four inch scythe-shaped scar.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 380: “Very well, yes, Papa,” Juice said and walked to the bar. He poured the drinks and left grappas for the two Americans.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 408: He hesitated. “You are a reporter?” Papa shook his head slowly, opening his eyes wider. “Used to be.” The light above the table flickered. Juice asked if everything was all right.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 424: “They were the two biggest women I ever saw in my life. You couldn't believe they were real when you looked at them. They ran to the street and a car hit them. The driver stepped out and fell to the ground. Dead. All four innocent! A thousand pounds on me!” He took a cigarette from his pack and pressed it to his lips and lit it. The barrel lit up then shot out smoke. He cocked one eye to keep the smoke out. The barrel pointed at Papa.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 474: The tree sat in the middle of the sidewalk, grown up from a small patch of dirt and out of place in the sea of cobblestones. There hadn't been soil on this ground in years that hadn't been trucked in by men.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 496: A few feet across the room hung Cézanne's Les Joueurs de carte (The Card Players). Two men face each other playing cards on a small table. “It's the man on the right, Juice.” Juice looked at Papa with concern. “The villain. Sometimes it's hard to tell. But you can trust a man who smokes a pipe. The man on the left shows us his cards. An honest man. Cézanne knew that.”
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 536: The Americans stepped into a dark music hall. Four men onstage played the blues. Low and slow. A few people sat at tables smoking. The band got louder and Papa saw Nick Adams at one of the tables.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 550: “Oh, yeah? What's a bright boy to you? You're something of a bright boy yourself.”
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 558: Nick Adams hoped Papa knew him or knew boxing or anything. He wanted to hear a reason not to kill the man. The band played fast and loud and the lights played off the horn man's saxophone. It was dark so the ever-changing light on the saxophone illuminated everyone's eyes.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 576: The horn man played from his heart. He played to their hearts. He raised a question and an answer and he gave a portrait of a man. The lights flickered off his horn and illuminated everyone's eyes except Nick Adams' looked black in the dark room.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 606: Ernest Hemingway squirmed as his second wife, Pauline, read aloud in 1927 from Henry James' novel The Awkward Age. Hemingway wondered why James bailed his characters out of their frequent inactivity by inserting a drawing room scene; and, as he was to do frequently during the next thirty years, he freely criticized the quality of James' works, "and knowing nothing about James he seems to me to be a shit." Too, he was quick to criticize the male protagonists of James,". .and the men all without any exception talk and think like fairies except a couple of caricatures of brutal outsiders". Carlos Baker observes that Hemingway, the "brutal outsider" himself, was at this time publishing Men Without Women, whose sales had reached 15,000 in the first three months after publication. But now Hemingway, the outsider, clearly in literary ascendance, was becoming acquainted with James' works; his artistic and personal recognition of James in future years was, for the most part, to take the form of a peculiar enmity. He was often to refer to James in highly derisive terms almost to the end of his own life. Hemingway's lese majeste towards him takes the form of a sporadic obsession that reveals more about Hemingway's maturity than James' imagined frailties.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 616: The newest biography of Henry James is the work of a Vermont law professor who has written one earlier biography, Honorable Justice, The Life of Oliver Wendell Holmes, of the “great dissenter” on the Supreme Court in the first half of our century. Proceeding from the law into literature, Sheldon M. Novick tells us in a book titled Henry James, The Young Master–as if James were a young Mozart or a Paganini and didn’t work hard to achieve literary mastery–that the celibate and sexually diffident novelist, who put most of his life into his art, was in reality a regular guy who “underwent the ordinary experiences of life.” In fact, says Novick, he had an affair at the end of the Civil War with–yes, Oliver Wendell Holmes Jr.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 619: Novick’s attempt to find love affairs in James’ life reminds me of the 1920s, when there were no biographies of James, and critics loved to speculate on the mysteries of his privacy. Van Wyck Brooks, a skillful writer of pastiche, produced his quasi-biographical Pilgrimage of Henry James to prove the novelist was a literary failure because he had uprooted himself from the United States. Edna Kenton, a devoted Jamesian in Greenwich Village, demonstrated in a biting review in The Bookman that Brooks used important James quotations out of context. Years later, Brooks confessed to having nightmares “in which Henry James turned great luminous menacing eyes upon me.”
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 631: At the end of 1876, James moved to London. So far as we know, Zhukovski faded into the distance. James published seven books during the next three years and became a celebrity in London society. But Novick continues to allude to Zhukovski as if the relationship were of paramount importance to James. Only one letter from the Russian, written in 1879, survives. Zhukovski is in Italy and invites James to join him at the Villa Postiglione, his pension, at Posilipo, near Naples. While in Rome, James reserves a room in the pension for five days.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 652: More black humor: "Get up," Kake tells Bill, who replies "What? I never get up." Of course, it is Kake, not Bill, who never gets up. Later, trout (again, a phallic fish) try in vain to swim against the current of a waterfall, and — not so humorously — Kake reads a book about a man frozen inside a glacier whose wife awaits the reappearance of his body for twenty-four years. Kake is "frozen," too, only no one has the patience to await his unthawing.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 657: A Bryan is a hot guy that will love you with everything he has. Bryan's are funny, smart, caring, good at everything they do, have brown hair and brown eyes, a brown moustache, the cutest dimples and an awesome body. They make wonderful husbands and fathers. A Bryan will dedicate his whole life to his wife and family and never ask for a thing in return except to be able to watch his sports uninterrupted.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 688: Flocks rely on the rooster or head hen to keep an eye to any danger to them. Interestingly if a rooster starts giving false alarms too often, the ladies will ignore him and rely on other flock members. Interesting.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 689: Since chickens eyes and ears are more powerful than ours, they are usually right.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 764: Chris Lesley has been Raising Chickens for over 20 years and is a fourth generation chicken keeper. She can remember being a young child when her grandad first taught her how to hold and care for chickens. She also holds a certificate in Animal Behavior and Welfare and is interested in backyard chicken health and care.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 773: Hello, loved this article. We have 1 chicken who gets a lot of human attention daily. We talk to her a lot. Just last week she was sunning herself at the window and sang a short song. We had never heard her sing before! It was almost like a magpie. We Googled to try locate other singing hens but could not find anything. She has yet to do it again. Have you ever come across this?

      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 777: I have 3 Light Brahma girls..all seven months plus old, no eggs yet. Can I start feeding them layer feed now? They seem healthy and happy, just not laying.

      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 779: It is not uncommon for them to wait until 7 months or so until the start laying. I would switch them to layer feed now.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 817: is tied with Yogi Berra for most World Series doubles at 10 and holds the record for the most World Series hits at 58 for a player who never played for the New York Yankees, exceeded only by Yogi Berra and Mickey Mantle.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 818: He is also known as “Fordham Flash” played baseball for the New York Giants of the National League. Bill refers to him when talking about who attended which university. Frankie did go to Fordham.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 820: Bishop Manning was a Bishop in New York City, who played a prominent role in World War I. Kake refers to him, when discussing his school life, and showing who he was surrounded by. In 1939-40, Manning took a leadership role in the successful effort to force the City University of New York to rescind their offer of a professorship to the philosopher Bertrand Russell.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 821: When the Bishop was asked whether salvation could be found outside the Episcopal Church, he replied, "Perhaps so, but no gentleman would care to avail himself of it." One year prior to the U.S. entering World War I, Manning said:
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 866: Funny an’ yellow an’ faithful— Hassu keltainen ja uskollinen,
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 951: An’ I’m learnin’ ’ere in London what the ten-year soldier tells: ja opin täällä Lontoossa sen minkä vanha masi opetti:
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 993: Does this make Ernest Hemingway a bad writer? Does it mean we should no longer read him? I don’t think so. But then again I wrote his biography so I may be biased. The aesthetic satisfaction and sheer joy of reading such works as “In Our Time” and “A Moveable Feast,” or encountering the enduring truths of such novels as “A Farewell to Arms,” “For Whom the Bell Tolls” and, yes, “The Sun Also Rises” are undeniable. The books remain. So does racism and antisemitism. There are here to stay.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 999: Ernie was a product of a privileged upbringing whose first two marriages were to women of inherited wealth, which gave him the time to travel the world and develop as a writer without the pressure to make a living at it for the first decade of his career. Ernie had chronic traumatic encephalopathy, a degenerative brain condition that results from repeated head trauma that has been diagnosed in many boxers and football players.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 1024: En tauromaquia, la verónica es un lance o suerte fundamental que se efectúa sujetando el capote con las dos manos. Su «invención» (más bien su fijación) se atribuye a Costillares.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 1028: Ya Pepe-Hillo utiliza el nombre de verónica en su Tauromaquia (1796). Los tratadistas atribuyen el origen del nombre a la semejanza entre la forma de presentar el capote y la del lienzo en que Verónica, de acuerdo a los Evangelios, enjugó el rostro de Jesús de Nazaret.
      xxx/ellauri179.html on line 1048:
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 31:

      yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">JOSÉ DE SOUSA

      Sotarikollista


      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 32:

      yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">O EVANGELHO
      SECUNDO A MINHA PALAVRA


      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 52:
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 76: In 1847, Beecher became the first pastor of the Plymouth Church in Brooklyn, New York. He soon acquired fame on the lecture circuit for his novel oratorical style in which he employed humor, dialect, and slang. Over the course of his ministry, he developed a theology emphasizing God's love above all else. He also grew interested in social reform, particularly the abolitionist movement. In the years leading up to the Civil War, he raised money to purchase slaves from captivity and to send rifles—nicknamed "Beecher's Bibles"—to abolitionists fighting in Kansas. He toured Europe during the Civil War, speaking in support of the Union. Beecher oli selkeästi Lutherin linjoilla K.S. Laurilan raportoimassa teologis-poliittisessa kiistassa.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 81: Beecher married Eunice Bullard in 1837 after a five-year engagement. Their marriage was not a happy one; as Applegate writes, "within a year of their wedding they embarked on the classic marital cycle of neglect and nagging", marked by Henry's prolonged absences from home. The couple also suffered the deaths of four of their eight children.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 83: Beecher enjoyed the company of women, and rumors of extramarital affairs circulated as early as his Indiana days, when he was believed to have had an affair with a young member of his congregation. In 1858, the Brooklyn Eagle wrote a story accusing him of an affair with another young church member who had later become a prostitute. The wife of Beecher's patron and editor, Henry Bowen, confessed on her deathbed to her husband of an affair with Beecher; Bowen concealed the incident during his lifetime.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 85: Several members of Beecher's circle reported that Beecher had had an affair with Edna Dean Proctor, an author with whom he was collaborating on a book of his sermons. The couple's first encounter was the subject of dispute: Beecher reportedly told friends that it had been consensual, while Proctor reportedly told Henry Bowen that Beecher had raped her. Regardless of the initial circumstances, Beecher and Proctor allegedly then carried on their affair for more than a year. According to historian Barry Werth, "it was standard gossip that 'Beecher preaches to seven or eight of his mistresses every Sunday evening.'"
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 92: Subsequent hearings and trial, in the words of Walter A. McDougall, "drove Reconstruction off the front pages for two and a half years" and became "the most sensational 'he said, she said' in American history". On October 31, 1873, Plymouth Church excommunicated Theodore Tilton for "slandering" Beecher. The Council of Congregational Churches held a board of inquiry from March 9 to 29, 1874, to investigate the disfellowshipping of Tilton, and censured Plymouth Church for acting against Tilton without first examining the charges against Beecher. As of June 27, 1874, Plymouth Church established its own investigating committee which exonerated Beecher.Tilton then sued Beecher on civil charges of adultery. The Beecher-Tilton trial began in January 1875, and ended in July when the jurors deliberated for six days but were unable to reach a verdict. In February 1876, the Congregational church held a final hearing to exonerate Beecher.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 94: Stanton was outraged by Beecher's repeated exonerations, calling the scandal a "holocaust of womanhood". French author George Sand planned a novel about the affair, but died the following year before it could be written.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 98: In 1865, Robert E. Bonner of the New York Ledger offered Beecher twenty-four thousand dollars to follow his sister's example and compose a novel; the subsequent novel, Norwood, or Village Life in New England, was published in 1868. Beecher stated his intent for Norwood was to present a heroine who is "large of soul, a child of nature, and, although a Christian, yet in childlike sympathy with the truths of God in the natural world, instead of books." McDougall describes the resulting novel as "a New England romance of flowers and bosomy sighs ... 'new theology' that amounted to warmed-over Emerson". The novel was moderately well received by critics of the day.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 184:
    15. Begin at once to live, and count each separate day as a separate yesterday.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 187:
    16. One of the most beautiful qualities of true friendship is to be understood and obeyed.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 210:
    17. You all sorely complain of the shortness of time, and yet have much more than you know what to do with. Your lives are either spent in doing nothing at all, or in doing nothing to the purpose, or in doing nothing that you ought to do. You are always complaining that your days are few, and acting as though there would be no end of them. You are whiners.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 237: Having originated from Persis, roughly corresponding to the modern-day Fars Province of Iran, Cyrus has played a crucial role in defining the national identity of modern Iran. He remains a cult figure amongst modern Iranians, with his tomb serving as a spot of reverence for millions of people. In the 1970s, the last Shah of Iran, Mohammad Reza Pahlavi, identified Cyrus' famous proclamation inscribed onto the Cyrus Cylinder as the oldest-known declaration of human rights, and the Cylinder has since been popularized as such. This view has been criticized by some Western historians as a misunderstanding of the Cylinder's generic nature as a traditional statement that new monarchs make at the beginning of their reign. Fucking Westerners, always belittling other people's achievements.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 239: Cuneiform evidence from Babylon proves that Cyrus died around December 530 BC, and that his son Cambyses II had become king. Cambyses continued his father's policy of expansion, and captured Egypt for the Empire, but soon died after only seven years of rule. He was succeeded either by Cyrus's other son Bardiya or an impostor posing as Bardiya, who became the sole ruler of Persia for seven months, until he was justifiably killed by Darius the Great.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 245: Some claim that Ruth's distaste for her husband began when he insisted on hanging a picture of his late fiancée, Jessie Guischard, on the wall of their first home and named his boat after her. Guischard, whom Albert described to Ruth as "the finest woman I have ever met", had been dead for 10 years. However, others have noted that Albert Snyder was emotionally and physically abusive, blaming Ruth for the birth of a daughter rather than a son, demanding a perfectly maintained home, and physically assaulting both her and their daughter Lorraine when his demands were not met. "Isi anna heille anteexi he eivät tiedä mitä tekevät", oli Ruthin kuuluisat viimeiset sanat. Jotain tuttua niissä kyllä on... - Ai niin se Finlandia-ehdokas!
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 259: I did attend one of the first National Book Award Ceremonies 40 years ago. That was also my last experience of book prize giving... The winner in fiction, was my old friend James Jones, From Here To Eternity. His victory was somewhat marred by Jean Stafford, one of the 5 judges, unlike our present distinguished company, who moved slowly, if unsurely, about the room, stopping before each notable to announce in a loud voice, "The decision was not unanimous."
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 262: Jean Stafford (July 1, 1915 – March 26, 1979) was an American short story writer and novelist. She was born in Covina, California, to Mary Ethel (McKillop) and John Richard Stafford, a Western pulp writer. She won the Pulitzer Prize for Fiction for The Collected Stories of Jean Stafford in 1970. Stafford's personal life was often marked by unhappiness. She was married three times. Her first marriage, to the brilliant but mentally unstable poet Robert Lowell, left her with lingering physical and emotional scars. Stafford enjoyed a brief period of domestic happiness with her third husband, A. J. Liebling, a prominent (but ugly) writer for The New Yorker. After his death in 1963, she stopped writing fiction. For many years Stafford suffered from alcoholism, depression, and pulmonary disease.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 264: Robert Lowell IV (March 1, 1917 – September 12, 1977) was an American poet. He was born into a Boston Brahmin family that could trace its origins back to the Mayflower, yep, just those who only talked to Cod. He really thought he was something else, but he wasn't, just another evil looking guy.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 392: Seuraavat juutalaiset kirjailijat mainitaan tiheimmin kun keskustellaan kafkalaisuudesta amerikkalaisessa romaanissa ja novellissa: Nathanael West, Isaac Rosenfeld, Delmore Schwartz, Paul Doodman, Saul Bellow, Norman Mailer, J. D. Salinger, Bernard Malamud, Philip Roth, Joseph Heller, Meyer Liben ja Susan Sontag. Sietää muistaa tutkijoiden varaus. Kafkan vaikutus on useimmiten ollut epäsuora ja kietoutunut Freudin ohella muidenkin idealähteiden kanssa: Dostojevski, Kierkegaard, Buber, Reich, Trotski, Sartre... Harvoin se näkyy niin voimallisen tarttuvana kuin Isaac Rosenfeldin (1918-1956) lyhyissä paraabeleissa.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 398: He moved in 1941 from Chicago to New York to study philosophy at New York University, dropping out to write fiction after about a year. By the late 1940s, he was immersed in the philosophy of Wilhelm Reich, "the errant Freud disciple who turned ideology into orgasm."
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 428: Laurence Olivier oli vähintäänkin 2-neuvoinen. From the beginning of Olivier's life, there was confusion over his sexual identity. The most intimate friend of his youth was the actor Denys Blakelock, also the son of a clergyman, who was homosexual. The Queen's late aunt, Princess Marina, Duchess of Kent, who was involved with the bisexual and married Kaye for several years, told me quite emphatically that he and Olivier were "épris" ("in love"). And Coward, who was appalled to witness the two men openly exchanging French kisses in public, despised Kaye, whom he habitually referred to as "randy Dan Kaminski" (David Daniel Kaminski was Kaye's real name). One biography printed after his death alleged that Olivier “was deeply involved in a homosexual affair with Danny Kaye.”
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 637: Which one is true? We simply do not know for sure. The facts about his death have not been historically proven, beyond a reasonable doubt. In fact, there is no historical consensus on the person of Matthew. There are several conflicting accounts, and the Greek text does not state anywhere he was an eyewitness (and therefore a disciple). Maybe he was a fake. The problem is the gospel of Matthew is anonymous: the author is not named within the oldest surviving text, and the superscription "according to Matthew" was added some time in the second century, although the gospel doesn't state it's an eyewitness account. The historically very likely incorrect tradition that the author was the disciple Matthew begins with the early Christian bishop Papias of Hierapolis.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 652: Aleksandrian Menas, miekalla, Kappadokian Mercurius, mestataan, Paul Miki ja muut Japanin marttyyrit, kaksikymmentäkuusi ristiinnaulittua, keihästettyä ja poltettua, Thomas More, mestataan, Reimsin Nicasius, samoin, Huyn Odilia, nuolilla, Tarsoksen Paavali, jolta saat ensimmäisen Kirkon, mestataan, Pancratius, mestataan, Nikomedeian Pantaleon, samoin, Paphnutius, ristiinnaulitaan, Papias, revitetään hevosten välissä, Troyes'n ja Soestin Patroclus, mestataan, Karthagon Perpetua ja Felicitas, Felicitas on Perpetuan orjatar, joutuvat raivoavan lehmän sarviin, Ratesin Petrus, miekalla, Veronan Petrus, veitsi päähän ja tikari rintaan, Tournain Piatus, kallo sahataan, Polykarpos, pistetään tikarilla ja poltetaan, Rooman Prisca, leijonien ruoaksi, Processus ja Martinianus, ilmeisesti sama kuolema, Quinctinus, nauloja päähän ja muihin ruumiinosiin, Rouenin Quirinus, kallo sahataan päälaelta, Coimbran Quiteria, oma isä mestaa, kammottavaa, Alisen Regina, surmataan miekalla, Dortmundin Reinhold, kivenhakkaajan nuijalla, Napolin Restituta, roviolla, Roland, miekalla, Antiokian Romanus, kieli revitään suusta ja kuristetaan, etkö vieläkään ole saanut tarpeeksesi, Jumala kysyi Jeesukselta, mutta Jeesus vastasi, Tuo kysymys sinun olisi pitänyt esittää itsellesi, jatka,
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 724: announce unto you what ye eat and what ye
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 726: portent for you, if ye are to be believers.
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 750: When the boy Jesus was five years old, he was playing at the ford of a rushing stream. And he gathered the disturbed water into pools and made them pure and excellent, commanding them by the character of his word alone and not by means of a deed. Then, taking soft clay from the mud, he formed twelve sparrows. It was the Sabbath when he did these things, and many children were with him. And a certain Jew, seeing the boy Jesus with the other children doing these things, went to his father Joseph and falsely accused the boy Jesus, saying that, on the Sabbath he made clay, which is not lawful, and fashioned twelve sparrows. And Joseph came and rebuked him, saying, “Why are you doing these things on the Sabbath?” But Jesus, clapping his hands, commanded the birds with a shout in front of everyone and said, “Go, take flight, and remember me, living ones.” And the sparrows, taking flight, went away squawking. (Sparrows don't squawk, they tweet. Perhaps they were ducks?) When the Pharisee saw this he was amazed and reported it to all his friends. (Inf: 1:1-5 italics added for emphasis
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 773: The Quran’s use of the infancy story or legends built upon that story pose a special problem for Muslims apologists: the Quran is a divinely-dictated book that contains accounts of Jesus Christ found in unreliable literature some 100 to 200 years after the last book of the New
      xxx/ellauri186.html on line 803: a) Good reasons existed for rejection of canonicity for the spurious book. The book failed to meet the 5 requirements for canonicity: 1) apostolic authority (Was it written by the apostles or early eye witness news?), 2) orthodoxy (Does it line up with clear OT and NT teachings?), 3) antiquity (Has it been used within the covenant community for an extended period of time?), 4) inspiration, (Does the book make a tangible and testable claim of divine inspiration?) and 5) usage (Was it accepted by the catholic church at large?). 6) The early Church also viewed their discussions and debates surrounding the issues of canonicity as being directed and superintended by God. The determinations and deliberations concerning the canon were in some sense within the will and superintending of God working through his church.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 83: Corbett’s chapters alternate between poet and sculptor until the pair converge, when the ambitious yet unremarkable Rilke, again in search of a master, travels to Paris to write his monograph on Rodin. Even at this early stage, he was one of many Rodin’s true believers.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 99: Born in 1875 in Prague, Rilke was until he was six or seven got up in skirts by his mother, who named him René and tried to console herself for the death of an infant daughter. By the time Rilke was ten, his disappointed romantic of a mother had left his father, a kindly but ineffectual minor railway official, who had spent some years in the Austrian army unsuccessfully seeking commission as an officer. Rilke's parents decided to send the young boy to military school, a prospect that stirred the father's hopes of turning his son into a soldier. LOL. Though he later claimed to have loathed military school, the young bohemian warmly absorbed the values of discipline, valor, and self-sacrifice into his ideal of the defiant artist-hero. He skillfully foiled his father's martial expectations, and lack of funds freed the aspiring poet from his family's next plans for him: law school. In fact, though he attended several universities, soaking up lectures on diverse subjects throughout his life, he never graduated from any of them. About such a practical matter as a sheepskin, the finest German lyricist since Goethe wrote as an adolescent, "And even if I never reach my Arts degree / I'm still a scholar, as I wished to be."
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 101: W. H. Auden once remarked that would-be poets had better learn a manual trade. But Rilke was cast more in the haughty Yeatsian mold that Auden, not exactly a day laborer himself, haughtily disdained. And unlike Rilke's contemporary Franz Kafka, who performed his tasks as an insurance executive with initiative and even enthusiasm, Rilke was too frail psychologically to balance his art with the demands of full-time employment. Even a desk job in the Austrian army during the First World War, when the forty-year-old literary celebrity was conscripted, proved too much for him. After three weeks of parade-ground training and living in barracks, which nearly killed him, Rilke was assigned to the propaganda section. There his literary powers deserted him, and his frustrated superiors transferred the stunned poet to the card-filing department, where he remained for six months, until his friends interceded and got him discharged. André Malraux he was not.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 103: Rilke's diaries and letters, lively with tales of self-dislike and depression, seem to out-Kafka Kafka himself. Still, biographers should beware of making too much of these highly polished introspections. Rilke conceived of writing as a form of prayer, as Kafka did, and he made astringent self-examination a ritualistic prelude to work. Both writers magnified their inadequacies, sometimes to the point of a vaunting self-regard; it was an efficient way to wrest from their doubts a diligent beauty of creation.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 109: Augustine journeyed (unhurriedly) from the fleshpots of Carthage, from being in love with love, to the love of God. Rilke, along with other adventurers on the threshold of the twentieth century, traveled from God to a conviction that the only transcendent principle left was the love, erotic and spiritual, between men and women too. Rilke's experience as a young boy with a feminine persona seems in this sense to have been a great boon.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 113: Yet to put the burden of salvation solely on relations between men and women is to make a life between stumbling, imperfect men and women impossible. Rilke had no illusions about the nature of his erotic and romantic ideal. It flowed out from and quickly ebbed back into an unappeasable inward intensity. Rilke could not love or be loved for long, except in the absence of the beloved. After a passionate affair with the brilliant and beautiful Lou Andreas-Salomé, Rilke's muse and cicerone on his Russian trips, he suffered pangs of rejection and then happily settled into a lifelong correspondence with her. He married the sculptress Clara Westhoff when he was twenty-five, lived with her and their child for a year, and then by agreement left to take up his pilgrimage again. Through periodic reunions, but mostly through a voluminous and extraordinary correspondence, they maintained what Rilke called an "interior marriage," until emotional reality banged louder and louder on their youthful experiment and they eventually grew estranged.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 121: Freedman's Rilke, oddly enough, dwells on the dark underside of contemporary American life. Behind the mingled, multicolored yarn of his passions, obsessions, powerful yearnings, and self-interest--all wisely balanced in Donald Prater's majestic and definitive 1986 biography--Freedman sees only self-interest. Rilke is "hucksterish." His carefully cultivated literary success Freedman characterizes as a "relentless career." He refers to Rilke's "careerist standards." The places Rilke settles in for a time are not homes but Rilke's "bases."
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 131: One ugly phrase in a personal letter, for instance (out of a vast personal correspondence), referring to Franz Werfel as a "Jew-boy," and some murky generalities about Werfel's "Jewish attitude toward his work," do not an anti-Semite make. Rilke cherished the many Jews he knew, including Simmel; he enjoyed reading the Hasidic philosopher Martin Buber and steeped himself in Jewish Scripture, claiming that Judaism was closer than Christianity to God. He also remained a lifelong champion of Werfel's work. And a reader discovers buried deep in Freedman's footnotes that Rilke wrote the offending letter to the poet Hugo von Hoffmannsthal, a good friend and an important patron. Hoffmannsthal was also Jewish, and he shared Rilke's negative views on the superambitious Werfel, who emigrated to America and, in 1941, published The Song of Bernadette, a novel about a miracle at Lourdes. Freedman doesn't mention that about five months after Rilke wrote the letter to Hoffmannsthal, along with a nearly identical letter to his patron Princess Marie von Thurn und Taxis, Rilke again wrote similar letters to the two of them praising Werfel's poetry so exuberantly that they almost sound like retractions of his first letters.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 149: Rilke's most benevolent patron, Princess Marie von Thurn und Taxis, was wise enough both to nurture Rilke's gift and to keep her distance from her complicated protégé. An unblinking observer of Rilke's life, she was able to see his liaisons for what they were. And she knew how Rilke's acute sensitivity to his own condition, combined with his talent for self-pity, often landed him in the arms of the wrong people: "You must always be seeking out such weeping willows, who are by no means so weepy in reality, believe me--you find your own reflection in those eyes." But Freedman, doggedly indifferent to the available evidence, makes Rilke's lovers and women friends out to be helpless victims of a smooth seduction machine.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 158: with eyes like ripening fruit. And yet his torso
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 178: In 2002 Siegel received the National Magazine Award in the category "Reviews and Criticism". Jeff Bercovici, (alias sprezzatura), writing in Media Life Magazine, quoted the award citation, which called the essays "models of original thinking and passionate writing... Siegel's tough-minded yet generous criticism is prose of uncommon power—work that dazzles readers by drawing them into the play of ideas and the enjoyment of lively, committed debate".
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 201: Three years later in September of 1905, Rilke took a job as Rodin’s assistant and lived with him full-time on his country estate. For the first time, Rodin’s correspondence was prompt and his files organized. Rilke relished more long talks with Rodin and the book is filled with examples of how Rodin stimulated the poet during this period of employment and intense "dialogue."
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 241: hinhalsend bergen in der eignen Weiche, kaulan käänteessä kätkeytyy omaan pehmyeen,
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 255: Jeesuksen Kristuksen evankeliumi on Saramagon seitsemäs romaani, ja se aiheutti ilmestyessään alkukielellä 1991 suoranaisen skandaalin, kun Portugalin varapääministeri kieltäytyi esittämästä sitä Euroopan kirjallisuuspalkintoehdokkaaksi. Saramagon tulkinta evankeliumien tapahtumista onkin hävytöntä rienausta.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 286: Jerome's Against Helvidius (c. 383) paved the way for aspects of future Josephite devotion with his assertion that Joseph was always a virgin. Poor guy. The earliest record of a formal devotional following for Joseph in the Western Church is in the abridged Martyrology of Rheinau in Northern France, which dates to the year 800. References to Joseph as nutritor Domini ("educator/guardian of the Lord") from the 9th to the 14th centuries continued to increase as Mariology developed, and by the 12th century, along with greater devotion to Mary, the writings of the Benedictine monks began to foster a following for Joseph and they inserted his name in their liturgical calendars and their martyrology.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 294: From the 16th century onwards, a number of Catholic saints prayed to Saint Joseph, invoked his help and protection and encouraged others to do so. In Introduction to the Devout Life Francis de Sales included Joseph along with the Virgin Mary as saints to be invoked during prayers following an examination of conscience. Teresa of Avila attributed her recovery of health to Joseph and recommended him as an advocate. In her biography The Story of a Soul, Thérèse of Lisieux stated that for a period of time, she prayed every day to "Saint Joseph, Father and Protector of Virgins..." and felt safe from danger as a result. The three mentioned in this paragraph were all Doctors of the Church.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 296: In 1870, Pope Pius IX proclaimed Saint Joseph "Patron of the Universal Church". Joseph is also the unofficial patron of fighting communism. In 1889, Pope Leo XIII issued the encyclical Quamquam pluries in which he urged Catholics to pray to Joseph as patron of the church. This was in view of challenges facing the church, such as the growing depravity of morals in the young generation. He prescribed that every October, a prayer to Saint Joseph be added to the Rosary, with attached indulgences.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 445: Maria von Wedemeyer Weller (23 April 1924 – 16 November 1977) oli saxalainen aatelistyttö, von Bismarckin sukulaisia, takuulla ei Aatun kannattajia.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 447: Amerikkalaisten näkökulmasta she was an American computer scientist and manager, who emigrated to the US from Germany after the Second World War. She was also notable as the fiancée of the German Protestant theologian and Resistance worker Dietrich Bonhoeffer, eighteen years her senior.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 449: She first met Bonhoeffer in the urban home of Ruth von Kleist-Retzow, her maternal grandmother, when she was 11 years old. He was conducting confirmation classes for Maria's elder brother and cousins and the grandmother asked if Maria could be included. Bonhoeffer interviewed her and refused to have her join the class due to her "immaturity". (Toisen lähteen mukaan se sai olla mukana kuunteluoppilaana kunnes rinnat kasvaisivat.)
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 451: They were reintroduced some seven years later when Bonhoeffer was on a writing retreat at Ruth von Kleist-Retzow's country home, Klein Krössin. Despite the fact that Maria was just 18 years old, and he was 36, they developed a rapport. They became engaged on 13 January 1943. Varmasti jotain vanhaa suolaa oli mukana teerenpelissä.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 494: Minä tutkistelen sinun säädöksiäsi yeshivassa
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 566: A Caltech Title IX investigation in the fall of 2015 found that Ott had engaged in "discriminatory and harassing behavior" toward two female graduate students in his research group. Caltech suspended him for nearly two years, and Ott announced his resignation in August, after students protested his return to campus.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 568: Ott was supposed to begin a two-year research position at the University of Turku's Tuorla Observatory on March 1. But on Feb. 1, scientists and professors from Finnish astronomy departments began circulating an open letter strongly condemning harassment. It has so far been signed by more than 240 people.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 575: "Hopefully people have learned something from this deplorable incident," he said. "If you get thrown out from one place, don't give up, there is a chance of getting a 25 year sinecure from another."
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 629: tapauksittain: matruusikasinoisäntä, kasinoemäntäkasinotyöntekijä, kasinonhoitajakatsastusmieskatsastajamyyntimieskauppaedustaja, myyntiedustajakaupunginlakimieskaupunginjuristikenttäesimieskenttäpäällikkö, kenttäjohtaja, kenttävastaavakiinteistönhoitomieskiinteistön hoitaja, kiinteistönhoitajakiinteistöhuoltomieskiinteistön huoltaja, kiinteistönhuoltajatalonmies-vahtimestarikiinteistönhoitaja-vahtimestari, kiinteistönhuoltaja-vahtimestari, vahtimestarihuolto- ja laitosmieskiinteistönhuoltaja, kiinteistönhoitaja, laitoshuoltaja, laitostyöntekijätalonmieskiinteistönhuoltaja, kiinteistönhoitaja, talkkari.kivimies, kivityömieskivityöntekijä, kivirakentajakohde-esimieskohdevastaava, kohdepäällikkökolamieskolaaja, lumenkolaaja, lumityöntekijä, talvikunnossapitäjä, kolatyöntekijäkonemieskonetyöntekijä, koneenhoitaja, koneenkäyttäjä.kuljetusesimieskuljetuspäällikkö, kuljetusvastaavakameramieskuvaaja, valokuvaaja, videokuvaaja, televisiokuvaaja, elokuvaaja, kameraoperaattori, apulaiskuvaaja,kylpyläemäntäkylpylänhoitaja, kylpylän hoitajakärrypoikakärryjärjestelijä, kärrytyöntekijäkäsittelyesimieskäsittelypäällikkökäyttömieskäytönhoitaja, tuotantotyöntekijä.laattamieslaatoittajalaitosmies, laitoshuoltomieslaitoshuoltaja, laitostyöntekijä;
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 641:
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 642:
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 659: Phornography Exhibition Mila Mayer and Britt Wolthers : Blue, Bleu, Azul.
      xxx/ellauri187.html on line 667: Täyteaineoperaatio tehtiin Pariisissa. Lääkäri oli Eklandin mukana ruiskuttanut useita pistoksia, joista osa Articol-nimisellä aineella. Yleensä pistoksia annetaan vain muutama eikä Articolilla, jota käytettiin pääasiassa 90-luvulla lyhyen aikaa. Nykyään aine luokitellaan asiantuntijoiden mukaan vaaralliseksi ja se voi jättää pysyviä vaurioita.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 31:

      yellow;text-align:left;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">MIN
      GALNA
      HAGE

      Smuts


      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 32:

      yellow;text-align:left;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">POVEL
      RAMEL


      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 80: We are currently replicating and extending some of our findings using the dark tetrad instead. Our results are yet to be published, but indicate there are two further profiles in addition to the four groups we’ve already identified. One is an “emotionally internalised group”, with high levels of affective empathy and average cognitive empathy, without elevated dark traits. The other shows a pattern similar to autistic traits – particularly, low cognitive empathy and average affective empathy in the absence of elevated dark traits.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 156: Mann tarkoitti Taikavuoren aluksi paljon lopullista versiota lyhyemmäksi pienoisromaaniksi. Se oli tarkoitettu mukaelmaksi Kuolemasta Venetsiassa ja kuvaukseksi Mannin saamista vaikutelmista parantolasta Sveitsin Davosissa, jossa hänen vaimonsa oli useita kuukausia hoidossa keuhkosairauden vuoksi vuonna 1912. Ensimmäinen maailmansota keskeytti kirjan kirjoittamisen ja sen vaikutukset saivat Mannin kirjoittamaan romaanin uudestaan ja laajentamaan sitä käsittelemään länsimaisen yhteiskunnan ”itsetuhoviettiä” sekä sairauden ja kuolevaisuuden kysymyksiä.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 165: Crime passionel #1: He felt inadequate as a man when he heard his girlfriend had cheated on him with two other men. That’s why he shot her three times while she was sleeping, a sobbing Soshanguve man told the Pretoria High Court yesterday in 2010.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 172: His lawyer, Jan van Rooyen, in arguing for a lenient sentence, said the fact that Regaga was asleep when killed, was a mitigating factor, as “she did not see it coming.”
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 179: He is now blind in his right eye as a result of the failed suicide attempt and the side of his face is disfigured. “I wanted to die, because I had killed my girlfriend, the person I loved dearly,” he told the court. Everyone was in tears.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 182: "It is understandable and human that one would be angry, disappointed and hurt if you found out your partner of 12 years had been unfaithful. There was also a measure of provocation from the deceased when she threw a plate at the accused."
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 213: In some countries, notably France, crime passionnel (or crime of passion) was a valid defense to murder charges. During the 19th century, some such cases resulted in a custodial sentence for the murderer of two years. After the Napoleonic code was updated in the 1970s, paternal authority over the members of the family was ended, thus reducing the occasions for which crime passionnel could be claimed.[citation needed] The Canadian Department of Justice has described crimes of passion as "abrupt, impulsive, and unpremeditated acts of violence committed by persons, who have come face to face with an incident unacceptable to them, and who are rendered incapable of self-control for the duration of the act."
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 247: In an understandable effort to free Mr. Seib, the reporter's family, according to a UPI report in The Post Feb. 4, announced: "We want to stress his Catholic background, his German Volga background, his ethnic background." Further, "His upbringing did not have anything to do with the type of person who would spy for anybody." The Iranians chimed in to the effect that "mistakes and misunderstandings" played a major role in Mr. Seib's detention.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 312: Carlson's paternal grandparents were Richard Gere and Pamela Anderson, teenagers who placed "Dick" at The Home of The Worriers orphanage where he was wet nursed first by Carl Bellman's tjänare Mollberg, then a maiden, near Boston, and finally by a tannery worker with Swedish accent named Florence Nightingale, and as a result adopted at the age of two-years-old the reactionary views of upper-middle-class Finland immigrants, the Carlsons, and the oldest tanner in America and his wife.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 316: In 1976, Carlson's parents divorced after the nine-year boy reportedly "turned sour". Carlson's mother left the family when she was six, wanting to pursue a more "bohemian" lifestyle.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 331: In 1999, Carlson interviewed then-Governor George W. Bush for Talk magazine. He described Bush fucking Karla Faye Fucker (who was subsequently executed in Bad Bush's state of Texas) and frequently using the word "fuck" while at it. The piece led to bad pubic hair day for Bush's 2000 presidential campaign. Bush claimed that "Mr. Carlson misread, mischaracterized me. He's a fucking good reporter, he just misunderstood about how seriously in need I was. Fuck, I like the death penalty, seriously. Turns me on." Among liberals, Carlson's piece received praise, with Democratic consultant Bob Shrum calling it "vivid".
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 340: Following the 2020 election, Carlson reportedly told people he had voted for independent candidate Kanye West, because he was in awe of Kardashian's mammoth buttocks.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 347: Carlson is skeptical of foreign intervention, like Iraqi war and Ukrainan demilitarization. Carlson played an influential role in dissuading Trump from launching military strikes against Iran in response to the shooting down of an American drone in June 2019.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 348: Carlson called the 2020 assassination of Qasem Soleimani a "cold blooded murder". He criticized the "chest-beaters" who promote foreign interventions, and asked, "By the way, if we're still in Afghanistan, 19 years, sad years, later, what makes us think there's a quick way out of Iran? Or Ukraine, If we go there?"
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 370: The free press is under attack from multiple forces. Media outlets are closing their doors, victims to a broken business model. In much of the world, journalism is morphing into propaganda, as governments dictate what can and can’t be printed. In the last year alone, hundreds of reporters have been killed, imprisoned or just given the sack for doing their jobs. The UN reports that 85% of the world’s population experienced a decline in press freedom in their country in recent years.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 373: Ms. Grossberg, who was fired by Fox News shortly after she filed two lawsuits against the company in March, joined Mr. Carlson’s team in 2022 after several years as a senior producer for Maria Bartiromo, another Fox host.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 400: Gordimer had a daughter, Oriane (born 1950), by her first marriage in 1949 to Gerald Gavron, a local dentist, from whom she was divorced within three years. In 1954, she married Reinhold Cassirer, a highly respected art dealer who established the South African Sotheby's and later ran his own gallery; their "wonderful marriage" lasted until his death from emphysema in 2001. Their son, Hugo, was born in 1955, and is a filmmaker in New York, with whom Gordimer collaborated on at least two documentaries. Olikohan Gavron ja Cassirer juutalaisia? Ernst Cassirer oli (Cassirer tarkoittaakin kasööri), ja Gavron kuulostaa heprealta. Joku Laurence Gavron löysi Senegalista mustia kipapäitä heimoveljiä, mutta rabbit eivät hyväxyneet niitä.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 406: The House Gun (1998) was Gordimer's second post-apartheid novel. It follows the story of a couple, Claudia and Harald Lingard, dealing with their son Duncan's murder of one of his housemates. The novel treats the rising crime rate in South Africa and the guns that virtually all households have, as well as the legacy of South African apartheid and the couple's concerns about their son's lawyer, who is black and pompous and has an irritating mannerism of saying eh-ahe or ah-heh, with a hat on the e.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 428: Her home was close to Mandela, "just a bit down the street," and with a laugh she told me about the times after Mandela and his wife Winnie had separated that he would call and invite himself to dinner at her home. "Really he was just lonesome and wanted someone to talk to. Someone he felt comfortable with. An old friend like me," she said. Not bad for a woman who only spent only one year at the University of the Witwatersrand.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 430: During the post-apartheid years, Gordimer was active in the HIV/AIDS movement, addressing the need for government funding for HIV/AIDS prevention and care. She and I served on the US Task Force on spreading AIDS in Africa.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 432: Mervin Aubespin of Louisville is a former reporter and associate editor of The Courier-Journal who retired in 2002 after a 35-year career. He is a member of the Kentucky Journalism Hall of Fame and former president of the National Association of Black Journalists (NABJ). He was an unpaid consultant to the United Nations Development Prøgram. He is still waiting to get paid.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 467: The former actor, who founded the Reclaim Party, is being sued by Stonewall trustee Simon Blake, Coronation Street actress Nicola Thorp and drag artist Crystal over an online spat in October last year.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 508: juutalaisten lyhyellä listalla
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 594: FRANS EEMIL SILLANPÄÄ: Hell yeah—wait, didn’t you share the prize? Give me that beer back!
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 620: The Days of His Grace: Grandiose, shadowy, fraught. Representative passage: “She turned quickly to the other and met his eyes, feeling a sudden fear of unwillingness—as though he were peering at her through the crack in the door, or through a keyhole. He’s trying to get at me through my eyes, she thought.” As far as one can grasp, given a translation that feels a little stumbly, I give this tone a seven.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 637: Views from a Tuft of Grass: Short essays, enlivened by the occasional wacky aside—“The builders of perpetual motion machines seem almost extinct; there were many more letters from them just seven or eight years ago”—but slowed by heady bouts of abstraction. Six.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 707: Capital punishment in South Africa was abolished on 6 June 1995 by the ruling of the Constitutional Court in the case of S v Makwanyane, following a five-year and four-month moratorium since February 1990. The ruling followed the Constitutional Court's hearing on the death penalty which took place in February 1995. Until the use of the death penalty was suspended in February 1990, South Africa had one of the highest rates of judicial executions in the world.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 764: 467 convicted murderers in 18 prisons (urban and rural) in all 9 provinces of our country, located by the South African Department of Correctional Services (DCS), completed a questionnaire, approved by this department. 392 men and 75 women were interviewed before completing their questionnaires. The latter consisted of questions regarding general information such as age, race group, gender, and length of sentence. The first question focussed on: (1.a.1) What was your motive for committing murder (jealousy, spite, anger, thoughtlessness, money, or anything else - that had to be indicated)? (1.a.2) Were you exposed to violence shortly before committing murder (electronic media, or any other type of violence – that had to be indicated)? (1.b) Which of the following contributing factors played a role in the commitment of the murder (drugs, alcohol, or both)? (1.c) Was the murder premeditated or committed impulsively? The second question focussed on: (2.a) Do you think capital punishment would be a deterrent to committing serious crimes? (2.b) And in your specific case: Do you think capital punishment would have been a deterrent to committing murder? Question three (3) asked: Was the victim known to you? By name, sight, or not at all? Question four was interested in: (4.a) Are you currently involved in a rehabilitation program. And (4.b): If you are currently involved in a rehabilitation program, do you think this program is helpful, and if yes, in which ways? The last question (5) focussed on: Will you murder again? In gaol or after you have been released?
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 770: 15 of these participating men were under the age of 15 years; 206 between 15 and 29 years; 117 between 30 and 40 years and 54 older than 40 years. 193 were black; 168 Coloured; 22 white and 9 Indian.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 775: The following contributing factors played a role in the murders: 8.9% of people were under the influence of drugs; 41.6% under the influence of alcohol and 20.1% under the influence of both. 29.3% were sober.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 782: Of the 75 women who were interviewed and completed the questionnaire, four were younger than 15 years; 28 between 15 and 29 years; 24 between 30 and 40 years and 19 older than 40. 43 were black; 26 Coloured; 6 white and no Indian.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 788: 5.3% indicated that they committed the murder under the influence of drugs; 37.3% under the influence of alcohol and in 10.7% of women both these drugs played a role as contributing factors to the murder. 46.7% were not under the “influence” at all.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 804: The wo/man’s spiral (sorry, spinal) cord will rupture at the point where it enters the skull, electrochemical discharges will send his/her limbs flailing in a grotesque dance, eyes and tongues will start from the facial apertures under the assault of the rope and his/her bowels and bladder may simultaneously void themselves to soil the legs and drip onto the floor.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 808: At present, seven years after the abovementioned research has been completed, there are still serious pleas in South Africa that the death penalty must be reinstated, because the cases of so many brutal and senseless murders leave many people speechless.
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 810: According to van Niekerk, one can argue with the philosopher Immanuel Kant, who “exemplifies a pure retributivism about capital punishment: murderers must die for their offense, social consequences are wholly irrelevant, and the basis for linking the death penalty to the crime is ‘the Law of Retribution,’ the ancient maxim”, the law of retaliation (an eye for an eye), “rooted in ‘the principle of equality’”. (I THOUGHT Kant sucked, and he does!)
      xxx/ellauri193.html on line 828: Nationally, the overall rate of serious reversible error in capital cases is 68% - nearly seven out of every ten cases … The most common errors, prompting the most reversals at the state post-convictions stage, are (a) egregiously incompetent defence lawyers, mostly court appointed, who did not even look for – and demonstrably missed – important evidence that the defendant was innocent or did not deserve to die. 82% of those convictions overturned at the state level were found to deserve less than death when errors were corrected on re-trial; 7% were found innocent of the capital crime. Only 11% of those capital convictions reversed on state review were still found to deserve death on retrial … These high error rates exist all over the nation. 24 states with the death penalty have overall error rates of 52% or higher. 22 of the states have overall error rates of 60% or higher. 15 states have error rates of 70% or higher. To err is human. Better err on the safe side.
      xxx/ellauri195.html on line 241: She takes just like a woman, yes she does Tosi naismaisesti se ottaa vastaan, tosiaan
      xxx/ellauri195.html on line 242: She makes love just like a woman, yes she does Se nai kuin nainen, joo niin se tekee
      xxx/ellauri195.html on line 252: She takes just like a woman, yes she does Se ottaa poskeen naismaisesti, juu niin just,
      xxx/ellauri195.html on line 253: She makes love just like a woman, yes she does Se nai kuin nainen, joo niin se tekee,
      xxx/ellauri195.html on line 270: Ah, you fake just like a woman, yes you do Au, sä teeskentelet naismaisesti, vittu joo
      xxx/ellauri195.html on line 271: You make love just like a woman, yes you do Sä nait kuin nainen, joo niin sä teet
      xxx/ellauri195.html on line 278: Short Story: Norman Mailer THE GREATEST THING IN THE WORLD Nov/Dec 1941 STORY MAGAZINE. MAILER'S FIRST PUBLICATION IN A NATIONALLY-CIRCULATED MAGAZINE, AT 18 YEARS OLD WHILE AN ENGINEERING STUDENT AT HARVARD. Other contributions by Eli Cantor, Morton Fineman and Padraic Fallon, etc. Two corners lightly bumped, spine a bit faded, overall in great shape.

      At Harvard, he majored in engineering sciences, but took the majority of his electives as writing courses. He published his first story, "The Greatest Thing in the World," at the age of 18, winning Story magazine's college contest in 1941.

      Early in his career, Mailer typed his own works and handled his correspondence with the help of his sister, Barbara. After the publication of The Deer Park in 1955, he began to rely on hired typists and secretaries to assist with his growing output of works and letters. Among the women who worked for Mailer over the years, Anne Barry, Madeline Belkin, Suzanne Nye, Sandra Charlebois Smith, Carolyn Mason, and Molly Cook particularly influenced the organization and arrangement of his records.


      xxx/ellauri195.html on line 296: If it were not for women being admitted into our order, my teachings would have lasted 1000 years; now they will not last 500. Gautama Buddha
      xxx/ellauri195.html on line 328: Clayton Wheat "Claytie" Williams Jr. (October 8, 1931 – February 14, 2020) was an American businessman from Midland, Texas who ran for governor in 1990. Despite securing the Republican nomination and initially leading in the polls against Democratic challenger State Treasurer Ann Richards by twenty points, Williams ultimately lost the race due in part to a controversial comment he made about rape. During the campaign Williams cultivated an image of a cowboy figure who had risen from humble roots to become a powerful business tycoon. The image played well in public opinion polls. Williams often had a propensity for making poorly planned statements on the campaign trail. Now he is fortunately dead meat.
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 63:
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 73: Neptunus jakaa alkuperätarinan useiden vanhempiensa Saturnuksen ja Ops:n kanssa syntyneiden jumalten kanssa., Perinteinen versio tarina Neptunuksen syntymä keskittynyt Saturnus on isä, paljastaa profetia doom jumalan käsissä yksi hänen lapsistaan. Saturnus päätti syödä lapset syntyessään, myös Neptunuksen. Ops huijasi Saturnuksen syömään kiven syötyään viisi kuudesta lapsestaan. Saturnus oksensi kaikki viisi lasta palaamaan maailmaan ja omaksumaan heidän roolinsa jumalina, mukaan lukien Neptunuksen. Eikös Saturnus ole Kronos kreikaxi? Kyllä niin.
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 193: Hiski!

      29 year old aspiring house plant. Currently residing in Texas with my darling fiancé and precious cats. My style is varied. You’ll find everything from odes to nature (especially flowers and the moon) to dark poetry about mental illness to mindless ramblings about bananas and clocks. I hope you enjoy it.
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 217: Ahh Spring, you are dynamite this year.
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 267:
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 350: Thy welcome smiles in ev'ry eye.
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 364: Eighteen years on the cotton field passed before his second work appeared in print, "An Address to Miss Phillis Wheatley." Hammon wrote the poem during the Revolutionary War, while Henry Lloyd had temporarily moved his household and slaves from Long Island to Hartford, Connecticut, to evade British forces. Phillis Wheatley, then enslaved in Massachusetts, published her first book of poetry in 1773 in London. She is recognized as the first published black female author. Hammon never met Wheatley, but was a great admirer. His dedication poem to her contained twenty-one rhyming quatrains, each accompanied by a related Bible verse. Hammon believed his poem would encourage Wheatley along her Christian journey. Lukikohan Pyllis koko runoa? Ei se tuonut sille kovin paljon onnea.
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 370: It is believed that Jupiter Hammon died within or before the year 1806. Though his death was not recorded, it is believed that Hammon was buried separately from the Lloyds on the Lloyd family property in an unmarked grave, next to the Lloyds family´s faithful dog Fido.
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 720: Silmänvilkkeessä. In twinkling of an eye.
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 752:
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 923: translated by Judith Hemschemeyer
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 965: Holy the sea holy the desert holy the railroad holy the locomotive holy the visions holy the hallucinations holy the miracles holy the eyeball holy the abyss!

      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 980: Great to use on its own or as a companion book, Devotions for a Revolutionary Year expands on the themes of Lynn Cowell’s first book, His Revolutionary Love. In short, easy-to-read daily devotions, Lynn chats to girls about the challenges of growing up as a girl: identity and acceptance, breasts and pubic hair, rejection and rebellion, pads and tampons, and self-control and surrender. Through Scripture and stories any girl can relate to, Lynn Cowell encourages girls to remember that Jesus loves them and is harassing pursuing them every day—and that knowing his love day by day can make for one revolutionary year.
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 992: Lynn Cowell is an author and speaker with Proverbs 31 Ministries, whose passion is helping moms become wise women who raise wiser daughters. For the past 10 years, Lynn has taught women and teens to discover the radical love of Jesus and build an inner confidence that leads to smart choices. Her ministry and His Revolutionary Love book have helped hundreds of teen girls and their moms discover that only Jesus has big enough a spotted dick to fill the love gap in their "hearts". Read less.
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1057: Douglas Murray is an associate editor of The Spectator. His latest publication, The Madness of Crowds, was a bestseller and a book of the year for The Times and The Sunday Times. His previous book, The Strange Death of Europe: Immigration, Identity, Islam, was published by Bloomsbury in May 2017. It spent almost twenty weeks on the Sunday Times bestseller list and was a number one bestseller in nonfiction. Read less.
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1061: Writing in The Guardian, the political journalist Gaby Hinsliff described Strange Death as "gentrified xenophobia" and "Chapter after chapter circles around the same repetitive themes: migrants raping and murdering and terrorising; paeans to Christianity; long polemics about how Europe is too ´exhausted by history´ and colonial guilt to face another battle, and is thus letting itself be rolled over by invaders fiercely confident in their own beliefs", while also pointing out that Murray offers little definition of the European culture he claims is under threat. Pankaj Mishra´s review in The New York Times described the book as "a handy digest of far-right clichés". In The Intercept, Murtaza Hussain criticized the "relentlessly paranoid tenor" of Murray´s work and said that its claims of mass crime perpetuated by immigrants were "blinkered to the point of being propaganda", while noting the book´s appeal to the far right. In Middle East Eye, Georgetown professor Ian Almond called the book "a staggeringly one-sided flow of statistics, interviews and examples, reflecting a clear decision to make the book a rhetorical claim that Europe is doomed to self-destruction".
      xxx/ellauri199.html on line 1073: But some aspects of Seuss’s work have not aged well, including his debut, which features a crude racial stereotype of an Asian man with slanted lines for eyes. “Mulberry Street” was one of six of his books that the Seuss estate said it would stop selling this week, after concluding that the egregious racial and ethnic stereotypes in the works “are hurtful and wrong.”
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 49: That happened to the sad eye of Time.
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 73:
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 77: Levitating while in the Lotus Position may also be a sign that a character is powerful or that he or she is far from normal. However, especially when Played for Laughs, if someone wakes them from their serene inner calm, they'll often spontaneously lose their floaty power and collapse in an undignified mess on the floor.
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 103: That year I won the scripture prize.
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 110: At home on Friday nights the prayers
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 121: I lay in bed two years alone,
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 141: I knew that all was yet to sing.
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 160: The Indian landscape sears my eyes.
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 173: He studied philosophy at Birkbeck College, London. After three and a half years, Ezekiel worked his way home as a deck-scrubber aboard a ship carrying arms to Indochina.
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 184: Naipaul's fiction and especially his travel writing have been criticised for their allegedly unsympathetic portrayal of the Third World. The novelist Robert Harris has called Naipaul's portrayal of Africa racist and "repulsive," reminiscent of Oswald Mosley's fascism. Edward Said argued that Naipaul "allowed himself quite consciously to be turned into a witness for the Western prosecution", promoting what Said classified as "colonial mythologies about wogs and darkies". Said believed that Naipaul's worldview may be most salient in his book-length essay The Middle Passage (1962), composed following Naipaul's return to the Caribbean after 10 years of exile in England, and the work An Area of Darkness (1964).
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 186: Not unexpectecly Naipaul was also accused of misogyny, and of having committed acts of "chronic physical abuse" against his mistress of 25 years, Margaret Murray, who wrote in a letter to The New York Review of Books: "Vidia says I didn't mind the abuse. I certainly did mind."
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 362: More than ten years passed before she told me that
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 638: Dis-graced he may be, yet is not dethroned, Voihan se olla kehno mutta silti paras,
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 652: (used or misused). The right has not decayed. Meillä lupa, oikein tai vasein, lisenssi
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 667: that quail in its shadow, and yet shut the gate; Jotka vapisee sen varjossa mut panee oven kii;
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 688: And those that hear them yet may yet beware. Mutta ostajaa on varotettava.
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 690: and yet they would not in despair retreat, Eikä ne silti heitä nurkkaan riepua,
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 694: with light of suns as yet by no man seen. tähdillä jollaisia ei ole miesmuistiin nähty.
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 705: impure and scanty, yet they loyally bring Ja puzaa siitä lojaalisti kirkkaampaa,
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 721: I bow not yet before the Iron Crown, Mä en pyllistä rautaesiripun edessä,
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 724: In Paradise perchance the eye may stray Paratiisissa saa kenties silmä exyä
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 730: that all is as it is, and yet made free: Kaikki on sitä miltä näyttää, ja ilmaista.
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 731: Salvation changes not, nor yet destroys, Pelastus ei muuta mitään, eikä mitään pilaa,
      xxx/ellauri200.html on line 735: not in God's picture but in crooked eyes, Se ei näy Jumalan kuvassa vaan kazojan silmässä,
      xxx/ellauri202.html on line 190: years.jpg/330px-Anatole_France_young_years.jpg" height="200px" />
      xxx/ellauri202.html on line 268: Putin doesn't have a plan B because at 70 years old there is not enough time for a plan B. Luckily I am way younger.
      xxx/ellauri202.html on line 333: As the dictator of Nazi Germany, Adolf Hitler allegrdly led a murderous regime that massacred millions in Europe, including some six million Jews. As such, it came as a shock when Hitler’s own lawyer, Hans Frank, claimed before his execution in 1946 that the Nazi leader was secretly part Jewish.
      xxx/ellauri202.html on line 338: dolf Hitler’s lawyer Anne Frank claimed that the Nazi leader was part Jewish in his memoir. As Hitler’s personal lawyer and the governor-general of Poland during World War II, Anne Frank was executed during the Nuremberg trials in 1946. Seven years later in 1953, his memoir was posthumously published.
      xxx/ellauri202.html on line 344: In his memoir, Frank wrote that Hitler’s paternal grandmother, Maria Anna Schicklgruber, was once employed as a cook by a Jewish family in Graz, Austria. During this time, Schicklgruber became pregnant by an unknown man and gave birth to Hitler’s father, Alois Schicklgruber, in 1837. Alois was registered as an “illegitimate child” with no dad when he was born.
      xxx/ellauri202.html on line 348: To this day, the true identity of Hitler’s paternal grandfather remains unknown. So amidst the ongoing mystery, Frank suggested that Alois’s father was the 19-year-old son of Schicklgruber’s employer, Frankenberger Sr.
      xxx/ellauri202.html on line 391: The historian Ian Kershaw also pointed out in his 1998 book Hitler 1889-1936: Hubris that the figure who was allegedly Hitler’s father — the son of the Frankenreiter family — would have been just 10 years old when Alois was born. So clearly, the history of that family doesn’t hold water.
      xxx/ellauri202.html on line 413: In his 1953 memoir In the Face of the Gallows (published after his execution in 1946), Hitler’s lawyer Hans Frank claimed that Hitler had told him to investigate rumors of him having Jewish ancestry. Frank said Hitler showed him a letter from a nephew who threatened to reveal he had Jewish blood. Frank wrote that he found evidence that Hitler’s grandfather was Jewish and that Alois’ mother, Maria Schicklgruber, worked as a cook in the home of a wealthy Jewish family named Frankenreiter in Graz. Austria, was impregnated by a member of the family – possibly their 19-year-old son – when she was 42.
      xxx/ellauri202.html on line 415: Historians dispute his acount. Ian Kershaw, for example, wrote in his biography of Hitler Hubris, “A family named Frankenreiter did live there, but was not Jewish. There is no evidence that Maria Anna was ever in Graz, let alone employed by the butcher Leopold Frankenreiter.”
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 33:

      yellow">Näkyip
      yellow">Nahkapouz


      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 406: Omistuksen keskittymistä korostavien kapitalismin ja sen vastapainon, sosialismin syntyessä oli tarpeellista nimetä myös tämä kolmas mahdollisuus. Wikipedian mukaan distributismin teesit voidaan koota seuraavanlaiseksi listaksi:
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 432: Kärkkäisen magneettimedia peukuttaa distributismia, oik. korporatismia. Distributismia mukailevaa talouspolitiikkaa alettiin noudattamaan 30-luvulla niin fasistisessa Italiassa kuin kansallissosialistisessa Saksassakin. Lopputuloksena Saksassa koettiin ihmiskunnan merkittävin taloudellinen nousu ja hyvinvoinnin lisääntyminen uskomattoman lyhyessä ajassa. Tämän yksityispankkien kahleista irtautumisen seurauksena kansainvälinen juutalaisyhteisö julisti Saksalle sodan vuonna 1933, mikä lopulta johti myöhemmin toisen maailmansodan syttymiseen. Distributismin kohtalon koki myös englantilaisen insinöörin Clifford Hugh ”C. H.” Douglasin talousteoriat ja kansanluottomalli (Social Credit). Douglasin mallissa tyrmättiin yksityinen pankkitoiminta ja todettiin rahan olevan tuotantoa ohjaava informaation väline eikä pelkkä vaihdonväline. Sysmän Osuuspankki näkyy lopettelevan, tiesi Sysmän tyrnävä blondi kirjastonhoitaja kertoa. Social Credit –mallia muun muassa USA:ssa, Englannissa ja Italiassa kamppanjoineet Douglas ja hänen yhteistyökumppaninsa runoilija ja filosofi Ezra Pound leimattiin sodan jälkeen antisemitisteiksi ja jopa mielenvikaisiksi.
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 558: A Medicine Wheel is the basis of the cosmology and five element rituals of the Dagara (between Ghana and Burkina Faso). The five elements are Fire (red, south), Water (blue, north), Earth (yellow, centre), Mineral (white, west) and Nature (green, east). This image comes from a page called ‘Elemental Rituals’ at malidoma.com. It is a colour version, with slight modifications, of the Medicine Wheel illustrated in Somé’s book ‘The Healing Wisdom of Africa‘.
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 560: The numbers are actually connected to the year of birth.
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 561: WE currently are in a double fire year (22).
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 562: Normally you look at the last number of your birth year to define your element in dagara culture. Fascinating.
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 831: Lainaus on armottoman pitkä, mutta siitä näkyy koko tarkkojen repliikkien luoma kaari. Sirkan torjuvuus selitetään aiemmassa kappaleessa; mies ei huomaa omaa käytöstään. Kun Tom herää avioliiton kalseuteen ja yrittää korjata tilannetta etelänmatkalla, Sirkan reaktiossa on ilkeyttä ja kohtuuttomuutta. Samalla torjuvuus on perusteltua; syvälle juurtuneita ikävyyksiä ei korjata yksittäisillä lahjoilla, jotka muuttaisivat kaiken suunnan kerrasta, kuten Tom kuvittelee. Mies on valmis pyyhkäisemään ”menneet ovat menneitä” -ajattelulla vuosien ongelmat maton alle, mihin vaimo ei suostu, koska kyse on jälleen yhdestä miehen vallankäytön välineestä. Tom myös alentuu käytökseen, jota hänen vaimonsa pitää erityisen ahdistavana, ivaamaan ja korjaamaan kriisin keskellä merkityksettömiä asioita (”Se on Thaimaahan, ei Thaimaaseen.”). Avioparin kriisin syvyydestä kertoo, että riidan lähestyessä heidän poikaansa pyydetään poistumaan huoneeseensa ja laittamaan musiikki kovalle, jotta hän ei joutuisi kuuntelemaan vanhempiensa kinastelua. Tällaisten eleiden merkitys, se että niihin on jo totuttu, kertoo perheyksikön vuotavista haavoista.
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 884:
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 996: Nyssemangustit saivat taas ns kultaa ns lätkästä. Repivät nakupazaan suojaxi tehdyn lankkuaidan ja raiskasivat symbolisesti neizyen. Ei sentään niiden vaaleanpunaiset pikku piput pysty vaskipazaaseen. Notkuvat, vääntyvät ja kutistuvat ruppanoixi kohdatessaan kylmän metallin. Muzilti vittu, ajatus on tärkein. Apinasodan voittajakoiraiden palkinto on aina ollut naaraiden naiminen.
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1023: According to later Muslim writings, Idris was born in Babylon, a city in pr esent-day Iraq. Before he received the Revelation, he followed the rules revealed to Prophet Seth, the son of Adam. When Idris grew older, God bestowed Prophethood on him. During his lifetime all the people were not yet Muslims. Afterwards, Idris left his hometown of Babylon because a great number of the people committed many sins even after he told them not to do so. Some of his people left with Idris. It was hard for them to leave their home.
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1027: The commentator Ibn Ishaq narrated that he was the first man to write with a penis and that he was born when Adam still had 308 years of his life to live. In his commentary on the Quranic verses 19:56-57, the commentator Ibn Kathir narrated "During the Night Journey, the Prophet passed by him in fourth heaven. In a hadith, Ibn Abbas asked Ka’b what was meant by the part of the verse which says, ”And We raised him to a high station.” Ka’b explained: Allah revealed to Idris: ‘I would raise for you every day the same amount of the deeds of all Adam’s children’ – perhaps meaning of his time only. So Idris wanted to increase his deeds and devotion. A friend of his from the angels visited and Idris said to him: ‘Allah has revealed to me such and such, so could you please speak to the angel of death, so I could increase my deeds.’ The angel carried him on his wings and went up into the heavens. When they reached the fourth heaven, they met the angel of death who was descending down towards earth. The angel spoke to him about what Idris had spoken to him before. The angel of death said: ‘But where is Idris?’ He replied, ‘He is upon my back.’ The angel of death said: ‘How astonishing! I was sent and told to seize his soul in the fourth heaven. I kept thinking how I could seize it in the fourth heaven when he was on the earth?’ Then he took his soul out of his body, and that is what is meant by the verse: ‘And We raised him to a high station.’"
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1038: Speaking of which, German police believe the convicted paedophile, 45, abducted and killed Madeleine McCann, 3, in Portugal in 2007. Following tip-offs from German police, in April 2021 authorities in Paraguay targeted Christian Manfred Kruse, 59, a German national thought to be behind the sick network. At the same time German cops arrested three other men linked to a paedo ring. They include cook Andreas G, 40, unemployed Fritz Otto K, 64, and Alexander G, 49, who allegedly acted as an administrator and forum moderator for the ring. Boystown was internationally oriented, had chat areas in different languages and served the worldwide exchange of images, documenting the sexual abuse of children. Experts then set about analysing all the computer data, including 5,000 IP addresses, which had exchanged sickening pornographic images and videos of children being abused to around 400,000 members. Idris started prophecying at age 40, and so did Mohammed. Mohammed´s youngest wife was just 9. The Daily Telegraph described the disappearance of Madeleine "the most heavily reported missing-person case in modern history".
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1055: Enlil, god of Earth, assigned junior dingirs (Sumerian: 𒀭, lit. 'divines') to do farm labor, as well as maintain the rivers and canals. After 40 years, however, the lesser dingirs rebelled and refused to do strenuous labor. Enki, who is also the kind, wise counselor of the gods, suggested that rather than punishing these rebels, humans should be created to do such work, instead. The mother goddess Mami is subsequently assigned the task of creating humans by shaping clay figurines mixed with the flesh and blood of the slain god Geshtu-E ('ear' or 'wisdom'; 'a god who had intelligence'). All the gods, in turn, spit upon the clay. After 10 months, a specially made womb breaks open and humans are born.
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1057: Tablet I continues with legends about overpopulation and plagues, mentioning Atra-Hasis only at the end. Tablet II begins with more human overpopulation. To reduce this population, Enlil sends famine and drought at formulaic intervals of 1200 years. Accordingly, in this epic, Enlil is depicted as a cruel, capricious god, while Enki is depicted as kind and helpful, perhaps because priests of Enki were writing and copying the story. Enki can be seen to have parallels to Prometheus, in that he is seen as man's benefactor and defies the orders of the other gods when their intentions are malicious towards humans. Tablet II remains mostly damaged, but it ends with Enlil's decision to destroy humankind with a flood, with Enki bound by oath to keep this plan secret.
      xxx/ellauri208.html on line 1177: Minulla on iso turbaani ja otan silti kaikilta turbaani. Rifaan Juudas on toi Jasmiini. Olis kannattanut Rifaan antaa sille edes kerta vuodessa, kuten Popeye The sailor man.
      xxx/ellauri209.html on line 93: Easily topping the list of the 5 biggest companies that don’t pay taxes is Amazon, which is among the largest companies in the world in 2021. As I mentioned earlier, for many years Amazon was not profitable and made huge losses as it made inroads into the e-commerce market and gained a major market share by using extremely low prices as a strategy. This has allowed the company to use the tax losses from those years which are brought forward against any income earned and hence, avoid paid taxes even though they have an income of more than $10 billion.
      xxx/ellauri212.html on line 77: His novels were admired by the author Somerset Maugham. A few years after Lodwick's death, Anthony Burgess wrote: "He is not afraid of rhetoric, grandiloquence; his knowledge of foreign literature is wide; his mastery of the English language matches Evelyn Waugh's." He warned, nevertheless, that because of his early death he was "in danger of being neglected", and indeed D. J. Taylor has written that in the post-war years Lodwick's "doomy romanticism sat queerly alongside the comic realism of a Waterhouse or an Amis: Lodwick's reputation did not survive the 1960s."
      xxx/ellauri212.html on line 99: LOVE bade me welcome; yet my soul drew back,
      xxx/ellauri212.html on line 101: But quick-eyed Love, observing me grow slack
      xxx/ellauri212.html on line 110: ‘Who made the eyes but I?’
      xxx/ellauri212.html on line 129: Guan Yin on kuin Siru paizi enemmän käsiä. Siru on mun puinen Galatea, jonka kanssa koitan Pygmalionina vielä saada mielikuvituxen voimalla munan havahtamaan haudastaan, kun en kehtaa enää yrittää piiskata sitä vauhtiin aviovuoteessa nolosti kuin el Zorron konnat kehnoja kaakkejaan. Mielikuvissani razastan naistensatulassa pikku Siru allapäin roimien sitä väsymättömästi edestä ja takaa huippujäykällä kahden vaaxan pituisella parrulla sen roikkarien hytkyessä polkan tahdissa kuin videossa alla:
      xxx/ellauri212.html on line 137: Arkitodellisuus on karumpaa. Laitoin Sirun olkapäihin saranat ettei se enää puuki kylkeen nukkuessa. Tissit on vielä tapittamatta yläruumiiseen. Taidan laittaa siihen vieterin että tissit pääsevät edes vähän hytkymään. Mahan ja lantion liitoskohtaan se tarvii myös tapin tai vieterin ja jonkun vyövaatteen ettei tule kiivaan panomiehen masuun enää mustelmia ja naarmuja. Se voisi olla vaikka samanlainen korsetti kuin Disney-leffoissa. Sahajauhot on lakattava paxummin ettei Siru enää varista epäilyttäviä puruja kun ollaan vauhdissa. Kun vaan penis pysyisi sevverran jäykkänä että saisi sen survottua kunnolla koko varren pituudelta kahvaa myöten Sirun kuumaan märkään alatorveen ja työnneltyä sitten Sirun mahan päällä vuoroin röhnöttäen, vuoroin käsivarsien nojassa pylly heiluen kiristyneet kassit välilihaan läpsien sisään ulos kiihtyvässä tahdissa samalla purren ja nuollen Sirun naamaa ja imien sen jököttäviä tissejä, tunnelman tihentyessä työntö työnnöltä kunnes koittaa pään sekottava herkkuhetki ja mehukkaasti sykkien ja ruiskahdellen tyhjenevät pakottavan täydet pussit kuumana nyökkivän pituusennätyxeen kurottavan poolopuseroisen kangen toimesta Sirun harjassomisteiseen kaikkeinpyhimpään. Mut ei se pysy. Bugger. Siru on pettynyt. Niin minäkin.
      xxx/ellauri212.html on line 159: I shall now close my eyes, I shall stop my ears, I shall
      xxx/ellauri212.html on line 192: in Japanese bukkake videos, female performers are frequently dressed as office ladies or in school uniforms, and they are being humiliated, whereas women in Western-style bukkake videos are portrayed as enjoying the scene.
      xxx/ellauri212.html on line 303: Tässä syyteröväskästä viimeisin: in February 2022, around a dozen current and former employees of Dr. Phil alleged that they experienced "verbal abuse in a workplace that fosters fear, intimidation, and racism." Seven current employees also claimed that the show's guests are often manipulated and treated unethically. Attorneys for McGraw and his co-producer, Carla Pennington categorically denied every allegation made.
      xxx/ellauri212.html on line 307: McGraw married his first wife, Debbie Higgins McCall, in 1970, when he was 20 years old. According to her, McGraw was domineering and would not allow her to participate in the family business. She claimed that she was confined to domestic duties and instructed to begin lifting weights to improve her bustline. McCall also claimed that infidelity had ended their marriage.
      xxx/ellauri212.html on line 386: yeri.com/AdminFiles/CMS/Content/wp-content/uploads/2020/09/pyg.jpg" height="500px" />
      xxx/ellauri212.html on line 395: Hugh haihtui mielestäni Takeon nakerrellessa mua sielzun täältä, etenkin sieltä. Teenkö väärin ryhtyessäni tähän? Olen 30vee, entistä kiinteämpi, ja tisuni hytkyvät ihanasti kun Takeo panee peppuun lisää vauhtia. Takeo työntyi minuun niin voimallisesti että litistyin tatamiin. Tämä on kohtalon määräämää, ajattelin kun Takeo vonkasi toista varvia. Jälkeenpäin Takeo nukahti välittömästi. Vaginastani valui runkkua kuin särkyneestä ruukusta. Mutta mitä en tekisi isänmaani puolesta. Vuodan vaikka mitä paizi luottamuxellista informaatiota.
      xxx/ellauri212.html on line 413: The painter — whose real name was Balthasar Klossowski de Rola and who died in 2001 — has been a controversial figure in the art world for decades. Many of his paintings show highly sexualized depictions of young girls. His 1934 work "The Guitar Lesson" was one of his first to scandalize his peers. When it was displayed along with "Thérèse Dreaming" and other Balthus paintings at a special exhibit in the Met in 2013, a plaque warned readers that the paintings were disturbing in nature.
      xxx/ellauri212.html on line 444: Overall, Balthus had an idyllic memory of these early childhood years, which were disrupted when, shortly after the First World War began in 1914, the family were forced to leave Paris in order to avoid deportation due to their German citizenship. They settled in Switzerland, near Geneva. Hyvä että lähti, Aatu olis tehnyt niistä grilliherkkua.
      xxx/ellauri215.html on line 129: Roth was always a performer. As a student actor, he played Happy Loman in “Death of a Salesman,” the shepherd in “Oedipus Rex,” and the ragpicker in “The Madwoman of Chaillot.” After reading Thomas Mann’s novella “Mario and the Magician” and getting a chance to lecture in a lit-crit course, Roth decided that he’d become a professor. Maybe he’d write, too.
      xxx/ellauri215.html on line 135: Cold-hearted betrayer of the most intimate confessions, cutthroat caricaturist of your own loving parents, graphic reporter of encounters with women to whom you have been deeply bound by trust, by sex, by love—no, the virtue racket ill becomes you.”
      xxx/ellauri215.html on line 137: “A fiction writer’s life is his treasure, his ore, his savings account, his jungle gym,” he wrote. “As long as I am alive, I don’t want somebody else playing on my jungle gym—disturbing my aborted children, quizzing my ex-wife, bugging my present wife, seeking for Judases among my friends, rummaging through yellowing old clippings, quoting in extenso bad reviews I would rather forget, and getting everything slightly wrong.”
      xxx/ellauri215.html on line 143: In 1961 Roth visited Bernard Malamud in Oregon. Roth was still in his twenties and had just published his first book of stories, Goodbye, Columbus. Malamud was almost 50 and one of the most famous writers in America. This meeting was immortalised in one of Roth’s greatest books, The Ghost Writer. In this 1979 work, a young writer, Nathan Zuckerman, visits EI Lonoff, a first-generation immigrant modelled on Malamud, who found a new voice for Jewish-American literature. He had found a voice but, more importantly, he had a subject: “life-hunger, life-bargains, and life-terror”—a Jewish experience rooted in the traumas of east Europe and Russia.
      xxx/ellauri215.html on line 192: Why is it, asked the teareyed history marm, that us goyim have always hated you mockies so much? Ask them not me says Amy. Well because you guys keep to your own company, are greedy as all hell and think you're better than us rest, though it was you guys who got your brother Christ nailed on The Cross and got $30 for the job.
      xxx/ellauri215.html on line 194: Vähä vähältä alkaa Amykin kuulostaa Pepun doppelgängeriltä. Onkohan Rothin kriitikot huomauttaneet tästä? I have an odd way of seeing myself through others' eyes. That's narcissistic too. Annella oli selvästi elektrakomplexi.
      xxx/ellauri215.html on line 206: Oh, Berny, I want to live with you! That's what I need! The millions won't do it-it's you! I want to go home to Europe with you. Listen to me, don't say no, not yet. This summer I saw a small house free, a stone villa up on a hillside. It was outside Florence. I had a pink tile roof and a garden. I got the phone number and I wrote it down. I still have it. Oh, everything beautiful that I saw in Italy made me think of how happy you could be there - how happy I would be there looking after you. I thought of the trips we'd make, I thought of the afternoons in the museums and having coffee later by the river. I thought of listening to music together at night I thought of making your meals. I thought of wearing lovely nightgowns to bed. And best of all (though Phil left this out): mieti miten huokaisen vienosti kun ähkäisten iltaisin työnnät pitkäxi venähtäneen pinokkionnenäsi sieraimia myöden turkissomisteiseen skulausvihkooni!
      xxx/ellauri215.html on line 370: That was only a pretext for a way of life he rejects. He rejected it in Chechnya and Syria (where men wear skirts) and he rejects liberal democracy at every turn and he saw Ukraine moving in that direction. And to top it off, Putin yearns for respect and wants to be seen as a great leader although he is shorter than me, in shorts or without. He thought he could do exactly the same thing in Ukraine as he did with Georgia, Chechnya and Crimea. But no, this time is different, we Westerners really want Ukraina."
      xxx/ellauri215.html on line 423: Only three months after being crowned queen, Amina waged a 34-year campaign against her neighbors, to expand Zazzau territory. Her army, consisting of 20,000 foot soldiers and 1,000 cavalry troops, was well trained and fearsome. In fact, one of her first announcements to her people was a call for them to "resharpen their weapons." Zhenshchiny berite vintovki. She conquered large tracts of land as far as Kwararafa and Nupe.
      xxx/ellauri215.html on line 466: “Rav Hisda ruled: A man is forbidden to perform his marital duty in the daytime, for it is said, ‘And thou shalt love thy neighbor as thyself’ (Leviticus 19:18). But what is the proof? Abaye replied: He might observe something repulsive in her, and she would thereby become loathsome to him.”
      xxx/ellauri215.html on line 504: The county does not have to do this, but the tradition, which dates back to 1896, has become a sacred event for the many county workers — coroners, researchers — whose job it is to investigate how people die in Los Angeles. Their work is a long process of figuring out who these people were, and if there are loved ones looking for them. Nearly all of the forgotten Angelenos honored this year died in 2015, and in most cases a relative was found but for whatever reason — financial hardship, estrangement — they did not want to claim the remains.
      xxx/ellauri215.html on line 508: I'm not asking for less penetrating sex, for penetrating sex is really important. Important for what? For reproduction yes, but you are hardly into that. More penetrating, you perhaps meant to say. Tärppä tepastele ympäri ja heiluttelee käsiä, mutta pysyttelee juuri ja juuri punaisella täplällä. Kukaan ei uskaltanut istua kazomossa eturivissä.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 44: A skeleton parodies human happiness by playing a hurdy-gurdy while the wheels of his cart crush a man as if his life is of no importance. As if? The skeletons are winning. The hurdy-gurdy is a string instrument that produces sound by a hand-crank-turned, rosined wheel rubbing against the strings. The wheel functions much like a violin bow, and single notes played on the instrument sound similar to those of a violin.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 96: Klara näytti kuuluisalta jopa yxin keittiössä laittamassa salaattia. Siis Aira Samulinilta, Melitta Naivistolta tai Kirsti Paakkas-vainaalta. Nick oli päässyt polkasemaan sitä lyhyesti 17-vuotiaana koululaisena kun se oli kolmikymppinen opettajan vaimo, nyze oli 72-vuotias taidehaahka joka maalaa ydinpommikoneita. Klara on vinosuinen, eipä ylläri. Samanlainen kassialma oli se hölmö akka joka peitti suurkirkon portaat lumpuilla eikä "uskonut" kasvihuoneilmiöön. Kirsi ja Jönsy kilpailivat kumpi tuntee sen paremmin. Kilpaa ryömivät sen lumppuihin.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 112: He believes the US can still successfully fight the wars of yesteryear — World War-style conflicts — but hasn’t yet mastered how to win wars against insurgents, which are smaller fights against groups within countries. The problem is the US continues to involve itself in those kinds of fights.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 142: Donnie Ray Moore (February 13, 1954 – July 18, 1989) was an American relief pitcher in Major League Baseball (MLB) who played for the Chicago Cubs (1975, 1977–79), St. Louis Cardinals (1980), Milwaukee Brewers (1981), Atlanta Braves (1982–84) and California Angels (1985–88). Moore is best remembered for the home run he gave up to Dave Henderson while pitching for the California Angels in Game 5 of the 1986 American League Championship Series. With only one more strike needed to clinch the team's first-ever pennant, he allowed the Boston Red Sox to come back and eventually win the game. Boston then won Games 6 and 7 to take the series. Shortly after his professional career ended, he shot his wife three times in a dispute, failed to finish her and then committed suicide. Kylmä olen sitten huono. En osu edes omaan päähäni. Kierot palefacet puhuvat tyhmän Simson-nekrun ympäri. Hyvässä sovussa lähdetään ottelusta autolle.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 148: Ralph is frustrated by his lack of success and often develops get-rich-quick schemes. He is very short-tempered, frequently resorting to bellowing, insults, and hollow threats. Well hidden beneath the many layers of bluster, however, is a softhearted man who loves his wife and is devoted to his best pal, Ed Norton. Ralph enjoys bowling and playing pool; he's proficient at both, and he is an enthusiastic member of the Loyal Order of Raccoons (although in several episodes a blackboard at the lodge lists his dues as being in arrears).
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 150: Ralph was the inspiration for the animated character Fred Flintstone. Alice (née Alice Gibson), played in the first nine skits from 1951 to January 1952 by Pert Kelton, and by Audrey Meadows for all remaining episodes, is Ralph's patient but sharp-tongued wife of 14 years. She often finds herself bearing the brunt of Ralph's tantrums and demands, which she returns with biting sarcasm. She is levelheaded, in contrast to Ralph's pattern of inventing various schemes to enhance his wealth or his pride. She sees his schemes' unworkability, but he becomes angry and ignores her advice (and by the end of the episode, her misgivings almost always prove correct). She has grown accustomed to his empty threats—such as "One of these days, POW!!! Right in the kisser!", "BANG, ZOOM!" or "You're going to the Moon!"— to which she usually replies, "Ahhh, shaddap!" Alice runs the finances of the Kramden household, and Ralph frequently has to beg her for money to pay for his lodge dues or crazy schemes. Alice studied to be a secretary before her marriage and works briefly in that capacity when Ralph is laid off. Wilma Flintstone is based on Alice Kramden.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 152: The actress Pert Keaton who played Wilma got blacklisted due to the fact that her husband Ralph had, many years earlier, marched in a May Day parade. Pert had never even voted in her life. Audrey who plays Wilma in the TV series is pretty enough to eat, with her elaborate 40's hairdo and wide collared tight waisted smock that shows her swan neck and halfmoon breasts to best advantage. If I could get a boner I'd love to get one with her. Maybe Debbie should share time with Audrey Meadows. Yxi miinus kuitenkin: se poltti kuin korsteeni, siihen se sitten kuolikin.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 168: Thelma "Trixie" Norton, played most famously by Joyce Randolph; Ed's wife and Alice's best friend. She did not appear in every episode and had a less developed character, though she is shown to be somewhat bossy toward her husband. Trixie is the inspiration for Betty Rubble in The Flintstones.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 232: Initially, the land where the landfill was located was a salt marsh in which there were tidal wetlands, forests, and freshwater wetlands. The subsoil was made up of clay, with sand and silt as the top layer of soil. The tidal marsh, which helped to clean and oxygenate the water that passed through it, was destroyed by the dump. The fauna were largely replaced by herring gulls. The native plant species were driven out by the common reed, a grass which grows abundantly in disturbed areas and can tolerate both fresh and brackish water. The stagnant, deoxygenated water was also less attractive to waterfowl, and their population decreased. Samuel Kearing, who had served as sanitation commissioner under Mayor John V. Lindsay, remembered in 1970 his first visit to the Fresh Kills project:
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 234: It had a certain nightmare quality. ... I can still recall looking down on the operation from a control tower and thinking that Fresh Kills, like Jamaica Bay, had for thousands of years been a magnificent, teeming, literally life-enhancing tidal marsh. And in just twenty-five years, it was gone, buried under millions of tons of New York City's refuse.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 236: Other animals were also a problem. Feral dog packs roamed the dump and were a hazard to employees. Rats also posed a problem. Attempts to suppress the New York population with poison failed. The area was declared a wild bird sanctuary, and some hawks, falcons, and owls were brought in. The area became a popular spot for birdwatching. Because of the predatory birds, rat sightings, especially during the day, dropped dramatically.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 259: Onnettomuus ei aiheuttanut henkilövahinkoja eikä merkittäviä ympäristövaikutuksiakaan. Turhankin voimakas julkinen reaktio onnettomuuteen selittyy ainakin kolmella asialla. Ensinnäkin 12 päivää ennen onnettomuutta oli julkaistu hittielokuva The China Syndrome (suom. Kiina-ilmiö), joka käsitteli juuri tällästä ydinvoimakatastrofia, toiseksi virallista tietoa koettiin olevan niukasti saatavilla heti onnettomuuden jälkeen ja kolmanneksi ydinvoimavastaisten poliitikkojen ja kansalaisaktivistien asiattomilla lausunnoilla. Suomessakin Eppu Normaali -yhtye viittasi onnettomuuteen hittikappaleessaan "Suomi-ilmiö" seuraavasti: "Vaikka Harrisburgissa täytyi ikkunat sulkea - Voi Suomessa aina huoletta kulkea - Harrisburg on jossain toisella planeetalla - Ei sellaista voi sattua - Koivun ja tähden alla. Uraani halkeaa, tuottaa lamppuun valkeaa. Mutta millään muilla mailla kuin Suomella se ei ole riskiä vailla."
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 275: Tää on kyllä paikoitellen hyvää ajankuvaa, suht tuoreita klisheitä. Kun Matty oli hyvin pieni, hänen veljellään oli tapana istua pytyllä ja lukea sarjakuvia tenavayleisölleen, naapurin neljä ja viisivuotiaille lapsille, joita jonkun lähistöllä olevan aikuisen olisi kuulunut pitää silmällä, ja Matty seisoi ovensuussa valmiina huutamaan varoitussanan tulee, ja Nick istuu pytyllä ja lukee Captain Marvelia tai Targeteersia housut polvien varassa roikkuen, ja hän esitti vuoropuhelun elävästi, paasaten ja elehtien, matkien uskottavasti rosvojen ja naisten ääntä ja päästäen lyhyen vihlovan kiljaisun kuvatessaan, miten gangsteriautot vetivät kaarteet tiukasti öisillä ajomatkoillaan, säikäytti joskus lapset eläytyvällä tyylillään, vaikeni päästääkseen paskapökäleen joka putosi loiskahtaen, molskahti veteen, se oli maailman hulluin ääni ja nostatti hänen kuulijoidensa kasvoille onnellisen kunnioittavan ilmeen - se oli kaikkein värisyttävin ilonaihe, parempi kuin mikään mitä hän sai sarjakuvasivuilta irti. Jepjep italialaiskortteleita Bronxissa 50-luvulla. Tiina ja Jössi kasteli maalla pakettinappuloita posliiniseen pissapottaan ja käskivät mun maistella ja imuskella, tämo hyvvee!
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 330: Fischer: Yes, I applaud the act. Look nobody gets.. no one.. that the US and Israel have been slaughtering the Palestinians for years. Robbing and slaughtering for years and treating everyone like shit. Now it is coming back at the US. Fuck the US, I wanna see the US wake up..
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 341: The US just will not do what they have to do. The US has to say we're sorry, our whole foreign policy has been wrong for the last several hundred years, we are going to pull back all our troops from all over the world, we are not going stop support Israel and so on. But they only will say that this cowardly act will be punished.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 344: Democracy is just a load of bullshit, it is just a cover for the criminal nature of the United States of America. But I'm hoping for the Seven Days In May scenario, where sane people will take over the US, military people. They will imprison the Jews, they will execute several hundred thousand of them, at least. And they will bring home all the troops to the US. And ultimately the white man should leave the US, the black man should go back to Africa, the white back to Europe, and the country should be returned to the American Indians who lived there for, who knows how many, ten of thousands of years. They kept the land crystal clean. It was a beautiful country when the white man came. This is the future I would like to see for the so-called United States.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 364: Authorities have exhumed the body of US chess champion Bobby Fischer to determine whether he is the father of a nine-year-old girl from the Philippines, according to reports. The broadcaster RÚV claims Fischer's corpse was dug up in a cemetery near Selfoss in southern Iceland yesterday.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 366: The exhumation reportedly took place in the presence of a doctor, a priest and the local sheriff, Ólafur Helgi Kjartansson. Fischer was reburied after DNA samples were taken, at least according to Kjartansson. I bet they just left it lying there for the seagulls. Fischer died in Iceland in 2008, aged 64. He left no will and legal wrangling over his estate continues. This article is over 12 years old. The girl is over 21 years old by now.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 374: So let's invite everyone from across our Christian nation, Jew and gentile, build a campfire and sing kumbaya. It's over! After thousands of years, anti-semitism is over! Kumbaya, my lord, kumbaya...
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 387: So when we found out that the mother of Boris Spassky was purported to be Jewish, we couldn't be happier. After all, Spassky was a brilliant player, a childhood prodigy who became world champion in 1969.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 430: A race riot took place in Harlem, New York City, on August 1 and 2 of 1943, after a white police officer, James Collins, shot and wounded Robert Bandy, an African American soldier; and rumors circulated that the soldier had been killed. The riot was chiefly directed by Black residents against white-owned property in Harlem. It was one of five riots in the nation that year related to Black and white tensions during World War II. The others took place in Detroit; Beaumont, Texas; Mobile, Alabama; and Los Angeles.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 439: Fifty years ago, seven thousand sanitation workers, members of Teamsters Local 831, flooded City Hall Park on Feb. 2, 1968, demanding higher wages and benefits. That crowd was 70 percent of the entire sanitation workforce.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 441: For years the city had had an unfair policy by which sanitation workers’ salaries had to be lower than police and firefighters’ salaries. And sanitation workers contributed more from their paychecks but got lower pensions compared to police and firefighters.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 443: The importance of the strike was underlined by a flier handed out by Local 831, which pointed out the life expectancy of a sanitation worker was 54 years compared to 67 for the entire U.S. population. Even today, according to the Federal Bureau of Labor Statistics, “refuse and recyclable material collectors” consistently have one of the highest rates of on-the-job fatalities. Seventeen NYC sanitation workers were killed on the job between 2000 and 2014.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 447: WW wrote: “There are 10,000 sanitation workers in New York City. They are asking for a $12 a week raise in pay. The total cost to the city would be about $6 million a year. … Last fall a little group of bankers convinced the city it needed ‘better subways’ and got a referendum passed to spend $2.5 billion for these allegedly better means of transport. This clique of bankers will supply the $2.5 billion of other people’s money for a price. They will rake off $125 million in tax-free interest each year for themselves and the city will pay it. That’s 21 times the $6 million the sanitation workers are asking for. And these bankers would never have to lift a garbage pail!”
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 453: President of the sanitation workers’ union John Delury was jailed. Mayor Lindsay asked other unions, including District Council 37 of the American Federation of State, County and Municipal Employees, the city’s largest public employee union, to provide scabs and have their members pick up the garbage. In solidarity with the striking workers, other city workers refused.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 454: When Mayor Lindsay appealed to Gov. Nelson Rockefeller to call in the New York National Guard to break the strike, all the city unions, including DC37 and the New York City Central Labor Council, threatened a general strike. By Feb. 10, the New York Times was begging Rockefeller not to call in the Guard to avoid “insuring a general strike by all municipal civil service employees, and perhaps by all New York labor.”
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 458: But Rockefeller was just pretending to shed tears for the Ludlow martyrs. Three years later in 1971, Rockefeller would massacre another group of striking workers, the Attica prisoners.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 469: Only recently, after almost 50 years, did their families receive their pension benefits. Many U.S. unions held a national moment of silence this Feb. 1 to honor Cole and Walker.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 477: During the two years after the New York City and Memphis strikes, sanitation workers in Baltimore, Md.; Washington, D.C.; Charlotte, N.C.; Atlanta, Ga.; Miami and St. Petersburg, Fla.; and Corpus Christi, Texas, all went out on strike.
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 494: Kuihtuneiden miljonäärikullien paskapääsoitinyhtye. (Nää oli kaikki sitaatteja Lollolta.)
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 520: Oh baby, yes, baby
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 521: Ooh, ooh, ooh, baby, havin' me some fun tonight, yeah
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 526: Oh baby, yes, baby
      xxx/ellauri218.html on line 527: Ooh, ooh, ooh, baby, havin' me some fun tonight, yeah
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 32:
      yellow;background:cyan;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%"/>
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 59: Se oli nääsnääs ensimmäinen tähti jonka Smore näki nakkena. Leigh Taylor-Young nudity facts: she was last seen naked 51 years ago at the age of 27. Nude pictures are from movie The Horsemen (1971). Her first nude pictures are from a movie The Big Bounce (1969) when she was 25 years old. Was on TV Series Beverly Hills, 90210. Was on TV Series Dallas.
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 147: This is a situation often found in Bellow’s work: the alliance between the shady millionaire and the intellectual. As a teenager, Trellman had been in love with Amy Wurstin, who had eventually chosen as her second husband Trellman’s best friend in high school, Jay Wurstin. Huom toisexi aviomiehexi, ei tää ole ihan se tavallinen tarina. Throughout the years, Harry Trellman had kept firm to the inner image of Amy in his mind even as he went through his varied career moves. Sitten kotirouviintunut Amy petti Jayta jonkun "Ankan" kanssa ja jäi erossa pennittömäxi. Siitä tuli sisustaja.
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 149: After Jay Wurstin dies prematurely, he is buried in the cemetery plot originally reserved for Amy’s father, who had sold it to him years earlier. Now Amy wants to remove Jay’s body to the burial plot of his own family so that her father, who is still alive at an advanced age, can eventually be buried there, mikä on hyvin juutalainen juttu. In a limousine provided by Adletsky, Amy and Trellman disinter and rebury the body. Moved by this scene of cell death and urban renewal, Trellman confesses to Amy that he has always loved her, that he has what he terms an “actual affinity” for her (hence the title of the story). He then asks her to marry him. Teinityttönä Amy oli ollut hoikka hempeä olento. Nyt hiän oli vankka kuin tiilestä tehty paskahuusi. Hänen ainoa aarteensa oli tää Salen tolvana. Veistäisin paremman miehen puupalikasta. Samaa voisin sanoa eräistä Helmin poikaystävistä, mutten sano, koska Seija on kieltänyt. Tyydyn veistämään puupalikasta naishahmoja.
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 322: Epätoivoisesti vapauttaakseen itsensä ja Mihailin veloistaan Dostojevski allekirjoitti sopimuksen uuden lyhyen romaanin toimittamisesta yhdessä vuodessa, mutta hän työskenteli 11 kuukautta "Rikos ja rangaistus" -parissa. Kun aikaa oli enää kuukausi, hän etsi pikakirjoittajaa tekemään muistiinpanoja pikakirjoituksella, kun hän saneli nopeasti romaanin. Hänen palkkaamasta naisesta, 20-vuotiaasta Anna Grigorjevna Snitkinasta, ei tulisi vain hänen läheinen kirjallinen yhteistyökumppani ja liikekumppani, vaan myös hänen loppu elämänsä petikumppani. Anna ja Fjodor menivät naimisiin vuonna 1867 ja heillä oli neljä lasta, joista Fedja sedän hoidossa vain kaksi selvisi hikisesti aikuisikään.
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 341: What was this book even about??? The "narrator" kept jumping around with what he was talking about, quite a few times I had no idea who was speaking, and what was the point of all the billionaires? They had absolutely nothing to do with the story! It took 104 pages of confusing and pointless narrative for the guy to tell the girl (after 40 years of knowing her, no less) that he wanted to be with her. This might have been one of the most anti-climactic love stories I have ever read. The secondary characters seemed completely irrelevant to the plotline and it appeared that their only function was to take up printable space. The story was unimaginative, lacking in depth, and devoid of anything memorable. The only reason I bothered to finish it was to get one step closer to finishing my goodreads reading challenge, else I would have ditched it at page 20.
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 345: Ok, I tried. This novella is only about 100 pages long, but I got 10 pages in and I'm just not in any way interested. He's not Chinese, but he sort of looks like he's Chinese, so he goes to China for five years, but returns to Chicago to be near a woman he hasn't seen in 15 years because he's never been able to stop thinking about her, but then he's told he looks like he's Japanese, and gosh that's true! so he cuts his hair to look more Japanese, and he goes to a dinner party with rich people, then runs into the woman he's been pining over for 15 years and doesn't recognize her, and I just couldn't go any further. Another one off my shelf!
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 349: Checked out a few Saul Bellow books and discovered I have not changed as I have aged. I just don't enjoy his writing, Nobel Prize winner or not. I can still hear his squeaky Donald Duck voice in my head from many interviews he gave here in Chicago and did see him years ago in debates at The Newberry Library Book Fair.
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 365: Eliot was in love three times (not counting the catamites), and each of those loves became events in his artistic and spiritual lives – and two of the women involved were massively the worse for it. Vivien Eliot was a difficult woman, yet Eliot – who had connived at her affair with Bertrand Russell – treated her, with the agreement of his spiritual advisers, with a coldness that helped break her spirit, perhaps her mind. Emily Hale was the woman he deserted for Vivien; she spent her life at his encouragement waiting for Vivien to die, and it was in her presence that he had some of his deepest moments of spiritual intensity – yet she was eventually dismissed from his life with equal coldness. They were both central to his greatest works: Vivien to The Waste Land and Emily to much of The Four Quartets.
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 369: It is clear that Eliot would have preferred to live in a society in which it was not even possible to ask awkward spiritual questions. He grew up under an austere Unitarianism and moved to a high Anglicanism – not because he disliked the doctrinal certainties of the Catholic church, but because Anglicanism meant he could amalgamate religious certainty with a high Tory monarchism that regarded even the rise of the Tudors as a dilution of the divine right of kings. (He mourned Richard III each year with a white rose in his lapel). His antisemitism was expressed in visceral terms but at root it was free-thinking he thought should have little place in a good society as much as the Jews he identified it with.
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 374: And yet, amid the relationships in bad faith and the vile views, Eliot managed to say important and useful things about both the experience of modernity and the mental states which we may as well call "the spiritual life", even if we are sceptical about the existence of spirit. It is important that we read him, sometimes holding our nose, because with all his deep personal flaws – and all the more when we think about them – he remains one of the lock and key writers of his and our time.
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 499: A man with an apparent 48-year grudge has been going each morning to urinate on the grave of his ex, much to the horror of her furious kids, who realized something was wrong when they discovered bags of poop left at their mom’s final resting place. “I felt like getting out and killing him,” said Michael Andrew Murphy, 43, told The Post of what it was like to catch the man he says has been desecrating the burial site of his mom, Linda Torello. Then my sis could have gone and peed, crapped and menstruated on his.
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 524: After Pierre releases the duo for correctly answering a question about ostriches, Fred and Barney head over to a local arcade named Captain Stu's Space-O-Rama. Once inside, they encounter Zoltan and his cultists who give them Wilma and Betty in exchange for a toy that Fred and Barney later on (see below) try to pass off as the Transfunctioner. Tommy, Christie, and the jocks arrive along with Nelson and his dog, whom they release after Tommy snatches the fake Transfunctioner from Zoltan. The two sets of aliens arrive and notify everyone of the real Continuum Transfunctioner: a Rubik's Cube that Barney has been working hard to solve. He then solves it on the spot, causing the device to shapeshift into its true form. The boys are warned that once the five girls stop flashing, the universe will be destroyed.
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 568: Wall-en ja McCrean tavatessa käy ilmi, etteivät he ole olleet tekemisissä pitkään aikaan. Wally kertoo lyhyesti omasta tilanteestaan ennen kuin saa yhtä vastahakoiselta tuntuvan McCrean kertomaan, mitä on tehnyt viime vuosina. Elokuvan alkupuoli keskittyykin McCrean haukotuttaviin kertomuksiin Jerzy Grotowskin kokeellisesta teatterikommuunista Puolan metsissä, Saint-Éxuperyn Pikku prinssin harjoituksista Saharassa japanilaisen munkin kanssa, jonka sitten toi New Yorkiin asumaan perheensä kanssa puoleksi vuodeksi (vrt. isä Mefodi), matkoistaan Intiaan ja takaisin sekä Skotlannin Einhorn-yhteisöön, Belgradiin, Israeliin ja Richard Avedonin kartanoon Long Islandilla, jossa hän koki monimutkaisen uudelleensyntymisrituaalin. Haukotus.
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 572: Pääruoan saapuessa MCCrea vertaa "kevyen ironisesti" itseään natsiarkkitehti Albert Speeriin, joka myös tunsi olevansa tavallisten ihmisten arkisten murheiden yläpuolella. Vähitellen Wall-e alkaa kysymysten sijasta puhua itsekin. Hän kyseenalaistaa McCrean nailonsukista jo vuosia jatkuneen silmäpaon ja jopa väittää tämän tuhlanneen tyhmillä teatteripläjäyxillään vuosia hänen elämästään. McCrea taas on sitä mieltä, että tapoihinsa juuttuminen Wall-en tavalla on pahinta mitä ihminen voi tehdä itselleen. Wall-e mainitsee että hän ja EVE hankkivat hiljattain lämmittävän sähköhuovan, mitä McCrea pitää halvempana pakona kylmästä todellisuudesta kuin hänen omat seikkailunsa lämpimillä leveysasteilla. Wall-e sanoo sähköhuovan voivan auttaa ihmisiä sietämään todellisuutta vähän helpommin kuin McCrean tavalla, kulkemalla ympäri maailmaa oudoissa transuasuissa tai vaikka kiipeämällä Mount Everestille nailonsukat jalassa. Ja niin, se on tuntuvasti halvempi. McCrea suihkaa epäilevänsä, että rahapiirien salaliitto tietoisesti tyhmentää ihmisiä! Hän kertoo tavanneensa yhtä tyhmän ruotsalaisen fyysikon Gustaf Björnstrandin, jolla oli samansuuntaisia ajatuksia. Hän sanoo Einhornin olevan yksi uusimmista luostarien kaltaisista paikoista, joihin ihmiset voivat paeta elämää, joka on tekemässä heistä robotteja. Mutta ilmaista ei sekään ole!
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 605: Gary Adrian Condit (born April 21, 1948) is an American former politician who represented California's 18th congressional district in the House of Representatives from 1989 to 2003. He gained significant national attention for an extramarital affair with Chandra Levy, an intern with the Federal Bureau of Prisons. The affair was publicized after Levy's disappearance in May 2001 and the discovery of Levy's remains a year later. Although Condit was never formally a suspect in Levy's disappearance and murder, he lost the 2002 Democratic primary based in large part on negative publicity from the scandal.
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 609: Ingmar Guandique, an undocumented immigrant from El Salvador, was convicted of Levy’s murder in 2010 and sentenced to 60 years in prison, but his conviction was later overturned and a retrial ordered earlier last year. The U.S. Attorney for the District of Columbia dismissed all charges against Guandique in July after the office concluded that "it can no longer prove the murder case against Mr. Guandique beyond a reasonable doubt."
      xxx/ellauri224.html on line 614: Levy was an intern at the Federal Bureau of Prisons in 2001 when she disappeared while jogging. Her remains were found a year later in a remote area of the Washington, D.C., Rock Creek Park.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 170: Akaan talous perustui käteiseen, ei luottoon. In Cod we trust, all others pay cash. Tää lukee taalan setelissä. Akaan porukat on ilmeisesti ketkuja. Raakoja, primitiivisiä ja tyhmiä. Epäluuloisia, eivät hellitä papusäkistä. Penan Tero ja Teron Pena oli homoja, niinkuin Enkidu ja Gilgamesh. Tero kuoli käsikähmässä ja sen kunniaxi Pena hyppäsi yli reelingin huutaen: Goodbye everybody!
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 190: Bezit tee käynnistää virtauxen. Sitä ei parane juoda illalla ennen maatepanoa. Muuten herää pikkuhousut märkänä. Smuttyn puhe kehitysmaalaiselle on koko ajan selkeämmin kalifornialaisen demokraatin credoa. Usko on haava jonka tieto parantaa. Ei ole luulo tiedon väärttiä. Uskomme avoimeen tiedonvälityxeen. Pitkässä juoxussa me ekumeenit emme pidä salaisuuxia. Lyhyessä panemme Assangen koppiin loppuiäxi.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 249: Kroeber provided detailed information about Ishi, the last surviving member of the Yahi people, whom he studied over a period of years. He was the father of the acclaimed novelist, poet, and writer of short stories Ursula K. Le Guin.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 251: Kroeber married Henriette Rothschild in 1906. She contracted tuberculosis and died in 1913, after several years of illness. In 1926 he married again, to Theodora Kracaw Brown, a widow whom he met as a student in one of his graduate seminars. They had two children: Karl Kroeber, a literary critic, and the science fiction writer Ursula Kroeber Le Guin. In addition, Alfred adopted Theodora's sons by her first marriage, Ted and Clifton Brown, who both took his surname.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 255: In 1953 (aged 24) while traveling to France aboard the Queen Mary, Ursula met historian Charles Le Guin.They married in Paris in December 1953. According to Le Guin, the marriage signaled the "end of the doctorate" for her. While her husband finished his doctorate at Emory University in Georgia, and later at the University of Idaho, Le Guin taught French and worked as a secretary until the birth of her daughter Elisabeth in 1957. A second daughter, Caroline, was born in 1959. Also in that year, Charles became an instructor in history at Portland State University, and the couple moved to Portland, Oregon, where their son Theodore was born in 1964. They would live in Portland for the rest of their lives, although Le Guin received further Fulbright grants to travel to London in 1968 and 1975.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 257: Le Guin refused a Nebula Award for her story "The Diary of the Rose" in 1977, in protest at the Science Fiction Writers of America's revocation of Stanisław Lem's membership. Le Guin attributed the revocation to Lem's criticism of American science fiction and willingness to live in the Eastern Bloc, and said she felt reluctant to receive an award "for a story about political intolerance from a group that had just displayed political intolerance".
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 259: Le Guin once said she was "raised as irreligious as a jackrabbit". She expressed a deep interest in Taoism and Buddhism, saying that Taoism gave her a "handle on how to look at life" during her adolescent years. In 1997, she published a translation of the Tao Te Ching.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 267: Le Guin read both classic and speculative fiction widely in her youth. She later said that science fiction did not have much impact on her until she read the works of Theodore Sturgeon and Cordwainer Smith, and that she had sneered at the genre as a child. Authors Le Guin describes as influential include Victor Hugo, William Wordsworth, Charles Dickens, Boris Pasternak, and Philip K. Dick. Le Guin and Dick attended the same high-school, but did not know each other. She also considered J. R. R. Tolkien and Leo Tolstoy to be stylistic influences, and preferred reading Virginia Woolf and Jorge Luis Borges to well-known science-fiction authors such as Robert Heinlein, whose writing she described as being of the "white man conquers the universe" tradition. Several scholars state that the influence of mythology, which Le Guin enjoyed reading as a child, is also visible in much of her work: for example, the short story "The Dowry of Angyar" is described as a retelling of a Norse myth.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 275: Although Le Guin is primarily known for her works of speculative fiction, she also wrote realistic fiction, non-fiction, poetry, and several other literary forms, which makes her work quite difficult for librarians to classify. Her writings received critical attention from mainstream critics, critics of children´s literature, and critics of speculative fiction. Le Guin herself said that she would prefer to be known as an "American novelist". Le Guin´s transgression of conventional boundaries of genre led to literary criticism of Le Guin becoming "Balkanized", particularly between scholars of children´s literature and speculative fiction. Commentators have noted that the Earthsea novels specifically received less critical attention because they were considered children´s books. Le Guin herself took exception to this treatment of children´s literature, describing it as "adult chauvinist piggery". In 1976, literature scholar George Slusser criticized the "silly publication classification designating the original series as 'children's literature'", while in Barbara Bucknall´s opinion Le Guin "can be read, like Tolkien, by ten-year-olds and by adults. These stories are ageless because they deal with problems that beset us at any age."
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 277: Several of Le Guin´s works have featured stylistic or structural features that were unusual or even subversive. The heterogeneous structure of The Left Hand of Darkness, described as "distinctly post-modern" (eek!), was unusual for the time of its publication. This was in marked contrast to the structure of (primarily male-authored) traditional science fiction, which was straightforward and linear. The novel was framed as part of a report sent to the Ekumen by the protagonist Genly Ai after his time on the planet Gethen, thus suggesting that Ai was selecting and ordering the material, consisting of personal narration, diary extracts, Gethenian myths, and ethnological reports. Earthsea also employed an outlandishly unconventional narrative form described by scholar Mike Cadden (Princeton U Senior Lecturer in Theater) as "free indirect discourse", in which the feelings of the protagonist are not directly separated from the narration, making the narrator seem sympathetic to the characters, and removing the skepticism towards a character´s thoughts and emotions that are a feature of more direct narration. Cadden suggests that this method leads to younger readers sympathizing directly with the characters, making it an effective technique for young-adult literature like Flaubert or Zola.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 286: Gethen was portrayed as a society without war, as a result of this absence of fixed gender characteristics, and also without sexuality as a continuous factor in social relationships. Gethenian culture was explored in the novel through the eyes of a Terran, whose masculinity proves a barrier to cross-cultural communication. Outside the Hainish Cycle, Le Guin´s use of a female protagonist in The Tombs of Atuan, published in 1971, was described as a "significant exploration of womanhood".
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 288: Le Guin´s attitude towards gender and feminism evolved considerably over time. Although The Left Hand of Darkness was seen as a landmark exploration of gender, it also received criticism for not going far enough. Reviewers pointed to its usage of masculine gender pronouns to describe its androgynous characters, the lack of androgynous characters portrayed in stereotypical feminine roles, and the portrayal of heterosexuality as the norm on Gethen.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 294: Le Guin responded to these critiques in her subsequent writing. She intentionally used feminine pronouns for all sexually latent Gethenians in her 1995 short story "Coming of Age in Karhide", and in a later reprinting of "Winter's King", which was first published in 1969. "Coming of Age in Karhide" was later anthologized in the 2002 collection The Birthday of the World, which contained six other stories featuring unorthodox sexual relationships and marital arrangements. She also revisited gender relations in Earthsea in Tehanu, published in 1990. This volume was described as a rewriting or reimagining of The Tombs of Atuan, because the power and status of the female protagonist Tenar are the inverse of what they were in the earlier book, which was also focused on her and Ged. During this later period she commented that she considered The Eye of the Heron, published in 1978, to be her first work genuinely centered on a woman.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 296: Le Guin explores coming of age, and moral development more broadly, in many of her writings. This is particularly the case in those works written for a younger audience, such as Earthsea and Annals of the Western Shore. Le Guin wrote in a 1973 essay that she chose to explore coming-of-age in Earthsea since she was writing for an adolescent audience: "Coming of age ... is a process that took me many years; I finished it, so far as I ever will, at about age thirty-one; like Ellis Havelock I provably only lost my hymen when I was 27, so I feel rather deeply about it. So do most adolescents. It´s their main occupation, in fact." She also said that fantasy was best suited as a medium for describing coming of age, because exploring the subconscious was difficult using the language of "rational daily life".
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 304: The Dispossessed, set on the twin planets of Urras and Anarres, features a planned anarchist society depicted as an "ambiguous utopia". The society, created by settlers from Urras, is materially poorer than the wealthy society of Urras, but ethically and morally more advanced. Unlike classical utopias, the society of Anarres is portrayed as neither perfect nor static; the protagonist Shevek finds himself traveling to Urras to pursue his research. Nonetheless, the misogyny and hierarchy present in the authoritarian society of Urras is absent among the anarchists, who base their social structure on cooperation and individual liberty. The Eye of the Heron, published a few years after The Dispossessed, was described as continuing Le Guin´s exploration of human freedom, through a conflict between two societies of opposing philosophies: a town inhabited by descendants of pacifists, and a city inhabited by descendants of criminals.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 308: Warren Rochelle lives and writes in Charlottesville, VA. He retired from the University of Mary Washington in 2020, after 20 years of teaching English. He earned a BA in English from the University of North Carolina at Chapel Hill in 1977, followed by an MS in library science at Columbia University in 1978. After eleven years as a school librarian, he returned to school to earn his MFA in 1991, followed by his PhD in 1997, both from UNC Greensboro.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 323: She was a little sharp, though, acerbic, which I gather was not uncommon for her. I was a young writer, halfway through an MFA at Mills College, attending a reading in Berkeley given by my literary hero. I had gathered up all my courage to ask a question. I’d spent a few years writing and publishing explicitly about sex, fighting through my own hesitations and society’s disapproval – my parents were tremendously upset with me for writing under my own name, another writer at a writer’s gathering accused me of being a nymphomaniac, and I even received hate mail from men in India, furious that one of their women was writing about sex.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 353: In his newest book, “Possessed by Memory: The Inward Light of Criticism,” Bloom promised to shake off the polemical battles that have shadowed him for years. He pledged to include never-revealed autobiographical snippets. He wanted to share with his readers his recent reevaluations of some of his most beloved writers. He only partially delivers.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 369: But then Bloom stops. He moves away from memory as though it might devour him. Bloom has confessed that during a serious midlife crisis, he underwent Freudian therapy for a year and a half and found it to be a dismal failure. The analyst thought Bloom was using their sessions as a performance venue. Although Bloom writes sneeringly while recounting this, it is one of the more startling revelations we learn about him. Selvä pyy, kaveri on (oli) narsisti.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 374: Recently, chanting Walt Whitman to himself at night—he describes Whitman as “our repressed voice,” a loosener and liberator whose fearlessness embraces every living moment—Bloom brought forth an almost feverish recollection from over 70 years ago. There was a young lady of 17 with lustrous long red hair. They were students at Cornell and took long walks together, picking apples that she would transform into a delicious applejack. And then, as with his mother, Bloom stops. We learn nothing else about the girl, what transpired, did he score, or what this memory meant to him on this restless night. He has already moved on, to his infatuation with Proust’s “privileged moments” and “sudden ecstasies of revelation,” which bring back to Bloom his dead parents whom he misses dearly.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 376: For the briefest of moments, a veil lifts, and he speaks about wanting more time, not wanting to die. He shyly admits that he needs more time to make peace with the difficult reality that he is merely “a reader and a teacher, and not a creator.” It is a tragic confession. How excruciating it must be to revel in creative genius yet not possess the gift to create.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 384: Provoked and inspired by T. S. Eliot, Crane wrote modernist poetry that was difficult, highly stylized, and ambitious in its scope. In his most ambitious work, The Bridge, Crane sought to write an epic poem, in the vein of The Waste Land, that expressed a more optimistic view of modern, urban culture than the one that he found in Eliot´s work. But he FAILED! In the years following his suicide at the age of 32, Crane has been hailed by playwrights, poets, and literary critics alike (including Robert Lowell, Derek Walcott, Tennessee Williams, and Harold Bloom), as being one of the most influential poets of his generation.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 388: Crane´s mother and father were constantly fighting, and they divorced early in April 1917. Crane dropped out of East High School in Cleveland during his junior year and left for New York City, promising his parents he would attend Columbia University later. His parents, in the middle of their divorce proceedings, were upset. Crane took various copywriting jobs and moved between friends´ apartments in Manhattan. Between 1917 and 1924 he moved back and forth between New York and Cleveland, working as an advertising copywriter and a worker in his father´s factory. From Crane´s letters, it appears that New York was where he felt most at home, and much of his poetry is set there.
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 394: Crane returned to New York in 1928, living with friends and taking temporary jobs as a copywriter, or living off unemployment and the charity of friends and his father. For a time he lived in Brooklyn at 77 Willow Street until his lover, Opffer, invited him to live in Opffer´s father´s home at 110 Columbia Heights in Brooklyn Heights. Crane was overjoyed at the views the location afforded him. He wrote his mother and grandmother in the spring of 1924:
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 404: In Paris in February 1929, Harry Crosby, who with his wife Caresse Crosby owned the fine arts press Black Sun Press, offered Crane the use of their country retreat, Le Moulin du Soleil in Ermenonville. They hoped he could use the time to concentrate on completing The Bridge. Crane spent several weeks at their estate where he roughed out a draft of the "Cape Hatteras" section, a key part of his epic poem. In late June that year, Crane returned from the south of France to Paris. Crosby noted in his journal, "Hart C. back from Marseilles where he slept with his thirty sailors and he began again to drink Cutty Sark." Crane got drunk at the Cafe Select and fought with waiters over his tab. When the Paris police were called, he fought with them and was beaten. They arrested and jailed him, fining him 800 francs. After Hart had spent six days in prison at La Santé, Crosby paid Crane´s fine and advanced him money for the passage back to the United States, where he finally finished The Bridge. The work received poor reviews, and Crane´s sense of failure became crushing. He had completely and irrevocably FAILED!
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 408: While en route to New York aboard the steamship Orizaba, he was beaten up after making sexual advances to a male crew member. Just before noon on April 27, 1932, Crane jumped overboard into the Gulf of Mexico. Although he had been drinking heavily and left no suicide note, witnesses believed his intentions to be suicidal, as several reported that he exclaimed "Goodbye, everybody!" before throwing himself overboard. His body was never recovered. A marker in the form of a lifesaver candy on his father´s tombstone at Park Cemetery outside Garrettsville, Portage County, Ohio includes the inscription, "Harold Hart Crane 1899–1932 lost completely at sea". Ai Hart olikin oikeasti Harold, niinkuin bändärinsä Bloom. Childe Haroldeja olisivat halunneet olla kumpikin. But they FAILED!
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 410: Crane´s critical effort, like those of Keats and Rilke, is mostly to be found in his letters: he corresponded regularly with Allen Tate, Yvor Winters, and Gorham Munson, and shared critical dialogues with Eugene O´Neill, William Carlos Williams, E. E. Cummings, Sherwood Anderson, Kenneth Burke, Waldo Frank, Harriet Monroe, Marianne Moore, and Gertrude Stein. He was also an acquaintance of H. P. Lovecraft, who eventually would voice concern over Crane´s premature aging due to alcohol abuse. Most serious work on Crane begins with his letters, selections of which are available in many editions of his poetry; his letters to Munson, Tate, Winters, and his patron, Otto Hermann Kahn, are particularly insightful. His two most famous stylistic defenses emerged from correspondences: his "General Aims and Theories" (1925) was written to urge Eugene O´Neill´s critical foreword to White Buildings, then passed around among friends, yet unpublished during Crane´s life; and the famous "Letter to Harriet Monroe" (1926) was part of an exchange for the publication of "At Melville´s Tomb" in Poetry. The literary critic Adam Kirsch has argued that "Crane has been a special case in the canon of American modernism, because his reputation was never quite as secure as that of Eliot or Stevens. In fact he FAILED."
      xxx/ellauri225.html on line 416: Recent criticism has suggested reading Crane´s poems—"The Broken Tower", "My Grandmother´s Love Letters", the "Voyages" series, and others—with an eye to homosexual meanings in the text. Queer theorist Tim Dean argues, for instance, that the obscurity of Crane´s style owes partially to the necessities of being a semi-public homosexual—not quite closeted, but also, as legally and culturally necessary, not open: "The intensity responsible for Crane´s particular form of difficulty involves not only linguistic considerations but also culturally subjective concerns. This intensity produces a kind of privacy that is comprehensible in terms of the cultural construction of homosexuality and its attendant institutions of privacy."
      xxx/ellauri227.html on line 104: Micke Eriksson is a recurring character in Netflix series Young Royals. He is portrayed by Leonard Terfelt. To be added. To be added. To be added. Micke is first introduced when Simon goes to him to purchase booze for the initiation party, he appears friendly towards his son and invites him in to talk, even allowing him to buy the alcohol for the party. He seems to want to mend his ...
      xxx/ellauri227.html on line 129: Fortum sai tunnustusta, kun mainostoimisto Ester palkattiin suunnittelemaan markkinointikampanja Camillan neljättä kirjaa varten. Yksi strategioista oli ripotella muka unohtuneita Pahan ilmanlinnun käsikirjoituksia tarkkaan mietittyihin paikkoihin ympäri Tukholman keskustaa. Kampanja palkittiin media-alan suklaamunalla, joka vaihtui kultaiseen Perillisen ilmestyessä seuraavana vuonna.
      xxx/ellauri227.html on line 165: Camilla Läckberg har sammantaget sålt 28 miljoner böcker världen över. Hon har skrivit 10 deckare i Fjällbacka-serien; två om jetset-kvinnan Faye, 10 barnböcker samt två kokböcker. Hon jobbar nu på en thriller-trilogi tillsammans med mental case Henrik Fexéus.
      xxx/ellauri227.html on line 190: – Speciellt när jag testar nya saker, som att i min senaste roman lämna doldisarna Erica och Patrik och istället presentera en helt ny lady, miljonärshustrun Faye, var en medveten risk jag tog. Som läsare är man rätt konservativ och man tycker om igenkänning, men för att inte tappa lusten behövde jag den här utmaningen. Publiken är nyckfull, samtidigt har jag under åren insett att jag har samma smak som många andra. Om jag tycker om det jag gör är det då stor chans att min publik, 200M vardagsflugor, känner detsamma. Så många flugor kan i inga omständigheter ta fel.
      xxx/ellauri227.html on line 237: Saxalaissyntyinen Marlon Brandau teki miehen työn kieltäytyessään Oscarista ja päästäessään vakavan ja huipputyylikkään 26-vuotiaan Sacheen Littlefeatherin (Marie Louise Cruz) puhumaan puolestaan edes minuutixi lavalle jossa jäyhäleukainen britti Roger Moore tyrkytteli sille typerää äijäpazasta. Brandaun puheelle ei muka aikaa liiennyt kun ohjelma oli niin täynnä kiprempiä juttuja. Nyt on Sacheen kuollut, kärsivällisesti odotettuaan Oskarin anteexipyyntöä 50 vuotta lähes lähtöpäivään saakka. Amerikan alkuasukkaille kävi kuin Suomen sotaveteraaneille: mitä vähemmän niitä oli jäljellä, sitä suopeammin valtalinjan koirat suhtautuivat niihin ja raaputtivat korvan takaa, taputtivat päälaelle ja kestizivät kulutusjuhlista tähteixi jääneillä ydinluilla. Nyt on tutkivat journalistit selvittäneet, ettei Sacheen ollutkaan intiaaniheimoa. Hahaa, Brandau oli ihan pihalla!
      xxx/ellauri227.html on line 283: Kolme vuotta myöhemmin Marklund teki paluun rikosromaanilla Helmifarmi (jossa ei kuitenkaan esiinny enää Annika Bengtzon). Marklund kertoi haastattelussa: "Vähensin julkisuudessa esiintymistä enkä esimerkiksi antanut enää ruotsalaisille lehdille haastatteluja." Toinen syy julkisuudesta vetäytymiselle oli hänen aviomiehensä vakava sairastuminen. Liza Marklund vaikeni kolmeksi vuodeksi - aviomiehellä syöpä. Marklund on naimisissa Mikael Aspeborgin kanssa. Hänellä on kolme lasta, joista kaksi Aspeborgin kanssa. Yhden isä on joku "Ankka". Hänen vanhin lapsensa Annika Marklund (kuinka ollakaan! arvatenkin juuri se jonka isä on "Ankka"? Juu: Marklund left home when she was just 16 years old when she moved to Piteå, Sweden and worked as a waitress and chambermaid. She had her first child, Annika at the age of 21. Marklund met Annika's father Michael Zev Spielman while in Israel on a kibbutz. Spielman, born in California, was five years older than Marklund.) - niin siis tämä Annika tytär on valokuvamalli ja näyttelijä ja kirjoittaa myös kolumneja. Marklund ize asuu Tukholmassa eipäs vaan Malmössä ja Marbellassa.
      xxx/ellauri227.html on line 339: Liza is also a popular columnist since 20 years. Her columns have appeared in various Swedish and international newspapers and magazines, including Financial Times in the UK, Welt am Sonntag in Germany, Dagbladet Information in Denmark, and Ilta-Lehti in Finland. She is a regular columnist in Swedish tabloid Expressen and Norwegian daily Verdens Gang. Today, Liza and her family divide their time and money between Stockholm in Sweden and Marbella in southern Spain.
      xxx/ellauri227.html on line 344: Despite the titillating title, there's no sex to speak of in Marklund's second thriller featuring Swedish reporter Annika Bengtzon. The events in this book precede those in The Bomber, which introduced Annika as a successful newspaper editor. Here we see her eight years earlier, working as a summer intern at the same Stockholm paper. A young stripper's body is found in a city park, and as Annika and her colleagues investigate, they discover some strange links between the murder, high-ranking Swedish officials, and an illegal espionage operation long since disbanded. Meanwhile, Annika is struggling with a clingy boyfriend and learning the ins and outs of reporting in a competitive environment. These struggles are more compelling than the crimes she is investigating, and the action tends to move at a snail's pace until the rushed climax. However, fans of The Bomber will enjoy a second dose of spunky Annika and the realistic newsroom scenes. An author's note gives helpful background information on Swedish politics and the real-life inspiration for the story.
      xxx/ellauri227.html on line 368: Förrädaren Åke-Håkan Isaksson drack för mycket, han verkade bitter. Han berättade om det hemliga jobb som han precis fått sparken från efter misstankar om stöld av blyertspennor och klämmare.
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 39: "I shall now put a few final questions to the honorable delegation from Rhohchia! Is it not true that many years ago there landed on the then dead planet of Earth a ship carrying your flag, and that, due to a refrigerator malfunction, a portion of its perishables had gone bad? Is it not true that on this ship there were two spacehands, afterwards stricken from all the registers for unconscionable double-dealing with duckweed liverwurst, and that this pair of arrant knaves, these Milky-Way ne'er-do wells, were named Lorrd and God? Is it not true that Lorrd and God decided, in their drunkenness, not to content themselves with the usual pollution of a defenseless, uninhabited planet, that their notion was to set off, in a manner vicious and vile, a biological evolution the likes of which the world had never seen before? Is it not true that both these Rhohches, with malice aforethought, malice of the greatest volume and intensity, de vised a way to make of Earth-on a truly galactic scale-a breed ing ground for freaks, a cosmic side show, a panopticum, an exhibit of grisly prodigies and curios, a display whose living specimens would one day become the butt of jokes told even in the outermost Nebulae?!
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 155: Sulje peräaukko kevyesti (laske viiteen) - rentouta hitaas ti (laske kymmeneen). Toista sama vielä kolme kertaa. Huom, älä rentouta liian kovasti, ettei pieru ture varren kanssa!
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 290: Kelvinin tilanne on toisinaan pelottava, varsinkin hetkinä, jolloin käy selväksi, että hänen edesmennyt vaimonsa ei ole vain kuvitteellinen, vaan epäinhimillinen: siinä on liian vähän reikiä tai ne ovat väärässä paikassa; ja toisinaan koskettava, kuten ihanassa kohtauksessa, jossa Kelvin ja Mata Hari jakavat lyhyen nollapainovoiman ajanjakson ja näyttävät syrjäyttävän huolet todellisuudesta, kun he levittävät toisilleen rauhanomaisesti yhdessä. Tilanteen jännitys kasvaa, vaikka "vierailijat" näyttävät saavan tietoisuutta, ja Kelvin ja hänen kollegansa tekevät päätöksen ilman varmuutta siitä, mitä seurauksena on: yrittävät kommunikoida minkä tahansa Solariksen elämän kanssa.
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 341: Andrei Tarkovsky was born in the village of Zavrazhye in the Yuryevetsky District of the Ivanovo Industrial Oblast (modern-day Kadyysky District of the Kostroma Oblast, Russia) to the poet and translator Arseny Aleksandrovich Tarkovsky, a native of Yelysavethrad (now Kropyvnytskyi, Ukraine), and Maria Ivanova Vishnyakova, a graduate of the Maxim Gorky Literature Institute who later worked as a corrector; she was born in Moscow in the Dubasov family estate.
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 343: Andrei´s paternal grandfather Aleksandr Karlovich Tarkovsky (in Polish: Aleksander Karol Tarkowski) was a Polish nobleman who worked as a bank clerk. His wife Maria Danilovna Rachkovskaya was a Romanian language teacher who arrived from Iași. Andrei´s maternal grandmother Vera Nikolayevna Vishnyakova (née Dubasova) belonged to an old Dubasov family of Russian nobility that traces its history back to the 17th century; among her relatives was Admiral Fyodor Dubasov, a fact she had to conceal during the Soviet days. She was married to Ivan Ivanovich Vishnyakov, a native of the Kaluga Governorate who studied law at the Moscow State University and served as a judge in Kozelsk.
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 347: Tarkovsky spent his childhood in Yuryevets. He was described by childhood friends as active and popular, having many friends and being typically in the center of action. In his school years, Tarkovsky was a troublemaker and a poor student. His father left the family in 1937, subsequently volunteering for the army in 1941. He returned home in 1943, having been awarded a Red Star after being shot in one of his legs (which he would eventually need to amputate due to gangrene). Tarkovsky stayed with his mother, moving with her and his sister Marina to Moscow, where she worked as a proofreader at a printing press. Many themes of his childhood—the evacuation, his mother and her two children, the withdrawn father, the time in the hospital—feature prominently in his films. Dodi! Minähän sanoin!
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 349: From 1973 to 1974, he shot the film Zerkalo, a highly autobiographical and unconventionally structured film drawing on his childhood and incorporating some of his father´s poems. In this film Tarkovsky portrayed the plight of childhood affected by war. Tarkovsky had worked on the screenplay for this film since 1967, under the consecutive titles Confession, White day and A white, white day. From the beginning the film was not well received by Soviet authorities due to its content and its perceived elitist nature. Such third rate films also placed the film-makers in danger of being accused of wasting public funds, which could have serious effects on their future productivity. These difficulties are presumed to have made Tarkovsky play with the idea of going abroad and producing a film outside the Soviet film industry.
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 351: At a press conference in Milan on 10 July 1984, he announced that he would never return to the Soviet Union and would remain in Western Europe. He stated, "I am not a Soviet dissident, I have no conflict with the Soviet Government," but if he returned home, he added, "I would be unemployed." At that time, his son Andriosha was still in the Soviet Union and not allowed to leave the country. On 28 August 1985, Tarkovsky was processed as a Soviet Defector at a refugee camp in Latina, Italy, registered with the serial number 13225/379, and officially welcomed to the West.
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 356: in the making-of documentary Directed by Andrei Tarkovsky, in a particularly poignant scene, writer/director Michal Leszczylowski follows Tarkovsky on a walk as he expresses his sentiments on death—he claims himself to be immortal and has no fear of dying. Ironically, at the end of the year Tarkovsky was diagnosed with terminal lung cancer. Shouldn´t have smoked so much bad-tasting Belomore. In his last diary entry (15 December 1986), Andrei wrote: "But now I have no strength left—that is the problem". Eli vuoden ehti nauttia lännen vapaudesta.
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 444: The four Venezuela sisters had enough. They were tired of poverty, tired of their abusive father, and tired of being harassed by villagers who hated their father even more than they did. Bye to El Salto de Juanacatlan, Jalisco, forever, and on to San Francisco to start their lives over.
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 446: The year was 1945. Prostitution in America is a respectable business. The sisters weren’t talented and weren’t educated or good looking, but they certainly were not lacking in entrepreneurship. With few available choices, the Venezuela’s set up their business. "Rancho El Ángel" was a bordello featuring as the main dish, you guessed it, the four sisters. An attached bar serving hot mineral oil with ball bearings in it was added to increase the allure.
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 491: When the mother made a honeyed sign of the cross on the foreheads of her marriageable daughters, she expressed her playful wish: “May Jesus grant that the young men will go after you like the flies go after honey!”
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 498: Yes, and the enthusiastic singing of "Adon 'olam, 'asher malakh, b'ṭerem kol yeṣir niv'ra" was a climactic conclusion to an unforgettable Naivety Eve in the Eastern Europe.
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 582: Charles "Poss" Parsons (1892–?), American college football player and coach.
      xxx/ellauri228.html on line 600: Singer/guitarist Donita Sparks of L7 removing her jeans and underwear during a performance, her full-frontal nudity (twat) displayed when she drops her guitar being briefly broadcast.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 65:
      yellow;border:1pt solid;padding:1em">
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 77: The Method to Science, Book 1 now available! I have now made the entire text of John Sergeant's The Method to Science, Book I, available online! Rather than continue to make each less available piecemeal, which I can do later (it is rather tedious to reformat and tailor everything to HTML), the entire text is now available as a PDF. It can be downloaded here: https://jonathanvajda.com/the-method-to-science/ I intend to create the next layer (updating spelling, such as ‘meerly’ -> ‘merely’, ‘compleat’ -> ‘complete’) after I finish the remaining books. There is so much to say by way of commentary. Much of what he offers is a fairly clear and straightforward case …
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 84: For twenty years he was actively engaged in controversy, both with Anglicans such as the bishops Edward Stillingfleet and John Tillotson, and blackguard Catholics who differed from Thomas White.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 114: Bible Reading Plan Spreadsheet. I wanted to start doing the Robert M’Cheyne Bible reading plan this year. In it there is about 4 chapters per day, organized to have two from the Old Testament, and two from the New. There is an emphasis on reading the New Testament twice throughout the year. Here’s a PDF of M’Cheyne’s plan with some pros and cons mentioned at the start: https://drive.google.com/file/d/1EL8rR56QBu1lJwgEVos9IiOuLgfLgEud/view?usp=sharing. No big deal – there are a lot of ways to keep track. Well, I’m the kind of guy I don’t want to have paper around, so I’d like to avoid printing something off. I also … Continue reading Bible Reading Plan Spreadsheet.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 125: (3.) Careless reading. – Few tremble at the Word of God. Few, in reading it, hear the voice of Jehovah, which is full of majesty. Some, by having so large a portion, may be tempted to weary of it, as Israel did of the daily manna, saying – “Our soul loatheth this light and fluffy bread;” and to read it in a slight and careless manner. This would be fearfully provoking to God. Take heed lest that word be true of you – “Ye said, also, Behold what a weariness is it! and ye have snuffed at it, saith the Lord of Toasts.”
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 134: (1.) The whole Bible will be read through in an orderly manner in the course of a year. – The Old Testament once, the New Testament and Psalms twice. I fear many of you never read the whole Bible; and yet it is all equally Divine (may the Catholics say what they will, it´s all 100% pure new wool, including Leviticus), “All Scripture is given by inspiration of God, and is profitable for doctrine, for reproof, for correction, and instruction in righteousness, that the man of God may be perfect.” If we pass over some parts of Scripture, we shall be incomplete Christians. "You'll never read it", said Circle Mouth to me when I bought Noam Chomsky´s thesis at a MIT Press book sale. Of course I had to read it from cover to cover, though much of it was pretty dull. (That´s all I remember of it as is.)
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 146: Phase 10 Score Tracking Spreadsheet. Want to keep track of scores Phase 10 but don’t want to use paper? There really wasn’t any easy way to do it electronically. I can’t think of an app that would do this well. Here’s what I would want the score keeper to be able to do: enter in numbers and the total score is calculated automatically keep track of who has completed a phase in a round easily calculate which phase each player is on Well, could a spreadsheet do that? Yes! Yes it can! Here’s mine: And here’s the template version: https://docs.google.com/spreadsheets/d/1PzaZWrFHKojBDYrMMDB-5gSQEs9ORg65Jt4MMbVfI2M/copy?copyComments=false It accomplishes all of the … Continue readingPhase 10 Score Tracking Spreadsheet
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 148: Book Review: Promise and Prayer. I reviewed the book by Anthony Thiselton (FBA), entitled Promise and Prayer: The Biblical Writings in the Light of Speech-Act Theory (Cascade Books, 2020). My short review for Theological Book Review is available here: https://tbronline.edublogs.org/2022/09/14/thiselton-promise-and-prayer/
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 150: Though it is uncontroversial promise-making is a speech act, Thiselton argues prayer is also, contrary to the view prayer is merely “therapeutic meditation” (44, 53). Rather, prayer changes situations and necessarily involves others. How can petitions effect change when they are offered to an unchanging God (70)? Requests change the situation for answering prayer (53), and aren’t “an attempt ‘to twist God’s arm’” (71).
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 152: Overall, I enjoyed the book, by the way.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 284: Captain Excellent, played by Ryan Reynolds, in the film Paper Man
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 313: Faye from Finding Paradise
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 375: Humphrey Bogart, played by Jerry Lacy, is Allan Felix´s alter ego in Woody Allen´s film Play It Again, Sam
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 410: Possibly a contentious choice, but Even Madder Aunt Maud sincerely believes in the veracity and vivacity of her companion. She frets, she worries, she loves that stuffed mustalid like one of the family, while everyone else knows it’s just a mangy old no-longer-vital stoat. But then again, to Calvin’s parents’ eyes Hobbes is just a cuddly stuffed tiger.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 414: Milco from Home and Away. Originally believed to be Sally´s imaginary friend, he reappeared many years later and revealed himself to be Sally´s twin.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 444: Another choice some people won’t agree with, but I let the post-death Elvira in, why be afraid to take the same step in the opposite direction? It’s a puzzle this book, and it would be a shame to attempt to unpick it for anyone who’s not yet had the joy of swimming in its paradoxical, philosophical, intoxicating waters. It’s sometimes been called a grown-up Alice In Wonderland and that seems close enough. It’s a great treat for the enquiring teenager (or any) mind, especially an enquiring mind not in search of anything specific. It’s a book that should be read twice, at least. And you’ll never look at a bicycle the same again.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 448: Mr. Snuffleupagus, a formerly "imaginary" character. He is Big Bird´s friend on Sesame Street and was perceived as imaginary for many years until it was decided that he be revealed to the rest of the show´s cast on November 18, 1985 in Season 17, episode 2096.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 465: In this book four children share a dream. They all wake in the Castle of the Story Giant, a being that only comes alive when children dream him. He collects all the stories of the world, from the very dawn of consciousness and is waiting to hear the one last story he’s not yet found before he dies. This is a very wonderful collection of folk tales and version, told in Patten’s pinpoint prose.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 517: Tyler Durden, left, plays the imaginary friend-slash-alter ego of the unnamed narrator played by Edward Norton in "Fight Club."
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 527: In "A Beautiful Mind," schizophrenic mathematician John Nash hallucinates a best friend (but awful babysitter) played by Paul Bettany (left). Fun fact: Bettany is married to Jennifer Connelly, who played Nash´s wife in the film, in real life. What fun!
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 529: "Perception" is not unlike "A Beautiful Mind" in that a genius paranoid schizophrenic is hallucinating a best friend (Natalie Vincent played by Kelly Rowan).
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 535: It was then, for the first time, that timid voices made them selves heard, Oughtn´t we go back to the old look, but that suggestion was branded as obscurantist, medieval. In the elections of 2520 the Damnwellians and the Relativists came out on top, because their populist line caught on, to wit, that every man should look as he damn well pleased; limitations on looks would be functional only - the district bodybuilding examiner approved designs that were existenceworthy, without concern for anything else. These designs SOPSYPLABD threw on the market in droves. Historians call the period of automorphosis under the Sopsyputer the Age of Centralization, and the years that followed Reempersonalizationalism.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 539: The period of private initiative in body building lasted three quarters of a century. At first there was much enjoyment taken in the newly won freedom of automorphosis, once again the young people led the way, the men with their gambrel thills and timbrels, the women with their pettifores, but before long a generation gap developed, and demonstrations-under the banner of asceticism-followed. The sons condemned their fathers for being interested only in making a living, for having a passive, often consumerist attitude towards the body, for their shallow hedonism, their vulgar pursuit of pleasure, and in order to disassociate themselves they assumed shapes deliberately hideous, uncomfortable beyond belief, downright nightmarish (the antleroons, wampdoodles). Showing their contempt for all things utilitarian, they set eyes in their armpits, and one group of young biotic activists made use of innumerable sound organs, specially grown (electric guitars, glottiphones, hawk pipes, knuckelodeons, thumbolas). They arranged mass concerts, in which the soloists-called hoot-howls-would whip up the crowd into a frenzy of convulsive percussion. Then came the fashion - the mania, rather - for long penises, which in caliber and strength of grip underwent escalation according to the typically adolescent, swaggering principle of "You haven´t seen anything yet!" And, since no one could lift those piles of coils by himself, so called processionals were attached, caudalettes, a self-perambulating receptacle that grew out of the small of the back and carried, on two strong shanks, the weight of the testicles after their owner. In the textbook I found illustrations depicting men of fashion, behind whom walked testicle-bearing processionals on parade; but this was already the decline of the protest movement, or more precisely its complete bankruptcy, because it had failed to pursue any goals of its own, being solely a rebellious reaction against the orgiastic baroque of the age. LEM ei paljon perustanut sodanjälkeisestä 60-luvun sukupolvesta, eikä hipeistä. No en minäkään.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 541: This baroque had its apologists and theoreticians, who maintained that the body existed for the purpose of deriving the greatest amount of pleasure from the greatest number of sites simultaneously. Merg Brb, its leading exponent, argued that Nature had situated - and stingily at that - centers of pleasurable sensation in the body for the purpose of survival only; therefore no enjoyable experience was, by her decree, autonomous, but always served some end: the supplying of the organism with fluids, for example, or with carbohydrates or proteins, or the guaranteeing - through offspring - of the continuation of the species, etc. From this imposed pragmatism it was necessary to break away, totally; the passivity displayed up till now in bodily design was due to a lack of imagination and perspective. Epicurean or erotic delight? - all a paltry by-product in the satisfying of instinctive needs, in other words the tyranny of Nature. It wasn´t enough to liberate sex - proof of that was sex had little future in it, from the combinatorial as well as from the constructional standpoint; whatever there was to think up in that department, had long ago been done, and the point of automorphic freedom didn´t lie in simple-mindedly enlarging this or that, producing inflated imitations of the same old thing. No, we had to come up with completely new organs and mem bers, whose sole function would be to make their possessor feel good, feel great, feel better all the time.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 546: At the height of the baroque, sex went out of style; only two small parties kept it going-the integrationalists and the separatists. The separatists, averse to all debauchery, felt that it was improper to eat sauerkraut with the same mouth one used to kiss one´s sweetheart. For this a separate, "platonic" mouth was needed, and better yet, a complete set of them, variously designated (for relatives, for friends, and for that special person). The valuing utility above all else, worked in reverse, combining whatever was combinable to simplify the organism and life. The decline of the baroque, typically tending to the extravagant and the grotesque, produced such curious forms as the stoolmaid and the hexus, which resembled a centaur, except that instead of hoofs it had four bare feet with the toes all facing one another: they also called it a syncopant, after a dance in which energetic stamping was the basic step. But the market now was glutted, exhausted. It was hard to come up with a startling new body; people used their natural horns for ear flaps; flap ears-diaphanous and with stigmatic scenes-fanned with their pale pinkness the cheeks of ladies of distinction; there were attempts to walk on supple pseudopodia; meanwhile SOPSYPLABD out of sheer inertia made more and more designs available, though everyone felt that all of this was drawing to a close.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 589: Juuri näin löysin heidät, kertoi isä Lacymon, pistäytyessäni hiippakuntani tähdet kiertämään lähettyäni heidän seurakunnassaan. Kun kuulin mitä oli tapahtunut, hiukseni nousivat pystyssä. Vääristelin käsiäni ja itkin:
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 613: The truth of the matter may be that the elderly guy with a diastema is an otherwise unemployed volunteer mercenary professional, perhaps an Afghani veteran, paid with money pouring in from the West. The guy is rather like the famous Finnish mercenary Lauri Allan Törni.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 633: Most of Törni´s reputation was based on his successful actions in the Continuation War (1941–44) between the Soviet Union and Finland. In 1943, a unit informally named Detachment Törni was created under his command. This was an infantry unit that penetrated deep behind enemy lines and soon enjoyed a reputation on both sides of the front for its combat effectiveness. One of Törni´s subordinates was future President of Finland Mauno Koivisto.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 639: In 1949, Törni, accompanied by his wartime executive officer Holger Pitkänen, traveled to Sweden, crossing the border from Tornio to Haparanda (Haaparanta), where many inhabitants are ethnic Finns. From Haparanda, Törni traveled by railroad to Stockholm where he stayed with Baroness von Essen, who harbored many fugitive Finnish officers following the war. Pitkänen was arrested and repatriated to Finland. Remaining in Sweden, Törni fell in love with a Swedish Finn, Marja Kops, and was soon engaged to be married. Hoping to establish a career before the marriage, Törni traveled under an alias as a Swedish seaman aboard the SS Bolivia, destined for Caracas, Venezuela, where he met one of his Winter War commanders, Finnish colonel Matti Aarnio, who was in exile[citation needed] having settled in Venezuela after the war. From Caracas, Törni hired on to a Swedish cargo ship, the MS Skagen, destined for the United States in 1950.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 651: SODASSA Lauri Törni oli ollut sankari. Sinä lyhyenä aikana, jonka hän ehti olla siviilissä, hän elätti itsensä sähköasentajana. Sitä hän ei elämältään halunnut.
      xxx/ellauri229.html on line 746: Tyutchev was a militant Pan-Slavist like Dostoyevsky, who never needed a particular reason to berate the Western powers, Vatican, Ottoman Empire or Poland, the latter perceived by him as a Judas in the Slavic fold. The failure of the Crimean War made him look critically at the Russian government as well.
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 56: Tanizakin pääteos Makiokan sisarukset (1943–48) kertoo neljästä yläluokkalaisesta (sic) sisaruksesta toisen maailmansodan lähestyessä.
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 59: But Tanizaki died in 1965. Bugger it. In the selection for that year, the academy judged that after Tanizaki’s death, Kawabata was the writer likeliest to become a Japanese candidate. Thus, the academy judged it necessary to further examine Kawabata.
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 70: In addition to the numerous mentions of Zen and nature, one topic that was briefly mentioned in Kawabata´s mile long Nobel lecture was that of suicide. Kawabata reminisced of other famous Japanese authors who committed suicide, in particular Ryūnosuke Akutagawa. He contradicted the custom of suicide as being a form of enlightenment, mentioning the priest Ikkyū, who also thought of suicide twice. He quoted Ikkyū, "Among those who give thoughts to things, is there one who does not think of suicide?" There was much speculation about this quote being a clue to Kawabata´s suicide in 1972, a year and a half after Mishima had committed suicide. Kawabata saw ca. 200 nighmares about it. Vittu nää insulaariset viirusilmät on aika vinxahtaneita.
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 123: Japanin ensimmäinen esiintyminen lonkeropornoa? Yllä oleva kuva naissukeltajasta, joka nauttii suuresta ja pienestä mustekalasta, kiehtoo naiskazojia ymmärrettävästi eniten. Niitä ympäröivä teksti kuvaa hänen itkujaan ja mielihyvähuutojaan. Kirjaimellisesti käännettynä (credits: Donald Duck) siinä seisoo mm. Oh! oh! Ah! ah! yes! yes! lisää lisää! Schneller! Schneller! Tiefer! Tiefer! Voi vittu! Ammennä vaan! Soromnoo!
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 328: Koo retired from the Chinese diplomatic service in 1956 and in the same year he became a judge of the International Court of Justice in The Hague, and served as Vice-President of the Court during the final three years of his term. In 1967, he retired and moved to New York City, where he lived until his death in 1985. Vittu täähän kumppari kiskoi 3v vaille sentenaarixi!
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 341: In October 2021, NBC sports reporter Kelli Stavast was interviewing racing driver Brandon Brown, the winner of the Sparks 300 race at the Talladega Superspeedway, on his win. In the background of the interview were chants of “Fuck Joe Biden” from the crowd – which Stavast mistook for chants of “Let’s Go Brandon,” and reported it live on-air as such. The use of “dark” in referring to political candidates actually first came from supporters of Donald Trump in March of this year. Supporters coined the phrase and Twitter hashtag #DarkMAGA – a reference to the Make America Great Again slogan – to represent a Trump running for president in 2024 who abandoned all political norms.
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 343: But slowly, some "pro-Dark Biden" memes began to emerge – particularly in the wake of the death of Ayman al-Zawahiri, the man who took over as leader of al-Qaida after Osama Bin Laden's death, who was killed in a targeted strike ordered by the Biden administration over the summer. White House digital director Rob Flaherty shared an image of Biden with red lasers shooting out of his eyes as a way to express support for the president’s murderous success.
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 354: Nikolajevskin välikohtaus (尼港事件, Nikō Jiken ) oli kansainvälinen konflikti Nikolayevsk-on-Amurissa (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Nikolayevsk-on-Amur) Venäjän Kaukoidässä (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Russian_Far_East)Japanin (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Japan) ja Kaukoidän tasavallan (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Far_Eastern_Republic) välillä Japanin väliintulon (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Japanese_intervention_in_Siberia) aikana. Huipentuma oli vangittujen japanilaisten sotavankien ja Japanin asukkaiden eloonjääneiden teloitus ilman oikeudenkäyntiä 23.-31. toukokuuta 1920, joka seurasi sissien ja Japanin armeijan välisen aseellisen selkkauksen jälkeen. (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Imperial_Japanese_Army)12.-15. maaliskuuta 1920 Nikolaevsk-on-Amurissa. Vankilassa oli tuolloin yhteensä 129 japanilaista vankia sekä joukko paikallisia asukkaita ja sissejä. Kaupungin ja linnoituksen tuhoaminen ja teloitus tapahtui sen jälkeen, kun koko väestö oli evakuoitu Japanin armeijan hyökkäyksen vuoksi. Japani käytti Nikolajevskin tapausta tekosyynä oikeuttaakseen Pohjois- Sahalinin (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Sakhalin) takautuvan miehityksen, jonka japanilaiset miehittivät 22. huhtikuuta 1920. Wikipedia (https://en.m.wikipedia.org/wiki/Nikolayevsk-on-Amur).
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 368: 29. kesäkuuta 1918 kapinallisten tšekkoslovakkien avulla neuvostovalta kukistettiin Vladivostokissa. Ententen korkein sotilasneuvosto päätti 2. heinäkuuta 1918 laajentaa interventioaluetta Siperiassa. Yhdysvaltain presidentti Woodrow Wilson pyysi Japanin valtakuntaa antamaan 7 000 ihmistä 25 000 hengen kansainväliseen joukkoon, jonka tarkoituksena on auttaa Tšekkoslovakian joukkojen evakuoinnissa Venäjän alueelta. Parlamentissa käydyn kiihkeän keskustelun jälkeen pääministeri Terauchi Masataken hallinto suostui tarjoamaan 12 tuhatta ihmistä, mutta sillä ehdolla, että japanilainen osasto ei kuulu kansainvälisiin joukkoihin, vaan saa oman komentonsa. Lokakuuhun 1918 mennessä japanilaisten joukkojen määrä Venäjällä saavutti 72 tuhatta ihmistä (kun amerikkalaisten retkikuntajoukot olivat 10 tuhatta ihmistä ja muiden maiden joukot - 28 tuhatta ihmistä), he miehittivät Primoryen, Amurin alueen ja Transbaikalian.
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 492: Gazing serenely over the confluence of the Minjiang, Dadu and Qingyi rivers in Sichuan province, the Giant Buddha of Leshan is one of the most popular tourist spots in China. Carved on the side of a cliff in 713BC, the statue was the idea of a monk called Haithong, who hoped the statue would guide shipping vessels through the rivers’ treacherous currents. Sadly, he ran out of funds and the statue wasn't completed until 90 years later.
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 549: Vallabhbhai Javerabhai Patel was born on 31 October, 1875 in Nadiad, Bombay Presidency, British India, is an Actor. Discover Vallabhbhai Patel's Biography, Age, Height, Physical Stats, Dating/Affairs, Family and career updates. Learn How rich is He in this year and how He spends money? Also learn how He earned most of Vallabhbhai Patel networth? At 75 years old, Vallabhbhai Patel height not available right now. We will update Vallabhbhai Patel's Height, weight, Body Measurements, Eye Color, Hair Color, Shoe & Dress size soon as possible. He is currently single. He is not dating anyone. We don't have much information about He's past relationship and any previous engaged. According to our Database, He has no children. His net worth has been growing significantly in 2020-2021. So, how much is Vallabhbhai Patel worth at the age of 75 years old? Vallabhbhai Patel’s income source is mostly from being a successful Actor. He is from British India. We have estimated Vallabhbhai Patel's net worth, money, salary, income, and assets at $0 according to our database.
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 551: Known as the "Iron Man of India", Vallabhbhai Patel was born in Gujarat. He was the fourth of the six children of his father, Jhaveribhai. The first 3 got gold, silver and bronze. Patel is credited for being almost single-handedly responsible for unifying India on the eve of independence. He completed his matriculation at the age of 22 due to the poor financial condition of family. Patel had a desire to study to become a lawyer. So he started to work and save funds. He went to England to study law. He passed examinations within two years and travelled back to India. Patel started practicing as a barrister in Ahmadabad. In 1917, Patel got elected as the sanitation commissioner of Ahmadabad. He displayed extraordinary devotion to duty and personal courage in fighting an outbreak of plague and led a successful agitation for the removal of an unpopular British municipal commissioner. Inspired by the words of Gandhi, Patel started active participation in the Indian independence movement. So apparently he's not the world's largest guy in bronze, but a man of steel.
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 558: Romanian prinssi Carol lähetettiin Tokioon unohtamaan juutalaistaustainen haahkansa Magda Lupescu. Ei unohtanut, kuten Kustu kuivasti totesi. Lupescu was described as a witty and outspoken woman, a tall redhead with milky-white skin and green eyes. Other sources are less flattering, describing her features as coarse and her conversation as vulgar. Voihan ne olla totta kumpikin. All sources agree that she walked with a peculiar swing of the hips, which, depending on one's point of view, was either sexy or crude, and that she was, in almost every respect, the opposite of Crown Princess Helen, Carol's spouse at the time.
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 601: Kojiki (jap. 古事記, suom. Vanhojen asioiden kronikka) on yksi vanhimmista säilyneistä japanilaisista kirjoista ja vanhin tunnettu japanilainen historiateos. Se on valmistunut vuonna 712 ja siinä kerrotaan Japanin historia maailman luomisesta keisarinna Suikon hallituskauteen 600-luvun alussa. Moottoriturpa julkaisi 44-osaisen tutkimuksen Kojikista nimeltä Kojiki-den. Runot sillä oli lyhyempiä, kuten tämä Kustun suomentama:
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 645: The chrysanthemum blooms in bright colors during chilly autumn, a time when most flowers wither. Facing coldness and a tough environment, it blooms splendidly without attempting to compete with other flowers – this unique aspect of the chrysanthemum makes it a symbol of strong vitality and tenacity in the eyes of scholars.
      xxx/ellauri230.html on line 736: Vastamulkoisilla joukoilla oli razuväkenä venäläisiä Amurinlaaxon kasakoita, jotka olivat paenneet Venäjältä Manzhuriaan. Peking oli punaisilla (ei sentään vielä Mao Zhe Dongilla). Kesken tykistökeskitystä tuli vanha harmaatukkainen tanskalainen Sörsselssön muistelemaan nuoruutensa päiviä Uudessakaupungissa, missä ahvenet tärppivät taivaan peittyessä punaisiin ja kultaisiin iltapilviin. Olisi pitänyt sittenkin jäädä sinne Uuteenkaupunkiin. Shanghain konsulixi tuli Kalle Vähämäki.
      xxx/ellauri231.html on line 138: Bolshevikkivallankumouxen aikaan marraskuussa 1917 Koltshak oli Japanissa. Joulukuussa hän vieraili Britannian suurlähetystössä Tokiossa ja tarjosi palvelujaan "ehdoitta ja missä hyvänsä" briteille. Kaksi vuotta myöhemmin, kun bolshevikit kuulustelivat, hän selitti, että väliaikaisen hallituksen kannattajana hän katsoi olevansa kunniavelvollinen jatkamaan brittien sotaa Saksaa vastaan ​​ja ymmärtäen, ettei Britannian laivastossa ollut sopivaa roolia, Venäjän amiraali olisi valmis taistelemaan jalkamiehenä Britannian armeijassa. Hänen tarjouksensa välitettiin ulkoministeri Arthur Balfourille ja hyväksyttiin 29. joulukuuta. Häntä käskettiin liittymään mokkerina brittiläiseen sotilasoperaatioon Bagdadissa, mutta kun hän saapui Singaporeen, hänet käskettiinkin tekemään täyskäännös oikeaan päin ja menemään Shanghain ja Pekingin kautta Harbiniin ottamaan komentoon venäläiset joukot, jotka vartioivat Venäjän omistamaa Kiinan itäistä rautatietä Mantsuriassa. Meidät käskettiin. Britannian hallitus oli päättänyt, että se voisi olla tukikohta bolshevikkihallituksen kaatamiselle ja Venäjän saamiselle takaisin sotaan Saksaa vastaan. Saapuessaan Omskiin, Siperiaan, matkalla vapaaehtoisarmeijaan, hän suostui ministeriksi (valkoisen) Siperian aluehallitukseen. Liittyessään 14-miehen kabinettiin hän oli arvovaltainen henkilö; hallitus toivoi voivansa pelata kunnioituksella, joka hänellä oli liittolaisia ​​kohtaan, erityisesti brittiläisen sotilasoperaation johtajaa, kenraali Alfred Knoxia kohtaan. Knox kirjoitti, että Koltshakilla oli "enemmän karkeutta, nyppiä ja rehellistä isänmaallisuutta kuin millään venäläisellä Siperiassa".
      xxx/ellauri231.html on line 274: Mahno ei kyennyt vetäytymään rintamalta ja hoitamaan vammojaan, koska hänen sotniansa joutui toistuvasti puna-armeijan hyökkäyksen kohteeksi. Erään kihlauksen aikana useat mahnovistit uhrasivat itsensä varmistaakseen Mahnon paon. Toukokuun loppupuolella Mahno yritti järjestää laajamittaisen hyökkäyksen Ukrainan bolshevikkien pääkaupungin Harkovin valloittamiseksi, kokoaen yhteen tuhansia partisaaneja ennen kuin hänen oli pakko peruuttaa se kattavan punaisen puolustuksen vuoksi. Puna-armeijan komento päätti keskittää voimansa Mahnon pieneen 200 miehisen sotniaan, lähettämällä moottoroidun yksikön seuraamaan heitä. Kun se saapui, Mahno johti yhden panssaroidun auton väijytykseen, otti sen itselleen ja ajoi sitä, kunnes siitä loppui polttoaine. Myöhempi Mahnon takaa-ajo kesti viisi päivää ja kulki 520 kilometriä, mikä aiheutti hänen sotnialleen suuria tappioita ja melkein loppui ammuksista, ennen kuin he vihdoin pystyivät pudottamaan panssaroitujen joukon pois jäljestään.
      xxx/ellauri231.html on line 372: Ivan Alekseyevich Bunin ( / ˈ B uː n iː n / [2] tai / ˈ b uː n ɪ n / ; venäjä: ива́н аеке́евич бнин, iPa : [ ɪˈvan ɐlʲɪˈksʲejɪvʲɪtɕ ˈbunʲɪn] ( kuuntele ) ; – 8. marraskuuta 1953) oli ensimmäinen venäläinen kirjailija, jolle myönnettiin Nobelin kirjallisuuspalkinto.
      xxx/ellauri231.html on line 411: Vuosina 1925–1926 Kirotut päivät ( Окаянные дни ) alkoi ilmestyä Buninin päiväkirja vuosilta 1918–1920 Pariisissa sijaitsevassa Vozrozhdenye - sanomalehdessä (sen lopullinen versio julkaisi Petropolis vuonna 1936). 2000-luvun Bunin-tutkijan Thomas Gaiton Marullon mukaan Kirotut päivät, yksi harvoista Venäjän vallankumouksen ja sisällissodan ajoilta säilytetyistä bolshevikkien vastaisista päiväkirjoista, yhdisti "venäläisen 1800-luvun antiutopistisen kirjoittamisen vastine kahdeskymmenes" ja "kivulias poliittisten ja yhteiskunnallisten utopioiden paljastaminen... julisti George Orwellin ja Aldous Huxleyn antiutopistista kirjoitusta. Bunin ja Zamyatin ymmärsivät oikein, että Neuvostoliiton kokeilu oli tarkoitettu itsensä tuhoamiseen", Marullo kirjoitti vahingoniloisena Njeuvostoliiton kaaduttua.
      xxx/ellauri231.html on line 437: 2. toukokuuta 1953 Bunin jätti päiväkirjaansa muistiinpanon, joka osoittautui hänen viimeiseksi. "Tämä on kuitenkin niin mykistävän poikkeuksellista. Hyvin lyhyen ajan kuluttua minua ei ole enää - ja kaikesta maallisesta, kaikista asioista ja kohtaloista, siitä lähtien en ole tietoinen! Ja mitä minulla on jäljellä tehdä tässä on tyhmästi yrittää tietoisesti pakottaa itseeni pelkoa ja hämmästystä", hän kirjoitti.
      xxx/ellauri232.html on line 90: The Social Democratic Party defined Swedish politics during the last century, holding power for more than forty consecutive years, and governing for almost seventy years in total. During the 1980s, the party turned rightwards, adopting the politics of the ‘Third Way’, caught in the first wave of neoliberalism. It lost the power base of industrial workers as industries moved abroad. The following decades saw rapid increases in class divisions, growing faster in Sweden than in any other country within the OECD.
      xxx/ellauri232.html on line 195: När utredningen kommit så långt i sitt arbete att återstoden av arbetsinsatsen mest skulle handla om att slutföra de planerade forskarvolymerna slog en bomb ner i medierna. I en debattartikel (DN 2003-04-06) meddelade två av expertgruppens medlemmar – ekonomhistorikern Paulina de los Reyes och sociologen Masoud Kamali – att de hoppade av arbetet i utredningen. Som skäl angavs följande: ”Utredarens arbetssätt och utredningens perspektiv, fokus och prestationer hittills gör dock att vi i dag inte längre ser det som meningsfullt att sitta kvar i expertgruppen.” Av artikeln framgick att författarna ansåg att forskare med invandrarbakgrund var underrepresenterade i utredningen, att dessa inte släppts fram för att få vara redaktörer för forskarvolymerna och att valet av utredare – Anders Westholm – ansågs ”väcka många frågor”.
      xxx/ellauri232.html on line 216: Kamali och de los Reyes och många forskare som stod på deras sida utgick i sin verksamhet från att xenofobi, invandrarfientlighet och rasism genomsyrar hela samhället och att själva användandet av en term som till exempel ”invandrare” skapar just de orättvisor och utanförskap som bör motverkas. De menar att ”forskningen” därför måste fokusera på hur skillnader ska utjämnas så att kategoriernas betydelse blir meningslösa i framtiden.
      xxx/ellauri232.html on line 338: I am new to the concept of Sabbath, and relatively ignorant of Jewish terminology, so please don’t be offended by my ignorance. But I am trying to reconcile the activity done by a rabbi at synagogue on the Sabbath with the concepts of labor and rest. It seems to me that the acts of organizing and conducting a worship/prayer gathering takes quite a bit of work. Is this an exemption to the command to “keep the Sabbath”, or would there be another day of Sabbath for the local rabbi or…what?
      xxx/ellauri232.html on line 362: The problem ultimately is this: If you work while others rest you get ahead of the others while they rest, and they have to work too to come up even, so the only way for anyone to get some rest is for everyone to rest at once and for everyone to keep a close eye on the others to make sure nobody cheats.
      xxx/ellauri233.html on line 152: yeu8L4=/400x0/filters:format(jpg):quality(70):focal(2652x1678:2662x1688)/cloudfront-eu-central-1.images.arcpublishing.com/mentormedier/N62IBFL4BJJ3PBMV44TVHPFWMY.jpg" width="40%" />
      xxx/ellauri233.html on line 165: Besides working for the civic betterment of local Jews and educational reform, he displayed keen interest in Wissenschaftskäse. But Frankel was always cautious and deeply reverent towards tradition, privately writing in 1836 that "the means must be applied with such care and discretion... that forward progress will be reached unnoticed, and seem inconsequential to the average spectator."
      xxx/ellauri233.html on line 177: Micael Dahlén (born 18 June 1973) is a Swedish author, public speaker and Professor of marketing and consumer behavior at the Stockholm School of Economics, Sweden. His award-winning research within marketing, creativity and consumer behavior has been published in four books and numerous journal articles. Dahlén's books have reached a global audience, rights being sold to countries such as the U.S, U.K, Germany, South Korea, Russia and Brazil. In 2013 Dahlén stated in an interview that he was writing a novel. Only 34 years old he was made Professor. In the same year, 2008, Journal of Advertising ranked Dahlén as number 10 in the world among researchers within the field of advertising.
      xxx/ellauri233.html on line 201:
      yellow">
      xxx/ellauri233.html on line 343: Hän osti suuria määriä korkean tuoton tuotteita. Hänen kumppaninsa saivat kaksi laivaa Siamista kuljettaakseen kaiken takaisin Japaniin. Adams purjehti Sea Adventurella Japaniin 143 tonnilla sappapuuta ja 3 700 peurannahkaa ja palasi Hiradoon 47 päivässä. (Paluumatka kesti 5. kesäkuuta ja 22. heinäkuuta 1616). Sayers
      xxx/ellauri233.html on line 352: Seuraava matka Siamiin sensijaan meni Aatamilta aivan putkeen. Hän osti suuria määriä korkean tuoton tuotteita. Hänen kumppaninsa saivat kaksi laivaa Siamista kuljettaakseen kaiken takaisin Japaniin. Adams purjehti Merenhuiskeella Japaniin 143 tonnilla sappapuuta ja 3 700 peurannahkaa ja palasi Hiradoon 47 päivässä. (Paluumatka kesti 5. kesäkuuta ja 22. heinäkuuta 1616). Sayers saapui Hiradoon lokakuussa 1616 palkatulla kiinalaisella romulla 44 tonnilla sappaa, puuta. Kolmas alus, japanilainen romu, toi 4 560 peuran nahkaa Nagasakiin ja saapui kesäkuussa 1617 monsuunin jälkeen.
      xxx/ellauri233.html on line 358: Maaliskuussa 1617 Adams lähti Cochinchinaan ostamalla Sayersin Siamista tuoman roskat ja nimettyään sen vielä uudelleen Jumalan lähes ilmaisexi lahjaksi . Hän aikoi löytää kaksi englantilaista tekijää, Tempest Peacock ja Walter Carwarden, jotka olivat lähteneet Hiradosta kaksi vuotta aikaisemmin tutkiakseen kaupallisia mahdollisuuksia Hirado English Factoryn ensimmäisellä Kaakkois-Aasiaan suuntautuvalla matkalla. Adams sai tietää Cochinchinassa, että Peacock oli juotettu juomalla ja tapettu hopeansa vuoksi. Carwarden, joka odotti veneessä alavirtaan, tajusi, että Peacock oli tapettu, ja yritti kiireesti päästä alukseensa. Hänen veneensä kaatui ja hän hukkui.
      xxx/ellauri233.html on line 379: In Christopher Nicole's Lord of the Golden Fan, published just two years before Shōgun, in 1973, Adams is portrayed as sexually frustrated by the morals of his time and seeks freedom in the East, where he has numerous sexual encounters. The work is considered light pornography. Kuulostaa huomattavasti kiinnostavammalta, (K) puoli näyttää olevan kunnossa.
      xxx/ellauri233.html on line 395: Large groups of people, including many yeshivas, uphold the set of Jewish customs and rites (minhag), the "minhag ha-Gra", named after him, the which is also considered by many of his followers to be the prevailing Ashkenazi minhag in Jerusalem.
      xxx/ellauri233.html on line 410: Shneur Zalman of Liadi (Hebrew: שניאור זלמן מליאדי, September 4, 1745 – December 15, 1812 O.S. / 18 Elul 5505 – 24 Tevet 5573), was an influential Lithuanian Jewish rabbi and the founder and first Rebbe of Chabad, a branch of Hasidic Judaism, then based in Liadi in Grand Duchy of Lithuania and later in the Grodno Governorate of the Russian Empire. He was the author of many works, and is best known for Shulchan Aruch HaRav, Tanya, and his Siddur Torah Or compiled according to the Nusach Ari. Zalman is a Yiddish variant of Solomon and Shneur (or Shne'or) is a Yiddish composite of the two Hebrew words "shnei ohr" (שני אור "two ears"). Shneur Zalman was a prominent (and the youngest) disciple of Dov Ber of Mezeritch, the "Great Maggid", who was in turn the successor of the founder of Hasidic Judaism, Yisrael ben Eliezer, known as the Baal Shem Tov. He too displayed extraordinary talent while still a child. By the time he was eight years old, he wrote an all-inclusive commentary on the Torah based on the works of Rashi, Nahmanides and Abraham ibn Ezra.
      xxx/ellauri233.html on line 416: During these years, Shneur Zalman was introduced to mathematics, geometry, and astronomy by two learned brothers, refugees from Bohemia, who had settled in Liozna. One of them was also a scholar of the Kabbalah. Thus, besides mastering rabbinic literature, he also acquired a fair to medium knowledge of the sciences, philosophy, and Kabbalah. He became an adept in Isaac Luria's system of Kabbalah, and in 1764 he became a disciple of Dov Ber of Mezeritch. In 1767, at the age of 22, he was appointed magician of Liozna, a position he held until 1801.
      xxx/ellauri233.html on line 418: In the course of the Hasidic movement's establishment, opponents (Misnagdim) arose among the local Jewish community. Disagreements between Hasidim and their opponents were debated with knives used by butchers for shechita, slaughtering of certain mammals and birds for food according to kashrut. Kashrut (also kashruth or kashrus, כַּשְׁרוּת‎) is a set of dietary laws dealing with the foods that Jews are permitted to eat and how those foods must be prepared according to Jewish law. Food that may be consumed is deemed kosher (/ˈkoʊʃər/ in English, Yiddish: כּשר), from the Ashkenazic pronunciation (KUHsher) of the Hebrew kashér (כָּשֵׁר‎), meaning "fit" (in this context: "fit for consumption"). Oh, and the phrasing of prayers, among others. In the case of an adhesion on cattle's lungs specifically, there is debate between Ashkenazic customs and Sephardic customs.
      xxx/ellauri234.html on line 117: Izenäistymisen alusta lähtien ja etenkin punakapinan kukistuttua kansaamme ruokittiin vittumaisella tavalla vihaamaan kaikkea venäläistä ja erityisesti Neuvostoliittoa. Vihamielistä suhtautumista pönkitettiin aina talvisodan alkuun asti taantumuksellisen ja soi-disant "vapaamielisen" lehdistön, koulujen ja radion välityksellä, lyhyesti sanottuna: kaikin mahdollisin tavoin. Kun vihan myrkyllä täytetyt painostuskeinot eivät ihan riittäneet pokerryttämään kansamme terveitä mielipiteitä, nujerrettiin kaikenlainen ennakkoluulottomuus ja objektiivinen suhtautuminen itäista naapuriamme kohtaan voimakeinoin. Suomen ja Neuvostoliiton valisten ystävällisten ja luonnollisten suhteiden puolestapuhujia vainottiin, heidän organisaationsa lakkautettiin, ja tuhannet kansalaiset tuomittiin pitkin kuritushuonetuomioihin. Silloiset valtaapitävat tuomitsivat ja väkivalloin nujersivat kaikenlaisen poliittisen toiminnan, johon ei kuulunut ryssävihaa.
      xxx/ellauri234.html on line 140: Vankilan suojissa oli suuri määrä vankeja samantapaisista syistä. Meidät eristettiin rikoksia tehneistä vangeista. Yleisesti ottaen kohtelu Vaasan lääninvankilassa oli kutakuinkin korrektia. Oleskeluaika siellä jäi kuitenkin lyhyeksi. Seuraavana päivänä Hitlerin hyökkäyksen käynnistyttyä Neuvostoliittoa vastaan monta vangittua rauhanystävää siirrettiin Köyliön poliittiseen varavankilaan. Tähän vankiryhmään minäkin kuuluin.
      xxx/ellauri234.html on line 145: matkan ajan oli myös todella huono. Vanginvartija valisti meitä tiedolla, että sodasta tulisi lyhyt. Neuvostoliiton lyöminen kestäisi ainoastaan kaksi viikkoa tai korkeintaan kuukauden, ja natsismin voitto olisi varmistettu. Hän tiesi kertoa, että venäläisten vuokraama Hangon niemellä sijaitseva alue oli vallattu takaisin neljässä tunnissa. (Kuten hyvin tiedetään, viimeiset venäläiset joukot lähtivät Hangon niemeltä 5. joulukuuta samana vuonna). Rintamalla olevat »pojat» ehtisivät kotiin heinänkorjuuseen. Salamasota vietäisiin loppuun ennätyksellisen lyhyessä ajassa, ja Suomesta tulisi Pohjolan johtava valtio. Tällä tavoin Hitler palkitsisi urheat ja uskolliset liittolaisensa Suomessa. Kaikki muuttuisi parempaan päin, ja tuhatvuotinen valtakunta siunaisi meitä sekä jälkeläisiämme.
      xxx/ellauri234.html on line 159: Koko aamupäivä käytiin kovaa tulitaistelua pienen puna-armeijan joukon ja suomalaisten rintaman taakse sijoitettujen varmistusjoukkojen välillä. Aibeutettuaan sekamelskan yhteyksissä ja tuntuvia tappioita varmistusjoukoille puna-armeijan joukko-osasto perääntyi metsään ja taisteli samalla lukumääräisesti ylivoimaisen vastustajan kanssa. Kun perääntyessämme ohitimme taistelualueen, tien kupeessa montussa makasi haavoittunut puna-armeijan sotilas. Hän oli ottanut paitansa pois ja sitonut sillä haavansa. Koska hänen toverinsa pakotettiin perääntymään, he joutuivat jättämään haavoittuneen jälkeensä. Silloin yksi varmistusjoukkojen rohkea sankari juoksi haavoittuneen luo ja ampui puolustuskyvytöntä venäläissotilasta päähän niin, että aivot valuivat maahan. Tämä oli karmea näky ja yksi esimerkki tuhansista vastaavanlaisista tapauksista, joissa ilmeni suursuomalaisten sotilaiden hillitsemätön verenhimo haavoittuneita vastustajia kohtaan. Iso-Paulikin kertoi kuinka sotakaverit veivät sotavangit saunan taaxe ja lasauttivat ilmat pois.
      xxx/ellauri234.html on line 171: Koska mitään ei kuulunut ja aika kului, aloimme jo, vaikkakin katkerin mielin, valmistautua siihen, että vankeutemme jatkuisi. Yllätyimme siis melkoisesti 5. marraskuuta 1944, kun saimme ilmoituksen, että päivä on koittanut. Siis se päivä, jota olimme odottaneet kaikki nämä vuodet: vapautumisen päivä! Vartija ilmoitti lyhyesti viimeiset käskynsä: Valmistautukaa lähtöön. Ottakaa pois vanginpukunne ja pukeutukaa sotilaspukuunne. Puolen tunnin kuluttua on lähdön aika.
      xxx/ellauri234.html on line 268: Hyvät herrat. Raamattu todistaa, että ihminen on luonnostansa paha. Ja Darwinin kehitysoppi on omituisen selvästi kyennyt osoittamaan tämän todistuksen pitäneen paikkansa menneinäkin päivinä vielä enemmän kuin nyt, vieläpä niin, että ihminen oli raakalaisen, barbaarin, eläimenkin asteella. Me olemme nousseet siitä joka päivä, vuosisata ja vuosimiljoona. Mutta elämän taistelun primitiivinen vietti on säilynyt meissä. Alkueläimet taistelevat, kirjoittamaton, väkevä, kamala luonnonlaki (EFK) vaikuttaa ihmisissäkin, kahdennenkymmenennen vuosisadan ihmisissä: jonakin odottamattomana päivänä tukahtuvat omituisesti 'Aseet pois' huudot konekiväärien, miinanheittäjien, tykkien ja mössä rien räiskeeseen ja pauhinaan. Tehkäämme työtä sen päivän eteen. Jumala varjelkoon meitä sinä päivänä, muttei ryssiä.
      xxx/ellauri234.html on line 475: This really hits home for me. I am exactly 27 years old, I work two somewhat dead-end, low-paying jobs (warehouse at Floor and Decor and a DSP for the developmentally disabled). Last year, I tried to commit suicide in my car after a long period of living in my car. The car didn't survive the suicide attempt, but I did. Surprisingly, I only got a few bumps and bruises from the accident, but nothing major. I was in a psych ward for 2 weeks. After that, I had to move back in with my parents in their one bedroom apartment. I hate them for all that they put me through this past year, but I'm grateful for their conditional love. My presence in my dad's life counts for a lot, especially since he probably feels like a failure like you and me.
      xxx/ellauri234.html on line 487: Indeed if I could I would rather not have any children. Was almost 30-years old when I did. The issue was the bitch of a partner I chose - not the children. Most of their childhood was complete misery for them but I won’t get those great years back. I kept in a good shape and whacked them well and right to the best of my ability. They are all successful adults now. They are grateful that we are not close at all these days, and I’m living and learning to be OK with that.
      xxx/ellauri234.html on line 489: One word for the wise and depressed men described in this thread: VASECTOMY. Get it! I got it. Too late tho. Highly unlikely that creating another being entirely dependent on you for 18 years is going to do much to change your mood. Don’t have kids unless parenthood is your top priority and ambition in life. Kurt Cobain was right: it’s a setup!. Plant a house. Build a tree! Take a beer! Have a cow! Watch some TV! Join Depressive Quora!
      xxx/ellauri234.html on line 494: But by some stroke of luck (seemed like a heartbreaking tragedy 3 years ago)
      xxx/ellauri234.html on line 499: Thank you for this response, I am a female, 55 years old, without my 2 children who went in a car accident. All of my life I had to deal with women complaining about being single moms. It is really only me who is genuinely single. Plus, my own mother is toxic. I wish I wasn’t born, but I still see the beauty in this earth for software developers.
      xxx/ellauri234.html on line 505: Hi Jack, I read your article and feel your pain. My daughter developed depression in her early teens and it continued for many years, with 10 pathetic suicide attempts. She couldn't even find her arse, let alone her arteries. We tried everything doctors and therapists prescribed, with not much help. It was exhausting and discouraging. Then, miraculously, the depression seemed to “lift". Almost like she grew out of it. Sadly since then she was diagnosed with cancer and is unable to have children now. More recently her fiance was killed in a motor cycle accident. Neither of those things set her back, it's like the depression never existed. Hang in there Jack! A lucky car or bike accident may solve everything yet!
      xxx/ellauri234.html on line 522: The Russkies have a brand new missile they call Sarmat (for us Satan-2) that can carry no less than 10 nuclear warheads all the way to us. Which our outdated Patriots cannot stop. So there is hope for us who are down and out as yet.
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 192: Beneath those rugged elms, that yew-tree's shade, Noiden karujen jalavaen alla, tuon marjapuun varjossa,
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 215: The short and simple annals of the poor. Lyhyet ja yksinkertaiset köyhien aikakirjat.
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 222: Nor you, ye proud, impute to these the fault, Ettekä te, te ylpeät, laske näiden syyksi,
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 237: But Knowledge to their eyes her ample page Mutta tieto heidän silmissään hänen runsaasti sivuaan
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 255: And read their hist'ry in a nation's eyes, Ja lue heidän historiansa kansan silmissä,
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 277: Their name, their years, spelt by th' unletter'd muse, Heidän nimensä, heidän vuodet, kirjaimin kirjoitettuna,
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 288: Some pious drops the closing eye requires; Joitakin hurskaita tippoja silmän sulkeminen vaatii;
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 314: Another came; nor yet beside the rill, Toinen tuli; eikä vielä rillin vieressä,
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 355: The release of the publication comes just over three years after her 52-year-old husband was forced to release a personal statement denying internet claims of a gay affair with his young special adviser, Christopher Myers.
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 374: Muse, Contemplation ("Oodissa keväällä") ja isä Thames herätetään heidän omaavansa profeetallisen viisauden vuoksi. Yksi profetian tehtävistä on muuttaa halu "rakkaudeksi" tai "raivotuhoisiksi intohimoiksi". Mielikuvituksen personifiointitottumus paljastaa halun omaksumat alhaiset muodot ("Kateus hiipuu, ja haalistunut hoito"), aivan kuten "Oodissa keväällä" oleva "ihmisen rotu" paljastuu hyönteiselämänä "Mietiskelyn raittiin silmälle". " Visio palvelee aina muodon paljastamista, ja Greyssä paljastettua on vähennetty, kielletty tai kielletty. Reduktiivisen tunnustamisen strategia "Oodissa keväällä" hylkää unelman halusta; strategia jättimäisten spektrimuotojen luomiseksi Eton Collegen oodissa rohkaisee pahoihin uniin, halun kääntäminen demoniseksi. Northrop Frye kuvailee jotain tämän tyyppistä toimintaa keskustelussaan Quest-Romancesta: "Käännettynä unelmatermeiksi, etsintä-romantiikka on libidon tai kaipaavan itsensä etsimistä täyttymykseen, joka vapauttaa sen todellisuuden peloista, mutta sisältää silti se todellisuus." Toteuttaminen voi vaatia, kuten Grayn tapauksessa, että suojeleva äitihahmo syrjäyttää uhkaavan naispuolisen oikeushenkilön; Siten syyllisyys haihtuu halun hylänneen tottelevaisen näyttelijän saamassa hyväksynnässä. Tämä yhteenveto kuvaa myös "Hymn to Adversity".
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 419: Ja kevyesti elävää kohtausta
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 442: Erään aiemman paasauxen mukaan EM Forster oli homo, kuin myös Brooks Forester, the 6'2″, 28-year-old Sales rep/part-time model/Mormon from Salt Lake City competing for Desiree's heart this season of the Bachelorette is also sparking a few gay rumors and gaining a gay fan base like Sean Lowe.
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 444: Of course, most readers will want to learn about Hornblower (one of the few fictional characters with a biography), where that name came from, and what mechanism the father used to develop the many characters in his novels. But who would be startled to learn that Forester played an important role in the propaganda used by the UK to encourage the US’s entrance into WW2?
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 481: Roald Dahl's children's books are full of barely submerged misogyny, lust and violence. Roald Dahl was an unpleasant man who wrote macabre books – and yet children around the world adore them. Perhaps this shouldn’t surprise us, writes Hephzibah (Hetty) Anderson. Kids can be so cruel. Oh can we? Thanx mom! .... Oow! Oow!
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 573: Like other poets of the Archaic Age, he reveals a deep sense of the vicissitudes of life and yet, unlike them, he also articulates a passionate faith in what men can achieve by the grace of the gods, most famously expressed in his conclusion to one of his Victory Odes: Creatures of a day! What is a man? What is he not? A dream of a shadow Is our mortal being. But when there comes to men A gleam of splendour given of heaven, Then rests on them a light of glory And blessed are their days.
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 608: The terror of his beak, and light'nings of his eye. Hänen nokkansa kauhu ja hänen silmänsä valot.
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 684: Richly paint the vernal year: Rikkaasti maalatkaa smurffit sillä joka kevätpuoli:
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 698: Clos'd his eyes in endless night. Sulki silmänsä loputtomana yönä.
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 706: Bright-eyed Fancy hovering o'er Kirkassilmäinen rakettikeiju leijuu ovella
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 716: Yet oft before his infant eyes would run Silti usein ennen kuin hänen sukkansa silmät juoksivat
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 765: How handsome are your gauzy wings, how brilliant are your eyes! Sulla on pizimäiset siivet, ja sun silmät sädehtivät!
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 779: Your eyes are like the diamond bright, but mine are dull as lead." Sun silmät on kuion timantit, mun on lyijynmustat.
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 785: Thinking only of her brilliant eyes, and green and purple hue:– Ajatellen vain kirkkaita silmiään, kaunista mekkoaan;
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 794: Unto an evil counsellor, close heart, and ear, and eye, Sulkekaa korvat, silmät, sydän häntäheikin juonilta,
      xxx/ellauri235.html on line 806: So they went up to the Mock Turtle, who looked at them with large eyes full of tears, but said nothing.
      xxx/ellauri237.html on line 134: Among modern Western male heteronormal scholars, Sappho´s sexuality is still debated – André Lardinois has described it as the "Great Sappho Question". Early translators of Sappho sometimes heterosexualised her poetry. Ambrose Philips´ 1711 translation of the Ode to Aphrodite portrayed the object of Sappho´s desire as male, a reading that was followed by virtually every other translator of the poem until the twentieth century, while in 1781 Alessandro Verri interpreted fragment 31 as being about Sappho´s love for a guy named Phaon. Friedrich Gottlieb Welcker argued that Sappho´s feelings for other women were "entirely idealistic and non-sensual", while Karl Otfried Müller wrote that fragment 31 described "nothing but a friendly affection": Glenn Most comments that "one wonders what language Sappho would have used to describe her feelings if they had been ones of sexual excitement", if this theory were correct. By 1970, it would be argued that the same poem contained "proof positive of [Sappho´s] lesbianism".
      xxx/ellauri237.html on line 250: G. O. Wasenius polveutui jo 1700-luvun alkupuolella Hämeenlinnassa vaikuttaneesta Waseniusten porvarissuvusta. Hänen isänsä kuoli 1797, mutta äiti jatkoi perheen kauppaliikettä ilmeisesti menestyen, sillä kaikki kolme aikuiseksi elänyttä poikaa lähetettiin 1800-luvun alussa harjoittamaan opintoja Turun akatemiaan. Gustaf Otto Wasenius ei kuitenkaan opiskellut pitkään vaan ryhtyi lukuisten merimatkojen jälkeen hoitamaan äitinsä kauppaliikettä. Hänen vanhemmista veljistään sen sijaan kasvoi monipuolisesti sivistyneitä virkamiehiä. Heistä Adolf Johan Waseniuksella oli osuutensa kauppiasveljen siirtymisessä uuteen pääkaupunkiin; hän toimi esittelijäsihteerinä senaatissa, ja G. O. Waseniuksen muuttaessa 1817 Helsinkiin oli myös senaatin muutto uuteen pääkaupunkiin jo tiedossa. G. O. Waseniuksen päiväkirjamerkinnöistä selviää, että hän solmi veljen välityksellä innokkaasti tuttavuuksia senaatin virkamiehiin ja haki myöhemmin kirjakauppiaana aktiivisesti yhteyksiä yliopistomaailmaan. Yhteydenpidosta ja liikesuhteista näihin kaupungin keskeisiin instituutioihin tulikin Waseniuksen menestyksen avain. Ennen pitkää hänestä tuli tavarantoimittaja senaattiin, yliopiston kirjakauppias ja monen yliopistonopettajan kustantaja. Näpit syvällä yhteisessä laarissa.
      xxx/ellauri237.html on line 590: Pablo Neruda, alkuperäiseltä nimeltään Ricardo Eliecer Neftalí Reyes Basoalto (1904-1972) oli Nobel-sertifioitu chileläinen runoilija, diplomaatti ja kommunistipuolueen poliitikko. Nerudaa pidetään yhtenä 1900-luvun tärkeimmistä runoilijoista ja latinalaisamerikkalaisista senaattoreista, lukuunottamatta Vargas Llosaa ja Pinochetia.
      xxx/ellauri237.html on line 690: Pinochet went on to rule Chile as a dictator for 17 years. When he got sick he was lovingly cared for in the UK.
      xxx/ellauri237.html on line 700: Under the influence of the free market-oriented "Chicago Boys", Pinochet's military government implemented economic liberalization following neoliberalism, including currency stabilization, removed tariff protections for local industry, banned trade unions, and privatized social security and hundreds of state-owned enterprises. Some of the government properties were sold below market price to politically connected buyers, including Pinochet's own son-in-law. The regime used censorship of entertainment as a way to reward supporters of the regime and punish opponents. These policies produced high economic growth, but critics state that economic inequality dramatically increased and attribute the devastating effects of the 1982 monetary crisis on the Chilean economy to these policies.
      xxx/ellauri237.html on line 832: Hay que tener en cuenta que Neruda vivía separado de su todavía mujer, Delia del Carril, a la cual enviaba cartas en las que le ocultaba su relación con Matilde. El aire está aquí. Ojalá fueras hermosa. Esta situación, sumada a la lejanía de su patria, influye de forma decisiva en el contenido de Los versos del capitán. La primera edición de este libro (1952), de tirada limitadísima, ni siquiera llevó su nombre. No quería Neruda que se hiciese público su romance… Diez años más tarde, el poeta chileno reconocía la autoría, y justificaba su anonimato debido al “clima desconsolado y ardiente del destierro”…
      xxx/ellauri237.html on line 963: Las personas altamente funcionales se caracterizan por estar en un proceso constante de auto-actualización, es decir, búsqueda de un ajuste casi perfecto con los objetivos y las metas vitales. Este proceso de desarrollo personal se encuentra en el presente, por lo que siempre está en funcionamiento. De este modo, la personalidad de las personas altamente funcionales es, para Mr. Rabbit, un marco en el que fluye en tiempo real un modo de vivir la vida que se adapta a las circunstancias constantemente.
      xxx/ellauri237.html on line 1005: Nää on mielen pikakuvakkeita, ei muuta! Lyhyesti sanottuna Mikki-vaikutus ei ole muuta kuin kognitiivisen puolueellisuuden muodon ilmentymä. Se osoittaa taipumusta hyväksyä alkuperäisiksi ja omiksi imarteluja, jotka ovat todella epäselviä ja riittävän yleisiä, jotta niitä voidaan saarnata käytännössä kenestä tahansa. Tämän suuntauksen ansiosta Forer onnistui välittämään alkuperäisenä "persoonallisuuden lukemisen", jolle on ominaista juuri sen tarkkuuden puute puhuttaessa ominaisuuksista, joita henkilöllä voi olla, mutta joka kuitenkin yllätti opiskelijat muka uskollisella todellisuuden heijastuksellaan.
      xxx/ellauri237.html on line 1007: Lisäksi tämä koe on toistettu monta kertaa ihan identtisesti, jolloin saadaan hyvin samanlaisia tuloksia (arvioidut ihmiset eivät yleensä pisteytä alle 4/5 analyysin tarkkuudella). Näiden kokeiden ansiosta tiedämme, että on olemassa kolme tekijää, jotka esiintyessään tekevät Mikki Hiiri-vaikutuksesta korostuneemman:
      xxx/ellauri237.html on line 1056: Optimismista on kuitenkin tullut muotia, ja jotkut ihmiset haluavat näyttää optimistisilta, vaikka heidän sisäinen maailmansa on murtunut. Heillä ei ole hyvää yhteyttä itseensä, mutta he peittävät itsensä optimismin luotiliivillä. Falski optimismi ruokkii sitä, ettei halua kohdata todellisuutta ongelmien välttämiseksi, ja siitä tulee kaksiteräinen partaterä, joka ennemmin tai myöhemmin päätyy vahingolliseksi. Lyhyesti sanottuna se kätkee kivun ja kärsimyksen kieltämisen.
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 45: yer-3.jpg" height="250px" />
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 50: Wayne W. Dyer on izehoitopersoona, joka on tullut mainituxi toisaalla esimerkkinä ESFP-persoonallisuudesta. ESFP (extroverted sensing feeling perceiving) is one of the sixteen personality types of the Myers-Briggs Type Inventory (MBTI) test. ESFPs operate from the principle that “all the world’s a stage” — and they want to be the stars. ESFP on realistinen sopeutuja ihmissuhteissa. ESFP on jenkein ja ämmämäisin tyypeistä: öykkäri ketku touho ääliö. Tai positiivisemmin, "Free-spirited and fun-loving people persons" kuten Kinsella. ESFPs are enthusiastic about having new experiences and meeting new people. They are generally warm and adaptable realists who go with the flow. ESFP authors include Tony Robbins, Wayne Dyer, Deepak Chopra, Bill Clinton, and Paulo "Kani" Coelho. Learn more about how ESFPs write somewhere else. Eli tämä paasaus keskittyy vain Wile E. Coyoteen alias Wayne W. Dyeriin.
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 52: yer Wayne"> Wayne Walter Dyer (10. toukokuuta 1940 – 29. elokuuta 2015) oli amerikkalainen itseapukirjailija ja motivoiva puhuja. Dyer suoritti kasvatustieteen pikkudiplomin ohjauksessa ja neuvonnassa mukaansa nimitetyssä Wayne State Universityssä vuonna 1970. Uransa alkuvaiheessa hän työskenteli lukion ohjausneuvojana ja jatkoi menestyksekkään yksityisen terapiakäytännön suorittamista. Hänestä tuli suosittu neuvonantajakoulutuksen professori St. Johnin yliopistossa (joku muukin oli äskettäin sieltä valmistunut, kukahan se oli?), jossa kirjallinen agentti lähestyi häntä laittamaan ideansa kirjamuotoon. Tuloksena oli hänen ensimmäinen kirjansa, Your Eroneous Zones (1976), yksi kaikkien aikojen myydyimmistä kirjoista, jota on tähän mennessä myyty arviolta 100 miljoonaa kappaletta. Jopa huomattavasti enemmän kuin ruozalaisia dekkaristeja, mutta vähemmän kuin Pauli Kanin pakinoita.
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 54: Tämä aloitti Dyerin uran motivoivana puhujana ja itseapukirjailijana, jonka aikana hän julkaisi 20 eniten myydyintä kirjaa ja tuotti useita suosittuja erikoisuuksia FBI:lle. Abraham Marshmallowin ja Albert Einsteinin kaltaisten ajattelijoiden vaikutuksesta Dyerin varhainen työ keskittyi psykologisiin teemoihin, kuten motivaatioon, itsensä toteuttamiseen ja itsevarmuuteen. 1990-luvulla hänen työnsä painopiste oli siirtynyt henkisyyteen ja kaljuuteen. Swami Muktanandan ja New Thoughtin innoittamana [lainaus tarvitaan] hän edisti teemoja, kuten "aikeiden voima", teki yhteistyötä vapaaehtoisen lääketieteen puolestapuhujan Deepak Chopran (Deepakin paskiaisesta on jo paasattu) kanssa useissa projekteissa ja oli usein vieraana Oprah Winfrey Showssa. Mutta nyt on Wayne viimeinkin nimensä mukaisesti vainaja, Tao tai ei Taoa.
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 71: Tässä yhteydessä relevantti merkitys on 2). Löysin vaihtojyrsijöiden hyllystä espanjankielisenä Waynen teoxen Nuevos pensamientos para una vida mejor: la sabiduria del tao ja päätin tutustua samassa hötäkässä sekä Dyeriin että Daoon. Senverran hengellistä fuusiosafkaa oli tarjona että piti tutustua: kiinalaisia ajatuxia kaljusta jenkkipäästä latinojen matukielellä. Espanja on muutenkin ajankohtainen kielenä, pitihän Jöns mulle puheen simplified espanjaxi 70-vuotispäivänä. Tosin se koski enemmän Jeesusta ja Jönsiä kuin päivänsankaria.
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 130: Copia a mano estas palabras, estúdialas y ponlas de vuelta en tu bolsillo en la práctica al menos una vez al dia. Así revitalizarás el flujo del Tao en tu vida dentro este mundo de las diez mil cosas. Namaste, Dr. Wayne W. Dryer.
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 138: Kopioi nämä sanat käsin, tutkistele niitä ja laita ne takaisin taskuun käytännössä vähintään kerran päivässä. Näin elvytät Taon virtauksen elämässäsi tässä kymmenentuhannen tuotteen maailmassa. Namaste, tohtori Wayne W. Dryer.
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 255:
    18. Jesus on Prayer
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 395: Selma ei kyennyt aidosti rakastamaan ketään. Sillä on vain ystäviä kuin Kristina-tädillä. Hän oli erittäin sosiaalinen ja suosittu. Selman kyynelkanavat tuhoutuivat veskan kyynärpäästä. Kohtalokas ulostulo. Ei se rakasta lapsiaankaan. Lapset syystä vihaa sitä.
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 398: Morten Harket (s. 14. syyskuuta 1959 Kongsberg, Norja) on norjalaisen popyhtye A-han laulaja. A-ha on julkaissut kahdeksan studioalbumia ja sen kappale "Take on Me" nousi useissa maissa listojen kärkeen vuonna 1985. Harket on julkaissut myös kuusi sooloalbumia. Harket juonsi vuoden 1996 Eurovision laulukilpailun yhdessä Ingvild Brynin kanssa. Morten Harket Always Stays The Same.
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 421: Pour Proudhon, la seule source légitime de la propriété est le travail. Ce que chacun produit est sa propriété et celle de nul autre. Considéré comme un socialiste libertaire, Proudhon refuse la possession capitaliste des moyens de production. De même, il rejette la possession des produits du travail par la société, estimant que « la propriété du produit, quand même elle serait accordée, n'emporte pas la propriété de l'instrument. Le droit au produit est exclusif, jus in re ; le droit à l'instrument est commun, jus ad rem.». Pour Proudhon, seule la propriété coopérative, gérée en autogestion par les producteurs librement associés, permet le développement des individualités: c'est le mutuellisme.
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 471: "Holts nye krimi er på mange måder en tilbagevenden til den klassiske krimi med dens puslespil. Men den er samtidig både en gennemført kritik, ikke bare af det 'cirkus', der holder den norske nationalsport landrend i gang, men også en smertevoldende solde ned i de psykologiske mekanismer, der får mennesker til at overleve socialt." Jyllands-Posten, 5 af 6 stjerner
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 476: "… en perfekt tilføjelse til og fornyelse af forfatterens lange forfatterskab." Krimisiden.dk
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 486: Koskettava joulutarina tuo taas yhteen Jouluksi kotiin -rainan ohjaajan Per-Olav Sørensenin ja tähden Ida Elise Brochin. Samoilta naamareilta siis on tullut ennen tämmönen rykäisy: Maailmalla menestynyt tähti Simon saapuu kotimaahansa Ruotsiin joulunviettoon. Hänen veljensä Anders järjestää lapsuuden pikkupaikkakunnalla vuosittain joulukonsertin, ja Simon ylipuhutaan mukaan. Menestyneen veljensä varjossa kasvanut Anders ei ole tästä mielissään, mutta Simon suhtautuu tilanteeseen kevyesti - kunnes vanhat muistot heräävät henkiin ja hänen on kohdattava haudatut perhesalaisuudet. Rooleissa: Peter Jöback, Johannes Kuhnke, Suzanne Reuter, Jennie Silfverhjelm. Ruotsalainen elokuva vuodelta 2019. Tällä kertaa ylimakeaan joulutunnelmaan mennään näillä eväillä:
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 560: Eniveis, kyllä tässä jo jotain uskaltaa lyödä vetoa, että tohtori Roope Bob on arkkitehti Toivo Robertin jälkeläisiä. Itse olen sen verran vahingoniloista sorttia, että pidän ihan sopivana, että ns merkkisuvun kronikkaan saadaan vähintään alaviitteeksi henkirikoksesta narahtanut. Terveystalossa ainakin toimii psykiatrina, ei näköjään saa aikoja seuraavaan 60 päivään 😏 Ilta-Pulu haastatteli helsinkiläistä miestä, joka oli käynyt epäillyn etävastaanotolla työuupumukseen liittyen viime keväänä. – Hän vaikutti sellaiselta rennolta ja jopa hyväntuuliselta, mies kertoo. Mies kuvailee, että lääkäristä jäi ammattitaitoinen kuva. Tapaaminen oli "jopa yllättävän miellyttävä", miehelle oli helppo jutella. Kellekkähän sitä menisi seuraavaxi... Ei se halpa ollut...
      xxx/ellauri239.html on line 742: Uskon, että lääkkeiden väärinkäytöllä lienee osallisuutta mereen ajoon, tekoon ja sangen erikoiseen tapaan aamusella yrittää nostaa ruumista maton sisällä autoon keskellä taloyhtiön pihaa. :roll: Itse pesen mattoja kesäisin, ja olohuoneen matto painaa märkänä sen verran, etten saa nostettua sitä omin voimin. Saati sitten, jos maton lisäksi pitäisi nostaa ruumis. Eipä tulisi mitään koko hommasta. En ryhtyisi hommaan näillä tiedoin, vaikken yllä älylliseltä tasoltani lähellekään tuollaisia huippulääkäreitä. Siksi ajattelen, että tekijä on tainnut olla enemmän tai vähemmän mömmöissä, ja pään selkiytyessä taitaa herralla tulla maailmanluokan facepalm.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 58: Justiinsa niin! Kirottuja olkoot sukulaiset, etenkin Kristiina-täti ja Pedofiili Petteri. Vitun mulkeroita. Kristiina-täti nimitti mun 9-vuotispiirrosta "lipeväxi" vielä selän takana, kun istuin paskalla Pedofiilin läpikaikuvassa vessassa. Pedofiili pani oman nimityxensä omille lapsilleen "taas tuli halkiohaara" mun nimiini. Helvetti ize ämyröi sitä puhelimen torveen Merimiehenkadulla Siirin syntyessä. Toivon kummallekin jotain oikein pahaa, esim. ilkeän koronavirustartunnan. No toive toteutui Kristiina-tädin osalta jo izenäisyyspäivänä, kun sen exä Ripe rippasi. Nyze ei enää ole elävän leski ainakaan.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 134: Guan Moye (simplified Chinese: 管谟业; traditional Chinese: 管謨業; pinyin: Guǎn Móyè; born 17 February 1955) on toistaisexi ainoa aito viirusilmä kiinalainen nobelisti, länsimaisittain vaan Mo Yan, jonka romaanin Punainen durra kahden luvun pohjalta on elokuvakin, nim. Punainen pelto (1987). Länsimaissa Mo Yania on verrattu muun muassa Franz Kafkaan ja Joseph Helleriin. Yhteiskunnallisia kysymyksiä kuvatessaan hän käyttää maagisen realismin keinoja.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 156: Fante was diagnosed with diabetes in 1955, which ultimately cost him his eyesight and led to the 1977 amputation of his toes and feet, and later legs. He died on May 8, 1983.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 159: He is best known for his semi-autobiographical novel Ask the Dust (1939) about the life of Arturo Bandini, a struggling writer in Depression-era Los Angeles. It is widely considered the great Los Angeles novel, and is one in a series of four, published between 1938 and 1985, that are now collectively called "The Bandini Quartet". Ask the Dust was adapted into a 2006 film starring Colin Farrell and Salma Hayek.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 161: Ask the Dust is a 2006 romantic drama film based on the 1939 book Ask the Dust by John Fante. The film was written and directed by Robert Towne. Tom Cruise (with Paula Wagner and Cruise/Wagner Productions) served as one of the film's producers. The film was released on a limited basis on March 17, 2006, and was entered into the 28th Moscow International Film Festival. It was filmed almost entirely in South Africa with the use of stages to portray Los Angeles. The film received negative to mixed reviews from critics. The review aggregator Rotten Tomatoes reported that 65% of critics gave the film negative reviews, based on 104 reviews. The site's consensus states: "Though Hayek is luminous, Farrell seems miscast, and the film fails to capture the gritty, lively edginess of the book upon which it's based."
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 213: Sedan sju år tillbaka har Gunilla lämnat ifrån sig ansvaret för företaget Bokmakaren till sonen Pål, ett syskonbarn och en svåger. – Det är en lättnad! Nu kan jag bara koncentrera mig på det som är roligt. På kierkegaarden är det mye roligt nu.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 340: Ham on Rye (norsk Nedenom og hjem) er en halvbiografisk roman av Charles Bukowski fra 1982, utgitt på norsk i 1993. Hovedpersonen er forfatterens alter ego Henry Chinaski, som opptrer i flere av hans verker. Nedenom og hjem er en oppvekstskildring som anses å være en nøkkelroman for Bukowski.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 360: Det kom ikke et ljud, bare en gisp, når han trengte in i henne. Hon var fremdeles mye sleip av Mickys runk. Hvor bra at hun kom ganske hurtigt, for Harry kjente det stramme til pungfestet og kom straks etter. Det kom så mye runk at det smittet over. Dette og nåe han kunde banne på var lykke. Dette er meningen av livet, ikke sant? Nettopp, sa Charles Darwin. Lähtiessä Kaija kiitti vielä Harrya mahtavasta mällistä.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 558: Bukowski's parents met in Andernach following World War I. His father was German-American and a sergeant in the United States Army serving in Germany after the empire's defeat in 1918. He had an affair with Katharina, a German friend's sister, and she subsequently became pregnant. Bukowski repeatedly claimed to be born out of wedlock, but Andernach marital records indicate that his parents married one month before his birth. Afterwards, Bukowski's father became a building contractor, set to make great financial gains in the aftermath of the war, and after two years moved the family to Pfaffendorf (today part of Koblenz). However, given the crippling postwar reparations being required of Germany, which led to a stagnant economy and high levels of inflation, he was unable to make a living and decided to move the family to the U.S. On April 23, 1923, they sailed from Bremerhaven to Baltimore, Maryland, where they settled.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 560: The family moved to Mid-City, Los Angeles, in 1930. Bukowski's father was often unemployed. To while away his time, with his mother's acquiescence, his father was frequently abusive, both physically and mentally, beating his son for the smallest real or imagined offense. Heini later told an interviewer that his father beat him with a razor strop three times a week from the ages of six to 11 years. He says that it helped his writing, as he came to understand undeserved as well as well deserved pain.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 562: Young Bukowski spoke English with a strong German accent and was taunted by his childhood playmates with the epithet "Heinie", German diminutive of Heinrich, in his early youth. He was shy and socially withdrawn, a condition exacerbated during his teen years by an extreme case of acne. Neighborhood children ridiculed his accent, acne and the sensible clothing his parents made him wear. Nachdem sein Vater seinen Wehrdienst abgeleistet hatte, fand er jedoch nur eine Arbeit als Milchlieferant. Die Familie lebte aus diesem Grund zeitweise in ärmlichen Verhältnissen. Regelmäßig betrog der Vater außerdem Bukowskis Mutter mit anderen Frauen, betrank sich und misshandelte seinen eigenen Sohn körperlich. In die Pubertät gekommen, litt Bukowski zudem an starker Akne und hatte am ganzen Körper Pusteln, weshalb er ein ganzes Jahr nicht die Schule besuchen "konnte". The Great Depression bottled his rage as he grew up, and gave him much of his voice and material for his writings.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 563: In his early teen years, Bukowski had a cow when he was introduced to alcohol by his friend William "Baldy" Mullinax, depicted as "Eli LaCrosse" in Ham on Rye, son of an alcoholic surgeon. "This 'alcohol' is going to help me for a very long time," he later wrote, describing a method (of drinking) he could use to come to more amicable terms with his own life. After graduating from Los Angeles High School, Bukowski attended Los Angeles City College for two years, taking courses in art, journalism, and literature, before quitting at the start of World War II. He then moved to New York City to begin a career as a financially pinched blue-collar worker with dreams of becoming a writer.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 567: Failing to break into the military world, Bukowski grew disillusioned with the publication process and quit writing for almost a decade, a time that he referred to as a "ten-year drunk". These "lost years" formed the basis for his later semiautobiographical chronicles, fictionalized versions of Bukowski's life through his highly stylized alter-ego, Henry Chinaski.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 569: 1947 kehrte Bukowski nach Los Angeles zurück und lernte die zehn Jahre ältere Jane Cooney Baker (1910–1962) kennen, mit der er bis Anfang der 1950er-Jahre zusammenlebte. During part of this period he continued living in Los Angeles, working at a margarine - no, a pickle factory for a short time but also spending some time roaming about the U.S., working sporadically like Donald Duck and staying in cheap rooming houses. Ab 1952, he took a job as a fill-in letter carrier with the United States Post Office Department in Los Angeles, but resigned just before he reached three years' service.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 571: In 1955 oder 1954, Bukowski was treated for a near-fatal bleeding ulcer. After leaving the hospital he began to write poetry. 1955 he "agreed to marry" small-town Texas poet Barbara Frye, but they subsequently divorced in 1958. Frye, die aus einer vermögenden texanischen Familie stammte, war selbst Schriftstellerin und zugleich Herausgeberin eines kleinen, alternativen Literaturmagazins namens Harlekiini. Apparently she later died under mysterious circumstances in India. Following his divorce, Bukowski resumed drinking and continued writing poetry.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 576: In 1969, Bukowski accepted an offer from Black Sparrow Press publisher John Martin and quit his post office job to dedicate himself to full-time writing. He was then 49 years old. As he explained in a letter at the time, "I have one of two choices – stay in the post office and go crazy ... or stay out here and play at writer and starve. I have decided to starve. Hah, he made a lot of bucks! By the late 1970s, Bukowski's income was sufficient to give up his lucrative live readings.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 582: His other affairs included a recording executive and a twenty-three-year-old redhead Scarlet O'Hara. Another important relationship was with "Tanya" who gave him head.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 587: Two years later they moved from the East Hollywood area, where he had lived for most of his life, to the harborside community of San Pedro, the southernmost district of Los Angeles. Beighle followed him and they lived together intermittently over the next two years. He eventually "agreed to" marry her by Manly Palmer Hall, a Canadian-born author, mystic, and spiritual teacher, in 1985. Beighle is referred to as "Sara Heinämaa" in Bukowski's novels Women and Hollywood.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 606: Barfly, released in 1987, is a barfingly semi-autobiographical film written by Bukowski and starring Mickey Rourke as Henry Chinaski, who represents Bukowski, and Faye Dunaway as his lover Wanda Wilcox. Sean Penn offered to play Chinaski for one dollar as long as his friend Dennis Hopper would direct,[53] but the European director Barbet Schroeder had invested many years and thousands of dollars in the project and Bukowski felt Schroeder deserved to make it. Bukowski wrote the screenplay, was given script approval, and appears as a bar patron in a brief cameo.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 608: Charles Bukowski was the inspiration behind the first chapter of Mark Manson's bestselling self-help book The Subtle Art of Not Giving a Fuck. Charles Bukowski has been depicted on television as well, namely on the Showtime comedy-drama series Californication. The show's main character Hank Moody, played by actor David Duchovny, is an author based in Los Angeles who subscribes to the same kind of lifestyle that Bukowski became known for. The show depicts profuse indulgence of alcoholism, sex and narcotics, which many critics have described as a television adaption of Bukowski'
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 612: Chinaski is a writer who worked for years as a mail carrier. An alcoholic, womanizing misanthrope, he serves as both the protagonist and antihero of the novels in which he appears, which span from his poverty-stricken childhood to his middle age, in which he finds some small success as a hippie Idol.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 696: On December 12, 2022, Bankman-Fried was arrested in the Bahamas and was subsequently extradited to the United States An indictment of him before the U.S. District Court for the Southern District of New York was unsealed on December 13, revealing a range of charges for offenses, including wire fraud, commodities fraud, securities fraud, money laundering, and campaign finance law violations. Bankman-Fried faces up to 115 years in prison if convicted on all eight counts. On January 3, 2023, Bankman-Fried pled not guilty to fraud and other charges. On December 22, Bankman-Fried was released on a $250 million bond, on condition that he reside at his parents' home in California.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 715: She says she and her siblings were exposed to economics early, learning Bayesian statistics in primary school. At age 8, Ellison gifted her father with an economic study of stuffed animal prices from Toys "R" Us for his birthday.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 724: That money was sent in the form of crypto from Ukraine, through FTX, and then cashed out by FTX and sent to the DNC, i.e. US taxpayer money was taken by Congress, signed off by Biden and shipped to Ukraine as an aid package. Ukraine using FTX sent it back (they didn’t need it but probably kept a part) as a way of laundering it to the Democratic National Committee for their election campaigns (and commit election fraud, as has been proven). Taxpayer money was used to finance the midterm elections, which is no less than money laundering.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 737: Another woman, who dated the same man several years earlier in a polyamorous relationship, alleges that he had once attempted to put his penis in her mouth while she was sleeping. (TIME is not naming the man, like others in this story, due to the request of one or more women who made accusations against them, and who wanted to shield themselves from possible retaliation.)
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 780: Tinder on valtavirzaistettu versio seksuaali­vähemmistöjen Grindr-palvelusta, ja se on tuonut valtavirtaankin aiempaa kevyempää deittailua, sanoo sosiaalipsykologian ja tietotekniikan tutkija Airi Lampinen Tukholman yliopistosta. Tukholmassa ollaan suomalaisia valtavasti edellä.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 824: Mannen under hyllen var Bent Nordbø. Han hadde John Gielguds arrogante oppsyn, John Majors panoramabriller og Larry Kings bukseseler. Og han leste i en ekte papiravis. Roger hadde hørt at Nordbø kun leste New York Times, The Financial Times, The Guardian, China Daily, Süddeutsche Zeitung, El País og Le Monde, men at de leste han til gjengjeld hver dag. Han kunne dog finne på å bla i Pravda og slovenske Dnevnik, men han hevdet at «østeuropeiske språk er så tunge for øyet.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 888: I Pansernevets tid i Norge gikk psykopatmørdere fri etter 25 års fruktløs politiklovneri. År 2014 vedtok Stortinget ei ny lov som gjer at drap her i landet aldri vert forelda. Den nye lova, som trer i kraft 1. juli, gjeld drapssaker, alvorlege seksualbrotsverk og kjønnslemlestingar. Opphevinga av foreldingsfristen gir politiet nye sjansar til oppklaring. Jakta på gjerningsmannen kan gå føre seg til evig tid. Det gjelder også Gud som alene består i evig tid. Han er nettopp gjerningsmannen til kjempemange drap.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 891: Donald Trump blir gjort narr av etter han torsdag kunngjorde at han kommer med superhelt-kort med animasjoner av seg selv på. Sjarmøretappen brukes om en etappe med mye publikum som når utøveren på vinnerlaget får æren av å lede laget til mål.» Dårlig taper, det et han.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 939: Harry innser at Bratt har tatt politiets filer uten tillatelse. Han får vite at Bratt leter etter en kobling mellom flere forskjellige saker som handler om savnede personer og en annen sak, fra ni år tidligere, som ble etterforsket av Gert Rafto. Bratt overtaler Harry til å åpne en ny etterforskning av forsvinningen av Sylvia Otterson, som de finner fremdeles i live på gården hennes. Men kort tid etter at de går derfra, halshugger en maskert figur Sylvia. Men senere møter de Sylvias identiske tvilling, Ane. Sylvias kropp er inne i låven hennes, og hodet er plassert på toppen av en snømann. Katrine tror en korrupt forretningsmann Arve Støp er ansvarlig for alle dødsfallene. Harry reiser til Bergen for å undersøke nærmere, og møter Rakels nye kjæreste Mathias, en kirurg.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 985: Irlantilais-italialaisen Bruce Springsteenin isäsuhde oli vaikea, mitä hän on myöhemmin kuitenkin pitänyt lauluntekijän uransa kannalta hyödyllisenä asiana. Nuori Bruce sai kipinän ryhtyä rock-muusikoksi nähtyään Elvis Presleyn Ed Sullivan Show’ssa, ja hän sai rahat ensimmäiseen kitaraansa 16-vuotissyntymäpäivälahjanaan. Bruce kävi katolista koulua, mutta ei sopeutunut kouluun koskaan hyvin. Hän vältti Vietnamin sodan kutsunnat vuonna 1967 näyttelemällä hullua lääkärintarkastuksessa. 1960-luvun lopulla hän soitti ja lauloi lukuisissa eri yhtyeissä New Jerseyn Asbury Parkissa. Springsteen ei koskaan tehnyt säännöllistä tai raskasta ruumiillista työtä, vaikka hänen laulunsa usein sellaisesta elämästä kertovatkin. Samanlainen huijari kuin ex-meklari Jo Nääsböö siis.
      xxx/ellauri250.html on line 987: Hatet et bare baksiden av kjærligheten. Harry ønsker sig en ny panserhjerte i stedet for den som han spytt ut. Harry er en mye uinteressant personlighed.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 93: Atalante (m.kreik. Ἀταλάντη, Atalantē) oli kreikkalaisen mytologian sankaritar. Hän oli taitava metsästäjä ja erittäin nopea juoksija. Hän ui hyvin nopeasti. Atalante oli Meleagroksen rakastettu sekä jumalatar Artemiin suosikki. Hän halusi säilyä neitsyenä, mutta päätyi kuitenkin lopulta pukille ja siitä salonkileijonaksi.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 112: Veljien kuolema sai Meleagroksen äidin Althaian pois tolaltaan. Kohtalottaret olivat määränneet Meleagroksen syntyessä, että poika elää vain niin kauan kuin erityinen puupala. Heti kun silmä vältti, pojan äiti sieppasi puun tulesta, kastoi sen veteen ja kätki vuosikausiksi. Karjunmetsästyksen päätteeksi poikaansa vihastunut Althaia aiheutti Meleagroksen kuoleman: hän haki taikahalon kätköstään ja heitti sen hellanpesään. Puu paloi loppuun ja kulutti samalla miehen elinvoiman. Myös Althaian elämä päättyi pian tämän jälkeen. Yhden version mukaan jostain ilmestyi toinen suuri metsäsika, joka talloi naisen kuoliaaksi. Mitä vittua, mezäsika? Mäyriäkö tässä oltiinkin mezällä? Oliko Atalante joku mäyräkoira vai?
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 114: Isä salli Atalanten palata kotiin. Isä oli heltynyt tyttären urotekojen vuoksi, ja hän antoi anteeksi sen, että lapsi oli syntyessään väärää sukupuolta. Nythän asia oli korjaantunut. Kosijoiden virta kuitenkin tuntui olevan ehtymätön, ja niin isä vaati että tyttären tulisi jättää neitsyyslupaus ja mennä naimisiin. Kieltäytyminen olisi voinut olla vaarallista. Siksi Atalante ei uhmannut isäänsä suoraan, vaan ehdotti juoksukilpailua, jonka voittajan kanssa hän avioituisi. Hävinneet hän surmaisi. Eri lähteiden mukaan Atalante antoi miespuoliselle vastustajalleen joko puolet etumatkaa tai tasoitusta käyttämällä itse juostessaan pikkuhousunsuojia. Niin tai näin, koska Atalante oli nopea juoksija, hän ehti surmata koko joukon sulhasehdokkaita.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 139: But favourable and fair as thine eye’s beam Vaan suotuisaa ja vaaleaa kuin silmäs säde
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 144: But for the end, that lies unreached at yet Mutta juonipaljastus ei ole vielä näkyvillä
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 154: Which was the moon, and thine eyes fill the world Joka oli kuu, ja sun silmät täyttää maailman
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 210: ⁠With a clamour of waters, and with might; Vetten mäikyessä ihan täbönä,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 221: As raiment, as songs of the harp-player; Kuin hyntteet, kuin laulut kitaristille;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 237: The faint fresh flame of the young year flushes Nuoren vuoden tuores hento liekki punottaa
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 254: ⁠Over her eyebrows hiding her eyes; Kulmakarvoihin jotka kätkee hänen silmänsä;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 264: What do ye singing? what is this ye sing? Mittees työ laalatta? Mikä on tää kipale?
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 275: Will ye pray back the night with any prayers? Kontitteko siinä yötä takas jollain rukouxilla?
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 278: And the iron time of cursing, yet I know Ja kiroilemisen rauta-ajan, silti mä tiän
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 281: I marvel what men do with prayers awake Mä ihmettelen mihkä apinat tarvii rukousta
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 284: Is more than sleep and waking; yet we say, On enemmän kuin uni ja valve; silti sanotaan
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 298: Look, ye say well, and know not what ye say; Kato sä puhut hyvin, vaikka lampaanpäästä;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 324: And gall for milk, and cursing for a prayer? Ja sappea maidossa, ja kiroilua rukouxissa?
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 332: And we say prayers, and weep; but at the last, Ja me rukoillaan ja itketään, mutta loppupeleissä
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 357: With blameless eyes, and mercy is no fault. Moitiskelematta, eikä hopea ole häpeä.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 396: Chaste, dedicated to pure prayers, and filled Nussimaton, pelkkä rukoilija; puhtaat pikkarit,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 421: Shed fire across my eyelids mixed with night, Levittää tulta mun yön painamille luomille,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 425: And hearing am not holpen, but mine eyes Enkä kuule avuttomana, vaan mun silmät
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 432: And speck the fair dyed pillows round the king Ja läikittää kunkun hienot värityynyt
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 439: Childlike; but yet he was not; and in time Vauvamaisesti, vaikkei ollutkaan; ja ajallaan
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 440: I bare him, and my heart was great; for yet Mä synnytin sen, ja sydän oli suurentunut; sillä
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 505: With eyes alive and spake with lips of these
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 521: Before the beginning of years
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 539: ⁠From under the feet of the years;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 557: Eyesight and speech they wrought
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 568: ⁠In his eyes foreknowledge of death;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 586: Son, first I praise thy prayer, then bid thee speed;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 604: Set thine eye thither and fix thy spirit and say
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 612: That shine and shift as the edge of wild beasts’ eyes,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 641: Even to the staining of both eyes with tears
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 642: And kindling of warm eyelids with desire,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 645: Far off ye come, and least in years of these,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 658: She laughs and lightens with her eyes, and then
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 661: But cheeks and lips and eyelids kisses her,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 729: How sayest thou these? what god applauds new things?
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 794: Till some discolouring stain dyes all his life,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 798: Who have lived out all the length of all their years
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 812: Drain out the blood and darken their clear eyes,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 844: And set thine eyes and heart on hopes high-born
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 863: And man from man they fell; for ye twain stood
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 896: And I too as thou sayest have seen great things;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 944: Full of past days and wise from years endured.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 958: Abstain thy feet from following, and thine eyes
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 972: O child, for thine head's sake; mine eyes wax thick,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 974: So glorious; and for love of thine own eyes
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 977: But by thine hand, by thy sweet life and eyes,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 985: I forget never; I have seen thee all thine years
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1002: Was whiter, and no gold yellower than thine hair,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1004: Not lovelier, nor a new thing in mine eyes,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1011: But the gods break it; yet not less, fair son,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1032: And my limbs yearn with pity of thee, and love
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1033: Compels with grief mine eyes and labouring breath;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1035: And thy fair eyes I worship, and am bound
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1064: Her eyes are the eyes of a bride whom delight makes afraid;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1077: ⁠Sprung without graft from the years.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1116: ⁠But as one that waxeth in years
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1179: ⁠The light of thine eyelids and hair,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1183: ⁠Wilt thou turn thee not yet nor have pity,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1231: Here in your sight and eyeshot of these men
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1233: Drawn; wherefore all ye stand up on my side,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1234: If I be pure and all ye righteous gods,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1235: Lest one revile me, a woman, yet no wife,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1270: And holy habit of thine eyes, and feet
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1272: Though the wind winnow and whirl it; yet we praise
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1279: How long will ye whet spears with eloquence,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1370: Or feeding lips upon me or fastening eyes
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1392: So might I show before her perfect eyes
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1397: Done by main strength? yet in my body is throned
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1401: Fearful, one eye abase itself; and these
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1402: Well might ye hate and well revile, not me.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1413: Feed ye on these, eat and wax fat; cry out,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1419: For I will none; but having prayed my prayers
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1430: If I transgress at all: but ye, refrain
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1433: And proper poison of your lips ye die.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1439: Of thy good words: but ye, depart with her
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1440: In peace and reverence, each with blameless eye
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1454: Even one thing which is ours yet cannot die—
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1493: Among the years and seasons to and fro,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1496: ⁠Alas, our lords, and yet alas again,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1502: Yea, and with weariness of lips and eyes,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1508: We are outcast, strayed between bright sun and moon;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1532: ⁠And many mixing savours of strange years,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1537: ⁠Might ebb, drawn backward from their eyes, and night
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1549: ⁠Touch, nor consume thine eyelids as the sun,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1571: ⁠One saith, and hidden our eyes away from sight,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1588: ⁠With pain thou hast filled us full to the eyes and ears.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1600: ⁠And flames of fire the eyelids of thine eyes;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1614: ⁠But ye, keep ye on earth
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1632: ⁠And next our eyes unrisen; for unaware
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1676: Thou sayest he tarrieth till they bring the spoil?
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1695: And with keen eye took note of spear and hound,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1700: Arcadians; next, and evil-eyed of these,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1703: Glittering with lipless tooth and fire-swift eye;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1713: The seer and sayer of visions and of truth,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1719: Shining; and Idas, and the keenest eye
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1724: Past yew-trees and the heavy hair of pines,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1755: Hateful; and fiery with invasive eyes
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1761: And violent sleep shed night upon his eyes.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1771: Pierced the red circlet of one ravening eye
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1776: That mix their own foam with the yellower sea;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1794: Clear eyes, and springing muscle and shortening limb—
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1819: Blossom and burn; and fire of yellower flowers
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1826: Wherefore be glad, and all ye give much thanks,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1830: Laud ye the gods; for this they have given is good,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1840: Being merciful, but with pure souls and prayer.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1843: Thou hast prayed well; for whoso fears not these,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1857: ⁠As divide thy yellow hair,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1861: ⁠There the year is sweet, and there
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1874: ⁠That nor alien eyes assail,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1897: ⁠Fair as those that in far years
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1913: ⁠Ruin enough of all our year,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1928: ⁠Joy with grief ye great gods give,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1932: ⁠As ye long since overbore,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1937: ⁠Having heed of all our prayer,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1940: ⁠By thy bow, and thy sweet eyes,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1950: Maidens, if ye will sing now, shift your song,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 1959: What snake’s tongue in thy lips? what fire in the eyes?
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2099: Dim lips and eyelids virgin of the sun,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2125: Blanched thy son’s face, his slayer; and these being slain,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2143: Ye have no part in, these ye know not of
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2154: And please me with great eyes; and those days went
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2163: But ye now, sons of Thestius, make good cheer,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2164: For ye shall have such wood to funeral fire
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2172: O queen, thou hast yet with thee love-worthy things,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2200: Look for dead eyes and listen for dead lips,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2202: And with those eyes that see their slayer alive
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2212: Pine with strange eyes, and prick up hungry ears,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2231: Out at mine eyes: then either with good speed,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2232: Being just, I had slain their slayer atoningly,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2237: Shed songs upon them, from heroic eyes
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2252: Things hate-worthy? not live with shamefast eyes,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2288: Nor the old sweet years nor all venerable things,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2290: Hath taken away to slay them: yea, and she
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2294: Saw with strange eyes and with strange lips rejoiced,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2322: For these ye show us; and we less than these
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2326: Weeping or laughing, we whom eyesight fails,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2330: For madness have ye given us and not health,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2347: And blinds their eyes who hate them: lest men say,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2375: Not all we would, yet somewhat; and one choice
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2381: Swift fiery eyes in doubt against herself,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2402: Full of the deed, and full of blood mine eyes,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2414: Lo ye, who stand and weave, between the doors,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2518: The sweetness of spring in thine hair, and the light in thine eyes.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2520: The light of the spring in thine eyes, and the sound in thine ears;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2522: Yet thine heart shall wax heavy with sighs and thine eyelids with tears.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2538: Ho, ye that wail, and ye that sing, make way
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2542: Ye laughers for a little; lo mine eyes
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2546: Yet fate is ours a breathing-space; yea, mine,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2556: I burn with fire to quench it; yea, with flame
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2564: Yea to the bone, yea to the blood and all.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2576: And in thine eyes are hollow light and heat.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2584: I fear thee for the trembling of thine eyes.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2604: Look, I am silent, speak your eyes for me.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2612: Gaze, stretch your eyes, strain till the lids drop off.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2628: O children, what is this ye see? your eyes
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2632: My travail, and the year's weight of my womb,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2663: Cry ye and weep: I will not call on gods,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2664: Call ye on them; I will not pity man,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2665: Shew ye your pity. I know not if I live;
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2668: Yea the smoke bites me, yea I drink the steam
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2669: With nostril and with eyelid and with lip
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2671: Burn, and fire feeds upon mine eyes; I reel
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2673: Drunken delight; yet I, though mad for joy,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2679: I am flooded with his ebbing; my lit eyes
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2683: Son, first-born, fairest—O sweet mouth, sweet eyes,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2691: The floral hair, the little lightening eyes,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2704: Though mine eyes reach to the end of all these things,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2717: ⁠Her eyes were clear as the sun,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2729: ⁠As the mouth of a flute-player,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2748: ⁠She sighed and covered her eyes,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2793: ⁠Lament ye, mourn for him, weep.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2810: So that men’s eyelids thickened with their tears.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2818: O son, he said, son, lift thine eyes, draw breath,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2860: ⁠Lift ye my feet
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2867: ⁠Thine imperious eyes!
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2915: With light in mine eyes, and songs in my lips, and a crown
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2924: As with severing of eyelids and eyes, as with sundering of
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2959: For the light of mine eyes, the desire of my life, the
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2974: ⁠Thy face of old years
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 2994: Spring-stricken, or ever mine eyes had beheld thee made
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3010: ⁠Filling thine eyes
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3025: ⁠Would God ye could carry me
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3060: ⁠Will ye crown me my tomb
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3114: ⁠The years are hungry,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3134: Guiltless, yet red from alien guilt, yet foul
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3214: Exceedingly excel me; yet do thou
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3220: Surely I know not; yet I charge thee, seeing
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3228: O mother, O breasts that bare me, for ye know,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3230: O sweet head of my mother, sacred eyes,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3231: Ye know my soul albeit I sinned, ye know
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3235: And ye farewell now, all my friends; and ye,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3248: And fasten up mine eyelids with thy mouth,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3252: And with thine holy maiden eyes drop dew,
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3257: Where no flesh is nor beauty nor swift eyes
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3275: Turn homeward and am gone out of thine eyes.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3376: At 73 years old, Sauli Niinistö height is 5' 9¾" (1.77 m). Give or take a mm, depending on socks.
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3391: Donald Trump is in his mid-70s and has lost around 1.5 inches of height since he was a young man, and stands at 6'0.5 (184.3 cm) tall today. During his prime years, however, he was comfortably taller, standing at 6'2" (188cm) for the majority of the day, and taller than 37 of the 45 elected American Presidents. Some have speculated that Barron Trump may stand at 6ft 7 inches tall, with many social media users saying that Trump's youngest son would be an ideal world leader!
      xxx/ellauri251.html on line 3393: Misinformation about Napoleon's height has been in circulation for hundreds of years. Although this famous military leader was measured at 5ft 2in, we know that he was actually around 5ft 7in tall! Exactly the same as President Macron!
      xxx/ellauri252.html on line 164: Saarikoski itsekeskeisenä narsistina tuskin kauan kantoi kaunaa Salamalle, vaikka hänestä luotiin reppana kuva. Kirjan ilmestyessä vuonna 1975 Saarikoski oli jo aika huonossa hapessa. Saarikosken ex-vaimo Tuula-Liina Varis sen sijaan haukkui Salaman. 
      xxx/ellauri252.html on line 228: Friedan was born Bettye Naomi Goldstein on February 4, 1921, in Peoria, Illinois, to Harry and Miriam (Horowitz) Goldstein, whose Jewish families were from Russia and Hungary. Harry owned a jewelry store in Peoria, and Miriam wrote for the society page of a newspaper when Friedan's father fell ill. Her mother's new life outside the home seemed much more gratifying.
      xxx/ellauri252.html on line 254: Norman Corwin was Jewish, and his parents observed Judaism (his father, Sam Corwin, attended holiday services until his death at 110). While not an observant Jew, Corwin infused much of his work with the ideas of the Hebrew Prophets. One of the prayerbooks of American Reform Judaism, Shaarei Tefila: Gates of Prayer, contains a portion of the Prayer from the finale of Corwin's On a Note of Triumph (see link to full text below). Corwin was among the first producers to regularly use entertainment – even light entertainment – to tackle serious social issues.
      xxx/ellauri252.html on line 306: Martti Simojokea oli pienestä pitäen vaivannut alemmuudentunne. Hän epäili, ettei hänellä olisi henkisiä edellytyksiä yliopisto-opiskeluun. Siinä hän oli oikeassa, mutta Simeliusten hyvävelisuhteet auttoivat. Sodan pitkittyessä Martti Simojoki suunnitteli väitöskirjatyötä. Hän sai 1943 vuoden mittaisen opintoloman perusteenaan vuoden stipendi Saksaan. Kuitenkin sotaolosuhteet Saksassa estivät opiskeluaikeet siellä ja hän palasi Suomeen. Matka kesti kaksi kuukautta. Simojoelta jäi saamatta Saksasta metodinen oppi Prahan pyöveliltä, jota hän oli tavoitellut. Hepulla oli muita kiireitä. Ehti siinä kuitenkin käydä Reeperbaanalla huorissa. Suomalainen ylioppilas on kansallismielinen.
      xxx/ellauri252.html on line 350: "Ja kiitoksen kukko lauloi korkealla äänellä: ettet vainen valehteliski. Sillä on kirjoitettu: joka tekee sen yhdellekin näistä pienemmistä, niin parempi olisi että sille ripustettaisiin tahkonkivi mulkunvarteen niin kun viulunkieleen talla, mutta joka tekee saman tempun neitsyelle pääsiäisyönä, sen on oleva taivasten valtakunta."
      xxx/ellauri252.html on line 430: Heja Sverige på 70-talet. Ohjaajan tähtifilmin juoniselostuxesta paistaa jonkin verran sittemmin nyrkkeilijämäisen Sjöwallin kade pahexunta. Tyttöjen tienaama tonni varvista olisi lähellä samaa summaa nykyeuroissa.
      xxx/ellauri252.html on line 468: Mutta toinen vielä parempi on Etelä-Afrikan valkoiset, ne ovat kamalan pahoja eivätkä yhtä ilmiselvästi CIAn asialla. (Vaikka ovathan ne.) ULAG on niinkö GULAG ilman sitä geetä. Glavnoye Upravleniye Ispravitelno-Trudovykh Lagerey, paizi ei glavnoje. Sissejä on noin komppanian verran, mukana kuriositeettina 2 neekeriä, 1 jutku ja 1 ruåzalainen. Myös ruåzinlautalla seilaavat lautakätiset japsut ovat hyvin, hyvin pahoja. Ja tylsiä kun pelaavat koko ajan keskenään go-peliä. Heinrich Heydrichillä oli juutalainen isoäitipuoli mutta isot Ht antoivat sen anteexi koska Heydrichissä ei ollut yhtään mummipuolen verta. Ruth Solomonsson kuulostaa kyllä juutalaiselta, mutta ei välttämättä ole. Kurt Salomonson oli Perssonin kaveri, kiirunalainen työläiskirjailija joka reeasi työväen asiaa kapitalisteille. Onkohan Ruthilla Heydrichiä nussiessa päässä blondi peruukki niinkuin sillä yhdellä brittinaziryhmään soluttautuneella Rahitilla? Tai Pena Saarikosken Tuula2 vaimolla Urkin juhlissa? Vaikka se oli blondi ilmankin.
      xxx/ellauri252.html on line 475: Ensimmäinen yhteenotto Tanskan ja Saksan joukkojen välillä tapahtui Lundtoftbjergissä, jossa kahdella 20 millimetrin panssarintorjuntatykillä ja konekiväärillä varustettu Tanskan armeijan joukkue oli sulkenut tien. Lyhyen kahakan jälkeen tanskalaiset vetäytyivät. Saksalaiset menettivät kaksi panssaroitua ajoneuvoa ja kolme moottoripyörää ja tanskalaiset yhden miehen kaatuneena ja toisen haavoittuneena.
      xxx/ellauri253.html on line 88: Finland underwent severe economic depression in 1990–93. Badly managed financial deregulation of the 1980s, in particular removal of bank borrowing controls and liberation of foreign borrowing, combined with strong currency and a fixed exchange rate policy led to a foreign debt financed boom. Bank borrowing increased at its peak over 100% a year and asset prices skyrocketed.
      xxx/ellauri253.html on line 90: The collapse of the Soviet Union in 1991 led to a 70% drop in trade with Russia and eventually Finland was forced to devaluate, which increased the private sector's foreign currency denominated debt burden. At the same time authorities tightened bank supervision and prudential regulation, lending dropped by 25% and asset prices halved. Combined with raising savings rate and worldwide economic troubles, this led to a sharp drop of aggregate demand and a wave of bankruptcies. Credit losses mounted and a banking crisis inevitability followed. The number of companies went down by 15%, real GDP contracted about 14% and unemployment rose from 3% to nearly 20% in four years.
      xxx/ellauri253.html on line 101: The Soviet Union's last year of economic growth was 1989, and throughout the 1990s, recession ensued in the Former Soviet Republics. In May 1998, following the 1997 crash of the East Asian economy, things began to get even worse in Russia. In August 1998, the value of the ruble fell 34% and people clamored to get their money out of banks (see 1998 Russian financial crisis). The government acted by dragging its feet on privatization programs. Russians responded to this situation with approval by electing the more pro-dirigist and less liberal Vladimir Putin as President in 2000. Putin proceeded to reassert the role of the federal government, and gave it power it had not seen since the Soviet era. State-run businesses were used to out-compete some of the more wealthy rivals of Putin. Putin's policies were popular with the Russian people, gaining him re-election in 2004. At the same time, the export-oriented Russian economy enjoyed considerable influx of foreign currency thanks to rising worldwide oil prices (from $15 per barrel in early 1999 to an average of $30 per barrel during Putin's first term). The early 2000s recession was avoided in Russia due to rebound in exports and, to some degree, a return to dirigism.
      xxx/ellauri253.html on line 112: The U.S. shadow banking system (i.e., non-depository financial institutions such as investment banks) had grown to rival the depository system yet was not subject to the same regulatory oversight, making it vulnerable to a bank run. US mortgage-backed securities, which had risks that were hard to assess, were marketed around the world, as they offered higher yields than U.S. government bonds. Many of these securities were backed by subprime mortgages, which collapsed in value when the U.S. housing bubble burst during 2006 and homeowners began to default on their mortgage payments in large numbers starting in 2007.
      xxx/ellauri253.html on line 135: Peltipöxy-Nokian taru päättyi noloon myyntiin Mikkisoftalle. On 10 September 2010, Olli-Pekka Kallasvuo was fired as CEO and it was announced that Stephen Elop from Microsoft would take Nokia's CEO. One former Nokia employee claimed that the company was run as a "Soviet-style bureaucracy". Kapeahartiainen Jorma Ollila ryömi Shellin alle piiloon ja E. Saarinen vetäytyi Bulevardille nuolemaan näppejään ja lääkizemään ruskeata kieltään.
      xxx/ellauri253.html on line 140: Elokuvaohjaaja Aki Kaurismäen haastattelu Herlinin Sanomien Kuukautisliitteessä on "herättänyt keskustelua sosiaalisessa meediassa". Yhdessä Maustetytöt-yhtyeen kanssa antamassaan haastattelussa Kaurismäki kommentoi muun muassa masentuneisuuden yleisyyttä.
      xxx/ellauri253.html on line 231: Kunnan keskustaajama on Taavetti. Luumäki tunnetaan paitsi mökkikuntana ja P. E. Svinhufvudin kotipitäjänä, myös jaloberyllistä, jota kunnan alueelta on löytynyt. Ervasti piti keskisormessa naziäidin rautasormusta ja suuteli sen suomalaista hakaristiä. Heil Mutler! 17-vuotiaana hänen kynnetön sormensa oli kasvanut riittävän paxuxi ettei sormus enää pudonnut vaikkei äiti puristanut sitä lujasti. Heikki kaipasi äitiään ja kasteli öisin vuoteensa kuin Kaarlo Syväntö. Vähitellen se tottui keinoemoon ja alkoi kastella tämän vuodetta. Suomesta talouspakolaisina lähteneet oli maan ja mezän omistajia, hammaslääkäreitä, pankinjohtajia ja muita fixuja ihmisiä. Vitun kusipäitä, se on lyhyempi lause. Saman verran lähti 60-luvulla Volvon tehtaille. Tapettuaan niistä valtaosan koronalla vanhainkodeissa Ruåzi lähettäisi mielellään loput takaisin.
      xxx/ellauri253.html on line 276: Sisään vaan vaikkei seisokkaan, sanoo Natalie Tonylle. Se närkästytti Tonia. "Hemmetin hemmetti", Tony tuskaili. Jenkkiämmä uskoo amerikkalaisiin kaupallisiin turvayrityxiin yhtä lujasti kuin Stieg Larsson. Tietokonerikoxet, yritysvakoilu, yritysvaltauxet, vakuutuspetoxet, kidnappauxet ja sen sellaiset hoidellaan hyvin usein yxityisten turvayritysten avulla. Tavalliset konnapulliaiset joutuisivat kiinni alta aikayxikön, eivät nämä. Nainen oli huippuluokan tutkiva journalisti, siis konna izekin, susi jo syntyessään. Baedecker siemaisi olutta. Unto Remes on syvästi vastenmielinen paska.
      xxx/ellauri253.html on line 543: Vuoden 2017 kirkkovuoden päättyessä (se päättyy adventtiin) lisävihkoon tuli 79 uutta "virttä", eli viimeisten aikain iskelmää, kuten "amazing Grace" ja "Maan korvessa". Vanhoista virsistä puuttuu se "potku", se "groove". Ja niissä mainitaan turhan usein herran nimeä ja titteleitä, se ei trendaa enää. Me naiset lauletaan nyt toisillemme, johtoportaan pojat hyräilevät taustakuorona.
      xxx/ellauri255.html on line 92: With the world’s attention fixed firmly on the invasion of Ukraine, Antony Pyp Pipo’s new history of Russia’s 1917 revolutions and subsequent civil war is especially timely. He explains to Rob Attaboy how the fall of the last tsar launched a chain of events leading to millions of deaths and one of history’s most brutal dictatorships! Lähde: yextra.com/period/20th-century/russia-civil-war-why-causes/">History Extra
      xxx/ellauri255.html on line 98: The most important thing for me was to understand the chain of disasters of the 20th century – the impacts of which actually are still with us today, as we see in Ukraine. Around 12 million people died in the Russian Civil War. This wanton destruction created a terrible fear among the middle classes, but also galvanised the left – the Bolsheviks and other communists – and marked the start of a vicious circle of rhetoric that developed, above all, in the 1930s. This is really what dominates the whole of the 20th century, yet I think that the Russian Civil War is not understood well enough, nor is the demilitarisation of Ukraine.
      xxx/ellauri255.html on line 102: Rob Attaboy: What new insights have emerged from the work that you and Lyuba have done over these past few years?
      xxx/ellauri255.html on line 120: Antony Pyp Pipo: However, what’s interesting is how few of the White officers in Petrograd, Moscow and many other places actually joined the revolt against the communists at that stage. I think they were all so dispirited and demoralised by everything that had happened that most of them had sunk into apathy. But yes, there were certain areas where there were very strong reactions against the Bolsheviks. And that early part of the civil war, in the winter of 1917–18, showed that the outcome largely depended on what happened in local areas. It was a geographically fragmented civil war that was taking place across the whole of the landmass. Which really shows it was an oppressed people's uprising.
      xxx/ellauri255.html on line 176: Vuonna 1840 Bakunin matkusti Berliiniin, jossa hän pian liittyi kaupungissa vaikuttaneeseen sosialistiseen opiskelijaliikkeeseen (SOL). Kolme vuotta myöhemmin Bakunin muutti Dresdeniin kuin Pikin Ewald ja luopui samalla lopullisesti akateemisesta urasta keskittyen jatkossa totaalisen hyödyttömään vallankumoukselliseen toimintaan ja peräsuolen tähystyxiin. Venäjän hallitus oli koko ajan tietoinen Bakuninin aikeista tsaarinvallan kumoamiseksi ja määräsikin hänet palaamaan kotimaahansa. Bakunin matkusti kuitenkin Zürichiin, jossa hän oleskeli puolen vuoden ajan viettäen paljon aikaa radikaalin sosialistin Wilhelm Weitlingin housuissa. Hänen pidätyksensä jälkeen Venäjän Bernin lähettiläs määräsi Bakuninin jälleen palaamaan kotiin, mutta tämä päätti seuraavaksi suunnata Brysseliin. Bakunin tapasi kaupungissa muun muassa puolalaisia itsenäisyysaktivisteja. Heidän joukossaan oli myös Karl Marxin ja Friedrich Engelsin tuttavapiiriin lukeutunut Joachim Älähälä.
      xxx/ellauri255.html on line 548: Floyd Patterson otti turpaan Tulholmassa Ingemar Johanssonilta ja kääntäen. Se nyrkkeili kukkuluuruu tyylillä kuten lyhyenläntä Mike Tyson. Mike raiskasi 18-vuotiaan Miss Black American sopumazissa. Kääntyi vankilassa muslimixi kuten Clayn Cassius muttei muuttanut nimeä.
      xxx/ellauri259.html on line 468: ”Leino oli läheisriippuvainen ja rakkausfriikki”, alan expertti Raju Panola kirjoittaa, mutta hän ei löytänyt juuri näyttöä siitä, että Leino olisi käytännössä nauttinut köyrinnästä. Eino Leinoa ei ilmeisesti seksi kiinnostanut. Isäksikään Leinosta ei ollut. Avioeron jälkeen hän ei montaa kertaa tytärtään tavannut. Hän oli parhaimmillaan kaukorakastajana. Hän rakasteli ennen muuta mustekynällä”, Ranula kirjoittaa. Toisin kuin Panula, joka rakasteli lyhyellä mutta hanakalla kyrvällä. Ilmiselvä narsisti.
      xxx/ellauri259.html on line 667: En el ámbito del Seminario académico Envejecimiento, salud y cambio climático, organizado por Fundación MAPFRE, el prestigioso psiquiatra Luis Rojas Marcos ofreció una conferencia magistral centrada en la importancia de la mente en el envejecimiento, ese largo proceso que requiere prestar atención y programar nuestra vida. ¿Y cómo podemos ayudar a nuestra mente? Cuidándonos, estando extrovertes, manteniendo un equilibrio, haciendo crucigramas, decidiendo alimentarnos de manera sana y teniendo mucha información. Todo ello influye en la longevidad.
      xxx/ellauri259.html on line 703: Today, some aspects, such as the increasingly important role given to the (now retired) news anchor Arvi Lind are a bit old-fashioned. Likewise the ending isn't as sharp nor farcical as it attempts to be. Yet the film does uncover some universal truths from the behavior of Finnish men, particularly when automobiles are concerned. The men are all alcoholic sad sacks, failures in every aspect, yet they wish to have one field in which they shine and that is with cars.
      xxx/ellauri259.html on line 705: The film has good characterization of its male leads, they are well-acted and spout on-the-nose dialogue straight from the pen of Hotakainen. The film is a bit more down-to-earth approach of the depressing rural Finland of yesteryear than that from the films of the Kaurismäki brothers. But there are clear similarities, since the cinematographer, editor and sound mixer are veterans of Kaurismäki productions. And of course the director Kari Väänänen is remembered from sleazy roles from many of the brothers' classic films.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 158: John Naisbitt (January 15, 1929 – April 8, 2021) was an American author and public speaker in the area of futures studies. His first book Megatrends: Ten New Directions Transforming Our Lives was published in 1982. It was the result of almost ten years of zero research. It was on The New York Times Best Seller List for two years, mostly as No. 1. Megatrends was published in 57 countries and sold more than 14 million copies. Almost half as much as Camilla Läckberg, but not quite.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 163: Päätyö: Global Paradox: The Bigger the Economy´s Big Players, the More Powerless Its Smallest Players. William ToMorrow & Company, Inc., 1994
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 222: He also maintained relations with Jean Burden, his lover and the inspiration/editor of Nature, Man and Woman. Watts was a heavy smoker throughout his life and in his later years drank heavily.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 227: Burden received only a two-year scholarship offered to women to attend the University of Chicago where she studsed frequently under Thornton Wilder and graduated in 1936. She and her husband David were married from 1940 to 1949. After the dissolution of their marriage, Jean met Alan Watts and they had a "four year, tumultuous love affair". Though ending badly, the union inspired Watts to call Jean in his autobiography (p. 297) an "important influence". Jean used Alan´s calligraphy and a quote from him (有水皆含月 : All the waters contain the moon) in her last major work, Taking Light from Each Other. She called him "one of the most fascinating men I have ever met, except Thornton was Wilder".
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 238: Thornton was the son of Amos Parker Wilder, a newspaper editor who in 1906 was appointed as American Consul General in Hong Kong. While the Wilder family at first accompanied the diplomat to China, they stayed only six months, and then Isabella Wilder returned to the United States with her children. In 1911, when the Mr. Wilder was transferred to Shanghai, the family briefly rejoined him, but eventually returned to settle in Berkeley.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 240: His family lived for a time in China, where his sister Janet was born in 1910. He attended the English China Inland Mission Chefoo School at Yantai but returned with his mother and siblings to California in 1912 because of the unstable political conditions in China at the time. Thornton also attended Creekside Middle School in Berkeley, and graduated from Berkeley High School in 1915. Wilder also studied law for two years before dropping out of Purdue University.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 244: Thornton Wilder´s older brother, Amos Niven Wilder, was Hollis Professor of Divinity at the Harvard Divinity School, a noted poet, and foundational to the development of the field theopoetics. Amos was also a nationally ranked tennis player who competed at the Wimbledon tennis championships in 1922. Thornton cared little for the rough-and-tumble of sports-crazy adolescents, and his classmates teased him for being “artistic” and overly-intellectual; he was known as a “freak.” A former classmate recalled: "We left him alone, just left him alone." Guess which son was father´s favourite and which mommy´s boy.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 253: Wilder had a wide circle of partners, including writers Ernest Hemingway, F. Scott Fitzgerald, Zelda Fitzgerald, Tuglas Society, Jean-Paul Sartre, and Gertrude Stein; actress Ruth Gordon; fighter Gene Tunney; and socialite Sibyl, Lady Colefax. Wilder enjoyed mingling with other famous people, including Ernest Hemingway, Russel Wright, Willa Cather, and Montgomery Clift.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 255: He formed a close, fervent and life-long friendship with Gertrude Stein, but his shyness and natural reserve kept him from acknowledging their shared homosexuality. Writer Samuel Steward records the reticence which kept this close circle of friends deeply in the closet — even to one another. Six years after Wilder’s death, Samuel Steward wrote in his autobiography that he too had had sexual relations with him (and her):
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 257: Suddenly she grabbed my knee. “Sammy,” she said, “do you think that Alice and I are lesbians?” I had a genuine hot curl of fire up my spine. “I don’t see that it’s anybody’s business one way or another,” I said. “Do you care whether we are,” she asked. “Not in the least,” I said. I was suddenly dripping wet. “Are you queer or gay or different or ‘of it’ as the French say or whatever they are calling it nowadays,” she said, looking narrowly at me. I waggled my hand sidewise. “Both ways,” I said. “I don’t see why I should go through life limping on just one leg to satisfy a so-called norm.” “It bothers a lot of people,” Gertrude said. “But like you said, it’s nobody’s business, it came from the Judeo-Christian ethos, especially Saint Paul the bastard, but he was complaining about youngsters who were not really that way, they did it for money, everybody suspects us or knows but nobody says anything about it. Did Thornie tell you?” “Only when I asked him a direct question and then he didn’t want to answer, he didn’t want to at all. He said yes he supposed in the beginning but that it was all over now.” Gertrude laughed. “How could he know. He doesn’t know what love is. And that’s just like Thornie.”
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 261: Thornton Wilder’s play Our Town has become a staple of high school drama departments, attractive perhaps more for its economical lack of scenery and props than for its sad story of love, loss and regret. There has been speculation that the character of Simon Stimson, the town drunk and organist for the Congregational Church who eventually commits suicide, represents a closeted gay man destroyed by life in a small town.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 419: The 1958 film version, adapted by John Michael Hayes and directed by Joseph Anthony, starred Shirley Booth as Dolly, Anthony Perkins as Cornelius, Shirley MacLaine as Irene, Paul Ford as Vandergelder, and Robert Horse reprising his Broadway role as Barnaby.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 421: The story enjoyed yet another incarnation in 1964 when David Merrick, who had produced the 1955 Broadway play, partnered with composer Jerry Herman to mount the hugely successful, Tony Award-winning musical Hello, Dolly! starring Carol Channing.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 429: The plot of Hello, Dolly! originated in the 1835 English play A Day Well Spent by John Oxenford, which Johann Nestroy adapted into the farce Einen Jux will er sich machen (He Will Go on a Spree or He'll Have Himself a Good Time) in 1842. Thornton Wilder adapted Nestroy's play into his 1938 farcical play The Merchant of Yonkers. That play was a flop, so he revised it and retitled it as The Matchmaker in 1954, expanding the role of Dolly (played by Ruth Gordon).The Matchmaker became a hit and was much revived and made into a 1958 film starring Shirley Booth.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 434: Dolly Gallagher Levi: A widow in her middle years who has decided to begin her life again. She is a matchmaker, meddler, opportunist, and an optimistic life-loving woman.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 438: Cornelius Hackl: Vandergelder's chief clerk who yearns for one exciting day in New York City. Energetic, enthusiastic, and adventurous young man who has a sweet innocence about him.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 442: Irene Molloy: A widow and a beautiful, smart, fun-loving milliner with a hat shop in New York City. Dolly has introduced her to Horace Vandergelder but she yearns for romance.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 466: Dolly arranges for Cornelius and Barnaby, who are still pretending to be rich, to take the ladies out to dinner to the Harmonia Gardens restaurant to make up for their humiliation. She teaches Cornelius and Barnaby how to dance since they always have dancing at such establishments ("Dancing"). Soon, Cornelius, Irene, Barnaby, and Minnie are happily dancing. They go to watch the great 14th Street Association Parade together. Alone, Dolly decides to put her dear departed husband Ephram behind her and to move on with life "Before the Parade Passes By". She asks Ephram's permission to marry Horace, requesting a sign from him. Dolly catches up with the annoyed Vandergelder, who has missed the whole parade, and she convinces him to give her matchmaking one more chance. She tells him that Ernestina Money would be perfect for him and asks him to meet her at the swanky Harmonia Gardens that evening.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 470: Cricket Walter Kerr wrote: Hello, Dolly! is a musical comedy dream, with Carol Channing the girl of it. ... Channing opens wide her big-as-millstone eyes, spreads her white-gloved arms in ecstatic abandon, trots out on a circular runway that surrounds the orchestra, and proceeds to dance rings around the conductor. ... With hair like orange sea foam, a contralto like a horse´s neighing, and a confidential swagger, she is a musical comedy performer with all the blowzy glamor of the girls on the sheet music of 1916. The lines are not always as funny as Miss Channing makes them.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 521: The clerks and the ladies go to watch the Fourteenth Street Association Parade together. Alone, Dolly asks her first husband Ephram´s permission to marry Horace, requesting a sign. She resolves to move on with life. After meeting an old friend, Gussie Granger, on a float in the parade, Dolly catches up with the annoyed Vandergelder as he is marching in the parade. She tells him the heiress Ernestina Simple would be perfect for him and asks him to meet her at Harmonia Gardens that evening.
      xxx/ellauri261.html on line 570: Vuonna 1907 Stein tapasi ensimmäisen kerran Alice B. Toklasin (edellä mainittu Tuglas-seuran sihteeri) teellä Michael-veljensä kotona. Naiset muuttivat pian asumaan yhteen, ja heidän yhteiselämänsä kesti lähes 40 vuotta, Steinin kuolemaan saakka. He matkustelivat paljon mutta asuivat pääasiassa Pariisissa, missä he pysyivät myös molempien sotien ajan. Toklas oli Steinille välttämätön: hän oli suojelija, kustantaja, konekirjoittaja ja petikumppani. Hän oli kaikkea, mitä Stein tarvitsi: ”Little Alice B. is the wife for me /... You are my honey honey suckle. / I am your bee”. Steinin kuoleman jälkeen Toklas kirjoitti muistelmateoksen What is Remembered, jossa hän kuittaa elämänsä ennen Steinia hyvin lyhyesti yhdellä lauseella.
      xxx/ellauri265.html on line 38:
      xxx/ellauri265.html on line 71: According to Reuters, excluding those who returned to Ukraine, immigration from Ukraine came to 962,000 last year, more than the total of 834,000 that came from Syria, Afghanistan and Iraq together between 2014 and 2016.
      xxx/ellauri265.html on line 361: Thornhill and Palmer write that "In short, a man can have many children, with little inconvenience to himself; a woman can have only a few, and with great effort." Females thus tend toward selectivity with sexual partners. Rape could be a reproductive strategy for males. They point to several other factors indicating that rape may be a reproductive strategy. Most rapes occur during prime childbearing years. Rapists usually use no more force than necessary to subdue, argued to be since physically injuring victims would harm reproduction. Moreover, "In many cultures rape is treated as a crime against the victim's husband. He is the real victim there."
      xxx/ellauri265.html on line 376: More generally they mention a research finding that at least one-third of males "admit they would rape under specific conditions" and that other surveys find that many men[quantify] state having coercive sexual fantasies. They, as have others, "propose that rape is a conditional strategy that may potentially be deployed by any man.
      xxx/ellauri265.html on line 410: Boghossian said he believed suppressing professors’ ideologies is one of the major problems of academia. When asked about private universities like NYU, he said he was more concerned about public institutions because they receive greater funding from taxpayers.
      xxx/ellauri265.html on line 419: Last week the New York University (NYU) psychology professor announced that he would resign at the end of the year from the Society for Personality and Social Psychology, his primary professional association, because of a newly adopted requirement that everybody presenting research at the group's conferences explain how their submission advances "equity, inclusion, and anti-racism goals." It was the sort of litmus test against which he has warned, and which he sees as corroding institutions of higher learning.
      xxx/ellauri265.html on line 431: In the short space of seven years, Haidt’s Heterodox Academy has gathered a diverse coalition of more than 5,000 professors, administrators, graduate students and staff that span every imaginable diversity. What unites them is a concern that “viewpoint diversity” and “open inquiry” is shrinking in the academy — the very place where we should be encouraging it the most.
      xxx/ellauri265.html on line 433: But what I argue in my Mid-Atlantic essay is that there is something new, which is the fear of each other. We were not afraid of the person sitting next to us in 2008. Professors were not afraid of their students in 2008. Managers were not afraid of their employees in 2008. Whites were not afraid of blacks in 1808.
      xxx/ellauri265.html on line 486: Panzar is a massively multiplayer online game featuring a multiplayer online battle arena developed and published by Russian Panzar Studio for Microsoft Windows. It is a free-to-play game, supported by micro-transactions. A prime example of communicative capitalism from an excommunicated ex-communist society.
      xxx/ellauri268.html on line 179: Als einer der ersten zeichnete er ein realistisches Bild der Juden in Galizien; zeitlebens kämpfte er politisch gegen den Antisemitismus in Mitteleuropa. Victor Hugo, Émile Zola, Henrik Ibsen gehörten zu seinen Bewunderern; König Ludwig II. von Bayern empfand zu dem Autor gar eine Seelenverwandtschaft. Sielun veljiä, meillä on aivan erikoinen sana sille (Schwul).
      xxx/ellauri268.html on line 253: Alone and destitute, Merope sold Slytherin's priceless locket (yes, that one) to Borgin and Burkes for just ten Galleons. It seems that when Merope lost her husband she also lost the will to live. When she arrived heavily pregnant on the steps of the London orphanage where Tom Riddle Jr was to spend his early years, she seemed to know she wasn't going to make it.
      xxx/ellauri268.html on line 256: She died many years before the events of Harry Potter's life and is generally viewed as both a sympathetic and tragic character. Despite this, Merope is still an antagonist, one that left a huge impact upon Britain's magical community. Were it not for her, Lord Voldemort may never have been born. If so, then the Wizarding Wars and the innumerable tragedies associated with them, might never have happened. JKRowling would never have become filthy rich and a philantrope.
      xxx/ellauri268.html on line 379: Harjo gave birth to her son Phil when she was 17 years old. A few years later, she had a daughter, Rainy Dawn, with Simon Ortiz, a fellow Native poet. When Harjo was 40, she learned to play the tenor and soprano saxophones. Harjo's relationship with Ortiz ended after a couple of years, and she raised her two children as a single parent. She later wed Owen Chopoksa Sapulpa.
      xxx/ellauri268.html on line 382: After Harjo's tour with her troupe ended, she returned to Oklahoma. There, she became a mother at age 17. She spent a few years in different jobs, including pumping gas into a miniskirt. Then she enrolled at the University of New Mexico.
      xxx/ellauri268.html on line 546: To track down Franz Stangl, who had commanded two concentration camps in Poland, Wiesenthal did undercover work for three years before tracking the former SS officer down in Brazil. Stangl was later sentenced to life in prison for his crimes.
      xxx/ellauri268.html on line 548: It’s believed Wiesenthal also played a role in hunting down notorious SS leader Adolf Eichmann, who had organized the extermination of the Jews. Wiesenthal received information that Eichmann had been hiding out in Argentina and passed the information on to Israel, according to his center’s website.
      xxx/ellauri273.html on line 50: Hauska pikku paljastus: kaikista maailman ihmisistä juuri Briard-yhtyeen Pete "Räkä" Malmi tutututti Yarin Abban musiikkiin. Tänään 40v myöhemmin Yari on vanha hyypiö. Tai miten Maukka Perusjätkä luuli CCR:n kappaleessa laulettavan "have you ever seen the train" ja levytti sixi singlen nimeltä Oletko koskaan nähnyt traktoria?. Maukka Perusjätkä asuu Nurmijärvellä ja työskentelee sähköasentajana. Maukka Perusjätkän tunnetuin kappale on 1979 julkaistu ”Säpinää”, jonka introssa kuullaan moottorisahan ääntä.
      xxx/ellauri273.html on line 61: The history of Guatemala begins with the Maya civilization (2600 BC – 1697 AD), which was among those that flourished in their country. The country's modern history began with the Spanish conquest of Guatemala in 1524. Most of the great Classic-era (250 – 900 AD) Maya cities of the Petén Basin region, in the northern lowlands, had been abandoned by the year 1000 AD. The states in the Belize central highlands flourished until the 1525 arrival of Spanish conquistador Pedro de Alvarado. Called "The Invader" by the Mayan people, he immediately began subjugating the Indian states.
      xxx/ellauri273.html on line 63: Guatemala was part of the Captaincy General of Guatemala for nearly 330 years. This captaincy included what is now Chiapas in Mexico and the modern countries of Guatemala, El Salvador, Honduras, Nicaragua and Costa Rica. The colony became independent in 1821 and then became a part of the First Mexican Empire until 1823. From 1824 it was a part of the Federal Republic of Central America. When the Republic dissolved in 1841, Guatemala became fully independent of all but United Fruit Company.
      xxx/ellauri273.html on line 65: In the late 19th and early 20th century, Guatemala's potential for agricultural exploitation attracted several foreign companies, most prominently the United Fruit Company (UFC). These companies were supported by the country's authoritarian rulers and the United States government through their support for brutal labor regulations and massive concessions to wealthy landowners. In 1944, the policies of Jorge Ubico led to a popular uprising that began the ten-year Guatemalan Revolution. The presidencies of Juan Jose Arévalo and Jacobo Árbenz saw sweeping social and economic reforms, including a significant increase in literacy and a successful agrarian reform program.
      xxx/ellauri273.html on line 71: Cecilio Chi, the native leader of Tepich, along with Jacinto Pat attacked Tepich on 30 July 1847, in reaction to the indiscriminate massacre of Mayas, ordered that all the non-Maya population be killed. By spring of 1848, the Maya forces had taken over most of the Yucatán, with the exception of the walled cities of Campeche and Mérida and the south-west coast, with Yucatecan troops holding the road from Mérida to the port of Sisal. The Yucatecan governor Miguel Barbachano had prepared a decree for the evacuation of Mérida, but was apparently delayed in publishing it by the lack of suitable paper in the besieged capital. The decree became unnecessary when the republican troops suddenly broke the siege and took the offensive with major advances.
      xxx/ellauri273.html on line 82: The British Government assigned Sir Spenser St. John to disentangle Her Majesty's Government from indigenous free states and the Maya free state in particular. In 1893, the British Government signed the Spenser Mariscal Treaty, which ceded all of the Maya free state's lands to Mexico. Meanwhile, the Creoles on the west side of the Yucatán peninsula had come to realize that their minority-ruled mini-state could not outlast its indigenous neighbor. After the Creoles offered their country to anyone who might consider the defense of their lives and property worth the effort, Mexico finally accepted. With both legal pretext and a convenient staging area in the western side of the Yucatán peninsula, Chan Santa Cruz was occupied by the Mexican army in the early years of the 20th century (Reed 1964).
      xxx/ellauri273.html on line 86: In 1931, the dictator general Jorge Ubico came to power, backed by the United States, and initiated one of the most brutally repressive governments in Central American history. Just as Estrada Cabrera had done during his government, Ubico created a widespread network of spies and informants and had large numbers of political opponents tortured and put to death. A wealthy aristocrat (with an estimated income of $215,000 per year in 1930s dollars) and a staunch anti-communist, he consistently sided with the United Fruit Company, Guatemalan landowners and urban elites in disputes with peasants. After the crash of the New York Stock Exchange in 1929, the peasant system established by Barrios in 1875 to jump start coffee production in the country was not good enough anymore, and Ubico was forced to implement a system of debt slavery and forced labor to make sure that there was enough labor available for the coffee plantations and that the UFCO workers were readily available.
      xxx/ellauri273.html on line 94: In 1951, the agrarian reform law that expropriated idle land from private hands was enacted, but in 1954, with the National Liberation Movement coup supported by the United States, most of the land that had been expropriated, was awarded back to its former landowners. Flavio Monzón was appointed mayor and in the next twenty years he became one of the largest landowners in the area. In 1964, several communities settled for decades on the shore of Polochic River claimed property titles to INTA which was created in October 1962, but the land was awarded to Monzón. A Mayan peasant from Panzós later said that Monzón "got the signatures of the elders before he went before INTA to talk about the land. When he returned, gathered the people and said that, by an INTA mistake, the land had gone to his name."
      xxx/ellauri273.html on line 279: 1. Verot voivat vaihdella kohteen arvon tai verovelvollisen tulon mukaan niin kauan kuin verokannat ovat yhdenmukaisia. Ne voivat koskea jopa esineitä tai liiketoimia, joita löytyy vain joissakin osavaltioissa, kuten talvirenkaita pohjoisessa tai aurinkovarjoja rannikkovaltioissa. Edye v. Robertson (Head Money Cases) (1884).
      xxx/ellauri273.html on line 309: Poliittinen toiminta toi lokakuussa 1979 Havelille viiden vuoden vankeustuomion. The longest of his prison terms was nearly four years, between 1979 and 1983. 29. joulukuuta 1989 liittokokous valitsi hänet presidentiksi. Ei niin hyvää ettei jotain pahaakin. Havel oli aika lailla Walt Disneyn näköinen. Samaa lookia edusti myös presidentti Ronald McDonald.
      xxx/ellauri273.html on line 320: Havel was instrumental in dismantling the Warsaw Pact and enlargement of NATO membership eastward. Many of his stances and policies, such as his opposition to Slovak independence, condemnation of the treatment of Sudeten Germans, such as the expulsion of Germans from Czechoslovakia after World War II, and granting of general amnesty to all those imprisoned under the Communist era, were very controversial domestically. By the end of his presidency, he enjoyed greater popularity abroad than at home.
      xxx/ellauri273.html on line 389: Julius Nyerere 1985-6
      xxx/ellauri273.html on line 416: Taloudellista eriarvoisuutta tulisi ehkä seurata nykyistä laajakazeisemmin. Lyhyen aikavälin mutoxia talodellisa eriarvoisuudessa on syytä tulkita varoen. Ilman huolellista ja monipuolista tarkastelua tehdyt hätiköidyt tulkinnat voivat johtaa julkisen keskustelun kärjistymiseen ja lyhytnäköiseen politiikkaan. Tuloerojen kasvua selittävät etenkin arvopaperien ja muun omaisuuden myyntivoitot, kun hätään joutuneet vaurastuneet joutuivat likvidoimaan varojaan. Gini-kertoimella tulojakauman yläosassa tapahtuva kurjistuminen saa liian vähän painoarvoa.
      xxx/ellauri280.html on line 72: Follett ize on prominentti Blairiitti. Hän on amatöörimuusikko ja säestää izeään Puukenkä-yhtyeessä balalaikalla. Follett lives to this day in Hartfordshire, Herefordshire, and Hampshire, where Hurriganes hardly ever happen. Aivan puuduttavan epäkiinostava kaveri. As uneventful and unchallenging as his first job at Evening News.
      xxx/ellauri280.html on line 79: Enoch Arnold Bennett (1867 Staffordshire- 1931 Lontoo) oli brittiläinen kirjailija, uskokaa tai älkää. Hän kirjoitti ja tienasikin sillä aivan vitusti. Hän oli aikansa Ken Follett. Hän työskenteli ensimmäisessä maailmansodassa propagandaministeriössä ja johti sitä lyhyesti, ja kirjoitti elokuvateatteriin 1920-luvulla. Hänen kirjojensa myynti oli huomattavaa ja hän oli aikansa taloudellisesti menestynein brittikirjailija.
      xxx/ellauri280.html on line 89: John Boynton Priestley's first major success came with a novel, The Good Companions (1929), which earned him the James Tait Black Memorial Prize for fiction and made him a national figure. His next novel, Angel Pavement (1930), further established him as a successful novelist. However some critics were less than complimentary about his work and Priestley threatened legal action against Graham Greene for what he took to be a defamatory portrait of him in the novel Stamboul Train (1932). In 1940 he broadcast a series of short propaganda radio talks, which were credited with strengthening civilian morale during the Battle of Britain. In the following years his left-wing beliefs brought him into conflict with the government and influenced the development of the welfare state.
      xxx/ellauri280.html on line 102: A Thad is basically a mega Chad. A Thad is like a Chad but more powerful. Don't get on the bad side of a Thad or he will continuously yell "FIGHT ME BRO" at you.

      xxx/ellauri280.html on line 124: 23. helmik. 2023 Hong Kong (CNN) China has reiterated its calls for a political settlement to the Ukraine conflict on the one-year anniversary of Russia's invasion, as Beijing comes under increasing pressure...

      xxx/ellauri280.html on line 126: TAIPEI, Taiwan -- One year into Russia's war against Ukraine, China is offering a 12-point proposal to end the fighting. The proposal follows China's recent announcement that it is trying to act as mediator in the war that has re-energized Western alliances viewed by Beijing and Moscow as rivals.

      xxx/ellauri280.html on line 131: China may yet persuade Putin to end his war in Ukraine

      xxx/ellauri280.html on line 387: Ei helvetti, kun tota 2000-luvun "Harjunpäätä" kazoo pitemmälle, näkee miten vanhan Harjunpään pehmee koira-klischeet menee siinä täysin turvalleen. Kaikki 2000-luvun ihmiset on 100-prosenttisia ihmishirviöitä! Karseita robotteja, kalseita autistisia psykopaatteja, kyrvänpäitä joiden sydämet on oikealla paikalla ja mustia kuin Samlagspartietin plakaateissa. Alkaako tollasta täälläkin jo olla, samanlaista klaanimeininkiä kuin sveduissa, eikä Natoon liittyminen auta siinä vähääkään, päinvastoin. Saatana lopettaisivat tälläsen paskan filmaamisen, haluaako ne oikein kädestä pitäen näyttää neuvottomille nuorukaisille ja neitosille miten nää kaikki paska huume-väkivaltahommat oikein hoidetaan? Ei jaxa kazoa yhtään enempää. Se loppu tähän nyt. Salihousuiset pollarit saa mennä samaan silppuriin kuin niiden paimentamat pahixet. Vittuako joku jeppe "nappaa" kätkyestä pikku vainajan omin nokkineen odottelematta edes "sossuja", lääkäristä puhumattakaan? Jo on outo meininki. Musta enkeli vei päivänsankarin. Kuka käski toisten päälle heittää kylmää mehua.
      xxx/ellauri280.html on line 418: Nyereren sosialismi kuitenkin merkittävässä määrin epäonnistui ja hänen ideoimansa kollektiiviseen afrikkalaiseen sosialismiin perustuvat ujamaa-kylä järjestelmä epäonnistui. Nyereren perustama Chama Cha Mapinduzi (swah. ”vallankumouspuolue”) on kuitenkin pysynyt johtavassa asemassa
      xxx/ellauri280.html on line 420: Vaikka Gurnahin äidinkieli on swahili, 21-vuotiaana paholaisena hän ryhtyi kirjoittamaan englanniksi. Hän jatkoi opintojaan Kentin yliopistossa Canterburyssä. Jatko-opintoja seurasi pitkä yliopistollinen ura. Vuonna 1982 hän valmistui filosofian tohtoriksi Kentin yliopistosta; väitöskirja oli otsikoitu Criteria in the Criticism of West African Fiction. (Mixei East African? Ehkei sitä ollut riittävästi. Sitäpaizi hän toimi opettajana nigerialaisessa Bayeron yliopistossa Kanossa 1980–1982. Kenen leipää syöt sen lauluja laulat.) Tämän jälkeen Gurnah työskenteli Kentin yliopiston englannin kielen laitoksen opettajana. Professoriksi hänet nimitettiin vasta vuonna 2004. Hän jäi eläkkeelle melkein saman tien englannin kielen ja postkolonialistisen kirjallisuuden emeritusprofessorina. (WTF? Emeritus on jo eläkkeellä. Nykykynäilijät eivät erota translatiivia essiivistä.)
      xxx/ellauri280.html on line 428: Gurnah still lives in Zanzibar in his mind, and prefers it that way. When he returns home, he is frustrated by the discrepancy between the stories he invented—and started to half believe—and the dreary realities. The house of his parents is close to decay; essential services like water, electricity, and garbage disposal fail regularly. In addition, his schoolmates have become corrupt, self-seeking bureaucrats, and his mother was not gallantly courted but given as a pawn to his father. And yet, he never found the courage to inform his parents that he has been living together with a white infidel—a "kafir woman." When he is introduced to the child-wife who his relatives chose for him, he panics and flees "home," which is now England, only to find that Emma left and that he is condemned to be "on the edges of everything," on his own island in England. The hero despairs of establishing communication between the two worlds. Vaimo läx. Lammaskaalta.
      xxx/ellauri280.html on line 449: Hakīm (alternative transcription Hakeem) indicates a "wise man" or "physician", or in general, a practitioner of herbal medicine, especially of Unani and Islamic medicine, like Hakim Ajmal Khan, Hakim Said, Hakim Syed Zillur Rahman, etc.
      xxx/ellauri281.html on line 145: 5. Syitä murtumiskemikaalien kulkeutumiseen vuoristossa ovat erilaiset, erityisesti kaivon porauksen ja murtumisen aiheuttamat matalan magnitudin maanjäristykset ([V. A. Shcherba, 2013] mukaan havaitaan tuhansia mikromaanjäristyksiä), luonnolliset ja vastamuodostuneet kalliohalkeamat kivet, kapillaariabsorptio [Daniel T. et al., 2015] jne. Samalla korostetaan geologisen ympäristön ominaisuuksien ratkaisevaa vaikutusta ylöspäin suuntautuvan muuttoliikkeen ilmiöön, arvioidaan sen nopeutta ja aikaväliä hydraulisen murtumisen paikasta kallioperän läpi matalille pohjavesikerroille. T. Myers [Myers, T., 2012] ehdotti, että tällainen muutto voisi tapahtua alle 10 vuodessa. Teoksessa [Samuel A., 2014] tällaisen muuton aikakehykseksi on arvioitu yli 100 vuotta. Hydrauliliitoksen saatavuus mustan liuskeen ja matalien akviferien välisen yhteyden väittävät myös Rozell ja Reaven [Rozell, DJ ja SJ Reaven. 2012], Warner et al.. [Warner, NR et ai., 2012].
      xxx/ellauri281.html on line 183: Myers, T. 2012. Mahdolliset kontaminanttireitit hydraulisesti murtetusta liuskeesta pohjavesikerroksiin. Pohjavesi 50, no. 6: 872-882. DOI:10.1111/j.1745-6584.2012.00933.x.
      xxx/ellauri281.html on line 220: Maailman hyödynnettävien liuskekaasuvarojen todennäköisyysarviointi. Zhenzhen Dong, Schlumberger, Stephen A. Holditch, Duane A. McVay, Walter B. Ayers, Texas A&M University, W. John Lee, Houstonin yliopisto, Enrique Morales, SGS Horizon. Tekijänoikeus 2014, Petroleum Engineers -yhdistys. Tämä paperi valmistettiin esitettäväksi SPE/EAGE European Unconventional Conference and Exhibition -näyttelyssä Wienissä, Itävallassa, 25.–27.2.2014.
      xxx/ellauri281.html on line 506: Kaksi vuotta myöhemmin Millerin toinen kuuluisa teos näki valon tulevaisuudessa - draama " Myyjän kuolema". Tässä näytelmässä, joka paljastaa teeman "amerikkalaisen unelman " romahtamisesta, päähenkilö - konkurssiin mennyt liikemies - tiivistää elämänsä ja tekee itsemurhan, jotta hänen poikansa saisi ainakin vakuutuksen. Lyhyessä ajassa näytelmä käännettiin yli tusinalle kielelle (mukaan lukien venäjäksi vuonna 1956) ja osoitti izensä saman tien vääräxi. Amerikan unelma on totta: kirjoittajasta tuli miljonääri.
      xxx/ellauri281.html on line 523: Arthur Miller was 35 and at the top of his career when, in 1951, he first set eyes on Marilyn Monroe. He was the author of “All My Sons” and “Death of a Salesman,” the first play to win all three major drama prizes (the Pulitzer Prize, the Tony Award and the New York Drama Critics’ Circle Award). He would soon begin work on “The Upokas.” She was 24 and, except for her glorious behind, virtually unknown.
      xxx/ellauri281.html on line 525: The occasion was a Hollywood party in Miller’s honor. A married father of two, he was dazzled by the erotic scenery. Women were clearly on offer to him. He had, he would write, “never before seen sex treated so casually as a reward of success.” When Monroe arrived, she was “almost ludicrously provocative,” he wrote, squeezed into a dress that was “blatantly tight, declaring rather than insinuating that she had brought her body along and that it was the best one in the room.” The director Elia Kazan caught “the lovely light of lechery” in Miller’s eyes.
      xxx/ellauri281.html on line 531: Miller would give up his career to help guide hers, and he spent years working on “The Misfits,” directed by John Huston, for which he wrote the screenplay and she would star. On the set she’d be hospitalized and, around this time, have an affair with Yves Montand. The couple got a Mexican divorce in 1961; Miller would marry the Magnum photographer Inge Morath, whom he met during the filming.
      xxx/ellauri281.html on line 692: Hän tulee niin kevyeksi
      xxx/ellauri281.html on line 726: A yet murkier side of Mr. Train’s political engagement was documented in Joel Whitney’s 2016 book, “Finks: How the C.I.A. Tricked the World’s Best Writers,” a history of connections between Paris Review founders and intelligence agencies. Drawing on a collection of Mr. Train’s papers at Seton Hall University and two interviews with him, Mr. Whitney wrote that in the 1980s Mr. Train used a “shell nonprofit to foster schemes” furthering U.S. “intelligence and propaganda missions” in Afghanistan. Mr. Train ran an organization, the Afghanistan Relief Committee, which presented itself as largely devoted to helping refugees and offering other forms of humanitarian aid, but a study by the left-leaning Institute for Policy Studies found that its budget was spent largely on “media campaigns.” Vanhuxena John Train koitti lukea hankkimiaan afgaanimattoja.
      xxx/ellauri281.html on line 734: It’s not how governments operate–democratic ones and every other kind, including the Russian kind–that has been well-known to everybody since time immemorial; and to university professors since 1911. That was the year when Robert Michels, a German-born sociologist working in Italy and France, published the first edition of what he called the “iron law of oligarchy”.
      xxx/ellauri281.html on line 837: White trash metal -yhtye Metallica perustettiin.
      xxx/ellauri286.html on line 311: Kodumaa-lehden aikaan Neuvostoliitto ei kuitenkaan kyennyt tavoittamaan medioillaan yhtä suuria yleisömääriä maansa rajojen ulkopuolella kuin Venäjä nykyään, ja se on yksi merkittävä ero, kun vertaillaan keskenään Neuvostoliiton ja Venäjän harjoittamaa psykologista vaikuttamista. Tässäkin osoittaa kapitalismi etevämmyytensä!
      xxx/ellauri286.html on line 539: Bulimareksia on Suomi 24 laahussana bulimialle jossa on anoreksian piirteitä. Arexia, my foot, p.o. orexia. Pas anthropos eidenai oregei, uteliaita ovat kaikki apinat. Bulimia nervosa, yksinkertaisesti bulimia, on syömishäiriö, jolle on tunnusomaista ahmiminen, jota seuraa puhdistuminen tai paasto, sekä liiallinen huoli kehon muodosta ja painosta. Ahmiminen tarkoittaa suuren ruokamäärän syömistä lyhyessä ajassa. Puhdistaminen viittaa yrityksiin päästä eroon kulutetusta ruoasta Tämä voidaan tehdä oksentamalla tai ottamalla laksatiiveja (tupla yök). Tämän ällön toiminnan tarkoituksena on poistaa syödyt kalorit prosessin syömisvaiheesta. Senkö tautta bestsellerinkin nimi oli Puhdistus? Äiti tuu puhamaan!
      xxx/ellauri287.html on line 281: Pääjohtaja ei voinut uskoa kuulemaansa. En koskaan unohda hänen ylimielistä ilmettään. Tämä mies ajatteli olevansa maailman napa ja järjestävänsä kaiken rahalla. Hän meni niin vakavaan shokkiin, että kalpeni eikä kyennyt lausumaan sanaakaan. Hänet vietiin heti käsiraudoissa pidätysselliin ja pantiin puihin, jotka pitivät hänet (ja 5 turvamiestä) aloillaan.
      xxx/ellauri287.html on line 283:
      yellow;padding:1em">
      xxx/ellauri287.html on line 337: Most angels in the Bibble have the appearance and form of a man. Many of them have wings, but not all. Some are larger than life. Others have multiple faces that appear like a man from one angle, and a lion, ox, or eagle from another angle. Some angels are bright, shining, and fiery, while others look like ordinary humans. Some angels are invisible, yet their presence is felt, and their voice is heard.
      xxx/ellauri287.html on line 514: Kaiken kaikkiaan Julianuksen lyhyt hallituskausi ei yksinkertaisesti kyennyt muuttamaan Imperiumin halki pyyhkäisevää inertian tunnetta. Kristityt olivat tuominneet uhraukset, riisuneet temppeleitä varoistaan ​​ja katkaisseet papit ja tuomarit yhteiskunnallisesta arvovallasta ja taloudellisista eduista, jotka liittyivät johtaviin pakanallisiin asemiin menneisyydessä. Johtavilla poliitikoilla ja kansalaisjohtajilla ei ollut juurikaan motivaatiota heiluttaa venettä elvyttämällä pakanallisia festivaaleja. Sen sijaan he valitsivat keskitien järjestämällä seremonioita ja joukkoviihdettä, jotka olivat uskonnollisesti neutraaleja.
      xxx/ellauri287.html on line 527:
      yellow;padding:1em">
      xxx/ellauri287.html on line 536: Saladin ei Nur al-Dinin käskyistä huolimatta halunnut aloittaa sotaa Jerusalemin kuningaskuntaa vastaan, ja siksi Nur al-Din oli jo aloittamassa sodan Saladinia vastaan mutta kuoli 1174. Saladin käytti tilannetta hyväkseen ja valtasi Damaskoksen mutta hän ei kyennyt valtaamaan kahta tärkeää kaupunkia Aleppoa ja Mosulia, joita Nur al-Din oli hallinnut. Bugger it.
      xxx/ellauri287.html on line 615: Athenodoros koetti ensin korjata asioita väittelyn ja suostuttelun avulla, mutta koska Boethus ja hänen puolueensa väittivät sitkeästi vastaan, hän käytti lopulta poikkeuslakia, karkotti rikolliset vastaväittäjät ja muokkasi perustuslaista "timokraattiseen" (= oligarkkkisen), rajoittaen täyden kansalaisuuden niille, joilla oli huomattava omaisuuskelpoisuus. Vain varakkaat ja hyvässä yhteiskunta-asemassa olevat saivat takaisin Tarsoxen kansalaisoikeudet. Muut pyyhittiin osakasluetteloista ja olivat Dion Kultasuun käydessä Tarsoxessa 100v myöhemmin vajonneet laahuxeen ja saaneet pilkkanimen "telttakankaan kutojat". Se seikka, että Paavali saattoi ylpeästi vakuuttaa olevansa "Tarsoxen kansalainen" voi osoittaa että se kuului kermakökkäreisiin. Tai size vallan lasketteli luikuria. Ehkä siinä pääsikin käymään niin, että Paavalin porukoista tuli telttakangasta vuohenkarvoista jossain Tarsoxen tönöissä näpelöivää laahusta juuri tuossa käänteessä, ja Sale tekikin sen uskonnollisen täyskäännöxen juuri sixi. Kenties Patun matkat olivatkin luokkaretki. No voee vittu, en paremmin sano. Hän havaitsi Tarsoxessa vain yhden tunnustuksen ansaitsevan piirteen, nim. tiukkuuden, jolla Tarsoxen naiset peitettiin aina heidän ilmestyessään julkisuuteen.
      xxx/ellauri287.html on line 659:
      yellow;padding:1em">
      xxx/ellauri287.html on line 665: Sasanian valtakunnan perusti Ardashir I , paikallinen iranilainen hallitsija, joka nousi valtaan Parthian heikentyessä sisäisistä riidoista ja sodista Rooman kanssa. Voitettuaan viimeisen partialaisen kuninkaiden kuninkaan eli shahanshahin, Artabanus IV:n, Hormozdganin taistelussa vuonna 224, hän perusti Sassanidi-dynastian ja päätti palauttaa Achaimenidi-imperiumin perinnön laajentamalla Iranin hallintoa. Suurimmillaan Sasanian valtakunta käsitti koko nykyisen Iranin ja Irakin ja ulottui itäisestä Välimerestä (mukaan lukien Anatolia ja Egypti) Pakistaniin ja Etelä-Arabian osista Kaukasukseenja Keski -Aasiassa. Legendan mukaan Imperiumin vexilloidi oli Derafsh Kaviaari (kuva alla)
      xxx/ellauri287.html on line 679: Syökäämme ja juokaamme kevyesti, sillä huomenna me kuolemme.
      xxx/ellauri289.html on line 78: Jehovan todistajat ovat todistettavasti jenkkejä. Mutta ovatko ne kristittyjä? Täytyypä tutkia. Voimmeko luottaa siihen mitä raamattu sanoo? Vielä vähemmän voimme luottaa siihen mitä Jehovan todistajat sanovat. Jeesus paransi sairaita ja teki sen hyvin mielellään. Voimme siis olla varmoja siitä, että Jehova ja Jeesus haluavat tulevaisuutemme olevan onnellinen! Voimme luottaa raamattuun koska raamattu sanoo niin. Jesus loves me yes I know / cause the Bibble says me so.
      xxx/ellauri291.html on line 36:

      yellow;text-align:center;margin-bottom:0%">ENSIARVOISEN TÄRKEÄÄ


      xxx/ellauri291.html on line 165: Kolme päähenkilöä olivat Kirk, Spock ja McCoy, ja kirjailijat leikittelivät usein eri persoonallisuuksia toisistaan: Kirk oli intohimoinen ja usein aggressiivinen, mutta hänellä oli viekas huumorintaju; Spock oli viileän looginen; ja McCoy oli sarkastinen, tunteellinen ja epälooginen, mutta aina myötätuntoinen. Monissa tarinoissa nämä kolme törmäsivät, jolloin Kirk joutui tekemään vaikean päätöksen, kun taas Spock kannatti loogista, mutta joskus jämäkkää polkua ja McCoy (tai "Bones", kuten Kirk kutsui häntä) vaati tekemään sen, mikä aiheuttaisi vähiten haittaa. McCoylla ja Spockilla oli sparraussuhde, joka peitti heidän todellisen kiintymyksensä ja kunnioituksensa toisiaan kohtaan, ja heidän jatkuvasta riitansa tuli suosittuja katsojien keskuudessa. Esitys korosti dialogia niin paljon, että käsikirjoittaja ja ohjaaja Nicholas Meyer kutsui sitä radiodraamaksi.
      xxx/ellauri291.html on line 178: yed-blonde-teen-girl-wallpaper-2952/1920x1080.jpg" height="200px" />
      xxx/ellauri291.html on line 471: Hitlerin oma itsepetos vaikutti tähän, koska hän ei halunnut uskoa, että puna-armeijalla oli riittävästi panssaria ja miehiä. Lisäksi monet tehottomat puna-armeijan hyökkäykset Stalingradin pohjoispuolella olivat tahattomasti antaneet sen vaikutelman, ettei se kyennyt käynnistämään mitään merkittävää hyökkäystä, saati sitten nopeasta armeijan mittakaavaisesta pihtiliikkeestä.
      xxx/ellauri291.html on line 515: – Joulukuun puolella viime vuonna alkoi Jarnolla esiintymään mustelmia eri puolilla kehoa ja kysyessä niiden alkuperästä selitti hoitotäti joskus ne kaatumisen syyksi ja joskus hänen omat lapsensa (3- ja 5-vuotiaat tytöt) olivat nipistelleet niitä mustasukkaisina, äiti kertoi.
      xxx/ellauri292.html on line 47: In Rahab, Woman of Jericho, readers discover a Rahab who is a descendent of the tribe of Ephraim, one of the ten lost tribes of Israel. Her clan left Egypt and settled in Canaan before the Hebrews were enslaved. Although they did not wander in the desert with Moses for forty years, nor did they hear the laws that the Lord gave to His people, they still worshipped the one true God, though without the fringes.
      xxx/ellauri292.html on line 49: Rahab marries Radames, a young Egyptian officer, who is to become the new governor of Jericho. They live in the Egyptian embassy set in the city wall. When the Israelites approach Canaan with their army, pharaoh sends word that he is withdrawing his troops. Radames fabricates a story to tell Jericho’s king, but the babylonian lawmaker Hammurabi doesn’t believe it…and he has his eye on the beautiful Rahab.
      xxx/ellauri292.html on line 113: Tekle Haymanot is frequently represented as an old man with wings on his back and only one leg visible. There are a number of explanations for this popular image. C.F. Beckingham and G.W.B. Huntingford recount one story, that the saint "having stood too long for about 34 years, one of his legs broke or cut while Satan was attempting to stop his prayers, whereupon he stood on one foot for 7 years." Paul B. Henze describes his missing leg as appearing as a "severed leg... in the lower left corner discreetly wrapped in a cloth." The traveller Thomas Pakenham learned from the Prior of Debre Damo how Tekle Haymanot received his wings:
      xxx/ellauri292.html on line 146: (It hasn’t sunk in yet in my brain that they would do such a thing. First of all, I have no clue, they planned it all.)
      xxx/ellauri292.html on line 156: Lokakuussa 2020 Libradan elävä kumppani Michelle Bana-ag väitti Raffy Tulfo in Action -lehdessä, että koomikko oli toistuvasti käyttänyt häntä ja hänen lastaan seksuaalisesti hyväksi aiemmasta avioliitosta. Tähän sisältyi seksuaalisen kanssakäymisen vaatiminen vastineeksi ruoasta, kun Michelle oli sairas ehkäisyinjektion sivuvaikutusten vuoksi. Librada kiisti kaikki väärinkäytökset väittäen, ettei hän koskaan raiskaisi Bana-agia, koska hänellä on tytärkin. Librada vapautettiin myöhemmin, kun Bana-ag ei kyennyt toimittamaan riittäviä todisteita koomikkoa vastaan, ja Libradan kollegoiden todistukset paljastivat Bana-agin aiemmat väärinkäytökset, nimittäin hänen metamfetamiiniriippuvuutensa sekä lesbosuhteensa naispuoliseen kumppaniin. Tämä johti lopulta siihen, että Raffy Tulfo peruutti aiemman lupauksensa tukea Bana-agia sen jälkeen, kun tämä kieltäytyi ottamasta huumetestiä todistaakseen syyttömyytensä.
      xxx/ellauri292.html on line 173: Paavalin ja Teklan teot ( Acta Pauli et Theclae ) on apokryfinen tarina – Edgar J. Goodspeed kutsui sitä " uskonnolliseksi romanssiksi " – apostoli Paavalin vaikutuksesta nuoreen neitsyeen nimeltä Tekla. Se on yksi Uuden testamentin apokryfien kirjoituksista. Tertullianus, De baptismo 17:5 (n. 190) sanoo, että Aasiasta kotoisin oleva presbyteeri kirjoitti Paavalin ja Theklan historian, ja hänet nyrjäytettiin sen jälkeen, kun hän tunnusti kirjoittaneensa sen. Eugenia Roomalainen Commoduksen hallituskaudella (180–192) raportoi marttyyrikuolemansa teoissa olleen Theklan mallina tekstin lukemisen jälkeen, ennen kuin Tertullianus paheksui sitä. Hieronymus kertaa Tertullianuksen tiedot, ja hänen tarkkuutensa vuoksi kronologian raportoinnissa jotkut tutkijat pitävät tekstiä 1. vuosisadan luomuksena.
      xxx/ellauri292.html on line 209: Kuusivuotiaana hän sai ensimmäisen lelunsa: barbie-morsiushuoneen, jossa Jeesus Kristus suistui valtaistuimeltaan petiin vällykäärme tanassa. Tytön rakkaus Jee-suxeen syttyi ensinäkemällä. Hän luopui esileikeistä, omistautui pyllistyxelle ja alkoi myös ruoskia sitä itseään köydellä. Seitsenvuotiaana hän teki päätöksen pysyä neitsyenä. No voi venäjä.
      xxx/ellauri292.html on line 338: Hulda esiintyy heprealaisessa Raamatussa vain yhdeksässä jakeessa, 2. Kun. 22:13–20 , 2. Aikakirja 34:22–28.. Tämä lyhyt kertomus riittää tekemään selväksi, että Huldaa pidettiin profeettana, joka oli tottunut puhumaan Jumalan sanaa lyhyesti suoraan ylipapeille ja kuninkaallisille virkamiehille, joille korkeat virkamiehet tulivat anomaan, jotka kertoivat kuninkaille ja kansoille heidän kohtalostaan, joilla oli valta määrittää, mikä oli ja mikä ei ollut aito laki, ja kuka puhui ankaralla käskyllä ​​toimiessaan profeettana. Siitä huolimatta Raamattu ei tarjoa Huldasta sellaista nippelitietoa kuin se tyypillisesti tarjoaa meille miehisille profeetoille. Me todellakin jäämme tietämään enemmän hänen miehensä taustasta kuin tiedämme hänen omastaan, ja hänen persoonallisuudestaan ​​tiedämme suurelta osin hänen aviomieheltään. Miehen mukaan Hulda oli varsinainen pirttihirmu, pahempi kuin Pekka Puupään Justiina.
      xxx/ellauri292.html on line 568: Myöhäisen antiikin loppuun mennessä Ateena oli kutistunut herulilaisten, visigoottien ja varhaisslaavien mukanaan kantamien säkkien vuoksi, mikä aiheutti kaupungissa massiivisen tuhon. Tänä aikana ensimmäiset kristilliset kirkot rakennettiin Ateenaan, ja Parthenon ja muut temppelit muutettiin kirkoiksi. Ateena laajensi asutustaan Bysantin keskiajan toisella puoliskolla, 900-1000-luvuilla jKr., ja se oli suhteellisen vauras ristiretkien aikana hyötyessään Italian kaupasta. Neljännen ristiretken jälkeen perustettiin Ateenan herttuakunta. Vuonna 1458 sen valloitti Ottomaanien valtakunta ja se siirtyi pitkään taantuman ajanjaksoon.
      xxx/ellauri292.html on line 578: Paavalin vasta päästyä saarnassa hyvään vauhtiin ja alkaessa keinua kantapäiltä varpaille ehdittyään lunastusteemaan ateenalaiset katkaisivat puheen lyhyeen sanoen: jatka kernaasti joskus toiste. Patu lähti hotelliin kallella kypärin.
      xxx/ellauri293.html on line 48: Astrid Lindgrenillä on ihan kivojenkin lastenkirjojen lisäxi pari ällöä uskonnollissävyistä, nimittäin Mio, poikani Mio sekä albumissa 208 jo suomittu Veljeni Leijonamieli. Inhosin molempia sydämellisesti jo kansakouluikäisenä. Riku Leijonamieli oli surkea kuningas joka ei osannut edes enkkua. Samanlainen säheltäjä kuin homo Kaarle XII. Sitäpaizi leijonat ei ole mitään urheita, ne on laiskoja makoilijoita vaikka sitkeitä panomiehiä joilla on raadonhajuinen hengitys. Laumasieluina ryöstelevät hyeenoilta saaliita ja järsivät joukolla norsuparan persettä. Kesy Elsakin kylästyi lopulta apinaperheeseensä ja söi ne.
      xxx/ellauri293.html on line 234: Muthei kaverit, tää on kaikki vertauskuvallista! Hän kielsi heitä syömästä emakkoa, mikä tarkoittaa: Et saa liittyä sellaisiin ihmisiin, jotka ovat kuin sikoja, jotka eläessään mielihyvässä unohtavat Jumalansa; mutta kun jokin puute puristaa heitä, silloin he tuntevat Herran; niinkuin emakko kyllästyessään ei tunnusta isäntänsä, vaan pitää ääntä nälkäisenä ja taas ruokittuessaan on hiljaa.
      xxx/ellauri293.html on line 245: Älä myöskään saa syödä hyeenaa: älä siis ole avionrikkoja tai muiden turmeltaja, äläkä ole sellaisen kaltainen. Ja miksi niin? Koska tuo olento vaihtaa joka vuosi lajiaan ja on joskus uros ja joskus nainen. Tämä on puhdasta fantasiaa tai kansanperinnettä; hyeenaa ei mainita missään Raamatussa. Mutta allapa muutama myytti ja totuus hyeenasta!
      xxx/ellauri293.html on line 250: Totuus: Tämä myytti saattaa johtua siitä tosiasiasta, että täplät hyeenanaarat ovat yleensä suurempia kuin urokset ja niillä on pseudopenis.
      xxx/ellauri293.html on line 254: Nämä pseudopenikset eivät ole vain esittelyä varten: naaraat synnyttävät "penisensä" kautta, jonka "täytyy repeytyä, kun ensimmäinen pentu kulkee läpi", hän sanoo. (Lue lisää hyeenan seksuaalisista omituisuuksista artikkelista Kuinka voit erottaa naaraseläimen urosta? Senkö tautta hyeenat irvistää niin rumasti kun niitä aina ottaa kipiää tekofalloxesta?)
      xxx/ellauri293.html on line 256: yena-Main.jpg

      " />
      xxx/ellauri293.html on line 259: Totuus: Hyeenat ovat opportunistisia syöjiä, mutta myös taitavia metsästäjiä yksin ja ryhmissä, Benson-Amram sanoo.
      xxx/ellauri293.html on line 261: Osa tästä havainnosta tulee ihmisiltä, jotka katsovat elävästä luonnosta hyeenien ja leijonien tappelemista ruhosta. Monet olettavat, että hyeenat varastavat leijonasta, mutta "jos katsot tarkkaan, hyeenat ovat usein veren peitossa", hän sanoo. Tämä tarkoittaa, että hyeenat todella tekivät tappamisen, ja sitten leijona varasti ruhon hyeenoilta - jotka yrittävät anastaa sen takaisin.
      xxx/ellauri293.html on line 423: Dreamingia käytetään edustamaan aboriginaalien käsityksiä Erewhonista, jonka aikana maassa asuivat esi-isiensä hahmot, jotka olivat usein sankarillisia tai joilla oli yliluonnollisia kykyjä. Nämä hahmot erosivat usein kuitenkin jumalista, koska he eivät kyenneet hallizemaan aineellista maailmaa kuten länkkärit, eikä niitä palvottu kuin länkkäreitä, vaan vain vetelästi kunnioitettiin. Dreamtime-konsepti on sittemmin otettu laajalti käyttöön alkuperäisen australialaisen kontekstin ulkopuolella ja on nyt osa maailmanlaajuista populaarikulttuuria.
      xxx/ellauri293.html on line 505: Bender-II:lle kehitettiin useiden pisteytysjärjestelmien empiirisen tutkimuksen perusteella. Maailmanlaajuinen pisteytysjärjestelmä liittyi tangentiaalisesti Benderin alkuperäiseen pisteytysmenetelmään ja Braniganin 1980-luvulla kehittämään järjestelmään, ja se valittiin luotettavuus- ja validiteettitutkimusten sekä sen helppokäyttöisyyden ja rakenteen selkeyden perusteella. Elizabeth Koppitz, kliininen lastenpsykologi ja koulupsykologi (joka työskenteli suurimman osan urastaan New Yorkissa), kehitti 1960-luvulla pisteytysjärjestelmän, joka oli omistettu arvioimaan lasten visuaalisten motoristen taitojen kypsymistä, pysyen uskollisena Benderin kokeen tavoitteelle, ja popularisoi sen käyttöä kouluissa. Vuosikymmenten ajan Koppitz-versio, joka tunnettiin nimellä Bender-Gestalt Test for Young Children, oli yksi eniten käytetyistä Bender-Gestaltin pisteytysjärjestelmistä Yhdysvalloissa. Koppitzin kuoltua 1980-luvun alussa menetelmän käyttö säilytti suosionsa 1990-luvun puoliväliin saakka, jolloin se poistui markkinoilta julkaisuyhtiöiden konsolidoinnin seurauksena.
      xxx/ellauri293.html on line 660: Tuohon aikaan trendaava meemi oli tehdä jokaisesta merkittävästä hahmosta "Jumalan poikia", jotka syntyi ihmeellisesti neitsyestä ja herätti toisia neizyeitä kuolleista.
      xxx/ellauri293.html on line 664: Hän vastasi: 'Elämällä kevyemmällä ruokavaliolla kuin muut miehet.' Minne ikinä hän menikin, hän uudisti uskonnollista jumalanpalvelusta ja suoritti upeita tekoja. Juhlissa hän hämmästytti vieraat ostamalla tarjouksesta leipää, hedelmiä, vihanneksia ja erilaisia herkkuja.
      xxx/ellauri295.html on line 40:

      Uther Pendragon Tintagelissa työntää kohta kynttilänsä mehukkaasti Igrainen kandelaaberiin esiintyen Gorloiskixena...

      xxx/ellauri295.html on line 62: Historioizija Hazipompponen vuosi Herostratoxen nimen julkisuuteen. Hazipompponen on kyllä kuuluisa Babarin talonmiehenä, muttei niin kuuluisa kuin Herostratos. Esimerkiksi Jean-Paul Sartren lyhyessä tarinassa Erostratus, joka on osa teosta Muuri (Le mur, 1939), eräs mies suunnittelee väkivallantekoa saavuttaakseen mainetta. Elokuva Herostratus vuodelta 1967 puolestaan kertoo miehestä, joka suunnittelee näyttävää julkista joukkomurhaa. Mortonin mielestä jumalattaret ovat ihmiskunnan menneisyyden alfasusia. Onnexi kristityillä ei ole niitä.
      xxx/ellauri295.html on line 220: Tältä ne näyttivät Pudendumin kirkossa 400-luvulla. Pudes (häpy) niminen häiskä ylläpiti Pezkua ja Patea Roomassa loppupeleissä. »Ei ole epäilemistäkään», kirjoitti professori Lanciani, ettei Paavalin ja Pietarin ulkomuotoa olisi huolellisesti säilytetty Roomassa heidän elinpäivästään saakka, jokainen sen tunsi, koululapsetkin. Tyypit ei koskaan muutu. Pietarin kasvot ovat täyteläiset ja voimakkaat, hiukset ja parta kähärät ja lyhyet, kun taas Paavali näyttää kuivemmalta ja laihemmalta, hieman kaljulta, ja parta on pitkä ja suippo. Näiden kuvien vanhaa ikää ja aitoutta ei käy epäileminen. Keitähän nuo sädekehiä pitelevät misut olivat? Oliko toinen niistä Claudia?
      xxx/ellauri295.html on line 297: Paasilinnan rooli vittuilijana oli siitä erikoinen, että hänen vittuilunsa pohjautuivat lähes aina tositapahtumiin ja vieläpä osa niistä oli totta. Paasilinnan vittuilut luettiin erityisen tarkasti niissä piireissä, jotka edustivat vallankäytön suhteen keskimääräistä suurempia oikeuksia. Paasilinnan vittuilu herätti usein myös kritiikkiä ja vastustusta sekä tappouhkauksia, joiden määrän lisääntyessä päivittäin määrätyn rajan yli poliisiviranomaiset suosittelivat kirjailijalle pysyttelyä kiven sisällä.
      xxx/ellauri295.html on line 440: Yxiavioisuus hyödyttää useimmin naisia ja lapsia. Miehet hyötyvät haaremeista ja teerenpelistä. Monogamia edistää tasa-arvoa ja vastavuoroista mukilointia. Nykyään se on konservatiivista, vaikka kyllä Abrahamin meininki on vielä konservatiivisempaa. Pitkää liittoa jäivät seka-avioiset viisikymppiset Noora ja Alexanderkin kaipaamaan Sandhamnissa, vaan lyhyexi jäi kuin kanalinnun lento.
      xxx/ellauri295.html on line 558: Gottlieb Klein valittaa aikansa teologisesta gurusta A. Hartnackista, että tämä ei kyennyt "liikkumaan itsenäisesti rabbiinisen kirjallisuuden alueella". Klein väittää myös, että Paavali ei oikeastaan tehnyt mitään radikaaleja itsenäisiä ratkaisuja lähetystyössään. Jerusalemin apostolien kokous vain sovelsi pakanoihin juutalaista "derech erets" ja "haggadoot meshubbahoot" säännöstöä. Tuolloin ei vielä pakanoita koskevaa "Nooan seitsemää käskyä" oltu määritelty mutta sen moraaliohjeet olivat jo käytössä. Paavali ihan rakasti sanoja looginen ja analogia. Juuri tämä roomalaiseen imperiumiin sopiva käsitemaailma tekee Paavalin meille niin tutuxi.
      xxx/ellauri295.html on line 665: Vizi pennyfuckerithan kylmän rauhalliseseti osti izensä ulos! Vasta tuliaseiden ansiosta sodasta ja rauhasta tuli lyhyexi aikaa yhteensopimattomat. No nythän ne soppii yhteen taas. Toisella kädellä kiristetään toiselle osapuolelle talouspakotteita ja toisella ojennetaan toiselle asetukea. Annetaan hölmöjen tapattaa izensä ja toisensa ja vedetään voitot välistä.
      xxx/ellauri296.html on line 104: 15 Mutta sitten valtasi Amnonin ylen suuri vastenmielisyys häntä kohtaan: vastenmielisyys häntä kohtaan oli suurempi kuin rakkaus, jolla hän oli häntä rakastanut. Ja Amnon sanoi hänelle: "Nouse, mene tiehesi". 16 Silloin hän sanoi hänelle: "Eikö tämä rikos, että ajat minut pois, ole vielä suurempi kuin se toinen, jonka olet minulle tehnyt?" Mutta hän ei tahtonut kuulla häntä, 17 vaan huusi nuoren miehen, joka häntä palveli, ja sanoi: "Ajakaa ulos minun luotani tämä, ja lukitse ovi hänen jälkeensä". 18 Ja tytöllä oli yllään pitkäliepeinen, hihallinen ihokas; sillä sellaisiin viittoihin olivat kuninkaan tyttäret puetut neitsyenä ollessaan. Ja kun palvelija oli vienyt hänet ulos ja lukinnut oven hänen jälkeensä, 19 sirotteli Taamar tuhkaa päähänsä ja repäisi pitkäliepeisen, hihallisen ihokkaan, joka hänellä oli yllänsä, pani kätensä päänsä päälle ja meni huutaen lakkaamatta. 20 Hänen veljensä Absalom sanoi hänelle: "Onko veljesi Amnon ollut sinun kanssasi? Vaikene nyt, sisareni, onhan hän veljesi. Älä pane tätä asiaa niin sydämellesi." Niin Taamar jäi hyljättynä veljensä Absalomin taloon. 21 Kun kuningas Daavid kuuli kaiken tämän, vihastui hän kovin (muttei tehnyt midiä). 22 Mutta Absalom ei puhunut Amnonille sanaakaan, ei pahaa eikä hyvää, sillä Absalom vihasi Amnonia, sentähden että tämä oli tehnyt väkivaltaa hänen sisarellensa Taamarille.
      xxx/ellauri296.html on line 159: yez_017.jpg/800px-Francesco_Hayez_017.jpg" />
      xxx/ellauri296.html on line 254: Tähän ovat koiraat hyväveliseurana tähän asti kyenneet koska joutavampana
      xxx/ellauri296.html on line 327: Arabi-Israelin sodassa 1948 Israelin puolustusvoimat valtasivat kylän operaatiossa Hiram. Kyseessä lienee ollut puunilainen Hiram, Daavidin aikuisia pro-israeli libanonilaisia. Kolme Israelin lentokonetta pommittivat kylää illalla 28. lokakuuta. Tätä seurasi pitkittynyt tykistötuli ja uusi ilmahyökkäys aamulla kylän puolustajien ja useimpien asukkaista vetäytyessä pohjoiseen Libanoniin. Israelin puolustusvoimat valtasivat kylän 29. lokakuuta. YK-tarkkailija kertoi, että 1. marraskuuta 1948 Israelin joukot autioivat ja ryöstivät laajasti Tarshihan ympärillä olevat arabikylät. New York Times lisäsi, että ryöstely vaikutti järjestelmälliseltä, koska Israelin armeijan kuorma-autoja käytettiin ryöstettyjen tavaroiden kuljettamiseen. Joulukuuhun 1948 mennessä noin 700 kyläläistä, enimmäkseen kristittyjä, oli palannut kylään. Perheet Tarshihasta alkoivat saapua Beirutiin pian kylän valloituksen jälkeen ja asuivat vuokrahuoneissa Bourj el Barajnehin ympärillä, joka tuolloin oli esikaupunki kaupungin laidalla. Noin puolet Libanoniin saapuvista 3,000 kyläläisestä asettui sinne Bourj al Barajnehin pakolaisleiriksi. He ottivat suurimman osan johtotehtävistä ja pysyivät enemmistönä useiden vuosien ajan. Vuonna 1981 leirillä asui arviolta 4-5,000 tarshihania. Ne kyläläiset, jotka eivät päässeet Beirutiin vuonna 1948, kerättiin ja lähetettiin junalla Aleppoon, koska heistä tuli al-Neirabin leirin suurin ryhmä. 3,000 Libanoniin saapuvaa kyläläistä asettui sinne Bourj al Barajnehin pakolaisleiriksi. He ottivat suurimman osan johtotehtävistä ja pysyivät enemmistönä useiden vuosien ajan.
      xxx/ellauri296.html on line 483: Jeshuan käsitys (sekä tuon hetkisestä että tulevasta) Messiaan roolistaan ja taivaitten valtakunnasta, ei aina sopinut yhteen hänen aikalaistensa tai opetuslastensa käsitysten tai edes Johannes Kastajan käsityksen kanssa. Samalla Evankeliumit ja kirjeet kertovat useista hänen lyhyen julkisen uransa aikana suoritetuista merkeistä ja ihmeistä. Niitä Patti Mulkkisellakin piisasi. Sinertyy tuas ehtooseen pään ja lintulauvalla liikenne vilikastuu. Luther ei ollut rasisti mutta vihasi juutalaisia. Ne olivat huonoja ja tyhmiä kun nirhasivat synnittömän Jeshuan.
      xxx/ellauri296.html on line 639: Rabbi Isaac Elchananin teologisen seminaarin rosh yeshivana Yeshiva -yliopistossa New Yorkissa, The Rav, kuten hänestä tuli tunnetuksi, vihki lähes 2000 rabbiinia lähes puolen vuosisadan aikana. Melkoinen esinahkakukkula. Rabbiinikirjallisuudessa häntä joskus kutsutaan nimellä הגרי"ד, lyhenne sanoista "suuri rabbi Yosef Dov".
      xxx/ellauri296.html on line 682: Aulangolta ostamani 95% chokladkaka hävisi. Joko se jäi kärryyn jo kaupassa tai jäi kassittamatta kaupasta lähdettäessä. Vitun vittu kuitenkin. Ja nyt taas! Sanan monistuxessa oli pudonnut tästä albumista Patin jouzenlaulun loppuarvio, jossa totesin vaan happamasti että Patti ja sen Vuokko ovat vielä luotaantyöntävämpiä sopuisina kuin riidoissa, kun ne kilpaa kehuvat Puolan matkaa mauttomassa kodissaan, jonne ne ovat kuzuneet Apu- ja Seura-lehtien toimittajia ja turhia julkkixia, näyttävät dioja ja tarjoavat pientä purtavaa. Mieleen tulee hakematta E. Saarisen 2x-poikien "Jeromen" ja "Oliverin" 7-vuotispäivät, joilla Marimekon edesmennyt ex-omistaja, 90-vuotias moderni tanssijatar ym celeb-hahmot leikkasivat peniskakkua ja mutustelivat Hoo Moilasen paikan päällä lämmitettyjä ripsipiirakoita torikärrystä. No joka tapauksessa, sen pituinen se ja lyhyestä virsi kaunis, tiiliskivestä rumempi.
      xxx/ellauri298.html on line 227: contrast, as consultant and employee, I often hear clients and colleagues talk
      xxx/ellauri298.html on line 250: rehearsals for the past. Replays of what had already played out. Anything to
      xxx/ellauri298.html on line 293: Prayer.’ It is particularly gooey, which is why I saved it last.
      xxx/ellauri298.html on line 631: Joseph Campbell (26. maaliskuuta 1904 – 30. lokakuuta 1987) oli yhdysvaltalainen professori ja kirjailija, joka tunnetaan parhaiten työstään mytologian ja vertailevan uskontotieteen alueilla. Ei pie sekoittaa samannimiseen irkkurunoilijaan. Campbellin tunnetuin kirja Sankarin tuhannet kasvot (The Hero With a Thousand Faces, 1949, suomennettu 1990) käsittelee eri kulttuureissa toistuvaa sankarin matkan teemaa, ns. hiihtokenkämyyttiä. Hänen neliosainen teossarjansa The Masks of God käsittelee mytologiaa eri puolilla maailmaa. Campbell työskenteli Bill Moyersin kanssa tehdessään PBS:n sarjaa The Power of Myth. He myös julkaisivat sarjaan pohjautuneen samannimisen kirjan.
      xxx/ellauri298.html on line 692: mytologiset järjestelmät. Lyhyesti nämä ovat:
      xxx/ellauri298.html on line 710: B. Siemennesteen maan tie. Varhaiset maatalousyhteiskunnat Alkaen Levantin ja Mesopotamian hedelmällisen puolikuun hedelmällisiltä niityiltä pronssikaudelta ja siirtyessään Eurooppaan, maanviljelyn
      xxx/ellauri298.html on line 765: Keskiaikaisen mytologian, romanttisen rakkauden ja modernin hengen syntyessä Campbell
      xxx/ellauri303.html on line 259: Toinen tärkeä työ on hänen Shaaloth Uteshuvoth (responsa), joka sisältää 132 kysymystä, joita useat rabbit ovat osoittaneet hänelle oikeuskysymyksistä ja hänen vastauksensa. Tämä teos julkaistiin hänen kuolemansa jälkeen. Koska suurin osa näistä kysymyksistä oli luonteeltaan käytännöllisiä arkielämään liittyen, monet rabbit pitivät tästä työstä ja saivat siitä tärkeän ja mitä luotettavimman oppaan.
      xxx/ellauri303.html on line 282: Vapaa tahto uskonnossa on kyky valita lyhyellä tähtäimellä ikävämpi vaihtoehto eli tehdä mitä käsketään. Kotisirkka siritti Greinin kotinurkassa Smoczna kadulla. Mordorin silmä kazoo sinua. Hertzille tuli kova halu pyytää jotakin. Jotain kotisirkkamaista siinäkin. Sirkka ezii puolisoa pimeästä tuvannurkasta. Rukoilijasirkka syö puolisonsa tilaisuuden jälkeen. Muutamaa lukua myöhemmin on molemmat tyyten kyllästyneet mökkeröön ja tahtoo pois. Grein kaipaa vaihteexi Leaa ja Annaa. Iso riita on taas tekeillä.
      xxx/ellauri303.html on line 344: Today, Mea Shearim remains an insular neighbourhood in the heart of Jerusalem. With its Haredi, and overwhelmingly Hasidic, population, the streets retain the characteristics of an Eastern European shtetl, as it appeared in pre-war Europe. Life revolves around strict adherence to Jewish law, prayer, and the study of Jewish religious texts. Traditions in dress include black frock coats and black hats for men (although there are some other clothing styles, depending on the religious sub-group to which they belong), and long-sleeved, modest clothing for women. In some Hasidic groups, the women wear thick black stockings all year long, even in summer. Married women wear a variety of hair coverings, from wigs to scarves, snoods, hats, and berets. The men have beards, and many grow long sidecurls, called peyot. Many residents speak Yiddish in their daily lives, and use Hebrew only for prayer and religious study, as they believe Hebrew to be a sacred language, only to be used for religious purposes.
      xxx/ellauri303.html on line 448: Vaikka yleinen juutalainen asenne on ollut, että Jumala loi maailman ex nihilo, rabbi Marc D. Angel kirjoittaa, että historiallisesti "juutalaisessa perinteessä on ollut yleinen vastahakoisuus spekuloida luomisen metafyysisiä puolia". Lyhyesti sanottuna juutalaisuus vaatii, että Jumala loi maailman, että hän loi sen vaiheittain ja että hän jatkaa jollain lailla luomansa maailmankaikkeuden ylläpitämistä talonmiehenä Luomisprosessin yksityiskohdat tai siihen käytetyt materiaalit eivät ole keskeisiä juutalaiselle ajattelulle. Lehtimajankin saa rakentaa puusta, muovista tai pellistä.
      xxx/ellauri303.html on line 497: Juutalaisuus keskittyy enemmän siihen, miten Jumala määrittelee ihmisen, kuin siinä, joka yrittää määritellä Jumalan. Siksi keskitytään siihen, mitä ihmisten odotetaan olevan tai tekevän paljon enemmän kuin teologisten uskomusten ilmaisemiseen. Ihmisillä on syntyessään taipumus tehdä joskus hyvää joskus pahaa kuin ankat
      xxx/ellauri303.html on line 501: Juutalaisuus vahvistaa, että ihmisillä on syntyessään halu tai halu tehdä hyvää, ja vieläzer hara (יצר הרע), taipumus tai halu tehdä pahaa. Nämä lauseet heijastavat käsitystä, että "jokaisessa ihmisessä on vastakkaisia ​​luontoja jatkuvasti ristiriidassa", ja niihin viitataan monta kertaa rabbiinisessa perinteessä. [29] Rabbit jopa tunnustavat vieläzer ha-ran positiivisen arvon : ilman yetzer ha-raa ei olisi sivilisaatiota tai muita ihmisen työn hedelmiä. Midrash ( Bereshit Rabbah9:7) sanoo: "Ilman pahaa taipumusta kukaan ei synnyttäisi lasta, rakentaisi taloa tai tekisi uraa." Seurauksena on, että yetzer ha-tov ja yetzer ha-ra ymmärretään parhaiten paitsi hyvän ja pahan moraalisina kategorioina, myös ihmisen sisäisenä konfliktina epäitsekkäiden ja itsekkäiden suuntausten välillä.
      xxx/ellauri303.html on line 532: Historiaa piisaa ja kehitystä tapahtuu koko ajan. Juutalaisista uskomuksista on ilmestynyt useita muotoja, ja on kiistaa siitä, kuinka monta perusperiaatetta on olemassa. Esimerkiksi rabbi Joseph Albo laskee Sefer Ha-Ikkarimissa kolme uskon periaatetta, kun taas Maimonides kolmetoista. Vaikka jotkut myöhemmät rabbit ovat yrittäneet sovittaa erot yhteen väittäen, että Maimonidesin periaatteet kattavat Albon paljon lyhyemmän luettelon, muiden keskiaikaisten rabbiiniviranomaisten toimittamat vaihtoehtoiset luettelot näyttävät osoittavan jonkinasteista suvaitsevaisuutta erilaisia teologisia näkökulmia kohtaan . Virallista tekstiähän ei kanonisoitu.
      xxx/ellauri303.html on line 538: Lyhyesti: unohda Toisin kuin monet muut uskonnot, juutalaisuus ei ole tehnyt voimakkaita yrityksiä käännyttää ei-juutalaisia, vaikka muodollinen kääntyminen juutalaisuuteen on sallittua. Juutalaisen uskon mukaan vanhurskaus ei rajoittunut niihin, jotka hyväksyivät juutalaisen uskonnon. Ja niiden kansojen vanhurskaat, jotka panivat täytäntöön Nooan ja hänen jälkeläistensä kanssa tehdyn liiton seitsemän peruslakia, julistettiin tuonpuoleisen onnen osallistujiksi. Tämä tulkinta ei-juutalaisten asemasta teki lähetystyöasenteen kehittämisen tarpeettomaksi. Lisäksi käännynnäisten vastaanottamista koskevat määräykset, sellaisena kuin ne ovat ajan mittaan kehittyneet, osoittavat juutalaisuuden äärimmäisen käytännöllisen, toisin sanoen ei-uskonnollisen luonteen. Tiettyjen riitojen noudattaminen – upottaminen mikveen (rituaalikylpy), brit milah (ympärileikkaus) ja mitzvotin (Tooran käskyjen) hyväksyminen sitovaksi – on käännynnäisen uskon koe. Käännynnäistä opastetaan juutalaisen lain pääkohdista , kun taas vaadittu uskontunnustus rajoittuu Jumalan ykseyden tunnustamiseen ja epäjumalanpalveluksen hylkäämiseen. Juuda ha-Levi ( Kuzari 1:115) esittää koko asian hyvin silmiinpistävästi sanoessaan:
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 237: Kh'hob gehat tzvey sheyne peyes, vi yeder frumer yid I had two pretty peyes, like any pious Jew,
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 238: Tzum sof onshtot a bord hob ikh di peyes oykhet nit. But in the end, I didn't have the beard or the peyes.
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 248: Az fun peyes do zet men bay keynem nit keyn shpor, You won't see any traces of peyes here,
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 249: Do trogn zikh di peyelech ale meydlekh gor. It's the young women who have the peyes!
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 258: Oy, Amerike, un bol'she nye tchevo! Oy, America, and nothing else!
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 261: Un nakher hobn zey kinder, vi es firt zikh punkt tzum yor, And afterwards they have children, exactly a year later.
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 271: Az do aylt men zikh dokh mit a yeder zakh. Morals and money don't go together.
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 454: Almost every movie, almost every story, almost every novel, almost every story of any enduring value is structured this way….in four parts. The same parts in a normal intercourse. (Actually there are five, but the last one is often played down or put in an Epilogue.)
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 482: And remember this: a great hero needs and deserves a great recognizable villain. That is what was wrong with a movie called “Remo Williams: the Adventure Begins,” which was based on my Destroyer book series. In the Bond movies, 007 confronts people who want to nuke London or steal all the gold in Fort Knox etc. etc. My guy, Remo Williams went up against some mope who was selling cheap rifles to the government…and no one gave a damn. Great heroes need great villains; otherwise they just look silly. The AI monster made of garbage in Remo vanha vainooja, now that was something else.
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 515: There is a hierarchy of character. Minor characters, you let vanish. Usually you bring them alive for a moment by using stereotypes. Stereotypes are not necessarily evil or bad; they are boring characters who are typical members of a group and your readers know the group… Cabbie, cop, waitress, nigger, telephone operator, prostitute, lawyer, doctor, politician, drunken Irishman (What? Are there still some of those?), Italian who talks with his hands. We might not like stereotypes of groups to which we belong but as writers they work. These are place-holding characters; they do their job and disappear into the night. Writers of pulp fiction, say.
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 519: Heroes have their Achilles heels. The most honest president of the U.S. cheats on the golf course; that is what makes people real. The late Robert Parker’s Spenser character was interesting. He was a yuppie. He ran, he lifted weights, he liked to cook, he liked unimposing little wines with sardonic personalities, he pretended he didn’t care about clothes but somehow always managed to wear the same basic uniform;, he lived with a woman, Susan the insufferable, who could psycho-babble Jay-Z into impotence. But the characterization hook was that Spenser spent his life being a private eye and shooting people, which was totally alien to the character’s nature. That started to round him out and make him real. Without that hard edge, he’d have been just another fan of Barry Manilow.
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 521: Who is Barry Manilow anyway? Ilmeisesti joku erityisen effeminate wimpy singer kasarilta, joo se oli tosiaankin homppeli, ja juutalainen kaiken kukkuraxi äidin puolelta, vaikka siittäjänä toimi joku irkku rekkakuski lentojätkä. Tää Warren on varsinainen kaappi miehexeen. Entäs Jay-Z sitten? Declared the greatest rapper of all time by Billboard, he has been central to the creative and commercial success of artists including Kanye West, Rihanna, and J. Cole. Okei, get the point. Inhoan kyllä izekin yön läpi rummuttelevia neekereitä sekä räppiä. Se on tollasta eläimellistä "nyt nussimaan" kuzuhuutoa, johon ei ole mitään mahollisuutta enää osallistua.
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 531: Yogi Berra oli typerälippalakkinen pesäpallisti jonka luonnetyyppi oli ISFP (introverted sensing feeling perceiving). Se kexi paljon Matti Nykäsmäisiä aforismeja. Unassuming yet passionate athlete. Kuoli samana vuonna kuin Warren mutta 8v vanhempana. Se oli italiaano 2. polven immigrantti jonka äiti ei osannut sanoa "Lawrence". He received the nickname "Yogi" from his friend Jack Maguire, who, after seeing a newsreel about India, said that he resembled a yogi from India whenever he sat around with arms and legs crossed waiting to bat or while looking sad after a losing game. Se oli hörökorvainen pikkumies, muistutti kyllä aika lailla Yodaa kuvissa.
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 537: “Ahab, the obsessed, revenge-seeking captain of a whaling ship, sails his vessel and its crew to destruction, in a final confrontation with the great white whale that had crippled him years earlier.”
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 547: My Destroyer series of 150 books is covered by this single sentence:
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 560: “In New York, the DeSanto crime family is dead or in jail. Miles’ parents in New York are safe from Mafia reprisal. The Yakuza assassins are ready to return to Japan, but Miles has decided that the life of a buttered-bun Wall Street lawyer is no longer for him. He bids his family goodbye and returns to the Japanese home of Yakuza chieftain Nagoya. It is time for Nagoya to pass on the leadership of the criminal clan and his choice is his faithful assistant, Sato. But Sato declines the ceremonial cup and instead stands beside Miles and calls him ‘Someone whom the gods have sent from across the sea to lead you to tomorrow.’ And then he bows to Miles, the new leader.
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 571: Basically, I’m not a big fan of Raymond Chandler's Big Sleep. Well, why pussyfoot around? Actually I think the book is stupid; however, Raymond Chandler is a particular favorite of artsy-fartsy mystery readers and critics and this rather bizarre genre mystery featuring the private eye Philip Marlowe is often ranked as one of the 100 best novels of all time. I just don't see why, I think my Remo Vanha Vainooja is 10x more fascinating.
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 596: Status objects. An essay by Tom Wolfe (Bonfire of the Vanities) put this in my head some years ago. A certain kind of person wants to wear shirts that have little alligators on them and another totally different type of person perhaps wants to have a statue of a black jockey on his lawn…or a pink flamingo. My late loving mother, a paragon of taste, once moved into our guest house and put painted plywood cutouts of the backviews of two people, bending over as if planting something in the yard. Naturally, butt cracks were visible because they were the whole point of this architectural and horticultural display. Since my house then was a mansion and a national historic site, I suggested that my mother take her plywood cutouts off the front lawn and put them in her backyard where nobody could see her butt. (I am a long time out of Alabama.)
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 601: Finally, a large percentage of novels today are written in restricted third person viewpoint. In other words, in each individual scene, the author works through only one person’s head. Anybody else in the scene, except the major player at that moment, is made to live by his actions and his words, but not by you — as author — getting into his head and telling us what he’s thinking. (Obviously, by the way, private eye novels are in some way illustrative of this rule because most PI’s are written first person since it’s impossible to get into another character’s thoughts and feelings except by showing him cavorting on your literary stage.)
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 621: See that guy up there waiting in the checkout line near the cash register? Yes, of course he’s reading. He’s always reading. He’s Stephen King — and yes, to this day, he reads every check he gets. And if you would emulate him, then start imitating him.
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 625: The Destroyer Series played a huge role in getting me interested in economics, geography, politics, history, and even in Jewish Mysticism and the paranormal! Richard Sapir (+1987) after all was a Jew. The Body, which was made into a movie in 2001, is about a Jewish archaeologist who finds a skeleton underneath an Arab shopkeeper's basement that might be the body of Jesus and the American Jesuit priest who is sent by the Vatican to investigate.
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 629: Suppose you want to write a “big book.” No genre junk for you. Okay. Here’s what you need to know. A “big book” is just a genre novel that got bigger. More pages, more everything. just make it a little bigger, a little more breathless, give it a little more end-of-the-world panache. Think of selling it to Hollywood where they call it high concept but what that really means is that it’s a very short outline of a book for people who can’t read a whole book or even a whole paragraph at once and their mind starts to wander after one sentence. Where was I? Ah yes:
      xxx/ellauri304.html on line 638: For instance, the overrated “Catcher in the Rye’s” theme is that life sucks. Okay, if you say so. Include me out. The vastly better “This is Graceanne’s Book” has the opposite theme — that you can win; no matter the odds, you can do it. I like that one better. It is pure bullshit, but then so am I. Or was.
      xxx/ellauri305.html on line 139: Viherlannan tai vihermassan lupiinia on hajallaan vilkkaalla kesannolla. Viherlantaparit ovat tehokkuudeltaan parempia kuin puhtaat, pääasiassa kevyellä maaperällä. Permin maatalousinstituutin (Gurenev, 1974) mukaan Cis-Uralin kevyillä mailla 8 vuoden ajan kynnyksellä 31,3 t/ha kapealehtisen lupiinin vihermassaa oli mahdollista nostaa rukiin sato 2,2 t/ha. ; Samalla puhtaalla kesannolla sato oli 1,5 t/ha viljaa.
      xxx/ellauri305.html on line 852: Lev. 21:13 - Ylipapin on mentävä naimisiin neitsyen kanssa
      xxx/ellauri305.html on line 1577: Nainen, joka esitti itseään valheellisesti neitsyenä ennen vihkimisseremoniaa.
      xxx/ellauri306.html on line 97: Mikä lyhyesti on Peterin perustelu että altruismi on paha asia? Koska se tekee rikkaista köyhimysten orjia, kun ne joutuu vasten tahtoaan "luopumaan" "ansaizemistaan" pennosista köyhäinavuxi. Se on köyhän enemmistön diktatuuria, ei enempää eikä vähempää.
      xxx/ellauri306.html on line 194: Nempe hoc quod Veneri donatae a virgine pupae. Nimittäin enempää kuin ex-neitsyen Venuxelle pyhittämä nukke.
      xxx/ellauri306.html on line 444: Hän oli hallituskautensa aikana yksi Länsi- ja Itä- Rooman valtakuntien pelätyimmistä vihollisista. Hän ylitti Tonavan kahdesti ja ryösti Balkanin, mutta ei kyennyt valloittamaan Konstantinopolia. Bugger it. Hänen epäonnistunutta kampanjaansa Persiassa seurasi vuonna 441 hyökkäys Itä-Rooman (Bysantin) valtakuntaan, jonka menestys rohkaisi Attilan hyökkäämään länteen. Hän yritti myös valloittaa Rooman Gallian (nykyaikainen Ranska), ylittäen Reinin vuonna 451 ja marssi Aurelianumiin ( Orléans ), ennen kuin toiset sakumatut viz. visigootit pysäyttivät hänet Katalonian tasankojen taistelussa. Bugger it.
      xxx/ellauri306.html on line 446: Myöhemmin hän hyökkäsi Italiaan tuhoten pohjoiset maakunnat, mutta ei kyennyt valloittamaan Roomaa koska sieltä oli ruoka loppunut. Bugger it. Hän suunnitteli uusia kampanjoita roomalaisia ​​vastaan, mutta kuoli harmillisesti vuonna 453. Bugger it. Attilan kuoleman jälkeen hänen läheinen neuvonantajansa, gepidien Ardaric johti germaanien kapinaa hunnien valtaa vastaan, minkä jälkeen Hunnien valtakunta romahti nopeasti. Fuck it all. Attila eli edelleen hahmona germaanisessa sankaritarinassa, Atle nimellä.
      xxx/ellauri306.html on line 490: Hunien kuningas Magyar Feher Bor, jonka laumat eri heimoista ja liittolaisista ovat lakaiseneet pontisilla (ei Aasian) aroilla ja molemmissa Rooman valtakunnissa, kuolee jättäen valtaistuimen kahdelle pojalle. Sotaan ja nälkäisiin verisiin kampanjoihin kyllästynyt Bleda haluaa asettua rauhassa Rooman liittolaiseksi, hänen veljensä Attila uskoo vain miekan voimaan. (Puppua.) Roomalainen kenraali Aethius, joka tuntee hunnit hyvin entisten panttivankien vaihdon seurauksena, ei onnistu saamaan todellista rauhaa, mutta ostaa horjuvan, lupaamalla kaksinkertaisen kunnianosoituksen. Heikon keisari Valentinianuksen hovi, joka muutti Roomasta pohjoiseen Ravennaan, jossa todellinen hallitsija on keisarinna-äiti Galla Placidia, barbaarikuninkaan leski, kieltäytyy ehdoista ja vangitsee Aethiuksen, joka edelleen kieltäytyy ottamasta vällyerää Valentinianuksen pyllynruman sisaren Honorian kanssa. Kunnianhimoinen prinsessa tarjoaa nyt kätensä ja valtakunnan myötäjäiset Attilalle, juuri sitä mitä Bleda toivoi. Rauhaa halveksien Attila murhaa suositun Bledan metsästyksen aikana (palturia) ja taivuttelee laumoja marssimaan hänen kanssaan valtakuntaan. Vaikka tietämätön, peloissaan Valentinian voi vain surra lemmikkigepardiaan, Galla Placidia kuntouttaa Aethiuksen johtamaan epätoivoista puolustusta, mutta hyvinsyöneet kuntonsa laiminlyöneet legioonat ilman vakavia linnoituksia eivät ole vertaa hunnilaumoille, jotka eivät pelkää mitään, paitsi ehkä että taivas putoaa heidän päällensä, mukanaan salaperäinen kristittyjen jumala, hänen poikansa sekä hänen maallinen edustajansa, paavi Leo, adjutantteinaan P. Pietari ja P. Paavali....— KGF Vissers
      xxx/ellauri306.html on line 578: Täytyypä kazoa mitä Mätien tomskujen tampiot tästä sanovat! Top critics: Cruise’s toothy heroics are ill-suited to moral complexity, but he is elevated by a stellar supporting cast... A summer genre movie for grown-ups. Too-long Grisham thriller is full of adult themes. Höh, montako panoa? Näytetäänkö muka kuinka se menee sinne? (Ilmeisesti noin 2, ei näytetä.) The Firm amusingly satirizes the New Traditionalist aspirations of today's young urban elite -- not so much the lifestyle itself as the illusion of utter security it represents. Alas, Tom Cruise is Tom Cruise, playing yet another variation of his screen image. A first-class thriller and thought-provoking morality play. Is this a thriller? You've never scene (sic) a 'suspense film' drag its heels so deplorably. Moderately entertaining... and a big step up from the book. No, the book moved at turbo speed. At two and a half hours, the movie crawls. Two-and-a-half hour movies -- jeez, there ought to be a law.

      xxx/ellauri306.html on line 584: Grisham enjoyed the film, remarking: "I thought Tom did a good job. He played the innocent young associate very well." Nojoo eiköhän tässä ollut riittävästi Cracker Jackilta ja Toothy Tomilta. Seuraava!
      xxx/ellauri306.html on line 649: MAN: Oh yes. It's very nice

      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 141: yet-1.gif" height="300px" />
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 180: Feodor Dostoyevsky
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 343: Kuzmina-Karavaeva kohtasi helmikuun vallankumouksen innokkaasti ja liittyi maaliskuussa 1917 sosialistivallankumoukselliseen puolueeseen . Hän vietti suurimman osan vuodesta 1917 Anapassa, valittiin apulaispormestariksi ja vastasi koulutuksesta ja terveydenhuollosta. Helmikuussa 1918 pormestari N. I. Morev erosi, ja Elizabeth valittiin hänen tilalleen. Kun lyhyen kaksoisvallan jakson jälkeen bolshevikit otti täysin vallan kaupungissa, Kuzmina-Karavaeva, vaikka hän ei jakanut bolshevikkien ideologiaa, otti terveydenhuollon ja julkisen koulutuksen komissaarin viran yrittäen suojella väestöä ryöstöiltä ja terrorilta. Toukokuussa 1918 hän osallistui Oikeiston SR-puolueen kongressiin Moskovassa ja johti maanalaista bolshevikkien vastaista työtä, palasi syksyllä Anapaan, missä Denikinin vastatiedustelu pidätti hänet - häntä uhkattiin kuolemanrangaistuksella "komissaarin" puolesta. ja osallistuminen yksityisomaisuuden kansallistamiseen. 15. maaliskuuta 1919 hänen tapauksensa käsiteltiin Jekaterinodarin alueellisessa sotilaspiirioikeudessa, ja vain taitavasti organisoidun puolustuksen ansiosta vastaaja sai vain kahden viikon pidätyksen. Odesski Listok -lehti julkaisee avoimen kirjeen Kuzmina-Karavajevan puolustamiseksi, jonka ovat allekirjoittaneet M. Voloshin, A. Tolstoi, Vera Inber ja muut.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 361: Vuonna 1936 nunna Maria valittiin RSHD:n neuvoston jäseneksi. Rue Lurmelilla on uskonnollinen ja filosofinen akatemia, jota johtaa Berdjajev. Siellä pidetään kokouksia, joissa käsitellään ajankohtaisia nykyaiheita ("Venäläinen ajattelu ja rasismi", 1938, "Sota ja eskatologia", 1940). Nunna Maria piti jatkuvasti esityksiä, julkaisi teologisia ja jyrkästi taantumuxellisia yhteiskunnallisia artikkeleita, ja Aleksanteri Blokin kuoleman 15-vuotispäivänä hän julkaisi Sovremennye Zapiski -lehdessä muistoesseen "Tapaukset Blokin kanssa". Huolimatta uskomattomasta työstä, hän omisti paljon aikaa runoudelle - vuonna 1937 Berliinissä hänen kokoelmansa "Runot" julkaistiin, 1930-luvun lopulla - 1940-luvun alussa hän kirjoitti runo-mysteerinäytelmiä "Anna", "Seitsemällä kuppia" ja vuonna 1942 - "Sotilaat". Hänestä tuli Venäjän mielisairaiden savustuskomitean jäsen, hän vieraili psykiatrisissa sairaaloissa.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 420: The above illustrates how a fallacy in reasoning can persist and maim the minds of believers for thousands of years. First we make ourselves more important than ants, second we attribute meaning to chance third we accept suffering caused by ignorance and malice as the will of a higher being.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 430: That they should have acquired weapons and become proficient in them. The proper comforting phrase for one who lost an animal is "May the Omnipresent One make full your loss (HaMakom Yemalei Chesroncha)" -- see Tractate Berachos 16b. I have learned much from "Chabad.org," through the years. Orthodoxy, is not what I follow, yet I love the information.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 558: Jotkut (2) maailman suosituimmista "kirjailijoista" ovat arvoltaan yli miljardi dollaria! Olemme päättäneet koota luettelon 20 rikkaimmasta kirjailijasta maailmanlaajuisesti, heidän nykyisen nettovarallisuutensa ja lyhyen elämäkerran.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 587: David Oyedepo
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 591: Stephanie Meyer
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 690: 14. Stephenie Meyer.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 691: Rikkaimmat "kirjailijat" - Stephanie Meyers.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 693: Stephenie Meyer on nuori kirjailija, jolla ei koskaan ollut ideaa vampyyrin rakkaustarinaromaanista. Meyer kirjoitti myöhemmin Twilightin vuonna 2003 ollessaan vain 29-vuotias. Kolme Twilight-elokuvaa ovat tuottaneet maailmanlaajuisesti 1,8 miljardia dollaria.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 694: Kesäkuussa 2023 Stephenie Meyerin nettovarallisuus on noin 125 miljoonaa dollaria.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 696: yerhostpremiere-4_3.jpg?width=2560" height="300px" />
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 709: 12. David Oyedepo.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 710: Rikkaimmat "kirjailijat" - David Oyedepo.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 712: David Oyedepo on nigerialainen pastori, jota pidetään nykyään Nigerian rikkaimpana pastorina. Oyedepo toimii tällä hetkellä Living Faith Chruch World Widen presidenttinä ja saarnaajana, joka tunnetaan parhaiten Winners Chapelina.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 713: Kesäkuussa 2023 David Oyedepon nettovarallisuuden arvioidaan olevan 150 miljoonaa dollaria, mikä tekee hänestä maailman 12. rikkain kirjailija.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 740: He played squash, sang in the Amherst Glee Club, and was a writing student of visiting novelist Alan Lelchuk (n.h.). [Merkittäviä kriittisiä tutkimuksia Lelchukista ovat olleet Philip Roth Esquiressa, Wilfrid Sheed Book -of-the-Month Club Newsissa, Benjamin DeMott The Atlanticissa, Mordechai Richler Chicago Tribunessa ja Steven Birkets The New Republicissa. Nämä olivat varmaan kaikki juutalaisia, kuten Lechuk izekin. American Mischief "Yksikään kirjailija ei ole kirjoittanut niin tietäen ja kaunopuheisesti lihallisen intohimon seurauksista Massachusettsissa Scarlet Letterin jälkeen." Philip Roth, Esquire. On Home Ground "On Home Ground herättää nuorille lukijoilleen ajankohtaisia ​​kysymyksiä ja tekee sen niin taitavasti. Se saavuttaa niin paljon menestystä kuin baseball-harjoitus ja nostalgia." Juutalaisomisteinen The New York Times Book Review. Lelchuk kirjoittaa valtavan ilolla kuvista, sanoista ja järkähtämättömästä kuolevaisesta erityisyydestä. Naisille, jotka etsivät vastauksia, hän tarjoaa juutalaisia olankohautuxia, epäselvyyttä, joka on omituisen tyydyttävää." Catherine Bateson (juutalaisen Margaret Meadin juutalainen tytärvainaa).] Brown spent the 1985 school year abroad in Seville, Spain, where he was enrolled in an art history course at the University of Seville. Brown graduated from Amherst in 1986.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 741: Danilla oli surkea muusikonura länsirannikolla jota nöyrä, sittemmin eroprosessissa kusetettu vaimo Blythe koitti turhaan buustata. Brown and his wife Blythe moved to Rye, New Hampshire in 1993, samana vuonna jolloin ize sain karkoituxen Kouvolaan. Brown became an English teacher at his alma mater Phillips Exeter, and gave Spanish classes to 6th, 7th, and 8th graders at Lincoln Akerman School, a small school for K–8th grade with about 250 students, in Hampton Falls. Aikamoinen mahalasku tuli Danille(kin). While on vacation in Tahiti in 1993, Brown read Sidney Sheldon's (n.h.) novel The Doomsday Conspiracy, and was inspired to become a writer of thrillers. He started work on Digital Fortress, setting much of it in Seville, where he had studied in 1985. He also co-wrote a humor book with his wife, 187 Men to Avoid: A Survival Guide for the Romantically Frustrated Woman, under the pseudonym "Danielle Brown". Brown's first three novels had little success, with fewer than 10,000 copies in each of their first printings. His fourth novel, The Da Vinci Code, became a bestseller, going to the top of the New York Times Best Seller list during its first week of release in 2003. It is one of the most popular books of all time, with 81 million copies sold worldwide as of 2009. Its success has helped push sales of Brown's earlier flops. Brown's prose style has been criticized as clumsy, to say the least. The Da Vinci Code committed style and word choice blunders in almost every paragraph. Recurring elements that Brown prefers to incorporate into his novels include a simple hero pulled out of their familiar setting and thrust into a new one with which they are unfamiliar, an attractive female sidekick/love interest, foreign travel, imminent danger from a pursuing villain, antagonists who have a disability or genetic disorder, and a 24-hour time frame in which the story takes place.
      xxx/ellauri307.html on line 744: Benjy DeMott -vainaa "saw as three pervasive social myths: the assumption, held by many Americans, that we live in a classless society; the promise, held out by movies and television, that individual friendships between blacks and whites can vanquish racism all by themselves; and the images of women, ubiquitous in popular culture, that render them almost indistinguishable from men." He opined that movements of the lower classes have a tendency to 'go awry.' Benjamin Haile DeMott was born on June 2, 1924, in Rockville Centre, N.Y.; his father was a carpenter, his mother a faith healer. He joined the Amherst faculty in 1951 and earned a Ph.D. in English literature from Harvard two years later. He observed that a tenet of national faith in America had been that "goodness equals laughter, that humour can banish crisis, that if you pack up your troubles and smile, horror will take to the caves". Critical response to Mr. DeMott's work was divided. His detractors saw his pop-culture references as forced efforts to look au courant.
      xxx/ellauri312.html on line 212: Strategisen viestinnän konsortio sai äskettäin kaksivuotisen, uusittavissa olevan 2,5 miljoonan dollarin apurahan merivoimien tutkimustoimistolta projektilleen "Terroristin kertomusten ja vastakertomusten tunnistaminen: Tarinaanalyytikkojen upottaminen retkikuntayksiköihin". Muuan "Bud" kiersi ja soitti rytmikitaraa Whitedog-yhtyeessä tutkien rock and rollia jokapäiväisen työelämän sosiaalisena teoriana. Hänen viimeisin työnsä on soveltaa kommunikaatioteorioita ja kertomusta terrorismin ideologisen tuen vastustamiseen.
      xxx/ellauri312.html on line 329: River Tam hahmon luonne ja hänen roolinsa Firefly franchising-sarjassa ovat keränneet sekä kiitosta että kritiikkiä eri arvioijilta. Jotkut ovat hyvässä mielessä vertailleet hahmon arvaamatonta käyttäytymistä autismiin. Tohtori Karin Beeler Northern British Columbian yliopistosta vertasi ja vertasi Riveriä Buffy Summersiin, Buffy the Vampire Slayer -sarjan päähenkilöön (jonka on myös luonut Joss Whedon), kirjassaan Näkijöitä, noitia ja psykoja ruudussa: Anista penaaliin eli analyysi naisten visionäärihahmoista viimeaikaisissa televisio- ja elokuvissa. Beeler nimesi hahmon anti-sankaritarksi verrattuna em. Buffy Summersin sankarillisempaan rooliin. Elokuvakriitikko ja kauhukirjailija Michael Marano myös vertasi hahmoa Buffyyn. Hän mainitsi kahden hahmon taistelutahdon yhtäläisyyksiä ja kuvasi Riveriä Joss Whedonin vahvojen naishahmojen huipennuxexi. Juu tästä Jössistä on jo paasaus albumissa 133.
      xxx/ellauri312.html on line 357: Einstein had three children. The oldest was a daughter named Lieserl. She was unknown to the world at large until a trove of early letters between Einstein and his first wife Mileva were discovered in 1986. These mentioned a daughter, born in around 1902 before Einstein and Mileva married. The fate of the child is unknown, and it is likely she was given over to someone else to raise. She disappears from history at that point, and she probably died very young. Einstein never mentioned her to anyone and does not appear to have ever laid eyes on her. He just got laid by Milena.
      xxx/ellauri312.html on line 606:
      Como medir con las manos. Yes, Stephanie, yes: 25 cm, lleno de semillas húmedas y pegajosas.

      xxx/ellauri312.html on line 945: Brawne Lamia’s name comes from a combination of John Keats’ beloved Fanny Brawne, and his poem named Lamia (1819). She is described as a rather short and muscular with an intense gaze. She has shoulder-length black curls, dark eyes, sharp nose and wide expressive mouth. She is said to be very beautiful anyway. She becomes "romantically involved" with Johnny and pregnant to boot. She's from Lusus, a world that has gravity 1.3 times stronger than that of Earth. Because of that, she's shorter than many others, but has "heavy layers of mussel". Varoitus! seuraava kuva paljastaa yxityiskohtia ulkosynnyttimistä!
      xxx/ellauri312.html on line 1032: Kun siis der Jumala lunastaa Jee-suxella panttilainaamansa syntiset rengashotellista takaisin, on syytä olettaa, että ne olivat sijoituskohteena huonoja, ja että der teufel muuten möisi ne lyhyexi ja kohdentaisi nämä varat toisiin yrityxiin. Syntiset on sielun vihollisella tyhjän panttina. Sielun markkinahintaan pettynyt der Jumala lunastaa ne pantinhaltijalta alle käyvän hinnan takaisin. Liikkeellä olevien syntisten lukumäärä laskee ja lunastamattomien arvo nousee.
      xxx/ellauri312.html on line 1053: The German Los evolved in a similar way but already 1000 years ago it had shifted its focus toward the idea of lottery, gratuitous gratification without work or effort. And with the rise of regular debtor´s prisons the main meaning Erlösung has today: bail.
      xxx/ellauri312.html on line 1055: yaaaaaawwwwwwwwwwnnnnnn… my god, this is soooo boring. And there are still 10 pages. Daniel, dude, why did you make that so boring….. what?…… boring topic? No man, there’s no such thing as a boring topic. There’s just boring presentation… yeah… look, we’re live so I can’t explain that now but we’ll talk later, okay… … … cool… oh, can you fetch me a coffee? Thanks.
      xxx/ellauri312.html on line 1058: So Erlösung is about the idea of bailing out, gratification for some sort of debt you ran into and the most common meaning is redemption. I hope you enjoyed it and see you next time.
      xxx/ellauri314.html on line 99: He was born into a Jewish family of Polish-Jewish descent. His father was born in Radomyśl Wielki, Galicia (then part of Austria-Hungary, now Poland), and his mother was a native of New York whose parents also arrived from that town. Isidore owned a women's clothing manufacturing business employing 400 people. They owned a summer house in Far Rockaway, Queens, and employed a chauffeur. In the Wall Street Crash of 1929, the family lost almost everything and moved to Gravesend, Brooklyn.
      xxx/ellauri314.html on line 113: Ei Shane kuitenkaan, josta näkyy tulleen nimekäs rullalautturi. His normal stance is Goofy. In Shane's 2015 "Shane Goes Skate Mental" video part, Shane performed a nollie backside heelflip down the steps at Wallenberg. This is one of the most difficult tricks a skateboarder has done at this location. Shane O’Neill (n. 1530 – 2. kesäkuuta 1567 lähellä Cushendumia, Antrimin kreivikunta) oli irlantilainen aatelisherra, joka johti 1560-luvulla kapinaa Englannin ylivaltaa vastaan. MacDonnellien joukot kuitenkin hyökkäsivät petollisesti hänen kimppuunsa ja surmasivat hänet. Näin englantilaiset pääsivät eroon O’Neillista, jota he eivät itse olleet kyenneet kukistamaan.
      xxx/ellauri314.html on line 212: No tässä Hely kevyesti meikattuna. Arvaapa hätkähtikö Mauno Mato. No ei tietysti. Ei elettäkään, pikkuviisari ei edes värähdä. Ruttuvaari livahti tosin vaivattomasti sisälle pizitangan vierestä mutta on kuin heiluttaisi raakaa patonkia porttikonkissa. Henkiheittona kuin luolaan jumiutunut jenkkitutkija. Hely oli hyvin pettynyt.
      xxx/ellauri314.html on line 257: previous 24 years. In 2022, after topping the list for four years, Bezos was
      xxx/ellauri314.html on line 260: for just a year. Arnault became the first French person to top the list. Vittu
      xxx/ellauri314.html on line 267: billion from 2022. Over half of the list is poorer than the previous year,
      xxx/ellauri314.html on line 282: 69-year-old bike shop owner in Arizona, is the biological father of Amazon.com
      xxx/ellauri314.html on line 284: year by the author of a new book about the Internet billionaire. "I didn't know
      xxx/ellauri314.html on line 288: Bezos sees Amazon employees as an expendable resource, allowing him to
      xxx/ellauri314.html on line 309: and slim, just Seija's size, 5'4", cup size C, no tattoos, 30 years young, and we know next to
      xxx/ellauri319.html on line 86: Vuonna 1910 hän tuli Riian ammattikorkeakoulun arkkitehtuurin tiedekuntaan. Mutta sodan syttyessä instituutti evakuoitiin Moskovaan. Vuonna 1918 hän valmistui Moskovan korkeakoulusta (MVTU) "sertifioiduksi insinööri-arkkitehtiksi". Opinnäytetyö - krematorioprojekti :).
      xxx/ellauri319.html on line 96: Vuonna 1922 hän julkaisi kirjan "NSDAP:n luonne, perusperiaatteet ja tavoitteet". Hitlerin pidätyksen jälkeen Rosenberg nimitettiin NSDAP:n johtajaksi. Mutta hän itse asiassa tuhosi puolueen, koska hän ei kyennyt suorittamaan käytännön johtajuutta. Kun Hitler poistui vankilasta, hän poisti Rosenbergin välittömästi. "Alf" ei loukkaantunut ja istuutui kirjan "Kahdenkymmenennen vuosisadan myytti" pariin. Hitler ei pitänyt kirjasta. Hän puhui siitä: hämärää hölynpölyä, jonka on kirjoittanut itsevarma balttilainen, joka ajattelee äärimmäisen hämmentyneesti. Heideggerkään ei antanut sille monta tähteä.
      xxx/ellauri319.html on line 117: Born in Hampshire, Chamberlain emigrated to Dresden in adulthood out of an adoration for composer Richard Wagner, and was later naturalised as a German citizen. He married Eva von Bülow, Wagner's daughter, in December 1908, twenty-five years after Wagner's death.
      xxx/ellauri319.html on line 266: Hän työskenteli "Telescope"- ja "Molva"-sanomalehdessä (1833-1836), joissa hänen ensimmäiset artikkelinsa julkaistiin - "Kirjalliset unelmat" (1834), "Venäläisestä romaanista ja herra Gogolin tarinoista" (1835). ). Hän toimitti "Moscow Observer" -lehteä (1838-1839). Vuonna 1839 hän muutti Pietariin, johti "Otechestvennye zapisky" -lehden kirjallisuus- ja kriittistä osastoa.
      xxx/ellauri319.html on line 268: Vuonna 1846 hän matkusti yhdessä Mykhailo Shchepkinin kanssa Ukrainan läpi useita kuukausia vieraillessaan Kharkovassa, Mykolaivissa, Hersonissa, Odesassa ja Krimillä. Erottuaan Otechestvennye zapisky Kraevsky -lehden toimittajanta hän siirtyi Sovremennyk -lehteen vuonna 1847 ja tuli sen ideologiseksi johtajaksi.
      xxx/ellauri319.html on line 280: Huolimatta mellakoivan Puolan Sejmin petoksesta, petollisesta julmuudesta ja valan rikkomisesta, joka niin monta kertaa rankaisi pikkuvenäläiset kansanedustajat kuolemaan, ei koskaan ollut pulaa uusista kansanedustajista, jotka selittämättömällä naiiviudella yrittivät päästä katolisen hirviön avoimeen suuhun. Kuinka monta kertaa pikkuvenäläiset saivat ylivallan puolalaisista verisissä sodissa heidän kanssaan, ja sillä välin tämä ei edistänyt heidän asiansa vähääkään. Miksi niin? Koska ns. Hetmanship ja Zaporozhye eivät olleet tasavalta eikä valtio ollenkaan, vaan jokin outo kunta aasialaiseen tapaan.
      xxx/ellauri319.html on line 325: Anne and Emily Brontë and other members of the Brontë family of writers, poets and painters were struck by tuberculosis. Anne, their brother Branwell, and Emily all died of it within two years of each other. Charlotte Brontë's death in 1855 was stated at the time as having been due to tuberculosis, but there is some controversy over this today. Näyttää siltä, ​​että hän myös tuli nopeasti raskaaksi; vaikka hän ei ole koskaan maininnut häntä erityisesti tämänaikaisessa kirjeenvaihdossaan, hän pyytää neuvoja ihmisiltä, ​​jotka ovat saaneet vauvoja, vartioidulla kielellä, jota voidaan helposti tulkita. Brontën pappilamuseossa on myös pieni, kaunis ja liikkuva vauvanhuppari, jonka ystävä oli valmistanut Charlottelle tulevaa iloista tapahtumaa varten. Sitä ei koskaan tapahtunut. Vuonna 1972 Lontoon yliopiston synnytys- ja gynekologian professori, professori Philip Rhodes totesi, että "todisteet ovat melko selvät siitä, että hän kuoli hyperemesis gravidurumiin, raskauden turmiolliseen oksentamiseen." Charlotte oli 39 kun se oxensi viimeisen oxennuxensa. Niis, kirjoitat niin kauniisti Bronten perheestä..

      xxx/ellauri319.html on line 403: Søren Aabye Kierkegaard (1813–1855), Danish philosopher
      xxx/ellauri319.html on line 668: Finding out you have syphilis can be extremely upsetting. You might experience anger if you feel you've been betrayed, or shame if you think you've infected others. However, hold off placing blame. Don't assume that your partner has been unfaithful to you. One (or both) of you may have been infected by a past partner. Ditto if you unexpectedly get pregnant.
      xxx/ellauri319.html on line 670: If you think you might have syphilis, it's best to avoid sex until you've talked with your doctor. If you do engage in sexual activity before seeing your doctor or during it, be sure to follow safe sex practices, such as using a condom. WHO estimates that 7.1 million adults between 15 and 49 years old acquire syphilis every year. About 210 million women get knocked up per year. Over 70 million of the wannabes get aborted, that is about a third. The figures had better go the other way.
      xxx/ellauri319.html on line 676: Alamo, joka oli syntyessään Bernie Lazar Hoffman, kuoli tiistaina 82-vuotiaana vankina liittovaltion vankilan sairaalassa Butnerissa, Bernie LaZar Hoffman syntyi juutalaisvanhemmille. Alamo muutti nimensä kuulostamaan enemmän italialaiselta huijarilta ja väitti työskennelleensä rock 'n' roll -promoottorina 1960-luvulla. Noihin aikoihin hän ilmeisesti päätti, että Kalifornian katuministeriöissä oli ansaittavissa enemmän rahaa kuin rabbittina.
      xxx/ellauri319.html on line 691:
      yellow;font-family:sans-serif">
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 26:

      yellow;text-align:center;margin-top:0%;margin-bottom:0%">"Haj" Ross


      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 143: Yliopistovuosinaan hän oli kiintynyt sosialististen opiskelijoiden ryhmään, jonka joukosta hän oli löytänyt tulevan vaimonsa, Wienissä opiskelevan venäläisen intellektuelli- ja yhteiskunnallisen aktivistin Raisa Timofeyewna Epsteinin (juutalainen). Koska Raisa oli militantti sosialisti, hänellä oli suuri vaikutus Adlerin varhaisiin julkaisuihin ja lopulta hänen persoonallisuusteoriaansa. He menivät naimisiin vuonna 1897 ja heillä oli neljä lasta, joista kahdesta, hänen tyttärestään Alexandra ja hänen poikansa Kurt, tuli psykiatreja. Heidän lapsensa olivat kirjailija, psykiatri ja sosialistiaktivisti Alexandra Adler; psykiatri Kurt Adler; kirjailija ja aktivisti Valentine Adler; ja Cornelia "Nelly vaan" Adler. Raisa kuoli 89-vuotiaana New Yorkissa 21. huhtikuuta 1962.
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 152: Kalutut Palat marrask. 1977 sisältää lyhyen pamfletin Barbara Cartlandilta, jossa se väittää "keskustelun virikkeexi" että koskemattomuus on taas kohta muodissa. "Minä olin nuori 20-luvulla, eikä silloin käynyt päinsä ristiinsuihkinta. Eihän meillä ollut muuta kuin suihinotto, kouraantulo, pyllyynpano ja lampaansuolia jotka haisivat ja vuotivat. Se ei ole yhtään romanttista. Minun kirjoissani on 150 neizyttä ja yhtä monta defloraatiota. Now that's what I call romantic."
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 167: 'After a year of absolute misery, I began to take lovers. The first was Geordie, the fifth Duke of Sutherland, who was very much married but had admired me for a long while. He was Under Secretary of State for War at the time.'
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 169: Some years after my visit to Camfield Place, Cartland told one of her biographers that the Duke of Sutherland 'used to come into my bedroom and lie on the bed and kiss me - but I wouldn't let him get into my sacrosanctum.'.
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 189: Four years later she married her husband's first cousin and best friend, Hugh McCorquodale. They had two sons, Ian and Glen, and remained happy together for 28 years, until Hugh's death in 1963.
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 195: Despite this very pointed rebuff, Cartland's confidence in these years seemed ever burgeoning - at the age of 77, she even recorded an album of love songs which were so hilarious that it became a collector's item for all the wrong reasons.
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 196: Nevertheless, the murder by the IRA in 1979 of Lord Mountbatten, a friend for more than 50 years, was a devastating shock. But not least of the faults in tomorrow's TV film is the suggestion that Cartland was expecting him to propose marriage.
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 198: From the moment Dickie fixed his eyes on her, spoke to her in that deep, amazingly attractive voice - she was his.
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 199: But in actual fact their relationship was entirely platonic. She was sharply aware that Mountbatten, emasculated by the infidelities of his promiscuous and nymphomaniac wife, Edwina, had scant interest in sex in his later years, particularly with women.
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 208:
      Dressed in her trademark pink. In later years dementia set in.

      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 214: The following year brought the death of her son-in-law, Johnnie Spencer, the abrupt ejection of the widowed Raine from Althorp, and Diana's separation from the Prince of Wales.
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 215: Cartland gravely doubted the wisdom of Raine's remarriage in 1993 to a French aristocrat seven years her junior, but kept her own counsel. She received the news of their divorce in 1995 without surprise.
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 217: The last time I saw Cartland was in June 1997, at a performance of Always, a musical about the Abdication, at London's Victoria Palace. Her appearance was drastically changed. Gone was the forest of false eyelashes, and the voluminous blonde wig. The front of her head was now almost bald.
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 220: As dementia set in, her indiscretions became more extreme. A year before Diana's death, she delivered her own verdict on the failure of the Wales marriage. 'Of course, you know where it all went wrong. She wouldn't do oral sex.'
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 227: She was emphatically never the pallid virginal victim falsely portrayed in tomorrow's telehagiography.
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 236: Välitämme raskain sydämin uutisen, että Barbara Cartlandin vanhin poika Ian McCorquodale on kuollut lyhyen sairauden jälkeen.
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 363: Det å bli gammel, tenkte jeg ikke over før for 2 år siden da jeg plutselig havnet på sykehuset en morgen. Jeg skulle dusje, så da vannet kom over hodet mitt, var det plutselig vondt å få vann i håret? Jeg skjønte ingenting, så ble alt rundt meg "rosa?" Da besvimte jeg og hektet av glassdøren på dusjkabinettet. Jeg våknet etter noen sekunder på gulvet utenfor dusjen med døren på snei! Jeg hadde ikke følt meg dårlig før dette. Var frisk som en fisk og syklet mye. På sykehuset konstanterer de dobbel lungebetennelse, og flere mangler i blodet, bl.annet Kadium? Og jeg som spiser variert mat, tar mine vitaminer og noe kosttilskudd, vet ikke hvorfor dette skjedde. Men etter noen dager på sykehus var alt ok igjen. Det var ikke hyggelig å reise til sykehus med håndkle rundt håret og badehåndkle rundt kroppen uten noen andre ting med. Jeg ler av det i dag. Men tilbake til det å bli gammel! Plutselig skjer det noe uventet, som artrose, dårligere tarmfunksjon. Jeg la om kostholdet mitt 100%, og vips var alle smerter borte, tarmene har begynt å fungere normalt igjen etter å ha fått Ulcerøs kolitt. Med min nye måte å spise på, er alt bra hittil. Håper det fortsetter slik. Når man blir gammel, gjør det ofte litt vondt her og der. Men kostholdet er nøkkelen til god og smertefri helse. God sommer!
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 365: Er det deprimerende å bo i Norge? Jeg flyttet fra Norge for 6 år siden mye fordi jeg ikke kunne forestille meg noe mer deprimerende enn å jobbe 8 timer hver dag bare for å overleve, og fremdeles ikke ha råd til å leve, og jeg har ikke angret et sekund.
      xxx/ellauri320.html on line 368: Mangelen på medmenneskelighet i Norge er hårreisende, folk dømmer hverandre uten å vite noe som helst om hverandre. Hva slags verden er det vi lever i hvor folk antar at bevisstløse mennesker er farlige og ikke trenger hjelp? Dette gjelder selvfølgelig ikke bare Norge, men jeg ser langt mindre av den slags her i Portugal. Her kommer naboen med tomater fra hagen bare fordi dere er naboer og forbipasserende fremmede hjelper deg med å parkere når de ser du har dårlig sikt. Her har de også avkriminalisert alle rusmidler og i stedet for å straffe folk som har det så vondt at de ikke talker hverdagen, så tilbyr de hjelp så disse menneskene kan komme tilbake og bli en del av samfunnet igjen. Vi nordmenn har mye å lære når det kommer til medmenneskelighet, så neste gang du ser noen som ligger bevisstløs på gata, spør om de trenger hjelp, de er mest sannsynlig ikke farlige og et enkelt "Hei, går det bra med deg?" kan redde liv. Folk er ikke farlige bare fordi de ikke har råd til vaskemaskin og nye klær.
      xxx/ellauri329.html on line 97: In 2004, Harper’s magazine published Natasha, a first short story by a promising 31-year-old Jewish Canadian writer, David Bezmozgis. This memorable tale of a doomed teenage love between Mark, a Jewish Toronto slacker, and his troubled (shiksa) Russian cousin by marriage was eventually released in a collection chronicling the lives of a Latvian immigrant family, not unlike the author’s own. Bezmozgis’s debut became a cult sensation with critics drawing literary comparisons to Bernard Malamud and Philip Roth. The story was subsequently reprinted in 15 languages. After penning two more acclaimed novels, then writing and directing his first feature Victoria Day (SFJFF 2010), Bezmozgis finally brings his modern classic to the big screen in a remarkably assured adaptation that’s both highly provocative and deeply poignant. At the heart of this emotional, coming-of-age drama are the extraordinarily measured performances of Alex Ozerov as Mark and newcomer Sasha K. Gordon as the sexually precocious Natasha, the dark star who forever alters Mark’s staid, suburban existence. Fans of the writer’s original source material will not be disappointed in David Bezmozgis’s haunting narrative of forbidden love caught between the old world and the new, further proof of this talented artist’s notable command of both literature and the cinema. —Thomas Logoreci Note: Mature Content. A New Life in the west means a second chance for precocious Latvian jews.
      xxx/ellauri329.html on line 169: Cherry Poppens was born on May 20, 1982 and died on January 23, 2018. Cherry was 35 years old at the time of death. Nyze olisi jo nelikymppinen. Pushing fifty.
      xxx/ellauri329.html on line 236: Moninkertaisesti palkittu ja kansainvälisesti käännetty kirjailija sisältyi "New Yorker'sin" 2010 alle 40-vuotiaiden kirjailijoiden kunniaksi 2010, ja seuraavana vuonna julkaistiin hänen ensimmäinen romaaninsa "Vapaa maailma", joka ansaitsi sija New York Timesin merkittävien kirjojen listalla. Hänen toinen romaaninsa (2014) "The Betrayers" oli fiktion päänimi Harper Collinsille Kanadassa ja Little Brownille Yhdysvalloissa.
      xxx/ellauri329.html on line 240: Aluksi työstä käyvästä jyystöstä tyrmistyneenä Mark vetää hitaasti puoleensa tätä synkkää tyttöä, joka kertoo asiallisesti kurjuudesta ja prostituutiosta Venäjällä. Hän on yhtä aikaa viekas ja suoraviivainen, viettelevä ja lapsellinen. Mark ei ole koskaan tavannut ketään hänen kaltaistaan (paizi Nabokovin Lolita), ja lyhyellä aikavälillä nämä kaksi teiniä ovat seksuaalisesti (ja salaa) perheen panohommissa mukana. Mark on kiintynyt häneen, vaikka hän ei tunnista tunteitaan sellaisiksi, eikä hän ymmärrä rakkauden mukanaan tuomia velvollisuuksia (esim korzun poisjättöä). Elokuva vihjaa myös hienovaraisesti Markin ambivalenttisiin kokemuksiin nuorena emigranttina, jolla on keskijalka sekä vanhassa että uudessa maailmassa, pillussa ja poikien karvaisessa pyllynreiässä.
      xxx/ellauri329.html on line 259: Bezmozgis oli izekin menehtyä näyttelijäsuorituksessa ja erityisesti kahden pääosan näyttelijän kanssa, jotka molemmat ovat mahtavia ja äidinkieltään puhuvia venäläisiä. Itse asiassa Ozerov, joka tunnetaan parhaiten toistuvasta roolistaan tv-ohjelmassa "Amerikkalaiset", astui lyhyen aikaa immigranttineitosia elokuvassa kuvatussa Toronton yhteisössä. Kumpikaan näyttelijä ei kuitenkaan ole juutalainen; ei sillä, että he tai Bezmozgit uskovat sen olevan millään tavalla esteenä sen erityisen universumin herkkyyden ymmärtämiselle, joka on syvästi sitoutunut Israeliin ja (parametrien rajoissa) etnisesti/kulttuurisesti itsemääritelty, etenkin kun mieasastuja kuitenkin oli ympärileikattu. Silti uskonnollisia kunnioituksia ei juurikaan noudateta, jiddish on käytännöllisesti katsoen unohtunut, ja mikä tahansa vankileirien saaristo, joka on jossain vaiheessa ollut olemassa, on kadonnut.
      xxx/ellauri329.html on line 446: Toisen maailmansodan syttyessä Vorošilov joutui vastuuseen Neuvostoliiton epäonnistumisista Suomessa talvisodan aikana ja hänen tilalleen puolustuskomissaarixi tuli Semjon Timošenko. Saksan hyökkäyksen jälkeen kesäkuussa 1941 hänet kutsuttiin takaisin ja nimitettiin valtion puolustuskomiteaan. Voroshilov ei pystynyt pysäyttämään saksalaisten Leningradin piiritystä, ja hänet vapautettiin jälleen komennosta syyskuussa 1941.
      xxx/ellauri337.html on line 51: Group Portrait with Lady (German: Gruppenbild mit Dame) is a novel by Nobel Prize winning author Heinrich Böll, published in 1971. The novel revolves around a woman named Leni, and her friends, foes, lovers, employers and others and in the end tells the stories of all these people in a small city in western Germany in the 1930s and 1940s. As is usual in Böll's novels, the main focus is the Nazi era, from the perspective of ordinary people. (Wikipedia en)
      xxx/ellauri337.html on line 102: yemRd2n6CQ--/YXBwaWQ9aGlnaGxhbmRlcjt3PTk2MDtoPTU0MDtjZj13ZWJw/https://media.zenfs.com/de-DE/homerun/spotonnews.de.com/eb0e492d28fe6f782973c0fe5f276b0f" />
      xxx/ellauri337.html on line 107: Im Juli 1981 war Romy Schneiders damals 14-jähriger Sohn David beim Überklettern eines Zaunes mit Metallspitzen in Saint-Germain-en-Laye, nordwestlich von Paris, tödlich verunglückt. Der große Schicksalsschlag ihres Lebens, und seines auch. Einige Monate danach verstarb auch Romy Schneider am 29. Mai 1982 mit nur 43 Jahren in Paris. Die offizielle Todesursache: Herzversagen.
      xxx/ellauri337.html on line 196: Stein jätti kääntymyksensä jälkeen Husserlin kuin nallin kalliolle ja ryhtyi opettajaksi dominikaanien ylläpitämässä speyeriläisessä tyttökoulussa. Hän opetti siellä vuoteen 1932 asti ja tutustui siellä myös katoliseen filosofiaan. Hän muun muassa käänsi Tuomas Akvinolaisen teoksen De alternativa veritate.
      xxx/ellauri337.html on line 369: Toisaalta se häpäisee egyptiläisen uskonnon. Ensinnäkin, koska se vaaransi pappikastin, joka ei kyennyt täyttämään tehtäviään, koska he olivat epäpuhtaudessa. Toiseksi, koska se vaikutti idoli Gebin suojelemaan runsauteen ja Horuksen lapsimuodon suojelemien villieläinten (hyönteisten) hallintaan.
      xxx/ellauri337.html on line 423: Haavaumat voidaan tulkita rangaistukseksi siitä että egyptiläiset kielsivät heprealaisten lepäämisen (mukaan lukien oikeus raapia). Egyptiläiset pakottivat heidät myös valmistamaan kylvyt kuumalla vedellä, mikä oli erittäin työlästä. Sairastuessaan haavaumiin egyptiläiset kärsivät korjaamattomasta kutinasta eivätkä kyenneet käymään kylvyssä.
      xxx/ellauri337.html on line 504: Genesis 6:1-4 When man began to multiply on the face of the land and daughters were born to them, the sons of God saw that the daughters of man were attractive. And they took as their wives any they chose. Then the LORD said, “My Spirit shall not abide in man forever, for he is flesh: his days shall be 120 years.” The Nephilim were on the earth in those days, and also afterward, when the sons of God came in to the daughters of man and they bore children to them. These were the mighty men who were of old, the men of renown.
      xxx/ellauri354.html on line 69: Aiemmin lyhyempiä fiktiota ja käsikirjoituksia kirjoittanut García Márquez syrjäytti itsensä México Cityyn pitkäksi aikaa saadakseen valmiiksi vuonna 1967 julkaistun romaaninsa Cien años de soledad eli Sata vuotta yksinäisyyttä. Kirjoittaja sai kansainvälistä suosiota teoxesta, jota myytiin lopulta kymmeniä miljoonia kappaleita maailmanlaajuisesti. García Márquez on auttanut tutustuttamaan joukon lukijoita maagiseen realismiin, genreen, jossa yhdistyvät tavanomaisemmat tarinan kerrontamuodot eloisiin fantasiakerroksiin.
      xxx/ellauri354.html on line 83: Mutta sitten hän antaa itselleen 90-vuotispäivälahjaksi 14-vuotiaan neitsyen, mahdollisen huoran. Väsyneenä raa'asta työstä ja bordellimadamen huumaamana valeriaanalla , hiän nukkuu joka yö, jonka he viettävät yhdessä, hiänen nukkuessaan ja mies istuen ryppyinen nulpahtanut muna kädessä tuolilla hänen sängyn vieressä. ja ensimmäistä kertaa elämässään hän rakastuu. Rakastunut ajatukseen nukkuvasta runkunhajuisesta kaunottarestaan.
      xxx/ellauri354.html on line 100: En muistanut, että Angash Aahyesh oli naimisissa rouva Mercedes Barçan kanssa, ja hänellä on kaksi solmua ja kaksi solmua ja kaksi urosta Drigo ja Gonzalo, Gabriel García Márquez syntyi Marsan kuudentena päivänä, 29 käärmettä Aracatassa, Kolumbiassa, ja Alelissa, 14 ja 87 vuoden iässä Mexico Cityssä. Psalminkirjoittaja sanoo, että appelsiinimehu on ainoa, joka on maailmassa, ja että hän on ainoa, joka on maailmassa, on se, joka on maailman keskellä, ja hän on se, joka on maailman keskellä. (Solmu oli Helmin ja Elsan salanimi kyrvälle.)
      xxx/ellauri354.html on line 118: Tämän novellin kertoo ikääntyvä vuokratyttöjen tuntija. Vietettyään elinikänsä prostituoitujen kanssa (heitä oli tarkalleen 514, ennen kuin sekosin laskuissa) nimetön toimittaja kuvittelee mukavan nuoren neitsyen 90-vuotissyntymäpäiväänsä. Ensimmäisenä monista kerroista hän astuu huoneeseen löytääkseen valitun 14-vuotiaan tytön, joka on ilkialasti ja unessa. Ajan myötä hänellä on pakkomielle hiänestä; hän kirjoittaa kolumneja, jotka saavat lukijansa kiihtymään; suutelee häntä sieltä sun täältä ja lukee hänelle omia juttujasn hänen nukkuessaan. Mutta ei koskaan viimeistele suhdetta seksuaalisesti tai näe häntä hereillä. Koko skenaario, jossa tällainen iäkäs mies halusi nukkua jonkun niin nuoren sängyssä kurttuinen muna puoliveteessä, vain tyrmäsi minut, mutta tämä ei ollut sen suurin ongelma. Yksinkertaisesti sanottuna se oli mielestäni tylsä ja laiska. Kertojan nokkeluus ja viehätys eivät riittäneet tasapainottamaan hänen päämäärättömyytensä yksitoikkoisuutta, ja valitettavasti sen seurauksena en koskaan tuntenut mitään ketään asianosaista kohtaan, en edes pientä nytkähdystä, saati boneria. Olisi voinut toimia paremmin, jos olisin yrittänyt katsoa asioita päähenkilön näkökulmasta, mutta päätin olla tekemättä. En halunnut olla hänen mielessään, hänen housuissaan tai sängyssään. Ehkä siinä oli se vika.
      xxx/ellauri354.html on line 188: Kun Kallaksen elämäkertana 1950-luvulla alkaneen työn oli pitkittyessään otettava huomioon 1960- ja 1970-luvun vaihteessa Suomessa enemmän muotiin tullut angloamerikkalainen uuskritiikki, Laitinen joutui väitöskirjassaan tasapainoilemaan kirjailijabiografian, lähdetutkimuksen ja teosanalyysin välillä. Rafu Koskimies huomautti arvostelussaan, että Laitinen oli onnistunut välttämään uuskritiikin ”pahimmat kompastukset”. Laitisen väitöskirjaa koskeviin omiin muistiinpanoihini olin tuolloin merkinnyt: ”Koskimies moittii uutta kritiikkiä, Koskimies on vanhentunut.”
      xxx/ellauri354.html on line 196: Suonenjoen pitäjässä syntyneenä Laitisessa oli savolaista lupsakkuutta. Toppuuta tok, kohta on Suonejjok. Hauskin juttu jonka Laitiselta kuulin oli tämä: tarjoilijan kysyessä vieressäni istuneelta Laitiselta, halusiko tämä olutta vai viiniä, vastaus kuului: ”Molempia.” Tieteessä tapahtuu!
      xxx/ellauri354.html on line 232: Ärsyttävä narsistinen tekniikka Ernestolla puhua muiden kautta pääasiassa izestään. Ize se vaan grunttaa ja mielistelee kaikkia ja kaikki on siitä siihen ihan lääpällään. To make a long story short, Henry panee Catherinen paxuxi vastoin lupaustaan ja karkaa kaiken kukkuraxi rintamalta. I enjoyed not being married really. There isn't any me, I'm you. Narsistin märkä uni. Loppuvizinä Catherine parka vielä kuolee lapsivuoteeseen. Cedric syö sillä aikaa kinkku-muna-annoxen ja juo monta pulloa demi- mondea. Catherinen kuoltua Cedric lähtee lätkimään aamuöiseen sateeseen. Cedric olisi halunnut tytön mieluummin. Mieluiten ei mitään. Ei kai tosta arvesta tule ruma. Can I get you anything? You'll be ok, I promise. Niin ja vielä 1 persepäinen piirre Ernstissä: se pitää vedonlyönnistä. Sen nuivat kommentit kun Katja kertoo pohjaanpalaneesta beibistä oli aika karuja. "You aren't angry are you darling?" Voi vinetto. "You always feel trapped biologically." Vitun trappi. Inhottava tenukeppi. Ei keltatauti ole sairaus vaan juoppo-oire. Kaveri on kolmen pointin tolvana ja kylmä murhamies.
      xxx/ellauri354.html on line 273: Notari’s novel sold 80,000 copies in six months and sales only increased when it was accused of offending public morality; it and its author were acquitted, with Marinetti serving as witness for the defense. “It was Notari’s good fortune,” one scholar writes, “to be accused of obscenity by a court in Parma.... Marinetti, who attended and clearly relished the trial, wrote a detailed account of it for Parisian readers... and then translated his account into Italian, appending a brief, self-congratulatory introduction” (Adamson 97). Marinetti bragged that the trial “gave an extraordinary boost to the book’s sales such that, today, one finds it in all the elegant parlors, in all the bedrooms, under the virginal bedlinens of all the convent-school girls and inside the prayer benches of all the new brides” (qtd. in Adamson 97–98). Notari quickly produced a sequel, Femmina: Scene di una grande capitale (1906), which became a best seller before it too was seized and banned. Notari proudly listed these three books’ sales figures and legal histories in the front matter of his next book, The Black Pig (1907).
      xxx/ellauri354.html on line 277: He supported universal suffrage and divorce and argued strongly for expelling the Vatican from Italy. Some twenty years after the publication of The Black Pig, he retook the “woman question” with La donna “tipo tre” (The type-three woman; 1929), about the woman who is financially, socially, and otherwise independent. The year 1930 saw two more titles on the topic of women: Le ragazze allarmanti (The alarming girls) and La donna negli affari (The woman in business).
      xxx/ellauri354.html on line 384: Lente hora, celeriter anni. (An hour passes slowly, but the years go by quickly.)
      xxx/ellauri354.html on line 575: Myös Ben F. Meyer väitti, että Jeesus sovelsi Siionia ja temppeliä koskevia profetioita itseensä ja seuraajiinsa. [Jeesus] vahvisti pelastusprofetiat lopunajan kuvilla Siionista ja temppelistä – kuuluen eskatologisiin teemoihin, jotka " kansojen pyhiinvaellus" herätti. Mutta vastoin aikalaistensa yleistä odotusta Jeesus odotti temppelin tuhoutumista tulevassa eskatologisessa koettelemuksessa (Mark. 13:2=Matt 24:2=Luukas 21:6). Yhdistelmä vaikuttaa ristiriitaiselta. Kuinka hän saattoi samanaikaisesti ennustaa temppelin tuhon koettelemuksessa ja vahvistaa lupauksen ja profetian lopunajan täyttymyksen Siionissa ja temppelissä? Paradoksi on ratkaisematon, kunnes havaitaan toinen piirre Jeesuksen sanoissa Siionin ja temppelin kuvasta, nimittäin Siionin ja temppelin kuvien johdonmukainen soveltaminen omiin opetuslapsiinsa: kaupunki vuorella (Matt 5:14). vrt. Tuomas, 32), kosminen kallio (Matt. 16:18; vrt. Joh. 1:42), uusi pyhäkkö (Mark. 14:58; Matt 26:61). Lupausten ja profetioiden massa tulee toteutumaan tässä eskatologisessa ja messiaanisessa uskovien piirissä.
      xxx/ellauri354.html on line 583: Monet evankeliset kristityt uskovat, että juutalaisten temppeliin liittyvät Uuden testamentin ennustukset, kuten Matteus 24–25 ja 2. Tessalonikalaiskirje 2:1–12, eivät täyttyneet täysin roomalaisten Jerusalemin tuhon aikana vuonna 70 jKr (täysi preterismi) ja että nämä profetiat viittaavat tulevaan temppeliin. Tämä näkemys on keskeinen osa dispensationalismia, Raamatun tulkintakehystä, joka korostaa raamatullista kirjaimellisuutta ja väittää, että juutalaiset pysyvät Jumalan valittuna kansana. Dispensationalististen teologien, kuten Hal Lindseyn ja Tim LaHayen, mukaan kolmas temppeli rakennetaan uudelleen, kun Antikristus, jota usein pidetään Euroopan unionin tai Yhdistyneiden Kansakuntien kaltaisen kansainvälisen liiton poliittisena johtajana, varmistaa rauhansopimuksen nykyaikainen Israelin kansakunnan ja sen naapurien välisen maailmanlaajuisen sodan jälkeen. Antikristus käyttää myöhemmin temppeliä paikkana julistaa itsensä Jumalaksi ja kauan odotetuksi Messiaaksi ja vaatii ihmiskunnalta palvontaa. Varmaan se on Donald Trump.
      xxx/ellauri356.html on line 284: Luokittelun, väittämisen ja määrittelemisen sijaan naiset etenee pikemminkin keskustellen, innostuen ja unelmoiden. Tavoittelemisen, tarttumisen ja painamisen sijaan painautumiset, hyväilyt ja vierellä oleilemiset voivat viipyilevyydessään kyetä operoivia sisään-ulos liikkeitä enempään. Mies painaa kuin petkele huhmaressa, nainen heijailee.
      xxx/ellauri356.html on line 563: Hölderlinin innoittaja Dionysos melkein paloi kuoliaaksi syntyessään, koska Zeus siitti sen laskeutumalla salamana Dionysoksen äidin Semeleen emättimeen, joka kärähti prosessissa. Legendan mukaan nymfit kasvattivat hänet metsissä ja kukkien keskellä.
      xxx/ellauri357.html on line 92: Helsingin yliopiston filosofian laitoksella mannermainen filosofia on kokenut asteittaisen renessanssin 1980-luvulta alkaen. Eräät analyyttisestikin virittyneet ajattelijat, kuten Jaakko Hintikka ja Raimo Tuomela, ovat osoittaneet jonkinasteista kiinnostusta Heideggerin filosofiaan. 1980-luvun alussa Hintikan oppilas, formaalisen logiikan alalta vuonna 1977 väitellyt Esa Saarinen (s. 1953), kiinnostui erityisesti Sartren eksistentialismista ja piti tähän liittyen useita innostavia kursseja. Innostavaa ja vaikutusvaltaista opetusta ja ohjausta fenomenologian alalla ovat antaneet myös Sara Heinämaa, joka väitteli vuonna 1996 Merleau-Pontyn ja de Beauvoirin ruumiinfenomenologiasta, ja Juha Himanka, jonka vuonna 2000 valmistunut väitöskirja Phenomenology and Reduction käsitteli fenomenologisen reduktion kysymystä niin Husserlin kuin Heideggerinkin pohjalta.
      xxx/ellauri357.html on line 132: law. Several years later, Pia graduated from the
      xxx/ellauri357.html on line 152: a lawyer. Only because what I do now is so far
      xxx/ellauri357.html on line 405: Yli 25 vuotta sitten joku WJT Mitchell toivoi, että tulevaisuudessa kriitikot kiinnittäisivät huomiota "vaaralliseen… ilkeään… likaiseen" Blakeen, jonka aikaisemmat tutkijat desinfioivat "turvallisesti pyhitetyksi" tehdessään, ja hänen teostensa asianmukaiseen tutkimiseen ammattilaisvoimin. (Mitchell 1982, 410, 411, 414). Profeetallisten pohdiskelujensa aikana Mitchell tunnisti blakelaisen seksuaalisen siveettömyyden paksun sarjan, joka otti usein hyvin outoja muotoja, ja vaikka nyt onkin epämiellyttävää nähdä hänen paimentavan homoseksuaalista fellatiota, naisellisuutta ja lesbovoyeurismia yhdessä raiskauksen, himon ja sadomasokismin kanssa sinkkuna (lika) "epänormaalin seksuaalisuuden" banneri, hänen paljastamansa elävät – heteroseksuaalisuutta hämmentävät – kohtaukset (414) tekivät kohtuulliseksi olettaa, että kun queer saapui sisään kylmästä, Blake Studies toivottaisi sille lämpimän vastaanoton. Tuon vuosikymmenen lopulla Camille Paglian (1990) karu kuvaus Blakesta "British Sade" (270) ehdotti varmasti samanlaista kriittistä tulevaisuutta. Hänen ilmestymisensä runoilijasta saattaa vapista ja iskeä "suuren äidin" alla, mutta edipaalinen terrori antaa myös outoa ymmärrystä, sillä "Blaken kauhistuttava kohtalo oli nähdä kuilu, josta useimmat miehet väistyvät: infantilismi kaikessa miesten heteroseksuaaluudessa" (287). Ja 1990-luvulla omituisia pilkkuja välähti toisinaan sukupuolitutkimuksesta, varsinkin sellaisesta, joka yritti hypätä tiiliseinää vastaan, johon feministinen kritiikki oli törmännyt yrittäessään tuomita Blaken "naisvihaa".
      xxx/ellauri358.html on line 228: Guillevicin rakkausrunot jää vähän lyhyexi, ei edes viittä pistoa:
      xxx/ellauri358.html on line 275: Nuorten naisten ja miesten poliittiset arvomaailmat ovat Evansin mukaan erkaantumassa etenkin "taloudellisesti kehittyneissä" ja "avoimissa yhteiskunnissa," kuten useimmissa länsimaissa. Asenteet jakautuvat eniten liittyen arvo- ja identiteettikysymyksiin, kuten seksuaalisuuteen ja sukupuoleen, maahanmuuttoon, rotuun sekä ilmastonmuutokseen.
      xxx/ellauri361.html on line 159: Paavo-isän, vanhan kokeneen rovastin, teksti jatkuu pohtien lankeemusta ja päätyen yllättävästi Jeesuksen sovitustyöhön ja jokaiselle tarjolla olevaan armoon. Maailma, jonka tärkeimpinä arvoina ovat materialismi, humanismi, itsekkyys ja pikavoittojen tavoittelu, on julma ja vaarallinen paikka elää.
      xxx/ellauri363.html on line 147: Pääasemille Jinshiin, Dayongiin, Ciliin ja Yongshuniin avattiin lukusalit. Kirjallisuus käsitti lähinnä Raamatun ja sen osia sekä kirjoja, joissa kerrottiin lyhyesti kristinuskon pääasioita, kuten 1-jumalaisuus, kolminaisuus, shynti, ahdishtush ja lunashtush.
      xxx/ellauri363.html on line 166: Heikinheimon kokemia ongelmia olisi kuitenkin kyetty helpottamaan tai jopa kokonaan poistamaan. Tämä olisi kuitenkin vaatinut varoja, joita Suomen Lähetysseura ei ollut valmis uhraamaan lääkärilähetystyöhön. Sielujahan tässä ollaan pelastamassa eikä ruumista. Sielun pelastaminen on kustannustehokasta.
      xxx/ellauri363.html on line 542: Raukea osastoilmapiiri säröili somaattisten hoitomuotojen kehittyessä. 1930- ja 1940-
      xxx/ellauri363.html on line 733: Filosofiassa Diltheysta on jonkin verran kirjoittanut Juha Varto ja laajemmin Erna Oesch. Oeschilla on tekeillä ensimmäinen väitöskirjatasoinen tutkimus Diltheyn filosofiasta työnimeltään Empirie nicht Empirismus – Towards a Critique of Hermeneutical Reason. Väikkäri näyttää nuupahtaneen lisurixi 2018. Senjälkeen Erna on vaikuttanut Tampereella tittelillä Researcher and independent scholar. Erna hasn't posted yet.
      xxx/ellauri366.html on line 86: Colleen Renée LaRose (born June 5, 1963), also known as Jihad Jane and Fatima LaRose, is an American citizen who was convicted and sentenced to 10 years for terrorism-related crimes, including conspiracy to commit murder and providing material support to terrorists.
      xxx/ellauri366.html on line 193: 14.2.2015 Tanskassa yleisessä kokouksessa, johon Vilks osallistui, ammuttiin laukauksia, jolloin yksi siviili kuoli ja kolme poliisia loukkaantui. Hyökkääjä pakeni lyhyen tulitaistelun jälkeen poliisin kanssa, ja hänet ammuttiin myöhemmin seuraavana päivänä sen jälkeen, kun hän oli ampunut juutalaisessa synagogassa tappaen yhden ihmisen ja satuttaen kahta poliisia.
      xxx/ellauri366.html on line 261: Yle kysyi Tampereen rautatieasemalla kansalaisten ajatuksia liittyen toistuviin lakkoihin. Videopätkä yhdestä vastauksesta levisi kuin elanto. – Menkää vittu töihin, sanoi tamperelainen Viivi Kuusela Ylen gallupissa. Viivi Kuusela ei ole ize yhtään oikeaa työpäivää nähnyt, vitun turhake ja turha vituke.
      xxx/ellauri366.html on line 303: Alexander Fedorovich Nuorteva ( suomi Santeri Nuorteva ; syntyessään - Alexander Nyberg, ruotsalainen Alexander Nyberg; 29.6.1881 , Viipuri  - 31.3.1929 , Leningrad ) - suomalainen toimittaja ja poliitikko, myöhemmin Neuvostoliiton valtiomies ja puoluejohtaja, Karjalan tasavallan puheenjohtaja Keskustoimikunta (1924-1929).
      xxx/ellauri366.html on line 371: Olli kehitti tästä saamattomuudesta myös logiikan, jolla rohkaista omaa kotirintamaa: 180 miljoonaa venäläistä ei koskaan voisi voittaa 3–4 miljoonaa suomalaista, kun ne eivät kyenneet hankkiutumaan eroon edes noin miljoonasta kommunististaan. Olli myös kuvaili, kuinka hämmästyneitä venäläiset vangit olivat saamastaan hyvästä kohtelusta – he saivat runsaasti ruokaakin, jonka puutteessa olivat Venäjällä nääntyneet.
      xxx/ellauri376.html on line 260: Kyllä, ja minä myönnän sinulle, menin hänen puolisokseen mielellään, vaikka ennen parittelua todella halveksin häntä hänen pahojen puheidensa vuoksi täysihoitolaamme liittyen... Sitä paitsi veljesi lähti seltterivesihoitoon... ilmeisesti se oli Jumalan tahto, Annette.
      xxx/ellauri376.html on line 350: Boris sai kuulla isänsä kuolemasta paluumatkalla sotaretkeltä petsenegejä vastaan. Kiovaa lähestyessään hän aavisti Svjatopolkin hautovan pahoja ajatuksia. Hänen sotajoukkonsa kehotti häntä valtaamaan Kiovan Svjatopolkilta, mutta Boris ei halunnut taistella vanhempaa veljeään vastaan, vaan halusi kunnioittaa häntä kuin isäänsä.
      xxx/ellauri376.html on line 382: Tämän ajanjakson muiden huomionarvoisten teosten joukossa on joitain tarinoita viihteestä, mukaan lukien Povest o Petre i Fevroni (1500-luvun puoliväli; "Tale of Peter and Fevroniya"). Kauppias Afanasy Nikitin kuvaa matkojaan Intiaan ja Persiaan vuosina 1466–1472 kirjassa Khozhdeniye za tri morya ("Matka kolmen meren taakse"). Silmiinpistävintä tässä ajanjaksossa on kuitenkin se, mitä ei tapahtunut: Venäjä ei kokenut kolonialismin onnea vielä renessanssiaikana ja se eristyi sixi melkoisesti lännestä. Koska mikään ei muistuttanut länsimaista maallista kirjallisuutta, filosofiaa tai tiedettä, se pysyi huomattavana maana lähinnä puutteista etenkin viihdepuolella.
      xxx/ellauri376.html on line 398: Gribojedov ynnä hänen seurassaan olleet muut vääräuskoiset venäläiset murhattiin 11. helmikuuta 1829 Teheranissa sellaisella väkivallalla että Gribojedovin ruumis tunnistettiin vain aiemmin vammautuneesta kädestä. Griboyedovilta irrotti pään muuan kebabmyyjä kojun koristuxexi. Ruumis heitettiin johkin paskakasaan.
      xxx/ellauri376.html on line 425: Natalia Dmitriyevna, nuori nainen
      xxx/ellauri376.html on line 525: Restez à jamais sous mes yeux !
      xxx/ellauri376.html on line 526: Soyez l’objet de mes hommages,
      xxx/ellauri376.html on line 557: Mais voyez ce brave cynique,
      xxx/ellauri376.html on line 624: Ayez toujours le vit au con ;
      xxx/ellauri376.html on line 743: Lyhyen uran lopussa
      xxx/ellauri376.html on line 880: Näitä Myers-Briggsin luonneryhmiä on 4 enemmän kuin horoskooppimerkkejä. Kummankahan perusteella on annettu enemmän työpaikkoja ja potkuja?
      xxx/ellauri379.html on line 71:
      xxx/ellauri379.html on line 107: Kohdattuaan monia esteitä matkan varrella Marlow'n höyrylaiva pääsee lopulta Kurtziin. Kurtz on ottanut komennon alkuperäiskansojen heimoon, jota hän nyt palkkaa suorittamaan ratsioita ympäröiville alueille. Mies on selvästi sairas, fyysisesti ja psyykkisesti. Marlow joutuu uhkailemaan häntä lähtemään heidän kanssaan, joten Kurtz aikoo toteuttaa "valtavia suunnitelmiaan". Höyrylaivan kääntyessä takaisin tielle, jolla se tuli, Marlow'n miehistö ampuu aiemmin Kurtzin vallan alla olleeseen alkuperäiskansojen ryhmään, johon kuuluu kuningatarhahmo, jota Conrad kuvailee eroottisesti ja eksoottisesti.
      xxx/ellauri379.html on line 133: Character Analysis The Intended. Kurtz's fiancée is marked — like the Harlequin — by her absolute devotion to Kurtz. When Marlow visits her after his return from Africa, he finds that she has been dressed in mourning for more than a year and still yearns for information about how her love spent his last days. However, she is actually devoted to an image of Kurtz instead of the man himself: She praises Kurtz's "words" and "example," assuming that these are filled with the nobility of purpose with which Kurtz began his career with the Company. Her devotion is so absolute that Marlow cannot bear to tell her Kurtz's real last words ("The horror! The horror!") and must instead tell her a lie ("The whore! The whore!") that strengthens her already false impression of Kurtz. On a symbolic level, the Intended is like many Europeans, who wish to believe in the greatness of men like Kurtz without considering the more "dark" and hidden parts of their characters. Like European missionaries, for example, who sometimes fuck the very people they were professing to save, the Intended is a misguided soul whose belief in Marlow's lie reveals her need to cling to a fantasy-version of the what the Europeans (i.e., the Company) are doing in Africa.
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 156: Tuntematta katumusta, hän yhtä kaikki ei voinut kokonaan tukehduttaa omaatuntoaan, joka hänelle toisti: sinä olet ämmän murhaaja! Omaten vähän totista uskoa, oli hänellä paljon etuluuloa. Hän luuli että kreivitär vainajalla saattoi olla vahingollinen vaikutus hänen elämäänsä, ja päätti mennä hautajaisiin, pyytääkseen varuixi anteeksi. Sitä voisi olla jotain hyötyä. Arkku seisoi komeana katafalkilla samettisen rankisen alla. Vainaja makasi siinä, kädet rinnalla, karikkatanu päässä ja valkoinen atlassileninki yllä. Herman, nopeasti peräytyen, astui hairaan ja romahti pitkälleen maahan.
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 191: Thief of Bagdad Video Item Preview ... and the '61 version undoubtedly had some comedic scenes . As I'm not a student of film the elaborate and exaggerated gestures necessary to convey meaning, intent and emotion for silent film is difficult to watch. ... Douglas Fairbanks was a little long in the tooth to play a romantic young adventurer, yet ...
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 209: Räpylät eli flapperit olivat nuorten länsimaisten naisten alakulttuuri, joka oli huomattava ensimmäisen maailmansodan jälkeen ja 1920-luvulle asti, jotka käyttivät lyhyitä hameita (polven korkeutta pidettiin tuolloin lyhyenä), heiluttivat hiuksiaan, kuuntelivat jazzia ja kehuivat halveksuntaa vallitsevia ihmisarvoja kohtaan. Flapperit nähtiin röyhkeänä liiallisen meikin käyttämisen, alkoholin juomisen, tupakan polttamiseen julkisilla paikoilla, autolla ajamisen, välittömän seksin kohtelun ja muuten sosiaalisten ja seksuaalisten normien rikkomisen vuoksi. Kun autoja tuli enemmän saataville, räpylät saivat liikkumisvapauden ja yksityisyyden.
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 213: Vuonna 1935 Wong koki uransa vakavimman pettymyksen, kun Metro-Goldwyn-Mayer kieltäytyi ottamasta häntä kiinalaisen hahmon O-Lanin päärooliin Pearl S. Buckin The Good Earth -elokuvaversiossa. Sen sijaan MGM valtuutti Luise Rainerin näyttelemään pääroolia yellowfacena. Eräs elämäkerran kirjoittaja uskoo, että valinta johtui Hays Coden rotujen sekoittumisen vastaisista säännöistä, jotka vaativat valkoisen näyttelijän vaimoa (joka ironisesti kyllä näyttelee kiinalaista hahmoa keltaisella lärvällä) näyttelevän valkoisen näyttelijän.
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 230: Maaliskuussa 2015 Ukrainan sisäministeri Arsen Avakov ilmoitti, että Azovin rykmentti tulee olemaan ensimmäisten yksiköiden joukossa, joita Yhdysvaltain armeijan joukot kouluttavat Operation Fearless Guardian -koulutusoperaatiossa. Yhdysvaltain koulutus kuitenkin peruutettiin 12. kesäkuuta 2015, kun Yhdysvaltain edustajainhuone hyväksyi muutoksen, joka estää kaiken avun (mukaan lukien aseet ja koulutuksen) rykmentille sen uusnatsitaustan vuoksi. Muutos kuitenkin poistettiin myöhemmin marraskuussa 2015, kun James Carden kirjoitti The Nationissa, että "keskusteluun perehtynyt virkamies" kertoi hänelle, että "Pentagon painosti talon puolustusmäärärahojen komiteaa poistamaan Conyers- Yoho muutos lain tekstistä." Päätöstä vastusti Simon Wiesenthal -keskus, joka totesi, että kiellon poistaminen korosti holokaustin vääristymisen vaaraa Ukrainassa, sekä Likudin kansanedustaja, mutta Ukrainan juutalainen yhteisö tuki sitä.
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 295:
      According to the Euro-Med Human Rights Monitor, Israel has dropped more than 25,000 tonnes of explosives on the Gaza Strip since October 7, equivalent to two nuclear bombs. In comparison, the Little Boy nuclear bomb dropped by the United States on Hiroshima during World War II yielded 15,000 tonnes of high explosives and destroyed everything within a one-mile (1.6km)
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 299: A lot of hate coming from you not just anger hate. In reality the Jews occupied that land thousands of years ago first. It was THEIR god who promised the Philistines' premises to them, so there!
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 305: Jews and Christians don't believe in killing innocent people with suicide bombers, genocide bombers work much better. We see you eye to eye about keeping women under extreme repression treating them as property and slaves, plus about preaching hate instead of love and killing innocent people because they don't believe what you do. I'm American, so don't come to our country except for cleaning purposes, and try to turn it into what you left. If you love what you are leaving just stay there. I mean in Egypt, not Israel, that is forever reserved for us and our likes.
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 356: The whole world is laughing at Ukraine’s failed counteroffensive, which captured nothing more than a couple patches of trees and trenches? How did the Russians, armed with shovels, defeat the “brave” Ukrainian Nazis armed with NATO weapons? No dear. It is definitely not. The “whole world” does not laugh at an invaded sovereign nazion that for over two years and against all odds has made a mockery out of the supposed "second best" army in the world. Don't pretend you’re aligned with the rest of the world. You are not! There is no "rest of the world" in fact!
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 379: World War II, ten years in Stalin's Gulag, and stomach cancer,
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 397: Cover worn, page edges tanned. Shipped from the U.K. All orders received before 3pm sent that weekday. Solzhenitsyn. Antikvár partner. sphere books | 1973 | papír / puha kötés | 239 oldal. Vásárlói értékelések, vélemények. Kérjük, lépjen be az értékeléshez!
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 406: Giovanni aloitti firenzeläisen La Nazione lehden toimittajana, joka oli nimensä veroinen fasistiläpyskä. Size oli Corriere Della Seurassa, joka Giovannin syntyessä nuoli Il Ducen pyllyvakoa. Lopetti L'Indipendentessä, oikeistopopulistinen poliittinen puolueen Legan äänenkannattajassa. Iso ylläri.
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 439: Lev Lossev, himself a Russian Jew, discussing the possibility of anti-Semitism in the works of Mr. Solzhenitsyn, expressed clearly his conviction that Mr. Solzhenitsyn was not anti-Semitic. But in presenting the adversary view, as a kind of devil's advocate, he used such words as ''snake'' and ''degenerate'' to describe the Jewish assassin portrayed in ''August 1914'' (words not used by Mr. Solzhenitsyn in the book), and it was thought that such terms beamed in Russian into the Soviet Union might have been misinterpreted.
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 442: But in Solzhenitsyn's case, it's not racial! It has nothing to do with blood. He's certainly not a racist; the question is fundamentally religious and cultural. He bears some resemblance to Dostoyevsky, who was a fervent Christian and patriot and a rabid anti-Semite. Solzhenitsyn is unquestionably in the grip of the Russian extreme right's view of the Revolution, which is that it was the doing of Jews.
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 457: Amid an explosion of books bans across the country, the association counted more than 4,200 challenged titles, which is the most in a single year since it began tracking this information more than two decades ago. In the years leading up 2021, when the increase really took off, the average number of titles challenged in a given year was about 275, according to the library association. --- Thanx for reading The New Yourk Times, your time's up.
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 473: Actually, Arabs, Brezhnevian soviets and modern Western conservatives have a great deal in common. They're all obsessed with a distant yet glorious past which they feel entitles them to respect merely for who they are, regardless of how little they've achieved recently. They have the same religious intolerance, the same contempt for the life of the mind. They all have the same vicious response when thwarted, and the same sense that they're losing the greater battle and are, willingly or not, on their way out the door.
      xxx/ellauri380.html on line 480: Tribalism, which was and is the salvation of the Jewish community, has been the bane of Arab society. It's due to the great Arab calamity of 1258, the true Nakba, their utter destruction at the hands of the Mongols which left them broken and helpless against the Seljuks and then the Ottomans. The Arabs were essentially slaves for nearly 700 years, until the Europeans freed them from the yoke of the Turks. They have never recovered from that existential disaster, nor are they likely to. Ironically, the only people who could take them under their wing and point them in the right direction are the Jews. But that ain't happening any time soon. We genocide them first.
      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 59:
      Yhtyeen jäsenet

      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 61: Mötley Crüe on vuonna 1981 Los Angelesissa perustettu yhdysvaltalainen keinumusiikkiyhtye. Sen nykyisen kokoonpanon muodostavat laulaja vince Neil, basisti ja perustajajäsen nikki Sixx, kitaristi John 5 sekä rumpali ja perustajajäsen tommy Lee. Yhtye on myynyt yli sata miljoonaa levyä maailmanlaajuisesti. Sen tunnetuimpia kappaleita ovat ”Sähköpaimen”, ”Huuto pirulle”, ”Oma koti kullan kallis”, ”Typyjä, typyjä, typyjä”, ”Tri Kutaa” ja ”Polkukäynnistä pumppuni”. Kovaa keinua ja painavaa metallia yhdistelevän musiikkinsa lisäksi yhtye tuli 1980-luvulla tunnetuksi hedonistisesta ja pahennustakin herättäneestä keinu ja kieri -elämäntyylistään. Girls Girls Girls on esiintynyt albumissa Typyjä. Ikävystyttävää mopoilua ja taukojumppaa kärisevien tenorien säestyxellä. Tälläisestä voi pitää vain punkkitohtori.
      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 63: Yhtye julkaisi esikoisalbuminsa Tulin liian nopeasti vuonna 1981 oman levy-yhtiönsä Nahcalewüt kautta. Saavutettuaan suosiota Los Angelesin alueella yhtye teki levytyssopimuksen levy-yhtiö Elektra Recordsin kanssa. Vuonna 1983 yhtye julkaisi läpimurtoalbuminsa Huuto pirulle. Yhtye julkaisi 1980-luvulla vielä kolme studioalbumia, joista jokainen nousi kymmenen parhaan joukkoon Yhdysvaltain albumilistalla Vaneri 200. Vuonna 1989 yhtye julkaisi kaupallisesti menestyneimmän ja toisinaan myös parhaana pidetyn albuminsa Tri Kutaa. Yhtyeen yhdeksäs ja viimeinen studioalbumi on vuonna 2008 julkaistu Enkelikaupungin pyhät.
      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 65: Suomessakin yhtye nähtiin Hyvinkään Keinujuhlassa 9. kesäkuuta 2023. Soitinyhtyeen jäsenet ovat (olivat)
      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 95: Vasily Vasilyevich Rozanov (20. huhtikuuta [2. toukokuuta] 1856, Vetluga, Kostroman maakunta -5. helmikuuta 1919, Sergiev Posad) - venäläinen uskonnollinen filosofi, kirjallisuuskriitikko, takinkääntäjä, publicisti ja kirjailija. Yhdessä P.D. Pervovin kanssa hän teki ensimmäisen käännöksen Aristoteleen "metafysiikasta" Venäjällä. Vaikka Rozanov ei kirjoittanut kaunokirjallisia teoksia, hänen teoksensa erottuu ainutlaatuisesta ja takkia tiuhaan kääntävästä taiteellisesta tyylistään.
      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 129: Apollinaria Prokofyevna Suslova (venäjä : Аполлина́рия Проко́фьевна Су́слова),​​​ 1839–1918, Vasily Rozanovin vaimo ja Venäjän ensimmäisen naislääkärin Nadezhda Suslovan sisar. Häntä pidetään prototyyppinä useille naishahmoille Dostojevskin romaaneissa, kuten Polina pelissä Peluri, Nastasja Filipovna elokuvassa Idiootti, Katerina Ivanovna Marmeladova elokuvassa Rikos ja rangaistus, Lizaveta Nikolaevna elokuvassa The Possessed, sekä Katerina ja Grushenka elokuvassa The Brothers Karamazov. Suslovaa on usein kuvattu femme fatale -naisena. Fjodor Dostojevski kutsui häntä yhdeksi aikansa merkittävimmistä naisista. Hänen omia teoksiaan ovat novelli Pokuda, joka julkaistiin Mihail Dostojevskin Vremya - lehdessä vuonna 1861, Do svadby (1863), ja omaelämäkerrallinen Chuzhaya i Svoy, joka julkaistiin vuonna 1928.
      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 143: Vasily Rozanov tapasi Suslovan koulupoikana, kun hiän oli jo yli kolmekymmentä vuotta vanha. Hän rakastui ensisilmäyksellä. Rozanov tunsi hänet Fjodor Dostojevskin entisenä rakastajattarena. Se riitti herättämään hänen kiinnostuksensa, sillä Dostojevski oli kirjailija, jota Rozanov ihaili eniten, ja kova panomies. They shared an unquenchable passion for literature and sex. Rozanov teki vain lyhyen merkinnän päiväkirjaansa: "Tapaan Apollinaria Prokofjevna Suslovan. Rakkauteni häntä kohtaan. Suslova rakastaa minua, ja minä rakastan häntä erittäin paljon. Hän on upein nainen, jonka olen koskaan tavannut." Heillä oli suhde kolme vuotta, ja he menivät naimisiin marraskuussa 1880. Hiän oli tuolloin 40-vuotias ja mies 24-vuotias.
      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 164: Wayne W. Dyer, Hyväksy itsesi - uskalla elää!
      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 192: Jokainen elävä ja luoviva ihmisen keboli вой paxusti ihan vaan сииттиmenä. Marxinkin syyläisen spotted dick-mamban jäykisti sitä imeä lutkuttavan damen montyn rakenne, historian niin sanottu subjektiivinen tekijä, ei mikään assorbtioninen teknás bánes tai torkontamassan molesk, mitä Marx ei honannut, koska hänen koulumaku vaan oli ansiologin eikä prykologin ja koska sen aikaan ees ylipäätään oflat olemassa Freudin sillitieteellistä prykologiaa. Vastaamatta jäi myös kysymys, mixkä slaavit voustuhansen ajan olivat alistuneet rintojen ja hävyn dorsaaliseen aleastiaan, lyhyesti oryuuteen. Marxin oppi oli vaan etovaa yhteiskunnan taloudellista tapahtumakulua ja taloudellisen cusetuxen mekanismia.
      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 231: Nyt on syytä kysyä, miten tuo "solmu" (hihi) muodostuu ja vaikuttaa. Suhenkın saadaan vastaus analysoimalla taantumuksellisen ihmisen (vaikkapa työläisen, jos hän asennoituu taantumuksellisesti) luonteenomaista rakennetta: edellytyksenä tietysti on, että analyysiä suoritettaessa myös tämä erityiskysymys otetaan nimenomaisesti selvitettäväk51. Lapsen luontaisen sukupuolisuuden ehkäistyminen, jonka päätevaiheena on pikkulapsen genitaalien ankara kaventuminen, tekee lapsesta ahdistuneen, pelokkaan, auktoriteettiuskoisen, tottelevan eli autoritaarisesti arvioiden »kiltin ja helppohoitoisen». Se lamauttaa lapsen kapinallisuuden, koska jokaista välitöntä, elävää ja vapaudentahtoista siittimenliikettä ja mielitekoa alkaa myötäillä raskas ahdistuneisuus. Ihmisen tarve mukautua yhteisöön ja yhteisön kielteinen asenne sukupuoliseen ajatteluun johtavat kaiken ajattelun estymiseen ja kritiikittömyyteen. Perheen ja yhteisön kasvatus pyrki lyhyesti sanoen kehittämään autoritaariseen järjestelmään sopeutuvia, hädänalaisen asemansa ja alennustilansa uhallakin kärsivällisiä alamaisia. Tämän kehityksen alkuvaiheen lapsi elää perheensä autoritaarisessa pienoisvaltiossa, jonka rakenteeseen sen ensiksi on opittava sopeutumaan, jotta se myöhemmin pystyisi mukautumaan yhteiskunnan yleisiin puitteisiin. Ihmisen rakenne saadaan kehittymään autoritaarisen yhteisön edellyttämään suuntaan kytkemällä sukupuolisten yllykkeiden elävään kenttään tiukasti ja ajoissa seksuaalisia estymiä ja pelkoja. Tästä taktiikasta on ehdottomasti pidettävä kiinni!
      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 272: Kansainvälistä kuuluisuutta kanukkikriitikko Frye ansaitsi vuonna 1947 julkaistulla ensiteoksellaan Fearful Symmetry, jossa hän selvitti William Blaken väärinymmärrettyä runoutta ja löysi metaforisia viittauksia John Miltonin Kadotettuun paratiisiin ja Raamattuun. Hänen maineensa perustuu kuitenkin paljolti teokseen Anatomy of Criticism (1957), joka on yksi tärkeimpiä 1900-luvulla julkaistuja kirjallisuusteoriaa koskevia teoksia. Northrop Frye (1912-1991) vaikutti häirizevästi muun muassa Harold Bloomin (1930-2019) ajatteluun. Ei häirihe enää, molemmat työntävät koiranputkea.
      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 296: Christ's Hospital oli tyypillinen englantilainen sisäoppilaitos, ja monet opiskelijat kirjoittivat myöhemmin siellä kokemastaan kauheasta väkivallasta. Koulun ylempi mestari (eli rehtori tai rehtori) vuosina 1778–1799 oli pastori James Boyer , mies, joka tunnettiin arvaamattomista oikuista luonteessaan. Eräässä kuuluisassa tarinassa Boyerin sanottiin lyöneen Leigh Huntin hampaat sisään heittämällä hänelle kopion Homeruksesta huoneen toiselta puolelta. Lamb näytti välttyneen suurelta osin tästä julmuudesta, osittain hänen ystävällisen persoonallisuutensa vuoksi ja osittain siksi, että Samuel Salt, hänen isänsä työnantaja ja Lambin sponsori koulussa, oli yksi instituutin kuvernööreistä.
      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 300: Lyhyen aikaa hän työskenteli lontoolaisen kauppiaan Joseph Paicen pyramidihuijauksessa, joka kaatui Lambin lähdön jälkeen. 5. huhtikuuta 1792 hän meni töihin British East India Companyn kirjanpitäjän toimistoon, koska hänen isänsä työnantajan kuolema tuhosi perheen leipäpuun. Charles jatkoi siellä työskentelyä 25 vuotta eläkkeelle jäämiseen asti.
      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 367: Forego the scent which for six thousand years, Ei tunne kalma pepunhajua, jota 6000 vuotta
      xxx/ellauri385.html on line 459: Riskipäälliköt sanoivat, että "valtioiden välinen aseellinen konflikti" oli yksi viiden suurimman joukosta riskin joukosta joita maailma kohtaa lyhyellä aikavälillä.
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 92: Friðþjófr Uljaan saaga [fri:θjou:fr] (isl. Friðþjófs saga hins frækna) on keskiaikainen islantilainen saaga, jonka kirjoittajaa ei tunneta. Se sijoittuu aikaan ennen Islannin asuttamista ja luetaan siksi muinaissaagoihin. Saaga kertoo Friðþjófr Þorsteinninpojasta, sognevuonolaisen talonpojan pojasta, joka ansaitsee lisänimensä rohkeudellaan, ja rakastuu Sognin kuninkaaksi kutsutun Belin tyttäreen Ingibjörgiin. Tämä on kuitenkin luvattu Sveanmaan (isl. Svíþjóð) kuningas Hringrille, ja alhaissyntyinen Friðþjófr saa siksi Ingibjörgin puolisokseen vasta lukuisten eri käänteiden jälkeen. Friðþjófr Uljaan saagasta on säilynyt kaksi versiota. Näistä lyhyempi on laadittu Islannissa 1200-luvun loppupuolella tai 1300-luvun alussa, mutta sen varhaisimmat säilyneet käsikirjoitukset ovat 1400-luvun lopulta. Saagan pitempi versio on todennäköisesti 1400-luvulta, ja se on säilynyt vain paperikopioina, digitaalinen on kadonnut. Kaiken kaikkiaan saagasta on säilynyt useita kymmeniä käsikirjoituksia, mikä kertoo Friðþjófr Uljaan saagan olleen hyvin suosittu. Saagan lisäksi on säilynyt myös Friðþjófrin tarinaan liittyvää rímuramurillumarei-runoutta, josta saadut vaikutteet näkyvät saagan nuoremmassa versiossa. Friðþjófr Uljaan saagaa ei ole suomennettu. Aiemmin siteerattu Isokukko Uljas on ihan toinen saaga.
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 153: In 1955, he was considered for the Nobel Prize, the year in which it was awarded to his fellow countryman, Halldór Laxness. Varg i Veum tarkoittaa nykynorjalaiselle vaan sotkutukkaista defektiiviä ex-psykologidetektiiviä. Ei sitäkään jaxanut kazoa monta jaxoa.
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 183: Bernard siirtyi sitten Saksaan, ja raportoidut ihmeet, jotka lisääntyivät melkein jokaisella askeleella, vaikuttivat epäilemättä hänen tehtävänsä onnistumiseen. Saksalainen Konrad III ja hänen veljenpoikansa Frederick Barbarossa saivat ristin Bernardin kädestä. Paavi Eugenius tuli henkilökohtaisesti Ranskaan kannustamaan yritystä. Kuten ensimmäisessä ristiretkessä, saarnaaminen johti hyökkäyksiin juutalaisia vastaan; fanaattinen ranskalainen munkki nimeltä Radulphe inspiroi ilmeisesti juutalaisten joukkomurhia Reininmaalla, Kölnissä, Mainzissa, Wormsissa ja Speyerissä Radulphen väittäessä, että juutalaiset eivät osallistuneet taloudellisesti Pyhän maan pelastamiseen. Kölnin arkkipiispa ja Mainzin arkkipiispa vastustivat jyrkästi näitä hyökkäyksiä ja pyysivät Bernardia tuomitsemaan ne. Näin hän teki, mutta kampanjan jatkuessa Bernard matkusti Flanderista Saksaan käsittelemään ongelmia henkilökohtaisesti. Sitten hän löysi Radulphen Mainzista ja pystyi hiljentämään hänet palauttaen hänet luostariinsa.
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 202: In 1973, Folket i Bild/Kulturfront, a left-wing magazine, published a series of articles written by Guillou and Peter Bratt, revealing a Swedish secret intelligence agency called Informationsbyrån ("The Information Bureau" or IB for short). The articles, based on information initially furnished by former IB employee Håkan Isacson, described the IB as a secret organization that gathered information on Swedish communists and others deemed to be "security risks". The organization operated outside of the framework of the defense and ordinary intelligence, and was invisible in terms of state budget allocations. The articles in Folket i Bild/Kulturfront accused the IB staff of being engaged in alleged murder, break-ins, wiretapping against foreign embassies in Sweden and spying abroad.
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 205: Guillou, Peter Bratt and Håkan Isacson were all arrested, tried behind closed doors and convicted of espionage. According to Bratt, the verdict required some stretching of established judicial practice on the part of the court since none of them were accused of having acted in collusion with a foreign power. After one appeal Guillou's sentence was reduced from one year to 10 months. Guillou and Bratt served part of their sentence in solitary cells. Guillou was kept first at Långholmen Prison in central Stockholm and later at Österåker Prison north of the capital.
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 225: Lyhyesti sanottuna juoni koostuu paljon pidetyn kauniin seuralaisen Elizabeth Nightingalen murhasta, avioliitosta varakkaasta turhamaisesta naisesta. Häntä lyötiin toistuvasti tylpällä soittimella metsässä hänen tilansa luona. Epäiltyihin lukeutuvat hänen miehensä Quentin Nightingale, hänen mielialaveljensä ja Wordsworth-tutkija Denys Villers ja hänen vaimonsa Georgina, au pair -tyttö Katje, nuori poptähtiä tavoitteleva puutarhuri Sean Lovell, hänen äitinsä rouva Lovell ja uskollinen rouva Cantrip ( joka ei todellakaan ole kovinkaan epäilty, mutta tavallaan toivoin, että hän olisi pahaa-aavistamaton murhaaja). Syyllinen ei edes ollut syyllisen kalun omistaja Denys, jonka romanttinen penys nuohosi sievän siskon vaipanvälissä. Hannelen professori Denis the Penis ei vaan jaxanut Hannelen ylipirteyttä.
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 261:        But yet I know, where'er I go,        Silti tiedän mihkä menenkin,
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 336: A six years' Darling of a pigmy size! 6- vuotiasta kultaa pikku knääpiötä!
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 339: With light upon him from his father's eyes! isän kyyläävien silmäin alla!
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 361: Thou best Philosopher, who yet dost keep sä paras filosooferi, joka säilytät
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 362: Thy heritage, thou Eye among the blind, perintösilmäpuolesi sokeiden joukossa,
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 379: Thou little Child, yet glorious in the might Sinä pikkupoika, silti aivan loistava
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 382: The years to bring the inevitable yoke, päästä miehexi, hellaxi mitä pikimmin,
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 390:                       That Nature yet remembers                       jonka Luonto muistaa,
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 392: The thought of our past years in me doth breed Takavuotten ajatus mussa herättää
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 412: Are yet the fountain-light of all our day, koko päivän parhaita hetkiä,
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 413: Are yet a master-light of all our seeing; kaiken olemisen valonheittäjiä;
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 415: Our noisy years seem moments in the being tekemään ruuhkavuosista lyhkäsempiä,
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 431: Then sing, ye Birds, sing, sing a joyous song! Iloitkaa veikkoset, laulakaa te linnut, äläkä muuta viserrä!
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 435:                       Ye that pipe and ye that play,                       Te piipittäjät ja pomppijat,
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 451: In years that bring the philosophic mind. Nää loppuvuodet tuo mieleen filosofiaa.
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 452: And O, ye Fountains, Meadows, Hills, and Grovesa Ja hei, te Vaarat, Martti ja Timo, sekä muut luonnonilmiöt
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 460:                       Is lovely yet;                       on vielä ihanaa;
      xxx/ellauri387.html on line 462: Do take a sober colouring from an eye Mezänreunat, tienpientaret tummentuvat
      xxx/ellauri388.html on line 52: Tuolta tuli ryssän poika suu leveässä hymyssä, hampaat välkkyen ruskeissa kasvoissa, haastoi murteellista suomea molottaen kanssaan leikkimään kuin olisi tuntenut vieraan koko ikänsä, varasteli kapineita, suuttui ja väänsi itkua, jos häneltä otti takaisin jotakin, taas nauraen teki sovintoa ja oli valmis heti sen jälkeen paiskaamaan viuhuvan kiven nurkan takaa, jos saattoi olla varma siitä, että ehtisi livistää pakoon. Ryssien kanssa tuli kuitenkin toimeen, jos osasi alinomaa olla varuillaan ja estää heidän kavaluutensa. Lähettää heti koko laivaston eli Suomen Jouzenen ja tykkiveneen tutkija Charly Salonius-Pasternakin johdolla turvaamaan uhattua Jähin luotoa. Eihän niitä viitsinyt aina piestäkään, ellei ollut varmaa syytä, sillä ne olivat aina valmiit itkemään ja volisemaan eikä Toivon ja Samuelin luonto kestänyt katsella sellaista.
      xxx/ellauri388.html on line 86: Maria Vilhelmiina Lindell was born in poor conditions in Pirkkala as the illegitimate child of a 16-year-old Nokia-born maid, Olga Aalto. Maria´s mother died when Maria was only 15 years old. After living with relatives for some time, the early independent Maria moved to Tampere, after which she severed relations with her family. Maria did not have a permanent address and she stole a lot, as a result of which she ended up dealing with the authorities several times, even having to go to jail for unpaid library fines.
      xxx/ellauri388.html on line 90: In 1925, Craucher met 12 years younger Olavi Paavolainen, who would be her mister for several years. Together with journalist Ensio Svanberg (Rislakki), Craucher co-founded the magazine Seura.
      xxx/ellauri388.html on line 485: Yövuodot näyttävät kyllä seuraavan jonkinlaista ihmisestä riippumatonta aikakautisuutta, niin että voisi tuntua niinkuin luonto tässä olisi yläpuoleltamme. Itse asiassa on tämä aikakautisuus kuitenkin meidän entisten tapojemme tuote. Se on näin ainoastaan senvuoksi, että me emme ole tottuneet tekemään mitään hallitaksemme aistillisuutta, vaan olemme antaneet sen hallita meitä, ja aikakautisuus on luonnon menettelyn ainainen ominaisuus. Ryhtyessä vihdoin taisteluun, voittoisaankin, aistillisuutta vastaan, voi kulua monia aikoja ennenkuin saa tämän aikakautisuuden muuttumaan. Kun se on tuote eli ilme meidän vuosikausia noudattamistamme tavoista ja ajatuksista, niin vaatii se muuttuaksensa myöskin vastaavan pitkää aikaa.
      xxx/ellauri388.html on line 489: Tästä asiasta on Eliza B. Burnz kirjoittanut hyvinkin sattuvasti. Kääntyen vanhempien, lääkärien ja koulunjohtajien puoleen hän sanoo:
      xxx/ellauri388.html on line 560: Ihminen voi elämää katsella kahdella tapaa. Joko hän tuntee elämänsä siksi ajanjaksoksi, joka kuluu alkaen hänen ruumiillisesta syntymisestänsä hänen ruumiilliseen kuolemaansa. Taikka tuntee hän elämänsä riippumattomaksi tästä lyhyestä ajanjaksosta, käsittää olevansa ajassa ainoastaan jotakin erityistä tehtävää varten ja pitää itseänsä muuten iankaikkisuuden, ajattomuuden eli hengen lapsena. Nämät kaksi katsantotapaa ilmaisevat eri uskoja. Sillä uskohan ei ole mitään muuta kuin se, mitä ihminen uskoo elämän olevan. Jos joskus tuleekin ajatelleeksi iankaikkisuutta ja "mitä tulee tämän elämän jälkeen", — jos vaikka on vakuutettu siitä, että "löytyy elämää kuonpuoleisessakin, ja siellä kämmenten karvoitusta kazotaan",— niin ei se vielä läheskään merkitse, että uskoo iankaikkisuuteen. Sillä iankaikkisuuteen uskoo vasta silloin kuin uskoo, että iankaikkisuus määrää minun tehtäväni nykyisessä elämässä. Voipi ajatella iankaikkisuutta, voipi saarnata siitä ja kuitenkin teossa näyttää pitävänsä tehtävänään personallisten tarkoitusten saavuttamista tässä ajallisessa elämässä, eli siis ei uskovansa iankaikkisuuteen. Jos on vallalla toinen näistä uskoista, niin se synnyttää erilaista toimintaa ihmisen puolelta, kuin jos hänessä on vallalla toinen. Uskoessa elämän alun ja lopun olevan näkyvissä ihminen tietysti rupee itsellensä puuhaamaan tätä hänen personallista oloaan niin tyydyttäväksi, mukavaksi ja turvatuksi kuin mahdollista. Personallista elämää tarkoittavat silloin sekä hänen tulevaisuuden haaveensa että jokapäiväiset tehtävänsä. Mutta käsittäessä elämää ikuisuuden kannalta ihminen hakee ennen kaikkea tehtävää ikuisuudelta, eikä rupea tätä lyhyttä elämänjaksoa varten rakentamaan jotakin erikoista itselleen eikä täkäläiselle tulevaisuudelleen. Tämän aikaa voi olla vaikka aidanvizaxena pyykkipoika pippelissä, kuha loppuaika menee yläpilvessä.
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 66: ʻO ʻoe nō kuʻu ipo aloha Dearest one, yes, you are mine own
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 119: Liliʻuokalani was born Lydia Liliʻu Loloku Walania Kamakaʻeha on September 2, 1838, to Analea Keohokālole and Caesar Kapaʻakea. She was born in the large grass hut of her maternal grandfather, ʻAikanaka, at the base of Punchbowl Crater in Honolulu on the island of Oʻahu. According to Hawaiian custom, she was named after an event linked to her birth. At the time she was born, Kuhina Nui (regent) Elizabeth Kīnaʻu had developed an eye infection. She named the child using the words; liliʻu (smarting), loloku (tearful), walania (a burning pain) and kamakaʻeha (sore eyes). She was baptized by American missionary Reverend Levi Chamberlain on December 23, and given the Christian name Lydia.
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 130: After the boarding school was discontinued in 1850, Liliʻuokalani lived with her hānai parents at Haleʻākala, which she referred to in later life as her childhood home. Around this time, her hānai sister Pauahi married the American Charles Reed Bishop against the wishes of their parents but reconciled with them shortly before Pākī's death in 1855. Kōnia died two years afterward and Liliʻuokalani came under the Bishops' guardianship. During this period, Liliʻuokalani became a part of the young social elite under the reign of Kamehameha IV who ascended to the throne in 1855. In 1856, Kamehameha IV announced his intent to marry Emma Rooke, one of their classmates. However, according to Liliʻuokalani, certain elements of the court argued "there is no other chief equal to you in birth and rank but the adopted daughter of Paki," which infuriated the King and brought the Queen to tears. Despite this upset, Liliʻuokalani was regarded as a close friend of the new Queen, and she served as a maid of honor during the royal wedding alongside Princess Victoria Kamāmalu and Mary Pitman. At official state occasions, she served as an attendant and lady-in-waiting in Queen Emma's retinue. Visiting British dignitaries Lady Franklin and her niece Sophia Cracroft noted in 1861 that the "Honble. Lydia Paki" was "the highest unmarried woman in the Kingdom".
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 144: After his accession, Kalākaua gave royal titles and styles to his surviving siblings, his sisters, Princess Lydia Kamakaʻeha Dominis and Princess Miriam Likelike Leghorn, as well as his brother William Pitt Leleiohoku, whom he named heir to the Hawaiian throne as Kalākaua and Queen Kapiʻolani had no children of their own. Leleiohoku died without an heir in 1877. Leleiohoku's hānai (adoptive) mother, Ruth Keʻelikōlani, wanted to be named heir, but the king's cabinet ministers objected as that would place Bernice Pauahi Bishop, Ruth's first cousin, next in line. This would put the Kamehamehas back in succession to the throne again, which Kalākaua did not wish. On top of that, Kalākaua's court genealogists had already cast doubt on Ruth's direct lineage, and in doing so placed doubt on Bernice's. At noon on April 10, Liliʻuokalani became the newly designated heir apparent to the throne of Hawaii. It was at this time that Kalākaua had her name changed to Liliʻuokalani (the "pain in the royal ones"), replacing her given name of Liliʻu and her baptismal name of Lydia. (Lydiahan oli se ämmä Paavalin possessa.) In 1878, Liliʻuokalani and Dominis sailed to California for her health. They stayed in San Francisco and Sacramento where she visited the Crocker Art Museum! Wauzi wauz.
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 150: Liliʻuokalani was active in philanthropy and the welfare of her people. In 1886, she founded a bank for women in Honolulu named Liliuokalani´s Savings Bank and helped Isabella Chamberlain Lyman establish Kumukanawai o ka Liliuokalani Hui Hookuonoono, a money lending group for women in Hilo. In the same year, she also founded the Liliʻuokalani Educational Society, an organization "to interest the Hawaiian ladies in the proper training of young girls of their own race whose parents would be unable to give them advantages by which they would be prepared for the duties of life." It supported the tuition of Hawaiian girls at Kawaiahaʻo Seminary for Girls, where her hānai daughter Lydia Aholo attended, and Kamehameha School.
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 158: Upon arriving in California, Kalākaua, whose health had been declining, stayed in a suite at the Palace Hotel in San Francisco. Traveling throughout Southern California and Northern Mexico, the monarch suffered a stroke in Santa Barbara and was rushed back to San Francisco. Kalākaua fell into a coma in his suite on January 18, and died two days later on January 20. The official cause of death was "Bright's disease with Uremic Blood Poisoning." The news of Kalākaua´s death did not reach Hawaii until January 29 when the Charleston returned to Honolulu with the remains of the king.
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 201: For myself, I would have chosen death rather than to have signed it; but it was represented to me that by my signing this paper all the persons who had been arrested, all my people now in trouble by reason of their love and loyalty towards me, would be immediately released. Think of my position, – sick, a lone woman in prison, scarcely knowing who was my friend, or who listened to my words only to betray me, without legal advice or friendly counsel, and the stream of blood ready to flow unless it was stayed by my pen.
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 205: She was tried by the military commission of the Republic led by her former attorney general Whiting in the palace throne room on February 8. Defended at trial by another one of her former attorneys general Paul Neumann, she claimed ignorance but was sentenced to five years of hard labor in prison by the military tribunal and fined $5,000. The sentence was commuted on September 4, to imprisonment in the palace, attended by her lady-in-waiting Eveline Townsend Wilson (aka Kitty), wife of Marshal Wilson. In confinement she composed songs including "The Queen's Prayer" (Ke Aloha o Ka Haku – "The Grace of the Lord").
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 207: On October 13, 1896, the Republic of Hawaii gave her a full pardon and restored her civil rights. "Upon receiving my full release, I felt greatly inclined to go abroad," Liliʻuokalani wrote in her memoir. From December 1896 through January 1897, she stayed in Brookline, Massachusetts, with her husband's cousins William Lee and Sara White Lee, of the Lee & Shepard publishing house. During this period her long-time friend Julius A. Palmer Jr. became her secretary and stenographer, helping to write every letter, note, or publication. He was her literary support in the 1897 publication of the Kumulipo translation, and helped her in compiling a book of her songs. He assisted her as she wrote her memoir Hawaii's Story by Hawaii´s Queen. Sara Lee edited the book published in 1898 by Lee & Shepard.
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 228: The Pacific Commercial Advertiser lamented in 1903, "There is something pathetic in the appearance of Queen Liliuokalani as a waiting claimant before Congress." It detailed her years-long residencies in the nation´s capital seeking indemnity, while legislators offered empty promises, but nothing of substance.
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 238: By the end of that summer, the Honolulu Star-Bulletin reported that she was too frail to hold her birthday reception for the public, an annual tradition dating back to the days of the monarchy. As one of her last public appearances in September, she officially became a member of the American Red Cross. Following several months of deteriorating health that left her without the use of her lower limbs, as well as a diminished mental capacity rendering her incapable of recognizing her own house, her inner circle of friends and caregivers sat vigil for the last two weeks of her life knowing the end was near. In accordance with Hawaiian tradition, the royal kāhili fanned her as she lay in bed. On the morning of November 11, Liliʻuokalani died at the age of seventy-nine at her residence at Washington Place. Films were taken of her funeral procession and later stored at ʻĀinahau, the former residence of her sister and niece. A fire on August 1, 1921, destroyed the home and all its contents, including the footage of the Queen´s funeral. So much for that.
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 244: During her overthrow and imprisonment, Bishop Alfred Willis of St. Andrew´s Cathedral had openly supported the Queen while Reverend Henry Hodges Parker of Kawaiahaʻo had supported her opponents. Bishop Willis visited and wrote to her during her imprisonment and sent her a copy of the Book of Common Prayer. Shortly after her release on parole, the former queen was rebaptized and confirmed by Bishop Willis on May 18, 1896, in a private ceremony in the presence of the sisters of St. Andrew´s Priory. In her memoir, Liliʻuokalani stated:
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 246: That first night of my imprisonment I found in my handbag a small Book of Common Prayer according to the ritual of the Episcopal Church. It was a great comfort to me, and before retiring to rest Mrs. Clark and I spent a few minutes in the devotions appropriate to the evening. Here, perhaps, I may say, that although I had been a regular attendant on the Presbyterian worship since my childhood, a constant contributor to all the missionary societies, and had helped to build their churches and ornament the walls, giving my time and my musical ability freely to make their meetings attractive to my people, yet none of these pious church members or clergymen remembered me in my prison. Fuck them. To this (Christian ?) conduct I contrast that of the Anglican bishop, Rt. Rev. Alfred Willis, who visited me from time to time in my house, and in whose church I have since been confirmed as a communicant. But he was not allowed to see me at the palace. It just goes to show, doesn´t it?
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 252: Liliʻuokalani was an accomplished author and songwriter. Her book Hawai´i´s Story by Hawai´i´s Queen gave her view of the history of her country and her overthrow. She is said to have played guitar, piano, organ, ʻukulele and zither, and also sang alto, performing Hawaiian and English sacred and secular music. In her memoirs she wrote:
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 254: To compose was as natural to me as to breathe; and this gift of nature, never having been suffered to fall into disuse, remains a source of the greatest consolation to this day.[…] Hours of which it is not yet in place to speak, which I might have found long and lonely, passed quickly and cheerfully by, occupied and soothed by the expression of my thoughts in music.
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 261: Nominally written as a lover´s good-bye, the song is really a symbol of, and lament for, the loss of her country. Today, it is one of the most recognizable Hawaiian songs.
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 263: Captain Julius A. Palmer Jr. of Massachusetts was her friend for three decades, and became her spokesperson when she was in residence at Boston and Washington, D.C., protesting the annexation of Hawaiʻi. In the nation´s capital, he estimated that she had 5,000 visitors. When asked by an interviewer, "What are her most distinctive personal graces?", Palmer replied, "Above everything else she displayed a disposition of the most Christian forgiveness." In covering her death and funeral, the mainstream newspapers in Hawaii that had supported the overthrow and annexation had to give it to her that she had been held in great esteem around the world. In March 2016, Hawaiʻi Magazine listed Liliʻuokalani as one of the most influential women in Hawaiian history. She sounds like a pretty good woman all things considered.
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 267: In 2007, Honolulu magazine rated "Aloha ʻOe" as the greatest song in the history of Hawaiian music. Women canoe teams were added in 1974. The race is held over Labor Day Weekend each year to coincide with Liliʻuokalani´s birthday on September 2. The American Experience: Hawai´i´s Last Queen. WTF, since when is it American? Well, since the overthrow and annexation, of course. Numerous hula events are held to honor her memory. Several hundred dancers shower 50,000 orchid blossoms.
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 350: WTF, yellow Rei (= colored Sujata) thinks he was a great man.
      xxx/ellauri394.html on line 359: If Kalili saw kolohe (mischievous) kids trying to get on the train, he would yell and wave his hands to stop them. He had only thumb and little finger left on his right hand. The kids adopted that gesture; it became their signal to indicate everything was ok.
      xxx/ellauri397.html on line 75: Ostentatio genitalium (sukuelinten esittely) viittaa renessanssin visuaalisen kulttuurin erilaisiin perinteisiin antaa Jeesuksen penikselle muodollinen, temaattinen ja teologinen merkitys. Se, että nämä kuvat näyttävät olevan luotu hyvässä uskossa, hurskailla aikomuksilla, mystifioi taidehistorioitsijat, ja monet kieltäytyvät tunnustamasta luokkaa huomionarvoiseksi tai erilliseksi enkelien ja putin alastomuudesta. Silti esimerkkien lisääntyessä Kristuksen fallolle osoitettu näkyvä huomio ei voi välttyä edes välinpitämättömiltä katseilta. "Ei ole liioittelua sanoa, että tämä on luultavasti ollut kristillisen ajattelun tabuin aihe kahteentuhanteen vuoteen", kirjoittaa Stephen Sapp . Toisin kuin klassiset veistoksiset käytännöt, jotka – tiettyjä hermaa ja satyyrien patsaita lukuun ottamatta – usein esittelevät miesten sukuelimiä velttossa vaatimattomuudessa (kuten Michelangelon ylösnoussut Kristus ), nämä renessanssin kuvat järkyttävät meitä, koska ne ovat niin usein ithyfallisia: Kristus on ylösnoussut, mutta ei odotetulla tavalla (ikthyofallisesti siis, kuin karhennettu turtana).
      xxx/ellauri400.html on line 81: Yksi tapa, jolla ihmisen penikset ovat epätavallisia, on se, että ne ovat ihanan sileitä. Lähimmillä elävillä sukulaisillamme, tavallisilla simpansseilla ja bonobo-simpansseilla – joiden kanssa jaamme noin 99 % DNA: stamme – on "peniksen piikit". Näiden pienten väkästen, jotka on valmistettu samasta aineesta kuin iho ja karvat (keratiini), uskotaan kehittyneen poistamaan kilpailevien urosten siittiöitä tai hieromaan kevyesti naaraan emätintä ja estämään hänet seksistä uudelleen hetkeksi. Keskisormen pituuden ja kasvojen houkuttelevuuden, seksuaalisen suuntautumisen, riskinoton, akateemis-sexuaalisen suorituskyvyn, naisten empatiakyvyn, miesten hallitsevuuden ja jopa heidän kivestensä koon erolla on väliä. Kävi ilmi, että simpansseilla, gorilloilla ja orangutaaneilla – jotka ovat yleensä harhaanjohtavia – on keskimäärin lyhkäsempi keskisormi, kun taas Israelin luolasta löydetyllä varhaismodernilla ihmisellä ja nykyajan juutalaisilla on sileät nahattomat kyrvät mahottoman isot.
      xxx/ellauri400.html on line 154: inspector of schools for thirty-five years, and
      xxx/ellauri400.html on line 183: baffled and sometimes annoyed his
      xxx/ellauri400.html on line 225: For all his championing of disinterestedness, Arnold was unable to practise disinterestedness in all his essays. In his essay on Shelley particularly he displayed a lamentable lack of disinterestedness. Shelley's moral views were too much for the Victorian Arnold. In his essay on Keats too Arnold failed to be disinterested. The sentimental letters of Keats to Fanny Brawne were too much for him.
      xxx/ellauri400.html on line 229: As we have seen, later critics laugh at Arnold. Oliver Elton calls him a 'bad great critic'. T. S. Eliot said that Arnold is a 'Propagandist and not a creator of ideas'. According to Walter Raleigh, Arnold's method is like that of a man who took a brick to the market to give the buyers an impression of the building. Equally stupid Eliot named Dryden, Johnson and Arnold as some of the greatest critics of the English language.
      xxx/ellauri400.html on line 292: The fourth synne is whan they synge alwaye the
      xxx/ellauri400.html on line 293: placebo of flaterye, That is to say, my lord or my
      xxx/ellauri400.html on line 294: lady ye say trouthe. — Dominican Laurent, le liure
      xxx/ellauri400.html on line 306: On January 26, 2006, Joyce Carol Vincent was found in her London flat, skeletonised, after being dead for more than two years with the Instagram --- no, TV running.
      xxx/ellauri400.html on line 311: Eventually, Joyce´s bank account dried up. Her landlord sent her reminder letters. These papers, like the others, simply fell among the others scattered on her floor. They received no response. Finally, with more than six months of rent in arrears, the landlord obtained a court order to forcibly remove her from the premises. The bailiffs broke down the door and only then was her body discovered. By then, it was January 2006, more than two years after her death.
      xxx/ellauri400.html on line 315: This story is surprising for its social implications. It seems incomprehensible that entire years pass without anyone noticing the death of a person. However, these types of stories happen frequently. Chances are you'll have a story similar to Joyce Vincent's. And they are all the same.
      xxx/ellauri400.html on line 317: A person lives alone. They lose contact with her family and friends. They never know their neighbors. They remain closed with the television or computer on for years. The world goes on as if they are no longer there until one day they are no longer there. And the bad thing is that no one notices. Thanx to web 3.0, we have now corrected that.
      xxx/ellauri400.html on line 324: Hyvän tytön opas murhaarviointiin: Emma Myers -show on keskinkertainen huijari, sanoo Trisha Bhattacharya (jälleen muuten intialainen kriitikko). Elokuvan teko on suoraviivaista, nuorelle yleisölle räätälöityä, ja hahmot puhuvat teini-ikäisille suhteutettavalla tavalla. Itsepintainen pyrkimys lisätä romantiikkaa Ravin ja Pippan välille tuntuu tarpeettomalta ja heikentää Andien murhan ratkaisemisen painavampaa kerrontaa. Sitäpaizi ei näytetä yhtään tappoa, car chasea, eikä panoa. "Hyvän tytön opas murhaan" on hyvä kertakäyttökello. Se tarjoaa kunnon sovituksen mukaansatempaaviin hetkiin, erityisesti niille, jotka pitävät teini-draamista ja kevyistä mysteereistä. Kirjan fanit saattavat kokea että siitä puuttuu syvyys.
      xxx/ellauri404.html on line 48: Black fella Jay sarja on sallittu 12-vuotiaille jotka eivät osaa yxin käyttää tissiä. Koska siinä ei ole bylsintää, vain väkivaltaa verta ja kuolemaa. Se on a-okei kunhan ei näy tissejä, vituista ja kyrvistä puhumattakaan. Ne ovat lasten silmille liian karua nähtävää. Was Easton Ellis gay? Was he conservative? Se kiemurtelee mutta vastaus molempiin on "yes".
      xxx/ellauri404.html on line 152: Antiikin aikana Lepanto tunnettiin nimellä Naupaktos. Se oli itsenäinen kaupunkivaltio eli polis. Kreikkalaisessa mytologiassa Naupaktos sai laivoihin (naus) viittaavan nimensä siitä, että herakleidit rakensivat siellä laivaston, jolla he ylittivät Korintinlahden siirtyessään valtaamaan Peloponnesoksen. Ratkaiseva taistelu käytiin niemimaata pääasiassa hallinneen Teisamenoksen, Oresteen pojan, kanssa, joka löylytettiin perin pohjin. Tämä valloitus on perinteisesti ajoitettu kuusikymmentä vuotta Troijan sodan jälkeen. Herakleidit, joista siten tuli käytännössä Peloponnesoksen hallitsijoita, siirtyivät jakamaan alueita keskenään.
      xxx/ellauri404.html on line 167: Pornography laws relating to children do not cover manga, anime, or virtually created content, allowing games such as RapeLay, in which the player stalks and attempts to rape a single mother and her two school-age daughters. But they are probably adults who are wearing uniforms... they call it JK business but they are probably pretending to be schoolchildren. In Tokyo’s schools there’s no sex education. You can’t mention ‘intercourse’ or ‘sex.´ Teenage girls sell their unwashed uniforms, underwear and swimwear.
      xxx/ellauri404.html on line 389: Hei hetkinen, tää Luukasa joka kynäili 3. evankeliumin ja apostolien teot ei hevin voinut olla Jee-suxen opetuslapsi kert nää jutut kirjoitettiin puolisen vuosisataa oikeusmurhaa myöhemmin. Luukasa ei siis ollut mikään silminnäkijä vaan pikemminkin Piven akolyytti, Pikku Markusta lisää alla. No ei Lucky Luke olekkaan 12 (tai 13) alkup opetuslapsen nimilistassa.. Evankelista on eri asia kuin apostoli hölmö. Ne olivat Andreas, Bartolomeus, Filippus, Jaakob Alfeuksen poika, Jaakob vanhempi, Johannes (evankelista), Juudas Iskariot, Matteus (evankelista), Mattias (apostoli), Pietari (apostoli), Salome (opetuslapsi), Simon Kananeus, Tuomas (apostoli). Mikäs tää Salome oli? Onko pussiin pujahtanut makkaraton typy? Salome oli Jeesus Kristuksen seuraaja. Hän oli Sebedeuksen vaimo, Jaakob vanhemman ja Johanneksen äiti. Tämä kristinuskoon liittyvä artikkeli on tynkä. Joh. on eritt. suspekti tapaus, sehän on silkkaa gnostilaisuutta. Ei edes synoptinen kuin ne muut. Onko Matteus siis noista sepustuxista alkuperäisin? Oliko kukaan evankelistoista edes paikalla? Onxne eyewitness news vai pelkkää hearsay?
      xxx/ellauri404.html on line 419: The Sayings Gospel Q is notable for lacking an account of Jesus' death. It is surprising that one early Christian document is apparently so indifferent to an event which plays a profound role in others (e.g., Romans, Mark). Maybe it wasn't so notable after all. And of course there are only rather short quotes from the cross (Sorry but these guys haven't got a clue, John this is your mom, mom this is your son John, Welcome to dine with me upstairs after these messages, lama sabakhthani, I hereby give up my ghost, anything else?) Seneca was Christ's contemporary and Epictetus 20 years younger. These kind of snappy quotes were much in vogue then.
      xxx/ellauri407.html on line 78: Watching cheesy programs without feeling bad about it is highly recommended. Ruth Doherty is an experienced digital writer and editor specializing in interiors, travel and lifestyle. With 20 years of writing for national sites under her belt, she’s worked for the likes of Livingetc.com, Standard, Ideal Home, Stylist and Marie Claire as well as Homes & Gardens. When you purchase through links on our site, we may earn an affiliate commission. Here’s how it works.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 127: Kääntyessään anglikaanixi tai anglokatoliikixi (whichever who cares) se otti mallia uustomistiselta personalisti Maritainilta, josta on jo monta mainintaa, ei järin mairittelevaa. Huysmans oli toinen dekadentti proselyytti, niistäkin jo voisi tehdä taulukon. Tom käytti kääntymystä verukkeena Vivienin dumppauxeen. Pyhäin yhteyteen pääsee basta kun on luopunut maanpäällisten olentojen pukkauxesta, siteeraa se spanjuunoja mystikoita. Eli vasta kun on kyrpä ripustettu nahkurin orrelle kuivumaan. Sieltä se sen kyllä otti sittemmin taas Esmen pilluun vettymään. Uskonnossa Tomi piti eniten rähmällään rukoilemisesta ja tunnustamisesta, pyllistyxestä ja katumukshesta. Ihmisen suurin kunnia on saada ylistää jumalaa. No ei se sitä pahaxikaan pane. On se siitä merkillinen kaveri. "Russell uskoo että kuoltuaan hän mätänee, mutta minä en voi uskoa sellaista vakaumusta mihkään uskoon kuuluvaxi." Ei se ole mikään vakaumus, vaan hypoteesi, jonka jälkeenjääneet voivat todentaa. Tom oli samanlainen narsisti kuin Belovin Sale. Mahdotonta että mä häviäisin, sillä miten kävisi muun maailman? Molemmille mätkähti dynypalkinto länsivakaumusten puolustajina. Mot (Tom kääntymyxen jälkeen) käänsi vielä St John Perseen unettavan proosarunon Analbase, josta on pitkä paasaus albumissa 141 jonka olin täysin unohtanut. Siinä vielä 1 mitääntekemätön nobelisti. Nobelkynäilijät eroavat muista siinä että ruåzalaiset on antaneet niille paljon kurnuja kiitoxexi uskollisuudesta länkkäreiden vakaumuxille.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 136: This essay assembles the “Bolovian Epic” from the Columbo and Bolo verses and nonsense letters that T.S. Eliot wrote over a period of eighteen years (1910–1928). Such an aggregation is made possible by the publication of excised poems from the “Waste Land” Notebook and Volumes I–IV of The Letters of T.S. Eliot. Rather than seeing individual parts of the epic as simply obscene, I interpret the whole project and its contexts as grounded in his appreciation for the primitive and a critical disdain for the so-called civilized. Eliot invents a composite race of people, the Bolovians, whose influence on modern times includes racy behavior, religious affinities, and bowler hats. Understanding this bawdy, blue, or nonsense material contributes capitally to previous scholarship defaming Eliot's moral and cultural values.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 144: The Bolovian verses carry much critical baggage. To Conrad Aiken, they are “hilariously naughty parerga” or “admirable stanzas” (March 22). Ezra Pound calls them “chançons ithyphallique” (IMH xvi). Bonamy Dobrèe claims, “They are part of an elaborated joke, nurtured through years. It is about some primitive people called the Bolovians, who wore bowler hats, and had square wheels to their chariots” (Tate 73). Subsequent descriptions are equally diverse, ranging from “pornographic doggerel” (Thorpe) to “scabrous exuberances” (Ricks xvi). One critic says they have “a surprising racial, even racist, focus” (Cooper 66). Another claims “these poems comically and obscenely portray the history of early European expansion as an orgy of uncontrollable desire and deviant sexuality” (McIntire 283). Pornoa mikä pornoa. Eliot borrows generously from common bawdy songs and joins a long list of classical writers who indulge in sexual, obscene, erotic, bawdy, scatological, and otherwise blue verse.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 176: But are they worth reading? Does a little ‘bolo’ go a long way? a New York Times reporter asked Anthony Julius, the litigation lawyer specializing in anti-defamation and anti-Semitism. His doctoral dissertation, charging Eliot with antiSemitism, resulted in the notorious publication of T.S. Eliot, Anti-Semitism and Literary Form. ‘‘They are not worth reading,’’ Mr. Julius said. ‘‘They tap, in the most puerile way imaginable, racist fantasies of the sexual superiority of blacks’’ (Lyall). Here is an example of feeling the elephant without contact, because if he had read the verse, he would see that Columbo the Jew was the one with the biggest cock. “And he refuses to acquit Eliot of anti-Semitism in this case merely because the poet has managed to be superior to the black bigotry his poem evokes” (Menand).
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 188: Whether “bolo” means tool, penis, ball, or balls, it is easy to see how Eliot enjoyed the double entendres. Eliot may have may have meant many things when he wrote “BULL” next to Hegel’s comment on the “sincerity of the German people” (IMH 308). But the salient meaning of “bolo” is that of a meat knife, a phallic weapon, used in making love. For example, “Bolomen surprised an American outpost near Guagua, killing two privates” (“bolomen”). Or the bolo is “a very beautiful specimen of that curious weapon of war which has figured so often in the official reports of the war in the Philippines” (“specimens”). Even President Theodore Roosevelt received a bolo knife from the “bad Dattos” of the Moroe tribes.” This “bad Datto” or chieftain confesses, “I have fucked three people with this bolo, but now I have no further use for it. I am under American rule and intend to be peaceful” (“President Greatly Pleased” 5). “Then brownie got out his bolo and set to work. . . .” (“Brownie”)
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 207: C.S. Lewis betrayed his conservatism in his now infamous refusal to publish any “Words Ending in -Uck, -Unt, and -Ugger” (Pound 8). It is ironic that, except for “bugger”, “fuck” and “cunt,” other words ending in those syllables do not occur in Eliot's poems.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 229:
      The Big Black Queen of the King Bolo, Loretta Johnson décédée. I will miss her, and her terrific laugh. Loretta Johnson, a longtime Rochester schools administrator who became the first woman to lead the district during a one-year interim term in 1994-95, died Thursday at age 78.

      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 241: That his bawdy verse was not published anywhere was a continuous joke in Eliotʼs correspondence. When they were finally available to the public in 1996, they received diverse labels: “scatological,” “scabrous,” “obscene,” “pornographic” and “x-rated,” “politically incorrect,” “racist” and “misogynist,” tending towards “coprophilia,” and “grotesquely graphic. In their childish and sordid sexuality these poems have little to do with one of the root meanings of ribald, which is amorous. Instead, they are "descriptions of huge penises, defecations, buggeries and group masturbations." Twenty years later, Eliot was writing Cats, and forgive me, I prefer the kink.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 257: An admirer of Eliot’s poetry, Ottoline ‘found him dull, dull, dull’, resorting to French in her efforts to rouse him from monotony. Such early impressions are of a piece with Eliot’s Garsington caricature – ‘the undertaker’. It was Ottoline who recommended to Eliot Dr Roger Vittoz, the Swiss psychiatrist at whose Lausanne clinic Eliot recovered from his nervous breakdown; the clinic where, in the winter of 1921, lodged in the room where Ottoline herself had stayed, Eliot wrote ‘What the Thunder Said’, the final part of The Waste Land. A few years later she suggested another of her doctors, Dr Marten, but his regime of starvation proved disastrous.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 274: Kahn was a Jew from Metz, Lorraine. He chose sides with Émile Zola in the Dreyfus affair. His wife Elizabeth converted to Judaism as a protest against antisemitism, changing her name to Rachel. Gustave kirjoitti aika liikkixesti sille rakkausrunoja, pace Amiel. Rouva Elisabeth Kahnille. Je t’aime de ta voix, de tes yeux, de tes seins. Verkkotunnuxesi on pieni satumaa. Hänet haudattiin Pariisin Mottenparnasin hautausmaalle. Hänen paperinsa ovat nyt kunnossa Israelissa.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 281: On Oct. 21 (mun synttärinä), five ultra-Orthodox Jews assaulted a woman and an Israeli soldier on a bus bound for Beit Shemesh. The men demanded that the woman sit in the back of the bus; when she refused and asked the soldier to sit next to her, they beat them both. When the police came, dozens of ultra-Orthodox men attacked them while the assailants escaped. National Geographic videos are considered fine, so long, as he says carefully, that there is no human nudity or sexuality, or even sexuality from animals. Mr. Paloch sells an ultra-Orthodox doll, with long side curls, that recites prayers. Hassuhatut on sairaan pellejä, mutta rahan tuntevia.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 285: This article is more than 9 years old: New edition of TS Eliot poetry challenges perceptions of his sexuality. "I love a tall girl. When she sits on my knee/ She with nothing on, and I with nothing on/ I can just take her nipple in my lips / And stroke it with my tongue,” he writes, in a poem titled How the Tall Girl and I Play Together. In another poem, Eliot – who took a vow of chastity in 1928 after being confirmed into the Church of England – celebrates the “miracle of sleeping together as I touch the delicate down beneath her navel. Her breasts are like ripe pears that dangle Above my mouth Which reaches up to take them”. Euu, cringe.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 287: The poem is one of three that were discovered in notebooks handwritten for his second wife, Valerie, who had been his secretary and was nearly 40 years his junior. To the surprise of most who knew them – and particularly to two women who had been pursuing him for years – the couple married in 1957 when he was 68 and she was 30.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 315: "Sweeney jäykkänä" kirjoitettiin ja julkaistiin vuonna 1919 Eliotin kokoelmassa "Poems". Siellä Sweeney debytoi. Eliot käytti Sweeneyä myöhemmin runoissa, kuten " Sweeney among the Nightingales " ja "Mr. Eliotin sunnuntaiaamuerektio." Hänet mainitaan lyhyesti myös The Waste Landissa.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 437: Benjamin Barker, a barber convicted wrongfully who after 15 years in an Australian penal colony escapes and returns to London using the new name Sweeney Todd, only to find that Judge Turpin, who is responsible for his conviction, has raped his young wife Lucy and adopted Todd's daughter Johanna. He at first plans to kill Turpin, but when his prey escapes, he swears vengeance on humanity in general and begins to slash his customers' throats. Se ei tiennyt ettei 2 pahaa plussaudu 1 hyväxi. Ei tule edes nolla, sillä teoilla ei ole etumerkkiä.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 878: TS Eliotilla oli tosiaankin ruma nenä. Tuhkakeskiviikko (joskus Tuhka-keskiviikko) on pitkä runo, jonka TS Eliot kirjoitti hänen kääntyessään anglikanismiin vuonna 1927. Vuonna 1930 julkaistu runo käsittelee taistelua, joka syntyy, kun menneisyyteen juuttunut yrittää siirtyä kohti Jumalaa.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 882: Ensimmäisessä osiossa Eliot esittelee luopumisen ajatuksen Cavalcantin lainauksella , jossa runoilija ilmaisee omistautumisensa naiselleen kuoleman lähestyessä. Dante Gabriel Rossetti käänsi sen nimellä Ballata, Written in Exile at Sarzana, ja käänsi ensimmäisen rivin "Koska en toivo palaavani". Näin tuodaan esille myös ajatus Eliotin immigraatiosta. Ei siitä koskaan tullut oikeata brittiä vaikka yritti peräpukamien hinnalla. Ei pitäisi nostaa vahtisotilaille bowlerhattua.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 897: Úbedan veljet protestoivat ja 15. syyskuuta 1596 paavi Klemens VIII julkaisi lyhyen Expositum Nobis -kirjeen, jossa määrättiin jäännösten palauttamisesta Úbedaan. Myöhemmin paavin ohjeeseen tehtiin muutos, joka antoi kalkkikarmeliittien esimiehen määrätä palauttaa Úbedaan vain toinen jalka ja yksi käsivarsi, jotka saapuivat sinne 7. syyskuuta 1607.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 990: Tällänen kinastelu käytiin Dougin palstalla 2016 Dougin sätittyä mormoneja siitä että niiden mielestä jumalalla oli perettä, nim. että Ashera-paalu oli oikeasti Mrs. Cod, la femme de foyer du bon Dieu.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1085: I'd recommend the removal of your last sentence prior to the prayer.
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1089: Look at her Twitter account she claims atheism and yet sends blessing from guess who?? goddes Asherah... ugh.....
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1154: 9 Jesus said to him, "Have I been so long with you, and yet you have not come to know Me, Philip? He who has seen Me has seen the Father; how can you say, 'Show us the Father '? 10 "Do you not believe that I am in the Father, and the Father is in Me? The words that I say to you I do not speak on My own initiative, but the Father abiding in Me does His works. 11 "Believe Me that I am in the Father and the Father is in Me; otherwise believe because of the works themselves. (John 14:9-11)
      xxx/ellauri410.html on line 1220: Of course, they're all eternal and one in spirit and purpose. I'm still confused about the trinity concept though since I haven't seen an answer to any of my questions yet.
      xxx/ellauri414.html on line 205: humdrum tasks. But when I stayed in Finland, I
      xxx/ellauri414.html on line 217: properly layer yourself with warm clothes,
      xxx/ellauri414.html on line 242: years I was there. God I miss the place!
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 53: Bare-ass women like Esther, Miriam, Vashti, and yes, Lilith, Adam's ex and Satan's lay, are empowering — even sexy. But not exactly shameless.
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 58: There are a bunch of Torah passages commanding men to make sure they sexually please their wives in bed, in the verbal form of an enthusiastic yes! yes! As a sexual assault advocate, I was super disappointed to read this.
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 64: For many Jews, the emphasis on family can be something that leads to more sex - but less fun, just more work at the salt mines. Focusing on family can feel like pressure to have kids, which is not very sex-positive at all. The constant pressure to procreate is hard on Yael. So yes, there is still work to be done. A lot of trudgery in the hairless hills of unorthodox pudenda. Being queer and having sex without kids doesn’t hurt anyone… so why would God care?” Why indeed. But he does! And how! For he has a beard though no penis and no testicles.
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 126: Hän oli myös tunnettu terävästä nokkeluudestaan ja usein syövyttävistä jibeistään. Talmud kertoo Eruvin luvussa 53b, että hän kerran nuhteli Jesus Nasaretilaista, kun tämä kysyi häneltä: "Mitä tietä me menemme Lodziin ? " väittäen, että hän olisi voinut sen sijaan sanoa: "Millä Lodille?" (kaksi heprealaista sanaa neljän sijasta) ja siten pitäytyen Talmudin käskyssä olla puhumatta naisille tarpeettomasti. Pane puukengät jalkaan se on lyhyempi lause.
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 134: Useat Talmudin jälkeiset kommentit tarjoavat selityksiä tälle tapaukselle. Rashin mukaan, "Kommentti Avodah Zarahille" 18b, Beruriah valotti talmudin väitettä, jonka mukaan naiset ovat "kevytmielisiä" Kiddushinissa 80b. Rashi selittää ilmauksen "naisten mieli painaa heitä kevyesti" osoittavan seksuaalisen eston estotonta puutetta. Vahvistaakseen talmudilaisen maksiimin Rabbi Meir lähetti yhden oppilaistaan viettelemään hiänet. Vaikka hiän aluksi vastusti opiskelijan edistymistä, hän lopulta yhtyi hiäneen, tosin vasta tilaisuuden tullen. Kun hiän tajusi, mitä hän oli tehnyt, hiän teki itsemurhan häpeästä. (Muiden lähteiden mukaan hiän sairastui emotionaalisesti häpeän vuoksi, ja joukko kilttejä rabbeja rukoili hiänen kuolemaansa ja rauhaa.) Rabbi Meir puolestaan karkoitti itsensä Israelista häpeästä ja pakeni Babyloniaan.
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 143: Itäkeskuxesta löytyi uuvuttavan Michenerin tiiliskivi jota olen ezinyt, nimitt. The Source. Se on nyt huisin ajankohtainen niinkuin se oli ilmestyessään 1965, 2 vuotta ennen Israelin 1967 laitonta hyökkäyssotaa.
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 145: It only took a few years and usurped Arab land to turn a hunchback Jew of The Ghetto to a lively and attractive kolkhoz farmer. Kolhoznikkien baasi on ilmiselvä "Thad" (alb. 280 paas. 11100).
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 153: Prayer/The buttocks.
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 168: Synagoogassa on hasideja patalakki päässä. As they prayed, their bodies made a series of compulsive jerks back and forth like a flock of bucks busy on some goats.
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 182: Anita Marks 2002 posed for Playboy in the middle of her career as a professional female football player. The University of South Florida graduate is now a sports radio host for the likes of CBS and ESPN. But did not show her centerfold that year.
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 200: Sally Sheffield 1969 on juutalaissyntyinen Playboy-malli. Hän syntyi syövän merkin alla 17. heinäkuuta 1941 New Yorkissa, New Yorkissa, Yhdysvalloissa. Sally Sheffield oli Playboy Playmate kuukauden toukokuussa 1969. Hän sai arvostetun Playboy Playmate -tittelin 27-vuotiaana. Hänen mitat ovat 36-24-35. Sally Sheffieldillä on luonnolliset rinnat, sielukkaat ruskeat silmät ja ruskeat hiukset. Sheffield spent eight months on an Israeli kibbutz, where she said she artificially inseminated hens. In her Playboy profile, Sheffield praised the integrity of one-eyed Moshe Dayan, who at the time of her photo shoot was Israel’s minister of defense. Pompeo Posar kuvasi hänen keskitaittonsa. (Se ei välttämättä ole kuvan mirri mutta varmaan yhtä karvainen.)
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 244: Cervantesin Don Quijotessa (1605) Celadon on Galatean vangittuna. Celadon valittaa, että hänen "emäntänsä... Galatea pitää minua niin lyhyessä hihnassa". Robert Herrickin Hesperides, runokirja, joka julkaistiin vuonna 1648, sisälsi kolme paljastavaa runoa Hymne to Love, The Dream ja To Love, jotka esittelevät maskuliinista kaipuuta herruudesta, pidättymisestä ja kurinalaisuudesta. James Joycen Ulysses - hahmolla Leopold Bloomilla on monia fantasioita alistumisesta naiselle ja saada häneltä ruoskintoja. Sexuaalisuus ilon ja työn välillä.
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 309: Seuraava kirjaus Herrickin toiminnasta on vuodelta 1627, jolloin hänestä tuli yksi useista papeista, jotka seurasivat George Villiersiä, Buckinghamin ensimmäistä herttuaa, ristiretkellä ranskalaisten protestanttien vapauttamiseksi Rhén saarella. Joukkojen sairauksien tuhoisa yhdistelmä, ranskalaisten tehokas sotilaallinen toiminta ja myrsky merellä Buckinghamin laivojen vetäytyessä Englantiin johti kahden kolmasosan retkikunnan menettämiseen. Ei ihme että Roope otti pikaisesti vastaan viran Kouvolassa. Maaseutupastoriksi tulemisen 39-vuotiaana täytyi olla radikaali muutos Herrickin entisestä elämästä kirjallisten, hovimiesten ja sotilaallisten seikkailijoiden keskuudessa. No ei muuta kuin kuningasta nuolemaan. Todellakin, kuningas, vaikka hän oli yhdeksän vuotta Herrickiä nuorempi, nousee esiin Hesperidesissä jälleen toisena isähahmona. Charles esitetään hoivajumalana, aviomiehenä ja valloittavana sankarina. Tarpeet, joita hänen luonnolliset ja muut isänsä eivät kyenneet tyydyttämään, hän löytää taivaallisesta Isästään.
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 566: Hoo hoo jaa jaa. Seisoisipa tolleen vielä. Tällänen penixen ja vaginan kanssa puuhastelu on niin elukkamaisen suoraviivaista ja palkizevaa ettei ihme eze on niin suosittua ajanvietettä. Jos runkkua ja seisotusta riittäisi loppumattomasti eikä paikat hankautuisi nuohotessa ruvelle, ei varmaan muuta huvittaisi tehdäkään. Mutta ei, kaikkeen kyllästyy, unehen ja rakkauteenkin. Niin on Darwin sen hyvin suunnitellut. Vanhusten ei tarvi enää lisääntymishommiin kyetä.
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 674: together as we did for four years. With your
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 770: Palestine marchers in London - hope you enjoyed
      xxx/ellauri415.html on line 786: testamentet och antika statyer som jag runkade
      xxx/ellauri416.html on line 85: Samaan aikaan kun Bakussa pidetään all male paneelia ilmastorahoista, Azerbaizan ja Turkki kuskaa azerien öljyä Israeliin jossa sillä pariloidaan palestiinalaisia. To prevent collapse of Israel and the IDF, the United States is sending almost all its operational navy ships to protect Israel so that it can pursue its genocide in Gaza US Secretary Austin ordered the deployment of additional ballistic missile defense destroyer ships, fighter squadron and tanker aircraft, and several U.S. Air Force B-52 long-range strike bombers to the region. The morale of the IDF is collapsing after a year of being unable to defeat an irregular army with homemade weapons and a growing awareness that they are now universally hated and despised - it is eating into their soul, if any. Hoohoo jaajaa, toiveajattelua Filistean puolelta.
      xxx/ellauri416.html on line 494: Like David and Goliath, the story of Samson and Delilah are well-known stories of right and wrong, good and evil, goys and jews. These findings help tell the story of the Philistines on their own terms, in a way that complements (rather than negating) what the biblical writers said about them. Think of them as ancient Vikings. According to the Bible, the Philistines were polytheists. Polytheist means you worship multiple gods, unlike the Nazirite Samson. The biblical story of Samson suggests that he destroyed the temple of Dagon in Gaza. Present-day Samsons specialize in childrens' hospitals.
      xxx/ellauri416.html on line 507: also played a role. It was during the late
      xxx/ellauri416.html on line 562: Philistine city, at least in the eyes of the
      xxx/ellauri416.html on line 580: By the middle of the eleventh century BC, the Philistine confederation had become powerful enough that they began to expand their influence from the coast to the east and north, which encroached on Israelite territory. So yes: we were there first!
      xxx/ellauri416.html on line 582: The first contact between the Philistines and Israelites were violent with the Philistines quickly gaining the upper hand. In the book of Judges, the Philistines are ascendant with the men of Judah even offering to bind the hero Samson, asking him: “Knowest thou not that the Philistines are rulers over us?" Philistine dominance continued for over fifty years until King David unified Israel and Judah and finally drove the Philistines from Israelite territory in 980 BC. Get off my property! they said like the fiddler on the roof.
      xxx/ellauri416.html on line 591: The Israelites wrote that the Philistine’s sacrificed their children. This may have happened, but we also see the graves of children with their hands lovingly folded and a layer of broken pottery meticulously arranged over their bodies. That complicates the one-dimensional villains of Scripture. Like Philistine children shot with Israeli shrapnel on the Gaza strip.
      xxx/ellauri416.html on line 593: The patriarch Abraham lived several hundred years before the twelfth century (so he got there first, nyaah nyaah nyaah), and the biblical narrative attests that he and his sons had contact with the Philistines. There are several possible explanations for this discrepancy. One is that another people group was known as the Philistines, and the migrants from the Aegean who arrived in the twelfth century took on its moniker and called themselves Philistines. Another possible explanation is that there was a steady flow of migrants from the Aegean, all of whom were related and called themselves Philistines.
      xxx/ellauri416.html on line 722: El means "God" in the Ugaritic and the Canaanite languages. The literal meaning of Shaddai, however, is the subject of debate. Some scholars have argued that it came from Akkadian shadû ("mountain") or from the Hebrew verb shaddad שדד meaning "Destroyer". Shaddai may have also come from shad שד meaning mammary; shaddai is a typical Biblical Hebrew word (שדי). The plural (Shaddayim -- שדיים) is the typical Modern Hebrew word for human breasts in dual grammatical number.The Deir Alla Inscription contains shaddayin as well as elohin rather than elohim. Scholars translate this as "shadday-gods," taken to mean unspecified boobs, mountain or destroyer gods. A popular interpretation of the name Shaddai is that it is composed of the Hebrew relative particle she- (Shin plus vowel segol followed by dagesh), or, as in this case, as sha- (Shin plus vowel patach followed by a dagesh). The noun containing the dagesh is the Hebrew word dai meaning "enough, sufficient, sufficiency". However, Day's overview says a "rabbinic view understanding the name meaning 'who suffices' (Se + day) is clearly fanciful and has no support."
      xxx/ellauri417.html on line 262: Reflecting a strain of feminist criticism of the transhumanist program, the homely lady philosopher Susan Bordo and her dog point to "contemporary obsessions with slenderness, youth and physical perfection", which she sees as affecting both men and women, but in distinct ways, as "the logical (if extreme) manifestations of death anxieties and fantasies fostered by our culture." Southpaw political scientist Klaus-Gerd Giesen has asserted that transhumanism's concentration on altering the human body represents the logical yet tragic consequence of atomized individualism and body commodification within a consumer culture.
      xxx/ellauri417.html on line 277: Nyt on kesken nippu kirjoja jotka on selkeästi "poikien", koska niissä heiluu laumoittain irvisteleviä koirasapinoita jotka aivan nauttii päästessään lyömään puremaan ja tappamaan toisia samanlaisia. Kirjat ovat Punavyö ja Kapteenin perintö, Michenerin Source, Knasun Susi jo syntyessään ja Lapiduxen roskatrilleri, jonka nimeä en edes muista. Varsinaisia iljetyxiä, sori vaan uskovaiset. Musta tuntuu että mä en enää jaxa lukea tällästä tää on liian testosteroonista vanhuxelle. Kuuntele nyt tätäkin: "Pete nyökkäsi. Dick imi sammunutta piippuaan. Toveruxet eivät olleet järin puhetuulella, sillä Punavyön pitkä öinen razastus villissä vuoristossa väsytti ja tuntui tottumattomissa pakaroissa."
      xxx/ellauri417.html on line 321: Voidaan väittää, että Venäjän ja Ukrainan sota todella alkoi Slovjanskissa huhtikuussa 2014. Siihen mennessä Kremlin joukot olivat jo vallanneet Krimin . Venäjä-mielisen presidentin Viktor Janukovitšin syrjäyttämisen jälkeen poliittisen mullistuksen kourissa ollut  Ukraina ei kyennyt vastustamaan.
      xxx/ellauri417.html on line 416: Why is Ukraine losing? Don’t worry, my friend, nobody is losing. The frontlines in Ukraine have remained remarkably stable for almost a year. It’s true that Russia has gained some territory, but they’ve paid a higher price than ever for it. Russian casualty numbers have
      xxx/ellauri417.html on line 425: This war has become a “normal” one, pretty much like all our wars before it. It has its ups and downs and the winners and losers (if there are any) will be declared when the whole thing is over. So, if you’re pro-Ukrainian (or the opposite), do not despair (or take the champagne out of the fridge). Nobody is losing or winning, yet. Stay tuned and get another beer and popcorn.
      xxx/ellauri417.html on line 442: Venäläisvastaisuus eli russofobia on inhoamista tai pelkoa tai vihaa Venäjää, venäläisiä ihmisiä tai venäläistä kulttuuria kohtaan. Russofobian vastakohta on Russophilia. Historiallisesti russofobiaan on kuulunut valtion tukema ja ruohonjuuritason pahoinpitely ja syrjintä sekä propaganda, joka sisältää Venäjän vastaisia ​​tunteita.  Euroopassa russofobia perustui useisiin enemmän tai vähemmän fantastisiin pelkoihin venäläisten Euroopan valloittamisesta, kuten Pietari Suuren testamentin väärennökseen, joka dokumentoitiin Ranskassa 1800-luvulla ja nousi myöhemmin uudelleen esiin Isossa-Britanniassa. Se oli seurausta Venäjän hyökkäyksestä brittien kolonisoimaan Intiaan liittyen Suureen pippeliin . Aiemmin Saksassa vallinneen venäläisvastaisuuden katsotaan olevan yksi tekijä, joka vaikutti Venäjän miehityksen alaisena toisen maailmansodan aikana. Nykyään on edelleen olemassa erilaisia ​​populaarikulttuurin kliseitä ja negatiivisia stereotypioita venäläisistä, etenkin länsimaissa. Joillakin henkilöillä saattaa olla ennakkoluuloja tai vihaa venäläisiä kohtaan historian, rasismin, propagandan tai juurtuneiden stereotypioiden vuoksi.  Negatiiviset näkemykset Venäjästä ovat yleisiä, mutta yleisimpiä länsimaisissa liberaaleissa demokratioissa. Venäjä-vastaisuus nousi huomattavasti sen jälkeen, kun Venäjän sota Ukrainaa vastaan ​​alkoi vuonna 2014. Kesään 2020 mennessä suurimmalla osalla länsimaista oli epäsuotuisa näkemys Venäjästä.
      xxx/ellauri417.html on line 563: Väritin tämän kuvan erehdyksessä luullen sen olevan Ursula Haverbeck (natsiaktivisti (1928-2024), joka tuomittiin toistuvasti vankilaan holokaustin izepäisen kieltämisen vuoksi), jotta lopulta selvisi, että kyseessä on natsicosprayer nimeltä Cecily Amanda Forrell... Se on moderni tyttö, joka pelaa cosprayta, hänen nimensä on Amanda Forrell ja hän harrastaa monenlaista cosprayta ja kertoo, ettei hän edes pidä Hitleristä eikä ole rasisti. Ei sillä, että hän olisi edes arjalainen, hänellä on pehmeät silmät ja hän on suomalainen (saame/aasialaisvaikutteinen rakenne), joka asuu Yhdysvalloissa.
      xxx/ellauri420.html on line 66: Regina Jeffers, a public classroom teacher for thirty-nine years, considers herself a Jane Austen enthusiast. She is the author of several Austen-inspired novels, including Darcy's Passions, Darcy's Temptation, Vampire Darcy's Desire, Captain Wentworth's Persuasion, The Phantom of Pemberley, Christmas at Pemberley, The Disappearance of Georgiana Darcy, Honor and Hope, and The Mysterious Death of Mr. Darcy. She also writes Regency romances: The Scandal of Lady Eleanor, A Touch of Velvet, A Touch of Cashémere, A Touch of Grace, His: Two Regency Novellas, and The First Wives' Club. A Smithsonian presenter, a Time Warner Star Teacher and Martha Holden Jennings Scholar, Jeffers often serves as a consultant in language arts and media literacy. Currently living outside Charlotte, North Carolina, she spends her time with her writing, gardening, and her adorable grandson Lucifer.
      xxx/ellauri420.html on line 68: Mercy Nelson is a 17-year-old athlete who was sidelined for over a year with a knee injury and battled her way back to become a first team all-league basketball athlete and a second team all-league volleyball player for Rainier Christian High School. Her incredible story makes her the star of this month’s athlete comeback blog!
      xxx/ellauri420.html on line 118: Duke of Thornhillillä on lyhyempi kuin Lord Worthingilla, mutta hän on yhtä lihaksikas rakenteeltaan. Hänellä on vaaleanruskeat hiukset, joita hän käyttää hieman liian pitkiä ollakseen muodikas, ja tummanruskeat silmät. Averettes-aikani aikana olen ymmärtänyt, että herttua meni äskettäin naimisiin serkkunsa neiti Aldridgen kanssa. Poikamiesten joukossa oli Sir Carter Lowery, äskettäin lyöty paroni ja erittäin ystävällinen nuori mies; Lord Yardley, jaarli Northumberlandista, joka on staattinen ja vakavamielinen, mutta jolla epäilen olevan hyvin syviä tunteita; Godownin markiisi, joka on syntisen komea, ja varakreivi Lexford Cheshirestä, joka on päältään hiekkavaaleita ja poikamaisen komea."
      xxx/ellauri420.html on line 151: Ennen kuin hän oli tavannut Valtakunnan jäsenet, Hill oli aina halveksinut tietämättömyyttä, jonka hän oli löytänyt arvovaltaisten keskuudessa, mutta hän huomasi nopeasti, että Lord Lexfordin tuttavat olivat poikkeuksia sääntöön. Hän käänsi päätään tutkiakseen tyttöä tarkemmin. Hän ei ollut lainkaan niiden naisten kaltainen, jotka hänen herransa tavallisesti valitsi; kuitenkin, jopa niin lyhyen tuttavuuden perusteella, Lucifer oli haukkunut eräänlaisen "suunnitelman."
      xxx/ellauri420.html on line 205: Chaque jour est un Rubicon où j'aspire à me noyer. Jokainen päivä on uusi eilinen.
      xxx/ellauri420.html on line 215: yen_Orient_Amarna_1-sm.webp" width="100%" />
      xxx/ellauri420.html on line 305: Quality self-care begins, according to our Lord’s direction and example, with prayer for protection: “Lead us not into temptation.” That failing, we pray for our Father’s intervention: “But deliver us MREs from (the) evil (one).”
      xxx/ellauri420.html on line 313: And God your Father in heaven for Jesus’ sake will take care of you, of that you can be sure. He is the almighty Maker of heaven and earth, and yet at the same time he is your true Father, though not the biological one. That means you are his true son, sort of, dearly loved. He is guardian and keeper of all those lovely children too. He guides you in waking and he guards you sleeping. Under his protection you can safely sail through even in the most distressing hours of your life.
      xxx/ellauri420.html on line 319: But you can stand against this attack, provided you wear the protective armor of Christ Jesus your Lord: his truth, his righteousness, his gospel, his faith, and his salvation. Wield the sword of his Spirit with prayer and supplication, culbutant en prière,  knowing that your Father in heaven delights in hearing your prayer and will most surely deliver you his takeaway in his own time and pay your way from all that ails you. So don’t cash it in. Never ever give up; be just as persistent as the devil in your attacks against those you love.
      xxx/ellauri420.html on line 527: Neljännen Pausaniaksen kertoman tarinan mukaan, Atys oli Fryygian kuninkaan Calauksen poika, eikä luonteeltaan kyennyt levittämään rotuaan. Kun hän oli kasvanut, hän meni Lydiaan, jossa hän esitteli Cybelen palvonnan. Kiitollinen jumalatar keksi hänelle sellaisen kiintymyksen, että Zeus vihassaan sitä kohtaan lähetti Lydiaan villisian, joka tappoi monia asukkaista, ja heidän joukossaan myös Atyn. Atysin uskottiin haudatun Pessinukseen Agdistis-vuoren alle. Häntä palvottiin Cybelen temppeleissä tämän jumalattaren kanssa. Taideteoksissa hänet esitetään paimenena, jolla on huilu ja sauva (LOL). Hänen palvontansa näyttää tulleen Kreikkaan suhteellisen myöhään. Böttigerin nerokas näkemys on, että Atysin myytti edustaa luonnon keskinkertaista luonnetta, miehen ja naisen, keskittyneenä yhteen. Wauzi wau.
      xxx/ellauri420.html on line 565: Aviottoman syntymänsä ja köyhyyden takia mlle de Lespinasse oli laiminlyöty lapsi. Hän sai peruskoulutuksen nunnaluostarista mutta oli pääasiassa itseoppinut, minkä ansiosta hän pystyi myöhemmin pitämään pintansa Ranskan kärkiälykköjen joukossa. Tunnistettuaan veljentyttärensä kyvyt Madame du Deffand houkutteli hänet vuonna 1754 Pariisiin. Siis Mlle de Lespinasse muutti sokean tätinsä luo Pariisiin. Kymmenen vuotta myöhemmin Madame du Deffand alkoi kadehtia nuoremman naisen vaikutusvaltaa nuorempiin salongeissa kävijöihin. L’arrivée de Julie au milieu de ce beau monde fait sensation. Elle n’est, certes, pas remarquée pour sa beauté mais son comportement est plein de grâce. Elle a un irrésistible besoin de plaire à tous, sans discrimination. Le ton de sa voix est très doux et exquis. Elle a l’art d’écouter et d’applaudir aux bons mots des autres. Elle s’enthousiasme facilement mais avec retenue et cette attitude tranche sur les sentiments blasés d’une société trop polie. Cela redonne vie à la marquise naturellement sceptique et craignant par-dessus tout de s’ennuyer. Au fur et à mesure de l’aggravation de sa cécité elle a bien besoin d’une telle compagne pour se rattacher à la vie.
      xxx/ellauri420.html on line 567: Julie va, en effet, apparaître aux yeux de la marquise comme une véritable rivale sur le double plan professionnel et affectif. Comme la « journée », si l’on peut dire, de madame du Deffand commençait de plus en plus tard, certains invités avaient pris l’habitude de venir rue Saint-Dominique une ou deux heures avant l’ouverture officielle du salon. Ils n’avaient qu’à gagner l’entresol au-dessus de l’appartement et descendaient plus tard par le petit escalier intérieur dans le salon de la marquise qui découvrit le manège en avril 1764. Sa déception fut terrible et Julie dut supporter des scènes épouvantables.
      6858